《I'm in Hollywood》 Chapter 1 Chapter 001: Hollywood 1988 Hey, Eric, steak for table nine. Oh, good. Eric promised, and two clumpsy steak arrived at the couple in front of the window . After that, back to the original position, leaning against the counter, continued to be in daze. Time is July 13, 1988, the third day of rebirth, Los Angeles, North Hollywood location in an Italian restaurant. Eric turned and looked at the ss window not far to see a boy height of about one meter eighty, angr face, aquiline nose, a short golden hair, which is now his own. A few days ago Eric across the Pacific ocean in 2014 , is an advertising director. 24-year-old graduated from the famous film Academy director department, wanted to be a famous international director, fought ten years, and finally understood that reality is too cruel. By virtue of solid professional knowledge, in circles of advertising director,good and evil became famous one is not ? 35-year-old married and a son was born a yearter, and finally settle down. A few yearster at ss reunion, he drank too much reliving the past memories with his friends, whom he had not seen for a long time. Simr to opening of all the horror thriller stories , after waking up, he found himself back 25 years ago, became a high school student named Eric Williams, had just graduated from high school this year, but Eric, are you okay? A chubby hand resting on Erics shoulder, patted. Eric turned and saw the restaurant owner Jeff Jones. . Im sorry, Jeff, I got distracted. Never mind, Jeff rubbed his hands, seemed to thinking of words, then said: For Ralph, Im sorry, but life goes goes on, is it not ? Come on, Eric. Ralph Williams, Erics father, is a very good cook of Italian dishes. At this restaurant has been working for many years. Although cooking is great, but Ralph had a very bad addiction C alcoholism. ording to the original owner of the body memories Ralph hobby has rted the mother he has not seen . The simple fact, a month ago, Ralph because of excessive drinking leading to acute alcoholism died. Thank you, Jeff for your help, I really do not know how can repay you. Eric said. With Ralphs death, Erics life is thrown into chaos. Originally, Eric has applied for the University of California, but with the death of Ralph Erics university hopese to nothing. Even if it is a public university tuition fee needed is $ 20,000 a year or so, not counting other expenses. As Ralphs boss and friend, Jeff, after some talks with Eric, Eric began to start a waiter in a restaurant, after all, as Jeff said, life must go on. Ralph worked here for so many years, this is what I should do. But I can only do so much, and the rest can only rely on your own efforts. Eric nodded in gratitude, looking at this Jeff turned to leave. he remembered his deep thoughts before. Somewhere, since an unscrupulous god sent him to Hollywood twenty years ago, if he had continued to waiter job, he will certainly be mad. After three days just to understand own situation, Eric who excited before, lost his excitement .The previous generation as an outstanding student of film and television institute, he has not realized own dream, finally lowers the head to the reality . Even now, he have neither diploma nor background, even went to the filmpany to apply for the bottom of the post, may not seed. After a busy day in Italian restaurant, Eric drove away in Ford Sedan car that his cheap Eric father left behind . After Ralphs death, Eric had wanted to sell this car to support the family, but after receiving the waiter job, kept it, after all, the United States is the country on wheels, if no car, a lot of things is inconvenient. Passing a cinema theater Eric saw Rambo 3 poster close to the theater entrance, under the snow-capped mountains and a helicopter in the background, in his prime of Stallone muscles make female fans screaming . Unexpectedly, Eric parhed the car in the parking lot not far and inquired, just soon will start, Erik bought a ticket to enter the movie theater. Because not prime-time, two hundred-seat theater, only about thirty or forty people, Eric found his seat and sat down. Soon the theater into darkness, after the titles, the official start of the movie plot, Colonel Sam Trautman asked Rambo who live in seclusion of Thand, to go to Afghanistan to carry out thetask together, but Rambo has rejected him. After Colonel was captured, Rambo to save thegood friend once again taken arms .. Past, Eric watched all Stallone movies, and most more than once. The reason why buy a ticket, because Eric remembered Stallones experience, but also remembered former self. In the decade he fought, whenever he want to give up, he will use some of the more inspirational stories to motivate oneself, including Sylvester Stallone that legendary career. Movie plot still continues, Erik swirling thoughts faded, focused on enjoying the movie. Gradually, rxed the body and leaned back straight from the waist. Because he found one thing, as he had seen before the film , whenever plot advances Eric subconsciously think about what will happen next, and then he found the magic, as he thought , the next screen will clearly show the movie in his mind, that is to say, he should remember the whole movie every shot, every line, every even some music. Gradually, Eric excited, then close your eyes, choose the one Camerons Titanic began to recall the result is still the case, he can recall every minute movie shot . Choosng of several seen the movie again, is still the case. Thoughts turn to fly, Eric tried to remember the name but only heard not seen some of the movies, the miracle does not appear, it seems he only remembers that he had seen something, but it was enough. Just reborn, when Eric wouldter also thought of some movies themselves, but, after all, is a past professional director, he certainly knows how difficult it operations, he wrote some of the most simr scripts only. But now, after the discovery of a clear mind filled with all the memories of past lives, Eric knows what it means, as long as the conditions, he will be able to read past those ssic movie almost perfectly copied out. Because the excitement, the dark Eric cheek fever, slightly numb fingers. Finally, Eric could not, heavily on the seat armrest shot down, his mouth blurted out: FUCK palm pain will Eric back to reality, looking around the audience vote over several grievances eyes, Eric embarassed smiled. One hundred minutes of film will soon be over, Rambo rescued his friend, a wisp again, deep reactive with the name. But sitting in the dark Eric apparently did not notice them, but thoughts turn to do a lot of thinking . His past life he did not have so good memory, like ordinary people, to read an article many times to recite, but also to listen to a song many times to sing. Obviously, this is unscrupulous oh no, lovely gods gave him a great asset. Took to the pinnacle of life carries enormous Wildness out of the cinema, Eric drove home in rush. He knew that, in the case having such a huge resource in mind, if he as in past failed, then it really is better to take a pot of water to choke oneself. Chapter 2 Chapter 002: Inspiration out of quarrel Erik ced a clunky typewriter lightly on the desk, wiped sweat from his forehead, he missed his past very thin and light notebook PC. This is the state he found himself the next day in his memory pce, after a day of thinking, Eric about his future had a preliminary n. So he deliberately to took a day off, strolled most of the day time, bought a secondhand typewriter. Which is an essential thing for the realization of his n . After processing Ralphs funeral, in Eric hands left a few hundred dors in cash . Having a good welfare system in Western countries, it has always been no savings custom here. Fortunately the house where he lived, the loan has been repaid, or else, because of inability to pay the mortgage, the house was recovered, he may sleep on the streets. In this way, to buy a typewriter Eric from Jeff took a month sry in advance. To realize own dreams, he must first break into Hollywood circles. Temporarily forget about directly directing, the actor is not a path for him. After much deliberation, the most suitable for his is screenwriter. Although people always say this era Hollywood screenwriter low status, it is not true, because the top of the gold medal screenwriters switch to a director and producer, which with the Hong Kong film is no different. Loading into the typewriter a manuscript paper,Erik lifts the hand to knock the nextlineof letters on the keyboard: Jurassic Park . Yes, it is the 1990s the most profitable film series. Eric still remember past lives, from hawkers buying pirated discs of Jurassic Park , where a group of friends together watch the film, when the lifelike dinosaurs appear on the TV screen, the kind of feeling, only one word to describe: I and my little friends are shocked. In Memory novel Jurassic Park was published in 1990, only 100000 words, so now Michael yton certainly have not started to write.Erik appropriates to oneself it satisfiedly, the daywithdoes not take, instead by its fault( i dont know how to trante it). As Michael yton saying that a life experience called fantasy figures, there is no Jurassic Park there maybe something other. Eric mouth slightly tilt, while the recollection of events while pounding the keyboard. He is writing is not a Jurassic Park script, but fiction. Past him after watching the film, because of curiosity, and got the novel Jurassic Park and carefully read. Now, with a memory that gets fairly good grades in school, the past life of the Chinese version tranted into English fiction is more than enough. There is no direct reason to write the script, screeny written directly on the one hand is dropped into the filmpany, most likely to be treated as garbage thrown into the waste paper basket. Screeny Hollywood studios receive each day, basically is calcted on the pounds. On the other hand, Eric wanted the film rights to the series firmly in control in their own hands, because even now as a screeny, if a fancy filmpany had liked it, and made into a film, thest to get the most profit only those filmpanies. But Eric, besides tens of thousands dors payment for published piece, mostly receives extra drawing bonus again.Thematter of this doing business at a loss, Erik will definitely not do. But publishes the novel, Erik can firmly control the film and television copyright inhis hand,waits for the appropriate opportunity to wait for a better price, maximum benefitthat canobtain. Immersed in work, time flies, until the sky ispletely dark, Eric already look down the letters on the keyboard, only to find unconsciously, he has written four or five hours in a row, stomach began growling again. Stands up, Erik looks on the desk thick one pack of drafts, stretched oneself ,ording tothisspeed, probably one week of time canplete the manuscript, after all, the present stagehemust continue in Jeffs dining room work, otherwise must have an empty stomach. Went into the kitchen, Eric made himself a simple dinner of rice and a tomato scrambled eggs, typical Chinese dishes, as the fridge remaining cheese bread like peanut butter, Eric often these days eats snack, although he inherited the original memory of the guy, but w Asians eating habits are ingrained. Eat a simple dinner, Eric came on the second floor balcony, leaning against the railing looking at the night around them. The apartment where he lives is a little less than 200 square meters of yard, two-story house, the yard nted with some sort of random flowers, no hostess, cheap Ralph father is a sloppy person, so father and sons life has been very rough. Memory about seven or eight times or so, and his son two people from Ennd moved to Los Angeles. Eric does not remember why, and Ralph, then too young, and now ording to the memory of those clues, Eric had not been able to figure things out, so he did not bother to think about that. After moving to Los Angeles, Ralph dragged little Eric to stroll in Los Angeles. In just two days, with the introduction of real estate broker, bought the small courtyard, everything seems to be a mess. Eric smiled, the concept of home care is haunted by the bones of Asians. Stay on the balcony for a while, is nning to return and continue to write Jurassic Park, suddenly heard loud sound that seems to be what ssware fell to the ground sound, Eric set his sights on the west side neighborhood, it is Runkle couples home, with a 41-year-old couple, the couple had three children, the eldest son has been on the university, a daughter at a boarding secondary school, the youngest son was seven years old. The two couples may be experiencing a midlife crisis, this time often quarreled. Although Erik has a good rtionship with Runkle family , but Eric did not intend to go up and tried to mediate, this couple have restraint, did not fight violently. If he hastily ran to the other side and tried to mediate only make situation awkward. After a hurried but bickering and fuzzy sound of breaking a few appliances, home of Runkle door bang opened. Charles Nathan Runkle man of the house wearing a shirt and messy hair out of the door, turned the door-step sprint in the women shouted: Enough, Ive had enough, damn, you are bitch. if not moved to Los Angeles in order to marry you, I might have been a GM executive, look at you now , my God! You die, always spoke is in a soft voice Madame Runkle, at this time the sound appeared is very resounding and incisive: In the past three men pursued me, one at present isCaliforniacongressman,one sold the petroleum in Middle East, the petroleum did you know? Aprofit ofship can be as good as you 100 years of wage! What regrets is the olddy . Now, goestoyour General Motors to rest, dear general electricpany management ! Mrs. Runkle finished, will throw a ck jacket out, mming the door. Charlie picked up the coat patted Nathan Runkle, stood up and looked up just to see Eric standing on the balcony. Sorry to disturb you, Eric. Charlie smile to Eric . Its okay, Charlie . Come sit in my home ? Eric said Charlie Sen shook his head and said: .. No, thank you, Im going to the bar around After a whilee back after Mary calmed down. Charlie said that nodded to Erik, starts ownautomobile to drive to the distant ce. Erik returns to the room, remembers Runklecouple quarrel the scene, in the mindathoughtshes through personally suddenly, sits at thedesk, loads into the typewriteramanuscript paper, just that thought gradually became clear. Over the two days Erik had been pondering his first script should write anything, now he hadtheanswer. That script customizes for him simply, um, because the time differs the quite farreason,the massive details need to revise,but these are not the issues, the selling point of scriptnot inthese details. Chapter 3 Chapter 003: Luckily its not Michael Crichton

Boss Jeff of Italian dining room discovered that for several days Erik had changed , no longer is distracted to be in a daze, the whole person bes beaming and buoyant.Entertaining the guests is also no longer like before jerky, asionally also will y harmless jokes with the guest, Jeff even once discovered that Erik gets three times of tips and winks from thirty year olddies.

Erik, met anything difficult, I discovered that you are recently verydifferent? On a break once, Jeff could not resist and asked finally. Regarding the child of the old friend, he very much cared. Is very obvious?Erik has gawked, asked. Jeff said with a smile: Certainly, writes on your face simply. Perhaps, because I found the goal. You know that humans, once had the ideal, the whole person will be very excited. , What goal, can you say that to me? Certainly, Erik replied: I have decided that I must be a director. I was creating my first scriptrecently, in two days I will finish. Be Director?Jeff is somewhat surprised, the subconsciousness wants to open the mouth to persuade Erik to not aim too high, but then remembered that this child has only just emerged from mourning his fathers death, to find a goal, and swallowed the words. In Erik body contains a soul of middleCaged person, obeserving Jeff s face slightest movement, Erik knows that he wanted to say anything, but actually smiled has not cared. After all, this is Hollywood, every year thousands of peoplee here from all over the world to pursue a dream of movies, but the sess belongs to the few and Jeff having this idea is normal. That When your script has written, can show me. Must know that in the past I also oncewanted to be an actor, once my appearance is not like as it is now, Jeff has patted hisrge belly, then said: In the past I was very handsome. You must know that I have also participated for a small role in The Godfather, in an instant, already these many years. Erik was somewhat stunned, cannot think that Jeff also has such past, but quickly rxed,here is Hollywood, in this world the biggest movie factory, nothing here is impossible. Does not have the issue, when the timees you can help me make somements.Erikreplied, so that can make Jeff help to have a look in the script to have any loophole. Although Erik already as far as possible revised 1988 that script, but actually cannotguarantee that does not have the careless mistake. But Jeff as an outsider, can discover in thescript very easily some inopportune things. Two people chatted some, as several guests entered the dining room, Erik goes forward to greet the guests hastily. After a day of work, Erik went home quickly, has had the supper in a hurry, starts thematter writing Jurassic Park novel and script. Jurassic Park basically had finished, and now final proofreading. Erik nned to send the photocopies to several publishing houses tomorrow. But the script has actually written just outline, as well as some matters that needed to revise. Toplete the script as it is in his mind need two days.

Next morning, Erik around 7:00 am leaves the home, to get Jurassic Park photocopies andmail them, he has prepared addresses of some North American famous publishing housesahead of time, even if thesergeCscale publishing houses have rejected Eriks draft, he will not be disappointed. Must know that North America has reaches tens of thousands everyrge or small publishing houses, somebody is always willing to publish this novel. AlthoughJurassic Park once rushed to the New York Times bestseller ranking first ce,but what Erik cares is actually not Jurassic Park royalty, but after the novel is published, thefilm and television copyright grips in the hand.

Hello, what can I do for you ?Just entered to printing shop, a somewhat thin ck female clerk weed warmly. Erik pulls out manuscript from bag: I would like a few copies of this manuscript. The ck girl looked at thick manuscript, and her eyes light up slightly, the smiling face onface was brighter: Sir, can I look at it? No problem, Erik has handed over the manuscript. The ck girl has not paid attention to the manuscript content, but counted the number of pages : Probably more than 300 pages, make that 300 pages. Every copy 30 US dors, how many copies sir? 30 US dors! Erik mouth twitched slightly, sighed that it was expensive, he now only has a few hundred dors in cash, and this is an advance of one month sry .

After being bargaining back and forth, two people agree on the price of one hundred US dors for four copies. After paying the money, ck girl politely gave Eric a cup of coffee, then took the manuscript to begin copying.

Erik bored holds the coffee cup to looks at ck girl operating the machine, probably in a halfhour it can be done, will not dy restaurant work. Although after 10 it gets busy at restaurant,even if has beente, by Jeffs disposition will not deduct his wages , but thefriendship is friendship, the work is the work, Erik knows that wants to maintain thertions with Jeff, he must do his duty .

After about ten minutes, printing shop entrance became slightly dark, Eric looked up and saw a brown-haired white man walked into the store carrying a bag.

Man is about 40 years old, the height is less than one meter seven, actually appears verysturdy, brown stubble on chin,slightly curved nose, wearing goldCrimmed eyesses, slightly bald forehead,the whole person is exuding bookish feeling. Wee visits, Sir, waits a bit? Brown haired man nodded, nodded hello to Erik very much politely, sits down by Erik.The ck girl stops the work in hand temporarily,fast makes one coffee to brown haired man:Sir, just more than ten minutes , please first drink the cup coffee. The man received the coffee to say thanks, his eyes follow the ck girls form to see thatthick one stack of manuscript, the eyes move slightly, in the shop only then three people,the man could not help but look at Erik. Takeing the liberty I am asking, is that your draft? Erik nods saying:Yes, a novel, I just finished, ns to make several photocopies . You look like a highCschool student, you are really fierce, I am unable to achieve these. Thank you, actually this is my first novel,I do not have muchconfidence. No, must believe oneself. That, can I read your novel? saying that the man pulled out aname card to give Erik saying:Just, I have a small publishing house. Erik received the name card to look, Michael us, The night Elves publishing housemanager. Erik eyebrow jumped ,luckily is not Michael Crichton. Erik cannot but scold the westernersck of creativity in name, remembers that in the ss and grade of ErikHigh school, two called Jake,two called Jessica, if considers whole school, the person with same name were more. Even the newborn son has no new name, called Robert Downie jr directly.

Thinking that looking may change nothing , Erik gave already photocopied draft to Michaelus. The opposite party received the draft, looked at the book title, : Jurassic Park, veryinteresting name.

Erik shows a faint smile, has not said anything. Michael us also no longer saidanything,reads seriously. With in-depth reading, Michael casual look gradually be more serious, although he had just praised Eric , but in heart does not think by Erics age to be able to write what wonderful novel. In his previous business experience, those best-selling author of almost all men are full of experience and wealth of knowledge umtion.

Quickly and carefully read the manuscript in hand, Michael reorganizes earnestlythe somewhat scattered and in disorder manuscript, looks up to Erik, in thatlook contains surprise and excitement, and a little determintion.

Young people, can I know your name? Erik Williams, Erik is not hypocritical, replied directly. By his previous generation life experience,how unable to see that Michael expression is containing anything at this time.Although does not have the n to give Jurassic Park to small publishing house, butdoes not hinder him to get acquainted with Michael us. If Jurassic Park had been rejectedby these wellCknown publishing houses, this is also a choice. Chapter 4 Chapter 004: Tempted Well, Eric, can you giv this book to my publishing house to operate ? Michael us made no secret of his intentions, he said bluntly. Eric looked at already printed and bound by ck girl, then to Michael us said: Im sorry, Michael, though I appreciate your recognition, but you know, I want to go to some of therger publishing houses to try own luck. Parents hope that their children can be admitted to the Ivy League school, right ? Michael did not have slightest expression of contempt and displeasure, smiled and said: Eric, do you have full understanding torge publishers , maybe we can find a ce to talk, I know not far from here a cafe, my treat, how? Eric took the ck girl stapled manuscript, and packed into the bag, directly refused and said: Im sorry, Michael, Imte for work, if in the future by those publishers rejected the manuscript, I will contact you. Eric finished, carries his backpack and go out of the printing shop, start the car and drove to an Italian restaurant. Michael just a little hesitation, and immediately rushed out of the shop, drove to follw. He had an intuition, if he missed this opportunity, he might regret it forever. This intuition is directed three points at book called Jurassic Park novels, and seven points at the young man Eric. Although only read the top half of the novel, but Michael was surprised to find that Eric will not only know that many of his age teens may have never heard of gic engineering, chaos theory, nanotechnology and other high-tech factors into novels and did not lose interest in the novel, fascinating plot twists. He also has seen so many high-tech novel examples, but most of them use very jerky, that type of fiction is obviously not for all types of readers . Erik parked the car on parking lot and turned to find a ck car stop also not far away, Michael us got out, apparently followed him . This makes vanity in Erik heart to satisfy for a moment, unkowingly had sone favourible impression to MIchael. . Hey, Eric, Michael raised his hand, then was about to speak, Eric pointed to his watch and said:. That, Michael, you see, its nine and I work in this Italian restaurant as a waiter, then maybe you do not mind ordering a breakfast. barand restaurant are idle before 10 oclock, an hours time. Michael nodded knowingly, following Eric walked into a restaurant. Eric changed his clothes , Michael has been sitting on the window seat, in front of him is a breakfast that has been eaten. I exined to Mr. Jeff ,but you have to hurry. Eric sat across from Michael, then smiled and said:. Although I was young, but it is not so easy to be persuaded Michaelughed: I believe after you heard my exnation you will certainly give it to me for operation. I just said, you probably dont know those big publishers, but, I have spent time at Simon & Schuster eleven years, from the most basic to start editing the review, because thepetition of department manager left there, the night elves founded my publishing house. what that have anything to do with me? because past life as a loser, Eric fear others to tell their history of struggle, and could not bear to insert a sentence. Do not worry, young man, I just want you to know, my next words are faithful and true. You know, I was originally doing reviews to edit at first, every day I reviewed tens of thousands or even 100000 words of the drafts, although there ah, a lot of bad manuscript, but there are also alot works that are published. Atleat 2000 kinds books are published a year. As a new writer how many can you have atrge publishing house? Michael finished, stopped and took a sip of water, leaving Eric some time to think. Eric has approved these words, but did not say anything, just with eyes to indicate Michael to continue. Michael raised his hand slightly, as if like speech, said:. My publishing house, although small, but I was in the book publishing marketing in this area has a wealth of experience and my publishers in recent years mainly do is science fiction, adventure, horror like the publication of the novel, although published only a year more than a dozen novels, but the industry has a certain reputation. If you givee Jurassic Park to me, in the next period of time I promise to promote the novel with all the resources I had in the shortest possible time, gain books reputation. And with my experience, under my full operation, this is likely to burst into best seller lists. Michaelid all his cards out, and then quietly wait for Erics decision. Eric hearing Michaels rant ,a concern, a small publishing house , even if put out all the resources but also how much energy? In his bones he was already a middle-aged uncle, and in the past moved in theplex circles, seen strange pig running around all over the world. Of course he is not hot blooded because of Michael us words change own mind. However, Micheals certain words touched the heart of Eric: in the shortest possible time, gain Jurassic Park fame. No matter what age, fame is a kind of very useful invisible resource. Eric now to implement his n, his biggest weakness is that age, a young man will naturally give a hard feeling of confidence to others. But if there is enough fame, this shoring will be well concealed. An eighteen-year-old high school student be the director to make a movie then everyone will me him of being unreasonable. And if an eighteen-year-old talented writer to make a movie, the result is not the same, certainly there will be criticism, but more people would certainly say: Oh, that genius kid is doing an amazing thing. Eric said: .. Have to say, Michael, you made me sexcited, however, these are your side of the story, I did not understand you publishing house Its very easy to prove, Michael calmly said: In a recent New York Times bestseller list, just have a book of my publishers on the list, although only thest ce, but the book the film copyright has been purchased by the Twentieth century Fox , is likely to be made into a movie in the next few years, Eric believes Michaels words, he did not need to tell lies that can be easily proved and said: Well, do we find time to talk about specific cooperation how? Michael surprised for a moment, said:did you you agree ? Yes, Eric nodded and smiled : to be honest, I can not wait to see my novel was made into a book . Well, how about tonight, I think you may now need to work. Michael pointed to the restaurant where guests gradually increased. After the two men agreed on the meeting ce, Michael left the restaurant satisfied. Eric, what you just discusssed with the man , you seem happy ? Jeff asked, Eric just said something to discuss with friends, so he was a bit curious. Eric handed the menu guests ordered to kitchen colleagues, then to Jeff said: A good news, Jeff, just that person is owner of a publishing house, I will soon publish my novel . Jeff little cofused, but also some suspicion:Novel, you did not say that yesterdayyou are writing the script, how to rewrite the novel, did you such quickly give up the director dream, and n to be a writer? Eric said: of course not, my goal will change and when did the director and writing novels had conflict?, My novel is in the locker room backpack, Jeff can you take a look.? and give your opinion Jeff turned to the locker room with a puzzled face, he thought Erics novel is only a few thousand words short, but when you see a thick stack of fiction manuscript Jeff two eyeball almost pop out, this was more than 100,000 words , his life has never written so many words. He spent the noon meal busiest periods in leisure. Staff restaurant only to find that the boss seems to have disappeared for several hours . When the staff were discussing to seek for the boss, Jeff came from locker room, patted Eriksshoulder saying:Very good novel, I determined you will resign quickly. With these words Jeff left. Boss figure disappears, a group of people asked Eric what happened. So the whole afternoon, from time to time a waiter or kitchen staff got into the locker room , then take turns reading the work of Eric. Even a beautiful waitress also coyly asked can she ake manuscript to home. Although beautiful girl winking let Eric somewhat distracted, but for such a request can only decline. Although had a few copies of the novel, and lending her is not a problen, but before did not publish the novel, he did not want any idents. Chapter 5 Chapter 005: Condition In the cafe located in northern Hollywood, Erik and Michael were discussing about Jurassic Parkcooperation detail. Erik has entangled in the dividend royalty, took 7% of royalty. Negotiations encountered problem in the film and television copyright. By the Michael employed ten years of vicious visions, can certainly see great potential of thisnovel in film and television reorganization. In addition Erik above the royalty dividend did not raise any objection, this makes Michael feel that Erik is very young, is very good to flicker,and therefore proposed the night elves and Eric share television rights and television rights solely by the night elves Publishing social agent Listens to the n that Michael proposed patiently, Erik refused :This is impossible, Mr.us. Michael us gawks, somewhat unable to respond regarding decisive refusal, adjusting themood, Michael us then said: Erik, listening to me saying that you know, I just had sold tothe 20th century Fox the novel of our publishing house,that was over a millionreorganization expenses. If were discussed by that author,perhaps even 500,000 dorsunable to attain,this was the superiority of publishing house agent The following two people also discussed more than ten minutes, Michael us wanted Erikto ept his condition, and reduced on own initiative in film and television copyright aboveshare. Finally, Michael us discovered with disappointment that this kid is not a youth of making a debut, same as mixed into the social circle more than ten years like him, although regarding publishing circle is not too familiar, but can actually realize keenly the general conditions inside the industry. What made Michael surprised is, this young man not like this age young people impulsive,even if had discovered the trap does not mention it straightforwardly, he will just make them understand that he know whats in the trap. Finally, Michael smiled bitterly and gave up meddling the n of Jurassic Park film and television copyright. The following negotiations naturally smooth, two people have signed the cooperation agreement quickly. Cooperation is happy, Erik,I believe that you will not regret Jurassic Park to give me to operate.After signing the contract, Michael turned into that bookish makings uncle, as if justnegotiated astute with cunning face was the illusion. Cooperation is happy, Michael, I also hope such. Two people shook hand, sits down, talked, Erik casually said: Michael, do you havethe personal connection in these filmpanies? Michael us has selected eyebrow:Certainly, otherwise did I rmend my publishing house that novel to the 20th century Fox? I also have the connections in other filmpanies,you know, I when Simon Shuster Publishing house,once was responsible for the filmpanys cooperation in books copyright. Therefore, Erik, Jurassic Park film and televisioncopyright give to the NIGHT ELVES , I can rmend the novel to the producers of six big filmpanies directly. Erik shook the head saying:This issue we do not discuss again, Michael, Jurassic Park film and television copyright I will not resign tiny bit.However, I ampleting a script now, if possible, I hope that you can help me rmend. Hope that ignited extinguishes once again, Micheal hears Erik said the script is not interested, but out of politeness patiently said:Can say the approximate plot of script? Is this, Erik reorganized the train of thought: 18 years ago, 17CyearCold Mike ODonnell will soon participate in a very important basketball game since birth, so long as he does well,will obtain the admittance qualifications of ivy league, and also the rich schrship. However,before thepetition,his girlfriend told him to be pregnant suddenly,therefore, on the way ofthepetition, Mike discarded the basketball in hand and turned around to leave the athletic field resolutely, chose to shoulder own responsibility. 18 yearster,passing glory and scenerygo with the wind,Mike has be a middleCaged person of regret, at the same time his marriage with his wife Scarlet wille to an end Erik has not spoken too many details, but narrated the story briefly, after he hears Mr. and Mrs. Runkles quarrel, quick has thought17 Again, must realize own n,this movie is appropriate. A 17 years old of young human body contains the soul of middle-aged , this is tailor made for Erik simply. The Michael us eyes increasingly became bright, he very much favored Erik , has not actually thought that attains Jurassic Park this novel,Erik has given immediately his anotherpleasant surprise. Return in the future or to change body kind of movie, just emerged these years, are not in flood like theter generation, therefore as long as movie quality is good, can obtain good box office. Not to say 1985 year box office champion Back to the future, this year alone,two of thiskind of movies has obtained the good box office , one was April 18 again, screened for twoweeks,has recouped the cost. Another final box office hundred million BIG,this movie alsomade Penny Marshall in the North American history the first female director of box office overhundred million dors. This is a good script, Erik. But you did not think that in these years of this traversing space and time type movies were too many? Let alone you are only an unknown newer.In order to attain the negotiations initiative, Michael naturally must act bashful, he also just made himhave a frustration aboutJurassic Park film and television copyright negotiations. Erik shows a faint smile, certainly could see that Michael is coquettish, stretches outfive fingers straightforwardly: 50%missions! What?Michael is somewhat unbelievable. Erik said:Michael, you have not misunderstood, if the script sells sessfully, Ican give 50% of script payment asmission to you!However, I have a condition? Sure enough, there is no free lunch, Michael heard Eric thest word, a slight sigh of relief that things seem to return to the original track, the opposite is the smart little guy. Tell me? I want to be the films leading man, young Mike ODonnell. This is impossible.Michael subconsciously said: Even the film director not necessarily have decision power in casting, not to mention you are a rookie screenwriter. In the far East, there is a phrase called man proposes, God disposes. Eric said: If you do not try, how do you know impossible, Moreover, with the BIG, release, this possibility bes even greater. Michael us somewhat cannot help but ask: What rtions does this have with BIG? Eric casually stir with a spoon in front of the just pour hot coffee and said: I think the movie is likely earn hundred million of dors at the box office, and if so, for one of the same type, but good enough script, someone might consider my condition Michael us has not looked at BIG movie, but has believed Eriks words, said: Good, Erik, Ican try, butmission Michael, you were too greedy, you want to take more than my this original author! Michael also touches nose with the index finger, unusual embarrassment: You have not saidis so serious, if you have worked as the actor, even if the new person, sry alsoabout 500,000, but the script I thought that can attain 200,000 to be good. Although said that Michael us again has not actually raised themission matter,whenoutside the coffee shop said goodbye,Michael us said suddenly: Actually, Erik, I have anillusion,that you truly suit the role of your script actor. Because, just discussed contract time, Ithought that it is the contemporaries is negotiating , but is not a 18CyearCold highCschool student. Erik smiles: Do not care about these details, Michael, two days I have given you script, hopesthat you can bring the news to me. Chapter 6 Chapter 006: Good News After Finalizing Jurassic Park, publication, Eric used all the spare time to write and modify the 17 again .17 Again is mainly expressed discussion about family, love, friendship, and life choices, so it is not inappropriate to adapt it to this day and age, but have to change geek cultural references in movie and the mobile phones are not exclusively used today. Erik modified Ned into a sessful entrepreneur, as hardcore movie fan, likes to collect a variety of movie props. Of course, this year there have been limited to the film, the lines on the movie Lord of the Rings can only be modified into other movies, which filled the minds of the most people. Afterpleting the script, Eric ordance with the agreement, the script showed Jeff. Since read Jurassic Park, Jeff will no longer look down upon this friend . Earnestly read the script a few times, really found some details of the error, such as when the protagonist to return to school wearing Kevin Federline hippie t-shirt, resulting Jeff to ask Kevin Federline who is it. Eric careful searched memory, only to find that Britney Spearss second ex-husband is now ten years old is too small. After modifying some of the errors found by Jeff, Eric handed over to the script to Michael us. Afterpleting a novel and screeny, Eric did not rush to the creation of the third work, but began to practice basketball, especially in the film to use fancy basketball, Eric did not know basics, so he must start fresh. In movie there are lot of basketball scenes, although in the movie Zac Efron past performance is not great, but several scenes about basketball is remarkable, especially in the student cafeteria fancy basketball y against bad boy Stan is impressive. A weekter, after practicing two hours of basket ball inmunity hall basket ball court Eric returned practicing basket ball moves and then phone started to ring. These days Eric began to receive Michaels calls, to inform Jurassic Park publication as well as 17 Again script issues. Jurassic Park published very smoothly, quickly Eric can see the book, but the 17 Again is not so lucky. Although after reading the script,panies are interested, but heard the script writer conditions to star as lead most of thepanies have simply abandoned movie script. It is also a very normal thing that no one can easily invest tens of millions of dors of investment to risk. Eric even proposed to Michael not to set sights on six major filmpanies but can also try those second-tier film productionpany. Hey, here is the Williams family. After Eric picked up the phone to adjust the motion under some shortness of breath, he said. Hello, Eric, Im Michael. Eric smiled calmly: ? Michael, now almost ten at night, you called me this time there must be some good news from you. Michael could not help butin about the phone and said: Do not mention this, is really hell, I rang telephone several times, and you never lifted. Oh, sorry, Im Michael to themunity yground to y basketball. . ying basketball, wow Oh, Eric, you seem determined to win. Well, I remember the script does have a lot of basketball game scenes. of course, I then again not only training in basketball, but also in front of the mirror every morning to practice my performance for an hour . Eric, I admire you a little, few people would be willing to do absolutely like this, prepare for a day off tomorrow , we have an appointment to attend. Eric hands slightly flick, originally on the right index finger spinning basketball bang fell on ground, bouncing several times :Is this good news? of course, lucky guy , I have received today Mr. James Brooks of twentieth century Foxs phone, they are very optimistic about the script, but did not directly reject your condition, but you must pass audition . Its Thank you, Michael. youre wee, Michaelughed: of course you have to understand the other party agreed to audition is equivalent to epting your condition, but if your audition performance is too bad, can only say sorry. Absolutely not, Ive been prepared. Eric was fully excitement all night, the next morning, Eric drove to meet with Michael us in agreed ce. This is the Twentieth Century Fox film base? Eric looked at the huge warehouse studio, with longing in eyes. Michael pulled, also came over, stood side by side next to Eric, looked up at the studio said: Yes ah, it is very spectacr studio, but Warner base more spectacr than this, ah, you must have seen? , have the opportunity to visit them in the spot. Eric remembered movies produced by Warner , he nodded his head:. I will, Both followed by a staff member came to an office door , who lead the way knocked on the door to say a few words, then ushered two people inside. Saw that two people came,two middle aged people a man and a woman who were discussing something stood up to meet them. Michael us with them shook hands, then introduced:. James, Penny, this is Eric Williams. Eric, Mr. James Brooks is producer, Penny Marshall is director introduction to Michael Penny Marshall us smiled and said: you may not know, Mrs. Penny, a week ago, Eric said, you could be American Movies billions of dors at the box office in the history of the first female director of it. Eric first shook hands with James Brooks, James just shook it gently with Eric, less than a second has taken back the left hand. Eric keen to discover the well-known producer does not seem to like himself, thought something to understand how it is for film production producer at the helm, he is not happy with voluntary actors. Eric did not show any wrong look, turned to Penny Marshall, which is a forty-year-old blond Caucasian female, body isrge , so although a director but at the same time also an actor. Hello, Mrs. Penny, I love your BIG. Thank you for your appreciation, Eric. Penny Marshalls look did not change much with the BIG, the screening continued, everyone knows that the hundred millions at the box office the movie is already a certainty because of the recent week, the week box office has not diminished, but increased. But this movie is in the fourth week, a lot of movies to be released at this time, probably because of low attendance and forced the downside. Introduction to each other, only to find James Brooks and Penny Marshall are sizing up Eric, obviously, cooperation is sessful, James Brooks and Penny Marshall are the 17 Again the producer and director. Eric did not tense, but his face with a confident smile, sits down with Michael us on the couch. Beautiful female assistant served cups of coffee, withdrew from the office. James Brooks did not drink coffee, but crosses his hands on the table, said:. Mr. Eric your screeny is indeed very good, but have to say, you have raised some harsh conditions , youre just a high school student with no acting experience. so first we are going to refuse, but Mr. Barry Diller happened to see your script, he liked those ideas expressed in this y, specially approve your request, of course, you must pass the basic audition. qualified, then, but also for short-term performance training. Eric nodded in agreement. But in the heart some surprise, did not expect own script Barry Diller actually approved. Of course he knows who Barry Diller is past Disney CEO Michael Eisner and Katzenberg of DreamWorks , assistants of Barry Diller at Paramount. Barry Diller in Hollywood for more than thirty years. From Paramounts rising to Twentieth Century Fox prosperous, from the film industry the world of architecture nationwide televisionworks, as well as the subsequent rise of thework media, has left his mark that can not be denied. Cranky for a few seconds, until Michael use gently nudged him, Eric realized that he is now the office of James Brooks, James Brooks eyes him with a hint of dissatisfaction. From the beginning he has very much resistance to Erik, in the Hollywood film makingprocess,usually is the producer centralized power,designated from the casting to theteediting is the producer decides. Erik requests himself to y the lead, without doubt has eliminated part from his proper authority. Im sorry,dies, I got distracted. Eric quickly apologized Road. Never mind, young man, when ites to word young James slightly increased the tone of the word, then said:. Well, before you discuss anything else, we first auditioned for it , Chapter 7 Chapter 007: Audition Eric followed James and came to a small temporary studio, looking at all around familiar surroundings, Eric heart slightly excited, silently facing the film equipment said: wait, kids, this time I must be the movie legendary film that all people look up to, I want future generations when people mention Eric Williams to say:! he is the Hollywood As the author of the screeny, since he had understanding to the role, they skip directly to the beginning. Past Eric in the process of struggle for life, he also worked as an actor and appeared in small roles in many films and television shows which have exposed his face. After all, you never know when you can get an opportunity. Penny Marshall choose to make a few scenes to Eric perform, the y is very simple in the first, Eric has been in private practice for some days, plus in the mind have a clear picture of the original film, Eric performed with ease. Brooks and Penny Marshall were surprised, Erics performance was nothing like a novice with no experience, if this is taken as the standard, Eric would not need training , they can just start filming. Next, Eric, try this paragraph. Penny smiled and handed Eric script. Eric saw in her face rxedness, and his heart was relieved, he also feared that there is wrong with his acting. Read the script in hand, this is in the school stage steps, Mikeforts daughter after she broke up with her boyfriend. This is also in this scene Mike says all movie ssical lines that he most likes. Mrs. Penny, this scene I needed an actress to y with me. Sure, said Penny Marshall, right next to a female staff member said: Terri Lisa, youe and rehearse with Eric . This scene up to two minutes, so Eric and girl prepared for a few minutes . Terri Lisa probably only need to remember the lines , after all, she is just a prop, Eric was in a seriously experiencing this scene show various emotions, when saw crying daughter show concern, crazy when hearing his daughter might have gone to bed with Stan , clumsilyforting daughter, and helplessness when daughter hugs him happily. When ready, a staff shouted action, performance has started. Maggie sat on a box of props, pretending to cry. Mike stepped forward, his face with a look of concern. Hey, Maggie, whats wrong. Go away . Maggie hands shrink into sleeves, ignoring Mike continued to cry. Hey, what happened exactly ? Mike sat down next to Maggie , What do you want, touch my head and say I told you, right? No, no, no, I will not. Mike said hurriedly:. I just want to know what happened . Stan dumped me, Stan dumped you! Mike wrinkled eyebrows, surprise on his face faded, followed by another anger and disbelief. A father found his daughter broke up with a scum, of course, will be very happy. And that reaction, knowing that the man dumped his daughter, change into anger and disbelief. In a fathers view, daughter can dump a boyfriend but not the other way. Watching Eric performing James Brooks and Penny Marshall at the moment are startled , if Erics performance can be regarded as just sixty points, then this change in facial expression, can raise Eric performance to ny. James somewhat approves Eric now and did not have past animosity. The performance continued. Hear daughter might have gone to bed with Stan, Mike a moment be crazy, after determining that it did not happen, heforts her by hugging and patting her head , organizes strange words tofort her. When you are young everything seems like the end of the world. But its not. Its just the beginning . And you might have to meet a few more jerks, but one day youll meet a boy who treats you the way you deserve to be treatedlike the sun rises and sets with you. Really ? of course. youre so sweet. Maggie flew into the arms of Mike, Mike found her emotions are not normal, recoiling , grabbed his bag and stood up, while inviting the daughter to participate in his own party, while resisting her daughters.attempts to throw herself at him. p C p C p C Two people had just finished performing, James Brooks and Penny Marshall could not help but apud by their professional perspective, of course, can see Eric performed how outstanding. The staff seeing the director and producer of the movie, also echoed the pping. Michael us grinning pped his hands, although he also felt Erics performance is very good, after all, not a professional, but he knew from James and Penny reactions, Eric passed the audition, This means that the 17 again script sell well, at least he can get thousands of dors ofmission, though he have a small publishing house, and a good result, but also his entire worth four to five million only, most are immovable. A one-time start of thousands of dors, to him is also a huge sum of money. Through the most critical audition, many things have became logical. Eric respectively got $ 250,000 and $ 500,000 sale price for screeny and actor and signed contract. Screeny prices more than expected $ 50,000, this is result of Michaels efforts, after all, and there is also half of his, as paycheck. Although Erics performance is very good, but after all he is new, five hundred thousand dors is understandable. In an instant Erik discovered one had 600,000 US dors worth, although for the actor srymust wait till the movie to photograph to bepleted . Signing a contract, with check Eric left the FOX photographic base. The rest is preparatory work for the film, although he would like to be involved and umte some experience, but just got goodwill of producer and director, he did not want to change that by meddling . Goes to bank with Michael us, after the check exchanges, he paid Michael 125,000 US dors,regarding this Erik did not mind. After all Michael rmended script to correct person. Next, resigning as expected by Jeff because worked together for a month, Eric invited his colleagues to a small party at home, Jeff and several older colleagues, after all older so they did not attend. In this festive night, Eric and colleagues were dead drunk, and fell asleep. Chapter 8 The moment he wake up, he felt that his head was stuffed with a piece of stone, shaking head few times. He quickly understood own situation, smiling, sat up, and its already more than nine in the morning. This is Eric Williams family on the second floor bedroom, zing summer sun, brazenly through the south balcony French doors falls into the bedroom. Rebirth half a month, Eric has been busy with all sorts of things. Never even looked this brand new world, and now everything is off to a good start, his heart alsoy on the room and took a look at it. Arge bedroom, more than thirty square meters, after moving his bed, then wardrobe, desk, some science and other messy things , still seemed spacious. Ralph always wanted it divided in to two rooms, because there are only father and son in the family it never happened. and Ralph never made an attempt to find a wife again Do not know that if every man drinking behind always have such piercing past. Going down from the second floor, it took half an hour to tidy up messy living room after party, after finishing breakfast, Eric drove away from the house. Spent several hours to go to the store for a Strauss piano, after leaving the delivery address, Eric went to the bookstore to buy a thick stack of books on music arrangement. Eric not on a whim wanted to be a singer, hed done just to prepare for a movie soundtrack, so many ssic movies in mind, if you want to restore them perfect, must understand some basic knowledge of the arrangement, at least the mind can tune to a degree of existing song written in music sheet, other in the future he bes joke in the eyes of music professionals. Hollywood is different from the maind(China) . In the maind many directors when doing film, for soundtrack, usually find a music teacher, music teacher watching the raw footage provides some music, the director listens, approves and its done. But in Hollywood movie music is a very important part, so they strive for perfection, do not say background music, just the theme song have sprung up countless ssics. Soon deliveryman came and the piano is set up in the west side of the living room studio. Though its studio there isnt even a single bookshelf there just big desks and other goods. All his books are in his bedroom , Ralph never had a reading habit. After the piano properly ced, as usual must try to tune something. Eric sat at the piano and hands on the keys, and then, in deliverymen eyes saw ridicule and contempt, but he just kept on ying some tune of the song happy birthday . After Eric squinted at the transfixed deliveryman, they are frightened as dumb as chicken. On this level, even in the past circles be considered as somewhat skilled. As a punishment for their contempt, he cut their tips in half. What audition ? Eric puzzled and asked: Penny, my role has not decided yet? In the family home for a few days he study music every day, practice basketball and practice performance, Eric think that this situation is likely to continue until shooting the film, but only for three days, received director Penny Marshalls phone. Of course, Eric. I mean, you want to participate in the audition of other roles, after all, you are the writer, you can offer some advice on the role choice, right? Eric knows he only makements but not the decisive power. But Eric readily agreed with Penny Marshall, he wanted to participate in the film production to gain some experience. Drove to Fox photography base and saw Penny Marshall and James Brooks, the film casting is a big matter, of course the director and producer are present, , there are several other staff members involved in the casting, but Eric is only a young man. There is more than ten minutes before the beginning of the audition, Penny Marshall on initiative with Eric chatted about the 17 Again preparations . BIG, sess made Twentieth Century Fox to this film confident , out of a budget of $ 20 million, they hope that it is a Thanksgiving release, so they have to in two weeks concluded the preparations, and finish filming before the end of the school summer holidays. Eric took the list of actors auditioning given by staff and said thank you, hear Penny Marshalls words: If everything goes smoothly three months is enough time for the movie, the movie only have a few simple scenes, not take that long. Penny Marshall nodded: indeed it is, but also to set aside some time for publicity. Yes, Penny, which roles we interview today? Eric asked. Well, adult Mike ODonnell and ODonnell Scarlet, we have invited Dan Aykroyd and Susan Sarandon , James rmended a friend foe role of Ned, and today our main interview is for Mikes children, as well as a number of other young actors in the film, so I think we should let you take a look. Eric although already knew that he had no choice in actors but still hearing it somewhat depresses, but fortunately Penny Marshall said the two actors are in with expectations of Eric heart, as Ned role, James Brooks would not take $ 20 million investment as a trifling matter, presumably the actor is not too bad. However, Eric still somewhat unwilling, secretly vowed to have the right to speak in his own movie, this feeling of being marginalized is really bad. Depressed Erik does not have the mood to chat with Penny Marshall again, Penny Marshallhas not seen Eriks difference, turned to another side to discuss with James Brooks in a low voice. After the beginning of audition , in front all actors, demonstrating their youthful vigor, after 7 or 8 people, Eric finally found an acquaintance: Brad Pitt. He even auditioned for the role of Alex, Alexs original film image is kind of weak and little. Eric thought in original it is excessive that a small physique guy shines brightly in the court. ording to his analysis, the reason they chose the skinny little boy instead of a tall, handsome male , in addition to the story needs, the director certainly also worried that he will dominate protagonist Zac Efron, because Zac Efron Long only 1.75 m tall and in western standard it is somewhat short , the films audience obviously can feel that. Watches in the picture 25 years old but still likely is of highCschool student appearance Pitt,Erik suddenly thought that makes Pitt y as strong and tall but still actually bullied everywhere, and after transformation he shines in the court is convincing . Moreover,Erik alsopletely had confidence that his performance is unable to be dominated by Brad Pit. Whenter Brad Pitt became famous, people say that he has yed ErikWilliams son, is a very interesting matter not? With a smile at corners of his mouth he studied remaining list to see any previous life famous actor. Followed by a dozen actresses information, sees the first audition actress information and his chin almost fell off, Angelina Jolie, ah, the whole family today is in attendance. Back from his thoughts for a moment, Eric found Jolie should have just graduated from a performing arts school in preparation for the high school ,next year will start her modeling career, he does not know why she will be at Maggies audition list. European and American women are very early matured, the photo is of thirteen year old Jolie slim, blonde, iconic sexy lips, exudes a touch of the wild atmosphere. Eric is not optimistic about the results of Jolies audition, perhaps of her father Jon Voight she auditioned. Continue to read, Eric has found a very interesting girl. Hey, Penny, Eric took information turned and asked: Drew Barrymore whats the matter, thest two years she did the bad thing you also know that perhapsis not quite suitable ourcampusedies? Penny Marshall looked, helpless smiled:. Steven rmended that woman asked him shamelessly, and he was fed up rmend. Stephen also imply that we do not have to consider his factor, so you understand ? Steven Spielberg, Penny Marshall nodded: Yes, you know, Stephen is Drews godfather. Eric sighed, Penny mentioned with disgust that woman should be Drew greedy mother. But in this short period of a few minutes, Eric see the clues, he found Hollywood chooses actresses does not like the media says is fair and transparent, involves human contacts, all kinds of games. Penny Marshall patted Eric said:. Well, Eric, ready, auditions starts Eric had the actor list right order, waiting for the next audition. He thought he became a decoration to provide optionalments, symbolically ask a few questions. He did not expect that when first young actor came and answer a few questions , Penny Marshall with a smile to Eric said: Eric, you go and perform with Mr. Wolfson in the scene. Eric shrugged, looked at shooting script, stepped forward. Fifth actor out of the audition room, Eric sat back in seat, jokinglyined:. Penny, I thought you called me to be the referee, did not think it would be on the basketball court. Oh, very interesting analogy, do notin, Eric its Jamess idea, heined that I canceled your acting ss, and finally discussed that this method has made you exercise theperforming skill. Eric pretended to be angry and staring calmly at James Brooks,ined: How didntyou exin directly? Dont you know now?Penny Marshall said with a smile. Good.Erik let go speechless. Chapter 9 Chapter 009: See live This Brad Pitt is taller than Erik, more over is somewhat old? Brad Pitt went out of the door,the audition stopped a while temporarily, James Brooks started to discuss with several heads. Penny Marshall said: Yes, 7th ke Quinn good. Several other heads also express their view. Erik read the 7th material, a 17CyearCold Caucasian youth of golden hair, height 1.7 m, are somewhat emaciated, truly tallies very much with previous generation Alexs image , but is actually not Erik wants. Erik cannot bear opened the mouth saying:Penny, I thought that ke Quinn appeared tooweak, although fits very well with bullied highCschool student image very much, but to the film second half, if this kind of emaciated boy dominates in the basketball court , to audience afalse feeling. I just graduated the high school , is very clear high school basketball team is impossible to present this weak male student, impossible to be picked by the scout. James Brooks hears Eriks analysis also nods assent: Truly is this, does Erik, which actor youthink will do? How about Brad Pitt ? Penny Marshall said: But Brad Pitt is a little taller than you. Erik shrugs, said: Height is not the issue, child is taller than parents this matter ismon.Moreover his image can make Alexs change does not seem unexpected. James asked: How did this say? First, we determined Brad Pitts performing skill does not have the issue,although has not yed the lead in the movie,has actually performed in many soap operas,moreover he performed well in audition. Therefore, he can definitely show that inferior, spiritless disposition in the movie earlier period . Later on, after Mikesencouragement and training, showed courage, pursued own girl. You lookedthat he already had this potential, after erupting, the audience will not think its false, insteadwill think, Alex is this! The surrounding several people nod assent Eriks viewpoint, Erik can look that James Brooksalso somewhat moved, immediately had not actually decided but said: Good,we will discussedthis issue again. Then starts the audition of actress. The first audition naturally is Angelina Jolie, to the questions about performance she answered gracefully, but performance is not satisfactory, has been full of dramatic style,causing Erik who yed her opposite almost fall into the ditch.If Eric has casting choice, then perhaps try to give Julie a small role, after all, in his movie collection it will be very interesting, but this time he did not have much right to speak. After following several girls, Drew Barrymore entered. The symbolic delightful childish face, the upper body wears the white vest, the ck strap of bra is often partly visible along with Drews movement, the lower part of the body is one tothe white pleated skirt to the knee, reveals a section of fair calf, on the foot treads the cksmall leather boots. If you just look at the appearance, this is just a little precocious youth invincible girl, her words did not seem like someone with drug addiction and alcoholism. Sits down on the opposite chair, Drew Barrymore has stroked her hair ,discovered thatsits beside several 40C50 year middleCaged men and women young Erik, his face with distinct edges and sharpness appears exceptionally handsome. Drew with a charming smile shown him a flirtatious look , that does not belong to that group age girls, which made his heart shiver. James and others as if by prior agreement look to Erik, Erik looked innocently, hello, why youstared me, I was very innocent, I was yed okay? Finally James opens the mouth saying:Was good, Drew, ready, we start. Does not have the issue, Mr. Brooks.Drew showed sweet smiling face, turned into a neighbor girl instantaneously. Erik wants to shout one really: This is unfair. Stop, Maggie, I am not that kind of person. This scene is in the bedroom of Ned Family,Maggie and Mikes another match y, Mike keeps avoiding his daughters pursuit. Yes, you are. No, I am not Youre right, you are a good person, you are different from them. I and they are different, I and they have very big difference.Mike is thrown into confusionsaid. The lioness of being in heat suddenly,as if understood, cannot bear sits on the beddisappointedly, looking distressed: , I I get it. What, did you get it what? Your hair was always perfect and it has highlights. What are you talking about ?Mike had doubts. I mean dude, your jeans are really tight ? Mike has doubts looks at the lower part of his body, suddenly said: No, I am not gay, Im in love, Margie, Ive been in love with same girl since I was 17. Feeling relieved Margie stands up, quickly asked: Does she go to our school, do I knowher, tell me her name, I just want to know her name? Good, Margie draws close to Mike, is ying his face like a mother does with her child and said: You told your girlfriend should better keep a close eye on you! In the room the people are enthralled looking that two people enter the y performance, ifnot the scene , they will believe its real Some people even unable to bear sigh said that God is really unfair, gives these two peopleso splendid talent, the people are responsible for auditions , theyve been in this professionmany years, saw many actors to perform in many years of y, was nothing less thandiligently.But the performance talents of these two young people seem to be inherent as if they were natural born actors. Erik, your performance is really splendid,heard that you are also screenwriter of thismovie,was really too fierce.When the y is over, Drew looked at Erik to say curiously. Erik nodded: Many thanks, but you are more outstanding than me, Miss Drew. Thank you for the praise, Drew extends her hand toward him casually. Erik also shook her hand, felt what the girl did in his palm, Erik showed a faint smile,he is not a fool that he cannot understand what she was suggesting, perhaps Drew thought he had theright to speak in casting, and wanted to get that role this by teasing him. After Drew Barrymore leaves, several heads somewhat are silent, they know Drew wille to audition, wanted to deal with her, finally naturally eliminates her.Unexpectedly,Drew disyed the best performance until now. The following audition, including Erik, all people somewhat are absentCminded. After nearly one hour, toward noon time, Erik discovered thest name in audition list:Jennifer Aniston. Oh, less than one second, Erik heart reacted with exmation The American sweethearts, live! James Brooks opens the mouth saying:Miss Aniston, please first introduce yourself? Jennifer Aniston keenly felt across the only young man looks strangely, it is a slightly feverish mood, which made her a little proud at the same time a little stiff, introduced herself, the director let her y a few paragraphs before the end of the audition. She can see from their not interested behaviour that they already have a candidate for this role. Aniston thinks with disappointment, her parents are also in this circle, so she knew how things work here. However,she still continues, getting some other roles are also good. Only after Jennifer Aniston leaves audition room, Erik reluctantly looks back. Simr tomaterial such that the previous generation sees, this time Aniston somewhat is truly plump,actually cannot say fat. Moreover after 1.67 m height wears the highCheeled shoes, she looks graceful. But under the lens this shoring will be erged. Whats wrong, Erik, do you like this girl? Have to say she has a sweet smile Penny Marshall teases him, other people also note Eriks embarrassment, has smiled.Erik recovers, somewhat awkwardly scratches the head saying:Penny, do not ridicule me, I am only James Brooks reorganizes the material in hand to say with a smile: How can be the ridicule,Erik, if you like her, now could pursue to deliver her to go home. You looked that the audition had finished, certainly, if you want you can remain and apany our these old fogies to eat lunch together. I see forget it.Erik fellt somewhat awkward, if caused Anistons resentment itll be bad. Hey, Erik, be bold, James Brooks encourages saying: Its a vast world, once some goodgirl miss, was difficult to meet. Although this girl somewhat plump , but that sweet smiling face can actually make up for this. If you pursue now, I can give her a small role, one of theMarggie three good friends. This can make you have the opportunity to contact her. Real? Thank you very much,James, I First left.Erik wanted to request Jamesto give Aniston an opportunity, has not opened the mouth, James Brooks on own initiative offered. Erik said tidy up his backpack, rushed out of door withughter of encouragement in back Jennifer Aniston in 1989 (There are no pictures of her in 1988) Chapter 10.1 Chapter 10.1 Jennifer Aniston is somewhat absent-minded waiting for the bus. She cannot say se was disappointed. She just graduated from performing arts schoolst year and just starred several ys in theatre. By chance she heard about auditions and sent resume, never expecting to get an audition. She stopped calling a cab when she heard someone calling her from behind. She turned and saw the boy who looked at her strangely at auditions. Hello, you are? Jennifer waved subconsciously and found that she didnt know his name. Eric held out his hand and said: Miss Aniston, hello, my name is Eric, Eric Williams. Jennifer Aniston took his hand politely with a smile and said: Hello, Mr. Williams Eric looked at her smile and forgot to let go of her hand. Mr. Williams, you Aniston said slightly, feeling that warm big hand, a little embarrassed, rebukingly staring at Eric. Oh, sorry, I like just Eric, Miss Aniston, do I call you Annie? Eric took his hand back, embarrassed scratched his head and in heart scolded dumbassst generation, though not a yboy , atleast not like wet behind tears.This body must be the hormones at y, ah, definitely so. Aniston doubtfully looked with a touch of alertness: ? Well, Eric, but we do not seem to know each other. Eric put away his thoughts, smiled and said: Now you do not know, but the beginning of all friendships start as strangers. Annie its already noon, I can ask you to do lunch? Its too abrupt, Eric, we just had few words. Aniston refused . I will take you home. Eric said the next best thing. That .Okay.stunned she was about reject again, but subconsciouly agreed without knowing why. Actually , Eric usedmunication gimmick, if you want to apany a girl to her home without being rejected , then be rejected for something else and ask her. After boarding car , Eric asked the address and stared the car. Unable to bear the curiosness, Aniston was the first to talk Eric are you 17 Again staff? Yes, I was the films screenwriter and actor said holding the steering wheel. Oh wow, that is great. You should be as old as me, and I now have only yed some small roles in several stage drama. Eric smiled Its just good luck, yes, you said that you performed in theatre? oh, yes Aniston started talking endlessly as she heard the topic she interested in. And even giggled at something he added. How could a 19 year-old- girl be the opponent of Eric, who has the soul of an uncle. Gradually, Aniston opened her mind and even taled about her life in Los Angeles. Although it was tiring to work at convenience store eight hours day, it was fulfilling. Also from time to time participate in a number of stage ys, attend some auditions, I believe, that even if I do not rely on my irresponsible father, one day I can be sessful. Although Eric knows in past Aniston finally by her fathers introduction entered into the television industry, but in the parallel time and space, that was after two years. In memory, past Jennifer Aniston had some resentment for her father as he abandoned her and her mother, so for more than two years has refused help from her father, and therefore wasted more than two years in Hollywood, the good old days. Finally, her father, John Aniston took initiative to do some amends to the father-daughter rtionship, and just let stubborn Aniston epted his help. Obtaining Friends role time, Aniston was twenty five years old.InHollywood, the actress once over thirty, if business does not pick up, it is hard to have a big development, have to say Aniston is very lucky. Chapter 10.2 Chapter 10.2 At this time to encourage Aniston Eric said: I also believe that, just in audition, its a very good performance and you do not have too many traces of the theater, it is a natural. You know, there was a girl at the beginning of the audition, the kind of theatrical style, almost made me bored. Mentioning audition, Aniston suddenly a little quiet, after a while asked softly: Eric, Maggies role is it concluded even before I auditioned? I have to say, Annie, your eyes are really keen. I find you are some absent-minded, maybe just going through the motions. Eric indirectly said:. If nothing else, it may be yed by Drew Barrymore, when she auditioned for Maggie , the performance is very good, Drew Barrymore, in E.T that cute little girl ? She should be only thirteen years old now, Maggie is the high school student about to enter university, Eric curious said: How, Annie, did you not see Drew in waiting room? She is now a youngdy, though ah, really only thirteen years old. Aniston, embarrassed : That, to attend audition today,st night I have with my colleagues in store transferred duty timings.At twelve has the duty today and its already a littlete, Nothing, in fact, I do not know whether or not to tell you Aniston looked curiously asked:?What is ? Just after you leave, they saw me to like you Aniston mouth suddenly curled up, So then what? James, the films producer said to me, people are a vast sea, once missed a good girl , it is hard to encounter again. So encouraged me to chase you. Also said that if I did, he will give you a role in creating more opportunities for us to get along. Eric in heart said James sorry to sell you, but gaining heart of te girl is not easy. Ah, that, I I I Aniston looks a little flustered, by Erics direct confession, but also in heart there is a warmth. Eric , quickly said:?. No, you do not have any burden. Annie we have now be friends, among friends helping each other is normal. In fact, nothing important in that role , Maggie is just one of three friends, a few scenes. But if you ept it, you can have qualifications to participate in the future audition, I believe that my film will be able to achieve good results. Thank you, Eric, I really do not know what to say. The car drove for another ten minutes, Aniston pointed to an intersection in front said: Eric, parking there will be fine. Car in a somewhat narrow little alley stopped, two people sit silent for a few seconds, Aniston did not want to get off , Eric is certainly not stupid enough to let Annie get off. Sit quietly for a little while, the atmosphere in the car gradually be somewhat hot. Finally, gathering courage Aniston said: Otherwise, I invite you for lunch, Eric, in front there is a small restaurant, I often dine there. Eric relieved and said: Thats not fine, Annie, leting the girl treat is not a decent thing, of course, I will pay for it. Lets go, show me the way. Aniston finally epted that role, followed by a period of preparations for the film, the two talked almost every day through phone. Eric does not say his own life problems, butfort the girl who is alone away from home. Though Aniston is in contact with many people, but somebody can not ingratiate themselves with friends. In a short time Eric seems to have be her spiritual sustenance. Eric knew that if he asked Aniston will definitely promise to be his girlfriend. But Eric was not eager to do so, he did not want Aniston between the movie role and being his girlfriende under any bad influence. During this period, another thing is also taking shape, that is, Jurassic Park, the publication, after half a month and Michael us signed, he finally got the Jurassic Park, book, on cover is a huge Tyrannosaurus rex chasing bolted off-road vehicles. This was inspired by the memory of Jurassic Park movie,Michael us touht it is great. Eric specifically asked for one more, gave Aniston. These days, Eric has unknowingly, in the mind of Aniston bears gentle good boyfriend image. Upon receipt of Jurassic Park, have been very impressed screenwriter Eric and performing talent Aniston, eyes suddenly took some small worship, of course, she was in my heart toy a genius Ericbel. 17 Again preparations are still underway , Eric has participated in the preparatory work of several cast, crew . About the role of the son of Michael, the crew did not choose Brad Pitt , of course, also did not choose that ke Quinn skinny boy, but a slightly stronger eighteen year-old boy. For this, Eric did notin about , because he met Aniston, and Aniston and Brad Pitt are married and divorced in previous life. Eric even thought in the future if became a director , is not going to make Pitt and Jolie to star together. On August 16, 1988, after Eric rebirth, the first movie started officially. Chapter 11 Cut ! Alright, Eric, you take a break, and get ready for the next scene. Penny Marshall pped her hands as the staff members busied themselves. The uing scene was the one where Mike, donning arge and wet suit, walked around the school hallways searching for the mysterious janitor. It was the afternoon of the first day of shooting, the set was located at a private high school in Beverly Hills. When the schools board learned about the scripts content, they readily agreed to attend to the filming crew for free, on the premise that the schools name in the script had to be changed to theirs. This was a win-win situation, the crew received free space which saved budget money, and the high school would gain the best kind of publicity. The crew deliberated shortly before quickly agreeing. They had taken a lot of simple shots in the morning, so they decided to shoot the scene of Mike looking for the old janitor the afternoon. Eric, the way youre dressed right now is seriously shabby, you look like one of those dirty hobos from downtown. Drew Barrymore mocked as she sat crossed legged on a chair. Eric certainly wouldnt care about a thirteen-year-old girl, he indifferently replied: Hey, Maggie, thats no way to speak to your father. Drew sneered: As an eighteen-year-old virgin ? Youre overreaching. Aniston came holding a towel at this time, and hearing Drew making fun of her sweetheart, she immediately retorted: Hes still better than certain people by a hundred times. Drew didnt even put Aniston in her eyes as she eyed her from head to toe. She revealed a derisive smile as she stood up from her chair and deliberately wriggled her own slender waist. Eric had to say, this was really a low move. Anistons plump figure was the achilles heel that boosted her low self-esteem, to make this kind of mocking gesture in front of the boy she liked, she was like a cat whose tail had been stepped on. She threw away the towel she was holding and bounced towards Drew. Dont just look at her sweet and innocent smile, Annie was a girl who worked and lived in Los Angeles alone, how would someone like her not know how to fend for herself ? Catching a nce of an impending war, Eric quickly stopped Aniston; he took her hands and sat beside her as he affectionately bit her earlobe and whispered something to her. Feeling Erics breath on her slender neck, Aniston couldnt help but giggle. She coquettishly made a fist and gently hammered his shoulder: Eric, youre so bad, how can you say that. Drew had perked her ears up but couldnt catch what Eric had said, she wrinkled her nose and grunted as she turned around and pretended not to care. Eric, get ready for the next scene. Be right there, Penny. Eric patted Annies little hands, stood up and walked towards the set. As for why Drew kept nitpicking at Eric, it had started this morning. Although he and Annie hadnt really put a name on their rtionship, everyone could see how close they were. Some made fun of them, some were envious, and others, like Drew, were just annoyed. She didnt know why but when she saw the two of them together, acting so intimate, Drew felt a sense of difort. Especially when she would asionally see Aniston reveal a kind of happy womanly smile. So she kept jeering at Eric at every asion she found, except when they were both on set. The entire crew knew that Eric and Drew were like fire and water, however, once the two of them faced the cameras, their performance was nothing short of professional, they rarely made any NG at all. Since Drews antics didnt affect the shooting, Eric and Penny didnt really mind, they had already discovered half a month ago that she was more mature than her peers. Hey supersized girl, what did that guy just tell you ? Drew couldnt take it in the end and pretended to be indifferent as she nonchntly asked. You know, youre seriously pathetic. After Erics dissuasive words, Aniston had calmed down, but her speech became bolder since he wasnt around. Pathetic ? Me ? Drew was startled, she looked at Aniston with wide eyes. Ha ha. Anistons cute chin raised slightly as she said. Ha, what a joke ! Im the movies lead actress while youre just an extra with a few minutes of screen time, and you still have the nerves to say that. Aniston stated: So what if youre the lead actress, youre just your mothers personal wallet. Im different, I might just have a small role, but I at least have my freedom. I also have a talented and gentle boyfriend who wrote a screeny at only eighteen years old, who is starring as an actor, and whose novel has even hit the shelves. What about you ? Your father pretends that you dont exist and in your mothers eyes, youre only a tool to make money. You couldnt take it so you started to indulge in alcohol, drugs and even ****, in an attempt to escape from reality. I saw how Ericsck of care towards you brought about your feelings of jealousy, youre just a broken, hurt, and freedom-less pathetic little girl. BOOM C As if a bomb had went off in her mind, Drew felt like she was standing naked in the coldest of winters. Even if she was mature for her age, she was still only thirteen years old. Most of the girls her age would only be junior high freshmen full of curiosity and anticipation towards their uing first love. Anistons words had torn open all the wounds that Drew had desperately tried to keep buried. Seeing Drew be silent, Aniston disyed a satisfied smile. Had Eric been here, he would have done everything to prevent her from saying those unbearable words to a child. After sessfullypleting several shots, Eric returned to the rest area, a little surprised to see Drew curled up in the corner with her small head buried in her arms. Curious, he asked: Annie, howe the two of you are so quiet ? Aniston proudly replied: I beat her with words, she was unable to refute and was rendered speechless. Huh thats amazing, Drews mouth can be kind of vicious and its not easy to deal with. Well, lets go, do your best during your scene to leave the director a good impression. I will. As the two people walked intimately on the set, the earlier storm seemed to have quickly passed, but was that really the case ? During the following shoots, Drew had stopped teasing Eric and became unusually quiet. Eric and Aniston were engrossed in the filming and didnt pay attention to her abnormal behavior. Nice, great job guys ! At the end of the day, in the middle of thest scene on the shooting schedule, Penny Marshall held a pen as she said to Eric: We originally nned toplete everything in ten days, but judging by the pace were going at, it will probably not take a week. I know weve already discussed this during your audition, but I have to say Eric, your performance is really exceptional, do you really have no acting experience ? Ericughed: Actually Penny, I lied. I yed in a lot of movies in my past life, and I seem to have retained the experience. Past life ? Oh youre talking about the Buddhisms theory of reincarnation. Penny Marshall took the truth as a joke, and said: Well, it seems like your little girlfriend is getting anxious, go, and remember not to bete tomorrow. See you tomorrow, Penny. See you tomorrow. Eric started the car, and left together with Aniston. No one noticed the lonely figure of Drew Barrymore standing in a corner, staring at the leaving car in resentment as she muttered: Just wait and see, Jennifer Aniston, you little bitch, Ill make you look good, Ill make you regret every single one of the words you said to me today. Chapter 12 CHAPTER 12 C YOURE SO SHAMELESS Eric, do you think I should. lose weight ? Sitting in the passenger seat, a blushing Aniston casually asked as she faced the window and pretended to look at theing and going traffic. Eric bit his lips and organized his thoughts as he stated: Annie, in my eyes, no matter how you look like, youll always be the most beautiful, but I think that if you want to really make it in Hollywood, then you should probably lose about a 100 lbs (45kg). Humph! You smelly man, youre finally saying it ! So you think Im fat ! Aniston snorted, but her tone was full of coquetry. Eric didnt know if it was a good or a bad thing. Im sorry, let me take you to eat Italian as an apology ? Aniston hesitated before whispering: Or we could go to my home, I know a few dishes, Id like you to taste them. Eric straightforwardly replied: I would be honored. It was the first time he hade to Anistons cozy abode. Her room was painted in warm colors, and decorated by a variety of soft animals. The air was filled with a girls unique fragrance. Eric had initially wanted to help, but Aniston had thrown him out of the kitchen, so he could only obediently sit in the living room and go through some fashion magazines. An hourter, Aniston put the finished dishes on the table, pped her hands proudly and said: How is it ? Eric sniffed and praised: It smells great, I cant wait to dig in. Oh thank you, Eric. They didnt bother being polite to each other as they sat down and enjoyed themselves. Eric had to admit, Annies craft was delicious. After eating, Aniston suddenly stood up, and said: Right, Eric, when I went downstairs to buy spices earlier, I saw something about you, nevermind, Ill just show you. Aniston excitedly took out a newspaper from her handbag and spread it out on the table in front of him. Eric looked at her curiously as she proceeded to read with undisguised pride: Eric Williams creative genius delivers in Jurassic Park, a splendid science-based theory on embryo engineering that could lead to the resurrection of dinosaurs. This theory is put to the test by Dr. Hammond, who transforms Nur Ind in a shocking jurassic dinosaur park. However, all this is just the beginning. Chaos theorist Malcolms appearance will bring about another possibility among the Aniston read here, then skipped to the end of therge book review: Even more surprising is that the author of the novel, Mr. Eric Williams, is only eighteen years old this year and ording to our sources, this genius boy, has lived a rtively rough life Eric had a strong urge to facepalm, ah, there it was. Of course he knew what was next, it was something written to appeal to the readers sympathy by emphasizing his miserable past. He quickly took back the newspaper from Anistons hands before saying: Alright Annie, you dont need to read that. Aniston unhappily waved her little hands as she tried to snatch the newspaper back: Hey, let me see ! They were getting to the good part, they were praising you. Ah, whats wrong, why is your expression so weird ? About that, Eric crumpled the newspaper and threw it directly into the trash can next to the dining table, then said: If you want to know what it says, I can tell you. Ah! Anistons mouth slightly opened, she nced at the trash can: So youve seen it, you hateful guy! Why didnt you let me then ? I know whats in it because Im the one who wrote that article. Aniston was shocked: What ?! Eric somewhat guiltily said: Its just something publishing houses do in order to promote their novels, they usually hire someone to write a review that is then published in the newspaper. I went to find Michael a few days ago and told him that no one understood the book better than I did, so he let me write a few reviews, and the one that you just read, is one of them. Wow. Eric shrugged, and cheekily said: Honestly thats nothing out of the ordinary, these acts of propaganda are fairlymon. Eric. Yeah ? .. Youre so shameless. After saying that, Aniston couldnt hold herself back anymore as sheid on the table andughed until her tears started to fall out. Erics shameless actions had obviously started to rub off on Annie as she hastily sent him back home after dinner. Three dayster, Aniston had finished filming all her school scenes, and the rest would have to wait, so she temporarily went back to work at the convenience store. Eric had recently found that Annie looked paler than before and when he inquired about it, she told him that she had started dieting. He advised her not to be so anxious about it, as it could damage her body, but to no avail. In addition, these days, Drew looked like a hungry kittenying in wait for its prey, this made Eric secretly shiver. When Aniston wasnt paying attention, Drew would scramble towards him and throw him snide remarks about his performances. Eric just smiled and let it pass, even when she kept berating him, he still didnt care. But seeing her like that, he really wondered; what on earth had he done to make this goddess of cmity so unhappy ? The next day after Aniston had left. Eric, want some water ? Ill get you a bottle. During a break, Drew sweetly asked. Eric subconsciously refused: No, thank you Drew, Im not thirsty. Drew didnt insist, but soon came back carrying two bottles of water and threw one at Eric: Take it. Eric helplessly epted it, but soon froze as Drew grabbed a chair, sat next to him, and leaned her body against his. That Drew, what are you doing, I have a girlfriend you know. Those words were merely an excuse, the truth was that Eric didnt want anything to do with Drew and her chaotic life. I like you. Drews expression didnt change as she bluntly stated. Pfffft C Eric sprayed out a mouthful of water, this girl was really way too blunt, ah. I, but I This confession came from a beautiful girl, and Eric would be lying if he said he wasnt moved, so he found himself at a loss for words. (TL: No, it came from a 13 year-old, you damn lolicon!) Since she had made things clear, Drew didnt n on holding anything back. Aniston had already left the crew anyway, there was no one to stand in her way. Eric Ill be your girlfriend okay ? In fact, in fact I had a boyfriend before but he was just really. unbearable. Drew dont do this. Eric was trying to find the words when the blissful voice of Penny Marshall sounded: Hey you two, stop fooling around and get ready to shoot the next one ! Eric quickly broke away from Drews arm and hurriedly walked towards the set. Watching his disappearing back, Drews flirty face was reced by one of resentment: Aniston, you just wait, I want you to watch as I take your most precious thing away from you. I wonder, who will be the pathetic one then ? Chapter 13 A weekter, the school scenes werepletely wrapped up, and the crew began shooting elsewhere. Wow. WOW. Susan Sarandon came up to Eric, outstretched her hands and squeezed his face as she eximed: You look exactly like my husband. Ha, ha. Thats so strange. Yeah, really strange. Eric agreed. What exactly is going on ? Susan said. At this time, looking at the monitor, Penny Marshall shouted: Cut ! Eric, youughed again, this is the fifth time already, the fifth time ! Cant you restrain yourself ?! People oftenbeled directors as being bad tempered, but it was to be expected. Every time actors screwed up, they wasted time and money, no matter how good-tempered one was, one would definitely be angry, let alone those whose fuse were visibly shorter. In this case, Eric could only apologize again and again: Im sorry Penny, I promise it wont happen again. Penny Marshall rolled her eyes superciliously, it wasnt the first time Eric had guaranteed that. Everyone in ce, get ready to try again. Susan Sarandon who was next to Eric said: Eric, the next time I squeeze your face, try to not focus on me. Yes, Ms. Sarandon, Ill try. This passage wasnt even that funny, but Eric didnt know why he would just startughing every time. When they started shooting again, he tried Susan Sarandons suggestion, and although he came close to bursting out loud many times, he restrained himself and they finally wrapped it at the sixth shot. During the break, Eric walked towards the woman and said: Ms. Sarandon, thank you for before. It was nothing, Eric. Just Susan is fine. Youre really talented you know, Ive never seen a first timer act like you do. Oh, thank you very much. Uhm, Susan, can I ask you a question ? Yes ? Eric said: Its like this, Susan your body is in an amazing shape, how do you maintain it ? Oh wow, Eric, are you hitting on me ? Susan raised her eyebrows and smiled as she asked. Eric noted her meaningful expression and was reminded that sometimes, in Hollywood, older female celebrities would look for younger boyfriends. It wasnt rare for even sixty-year-old women to try to get their hands on 30 year-old youths. No, Susan, actually my girlfriend has been trying to lose weight recently, so I was thinking on getting some advice from you. Oh, I see, losing weight is indeed not an easy thing. I happen to know a good fitness consultant in Beverly Hills, she opened a womens fitness club, and used to be an excellent nutritionist. You can bring your girlfriend there to get some advice, she will give her a reasonable weight-loss program that shell have to follow. Well, could you give me the address ? Sure, no problem. Susan Sarandon asked her assistant to bring a pen and a piece of paper, she then quickly wrote a memo and handed it to Eric, who received it, thanked her, and turned around to leave. Just as he went back to the resting area and was about to sit down, Drew hastily pulled his chair away mischievously as she asked: Hey, Eric, what did Susan just write you ? Is it the address for a date ? Eric noticed that Drew had be cheekier and cheekier recently, he said: It is indeed, looks like youre really perceptive for a thirteen-year-old girl. Ha! Drew chuckled loudly, she was initially joking around, but Erics sarcasticment got on her nerves, so she said: I heard you grew up without a mother, did you develop an Oedipusplex ? Obviously, Eric had some understanding of Drews family situation. Hey, Drew, lets not bring out that subject. Drew thought that he got angry because she mentioned his mother, so she stuck her tongue out. Eric, Ill call it a day, but you have to invite me to dinner, ok ? Eric shook his head: Ill have to ask Annie first. That supersized girl again ! Are you nning on adopting that T-Rex or what ?! Eric was surprised, did this era really start using dinosaurs ng ? (TL: dinosaur girl is ng for ugly girl in China.) Tyrannosaurus Rex ? Drew, dont you think speaking about her like that in front of me is inappropriate ? If you were a man, I wouldve beaten you up. Dont think I dont know that the only reason she got her role, was because James was giving you face since you had taken a liking to her. But with that fattys pride, she wont be your official girlfriend until the end of the filming. Ha! What a hypocritical woman. Drew. Erics expression became solemn: If you say anything like that again, I wont care about you anymore. Alright, alright. Drew raised her hands in surrender: After we eat we could go to a ce and talk about that book you wrote, Jurassic Park. Its really great, it turned me into Mr. Eric Williams fan. Eric said: Stop it, Drew, will your mother even agree to that ? That woman ? Drew snorted with disgust: As long as she gets her check, she couldnt care less about me. It seemed like Drews prejudices about her mother had prated deep into her bones. Its no wonder she cut all ties with her family once she turned sixteen in the past. Today, Eric had shot many scenes, and even for his young body, that was a lot. After they called it a day, he tiredly walked towards the parking lot, but soon found out that Drew was on his heels. Hey, Eric, you promised youd buy me dinner, youre not allowed to slip away. Eric stopped, then said: Drew, dont be unreasonable, when did I promise you ? Go back quickly. No. Drew hurriedly grabbed Erics arm, as her arrogant expression turned into a pitiful one: I have already sent away my assistants, are you gonna let a little girl like me go home alone, what if some bad people corner me and I get raped or killed ? Eric had developed immunity when it came to Drews lightning-changes in expression, unmoved, he said: No, you go home alone. And hurry, its been a hard day, I want to go back to rest. Drew realized that her n had failed and so she raised her hands and messed up her hair, ripped off her own small vest and gently scratched her skin as red marks started to appear. She then looked at Eric with her eyes blinking with tears as she stated: If you dont agree, Ill sit on the floor and shout for help. Lets see how the L.A.P.D deals with you then. Eric touched his forehead as his temples were threatening to burst. Amitabha, how did I manage to meet a goblin right now, Buddha are you testing me ? Bang C Eric gloomily shut his door and started his car as he asked Drew who had already called shotgun: Well, you win Drew so, where to ? Mastros, I want to eat steak. Aye aye captain, so wheres that ? Drew first gave Eric a look of contempt before excitedly saying: Then Ill drive ? Not a chance, I dont want any trouble, hurry and spit the address out or Ill just randomly pick one. Drew pursed her lips as she unwillingly told him, and Eric started to drive. Chapter 14 Hurry up and eat, then Ill take you home. Youve been yawning for a while, I know youre tired. Drew took a sip of juice, and gave Eric a charming nce: You want to take me home ? Sure, I really dont mind. Cough Eric chocked and quickly covered his mouth with a napkin as he stared fiercely at her, this little girl was really wanton. A few minutes passed and Eric gradually found out that Drew was eating slower then less and less, and finally, even her hands started to tremble slightly when she held her knife and fork. He was about to ask her if she felt ufortable anywhere, when he suddenly remembered about some people from his past life, and seeing her now, he was soon sure of it: Drews addiction was acting up. Such bad timing, Eric smiled bitterly as he looked at Drew who was doing her best to endure, he quickly shouted: Waiter, the bill ! He just wanted to leave as soon as possible right now. Although Drews drug addiction matter was not a secret anymore as it had been discussed by many and ryed by even the newspapers, there wasnt any tangible proof to show for it. In many peoples hearts, Drew was still the cute girl who kissed the alien in E.T. If it was found that she was having a seizure in public or even be photographed, that would be a severe blow to her image. After settling the bill, Eric looked at the slightly absent-minded girl and said: Drew, lets go, Ill take you home. They went out of the restaurant holding each others arms, and when Eric felt her petite body trembling against his, he couldnt help but feel pity. In the car, Drew huddled shivering in the passenger seat, and as soon as Eric started the car she said: Eric, can you help me buy buy No. Eric categorically refused: Drew, bear with me alright ? Ill send you home so tell me your address. No! Drew hastily shook her head as she suddenly shouted hysterically: I dont want to go home, if that woman sees me like this, shell definitely sent me to rehab, I wont go back, I wont go back ! Eric quickly reassured her: Alright, we wont go there. He then started the car and drove towards his home. Parking in the garage, Eric brought thepletely confused Drew into his bedroom. Eric, Eric, I beg you I beg you please buy me some of Drew was shrinking in his arms as she grabbed his cor and pleaded in tears. No, Drew, I cant do that, it will only make things worse. Bleeeegh C Even a beautiful little girl wouldnt look good when she vomited. The steak that had just been eaten was regurgitated all over the bed and some of it even sshed on Eric as the room was quickly filled with an unpleasant smell. Eric frowned slightly, but looking the half-unconscious girl struggling in her own mess, his expression softened. He pulled off the dirty sheets, then found a towel as he picked Drew up and started to carefully wipe the vomit off of her. Feeling the coolness on her forehead, Drew slightly came to, she caught Eric again and muttered while shivering: You If you dont help me buy.. I, you. Eric hugged her and said: Drew, you need to endure it, taking those things will just have the opposite effect. You dont need any, youre strong, youre the lucky girl who kissed an alien, remember ? I. am not.a. lucky girl Eric didnt know how to deal with those kind of things. Although he had also encountered several drug addicts in his past life, he had never found himself in a simr situation. At this time, he thought his bodys temperature might be of some help to her, so he hugged Drew in his arms and kept stroking her back in an attempt to make her feel better. Drew begged, threatened and cursed Eric for more than an hour, but thetter kept holding her tightly as he patiently tried to soothe her. Finally, he realized that she had fallen asleep in his arms. He had stayed in the same position for so long that his body had be stiff from the waist up. He tried toy the girl down on the bed, but who knew that as soon as he would let go of her arms, the girl would start struggling like a fish out of water, waving her hands as if subconsciously trying to find something. Eric sighed. He found a morefortable position and took the girl in his arms again. As Drews head touched his chest, her once rough breathing turned gentle again. Holding her like this, Eric suddenly remembered his wife and son from his past life. His son was five years old and his wife used to be a clerk but quit to be a full-time housewife after their marriage since Erics sry was enough to support them. He wondered how they were doing after his sudden departure, he hoped they were okay. Drew dreamed that she was a certain movies heroine. She fell and found herself in a dark forest, confused and alone. Then the prince emerged and saved her from her stepmothers poisoned apple, and Drew, together with him and the dwarfs, fought against the evil queens oppression. The two people held a grand wedding in a pce decorated with candies and cakes, then the prince held her in his embrace as he took her to the bridal room. Heid her next to him on the bed that had dozens of cotton-wadded quilts on top of it, and Drew clung to his body as she smiled like the happiest of flowers. Then she woke up. She found herself leaning in a mans warm embrace, and her arms were tightly holding his waist. After a brief moment of confusion, Drew started to recallst nights events, albeit just some intermittent fragments. She looked at Erics handsome face in a slightly infatuated way, as the sight of his blond scattered hair and the feeling of his gentle breath against her skin made her heart thump faster. Everybody thought of Drew as Gods favorite child; she was young, famous, and had unlimited prospects. But she had never felt happy, her fathers indifference and disregard, and her mothers mean and greedy ways had made her feel suffocated, like a bird trapped in cage who desired nothing but freedom. So she gradually indulged in bad stuff as her own way to express her dissatisfaction towards life. After realizing her daughter had started using, Drews mother wasnt concerned about her, but worried that she might not be able to make money anymore. It was that cold indifference that had lead to Drews addiction. Which young girl didnt dream of their prince charming ? Ah, he had to be gentle, tall, handsome, talented, he couldnt be rude, he had to be patient, give in to her, fan her when shes hot, hug her when shes cold, take care of her when shes sick,fort her when shes down, and if she were to perish, he would ride his dragon even to the depths of hell to get her back (TL: Ok thats not a prince, thats a freaking xianxia MC.) And now, such a prince had really appeared. Well, although there were some deviation from what she had imagined and the one he loved wasnt even herself, those were just minor details. Drews original n was to snatch away Eric from Jennifer Aniston as retaliation to thetters hurtful words, but now that things had developed to this point, she realized she had instead fallen hard for him. Perhaps because he felt something, Eric opened his eyes to see Drew looking at him. He gently smiled and said: Drew you woke up, you must be hungry. Ill make breakfast, so you go and shower in the meantime, the smell is really unbearable. Hey Eric, why are you so good to me ? Um ? Eric was startled, he reached out his hand and rubbed Drews little head: Well, were friends. He had just sat up that Drew swiftly kissed his face. Ah Drew, your mouth stinks. Eric said with a smile. She loosened her grasp on his neck: Eric, I love you. Well I dont, ah. He put Drew down and opened up the curtains to let the sun in. Drew looked at his back and pouted: You just need to know that I do. I know. Eric squeezed Drews lovely face. Hey Eric, I just realized one thing. What is it ? You held me the entire night without even reacting, I think there might be a problem with your thing, want me to help you check ? Ill do it for free ! Thats really generous of you Dr. Barrymore, Id rather you hurried to take that shower or well bete. Will you join me ? No, Ill go wash downstairs. Ah thats not right Eric, we should use water resources frugally, we cant be wasteful. Think about those people in Africa whock water so much that some of them even die of thirst. Youre right, Ill start saving water tomorrow, let today be thest I spend in luxury. You Summer of 1988, a girl shrouded in darkness came across a bright and warm light, and like a child drowning in water, she firmly held onto it, with all the strength she could muster. Chapter 15 Eric, this is really amazing. Drew who was sitting in the passengers seat, yed with the T-shirt that Eric had converted into a dress with great interest. Afterst nights puking episode, Drews clothes were dirty and the two of them were both in a hurry to join the crew, so Eric thought back to how his wife had once used one of hisrge T-shirt to make a dress, the process was fortunately not tooplicated. Right now Drew was wearing a remodeled sky-blue T-shirt, with Erics three fingers-wide brown leather belt attached to her waist. This kind of dress-up in this day and age, was very avant-garde, so when they arrived on set, many people couldnt help but stare at her. Some of their nces turned even more meaningful when they noticed she hade together with Eric. Hey Eric, whats up with that, when I saw you being so gentle and considerate to Annie a few days ago, I thought you were a good guy. While organizing the days shooting schedule, Penny Marshall said to Eric. Her tone of voice was casual, in this circle, this type of thing was normal. Penny I still like Annie, as for Drew, it just kind of happened. Penny quipped: And her clothes also kind of happened ? Look Eric, Im honestly toozy to care about what you young people do, but you should still have a sense of proportion, Drew is only thirteen years old right now, you know ? Well, you get what Im saying. Thank you for the reminder, Penny. Eric realized that Pennys opinion had already been made and so he just helplessly said as it was better to end the topic. A month passed and nothing really special urred, the 17 Again shooting was going smoothly, and Drew still kept trying to entice Eric at every asion she found. Aniston came on set from time to time and very easily noticed her behavior. So when the girls appeared at the same time, infighting surrounded Eric; the crew became nervous during the filming process, and all his male peers envied him. The young man who yed the bad boy Stan had even begged him for the secret of his chick-picking technique, to which Eric replied some nonsense that the guy actually believed. And soon, something happened thatpletely dumbfounded our protagonist; the nonsensical stuff he had told the young man actually started to spread among the crew, and even to Drew, who confronted him during a break once, her voice half-joking and half-resenting: Ah, so I was yed from the start, you big bastard, ying with a girls feelings and not taking responsibility, you thief ! Give me my heart back ! Aniston was still undergoing her harsh self-created diet, but it wasnt very effective as she suffered more than she ate, and had only lost 5 pounds in a month. Eric was really worried about her, but he decided to wait until the filming was over to talk to her about it again. However, things dont always happen the way we would like them to, and finally one day, in the middle of a shooting, Aniston fainted thanks to her low blood sugar. Eric dropped everything to apany her, he didnt have any scenes the next day, so he took Annie to the fitness consultant that Susan Sarandon had talked to him about. It was a very high-grade fitness club that mainly targeted Hollywood actresses. When the two of them went in, they saw Sigourney Weaver, the lead actress of the world-famously acimed Alien, on her way out. Ah, another goddess from his past ! From Annies point of view, Eric looked like he was about to grovel to the womans feet and ask for a signature. The fitness consultant was a Russian woman whose age you couldnt see through, her name was very long so she just told the two to call her Natasha. Giving this caucasian female a first nce, Eric noticed Annie eyeing her devilish figure with deep envy, so he gently took her hands andforted in her ears: Dont mind it baby, one day your body will be better than hers. Natasha and Annie talked for a while, and the former patiently exined to the stubborn little girl that what she had done before would only harm her body. She then took her to do some tests and spent the whole morninging up with a weight-loss n that could easily fill a dozen pages. When the two youngsters left, they started deeply contemting the second word that should have been added alongside high-grade when it came to describing this club: expensive ! Aniston was adamant on paying herself, and the result was that her credit card bnce turned negative. Fortunately, she would soon receive her 17 Again paycheck, that, while small, would still resolve her financial crisis. At the end of October, the 17 Again movie was drawing to a close, and thest minute editing and promoting started at the same time. Eric would asionally see some gossips about the film in newspapers. When Drew had finished all her scenes and against anyones expectations, she voluntarily decided to go to rehab. The girl who had lost her footing turns over a new leaf on her own initiative, that kind of inspirational story, who wouldnt make use of it ? Thus, under the Foxs Publicity Departments nning, Drews change waspletely attributed to the 17 Again movies influence. A newspapers author had a field day, as he recounted how the disoriented teenager who had lost herself to drug had finally gotten her head straight during the shooting of a movie that tackled on subjects such as love and the true meaning of life, which featured a warm and inspirational story that helped her find the courage to change. The article was written so realistically, it was as if the guy had witnessed everything himself. If Eric didnt know better, he would have taken it at face value. Another publicity stunt that was put in ce was about how he himself, was only eighteen years old, and already a scriptwriter and actor. The newspapers wrote about how from the script delivery to the final process by the Foxs studios, everything single twists and turns had been written by Eric. Producer James Brooks and director Penny Marshall had also emphasized numerous times on how outstanding his performance was, and on how talented he was. With so many praising him, controversies were also bound to pop up. Some newspapers started to question Erics screenwriting skills since he was just too young, and inferred that the 20th Century Fox had make a huge blunder by rushing into making 17 Again because of BIGs sess. They said that the 20 million dors budget would likely go to waste. This kind of prediction was not unfounded, after Universal produced the 1985 sci-fiedy Back to The Future, that made more than 200 million $ at the box office, the aspirations of many started to run wild as they tried to follow the trend, but all, without exception, failed miserably, which anybody could see by simply checking the 1986s box office. Towards those controversies, the 20th Century Fox didnt mind as long as they didnt go too far since it could help bnce the good reviews and maximize the feeling of anticipation of the audience. Meanwhile, Erics novel Jurassic Park was also benefitting from the propaganda. Originally, thanks to Michaels efforts, the novel had sold more than twenty thousand copies in its first week alone, which was pretty good for a neer. After a few weeks of followed-up publicity and a good reputation, the novels sales started to slowly rise, albeit not to the extent of being amazing, it was in line with Erics expectations. But with the 17 Again publicity stunt, Jurassic Park became one of its focal point. Michael us was ecstatic the whole time, having so many media talk about the book was more than what he and the staff of his small publishing house could have done. Ever since then, the novels sales directly shot up as 17 Again had aroused peoples interest towards this mysterious and miraculous youth. Unfortunately, the movie wasnt out yet and although they could guess bits and pieces about the content thanks to the title and the crews gossips, those were just hypothesis, and so as peoples curiosity grew, they naturally turned their sights towards Jurassic Park. On the first week of October, the sales directly broke one hundred thousand, sessfully granting the novel the eighth ce on the New York Times bestseller list. Although the ranking wasnt that high, if you looked at the other authors on it, they were all well-known and experienced. Jurassic Park was the only novel in the top ten that had been written by a neer. Because there were some evening scenes today, Eric didnt return home until past ten. As his car drove past the Runkles family house, their courtyard door was pushed open, and a small figure came out. The door was closed again as the imp-like shadow ran away under the dimly lit street, then slowed down and started to walk in circle, apparently bored. Hey Stu, running out of the house isnt something a good boy should do. Eric was curious as to what this young neighbor of his, Stuart Runkle, was doing out sote at night, so he stopped and asked. Then Eric, how do you think good parents should act in front of a seven-year-old child ? Stuart replied as he nced at his houses courtyard. Eric was a little surprised that the little guy could argue so clearly and logically, he didnt remember anything about this kid being so smart. Perking his ears up, he could hear the muffled sounds of what seemed to be the Runkles couple fighting. So, what are you doing ? Eric resumed his attention as he asked. Stuart leaned against the side of a streetmp as he adopted a small adult-like appearance and said: I pretended to run away from home. You pretended ? Yeah, that way when they realize Im gone, theyll stop fighting. Eric also thought that the couple arguing in front of the child was a little too much, so he said: Alright little fellow, its dangerous to stay here at night, soe to my house. Well, thanks Eric. Eric parked his car, opened the door to his house and let the little guy in. Chapter 16 What do you want to eat ? I have some. uhm, choctes, and apples ? Eric asked as he opened his somewhat empty refrigerator. Stuart Runkle who was sitting on the couch, shook his head and said: No, eatingte at night is not a good habit, however if you have milk, you can give me a ss as drinking it helps better sleep at night. Erics eyebrows arched, he poured a ss of milk to Stuart and asked: Where did you learn these things ? In books, Eric dont think that because Im small I dont understand anything, Im already seven years old you know. Ericughed and nodded: Well, big guy, why did your parents quarrel about today ? Dad resigned to start his ownpany, and when he told mom, they started to fight. Sigh, women are really troublesome, when dad was still working there, she would nag him everyday about how the size of thepany was too small and that it had no future. Now that dad finally mustered up the courage to resign, mom said he was irresponsible for giving up the houses only stable ie. Eric nonchntly sat on the sofa, he didnt really care about the Runkles couple, he chewed an apple and smiled: I think that you little fellow, heard and saw too many things not suitable for your age. Stuart grinned and his eyes sparkled as he heard thepliment, he jumped off the couch, sat down beside Eric and asked: Eric, are you still filming ? Eric nodded: Yeah, itll soon be over though, so dont forget to ask your mom to take you to watch it. Eric, do you think I can make a movie ? Ha ? Stu, how did you suddenlye up with this idea ? Stuarts eyes glowed with hope as he replied: I heard that movie stars are payed a lot, so if I became one, I would be able to make a lot of money and mom and dad wouldnt have to fight anymore. If the Runkle couple had heard those words, they would have certainly felt ashamed. Eric thought for a bit before saying: But youre too young now. You may not know, but children are the most difficult to control during filming, and people usually try to minimize their screen time. There was once a director whose child actor started bawling on set, and the entire crew was paralyzed. Theres also the Child Protection Act, I think its better if you wait until youre old enough, maybe when youre eighteen like me. Hey Eric, do you think Im like those kids ? Ill behave, you know. I heard that youre a scriptwriter, you could also write a role for me, please Eric, I would be so grateful to you. Stuart looked at Eric with sparkling eyes. Although this child was more clever than children his age, he was still a kid after all. It was naive to think that as long as Eric helped write a character for him, he could go and y in a movie Erics heart jumped slightly, he sat up and carefully seized up the boy. He had suddenly thought of someone: Macay Culkin. The global superstar child from Home Alone. At this instant, an extremely bold idea involuntarily started to form in Erics mind. It was still notpletely clear, but he knew that if he the n was a sess, he could directly cross the most difficult stage of experience umtion, age and fund problems, as well as other factors, that got in the way of his dreams. Although this would be a difficult challenge, but if he didnt try, how would he know he couldnt do it ? Life was a battlefield that had to be treaded ! He looked at the kid that had unknowinglyid on hisp; at least with Stuarts IQ, the movies biggest uncertainty was gone. Hey Stu, to be honest, I do have a role for you, and its even the protagonist. Hearing him, Stuart raised his small head as he asked: Eric, whats a protagonist ? The protagonist is. the one who takes the biggest paycheck. Ill do it ! Ill do it ! Eric said: Ill have to get the consent of your parents first, so lets get you home, that way Ill be able to ask them. Eric had just gone out of the door while holding Stuarts little hand, that he heard the sound of the Runkles couple next door. I am warning you, Charlie Runkle, if anything happens to Stuart, Im getting a divorce ! Charlie Runkle who had been on the losing side during the quarrel, suddenly roared: Oh shut up bitch ! Iif you hadnt stirred up this quarrel, would Stu even leave ?! Lets go and check the basement, he might be hiding inside. Mary Runkle was frightened by her husbands sudden shout, and indeed, it was her own fault.She started following behind her husband when Erics voice sounded not far. Hey, Mr. and Mrs. Runkle, dont worry, Stu is here. Eric held Stuart up and the both of them were relieved once they saw him in the formers arms. Stuart returned to his parents side, and once the Runkle couple heard Erics ount, they regretted and promised not to quarrel in front of their children again. Actually, Mr. and Mrs. Runkle, theres something Id like to talk to you about. Stu just told me that he wanted to y in a movie, and I just happened to have a script that is perfectly suited for him. With how clever this little guy is, he would be able to do it without a problem. The couple was taken aback, if they didnt know about Eric, they would probably treat his words as a joke. However, the youth had now even appeared in the newspapers, so although it was sudden, they had some expectations. The couple had been disappointed with their life, that much could be observed by how often they argued. If their son became a movie star What followed was obvious. Eric, would you tell us a little bit about the movie ? Eric said: Of course, its aedy about a little boy who finds himself at home alone as his parents have carelessly forgotten him It took him five minutes to generally sum up the story, then he added: I just had a chat with Stu, and found out that his IQ is probably even higher than what I was hoping for, so if youre not against it, by all means, let him try. The couple stared at their son who was sitting nearby, pretending to be well-behaved. Daddy, Mommy, I think I can do it, and the story is really great. I think youre too young Charlie hadnt even finished speaking that he was pinched by Mary. Eric, can you let us think about it ? No problem. Eric nodded, but added: But you have to get back to me as soon as possible.The movie is due for the Christmas period, and if it does well, its likely to be a series. So if you agree to it, Stu will be the main lead. A series Even as ordinary people, they knew what it meant: the paycheck would just get higher and higher. Meanwhile, Eric hadnt found an easy way to tell the Runkle couple that he would personally direct the movie. The n hadnt even taken shape and he couldnt be sure it would seed, but he didnt want to give Home Alone to the 20th Century Fox, or any other filmpanies, he was intent on making it fully independently by himself. For someone with only half a foot in the industrys circle, the difficulty of such a challenge could well be imagined. Back home, Erics excitement kept him awake as he sat in front of his typewriter and started writing the Home Alone script while he furiously thought about the specifics of his n. The first was money, then actors. Apart from Stuart, the two robbers were the top priority, and Eric didnt n to invite his past lifes Joe Pesci and Daniel Stern. The two of them were already famous actors and Pesci had also won an Oscar for best supporting actor. With his money, he definitely couldnt afford them. Eric would have to find TVedians instead. In this era, television and movies actors statuses werentparable, some were even ashamed to tell people they yed in TV shows, so their contracting fees were very low. For the location, Canada would do. It was now autumn in Los Angeles, but northern Canada was sure to have many ces with snow. The other things to watch for would be The lights in the room were on the whole night, and as the sun rays started to stream through the windows, Erich stood up and stretched. After a few hours of nning, he got many things down. The Home Alone of his past had an initial budget of 18 million $, which, from Erics perspective, came mainly from the shooting costs and promotion stunts. The filming alone would only cost a few millions, most of which would be the actors and directors remuneration. Now, Eric had theplete Home Alone movie in his head, he just had to transpose it, so he wouldnt have to be unnecessary wasteful. As for publicity, he had his own ns. But no matter how frugal he was, he needed at least 1 million $, or the film couldnt be shot. One million The 17 Again paycheck would soone in, so that was 500,000 $, if you included the remaining royalties from the screeny, that was about 600,000 $ in total. Jurassic Park was also selling like hot cakes, and if he discussed it with Michael, he should be able to get 200,000 $ more, which left him in need of another 200,000$ to fill the remaining gap. Eric decided to cross the bridge when he got there, and started his preparations instead. Chapter 17 CHAPTER 17 C TEMPORARY CREW Back on the 17 Again set, Eric kept thinking too much about the Home Alone matter, and made a lot of mistakes during the shooting, but probably because the end was near, Penny Marshalls temper was surprisingly good, and she patiently kept correcting him. Eric had even thought of seeking help from her but quickly dismissed the idea. Penny was the equivalent of the 20th Century Fox. Such a huge filmpany would obviously be able to see the potential of his low budget Christmasedy and try to be a part of it. This was something Eric didnt want to see happening. After thinking about it for a while, he was finally reminded of a certain loli. Even after going through hard times, she was still able to make aeback. Whether it was a producer, a director or a child star, they had one thing inmon: connections. Dont just think of Drew as a thirteen-year-old girl, with that kind of personality, her socialwork couldnt be underestimated, at least she wouldnt have a problem helping him put a small team together. October 9th, 17 Agains filming was finally over, and Eric got his 500,000 $ paycheck. Thus, he began working non-stop on his next n. Eric, where are we going ? Aniston who was sitting in the passengers seat asked curiously. Eric pulled out the Home Alone script from his bag, and said: Take a look at this first. Aniston looked at the name, surprised: Oh wow, Home Alone ? Is that your new script ? Um. Eric nodded, then started the car and said: I intend to shoot the film myself. What ? Eric, youre not kidding right, do you even know where the cameras power button is ? I do. By the way, I want to be a director, not a cameraman. In his past, he had stayed in that circle for so many years, when it came to directing, he knew just about everything. Alright then, you still havent told me where were going though ? Eric hesitated for a bit but still said: Were going to see Drew. Humph! Annie, I brought you so that you wouldnt have any misunderstandings. Humph! I need Drew to help me find some professionals, she might be young but she knows a lot of people. Humph! Eric sighed, parked on the roadside, unfasten his seatbelt and said: It seems that today Ill first have to convince a jealous little girl. You understand, right ? You have no reason to feel like this. Lets go now. Eric put his seatbelt back on and started the car again. Hey Eric, you can find James or Penny, theres so many other people, why does it have to be that bi-. girl. In order to maintain herdylike image in front of Eric, Aniston quickly swallowed back her words. Eric exined it to her once again, Aniston clenched her fists, but no longer spoke. The rehabilitation center was well-known in Los Angeles, and in order to prevent visitors from bringing drugs, the two of them were searched. Then a staff lead them to Drew. From afar, they saw thess was lying on a sun chair on the side of an open-air bath, a hardcover version of Jurassic Park in her hands. Hey, Drew ? Eric shouted. Eric, if you didnte to see me, I was going to escape and find you. Erics voice had just left his mouth, that the girl had already bounced off her chair and thrown herself in his arms. You! Anistons face darkened as she waspletely ignored by Drew. Although she had a very strong impulse to get her away from Eric, there were a lot of people around, and Aniston wasnt as bold as her. After frolicking for a while, Drew finally noticed Annie: Hey supersized girl, I heard you were so desperate to lose weight that you fainted on set, thats really pathetic. You dont look like you thinned at all though, how much did you lose ? Aniston was about to attack, when Eric swiftly knocked on Drews head and said: Well Drew, I dont think youre in any position to make fun of Annie. Drew grunted in pain, and tearfully said: Eric, youre so mean. Eric ignored her pitiful appearance, and said: There are too many people here, lets go to your ce. Drews living quarters wereparable to a suite, it even had a kitchen. The three went to the living room and Drew poured them sses of juice as she sat down on the couch holding one too. So, Eric, what can I do for you ? Can I note and see you without motive ? Eric was a bit embarrassed. Drew curled her lips: With that annoying fatty ? You know I dont like her. Aniston who had sessfully endured for so long, finally exploded: Ive had enough you bitch ! Im the one who doesnt like you ! Drew was gloating as she tutted twice: She finally reveals her true nature, hey Eric, you see, that fattys nothing like ady at all, you need to be careful in the future, or you might suffer. You. Eric rubbed his temples in distress, secretly vowing that he wouldnt let those two meet again in the future: Guys give me a break, Im seriously gonna get mad. Eric Aniston looked at Eric, aggrieved. Annie, why dont you go and wait for me in the car, Ill be there soon. When Drew heard these words her eyes shed, but she soon calmly looked down, pretending to drink her juice. However, a womans sixth sense was really something, and Aniston had caught on her expression. I wont, Im staying. Aniston refused as she turned her head. Eric helplessly appeased her with a few words, then took out the script and handed it to Drew: Drew, this is a new script, I want you to help introduce me to some professionals to set up a temporary crew. Drew took the script and looked at it for a bit before chuckling: Haha, thats really funny, this is a good script. Ah! Eric, youre saying. Yes, Eric nodded: I want to make this film alone, its a low-cost project so I only need about a million dor which shouldnt be a problem, but Ill need professionals who are both reliable and cheap. In fact, people from this industry were a dime a dozen in Los Angeles, so even without relying on Drew, Eric would also be able to scrape up a crew, but on the other hand this was an unnecessary waste of time, and if the ones he hired were a bunch of good for nothings, he wouldnt even have the time to shed tears. While Eric wasnt paying attention, Drew nced proudly at Aniston, then lovingly nodded: No problem, I know a lot of people, what do you need ? When Aniston saw Drews nce filled with pride, she felt her anger rising, but in the end only turned her cheek and red at Eric. Cameraman, gaffer, sound recordist in short, Eric pretended not to see Anistons unhappy look as he spread his hands and shrugged: I have nothing right now. Drew thought for a bit and said: I happen to know about the recent closure of a small filmpany, they have a shooting team. Their boss took a mortgage on the studios in order to get a loan, but he lost all the money. Their team is really good, I was a guest on their movie once. If they have yet to disband, you might be able to get them,pared to unemployment, theyd probably be willing to shoot with you. Eric excitedly said: Thats awesome! Drew stood up, smiled and said: Ill give them a call for you, I hope Ill make it in time. She went to phone next to the window and started dialing. Aniston leaned on the couch full of resentment, her hands clutching the hem of Erics t-shirt. She felt utterly useless, even Drew Barrymore was of some help to him, but not only was she not, she was also the one constantly on the receiving end. Coupled with Drews undisguised attempts towards Eric, Annie became really anxious. Soon, the phone call ended and Drew brought back good news: the moviepany was done for, but the filming crew was still in L.A, and the original owner was willing to introduce the team to Eric. He noted the time and ce of the meeting, and quickly got up to leave, he did not want to waste a moment of time. Drew confidently forced a kiss on Erics cheeks during their farewell, very reluctant to let him leave. On the way back, Aniston was depressed and Eric kept trying tofort her. Annie, Im sorry, I dont know as many people as Drew does, so I really needed her help. Ill rely on myself for the actors. Aniston looked anxiously at Eric and said: I understand, Eric. Hey, you will you will always love me, right ? Eric unhesitatingly replied: Of course. I love you, Eric. Hey Annie ? Yeah ? Be my girlfriend ? Anistons face suddenly flushed as she stammered: Eric, I. I Fool, why are you thinking so much about it, you only need to answer yes or no. Yes. Chapter 18 CHAPTER 18 C DRASTIC MOVE Annie didnt participate in the next appointment, Eric sent her home and nned to go see the owner of the bankrupt filmpany alone. Getting off of the car, Aniston suddenly said: Eric, can you leave your Home Alone script with me ? Maybe I could look at it and help a little ? Eric nodded and said: Sure, no problem, I made several copies. Aniston took the script, waved her little hand as Eric drove away, and went back into her apartment, a trace of resolve and determination now visible in her eyes. In a cafe at Burbank, Eric met the owner of a small filmpany called Fireflies that Drew had talked to him about. Jeffrey Hanson was a white man of about fifty years old, with a somewhat haggard face. It looked like the termination of hispany was a great blow to him, he appeared downright dispirited. Eric knew from his past experiences that the man probably needed to vent a little, so he didnt rush to business right away, and patiently listened to him. My wife, Solina, was the valedictorian of the Southern California Film Academy, you know ? She and Francis Copp were ssmates, but she was just a girl from Marnd, her family heritage didnt run as deep as his, otherwise, her achievements in the movie industry would be even higher than Francis. She received a lot of awards when she was still in school. At the time, I studied finance, I was what youd call a nerd, God knows why a talented and beautiful woman like her would fancy me. She said she wanted to be a director, so I told her to stay in L.A so that we could develop together. I remember everything, from the way we struggled in the beginning to our first script investment; the happy smile she had back then, it was even more bright than the day of our wedding, when I put a ring on her finger. Later, we opened a filmpany and we named it Fireflies, she was the director, and I was her producer, I would help her take care of everything, we shot several films together, we even won a Special Jury Prize at the Venice Film Festival. Unfortunately, a year ago, when Solina drove to Marnd to visit her parents, there was an ident Jeffrey Hansons voice started to choke under his beard, anyone could see he had loved his wife deeply. Eric handed him a tissue, then quietly waited for the man to go on. After my wife left, I thought I should inherit her dreams, she wanted to make Fireflies grow, wanted to be a director with an Oscar as a recognition. I thought I could do it, Ive been a producer for so many years, so directing shouldnt be that difficult. So I mortgaged thepany to raise funds in order to shoot a movie, but the result, was out of my expectations. Dont mind it Jeffrey, thats only one failure, which Hollywood director has never experienced a setback ? Jeffrey rubbed his moist eyes, and said: Thank you Eric, thank you, you listened to me b for so long, I feel much better now. When the filmpany went bankrupt, my son almost broke ties with me as he med me for destroying his mothers painstaking years of hard work. I didnt resent him, I was just sorry. Anyways, Drew said that you needed some people to make a movie ? Eric nodded: Yes, but its only a 1 million $ project. Jeffrey shook his head and said: 1 million is plenty enough, the first movie my wife and I made cost us about 700,000$. Right, may I know how old you are ? Of course, Im eighteen years old. Jeffrey, you dont think Im too young or too impatient, right ? No, I just want to make sure that you know what youre doing, a million dor is not a small sum. Oh ? Jeffrey said: I dont have any prejudices towards young people. Many directors shot great movies when they were younger and turned mediocre in theirter years. Youngsters have always been full of creativity, making movies is about transporting people, and I believe our team can help you with that. They were all personally brought up by my wife, theyre very professional and diligent, but because of me, theyre out of job. So you being here is really a good thing. Right, can I see your script ? Sure. Eric took out a stack of paper from his bag and handed it to Jeffrey, then quietly waited. Ten minutester, Jeffrey closed the manuscript, returned it to Eric, and said: Its a goodedy, the shooting shouldnt be tooplicated, for a first time, its really a wise choice. Eric put the script back in his backpack, looked at Jeffrey and asked: So, Jeffrey, will you be the producer for this movie ? Jeffrey Hanson asked doubtfully: Eric, are you sure ? Mypany went bankrupt because of me Eric said: Jeffrey, you might not cut it as a director, but from what Ive heard, youre a very good producer. If the film is sessful, I will set up my ownpany, you can help me out and I can take in the team your wife left behind so that they wont have to lose their jobs. Jeffrey was ecstatic, he had been frustrated after his failure and was nning to return home and farm for his remaining years. Erics suggestion wasnt just benefiting him, but also his crew. Those people had coborated with the couple for many years, they werent just in an employee-employer rtionship, they were very good friends. His mistakes had made them unemployed, and he felt really guilty about it. Jeffrey didnt have to consider for long, he nodded and said: Very well Eric, I promise you. To our cooperation. Eric excitedly nged his cup of coffee against Jeffreys to celebrate their partnership. Afterwards, the two men began to discuss about Home Alone. During their talk, Jeffrey learned about what Eric had already nned, and he couldnt help but be amazed. I want toplete the filming in about a month, and then take advantage of the Jurassic Park and 17 Again hype to release it in time for the Christmas season. The 20th Century Fox has exaggerated a lot about me as it was a good way to promote 17 Again, so as long as we can make a good film, it will certainly do well. Eric remembered that in his past, Home Alone was recorded in the Guinness Book of Records for its box office. This filled him with longing, even if in this world Home Alone got only half of his past entries, it was a more than enough ideal to him. The two people kept chatting under thenterns of the cafe, they talked a lot and left their respective contact information before they went their own separate ways, and Eric drove home. He had just arrived that he received some good news: the Runkle couple agreed to let Stuart y Kevin. They discussed a bit the details and they also agreed on Erics offer of a 50,000$ paycheck and one percent of the box offices profits. Although it was only one-tenth of what Eric had earned in 17 Again, if the film had the same sess as his previous lifes, that one percent of profit was enough to make that couple grin from ear to ear. Eric didnt mind, after all, he needed Stuart to be the lead. The next day, Eric had Jeffrey Hanson and the Runkles sign a contract. The couple also heard about Eric directing the movie and had some reservations, but once they received the 50,000$ check that Eric had deliberately prepared in advance, the contract was signed immediately. Then there was the matter about the funds. Eric originally had about 600,000$, and after some negotiations with Michael us, he readily agreed to advance 200,000$ of royalties within ten days. He also returned his newly bought Strauss piano, which the shop owner reluctantly agreed to take back, but not without lowering two thousand dors of the original price. For thest remaining 200,000$ dors, Eric gritted his teeth and finally took a mortgage on the house with 10% interest per month, and if the money wasnt paid in six months, his home would no longer be his. This was in usury, ah ! Watching the check in his hands, Eric sighed. This n of his was a drastic move, and in case he failed, he didnt know if Aniston would agree to shelter him. When he thought about that, he couldnt help but remember Drew. His past 40-year-old self was experienced, and he could see how much the little loli liked him. If possible, he didnt want to be too much in contact with her, especially now that the 17 Again movie was over. He cared a lot about her, but perhaps more like a father would his daughter than a lover. It would probably take some time for thess to get over her feelings, but in the meantime he really needed her help in order toplete Home Alone, which meant that the both of them were still quite not done interacting with each other yet. Once they had all the funds, they were ready to shoot, so Eric and Jeffrey began non-stop casting for the crew. Eric had nned to pick the two robbers Harry and Marvin from some TVedians, but after sending out several invitations, they were either not avable or found the paycheck to be too low. Going back and forth for a couple of days, Eric suddenly received a phone call from Aniston. What ? Youre saying your father is inviting me to dinner ? Aniston voice over the phone was tinged with excitement: Yeah, you were frustrated for the past two days because you couldnt find actors for Home Alone, right ? I told my dad about it, and he promised to help you find someedians. Annies tone was very casual, but Eric knew that things werent so simple, so he was really moved. Her rtionship with her biological father, John Aniston, was very strained as he had abandoned both her mother and herself to further expand his career, which made Aniston bear a grudge. The past John Aniston kept struggling to make good by his stubborn daughter, so it can only be imagined how hard it mustve been for her to seek him for help. Eric gratefully replied: Thank you, Annie, Ill be there on time. Chapter 19 CHAPTER 19 C DIRECTOR WILLIAMS I dont like you, Mr. Williams. Taking advantage of his daughter going to the bathroom, John Aniston who was sitting opposite Eric suddenly said. Although Eric was startled, he only shrugged and asked: May I know why, John ? John Aniston said: For so many years Jenny has hated me, and I always felt guilty about it. I kept wishing shed forgive me, andst night she called me. She actually took the initiative to call me, you know ? I was so happy I couldnt sit still, and turns out, the reason she called was to help her boyfriend, a guy that was going to take my baby away from me. Well, that reason wasnt too shabby, daughters were the apple of their fathers eyes, and so they generally didnt have a good rtionship with their son-inw. Eric only shrugged again, and the two men were suddenly stuck in an awkward silence. Aniston soon came back from the bathroom, and smiled as she sat besides Eric, that intimacy only added to Johns anxiousness, but his good daughter had taken the initiative to speak to him after so long, he wouldnt be stupid enough to ruin this. With their reconciliation, the meal went fairly smoothly on the surface. When John took the air of an elder and reprimanded Eric for being too ambitious, Annie started to angrily re at him, and he finally agreed to help him contract some actors. With John Anistons widework of contacts in the television industry, Eric was able to soon deal with the majority of the roles, and thanks to the formers mediation, their pay wasnt too high which relieved him. However, Eric was still hesitating between several candidates when it came to the two robbers duo, until Aniston introduced him to one of her ssmates. Looking at that naturally declining face that had even been retouched in front of the mirror, Eric settled on it right away, because that guy was called Matthew Perry; one of the past six leads from Friends. Then Eric and Jeffrey flew to Canada a few times, and ultimately settled on a home located in a small town as the filming location. They busied themselves day and night, so much that Eric even lost a few pounds in just one week, which made Annie both distressed and envious. October 17th, Erics first project as a director since his rebirth in Los Angeles, was finally starting. The crew sent a few people to the town they had decided on in Canada for the scenes that happened at home, the rest stayed in L.A to shoot the ones at the airport and police station as those didnt require any snow. With Hollywood being the worldsrgest movie base, shooting here was a lot more convenient. The entire crew from the gaffer to the actors, didnt agree to be a part of the project because of the money, but were basically giving John and Jeffrey face. Although they had their misgivings towards Eric, they also had their own motives in mind. They had learned about the Home Alone scripts content, and were very d that this young director wasnt like those other debuting snobs who would never film something so cheap as they didnt consider it as art. The likelihood of sess for the movie was quite high, and it only costed 1 million to shoot it. Relying on Erics 17 Again and Jurassic Park momentum, perhaps they might even earn a little extra as Eric had promised them a bonus if the film made it big. In order to repay Eric who had provided histe wifes team a job, Jeffrey Hanson appeared on the set everyday on time, wanting to guide the novice with his years of experience. But after a day, Jeffrey began to seriously question life, or more precisely, Gods fairness. The kid didnt have the impatience of a first timer, he was more like a director with many years of shooting experience. He very orderly and methodically reorganized the set design and the props, he used professional terms to discuss shots with the cameraman, he directed the lighting division to get the desired effects, he was even patient with the dramatic actress that yed Kevins mother and who was ten years his elder. Of course, when consecutive errors urred, he also showed a directors unique skill: the directors roar ! Ms. Leslie, I want a puzzled expression, a confused expression, not a CURIOUS one ! ording to my observations, you have an obsessivepulsive disorder, then it should be easy for you ! Just imagine yourself lying in bed at night, when you suddenly hear dripping soundsing from the kitchen faucet but you cant seem to be able to find where the leak is. Picture that emotional conflict when you act. Damn it, were only leasing this aircraft for three hours, THREE HOURS ! Now everyone get in ce, and Nicole, how do you think well be able to see the sky if you keep aiming your camera at the titanium alloy ceiling of the ne, be a bit more focused, FUCK ! Due to Erics excellent performance, all of the crew had recognized his position as the director. So when Ms. Leslie who yed Kevins mother kept making mistakes on the ne scenes, Eric who was getting anxious because of the shooting schedule, couldnt help but roar out, and everyone present unconsciously forgot about his age as they turnedpletely silent. Nicole Frank, a 30 year-old cameraman, didnt even think about the fact that he had just been scolded by a brat, he subconsciously apologized: Im sorry, Director Williams, I will pay attention. Many yearster, when Nicole Frank would win the Oscar for best cinematography, todays scene would be the first thing he remembered as he stood on the podium of the Kodak Theatre: At that moment, my subconsciouspletely gave in to Erics authority as the director, rather than seeing an eighteen-year-old boy, I saw a man born tomand. After another NG, they finally wrapped the scene up, and Eric breathed a sigh of relief as he took the initiative to apologize to Ms. Leslie: Im sorry for being so harsh with you just now, Ms. Leslie. Never mind, director Williams, I was the one in the wrong. Besides, you look quite charming when youre angry. That. Eric wanted to remind her that that was a precursor of the Stockholm syndrome, she should probably get that check, sigh. The next few days, Eric realized that every single member of the crew had changed their terms of address to director Williams, and even Jeffrey Hanson was no exception. Eric knew that these people had acknowledged him from the bottom of their hearts. Therefore he started directing with renewed enthusiasm, so that in four days time, they had wrapped up the scenes that needed to be shot in L.A. Thus, the whole team left for the small town in Canada. Before, several staff members were sent to take care of Kevins home setting, although he had dealt with everything through the phone, Eric was very satisfied after seeing how everything had been arranged, and also became determined to do all he could to keep Jeffreys crew around. The town located in northern Canada had never experienced the shooting of a movie, so the residents of the town were very enthusiastic and curious. Eric hadnte yet that there were already people asking for small roles. Moreover, since they were shooting with a Christmas setting, all the residents took the initiative to dress up their homes, and the entire town was clouded in a festive atmosphere. Faced with this, Eric reciprocated very generously as he invited several children to appear in cameos. The only thing they had to film in this Canadian house, was Kevin pranking the two robbers, the movie didnt really have any Christmas connotation, it was just pureedy. Coupled with Stuarts performance that was even better than his past lifes Macay Culkin by many times, the shooting process could only be described as fast. Eric determined that they would be done wrapping everything within a week. At the same time, in Los Angeles, the 17 Again crew was starting to panic. Penny Marshall needed Eric to dub some shots, but suddenly discovered that he had gone AWOL; his phone wasnt connecting and his doors stayed firmly closed, which rmed the woman as she thought that he might have found trouble for himself, so she could only contact Aniston to learn about his whereabouts. Getting his contact number, Penny started toin on how he had to return to L.A within a weeks time, and that in addition to the dubbing he needed to do, he also had to be there for the promotion of the movie. Naturally, Erics filming of Home Alone was also exposed. In this regard, Penny Marshall acted like a benevolent elder as she criticized him some for reaching too high, but she also didnt mind that much, he had probably just put together a shabby crew and shot a nonsensical movie like every young aspiring directors. Eric was caught between work and reality, and although his rtionship with the crew was good, it was only so. Matthew Perry would chat with him from time to time in between sets, and Eric was also very interested in him, but unfortunately his focus was solely on how to quickly wrap up Home Alone, so they didnt have that many opportunities to make better acquaintance. A weekter, they sessfully finished the filming in the town, and thanks to Jeffrey and Erics meticulous nning, they had only spend 600,000$, leaving them with about 300,000$ which was more than enough toplete the post-production. Eric was in a generous mood as he threw an open party for the whole town. The next day, while many people were still in a hangover state, he was already on his way to catch a flight back to Los Angeles. It took half a day toplete the 17 Again dubbing, and Eric then started to frantically busy himself with things that Jeffrey had assigned him. These days, he basically worked for more than sixteen hours a day, and to everyones surprise, was done with thetepletion of the film in only five days. He had the whole thing in his mind, so his speed was obviously astounding, he had even used less than a day for the editing process, which made his editor now look at him with eyes full of worship. Five dayster in the morning, a dozen of people were squeezing in a shabby theater with only five or six descent seats. Most of them were the Home Alone crew, and Aniston had alsoe to watch Erics work. After a slight hum of the projector, a hazy silhouette of a blue house under the dim moonlight appeared, and the movie started Chapter 20 While everyone in the theater, including Aniston who hadnt been a part of the shooting, were all clearly aware of the Home Alones contents, with the progress of the story, especially when Kevin pranked the two robbers, everyone couldnt help but burst out ofughter, and even Jeffrey who was in his mid-fifties was roaring. The one hour forty minutes film unwittingly ended, and once thest line of the ending titles disappeared, everyone stood up and apuded together. I really have to admit, this movie is really too great. Eric, I think I should congratte you in advance. Jeffrey Hanson patted Eric on the shoulder, and seriously said. Thank you, Jeffrey, I wouldnt have been able to do it without your help. At least, I wouldnt be able toplete Home Alone in about two weeks of time. People greeted each other for a while, then they gradually dispersed, after all, everyone there had things to do. They had intended to throw a small party to celebrate, but seeing Erics unshaven and tired face, they very consciously gave up on the idea. Their director had overexerted himself for half a month, they were all aware that he needed to rest. The next step was to n the films release. Since hed have to go to the 17 Again preview screening tomorrow, Eric thought it would be a good opportunity to partner up with the 20th Century Foxs Distribution Department, he believed that as long as the executives watched the movie, they would agree to get it out on schedule. Although hed have to share some of the profits, he didnt really have a choice as he was without any foundation at all. Perhaps waiting after the 17 Again release would have made things easier for Home Alone, but by that time, even the New Year would have passed. As a Christmasedy, it had to naturally be released at that period, and Eric didnt want to wait another year to release it as they had put so much efforts into this. Annie had obtained a temporary license, she drove Eric in his car back to his home, and the tired young man put the copy of the movie away, and dove on his bed, unwilling to open a single eye. Aniston had nned for Eric to shower before going to sleep, but seeing him plunge head first in his sheets and noticing his tired looking face, she only uttered a sigh before taking his clothes and shoes off, covering him up with a nket and getting out of the room. Eric hadnt been home for over half a month, and since there was no one to clean up, the ce was already full of dust. Aniston rolled up her sleeves and went to find some cleaning tools. Unlike her Friends alter-ego Rachel, a spoiled girl who didnt even know how a washing machine worked, the real Annie had long since been self-reliant. On the desk in the study, Aniston found a variety of books on the subject of basic music theory. She picked some up and used a rag to wipe the dust when a document suddenly slipped out of one of the books. Aniston curiously picked it up and found out it was a mortgage agreement. He didnt know how long had passed, but it was probably noon when Annie had asked him if he wanted something to eat. Eric had groggily refused and fell asleep once more. When he woke up again, it was already dark. Eric turned on the lights and looked at his watch; it was way past nine. He thought that Annie had left, but as he dressed and got out of the bedroom, he could faintly hear the sounds of the TVing from the living room. Downstairs, he saw her curled up on the sofa, her arms hugging a pillow as she watched TV. Hey, Annie, good evening. Eric walked over, and kissed her cheek. Eric, you woke up. Go take shower, Ill fix you something to eat. Eric didnt notice the strange look Aniston was giving him, he turned towards the bathroom, showered for half an hour, shaved, and when he got out and went to the living room again, Annie was back on the sofa and dinner was ready. Wow Annie, that really surprised me, you even made such a delicious Chinese fried rice. Eric tasted and praised. You said you liked it, so I deliberately learned. Aniston had a smile on her face as she looked at her beloved eating so voraciously. She waited patiently until he had finished before saying: Eric, did you did you take a mortgage on your house ? Eric was about to go to the kitchen to do the dishes when he heard Annie, he couldnt help but look at her puzzled. He hadnt told anyone about it, so how did she know ? When I helped clean the study, this fell out from a book. Seeing Erics inquiring look, Aniston took out a document from the coffee table. Eric put down the cutlery, took the file and looked at it before nodding: I was short of 200,000$ for the Home Alone filming, so I had to take a mortgage on the house. Then, the piano in the study you also Aniston hade to Erics home a few times, so she had seen the Strauss before. Eric nodded again. Aniston frowned in distress as she said: Eric, I think you were too impulsive, although everyone thought that todays screening of Home Alone was very good, you never know if it might end up in failure and lead you to bankruptcy. Dont worry, Annie. You see, a few months ago, I was just a broke high school student, and now only a few months have passed and I have sessfully published a novel, written a screeny as well as starred as the main lead, and now even made movie. How many people my age can do this ? So, even if I failed this time, I believe that Ill easily be able to stand up again. We are still so young, we ought to enjoy life and strive whole-hardheartedly for sess, failure isnt a bad thing, itll help us grow, happy times do note without some tear shedding. I dont want to be an old fossil that looks back at his life, dully and cidly gazing at the sun in the sky, full of regrets towards his younger days. That would be too miserable. Oh, Eric, when you say it like this, it sounds so amazing. You think I dont know youre trying to trick me ?! You damn rascal ! The morning sun hit her face, as her eyshes shook and Aniston who subconsciously turned to avoid the disturbing light, soon woke up. Eric came in the bedroom holding a tray, to see his already awake girlfriend, he smiled and said: Hey baby, good morning. Aniston pouted and said: Well not a good one to you, you bastard. Come on look, I even spent an hour making this delicious ribs soup as an apology. Dont want it, Im dieting. Make an exception for today, you wont gain weight just because of this,e one, taste it, hows the vor ? Wait, dont I need to brush my teeth first ? Ill take you to the bathroom. Hateful ! After a warm breakfast, because of mobility issues, Aniston could only ask for a leave to the convenience store owner once more. Regarding this matter, the boss was really ustomed to it as there were many people who dreamed of stardom in L.A and needed time to go to auditions or be on set earlier, and he knew that Annie was one of them. When she had looked for the job, the owner and her had reached a mutual understanding. The two loverszed for a while before Eric drove his car away as today happened to be the 17 Again movie preview. He wanted to try and be done with the Home Alone issue at the same time. Ten oclock in the morning, in one of the 20th Century Fox luxury theaters, the Publicity Department, film-makers and a dozen of other representatives, as well as the 17 Again crew, were all present. Before the start of the screening, Eric came to James Brooks and Penny Marshalls side as he wanted the both of them to introduce him to the ones from the 20th Century Fox Distribution Department. Eric, youre saying that you want to release your movie in time for Christmas ? James Brooks was startled, he also knew about Eric making a movie as soon as he had wrapped up 17 Again, but he didnt expect that he would havepleted it so fast. Yes, James, its a Christmasedy, so it would be best if it was avable in theater during that period, as it wouldnt have the same impact if the release date was off. James Brooks held some disdain in his heart, while he recognized Erics talent as a screenwriter and actor, but he absolutely wouldnt believe that he could produce an interestingedy. Directing a movie required years of experience after all, however, he had to at least give him face, so he promised he would help introduce him to some people. Chapter 21 The 17 Again movie preview went very smoothly, both the 20th Century Fox executives, and cinemas representatives were unanimously optimistic about this campusedy. For the Thanksgiving/Christmas period, if Eric hadnt appeared, the 20th Century Fox was originally nning on releasing theedy Working Girl, starring Harrison Ford and Sigourney Weaver, on the 23rd of December. Now, with 17 Again, their once empty Thanksgiving timetable was full. After discussion, they gave the OK for the movie to be released on November 18th which Eric found very satisfactory. He had searched through his memory and couldnt remember any interesting movie that had been released in November 1988, so it would be smooth-sailing for 17 Again. If it had been released in December, it would have to go against top grossing movies like Rain Man, Twins or Naked Gun. Near noon, James brought Eric to a forty-year-old middle-aged man with rimmed sses. This was the 20th Century Foxs head of the Distribution Department, director Carter Hunt. James introduced the two of them a bit before quickly leaving. Although he had a good rtionship with Eric, he wouldnt go so far as to ask for favors on his behalf. Hello, Mr. Hunt. Eric shook hands with the man, and the other politely praised Erics performance in 17 Again. However, once Eric exined his intentions to Carter Hunt, thetter immediately refused: Im sorry, Eric, this years release schedule is already full, we cant afford to squeeze in a low-budgetedy, Im really sorry. The reason was definitely bullshit, if the movie had been directed by Spielberg instead, he was sure that Carter Hunt would be so happy hed start jumping. Although he had been rejected, Eric didnt give up: Mr. Hunt, please take a look at it at least, I brought a copy, you only need to spend a little more than an hour to watch it, I guarantee you that this is a great movie. Carter Hunt shook his head once more. A lot of small filmpanies tried to sell him those kind of stuff on a daily basis, especially now that it was the holidays period, since theycked a distribution channel, they would constantly seek him out. Carter knew that those films had little to nomercial value, let alone the low-budgetedy of an eighteen-year-old, it was just a waste of time. Eric, you know, Im very busy with work right now, and I have to go back to the headquarters this afternoon to handle the distribution of 17 Again. Im sorry. Eric was really unwilling and cheekily kept insisting a few times, before Carter Hunt lost his patience and found an excuse to send him away. Eric, how did it go ? Penny asked once he returned. Eric shook his head as he wryly smiled and Penny patted his shoulder beforeforting: Dont be discouraged, Eric. You know, many movie releases cost even higher than the making of the movie itself, and if they dont get a good box office, the one to shoulder the responsibility would be the head of the Distribution Department, so you see, Carter has his own difficulties. I get that you made that movie with your own money, so after the release of 17 Again, while the hype is still ongoing, I could help you get back some of your money by releasing it direct-to-VHS. But after that I think you should focus more on acting and writing, you shouldnt let your talent go to waste. Thank you, Penny. Eric gratefully said, but his heart was slightly bitter. Everyone seemed to regard Home Alone as the experimental film of a rookie, while he just wished he could tie all the people present to their seats, and forcefully make them watch it. Unfortunately, this idea would require the help of his old deity friend. He dejectedly went home, since the 20th Century Fox had no interest in his project, he could only try other studios. Aniston was curled up like a cat in the living room sofa, boringly watching a BBC soap opera. When Eric opened the door, she propped her small head up and asked: Eric, how was it ? Eric came to her side and hugged her. Rubbing her back, he said: The 20th Century Fox rejected it, but its okay, Ill try somewhere else. Aniston felt Erics tone was slightly disheartened, she clung to his waist and lifted her head as she softly said: You know what Eric ? Home Alone is so good, this time its their loss. After it gets released, they will definitely regret today. Ah, baby, you always know what to say, huh ? Eric squeezed Annies face. They started kissing, but were quickly interrupted by the ringing of the phone after a while. Eric who had been about to push Aniston down reluctantly let go of her. Hey, youve reached the Williams residence. Oh hey Jeffrey, whats up ? Eric listened to the voice on the phone, when suddenly his eyebrows jumped. Aniston knew that this always happened when her boyfriend was happy, she was really curious but she couldnt hear anything. Eric nodded a few times, hung up the phone, then took Annie is his arms as he swirled around with her. Ugh, Eric, Im getting dizzy, put me down and quickly tell me, whats the good news ? Eric put Annie back on the sofa before saying: Jeffrey ran into a friend from Columbia Pictures this morning, he talked to him about Home Alone, and apparently his friend was very interested, he even said that if I didnt reach an agreement with the 20th Century Fox, I could go to him. Columbia Pictures? Is that Aniston made a Statue of Liberty pose. Yep, that one. Eric nodded. Amy is a good friend of my wife, very capable. Shes only in her early thirties and already in a high position at Columbia, she helped my wife distribute two of her films in the past. I met her yesterday, and when I mentioned you, she seemed to already know who you were, so I told her about Home Alone. In a cafe, Jeffrey Hanson kept talking on and on. Sitting opposite him, Eric curiously asked: You said Amy ? The friend you talked about is a woman ? Of course. Eric felt that this was too much of a coincidence, and she even worked at Columbia Pictures, so he couldnt help but ask: That Amy, whats her full name ? Amy Pascal. Sure enough, it was her. In the past, the one who shined throughout the 90 was the CEO of Paramount, Shirley Lansing. Her exposure as the Hollywood matriarch was nothing tough at, but if we talked about achievements, then Amy Pascals were no less than hers and she had even ruled Columbia Pictures for a longer time. Eric and Jeffrey were still chatting, when Amy Pascal came in a hurry two minutester. About a meter and seventy centimeters in height, donning a ck suit, she had brown hair and delicate features, she gave a good vibe overall. After a brief greeting, the three of them sat down together. Chapter 22 Amy Pascal showed a very direct interest in Eric: Eric, youre younger than I thought. I had just entered college when I was your age. You look very young, Ms. Pascal. Ericplimented. Amy Pascalughed: Thank you, Eric. Calling me Amy is fine, I read Jurassic Park, and I really like your writing, so I wanted to ask, are the movie rights still in your hands ? Eric jolted slightly: Of course. This time, with the Jurassic Park fame growing, numerous filmpanies contacted him for the movie rights, but all of them were turned down by Eric. Before he had enough power to fight fairly for his interests, he didnt n on selling them. Well, I wonder if youd be willing to sell those rights to Columbia ? We wont be stingy when ites to the price. Eric said: Amy, we didnte here to discuss about this today. Also, technology hasnt matured enough when ites to special effects, so I dont n on selling Jurassic Parks rights any time soon. Ah, thats a shame. Well, lets talk about Home Alone then, its my understanding that Jeffrey has watched and appreciated the movie. Right, I heard that you originally intended to release it through the 20th Century Fox, how did it go ? Eric shrugged and told her the truth: The head of the 20th Century Fox Distribution Department, Mr Carter Hunt, didnt even watch the movie, and just bluntly refused. Carter Hunt, huh, I know him, one really arrogant man. Amy Pascal smiled and said: Well then, I think Ill take a look at that movie first. Eric nodded, then the three of them went directly to an auditorium at Columbia Pictures headquarters, gave a copy to the projectionist, and sat on the leather seats. Eric, you dont seem to be really looking forward to it ? Before the film started screening, Amy Pascal caught a nce of Erics face, and quipped. Eric helplessly smiled: Amy, you know, I made the movie from start to finish, my mind is filled with every shot, and Ive also seen it a lot of times, however, I believe you will definitely not be disappointed. The theater lights dimmed, Amy Pascal nodded, and looked back. She had mixed emotions about all this, Columbia Pictures wascking a good movie project, that was true, but thinking about how they were even reduced to turning their sights towards a high school students movie, she couldnt help but sigh in the dark. As one of the top management, Amy Pascal was familiar with Columbia Pictures like the back of her hand. This years profits werent good, if it werent for the umted earnings of their past few years, thepany would have certainly faced huge losses. Compared to the thriving Disney and 20th Century Fox, as well as Paramount when Barry Diller was still there, Columbia was like a very old, almost lethargic man. After Ghostbusters got the second ce in the box office in 1984, Columbia hadnt been able to squeeze a movie in the top ten in three consecutive years, and this one was no exception. This old giant of the movie world, had be a disgrace. Columbias parentpany, Coca-C, had suffered heavy lossesst year, and if Columbia still couldnt make any profits for them, it would likely be sold. In fact, the Sony consortium had already made an offer. Amy Pascal had some understanding of Eric, this boy had just graduated from high school, and in only a few months, had published the science fiction novel Jurassic Park,wrote the 17 Again script and startled the entire 20th Century Fox with his acting. If not for him giving people so many surprises, perhaps Amy Pascal would have also dismissed him like Carter Hunt had. Columbia Pictures had also received the 17 Again script, and several producers in thepany had been interested, when they saw Erics condition to star as a lead, they had ultimately given up on it, they just couldnt afford to take the risk. She had heard that Barry Diller had personally approved of 17 Again,paring him to the mediocre CEO of Columbia Mr. Blount Cohen*, Amy couldnt help but sigh. If thepany was in its current situation, it was because of the higher upsck of boldness and vision. (TL: Name that the author made up, I did some research and couldnt find anything about him.) With the start of the movie, the interesting plot and Stuart Runkles pranks, Amy Pascals thoughts scattered as she focused on the screen. Once the movie was finished, Amy Pascal was stunned silly, she couldnt believe that such a greatedy was the work of an eighteen-year-old boy. She excitedly stood up as she faced Eric with a grin and said: Eric, can you wait here while I make a phone call ? Seeing Amys expression, Eric was sure of one thing; it was in the bag. After half an hour, the president of Columbia, Mr. Blount Cohen, and seventy-eight other Columbia Pictures executives gathered together in the theater, and Home Alonewas screened once again. They watched the movie in a cheerful atmosphere, and althoughmuting time was near, no one was eager to leave. After 45 minutes of screening, the higher ups had already started whispering together. Columbia Pictures, in the presidents office, Eric and Jeffrey were sitting opposite Blount Cohen, as thetter sipped leisurely a few times on a cup of coffee his assistant had brought him, before saying: Eric, to be honest, we are very optimistic about Home Alone, so we are willing to offer 10 million dors to buy all the rights, what do you think ? Hearing the price, Jeffrey Hanson who was sitting next to Eric, became incredibly joyful. A one million dor project and they were willing to offer ten times that, if the decision was his, he would have immediately nodded. Blount Cohen noted Jeffreys expression and revealed a smile of satisfaction, thepany estimated the movies box office at 50 million $ and they could easily shoot a sequel, so after some deliberation, they had decided to directly give a high price and buy the copyrights. Buy Home Alone for ten million dors ? Your uncle, I would rather go bankrupt ! Eric couldnt help but swear in his mind. Mr. Cohen, you must have made your preliminary estimates on Home Alones box office, right ? Do you mind telling me what the results were ? Seeing Eric not immediately agreeing, Blount Cohen was a little disappointed, but he still said: Of course, we feel that, if done properly, then Home Alones North American box office should do around 30 million $. In ordance with established practice, you, as producers*, can get twenty percent of the benefits, a 10 million $ buyout price is very reasonable. The cost of making the film shouldnt have been that high, so Eric, what are you hesitating for ? Just sign the agreement, and youll be one of the youngest multimillionaire in Hollywood. _ _ _ _ * As in, those who made the movie, not the name of the job, in case youre confused. Chapter 23 Sitting next to Jeffrey Hanson, Eric felt that there was no room for bargaining, he still said: Im sorry, Mr. Cohen, I dont intend to sell Home Alone, but we can still talk about a sharing agreement, right ? Blount Cohen frowned as he unhappily said: Eric, if were going to share, I can only give you 18%. Mr. Cohen, didnt you just say youd give us 20% ? Jeffrey retorted. Blount Cohen lightly said: That was just under average circumstances, if we are to release Home Alone, then the cost of the release will certainly be much higher than the cost of production, so 18% is very reasonable. Jeffrey was about to argue, but Eric stopped him from acting on impulse and said: Well, Mr. Cohen, I have another idea, how about signing a contract based on a bet ? Although gambling agreements were widespread in the industry, Blount Cohenugh loudly in his heart, what made this brat think that he was qualified to gamble with Columbia ? However, he feigned interest and gestured to Eric to keep going, hed like to hear what this kid had on his mind. Eric acted as if he hadnt seen Blounts face full of ridicule, he smiled and said: Columbia will use 5 million dors, at the least, to promote the movie. If Home Alone makes less than 50 million $ at the box office, I will give up the entirety of the rights to you for free. After these words, if Blount Cohen said he wasnt moved, he would be lying. Thepany had already estimated that Home Alone would make about 50 million at the box office, so if he signed an agreement on gambling, as long as the time was right, even controlling the box office so that it didnt grow over 50 million was a very simple matter. Blount Cohen felt Eric was stupid, but he also admired the young man for his courage. Jeffrey Hanson abruptly got up, and shouted in disbelief: Eric are you crazy ?! Eric patted Jeffrey on the shoulder and motioned him to sit down, before saying: If the box office is between 50 million to 100 million $, I want twenty percent of the share. If the box office is over 100 million dors, then for every additional 10 million dors, I want my share ratio to be increased by 1%. Eric finished, and calmly started to drink his coffee, no longer saying anything. Jeffrey Hanson was fidgeting, he kept sweeping his gaze between the two people, he was a bit worried Blount Cohen would agree to Erics ridiculous agreement, if he did, they would lose the 10 million $ buyout fee. 10 million dors, ah, how many people had ever seen so much money ? Unfortunately, Blount Cohens courage was reallycking, he hesitated for a full five minutes, before finally saying: Eric, this is something I need to discuss in a meeting, can I give you my answer tomorrow ? Eric nodded, directly got up and left. In the parking lot, Jeffrey didnt get in his car, but sat in Erics passengers seat instead. Eric, youre too impulsive. That was 10 million $ you know ? Looking at all these years, althoughedy can generally get good box office, there are always exceptions. Tomorrow lets just directly take their buyout offer, you may be able to fight again for the price, what do you say ? Listen to me, youll probably get this kind of lifetime opportunity only once or twice, if you miss on it, it will never happen again, with 10 million $, you can continue to shoot movies, you can do a lot of things. Eric was immersed in the deal he had proposed to Columbia Pictures, and his blood was slightly boiling. The past Home Alones box office had entered the Guinness Book of Records, and with his copy of it, he didnt believe that with the help of the giant that was Columbia, the movie would fare much worse, so he had been worried about fighting for his own interests. ording to the way things should have normally progressed, his low-budget film could only get 20% of the profits at best. When Blount heard that Eric wanted to share the profits, he had lowered the share to 18% because he knew that the box office would be higher than what he had mentioned, and at that moment, Erics thoughts shed as he remembered another agreement method: gambling. In the film industry, betting on the box office wasmon, because under normal circumstances, this was a win-win situation; both sides could fight for their best interests while avoiding risks at the same time. If you looked at the Home Alone from his past, the final North American box office count was 280 million $, so after signing the gambling agreement, Eric would eventually get a 38% share, which was 3% higher than what those powerful producers earned. Moreover, after seeing Blount Cohens reaction to his proposal, he felt that Columbia Pictures was likely to agree. Hey, Eric, Ive been speaking so much, but in the end you werent even listening, were you ? Jeffrey Hanson found himself nagging so much he became thirsty, but Eric hadnt said a word and only reacted after he had nudged him on the shoulder twice. Look, Jeffrey, I know you are good to me, but however you think about it, a few months ago, I would have nothing if not for my guts. Ill let you in on something, I believe that Home Alone is likely to break the 200 million $ mark at the box office, so with the agreement I proposed, how much do you think I can get ? Jeffrey looked at Eric as if he was looking at a mental patient. Eric didnt mind andughed: Jeffrey, have a little bit of faith in me alright, if Im right, then you as the executive producer will receive a generous dividend that will help you redeem your Fireflies studios. Right now I need your help, so how about doing me a favor ? Although Jeffrey dreamed of getting back the filmpany co-founded with his wife, he didnt take Erics words seriously, but seeing that he wouldnt be able to change the guys mind, he asked: Well, Eric, what do you need me to do ? Help me contact aw and ounting firm, not surprisingly, Columbia will certainly agree to the agreement I proposed, and Ill need someone to help me supervise and audit the implementation of the agreement, and if theres a dispute Ill also need someone to defend my case. Jeffrey said: These are no problem, but Eric, do you still have money ? Those guys cost a lot you know. Of course, Eric opened his glovepartment, took out a copy of Jurassic Park, and said: I still have the Jurassic Park movie copyrights that are at least worth a million dors as coteral, if the gambling fails, then just take the novel to those firms, I dont believe theyll reject it. Eric, youre seriously insane ! The man of genius is he and he alone who finds such joy in his art, that he will work at ite hell or high water. Jeffrey threw his hands up: I see, not only are you crazy, youre arrogance could even put Aristotle to shame. Aristotle was busy, I stole this one from Stendhal. Jeffrey finally agreed to help contact the firm as soon as possible, at the same time, in one of Columbia Pictures conference rooms, several executives were in the middle of a discussion. Alright, you know everything, so lets hear your opinions. Blount Cohen described Erics conditions of the bet again while he looked at the several executives, waiting for them to express their views. After hearing Blount Cohens statement a second time, the executives found it unbelievable; was that boy just foolishly stupid ? Finally, an executive called Lester Reed took the lead and said: Mr. Cohen, this is a good opportunity, ording to our estimates, the highest potential box-office of the film is also 50 million $. Following the signing of the agreement, and with a little bit of tweaking, we could easily control the box office so that it wouldnt go over the 50 million mark, and we wouldnt even have to use 10 million dors to buy him out. When Lester Reed finished, the others also echoed up. Chapter 24 Amy Pascal was also sitting at the conference table, but she felt that things werent as simple as they seemed. Although she had only been in contact with Eric for a few short hours, she knew that he was unlike any of his peers. He had a gentle and calm temperament, and certainly wasnt rash or hot-blooded enough toe up with this kind of crazy agreement. The only likely reason she coulde up with was that this bet wasnt made on a whim, but after Eric Williams careful consideration. Amy Pascal didnt bother with the people supporting the gambling agreement, after thinking for awhile, she said: Mr. Cohen, I feel its still better to be cautious, there is no free lunch in this world, maybe we should slightly raise our initial offer, and share profits with Eric Williams. With the films box office potential, we certainly wont make a loss. Amy, I think youre too conservative, even children are bolder. Lester Reed retorted: You know the potential of this film depends entirely on our likelihood to get the copyrights, right ? In addition to the box office, theres the videotape copyrights, as well as the television ones, thats millions in profits for us. If we choose to share, the copyright still stay in the hands of the boy, and the next time we want to make a sequel, hell try to wrench us dry again. Amy Pascal said: We could also work on the buyout price, right, how about increasing it to 15 million dors ? I think Eric would agree. Based on the potential of such a small budgetedy in the past, under normal circumstances, 50 million $ at the box office is considered a dark horse, while most can only make about 2 million $. So, theres more than 80% chance that well get all copyrights for free, why do we have to pay 15 million $ when the brat has less than 20 % chance of winning ? He has even the guts to make such a crazy gamble when the odds are against him, so what are you afraid of ? But Amy Pascal looked at the eyes of her colleagues and could only see endless greed. But her womans unique sixth sense made her feel that something was wrong, the bet definitely wasnt that simple. Amy, Blount Cohen interrupted her: Jeffrey Hanson and Eric Williams might be your friends, but youre a Columbia Pictures employee, you work for the sake and interests of thepany. Blount Cohens words stunned Amy Pascal, she really was friends with Jeffrey Hanson, but her career as a manager had always been professional and ethical. And now, just because she had expressed her reservations towards the agreement, they even suspected her to be fighting for the interests of outsiders ? Amy felt a strong sense of humiliation as she clenched her hand and her pen trembled slightly. She suddenly stood up, and coldly stated: Mr. Cohen, now that you have made up your mind, I think Im no longer need, so I will take my leave. Good bye. Then, Amy Pascal hastily put the papers in front of her back in order, silently turned around and left the office. The entire office sunk into a brief silence. Ah, women ! (TL: Your uncle !) It was unknown who exactly had uttered this sigh. Someone like Amy Pascal with a high position in a patriarchal society, would certainly be subject to discrimination. Blount Cohen was slightly regretting, Amy Pascals ability to work and her professional conduct were obvious, otherwise it would be impossible for her to be sitting in this office. But although Blount Cohencked courage, he was very prideful, he felt that even if he had spoken somewhat abruptly, Amy Pascal just getting up and leaving was an attack towards his dignity, so he conveniently decided that the fault lied with her. After ten seconds of silence, Blount Cohen finally said: Well, since we all agree on this gambling agreement, then Lester, from tomorrow onward, you are solely responsible of the Home Alone project. In the midst of everyones envious gazes, Lester Reed excitedly agreed. If they won the bet, this credit would certainly be considered when hed vie for a future promotion, and the raise of his pay would then be a natural thing. No problem, Mr. Cohen, I will take care of this. The next day, Eric received a notification stating that Columbia Pictures had epted his gambling agreement. At the same time, Jeffrey had introduced him to the firms, and after they had assessed the value of Jurassic Park, they agreed to send a team to assist Eric in supervising the implementation of the bet. October 31st, although very interested, Eric wasnt able to participate in the first Halloween parade of his rebirth, but had to sit with a lot of boring middle-aged men and women in one of the meeting rooms of the Columbia headquarters, deciding the specifics of the agreement. In the conditions put forward by Eric, the contents of the agreement were gradually tuned. In order to ensure that Columbia Pictures did their utmost for the promotion of Home Alone, he made sure they would publish the details of the bet in a well-known newspaper, as well as check the number of daily theater attendances in order to increase or reduce the number of screenings, take into ount the daily film schedule as well as the screening time, etc. And once Columbia vited the terms of the agreement, different penalties would be imposed for breach of contract. Looking at the dozens of pages that had been drawn, Eric was stunned. He couldnt help but give his thumbs up to Jeffrey Hanson for recruiting a team of such professionalwyers and ountants. On Columbias side, Lester Reed who was responsible for the Home Alone project, felt that the bet was already in the bag, he didnt take that stupid dozen pages-long contract seriously, and couldnt help but hold Erics demands in ridicule as he had probably wasted at least several hundred thousand dors onmission alone. Ah, what a waste ! Lester Reed thought that no matter how detailed the contract was, they had already estimated Home Alones box office potential, and even their most daring estimations didnt exceed the currently ranked first this year, Who framed Roger Rabbit, a perfectbination of animation and live-action movie who had made 150 million dors in the North American box office alone. Columbia had originally proposed a December release for Home Alone, but Eric firmly opposed it. What a joke, he already knew about the movies that were about to be released at that period, those blockbusters would just strangle his project. In his past, Home Alone had been released in November and had been screened for two months, its box office was remarkable. Eventually, Columbiapromised, and decided on November 18th as the release date, the same day as 17 Again, which was something Eric had suggested as he was a focal point of the two movies, this could help promote them and target arger public as well since everyone didnt have the same tastes; if they werent into the first they could go see the second. For this reason, even Columbia who had originally nned the November 18th release for the film Mysia postponed it to December, freeing up about a 1000 screens for Home Alone. Just looking at the figures, you could see that under normal circumstances, only the movies they had confidence in would start with more than one thousand screens, which showed that Columbia was very optimistic about Home Alone. But at the same time they didnt want its box office to be over 50 million $ since they also wanted to win the copyrights, therefore the number of screens didnt exceed one thousand. Eric didnt have any qualms towards this, for the Columbia executives to think like this was a normal thing, but they had signed up to a dozen pages of contract, in which it was clearly stated that if the box office reached a certain number, they had to correspondingly increase the number of screens. If Columbia refused to do it, then they could just wait to be sued, but Eric believed that the gains of one movie wasnt enough to make giants like Columbia throw away their reputation. After the signing, and because the contracting parties didnt intend to conceal the agreements and instead hoped that the bet would spread, the entire Hollywood soon knew about it. Thanks to Columbia Pictures Publicity Department, the next day, The Los Angeles Times made it its headline. Genius boy gambles with Columbia Pictures: demented or foolish ? Chapter 25 CHAPTER 25 C PROMOTION IN FULL SWING Yesterday, a shocking gambling agreement was signed at the headquarters of Columbia Pictures, between the recently famous author of Jurassic Park and 17 Again, eighteen-year-old prodigy Eric Williams, and Columbia Pictures of the Coca-C Group. It was reported that, after Eric Williamspleted filming 17 Again, he relied on the paycheck he received as a starring actor, as well as his royalties fees from Jurassic Park, to, in only fifteen days of time, write and direct a low-budgetedy of one hundred and forty minutes titled Home Alone. Leaving aside what the quality of the film will be like, for eighteen-year-old Eric Williams to aplish this feat makes him worthy of the word genius. After seeing Home Alone and deliberating, the Columbia executives became unanimously optimistic. ording to insiders, Mr. Blount Cohen, president of Columbia had originally wanted to buy the entirety of the Home Alone copyrights for 10 million $, however, Eric Williams straightforwardly refused this offer, which would have been enough to make him one of the youngest multimillionaires in Hollywood, and instead proposed apletely insane gambling agreement. The article was detailing the two sides of the bet, and analyzing the possibility of Eric winning it. The author was obviously an insider, he had included a series of data of simr past box officeedies, and estimated that with Home Alone, Erics chance of losing was more than 80%. Because Home Alone didnt star a celebrity, and hadnt had any investors, for this type of good but low-budgetedy, only a few could make 2 to 3 millions at the box office, most would just make a million. Therefore, the possibility of Home Alone breaking the 50 million mark was very low. The author even concluded by saying that Columbia would most likely never allow Home Alone to pass that mark. Most people liked to talk about all kinds of things, but their favorite topics would be; geniuses -the ones that were so out of their reach that they couldnt even feel envy-, tragic heroes, and conspiracy theories. The Los Angeles Times article, had explicitly or implicitly, more or less broached about these three subjects, stirring the public sentiment. Even before the 20th Century Foxs 17 Again publicity stunt, people had already begun to develop an eagerness towards Eric, this could be seen by the sudden increase in Jurassic Parks sales. Now, the appearance of Home Alone was like a bomb, the publics interest in Eric had exploded, which meant that sales and the ratings would too, and soon, in a few days of time, he had already received a dozen requests for interviews. Jeff, who hadnt contacted him in a while, suddenly called him to tell him that some people hade to inquire about him at the restaurant. Eric realized that the paparazzi had started to pay attention to him. Meanwhile, after the publication of The Los Angeles Times article, the 20th Century Fox and Columbia Pictures seemed to form a tacit understanding as both the promotion of 17 Again and Home Alone started in full swing. Although Carter Hunt, the head of the Distribution Department on the Foxs side had some regrets about refusing to watch Erics Home Alone, as a professional, he quickly got over his mood, and after some negotiations with Columbia,unched a simultaneous publicity stunt. With those two giants joining forces, the results could well be imagined. Annie, hows the situation, can I go home ? When he saw his girlfriend open the door, Eric quickly asked. He had been hiding at Annies and hadnt gone home in a week. Aniston shook her head, she put the groceries bags she had in her hands on the coffee table and said: I drove past your home, there was at least seventy-eight paparazzi keeping watch on your neighborhood. Fortunately they didnt know that the car I drove was yours, otherwise they would have certainlye after me, that would have been terrible. Eric sighed. Thanks to the two giants united publicity campaign, Eric had be one of the most popr figure in North America, and even across the Antic, British newspapers had started to pick the subject up. Eric was knowledgeable about how things worked in this industry, so after receiving Jeffs phone callst week, he immediately hid at Annies ce. The two studios promoting the movie was enough, the rest would be to just rely on the quality of the film itself, so he didnt bother going out and get interviewed by the paparazzi, not to mention that he wasnt certain they would write things as he stated them. Although Eric promptly went into hiding and the paps hadnt been able to interview him, they had still dug around and his whole life wasid out for the public to feast on: his immigration from Ennd, his schools grades, and even his time passed at Jeffs Italian restaurant. Aniston was relishing in it all, teasing him from time to time. Then, a tabloid published about his alleged love triangle between Drew Barrymore and an unknown actress. They apparently got this from some members of the 17 Again crew, and the story was vividly written, even stating that Drews turning a new leaf and joining a rehab center was all for Erics sake. Once that article came out, a certain unknown actress had made Eric sleep on the sofa for two full days in a fit of jealousy. Michael us was so excited recently he could barely sit still. Because the two giants had involved Eric in their propaganda stunt, Jurassic Parks sales that had already gone over 100,000, started to soar once again in the second week of November, and finally passed the 250,000 mark. ording to estimates, breaking the one million mark this year wouldnt be a problem. After calling him a few times to no avail, Michael us learned of Erics whereabouts from Penny Marshall, and directly went to Anistons ce. Hey, Michael, how did you know I was here ? Eric asked curiously as he let Michael in the house. You, seriously, I even thought of calling the police since I couldnt find you anywhere, and turns out youre hiding here Michael us was about to say something, but when he saw Anistoning out of the bedroom in pajamas, he was surprised and shut his mouth. Michael, this is my girlfriend, Jennifer Aniston. Annie, this is Mr. Michael us, the manager of my book. Michael and Aniston greeted each other, before Annie left for the bathroom. Hey, Eric, this is the actress that was mentioned ? I still like Drew though, she was really cute in E.T. Once Anistons figure disappeared, Michael started gossiping. Eric gave Michael a cup of coffee and whispered: Michael, if you want Annie to throw you out, then keep talking about this topic, even I dont dare to mention Drews name now. Michael us realized Eric wasnt kidding and very decisively changed the subject: Look, Eric, Jurassic Park is now selling so well, dont you think you should start writing a sequel ? Eric shook his head without hesitation, the Jurassic Park copyrights were already in his hands, although he had used it as coteral in the bet, he wasnt worried about that. He didnt have any time to waste on writing a sequel. The fiction is already aplete story, and I think there is nothing else to write about, Michael. Michael us wasnt discouraged and quickly followed: Well, do you have any other work ? Eric shook his head again. Some time ago he had been incredibly busy, and once he had finallypleted Home Alone and signed a gambling agreement with Columbia, he had directly given himself a break. But because there was only a few days before the release of the movies, he had to follow the crew around during the promotion. Fortunately though, the twopanies had reached apromise and decided on a uniform promotional tour schedule, so Eric wouldnt have to cut himself in half. Chapter 26 Michael us decided to y it like a rascal when he saw that Eric kept shaking his head: Eric, just give me something, alright ? Ive been so busy while helping you with Jurassic Park that my wife startedining, I even gave you 200,000$ of royalties in advance so that you could make your movie, arent you a little bit moved ? Seeing the stocky middle-aged man in front of him ying the emotional card, Eric couldnt help but have the chills. He thought for a moment, and said: Well, I do have a science-fiction one in mind, but its just an idea, no specific outline yet. Its based on George Romeros living dead series, a biotechnologypany is studying a virus when it is suddenly leaked, infecting humanity at the same time. Erics story was of course, Resident Evil. Although he had seen the series in his past life, he hadnt really liked it, but thanks to his memory, he remembered it in its entirety. The past Resident Evil was probably the most profitable game adapted to the screen, the cost of production wasnt high, and the series total box office had even crossed the 1 billion $ mark. Since Michael wanted him to write something, this would keep him upied. Plus, he would get to steal from the Japanese, which kind of left him with a sense of aplishment. Michael us was somewhat dissatisfied: Dont you have anything else ? A lot of people do like zombie stories, but the audience is just too small Eric shrugged his shoulders and spread his hands, as if saying do what you like, so Michael had no choice but to say: Alright, then start writing as soon as possible, with your current fame, we shouldnt worry about the sales volumes. By the way, you could add some adults elements, anyway youre of age now, no one will say anything about it bbing about his own proposal, Michael suddenly noticed that Erics face looked unnatural, he subconsciously turned around and found that Aniston was standing behind him, her mouth slightly opened, she was looking at the middle-aged man in a way that screamed: ah, so thats what youre like ! Cough, Eric, I suddenly remember I have some things to do, so Ill be going now. After instigating her boyfriend to write about that kind of things, Michael was embarrassed as he awkwardly made his way towards the door and left this sentence before running away: Be sure to start writing as soon as possible ! After he left, Aniston asked: Eric, youre not really going to write ording to that fellows suggestion right ? Of course not, I am now being promoted by Columbia and the Fox as a model for young people in the United States, how could I damage that glorious image for some petty profits. After the Home Alone and 17 Againrge-scale publicity stunt, it was finally time for another key moment: the reviews. November 11th, the two films held simultaneous screenings for the press. In this era where Inte didnt exist yet, the viewers relied mostly on newspapers when it came to pick a film, therefore, the movies reviews were something that one could not avoid. Of course, after the critics who participated in the preview watched the movie, as long as it wasntpletely repulsive, they would generally not make too incisive remarks. After all, the critics needed movies to survive, but movies didnt actually need them that much. The day after the screenings, the major newspapers and magazines had finally released the long awaited reviews on Home Alone and 17 Again. Home Alone delivers a new narrative mode of pureedy, full of innocence, warmth, and jokes that will grow on you, like funny conflicts between the protagonist and the two young and old robbers. I have to say, Stuart Runkles performance as a seven-year-old can be described as nothing short of amazing. There was also rookie Matthew Perry who yed a remarkable Marvin, full of hrious gimmicks, and people just cant help butugh. C Los Angeles Times. A genius director and talented young actors, have dedicated themselves to make you happy this Christmas. To those who will go watch the movie, I advise you not to eat popcorn, or youll likely spray it all over your seated neighbors when youugh out loud. C Chicago Tribune. In 17 Again, Drew Barrymore experiences aplete transformation. Gone her previous image of the small and cute girl from E.T, here, she portrays a rebellious daughter about to graduate from high school whose several outbursts throughout the movie helped the young actress exhibit her amazing acting skills. Both Dan Aykroyd and Susan Sarandons, those two giants of the cinema, performances were absolutely splendid. Eric Williams, who wrote and starred in the movie, was absolutely nothing like an inexperienced young blood. If were talking about acting skills, he didnt lose to Drew Barrymore in the slightest. With his movie Home Alone being released at the same time, I have to concur that this man might be a genius blessed by God, that would be the only way to exin Eric Williams outstandingness C Empire Magazine. Many people are alwaysining about the reality of their life, go and watch 17 Again, and you will realize that you might not be so unhappy, you might also feel a variety of negative emotions that will probably suffocate and iste you, and you might even start getting jealous of the protagonist for being able to get out of his body and look at himself from anothers perspective. C Washington Post. A lot of newspapers paid tribute to the two movies, so critics were also inevitable, after all, no matter how powerful the two giants were, they couldnt control all the media, not to mention that the four other big yers werent about to let Columbia and the Fox gloat too long. One of them, The Chicago Sun-Times, directly criticized Home Alone as apletely unrealistic and nonsensical work, saying that the plotcked rationality, that two robbers being teased by a kid had never happened in reality, and that it was likely to result in misleading children and teenagers alike. Another, the Los Angeles Daily News, made a more incisive point as it denounced the use of a toy gun by Kevin in Home Alone, and was calling for a re-examination of the movie itself. This news had even gotten the attention of a Los Angeles television station which made Eric really concerned; despite the proliferation of firearms in the United States, they controlled their uses in movies and television works very strictly. He anxiously phoned Lester Reed and inquired about the matter, the former casually reassured him, and let him in on an inside story. The Los Angeles Daily News owner was a shareholder of Universal Pictures, and the studio was nning on releasing their animated work Land Before Time on November 18th, which would be the same time as Home Alone, their only child-orientedpetitor. These kinds of things were normal, and Columbia would naturally counterattack ordingly. Hanging the phone up, Eric sighed, troubles were knocking at his door way too soon. At the same time, this little episode gave him a sense of crisis. Compared to those big moviepanies, he was just a small shrimp right now, he wasnt of any threat to those giants, but once Home Alone became a sess, they would surely start to be vignt of him, especially Columbia. If at that time he didnt have enough strength to stand up for himself, then he could only wait while those giants suppressed him. His pasts Tom Cruise was splendid example, since the movies he starred in sell so well, his authority and share of the profits got higher and higher, until finally, the paycheck he received even exceeded the Paramount Pictures CEO by many times. The owner, Sumner Redstone, had therefore openly and directly lost all decorum with Tom Cruise in 2006, while Vis media had kept discrediting him for several years, making his career hit rock bottom. Hey baby, whats up ? Noticing Eric had gotten off the phone but was still in a daze, Aniston gently tugged his shirt. Oh, nothing. While Eric always maintained his confident behavior, Aniston still felt his concern about the two movies. After all, the only thing that remained in Erics possession was the car that his father had left behind. Besides that, he had mortgaged out everything that could be mortgaged, and if Home Alone flopped, the bet would be lost and Eric would be bankrupt. She grabbed her boyfriends waist from behind, and leaned her head against his back, as she whispered: Baby, if theres something on your mind, I might not be able to help much, but I should still be qualified enough to listen. I just suddenly felt that Eric turned around and took Annie in his arms as he said: The future might be more difficult to tread on than I thought, Annie, will you still go down the road with me ? Of course I will. Aniston didnt understand the underlying meaning of Erics words, but still decisively acquiesced. Thank you, Annie. Are you really noting to New York with me ? I can arrange for James to get an extra ticket. As the Home Alone and 17 Again release date was drawing near, the two crews decided to leave for the East Coast in order to promote in New York, however, as she only had a small role in 17 Again, Aniston wasnt one of the actors involved in the promotion. Annie didnt want to bother her boyfriend for something this small, she shook her head and said: No, I lived in New York for many years, theres really no point in going again. The two lovers hugged for a while before Annie gently pushed him away and turned to tidy up his travel luggage. Chapter 27 November 18th, Eric flew to New York the next day, while Home Alone and 17 Again had officially premiered. Home Alone was projected on 1000 screens, while 17 Again had 1279 of them. It was being screened in 279 more screens than Home Alone since the Fox hadnt signed any gambling agreement and could just put all its efforts in making it a sess. They were released simultaneously along with Universal Pictures Land Before Time and its 1395 screens, and Disneys Buena Vista International Release animated Oliver & Company with its 952 screens. Three children-oriented movies were released at the same time, and this made the media feel that Erics chances to win the bet were getting thin, but the concerned party wasnt worried at all. These two might overshadow Home Alone a little at the beginning, but they wouldnt be able topete on the long-time run. His past lifes Home Alone had screened for ten consecutive weeks. After attending the two premieres, when Eric and the crew came back to the hotel, it was already past eleven pm. This eras technology wasnt really advanced, so they could only wait until next week before getting the Home Alone and 17 Again box office data. Back in his room, Eric took a bath and was nning to go to sleep, when the phone suddenly rang. Calling him sote, it could only be Annie. Hey, Eric, were you sleeping ? Thess asked with a tinge of excitement. Eric sat on the bed drying his wet hair with a towel, he said: No, I just showered, Annie did something good happen ? Guess ? Eric quipped: Oh, I know, you must be pregnant, dont worry, Ill take responsibility. Bah, you big bad wolf, talking about those dirty things ! Aniston followed: I just went to see Home Alone, and encountered a very interesting thing, hehe. Eric smiled: Tell me ? Well, I came out from the cinema earlier, and there was a five-year-old boy shouting that he wanted to see Kevin again, the parents refused, saying that they had just went to see him, and the result was that the kid lied on the ground and started to cry. Some people mistakenly thought that his parents were child-traffickers, the poor parents were beaten up, and several police cars came, it was really funny, haha. Aniston was just viewing it as a funny anecdote, but Eric could see the bigger picture. They chatted for a while before hanging up, and Eric lied on his bed, slightly excited. Things were going in ordance to the past. Home Alone had been able to achieve such an amazing box office thanks to a big wave of naughty children who begged to watch it over and over, they imitated Kevins every move, and ultimately, helped promote the movie like never before. Indeed, things were as Eric had guessed, the first day of release of Home Alone, nothing major really happened. But with its reputation spreading at an rming rate between children, Home Alones entries doubled on the next day, and on the third, the growth was such that some popr theaters were having a queuing situation. The children had seenedies before, but nothing like Kevins weird encounters. Home Alone, from a childs perspective, portrayed what the majority of them couldnt or didnt dare to do in reality. Groups of children in North America stirred up a wave of imitation of Kevin, a San Francisco newspaper even reported on a real Home Alone event; a nine-year-old boy who had seen the movie, secretly locked himself in a room when the family got ready to go on a Hawaii vacation. When the parents of six children realized they couldnt find him, the whole family had already flown to Hawaii. The boys parents had to give up on their vacation to go back to San Francisco, only to find out that the boy had made a mess of the house as he was prepared to battle the robbers but was met with his anxious parents instead. A weekter, the box offices numbers were finally out, and although the various spikes in poprity had prepared some people psychologically, when they saw that Home Alone had reached a staggering 27,550,000 $ in its first week of running, everyone was shocked. Perhaps more than 20 million $ at the box office in its first week was nothingpared to those blockbusters from Erics past era, but in this day and age, this result hadpletely overshadowed all the movies in recent years, even Spielbergs E.T hadnt had such a stunning start ! Only George Lucas Star Wars couldpare to Home Alone, but its production cost was a hundred times more than thetter ! Meanwhile, 17 Again had also achieved good results with 13,120,000 $,nding second ce. Land Before Time and Oliver & Company, had however respectively only made 7.12 million and 3.98 million $, far below the two filmpanies initial estimates, which was no doubt caused by Home Alone miserably pressuring them. Universal and Disney executives deeply regretted releasing their movies at the same time as Home Alone while also feeling envious of Columbias good fortune. Columbia Pictures luck was indeed really good, but when he received the first weeks data from the box office, president Blount Cohens mood hit rock bottom, and his cup would also often fall out from his hands. Columbia reassessed Home Alone again ording to the first week of box office data, the result was that the North American box office alone would certainly reach 200 million $ and was even likely to exceed the three hundreds. Blount Cohen was bitterly regretting, if he had kept trying to buy Home Alones copyrights rather than signing that dog shit gambling agreement, then Columbias profits this year would have been in the hundreds of millions. But now, ording to the bet, if Home Alone made a box office of 300 million $, Columbia would have to pay Eric 120 million $, while they would only receive 45 million $ if you took the cost of distribution into ount, what Columbia would earn might only be a fraction of Erics share. (TL: No freaking idea how this was calcted, dont ask me, me the author.) Blount Cohen had wanted to tear the agreement apart many times, however, the whole nation now knew about the bet, if he hastily tore up the contract, not only would Columbia have a difficultwsuit on its hands, they would also be theughing stock of the country. As the president, he himself would definitely be the scapegoat. No, we must find a way to recoup our losses, we must While Blount Cohen kept muttering, an assistant knocked on his door and said: Mr. Cohen, everyone is in attendance, the meeting can start. Blount Cohen rubbed his temples, rose and left for the conference room. After sitting down at his ce, Blount Cohen directly asked the one responsible for the Home Alone project: Lester, how was the data analysis ? Lester Reed had been about to return home alongside the Home Alone crew, but when he received a call from headquarters urging him toe back, he immediately took a flight back to L.A ahead of everyone else. Once he heard about the numbers for the movies first week of running, Lester had instantly felt bad. He sweated as he looked at Blount Cohen, although the final decision to ept the agreement was his boss, but he had been the first to voice his consent at the original meeting. ording to Blount Cohens headstrong character, nine times out of ten he would vent his anger on Lester. Mr. Cohen, ording to the data departments analysis, and in ordance to the gambling agreement, we can only get about 50 million $ out of the estimated 225 million $ of the North American box office. Blount Cohen took the analysis file, and looking at the red curve going down that represented Columbias profits, as well as the green one who was going all the way up representing Erics, his temples started to jump. Bang C Another one of Blount Cohens cup fell on the mahogany floor with a dull thud, everyone else in the room was slightly startled, they subconsciously looked down and became silent. Under normal circumstances, making 50 million $ at the box office was enough to let those old foxesugh out loud even in their dreams, after all, even for the six giants, the best yearly box office profit was about 200 million $. However, whenpared to the over 100 million $ that Eric might receive, Blount Cohen couldnt bring himself to be excited in the slightest. Well, you were in charge of signing the gambling agreement, so what now ? Blount Cohen coldly nced around the room, and his eyes finally fell upon Lester Reed. (TL: Man, that guy is the worst boss ever.) Chapter 28 Sure enough, the boss was taking out his anger on him. Lester Reed couldnt help butment in his heart, but he didnt try to refute, or he would certainly be driven out. Mr. Cohen, perhaps we could try try to negotiate with Eric Williams again, and get him to re-sign a sharing agreement instead. This is your n ? Blount Cohenughed loudly: If you were Eric Williams, would you agree to re-sign the agreement ? Lester Reed gritted his teeth and said: Eric Williams should know that the current box office trends is nothing short of unfair to Columbia who has invested so much, so. Before Lester Reed finished, Blount Cohen directly mmed the table as he roared: Enough ! Unfair ? Since when has the world ever been fair, what I need are concrete ideas, not wishful thinking ! Lester Reed bowed his head in silence, not daring to peep. Blount Cohen looked at the others when his sights finally fell at the end of the conference table where Amy Pascal was sitting. During their previous meeting, Amy was the only one to have been against Eric Williams gambling agreement, which left him with a glimmer of hope. Blount Cohen slightly controlled his tone as he said to her: Amy, do you have any good ideas ? Although Blount Cohen had been blowing up his fuse, Amy Pascal was somewhat absent-minded. She had been disappointed by Blounts conservative style, cowardliness, paranoia andck ofposure, she didnt know how Coca-C had selected this mediocre president. She even thought that he should probably change jobs. However, after she heard Blount Cohens question, she sorted out her thoughts, and stated: Mr. Cohen, I dont have the slightest idea on what to do about that agreement. Even if we forced out a sequel, without the Home Alone copyrights, we would face awsuit of several hundreds of millions. Talking up to here, Amy Pascal paused, giving everyone room to think, and started speaking again before Blount Cohen had a chance to: So, what we should do now, is to try to win over Eric Williams and seriously honor our part of the agreement to show our sincerity. Home Alones box office will go past the 50 million $ mark without a doubt, and overseas copyrights are still in Eric Williams hands. Moreover, Home Alone will certainly have a sequel, so if we maintain a good rtionship with him, once he produces one, I believe Eric Williams will be smart enough to continue cooperating with us. I think that this is the only way to gain more benefits for Columbia. When Amy Pascal finished, several seniors in the conference couldnt help but nod. While Blount Cohen somewhat agreed with Amy Pascals point of view, he still thought that Amy, Jeffrey Hanson and Eric Williams were friends, and his paranoid personality made him feel that Amys suggestion was biased. So Blount Cohen could not help but open his mouth again: Amy, you are Columbias employee, you should work for the sake of thepany instead of always trying to help outsiders. If you can get rid of the gambling agreement, Ill immediately give you a promotion. As if the scene from a few weeks ago was repeating itself, her hard work and dedication to thepany were again questioned. She had first been kicked out of the Home Alone project for voicing her opinion, but in the end felt the need to avoid arousing suspicions and didntin. Now she had been asked to speak up as she had been the only one to have been against the agreement in the first ce, but was once again questioned once she did. This made Amy Pascal feel cold, she felt so aggrieved her nose turned slightly sour and she had a hard time suppressing her tears. Women are made of water*, and in the end, she was one as well. She suddenly stood up, and the chair behind her was knocked to the ground by her sudden action, issuing a loud bang. Mr. Cohen, I quit ! As her cold womanly voice sounded in the conference room, Amy Pascal didnt bother reorganizing her files likest time, she directly turned her heels and left the office. Too far, thats going too far, who does she think she is ? Because the Home Alone matter was already at its critical point, Blount Cohen didnt reflect on his own mistakes, he pounded on the table again as he turned towards the assistant behind him and roared: Notify the security immediately, I want that bitch out of here, dont let me see her in Columbias headquarters again ! Yes, Mr. Cohen. The assistant softly assented, before carefully getting up and leaving the conference room. Taking a sip of coffee to stabilize his mood, Blount Cohen coldly said: Well, lets keep going, if any of you has another nonsensical idea, I dont mind signing a few dismissal documents today. Although the majority of the executives felt that Amy Pascals rmendation was the most benefiting, Blount Cohen had beenpletely caught in some kind of hysteria, so at this time, no one would risk being dismissed by supporting her. Thus, the executives could only bite the bullet and try toe up with something. Several hours ofter, the crowd finally settled on a countermeasure. The meeting over, Blount Cohen could not wait as he told his assistant: Help me to contact Mr. Eisner from Disney, invite him for dinner tonight, say its something important that has to do with Home Alone. Yes, Mr. Cohen. Cohens assistant felt like his hostility had disappeared after the meeting, and was relieved. The next morning, Home Alone first weeks box office of 27.55 million $ was disclosed in the newspapers, so Eric once again became the focus of public opinion. Before the movies were released, the news was controlled by the two giants, but now they had talked about Eric on their own initiative. In this case, the day after his return to Los Angeles, Eric woke up to find that the paparazzi who were wandering in front his house had already disappeared, reced by a heap of reporters; yes, the number could only be described by heap, he had even trouble seeing anything besides their clustered heads. And almost all of them were holding the heavy artillery: long range lenses. Because of Columbia intentionally or unintentionally hiding it, Eric didnt get the box offices data about Home Alone. But seeing the mass of reporters, he knew that the movie had hit it big. Although he was very grateful towards these reporters who hade to inform him about the good news, Eric didnt want to deal with them, so after having breakfast, he directly went into the garage. He was going to drive past the surrounding reporters and look at the situation at the Columbia Pictures headquarters. But obviously, the past Eric had never encountered such a spike in fame, and hence made an error in judgment. The car had just left the house that it was directly surrounded by a pack of reporters, some had even climbed on the hood of the car, while loudly asking questions and brazenly taking photos of Eric in his drivers seat. Reporters in the other direction were also frantically beating on the doors, shouting a bunch of things. Mr. Williams, what do you think about Home Alones staggering first week at the box office ? Mr. Williams, do you think Home Alone will do better than E.T ? Eric, in ordance with the gambling agreement, you will soon be one of Hollywoods youngest millionaires, after you get the money, what will you do with it ? Mr. Williams, Im a reporter from The Los Angeles Times, would you give me an interview ? Eric As if millions of ducks were moring, Erics ears started ringing. Although he had felt somewhat excited after hearing that the movie had made 27,550,000 $ in its first week, he felt even more tensed and anxious looking at the sea of reporters. He didnt dare to bite the bullet and step on the elerator as the way in front was blocked by the car of a white, fat and obviously eager reporter, who seemed to be wanting nothing more than that. _ _ _ _ * Google says it might be a quote from a HK drama. Chapter 29 Eric looked around through the dense crowd, and his sights stopped towards the west, where the empty Runkles house was. Home Alone had been released for less than three days that the couple had hurriedly take Stuart and left the promotion tour, as someone had apparently offered them a high price for an advertisement. When Eric was still in New York, he had seen in the newspapers that thanks to Home Alones poprity, Stuart had made several sessfulmercials and earned a few millions in endorsement, which lead to the Runkle family moving into a mansion in Beverly Hills. Although Eric had initially hoped that Stuarts parents wouldnt only be concerned about profit like Macay Culkins in his past, that was obviously just his wishful thinking. He could only pray that Stuart wouldnt go down the same path as Macay instead, as Home Alones sequel still needed the smart little guy. In the past, the third Home Alones box office directly plummeted from the seconds 170 million $ to 18 million $, because Culkin hadnt been a part of it. While he was still in his thoughts, ten minutes had passed and the surrounding reporters were getting more and more agitated. Some people had discovered Erics difficult position and decided to call the police, and Eric was then led away by them once they arrived. Ah, God bless the people ! Eric drove to the headquarters of Columbia, and once he arrived, the two receptionists- eyes lit up when they saw him. They didnt know anything about the Columbia executivesplex emotions towards Home Alones box office, what they knew was that this young man in front of them would soon be the youngest millionaire in Hollywood. So after notifying the presidents office of his arrival, the two girls started flirting with him; if this stud fancied them, that would be equivalent to reaching heaven in one step. Eric was also joyfully teasing those two flowers, he made some casual jokes to which the girls giggled endlessly, and two perfumed contact cards had unwittingly made their ways to his hand. Hey, Eric. While he was still in midst of chatting at the reception, Blount Cohens voice suddenly sounded nearby. Turning around, he found the CEO with his arms opened wide, so Eric stepped forward and warmly hugged him. Mr. Cohen, why did you personallye down, you couldve just sent someone. Blount Cohenughed: Why, is this old man bothering you young people in your flirting ? Of course not. Eric quickly denied. Blount Cohen said: Home Alone made a pretty good box office, so I personally picked you up, lets get down to business first, you young people can flirtter. Eric nodded, pocketed the two girls cards, and followed Blount Cohen in the elevator. Looking at the two people boarding the VIP elevator, the petite receptionist girl asked the one next to her: Emilia, do you think Eric will contact me ? The tall and blonde Emilia leaned towards her ear and whispered: Who knows, he might even contact the two of us at the same time, how would you like that ? Ah ? That Um Imagining that possible scene, the petite girls face flushed slightly. Emilia suddenlyughed, and said: Lisa, stop your wishful thinking. Judging by our conversation with Eric Williams just now, he didnt seem interested at all. He was probably just humoring us. How can he only be eighteen ? Although she had just met him, Lisa had a very good impression of Eric. If another guy had flirted with them, he would have been beaten up t by Columbias security. But Eric was a stud and he was about to be filthy rich, so him flirting with them ttered the girls instead. Let me correct you; hes a millionaire eighteen-year-old. To be able to achieve sess at such a young age, he is in another league. Also, when Mr. Cohen left just now, he red at us, so just be realistic Lisa, alright ? Lets go to a club tonight, Ill introduce you to some handsome guys. Lisa nodded in disappointment, she couldnt help but nce at the VIP elevator not far. Columbia Pictures president office, Blount Cohen enthusiastically let Eric sit down on the sofa, before taking out a bottle of wine from his personal stash, and saying: Eric, lets celebrate a little bit, when Home Alone is done screening Ill throw a grand celebration for you. This white wine is from the Burgundy region in France, its myst bottle of it. Eric held his wine ss, gently swirled it, and took a sniff as a fresh breath of pineapple overflowed from the amber-colored liquid. Blount Cohen knew about Erics upbringing and understood that the young man had probably never had ess to that kind of top-ss wine, he thought Eric was going to bumble so he asked with interest: How is it ? Eric nodded and eximed: Great Burgundy wine, to get a pineapple fragrance after the brewing process is not an easy thing. Blount Cohen was surprised: Eric, I didnt think you had some understanding of wine. Heard about it by chance. Eric told the truth. Blount Cohen didnt take it to heart as he held his ss up and said: Cheers, to Home Alone. Cheers. After drinking, Blount Cohen let his assistant pack up the wine, he returned to his seat and said: Eric, lets get down to business, this is Home Alones data for its first week at the box office, take a look. Eric opened the file, there wasnt only the Home Alone box office data, there was the data for all the movies and Home Alones 27,550,000 $ was hanging at the top. 17 Againwas in second ce with its 13.12 million $, and although it was quite good, the results for Home Alone had left it in the dust. Its as youve seen, Eric. Blount Cohen straightened up, his face a little ashamed, he said: Theres something we need to bring to your understanding, its about Home Alonefor this week. Looking at Cohens expression, Eric had a foreboding feeling, he nodded, indicating the man to continue. Blount Cohen said: ording to our gambling agreement, Columbia should increase the screens to 2000 this week, but unfortunately, because Home Alones sess was out of our expectations, we didnt make adequate preparations, and were only able to liberate 500 screens. Although the reason that Blount Cohen had brought up was reasonable, Eric felt something was off. So, Mr. Cohen, what does Columbia intend to do about this ? Eric calmly asked. Eric, although Columbia will do everything to uphold its part of the agreement, this matter took everyone of us by surprise, were just unable to get more screens at the moment, so in the meantime, Columbia has prepared apensation agreement instead. Eric warily asked: Apensation agreement ? Yes, Eric, dont worry, there will be no change in the original gambling agreement. Because ourck of preparation has caused you a loss, starting from next week, we will add an additional 100 screens to the original number decided in the bet, and this until the movie stops screening. I think this is enough to show Columbias sincerity. Blount Cohen smiled. Eric subconsciously nodded, but even if thispensation agreement was eptable, he still felt something was strange. Seeing Eric nod, Blount Cohen took out the contract and pushed it in front of Eric as he said: This is thepensation agreement, Eric. You can look at it, and if theres no problem, then just directly sign it. Eric picked it up and began to read, the agreement was very short, only a handful of word and the terms of address were also very straightforward, it didnt look like there was any trap on the surface. But Eric was still cautious and stated: Mr. Cohen, Ill take this to mywyer to have a look, and if theres no problem, I will send you back the signed contract. Sure, no problem. Blount Cohen generously nodded, then said: Well then, lets talk about the Home Alone overseas distribution rights. Eric, since the movies poprity is at its peak, the sooner we release it overseas, the higher the box office well obtain. If we miss that window, we might only get half of what we originally could. We want to give you 16 million $ or 8% of Home Alone overseas box office, what do you think ? Mr. Cohen, 8% ? Thats too low. Blount Cohen shook his head and said: Eric, releasing a movie in overseas theaters brings about a lot of taxes, in the end well only get about 20%, but you dont need to do anything and still get 8% of the profits, thats very reasonable. Eric coldly snorted in his hear. What ? Reasonable price ? If there was no Home Alone, perhaps in an entire year, each of Columbias movies could only make about 50 million $ at the North American box office, and those films probably didnt exceed ten. Relying solely on Home Alone, Columbia, who had been thest amongst the Big Six* in performance, would directly rise to the top three. So the truth was that Columbia really hit it big this time. Im sorry, Mr. Cohen, I need to think about it. He shook his head and rejected Cohens proposal. Eric wouldnt just give up what he deserved just because he had made a lot with the gambling agreement. Sure they had help him put the movie out, but that was it, what was his was still his. Erics answer seemed to have been foreseen by Blount Cohen as he nodded and said: Alright, Eric, you go back and think about it, but please give me a reply as soon as possible. The young man was just out of the office, that he met the responsible of the Home Aloneproject, Lester Reed. Hey, Lester, good morning. Lester didnt expect to coincidentally bump into Eric, he somewhat unnaturally said: Hello Eric, congrattions on Home Alones sess. You too Lester, with you being responsible of Home Alone, your year-end bonus will probably be huge, right ? Although Lester started cursing and swearing in his heart, he only disyed an awkward smile on his face. Right, Lester, can you tell me where Ms. Pascals office is ? If she hadnt helped me rmend Home Alone, I wouldnt be here today, so I want to thank her in person. _ _ _ _ * Big Six was a term used in the past, it refers to 20th Century Fox, Paramount, Warner, Disney, Columbia and Universal. The order is random. Chapter 30 CHAPTER 30 C MICHAEL EISNERS INVITE Huh ?! Lester didnt expect Eric to suddenly talk about Amy: Ms. Pascal resigned. Eric was puzzled, he asked: She resigned ? Why ? Lester furiously thought for a while, and after a few seconds, he said: She had some dissatisfaction with the project, so she resigned. Im not sure, it might have to do with the fact that she didnt get to be a part of Home Alone. Eric had seen Lesters eyes sh for a second, and he knew he was lying. He didnt expose him but instead put on a disappointed face: This is really regrettable, then in that case, Ill take my leave. Once Eric got into the elevator, Lester knocked on the door of Cohens office. Blount Cohen had lost the smiling appearance he had when confronting Eric, he was now frowning as he held a document, but his eyes were clearly not focused. Mr. Cohen, this is what you asked for. Putting a folder in front of Blount Cohen, Lester hesitated, before ultimately saying: I just met Eric Williams on my way in, he asked about Amy Pascal. Blount Cohen suddenly raised his head and sharply eyed Lester: What did you tell him ? When Lester saw his boss eyes he subconsciously wanted to take a step back, before eventually steadying himself: I told him that Amy resigned because thepany didnt let her handle the Home Alone project. Blount Cohen silently stared at him, and Lester added: I think, Eric Williams and Amy Pascal are not familiar with each other, otherwise he wouldnt have asked me where her office was. So I think he wont go to her and confirm what I said. You think ? Blount Cohens expression did not let up. Lesters scalp went numb, he silently cursed at how bad his luck was. He said: Mr. Cohen, even if my lie was exposed, it would only serve to increase Erics dissatisfaction with us, which is a good thing for us since hell be more inclined to ept Disneys offer that way. Blount Cohen thought so too. Relieved, he waved his hand and said: Well, you can go now. Driving down Hollywood Boulevard, Eric thought back to his visit at Columbia today, too many things didnt add up. He knew for sure that there was no way Columbia was okay with how things were as his gambling agreement had definitely made them suffer a loss. He also knew that they had already started nning something; one of the clues was thepensation agreement he had in hands, the second was Amy Pascal. He stopped his car in a parking lot a little further away from his home, traced back, then slipped through his back door. Taking a look from the second floor, there were still a lot of reporters in front of the house. One of them noticed Eric suddenly appearing at a window, he directly raised his camera to take a shot. It seemed that he needed to move as quickly as possible, while he thought this, Eric smiled self-deprecatingly, even the Runkles had moved to Beverly Hills, but he realized that he, right now, only had a few hundred dors in hands. He was as poor as could be. While he was still in a daze, the phone behind him suddenly rang. Eric picked it up: Williams residence, who am I speaking to ? Mr. Eric Williams ? Im Mr. Michael Eisners assistant. Mr. Eisner would like to invite you to lunch, I wonder if Mr. Williams is avable ? Disneys CEO Michael Eisner, Eric wasnt surprised that the other party knew his contact details, but he was curious about his invite. May I know what this is about ? The assistant replied: It is about your movie, Mr. Williams. Disney is interested in Home Alones overseas copyrights. Since Columbias offer was disappointing, Eric wouldnt mind cooperating with otherpanies: Well, where do we meet ? We will send someone to pick you up soon. Eric hung up. Looking down in thought for a moment, he once again pick up the phone and called Jeffrey Hanson: Jeffrey, its Eric. Jeffrey Hansons tone was full of excitement: Hey, Eric, Home Alones first week at the box office was so amazing, I tried to call you to congratte you but there was no answer. Ah, sorry, I was quite busy. Its okay Eric, so what do you need me for ? Eric said: I went to Columbia today and discussed with Blount Cohen about Home Alones future release ns, and I found that a lot of things didnt add up. I feel like Columbia is up to something. And when I talked to Lester, he said that Amy suddenly resigned. Why dont you see if you can contact her and.. At the other side of the line, Jeffrey Hanson hesitated a moment before saying: Eric, about that, I think theres no use in contacting Amy. Even if she resigned, with her character, she still wouldnt disclose Columbias trade secrets. Can you tell me about what you found unusual ? You know, Ive mingled in Hollywood for 20 years, I might be able to help. Seeing that he wouldnt have much luck with Amy Pascal, Eric carefully recounted what had happened earlier. Jeffrey listened and pondered for a minute or two: Thewyers will look at the share of thepensation agreement, I think its possible that the problem is here, and if not, I dont see anything else. Eric, can you think of a few other details ? Other details ? Eric muttered to himself. He thought for a second and said: Right, just before I called you, I suddenly received an invitation to lunch from Disneys Michael Eisner, hes apparently interested in Home Alones overseas copyrights. Michael Eisner Jeffrey said this name and suddenly his tone of voice changed: Eric, Michael Eisner and Blount Cohen are friends, you need to be very careful, dont promise him anything. Columbia giving you such a shabby offer and then Disney contacting you out of the blue, if theres nothing going on, then Im a woman. Listening to Jeffrey speak, Eric saw out of the corner of his eyes, a silver car parking in front of his home. He said: Jeffrey, Michael Eisner sent someone to pick me up. Then go, but remember Eric, no matter what he says to you, you dont have to promise him anything. Eric nodded, hung up the phone and went downstairs. After they had confirmed his identity, the driver and another man made way for Eric as he boarded the car. Half an hourter, Eric met with Michael Eisner at the Hilton Hotel. The man was now 40 years old and at the prime of his life, as the head of one of the Big Six, he was naturally high-spirited. He hadnt yet evolved into the future Disney tyrant, and his interpersonal skills were good. I really envy you, Eric. When I was 18 years old, I wascent by just getting admitted to Denison University, but you have aplished what a lot of people can only dream about in their entire lifetime. At the Hilton Hotels restaurant, Eric and Michael Eisner didnt immediately go down to business but took the time to chat. Actually, I was prepared to enroll in the University of California, Mr. Eisner, but due to some unforeseen circumstances, I had to embark on the road of self-reliance, and was fortunately lucky. Michael Eisner shook his head and said: No, this has nothing to do with luck. Eric, although weve just met, I have learned a lot about you, and without talent, even with the help of the goddess of luck, you wouldnt have so many achievements. Youre one of the most outstanding youths Ive ever seen. Thank you for thepliment, Mr. Eisner. Youre also one of the people I admire the most, few couldve done what you did. Michael Eisner apparently enjoyed Ericspliment, he smiled: Since Im only one of them, whos the one you admire the most ? Eric thought, and said: Probably Howard Hughes. Oh, Michael Eisner nodded and said: That really is a legendary figure, speaking of which, I feel that you share some simrities with him Eric, although youre obviously better since part of the reason why he was able to achieve sess was thanks to his fathers huge estate, while you only relied on yourself and to so quickly rise to fame. Hearing Michael Eisners praise, Eric smiled, but was feeling quite embarrassed. If he hadnt been born again, he might still be in his oldpanys shabby studio, shooting TVmercials about some health care products. If you omitted Michael Eisners arbitrariness, he was indeed a man of great charisma. The two people ate lunch while they talked, the atmosphere was quite pleasant. If not for Jeffreys advance warning that made him wary of Eisner, then perhaps Eric wouldve viewed him as a friend. Once the waiter that came to clean up the table left, Michael Eisner said: Well, Eric, lets get down to business. Chapter 31 CHAPTER 31 C STATEMENT Eric straightened up slightly and said: Mr. Eisner, please speak. When Michael Eisner was about to say something, his mouth froze in a slight gap as he hesitated. They had chatted for awhile, and Michael had a really good impression of Eric. He didnt feel like he was talking to a kid, but more to a peer. Thinking about how the young man was able to achieve so many amazing things in such a short period of time, Michael Eisner started doubting the agreement he had reached with Columbia. This young talent who was only eighteen, would definitely thrive, if Eric and him became enemies because of this, the probability of a future cooperation would be slim. As a CEO, Michael Eisner was undoubtedly a decisive person. Thinking about Blount Cohens conditions again, he firmed his resolve. Home Alone was a matter of its own, this young man could probably no longer achieve such dazzling sess. And even if he did, as long as there were enough interests, the two sides were still likely to cooperate, those who were once enemies could always make peace again. Besides, in the end, wouldnt Columbia be the one to be Erics main opponent ? Eric, Disney is really interested in Home Alones overseas distribution rights, our studios very brand is child and teen oriented, so we would be best suited to take care of your movie. If you let Disney handle Home Alone, I believe we can achieve better overseas than in North America. Eric calmly asked: Mr. Eisner, can I know Disneys offer ? 12% of the overseas box office profits, what do you think ? Eric looked slightly moved as he asked: Doesnt Disney wish to purchase the copyrights ? Michael Eisner shook his head, smiled and said: Eric, you even signed a gambling agreement with Columbia because you wouldnt ept the buyout, so I wont waste time in this regard. Eric nodded his head: If thats the case, the price is very reasonable, Columbia only offered me 8% of the overseas share Disney is very sincere, we also hope we can cooperate in the future. Michael Eisner smiled and then said: So, Eric, if you agree, I want to sign a licensing agreement as soon as possible. Releasing the movie overseas might not be so easy, after signing the agreement, it would at least take a week for the movie to appear in the theater of a foreign country. With Home Alones level of poprity, releasing just a dayter could make us lose out on millions of dors. Opposite Michael Eisner, Eric listened quietly while his mind was rapidly putting the pieces together. Suddenly, his mouth stretched into a meaningful smile as he began to understand Columbias trick. Although it wasnt really clever, it was very effective, and with a little carelessness he might have fallen into the trap. Once he had seen through their trick, Erics heart finally rxed, he pick up the cup of coffee in front of him, and gently rubbed the fine ceramic before looking up to Michael Eisner and asking: Mr. Eisner, if I were to agree, when would we sign it ? Michael Eisner, had noted Erics somewhat strange expression, but when he heard the youths words, his joy took over as he said: Of course, the sooner the better, Ill have someone draft the agreement quickly and we can sign this afternoon. Putting down his cup of coffee, Eric stared at Michael Eisner and said: Im afraid thats not gonna happen, Mr. Eisner. Huh ? Michael Eisner was puzzled. Eric said: Columbia couldnt ept my gambling agreement, so they fished you out. Perhaps they gave you conditions that you couldnt refuse or perhaps it was just because you and Mr. Cohen are friends, either way, you agreed. Because they didnt know when you could persuade me, to be safe, Columbia only added 500 more screens instead of the agreed 1000, and also didnt hesitate to write apensation agreement stating that they would add 100 screens more than the initial number from the third week on. When Michael Eisner heard Eric, he was first stunned, before bitterly smiling. He had underestimated this young man. Noting Michael Eisners reaction, Eric was very satisfied, he continued: The reason why they were willing to do this, was because Columbia is trying to dy Home Alone from reaching 50 million $ at the box office, while also giving you more time to sway me. My agreement with Columbia states that, if the final box office is less than 50 million $, all the Home Alone copyrights will belong to them, however, now that amount hasnt been reached yet. If I hastily signed a licensing agreement with Disney while the copyrights are still a part of the bet, that would be me breaching the contract, and Columbia would then have the perfect opportunity to tear up our gambling agreement. Tell me, Mr. Eisner, did I get it right ? If the whole thing had nothing to do with him, given Michael Eisners character, after hearing Erics wonderful analysis, he would have definitely apuded. Now however, he could only reveal a slightly embarrassed smile. Eric stood up: I think were done here, Mr. Eisner. Michael Eisner also got up and said: I know you might not believe me, Eric, but I still have to say it, I was very happy to talk to you before, and I hope Ill have the opportunity to cooperate with you in the future. Maybe. Eric nodded, since one of the six giants was humbling himself, Eric wouldnt not give him face. Mr. Eisner, do you mind telling me what conditions Columbia offered you ? Michael Eisner shook his head: Im sorry Eric, this is a trade secret. Eric casually said: Well, Mr. Eisner, will you allow your driver to take me back ? Sure, no problem. Michael Eisner beckoned his assistant not far, and told him a few things. Eric was just out of the Hilton, that more than a dozen reporters outside quickly gathered around. They had learned through various channels that Eric had just met Disneys CEO Michael Eisner, so they were looking forward to the twos meeting content. Seeing the reporters rush over, the Hiltons security hurriedly surrounded Eric. Michael Eisners driver was about to led the youth to the parking lot, when thetter stopped in his steps. The reporters who were separated by the security were disappointed, they thought that Eric would leave quietly again, they didnt expect that he would suddenly stop, so they quickly raised their cameras and recorders. Eric, what did you and Michael Eisner talk about ? Was it about Home Alone ? Mr. Williams, your two current movies are targeted to young viewers, which is what Disneys business is all about, are you going to join them ? Eric.. Eric didnt answer the reporters questions, he raised his hand, motioning the crowd to settle down, before saying: Id like to say a few words, would please listen to me ? Since Eric had taken the initiative to speak, the crowd was quick to quiet down. Mr. Eisner just invited me to dinner, we did talk about a few things, but the specifics are not things I can reveal. We talked very enthusiastically, and will perhaps even cooperate in the future. After hearing his words, the reporters realized they didnt get what they wanted and once again got restless. Eric quickly added: Alright, alright, dont rush this, I would like you to help me make a statement. Some reporters were still suspicious, but a few clever ones keenly felt that Eric was about to give them something big, and so they hastened to lift their recorders a little more forward. First of all, I am grateful to Columbia Pictures for helping me release Home Alone. However.. Erics expression turned sharp: Id like to first say, that because we signed a gambling agreement, my share of the profits will be much higher than Columbias, but this is something I earned for myself, and my conscience is clear. Also, if the agreement is upheld conscientiously, Columbia will still get nearly 50 million $ out of the North American box office, which ounts for almost half of Columbias yearly profits, and is enough money to make a lot of people envy them. So, Id like to solemnly warn certain persons: Please put away your greed, dont try to find ways to null our bet, and continue to screen Home Alone in ordance with the terms stated in the contract. Columbia, if you vite those arrangements, I do not mind taking you to court. Although I might be nothing in your eyes, in the face of thew, we are equals. If you feel Home Alone and 17 Agains sess is not enough to prove anything, then I suggest you take a clear and good look at my next movie. Eric had just finished, that the reporters went into a frenzy. Mr. Williams, could you tell us the specifics ? Eric, you mentioned a next movie, can you tell us what it will be about ? Eric, did your meeting with Michael Eisner have anything to do with Columbias attempt to break the agreement like you stated ? Mr. Williams Eric turned around amidst the uproar of the crowd.He was silently escorted by the security to the parking lot, and got into the car. Chapter 32 Back home, Erics door was still besieged by a sea of reporters. He didnt go out again but decided to call hiswyers in so that they could help him look at thepensation agreement instead. Although he had seen through Columbias trap, he didnt dare let his guard down. Once done, Eric finally remembered the call Aniston, and dialed her number several times in a row to no avail. At this time, Annie should still be at home, so Eric started to feel concerned and was about to dial again when the phone suddenly rang. Williams residence ? Eric picked up. Eric, its me. Jennifer Anistons voice sounded on the other line. Eric happily said: Annie, are you okay ? Ive been calling your apartment, but no one answered. I moved in with my dad, Eric. Dont you know ? The paparazzi have found out about our rtionship and started tracking me everywhere, even pretending to be couriers and knocking on my apartment door, I was terrified. Annies voice held a tinge of fear. Eric concernedly asked: Annie, are you alright ? Wait, then when I called you yesterday before taking the ne, were things also like that ? Im fine, Eric. It started this morning, I dont know how the paparazzi found out, anyway in the morning newspaper they said. Anistons voices felt down, Eric realized it was certainly not anything good, he could onlyfort: Okay Annie, its good that youre alright, you should stay at your fathers for some time, and dont go to the convenience store anymore. Aniston unhappilyined: Eric, it wont always be like this, right ? How am I supposed to live then ? Eric said: Of course not, it will die down over time, right now my house is alsopletely surrounded. Give me your dads address, Ille visit you when I have some free time. Aniston dictated while Eric noted down, then heforted her briefly before hanging up. In a vi in Beverly Hills, Aniston unhappily hung up the phone. She nced at the pile of newspapers scattered on the ground, picked up a pillow and started hammering the sofa mercilessly. In those articles, Eric and her rtionship had turned into a modern version of Prince Charming and Cindere, emphasizing on Erics good points while disparaging her. Almost all the newspapers were giving the couples future a death sentence, while some evenpared her to Drew, stating that she would be more suitable to be Erics girlfriend. Seeing this, Aniston couldnt help but be anxious as her self-esteem hit rock bottom. Compared to her outstanding boyfriend, she was just in ordinary. Now, he was about to be one of Hollywoods youngest millionaires, while the newspapers referred to her as the convenience store clerk; the gap between them was gettingrger. Eric didnt know anything about Annies insecurities, thewyer he had called for half an hour earlier had already arrived in a rush. Hello, Mr. Edward, thank you foring in person. Eric said as he let the attorney in charge of the gambling agreement, Edward Lewis, and his aide, into the house. Edward Lewis hastily shook hands with Eric, and said with a slightly respectful tone: “Eric, congrattions on Home Alones sess, this is my assistant, Carter. The three people sat on the sofa, Eric took out thepensation agreement that Columbia had given him, and told them about everything that had transpired. Edward Lewis quietly listened to Eric, once thetter was done, he picked up thepensation agreement and carefully looked at it for a few minutes before stating: Eric, this contract is without any problems, you can rest assured when ites to signing it. Thats good. Eric nodded, he took out his pen and directly signed the document. Edward Lewis looked at the young man in front of him, he hesitated for a moment, before saying: Eric, I think that you may be in need of a dedicated team ofwyers that would be in charge of your routine legal matters. Oh ? When Eric heard Edward Lewis statement, he raised his head with a smile. Edward Lewis looked at Erics smile, and no longer beat around the bush: I think that my firm has enough strength to handle this. Eric, from what you have just told us, if it hadnt been for your vignce, you might have been duped. So if you let myw firm represent you in the future, we will be take over the next negotiations with Columbia, and if they dare breach the contract, we will fight for your interests in court. From the time they had helped him draft the gambling agreement, Eric knew about Edward and his teams professionalism. He was also aware that he needed someone to represent him full-time, so after a few words, the two quickly reached an understanding. Edward took out a prepared power of attorney form, and Eric readily signed it. Then Ill let you handle everything else Edward, I really dont want to deal with Columbia in person anymore. No problem Eric. If theres nothing else, then well take our leave. Bidding farewell to Edward and his assistant, Eric breathed a sigh of relief, he could finally focus on his career. He was veryfortable leaving those matters to Edward, after all, as his personal team of attorneys, they would have to fight for Erics interests. He wasnt the slightest bit worried, because even if they conspired with Columbia against him, once discovered, they would receive the scorn of the entire nation, and their entire careers would be destroyed. Besides, Columbia wouldnt be able to afford making that kind of mistake now. His deduction was spot on; Columbia was caught in the publics opinion whirlpool. After Erics statement, many reporters had rethought their headlinespletely, this news was just too hot. That evening, the young mans speech condemning Columbia appeared in all the newspapers. A variety of spections started to pop up everywhere, some had even started fanning the mes in order to further expand their sales. Erics words had been transcribed verbatim, and after brainstorming for a time, reporters had quickly made up their assumptions. Some newspapers werent sure how Michael Eisners was linked to his statement. Before speaking, Eric had dered that he and Eisner got along well and that he would be very happy to work with him in the future. This allowed some others to specte that Disneys CEO might have yed a hand in exposing Columbias poor means. Michael Eisner had been hesitant about telling his old friend how Eric had foiled their ns, but when he saw the newspaper, he quickly called Blount Cohen to exin what had happened, to no avail as thetter clearly didnt believe him. Eisner could only bitterly smile, he was also aware of Blount Cohens suspicious character, it seemed like their friendship was done for. However, he didnt feel resentful towards Eric, what he felt was closer to appreciation. A bunch of reporters had also found out that Home Alones screens had only reached 1500 this week, which was even less than 17 Again who was number two at the box office and whose number of screens had already reached 1600. This discovery made them all rave about Columbia, tantly questioning thepanys integrity. The other studios who had close rtions with the media, and had already been jealous of Columbia for pocketing Home Alone, had a field day. They condemned them with full force, some tabloids had even called on fans to boycott them, inciting them to stop watching movies produced by the giant. As soon as those articles appeared in the newspapers, Columbias public hotline directly exploded. The peoples sense of justice wouldnt let them off the hook, some of the female staff responsible for answering the phone were in tears after having been insulted for hours, and two of them submitted their resignation letters the next day. After Blount Cohen had smashed everything he could in his office, he immediately set up a meeting with the public rtions department to discuss coping strategies. In the evening, the television station under Columbias control issued a statement. They said that the number of screens for Home Alone had already been dealt with as they had signed apensation agreement instead, at the same time suggesting that Erics im about Columbia plotting against him were ridiculous, that he was just dissatisfied by the number of screens they had added and so this was his way to retaliate. However, since Eric hadnt responded, the media and the general public didnt believe any of it. Chapter 33 The next day, the matter continued to grow, the majority of the newspapers overwhelmingly denounced Columbia at the same time, and maybe because they started to run out of ces to vent, they even begun to use the owner of Columbia, the Coca-C group, to have yed a part in that lowly business strategy. Columbia Pictures results had hit rock bottom long ago, so Coca-C Group had originally not cared much about this trivialpany. Surprisingly, the day after the market opened, Coca-C who had always been very stable, had its share price directly fall by 1.7%. This figure might seem insignificant, but if you linked it to the tens of billions of dors in market value, the higher ups werent so calm. Coca-Cs CEO, Roberto Goizueta, directly called Blount Cohen and madly cursed at him, ordering him to quickly resolve this matter or he would have him step down from his position of Columbias CEO. Under the pressure from the Coca-C headquarters, at ten oclock, Blount Cohen personally held a press conference in Columbia. He politely apologized to Eric, and promised that they would seriously uphold their part of the gambling agreement. Eric got the news, and didnt intend to let things run amok any longer, he immediately let his personalwyer, Edward Lewis, publish a statement in The Los Angeles Times about epting their apology. Thus, the emerging storm started to rapidly subside. Because of the controversy, they expected that Home Alones tickets sales would experience a decline, but after receiving the weeks data, not only did it not fall, the sales had risen instead. The movie had made 28,760,000$, breaking the 50 million $ mark in its second week of running. 17 Again made 14,730,000 $, maintaining its second ce at the box office. Erics two movies together had made more than 50% of the total North American box office this week, which again left people in wonder. Although the results were amazing, the medias attention slowly died down. And after several days of not being able to get any useful news, the reporters that had been camping around Erics neighborhood finally began to leave. This week, Eric basically stayed at home and concentrated on writing Resident Evil that he had promised to Michael us. His past world had two version of the series, one was the Ca game story line, the other was the film version with Alice as the main lead. Unfortunately, Eric had only yed the fourth and sixth chapters of the game series, so he didnt understand a lot about it. As for the movie version, there was obviously not much that could be written, since it was based on game content, it only featured Mi Jovovichs badass moments. Therefore, writing the Resident Evil novel wasnt as easy as writing Jurassic Park, Eric spent three days before he conceived the outline for Leon alone. From him joining the police at the beginning, until all of them working together to escape Roon Citys outbreak. The protagonists from his past, Chris, Jill, Wesker and more were cleverly integrated into the novel. Of course, the most popr amongst Chinese fans, sister Wong, was certainly indispensable. Eric very wickedly portrayed Ada Wong and Leons rtionship as a Queen and her toyboy. This was not something Eric hade up with, in the inte of his past, many fans of the game had expressed their desire for the twos rtionship to be this way. In the games, the sultry and elegant Ada Wong often appeared when Leon was in trouble, calmly helping him before drifting away. While Eric was manipting a water kettle into the kitchen, James Brooks was sitting on the couch in the living room, reading Resident Evils manuscript. James, what do you think ? He pushed a cup of coffee he had just brewed in front of James as he sat opposite him and asked. It give the sense of a screen, people have a feeling of being there, like watching a movie, its very exciting. Eric nodded, James assessment was on point. In his past career, Eric had spent a lot of time writing and had be proficient in giving a sense of vividness to his texts. If it were to be made into a movie ? Eric asked again. James put down the manuscript, and seriously said: I think at this stage, its not suitable for the novel to be adapted to the screen. Although people enjoy the zombie theme, the audience is still quite sparse, so you wouldnt be able to invest a lot in it for fear of making a loss. If you want to adapt it into a movie, youll need a lot of special effects, and too little investment will ruin this. So I think it would be better to wait for the technology to develop further, maybe a few yearster the cost of production would be cheaper too. Indeed a great producer, with a few words he had outlined Resident Evils adaptation prospects and limitations. In Erics past, a lot of Resident Evil fans hadined about the moviepany investing too little in the series: What kind of special effects are those ? Mira again, seriously ?? They hadnt really shot the movie in ordance to the fans wishes, which resulted in them suffering a loss. After chatting about Resident Evil a little, James told Eric why he hade. The Fox is inviting me to a reception ? He thought James hade to discuss Home Alone overseas copyrights, he didnt think it would be about another matter. These days, Eric had already received several phone calls about the movie, even Michael Eisner who had initially joined hands with Columbia was no exception. But he had already his own ns in mind, so he directly refused them all. Seeing Erics taken aback expression, James smiled and said: I heard youve been getting a lot of offers about Home Alonetely, I also heard that you turned them all down. I thought that maybe you were waiting for the 20th Century Fox to take the initiative, am I right ? Erics eyes shed briefly with surprise, he had indeed been waiting for the Foxs offer so as to have the upper hand. Now that the other party had guessed it, if Eric denied it in front of James Brooks, he would look petty. He shrugged and smiled: That was indeed my intention James, after all, our mutual rtionship is quite a happy one. James sincerely said: Thats why I personally came today. In fact, Mr. Barry Diller would also like to meet you to talk about Home Alone, Jurassic Park, and your uing movie. Oh my, is the Fox getting greedy ? James smiled and said: This has nothing to do with greed, Eric, this is business. If the Fox does not do it, others will be interested instead. Besides, we are certainly not as short-sighted as Columbia, we hope that our two sides can cooperate in mutual benefit. Of course, Eric was not stupid enough to really believe those words. That was only Foxs excuse, the real reason was most certainly because they had missed out on the prior Home Alones distribution rights. The Giants were all the same, they battled for profits on every single front, it was just that some were smarter than others. But right now, Eric had to rely on the backing of one of those giants, so as to reduce the others covetous intents, he had to first better protect himself to secretly increase his strength. After aparative assessment, Eric selected the Fox. For the next few years, thepanys main goal under Barry Dillers leadership would be tounch the Foxs televisionwork, so rtively speaking, their attention in movie would certainly decrease, which would be Erics opportunity to spread his wings. Chapter 34 Hey, baby, do you have an evening dress ? Were going to a fancy party huh ? Eric frowned slightly: See what TV producers ? Annie, I forgot to tell you, I have a script specially for you I know you want to rely on your own strength, but tonight James specifically told me to bring a femalepanion, if you donte then how could No I was the one who I see, okay, bye. Eric sighed as he hung up the phone, ever since Home Alones sess, his rtionship with Annie had underwent a subtle change. Although she was still as unruly as a baby, it felt like she was stepping on needles every time she was with him. He knew that it was because she had seen somements about them in the tabloids, which had brought about her feelings of low self-esteem. Although Eric had been as gentle as possible to get her to not mind it, the anxiousness of the girl hadnt decreased. In order to get out of this turmoil, through her fathers advice, she decided to take a few hours every week to continuously participate in TV, movies and ys auditions. Annies goal was very simple, she wanted to be famous fast, and shut those newspapers up. In John Anistons Beverly Hills home, Annie hung up the phone, and also let out a sigh. She wanted to join Eric at the party, and longed to star in one of his movies. But she knew that if he did so now, the public would scorn her for relying on her boyfriend, and she would have to forever live with abel. Maybe some women wouldnt care and be ecstatic instead, but to the strong and independent Aniston, this was absolutely uneptable. Reading the newspaper, John Aniston saw his daughter in a daze and couldnt resist saying: Jenny, Im meeting up with Koster today, how about youe with me, he would definitely not mind. Aniston shook her head and said: No, Dad, although uncle Koster wouldnt mind, I would. Its just too unbing for him to give me that role. Jenny, Eric is a good boy, hes more mature than the average young men, I think he wouldnt mind all those things. But I do mind, Dad. Aniston said: Look at what the newspapers are saying, my God ! I never thought people would view me that way. Annie, if youre concerned about this, youll never happy, John persuasively said: Eric has achieved such dazzling results at such a young age, so not surprisingly his life would be under scrutiny, and you as his girlfriend would certainly not escape from this, unless John Aniston spoke to there and quickly shut his mouth, he didnt want to nt any seed in his daughters heart with his statement, as she might resent him for that in the future. Although his impression of Eric had changed, but because of his daughters strong-hardheadedness, he wasnt optimistic about the twos future. After Aniston had refused to apany him, Eric started tock interest in the uing reception. Late afternoon came, he put on a suit that his father had left behind, and drove towards the Hilton Hotel, where the reception was hosted. He had just appeared in the hall, that the sharp-eyed James Brooks came up to him, but once he noticed the youths attire, he frowned slightly. He grabbed Erics shoulders in a friendly way, and whispered: Eric, your identity is different now, you should pay attention to the way you dress, you should have at least put on a suit that fits you, right ? Eric looked at his somewhatrge and cheap suit which was the only one his father had possessed. He shrugged helplessly and pulled out his wallet in front of the man as he shook it with a smile: James, in addition to my car, this is all I have left, a total of Well, five hundred twenty-one dors and seventy-five cents. I had to mortgage the house to make Home Alone, and I still havent gotten the ownership certificate back, I have no money to buy new clothes. Seeing the guy that had created so much hubbub as Hollywoods youngest millionaire acting like a beggar, James mouth couldnt help but twitch: Okay Eric, Mr. Diller has been waiting for you, lets go. The reception had already started, the hall was bathed in lights, the band yed mellow music, and the waiters were shuttling drinks back and forth. Many huge names from his past that he had only seen on the screen were chatting together in groups of twos or threes. Seeing James Brooks leading a youth through the crowd, everyone started to get curious as to the strangers identity. Although newspapers had published photos of Eric, many people still did not recognize him. Someone finally uttered out his name, and countless eyes turned to stare at him, which made the youth feel slightly ufortable. When he had almost reached the end of the hall, Eric finally saw an acquaintance; at the corner of a long table, Penny Marshall was wearing a ck dress and chatting with Tom Hanks who was next to her. She looked up and there eyes met. Both of them smiled and nodded. Eric couldnt help but nce at Tom Hanks who was at her side. Although he was already 32 years old, his figure was tall and his facial features handsome, the slightly chubby look of hister years was nowhere to be found. Once they arrived in front of a room, James said: Eric, go inside, Mr. Diller is waiting for you. Ill excuse myself for now. Eric knocked on the door and opened it when he got a response. A man and a woman were sitting on a sofa, when she saw Erice in, the 30-year-old beauty whispered something to the middle-aged man, got up, picked up her handbag and left the room. The fifty-ish year-old male was obviously Barry Diller, Eric remembered seeing pictures of the tycoon in his past, his big nose made him quite recognizable. Hello, Eric. He stood up and reached out his hand towards Eric. Hello, Mr. Diller, nice to meet you. The two men shook hands and sat down on the couch. You know, Eric, I reckon a lot of people must now feel frustrated every time they see you. Eric raised an eyebrow, and asked: Oh ? Then how about you, Mr. Diller ? Barry Diller didnt mind Erics brusqueness, heughed: Of course not, I dont believe in luck, I dont believe in shortcuts, I believe in my own strength that allowed me to climb from the William Morris Agencys* bottom to where I am. Maybe Ill admire your achievements, but I am still proud of my career. Mr. Diller, do you feel Home Alones sess to be entirely coincidental ? Barry Diller nodded and said: I did make a special analysis, but I didnt see that oneing. So Im curious, really curious, Eric, as to why you dared to make such a gamble with Columbia when you had 80% chance of failing. Eric said: Ie from nothing, if I fail, I just have to start again. Barry Diller felt that there was something else but he didnt get to the bottom of it and opened: Well, Eric, on behalf of the Fox, Id like to invite you to join us, what do you think ? Eric didnt intend to tie himself to a tree, if he agreed to this invitation, hell probably have to sign a contract for several years. So he shook his head and said: Thank you for your kindness, Mr. Diller, but I dont like to be shackled, so I n to start my own independent moviepany and keep making low-cost movies in the meantime to train myself. Diller was directly refused and did not insist. Since Eric had appeared, a few specialized agencies had made a thorough analysis on the fellows life experience, personality, etc. Barry Diller had also read about it, so he knew that the youth was unlike his peers, and that once he made a decision, it was almost impossible to change his mind. As for Eric opening his own filmpany, Barry Diller didnt care. Many famous directors had done the same in order to obtain more benefits and the right to stand up for themselves, theyd rather do that than to rely on the Big Six. These people often failed miserably though, and realized they couldnt tread this path alone once they hit a wall. In Erics past, even the best amongst Giants, DreamWorks, had ended up failing, so the difficulty of the road ahead was hard to fathom. Investing in a movie was like gambling; before it was released, no one knew if it would do well. DreamWorks main mistake was investing in a lot of shitty projects, resulting in their huge losses that brought about their doom. However, that type of gambling risk didnt apply to Eric, because he already knew the results. This was a cheat-like ability that would help him rule this world. Maybe the giants would gang up against him in order to prevent their monopoly from being taken away, but Eric wasnt afraid in the slightest. As long as his movies always seeded, fame and fortune would follow, and no one would make life difficult for him then. It had happened with Tom Cruise in his previous life, although he and Sumner Redstone had fought openly through the press, a few yearster the two were sitting at the same table,ughing like old friends. After a casual talk, the topic soon turned to Home Alone. From what Eric now had in his hands, only this chip could catch the Giants attention, even Jurassic Park had yet to be seriously considered. Alright Eric, lets get down to it. Wed like to buy all the Home Alones remaining copyrights, and we would also like you to sell us your sequel, well give you a very reasonable price, how about it ? C C C C C C Chapter 35 CHAPTER 35 C ILL SHOW YOU ANOTHER DAY Eric was about to speak when Barry Diller continued: Eric, before you refuse, perhaps you arent aware that Home Alones protagonist, Stuart Runkle, has signed with the CAA*. With the agencys rapid expansion in recent years, their appetite has also been growing. Michael Ovitz recently directly broke into the Metro-Goldwyn-Mayerpanys headquarters because he was dissatisfied with their arrangements. He had a huge fight with their CEO, and in the end, MGM had to makepromises. If you release Home Alones sequel independently in the future, the CAA will probably stuff its nose in it too. Although what Barry Diller said made sense, Eric still bluntly refused. It was true that Home Alone needed Stuart Runkle, but Stuart Runkle also needed Home Alone to stabilize his fame. His pasts Macay Culkin had only this series to show for it, every single other movies he had yed in were mediocre. Eric didnt believe that the changes so far would make any difference, if the CAA wanted to meddle in this, then fine, lets see whose patience was longer, he had other movies to make in the meantime. Mr. Diller, I can sell Home Alones overseas copyrights to the 20th Century Fox for 25 million $, however, I will shoot three movies in the uing year including Home Alones sequel, and if Im going to sign a distribution agreement with the Fox, I want 35% of the North American box office, and 10% of the overseas one. The reason why Eric no longer dwindled on the overseas copyright is because he suddenly found himself in urgent need of money, and 25 million $ would help alleviate his current problems. Barry Diller patiently listened to Eric, then frowned: Eric, the Fox will dly pay you the 25 million $ for the overseas copyrights, but for the others, ording to what you said before, you are just making low-budget productions, so your demand is a bit. Only big productions get that kind of share, you know. Well once you make Home Alones sequel, Fox might also consider the other two Seeing Barry Diller shook his head, Eric confidently smiled and said: I believe my movies are worth the price, if youre still having misgivings, how about signing a gambling agreement with me Mr. Diller ? Thats Barry Diller almost choked, because of the previous gamble, Columbias Blount Cohen status was on the verge of copse, he may have to pack up and leave at anytime. Barry wasnt stupid enough to follow in his footsteps. Maybe I should bring those conditions somewhere else, I believe that several other moviepanies would be very interested. Michael Eisner has been calling me a lottely. Barry Dillerughed: Eric, you cant fool me on this one, I know Michael personally. Eric shook his head and said: Im not lying to you Mr. Diller, after that incident, Mr. Eisner has indeed contacted me. As his former assistant, Barry Diller knew Michael Eisner better than anyone. The guy was a very conceited person, so for him to still keep in contact with Eric after all that, Diller was really surprised. He did not know that the reason for this was because Eric had left a deep impression on Disneys CEO during their meeting. Barry Diller didn’t think the young man was lying, he could verify this with a phone call. He started carefully reassessing Eric, his former assistants vision wasnt to be trifled with. Barry Diller wasnt anything like the indecisive Blount Cohen. After thinking for a moment, he quickly calcted the pros and the cons, then stated: Eric, you have my word. Well, nice to meet to meet you, partner. Eric raised his hand. Barry Diller smiled raised his hand, and the two of them high fived. They had basically reached an agreement, the only thing left was to sign the contract. Hey, Eric, I missed you. When Eric returned to the reception hall, a pale green figure floated directly over, andnded in his arms. Hearing the girls voice full of excitement, a lot of peoples eyes in the hall were attracted over. Eric quickly stopped her from doing anything else: Drew, how did youe out, is your treatment over ? I should have been discharged tomorrow, but I heard that you would attend the reception this evening, so I came out earlier. Drew, you just came out from rehab, its best not to drink. How could waiters here give me alcohol ? Im only thirteen, dude. Drew looked at him strangely. Eric suddenly remembered that there was indeed such a thing, this was the United States, and ording to thew, you needed to be eighteen to drink. And the party was taking ce in such a renowned hotel like the Hilton, they would definitely pay more attention to those details. In Erics past country, adults would even encourage seven or eight year-old children to drink some wine, and if they could drink a few sses, it was certainly a kind of good omen. But prejudices died hard, although there were legal restrictions, in Erics opinion, the people in the West drank far more than those in the East. Hey, Eric, we havent seen you in one week, and news about you have started to die down, are you retiring early ? Penny Marshall chuckled as she came over towards Drew and Eric. Eric took a ss of wine from a waiters tray, smiled and said: How is that possible, Im 18 years old, not 80. How could I retire when Ive just finished my new novels manuscript. A new novel ? I want to see, I want to see ! Penny Marshall had not answered that Drew started to pull his arm and say. Penny Marshall quipped: Hey Drew, if you behave like that, Eric wont like you, he seems to be fond of the well-behaved type. No way, Drew retorted, Aniston is nody. Eh ? By the way, howe the supersized girl didnte ? Hehe, Eric, did you guys break up ? Eric knocked on her head: Something happened tonight and Annie couldnte. How could we possibly break up ? Ill show you my affection for her another day. Eric, your words are so hurtful. Drew rubbed her little head as she pouted. This way. Penny Marshall brought Eric and Drew near a long table, and introduced: This is Ms. Elizabeth Perkins, BIGs actress who you must know, and Mr. Tom Hanks. Hello, Im Eric Williams. Eric told the two people, Mr. Hanks, I loved your impersonation of a child in BIG, how did you do it ? Tom Hanks said with a humble smile: Please call me Tom, Eric, as for how I did it, you might wanna ask Penny When this issue was brought up, Penny was obviously a little proud as she exined: Well, when we were shooting, I let the teenager who yed young Josh, David Moscow, perform in ordance with the script, and then I had Tom mimic him, while David also picked up things from Tom. Honestly, if David was ten years younger, he couldve yed Kevin in Home Alone without a problem. Speaking of which, Eric, do you have ns for the sequel ? C C C C C C Chapter 36 Everyone was relishing in Penny Marshalls exnation, and when they heard thest question, they involuntarily turned towards Eric. Now Erics reputation was even higher than some of the most well-known directors. A lot of people thought that as long as the youth was filming a movie, even if it was bad, he could just rely on his current fame to earn investors money. In fact, this was also why Barry Diller had agreed to Erics conditions. Ive written several good scripts, but I havent decided which to start with. Eric told the truth, he had wanted to shoot a movie that would push Aniston to fame, but the girl had refused, so now he was considering shooting something else first. Several good scripts. Some people heard that and their mouths started to twitch. Scripts werent rare, there were a lot of scriptwriters after all, but finding good scripts was like searching for a needle in a haystack. Many directors had to wait several years in order to get their hands on a good script, and once they did they would go in a frenzy. But you said you have several of them ? How were people supposed to feel ?! Oh wow, Eric, several scripts, huh ? How about you give us a sample ? Penny Marshall said, her tone held a fourth of ridicule and three fourth of envy. When Eric saw everyones faces, he realized he had a slip of the tongue, he didnt mean to sound cocky at all, he had just said it casually, Penny, with 17 Again being your second movie about to break the 200 million mark, youre saying youre inck of good scripts ? Eric was telling the truth, this year, the number of movies who could break 100 million throughout the year at the box office were no more than ten, for Penny Marshall to continuously make two of them, many moviepanies were sure to try and snatch her away. Although Penny was subtly rejected, she didnt mind, she really didntck any, and the topic was soon changed to other topics. They chatted for a bit, and when the band started to y a new piece, Pennyughed: Well, Eric, we wont keep you any longer, theres so many girls waiting to invite you to dance. Eric looked up and nced around; sure enough, several beauties were eyeing him eagerly. Drews arms unconsciously tightened around his. So be it. Ah right, Tom, would you give me your contact information ? Perhaps we might have the opportunity to co-operate in the future. Tom Hanks was about to leave, when he heard Eric, he pulled out a business card and smiled: Sure, no problem, theres a lot of ways to contact me on the card. Eric, could I first know a bit about the plot ? The people near them heard Tom Hanks and started to slow down their pace, they wanted to hear what Eric would say next. Eric calmly collected the card, watched the crowd full of anticipation, shrugged and said: I apologize Tom, I can only tell you that you would y an officer of some sorts, but Im not sure if this movie will be weed easily, so it wont be my second movie as a director, it will probably be the third. Youre appetite is really big, Eric. Pennyined with a tone of disappointment, but Tom Hanks didnt mind, he nodded, turned and left. Mr. Williams, will you grant me this dance ? Everyone had just spread, that a blonde girl in her twenties generously invited. The contours of her face seemed soft and delicate, she was petite, a little more than a meter sixty centimeters. His mind filled with past movies, he immediately recognized the beautiful woman in front of him. She didnt appear often on therge screen, and he didnt know why, but every time he saw her he was reminded of her amoral and predatory maniptor-self in Hot Spot. Eric was slightly distracted and didnt speak, but Drew couldnt resist: Virginia Madsen, do you take me as air ? Virginia Madsen assessed Drews small appearance, and said in a yful tone: My, Drew, thats not right. The more you cling to them, the more men are likely to run away, you know. Thats my problem, dont butt in. Although she said that, the arms that were clutching Eric subconsciously loosened, and Virginia who happened to notice this detail couldnt help but giggle, while Eric alsoughed. Alright, Drew, dont be so rude, you go and hang around, Ill dance with Ms. Madsen. Eric said, and gently pulled himself apart from Drew. Eric, Ill dance with you ! Drew weakly protested but was stopped by Erics gaze, she could only bitterly stamp her foot and reluctantly turn away. Drew is still young, Ms. Madsen, I hope you dont mind. After leaving Drew, Eric waited beside the steering blonde. Of course not. Eric, calling me Virginia is enough. She held out her hand, Eric grabbed it and led the woman to the dance floor. Feeling Erics keen look on her, Virginia Madsen had the impression of being watched by an experienced middle-aged man, she looked up and once their eyes met, she didnt insist and moved her sight away. Virginia had debuted in the early eighties, and although she looked more mature and gorgeous now, she was only twenty-seven. She had appeared in nearly ten movies, so she had some fame, but was only a minor celebrity. All in all, those movies she had starred in, even if youbined them together, brought in less profits than Home Alones first two weeks at the box office. If only that was it, but critics alsopletely ignored the efforts she had put in, and she was ssified as a vase*. She would soon pass the 30-year-old mark, and if her career didnt experience any fundamental changes, then she would probably only y second-rated roles for the rest of her life. When she heard from her friends about Erics identity during the reception, Virginia Madsen felt that this was perhaps a good opportunity. Now the two hadnt even talked, but merely exchanging gazes was enough to let her feel that her n wouldnt be so smooth. Eric, dont you think that staring at ady is a very rude thing ? Eric denied and said: The none appreciation of beauty is the most regrettable thing on earth for a gentleman, and I would never allow myself to have such regrets. Virginia felt slightly proud of beingplimented by Eric: I think maybe youd like me to appear as the heroine in one of your movies ? You know, Virginia, when I see you, I can not help but think of two words: Pretty woman. Virginia was a little lost as to where the youth was going, but she still said: Thank you for thepliment. No, Eric shook his head, Thats not apliment, thats the name of my next movie. Your second movie ? Virginia Madsens big and beautiful eyes shed. Eric nodded: Yes, you see I was still hesitant as to what to shoot next, but not anymore. My next movie will be called Pretty Woman. _ _ _ _ * A shallow woman, a woman who has nothing but her appearance to show for herself. Chapter 37 Virginia was excited, ording to the name, this was a story featuring a woman as the protagonist. With Erics current fame, if she could nail the role, whether the movie was ultimately good or bad, she would receive a great deal of attention. Eric, youre saying. I.. I. Looking at girls expectant eyes, Eric felt somewhat guilty: Im sorry, Virginia, but your temperament is just not what I have in mind, it doesnt match my vision of the heroine who should give the feeling of being both pure and sexy. Virginia Madsen didnt seem to hear Erics words, she said: Eric, perhaps we could find room to discuss about the script, I believe I might surprise you. For a second, Eric almost agreed to her offer on impulse, but his self-control as a mature man restrained him. He knew that if really discussed this in a room with her, hed have to give in to her, and although this was somethingmon in that circle, it just didnt sit right with him. Now he was stuck between a wall and a hard ce, turning her down would be a hassle. Eric took a deep breath, gently pushed the woman away, and said: Virginia, Im really sorry, although Home Alone and 17 Again have seeded, many people are still questioning my ability to hold the wheel, I cannot afford to fail. If there is a role for you in the future, I will certainly let you know. Thest promise aside, seeing that Eric had remained unmoved at her biggest bargaining chip, she couldnt help but admire the boys self-control, and no longer insisted. After one dance, Virginia Madsen left her contact card to Eric, and the two of them went separate ways. Why, reluctant to part with her ? It was unknown when Drew hade out, she held onto Erics arm as she teased. Of course, Im a healthy man after all. Ericughed. Then you can go after her, I believe Virginia Madsen wont refuse you. Eric shrugged: Im too poor, with my worth of 521$ and seventy-five cents, even if there were some suites avable, I wouldnt be able to afford it. Drew licked her lips and took the opportunity to say: You know Eric, theres no need to pay anything when you can get a free home delivery. Eric couldnt help but knock on her head again: My God, you damn goblin really wont give it a rest, huh ? Go back ! Drew rubbed her head indignantly: Eric, I strongly protest, you always knock on my head ! The next time, Ill bite you, Im serious ! While the two were frolicking, James Brooks came holding a ss of red wine. Hey, Eric, how did your talk with Mr. Diller go ? Not bad, weve reached a preliminary agreement. Next year, I will make movies and the Fox will distribute them. James toasted: Well, congrattions to you Eric, I believe I told you that our cooperation would be a happy one. Eric fetched a ss of wine, and toasted back as he said: I hope so. After sipping, James said: Come with me, Ill introduce you to some insiders, theyre also very eager to meet you. I would be honored. Eric was pleased to follow James as he walked into the crowd. Next to them, Drew suddenly thought of something, she smirked and quickly followed. This is Mr. Richard Zanuck, who once produced Jaws alongside Spielberg. Eric greeted: Hello, Mr. Zanuck. Richard Zanuck was a tall and skinny fifty-year-old man with a fierce face, but he unexpectedly revealed a gentle smile as he said: Hello, Eric, nice to meet you. Oh, theres also small Drew, sigh youre already a big girl now, you shouldnt just mess around, youd better learn more from Eric. Drew adopted a good girl posture as she said: I will, Mr. Zanuck. Could I toast you with a ss of wine ? Of course. The other replied. Drew raised her ss, but there was juice inside, the girl seemed to realize her mistake as she said embarrassed: Ah, I forgot I cant drink Eric, can you rece me ? Eric smiled and nodded, he raised his own and ss, he and Richard Zanuck nged, and their respective cups were emptied. They chatted before James led Eric to others. These were all people Eric would like to build friendly rtionships with, so he conversed with them with great enthusiasm, and therefore didnt notice that Drew always came along and found a variety of ways to let him drink a little more. After half an hour, the young man finally found himself drunk, he rushed to the bathroom to throw everything up, but it was already toote, his footsteps became heavy, he felt dizzy and he almost copsed. Seeing this, James gave up on introducing further people to him as he said: Eric, youre drunk, youve already used todays opportunity to meet plenty of people, so Ill send you back for now. Mr. Brooks, Ill see Eric home. Drew quickly said. Seeing how she had stuck to Eric all night, subconsciously thought of Drew as Erics girlfriend, he didnt realize there was anything wrong and nodded: Alright Drew, remember to go back and let him drink some water. Drew called a waiter to help her get Eric to the car. Ms. Barrymore, do you need me to drive you home ? The waiter politely inquired. Drew nodded, gave the car keys to the waiter and opened the door to the backseat where Eric had now fallen asleep. She got in, moved the youths head to her thigh, and told his home address to the waiter who nodded and started to drive. After paying a tip, Drew dismissed the man, and uttered a joyful sound as she rushed back to the bedroom. Getting rid of her high heels, she directly climbed on the king sized bed andid next to Eric. Looking up sideways and at his sleeping expression, she reached out her hand and caressed his face as she muttered with infatuation: Now youre mine, I wont let you get away. She swept the surroundings with her gaze, this room held her most precious and warm memory. When Drew thought about how the man next to her had taken care of her when her addiction had acted up, she felt that she should do something for him too. She struggled to take off his clothes, and when only his underwear remained, Drew was already out of breath; drunk people were seriously heavy ! After tucking him in, she went to the bathroom and dipped a towel in warm water before clumsily wringing it, she then went back to the bedroom and carefully wiped his face. After she was done, she quietly knelt on the bed and thought of how nice this was. She wanted to stay by his side forever. She had stopped taking drugs because of him, and so long as he opened his mouth, she would do anything he asked. But the precocious Drew realized that Eric didnt look at her like a man would look at a woman, he seemed to treat her more like a daughter. That made her feel warm but she resented him sometimes, she didnt want him to see her as his daughter, she didnt want him to always knock her on her head. Well actually if he liked doing that, shed still let him. But she wanted to be his woman, she loved him. Thinking up to here, Drew got flustered, she quickly put away the towel she had in her hands, and stripped herself naked. Looking with satisfaction at her exquisite petite body, she got under the covers and into Erics embrace. Ambiguous noises were heard for a while before the girl popped her head out of the bed sheets, panting and her face slightly flushed. She red unwillingly at Eric, as if wanting to take a bite off of him. Didnt they say that alcohol unveiled a mans beastly nature ? So what was with that ? Thess was prepared to forcibly help herself to a feast, that way she would put Eric in front of the fait apli and he wouldnt be able to treat her like a kid anymore. However, even though she had the cutlery ready, it didnt seem like her food would be warm anytime soon. Next time she would definitely prepare some medicine. A little tired and depressed, Drew decided to use her n B to fish the man up, she wrapped his arm around her waist and leaned against his chest. A whileter, she fell asleep Chapter 38 CHAPTER 38 C UNENDING CURSE Early in the morning, Aniston, who didnt know anything, was humming, happily busying herself in the kitchen. Last night she had met a producer and friend of her fathers who was thoroughly determined to have her y in one of NBCs TV series. Although it was not the main role, it was already quite good for a neer, and the drama could bring her a certain amount of reputation, which was something that she was urgently in need of. Jenny, good morning. Her stepbrother, Alex Aniston, greeted drowsily as he scratched his head and came towards the kitchen. Aniston turned around and said: Hey, Alex, breakfast is ready so go and wake dad up, Im leaving first. Then, before Alex could react, Aniston rushed out the door. After turning down Erics invitation yesterday, Annie had some apprehension. Although what the tabloids said made her feel very depressed, Erics love was genuine, he had let her feel it more than once. Last night while they were on the phone, she could hear that he was depressed, so she woke up early in the morning to prepare breakfast in order to go and soothe her boyfriends dissatisfaction. Ten minutester, Aniston arrived in front of Erics doorstep in a taxi, she took out the key he had specially gave her and went in. She didnt realize that, ten meters away, in a gray sedan, two white men were sleepily leaning against their seats. When one of them slightly sobered up, his face showed an expression of ecstasy as he quickly grabbed the camera at his side and started to press the shutter while mercilessly kicking hispanion awake. Hey, David wake up, theres going to be a good show. His face covered with a hat, the fast asleep snoring fat man suddenly woke up, he reflexively took off his hat and straighten his body in shock, as he stared outside with bloodshot eyes: Wayne, I dont see Eric Williams and Drew Barrymore anywhere ? Its more exciting than that, just now that clerk, Erics girlfriend went in ! Ha ha, this is going to be wonderful ! The fat man named David looked again, he didnt see Anistons figure, but reached out to take the camera off of Wayne, who quickly stopped him and said: What are you doing ? Be careful we dont get caught after staking here all night. Dont worry, Ive already taken the shots. Thats good, the more the better. David rubbed his chubby hands, and grinned: I originally thought wed be able to make a small fortune when I saw Drew and Eric Williams going home together, I didnt expect wed get something even better. Wayne, how much do you think theyll offer for this ? At least three thousand dors, and if this old guy Santos lowers the price, well change newspapers. Anyway, we dont have to worry about not being able to sell this. When Eric woke up, he felt himself holding something soft, and his hand unconsciously squeezed harder. He opened his eyes and felt a warm body in his embrace. He was still hungover, thinking that it was Annie, he unceremoniously grabbed the girls mounds and started to y with them as he said: Good morning, baby. The girl moaned slightly before leaning her small head and softly kissing his lips: Good morning, Eric. Huh.. AH! A both familiar and unexpected baby face suddenly appeared in front of an astounded Eric who hastily pulled away. His head felt heavy and his range of emotion was a mess, he rubbed his temples and asked bewildered: Drew You.. Why are you. Drew saw that Eric seemed to have been scared and said: Eric, you brought me backst night, and then.. We.. Dont worry, I dont mind, I.. I am very happy. Your uncle, I mind ! Eric let out a distressed sigh, he reached for his clothes and inadvertently caught a glimpse of a fleeting sly expression from Drews eyes. With a fast movement, Eric took a look at the sheets; everything was clean, there was no weird smell either. Relieved, he stared sharply at Drew: Lass, nothing happenedst night, right ? We did ! Drew protested, Eric how can you be like this, are you seriously not gonna take responsibility ? Then can you exin why the bed is so clean ? Put a shirt on as he casually asked. Drew felt her head spinning, she put on an aggrieved face and said with teary eyes: You. You force people to put things in their mouth and. And lick tha-that, such a disgusting thing and y-you wont even admit to it, youre such a bastard ! Eric almost choked. Your sister, you even learned to do that with your mouth ?! How old are you, are you nning to shoot adult videos or something ?! Alright Drew, dont be silly, get dressed. Seeing that Eric didnt believe her, Drew drilled out of the bed naked and flew towards him: If you dont believe me, then do you dare let me kiss you ? Theres still the lingering taste of it in my mouth. Drew made a kissing gesture, and Eric revealed a horrified expression, if it was true, that would be. Disgusting. Dont Alright, I believe you Drew, I believe you. So get away ! Ah, Eric dont hide, youre too despicable. The people started struggling on the bed, when the door was suddenly pushed open. Aniston was standing there, holding a convenience store bag. Silence. As if God had suddenly pressed the pause button. After a full ten seconds, the sound of a car horn sounded outside, and the three people reacted. Wronged, sad, angry, sad, disappointed a series of emotions mixed together, Anistons heart felt an inexplicable gush of relief that things seem to be like this . or did she ? Eric, I.. I.. I brought you breakfast. Annies voice was light, as if a gust of wind could blow it away. She bend as she put the bag on the floor before she turned away, at a faster and faster pace, her heels mercilessly marched with a da da da sound that echoed in the empty house. Tears fell the moment Annie was out of Erics house. She couldnt let that bastard see her cry, or he would certainly feel more proud. The sound of high heels ttering thoroughly awakened Eric from his daze. Annie, wait please listen to me Eric quickly pushed Drew away as he scrambled to put his trousers on and rushed out. Because he was too fast, he almost lost his footing down the stairs, but fortunately promptly seized the handrail, and awkwardly came out of the yard only to see a big yellow taxi drive away. He could make out Anistons figure in the back seat. He hurriedly returned to his house to take his car keys, he wanted to cry, but no tears came out, he felt so wronged. Why. Why had things turned out like this ? In Friends Rachel had also lived something simr, and the past Annie was then cheated on by Pitt with Jolie. Now, it had happened once again. What kind of unending curse was this ? What had she possibly done to deserve this ?! Driving his car out, he couldnt see the figure of the taxi, and directly drove to John Anistons house in Beverly Hills. After several minutes, Eric straightened his clothes and rang the doorbell. Hey Tarzan, how are you and Jane doing ? Annies step-brother opened the door and recognized Eric. Eric anxiously asked: Alex, wheres your sister ? Alex was puzzled: She went out early, didnt shee to you ? Eric could tell that he wasnt lying, he bid good bye and left in a hurry. Since Annie hadnte here, she most likely went to her apartment. He arrived in front of her nest, knocked on the door, but got no response. He looked around to see if anyone was watching, pulled out a spare key from one of the pots next to the door, and went inside. Walking in, Eric keenly felt that Annie hade back here as her scent was still lingering vividly in the air. He looked and looked, and in the end, the only thing he found was a note left on the living room coffee table: Eric, were over. He sighed and rushed back to John Anistons home again, the door was again opened by Alex. Alex, you. Before Eric had even finished, Alex curtly said: Dont bother Eric, Jenny is leaving for New York, Im not telling you more. Thats. It was one of those moments he wished he was dumb. Is it Eric ? Pleasee in. Eric was just wondering how to answer that the sound of John Aniston came from inside. Alex heard the words of his father, and moved sideways to let Eric in with dissatisfaction. Come with me. John Aniston nkly looked at Eric, turned and walked further inside. Eric nodded his head at Johns current wife who was in the living room, and followed the man to his study. Sit, Eric, what do you drink ? Nothing, John, I wish you could just tell me which airport Annie has gone to, I have some things to exin. John Aniston nced at Erics messy clothes, and asked: Eric, did you attend the receptionst night ? I did, yes. And after the reception, you went home with another woman.. John, this is a misunderstanding, I. John Aniston waved his hand: You dont have to exin to me, I just think it still might be better for you guys to separate. You dont know, but these days, Annies been under a lot of pressure, she always seemed to be anxious and restless. Why ? John Aniston said: You havent known her for long, so you dont know how strong a character Annie has. You made such a dazzling debut, while she is still unknown, along with the newspapers hurtful words, it would be weird if she didnt feel like that. Chapter 39 ric spent more than an hour at John Anistons before leaving. Somehow unwilling, he circled around Los Angeles International Airport to try and spot Annie, but to no avail. He estimated she had probably already boarded a flight to New York. Through his conversation with John, Eric learned of Annies difficulties, and realized he had also underestimated how strong she was. Thinking about it again, it was indeed true. The past Aniston had been the one to take the initiative to divorce after finding out about Pitts unfaithful ways, andpared to those women who would do anything to even get one more penny out of it, she hadnt even requested for an alimony. Eric decided to let her breathe and put this matter aside for a while. He drove home with this mindset, but started to get a headache when he thought about how he would have to exin the situation with Drew in the future. He didnt intend to give up on Annie, this was his first woman since his rebirth, he was quite possessive, hed definitely get that stubborn girl back. He returned home to find an already dressed up and ill at ease Drew, sitting on the living room sofa. Eric scratched his head: now then, how exactly was he supposed to deal with this little goblin ? He certainly couldnt just let this pass, otherwise thess would probably never learn the lesson. He calmly sat down on the other sofa, and picked up a newspaper to read. Drew saw Erice back sullen, and in silence, it was as if she didnt exist and like nothing had happened. This only added to her anxiousness. Although she had always wanted to snatch Eric from Aniston, she had never intended it to be because of this kind of misunderstanding. She was a smart girl, she obviously knew that this method would not only, not get her Eric, it would also make him hate her. And now, with the events from this morning, even if it was unintentional, she was still the primary culprit. Seeing Erics expression, she knew they mustve broken up. In order to melt the ice, Drew got up and ran to the kitchen. Bringing back Anistons breakfast over, she put it in front of Eric in a small te and intently stared at him. Eric, just now Mr. Hunt from the Fox called to discuss about a contract. Uh uh. He hummed two sybles as acknowledgment. Eric.. Drew lightly cried, as she moved a small step towards him. Teaaaar C Eric forcefully turned the newspaper page, frightening Drew who had intended to sit down besides him as she quickly moved away. After a while, seeing he hadnt had another reaction, Drew slowly moved over. She threw herself in front of him, and her face brushed past his knee as she started sobbing. She was really scared that he would loathe or ignore her, if he really did, what was the meaning of living anymore ? Eric, Im sorry. Sob, Im so sorry,. I didnt mean to.. Ill help you exin to Aniston.. Feeling the petite body trembling near his feet, Eric sighed. He had intended to give the girl a lesson, but seeing her like this, his heart softened. He was about to speak, when he saw Drew turn around and bend over the coffee table, her back facing him: Eric just. Just hit me okay ? Just please dont hate me. Eric put aside his newspaper. In this position, the water green dress was tightly wrapping her, and it emphasized her well-developed body, her natural slender waist, and her beautiful heart-shaped perky butt. Her pair of jade colored little feet exuded a certain allure. Erics breath got a little rougher, and Drew who was anticipating her punishment turned around. Once she noticed that the mans eyes were glued to her butt, she subconsciously shifted to a more enticing position. aaaap C Eric could finally not hold back and mercilessly pped down. You damn goblin, this young master has been meaning to teach you a lesson for a while ! The punishment over, he looked funnily at thess who was rubbing her buttocks before sending her away while he himself left for the Foxs headquarters. Although Barry Diller and him had a preliminary arrangement, it still took several hours to get down all the details, and it wasnt until three in the afternoon that the two sides signed an agreement. Eric left the Fox with the contract and a 25 million dors check in hands. Jeffrey, help me contact Nicole Frank tonight, I want to throw a party at home to celebrate Of course, everyone who participated in the Home Alone project is invited. Alright, Ill leave it to you then. Hanging up the phone, Eric went to a grocer to buy some necessary things, and after some thought, he drove to Jeffs as he nned to hire him as a caterer. He had just pushed open the door of the lively Italian restaurant, that the sharp-sighted huge figure of his old friend came hugging him in high spirits: Hey, Eric, long time no see ! Haha, you really stole the show this time eh ? Ive seen your two movies, theyre really good. Eric smiled and the two of them made their way to an empty table. Julia, two cups of coffee. Jeff shouted to a waitress once he was seated. Right away, sir. A female voice uttered from behind the counter. Julia ? Eric was curious, he had worked in this restaurant for a few months, but he didnt know any staff member by that name, he reckoned that she was probably hired to fill the gap he had left. He turned around to take a look, and a tall girl with a head full of brown hair had her back facing them, apparently busy with the coffee machine. Jeff noticed Erics gaze, he smiled and said: Julia is new, she came after you left. Shes also an actress, I heard one of the movies she yed in came out in October. Eric turned back, and asked: An actress revenue shouldnt be too shabby, does she still need to waiter ? Jeff replied: Theres hundreds of thousands of men and women dreaming of stardom in L.A, do you think anyone can be as lucky as you who made it so big in your first attempt ? I heard she shot the movie I told you about awhile ago, she hasnt been cast in almost a year, so shes temporarily working here in order to make ends meet. Eric shrugged indifferently, there were countless of movies being produced each year in Hollywood, for a release to only drag for a year could be considered lucky. Many movies never made the cut, some werent even able to be released on tape and would forever be piled in a shady ce somewhere, umting dust. This was something simr to his pasts TV series in China, the maind produced thousands of drama each year, but the audience was only familiar with a dozen of them. Some dramas didnt even make it past the pilot episode. In his past life, if Eric had met one of those tycoons who produced those sure-hit TV shows, he would probably have even tried shameless methods to befriend him, like outright grabbing his thighs and shouting Brother !. Here you go sir. and this gentleman, your coffee. Eric was casually chatting with Jeff when the waitress named Julia came over with their cups. Thank you. When Eric was about to take his cup, he casually looked at the girl, and this glimpse shook him so much that the newly brewed hot coffee spilled all over the table, while some even sprinkled on him. Inhaling a deep breath, Eric hurriedly drew a few napkins to wipe the back of his hand that had now turned red. Im sorry. Im really sorry ! Seeing Erics skin change colors, the girl was flustered and kept apologizing. Jeff harshly red at her, before turning to his guest: Eric, lets hurry and put cold water on it. Eric nodded, got up and walked towards the kitchen, and when the staff noticed him, they enthusiastically scrambled to help, while as the waitress responsible for the incident, Julia stood helplessly behind the crowd. The rtionship between the boy and the owner Jeff looked good, she was really worried about what would happen to her now. Okay everyone, Im alright, you better get back to work or Jeff will take it up on me. Jeff pretended to be angry and said: What am I, a monster ?! The crowdughed before quickly dispersing. Eric returned to the table outside along with Jeff, only to find a girl standing near them, her face full of anguish. Im sorry, Mr. Williams, I really didnt mean it. The girl had heard her colleagues talk and knew of Erics name. Its okay, I really dont mind. Youre.. At this time, he could only feign ignorance. My name is Julia, Julia Roberts. Chapter 40 ric nodded, and turned around: Jeff, Im hosting a party at my ce tonight, Ill need a chef and a waiter, and so.. I thought of you. Catering for a party was a very profitable business, Jeff dly listened and said: No problem, Ill get you Vanessa and Cindy. For the chef, Vanessa is not a problem, but as for the waiting, how about you let Miss Julia go instead ? Julia Roberts looked at Jeff and hesitated slightly before nodding her head. This settled, Eric casually started chatting with his ex-boss, writing down what he wanted to be on the menu for tonight. He had been a waiter in the restaurant before, so he was familiar with all the dishes. Once it was done, Jeff took the paper, looked at the girl who was still standing next to them and said: Julia, youe help me. Eric wait a bit, Ill be right back. Eric nodded. When they came to the kitchen, Julia noticed that Jeff had handed the paper to a chef, she was startled and asked: Sir, what do I need to do ? Jeff looked her up and down, besides her slightly plumper lips, the girl wasnt particrly attractive, he seriously couldnt understand. Julia, do you know who Eric is ? Julia was somewhat confused: Sir, Im not sure, I only came to L.A a few months ago. Jeff didnt bother beating around the bush with her as he straightforwardly said: You ought to know about Home Alone, right ? Dont you know who directed it ? Julias eyes instantly widened, she remembered recently seeing the young directors picture in the papers, and he really did look like him: Youre saying that.. that.. At this time, anyone in the whole of North America who hadnt heard about Home Alone and its miraculous teenage director was probably from Mars. Yes, thats him. When we were talking, I mentioned that you were an actress. Originally, Eric was probably only going to ask for a chef, but heter added a waiter and also specifically asked for you. Once Julia who hadnt been cast in almost a year heard Jeffs words, she flushed with excitement. She had participated in a lot of auditions this year, but all ended in failure, so no one other than her could better understand how important an opportunity this was. So, Jeff patted the girls shoulder: Eric will soon shoot his new movie, you y your cards right, and you might justnd yourself a role. Thank you for the heads up, sir. Jeff smiled and waved his hand, he actually had some selfish motives in mind. After Eric rose to fame, thanks to the boys past experience in the restaurant, the paparazzi hade many times leading to the establishment gaining quite a bit of reputation in the area. If another well-known celebrity popped up from here again, business would definitely soar to renewed heights. Mr. Williams, do you mind if I board with you ? Eric had just pulled out his keys to start the car, he didnt expect that Julia Roberts who was supposed to be sitting in the chefs van to suddenly appear in front of him. Not at all, Miss Julia. Please get in. Casually ncing at the girl in the passengers seat, he noticed she had gotten out of her waitress uniform. She had applied some light make-up and was wearing a dark red jacket with light-colored jeans, whose fabric perfectly showcased her taught and slender legs. Right now Julia was only 21 years old, and although her appearance wasnt quite up-to-par, her body was exuding a youthful aura of invincibility. Do you know who I am ? Eric nonchntly asked while holding the steering wheel. Julia who was thinking of how to strike up a conversation, subconsciously nodded: Ah, yes, sir Jeff told me. No wonder. Eric chuckled. Julia was startled and asked: Yes ? Miss Julia, I hired you for 10$ an hour, however youre not dressed like a waitress but like someone whos about to attend a party instead. Ah Julia looked at her clothes, when she heard her boss words she subconsciously wanted to leave a good impression on Eric and hastily changed her clothes: Yes Im sorry, Mr. Williams, I I will go and change back. Eric smiled and shook his head: Its okay, this is fine. I heard that a movie youve acted in was released in October ? Feeling ill at ease, Julia Roberts quickly replied: Yes, its called Mystic Pizza, it tells the love story of three waitresses and their boyfriends, it has reached the ten million dors mark at the box office already. When Julia mentioned Mystic Pizzas box office, her tone held a tinge of pride, but thinking about the young mans achievements, it immediately vanished. Although Mystic Pizza was a low-budget movie and the more than 10 million $ box office could be considered quite good, ifpared to Home Alone, it wasnt even worth mentioning. Oh, 10 million $, not bad. Eric hadnt seen the film, nor was he interested in it, he just knew that it had marked Matt Damons debut. He said: Jeff told me you havent received a role in almost a year, but after that movie someone will probably notice you. Mentioning this matter, Julia held some resentment. Once Mystic Pizza had gotten a good box office, her usually indifferent agent quickly scrambled to suggest her some movie auditions, however, she had directly fired this man who hadnt fought for her interests at all during this past year like he was supposed to. Mr. Eric, I heard that youre about to shoot your next movie ? Its just an idea, I still have neither actors nor script. Eric chuckled. He couldnt help but sigh in his heart, he had just decided to shoot Pretty Woman that the past lead actress appeared in front of him. To cast her or not to cast her, that was the question. Actually, Erics favorite actress was Sophie Marceau, and the woman suffused of both a ssic and alluring charm. To him she was the perfectbination, the ideal lead actress. However this french rose hadnt yet broken out of the European movie circle, so she might think of attempting America as a stretch and refuse his invitation, he wouldnt really know unless he tried. As for why Eric had hired Julia as an additional help, he was actually thinking about how to win her over. After all, in his past, she had been a force to be reckoned with, a bona fide Hollywood icon whose paycheck was in the tens of millions. Thinking up to here, Eric asked: Julia, do you belong to an agency* ? When Julia heard Erics question, she was delighted and quickly replied: No, I just recently fired my agent, so Ill temporarily be handling my matters personally. Then Julia, Eric said: How about joining mine ? After learning from Barry Diller that Stuart Runkle had signed with the CAA, Eric had the idea to found his own agency. He didnt want to see the people he had painstakingly made into stars turn their backs on him again. Eric was thinking on having her audition, and once she passed, theyd certainly have to sign a contract, hence his proposition. But Julia hadnt expected this kind of offer at all, which made her a little more cautious, she didnt want to join an agency to then be abandoned for a year or even longer. I apologize Mr. Williams, this isnt something Im nning to do. I was at an agency before, and didnt receive a single job for almost a year which is why Im currently working at the restaurant. Eric said: You dont have to worry about this, I can guarantee you that youll be featured in at least two movies a year, I can also arrange for this use to be written in the contract. It was in 1989 that Julia got her first Oscar nomination, Eric knew that it would be for Steel Magnolias, a Columbia Pictures production. Although his and Blount Cohens rtionship was rocky, rmending an actress wasnt a problem, this was business after all. Julia Roberts hesitated for a moment before saying: Can I think about it, Mr. Williams ? Of course, no problem. Eric casually said, and thought for a moment before adding: Actually, I want to invite the French actress Sophie Marceau to act as the lead, and if she refuses, youll still have a chance. Julias hands shook as she pursed her lips tightly, she was really at a loss. Her parents and brother were in the entertainment circle, so she certainly knew a lot about what kind of concept it was to star in Eric Williams second movie whose fame had reached new heights thanks to Home Alone. However, it was precisely because her parents were in this circle that she also knew about its deceptive side. Erics promise could just be a calcted bait. If she hot-headedly agreed to join his agency and thetter went back on his word, she wouldnt even have the time to shed tears. _ _ _ _ * A brokerage firm, I felt agency was a better way to word it. Chapter 41 After 6:00 pm, the Home Alone crew started arriving at Erics home. It had turned dark once Eric came back to the living room from the kitchen after discussing with the chef Vanessa, and he was surprised to find out that, in addition to the Home Alone crew, there was more than a dozen pretty girls all dolled and dressed up. Jeffrey, where did these girlse from ? Eric found Jeffrey Hanson and curiously inquired. Jeffrey smiled and said: After Home Alone was done, Nicole Frank was hired for a campusedy, and when the girls from the set heard that he was going to a party organized by the Home Alone director, they followed him here. As for the reason why, you probably dont need me to exin. Eric smiled, these girls were obviously here for him, but he didnt mind. Home Alones crew consisted mostly of men, which would make the party really boring. Coming at the center of the room, he pped his hands in order to get the guests attention: Everyone, please hear me out, Id like to say a few words. The living room soon quieted down and everyone turned towards Eric. First of all, I hope youre having a good night. Todays party is to celebrate Home Alones sess, which is something that happened not because of me, but thanks to all of you here today, without whom I would not have been able toplete the movie in such a short time, so once again, Id like to thank everyone. He finished and slightly bowed to the crowd, who responded with a round of apuse. Eric slightly motioned them to quiet down with his hands, then said: Of course, a simple verbal thank you wouldnt be enough. Home Alone made such an amazing box office, and its all due to each one of your efforts, so I took the liberty to prepare bonuses for everyone, I hope well have the opportunity to work together again in the future. Eric finished, and along with Hanson, started distributing the already prepared envelopes to the crowd. Eric had written the names on them in advance so there would be no fear of mixing them up. The checks varied between 200,000 $ and 500,000 $ depending on ones position or contributions. Although it seemed trivial whenpared to Home Alones box office, this was the equivalent to several years of wages for the crew members who had only mingled in the lowest circle of the industry. Their annual ies were at most in the tens of thousands dors. Of course, Eric hadnt forgotten about the main actors, however their share would be more generous and it would have to wait until he received his dividend from Columbia. Some people may think that the filming was done, and the others had already received what they were supposed to receive, so why did Eric have to give away those huge sums of money ? Well, although it wasnt written out in a contract or anything, there were such things as rules in this business, and giving away generous dividends to the crew after the movie had hit it big was one of them. In his past, because of over quite a bit on the Titanic, James Camerons dividend had initially dropped. However, once the movie unexpectedly hit it big leading to the Fox making quite the profits, he was rewarded generously as well. After distributing the checks, Eric announced the official start of the party, and took Jeffrey Hanson away. Jeffrey, this is for you, it should be enough to redeem Firefly. Once the two men reached the second floor balcony, Eric took out an envelope and handed it over to Jeffrey. The check amounted to 3 million $. It was what the middle-aged man deserved, as without him, the shooting of Home Alone would not have gone so smoothly. Jeffrey Hanson took the envelope and stroked it a few times before unhesitatingly giving it back to Eric. Huh ? Eric was puzzled by that move. Eric, Ive thought about it these days, and even if I were to get Firefly back, it would still be impossible for me to grow it the way Solina wouldve wanted, so. So I have a request. Ericughed: Jeffrey, what are you still hesitating for ? Please just say it. You said that you were going to start a filmpany, let me join you, I might not be a good director, but I can be of use as a producer. Eric raised his eyebrows in surprise, he had actually thought about this too, he also wanted topletely take over the crew that Jeffreys wife had left behind. However, he felt that the man would probably not let go of histe wifespany, and with Home Alones sess, Eric wouldnt have any problem finding out other people, so he had put away his initial thoughts. But now Jeffrey had actually brought up the matter up on his own initiative. Jeffrey, to be honest, I wanted to ask you to join my studio and help me, but I thought you wouldnt want to part with the Firefly studios, so I didnt follow up on it. Jeffrey listened to Erics as his face tensed and his said with some apprehension: Eric, actually, this wasnt my main request, what I hope is that that your new filmpany will also be named Firefly. I know that its probably a bit too much, but Ill help you as a producer I wont take any share of it, just a sry would be enough, I wish youd think about it. Eric realized that the man still hadnt let go of his attachment towards his beloveds studio, he was just trying to move on somehow. This moved him slightly, and Eric quickly made a decision; it was just the studios name anyway, nothing to fret about. Originally, he was thinking of doing things along the lines of Disney, Warner, and Fox, and name thepany Williams, but oh well. At least this one had a story behind it. Thats not a problem Jeffrey, Ill just name thepany Firefly then. I also quite like this appetion to be honest. Jeffrey raised his right hand slightly, he was still thinking about how to convince Eric when he heard hetters words. He asked, dumbfounded: Eric, what did you just say ? I agreed, of course. That Thank you very much, Eric, I will work hard for you, I.. Jeffrey didnt know how to express his gratitude, he opened his arms and held the youth in a bear hug. Once they separated, Eric gave him the envelope back: Its just a name, Jeffrey, I wouldnt have refused you no matter what. Now take this, this is your due. Jeffrey kept declining so in the end Eric directly put the money into the middle-aged mans breast pocket: Jeffrey, although theres a rtivelyrge age gap between us, we are still friends. And like I said, isnt it just apanys name ? Take the check, this is the fruit of yourbor, so stop saying so many silly things in the future, Im still gonna need your help to create more miracles. After a round of persuasion, Jeffrey eventually epted the envelope. The two of them discussed a few things about the studio, then returned to the party downstairs. Eric announced the establishment of the new moviepany Firefly, and when the people heard it, many of them were overjoyed. They had already nced at Erics generous bonus and thought highly of him, but the crew that was left behind by Jeffreys wife was aware of her husbands desire to redeem Firefly, so most of them had decided to keep following the man, while some others felt morepelled by Eric. Now however, the two concerned parties had made the best decision they could have hoped for, so the partys atmosphere warmed up as all of them felt relieved. While he wasughing with the cameraman Nicole Frank, Eric turned around holding a goblet, when he noticed a girl wearing a red dress approaching him who appeared to be about to trip, and judging by the direction, she would hit him head first. Stop - Eric quickly shouted with wry smile, lifting his left hand in front of his body, putting a stop to the girls behavior. The pretty girl subconsciously halted her steps, and stood a little awkwardly one meter in front of Eric. Some wine had inadvertently spilled from her ss as her movements had been abruptly stopped, and her face held the embarrassment of being seen through. This youngdy, if you want to strike up a conversation, you can just directly say hello. Please dont spill wine on me, this is actually myst suit, if you ruin it, Ill have no choice but to strip in front of everyone, which would surely be embarrassing. The girl who initially felt ill-at-ease, startedughing after Erics words: Mr. Williams, youre really fun to talk to. Of course, I specifically practiced in order to attract the attention of pretty girls. Eric joked: So, you are.. You can call me Lucie, Mr. Williams. Lucie, thats a nice name, lets go over there to talk. Eric pointed to an open space not far away. In order to get rid of the other passionate and motive-harboring girls harassment, Eric wisely chose a temporarypanion. He couldnt help but sigh, if Annie, this stubborn girl, had been here, he wouldnt have these problems. He wondered what she as doing, ording to the east and west coast time difference, it should be morning in New York right now. Chapter 42 After 11 oclock, people gradually started leaving the party, and Eric send off Hanson, who was thest guest, before going back to the kitchen only to find Julia Roberts looking curiously through the stack of photos that the group of girls from the party had left behind. All in all, these girls were truly prepared, detailed information was written on the back of the pictures, some were even really personal. Eric had struggled a lot in this industry during his past life, and was able to understand the desire these girls had to seed, so when they had apprehensively given him their pictures, Eric hadn''t refused and instead very politely said that he would contact them if need be. "Im sorry, I didn''t mean to look at these." Julia saw Eric appear and hastily put the photos back in ce. Eric waved his hand, motioning that he didn''t mind, he went to sit down on the couch, picked up a picture from the pile and enjoyed himself. "Did you know, Julia ? Each year those whoe to Los Angeles to pursue their dreams of stardom number in the thousands, and amongst them, those who get a job in a crew or temporary roles don''t even add up to 1%, while those able to be world-renowned movie or television stars, are one in a million." Eric stopped and gave Julia a profound look before continuing: "Most people abandon after a few years as they get a clear understanding of reality, and pack up to return home to try something else, this is what usually happens. Those unwilling to give up on the glittery Hollywood life will scatter throughout L.A, often just roaming around, struggling at the bottom, while some others will just lose heartpletely, and sink into despair." Julia wasn''t stupid, she listened and gradually understood that Eric was indirectly pinpointing the importance of opportunities. The young man seemed determined to win her over, and she was very curious as to why. She didn''t believe in like or dislike for no reason, she didn''t feel that Eric was after her body either; of all those beautiful girls that had attended the party earlier and were so much better than her, none of them had stayed. Eventually, Julia couldn''t help but ask: "Eric, why me ?" Eric put down the photograph, stood up, and grabbed the girl''s waist with one hand as he used his other to trace the contours of her face with his thumb before stopping on her sexy lips. At Eric''s sudden gesture, Julia wanted to subconsciously protect her chest, but her mind went nk and she forgot to resist. She looked up and was met with Eric''s pair of assessing eyes as he rubbed her lower lip, making her tremble. "Because I want to !" His confident and overbearing voice sounded in her ears. "Please. don''t do this." Julia whispered as an attempt to resist, but as she was thrown into confusion by Eric''s finger, it wasn''t very effective. A yful expression shed past Eric''s eyes as he held her face with both hands and forcibly took her lips. "Um" Julia''s smothered protest were heard a few times, before finally giving in to Eric''s skillful ways. Her body became soft and she eventually feebly leaned against him. "Ahem.." Suddenly hearing another person''s voice, the two people were shocked, and quickly separated. Eric noticed the pudgy figure not far and said with dissatisfaction: "Vanessa ? Howe you''re still here ?" Standing at the kitchen''s doorway and holding a box of utensils, the chef said in a teasing tone: "Sorry, Eric, I didn''t mean to bother you, I just wanted to ask if Julia needed a ride home as it''s getting quitete." "I do." Julia had barely said anything that Eric interrupted: "It''s fine, you go first, I will send her back." Vanessa looked at Julia and pretended not to see Eric''s dissatisfied expression as she meaningfully winked at the girl, twisted herrge butt around, and left. "There shouldn''t be anymore interruption now, let''s pick up where we left off." Eric looked at Julia and smiled. With Vanessa''s abrupt appearance, Juliapletely regained her spirits, she was stunned at her behavior, she had only just met the guy, and she was already french kissing him ? Worst of all, from beginning to end the other party had held a firm grasp on the entire situation. Julia was 17 years old and still quite the innocent girl, so she couldn''t help but be attracted to Eric''s affectionate ways and momentarily forgot to resist, but she didn''t want to be toyed with. She took a few seconds to stop the heaving of her chest before mustering the coldest voice she could, and say: "Mr. Williams, don''t you think you ought to apologize for your inappropriate behavior ? You" "If you want me to apologize Miss Julia, I''ll apologize. Now then, shall we continue ?" Listening to his insincere words, Julia was slightly irritated, she pped back his outstretched paw and said: "Don''t even think about it. It''s a littlete now, I want to go back, would you please.. please send me home." "Alright then, but before I do so, I have a proposal." Eric put away his smile and sternly said: "I thought about it, and I''m going to open an agency as soon as possible. I will then prepare generous terms for your contract and personally take charge of your future. I will make it so that there won''t be any actress in Hollywood who doesn''t look up to you, what do you think ?" Wasn''t this the same bullshit that all the scouts who were trying to lure in young fledglings used ?Julia listened to Eric''s self-righteous words, she crossed her hands in front of her chest and snorted: "And if I refuse ?" Eric didn''t mind Julias cold tone, he picked up a picture of a girl from the earlier pile, slowly turned it around in his hands and said in a low voice, as if muttering: "If you refuse then that''s just regrettable. I will randomly select a girl from this stack of photographs, give her the stage name ''Julia Roberts'', then arrange for her to star in a bunch of blockbusters, and turn her into a star with my own hands. She''ll eventually receive paychecks of 20 million $, get to stand on the Oscar''s podium, and be a Hollywood legend on the same level as Audrey Hepburn and Vivien Leigh. As for you, the real Julia Roberts, perhaps you''ll get a few good roles after Mystic Pizza, yourst spark before nothingness. If you''re lucky, before death catches up to you, you''ll marry a third-rate Hollywood director, and might be able to asionally receive unknown roles in small budget productions." Julia hadn''t been reborn like Eric, it was impossible for her to know about her past life''s brilliant achievements. Plus she had nearly wasted a year and had lost her initial confidence, she involuntarily started to picture Eric''s narration of her second fate. Although her beliefs had been shaken, Julia still stubbornly quipped: "Hearing you it''s like you could easily make anyone into a superstar at the same level as Audrey Hepburn. Do you think youre Steven Spielberg or George Lucas ?" "Of course not, Im not anyone else, I am me, Eric Williams." Eric said, pulled out another random picture from the pile, and looked at data on its back as he said: "Look, I feel that this ''Julia Roberts'' is pretty good, don''t you ?" Julia involuntarily took the picture in her hands, the girl had simr features to her own, but was more beautiful, taller, had blond hair, blue eyes and sultry lips. Julia was somewhat unwilling and looked at the information on the back; the girl was 19 years old, had graduated from the Lee Strasberg Theater & Film Institute in Los Angeles, and had appeared in three movies as a supporting character. No matter how Julia looked at it, the girl seemed better in every way. A feeling of inferiority suddenly hit her like a wave. Eric didn''t give her any more room to think, he asked: "Now Julia, the heavens or the mundane world, which will you choose ?" Looking at Eric''s hateful expression, Julia wanted nothing more than p the picture on his face and walk out. She soon got rid of the idea though. Even if she took Eric''s fancy words as a full of air, when she thought of how the boy who yed in Home Alone had turned into a global superstar, she hesitated. Of all the men and women who tried to break into the Hollywood circle, which one of them wasn''t after either fame or money ? Which one did not wish to be envied by thousands and hailed by millions ? "Making me a star. can you guarantee it ?" Julia tightly held the photograph in her hands. She was silent for a moment before looking up at Eric, and when she met his eyes, she hastily looked away. A faint victorious smile hung at the corner of his lips as Eric took the girl in his embrace and said: "I can." Taking the opportunity, he stole another kiss out of her sexy lips again. Having made her decision, Juliapletely gave up resisting, letting the man willfully enjoy her tongue. A minuteter, Eric was no longer satisfied with simple kissing, he pulled the part of his shirt that was tucked in his jean, then he pulled his face away from her and slightly pressed down on her shoulder. Julia understood what the man wanted and her face flushed, she looked at him with pleading eyes but the hateful guy just smiled and kept pressing his hand on her shoulder, until she finally obediently knelt down. In the darkness of the night, an innocent littlemb thoroughly experienced the pleasures of the flesh for the first time.
? Chapter 43 Because the curtains were obstructing the light, the bedroom appeared somewhat dark. Julia whose schedule had been stable for quite a while felt out of it, she rolled over and took a look at her watch. After seeing the time, she subconsciously sat up, thinking she waste for work. It took her a minute to recall where she was and what had happenedst night, after which she sighed, rxed, andid back down. Looking around, the man who had exhausted her body to the point of frustration wasn''t around. If not for the fact that she woke up in his bedroom, she''d think that the whole situation was a dream. Rather, more like a nightmare really, in which a demon-like man had slowly but surely lured her into his abyss. Her thoughts a mess, Julia got out of bed, her body bare. Looking at her clothes scattered all over the ground, she gritted her teeth in resentment; whether it be her shirt, bra, panties or even her sturdy jean, they were all torn to some degree. One could imagine how intense the previous night''s battle must have been. Reluctantly putting her slightly torn jean on, she went towards the man''s closet, and took out one of his white shirt. Opening the balcony''s curtains, L.A''s morning sun was as bright as ever; so bright it annoyed her. Deeply inhaling a few mouthfuls of the cool morning air, Julia turned around and walked down the stairs. Hearing the sound of utensils nking in the kitchen, Julia stopped by to take a look. She saw the man dressed in casual clothes, skillfully busying himself as the faint fragrance of porridge drifted in the air. Noticing the girls figure, Eric said: "Good morning, Julia." "Good morning" Although somewhat reluctantly, she still greeted him. She couldn''t help but hold a bit of grievance in her heart though, the man had yed her so thoroughlyst night, but now he wasn''t even trying to coax her with deceitful words such as ''baby'' or ''sweetheart''. Really, such a hateful guy ! "You''re so rich, but you also make your own breakfast ?" Leaning on the door frame with her arms folded, Julia said with a trace of ridicule. Eric listened to the girl, then raised an eyebrow: "Oh, it seems that you''ve already forgotten aboutst night, for you to even dare talk to me like this ?" "You. don''t think we''ve reached some kind of agreement. don''t think you can do however you please with me." Eric pretended to not notice the girl who seemed like a cat whose tail had been stepped on. He looked at his craft, lifted the lit of the pot and switched off the gas before saying: "Oh ? Hm I think you''d be the one to suffer a loss in that case though ?" Julia was somewhat speechless for a time, she could only re at Eric, wishing she could kill this bastard with her eyes. "Alright stop staring, I heard the sound of the newspapers being thrown against the door, help me get them." Julia stamped her foot like a little girl, turned around and walked towards the door. From the kitchen Eric nced at her sexy back, and the corner of his mouth curled up in a smile. He didn''t mean to bully Juliast night, he just wanted to nt a seed of obedience in the girl''s subconscious. Now look, even though she was still a bit unruly, it seemed like his ''teachings'' had gotten through. At this rate, even when she hit it big in the future, she would neverpletely escape from his palm. Despite being a woman, he knew that her past self was even more strong-minded than the majority of men. Once she''d rose to fame, Eric didn''t want her topletely change trajectory and mess up his ns, and if he didn''t take care of her now, knowing her, that''s probably what would happen. Taking a stack of paper back to the living room, Julia didn''t give Eric another chance to bully her as she sat in the living room and started looking through the newspapers. She yawned and tossed aside several of them as they were just not interesting, but when she noticed the headline of the Los Angeles Daily, she momentarily froze before revealing a gloating smile. Home Alone''s director and Drew Barrymore''s one-night stand, a convenience store clerk left in tears. Below the long title was a detailed article as well as a clear picture. "Hey hey, you''re already not that attractive but with your mouth so agape, aren''t you afraid it''ll stretch ?" Eric carried his breakfast to the living room, and put it on the coffee table. Julia nced at him, this sleazy guy didn''t even know what troubles he was in. She handed the newspaper over to him, got up and went straight towards the kitchen: "You should worry about yourself first. Unbelievable, you''re such a jerk, you''d even hurt such a pretty girlfriend." Eric nced at the newspaper and couldn''t help but sigh; these paparazzi were seriously everywhere, they had probably staked his house the whole night. Reading the article carefully, more than 70% of it was bullshit. It counted how he had brought Drew home for the night and how, the next day, his girlfriend had caught them in bed together. The process was described vividly, as if the paps themselves had witnessed everything. After a quick read, Eric threw the newspaper on the coffee table, and thought about the mess that would follow while eating breakfast. Holding a bowl of porridge, Julia returned to the living room. Noticing that Eric''s expression was the same, she curiously inquired: "Aren''t you worried ?" Eric said without looking up: "Merely some gossip tabloid, if I had to worry over it every time, I would lead a miserable life. Since I stepped into this circle, I obviously must be prepared to take on everything it throws at me." "I know. I''m talking about that, didn''t you notice ? The article intentionally or unintentionally keeps mentioning Drew Barrymore''s age, don''t you get it ? She''s only thirteen years old, and in ordance with the Californiaw" Julia gleefully raised three fingers: "You''re looking at three years, even if she was willing." Eric had obviously seen through the author''s intention, those tabloid would resort to any means in order to boost their sales and stir up trouble, but he wasn''t worried about this. Rather, something else weighed on his mind. With such a bomb being dropped, those other filmpanies who had been miserably suppressed by Home Alone and 17 Again, would definitely not let go of such a great opportunity. Seeing that Eric didn''t respond, Julia thought that he had a guilty conscience and felt a bit smug. "Alright don''t look at me like that, yeah I''m talking about your ''you''re misfortune is totally my happiness'' kind of look. Wash your bowl after you eat, I''m leaving first." Eric finished eating in a hurry, took his coat and told Julia: "Ah right, If I were you I''d go to the restaurant and hand my resignation over, then stay at home for the next few days, honestly." Julia protested: "Why ? You can''t restrain my personal freedom !" Eric pointed to the newspaper on the coffee table: "Because tomorrow, you''ll also make the headlines." "Ugh !" Julia suddenly felt helpless. "Eric, good morning." At an agreed ce in Burbank, in front of a real estate agency, Eric got off his car and was greeted by the sight of Jeffrey Hanson waiting for him. "Good morning Jeffrey, let''s go in." Jeffrey stopped him and said: "Wait, there''s something we need to talk about first." "Okay ?" Jeffrey pulled him aside, and took out a copy of the Los Angeles Daily from his bag: "Eric, seriously, what''s with all the nonsense ? Although I''ve only seen her a few times, Aniston is a good girl, you shouldn''t have hurt her. More importantly, even if you were looking for another woman, why Drew ? She''s only a thirteen-year-old girl, ah that won''t do, you''re ruined. Look at Roman Pnski, that matter of his happened 11 years ago already, and he still hasn''t been able to get his foothold back in the U.S." Eric knew that his old friend was just really concerned about him, so he patiently listened to his nagging, and once he was finished, Eric patted the mans shoulder and said: "Rest assured, Jeffrey, this whole thing is just a misunderstanding. Although Drew spent the night at my house, nothing happened." "Anyways," Jeffrey was still not assured: "You should be careful, Eric. You rose too fast, your performance was too eye-catching and so you piqued many people''s interest, and it''s difficult to assess whether they will try and use unconventional means to deal with you. I remember once seeing a Chinese idiom, something about a tree being really tall in the forest." Eric listened to Jeffrey''s jumbled description, he felt it was really funny and couldn''t help but mutter in fluent chinese: "M xi y ln, fng b cu zh; du ch y n, li b tun zh; hng go y zhng, rn b fi zh." (The wind will destroy the tallest tree in the forest, the water will tear down the sharpest stone on the cliff, the crowd will nder the one with the noblest virtue.) "Eh ? I couldn''t hear you just now, what did you say ?" Jeffrey asked weirdly. Eric looked at the bright sun in the horizon, speaking in his originalnguage made him feel nostalgic. He was toozy to exin so he casually bullshitted: "It''s a mantra I saw in a book once, it helps calm the mind and refresh one''s spirit." Jeffrey felt Eric was really long-winded today, he no longer pursued the matter and said: "Alright let''s go in, we have an appointment to attend."
? Chapter 44 "Gentlemen, these offices were picked based on your previously mentioned criteria. There''s one in the Burbank area, as well as one in the Santa Monica area, oh and this one is in a Hollywood neighborhood, so the price is rtively expensive." In the real estate agency''s hall, a skillful realtor named Raymond Stee handed over some informative documents to Eric and Jeffrey. Since they had decided to set up the new filmpany, Firefly, they should first rent an office, hence the current situation. They listened to Raymond''s presentation while they discussed things over with each other. He didn''t know why, but Eric felt that the Raymond guy was eyeing strangely, he almost felt eager. Finally, finding a gap in their conversation, Raymond Stee could not help but ask: "Excuse me, but, are you that Mr. Williams ? The director of Home Alone ?" Eric raised his eyebrows and assessed the man in front of him again; the middle-age guy couldn''t be one of his fans, right ? He nodded his head: "That would be me, Mr. Stee. Why are you asking ?" Raymond steeled himself and said: "Well, Mr. Williams, I wonder if you''d be interested in a Beverly Hills mansion, as we just happen to have one avable. The residence epasses an area of 6000 square feet, it is close to Sunset Boulevard, but most importantly. It can shield one''s privacy." When he said thest few words, Raymond Stee looked somewhat unnatural. It was obvious that he had read the Los Angeles Daily''s gossip about the youth and got the idea of selling the mansion. Eric had to admit, that was really a smooth move. Besides, he had been pestered by those annoying paps for a while now, he definitely needed to move out soon. Jeffrey also said: "Eric, I also think you need a change of residence. With your current worth, it''s not very safe to live alone in North Hollywood." Eric nodded and asked: "Mr. Stee, I am indeed interested, when can we go visit the house ?" Raymond Stee was delighted, he immediately nodded and said: "We can go now, the homeowners have left all matters to us, so the keys are in my possession." Eric didn''t feel like staying for the selection of the office, he left a nk check for Jeffrey to decide, and drove to Beverly Hills with Raymond Stee. After following the realtor''s directions, half an hourter, they parked in front of a mansion at the top of a hill: "We''re here, Mr. Williams." Getting out of the car, the first thing Eric saw was the nearly two-meter-high wall covered in green vegetation. Raymond Stee eagerly presented: "Mr. Williams, as you can see, the way the vi is build emphasize privacy. The tall wall coupled with the dense vegetation inside, the risk of being photographed by the paparazzi is nil. Also, there are no streets around the mansion, and only two doors avable; one in front and one behind. It is a very suitable living environment for a public figure." Eric nodded in satisfaction: "Then Mr. Stee, can we take a look inside ?" "But of course." Raymond Stee quickly pulled out the keys to open the door of the mansion, and invited Eric in. "Here, Mr. Williams. This is a modern-style vi designed by Edward Niles Architects. It showcases four bedrooms, seven bathrooms, two kitchens, and the garage can dock up to 10 cars. Out there we have an open-air bath, a mini basketball court, oh and through the balcony on the second floor, you can overlooking the whole of Los Angeles, I have to say, the night view is simply breathtaking." Eric listened to the realtor skillfully fill him in on the mansion, and waited patiently until they had seen about all there was before turning around. "Mr. Stee, how much does the mansion cost ?" Raymond Stee was somewhat taken aback, before his expression turned to ecstasy. Eric didn''t ask endless questions or mess around asking to see this part or this part once more, he directly asked about the price. It was practically a done deal. After building the mansion, the owner suffered a loss inst years stock market crash and had to put his beloved house up for sale. However, the concerned party had asked for a rtively high price, so the house had stayed in Raymond''s care for nearly half a year. Suppressing his joy, Stee mustered a calm voice and said: "2 million dors, Mr. Williams." ''So cheap ?!'' This was Eric''s first thought. But he soon remembered that this was 1988, the real estate prices hadn''t reached the ridiculous values of the 21st century ones. Apparently, Michael Jackson had purchased an area of 11 square kilometers for his Nevend at 19.5 million $. Obviously, this mansion''s 2 million $ price was somewhat expensive. Although he wasn''t short on money, Eric hated being taken advantage of. He stared at the real estate agent and said: "Mr. Stee, you should understand that I''m seriously considering buying, so give me a real price, 2 million dors won''t do." Raymond Stee revealed an anxious expression and said: "Well, 1.95 million $, I cannot lower it more." "1 million." Eric voiced his own price. Raymond Stee almost jumped as he shouted in surprise: "That''s impossible !" Right now, Chinese people weren''t thatmon in North America, so it was the first time Raymond Stee had encountered such a novel manner of bargaining Alright who are we kidding, Eric was clearly trying to rip him off. As if he had been greatly insulted, Raymond Stee''s expression contorted and he indignantly said: "Mr. Williams, unless you''re going to be sincere about it, let''s not do this anymore." Seeing that the other party was really angry, Eric quickly chuckled: "Ha ha, I was simply joking Mr. Stee, but I feel that you''re the onecking in sincerity though, only lowering the price by 50,000$." Raymond Stee was still a little upset, but the youth in front of him was after all a very important client, and if he sold the mansion, he would earn a lot inmissions, so he quickly restored his calm: "Mr. Williams, the mansion is sold already furnished, and the homeowners spent 500,000 $ for the decoration alone, so they were originally adamant to sell it at 2 million $. After some persuasion, I was able to get them to lower the price a bit, and so they agreed on a minimum of 1.9 million $, which is the lowest I can do." After saying this, Raymond Stee stayed silent, waiting for Eric''s decision. It was apparent from his demeanor that there was no room for further negotiation. Eric thought for a moment, he really liked the house. He ultimately nodded: "Mr. Stee, if I decide to buy it, how long will it take for me to move in ?" Raymond Stee said: "If you can pay in one go, we can fully handle the transfer formalities straight away, and you''ll be able to settle in within three days. If you need a bank loan, however, it will certainly take more time." Sure enough, money made the world go round. Eric remembered that a friend from his past life had bought a house in Los Angeles, and had to go back and forth for a month before he was able to move in. He chose to pay straight away, and the two men went back to Raymond''spany. Eric called Edward Lewis, and asked him to send awyer familiar with real estate business, all he had to do was fill up a check, the rest was basically left for his legal team to handle. Jeffrey Hanson also picked out an office building located in Burbank for the Fireflypanys office, and Eric expressed his satisfaction at the middle-aged man''s choice. After a busy day, the youth went back home in the evening, and caught sight of a few additional paparazzi roaming around the house. These guys were obviously here after seeing this morning''s article, trying to fish out something valuable. Eric just pretended to not notice them. After eating dinner, he showered, and once he was done, he came to his bedroom, and dressed in a loose bathrobe as he thought that it was about time he started writing the script for Pretty Woman. Michael us had been nagging him several times about Resident Evil already, so Eric had chosen to drag write his script, but now it came first, and even if Michael gave him an earful again, he was already used to it. For the next few days, Eric helped Jeffrey set up thepany during the day, and wrote the script during the night, he also hoped that by doing that, the media''s interest in the whole Aniston/Drew episode would die down. After all, they couldn''t just stay on his case as there was probably other interesting stories to cover out there, celebrity scandals were more and more trendy, and those paps shouldn''t becking any. right ?
? Chapter 45 A few dayster, as Eric predicted, the Los Angeles Daily exposed pictures of Julia leaving his house, and talked in detail about the ''rave'' he had held at home. It fleetingly mentioned the Home Alone crew being there, but emphasized more on the ''wave of young and beautiful women'' that attended. Some newspapers also followed suit, but as they didn''t have anything concrete to report on, they started criticizing Eric''s personal conduct, turning him from an inspirational youth into an extravagant yboy that had abandoned his girlfriend for an underaged girl. "... Eric Williams is indeed a talented youth, but after too easily obtaining wealth, the young man has obviously started to go down the slope" " After just having left his clerk girlfriend and slept with Drew Barrymore, Eric Williams was immediately seen with someone else. ording to our sources, the woman in the picture is one of the lead actresses of Mystic Pizza" " It''s really hard to imagine that even Eric Williams would start a rtionship with thirteen-year-old Drew Barrymore, however, it is undeniable that the young man''s actions have vited the Californiaw. I cannot help but be reminded of Roman Pnski, also a talented director, whomitted the same unforgivable crime. In order to not repeat the past and have Eric Williams escape to Sri Lanka like his peer, I feel the L.A.P.D had better take measures against the man as soon as possible.." And even some shady entertainment tabloids who couldn''t find anything started to make baseless usations. The favorable public image that Eric had established started crumbling. The 20th Century Fox reacted as soon as the storm hit. 17 Again was still in theaters and they had just bought the Home Alone''s overseas copyrights, so if they let Eric''s image be trampled on, they would surely suffer huge economic losses. As for Columbia, besides fulfilling their part of the gambling agreement, they just sat idly on the sidelines. Some employees from the Publicity Department had suggested their boss made a statement in order to appease the public, however, their idea waspletely rejected. Blount Cohen had been bitterly done in by Eric, and the Publicity Department even suspected that their boss might have had a hand in all the mess, so they weren''t willing to go plead on the youth''s behalf. The Fox''s media outlets had made it their specialty to deal with those who discredited public figures in order to inte their sales. Soon, under thepany''s leadership, a counterattack was quicklyunched, and through various means, they started to release spections about a few controversial actors and directors. For a time, the North American newspapers were in a messy state, and the focus on Eric slightly shifted away. People gradually started feeling that something was amiss. Although the media were good at manipting the masses, not every citizen was stupid. Soon, a not so famous paper called Hollywood News published an article on its front page, which would''ve normally beenpletely ignored, but as the subject it dealt with was currently the trend, it immediately attracted attention. "Christmas'' farce: me the box office." "The annual golden period that is Christmas is approaching. In previous years, filmpanies had done their best to promote their movies during that period, but this time, they are instead using a series of despicable means to discredit theirpetition. And all of this is thanks to wonder boy, Eric Williams." "After one week of release, his two movies had already topped the box office." "It should be known, that the number of screenings avable during the Christmas period are limited, which leads to the studiospeting with each other every year. Therefore, this time, in order for them to get a share of the pie, they shamelessly dragged Eric Williams in a variety of scandals and criticism." "Regardless of the young director''s misconduct - which has yet to be proven, I would like to say to those major moviepanies; please go back to your usualpetitive ways, stop using petty means to suppress your opponents and fight fair and square." To the major newspapers, Hollywood News'' article was perceived more as a warning: stop what you''re doing, we have his back - that''s what it said. They quickly realized that the youth was no longer fighting alone and that he seemed to be in a sort of partnership with the Fox. While some of the tabloids were reluctant to drop the topic, the more influential papers, who had a better understanding of the situation, immediately stopped in their tracks. The storm seemed to have passed just like that. A few dayster, Eric who had been until now besieged by the crazy paparazzi, finally moved into his newly acquired Beverly Hills mansion and firmly shut his door. He didn''t have to take a peak from his balcony anymore, just a nce from a window could let him see the line of conspicuous cars stationed in front of his new house. Ah, those relentless paps ! Jeffrey Hansen looked at the mansion behind the high walls with some envy, and pressed the doorbell. After a few minutes, Eric opened the door to wee his old friend inside. ncing at the cars parked outside, Jeffrey Hanson asked: "Eric, you''ve had to stay at home for several days now, how did you manage ?" Once this matter was brought up, Eric felt depressed. The procedures for the Firefly moviepany didn''t require much of his help, and adding to that the upsetting flow of shes that followed wherever he went, he had basically stayed home these days. Compared to his past where even a neet could lead a blissful life, this era had neither inte nor smartphones yet, so he had been bored to death. "Writing a novel, writing a script, watching TV.. boring stuff. With the current state of things I don''t even dare go out anymore. Thest time, I went to a convenience store to buy a drink, and the next day a tabloid made up an article about how I had tried to seduce the clerk." Jeffrey couldn''t help butugh in glee listening to him. Eric led his friend to his study, which was on the second floor of the mansion. They had just entered, that Jeffrey saw arge cork board hung on one of the walls, densely packed with newspapers clippings and hand-written annotations. "What is this for ?" Jeffrey walked up to it and curiously asked. "Nothing," Eric stepped forward and chuckled as he ripped off one of the clippings: "I was bored, so I tried to gather some information from analyzing various tabloids and newspapers, hoping to figure out who was behind it all, so that in the future I could. settle the score." Jeffrey teased: "With Sherlock Holmes on the case, those guys had better be prepared." Eric shrugged. In fact, he had been quite lucky to have been backed by the Fox this time, as it allowed him to get out of the mess rather unscathed. He hadn''t yet reached the level of fame where fans would mourn sorrowfully at his death, like his past''s Michael Jackson, so he couldn''t be careless. After a brief contemtion, Eric asked: "Right, Jeffrey, how are things going ?" When the middle-aged man heard him, he pulled out a stack of papers from his briefcase andined: "You, how can a boss be soid-back, I''ve had to do everything alone. It''ll take about half a month to finish renovating thepany''s office. And here, this is the information you asked about various brokerage firms. Eric, do you really intend to buy one and set up an agency ?" Eric took the data and said: "Of course, you''ve seen how the CAA has gotten Stuart Runkle into its clutches, if I don''t take proper measures, all the stars I mold are going to be snatched away." "But a filmpany cannot possess its own brokerage firm." Eric who was reading the files in his hands, said without looking up: "I know that, I wasn''t nning on merging the two together, they will both be independent of each other, so there shouldn''t be any legal problems." "Alright, I''ll let you handle that then. Right, you said your screeny waspleted ?" Eric took out a manuscript from his desk and handed it over to Jeffrey: "It''s done, wanna take a look ?"
? Chapter 46 Reading Pretty Woman''s script carefully, Jeffrey had some misgivings and said: "Eric, I really feel that this story is great, just like a modern version of a Cindere story, but do you think the audience will be okay with a prostitute ? You said that you wanted to portray a fairy tale, but it seems more simr to Boule de Suif and The Lady of the Camellias - minus the tragedy - I''d say." Eric sighed in his heart, it was a perfect fairy tale indeed. Pretty Woman''s original script was actually a darker one called 3000, and narrated the story of a sexual-only based rtionship between a man and a woman following a 3000 dors transaction. It was a script that urately pictured the living conditions of prostitutes in L.A. But during the filming process, because the budget was insufficient, the director and producer repeatedly kept revising the plot, and it finally turned into a romanticedy. The most surprising thing was that the movie that had been tweaked beyond recognition, had actually made a North American box office of 170 million $, which led the enumerable actors and actresses who had refused to be a part of the cast because of its initial setting, to drown in frustration. It was also Julia''s rise to fame. "Jeffrey, that aside, what do you think about Vivian''s character ?" Since it was only a plot and he didn''t have anything to refer it to, Jeffrey thought for a bit before saying: "Outspoken personality, cheerful but somewhat vulgar, and even though she''s a prostitute, she''s no pushover." Eric patiently listened to his old friend''s opinion before saying: "Jeffrey, you probably didn''t notice, but when you spoke about Vivian, your mouth curved into a smile. Meaning that not only do you not have any ill feelings towards her, you''ve even started to like the girl." Jeffrey had just spoken subconsciously and didn''t notice anything, he said: "Did Did I, really ?" Eric nodded: "You did. And since even you feel this way, once the film is done and released, I''m convinced people will certainly like her too." Jeffrey nodded, but soon frowned as he seriously asked: "What do you mean by ''even you''. Are my standards really that high ?" Eric quickly denied: "Not really, you''re just kinda long-winded." "" Eric smiled and patted Jeffreys shoulder: "Don''t be too down, older people are usually like that, don''t mind it." A depressed Jeffrey red at Eric: "Well, you''re the boss, and you''ve proven that your vision is also better than mine, so since you''ve made up your mind, when do we start preparations ?" "Of course the sooner the better, we shouldplete the preparations and the casting before Christmas, then immediately start to shoot after the New Year and release it near Valentine''s Day." Jeffrey started counting the days: "The Valentine season is indeed the ideal time to release it, but we won''t have enough time to make it, it should take more time to shoot than Home Alone, right ?" Eric shook his head: "Jeffrey, youve witnessed Home Alone''s making process, I won''t need more than a month for Pretty Woman. We''ll also have to consult the Fox during the post-production about the publicity." "Alright, so when do we start casting, do you have anyone in mind yet ?" Eric said: "I settled on Richard Gere and Sophie Marceau as my initial choice. So Jeffrey, I''ll require your help to get Marceau''s contact information and send her an invitation, and if she doesn''t consent, then I''ll go with Julia Roberts. As for the other supporting roles, well we''ll have to hold a casting for them." "Sophie Marceau . ? Ah, are you talking about the french actress ?" "Right, you know about The Party, right ? The image I got from her then is the same one I''m picturing for Vivian, I just don''t know if she''ll agree to it." "Well, Ill send her an invite as soon as possible, and if she refuses. Eric, I think Meg Ryan would be a better fit than, ehm, what was her name, that girl who stayed at your ce. Eh, Julia Roberts ?" Eric remembered Meg Ryan as another ''America''s sweetheart'', some of her movies, like Sleepless in Seattle, had left a deep impression on him, but now that he had met Julia and knowing how things had transpired in his past, he wouldn''t give that opportunity to anybody else. "Jeffrey, there''s a reason why I chose Julia Roberts, just trust me on this one. By the way, I want you to contact that agencys owner, Kapoor Sid, as soon as possible." Jeffrey took the data Eric was handing him, and said: "Eric, I know that Kapoor Sid is very capable, I heard that he handled several A-level projects two years ago, but he and Michael Ovitz had a fallout and he was driven out of the CAA. They hold considerable power in the entertainment industry, so it would be unwise to intentionally offend Michael Ovitz." Eric snorted coldly in his heart, they had snatched away Stuart Runkle so quickly, it left him with a bad aftertaste. While Michael Ovitz was now hailed by some media as Hollywoods most powerful man, Eric knew that the CAA could only act this way for about five to six more years, until the second part of the 1990s. Although they''d still have considerable weight after that, it wouldn''t be as grand as before. Right now he wasn''t much better than an insect in the eyes of the CAA, so they would probably not pay him too much mind anyways. True, they had contracted many superstars, but Eric could create more. "Just do it Jeffrey, we''re nothing to them, the CAA will probably be toozy to care." Jeffrey shrugged helplessly: "As you wish." Detaining Jeffrey for lunch, Eric was nning to go back to his study to keep writing Resident Evil when the living rooms phone suddenly rang. "Hello, you''ve reached the Williams'' residence ?" Eric picked it up, but made sure to put the microphone slightly farther away from his ear. Over the past few days, he had received several harassing phone calls, and a guy had almost made his eardrum bleed with his shouting. It was to the point that he was considering changing his number. The other side kept silent, and Eric was about to hang up thinking it was a prank, when he heard: "Hello, Eric." The familiar voice made him jump on the sofa in excitement: "Annie, hi, I-Ive been meaning to call you, what you saw that morning, it was just just a misunderstanding, I asked Drew and the girl told me that I was only really drunk and went straight to sleep, she was just messing around." "That.. it doesn''t matter to me, we''ve.. we''ve broken, up, haven''t we ?" Manhattan, in an apartment building in New York, while Aniston listened to Eric''s hurried exnation and his somewhat stuttering voice, she found herself slightly resenting his slow-mindedness. On her third day in New York, she didn''t know how, but Drew had found her contact information to exin everything that had happened. That hateful guy, so many days had passed, but not only did he note to find her, he hadn''t even called once. If she hadn''t had something important to tell him, Aniston would''ve never taken the initiative to call the bastard. If Eric knew what was on the girl''s mind, he would probably scream injustice. So much had happened since that day, he didn''t even dare go out anymore, what was he supposed to do ? _ _ _ _ Chapter 46 C Annies Call
? Chapter 47 Eric firmed his tone, "Annie, I''m not breaking up with you, can''t you just tell me your address so that I cane see you in New York for Christmas ?" "Don''t even think about it." Aniston replied. She couldn''t help but think: Even Drew Barrymore was able to find out where I am, but you can''t ? "Besides, don''t you don''t you have a new girlfriend ? The one that was photographeding out of your house." "You mean Julia ? She has good potential, I''m going to open an agency and I want to sign her." Annie shot a disapproving nce at the tabloid still spread on the table not far: "Do agencies have their talents sleep with their boss right away nowadays ? That shirt I''ve also worn that shirt, you bastard !" Eric hesitated for a few seconds, before whispering: "Im sorry, Annie, will you forgive me ? It won''t happen again." Hearing his feeble tone, Annie''s voice softened some: "Eric, I think the distance between us has just grown too big for us to get along. Every time I''ll see you, I''ll be hit by a sense of insecurity." "Annie, I just bought a vi in Beverly hills.." "I''m not talking about physical distance, Eric. Maybe it''s just my imagination but I feel like you''re as ethereal as a dimension traveler, and it makes me restless. Sometimes I can''t help but worry that you''ll just up and disappear." The two of them stayed silent for a while. "Eric, the reason I''m calling you today is to tell you that, this morning, I received an anonymous letter, the author said that he wanted to tell me things about you. The address of the meeting was in Central Park, it was a public ce so I felt there was no danger and went. The stranger asked about our rtionship, then he asked me. asked me about what had happened that morning. I stayed quiet, but I don''t know if it was to test me or if that fellow really saw something, he said that he was willing to appear in court and testify against you and Drew on my behalf. He said that you would have to give me a lot of money if I seeded. I refused." Eric listened quietly to Aniston''s story. Once she finished, Eric nodded and asked in understanding: "Annie, thank you for telling me this, now I''m pretty sure; you still love me, don''t you ?" "You.." Annie''s heart skipped a beat for a second, and then she started talking louder: "Do you even understand what kind of situation you''re in right now ?! Someone is trying to send you to jail, Eric ! I made some research and something simr happened to Roman Pnski, they found conclusive evidence of his rtionship with the girl and he was sentenced to imprisonment. He had to flee the United States, Eric !" "I know Annie, don''t worry, I will deal with this matter." Hanging up the phone, Eric sat on the sofa and quietly pondered for a while. Although Home Alone had pressured a lot of movies at the box office, it wouldn''t warrant this type of behavior. Granted, many people couldnt stand him, but the most they would do would be to discredit him for a few days through the media. Moreover, the Fox had made a fierce counter-attack, and after the discovery of other possibilities in the affair, things had quickly died down. Someone who hated him so much so as to wish him imprisonment, Eric could only think of one person: Blount Cohen. Because of the gambling agreement''s mess, Blount Cohen, who saw himself as lofty and above all, was forced to publicly apologize to a kid who could be his grandson. To him, it was certainly shameful, and if you coupled it with his small-minded personality, then he was the most likely suspect. However, God knows how fickle humans were, it was also possible that someone else had somehow developed a dislike towards him and had thought of this n to harm him; he couldn''t rule out the possibility. Although he didn''t think too much of it, Eric still gave Edward Lewis a phone call, and half an hourter, thewyer was at his house. Eric recounted what Aniston had told him. The two discussed for a long time, and Edward Lewis, who was doing the recording, unavoidably had to inquire about the affair in detail. After a while, thewyer closed his notepad and solemnly asked: "Eric, I want to check with you onest time, are you sure you didn''t have that kind of rtionship with Ms. Barrymore that day ? I need to know everything, because if you don''t tell me the truth. the opponents are likely to sweep us by surprise." Eric carefully thought back for a moment to the situation at that time, and said with certainty: "I''m absolutely sure, although we woke up in bed together, the sheets were clean, there was absolutely no trace at all, and even Drew admitted that nothing happened when I confronted her about it." "Then there''s no problem. Eric, rest assured, I''ll go back immediately to deal with this, you have nothing to worry about. Although the fact that the public opinion is still slightly against you remains, without evidence, even if someone were to falsely use you, their likelihood of sess would be near nil." Eric eventually calmed down and bid farewell to Edward Lewis when he suddenly remembered that, since the incident a few days ago, although Drew hadn''t visited him, she had called a few times. However, for these past two days, he hadn''t heard a single peep out of her. After giving several continuous call to her home to no avail, Eric started feeling anxious. He wasn''t worried about Drew teaming up with people to frame him, but it was hard to say the same about her greedy mother. Los Angeles, on the second floor of an apartment in Culver City, Drew was locked in her bedroom, watching the television and listening to the incessant ringing of the phone in the living room. Although he had never taken the initiative to contact her before, she was somehow sure that the one calling was Eric. These days, Ildiko Jaid, who usually couldn''t care less about her, had suddenly be a good and responsible mother. Using the excuse of the mediatic storm to ground Drew, even phone calls weren''t allowed. The teenager had obviously argued against it, so the two of them quarrel and came to blows. In the end, Drew with her small arms and legs couldn''t hold a candle to Ildiko Jaid and was locked in her room. Moreover, Drew knew that her mother was plotting something with someone as she had overheard her whispering on the phone for a long timest night. No matter when, even when she was sweet talking her lovers, Ildiko Jaid had never bothered to lower her voice before. "That woman is definitely up to no good." Drew turned off the TV and paced back-and-forth in her room as she muttered to herself. She looked at the time and realized her mother would be home soon; she felt she couldn''t wait anymore. She went to her closet and tied a few bed sheets together until it reached a length of 34m, before tying one end to the legs of her bed. Then, she opened her window and carefully climbed down the rope. When she was about tond, one of the knots got loose and Drew fell when she was a meter above ground. She groaned a bit at the abrupt pain but didn''t have time to care about her bruised knee. She hobbled out of the yard, hailed a cab and made her way towards Eric''s.
? Chapter 48 The taxi stopped in front of Eric''s mansion, and Drew paid the bill. The ck driver who looked a little like Michael Jordan noticed her injured knee and couldn''t help but ask: "Miss Barrymore, do you need help ?" Drew shook her head: "No, thanks." Having limped towards the door, she rang the doorbell. The ck driver couldn''t help but look at the high walls. Thanks to the recent tabloids mania and noticing the paparazzi in their parked cars, he soon realized that this was Eric Williams'' newly acquired mansion. It didn''t really matter to him though as he was only a cab driver, he only shrugged, started his car, and left. "Yes ?" Hearing the familiar voiceing out of the inte, the absurd pain in her knee hit her and Drew felt like crying. It was only in front of Eric that she would show this side of her, because she knew he was the only one who cared. "Eric, It''s me." Drew said. "Drew, wait, Ill be right there." After a while, the door opened and Eric saw a distressed Drew hastilye in. He shut the door and assessed her before asking in concern: "Drew, how did you hurt your leg ?" The girl said in aggrieved tone: "That crazy woman locked me in my room, I didn''t have a choice but to escape from the second floor, so I tied some bed sheets together, and when I was climbing down, one of the knots got loose." Eric felt he really couldn''t understand Drew''s mother, what a silly woman. He squatted to check the girl''s knee and found out that it was a little bruised and scraped on the surface of the skin: "Let''s go in, I''ll handle it." Drew held onto his sleeve and they walked two steps before Eric turned his head to look at the girl limping next to him. He sighed, bent his back, hugged her and walked towards the house. On the living room sofa, Eric got a first aid kit and started to clean Drew''s wound as he spoke: "Don''t do this next time, it was really dangerous, it''s fortunate that you only got yourself a minor injury. And about your mother." Eric suddenly halted his words, he really didn''t know how to evaluate the woman, so he said: "It won''t always be that way." Drew outstretched her white leg and allowed Eric to take care of her knee. After a while, she suddenly asked: "Eric, did something happen ?" Eric who was about to bandage her, froze and said: "Do you know something ?" Drew nodded her head: "I feel something is off these days, that woman is secretly getting phone calls and she also locked me in. When I made the headlines for my drug and alcohol addiction, she didn''t even bat an eyelid." Eric knotted the bandage on Drew''s knee and put the rest of the gauze and the alcohol back into the first aid kit. He said: "About that, I don''t know whether I should tell you or not." Drew didn''t speak but looked uneasily at Eric, quietly waiting for him to go on. She understood that the matter was somehow rted to her. "At noon, Annie called me from New York and said that someone wanted her to testify. To testify that you and I had a sexual intercourse." Drew was really smart, and with only that single sentence, she quickly figured out the whole matter. She stood up, her face contorted in sorrow and anger as her voice shook: "Yeah it''s definitely her, she''s been so sneaky these days, locked me up and told me it was for my own good. She sounded like she was better than me, I''m so done with this, I want to sever my rtionship with this bitch." "Drew, don''t." Eric''s Asian roots couldn''t take it and he quickly stopped the girl from spouting out more vicious words, "Lass, no matter what, she''s your mother, you can''t say that. She might not be exemry, but she''s still your mother." Noticing Eric''s admonishing stance, Drew knew that if she kept going, he would certainly be angry. Although it had be a normal thing to her as she quarreled a lot with Ildiko Jaid at home, since Eric said it was wrong, then it was definitely wrong. "Im sorry, Eric." The girl weakly apologized. "Alright, Drew." Eric gently took the girl in his embrace and hugged her: "There has got to be people behind her pulling the strings, otherwise your mother probably wouldn''t do this. After all, she wouldn''t benefit much from me being sent to jail." "Im sorry, Eric, she.. she probably did it for the money, she has already squandered the paycheck I got from 17 Again. How can I help you ?" "You don''t have to apologize, Drew, it has nothing to do with you and Ive already asked Edward to handle the matter. You''re still young, you don''t need to worry about these things." The two of them talked for awhile, and when Eric took a peek outside, the sun was about to set. "You rx, I''ll go make dinner. Is there something you''d like to eat ?" "Pizza, steak, pasta.." Drew enumerated a bunch of dishes. She was still listing them when Eric flicked her forehead: "Do you think I can make all these ? Let''s order takeout then. But you, always eating junk food, aren''t you afraid of bing a little chubby girl ?" "Nope, why, won''t you like me then ?" Drew pouted. Eric had just picked up the phone, that the doorbell rang. He handed it over to Drew and said: "You order, I''ll go." Drew took over the phone, opened the directory on the table and looked for a decent restaurant. Eric walked in front of the door and inquired about the person''s identity in the inte: "Mr. Williams, I''m from the Los Angeles Police Department." He opened the door and was faced with a fat man in a police uniform and a thirty-year-old woman. Just looking at thetter''s appearance, Eric instantly knew who she was; after all, she really looked like Drew. The police officer was really reluctant to face the young man in front of him. Although thed''s current reputation wasn''t that good, his identity was nothing to be trifled with, and the police officer really didn''t want to get on his bad side. However, he had no choice but to do this, otherwise the woman next to him would definitely make a fuss. "Hello, Mr. Williams, Im Matt Bryson." The fat police officer shook hands with Eric, then said, a little embarrassed: "Ms. Barrymore ims that you kidnapped her daughter." Eric frowned, and sharply eyed Jaid. When the woman saw the youth look at her, she slightly raised her chin and tried to appear more dignified. However, faced with Eric''s oppressive bearing, her eyes wavered, it was obvious at a nce that even she wasn''t sure if her daughter was here. "Drew is indeed here with me, however I did not abduct her, she came over by herself. Ms. Barrymore, I think we need to have talk." Once Eric admitted to her daughter being there, Jaid''s momentum immediately surged: "There is nothing to talk about, have my daughtere out, I''m bringing her back, you hateful rapist !" Eric scowled as he coldly said: "Please watch your words ! Right now there is a police officer standing as witness, I can rightfully sue you for defamation." "You." Ildiko Jaid drew back a little, she turned her anxious sights towards the police officer. Before she could say anything, Eric took the lead: "Mr. Bryson, sorry to have troubled you, things are not as serious as thisdy has been iming. Drew and I are friends, and she came to my house this afternoon to hang out, it''s a verymon thing, is it not ? Ms. Barrymore''s reaction was simply over the top, and nothing else. You can take your leave, we will privately settle this." Matt Bryson also didn''t like having the woman around, so when he heard Eric, he took the opportunity to back down without losing face: "Then so be it. Mr. Williams, maam, farewell." "Mr. Bryson, you can''t just go like this, he." Idilko Jaid apparently didn''t want to face Eric alone, she stepped forward and clung to Matt Bryson. The police officer thwarted the woman''s hands and said: "Ma''am, things have already been made clear, your daughter came to Mr. Williams'' house to y, and if you keep behaving like this, I will sue you for obstructing official business !" Looking at Matt Bryson driving his police car away, Ildiko Jaid, who had been deprived of her only backer, suddenly lost her confidence. While Eric was still young, whether it was social status, wealth or backing he didn''tck any. Although Jaid''s daughter was a child star, she herself could barely be considered a middle-ss woman, and even if you included her experience as a small-time actress, facing the prodigy in front of her, she found herself severelycking.
? Chapter 49 "Come with me." Eric inly said to Ildiko Jaid as he shut the door and walked straight inside the mansion. Jaid hastily followed behind Eric, her eyes darting all over the ce. When she saw the high-end modern-styled mansion, she couldn''t help but gasp in envy. Although Drew was quite popr, she was still young and didn''t have that many roles offer. After starring in E.T, she had only yed in four or five movies and the pay she got wasn''t high, it honestly wasn''t enough for Ildiko Jaid to splurge contentedly, let alone for her to buy such a luxurious estate. To top it all, Drew''s self-awareness had grown a lot this year, and their mutual rtionship was also getting worse. Jaid knew that at this rate, it would be difficult for her to scrounge off of her daughter in the future, so when she was tempted into prosecuting Eric, she had only considered it for a moment before agreeing. Someone promised her that just by signing the prosecution file as Drew''s guardian she could get a lot of money, and she didn''t even need to appear in person as everything would be handled by the attorneys. To someone as greedy as Jaid, this was equivalent to a pie falling from the sky, how could she possibly refuse ? In the living room, Drew was sitting on the sofa, and when she heard the sound of someoneing in, she turned around. The moment she saw her mother, the blossoming smile on her face melted like snow under the sun. The girl''s expression underwent various changes, and she finally couldn''t suppress her rage as she stood up, grabbed a pillow and readily threw it at Jaid while screaming: "What are you doing here ?" Noticing the pillow flying over, Eric deftly intercepted it. He stared at the girl and said: "Drew, behave." Although Ildiko Jaid didn''t dare be arrogant in front of Eric, she didn''t have any scruples when it came to her daughter. She shouted: "You little wench, you even dare to throw things at me now ! What do you mean what am I doing here, I''m your mother, of course I came to take you home." "Well that''s ironic." Drew snickered, she pointed at Jaid, "I had so many nights out, one time I was so drunk I was picked up by the cops on the roadside and sent home, where were you then ? Now you''re actually iming to be my mother ? Ha, what a joke." Ildiko Jaid retorted: "That''s because you never listen, if you obediently stayed home, would these kind of things happen ?! Also, what''s up with all those bed sheets you ruined, do you think money grows on trees ?! That won''t do,e with me, we''re going home, we''ll talk then." Ildiko Jaid stepped forward, she was going to fetch Drew back. When Eric heard her, his forehead couldn''t help but crease. Drew''s knee was bandaged, it was obvious that she was injured, yet this woman was actually more preupied about a few sheets. He couldn''t help but feel disgusted. Drew who was still near the sofa, dodged her mothers reaching hand and shouted: "Don''t even think about it, I''m not going back with you, I already know what you''re up to and I''ve told everything to Eric ! For money you would actually go so far as to falsely use him, I''ll never forgive you, I want to sever our rtionship." "You.. What nonsense !" At the girl''s sudden outburst, Ildiko Jaid froze. She guiltily looked at Eric, at a loss of what to do for a moment. Seeing her mother so shocked, Drew sneered: "What''s wrong, bull''s eye, huh ? Leaving aside the fact that Eric and I have never had this kind of rtionship, even if we did, as long as I don''t acknowledge it, so what ? I dare you to try and falsely use Eric, then I''ll dly testify against you and see you off to jail." Noticing the girl wasn''t pulling her punches and had even apparently more to spare, Eric hastily stopped her in a timely manner. "Alright, enough. Drew you go upstairs, I need to talk with your mother alone." Drew stared at Ildiko Jaid, then she coldly snorted and left. "Sit down, lets talk." Eric put back the pillow on the sofa and sat down. Ildiko Jaid''s was slightly down as she sat opposite Eric. The words her daughter had said kept reying in her head and she suddenly realized that the money wouldn''t be so easy to get. She had originally thought that the rtionship between Drew and Eric was the same as the one her daughter had with those previous scoundrels. She thought that, as long as she could persuade Drew and entice her with money, the girl would agree to testify against Eric. But after Drew''s intense re up just now, Ildiko Jaid realized that her daughter had fallen helplessly in love with the man in front of her. The mother and daughter had quarreled a lot in the past, but Drew had never brought out something as radical as wanting the severing of their rtionship. More importantly, even if she had prosecuted Eric and eventually lost thewsuit, Ildiko Jaid felt she wouldn''t be suffering any losses. But now, Drew had actually stated that she would testify against her, and with the youth''s wealth and status, would he let her go so easily ? Think of this, Jaid couldn''t help but shudder. Eyeying the woman who seemed to be struggling internally, Eric''s lips curved into a sneer. He asked: "Well, you heard Drew, so what are you gonna do ?" Jaid stayed silent. "Perhaps the other party has given you money to do this, but I am no pushover. As Drew said, what you are nning on doing is nothing short of false usation, and I can sue you for it. Once you''re in jail, those who instigated you to do this, I guarantee they won''t lift a single finger for you. The next thing that happens is Drew growing up and, out of hatred, severing your mother-daughter rtionship. Do you know whates after that ?" Opposite him, Jaid subconsciously nodded, then she hastily shook her head. Eric continued: "Whates after that is you losing your most important source of ie. You''re then likely to spend the rest of your life in poverty, you might even end up in the slums of L.A." Thinking of that horrible possibility, Jaid was emboldened enough to retort: "No, impossible, she wouldn''t do that to me, I raised her !" "So what, you''ve lived off of her for so many years, Drew doesn''t owe you anything. Even if you tried to appeal to the media with your story, no one would sympathize with you." Having said this, Eric let the woman ponder on his words for a moment before asking: "Did those people pay you yet ?" Ildiko Jaid feebly shook her head: "They said that they would give the money to me once I signed the papers." Eric nodded with satisfaction: "That''s good, it means it''s still not toote now, so I''ll give you another option. Go back and reject those people, I will give you money instead, but you have to promise not to interfere with Drew''s life anymore. I will assign her a manager who will take care of her daily life, and once Drew has reached adulthood, I will convince her to pay you a yearly alimony, enough for you to live a decent middle-ss life." Eric finished, took out his checkbook, filled a check in and pushed it in front of the woman. Ildiko Jaid nced at the sum inscribed on it, and her eyes shed. She slightly stretched her hand, but quickly drew back, as she greedily stated: "Mr. Williams, one million dors, is it not too little ?" Eric snorted coldly: "You''re right, maybe I should change it to half a million." Ildiko Jaid hastily grabbed the check and hugged it as if her life depended on it. "Well, since youve made your choice, then I have a few things to say. First of all, you can''t make money using Drew''s name anymore, that includes disclosing her private life to reporters, appearing on TV stations or writing a book about her. I''ll have mywyer draw up a private contract and enforce it, once you break our agreement, then everything I have mentioned today no longer stands, and you''ll have to spit out as much money as you got." Jaid weighed the pros and cons, and realizing Eric''s deal would bring her more benefits, she quickly nodded. "Very well, Ms. Barrymore, you can take your leave, I''ll have thewyers prepare the contract as soon as possible." Ildiko Jaid chatted with Eric for a bit, then left, no longer caring about Drew as she hurried away. Once the woman was out, Drew went back downstairs. Her face was flushed with excitement as she rushed towards Eric and rubbed her petite body against his: "One million, Eric you''re so generous, this one is yours now." Eric rubbed Drew''s head and smiled: "What do you mean ''you''re mine'', girl you''re not a doll. By the way, you owe me one million dors, you''ll have to pay me back in the future." Drew shamelessly said: "No way, I''ll take responsibility, I''ll repay you with my body Ouch !" Eric flicked her forehead: "Stop talking nonsense, did you order the food yet ?" "Yup, I did." Drew said. "Eric, why did you tell her that I''ll give her money every year in the future. I don''t want to support her, I''d rather she became dead poor." Eric sighed as he rubbed the little girl''s head. Drew was still only a child after all, it was inevitable for her thoughts to grow extreme, she still had a lot to learn. His past''s Drew had even given alimony to the father that had abandoned her, so he reckoned things would probably not be that much different this time around. "You''ll understand in the future Drew.. There''s such a thing as fate, and people are just unable to extricate themselves from it." Drew seemed to understand as she nodded, but soon changed the subject: "So Eric, can I live in your house ?" Eric shook his head: "You should go back to studying, Im going to send you to a good boarding school, how long has it been since you''ve attended a ss ?" "Ah, Eric, don''t ! I get a headache every time I see a book, can''t I just keep making movies ?" "No." Eric categorically refused and said: "Like it or not, you at least have to finish high school, this can also be counted as gaining experience. Besides, you''re still young, there''s not that many movies for you to star in." "Alright, I''ll listen to you." Drew obediently agreed to Eric''s arrangements, while already calcting ways to do what she loved most: skip ss.
? Chapter 50 The takeout arrived quickly, and once the two people finished eating, night hadpletely fallen. After watching TV on the couch for a while, Eric led Drew upstairs to prepare her bedroom. "Eric, I want to sleep with you." Drew pouted as she took the quilt that Eric had just fetched from inside a closet. The man took out a pillow and dusted it off as he casually said: "Stop that, Drew. Do you want me to get in trouble ?" "But this is your home, seriously, who will know ?" "You''re quick to forget, huh. If it weren''t for this warped logic of yours, that incident a few days ago wouldn''t have happened. Alright,e with me." Drew reluctantly followed behind Eric to a spare bedroom. "The bathroom is right here Ah right, I forgot, you can''t wash because of your knee, well whatever, go to bed early then." Being the long-winded elder that he was, he spent some time nagging her before getting out of her bedroom and going to his study. After writing a few pages of Resident Evil, Eric stretched, opened a drawer and pulled out a pack of cigarettes before going the balcony and gazing over the brightly-lit Los Angeles. He sat down on a recliner, and lit a cigarette as he leaned back and somehow recalled his conversation with Annie on the phone; did he really give off the feeling of being ethereal ? He heard a subtle sound behind him and turned around to look. Because he didn''t have any pajamas to give her, Drew was wearing a loose T-shirt, and right now thess was tiptoeing quietly, walking over like a cat. Realizing she had been found out, she cutely stuck her tongue out. "I can''t sleep." The recliner was quite spacious, so Drew gently pushed Eric to one side andid next to him with her head on his arm. Snatching the cigarette from Eric''s hand, she skillfully took a puff before slightly knitting her eyebrows and handing it back to him. "Too strong for you, huh ?" Eric knocked the ash off the cigarette and smiled as he asked. "Yeah." Drew replied. "In the future, don''t touch those things." Eric said as he patted her head. "Um." Nights in L.A were very cold in this season, Eric himself was fine, however Drew was only wearing a T-shirt and her legs werepletely bare. He took two more puffs before stubbing out the cigarette and throwing it in the trash. Then he picked up a nket he had put aside before, and covered both of their bodies up. "Eric, what are you thinking about ?" Drew tilted her head and curiously asked. Eric carefullyid the nket on the girl before whispering: "I was thinking about Annie, I wonder where she is in New York now ?" "Actually." Drew hesitated a moment, and said: "I know." "Huh ?" "I promised you, remember ? That I would rify things with Aniston, so I inquired about her whereabouts to some people I know and got her contact information. She lives in Manhattan, I don''t remember the specific address, but I''ll write it on paper for you and give it to you tomorrow." Eric smiled: "You''re willing to do that ?" "I want you to be happy." "What a good girl." Drew decided to strike while the iron was hot: "That warrants a reward, right ? How about a kiss ??" Eric softly kissed her on the cheek, and Drew squinted her eyes in satisfaction before licking his cheek in a giggle. "Eric, sing me a song, yeah ?" The youth didn''t refuse, and patting the girl''s head, he opened: "Soft kitty, warm kitty, little ball of fur." [1] "Hey not a kid''s song" Drew smiled as she looked at Eric and suddenly remembered something. She drilled out of the nket and walked inside the house. After awhile, she came back holding an acoustic guitar. "This was hanging on my bedroom wall. Eric, do you y the guitar ?" Eric took the instrument, and fiddled with it for a bit before casually saying: "No, this is something the former owner left behind." "Try it, I want to hear you y." Drew said as she squeezed back under the nket. Eric sat up with the guitar on his thigh, he tweaked it a few times and gazed at the illuminated city in front of him before gently opening: " I saw your weeping eyes reflected in the window of a Boeing 727 You looked down at the city Saw it slowly growing tiny As the sunset turned hell''s kitchen into heaven You turned your face to me and I tucked your hair behind your ears Said nothing can go wrong So long as we are together So long as we are So long. " [2] He had already forgotten his guitar skills from his University days, Eric was just strumming along with the flow as his slightly hoarse voice traveled through the night breeze, packed with emotions. Drew quietly reveled in the sound of his voice for a while, then said: "Eric, we''ll always be together, right ?" Putting the guitar aside, Ericid back down again. He recalled what Annie had told him earlier today and how he hadnded in this era after a drunken night. "Who knows, one day you might wake up to find me dead." Drew pulled Eric''s arm as a pillow and gently rubbed her head on it: "If you die, Ill die with you." Ericughed: "Well thats romantic. ording to Western conventions, we might just be immortalized in a poignant love story titled "Eric and Drew", then be adapted to a y and performed in theaters years after years. In the Orient, our love might be pictured as a brave and unyielding one between a man and a woman, who ended up as a pair of butterfly, flying together for eternity. Housewives will shed tears at our mention, and old-fashion parents will chide their rebellious children borrowing our momentum: If you keep being naughty, careful you don''t turn into a butterfly !" "Ha ha." Drew chuckled and said: "Eric, now that you''ve said that, I can''t help but feel like killing you andmit suicide like in those tragedies, then we''ll be together forever." Eric flicked her forehead and said: "What the, that''s not romantic at all, that''s the kind of story that will end up as a bizarre murder case on some random detective''s desk." Drew pouted as she rubbed her forehead and protested as usual. The two people stayed silent for awhile, before the girl went on again. "Eric, what''s your dream ?" "Why are you asking ?" "Just because, I''m curious." Eric sat up and said: "I don''t like using ''dream'', I feel there''s no end to dreams, so I prefer to use ''ideals'', it sounds better." "And so, what''s your ideal ?" "My ideal, huh" Eric thought for a moment, before roguishly saying: "To drown in female celebrities, create a group of child stars and be a legend of the movie circle ?" Drew knocked Eric''s arm with the back of her head, smiled and said: "This guy !" "Alright, it''ste, go to sleep." "Ah, can''t I sleep here ?" "You''ll catch a cold." "Then you bring me back." Drew circled her arms around Eric''s neck like a spoiled kid. Eric reluctantly stood up, reached out and held Drew. He had just straightened up that he instantly sank down and groaned: "Ah, so heavy, I can''t do this." "Hateful guy." Drew was first taken aback but then smiled tenderly at the man, firmly grabbing his neck and refusing to let go. Eric had no choice but to carry the girl back to her bedroom. _ _ _ _ [1] Originally a children''s song called "Warm Kitty", poprized by The Big Bang Theoryter on. [2] So Long (As We Are Together) , by Tim Minchin.
? Chapter 51 "What, the woman rejected us ? Didn''t you tell me before that this was settled ?" In a vi in Malibu, Blount Cohen had just gotten up that his assistant hade in a hurry, bringing bad news. "Mr. Cohen, it had been settled in the beginning, butst night when we contacted her, the woman suddenly changed her mind." His day had barely begun that his mood was already down the dumps, Blount Cohen frowned: "If she thinks the money isn''t enough, can''t you just add more ?" His assistant shook his head and said: "No, I thought so too and tried to incite her, but she bluntly refused. I think she might havee to a private agreement with Eric Williams." The man handed a newspaper to Blount Cohen, and when thetter looked at it, he saw a picture of Drew Barrymore and her mother appearing at the door of Eric''s mansion. Blount Cohen didn''t read the content, it was probably just some paparazzi nonsense anyway. He threw the newspaper on the table, thought for a moment, and said: "Is there anyway for the woman to know that we were behind this ?" If Drew''s mother and Eric had reallye to an agreement, then the woman was likely to disclose all the information she had about the person who instigated her. Although Blount Cohen was petty and narrow-minded, he had learned the hard way that Eric Williams was not someone to belittle, who knew when thed would create another storm. Cohen would not make the same mistake and treat Eric as an ordinary young man. His assistant quickly shook his head: "Of course not, Mr. Cohen, I''ve never had any direct contact with her, nobody will know it was our doing." "That''s good." Blount Cohen was somewhat unwilling, he hesitated a moment before saying: "Let''s temporarily leave it at that." The assistant fawningly suggested: "Actually, Mr. Cohen, we could use another method, we don''t necessarily have to go through Drew Barrymore''s mother." Blount Cohen waved his hand: "I said we''ll temporarily leave it at that." Noticing his boss'' unhappy look, the assistant readily shut his mouth. If it was in the past, Blount Cohen would certainly not let the matter go, Eric had humiliated him big time, and if he didn''t take revenge, then he''d probably blow up from the pent-up anger. But now he had more important problems at hands. After Japans Sony consortium had acquired CBS Records, they started frequently contacting the Coca-C board in an attempt to snatch away Columbia Pictures from the Samsung Group. As a result of the mediatic storm from before, Blount Cohen had used all he could to barely stabilize his position. So long as Columbia stayed in the hands of The Coca-C group, he just had to make use of his many years of connections and might just be able to keep his current position for a few more years, or better even, until his retirement. But if Columbia was acquired by the Japanese, he, whom they didn''t know from Adam, was certain to get sacked. So Blount Cohen had his hands currently full gathering opposing forces into a united front and thinking up varieties of ways to prevent the Coca-Cs board from selling. He even had to put Home Alone, this taboo card, on the table. After all, although Columbia had lost a lot thanks to the gambling agreement, Home Alone was nheless the only movie from the past few years that Columbia had to show in means of outstanding performance. Blount Cohen rubbed his temples, looked up and said: "Right, I''m having lunch with Mr. Trevor from the Coca-C''s board of directors, I recall he likes Latin beauties, so arrange for several Latin actresses to apany us, remember, they must be beautiful." This type of thing had already be amon urrence to the assistant, he quickly nodded: "Don''t worry Mr. Cohen, I''ll make sure of it." "Eric, howe you''re sote ? Kapoor Sid has been waiting for half an hour." Once the youth arrived, Jeffrey Hanson startedining. Eric apologized: "I''m sorry, Jeffrey, I encountered a traffic jam on my way." "Whatever, let''s hurry and go in." Because Firefly''s office was still undergoing renovations, Eric had instead chosen to meet Kapoor Sid in a coffee shop in order to discuss the buyout of thetter''s agency. Kapoor Sid was a forty-year-old bald white man who sported a beard, and he was as tall as Caucasians, around one meter ny. Eric came forward and held out his hand to the man, "I apologize for beingte, Mr. Sid." Kapoor Sid didn''t show any displeasure, even if he wasn''t thrilled at the youth''s tardiness, he still smiled and said: "Hello, do you mind if I call you Eric ?" "Of course not Kapoor, please sit." Eric also conveniently changed his way of address. "Eric, Im already aware of your many aplishments, from the publication of Jurassic Park, selling your 17 Again script, and directing Home Alone to your gambling agreement with Columbia. Each one of your move was done meticulously, which I reckon makes you a smart and sensible individual, so I can''t help but wonder, why exactly did you im that you would only buy my firm if I were to stay ? I was going to sell and continue to develop in Europe when Jeffrey told me about your condition, but you should already know about my situation, after getting into a headlock with Michael Ovitz, my position in this industry is downright shaky." Eric bluntly said: "Because Im not afraid of the CAA. Perhaps other moviepanies will bow their heads to them, but I won''t. They''ve contracted stars ? I can create them. All I need is a capable person to handle the rest, someone like you." Kapoor listened to the young man, then shook his head and smiled: "Eric, you''re really confident." "If I wasn''t, I wouldn''t be where I am today." Remembering the masterstroke that was the gambling agreement, Kapoor reluctantly nodded. He added: "Eric, turning someone into a superstar isn''t easy, I worked at the CAA for many years, and I can tell you that there''s a professional team working in the shadows of every single Hollywood star." Eric interrupted Kapoor''s speech and asked: "Would you say Stuart Runkle now counts as one ?" Kapoor apparently knew about Home Alone''s protagonist, he said: "Of course, he could be said to be Hollywoods current top child star." "So," Eric continued, "If Iter shoot movies as popr as Home Alone with the actors I''ll have attributed to you, you''re confident you''ll be able to manage them ?" "Without a problem, but Eric, this assumption of yours is meaningless, Home Alone''s sess ispletely attributed to luck, it''s not something one can just replicate." "If you don''t try, how will you know ?" Eric said as he put his hands on the table and crossed his fingers. He asked, a little puzzled: "Kapoor, why is it that you, as a seller who should be doing anything to convince me to buy, seems to be trying to prevent the sale ?" Kapoor shrugged: "Eric, Im an agent, not a profiteer. I''m just being honest with you, all I want is to sell my agency and convince the buyer to let the current employees keep their jobs; I never intended to stay." "When you work as an agent, do you also negotiate with moviepanies so honestly ?" Kapoor quickly shook his head: "Of course not, I would have given my all for the greater good of my employer, but these are two different things, Eric." "Then there''s no problem. Kapoor, I''ll only buy your agency on the condition that you stay. If you don''t, buying bes meaningless to me." "It seems I have no choice ?" Eric firmly nodded. Kapoor sipped on his coffee and thought for a moment, and in the end, he agreed. What changed his mind was expectation; the hope that the prodigy in front of him would keep on creating more miracles. _ _ _ _ I used the terms ''brokerage firm'' and ''broker'' a lot before, but I''ll be changing them to ''agency'' and ''agent'' from now on.
? Chapter 52 Kapoor Sid gave his consent, and the two men began discussing the agency''s future. In Eric''s opinion, the only valuable person in the Sid Agency was Kapoor Sid himself. Although Kapoor wasn''t one of the CAA''s founding team of five, his ability certainly didn''t fall short. In the firm, about seven to eight agents remained, as well as twenty mediocre actors with basically no value. Well, at least that was the case until Eric acquired the ce. Sid Agency had never handled any first-ss celebrity, but because of Michael Ovitzs influence, even the several well-known actors who had been here for awhile, had no choice but to leave. Those who had stayed did so for two reasons; first, they had no alternative, and second, Kapoor was a very capable person. "Eric, a million dors, I find it hard to ept." Kapoor expressed his dissatisfaction at Eric''s offer. When he was still in the CAA, he''s annual ie alone was more than that. Eric calmly said: "Kapoor, your agency has only around twenty contracted actors, not to mention that mediocre talents like them are a dime a dozen, I could find as many as I''d like by just walking down the streets if I wanted to." Kapoor retorted: "Eric, they are all very good actors, I''ve been an agent for many years, and my eyes have never deceived me, they simplyck an opportunity." "All Hollywood aspiring actors are struggling because theyck opportunities, Kapoor. Just count that million dor as my gift to you, my real offer is a 10% share of the agency, I believe that in a few years you''ll find yourself having struck the greatest deal of your life. As for those actors, I can bestow upon them the opportunities they dream of." Kapoor knew that what Eric said made sense, he sighed and nodded slightly. Since the matter had been settled, the ownership contract was transferred to Eric and put under his name. As they had also decided to modify its appetion, Eric unscrupulously changed it to "United Talent Agency". In his past, alongside the CAA and WMA, the UTA had been one of Hollywood''s top 5 agencies, and was founded in 1991. They busied themselves until noon, had lunch, and Eric then followed Kapoor Sid to the agency located in Burbank. The ce looked very shabby. The office was unexpectedly full of people, apparently they also knew that today was a special day. Eric saw all these agents and actors, and suddenly thought of something. He nodded at the crowd, then took Jeffrey and Kapoor into a separate office and asked: "Kapoor, how much of amission are we getting for each artists ?" "Six %." "So little ?" Eric was taken aback: "Shouldn''t it at least be 10% ?" Jeffrey interrupted: "Eric, that was in the past." Kapoor followed with an exnation: "In order to be able to stay afloat in front of the CAA, most of the agencies out there didn''t have a choice put to lower their demands, especially the small ones like us, asking for 10% would be ridiculous. The only ones who would ask for that kind or percentage are only the CAA and the WMA." Eric thought for a moment, and said: "Change it to 10% from now on." "Eric, isn''t it asking for too much ?" Kapoor stayed silent, and Jeffrey couldn''t help but opine. Eric exined: "If we don''t modify it now, once the agency gets momentum, it''ll be harder to do it. So. who''s gonna break it to them ?" Jeffrey and Kapoor looked at each other, then simultaneously turned towards Eric. "Sigh, alright, I''ll be the bad guy." "I won''t introduce myself as I''m sure you all know who I am. I have the pleasure to announce to you that I''m now officially this agency''s - whose name has been changed to United Talent Agency C new owner. I will start filming my next movie after the New Year, and as long as you seed during an audition, you will be given priority to the role. You''re all aware that, thanks to Home Alone, the originally nameless Stuart Runkle and Matthew Perry, have now be hot celebrities. Matthew used to only y in supporting roles on TV, but thanks to Home Alone, he was sessfully able to make his way to the big screen." Noticing the faces of the crowd glowing with undisguised joy, Eric thought he had eased them into it enough and changed the subject: "However, I am a capitalist, not a phnthropist. I''ll give you the opportunity that you''ve longed for, but you also need to know to give back. The artists'' contracts will be modified, and we will be asking for a 10%mission instead of the previous 6. If anyone finds that difficult to ept, you can choose to leave and terminate your contract." Eric finished and went back to the office. He believed that even if these people''s IQ wasn''t in the 99.9th percentile, they would still be able to make a rational decision. When he entered the room, Jeffrey and Kapoor were discussing the preparations for Pretty Woman. "Eric, Jeffrey said that you wanted to invite the actress Sophie Marceau, is it still the case ?" Kapoor asked. Eric nodded: "Yeah. Why, is there a problem ?" Kapoor said: "If you want to start filming by the New Year, I advise you to go to Europe. Since Jeffrey told me about the fact that you wanted to cast her, I started checking news about her, and she''s apparently scheduled to appear in Andrzej ?u?awski''s new movie. Even if you were to change your schedule by aligning with hers, I doubt that director will let her do it since it''ll probably tire the woman out." Eric recalled that, indeed, ording to his memories, Sophie must''ve just been about to shoot My Night Are More Beautiful Than Your Days. "Then we will go with Julia Roberts. Right, Kapoor, I hope you can personally be her agent." Jeffrey advised again: "Eric, you know you can''t afford to screw this movie up, many people are waiting for you to make a joke out of yourself, they still." "Jeffrey, I know what you''re getting at." Eric smiled and said: "You''ve seen the newspapers, right ? Right now my first two movies are still a hot topic, so even if the new one I shot was poop, we would still be able to earn money. As long as the quality is good, it would be difficult to fail even if we wanted to, so why not make use of this to endorse one of our own actresses ?" "What if that Julia Roberts'' acting is really bad ?" Eric''s lips curved into a smile that was not quite a smile, "Rest assured, I will personally teach her." Just like Eric anticipated, none of the actors chose to leave, instead all readily epting the new contract terms. Once he was done with everything, Eric was nning to drive home when Jeffrey got into the passenger''s seat: "I sent my car to maintenance, you mind giving me a ride ?" "No at all." On the road, Jeffrey asked with concern: "Eric, you and Drew.. in the end, what happened ? I think I saw in the newspaper today that she came to see you yesterday, and that her mother also swung by." Eric didn''t have anything to hide, and earnestly told Jeffrey about everything that had happened yesterday. "Alright, I admit Drew is a talented actress, but do you have to let her stay at your house ? You don''t have any blood rtionship with her, coupled with the media and public''s spections, even if Drew''s mother doesn''te to find trouble, those associations protecting children''s rights will definitely not let you off. Drew''s only thirteen after all." "Don''t worry, I know all that, I was nning on sending thess to a boarding school." "That''s good then." Jeffrey nodded, "Eric, you. you really don''t have any feelings towards that lolita*, right ?" Eric unconsciously stepped on the brake pedal, and almost hit the Chevrolet behind him, warranting him the cursing and swearing of the fat guy who was driving it. Startled, Eric looked at his friend: "Jeffrey, you think Drew resembles a lolita ?" That girl was obviously a goblin ! Ah, and one with at least five hundred years of practice at that. "Anyways, you should pay attention to propriety." Jeffrey seemed to have thoroughlybeled Eric as a lolicon. _ _ _ _ * lolita: a sexually precocious young girl.
? Chapter 53 Since the news that Drew had stayed overnight at Eric''s home broke, newspapers and tabloids'' sales directly shot up. Eric reckoned the number of paparazzi would probably also proportionally increase. The next day after he acquired the agency, articles had already started to pop up. One of the reporters from The Los Angeles Daily: "It is difficult to understand why Eric Williams has chosen to buyout Sid Agency. Kapoor Sid indeed possesses outstanding ability as an agent, however, thanks to his fallout with Michael Ovitz, he was evicted from the CAA and has been struggling in the industry ever since. Rumor has it that Kapoor Sid had initially intended to sell the agency and develop in Europe, however Eric Williams'' insisted on his staying. It seems that the young director''s sess has gotten to his head, and he probably still does not realize that going against the CAA was probably not the wisest choice to make." The Hollywood Reporter focused on the matter of Eric increasing themission: "Renamed as the "United Talent Agency", it has been reported to us that the first thing Eric Williams did once he took over, was to increase the iingmissions to 10%. It was also said that Eric Williams would give priority to his own agency''s actors and actresses whenever he''d shoot a movie. As long as his standard remains simr to 17 Again or Home Alone, let alone 10, even if he was to demand 20%, it would still be enough to make a lot of people join him in drove. However, this is only wishful thinking as making movies is like gambling, and one just cannot keep on winning. We believe Eric Williams might have some difficulty getting through this year unscathed." It was the same with other newspapers, they were all criticizing Eric''s move. Some had even tried to squeeze out everything of this hot topic, and issued an invitation to interview Michael Ovitz. What was even more surprising was that the CAA''s boss hadn''t declined, and although he hadn''t came forward himself, he had let his assistant disclose that he was very optimistic about Eric Williams'' potential, and hoped that their two sides would be able to cooperate. There was seemingly nothing wrong with this statement, however some of the media saw things differently; to them, it was simply a veiled warning to the young director: as long as Kapoor Sid stands on your side, the chance of us cooperating is slim. But of course, those were only conjectures. Then, it was announced that Eric''s next movie would be called Pretty Woman, and it didn''t take long for the resourceful paparazzi to find out that the director had extended an invitation to Richard Gere. This made the paps excited again as Richard Gere was a signed artist of the CAA. Under normal circumstances, the actor would probably ept Eric''s invitation without a second thought, however things were different now, and if the negotiations fell out, it was enough to confirm the paps'' previous spections. In the newly renovated Firefly Studios'' conference room, Horner Willie sat leisurely with a cup of coffee. He was one of the best CAA''s agents, and was also the one in charge of Richard Gere, which was the reason for his presence here. The conference room''s door was pushed open, and Eric came in dressed in a suit. He went over to the man and smiled as he extended his hand: "Im sorry to have kept you waiting, Mr. Willie." "Never mind." Horner Willie disdainfully stood up, shook hands with Eric, and proceeded to sit back down. Eric slightly frowned as he sat opposite Horner Willie, before he swept the conference room with his gaze in puzzlement. "Mr. Willy, I remember asking Mr. Gere toe, as the concerned party, why isn''t he here ?" Horner Willie shook his head and said: "Richard is busy with other things, he has given me carte nche to handle this matter." Although he already had an inkling as to where this was going, Eric still politely asked: "I sent a general outline of the script for Mr. Gere to read, I wonder what he thought of it ?" Horner Willie said: "Richard read your screeny and was very satisfied, Mr. Williams, it''s just that, the 500,000 $ paycheck that you are offering is hardly satisfying. You should know that, Richard starred in An Officer and a Gentleman, a movie that made a North American box office of more than 100 million $." Eric sneered in his heart, that self-righteous guy was taking him for a greenhorn. "Mr. Willie, I was still small when An Officer and a Gentleman came out Right, in which year was it released again ? I''d like to have a look at itter." "1982." Horner Willie blurted out, and noticing the unconcealed ridicule in Eric''s eyes, the man realized he had been yed. A Hollywood actor''s paycheck was mostly based on how much one of their movies made at the box office; the higher it was, the more they would get. However, it was calcted based on the box office and other factors of recent years. An Officer and a Gentleman had already been released seven years ago, so it basically had no worth as a reference now. Before issuing an invite to Richard Gere, Eric had made his research and was fully aware of the man''s current circumstances. Inst three years, the movies he starred in hadn''t made a single good box office, the only decent one was No Mercy, with a final grossing of only 12 million $. One of the movies he had recently done a cameo for had only made a final box office of 180,000 $. No, you didn''t read wrong, it was indeed a miserly 180,000 $. So Eric was being generous with his 500,000 $ offer. "Well, Mr. Willie, since you estimate that my offer is not enough, let''s hear what you have in mind." Horner Willie quicklyposed himself, he said: "Actually, Mr. Williams, your 500,000 $ offer isn''t something we can''t ept. My boss is a generous man, and as long as Kapoor Sid leaves the United States, he will not make it hard for him. It was originally meant to be this way, but with you interfering, it has put Mr.Ovitz in a difficult position, so." Eric sneered: "So the premise for our cooperation is ckmailing me to dismiss Kapoor, is it ? How ridiculous, he is forcing a man to leave the country and you still have the nerve to call him generous." "Mr. Williams." Horner Willie''s face turned cold: "Although you have made some achievements, in front of the immensity of the CAA, you''re simply akin to an ant. It would be wise of you to ept our offer and." "And if I don''t ?" "Then I''d like to remind you, Mr. Williams, that Stuart Runkle is one of our signed artists, and if you go against us, I''m afraid that you won''t be able to sessfully shoot Home Alone''s sequel." "It seems that the CAA has expanded so much that they''ve forgotten their purpose." Eric didn''t try to hide the sneer on his face, "Let me remind you that you''re a talent agency whose aim is to put the interest of its clients above everything. It''s the only way you can survive." Horner Willie snorted: "We do not need your reminder, Mr. Williams. We''ve always been doing so, and even though we couldn''t reach an agreement, we''ll get Richard to star in another movie aspensation. The CAA does notck high-quality film projects, you see." "I hope that after Pretty Woman is released, Mr. Richard Gere will still feel yourpensation was enough." Eric said in a meaningful tone, before standing up and saying: "Mr. Willie, there''s no need for further discussion. Go back and tell Mr. Ovitz, that although Hollywood does notck actors, as long as a CAA signed artist enters my sight, I will keep extending invitations, but will never ept any of your binding conditions. I hope at that time you will be wise enough to not refuse me." Horner Willie looked coldly at Eric and said: "I hope you won''t regret today''s decision." Then, without saying anything more, he picked up his documents and left straight away.
? Chapter 54 The conference room''s door was pushed open, and Jeffrey Hanson and Kapoor came in. Once they saw Eric''s gloomy face, they knew things had gone haywire. Kapoor was certain this was rted to him, otherwise there was no way Richard Gere would reject Eric''s offer. "Eric, it''s better if I quit after all. I can just go to Europe. Although, their movie industry is in recession, it won''t be hard for me to find a job with my abilities." Eric rubbed his somewhat stiff cheek, and said: "No, I will not make anypromises, just do what you''re supposed to do without minding the rest, Kapoor. Right, I wanted you to manage Julia, so what do you think of her ?" "I specifically went to see Ms. Roberts'' Mystic Pizza, and also met with her to talk for a short while, but to be honest with you Eric, I''m not optimistic about her potential. The girl has only had short-term performance training, and whether it be her acting or her appearance, they are both average." Kapoor''s tone was low and slow as he looked at Eric''s face from time to time. He knew that Julia was rmended by him, and judging by the tabloids'' gossips, the rtionship between the two couldn''t be ordinary. He was afraid that, if he was too blunt, the youth would be angered. However, once Kapoor finished, Eric nodded in agreement: "Right, I think so too." "Then why are you letting her star as a lead ?" Jeffrey asked, he had always wanted Eric to change her to a more famous actress. "Hm, should I say intuition ? That in the future Julia''s fame will blow up, that she''ll pile up awards and be famous throughout the world." Eric hadn''t even finished that Jeffrey and Kapoor looked ready to call the loony squad on him. Eric smiled: "Alright, just joking. For Pretty Woman, although the female lead needs to be beautiful, it can''t be at the level of destroying nations, and so Julia seems like the perfect fit to me. If the female lead is too much of a beauty, the audience will easily focus on her face and ignore the majority of the plot. In the future, when people watch the movie, they''ll only think about the ''pretty face'' that starred in it, and it will be counted as a failure." Jeffrey and Kapoor had already read the Pretty Woman''s script, and listening to Eric''s analysis, they couldn''t help but agree that the youth had a point. "Now, the most important thing is to cast a male lead." Eric looked at the two men before saying: "Although I really wanted Richard Gere, since the other party refused, we''ll have to choose someone else. Do you have any suggestions ?" "How about Michael Dous ?" Jeffrey took the lead and suggested: "He yed a stock market''s tycoon inst year''s Wall Street, the image he gave off then seems quite simr to the one Edward''s gives off in Pretty Woman." Eric was in the middle of reminiscing about Wall Street when he heard Kapoor softly caution: "Eric, Michael Dous is a signed artist of the CAA." The three of them stayed silent, before Eric said: "Kapoor, you are the professional here, so you do it. Sort a list of actors that would suit Edward''s image and set up auditions as soon as possible, our time is tight." Kapoor acquiesced: "No problem, if there''s nothing else, then I''ll get to it right away." At Eric''s nod, the man hurriedly left the conference room. ncing at the disappearing figure of Kapoor, Jeffrey softly sighed: "Eric, do you think this is worth it ?" "You mean about Kapoor and the CAA''s stuff ?" Jeffrey simply nodded. "It''s not about it being worth it or not, Jeffrey, I''m different from other people, you''ll understand in the future. Perhaps other moviepanies will fear giants like the CAA, but I won''t, I don''t need to." "I don''t understand where you get that self-confidence from." Jeffrey shook his head: "Right, Eric, you mentioned you wanted a sports car sponsorship for the movie, so I contacted the headquarters of Ferrari based in Los Angeles like you asked, and they were okay with providing us a free sports car until they learned that the film dealt with prostitution. Now they''re still hesitating but I suppose we should look for another brand, what do you think ?" "Let''s do that." While he liked Ferrari, if the other party didn''t want to grab on this promotional opportunity, he wouldn''t insist. Think back to Jeffrey''s words, Eric suddenly asked: "Jeffrey, you said that the other party had promised to provide us with a free sports car for the shooting ?" Jeffrey was confused for a moment, he carefully recalled what he had said for a moment and nodded his head. "What about the money ?" Jeffrey said: "Eric, with your fame, looking for a sports car brand who will provide a car for free is an easy thing to do, there''s no need to mention money." "I mean." Eric waved his right hand in a slightly annoyed manner: "You didn''t ask them for a fee ?" Jeffrey was startled and said: "How is that possible ?" Eric thought that this wasmon sense, but looking at Jeffrey''s reaction, it was clear that this type of advertising concept hadn''t been imnted yet. In his past, the industry of product cement had crossed the 20 billion $ a year scale. "Jeffrey, you think about it for a minute. ording to the script, the sports car appears a lot in the first twenty minutes, and even the female lead keeps describing its performance, which is equivalent to a two minutes car ad. If the movie gets a box office of 100 million $ in North America, it''s equivalent to 10 million people having seen the advertisement, then adding the number of people who will see it in theaters around the world, and when it''ll be released on tape, this number will keep on growing. Ten years or even twenty yearster, every time people will watch the movie, they''ll get to see the ''ad'' again. It''s even more efficient than straightforward advertising, you know ?" Jeffrey thoughtfully nodded. "Then get your head straight, and when you go seek sponsors again, keep in mind that the sponsorship fee can''t be under 1 million $." "Eric, one million is not a little sum, what if the movie''s box office turns out to be bad." Eric said: "That''s easy to solve, both parties agree to a box office figure, and if we can''t live up to it, we''ll return part of the fee." Jeffrey added: "What if the box office exceeds the agreed figure ?" Eric felt this old man was really too long-winded, he exasperatedly said: "Jeffrey, can''t you just deal with this as the producer ? I''m seriously busy, so can you please not add to my worries ?" At this time, an employee knocked on the office''s door: "Mr. Williams, the costume that was customized ording to your drawings has been sent over, would you like to take look at it yourself ?" "Yes, I''ll be right there, you get Julia to put it on first." Eric chatted some more with Jeffrey, then said: "Let''s go, let''s see how it will look on Julia." Getting out of the soundproofed conference room, they could hear the faint knocking sounds of the people who were still working on the renovations. They came inside a thirty square meters audition room, and Julia was already wearing the ssic Pretty Woman''s attire: white vest, blue skirt, ck boots and red coat. Eric looked at her then frowned: "Where''s the wig ? I remember specifically asking for it before." "It''s in the locker room, do I have to put it on now ?" Julia asked. Eric waved his hand: "Yeah, hurry up and change, we''ll take some pictures." Julia dutifully walked into the locker room, followed by an assistant named Alison that the agency was sensible enough to provide for her. Soon, Julia walked out again wearing, not only a blonde wig, but also a ck cap. She had just appeared in the audition room that everyone''s eyes opened wide. Under the effects of the wig, Julia''s transformation was startling; if it was said that she was usually a 6, right now, she was at least an 8. Eric still felt that something was missing, but he still told the photographer to start taking pictures. After it was done, he said: "You guys leave us for a bit, I need to talk to Julia." Several staff members as well as Jeffrey got up and left. Once everyone was out, Julia somewhat anxiously clutched the hem of her vest as she asked: "Eric, is there something you''d like to say ? You''ve been frowning for a while." Julia Roberts felt like what was happening to her these days was surreal. When she had slept with Eric and been coaxed by him, she had really been hopeful. Then, one week past without any further contact from him, and just when she couldn''t help butment at her stupidity and realize that Eric was no different from those other self-righteous guys, her phone suddenly rang. She had then hurried to the agency to sign a contract, and once she was done, Eric had thrown a script in front of her and dered: "The female lead role is yours, don''t let me down."
? Chapter 55 Eric didn''t answer, he just sat on the couch that was used as props, and stared at Julia for a while. "Julia, cross your arms over your chest with indifference." A few minutester, he finally spoke. Julia breathed a sigh of relief, Eric''s frown was too pressuring. ording to his demands, she posed with her arms crossed and fixed the ground with an indifferent expression. "Pace back and forth a little." Eric pointed to an open space with his finger, and Julia dutifully obeyed. "Alright, stop it." Eric morosely said. "Julia, did you earnestly study the script ?" Julia nodded: "Of course, I almost remember all the lines." "Right now you''re Vivian, and I want you to think of me as Edward. Remember, you''re a prostitute. Let''s give it another try, show me what you can do." Seeing Ericzily sitting there, coupled with the fact that he had driven everybody out, Julia suddenly recalled the ''sofa auditions'' rumors. She almost blurted out that she didn''t want to, but eventually ushered a quiet internal sigh, thinking this wasn''t the solution.. Taking off her red coat and putting it aside, Julia knelt down in front of Eric, then took a deep breath and unbuckled his belt. Eric raised an eyebrow and looked at her strangely as he felt something warm and his little friend reacted. Clearly, the girl had misunderstood his intentions. But it was so.fortable. Ten minutester, Eric let out a groan and rxed his body on the sofa, while Julia covered her mouth and made a run for the nearby bathroom. Eric took out some tissues to clean the mess up and buckled his belt. After a while, Julia came out from the bathroom, wiping her hands with a towel. She lifted her chin with reddened eyes and asked: "Are you happy now, Mr. Williams ?" "I sure am." Eric smiled yfully at the girl''s pitiful appearance, he said: "But, Julia, you obviously got something wrong, all I meant what for you to start acting, not to." When Julia heard him, her entire body froze. From beet red to pale white, her face experienced various shades of color, then she suddenly threw the towel she had in hands to Eric: "Why didn''t you stop me ?!" Ericughed as he dodged the projectile and said: "Hey I''m a healthy man, how could I stop you ?" "You bastard." said Julia in utter embarrassment, before powerlessly sitting down on the ground and burying her head in her arms to cry. Eric put away his smile and sighed, he walked towards the girl and squatted beside her. Patting her head, he said: "Julia, don''t cry, I was wrong." "You think I''m cheap, don''t you ?" Julia didn''t stop crying and started to choke on her sobs as she asked. "Of course not." Eric sat beside the girl and took her in his arms as heforted, "You justck confidence. You know that Jeffrey, Kapoor and the others aren''t optimistic about you, and it makes you anxious. Julia, you can be sure that I''ve thoroughly thought it out before giving you this role. There''s a lot of people out there waiting for my next movie to flunk, y''know." "Thank you, Eric." "Help me make a good movie, that''s the greatest thanks you can give me. Now let''s talk about your issue." The two of them stood up, and Julia fixed her make up a bit before sitting down opposite Eric. "Julia, I''ll tell you straight forwardly what your problem is; you are supposed to act a prostitute, but you can''t do it. Before she gets her makeover from Edward, Vivian''s every words, smiles, gestures are supposed to scream ''I''m a hooker!''. But, although that dress does make you more attractive, I can''t feel Vivian''s vibeing out of you. Honestly, the way I see it, you''re no different than when you were working as a waitress." Julia was grateful to Eric for pointing out her shorings, she waited until he was finished before saying: "How about I try again ?" Eric shook his head: "No, that won''t be necessary. Julia, right now I''m going to give you a task. Every night, I want you to go and roam those streets filled with prostitutes, I want you to observe them and try to mimic their behavior. I''m going on a trip to New York for Christmas, and when Ie back, I''ll give you a test: I''ll have you stand in the middle of a crowded street, and if within an hour the number of men whoe up to you is less than ten, I''ll consider it a failure." Julia hesitated before saying: "That Eric, isn''t ten too much ?" "It isn''t." Eric didn''t give the girl the opportunity to bargain, "If you can''t act it out by then, I don''t mind swapping you out." Julia only nodded, and Eric was thoughtful for a moment before adding: "When you go there, don''t go near the back streets, and remember to bring an assistant with you, it''s safer with two persons." Julia felt her heart warm up at his words, "Thank you, Eric." The news that Richard Gere had refused to star in Eric''s uing movie was soon spread, and spections about the CAA cklisting the young director were running rampant. With the paparazzi relentless pursuits, the CAA and Eric disclosed that they hadn''t been able to reach an agreement because they couldn''t agree on either the cooperation fee or the schedule. Regardless of the truth, the public noticed that the two sides hadn''t started an all-out-war through the media, which meant that things weren''t to the degree where they had lost all decorum. MGM''s United Artists''[1] took this opportunity to announce that Richard Gere would be starring in their uing production, an action movie based on a true story, Road House[2]. Prior to that, United Artists'' had originally intended for their movie to be released in May, and therefore had no immediate ns to start shooting. But when the CAA rmended Richard Gere to them, both the MGM and United Artists'' executives keenly felt this was a chance to offset Eric''s momentum, so they decided to start shooting earlier and release the movie around Easter, clearly intent topete with the young director. As soon as he saw the fuss in the newspapers, Barry Diller personally called Eric to anxiously inquire about the actual state of things. Although the Fox had been looking forward to the youth''s uing movie, they were more concerned about Home Alone''s sequel. If the CAA had indeed cklisted Eric, then the shooting of the movie would be greatly hampered. ".. Don''t worry, Mr. Diller, if that really happens, I''ll consider letting the Fox produce the Home Alone''s sequel in my stead. I''m sorry, I''m very busytely, I''m afraid it''s not a good time. Alright, goodbye." Hanging up the phone, Eric turned his sights to the thick folder containing several actors'' personal files. He looked up and was met with Kapoor Sid''s bloodshot eyes. "You seriously didn''t have to do it so quickly, Kapoor. Please take care not to overexert yourself." Kapoor had only used a day''s time to collect detailed information in line with Eric''s request, and this deeply moved the young director as he asserted that he hadn''t put his faith in the wrong person. "Thank you for your concern, Eric, I''m okay, really. I worked on a movie project once and went two days and nights without sleep." Eric nodded, opened the folder, and went through each of the files attentively. Most of these actors were from the WMA or other international artists managementpanies, others were from small agencies, while some had even their rtives act as their agents. Eric kept looking, and whenever he found someone he liked, he would pull out the file and put it aside, intent on giving those people a call. He suddenly froze on a particr page: "Kapoor, why is the space next to ''agency'' nk on Al Pacino''s file ?" _ _ _ _ [1] Sub-studio of the Metro-Goldwyn-Mayer. More info here. [2] It was originally Patrick Swayze who starred in it, guess Richard Gere was picked instead due to Eric''s influence.
? Chapter 56 Kapoor looked over and said: "Well, it''s probably because of the 1985 incident. Al Pacino starred in a 30 million $ production from the Warner, they invested so much but the movie only made about the same sum at the box office, so Al chose to temporarily withdraw from the screen because of the pressure back then. I recently heard he was trying to make aeback though, so I added him to the list." Thinking of Scent of a Woman and the wild, manly charm that Al had exuded then as a blind retired army officer, Eric couldn''t help but ask: "Kapoor, is there anyway we can sign him ?" Kapoor hesitated: "We can give it a try. But Al Pacino is one of the rising stars from the seventies, although that 1985 movie was a bust, there''s nothing wrong with Al''s performance. The guy was nominated four times for best actor at the Oscars so far. Since he has been hinting at aeback, I believe that many agencies will bepeting to win him over, and we have yet anything to show for us in terms of achievements." Eric knew that what Kapoor said was true, but he still said: "Anyways, we need give it a try. Contact him as soon as possible and tell him about Pretty Woman, I''d really like him to y Edward if possible." "Okay." Kapoor nodded, then pointed at the pile of files that Eric had singled out and said: "Should I also extend invitations to these people ?" "Not for the time being, no. You first try to get in touch with Al Pacino, and if he refuses the offer, we''ll contact these ones." For the next few days, Eric held constant auditions for the supporting roles, had to scout for filming locations, contact those locations, and still wrote the script every night. Meanwhile, he also took the time to contact a girls'' only boarding school in L.A, readily bing their sponsor. While there was less than ten days to Christmas, he had to convince the goblin at home to move out earlier. Living with her was seriously a headache, he had to be on guard against sudden nocturnal attacks all the time, he certainly didn''t want something like the previous incident to happen again. "Eric, I''ve got a good news and a bad news, which one do you want to hear first ?" It was a new day at the office, and Eric was sitting at his desk looking through a financial report when Jeffrey came barging in without even bothering to knock. Seeing the middle-aged man undisguised expression of glee, Ericughed: "The good one first." Jeffrey pulled out a contract from his briefcase and handed it over to Eric. He said: "Lamborghini has agreed to our sponsorship offer, they''ll provide us with their uing Lamborghini Diablo sports car. After I repeated to them everything you told me the other day, they scrambled to sign down. See here, that''s the contract, a full 1 million $ ! Hahaha, once this news gets out, other moviepanies will be green with envy, some can''t even make one million at the box office." Eric took the contract and went through it. It was true, Lamborghini had indeed promised to pay a 1 million $ advertising fee, provided of course that Pretty Woman''s North American box office reached the 100 million $ mark. If its grossing was less than that, Firefly Studios would have topensate them ordingly, while if it was higher, Lamborghini would be the one to make adjustments. This was somethingmon from where he came from, so Eric wasn''t particrly excited, he chuckled at his friend: "Jeffrey, you''re too excited, what if we can''t reach the expected box office and need to return the fee ?" Jeffrey calmed down when he thought of the possibility, and he anxiously said: "It won''t happen. right ? Didn''t you say you had confidence the movie would do great ?" Eric waved his hand: "I''m just teasing you. So, what about the bad news ?" "The bad news is that I''ve contacted several famous jewelrypanies, and they all turned me down. There''s just one jeweler who reluctantly agreed to provide us with a set of jewels for the filming." Eric looked at the old man in amazement, he said: "Jeffrey, although I''m d you''re doing your best out there, don''t forget that Vivian is a hooker, for anyone to be willing to let us put their jewelry on her is nothing short of a wonder, really." ". Right, I didn''t think of this." Jeffrey mused, and tentatively asked: "Eric, why don''t you change Vivian''s character to a white-cor worker, I think.." "Don''t even, Jeffrey. Modifying a script to suit the need of a sponsor is idiotic. You stick to your job as a producer, okay ? I don''t think I''ll ever listen to any advice you have to give when ites to the movie contents." "Cough, cough, well I do have past antecedents." Jeffrey smiled in embarrassment, and added: "Right, did Al Pacino respond to you ? I heard you wanted to invite him to star in the movie." "Kapoor contacted him, he called mest night saying that Al Pacino was now in New York for a Broadway y or something like that." "Then you have to convince him as soon as possible,"Jeffrey persuaded, "We''re nearing the Christmas holidays, if we don''t have a lead by that time, we won''t be able to shoot immediately afterwards." Eric nodded confidently: "Don''t worry, I''m keeping track of the time." The value of the dor at this time was quite high, so a sponsorship fee of 1 million $ was simply tremendous. Eric''s mansion that he had bought for about 2 million, would see its value multiplied by ten roughly two decades from now. Lamborghini''s uing Diablo car was priced at only 240,000 $, yet they had actually been willing to cough up so much for publicity''s sake; it wasn''t long before the news was out. For a time, all kinds of articles filled with jealousy, envy and hate flooded the newspapers. The Los Angeles Times quipped: "For a film production cost rumored to only be of 7 million $, Eric Williams has somewhat managed to get himself sponsored by Lamborghini, hereby recovering a seventh of his investment. It seems that the youth is not only a directing genius, but also a business genius." Hollywood News questioned him: "1 million $ in sponsorship fees, does Eric Williams intend to dedicate his entire movie to advertising a car ? Just looking at its title, Pretty Woman - as revealed by the Firefly Studios, I am having troubles linking the movie up with Lamborghini''s brand, and am seriously beginning to doubt the standards of Eric Williams uing project." Worse than those few articles, thetest issue of Film Review vehemently criticized him: "Eric Williams is acting like a spoiled kid who has just discovered Hollywood. Asking something as outrageous as a 1 million $ in advertising sponsorship fee is simply spheming art. If Eric Williams is sessful in getting his way, one can only imagine how thrilled those profit-seeking producers will be to put the concept in ce. We therefore call upon all lovers of the seventh art to boycott Eric Williams'' uing movie." Unfortunately, Film Review was a much too high-end source, and although Americans liked movies, they weren''t too interested in those over serious movie magazines. So while those remarks from the old-fashioned and conservative filmmakers circle set off some waves, it didn''t have much impact. What was taking ce outside wasn''t really affecting Eric, he was still conscientiously preparing for Pretty Woman. Of course, besides the problem of the male lead, the preparations were almost over. All that was left were trivial details that did not require Eric''s presence and were left for Jeffrey to take care of. "Eric, if you insist on having Al Pacino, you might need to go on trip to New York." Kapoor''s expression was somewhat haggard as he sat opposite Eric and said. Eric personally got up and handed him a cup of coffee for him, before asking: "You mind telling me why ?" "Al Pacino has some questions about your script, and keeps stalling because he wanted to have a talk with you face to face, however he can''te to Los Angeles since he is performing Richard III in Broadway right now." Eric had nned on going to New York by Christmas to see Aniston. If he didn''t go and im her back, then thess was sure to throw herself into someone else''s arms, and he would suffer a big loss. "No problem, I was just about to head up there anyways. How about youe with me Kapoor, maybe we can try to convince him to join UTA ?" Kapoor nodded: "I was thinking the same, right now Al only has a manager but no agent. No matter what, we''ll have to at least try." "That''s settled then, find us ne tickets as soon as possible, tonight or tomorrow would do. If we can''t convince him, we''ll have to fly back and proceed with auditioning other actors." The discussion over, Eric drove away towards an all-girls'' school* located near the Rose Bowl stadium in Los Angeles, it was where Drew had been sent a few days ago. He had just met the girl that she startedining endlessly to him: "Eric, I beg you, send me to another school, are you afraid I''ll convert to the Scientology or Satanism ? Ugh, Catholic schools are sooo boring, they''re all girls, and their teachings are moronic to the core." Eric smiled as he flicked the girl''s forehead. He himself was originally from the east, and also didn''t believe in their teachings, the reason why he had sent Drew here was mainly because of Jeffrey''s rmendation. It was a very strict Catholic boarding school that would be able to keep Drew from skipping ss or escaping. "Alright Drew, there''s no way you can transfer out, I had to pay a lot of sponsorship money to get you in, you know ? I came to tell you that I''ll be in New York for the next few days, and if everything goes well, I''lle back after Christmas. You have a key to my house, so if you don''t want to go back to your mother''s ce, you can go to mine. If you need anything, just call Jeffrey, he''ll take care of it." Drew asked, dispirited: "You''re going to see Aniston ?" Eric nodded. They chatted a bit before he drove away in a hurry, leaving behind a girl full of grievances. _ _ _ _ * It doesn''t say, but I''m pretty sure it''s referring to Westridge School in Pasadena, it''s the only all-girls'' school near the Rose Bowl Stadium.
? Chapter 57 Workaholics usually didn''t take into ount the changes in temperature when they traveled. Eric and Kapoor were as such, and the end result could be well imagined. After buying two tickets for New York, the two men each packed a simple suitcase, boarded the flight in a hurry andnded at 7:00 pm. They had just stepped out of the ne that hey shivered in their thin coats as they were greeted by the freezing and blowing cold air, the warmth of L.A nowhere to be found. "It seems we need personal assistants." Eric stated as he came out from clothes store after buying a suitable windproof jacket. Kapoor quipped with envy: "Speak for yourself, UTA is still small-scale, I can''t afford to hire one yet." "Don''t worry, things will turn around soon." Kapoor simply smiled, he asked: "Are you going to the hotel with me, or will you go look for that girlfriend" "I haven''t seen Jenny* in so many days, so I''m going to see her first. The phone number I''ve given you on the ne is the one to her ce if you need me. Contact Al Pacino and set up a meeting as soon as possible." "Alright." Kapoor shrugged: "I just hope you won''t be driven out, judging by what you told me about her, you probably will." "Ha ha, you don''t need to worry about that." .. Eric was sitting in a cab in Manhattan, on his way to the address that Drew gave him. He went around in circles for a long time before finally finding the apartment Jenny lived in. Coming to the door holding a bouquet of roses, he tidied his clothes before ringing the doorbell. He waited to no avail, and knocked several time before asserting that the girl wasn''t back yet. Looking around a bit, he found a big pot next to the door and smiled; it seemed like Jenny''s habit hadn''t changed, the girl always like to stash a spare key outside her door. Eric had once told her that it was dangerous and not safe, but thess had just refused to acknowledge this and kept arguing his point of view. Opening the door with the new found key, Eric went inside carrying his luggage. He turned on the lights and was faced with a cozy and warm design arrangement, the familiar scent of the girl still lingering in the air. Taking a deep breath, Eric wished she was in front of him already, he couldn''t wait to take her in his arms and fondle her as he pleased. Having gone five to six hours without eating, Eric''s belly was empty as he opened the refrigerator and decided he would cook dinner for Aniston and himself. Putting on an apron, he took out some ingredients and busied himself. Twenty minutester, the clinking of a key was heard when Eric was putting the finishing touches on his dish. The youth hurriedly went past the living room, picked up the bouquet of flowers and hid behind the door. The door opened, Eric had put on a smile and was about to speak, when the three people froze. Yes, three people. Eric, Jennifer Aniston and Brad Pitt as well. "Eric, how are you. here ?" After a few seconds of awkward silence, Aniston was the first to stammer. She couldn''t help but loudly wail internally: Great ! Eric was sure to misunderstand. Eric gave the bouquet to Jenny, and turned to face Brad Pitt with a slight smile, his eyespletely devoid of emotions. "Hello, Mr. Pitt, we meet again." "Hello, Mr. Williams." Brad Pitt held out his hand, only to find out that Eric had no intention to shake it, and took it back, embarrassed. Although they had only met during the 17 Again auditions, with Eric''s sudden rise to fame, it would be hard for Brad Pitt to have forgotten about him. His greeting done, Eric didn''t step out of the door or bother asking why the man was here, he said: "Mr. Pitt, thank you for bringing my girlfriend back, if there''s nothing else, you can leave now." Pitt felt extremely embarrassed at Eric''s rude attitude, he turned to look at Aniston. He knew Aniston and Eric had dated for several months, and could see that the man was on the verge of having a fit of anger. However, thess seemedpletely oblivious, sheposed herself and retorted: "Eric, you can''t do this, Brad is my guest." Once the word ''Brad'' came out of her mouth, Ericpletely snapped, he red at Aniston as he suddenly raised his voice and pointed to the apartment: "Shut up and get in !" It was the first time Jenny had seen him so out of control, and she subconsciously shrunk back. Once Eric had seen her in thepany of a man in front of her home, she had immediately felt somewhat guilty, so when he started yelling her remaining courage vanishedpletely. She muttered ''You don''t have to scream like that'', but still obediently went inside. BANG C Without caring about Brad Pitt who was still standing there, Eric reared the door shut. "So, what''s going on ?" Eric asked as he sat on the sofa and irritably pulled out and lit a cigarette before taking long puff. If the man was anyone else, Eric would probably not have reacted that way, but it was Brad Pitt, and knowing about their past together, he couldn''t bring himself to calm down. If Eric had tried to smoke in her house before, Jenny would''ve gonemando on him, but right now she was just trying to find the right words to say. "He will appear in the next few episode of the TV show I''m doing, he joined the crew a day before yesterday, we''ve only known each other for two days, there''s nothing between us." Aniston weakly said. "You''ve only known him for two days and you brought him home ?" Eric coldly snorted. "Earlier, after the team decided to call it a day, he said it was unsafe for me to walk back home alone, so he offered to send me back, I I Why do I have to exin myself to you ?" Aniston was talking when she suddenly came to. She stared at Eric and said: "I''ve broken up with you ! You womanizing bastard, I don''t need a boyfriend like you.. Umph !" Eric grounded his cigarette directly on the coffee table and pulled the girl into his arms. Preventing her from struggling hended a scorching kiss on her lips. "Mm.. you can''t do this, you idiot.. Mm. I.. I''ll sue you for sexual assault. don''t, not here." She struggled for a moment, before slowly quieting down as her legs became soft and sheid on the couch with her arms around Eric''s neck, her eyes slightly narrowed as she enjoyed the man''s kisses and caresses. p C Eric suddenly let the girl go, and unceremoniously pped her butt before saying: "Alright, go take a shower, I made dinner. I''ll deal with you after we eat !" "It hurts." Aniston rubbed her perky butt and looked at Eric cheerfully before obediently going to the bathroom. Testing the water temperature, Aniston stood naked under the shower head as she sighed. She had initially decided to break up with the bastard, but hadpletely lost herself once she met him again. Although she had wrote that break up note right after seeing Drew and Eric naked in bed that day, she just couldn''t forget about the man after she came to New York. She kept reminiscing their time together, and his name would be constantly on her mind, just like a broken music box, going on and on and on. She also started to unconsciously look for information about him on the newspapers or on TV. When people scolded him, she was angry, when people praised him, she was ecstatic, when people plotted against him, shepletely went past the angry stage and took the initiative to call the media in question to curse at them. When his affair with another woman was discussed, she was jealous and destroyed a few of her appliances in the process. "Well, Ill forgive him this time." Wiping her snow white body, Aniston finally came to this conclusion, and after doing so, she felt like a burden had been lifted off her chest. She twisted her slim waist in front the mirror; her transformation was startling, you would definitely not be able to associate the word ''fat'' to her. Putting on a bathrobe and getting out of the bathroom, she found Eric on the phone. " Thank you, James, I''ll buy you a meal when Ie back to L.A.. Of course, of course, I know a meal is definitely not enough. Ha ha, alright, good bye." "Eric, who was it ?" Eric hung up the phone and said: "James, I asked him to do me a favor. Alright, let''s hurry up and eat, the food has already turned cold." _ _ _ _ * Author suddenly changed her nickname to Jenny (I think it was about time honestly) instead of Annie, so I''ll be using it from now on.
? Chapter 58 "Eric, Drew.. lives in your house ?" Aniston asked after a sweaty session of lovemaking as sheid on the man''s chest, her hand gently caressing his torso. Eric nodded and told her exactly what had happened. Jenny''s tone slight soured: "But. you said you don''t have that kind of rtionship, so why are you doing so much for her ? Going so far as spending one million dors. He, you''ve never spent that kind of money on me. Ahem, you''re definitely up to something." Eric''s hand darted under the covers and caressed the girl''s smooth bottom: "I just see Drew as I would a little sister, you''re my girlfriend. If you want, let alone a million, I''ll give you a hundred for you to spend." Jenny could tell from Eric''s tone that he was sincere, she felt warm inside but still pouted: "Don''t think this will be resolved with money." Although the girl said so, her hand reached under the cover as she intently groped him, and soon, little Eric stood proud again. "You''re the one who asked for it, girl." Ericughed as he pressed Jenny''s body under him. "Ah.. not here, it''s all swelled.." Feeling the man''s strong hands pinning her down, the girl struggled, to no avail. Eric evilly smiled to her and said: "Not here ? Alright, then I''ll do it in another ce." Although she knew he was joking, Jenny still couldn''t help but shiver at the thought. "Oh, Al Pacino from The Godfather ? He''s really cool and manly, it''s a pity he didn''t make a movie in recent years." Last night had been really heated, and Jenny''s face was especially radiant as she carefully tied her boyfriend''s tie. Noticing Eric''s expression turn sour at her praising another man, she quickly stepped in andnded a peck on his cheek: "Alright, alright, my Eric is the most handsome, Al Pacino is already an old man anyways." "I was gonna take you and have a look at Al''s y that''s currently on Broadway, but I''ve changed my mind now." Anistonughed and said: "Even if you had asked me, I really don''t have time do not have time, since Christmas ising soon the director has us working overtime. Eric, are you staying in New York for the holidays ?" Eric shook his head: "I''m not sure, if Al Pacino is game, then I''ll be able to stay. Otherwise, I''ll have to fly back to L.A and start looking for someone else." "Oh." Aniston said in a slightly dejected tone. "Jenny, why don''t you go back to L.A with me ? Your rtives are back there anyways." Aniston shook her head, "No, I don''t want to go back there. they have their own families, I feel out of ce there." "What are you talking about, they love you, you know ?" "You don''t understand, Eric." Aniston bitterly sighed. She adjusted her boyfriend''s cor before saying: "Alright, go." "Hello, Mr. Pacino." Although he hadn''t seen seen many Al Pacino movies'', Eric was still slightly excited to meet the man in person. "Hello, Eric. Please, call me Al." After Kapoor''s introduction, the two of them shook hands, and they all sat down together. A few pleasantriester, Al Pacino opened: "Eric, I''ve read the outline of Pretty Woman''s script. You may already know that, because of the 1985 incident, I haven''t acted in a movie for 4 years now. Although I''m really thankful to you for extending an invitation, some parts of the script just don''t fit with me." Eric asked: "Can you tell me which parts ?" Al Pacino said: "The script focuses on the female lead, and when I asked Kapoor before, he said that it was a neer named Julia Roberts who would y Vivian. I deliberately went to see Mystic Pizza to have an idea of how her acting was like, and to be honest, it was just average. If the script doesn''t get modified a bit, when I y Edward, won''t Ipletely suppress her performance ? I don''t intend to lower my standards just to be on equal standing with her, and in the end, the movie will be aplete bust." Here, Al Pacino paused and stared at Eric with eyes full of confidence, he said: "Eric, this is not me being arrogant, I''ve had five Oscar nominations, and although I have yet to win any because I used to be prejudiced against as a neer, you can''t deny my abilities." Eric pondered for a moment, and soon his mouth broke into a smile. He had understood Al Pacino''s intentions, the guy actually really wanted to act in the movie, however he had read that the focus would be more on Vivian''s character than his, which had left him dissatisfied. That''s probably the reason why he had insisted to meet Eric and person, he wanted to convince him to modify the script. Eric acted intrigued and asked: "Al, if you were to star as Edward, what changes do you think we should make ?" Al Pacino''s face lit up as he collected his thoughts and put forward his own ideas: "First, increase Edward''s scenes, I think the character''s personality should be explored a little more too. Ah and I think he''s not nearly as outstanding as he should be." For about ten minutes, Al Pacino had given his opinion about a full set of changes, and he was obviously very sure of himself when talking, so much so that, if Eric hadn''t already seen the future and knew that Pretty Woman was sure to seed, he would probably have agreed. However, this would definitely not happen now. "Al, you actually really want to star in this movie, right ?" Al Pacino was startled, and when he caught Eric''s meaningful nce, he cheerfully shrugged, smiled, and said: "Yes,I really want to do this movie. I''m acting again after four years of break, and even though I received your script after the other studios, they are still discussing their respective projects. I don''t know how long those discussions will take, so I wanted to seize this opportunity." "Al, your suggestions were pertinent, even I have to agree with that, however, I definitely can''t make any changes to this script. Pretty Woman is a clichd modern Cindere fairy tale. What you are suggesting will emphasize more on the character of the ''prince'' in order to make the story more realistic, which will mess up the entire concept. The essence of a fairy tale lies in its unrealistic side." Al Pacino nodded disappointingly. He opened his mouth, seemingly wanting to say something, but Eric beat him to it: "Al, do you know about Home Alone ?" "Of course. Although I haven''t acted in a movie in recent years, I still keep myself updated in regards to Hollywood." "Well then you should know that thanks to my gambling agreement with Columbia, I''ve made a lot of money, right ? I''ll make you a deal, you act in Pretty Woman, and I''ll prepare another movie just for you to star in. I guarantee you will be satisfied with the role." Al Pacino hesitated, "Can you disclose a bit about that movie ?" "Sure," Eric nodded, "I''ve read this Italian book before called Il buio e il miele, I''ll have to buy the adaptation rights before I can proceed though. In the script I envision, you''ll y a blind retired army ranger, a lieutenant colonel who has lost interest in life because of his impairment and decides to lose himself in debauchery and thenmit suicide. So he hires a college student as a guide, and goes on a trip where he indulges in alcohol, women, and race cars. In the end, the colonel learns to appreciate life again thanks to the college student''s help. His character is rude, conceited and in the middle of a depression. It''s a veryplex role, but I''m sure you''ll be able to manage." As Al Pacino listened to Eric''s resume, he became more and more excited, and he couldn''t help but start imagining how he would go about portraying that lieutenant colonel. Once Eric finished, Al was still indulging in Scent of a Woman''s plotline, unable to extricate himself out of it. It was a full five minutester that he looked up at Eric and hastily said: "Eric, that script, I''ll do it even without you paying me." "You''ll have to do Pretty Woman first for me to consider you though." "No problem, I''ll listen to whatever arrangements you make, I''ll. I''ll try to act so that I don''t overshadow Miss Julia too." Eric keenly felt it was a good time to broach the subject, he tentatively said: "Al, I heard you''ve yet to join an agency, what do you think about UTA ? Kapoor is an excellent agent." Al Pacino hesitated a little, "Is this a binding condition ?" Eric hastily shook his head: "Of course not, this is a sincere invitation, even if you don''t agree, I''ll still have you act in the two movies I''ve promised you." Al Pacino thought for a moment and said: "Okay, but I know that you''ve had some friction with the CAA, so I want to be free to leave at anytime should something happen." Right now, Eric only wanted to win him over, he was confident that the man wouldn''t leave in the future anyways. After a few great movies, Al Pacino was sure to be tied to the UTA. "Of course, no problem, I''ll prepare an easy-going contract for you, you can choose to leave at anytime." "Alright then, I agree." Al Pacino quickly nodded.
? Chapter 59 A thirty-year-old, petite and brown-haired white woman came out from the studio, the sound of her heels ttering on the cemented pavement only adding to her foul mood. The tall and handsome Brad Pitt was dejectedly following behind her. Once they got in the car, the woman mmed her door shut before turning to the man next to her: "Alright, Brad, tell me what the hell happened. Do you know how much effort it took to get you this role ? Two days, only two freaking days, and you''ve been kicked out of the cast. I asked Henry, and he hinted that the fault lied with you and that the producer had personally made the decision." Brad Pitt shook his head: "Lisa, I swear I''ve done nothing wrong, the director even praised my performance yesterday, I don''t get it. But anyways, haven''t we signed a contract with them ? This is clearly a vition, we could." "Shut up ! Do you think you''re Tom Cruise ?! If you were a top star, maybe we could argue with them, but you''re just a small-time actor." Brad Pitt clenched his fists tightly as he lowered his head. He and Tom Cruise were the same age and were born in simr environments, Brad even felt that, whether in terms of acting or appearance, they weren''t that different. But reality was cruel, and while Tom Cruise was now a hot celebrity, he himself was still a nobody. "Brad, if you did anything to anger the director or the producer, don''t try to hide it from me. I''m your agent, if you conceal things from me, I''ll have to consider dropping you." Brad Pitt anxiously raised his head. He had struggled for several years in Hollywood, and knew the importance of a good agent. He had signed with Lisa Cody for less than a year and had already yed in several roles, so when he heard herst sentence, he couldn''t ignore it. He tried to think about what had happened in the past two days, then thought of something. He doubtfully muttered: "It couldn''t be. could it ?" "What ? Hurry and speak up, stop dawdling." Brad Pitt said: "Hm, you know Jennifer Aniston, right ? Well we finished quitete yesterday evening, so I. I offered to take her home, and her boyfriend was at her ce. He seemed very upset to see us together." Lisa Cody was as an excellent and very well informed agent, "You mean, the young director of Home Alone ? Eric Williams ?" Brad Pitt nodded. Lisa rubbed her forehead in anguish: "Brad, what the hell am I gonna do with you ? A few months ago Mike Tyson found you in bed with his wife, if he hadn''t held back, you would be lying in the hospital still. I didn''t expect that not only you wouldn''t learn the lesson, you''d even make a move on Eric Williams'' woman." "Didn''t the newspapers say that they had broken up ? Besides, although Home Alone did well at the box office, he is just a neer in Hollywood, how could he have the means to pull something like that ?" Lisa couldn''t help butment internally, the guy was a hunk, but why was he so stupid ? She exined in frustration: "Hollywood''s circle isn''t small, and there are countless connections between movie studios and television ones. Eric Williams is young and a genius, there are many people who want to be in his good graces. If he wants to deal with a small unknown actor, he only needs a phone call, I''m sure many would be d to do him this favor." Brad Pitt fell silent. He weakly said: "Then. what do we do now ?" Lisa thought for a moment and said: "Didn''t you say that Eric Williams'' is now at his girlfriend''s ce ? You better go there and sincerely apologize." "I didn''t do anything, why should I apologize ?" Brad Pitt was somewhat unwilling. "Who cares about that ?! What matters is that Eric Williams thinks you did." "Will I be able to get back the role if I apologize ?" Lisa shook her head: "Of course not, the crew has already found an excuse to kick you out, do you think they''d lower themselves to taking you back ? You just need to apologize to Eric Williams so that he doesn''t fixate himself on you in the future. Unless you want to remain unknown for the rest of your life, I suggest you take a step back here, otherwise your future will be disastrous, you might even have to change careers." Brad Pitt lowered his head and said: "Alright, I''ll go and apologize." "Hey Jenny, you got a minute ?" After waiting outside the studio until well after seven, Brad Pitt and Lisa Cody finally saw Anistoning out. "Hello, Mr. Pitt, Ms. Cody." Once Jenny saw Brad, she subconsciously took a step back. Although they had only known each other for two days, Aniston had a good impression of the guy. He was very good at sweet-talking women and since he wasn''t as famous as Eric, she never felt inferior in front of him. So when he had offered to send her home yesterday, she had agreed. But now, with Eric''s reappearance, any good impression that she had of Brad hadpletely vanished. Having witnessed her boyfriend lose control of his emotions for the first time, she felt it would be wiser to keep her distance from Pitt. "I''m sorry you were thrown out of the cast, but I really need to go home, Eric is waiting for me." When Brad Pitt saw the girl retreat step back after step back, he couldn''t help but curse in his heart. However, he didn''t show any of it on the surface, he charmingly smiled and said: "Jenny, I feel that Mr. Williams has had some kind of misunderstanding, so I would like to invite you both to dinner and apologize." Jenny rolled her eyes. She had overheard Eric on the phone yesterday whening out of her shower, so she could very well put two and two together and link it to Brad Pitt getting suddenly kicked out of the crew. She was about to reply, when a taxi stopped in the street and Eric came out of it wearing a ck windbreaker. He made his way to the trio, and noticing Brad Pitt, he immediately wrinkled his eyebrow. James had called him at noon to tell him that things had been taken care of, so what was the guy still doing here ? He arrive next to his girlfriend and asked with concern: "Jenny, what''s going on ?" Aniston dazedly looked at her boyfriend, she had yet to say anything that Lisa smiled and held her hand out: "Hello, Mr. Williams, I''m Brad''s agent, my name is Lisa Cody." "Hello." Eric shook her hand and said: "Ms. Cody, is there anything you need from my girlfriend ?" "Actually, it''s you I wanted to speak with, Mr. Williams." Lisa didn''t mind Eric''s cold tone, she faintly smile and said: "I understand that Brad has acted out of bounds yesterday, we were wondering if you''d agree to let us take you to dinner so that he can express his apologies." Eric swept his gaze between Lisa Cody and Brad Pitt. Although thetter had forced himself to smile, it was apparent that he was unwilling. Inparison, the woman''s expression waspletely foolproof. Eric couldn''t care less about how Brad Pitt felt. In his past, the guy had been a notorious man slut during his early days, and had drawn the hatred, envy and jealousy of many. Even the two actresses who yed Rachel''s friends in Friends hadn''t escaped his clutches. Jenny''s emotional state had been quite weak after the incident with Drew, if it wasn''t because Eric hade back in a timely manner, maybe thess would''ve fallen for Pitt too. Moreover, with the girl''s stubborn personality, Eric would''ve had a hard time getting her back. In order to prevent the two of them from interacting with each other, Eric had taken decisive measures, going so far as to owe James Brooks a favor in order to have Pitt kicked out of the cast. "There''s no need for dinner, I ept Mr. Pitt''s apology. Just make sure he stays away from my girlfriend." Eric said, hugged Jenny close to him and couldn''t help but add as he left: "You seem like an excellent agent Ms. Cody, for Brad Pitt to have you is his blessing. If you ever feel likeing to Los Angeles, I want you to know that my United Talent Agency will dly wee you." Hearing that he had epted Brad''s apology, Lisa sighed with relief, and when she heard Eric''s next words, she quickly revealed a ttered expression: "Thank you for the invitation Mr. Williams, I will consider it."
? Chapter 60 After leaving Lisa Cody and Brad Pitt, the two lovers were in no hurry to go back. Jenny held onto Eric''s arm as they took a stroll on the bustling streets of New York at night. After a while of being silent, Jenny couldn''t help but say: "Eric, I think you''ve overdone it." "Huh ?" "It wasn''t easy for Brad Pitt to get that role." Eric reached out and squeezed the girl''s lovely face: "For even you to stand up for him, seems like the guy is really smooth, huh ? Guess I did the right thing then." "I just feel like he isn''t all that bad." Jenny red at Eric as she rubbed her cheeks. "You know Mike Tyson, right ?" Jenny nodded at Eric''s abrupt change of subject, she said: "I do, I heard about his messy divorce with Robin Givens." "What you don''t know is that Brad Pitt dated Robin Givens before Tyson, but still kept in touch. Then one day the boxer finds them both in bed together, he was so mad he nearly killed the guy. That''s part of the reason why Tyson divorced his wife." Jenny''s eyes instantly widened, "No way ! You''re kidding me, right ?!" "Why would I do that ?" Eric said as he spread his arms and shrugged. Jenny asked, puzzled: "How do you know all that ?" Eric said: "Rumors spread fast in this circle, but since Pitt''s fame can''t bepared to Tyson''s, even gossip magazines can''t be bothered to look him up, so they''re just aware that it was the fault of an ''unknown actor'' instead." As Eric recalled, this would actually not be discussed until yearster when Mike Tyson had revealed the truth of the affair during an interview. He suddenly thought of something interesting, it really seemed like Brad Pitt had some of the worst timings ever. He was caught by Tyson sleeping with thetter''s wife, then he was caught by Jenny sleeping with with Angelina Jolie, and even caught by Angelina Jolie with his personal assistant, resulting in Brangelina''s wedding getting dyed at the time. "So you see," Eric patted Jenny''s head and earnestly said: "Clothes don''t make the man, it''s better for you to stay away from him." Jenny nodded, then resentfully looked up and red at Eric: "Ha, that''s grand, clothes don''t make the man indeed ! Who knows how many other women you''re hiding besides that group of actresses that went to your home and was featured in the tabloids, and that girl who came out of your house wearing your shirt. And you still have the galls to bullshit me with your sophistry !" "Alright Jenny." Eric quickly pulled the girl in his embrace, "I plead guilty." "You''re such a jerk !" Jenny hammered his chest a few times. Eric nodded: "Yes, yes, I am." Jenny quieted down after a while, and stuck her ear to her boyfriend''s chest, listening to his heartbeat. The two of them just motionlessly hugged while people around them busied themselves, it was particrly heartwarming. A passing photographer found the scene really moving, and couldn''t help but press the shutter and immortalize this moment. Eric and Jenny werepletely clueless about this event. Near Christmas, the same photographer developed the photo. The girl was wearing a white jacket, her arms holding her boyfriend''s waist, and the guy wearing a ck windbreaker, tightly hugging the girl back, his chinpliantly nuzzled between the girl''s nape and her beautiful blonde hair. One white and one ck, both warm and cold in the midst of the blur of pedestrians weaving past them, like two lovers on an abandoned ind. Coupled with the brightly-lit city in the background, it was romantic to a tee. Feeling very satisfied with his own work, the photographer send it to a New York magazine. Someone with sharp eyesight received it and directly submitted it to the editor in chief. The next day, the photo of young prodigy Eric Williams embracing his girlfriend in the streets of New York appeared on the magazine''s front page. It was apanied by an article that filled half a page, and eloquently narrated how the young director had temporarily dropped everything and made the trip to New York in order to reunite with his true love, and how the two of them had miraculously met on the streets of the city and fallen into one another''s embrace. Those who weren''t stupid knew that the article wasplete bull, however, it had been written with such ir that the majority couldn''t help but relish in the story, leading to the magazine''s sales shooting through the roof. Meanwhile, Eric, who had mysteriously disappeared from L.A to suddenly appear in New York, attracted the paparazzi''s attention. They wouldn''t believe that the reason he came was for ''true love'', even if you beat them. And so Eric became the focus of their relentless chase, once again. He had already finalized the deal with Al Pacino, so he stayed at Jenny''s apartment in order to keep the paps at bay. Like a bunch of hyenas, they were staying in front of his girlfriend''s ce, waiting for their prey to emerge. Jenny had also be a target, so in order to avoid unnecessary troubles and at Eric''s insistence, the girl bought a used car instead of going back and forth to the studio by either bus or cab. And of course, the stubbornss wouldn''t let Eric pitch a single penny in. After a tense few days of shoot, Jenny and her crew were finally ushered in their long awaited two week vacation. .. At Jenny''s ce, it was unknown how many times the girl had picked up the magazine and read the article. With a feigned expression of anger, sheined to her boyfriend who was sitting by the window, using a typewriting machine: "Thanks to you I can''t even take a stroll in New York without a legion of paparazzi following behind." Eric finished writing his line before turning around and smiling, "Why are youining when you''re obviously enjoying it ? That photo alone makes for a great love story." "Eric, have you contacted the magazine yet ?" Eric nodded: "Yeah, the photo was taken by an amateur photographer who happened into us by chance. He wanted his work to be featured in their photography segment and send it to them. The photo was then noticed by a sharp-eyed reviewer who recognized us." Eric took out an envelope and handed it over to Jenny: "This is the negative, it cost me 1,000 $, but it was worth it. The photo is honestly beautiful." Jenny took the envelope, carefully pulled out the negative, and after warmly looking at it, gently put it away. "One more thing Jen, although that article was nonsense, it made me think of a good script. Here, I''ve modified it to suit our story. I figured you could be the lead, wanna take a look ?" Jenny walked next to him and began to read the manuscript that Eric handed over to her. Once she was finished, she gave it back to him and wrinkled her nose: "Besides their coincidental meeting at the end, I don''t see how this resembles our rtionship." Eric shrugged: "Art needs to be processed. So, how about it ?" Jenny hesitated a moment, before shaking her head: "The heroine is older than me, and I''m not ready to star in one of your movies yet." Eric didn''t insist, the girl would one day naturallye around. Although Christmas wasing soon, Eric didn''t feel too deeply about it. In his past life, even during his youth, he wasn''t interested in foreign festivities. Now, as a middle-aged man, he still felt the same way. Kapoor had returned to Los Angeles and Al Pacino was busy with his own life. Eric hadn''t seen the actor since they had struck a deal, but the two of them discussed about Pretty Woman''s script over the phone every day. Jenny was very satisfied with having Eric all to herself for Christmas. The two lovers bought a tree and decorations, as well as a turkey that they cooked together. They didn''t go out on Christmas Eve, choosing to cuddle on the couch and watch a movie instead. After Christmas, Eric had to return to Los Angeles. The shooting of Pretty Woman wouldn''t start until after the holidays, but he was the director and had a lot to prepare for. Although reluctantly, Jenny drove her boyfriend to the airport, and gazed at the ne until it disappeared in the horizon, before finally heading back home.
? Chapter 61 "The Runkle didn''te ?" At a corner of the party, Jeffrey seemingly casually asked while holding a ss of red wine. The next day after his return to L.A, Eric had decided to hold a get-together at his Beverly Hills mansion in order to thank everyone he had gotten to know in the past six months. He had invited James Brooks, Penny Marshall, Jeffrey Hanson, Michael us, Edward Lewis, as well as the 17 Again and Home Alone crew, and several other acquaintances. Since each guest was entitled to a plus one, there was around fifty people in total. It was fortunate that he had moved away, his old house probably wouldn''t have been able to amodate so many guests without feeling crowded. Hearing Jeffrey''s words, Eric indifferently shook his head: "I personally called to invite them, Charlie rejected me." Jeffrey couldn''t act as nonchntly as Eric, he said: "I heard that Stuart Runkle has signed with the CAA, and that they''ve already arranged for him to act in three different movies by the end of next year. What are you gonna do about it ?" Eric reassured him: "Rx Jeffrey, the CAA wanting to keep Stuart away from Home Alone is simply wishful thinking. You''ll understand once those movies he stars in are released." In his past life, Macay Culkin had also taken up quite a lot of movies after his rise to stardom, but the results were absolutely mediocre. Some producers, who had granted him a huge paycheck thanks to his fame, had even tons of money. "You''re implying that other movies that Stuart Runkle stars in won''t do as well ?" Jeffrey asked. Eric nodded: "Everyone thinks that Home Alone was a miracle, and I won''t deny this point. But Stuart Runkle is, all in all, a neer, he can''tpare to those veterans in the industry. Wait ''til next year, he needs us to stabilize his fame, by then, whether it be the CAA or his parents, they won''t have a choice but to turn to us. The Runkle couple." Eric slurred his speech, unable to hide his disappointment. When he had called to invite the Runkle family, Charlie''s attitude had been chilling cold, even somewhat disdainful. Eric could definitely guess what was on the man''s mind, he probably thought that Home Alone sess was due to his son. Some people were like that, they felt like the world revolved around them. "What if one of the movies he does ends up bing a blockbuster ?" Jeffrey asked. "Not mentioning the fact that it''s highly unlikely, if it did happen, then good for him. Jeffrey, once Pretty Woman is released, you''ll understand that I couldn''t care less whether Home Alone gets a sequel or not." At this moment, Eric caught a glimpse of Drew in her red dress, nonchntly taking a ss of wine from one of the waiters'' tray. He red sharply at the girl, and she froze, before hastily putting the ss back and fleeing towards a group of young people. Jeffrey chuckled when he saw this: "You''re so good to her, it feels like I''m looking at a parent and his child. You''ll probably be a good father one day." "Hey that''s too far in the future, I''m only eighteen, you know ? I''m in no rush to get married and have kids." Right then, James Brooks along with some other guests came over to greet them. "James, thank you for doing me that favor." Eric said as he raised his ss towards the man. Jamesughed: "Hahaha, that was nothing. Right, that photo of yours was also featured in the Los Angeles Times, you guys looked really good together." Jeffrey alsoughed and added: "Eric, are you sure you didn''t specifically ask for it ? I can hardly believe that a passing amateur photographer was able to capture something like this." "Whether you believe it or not, it''s a fact, I even had to spend 1,000 $ for the negative. But well, it did inspire me a new script." James suddenly became interested: "Oh ? Do you mind disclosing a bit about its content ?" "Sure, no problem." Eric said: "It''s a story about a single father and an already engaged female reporter." Eric took a few minutes to narrate the synopsis of Sleepless in Seattle to him. "It seems to me that you''ve also taken inspiration from An Affair To Remember." James said. Eric didn''t deny it: "The script will be written so that the heroine will have seen that precise movie, and the theme song will pay it tribute." James thought that if the script was really good, then the Fox could buy it over, or they could produce it jointly with the Firefly Studios. Since Eric owed him a favor, as long a he asked, he was sure to get his way. But after listening to the synopsis, he decided it wasn''t worth it. Eric hadn''t gone too much into the details of the plot, so James saw it as an ordinary love story. It''s not that Hollywood had never done romanticedies, it''s just that it usually didn''t do that well at the box office. At this point in time anyways, people preferred action or science fiction movies, even thrillers did better than roms. Noticing that the man seemed tock interest after hearing about the script''s content, Eric breathed a sigh of relief. If James had asked for it, he really wouldn''t have been able to refuse him. Sleepless in Seattle would do wonders at the box office, so giving it up to the man just because of a small favor made him really reluctant. The topic of the conversation soon changed and Sleepless in Seattle was also temporarily put aside. It goes without saying, that when the movie was released and made over 200 million $ at the box office worldwide, James wept until no tears were left. "Eric, I heard that you n on releasing Pretty Woman on Valentine''s Day, which would mean that you n on wrapping everything up in five short weeks. If you include the post-production and the reviewing, I think you''re taking a huge risk time-wise." Eric confidently said: "Don''t worry, I''ve already started the preparations two weeks ago, so we''ll start shooting next week. There''s really not that much to film either, we''ll be able to submit the movie in time." In his previous life, it had taken twelve weeks to shoot Pretty Woman, but the movie had then be subjected to lots of changes, even the script had been tweaked beyond recognition. Normal directors usually used up dozens hours of film rolls, some even went past the hundred hours, thereby wasting both budget money and valuable time. However, Eric was different, he had seen the edited version of the movie and remembered each second of it. To him, shooting was simply a formality. Granted, there was still the fact that some of the actors were different, but he was also confident that as long as they did their jobs correctly, he could at least reduce the used up film roll to about ten hours, therefore leaving enough time for the post-production.
? Chapter 62 "Hey, Penny, how''s it going ?" After chatting with Jeffrey and James for a while, Eric started mingling with the other guests. Penny Marshall meaningfully winked at the people she was with, who were tactfully enough to leave. "Still the same, I''ve been getting a lot of script offers, but none that could satisfy me, so I''m taking a break. Not everyone can be like you, shooting a second movie so soon after the first one." Ericughed: "It''s not like I have a choice, so many people are eager to see me fail, I figured I''d give them something to shut them up. 17 Again has made 70 million $ at the box office so far, right ? Looks like it''s only a matter of time before it passes the 100 million mark. I don''t think another female director will be breaking your record any time soon." Penny was used to thepliment, but still said: "Ha, speak for yourself ! Home Alone is still running and made 24 million $st week alone." "Alright, if you guys keepplimenting each other like this, I''ll get nauseous." James Brooks suddenly interrupted: "Eric, I need to speak with Penny for a bit." "Sure, no problem." Eric nodded and headed somewhere else. The get-together came to an end and Eric stopped Kapoor who was about to leave: "Kapoor,e with me for a bit please, there''s something I need to discuss with you." Kapoor nodded his head and followed Eric to his study on the second floor. The room was messy, and the newspapers clippings on the cork board were reced by the handwritten storyboard of Pretty Woman. Kapoor was somewhat startled by the messiness of the room. The entire mansion was neat and clean, which strangely contrasted with the scene he was now faced with. Eric put away several files into a folder then back on a shelf before exining: "This is where I work, the help isn''t allowed here, thus the chaos." "Doesn''t Drew live here ? She could help." Eric gave a chair to Kapoor and chuckled: "You''re kidding, right ? Besides, I clean up some times." "Sigh, you''re too good to her." Eric shrugged without answering, he put a tape into the tape recorder and pressed the y button: "Kapoor, listen to this." It started with a fast-beat, and soon the singing started: * It must have been love * But it''s over now * Lay a whisper on my pillow, * Leave the winter on the ground * I wake up lonely, there''s air of silence * In the bedroom and all around * [1] After a few minutes, the song finished ying and Eric asked: "What do you think ?" Kapoor said: "I honestly don''t know much about music, but I liked it, it has a lot of appeal. Why did we listening to this ?" "I intend to use it as one of the songs in Pretty Woman, but that''s not all there is to it. Kapoor, have you thought about UTA''s future ?" Kapoor nodded: "Of course I have. Since we''ve signed Al Pacino and if Pretty Woman seeds, both he and Julia Roberts will be our backbone, thereby granting the agency with a stable foothold in the industry." Eric asked: "Have you ever thought about signing other types of artists ?" "You mean." Kapoor looked at the tape recorder: "Singers ?" Eric nodded: "All the movie and television actors have basically already been snatched by other agencies. If we want to expand, we can only do it by being patient or by poaching. But the music industry is different, even the CAA has paid little attention to it, which I feel is a great opportunity for us." The 90'' were the music industry''s golden age, and Eric had been researching songs for the OST, only to found out that Roxette had yet to go international. In the past, the Swedish group had been active for a full ten years after their debut in North America, and "It Must Have Been Love" had been listed by Billboard as the most sessful single of 1990, behind Wilson Philips'' "Hold On". "Kapoor, the song you just heard is from a Swedish pop-duo, and although they have a lot of potential, not many people know them yet. Do you understand where I''m going ?" Kapoor said: "Seems to me that a trip to Sweden is necessary." "Right, and the sooner the better. If I could find the song, recordpanies will soon notice it too, and their vision of things is probably better than mine since I''m no professional in this particr domain, so we should make our move fast." "Are you nning on getting into the music business ?" Eric shook his head: "It''s too early to establish a recordpany, right now I''ll be focusing on movies. After we sign Roxette, you''ll need to handle those matters." Kapoor nodded in understanding and the two of them chattered for a while before the middle-aged man got up and left. Once he was out, Michael us hurriedly scrambled in: "It''s been so long, Eric, don''t tell me you haven''t finished writing Resident Evil by now ? I pegged you as a fast one !" Hisst words were unintentionally heard by a passing waitress who subconsciously nced at Eric. She held back herughter and hastily walked towards the kitchen.[2] Eric morosely said: "Michael, I''d appreciate you paying attention when you speak, God knows what those tabloids will say about me if that girl decides to bber." Michael grinned, not the least bit sorry as he kept pestering him about the book. "Alright, alright, take it, jeez." Eric handed the manuscript over to him, "The contract needs to be the same as the prior one, just bring it to me and I''ll sign it." Drew suddenly came barging in at this moment, and seeing Michael leafing through the book''s pages, she rushed over shouting: "Hey Eric ! I haven''t read it yet !" Michael lifted his arm over his head and fended off thess'' outstretched paws before hastily putting the manuscript away in his bag. Ignoring Drew, he said: "I''ll go first, Eric. See ya." Done, Michael quickly left, leaving behind a flustered little goblin. "Alright, knock it off." Eric said as he flicked the girl''s forehead, "Care to tell me about you skipping sses ? And the principal''s phone messages getting erased ?" The girl instantly lost her momentum, and turned into a well-behaved youngdy as she grabbed the youth''s hand and batted her eyshes: "I''m sorry, Eric, it won''t happen again." Eric sharply looked at her, "Drew, are you using again ?" Drew hurriedly shook her head: "No, definitely not, I just took a few students to watch a game at the Rose Bowl stadium. I''ve sworn to you before, Eric, I will absolutely never touch those things again." Breathing a sigh of relief, Eric took the girl in his embrace. Thinking back to her words, he couldn''t help but smile and p her little butt: "No wonder the principal sounded so angry, not only did you ditch sses, you''ve even managed to drag your obedient ssmates with you." Drew moaned a little before looking up at him and whispering: "Do you want me to introduce you to them ? They''re all virgins you know, I checked." "You" Eric''s imagination actually drifted for a bit, but he quickly shook his head and said: "Stop talking nonsense and go to sleep. And you''re not allowed to go out until school starts." "Wow, so overbearing, I''ll tell the girls on you." _ _ _ _ [1] From Pretty Woman''s Original Soundtrack, "It Must Have Been Love" by Roxette. [2] For those who didn''t get it, what Michael said has sexual innuendos.
? Chapter 63 In the 80'', Hollywood had yet to be a worldwidendmark, so the Walk of Fame wasn''t that famous yet. When night fell, the street was no different from the others; packed with shops, crowded by pedestrians, and homeground to the asional scantily d girls. In the passenger''s seat of an inconspicuous car parked in the street, Eric watched with interest as men sometimes stopped to ost Julia Roberts. Right now, the girl was wearing heavy makeup, and even those familiar with her wouldn''t be able to recognize her. She was somewhatzilyying against amppost, nonchntly gazing at the ongoing traffic. She looked exactly like Eric remembered Vivian did in the movie. Within half an hour, the men who struck up a conversation with Julia had exceeded the number of 10. Just when he was thinking of putting an end to the test, Eric noticed three to four youth dressed quite pompously encircling her. He turned towards the robust man sitting in the driver''s seat and said: "Drive, Tony. You handle them." "Yes boss." Tony started the car and pulled next to Julia. The girl could barely maintain her smile in front of the youths, so when she noticed the car, she quickly said: "See guys, my client came to pick me up, I told you I was waiting for someone. And he''s big money." The several youths turned around and eyed the car with contempt as they struggled to contain theirughter: "Honey you''re kidding, right ? How can someone with such a broken down car be from money ? Look, we''ll give you 200 $ for the night, how about it ? All the other girls on the street only charge 70 $." Tony opened the door and got out. He was nearly two meters tall and built like a bull. He red fiercely at the youths, who suddenly felt weak in their knees. They all smiled apologetically and scrambled with their tails between their legs. "Miss Julia, please." said Tony, as the fierce expression on his face vanished and he considerately opened the rear door for Julia. Julia thanked him and got in, while her assistant, Alison Green, hurriedly put a jacket on the actress. Los Angeles'' nights were cold at this time of the year. "So Eric, what did you think of my performance ?" Julia hastily asked the man who was sitting in the passenger''s seat. Eric praised: "I''m very satisfied with it, if it weren''t for Tony, we might have run into some trouble." "I''m just doing my job, boss." The giant honestly smiled and started the car. Tony was part of the security team hired by the Firefly Studios, and although he was a ck and brawny guy, he was fairly mild temper and disliked to fight if he didn''t have to. Hooker was a very dangerous upation, some of the girls would sometimes be abducted, and their bodies would be found a few dayster in some garbage somewhere. These kinds of things happened, so in order to prevent that, Eric had brought Tony along. "Tony, you live around here, right ? Pull over at the intersection, you can go home, I''ll send Julia back." Tony nodded, stopped the car at the indicated ce and took his leave. Alison Green looked at Julia, then Eric. She opened her car door and said: "I''ll get off too, I''ll just take the bus home, sir. Good night." Soon, only the two youths'' were left. Eric got in the driver''s seat and started the car, while Julia anxiously curled up in the back seat. The two of them kept silent. Half an hourter, the car pulled in front of Julia''s apartment. The girl got down and waited a moment before turning around and realizing Eric hadn''t followed her. He stuck his head out the window and said: "Julia, you need to move out as soon as possible, preferably in Beverly Hills. If you still live here once the movie is out, you''ll be harassed by the paps. I''ll tell Jeffrey to give you a down payment of your sry." "Okay. Eric. aren''t youing in ?" Julia softly asked, a little anxious. Eric yfully winked at her: "Not today, although I''ve taken some measures, I can''t bepletely certain that none of those damn paps are hiding somewhere." Julia didn''t know whether to be happy or disappointed, she hesitated twice, before waving to him and walking towards her apartment. Eric waited until she had gotten in, before rolling his window up and driving away. On New Year''s Day, Al Pacino flew from New York to Los Angeles, and settled down in his own vi in Beverly Hills, before quickly joining the Pretty Woman''s crew. The movie therefore held its first meeting with both main actors present, and everyone talked for an entire morning. Eric also took this opportunity to give out new pointers about the script to the cast. After all, Al had reced Richard Gere, and their acting style werepletely different, so Eric couldn''t only rely on his past knowledge to shoot this time. He also let Al and Julia act a few scenes together. The actor tried his best to lower his acting level to hers, but in the midst of performing, he still somewhat pressured her. Al Pacino was only a meter and seventy centimeters tall, while Julia was nearly one meter eighty with high heels on. If it had been before, Eric might have allowed Julia to wear t shoes and Al elevator shoes in order to get rid of the height difference. But after seeing them interact together, Eric gave up on the idea. Julia''s only advantage at this point was her height, if he got rid of it, she would be crushed by Al Pacino. Since they had agreed to spend a million of sponsorship fees for Pretty Woman, Lamborghini and its parentpany, Chrysler, attached considerable importance to the project. Two small truck parked on the training ground of a Los Angeles driving school, and under themand of the staff, two Lamborghini Diablo were carefully unloaded. Eric and Drew were standing around, and when thess saw the two vehicles, one silver, and one purple, her eyes sparkled. "Wow, those sports cars are so cool !" She was about to get closer when Eric stopped her, so she turned around and said: "Eric, I want the purple one, it''s so beautiful !" Eric pinched thess'' small nose andughed: "It''s not a toy, you can''t just have it." Next to them, Ian Brewster, who was part of the Lamborghini staff, smiled proudly at the girl''s reaction and introduced: "Miss Drew has the eye, the purple color represents nobility, luxury, wealth, power, independence, pride and mystery, which tends to appeal to women a lot. The car was specially made to meet Mr. Williams'' demand, it is not yet on sale." They chatted with several other people, then a staff leader directed Julia and Al to the two cars and began to carefully exin how it was to be operated. While they had their driver''s licenses, they had never drove a Lamborghini, especially Julia, she hadn''t even seen one before. In Pretty Woman, the car appeared in the first twenty minutes of the movie, and the two actors had to drive for a long time as they introduced some of the its aspects andtest innovations. In order to ensure there would no ident during the shooting, Eric decided to have Julia and Al go through a three-days training session. Lamborghini was also very eager to cooperate, and deliberately sent a Ian Brewster to supervise.
? Chapter 64 Most men like sports cars and Eric was no exception, however he could only be at the training grounds the first day. He was so busy that he didn''t have time to drop by again. Beverly Hills, in a temporarily rented vi, Eric and Jeffrey were directing the staff in arranging the props for an uing scene. Al Pacino''s acting was book-standard, while Julia - ording to Eric''s knowledge of his past life C tended to y more based on feel. This time, Eric had her follow Al''s method, which means she would first have to get into Vivian''s characterpletely before shooting. Filming scenes in disorder could affect performance results, so in order to prevent that and let the actors immerse themselves into their roles, Eric decided to shoot in chronological order. In the original movie, Edward was first seen at hiswyer''s party, Philip Stuckey, and through thetter and a few other guests'' small-talk, the viewers learned a bit about the main character''s identity and personality. Eric and Jeffrey discussed for a bit, and finally decided that, to shoot this scene, they would throw a real party to celebrate the start of Pretty Woman. They didn''t even hire extras, instead inviting the majority of the crew''s family to appear. The scene wasn''t a major one, so Eric didn''t worry about it going wrong. "I went to the Fox''s headquarters yesterday to tell them that we wanted to release the movie on Valentine''s Day, it took more than an hour to convince Carter Hunt that we would deliver in time before he finally agreed that he wouldunch a promotion campaign two weeks before d-day. Honestly Eric, two weeks is a really short amount of time. Road House, the movie Richard Gere will star in, won''t be out until march." Eric was writing down something on a notepad when he heard Jeffrey''s words, he said: "Don''t worry, Jeffrey, right now the entire country''s media circle is promoting my movie, albeit they do it with criticism and jeer. I don''t think there''s a lot of people in the states right now who don''t know about Pretty Woman. Besides, our biggest publicity stunt has yet toe." Jeffrey curiously asked: "What publicity stunt ?" Eric''s lips curved into a confident smile: "Do me a favor, count for me, how many weeks has Home Alone been trending at the box office for, and how much will its final grossing be ?" Jeffrey did a quick mental calction, he reckoned that the movie had been screening for about 12 weeks, and that the box office was likely to soon reach the 200 million $ mark. Seeing his friend rx a little, Eric said: "Do you understand ?" Jeffrey nodded his head: "Home Alone is likely to pass the 200 million mark at the box office, which, ording to an article I saw in Variety magazine, is a feat that no one in the country has been able to achieve for three consecutive years. Once Home Alone reaches that milestone, the media will have a field day again." "Exactly, so as long as I can make a decent movie quality-wise, there''s no need to worry about it failing because of ack of publicity. And for United Artists'' to release Road House a month after Pretty Woman means that they won''t even be able to ride on our coattails." Since he had no recollection of the movie Road House, Eric wasn''t worried at all. It will be difficult for Richard Gere to rise back again after missing the Pretty Woman''s opportunity though, after all, as Eric remembered, the actor''s acting wasn''t even good enough to warrant him an Oscar nomination in the past. "Right, Eric, when I went to the Fox yesterday, Carter Hunt raised the issue of a movie adaptation for Jurassic Park. And they''re also interested in the book Resident Evil that you just published, I just avoided the topic." Thanks to Michael''s efforts, Resident Evil had been released the other day, and had soon started some controversy. Most newspapers article were criticizing the novel, while some reviewers and people even wondered if Eric had only been riding on his fame''s momentum, and written the book to rack in the profits as the genre waspletely different from Jurassic Park. Faced with those kinds of reactions, Eric didn''t even bother to reply. Written for profit ? With his current fame and fortune, did he really need that little bit of royalties that would ensue ? As soon as Resident Evil hit the shelves, Michael us called and told him that the book was actually selling well, and that people were very interested in this new type of zombie-rted science-fiction. There were even some readers who had wrote to both Michael and Eric, hoping for a movie adaptation. "Jeffrey, if someone ever contacts you for the movie rights, tell them I definitely won''t let go of either novel unless they cane up with a satisfactory cooperation n." Jeffrey nodded, before suddenly remembering something, and smiling: "For Home Alone to actually get nominated at the Golden Globes for Best Comedy really gives us pride." Eric followed with augh: "Whether the Golden Globes or the Academy Awards, they will always bow to the box office. Just wait and see, there will probably also be some Oscar nominations as well." Jeffrey tentatively said: "Your shooting schedule is sopact, I''m afraid that when the timees we won''t be able to attend the Golden Globes'' ceremony." "No worries," Eric put away the notepad and tucked the pen behind his ear, he said: "Since the Golden Globes'' have done us the honor, we''ll attend even if it means putting the shooting on hold for a day. They know that we''re in L.A, if we refuse to attend just because of the filming, we might attract some ill will." Thinking back to how even DiCaprio had never gotten an Oscar, Eric felt he needn''t to tread with them carefully. Although some imed that Leonardo couldn''t get one because he wasn''t a good enough actor, others spected that it was because he hadn''t attended the 70th Academy Awards ceremony, since he was sulking at the fact that he hadn''t been nominated for Best Actor in Titanic. The two men chatted about shooting arrangements, then went to eat lunch in the vicinity at noon. After a while, Eric looked at his watch and said: "Jeffrey, you take care of things this afternoon, I have something to do." Jeffrey looked at him inquiringly, what could possibly be more important than the shooting right now ? Eric helplessly said: "I''m driving Drew to school, she got into some troublest time and her principal wants to see me." Jeffrey was stunned for a second before he smiled and shook his head: "Are you seriously thinking that the girl is your daughter ?" Eric threw his hands up: "When I signed that contract with her mother, it was simr to getting Drew''s custody, so I should at least take responsibility." "Right, I read a ttering newspaper article about how you saving Drew from her mother''s greedy hands and sending her to boarding school was a great act of heart-warming kindness." Eric wore his jacket and casually said: "I paid a guy to write that, I was tired of people bothering me about Drew''s issue. I''m a pretty okay guy, and I felt people should know that." Jeffrey who was in the midst of taking a sip of coffee, sprayed it out: "You''re really." .. Drew''s principal was a woman seemingly in her fifties with a gentle overall feel. Eric sat alone across the woman as he listened to her: "Mr. Williams, we usually never give up on our students, however Ms. Barrymore seems to be quite the unusual case. All of ourdies are from respectable and influential families, if their parents were to learn that their daughters had skipped ss, I''m afraid that the school would be the one at the receiving end of their ire. We cannot possibly take coercive measures against Ms. Barrymore, so if this kind of thing were to happen again, I''m afraid we will be left with no other choice than to have her transferred to another school." "Ms. Gillian, you can rest assured, I have severely reprimanded Drew." "Good, good." Ms. Gillian nodded her head, and proceeded to ramble some more before letting Eric go. Outside of the office, Eric looked at Drew who was dressed in her school uniform and said: "I got an earful thanks to you, do you n on making me go through this a second time ?" The girl smiled and grabbed Eric''s arms as she said: "Don''t worry, I definitely won''t." "I don''t hear any sincerity in that statement." Eric smiled helplessly, not only did the girl not seem sorry in the slightest, she looked like she was enjoying herself. At the entrance''s door, Eric sighed. Sweeping his surroundings with his gaze to make sure no one was around, he whispered: "Don''t get in trouble, I''ll be busy from now on, and if you intend to skip ss again. at least don''t get caught." "Oh, Eric. you know me so well." Drew tiptoed and kissed him on the cheek. Eric smiled and patted the girl''s head. He went to his car, started it, waved good bye through his window, and drove away.
? Chapter 65 On January 7th, in a vi in Beverly Hills, the shooting of Pretty Woman officially started. Like they said it so well in the east, don''t let one''s own fertile water flow into others'' field (fi shu b li wi rn tin). Many of the supporting roles were given to UTA''s signed actors since, as Kapoor had pointed it, these people were talented, all theycked was an opportunity. Even if all they got was a few lines in the Home Alone''s director new movie, these young artists were amply satisfied. Eric hadn''t bother rectifying their views, once Pretty Woman was released, those actors and actresses would find out exactly how lucky they were. In his past, the movie had been so popr that even the small roles had received some kind of recognition. Since no one in UTA coulde close to Edward''swyer (Philip Stuckey) image, Eric decided to contact the original actor, Jason Alexander. At this moment in time, Jason Alexander was an ordinary Broadwayedian. Although his acting was excellent, his external appearance didn''t y in his favor, and so far, he had only yed minor roles in movies and TV shows. Hearing he could get a supporting role in Eric''s new movie, the actor didn''t hesitate to jump ship, dropping his now former agency to join UTA. As long as Jason Alexander was sessful in the future, no one would berate him for ''betraying'' his agency. Rather, they would more likely envy his good fortune. At the vi, all the actors were in ce. Eric sat behind the monitor and made an OK sign at the 2nd assistant camera [1] to signal the start of the shooting. "Pretty Woman, scene one, take one. Action !" After the p of the te[2], those in front of the camera began moving. The camera focuses on a magician saying his lines while skillfully handling a coin. "No matter what they say, it''s all about money." The magician pulls out a coin from Edward''s former girlfriend''s ear as Philip Stuckey appears in the frame, smiling. He inquires about Edward''s whereabouts while he watches the magician perform. This was a nearly one minute long take which required more concentration and therefore put an actor''s ability to y to the test. It had been rehearsed a lot though. Jason Alexander didn''t let Eric down, in front of the camera, the man was leisurely smiling, each of his lines were freely flowing out, and his bodynguage fitted his character to a tee as he mingled amongst his guests. Jason kissed the cheek of a female guest, and Eric shouted with satisfaction: "Cut !" Jason Alexander put down the ss of champagne in his hands and smiled to Eric: "Director Williams, how was it ? Do you need me to do it again ?" Eric gave him a thumbs up, and praise: "No need, that was perfect. We''re getting off on the right foot." Several members of the crew couldn''t help but gather behind the monitor as Eric reyed the scene. It was obvious for all who saw, that Jason Alexander''s performance was indeed wless. Once the rey was over, Eric confirmed that there was no need to re-shoot anything. He pped his hands and said: "Alright everybody, prepare for the second take." Everyone dispersed, including Jason Alexander who went to find Al Pacino to prepare for the next take. On the vi''s second floor, in a room that was converted into a meeting ce, Al Pacino had been going through pages of documents. He couldn''t remember how many times he had read the data. In order to help Al immerse himselfpletely into his role, Eric had specially asked some people to prepare dozens of informative pages on both Edward Lewis Industries and Morse Industries. Although the twopanies were fictional, the content of those pages were written by professionals to make it as realistic as could be. The second take was a meeting to discuss the acquisition of Morse Industries. Although the room had been modified already, it still took half an hour to arrange the seating. After the shooting began, most of Eric''s attention was directed towards Al Pacino. He didn''t have a lot of lines, but all needed to be apanied by urate facial expressions and bodynguage, which was actually something that Al excelled in. Al''s version of Edward was different than Gere''s. Of course, he was still handsome, but his gentle and easy-going temperament had been stripped away. He appeared wiser and indifferent, which was in fact, more in line with the script, as Edward was supposed to be a profit-seeking businessman, so Eric quickly got used his version. After a few shots, Eric suddenly frowned and stood up. He shouted: "Cut !" "Eric, is there a problem ?" Al Pacino asked, puzzled. The first few takes had went well, he didn''t understand what he had done wrong. Eric shook his head: "It''s not you, Al." With that, he walked towards a blonde sitting at the conference table. The girl, whose name was Dolly, hastily stood up. Eric nkly picked up the notepad the woman had been scribbling on, and said: "Dolly, do you realize, that because of your sloppiness, we need to re-shoot those takes again ?!" Dolly anxiously apologized: "I''m sorry, director I. I don''t understand where the problem is." "You''re supposed to be the minute taker[3], but you''ve been zoning out for a while now. If this was a real meeting, you would have been fired. And look at what you''ve written here; ''Shall Ipare thee to a summer day ? Thou art more lovely and more temperate.'', a poem, really ?" The girl''s face reddened slightly, she softly exined: "It''s. it''s from one of Shakespeare''s sos." "Alright, sit down." Eric personally corrected Dolly''s sitting posture, and slid the notepad squarely in front of her before saying: "No more poetry, you need to write down Al''s lines, got it ?" Dolly nodded: "I understand director Williams." Eric returned to his seat and directed the re-shooting. The reason why he had let the girl off so easily was because he was partially to me in this matter. He had been so focused on Al''s performance that he had neglected Dolly''s mistakes. It wasn''t until she appeared in the monitor''s frame that he had reacted. Had he corrected her right away, all those takes wouldn''t have been wasted. He, however, needed to maintain his prestige as a director in front of the crew, and could definitely not admit to his mistake on such a trivial matter. Although the party''s scene only amounted to a few minutes in the movie, it still took a good half day to shoot. It wasn''t until four in the afternoon that they finally wrapped thest take; the one in which Edward has a conversation with his former girlfriend. After abruptly breaking up over the phone with his girlfriend Jessica, Edward made his way down the stairs, intent on leaving the party, when he ran into his ex-girlfriend, and briefly struck up a conversation: Edward stares at the woman, and says: "Mmm. Susan, tell me something." "What ?" Edward considers for a moment, before saying: "When you and I were dating, did you speak to my secretary more than you spoke to me ?" Susan smiles and says: "She was one of my bridesmaids." Edward freezes, he smiles to Susan in embarrassment, says goodbye and leaves. This seemingly ordinary conversation was, in fact, a turning point in Edward''s life. Pretty Woman being able to achieve a sessful box office and joining the ranks of the best romanticedies of all time, was not without reason. Many people would just jump to ''well here''s another Cindere fairy tale that will never happen in real life'', and although that was notpletely wrong, the plot had at least the merit of having been written without plot holes. If you said that there was no logic in it, then Notting Hill would probably be the most brainless movie of its genre; the man and the woman had barely met that they were already kissing in the former''s apartment. In Pretty Woman, however, the two protagonistse together at the end quite logically, after Vivian and Edward''s characters each went through three different turning points. Vivian''s first one was near the beginning of the movie, when she was confronted with the violent vision of a dead prostitute thrown in a dumpster. The camera had done a close-up on the look of terror that had transpired on her face at that moment. When she had met up with her friend, Kit De Luca a bitter, she had asked her: "Don''t you want to get out of here ?" Her second one, was when she, who was supposed to apany Edward to dinner, went to buy clothes, but was driven out of the store thanks to her attire. As she walked down the street wrapped in her coat, Vivian bore the brunt of the humiliation, adamant to escape from her current circumstances. Her third andst one, was when Edward gave up on the acquisition of Morse Industries, which caused Philip Stuckey to fly into a rage, and me Vivian for it. Back in the hotel room, when she tells him that Edward will be ''home'' soon, Stuckey confronted her about it: "Home ? This is not ''home'', this a hotel room, and you''re a hooker, not his little wife." This sentence was something that had stayed etched in Vivian''s consciousness, as she remembered her childhood fantasies. When Edward saw her all packed up and ready to leave, he had asked her to stay. She confided in him about her dreams, and told him to either give her a shot at a fairy tale, or to let her go. She eventually chooses to leave, although the story doesn''t end here. Edward''s first turning point was back at Philip''s party, when he ran into his ex-girlfriend Susan who told him that his secretary had been one of her bridesmaids. One can only imagine, how withdrawn he had to have been for his own secretary to be closer to the woman he dated than he himself. Although this detail didn''t cause major changes in Edward''s, it was enough to let him reflect on his past behavior. The second one was when Edward had lunch with Morse. He went back to the hotel and sat alone on the balcony, overlooking Los Angeles'' night. The conversation he had had at lunch had reminded him of the passing of his father; he had studied and worked hard in order to retaliate against the man who had abandoned his mother, and finally set up apany of his own. The first thing he did then, was to acquire his father''spany. However, once his father died, his fourteen years of rivalry and resentment vanished, and fatigue washed over him. He was a tired man, and his willpower was at its weakest, in this kind of circumstance, a woman suddenly appeared in front of him. She enlightened him,forted him, and unknowingly broke thest barrier protecting his heart. His final turning point was on the evening of their opera outing. They had just gotten home and were ying chess, when Edward, hand supporting his chin, had said: "Why don''t we finish this tomorrow ? It''s reallyte, and I have to work." Vivian had said: "Why do you not go to work tomorrow ? Take the day off." Edward had asked back: "Me, not work ?" Vivian: "Yeah." Edward, who seemed toe to a realization: "I do own thepany." So Edward went on a date with her, they ate a hot dog,id on the grass, read, chatted, did things people did on a date. That''s when he realized, that he couldn''t let her go. On a sad rainy day, with "It Must Have Been Love" ying in the background, Edward finally made up his mind to grant Vivian her fairy tale. He transformed into a knight, holding a sword (umbre) in his right hand, and flowers in his left, he climbed to the castle''s window (using the hangingdder), and got his princess back. _ _ _ _ [1] Formerly known as pper loader, more about it here. [2] Also known as pperboard. [3] Someone who takes down minutes.
? Chapter 66 After Al Pacino pretended to clumsily drive the Lamborghini Diablo away from the party, the shooting for the day was over. The crew had been working for close to eight hours. As long as it went on like this, Eric believed that they could wrap everything up in four weeks time, so although he still had plenty of energy to spare, he didn''t ask them to work overtime. In Europe, overtime hours are frowned upon. It''s basically impossible to have Europeans work overtime, and in some countries, they even put restrictions on thepany at this effect, while some even impose high taxes on them. To have Americans work overtime, you better be ready to cough up money and make vacation promises, or you might get thebor union on your tail. In ordance to what had initially been decided, once the shoot was done, the party to celebrate the start of the filming finally started. Melodious and soothing music resounded over the room, and Eric politely turned down the invitations to dance of several beautiful women, instead opting to sit on a sofa in the corner of the room. He began discussing the uing shooting schedule with Jeffrey, and as he nced at the dance floor out of the corner of his eye, his sights soon stopped on Julia and Al dancing together. Julia had quit her job as a waitress, and after receiving a down payment of her paycheck, had followed Eric''s earlier advice and moved into an apartment in Beverly Hills. Although she didn''t have any scenes today, the girl was still actively doing her best, offering her services to the crew if they needed it, and even seeking out Al to rehearse some of their mutual lines. Eric was very pleased with Julia''s attitude, considering that, besides the assistant who was assigned to her, the agency hadn''t given her any preferential treatment. Actually, even Al Pacino hadn''t received any, he came to work in his own car and left likewise. In order to save up budget, the crew had only rented a trailer for the actors to put makeup on and dress up. Obviously, this was only a one-time thing, when the two actors would shoot their next movie, they would definitely not receive this kind of ''cheap'' treatment. Jeffrey, who was chatting with Eric, found the man was out of sorts. He followed the youth''s line of sight and quickly grasped the object of his focus. "You''re not jealous, are you Eric ?"Jeffrey yfully said, he was all too clear about what had happened between his friend and the young woman. Eric shook his head. Since he did have an intimate rtionship with Julia, it was impossible for him not to feel anything when seeing her dancing with Al like a pair of even-matched lovers. However, he didn''t intend to im the girl, she was simply not his type. Eric, you see, was a senior member of the ''Appearances DO matter'' club, and to him, Julia had simply not reached his required standards of beauty, yet. "I''m happy to know they get along with each other." Eric casually said, "Look, only one week has passed since they''ve been introduced to each other, and they''re already getting along. Don''t you think they''ve got great chemistry ?" At Eric''s words, Jeffrey looked back at the dance floor. Julia and Al Pacino were whispering and gazing into each other''s eyes, appearing every bit like a loving couple. "It does indeed look like it. Eric, do you think that Julia will fall for Al once the shooting is over ?" As he thought of Julia''s past passionate and sensitive personality, he said: "It''s possible, but Al will definitely not humor her, his girlfriend is pregnant after all." Al Pacino was a definite yboy, but he was also a skilled and wise one. In Eric''s past, only two women had given birth to his children. If it had been before, Al might have started a rtionship with Julia. However, now it was unlikely to happen. The man was at a critical moment of hiseback, and his girlfriend was pregnant - something everybody was aware of. If rumors started appearing at this time, the possibility of things blowing up was quiterge. If it had only been Eric watching, perhaps Julia wouldn''t have realized, but now Jeffrey had also joined him and the two of them were talking and gazing at the couple dancing. Julia noticed them, and it was the same for Al, who very graciously smiled to the two men. Julia felt inexplicable apprehension at being in the man''s arms, she leaned over and whispered something to him, before getting away and making her way towards Eric. Al Pacino didn''t mind, he shrugged and soon found anotherpanion. "What''s up Julia ?" Eric curiously asked. "Just a little tired." Julia took a ss of champagne and sat down on the sofa. Casually leaning towards Eric, she asked: "What were you two talking about ?" Jeffrey took the initiative to reply with a smile: "Eric was just telling me that he thought there was a chance you''d fall in love with Al by the end of the shoot." "Ha ?" Eric quickly interrupted Jeffrey: "Don''t listen to his nonsense, Julia, he''s just bored. We were just saying that the shooting would probably proceed smoothly, since the two of you have obviously already grasped your characters." "Oh." Julia absentmindedly nodded. She sipped on her champagne, and asked: "Are you going to dance, Eric ?." Eric looked at his watch and said: "Nope, I have to leave soon." Jeffrey said: "What, why ? You should enjoy a little more, we''ll be so busy for a while." Eric stood up, smiled and said: "The first episode of Jenny''s TV show is aired today, she called me earlier to tell me not to miss it. It''ll be on soon." Jeffrey was first startled, he thenughed and escorted the man out. Some other sharp-sighted people saw Eric leave and apanied him as well. At the vi''s entrance, Eric said: "Alright, you guys go back. Don''t let them y toote Jeffrey, we don''t want tomorrow''s schedule to be dyed." "Don''t worry, I''ve got this." Eric waved goodbye and made his way to the parking lot. Julia, who was in the middle of the crowd, hesitated a moment, before following him out. Eric had just opened his car door when he spotted her: "Julia, is something wrong ?" "I haven''t had the time to buy a car yet, can you give me a ride ?" Eric smiled and said: "No problem." Once the were on the road, Eric casually opened: "So, what do you think about Al ?" Julia nced at Eric, and carefully worded: "Al Pacino is very gentlemanly and easy to talk to, but I don''t really feel anything else about him. He is, after all, 20 years older than I am." Ericughed and said: "If Al heard you, he would probably be sad. You might not like older guys, but I''m pretty sure he likes beautiful young girls." "You think I''m beautiful ?" Eric nodded: "From a Westerner''s point of view, you certainly are." Although Julia felt his phrasing was kind of weird, her face lit up in joy. After a brief pause, Julia mustered up the courage to ask: "Eric, is your current girlfriend Jennifer Aniston ?" "Yup, we were together in 17 Again." Eric said. Thinking of something, he smiled and said: "Jenny also knows you." "It''s impossible, I know her thanks to the newspaper." Julia started, then remembering the night she had spent with Eric, flushed in embarrassment. Eric didn''t mind, he said: "Yeah, that''s also how she knows you." An image of a pouting Jenny popped in his head and he smiled: "That shirt you were wearing when you were photographed, it''s also something Jenny has worn. Right, do you mind giving it back to me if you still have it ?" "No problem." Julia subconsciously nodded. The car pulled in front of Julia''s newly rented apartment, and she got out. Looking left and right and making sure no one was there, she said: "There''s no paparazzi this time Eric, do you wannae in for a cup of coffee ?" Eric popped his head out the window and said: "Nah, I really have to get back, I''ll just wait here." "Alright." Julia took out her keys and opened her door. She looked back and Eric didn''t seem to have any intention of following her, so she went inside alone. In her bedroom, Julia opened her closet and took out the man''s now clean and washed white shirt. She inhaled its fabric, before silently folding it. She was about to go out and give the shirt back to Eric, but when she thought of what he had said, a wave of jealousy washed over her and she reflexively put the shirt back in her closet. She took a deep breath and went back out. "I''m sorry, Eric, I forgot where I''ve put the shirt. I''ll give it to you when I found it, okay ?" Eric stared at the girl for a bit, and sighed: "Okay, it''s fine if you can''t find it too." When he was about to roll his window up, Eric stopped, he stuck his head out and said: "Julia, I can assure you, that after Pretty Woman is released, you will be one of the most sought after Hollywood stars. At that time, you will be the dream girl of countless men, and countless others will pursue you, so." Eric hesitated a moment, before saying: "Don''t let me down, act at your best." Julia bit her bottom lip, and revealed a forced smile as she said: "Rest assured, director Williams, I will do my best." "Then see you tomorrow." "See you tomorrow." The girl waved, and watched him drive and vanish out of sight. As he looked at the unmoving figure of Julia in his rear-view mirror, Eric sighed. He gently tapped his index finger on his steering wheel to the rhythm of an old Chinese song: "Xng d zhng xi b p, y rn fng d pin pin ch ch li xing. Yu gung shn zhng yu yu ling, wn fng chu chu r hi lng." (When walking the righteous path, one is not afraid of nefarious designs, and that person has left its fragrance everywhere. The moonlight amidst the mountains glows quietly, and the night wind blows as sorrow washes over like ocean waves.)[1] As he sang thest words, Eric froze. He shook his head and smiled wryly: "Nah, no way." _ _ _ _ [1] "", sung by Ren Xianqi.
? Chapter 67 After that day, Julia seemed to have put her feelings for Eric behind, and began topletely devote herself to the filming. Whether in front of people, or privately, she would only address him as ''Director Williams''. Of course, Eric had no time to worry about this since as the shooting went on, he took it upon himself to simultaneously do the post-editing. He and the editor were busy untilte at night every day, sometimes they wouldn''t even have time to go home and directly slept in the office. Jeffrey was really worried about Eric doing things that way. Usually, you would finish filming before starting the editing, that''s why it was called ''post-editing'' in the first ce! Although Home Alone''s shooting had been short, Eric had still followed procedure then, but now he had messed the order uppletely. However, after seeing the end result for himself, Jeffrey calmed down, although he made sure to tell Eric to pay attention to his health and sleeping time. He had also asked the youth many times why he would work so hard with his current achievements. After all, with the capital Home Alone had provided him, he could live prodigally for the next ten years at least. Eric smiled without exining, and simply kept working hard. How could Jeffrey possibly understand the kind of ambition he had ? His journey to the top had started the day he had auditioned for the Fox - that was when a seed had been nted. Only hard work and perseverance would let that same seed grow into a strong and healthy towering tree, and Eric wanted to see, exactly how tall and majestic that tree would be. After three days of shooting, the Pretty Woman crew started elerating things up. They moved to the Beverly Wilshire Hotel, where they began shooting some of the most important scenes. "Cut !" Eric stuck his head out from behind the monitor, the scene was the one when Edward and Vivian are having breakfast after their first night together. "The one who''s in charge of Julia''s lipstick. the color needs to be changed to a slightly lighter one." It was a small matter, so Julia didn''t need to leave the set. The makeup artist stepped forward and changed it. After a while, she turned towards Eric and asked: "Is this okay, director ?" Eric looked at Julia, and shook his head: "The color is fine, but make it a little thicker." The makeup artist modified it again, and Eric nodded, satisfied. He turned around towards n Fishman, the 2nd camera assistant, and said: "n, write this down for me, will you ? Vivian''s lipstick color changes overtime, from bright red to faded red, from faded red to pink, and after Philip Stuckey nearly rapes her, she starts barely wearing any." Although n Fishman was puzzled, he still hastily wrote down Eric''s words on a notepad. Eric didn''t bother exining to the crowd, this was a personal change he had decided to make. He wanted to use this method to highlight Vivian''s slow but decisive transformation. It would contrast with her friend, Kit De Luca, who sported a kitsch red lipstick from beginning to end. .. At noon, Jeffrey came to see him in a hurry. "Eric, I talked with Carter Hunt this morning, the Fox wouldn''t agree to broadcast Pretty Woman''s trailer during the Super Bowl." Eric put down his lunch, wiped his hands with a paper towel, and asked: "Did they say why ?" "To broadcast a 60 second trailer at the Super Bowl would cost 1.2 million $, and the Fox thinks of that as a waste, they believe that, in your case, advertising two weeks before the movie is enough." Jeffrey replied, "They still don''t have any confidence your new movie will do well, we both know the only reason they agreed to sign three distribution contracts with you was so they could get Home Alone''s sequel." Eric crumpled his napkin and thought for a moment, before saying: "Keep trying to convince the Fox, we at the very least need to get them to air the trailer on NBC. If they don''t relent about the Super Bowl, I''ll pay from my own pockets." "Eric, we have a 7 million $ budget, if you really want to have the trailer aired at the Super Bowl, I think a 30 second one is enough." Eric patiently exined: "Jeffrey, if this was a Star Wars movie with lots of special effects, then yeah, 30 seconds would be enough. But not for Pretty Woman, we need to give the people a taste of it, and I also intend to have the studio''s logo inserted in, so 30 seconds will definitely not be enough." "Well, if you say so" Jeffrey didn''t dawdle too much, it seemed like Eric had made up his mind and nothing would change it. However, the youth had also proven that he was in the right more often than not, so Jeffrey chose to trust him on this, yet again. Currently, the marketing of Hollywood movies was still rtively conservative, and airing a trailer at the Super Bowl was something that would only be introduced years from now, not to mention it was reserved to the ''Big Six''. The Super Bowl was THE American show, and it had been since its beginning, with a viewership of over 100 million people. Each year one of the major TV station aired it, and this year was NBC''s turn. A few days ago, Eric had watched Jenny''s TV show''s first episode, and happened onto a Super Bowlmercial on NBC. That''s when he decided to have Pretty Woman''s trailer aired there. The concept of airing a trailer at the Super Bowl was something that had started only a few years before his rebirth, so in this time and day, Eric''s idea could be considered avant-garde. Under normal circumstances, even if movies were deemed sure blockbusters, they only aired a trailer on TV one month before the release. In the first ce, Easter was one month after the end of the Super Bowl, however many moviepanies chose to release their movies during either summer, or the Christmas period, so not many had even thought of using that method of advertisement. Another thing was the cost; Super Bowl''s ads were very expensive. Eric had checked, and this year the prices had reached a time high of 670,000 $ for a 30 seconds segment. And although that was a lot, it should be noted that the ad would be yed for two continuous weeks, at the stadium, and on prime-time television. So Eric adamantly decided on a 60 seconds trailer for Pretty Woman, this was the second film he directed, and the box office was crucial to him. While he was confident the movie would do great, he was still concerned deep down about the butterfly effect his presence might generate, so he would definitely not pass on that kind of promotional opportunity. ording to his information, and if things went well, Pretty Woman would be the first ever movie to have its trailer aired at the Super Bowl. With more than 100 million people bearing witness, this would be a hot topic of conversation, and paying 1.2 million $ for that kind of publicity was nothing. Eric also reckoned that it would be enough to keep the media satisfied until the release date. "Jeffrey, how''s the creation of our logo going ?" After having established Firefly Studios, Eric had discussed with Jeffrey about it, and the two of them had settled on an animated one. Once they had started shooting Pretty Woman, Eric had asked Jeffrey to elerate things up. "I urged Pixar several times about it, they said they''ll have it this week and that it won''t dy the making of your trailer, so don''t worry about it." Eric nodded, before suddenly asking: "Did you say. Pixar ?" Jeffrey was puzzled at his friend''s reaction, he asked: "Yeah, why, is there a problem ?" "You asked Steve Jobs of Pixar to make it ?" Jeffrey nodded: "Yeah, that guy precisely." Jeffrey''s mouth revealed a hint of a smile as he added: "To be honest, Steve Jobs has been really unlucky in recent years. First he was kicked out of Apple, then he rashly bought Pixar and intended to specialize inputer graphic with their "Image Computer" project, however that didn''t work well, and they''re now reduced to picking up animated ads requests to keep thepany afloat. It''s a shame though, their technology is quite good, I''ve watched Luxo Jr.[1], and that''s how I decided to contact them for our logo." _ _ _ _ [1] 1986puter animated short-film, more here.
? Chapter 68 Eric checked his memories of Pixar: a world-renowned leader of 3D animation, and producer of the Toy Story franchise. But before 1995, Disney 2D animation movies were still dominating the animated film market, and no one was optimistic about the future of 3D animation. It was to the point that Jobs himself started tock confidence in it. Before Toy Story was released, he had tried to sell this unfortunate ugly duckling at all cost, and had even contacted his good ol'' rival Microsoft to this purpose. During the meeting with the Microsoft executives and in order to curry favor with their CTO at the time, Nathan Myhrvold, Jobs had even went so far as to deliberately ce on his desk, aptop running Windows. Unfortunately, Microsoft''s offer was not to Jobs'' liking, and without anyway to extricate himself from the muddy swamp he had gotten himself into, he was left with no other choice but to bite the bullet and bid his time. That was rewarding, since once Toy Story was released, its North American box office grossed 192 million $, and its global box office reached an astounding 373 million $, while the general production cost had only amounted to 30 million $. After that, Pixar''s market value shot through the roof, reaching 7.4 billion $ when it was acquired by Disney in 2006. Time-wise, Steve Jobs should be in the middle of his ''sinking ship'' project[1]. Eric immediately thought about buying Pixar, but soon shook his head. Although right now Jobs only demanded 50 million $ for it, even if the price was halved, Eric had no way to pay. He didn''t have enough money yet, Home Alone had been screening for so long, but he still hadn''t received his final dividend. He reckoned that he would have to wait until Home Alone''s final grossing was out to get his share. In his past life, it wasn''t umon for directors or actors to go straight to court to get theirs. It''s millions of dors we''re talking about, with the annual interest percentage, even if it sat still in the bank, it would grow impressively. So even if they had a clear agreement, Columbia would certainly find a way to drag it all out. Eric shuddered at the thought of what they could do. Once Home Alone was at the end of its screening period, they could choose to add a few more screens all over the country, making sure the movie kept running for a little longer, and Eric would only be able to helplessly look on. Thanks to their fallout over the gambling agreement, the possibilities of cooperation with Columbia in the short future where near nil. Scratch that, it was probably 100% nil. With Columbia using petty and devious tricks to try to get ahead, he didn''t even want to bother with them, especially with Blount Cohen still at the helm. After much deliberation, Eric felt he should prioritize Pretty Woman right now. If history didn''t change too much, then Toy Story''s release wouldn''t happen until six years from now anyways, and he''d surely have enough to buy Pixar by then. .. Before Pretty Woman''s shooting had started, the preparatory work had been conducted perfectly, so Jeffrey didn''t need to be here all the time, they could just use other producers in his stead. Eric and the man had talked it out for about an hour, and Jeffrey had hurriedly flown to New York to discuss advertising issues with NBC. Advertising segments'' sales for the Super Bowl had started six months ago, and NBC had already sold 80% of them. Jeffrey had to fight for the remaining 20%, and a lot of time had passed since, which meant the prices had risen. Three dayster, Eric had just gotten up when he received Jeffrey''s phone call. The man had scored them their 60 seconds of time. "What, 1.5 million $ ? Didn''t you say it was 1.2 million before ?" In the bathroom, a cordless phone nuzzled between his neck and his shoulder, Eric was in the midst of brushing his teeth when he asked. Jeffrey helplessly said: "If no one else had wanted it yeah, but a New York fashionpany suddenly got interested in the ad and made an offer for it. Since you told me I had to get it at all cost, I offered 300,000 $ more. I''m pretty sure that fashionpany is owned by NBC by the way, but I don''t have any proof." It was only 300,000 $, Eric didn''t want to dawdle on it, he finished brushing his teeth, rinsed his mouth and went back to the living room. "Well alright, 1.5 million $ it is." Eric sat on the sofa and poured himself a ss of water: "Sign the contract as soon as possible. Ah right, tomorrow''s the Golden Globes, will you make it ?" "The way things are now, probably not." Jeffrey regretfully said, "The one they want to see is the prodigious director anyways, doesn''t matter whether I go or not." "Ha ha, don''t sweat it, even if you miss it this time, there will be plenty of opportunities in the future." "Too true." Jeffreyughed along, "Well if there''s nothing else I''ll hang up now. It should only be seven in the morning in L.A but I just had to let you know about the extra 300,000 $ as soon as possible." "It''s alright, I didn''t stay up yesterday, I went to bed right aftering back." They said goodbye and Eric hung up the phone. Leaning against the sofa and gently tapping his finger on his knee, Eric did a mental inventory of his ie and expenses: he had received a 25 million $ check from the Fox, had bought the Beverly Hills mansion for 1.9 million $, paid Drew''s mother 1 million $, acquired UTA for another million, acquired the Firefly Studios, the dubbing room, the editing room as well as all the professional equipment for 3 million $, Pretty Woman''s production cost was 7 million $ and the Super Bowl segment was 1.5 million $. In total, he had spent 15.4 million $. Although he had never been a prodigal person, he had been spending a lottely, and since his rebirth in the United States, Eric would be soon faced with one of the two things a U.S citizen couldn''t flee from: taxes. With what he had earned, no doubt he''d be taxed the highest possible amount: 35 %. Meaning he would owe nearly 10 million $. While he profusely cursed the damned capitalist system, he regretfully realized that he would probably not have enough by the 15th April, which was the tax deadline. "Right, I don''t have to pay it myself, I can take a loan instead[2]." Eric, who was massaging his temples, soon smiled. After all, he wasn''t originally American, he felt no patriotism at all, and was therefore very reluctant at the idea of paying taxes. He filed the matter at the back of his mind, and had breakfast before driving to the set. Perhaps it was because Eric had promised them the day off tomorrow, the crew was in high spirits, and at the end of the day, they had wrapped about 6 additional takes. After ten days of shooting, 60% of the movie was alreadypleted, and if things went well after the Golden Globes ceremony, they should be done in about a week. The reason they were able to go so fast was mainly thanks to Julia. Since the beginning, Eric hadn''t worried about Al Pacino; for the man to have obtained so many Oscar nominations spoke for itself. However, as a neer, Julia was another matter. At the start there wasn''t much to say, she did well, although she NGed several times. The real problem started when she had to y opposite to Al, and the number of her NG''s multiplied. Inparison to Al''s, Julia''s acting could be considered to be in its childhood stage. However, after a few days of shooting and Eric''s roars, Julia gradually narrowed their gaps in performance. In some shots, she even appeared to be the one pressuring Al (but well, it was a ro, and not exactly Al''s specialty in first ce, so it wasn''t that difficult to achieve). "Okay, that''s it for today." After onest take, Eric called it a day, and the crew members loudly cheered before packing up and leaving their separate ways. Eric stopped by the trailer where Al was removing his makeup and asked: "Al, how''s your practicing of the piano going ?" In the original movie, Edward''s solo piano performance at the restaurant was personally created and yed by Richard Gere. Eric used his memory as well as hispany''s music-oriented employees to recreate the 40 seconds tune, before handing it over to Al Pacino. Al''s piano skills were average, but since he insisted on personally ying it, Eric had to postpone that scene. "Eric, give me one. no, two days, I still need to practice a little more." "No problem." Eric admired the man''s dedication, but he still added: "However Al, we can''t drag it out too long, the shooting will only go faster from now on, and if we don''t shoot that scene soon, you''ll get lost in the development of the plot and lose the mood." Al Pacino was pensive for a bit and reckoned Eric had made a point. Realizing that whether he did it or not, it wouldn''t impact the movie''s quality, he reluctantly nodded inpromise: "Alright Eric, let''s shoot that scene the day after tomorrow, if it doesn''t work out, you''ll just have to post-dub it." _ _ _ _ [1] He''s referring to Pixar Image Computer. [2] Okay so I am no American, and although I have some knowledge of their lifestyle, their taxation system ispletely beyond me. I skimmed through Wikipedia but I''m not really sure what he is talking about. Is he referring to the "credits" section ? If anyone knows, please do leave ament! _ _ _ _ On a side note, Ive received looooots of email so thanks guys for the support, Ive taken the time to thereby update the page and (finally) add an one, so check it out before you send me another email (please, I beg you).
? Chapter 69 While everyone else had left, as usual, Eric went back to the Firefly Studios headquarters to work with the editor. Because Eric had to attend the Golden Globes tomorrow, they didn''t do any post-editing this time, they only focused onbeling and presorting the shots. It didn''t require much effort, but it was very time consuming as the two of them had to go through all the material they had umted so far. In the dimly lit room, Eric looked at his watch and said: "Patrick, that''s enough for today." "Alright, director." Editor Patrick McKinley knew Eric would attend the Golden Globes tomorrow, so he said, his eyes tinged with envy: "I wish you good luck for tomorrow Mr. Williams." The Golden Globes weren''t into technicality, there wasn''t any Best Editing, Best Cinematography awards and the like. So although Patrick had worked on Home Alone as an editor, he hadn''t been invited to the ceremony. When Eric drove back to his home in Beverly Hills, the lights were on. In addition to himself, the only ones with a key were Jenny and Drew, but Jenny was still in New York, filming her TV Show "Mary in Action"[1], and obviously couldn''t leave the crew. Without a doubt, the goblin was back. He parked his car and went in. Drew, who was curled up on the couch, raised her head at the sound. "Hey, Eric." She sleepily said. When Eric sat down next to her, thess sluggishlyid on hisp. Eric smiled and squeezed the girl''s baby face: "Alright, so why are you here ? Tomorrow isn''t the weekend if my memory serves me right." "But the Golden Globes are tomorrow!" Drew sobered up a bit, and turned her head to face Eric before straightforwardly saying: "It''s not skipping this time, I also received an invitation to the ceremony, so I''ll be your date tomorrow." Eric didn''t particrly care for the Golden Globes, their awards were too subjective, so their overall value wasn''t that high. However, a month ago, the Golden Globes nominations came out, and Eric couldn''t ignore them anymore. His past life''s 17 Again had received neither Oscar nor Golden Globe awards, however this time, thanks to the Fox''s public rtions, Eric''s version was now running for two Golden Globes: Best Supporting Actress, and Best Original Score. Although the Home Alone crew didn''t have any public rtions, the Golden Globesmittee could hardly turn a blind eye to the movie''s box office, and so it was nominated for Best Musical or Comedy, and for Best Performance in a Musical or Comedy. "If I remember correctly, 17 Again''s Best Supporting Actress nomination went to Susan Sarandon, not you, right ?" Eric asked, puzzled. "Who says you can''t attend without a nomination ?" Drew innocently blinked her eyes a few times, but confronted with Eric''s stare, she quickly spilled the beans: "I asked Kapoor to help me, you know I''m his biggest signed female artist right now, and it was only one invitation, so he contacted the Fox and it was quickly arranged." Eric snorted: "What I understand is that you''d do about anything to miss out on school." "Hey!" Drew knocked Eric''s thigh with the back of her head and giggled, pleased. She added: "Are you hungry ? There''s pizza left in the kitchen." "I ate at the studio." Eric stood up, "Stop watching TV and go to bed early, we need to go shopping tomorrow morning, we can''t attend the ceremony wearing just anything." Drew also got up and followed behind Eric: "About that, Kapoor has already arranged it. He contacted Versace and they''ve agreed to sponsor us, I''ve chosen a few sets of clothes, they''lle in tomorrow morning, we can try them on then." Eric remembered that he had indeed had that conversation with the man on the phone. Kapoor had relinquished his hold on every signed artists he had, and was now only responsible for Al Pacino, Julia Roberts, Drew, and Eric himself. Recently, under Eric suggestion, Kapoor dutifully went to Sweden, intent on signing the Roxette duo. However the artists were already under the EMI Records. Despite Kapoor''s eloquent persuasion, the Roxette duo just wasn''t willing to switch from one of the industry''s giants to the unknown UTA. However, they dly agreed to sign a song licensing agreement for "It Must Have Been Love". He originally thought that, with Drew being in school, and Al, Julia and himself busy on set, that Kapoor would be idle for a while, however it didn''t seem to be the case at all, he realized. Eric patted himself on the back, going against the CAA and getting Kapoor to stay was one of the best decisions he had ever made. "Good night." The youth tucked Drew in and kissed her forehead before closing her bedroom door and going to the bathroom. After showering, Eric went to bed. He read a bit waiting for his hair to dry a little, and turn off the bedsidemp lights to sleep. After an unknown amount of time, the bedroom''s door opened with a light ''click'' sound, and a slender figure tiptoed its way towards the bed, before drilling under the sheets and snuggling in Eric''s embrace. Shuffle C Eric turned the lights back on, and face-palmed in distress. He had forgotten to lock his door. Feeling the warmth of the naked body next to him, Eric who hadn''t had any intimate contact with a woman for weeks felt his loins burning. For a second there, he almost lost it. "Wow, doesn''t look like I need to work on it this time ?" At Eric''s reaction, the girl stuck her small head out and said. Eric wrapped the goblin up in the sheets and dragged her towards her bedroom. "Eric, can''t you just let me ? You''ve been so good to me, and I haven''t been able to anything in return, it''s so frustrating!" The girl was wrapped up like a tacos and couldn''t move, so she started talking instead, well at least until Eric''s hand pressed against her mouth. He put the girl back in bed, and, with a no-bullshit attitude, said: "Don''t ever do that again." "It''s not fair, you''ve been with Jennifer, and even with that Julia Roberts, but why not me ? It''s unfair!" Drew finally freed herself from the cobweb-like sheets and grabbed Eric''s arm. "Because they''re adults, and you''re not." Eric exined, "Do you want me to rot in jail for years ?" "But." Drew retorted, "As long as we don''t tell anyone, who will know ?" Eric covered the girl back and solemnly said: "You need to understand that everyone has bottom line, youngdy, and this is mine. You''re cute, that''s for sure, and I''m really fond of you, but I won''t be doing the things you expect me to do. At least not until you''ve reached legal age." "I heard it''s legal in some European countries though ?" "This is Cali, not Europe." Drew''s small hands clutched the sheets, and her eyes sparkled as she asked: "Then Eric, once you finish shooting the movie, let''s go to Europe ?" Eric had barely been able to contain himself earlier, and hearing Drew''s words, he subconsciously swallowed. "No, you''ll have to wait until you''re eighteen." "18 years old ? You know, I''ve read somewhere that a long, long time ago, people''s life expectancy didn''t exceed 20 years old. Life is short, how about we narrow it down to 14 years old ?" Eric''s forehead creased in ck lines, that damn goblin, what kind of bargaining was that ? He just wanted to go back and ignore the girl''s insane pleas, but she held tightly onto his arm. The girl''s lower body was hidden under the sheets, however the pair of pink cherries on the upper part of her body wereid in in sight. Thess pleaded like a spoiled child: "Fifteen, fifteen years old, okay ? Mmm ?" Eric glimpsed at the goblin''s milky white skin, and unconsciously blurted out: "No, at least sixteen years old." "Deal!" The girl hastily let go of his arm and slipped back into the sheets. She looked at him innocently and said: "You can''t take it back." Ah He had fallen into her trap. However, somewhere deep down, he was looking forward to it. The next morning at 9am, the Versace staff came to Eric''s ce with outfits for both he and Drew. The Golden Globes wasn''t exactly a low profile event, and so Kapoor hade as well in order to fill Eric in about its ongoings a bit. He would apany Eric and Drew to the Golden Globes today, however since he didn''t qualify for an entry, he would have to wait in the hotel''s hall. You may think of it as weird, but it was amon situation, the presence of the agent was always required so that, in case an emergency urred, he would be able the first to step in. Drew was trying on different dresses when Eric asked Kapoor about the Versace sponsorship. Kapoor told him that the clothes were being loaned and that both Eric and Drew would have to give them back afterwards. Of course, they could also buy them if they wanted to, and in that case Versace would certainly give them a discount. Eric felt he might need one, he was a guy anyway and could probably wear the same suit again and again, so he inquired about the price, as he didn''t know anything about those things. A designer suit was 100,000 $, something which Eric was actually able to afford, although it really felt surreal. In his past life, the most expensive suit he had owned was something his wife had insisted on, it had only cost him 5000 yuan, but had still managed to make his heart bleed. They finished choosing their outfits in the morning, and Kapoor called the makeup artist to work on them the afternoon. They were ready by 4pm, and made their way towards the Golden Globes venue; the Hilton. _ _ _ _ [1] For the life of me I absolutely cannot find any sign of this so-called TV show ever existed. In the raws it says: ж I googled it as is, but to no avail, so I can only surmise that this was something the author came up with, and that it doesn''t really exist.
? Chapter 70 Kapoor had timed everything urately, and they arrived at the Beverly Hilton at 4:20pm. The ceremony wouldn''t start until 5pm. The waiting area was packed with small groups chatting. With a casual nce, Eric spotted Tom Hanks, Tom Cruise, and Sigourney Weaver. These giants from his past had seemed so out of reach back then. After hisst six months in Hollywood, there were very few people who didn''t know Eric, so whether they had met before or not, once they spotted him, they would nod in a friendly way. He walked through the huddle of guests and arrived at the Home Alone''s crew area. Maybe it was arranged by the organizers, the 17 Again crew was right next to them. Eric first went towards them and greeted Penny Marshall, Susan Sarandon and the rest. Drew took the initiative to release Eric''s arm and stay with the 17 Again crew. Compared to the other areas, Home Alone''s seemed deserted. Jeffrey was still in New York, while the two actors who yed the robbers were busy shooting another movie. Matthew Perry had been the first the be signed, snatched away by the WMA. However, unlike some others, he was courteous enough to show up at the get-together Eric had organized during the Christmas season, and had expressed his willingness to work with the young director again. Inparison, the Runkle couple''s attitude had been a disappointment. "Charlie, Mary, good afternoon." Turning towards the Home Alone crew, Eric smiled and shook hands with the two of them. The couple''s faces were glowing, the media had always focused on their son, it was the first time they had attended this kind of event. "Hello, Eric." The couple smiled and returned the handshake, but anyone could see they were straining themselves. They had changed. Eric didn''t mind, he squatted next to them and was about to cheerfully greet Stuart when a voice abruptly interrupted: "Mr. Williams, we meet again." Eric hadn''t noticed that there was someone else standing next to the couple. Thest time he had seen the middle-aged man was when thetter was storming out of a conference room: CAA agent, Horner Willie. The CAA operated in a certain way, and if that man was here, it was obviously because he had been one of the agents assigned to Stu. However. Eric knitted his brows, he still remembered how the guy had acted during theirst meeting. There could be only one reason why he had chosen toe instead of someone else: intimidation. Eric coldly nced at the man''s outstretched hand, and nkly said: "Hello Mr. Willie, it''s nice to see you." Although he said so, his tone waspletely detached. Horner, however, seemed pleased with himself. He smiled, and took his hand back, not appearing strained at all. As a first ss agent, he didn''t need to attend today''s events, but he had personally chosen to. Eric''s previous refusal had been akin to a p to the man''s face, and the reason he hade here was to make the youth realize that, since Stuart was now a CAA signed artist, he would need to bow to the CAA if he wanted to shoot Home Alone''s sequel. However, Horner Willie actually mistook Eric''s disdainful demeanor for fear, so when he saw him bend over to pick Stu up, he stepped forward and said: "Mr. Williams, Stuart is now my client, if there''s anything you need, you''ll have to address me, there''s now use fawning over the child I''m afraid." Eric swept Horner Willie up and down, and noticing the man''s meticulously coiffed hair and unblemished clothes, the corner of his lips rose. He leaned towards Stuart and whispered: "Stu, I know you hate the guy, wanna show him how far your spit can fly ?" Stuart''s eyes instantly lit up, he looked right and left, before turning to face Horner Willie. Ptooh C "Ah!" Horner Willie shrieked, before he malevolently red at both Eric and Stuart. He took out a handkerchief from his suit pocket, but froze in horror at the sight of the loogie on his chest. Charlie Runkle hastily scrambled to wipe it off the man: "I''m sorry, I''m so sorry Mr. Willie." Mary looked unhappily at Eric but didn''t dare get angry at him, she turned to her son and said: "Stuart, hurry and apologize to Uncle Willie." Stuart, who probably foundfort in now being held by Eric, tantly ignored his mother by turning his head aside. "Let''s go Stu, I''ll introduce you to a huge star, I''m sure you''ll like Tom Hanks." Eric, without caring about anyone else, made his way towards the BIG crew while holding the little guy. Stuart said with a tinge of pride: "I am a huge star now, Eric." Eric smiled and asked: "And what is it like ?" The little guy''s expression changed, he shook his head and said: "Not good. I thought that if I earned a lot of money then my parents would be happy, but they fought even more after that, and dad found himself another woman." Eric froze and looked down at the precocious 7-year-old boy in his arms: "How do you know all this Stu ? And do your parents know that you do ?" Stewart shook his head: "If they did, they would have already divorced. The only reason they''re still together is because they''re not confident they can win my custody." Eric tentatively asked: "Stu, do you know what the words you''ve used mean ?" "I had to hear them a few times before I did. Right, Eric, my dad took me to pass a test a while ago," Stu then leaned towards Eric''s ear and continued, whispering: "I have an IQ of 177, dad was really excited and wanted to tell the reporters about it, but that Horner Willie said it had to remain confidential and couldn''t be disclosed, so dad kept his mouth shut." Eric sighed, but couldn''t stop the sneer that took form at the corner of his mouth once he thought of Horner Willie''s cheap trick. The reason the guy hadn''t wanted to disclose Stu''s IQ was obviously because he was afraid it would boost Home Alone''s entries. Foolish thinking, the movie was already on itsst rope, that kind of information wouldn''t do much anyways. At the BIG crew area, Eric put Stuart down and gave a greeting hug to Tom Hanks. Tom nced with schadenfreude at Horner Willie who was hurrying to leave the ce: "That was a seriously ruthless move, Eric. Horner Willie has OCD, he''ll probably be having nightmares for the rest of the week." Eric grinned, he had deduced as much when he had taken notice of the man''s appearance, that''s why he had had Stuart do that. Although it was somewhat vulgar, it felt damn good. Horner Willie would probably be ufortable for days toe, and it was also possible he would be scarred by today''s events. "Tom, you know him ?" Tom Hanks nodded: "''Course I do, I''m also CAA contracted after all. Many people dislike him. He used to be okay before, but ever since the agency became huge he just." Tom didn''t continue, he simply shook his head. Eric suddenly said: "I almost forgot about this. Tom, my rtionship with the CAA isn''t good to say the least, so if I were to invite you for a movie, would you refuse ?" Tom Hanks smiled and said: "Of course not, as long as the script is good enough, I''m down." Eric reckoned that there was nothing much the agency could do with a celebrity at Tom''s level. After the two men had chatted for a bit, Stuart pulled Eric by the hand towards some other guests, and took out a small notebook from his pocket, before proceeding to collect autographs. Although many people had witnessed the little guy spitting on Horner, none of the minded, or if they did, didn''t let it show. Stuart might be the youngest here today, but he was also more popr at the moment than 80% of the attendees, so everyone he asked would smile and sign his notebook. Several actresses had their motherly instinct kick in, and took turns to pick the boy up and shower him with kisses, leaving behind a trail of bright red lipstick. This continued for a while, until a staff member came up and reminded everyone that they would open soon. Eric brought Stuart back to his parents, went to find Drew, and waited for the venue''s doors to open.
? Chapter 71 The annual Awards ceremony was broadcast on ABC television, the crew of admission time was arranged right after the most nominated movie crew, after being reminded by a staff member, Eric took to the red carpet. Mocked by some media as the most business-minded Awards ceremony, the red carpet are small, only a dozen meters,pared to the more than 200 meters of red carpet. After theye into the reporter''s area, Originally Eric was just gently holding Drew but she suddenly changed her posture and leaned against him, just as the reporters started taking pictures. With her wearing a beautiful dress made by making the two of them look like a couple. The media reporters started showing their excitement, The frequency of the camera sh speed-up a lot. If this was not the Golden Globe Awards site, these reporters would have already started asking him about the rtionship between the two of them. For Drew charade, Eric was numb, the girl was always trying to seize every opportunity to suggest that they are a couple, in ways that does not touch his bottom line. After taking the pictures, the two of them were supposed to go directly to the venue, but was stopped by a reporter from ABC, made a quick and pointless interview, got Asked some irrelevant questions, such as what is his mood like to participate in the Golden Globe Award ceremony for the first time. Of course, ABC''s reporters are unlikely to ask any sensitive questions in this kind of event. As long as this young miracle Director show his face, they will get more ratings. After the interview, when entering the venue, Eric inadvertently nced behind him, the Runkle couple were still standing in the media reporter''s area, because they were staying there for too long, they had to be reminded to leave by the staff. Eric heart once again felt a hint of disapproval, The Runkle couple is eventually going to pose a real problem. Eric made up his mind to find time to talk to Stu. Stewart''s is more mature and then his past life , He may listen to his advice, and not be at his parents mercy, so he doesn''t go astray like the original Macay. The Golden Globe Awards ceremony takes the form of a formal banquet, crew were arranged in the second row of tables near the podium. "Stu,e and sit by my side. " Eric sat down and beckoned to Stewart. The boy nced at his mother, stood up and turned to Eric''s side. Runkle and his wife faces showed a touch of displeasure, there son left their side, they certainly will not show-up in TV. At five o''clock sharp, the Awards ceremony officially began. The host took to the podium. "Good evening everyone ... ... looks like there are a misbehaving 7 year-old child among us tonight." The first sentence is ridicule, with a burst ofughter, the live camera quickly switched to Eric table, Eric smiled and waved to the camera, and Stewart showed his innocent big eyes looking curiously at the camera. Morgan suddenly looked irritated: "Hey, Stewart, look at my shabby dress, I prepared three sets of long dress, the first dress got butter poured on it, the second dress was Dyed ck, and thest set was covered with feathers, what do you have to say for yourself." The scene once again sounded a burst ofughter, some people faces showed the expression of empathy, Many of the stars are victims. Every region the movie were released in, children imitating Kevin''s mischief has be a trend. This time, Morgan did not wait for Stewart''s response, and soon turned the subject to other topic: "OK, just joking, let us look at the stars thate tonight ......" The next five minutes, Morgan then one by one ridicule the finalists of every movie, but rarely mentioned any TV shows. Although the Golden Globe Award from 1956 began to give TV awards, But in this era TV drama actors are not like twenty yearster, were they could shout out ''we-are-better!'' at the Golden Globe and no one will blink an eye. Now even there seats are in the corner where it''s hard for the camera to reach them. Like many other awards ceremony''s, the Golden Globe started by issuing the less important awards, Eric like most people pay little attention to what''s happening at the stage, only smiling at the camera when it sweeps in his direction. the rest of the time he was having a conversation with Stewart. Stewart is a talent he Dug out, the fate of the boy has been impossible to separate from the hustle and bustle of Hollywood. Eric very much hope that this clever boy can embark on a healthy career path, unlike the previous Drew and his past life . So Eric patiently exin to Stuart the in and out of the Entertainment industry, although the boy from time to time revealed a confused expression, But has been listening very carefully, with Stuart IQ, Although a lot of things in a short time he can not understand, but as long as he keeps the information''s firmly in mind then there won''t be a problem. Over time, Eric finally heard a nomination about his film, and stopped talking and turned his attention to the stage. with to obtain the best supporting actress nomination, several other nominees are for her role in , for her role in , for her role in , and in Eric remembered in his past life the one to get this award is , he was able to remember, because in the original time and space, the 46 Golden Globes history is the most special session. has be the first woman in history of the Golden Globe Awards to win two awards, and this was also the first time that an award was won by 3 people at the same time. The presenter introduced several nominated actress, Opened the envelope in front of the watchful eye of everyone''s, He leaned to the microphone and said: "The winner is for her role in " Loud apuse sounded, excitedly stood up, hugged her crew members one by one, then got up on the stage. , sitting near Eric, showed disappointment on her face, but smiled in response to everyone''sforting her. Eric has long been expecting this result. Although and both belong to fox studios, but has been released for nearly two months. And was released for just three weeks, in order to get good box office result, Fox will certainly take the lead in choosing in there public rtions. As for Sigourney Weaver''s acting, who cares? When Eric went to New York during the release of , He and Aniston specifically went to see it, This is a standard chick-flick movie, it is very simr to his past life , The plot is a neer girlnds a job as an assistant to a harsh female boss, she change herself Step by step, thorough a dramatic changes in appearance, Completing her Transformation she emerges like a butterfly from a cocoon. In Miranda Priestly the icy editor-in-chief of a Runway fashion magazine, the indifferent arrogance and perfectionism interpretation by actress is perfect, Compared to in the , who ys the female boss he really can not see any bright spots. It is estimated that when people see her performance, The only idea that can be produced are ''Alien Queen''. These things figured out, Eric had no more hope for two nominations. It is clear, the Golden Globe results rely heavily on public rtions, and These two masterpieces supporting actress can''t even win against a mediocremercial film, It sounds ironic. Moreover, Eric did not do any public rtions activities for the , On the one hand, he doesn''t have the connections, Columbia and CAA are less likely to take the initiative to do the work. On the other hand, even if he spends a lot of effort to get the awards, The impact on the box office of is negligible, Seven or eight year old children don''t care about how many awards the movie wins, The ones influenced by the awards are basically adults. Chapter 72 The award''s ceremony continued, This year''s Golden Globes awards has not been affected by Eric ''Butterfly'' effect, In addition to his two films few nominations, There is no change in the list of winners. As with the original time and space, the best actress of the ss still appeared three winners, , who is responsible for announcing the winner looks at the list in the envelope, hesitated for more than ten seconds without reading the name, he thought the organizers made a mistake. Until Michael received a hint from the organizers, Then safely read out the list: "The one won the best actress in a drama is: for her role in " The audience just burst into sporadic apuse, Michael quickly elerate the rate of his speech: "and for her role in . And for her role in " Eric already expected this result, but other people were in shock, after a few seconds of stagnation, the thunderous apuse resounded through the Hilton Hotel banquet hall. After Continuous apuse, the three heroines Hesitantly took to the stage, Confirmed the list in ''s hands together, Only to calm down. After getting there trophy''s, and deliberate handed over the microphone to the oldest one of them . is a Hollywood legend, She is 55 years old, her first debut was in the fifties, her career was flourishing in 60s and 70s, she has already won the , , and the , she won the best Actress award in all of the four major movie event. But did not get the Best Actress award to achieve the grand m dunk. It can be considered a sad thing that Shirley MacLaine, at other film awards ceremony''s to get a series of nominations and awards, but did not even get nominated in the Cannes film festival in all these years. With a smile, holding her trophy she went in front of the microphone, started her award-winning speech: "This is really a surprising result ..." After the best actress award, Best Actor and Best Picture like every one expected, indisputably won the two awards, with the movie getting the golden glob awards and using autism as a topic, the movie is sure to bounce back in the box office. Unlike previous life, Now released for five weeks, it''s easy for the movie to harvest more money from Christmas and New Year stalls, probably get 40 million dors more in box office revenue. In parallel time and space, although hasn''t been amazing at the box office, with up to 25 weeks of long-term screening process, with the highest week achieving a $17 million dor, with the rest of the weeks staying at the top 10 Rank. For up to six months at the box office, not only did not encounterrge collision with other movies, Also did not encounter any box office dark horse, with Tom Cruise''s box-office appeal and winning some small awards, Ended up eventually creating a $170 million at the box office Domestically. And now, That situation certainly will not happen again, start was still strong, but with and bined extrusion, the Box office will decline, In this case to get six months of long-term screening period is unlikely, Not to mention there is Eric new movie . In fact , During this holiday season, should be located in the top ten box office of the year, but with and , And tonight to getedy ss best film award , all are going to shrink the movie box office a lotpared to his past life. After all, 1988 Holiday stall for thest two months, achieved A total of about 600 million dors, and directly scraped more 200 million dollers Over 1/3 of the total, Other movies box office situation can be imagined. director Barry Levinson came to the stage to receive the best film award, after that the Golden Globes broadcast of 3 hours officially ended. All the stars present are relieved, they let there stiff body''s rx a little, they stood up to leave the venue. Of course, they are not going home directly. Next, they are going to attend the parties organized by major filmpanies. Eric pulled Drew to leave, stopped him: "Hey, Eric, Fox has a party on the third floor, you shoulde" "Thank you for the invitation, penny, but I''m afraid I can''t." Eric shook his head and refused. looked at Eric expression: "Eric, you should not feel frustrated because you didn''t get any award? You''re only eighteen years old, There will be many opportunities for you in the future. Look at me, Tonight I''m going home empty-handed." Eric certainly will not feel frustrated, The ultimate goal of PR awards is economic benefits, Just look at the two best movies at the box office right now, In the final analysis, is the biggest winner the year. "Of course not, Penny, Actually, I have to get up early tomorrow, schedule is very tight, I have no time to lose. " Penny reluctantly said: "Then I''ll see youter, You are so young, Why work so hard, I heard that you are busy at work untilte at night every day. " Eric and penny had a hug again: "You know what they say, when you are young try your best, don''t wait until you are too old to start work." "Wow, hearing you say those words in that tone, you sound just like a middle-aged man, I don''t know why i get this mixed feelings. Eric smiled and did not answer, said goodbye to and the others one by one, and took a reluctant Drew and left the Hilton Hotel. Starting the car, Eric looked at the unhappy Drew, Smiled and said: "Well, girl, no need to pout, You did not bring any spare clothes, If you join the party and identally dirty your dress, Then we can onlypensation for the dress original price. " Drew wrinkled her little nose, used a tone just like teasing him: "Oh wow, hearing you saying these words, you sound Just like a middle-aged man, I really don''t know why do you make so much money. "You say, I remember that." Eric frowned slightly, and looked Drew up and down: "The day before yesterday, I received the bill of the credit card that I gave you, I think you spend too much money. Tomorrow, I''ll have Kapoor take you to do a drug test, If you let me down, then ...... " Drew showed no sign of concern, her small body leaned over, With eager eyes: "Eric, what are you going to do?, Shut me up in the basement, With no clothes, Not allowed to eat, There are whips, dripping hot wax, Trojans ... ... Wow, I never thought you were so evil, I''m still underage." "... ..." "All right, all right." I''ll just be honest. Before Christmas, When you were not at home, I invited some ssmates to party, And identally spent a little bit more money." Eric''s expression rxed a little, asked: "How much money does it cost for a party?" "It''s all your fault," The girl instantly became righteous: "you and Aniston got a nice Street shot to annoy me, on impulse, i called a store to send a box of 53 years old Ptrus wine." Ptrus wine, 53 years, And also a box! And the way she say it''s his fault she gone crazy spending money, this little bitch is crazy. Eric unconsciously licked his dry lips: "all ... ... finished?" Drew rolled her glittery green beautiful eyes, And gently nodded her head: "no." Eric took a deep breath, Finally felt relieved "Good thing, good thing." ... ... wilshire hotel restaurant. Edward ying the piano in the restaurant, this scene took cete at night, after consulting with the hotel crew, They temporarily reced the curtains withpletely opaque thick curtains, The lighting engineers were very busy creating the night scene. "Actors in ce, ... action. Panoramic lens, a few attendants were sitting in the dining room, the waiters doing their Boring work, Smoking, talking in a low voice. Edward did not care whether these people were really listen to his ying, with a deeply hunched waist, slightly pursed lips, The man exudes a deep sense of fatigue and boredom. The hurried sound of the piano indicated the depression in Edward''s heart. Eric watched carefully the performance of in the monitor, Eric music literacy is not high, he did not know if Al Pacino ying level is good or bad, he just felt that Al''s piano ying is fluid, The emotions he shows in front of the camera is also quite in ce. He Looked at the music teacher Howard Norton, The other party was specially called to guide the shot. If Al''s ying isn''t up to par, Later Howard will personally be responsible for the soundtrack. However, from the look of Howard nodding frequently, he is very satisfied by Al piano ying. As time goes on, Vivian Wearing a nightgown and a robe quietly walked up behind Edward, Edward''s piano y also reached the end. Vivian had a smile on her face, with her arms crossed quietly listening to Edward''s y. "Cut, very good!" Eric shouted, At the same time he can not help but apud. Chapter 73 Although he heard Eric''s praise, just nodded his head slightly, He was still immersed in the previous emotions, and did not intend toe out from the role. This is just right, Eric no longer spoke with him, and quickly ordered the staff to prepare for the next shot. Ending his piano solo, Edward thanked the audience, Vivian went up to him, As a girl who never finished high school, she didn''t recognize theplex emotions contained in Edward''s y. Leaning over the piano, Vivian give him apliment: "I didn''t know you could y the piano?" Edward smiled and gazed at Vivian: "I only y for strangers." Vivian paused for a moment, without questioning why, moved to Edward side: "I''m a little lonely upstairs." Edward quickly turned to the waiters still doing there jobs and asked them to leave, he didn''t forget to say tank you to them, he was always so polite, Even whenmanding others. Vivian could not help but ridicule Edward''s behavior:"Aren''t People always willing to listen to your orders?" Edward did not answer, pulled her to him, and rested his weary head on Vivian body. For the first time, she felt the man''s weakness, and for a moment she was at a loss what to do. Only to follow her instinct by gently stroking Edward''s hair. Edward silently untied her robe, put her on the top of the piano. Vivian meekly let the man kiss and caress her, At this moment, she turned into a pool of spring water, Silently invading Edward''s dry emotional world. The camera slowly drew away, Until it waspletely obstructed by the prepared obstacles. But and Julie did not stop the show, the two of theme were still wrapped together. photographer Nicole Frank looked at Eric, After getting the hint, wisely turned off the camera. All the cast members at the scene silently looked at Eric, asking what to do next? Eric knew he couldn''t let things keep going, he pped his hands lightly, Raised his voice and shouted: "Ok, cut!" heard the sound on the top of the piano, got out from her confused state, with a look of shyness and panic looked at Eric, pushed Al away, Tidy up her messy dress, and ced the robe back on her body. Al also recovered, when he saw the crew strange looks, he smiled awkwardly. In order to resolve the awkward atmosphere, Eric quickly dispatched the others to prepare for the next scene. "I''m sorry, Eric, I just forgot." Eric came in front of Al, Smiled and said: "No, Al, your performance was very good, this is the perfect state of an actor, Oh, Julia''s performance was also very good." Eric didn''t forget to praise the girl. Julia did not feel the joy of being praised, her eyes dodged Eric''s eyes: "I ... I''m going to fix my makeup." Then the girl left in a hurry, Al had some doubts: "What''s wrong with her?" Eric said: "She may be shy, I also find it somewhat strange, we have taken several exciting shots before She has not been like this, a woman''s thought process is impossible to grasp. Who knows?" The next shot, Julia made a lot of mistakes that should not have been made. However, one of the most important scenes of the day made Eric satisfied, And saved him quite a lot of time. So Eric wasn''t impatient with her. At five o''clock in the afternoon, the crew called it a day and started packing, Al smiled when he found Julia next to him in the makeup trailer: ", are you free this evening, a new French restaurant has just opened at La Cienega Boulevard, I would like to invite you to dinner." paused, the makeup artist and assistant were about to temporarily leave them alone, Julia stopped them and sail to Al: "Mr. Pacino, can you wait a minute?" "Sure, I''ll wait for you outside." Al said, and walked off the trailer. A few minutester, Julia came out after removing her makeup, and waved to him, but first lead the way to Eric and his assistant n Fisman who were having a discussion. ... ... "This scene, prepare a group of 50 people to y, find a professional polo team. Anyway, Our budget is still very adequate ... ... " Eric was saying, n caught sight of Julia walking toward them, Nodded slightly to the girl, And with a pencil signed The folder his hand. "Eric, Al wants to invite me to dinner?" Julia''s said in a low voice. n raised his eyebrows slightly, He clearly sensed the uncertainty in the girl''s voice. Eric had been absorbed in telling n something, Hearing what Julia said, Without thinking he blurted out: "Go ahead, don''t dy the shooting tomorrow." The girl stood in ce for a few seconds, she stared at Eric, see the man still do not have much reaction, Julia suddenly became very angry, This anger made her throw caution to the wind, stepped forward two steps, and in front the astonished eyes of n, kicked fiercely at Eric''s leg. Eric let out a scream, and crashed down. n, who had seen everything, had forgotten to support the falling Eric, Mouth trembling slightly, his calf muscle instantly be tight, That was high-heeled shoes, ah, how painful!. This woman is not crazy, right! Hearing Eric''s miserable call, everyone who was still at the filming site quickly gathered, after the kick Julia immediately regretted it, But since she has done this kind of thing she med her Break down on him, Julia closed her lips and turned away to leave. Julia''s assistant Alison Green, looked anxiously at Eric, who had been lifted up, and followed behind Julia. Alison drove the silent Julia back to her apartment. After entered the room, she sat down on the living room sofa, Alison carefully poured a ss of water for Julia and ced it in front of the girl, and asked anxiously: "Julia, we will not be fired, right?" Think of that man overbearing arrogant character, Julia was not sure what the result would be, Holding the ss of water, she whispered, "I''m sorry, Alison. you may get Implicated." "That''s all right, no big deal I can get another job." Alison is free and easy, Changing the job is no problem, she''s only an Assistant, She will not suffer too much trouble: "But why did you kick Mr. Williams?" Julia panicked and drink some water, but did not answer. Alison said hesitantly: "did he stop you from dating Mr. , that''s why you kicked him, right?" still said nothing, Alison took Julia''s silence as a what actually happened, Angrily said: "That''s too much, You only had one or two rtionships, You only had sex one or two times, You are not his property, how can he limit your freedom to love?" Julia scratched her hair: "Alison, stop it, can ...... can you leave me in peace, please?" "Oh, if there''s nothing else, I''ll leave first, call me if you need anything. Julia, cheer up, You are not aplete unknown actress, even if you leave that bastard, You can still get a movie role." "Alison......" "Alright alright, I won''t say anything, I''ll go first." ... ... The crew still remains at the site, Eric was sitting on a deck chair, surrounded by people. Leg lifted with his pants off, with a private doctor pressing from time to time on the bruise. "Mr. Williams, there''s no damage to the bone, apply some topical medicine to invigorate the cirction of blood and remove Blood stasis. However Do not move too much these days." Eric said: "Thank you foring, Dr. Galien." "You''re wee, call me when you have something, I will leave first." Dr. Galien left a bottle of lotion, carrying his Kit he turned to leave. "Well, everybody go back. I''ll take a break." The crew members around him gradually dispersed, and finally only n Fiseman and , Al feels that the matter is certainly rted to him, so he decided to stay and exin. He thought Eric and had no intimate rtionships, Coupled with today''s y with Julia, The old yboy got the idea of trying to seduce her, he did not expect this oue. "n, I didn''t say anything wrong, right?" Allen saw the bruise on his boss calf, quickly shook his head. "So what''s the matter?" Allen was the only one of the crew close to him and Julia when things happened, he has no knowledge of the things between Eric and Julia. "Director, I''m not sure, but miss asked you a question. You gave her a casual answer, and then she......" Eric rubbed his temples in agony: "What did she ask, I was looking at the film shooting table, and did not listen too clearly?" Allen nced at , he wondered if he should speak in front of him. Eric followed n''s gaze, and remembered that Julia''s words seemed to mention Al. "Eric, I''m sorry, but I was just going to invite for dinner, did not expect to cause conflict between the two of you." Al calmly exined what had happened: "I thought you two didn''t have an intimate rtionship, so...... I was abrupt." "Oh, I remember now." Eric suddenly said: "Julia has just asked me this question, Allen, how did I answer?" n nced at al and Eric and said truthfully, "you just said to , go ahead, do not dy tomorrow ''s shooting." "Nothing else?" n nodded with certainty: "No." The three men at the same time looked strangely at Eric''s calf. Eric gave a bitter smile: "an ident." Chapter 74 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in this chapter please tell me in thement section.) The next day, Eric still came to work early after a night of rest, he didn''t limp when walking. All the crew members have a tacit understanding and did not mention the scene that happened yesterday, but most of them didn''t conceal there curiosity and spection. "Nicole, is Julia here?" Eric pretended to debug the camera while talking to Nicole Frank in a low voice. Nicole pointed at the makeup trailer and showed a warm smile on his face: "Miss came early, she''s in the trailer." Eric patted Nicole shoulder, and walked toward the trailer, behind him the crew members who were pretending they are busy all looked at Eric back. "The director will not be angry, right?" A stage manager asked a colleague quietly. "Who knows, but rest assured, The movie is almost done, he certainly will not rece the heroine. Hey, why do you think Miss kicked the director yesterday? ...... High heels ah, he must''ve Been in so much pain." "You ask me, I''m the one who is supposed to ask. But the rtionship between the director and the actress must be deep, I kind of like miss , she is such a fierce girl." "You camete, you haven''t seen miss Julia when shee this morning, she looked distraught. I guess she did regret what she didst night. " Leaving the waves of whispers behind, Eric stepped into the trailer, Julia was sitting in front a mirror, absentmindedly leaving Alison to put the makeup foundation on her, when she saw Eric in the mirror, Julia''s body suddenly slumped in the chair. "Alison, you go out first." Eric pointed to the door as he spoke to Alison. Alison put down her make-up tools, looked anxiously at Julia, and turned to leave the trailer, Eric locked the trailer door, went to Julia side, pushed aside the cosmetic bottles, leaned back on the table, and looked down at Julia. The girl looked haggard, she lowered her head slightly, with teary eyes, afraid to look straight into Eric eyes, her hands on her knees unconsciously rubbing and pinching her clothes. Looking at the girl trembling with fear, Eric sighed, and took the lead to say: "You have anything to say, such as an apology or something." head hangs even lower, pinching the clothes in her hands in her small fists, still stubbornly biting her lips without saying anything. Eric reached out his hand to lift her chin, forced Julia to look at his eyes, with impatience in his voice: "Look at me and say something." There eyes meet, Julia''s body was visibly trembling, looking at Eric''s aggressive eyes, She thought of that night again, That night this hateful guy treated her just like this. She didn''t know why, that stubborn resistance in her heart instantly vanished, Instead, it produced a strange sense of expectation. Eric withdrew his fingers, but Julia still kept her head up mechanically, her cheeks slightly red, and eyes filled with emotional fog. Looking at each other for a few seconds, in Eric''s mind once again emerged that blurred night scenes, unable to restrain his feelings he once again stretched out his index finger, gently stroked the girl''s cheek and red lips. Julia silently groaned: Yes... that''s it. This time she did not remain passive, but gently opened her red lips and warped them around his finger, her small tongue flexibly wriggling around it, then like a child she started sucking Eric''s index finger. After a while, Eric could not help but probe the girl''s mouth with his thumb, catching the flexible little tongue and pinching it, Eric suddenly recovered, embarrassed at his own blunder, pulled out a paper towel to wipe clean his wet fingers, with a guilty conscience, he looked at the girl with an uncertain look: "Well, I seem to ... understand where the problem lies." Julia leaned forward, her head leaning on Eric''s lower abdomen, with her little hands sliding up to Eric''s belt, about to move things to the next level, Eric reached out and prevented move : "Julia, not right here, there are dozens of people waiting for us outside." "I ... ... I don''t care. " Julia gasped softly, her hand movements still continuing. Eric raised his hand to give the girl a little p to wake her up, but he suddenly remembered that this not only will not wake up the girl, but will instead increase her emotions. Thinking about what to do, Eric went to the trailer door and pulled it open, the bright light and the voices of the surrounding crew members seeped inside. Eric turned around and looked at Julia, her eyes had stated to restore some rity, fortunately, her instinctive sense of shame can resist her emotions, that''s a good thing, she wasn''tpletely gone. "Well, Julia, about what happened yesterday? Let''s wait until the film is over. For this i...... I''m sorry, but you might need some psychotherapy." Although Julia is 22 years old, but she did not fully understand what Eric''sst word meant, she only finished high school, and did not umte a few decades of knowledge like Eric. However, she was still in her submissive mood so she obediently nodded her head. At the same time, hearing the word psychotherapy, and then think of what she just did, Julia understood that she have problems for sure. "Can you tell me what''s going on?" Julia tidied up her messy clothes and asked. Eric returned to Julia side, see a strand of hair hanging down her forehead, he wanted to lift it up but stopped his hand "I''m sorry, Julia, you may be suffering from a mild Stockholm Syndrome." Julia looked confused, she only knew that Stockholm was the capital of Sweden. But when she saw Eric guilty and awkward appearance, Julia did not pursue the subject any further. Some crew members see Eric so quicklye out from the trailer, they all showed a look of disappointment, The trailer rented by the crew is notrge, If a man and a woman do some repeated movements, the trailer will surely start shaking. Unfortunately, this kind of thing did not happen, the people who look forward to gossip were disappointed. "What are you guys doing?, get ready to work." Eric feelings guilt, and seeing these guys unscrupulous stares made him angry: "Alison, where are you hiding, quickly go fix makeup. Nicole, Why hasn''t the camera dolly track been paved?, Don''t you want to do it?. n, where''s my director chair ......" With Eric''s roar, all the crew members moved quickly, and a busy day of filming began. ... ... That afternoon Jeffrey came back from New York. At the same time to inform Eric, production of fireflypany title LOGO have beenpleted. After a day of shooting, Eric met with Pixar''s employee at the firefly headquarters. "Eric, this is Mr. Pixar''s chief creative officer, John, this is Eric." With Jeffrey introduction, the two men shook hands. "Mr. Lasseter, I''m sorry for keeping you waiting until now." Eric apologized. arrived at the firefly headquarters at 4 p.m. and waited until 7 p.m. to see Eric. But at this time John did not dare toin, because every single business that can get now is extremely important to the survival of the studio. "It doesn''t matter, Mr. Williams, I think we should take a look at yourpany''s title LOGO that youmissioned." "Of course" Eric nodded, and the three of them went to the firefly''s show room, where put the video tape in the projector himself. On the screen, a little girl wearing a red hoodie holding a ss bottle, standing in the dark wilderness under the night sky. The girl opened the lid of the ss bottle, A firefly in the bottle shook its wings several times, and quickly got out of the ss bottle, flow in the air and draw a "Firefly Film" in light, before flying further and further away, and finally turned into the brightest star in the starry sky. The full length of the title logo is about 30 seconds, and it was repeated several times, Eric frowned and said: : "Mr. Lasseter, isn''t the movement of the little girl too rigid?."
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 75 exined: "Mr. Williams, the girl movements do appear slightly stiff, before the production, I have reminded Mr. Hansen of this problem, Mr. Hansen insisted that we do it and see the effect." Eric looked at Jeffrey, and Jeffrey nodded. "Can''t you make it a little smoother?. Mr. Lasseter, Money isn''t a problem, This logo will be used for many years, we have to strive for excellence." shook his head: "Mr. Williams, I promise, this is currently the highest level of 3D animation, sincest year started trying human motion modeling, andpared with the baby in our previous short film , the little girl movement is a lot smoother, Other studios can not achieve this level." When Eric heard the name , a thought shed in his mind, but he didn''t catch it, his main focus was still on the Firefly''s intro. Since it is impossible to further improve the LOGO, Eric and Jeffrey started discussing in a low voice. In the 30 seconds, in addition to the girls opening the cap of the ss jar to release the firefly being slightly wed, Everything else is perfect. And after some editing the intro logo is going to be about 15 seconds, or shorter, Intro Logos are generally about 15 seconds in length, or shorter, such as in the Super Bowl trailer they are going to make, they would perhaps use just five seconds. Therefore, 30 seconds of video materials is enough to cut out a more perfect logo. In this case, Eric did not ask to start reworking, the next thing is a lot simpler, he signed some documents, and give the payment to . After everything was done, John refused Eric''s invitation to dinner, and was about to leave, but was stopped by Eric. "Mr. Lasseter, I remember you mentioned a short film ?." John Lasseter nodded: "Yes, Mr. Williams, this short film is what we started working on in Februaryst year, it''s about five minutes long, it has been dered this year''s Oscar''s best short film." Eric waspletely convinced when he mentioned the Oscar. "John, don''t mind me addressing you like this, you can call me Eric. If you don''t have anything urgent, can you stay and chat for a while? I''m very interested in 3D animation." looked carefully at Eric''s face, and he suddenly remembered that Eric would be Hollywood''s youngest multimillionaire by virtue of box office. Pixar is now at the end of its road and might copse at any time. Maybe the young man could save pixar. With all this in mind, John be eager, "Sure, no problem Eric." In Firefly''s conference room, John exined: "The idea of e from my little nephew,st Christmas, i saw him crawling into a pile of tidy toys, is just a shot time he upturned that pile of toys making a mess he even broke some of them. After that the animation was produced, Eric if you''re interested, i can call my assistant and bring the video." Originally, Eric thought there is still five or six years for him to buy , but if Pixar once again signed a contract with like in his past life, it will be very difficult and very costly. In order for to know that he was truly interested in 3D animation, Eric agreed with John''s proposal: "If it is convenient, then please ask your assistant to run a trip." John made a phone call, and half an hourter the three of them returned to the screening room. ... ... The new toy soldier looked curiously at everything in the room, a small baby crawled into the room. The toy soldier is looking forward to his new owner. But the baby''s brutal treatment to the other toys make the toy soldier try to flee the baby''s clutches, but it have musical instruments attached to it body, so whenever the toy soldier moved he made noise that attracted the attention of the baby. so a desperate chase begun ... ... John sat on the right side of Eric, and as the animation yed, John exined in in words to Eric the technical difficulties of this seemingly simple pictures. Eric listened carefully, nodding his head from time to time to show his understanding. Although he wanted to ridicule the baby animation style, but on the surface Eric Eric still praised the animation. Whether it is animation, or video game, Westerners always tray to achieve a realistic look, but for an easterner guy like Eric all these animation and games look ugly. By contrast, the animations and games produced by the Orientals, regardless of their intrinsic quality, have beautiful characters. This is more prominent in the 3D games, as long as the characters aren''t good looking, you can determine the origins of the game. After the animation finished ying, The three of them didn''t leave the screening room, but continued to talk about 3D animation,pared to who has little confidence in 3D technology, Eric is very familiar with the future development prospects of 3D animation, Eric could not help but reveal a little bit of concept to John Lasseter. "Eric, you have seen the idea of . I actually had the same idea of making 3D animated movie too, but you know, with financial situation, it''s absolutely impossible to achieve this n." Finally they started talking about this subject, Eric said: "John, is having financial problems, right? This thing in the business world is not confidential, as long as you are determined, you can easily find this information. Nor did John Lasseter hide it: " has just sold the hardware department of Pixar, and now there''s only the software animation department. If there is no miracle." As John spoke, he looked at Eric with expectancy, and continued: "The studio either will be dissolved or sold, but not many people are willing to take over." "Why is no one willing to take over, Pixar''s technology should be the most advanced in the industry?" Looking at Eric this possible source of money he hesitated for a few seconds, But in the end, he was just a technician, he wasn''t ustomed to dealing with businessmen. Finally he decided to tell the truth: "Because 3D animation technology cost too much money, and do not have much output. Unless you are one of the big Giants such as , or a special effectspany like , looking for a small studio toplement your other departments...... Otherwise no one willing to take over this money burning studio." Eric was very satisfied with John Lasseter''s honesty, pretending to think for a minute, then he said: "John, I am very interested in 3D animation, after , i have a lot of money to invest. So if possible, i am willing to buy , and investing in making a long 3D movie, Ah... The toy idea we talked about just now is good." originally thought that Eric after hearing his exnation, will lose interest, but did not expect to hear such words, for a time he did not know what to say. John had such a good time talking to Eric, he had a good opinion of the young man. So instinctively, he didn''t want Eric to fall into the ''quagmire'' called Pixar like his boss did, have gone from a multi-millionaire to the edge of bankruptcy, that''s because Pixar keeps drawing funds from him, But it did not create the corresponding economic benefits. But on the other hand, he really loves 3D animation, otherwise he wouldn''t have repeatedly turned down Disney''s olive branch and stayed in apany where everyone isn''t optimistic about it staying afloat. Thinking about it, John decided to put forward apromising approach: "Eric, I don''t think it''s necessary for you to buy . If you are interested in 3d animation, you can invest in Pixar Animation Studios, so it won''t cost you too much, but if........ If Pixar fail, you Can easily withdraw." But if he really did follow John''s advice, he will be throwing millions of dors to the wind, because in his past life After the sess of Pixar stocks skyrocketed, went from the edge of bankruptcy straight into the ranks of billionaires. Eric put on a willful look on his face and said in a tone that match it: "No, John, you give a message to Mr. jobs for me, tell him I''m willing to buy Pixar for $20 millions, and if the deal is done. I''ll invest $30 millions to produce an animated film." "Eric, I think 20 million dors isn''t enough, Steve Jobs will not agree, over the past few years he invested no less than 20 millions into Pixar." Eric said: "John, if you make a business, sometime you lose. if you invest a lot of money, it is not necessary you''ll be able to recover back more, That''s not how business work. You give my message to Mr jobs, 20 million, and not a penny more. I am very busy, i don''t have the time to haggle over the price, if Mr. was dissatisfied with the price, then it is unnecessary to contact me, I believe he will make a wise choice." "In that case, all right, I will tell Steve what you said." After sending away, Eric said to Jeffrey who had been holding on for a long time, "Jeffrey, how did you resist not advising me this time? Jeffrey said: "I know it''s useless, so why waste my time. But now that you ask, I''m going to say that buying is certainly not a wise choice." Ericughed and joked with him: "Originally i wanted to y a bet with you, but you do not have anything I am interested in, so i let it go."
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 76 (Thank you everyone for all yourments, for those who asked about the release schedule, i will probably release 4 to 5 chapters a week, and if i have the time probably more.) ... ... After asking John Lasseter to bring the message to Steve Jobs, Eric put things on the side. In the present situation of Steve Jobs, Eric believe the chances of the other Party epting the proposal are over 90% percent. Even if the other side refuse to sell Pixar, Silicon Valley doesn''tke 3D Animators. In January 21st, the shooting of officially finished, they originally nned to take three weeks to shoot the film, but it only took them two weeks toplete, for the crew members and the cast Eric reputation as a "fast shooter" was deeply ingrained in there minds. In addition, Eric stayed upte at night working on editing a 59 second trailer for the Super Bowl, and in the morning he was shooting the movie. Even with his vigorous young body, Eric after experiencing more than two weeks of high-intensity work, was feeling deeply exhausted. Afterpleting the work, there was no party, and no touching parting scene. Everyone packed their things, and went their separate ways. ... ... Tomorrow is the once a year Super Bowl opening night, even Eric a guy who has no sense of the Super Bowl, can feel the crowd''s expectations for the day. Photographer Nicole Frank and several other crew members, regardless of how tired they were, after Eric shouted the end, went straight to the airport to fly to Miami. If you are not an American, It''s hard to understand the Americans mania for the super bowl. In fact, in 1966 the NFL and AFL agreed to merge with a championship game between the two leagues to be yed after that season. Lamar Hunt, founder of the American Football League saw his children ying with a Super Ball toy, so he decided to name the championship the Super Bowl as a joke instead of on the real name "AFL-NFL Championship Game" but the media immediately picked up on Hunt''s "Super Bowl" name, which would be the official nameter. After decades of development, the Super Bowl has be a big carnival for all Americans. the Super Bowl TV broadcast be the highest-rated program of all time. This is the reasons why Eric insisted on putting the the trailer of on the super bowl. Eric did not know how long he have been sleeping, when he woke up it was afternoon the next day, he stretched hearing the soft sound of his whole body bones crackling, he wore new cloths and walked downstairs. In the living room a petite figure was busy, the coffee table in front of the sofa was full of food, the TV have also been reced with new one. Seeing Eric appear, Drew took a red T-shirt and went straight to Eric. "Hey, what are you doing, in broad daylight." Eric smiled and dodged drew harassment. "Dirty minded smelly man!" Drew pursed her little mouth, took Eric t-shirt off, and forced him to wear a red football jersey. "What does this mean?" Eric tugged at the small ufortable t-shirt. "This Super Bowl night, i announce that you are now a fan of the San Francisco 49ers." Eric asked softly: "can I refuse?" "No!" Drew said, she turned around no longer paying attention to him. Eric shrugged his shoulders, picked a bucket of fried chicken wings and a bottle of fruit juice, and turned upstairs to the study room, and let drew keep messing about in the living room. ... ... Eric didn''t back to the living room for a long time. instead he waited until the game was about to start. The finals were between the Cincinnati Bengals and San Francisco 49ers. If Eric soul was of a 20 years young man, he may be interested in this game, but unfortunately he have the soul of an uncle, an Asian uncle no less, so there is not much interest. He was just sitting in the living room patiently waiting for his movie Trailer to start ying. Finally, at the end of the second quarter of the game, after a Chevrolet car ad, the picture shed, and for five seconds a carefully edited "logo" appeared on the TV screen. The whole of North America at this time there are more than 100 million viewers sitting in front of the TV, when they saw the Firefly-film logo, most people''s first reaction is that this intro was beautiful, but also produced a question, Firefly-film, What is this ad about? Before this Super Bowl broadcast, there has never been a movie trailer, so ny-nine percent of the viewers did not think about it. After five seconds the title finished, a close-up of beautiful red lips said: "are you ready?" no one answered, a loud roar of the Lamborghini engine sounded, and a shot of the sharp lines of the silver ''Lamborghini Countach'' appeared on the screen. "Cool!" In front of the TV many people thought this is a sports car ads. However, they soon found they are wrong, the reason Eric add the engine sound is to attract the attention of the viewers. Next, the song sounded, and trailer Eric made began showing on the screen. Although only a short 50 seconds trailer, however, Eric spent a lot of thought when making it, he divided the shots into four 10 seconds sections, Edward and Vivian meeting, getting along, Knowing each other, breaking up. Although for more then 40 seconds there was no lines, but most TV viewers were able to understand, that this is a Cindere love story, Of course, Eric will not be stupid to say everything clearly, a lot of the shots gives a contradicting feeling, as if to say: "If you want to know, go to the cinema.". The 59 seconds of the trailer finally came to an end, in thest shot, Julia said with determination and hope in her voice: "I want a fairy tale!" The trailer ended, the screen turned ck, Julia''sst remark left a huge suspense to all the viewers: "will she get a fairy tale?" Finally, a line of text appeared on TV: director Eric Williams new work . Release date in February 10th in North America, stay tuned! In thousands of households in North America, People briefly lost interest in the ads and the game, they were discussing the trailer. ... ... "A movie trailer ad in the Super Bowl, the guy who thought of this idea is really a genius, But isn''t the Super Bowl ads expensive?." "It must be very expensive. The adsted for nearly a minute, no doubt they have to spend at least 1 million dors to take the spot." "That''s too extravagant. that''s enough money to make a new movie. But I think the trailer were interesting, maybe we can go see itter." ... ... "That Actress is so beautiful " "I like better. This is his new movie?. I liked him in the movie series, I''ve gone to see it five or six times." ... ... "Eric Williams, he made another movie?" "Yes, that''s too fast. I hope he didn''t ruin this movie." ... ... "Mom, I know those words. Let''s go and see Kevin again tomorrow, OK?" "No, honey, you must have read it wrong." "Mom you are lying, you taught me the two words." ... ... "I have listened to this song, "Roy Orbison - Oh, Pretty Woman", a long time ago." "Really, do you still have the album?" "I can''t find it. The album was bought by my grandfather. Who knows where he put it?" "That''s too bad, but after the movie is released, there must be a soundtrack. Buy it then." ... ... "Cole, love let''s go to see the film on "Valentine''s Day"." "That ...... Margaret, aren''t we going to see new movie " "I think this movie is more interesting ... ..." "All right, I''ll listen to you." ... ... "Hey, that girl said she wanted a fairy tale, you say she can seed?" "Honey, this is love movie schedule on Valentine''s Day, the oue is certainly going to be good." "But I think, many of the shots hinted that the male and female will be separated, and many directors prefer to draw the audience tears with a tragic ending." "Well, no need to think about it. Let''s go see it on Valentine''s Day." ... ...
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 77 After the Super Bowl night, the most talked about topic is not who won the Super Bowl championship, but the first movie trailer to appear in the Super Bowl TV broadcast. This session of the Super Bowl the highest ratings went up to 150 million people, ounting for 50% of the total poption of North America, and with the word of mouth, after just one day, all Americans know about director Eric William a new movie news. The major film giants also keenly felt the amazing influence of the Super Bowl trailer Ad, they mobilized a lot of resources, to carry a detailed investigation and analyse the data released after the broadcast of trailer, as for the results of this investigation, it is estimated that only in the next Super Bowl ad bidingpetition can be seen. In past life, the first Super Bowl movie trailer happened in 1996 for the movie , Fox took a huge sum of money to bid for the Super Bowl ad spot, and ultimately this disaster science fiction film won a huge $300 million box office domestically, and $500 million dor world wide. From then on, there have always been rivalry between the giants of Hollywood for the spots at the Super Bowl. Eric believes that the trailer of will not be less effective than the trailer. Next year, wanting to win a Super Bowl ad slot is not just a question of having money, you''ll also need to have a good rtionship with the Super Bowl broadcasting media. Although there are more than 60 ads in the super bowl, but in order to achieve good advertising results, the number of each type of ad has a strict limit, not all the ads can be used to show movie trailers. That''s why, in the future the Super Bowl ad slots for movies will all be monopolized by the big movie giants, because of the increasing cost of making movies, and because the Super Bowl ads will cost a lot, so small moviepanies can''t take out that much money. Over the next few days, some nosy mediamentators also began to report and analyze the matter. The New York Times even wrote that trailer is the biggest winner of this session of the Super Bowl. And as a direct result of Eric''s being the director of the new movie, the box office of once again rebounded, this was the movie ninth week in cinemas, originally some statistical agencies estimated that well harvest about $12 millions at the box office this week, But a weekter, got more than $18 million, the total box office reached $198 million. Even ording to Eric''s current shares, this extra $6 million in the box office would have earned back the $1.5 million spent on the Super Bowl ad. "That''s Fortunate" said Eric after seeing the week box office report. Jeffrey Sitting on the opposite sideughed and said: "Yes, Fortunately, it''s 198 million, if this week broke 200 million, it would have been a waste of a good hype topic." The reason why he said so, because after this week Super Bowl trailer, the attention on has reached its peak, but if broke the 200 million mark, the topic can only y the role of icing on the cake. Not like if it dyed until next week, after the Super Bowl trailer heat slightly weakened. Next week well be the first movie in 3 years to break the $200 million mark at the box office. Add the normal publicity, and is guaranteed to get good results at the box office. "Eric, you really are not going to personally participate in the propaganda?" Eric shook his head and said: " and the two of them plus is enough, I may have other things to do. Of course, I''ll still attend the premiere." The other thing Eric said was about . The day after the Super Bowl, Eric received a phone call from after the introduction, Steve in a warm tone said he wanted to have a meeting. Eric asked whether it was about Pixar''s price, and after getting a positive answer, Eric hung up the phone. Determining the intentions of Steve Jobs, Eric had no hesitation, he applied to the bank for a $50 million loan using as a mortgage. Although deeply conflicted with the lending practices, but now Eric have to do so. Even if there is no Pixar thing Eric had to apply for a loan because his remaining money was not enough to pay this year taxes. Eric did not even think about borrowing from other people, ording to the memory''s of the original owner of the body, and his knowledge from the past six months, Eric knew that in the United States, even between friends and family, the topic of borrowing money, is a very embarrassing thing. Compared to Asians borrowing money between friends and rtives is amon thing, Americans are more used to borrowing money from banks, and you know what they say, When in Rome, do as the Romans do. Now that he is going to borrow, he applied for a huge loan of $50 million dors, to buy and investment for the next movie. 50 million dors in this era is indeed a huge sum of money, If Steve Jobs want to borrow this mush money from the bank he will probably be kicked out the door, As for Eric, borrowing $50 million from the bank is easy they even tempted him to borrow more. All told, It has now been over a week, is expected to call again, Although Steve Jobs personality quite irritable and conceited, But he''s also a resilient man. ording to the information collected by Eric these days, Pixar studios and are on the edge of copse. Eric''s $20 million offer, although much less than Jobs''s investment in , but could solve crisis. And Steve Jobs ambition these days is mainly on personalputers. Eric was not worried that Jobs would give up a good chance of getting rid of Pixar. Of course, he may also do like in previous life, he may test whether intends to buy Pixar, but Eric is sure, Microsoft will probably give a lower price than him. After more than a week of intense post-production officially was finished. Until well into February, the loaned money has finally entered his bank ount, Eric still didn''t receive a phone call from Steve Jobs again, he was starting to admire Jobs''s patience, But Eric still maintain a cool appearance on the matter, dealing with a genius like , as long as you show a w, the other side can easily catch and take advantage of it. Before the release of by a week, held a Movie premiere for film critics in Los Angeles. After that, the reviews of the long-awaited movie began to appear in the newspapers. Maybe because they felt guilty that they let Eric pay for the Super Bowl trailer from his own pocket, Or maybe because Fox itself have more confidence in , Eric felt that Fox''s advertising campaign efforts have reached the level ofrge productions. ordingly, the film critics public rtions work in ce, the reviews that started appearing in the newspapers were almost all one-sided praise. Of course, this is also rted to the film quality itself. If is a flop, even if the red envelopes are more generous, the critics who rely on there reputation to eat, will not openly praise a bad film. February 9, at Los Angeles Grauman''s Chinese Theatre, Pretty Woman officially held the premiere. With operation, in addition to cast members, more than a dozenrge and small starse to give there support, the short section of the red carpet was glowing with stars. After a brief speech, the movie quickly started ying. Eric returned to his seat, quietly enjoy his own movie, siting on his left side is a executive karl Hunter, he didn''t know when he was reced by another 30 year old man, because the lights were dim, Eric did not care. But after a while, the other party took the initiative to talk to him. "Hello, Mr. Williams. I''m ." Eric turned and looked with surprise, Jobs was 33 years old this year, he was still a young man, not bald, he looked handsome. But Eric knows this handsome appearance, is hiding a really arrogant and short-tempered man. Now that the other party hade to the door, Eric smiled and held out his hand: "Hello, Mr jobs." After saying hello to each other, the two of them once again turned their attention to the screen, no one has the idea of taking the initiative to start the real talk. It was not until more than an hourter when the film ended, that Steve Jobs once again said: "Mr. Williams, can we talk?"
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 78 Eric nodded, said goodbye to Jeffrey and the others, and walked with Steve Jobs to a nearby coffee shop. "It was a country full of devotion, I saw millions of pilgrims, so I was drawn to shave my head, without any difort or resistance. Instead, I followed the flow of people, walking all the way to the shore of the Ganges River. But at the same time I saw the backwardness and ignorance of that country." "Later I thought, Perhaps Thomas Edison''s contribution to mankind far exceed those philosophers and artists. When i returned to California, I no longer pursued the illusory philosophy of life, instead, I chose the electronics industry as my lifelong goal. A yearter, in an abandoned garage, I and several friends set up ... ... " In a coffee shop, Eric gently stirring his coffee, patiently listening to talk, this opportunity is not easy to meet, although Eric does not like Steve Jobs character, but he admires his talent. After more than 10 minutes, Eric finally could not help but say: "Steve, have you ever reflected on yourself?" The sudden interruption left a trail of displeasure on Jobs face, who asked: "reflect, why should I reflect?" "For example, why were you driven out of apple?" Steve Jobs with a solemn face corrected: "No, Eric, I wasn''t driven out of apple, I gave up apple voluntarily." Eric shrugged and said: "Look, this is a w in your personality, you''re not willing topromise, which also led to a bottleneck in the development of both you and . If you had made an appropriatepromise with Apple board of directors a few years ago, perhaps you can continue to stay in apple. With your strength, getting the leadership of Apple back again is a piece of cake." Steve Jobs retorted: "If I made the firstpromise, Those guys will force me to do it a second time, then a third time or even morepromises." Eric chuckled and shook his head, He understood that it is absolutely impossible to convince this paranoid young man. And now that he''s taking , he didn''t know if will ever return to Apple in the future. In the past, Steve Jobs was able to achieve such dazzling achievements, in addition to his talent and perseverance, Luck also ounted for arge part. If he had sold before, there will be no dazzling sesses story after the release of , and he himself is more likely to be the target of ridicule. In that case, perhaps the desperate would rather file for bankruptcy, then invited Steve Jobs back. Eric didn''t want to persuade Steve Jobs either, shifting the subject to the topic the too of them meet for today: "Let''s talk about Pixar, Steve, since you''ve found me, that mean you''re taking my offer, right?" hesitated for a moment, The reason why he arranged this meeting, is he wanted to meet Eric face to face, so he can persuade him to rise the price, he was quite confident in his eloquence. Unfortunately, he just said so much, the young man didn''t interrupt him, but he showed an unmoved appearance. Eventually, he knew that if he said a word about increasing the price, The other party will act likest time on the phone, he will directly walk out on him. "Eric, I agree with the $20 million offer, but all the money must be paid in one go." "No problem," Eric put down his cup of coffee, and happily snapped his fingers. was looking calm until Eric suddenly showed his excited expression, for that moment, he felt that perhaps he unknowingly made a huge mistake. But since the decision has been made, he will not go back on his word, He is a man who seldom regret his decisions. then Steve Jobs asked again: "Eric, are you interested in personalputers?" Eric quickly understood the meaning of Steve Jobs: "Do you want me to invest in yourputerpany?" "Yes, PC''s are a very promising electronic products, look at the past few years, personalputers business development data is known, justst year ... ..." "Stop, Steve, I''m not interested in those professional figures. All I ask is, if I buy , would you ept my advice on thepany''s business?" "This ... ... Eric, you only need to invest five ... ... no, thirty million, plus twenty million, I would have enough money to implement a good idea I had before. I''m sure that will bring you enough profit." "That is to say, I am only responsible for investment and dividends, and has no power to intervene in the management of thepany?" Steve Jobs nodded, after experiencing the incident, he will not give up the absolute leadership of hispany again: "Eric, you are an excellent director, but I think, in the field of electronic technology, I known much more than you." Originally, Eric still had some hope. However, after Steve Jobs answer, Eric could only shake his head: "Well, I refuse!" "Well, Eric, I have a project proposal here, maybe you can have a look at it first, in fact ......" "No" Eric waved, interrupting Steve Jobs words: "Steve, I know you''re a man of great ideas, I also believe in your talent. But I will not put my money into a project that I can not control. Like you stubbornly believe in your own ideas, I am also a stubborn person, when our ideas are inconsistent, like a few years ago, a conflict like what happened at could erupt again." Jobs stopped taking out the papers from his briefcase. He thought that, by virtue of his eloquence, convincing a 18 years young boy, should be a breeze. Unfortunately, Eric didn''t listen to him at all, this made Steve Jobs feel a trace of anger. "Well, that''s a pity." Jobs managed to calm his anger: "Eric, do you need to go to for a visit? I hope our deal can be done as soon as possible." Eric thought for a moment, said: "Tomorrow is not empty, will be officially released tomorrow, the day after tomorrow I will fly to New York, for my girlfriend''s birthday ... ..." In Steve Jobs mind, the release of the film can be considered a major event, but a girlfriend birthday, how can such a thing dy the deal with Pixar: "Eric, perhaps, you can directly send a gift to your girlfriend, it seems like you have more than one girlfriend Anyway." Eric looked at Steve Jobs silently for a moment then said: "Maybe, I will be busy the day after tomorrow too." immediately patted the table, interrupting Eric''s words: "Well, the day after tomorrow then, a girlfriend birthday is still very important!" When Eric said that the next day was not empty, in fact, Eric has nothing to do personally, he was Just anxious like every other director when they release a new work, he was temporarily in no mood to shift his attention to . has arranged everything, because the size of the critics film premiere was much bigger than expected. The second day the film critics in newspapers begun to show some multi-pr development. In addition to the newspapers he was subscribed to, Eric bought more than 10 newspapers early in the morning, read all the film reviews about , a total of seventeen newspapers, there are nine praising the movie, five both praise and criticizing, and the remaining three were all blunt criticism. Eric calcted in his head, the ratings should be at 7.5 points. In previous life film review sites grades, The score should be rtively high. Eric let go of his worry''s, now all they need to do is maintain good word of mouth. After breakfast, Eric drove to Fox''s headquarters in Century City. Because now is not the busiest movie schedule time, easily raised more than 1900 screens for , this number of screens has reached the level of the big movies of this era. In his previous two films, Eric got the box office data only a weekter. But now, he has reached the level where he can get the box office data of the first day directly from within Fox. Early in the morning, Eric, Jeffrey, and several executives from Fox waited nervously in the conference room, Even , the president of havee down. Even if the meeting room isrge, and the windows were open, the room was drifting thick with cigar smoke. Meanwhile, outside the conference room, seven or eight staff members were quickly calling and recording the box office data. A little whileter, the box office data was finally out, a statistician handed the data to the hands of several executives, where everyone gathered together to see. Carter Hunt was the first to see the data: "Wow, $4.36 million, It''s another ." Eric saw the 4.36 millions data on the report, and finally breathed a sigh of relief calming his heart down. Jeffrey after some contemting said: "In that case, the box office will be a little higher tomorrow, it may reach the $5 millions mark, and maybe at the end of this three days weekend the film will get $15 million at box office. Adding next Tuesday is Valentine''s day, there will probably be an explosion at the box office, plus in the Working days the film is most likely to get us another $10 million." Carter Hunt retorted smilingly: "Jeffrey, you''re a bit conservative in your calctions, Valentine''s day will definitely exceed the weekend''s box office, I think the first week at the box office exceeding is not a problem." Eric sees those overly excited people set their goal on , but he knows, this is obviously impossible, maybe because of the great publicity before, the box office will be high for the first week, but it won''tst for another week. Thinking of these things, Eric could not help but say: "The key is that next week''s box office decline is sure to be big, now after all is not a holiday schedule. So don''tpare it with , has grossed more than $20 million for six consecutive weeks." The people present were all professionals, They certainly know that what Eric is telling is the truth. said: "Eric, you concentrate on preparing the next movie, if you need any help, Fox will fully support you. " Eric pretended not to understand that wants to intervene in his next movie, He smiled and said: "If so, the celebration party will be given to Fox to arrange." did not mind that Eric was pretending to be stupid, he smiled and said: "Haha, will be very happy to pay for the party. Next week, maybe at ."
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 79 This was her 20th birthday today, After this day her girlhood was over, she was walking around the streets feeling like a stray cat. She has been wandering on Broadway in Midtown Manhattan all morning, passing by a small theater, She looked at the ad at the door, Students from a drama college in New York was doing a rehearsal of "The Lady of the Camellias" in a non-professional theater. So she went in and watched the y, the performance was good, she was secretly touched and shed a few tears secretly. It was noon when she came out, she bought a piece of chocte cream cheese cake, and sat at a bench in central park eating it slowly. Since her weight-loss sess, she has stopped herself from eating these high calorie foods in order to stay in shape. But today was her birthday so she indulged herself. After carefully eating the cake, she throw the box into the trash can, and carefully checked that she didn''t touch her Chanel coat with any food residue, heaving a sigh of relief. She took out a paper towel and wiped her hands, picked her bag, and continued wandering. Passing through the Hell''s Kitchen, then into the tiron District, she took a long look at The Empire State Building, and turned back to go to Fifth Avenue. She visited a few luxury shops, just looking around, although she didn''t buy anything, when they saw her Chanel coat, the clerks was still very warm to her, and wee her toe again. She didn''t n an going back, every thing there was so expensive! The one who give her the white Chanel coat was Eric, after that beautiful street shot they got together, she learned how expensive this coat is, the real price reach several times her paycheck. If she did know the price in advance, she will not have epted it. After walking around in a circle, she ended up buying a bottle of Dior perfume after a silver-tongued clerk persuade her, she spent more than 2000 dors on it, she recalled that he like the smell. Well, in the end she could not help but think of that ...... bastard. After all, it''s her 20 birthday, her parents and few good friends all called. And also sent her birthday gifts, that guy even sent her an expensive diamond bracelet. And called her on the phone purely to wish her a happy birthday. At the same time her lover has not called her for four and a half days. In her previous birthdays, even if there is no parents to apany her, she will go with her close friends to get a meal and open her gifts. Unfortunately, she did not find any new friends in the cast. "Mary in Action" is a woman''s career loveedy, there''s a total of four female protagonists, ording to her number of scenes, she is female number two. When she just entered the group, the other three female characters were very warm to her, they watched a few movies and eat dinner together, they got along for a few days, and then they started tempting her to introduced her boyfriend to them. Finally she understood the cause of the matter, she was an outsider, how could she be popr from the beginning?. At that time she had unterally broke up with Eric, and that fellow didn''te to New York to get her back, so she told the truth, and then they stopped trying to get close to her. Several girls on the cast thought they will get instant fame by virtue of NBC''s new show, so they started trying to get more time on the screen, by Bribing the screenwriters, having sex with the producers ... ..., anyway she heard some of the girls had done some dirty things. She was the prettiest girl in the cast, even more than the first female lead. She got harassed by a diversity director he tant hinted to her that she can get more screen time as long as she apany him at night to eat a meal. She decisively refused. Until one day, the new handsome actor was driven out of the cast. In this circle, a lot of things pass quickly. After that no one dared to harass her, even the producers of the TV series were very kind to her. After that she was even more isted in the crew, several other actresses privately called her a scheming bitch, and that she lied about braking up, and deliberately hide it. She did not bother defending herself to that group of Jealous bitches. Maybe because the audience lost there appetite for the show. the high expectations of "Mary in Action" ratings were very low, the average number of viewers per episode is less than 6 million, this season was going to be cut off soon. Her fame gained from this show, have not reached the fame she got from being that guy''s girlfriend. In the tabloids always appeared scattered news about her once every two or three days, her name was always Eric Williams''s girlfriend, ex-girlfriend, rumored girlfriend and the likes, she didn''t dare to look at these newspapers. They never called her "Mary in Action" heroine, and that hateful guy never done anything about it. Unknowingly night fell, and she still didn''t want to go back home, and go back to her old habits of making dinner for one person, then watching TV alone, doingundry, then going to sleep alone ... ... Across the street, at a cinema gate, there was a long line of people, she curiously walked closer, the poster was hanging high in the door, the two stars stood smiling back to back. The tall girl looks so sexy, damn her. she probably got the role by sleeping with that jerk. - Click - Click She heard That familiar shutter sounds, and turned to look, A paparazzi calmly turned around as if nothing had happened. She obviously had showed a pouting expression while looking at the poster when she was photographed, she wondered if she should leave right away? What would the other party say? ex-girlfriend of Eric Williams scoff at his new work? Unconsciously, she got in line to buy a ticket, Damn, I''m even going to see your movie you bastard, see how much I miss you. A few minutester, holding a ticket, she walked into the screening hall. After a full two two hours, she couldn''t help but put herself into the heroine position, if she was the one ying the role, what will happen?. The story went on. Oh dear, there''s even a sex scene. In the darkness, she subconsciously covered her bulging chest. If she yed the role herself, with that guy''s hateful personality, That scene will definitely be deleted. Well, that''s good. It seems that he didn''t particrly care about the woman called . With that in mind,, She had the same feeling she gets when she sessfully won a role, Or when she win a game of chess?. Or like when she was a child, and won the first ce in apetition. Anyway, these feelings. When she saw the heroine get her fairy tale. She wondered, what about my fairy tales? With an empty heart, she left out of the cinema. It was more than nine in the evening, she could no longer go shopping. She reminded herself more than once, not to wander wander alone at night, like her parents always told her, she has been very obedient girl. after a day of walking and two hours at the cinema sitting, her calf began to ache, and she didn''t want to walk anymore, so she decided to call a taxi. ... ... Struggling to walk-up the stairs, she finally walked in front of her apartment door. Her heart was inexplicably flooded with expectations when she saw a lighting out of the cat eye. Trembling she took out her keys to open the door, and finally she saw that guy busy figure in the living room. All her strength at that moment escaped from her body, she felt very tired. leaning against the wall of the entrance, she gazed at his figure. When the busy man looked up and saw her, a smile appeared on his Handsome face. "I''m so sorry, Jane, I arrived in the afternoon this day. Last night in order to wait for the box office data, I stayed up until two o''clock in the morning. I forget to buy the airne ticket, so I borrowed private ne. It was already over three in the afternoon when i got here, and You were not at home. So I had to decorate it myself, because I''m not familiar with New York, I almost lost my way when I was buying things, So maybe I didn''t get enough." Her heart warmed as she listened to his chatter. The man said with care, as he lighted the match, and lit the candles on the cake one by one: "Happy birthday!" Getting rid of her bag, while still leaning against the wall, she raised her hands, and made a gesture for him to hug her, and said in a voice full with grievances: "Eric, my legs hurts ... ..."
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 80 They eat the birthday dinner slowly, waszily leaning on Eric body, and he sometimes whispered words of affection to her. They sung the birthday song together. After singing they cut the birthday cake, and started eating there piece of cake, and quickly consumed a bottle of red wine. "Did you finish eating?" Eric looked at the girl flushed face, and asked her with concern. "Yes" nodded her head, she hugged Eric and said: "I''m so tired, take me to the bathroom, I don''t want to move." "No problem, my little princess, but first" Eric got up and took two beautifully wrapped gift boxes from his luggage and said: "Well, one is a birthday gift, and one is a Valentine''s day gift." Aniston saw the two gift boxes, and suddenly be unhappy, she took the two gift boxes and put them on the table, then drilled into his arms. "Don''t you want to open the boxes first." "I''m Not happy, I don''t want to see." Eric touched Aniston blond hair as he said, "I''m sorry, Anne. I made an appointment with someone before, So I have to leave early tomorrow morning." "Hmm!......" "Anne, please go back to Los Angeles, I want you to stay with me." "Tired, I wanna take a bath ..." "All right, all right," Eric picked her up and walked into the bathroom. Letting the water warm up, he started slowly undressing her, She obediently raised her hand to let Eric remove her clothes. Soon she was standing only in her bra almostpletely naked in front of him, her beautiful body exposed in front of him, Eric''s breathing bes rapid. After a long time not seeing him, Aniston looked a little shy, with downcast eyes, she gently pulled at Eric''s jacket: "let''s bath together?" Eric nodded and took off his clothes. And removed her bra, her beautiful breasts exposed, Eric wrapped his hands around them and kneaded them a few times, he felt he nipples gradually hardening in his palms, he could not help but lean down and kiss them. "That tickle." escaped Eric ws, She smiled tenderly and helped him take off his pants, then fled into the bathtub, after squeezing in. she looked at Eric face expectantly. Eric took off hisst piece of clothes his underwear, Aniston made a kind of high-spirited call out a cry, and suck out her tongue and said: "So ugly." "The girl who say bad things often get punished." Eric smiled and stepped into the bathtub, he stretched out his hands to hold her waist and pulled her to his arms. Feeling how light she was, Eric said: "Jenny, you should eat more, i like you the way you were." "Well, i don''t want to please you." felt something aggressive beneath her, she wanted to scoot forward, but she couldn''t move because Eric was hugging her tightly. "Eric, let''s start bathing, the bathtub will be flooded soon." Eric big hands once again covered her soft breasts, and kissed her ear lobe, and whispered to her: "but I think this is more interesting?" With him teasing her Sensitive earlobes, Aniston whole body melted down. Eric stopped talking, slid his hands down, and lifted Aniston buttocks and spread them apart, then Pushed forward to squeeze in. "ahh, you didn''t put a condom on." "Don''t worry, this time is a safe period." Feeling her body prated, coupled with the the wine from before, Aniston was confused, and hearing his words, she subconsciously asked: "Men have safety period?" "Well ... ... I mean you. " Eric exined without words and slowly began to move. Aniston silently started wriggled her waist, but her mouth still didn''t let things go: "That''s awful, how can you secretly calcte such a thing, you asshole." Eric smacked her ass and said whileughing: "I only count your''s." After that they spent a wild night together. ... ... The next day he woke up veryte, exhausted by the tossing she gotst night was still sleeping, probably having sweet dreams, the corner of her mouth was curved. he kissed her lips and started dressing cautiously without making any noise. After making a simple breakfast, Aniston still didn''t wake up, Eric looked at his watch, he put away her share, and started eating his share. "Jane, I have to go." After breakfast, Eric went into the bedroom, gently kissed and teased her hair. "Hmm!...... Don''t make any noise. I want to sleep." she loudly protested, and impatiently pulled the quilt over her head. "Well, I''ll call you when I get back to Los Angeles." Eric said again, watching thezy girl still did not response, Thinking about it, he got a pen and paper, and wrote a note, and put it in a noticeable ce, then reluctantly picked up his luggage and left the apartment. Taking a taxi, Eric looked up at Aniston apartment window, but due to the backlight effect, all he saw was darkness. She was behind the window, wrapped in a nket, her hands clutching the note, watched the taxi gradually disappearing, she sighed, and moved back to the bed and tossed about in distress, then grabbed the pillow next to her and beat it a few times. Go on you bastard, even while pretending to sleep, you couldn''t stay a little longer, Damn it! ... ... Shortly after getting off the ne, Eric contacted his privatewyer, and again left Los Angeles to go to California, to meet , at San Francisco Bay, due to the increasingly dwindling funds, Steve Jobs had to move headquarters into a small corner in California. At the same time plundered the box office across all North America. After a hot three days weekend, the movie entered the working days, but the number of the viewers did not decline, especially in valentine''s day, in many cinemas that screened have appeared a full house phenomenon. In the envy, jealousy and hatred of other moviepanies, one weekter, the box office data of was officially announced. 16.05 million dors in the three days weekend, and at the first week a total of 29.07 million, although regrettably it did not reach 30 million US dors, but it surpassed first week box office. The release of the second week, the box office of fell to $17 million, down by 43%, a lot of people felt relieved after seeing the data, fortunately it was not another , otherwise some people will go insane. But in the third week Box Office did not appear a sharp fall like the second week. and a monthter the north america box office umted more than 75 million dors, there''s no suspense that the movie will break the 100 million mark, ording to some statistic agencies estimates, as long as there''s no box office dark horse appearing, the film is likely to once again exceed $200 million at the box office. Under the operation of the Fox, has also been released in the overseas market, although most areas missed valentine''s day, but under the influence of the North American market reputation the film''s overseas box office is stronger than North American, within four weeks it broke through the $100 million mark. In less than a year to shoot two movies that created a miracle at the box office, Eric once again became the focus of attention, The "" wrote an article titled "The wonder kid who broke into Hollywood" that gave a detailed ount of Eric''s story in less than a year Many well-known magazines tried to contact Eric but failed, they even contacted Jeffrey and Kapoor hoping to get an interview with Eric, but all were rejected. Although Eric has not yet reached the heights of and , he believes that day will not be too far away. Eric ultimate goal is these big heavyweights, who are controlling the media while hiding behind the scenes. losing hope of getting an interview with Eric, the media had to wait for the next time, and turned there attention to other people.
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 81 There is no doubt that the one benefited the most is , with the continuous release of Julia felt like she have entered into an unknown world, in this new world everyone is humble and respectful to her, as if she were a princess. When she recorded a talk show at , the entire production team was trying to please her, at every detail of the recording process, the program directors were seriously asking for her opinion. At the same time, she got a lot of advertising offers, endorsements and invitations to be a spokeswoman for some big brands, her paycheck after the first weekend box office released, directly jumped to $5 million, this figure many stars can only dream of attaining. alsopletelye out of the shadow of the failure of four years ago, he be high-spirited again, and many old friends that he lost contact with for a while started popping up again, so he started attending one party after another. Of course, some people be frustrated after the sess of , With beginning to publicize his new movie Richard Gere is undoubtedly the one who lost the most. His agent who boasted before that Eric''s new film will be nothing in front didn''t show his face this days. Although know the reasons for his agent''s doing so, but he also felt that by rejecting Eric invitation, he will be doing a favor to , So he chose . If didn''t achieve such great sess, even if only a small explosion at the box office, Richard Gere will not feel bad, but was sessful, and it was a big sess, only the first week of ie is worth the total box office of many of his films. Seeing these, could no longer stay calm. His anger made him forget that he made the choice to abandon on his own, if the artists themselves insist on doing a movie, although will try to put pressure on them, but they also can not force them to stop acting, But put all the me on CAA, he felt like he was the victim of personal power y. ... ... At headquarters in Anta, a crucial meeting about , was being held. In the hands of Coca-C President , was the information of and , next to him was sitting Colombian president Blount Cohen. "The gambling agreement, that was your first mistake, of course with ie Columbia share prices from the previous $12 rose to $14 now, this can be weighed against your mistakes." said, after looking at another document: "But then, your bad behavior led directly to Eric Williams going to , ording to the agency expectations North America box office could reach up to $200 million, and the overseas box office may be more than 50% of North America, can bring at least $80 million of pure profits for , which should have been Colombia." Blount Cohen didn''t dare reply, he was waiting quietly for the final decision of board of directors. In fact, he already known the result. being a filmpany executives look great on the outside, but few people can understand the enormous pressure behind them. With tens of millions of dors of investment at every turn, every time a film is released, the results wan bring great changes, some people because of the huge losses, directly packed up and left, never to recover. and some people because of the sess of a project, suddenly was promoted to high ces, enjoyed more power and interests, of course, they also continued to live in fear of the next project. Blount Cohen also know that Eric Williams was only one of the causes for the situation he now faces. The most importantly thing is that he himself opposes decision to sell Columbia to the Japanese. ording to some channels that revealed the news, Coca-C board of directors has formally decided to open negotiations with Japan''s . Him staying or leaving as the president doesn''t matter anyway, will soon be sold to SONY. But in order for him to secure his position he contacted many people to boycott the deal. This kind of thing he can''t hide from Coca-C executives, When he was sessful no one said anything. But after his failure, he must face the bitter consequences. "...... Therefore, I now formally announce the resolution of the board of directors to remove Blunt Cohen from the position of Columbia pictures president , effective immediately." read the resolutions of the board of directors, and discussed some other topics before ending the meeting, Blount Cohen as the former president, still retained some decency, no security guards escorted him back to Columbia headquarters in Los Angeles to pack up his luggage. After Blount Cohen left with a bleak face, Goizueta did not leave, but arrived at another reception room. "Hello, Mr. Goizueta." Pushing the door open, the woman who was sitting on the sofa stood up and warmly reached out her hand to greet him. Goizueta shook her hand and smiled: "Sorry for making you wait, Amy." "That''s OK. I have just arrived." Not long ago this woman , angrily left Columbia. "My assistant has told you what I want right, Amy, what do you think?" asked: "Mr. Goizueta I think, now I do not need to return to , although I resigned, but I still did hear the news that Columbia will be sold to . In this case, what am I going to do when I getid off again a few monthster?" "Of course not Amy, you''re a talented professional manager, even if the Japanese take over Columbia, they won''t dare make too much changes to the high-level employees. I''ve learned about the cause of your departure from Columbia, if Blunt Cohen had listened to you before, there wouldn''t have been a bet agreement that have cost Columbia tens of millions of dors in profits. And there will be no chance for Eric Williams to switch to ." Amy Pascal said: "Mr. Goizueta it doesn''t make any sense to say that now. I want to know the real reason you want me toe back to Columbia." looked at Amy and said: "Amy, you know Eric Williams, don''t you?" Sure enough! confirmed the spection in her mind and said. "Yes, but only on the surface. Maybe Eric won''t remember me now." "Oh, how could it be? If it hadn''t been for your help, there won''t be a box office miracles?" "Mr. Goizueta, if you want me to convince Eric Williams to switch to Columbia, then it''s almost impossible, as everyone knows, Eric has signed a three films contract with this year. And by the end of next year Columbia will already be in the hands of ." Goizueta shook his head, and said: "Of course not. I also understand the contract. In fact the contract is not too tight, because FOX just wanted to get sequel rights, so there is nothing on the contract stopping Eric Williams from cooperating with other filmpanies. After opening negotiations with SONY, Columbia needs some good news to boost its share price, for example...... A big movie." "But........" "Rest assured, Amy, I know some of your concerns, and in order to sessfully cooperate with Eric Williams, the board of directors has removed Blount Cohen from ." "Really?" said in surprise. nodded: "of course, otherwise, with Blount Cohen connections, because he was in the position of the president for a long time, the board of directors is not willing to go to war with him. When youe into contact with Eric Williams, you can reveal this matter to show our sincerity." Amy Pascal also thought of another question: "I think Eric Williams is very fast at shooting movies, but three should be regarded as the limit in one year, right? Any more than that, We won''t be able to guarantee the quality?" "We will put his new film on the summer stalls, with his current fame, as long as the film is not too bad, for the film to get $100 million at the box office is not a big problem. Moreover......" Goizueta lowered his voice slightly and said: "We''ll give him a sufficient budget to make second film, and we can even get someone to shoot the film for him. and he only need to concentrate on making our movie." hesitated for a moment, then nodded: "I''ll try my best."
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 82 California, Richmond, Eric has been here for three days, and in the past few days, he hired a professional team in Silicon Valley to make a detailed investigation of Pixar assets. Steve Jobs was eager toplete the transaction, he expressed dissatisfaction with Eric unnecessary move. But he was helpless, Eric didn''t care about his feelings. Although Steve Jobs talent is undeniable, but his character can''t be praised, he is a man who in order to not pay his illegitimate daughter alimony, publicly dered that he is impotent. As a result, Eric had to do a detailed appraisal of Pixar beforepleting the transaction. Three dayster, Pixar was located in single-storey office building, Eric was reading a thick assessment document on the conference table, his fingers gently tapping the desktop, with Steve Jobs sitting opposite him "Steve, I was very sincere about buying Pixar, but unfortunately, I didn''t see your sincerity." Steve Jobs was not affected by the tone of Eric, he put a helplessness look on his face and said: "Eric, if you have any concerns you can say them, I will seriously answer you. But for you to say that Ick sincerity, that''s an usation I can''t ept." Eric sighed in admiration of Steve Jobs psychological quality, regardless of how he feel on the inside the surface didn''t reveal anything. This calmness even for him who lived two lives is hard to achieve. He was in no mood to y a psychological battle with him, he went straight to the point: "All right Steve, I will say it directly. The reason why I wanted to buy Pixar, is that I value Pixar 3D animation technology. So you have sold the hardware department, which I don''t mind." Eric said, while looking at the data in his hands: "However, the data we collected shows that the 3Dputer graphics software developed by Pixar, some time ago three of the core software''s copyrights were transferred to yourputerpany NeXT. As for the most important animation software, although the core software didn''t get tampered with, the coloring software copyrights also was transferred. Pixar was able to receive Disney 2D animation outsourcing project, by virtue of that this software can substantially reduce the coloring time. You need to give me an exnation for your actions?" Steve Jobs really isn''t an honest person, the reason for doing so, is he wanted to swindle Eric thisyman. If Pixar new project seed, the software''s he transferred can sell for millions of dors. Perhaps some people will wonder how much money a few software''s can be worth, think of how much Microsoft is making from software sales. But Steve Jobs did not expect is that Eric is thisyman, know how things work and handed things to the insiders to do, he specifically invited a professional assessment team from Silicon Valley. When this team of technology madman get together in the same ce, they will turn the ce upside down trying to find any schemes, and soon those people found Steve Jobs''s little tricks. In fact, after Eric made this move, Jobs did not have much hope in mind. With his thick-skin, even if he was pricked in the face, he certainly will notpromise so easily. "Eric, Pixar took over four years to build, I put at least 50 million dors in Pixar, the hardware department sold only for 16 million. And your offer is only 20 million, what am i gonna do about what''s left at pixar." Eric gave him a mocking smile, folded the folder, put his hands on the table and said to him. "Steve, you don''t seem to want to easily admit your own failure. Well, I can make it easy for you to understand, you bought Pixar from Lucasfilm''s and you failed. The loser will have to bear the consciousness of failure, and losing is an inevitable thing in life. In order to save yourputerpany NeXT, you''ll have to sell me the entire Pixar software department at a low price. So, if we get those software''s back, then we can talk about the rest." Steve Jobs face was transforming between several shades of green, as an extremely conceited person, he was always the one pointing at others failures andughing at them, but now a kid younger than him by more than 10 years personally denounced him as a loser. Even with his extraordinary psychological quality, it was difficult for him to control himself. Outside the conference room, John Lasseter and the others who were supposed to be working actually was putting there ears to the door listening to the talk between the two, after hearing Eric merciless words their hearts couldn''t help but cool down. Steve Jobs has never been a very amiable boss, every time the main creative employees at Pixar try to do some creative work the result of their hardbor is criticism and being told that there work is useless, then he takes back part of the stocks that they got as a condition for working at Pixar, Using these means a few yearster, Pixar haspletely be Jobs''s personal property, all the shares in the hands of the management staff were taken by him. Now they finally heard Steve Jobs being scolded. This alone, made the awkwardness of having to work under a teenager vanish into thin air. In the conference room, Steve Jobs said: "Mr. Williams, you''re buying Pixar should be to make animated movies, right?. And now after several movies of yours have achieved great sess, I believe that many people are paying attention to your every act and move, if I let out the news that you are trying to buy Pixar, maybe there will be a lot of people interested in buying Pixar at a higher prices, what do you think?" Eric right hand ring finger slightly trembled a bit, but fortunately this detail has not been noticed by Steve Jobs. After forcing himself to not show the worry in his heart, Eric did not hesitate to sneer, and say: "Mr. Jobs, those words are gonna cost you 1 million dors. I don''t like others threatening me, so I decided to lower the offer to $19 million. Pixar is actually like a camera, under mymand, it can shoot movies like Home Alone and Pretty Woman, but in the hands of other directors, shooting a good movie is hard to say. So, $19 million, for theplete Pixar software department. If you agree, call me before I leave Richmond." After Eric finished, he picked up his personal belongings and came out of Pixar office. His privatewyer Edward quickly followed him. After a long time, Steve Jobs finally came out of the conference room, trying to look cool, he nced at the employees pretending to work, and unusually did not lose his temper, he silently left Pixar headquarters. ... ... Early on the next day, Eric and Steve Jobs again sat in the conference room. A lot of business negotiations are like this. There are always several rounds of confrontations. Even if they quarreled, or almost got into a fight in the first round, once the second round start, they will put there feelings aside and again start the negotiations. Today, Steve Jobs clearly had slightly dark circles under his eyes, he started by saying: "Eric, I did not do anything wrong before, everyone will do their best for their own interests, I agree to return the software, but the price will remain unchanged at $20 million. We...... are all rational adults, not because of a few words you end up removing 1 million dors. That''s what children do." Eric Didn''t want to put too much pressure on Steve Jobs, if the negotiation break up, he would have to spend too much money on forming a new animation studio, and he will also have to start from scratch in developing a new animation software, and umting enough technology, these things not only need a lot of money but also need several years of time. Although Eric is not short of money, but he does not have enough time to umte technology. In his past life everyone knows that 3d animated movies can bring huge profits, but Hollywood has always had so few well-known animation studios, that''s because these studios have always been way ahead of other counterparts in technology, and upying a big share of the market. It''s hard for other people to try to catch up, and if you wanted to you''ll need few years to catch up, and when you finally reach there level you''ll find that they have widened the technology gape again, In this situation, theters will never be able to keep up with the pace of their predecessors. In the conference room, the two of theme were arguing back and forth with each other for nearly half an hour, Eric didn''t want to swallow back his words, finally both sides gave a little ground, resulting in a price of $19.5 million. Getting back the software ownership, Eric once again made sure that there was no mistakes, and after the confirmation they signed the contract. Steve Jobs took his check and looked at the employees who worked for him for the past several years, he felt that there was nothing to say, he nodded at them and turned and left Pixar headquarters. Chapter 83 "I am not a man talented at giving speeches, neither am I good at saying those inspiring words, but I can promise you all one thing, within three years, as long as there are no problems in your work, will not have anyyoffs." After left, Eric gathered all the employees and assured theme. This was their greatest concern. Over the past few years, Pixar had to fire a number of employees, because of funding constraints. Sure enough, after Eric made the promise, many people heaved a sigh of relief. they all know Eric''s identity, in front of them is a young man who control a lot of money, since he made such a promise, he will not go back on his words. "Well, everyone continues doing your work, and all the management staffe with me to the meeting room." After a briefmotion, led the other executives and walked to the Conference room. "Well you all know me, and I also have a certain understanding of who you are from the information''s I read before, so we can temporarily skip the introductions." Eric kept going: " was in a bad situation, but it won''t be like that again. I''m sure that you are all curious about why I bought Pixar, I have told John before the reason why. I told him I''m interested in making 3D animation movies, let''s be honest here I don''t know a lot about how 3D Animation work, but I know how to make a good movie, when I watched the short film , Ie up with a very good long story for a 3D movie ... ..." "Sheriff Woody, a good-hearted cowboy doll who belongs to a young boy named Andy, sees his position as Andy''s favorite toy jeopardized when his parents buy him a Buzz Lightyear action figure. Even worse, the arrogant Buzz thinks he''s a real spaceman on a mission to return to his home. When Andy''s family moves to a new house, Woody and Buzz must escape the clutches of mdjusted neighbor and reunite with their boy ... ..." Taking a few minutes, Eric roughly told them the story of . "When I met Johnst time, I told him i will invest $30 million in this project, of course, the budget can be expanded if needed, I just want you to do your best when making it. For me, it''s okay to fail once, but I think Pixar can''t afford to fail this time." executives faces showed a relieved expression, with Pixar previous earning records, if they wanted to keep going on the road of 3D animation, they will need some financial assistance from the outside. Eric was very pleased with there reaction, although he knew that 3D animation would be the mainstream of animated movies in the near future, if he told them now, these people will not believe. So, he Might as well change his tone and give them some pressure. "I know that 3D movies have a long production cycle. I''m going to give you three years to make this movie. In three years, Pixar will not make any changes, and you don''t need to keep making ads to keep Pixar running. You can focus all your efforts on . Well, my talk is over. Now let''s talk about what you think." The pressure left by in the minds of Pixar high-level executives, still give theme some lingering fears, after carefully asking a few questions, they determined that Eric and Steve Jobs are twopletely different people, and finally let go of their fears, began to speak freely. Because they were invested too much in the discussion, everyone there missed lunch time until sunset, when the light in the meeting room started to dim down, they finally reacted, the day was already dark. In order to ensure that won''t have too many deviations from his past life, Eric stayed in Richmond for three days, during which he personally wrote aplete script for , he even hand-painted, Sheriff Woody, Buzz Lightyear and the other toys, and give them to Pixar staff. Because Eric disappeared for nearly a week, Fox President personally called to remind him of celebration party, so he had to leave Richmond. At first Eric did think about moving Pixar to Los Angeles, but when he privately spoke to John, he found that this matter is difficult to implement. Most of Pixar technical staff have permanent residence in the San Francisco Bay area, they have been ustomed to everything here, although the environment in Los Angeles is not suitable for such an animated studio, but Richmond is very close to Silicon Valley where high-tech enterprises have gathered, it is much more suitable for Pixar''s development. When Eric heard John''s exnation, he gave up his original n. In any case, San Francisco is only five hundred or six hundred kilometers away from Los Angeles, He can arrive in an hour by ne. It was easy to go back and forth, so Eric stopped thinking about it. ... ... After staying for a week, he finally returned home and had afortable bath. It was still several hours before the evening party, and Eric was toozy to start making any preparations. He wore some loose-fitting casual clothes, andzily leaned against the living room sofa, and took the remote control to turn on the TV. Just as he started to feel sleepy, he heard the sound of the doorbell. When he opened the door, he found a sneaky girl wearing a wig and sunsses, and very ordinary clothes, anxiously waiting at the door, looking around from time to time. "Why are you so slow to open the door? It will be bad if I was found by the paparazzi." Eric looked at ''s Clothing, and moved sideways to let her get in: "Why are you dressed like this? ... ... you look like your assistant Alison?" "I made Alison dress up like me, to get rid of the paparazzi." Julia spoke with a little pride in her voice. "What would you like to drink?" Eric asked her, as he went to the refrigerator. "Coffee, without sugar, and not too hot." "oh! I see" said Eric, and decided to give Julia a ss of juice. She gave him a nk look, but still picked up the ss of juice. "You''re always so awful." Eric sat on the couch again, looked at Julia with great interest and said: "You changed a lot ah, look at this posture, listen to the tone, just like a top Hollywood actress. If I was a fan, I wouldn''t be able to stop myself from asking you for a signature." "No problem. Where should I sign?" Julia magically took a pen from her bosom. Eric looked at the ceiling for a while, as if thinking about something. Then suddenly pulled the waistband of his cks and looked inside, shaking his head he said: "No, if you don''t get it hard, you won''t be able to sign it." Pfff. Spiting a mouthful of juice at Eric, her face turned pink, panicking she lifted the cup of juice to hide her embarrassment. After a while, Julia put down the cup and said: "I heard you bought an animation studio?" "Well, it''s tiring to shoot live movies. I''m going to change direction and guide animated movies." She crossly red at Eric: "Are you serious?" "Yes I''m serious." sitting up straight, he asked: "Well, what can I do for you?" Chapter 84 "I want to know why you asked Kapoor to turned down all those films offers. if not some people directly handed those scripts to me, I wouldn''t know I received these offers." Julia grew more and more agitated, and finally pointed at Eric nose and condemned: " Disney even offered a $6 million fee for a movie called Lost in Los Angeles, you didn''t ask my opinion and Directly turned down the $6 million, ah, how can you so overbearing, I''m not your puppet, so would you please show me some respect ... ... " Eric leaned back against the sofa, and allowed her to vent her anger as if she was a wild little cat. At the same time he started thinking of Lost in Los Angeles, and couldn''t help butugh. Because the script writer name is , he was the original screenwriter of in his past life. When he was is Richmond, many filmpanies ignored ban on UTA and directly sent scripts to and and several other actors who stared in . If UTA only have inferior small actors, Then Hollywood studios may fear the influence of , But now, with on fire, UTA with Julia and Al Pacino as the two pirs, and in the supporting role is also a minor celebrity. In the direct drive of there interests, many filmpanies have ignored the scruples between and UTA, especially the big six filmpany''s who hate CAA. Eric even spected, that the big six studios in an attempt to show that they don''t fear , issued a series of invitations to the UTA actors. was waiting patiently for Eric promised , so he directly declined all the offers he got. But Julia can not be so reckless, after receiving the scripts, Kapoor screened all of them, excluding the high price the movie scripts offered to her were all bad scripts, and the few that looked good he sent them to Eric to review. Eric have seen the script of Lost in Los Angeles, when he heard the name of the screenwriter, Eric influenced by his curiosity, specifically asked Kapoor to send him a copy of the script. obviously revised the original "3000" script again, into a love story with a male Protagonist as the main character. As mentioned before, in his past life, was at first a script called 3000, a ck drama about a prostitute in Los Angeles living in bad conditions, but in the filming process was modified into a romanticedy. But in this Lost in Los Angeles the story was about a sessful businessman who travel to Los Angeles, who not only did he get lost, but also all his luggage was stolen, the quite sessful businessman, Homeless by ident, was saved by a kind-hearted prostitute who give him a temporary shelter, after some twists and turns, like a Cindere and a prince they fall in love and lived happily ever after. Anyway, the story with story are almost the same, but you cannot say that there''s any giarism, because the story was modified in a very clever way, otherwise Disney such a giant filmpany will not let Eric catch them giarizing him. In Eric''s view, Lost in Los Angeles and Pretty Woman have a very simr story, if they use as the main heroine again, certainly the film will not lose any money, after all, the film budget is not high. But if they want to achieve high box office again, then that''s basically impossible, just like when a person eat a bowl of Steamed Rice, and get full, if you put an apple and a ss of juice in front of him, he might eat them, but if you put anther bowl of Steamed Rice then ... ... "Hey, are you listening to me? Why are youughing?" Hearing her questioning sound in his ear, Erice out of his absent-minded thoughts, see Julia standing close and looking smugly down at him, a faint trace of anger started showing on his face. "Did you finish?" Eric asked, looking carefully at the Julia eyes. "Well," Julia nodded, looking at his eyes, she suddenly realized her blunder, and hurriedly sat back in her ce. These days she became ustomed to people trying to curry favor with her by using ttering words of praise, it was inevitable that her ego will grow big, But when she saw Eric serious expression, she suddenly remembered ... ... This guy doesn''t need to curry favor with her, but she is the one who need to please him ... ... Thinking of These Things, involuntarily bowed her head, and with a guilty conscience nced at him. "I''ve been talking to Kapoor on the phone every day when I was at Richmond, the movie for has been set, so the discussions were all about your next movie. As for Lost in Los Angeles I also asked Kapoor to send a copy of the script by fax, and read it carefully." Hearing that Eric paid private attention to herself, Julia felt a touch of guilt for her previous behavior. "I''m sorry." she said is a small voice. Eric waved his hand and said: "I am not trying to take credit for your sess, I just want to tell you, I have not forgotten that night promise, I said that I would put a girl named Julia Roberts into the same league of Hollywood legendary actresses, like Vivien Leigh and Audrey Hepburn." "I''m sorry." The girl voice rang again. "But now I''m a little disappointed with you now, this first time sess has made you so impatient. What do you want to do?" Eric scolded her in calm voice, she couldn''t help but want to refute: "I ... ..." Eric interrupted what she wanted to say: "Now, with the fame you have, like you said, has given you a $6 million paycheck offer, few actresses in Hollywood can reach that height... ... If you are short of money, go to the bank and get a loan, the banks are generous to Hollywood stars... ... All you have to do now is try to carefully consolidate your position in Hollywood, and for you to go a little further, you''ll have to be careful." "I understand." "No, you don''t understand yet. I know you still feel like you''ve been wronged, 6 million dors for Lost in Los Angeles is indeed a very high price. Last year, stared in a movie called he was paid only $2 million. But if you take this movie, you will be consuming the box office appeal you got from , this is not problem of one plus one equals two, but a subtraction. Have you ever seen a star in a short period of time, filmed twopletely simr movies and had great sess? Hollywood big movie studios know that, that''s why when they make a movie sequel or trilogies, they separate them by a few years, waiting until the audience expectations rise to the highest, before shooting a sequel." Chapter 85 Pausing, Eric felt a little thirsty, he got up and went to the refrigerator and took a can of beer and drank a few mouthfuls, then returned to the sofa, he was about to continue his scolding, but when he took a look at the girl across him, he immediately shut his mouth. She was crying ... ... He helplessly reached under the tea table, to pull out a box of tissue paper, and pushed it in front of her. "Please don''t cry, I won''t say anything anymore." This sentence had the opposite effect, Julia took a few sheets of tissue paper and covered her little face, and Let her tears out with more enthusiasm, she even let out a small sob. In ordance with the normal plot in times like this, a woman need a shoulder to cry on, and then he will say a few affectionate words, And then he will find a dark room with a firece on, to start a session of lovemaking. However, it looks like he was the one who made Julia cry, so he felt he shouldn''t try to execute the plot. So he didn''t know what to do. He sat there looking helplessly, Watching her tears fall from her beautiful eyes. As a woman, she felt stupid, ashamed, and angry. All those emotions made her lose control of her tears, and the bastard was just sitting there awkwardly, he didn''t even try tofort her. How can you feel so embarrassed now? A few minutester, she had to take the initiative to stop crying, wiped her face, and crumbled the paper towels and throw them at him, and said: "you''re such a jerk!" She then stood up, and hurried to go to the bathroom. To fix the makeup she ruined with her crying. She stayed in the Restroom for a while trying to Patch up her makeup, and onlye out after there was no traces of her crying left. And sat back in her original position. "I will pay attention to your script as soon as possible, you don''t have to hurry. If you feel bored, you can go attend some simple college courses, this will help shape your image, the public still prefer ambitious actress. Of course, it''s OK to take part in variety shows. And if you want to do something else you can ask Kapoor to arrange things for you, he is a very good broker. "Ok" said Julia with a nod. "By the way, have you ever been to a psychiatrist?" Julia shook her head, bitterly stared at Eric, and med the bastard. She had some free time after the film was released. So she took some time to look up information on what exactly the so-called Stockholm syndrome is. The examples in the book seemed absurd in her view, but she has to admit that they can be linked to her abnormal behavior. At the same time, with the release of she quickly went from a small actor to a big star, So she was afraid to find a psychiatrist, if a psychiatrist identally revealed her illness, she may ruin her fledgling acting career. How can the public ept an actress who can be a sex ve at any moment? So Julie was afraid to tell even the closest people to her, at present this kind of thing, only Eric and she knows. Eric also quickly understood Julia''s concerns, this thing was really tricky. Once outsiders know a big scandal is unavoidable. "I think this kind of thing have something to do with confidence, when you have just arrived at my house, your condition were good, your body was giving a domineering appearance, you should continue doing that, you may recover from this illness without any medical help." "You ... ... nonsense, I checked the information, I me you for this thing, If you hadn''t treated me like that, that night, I wouldn''t have this problem." Eric raised his hand in surrender: "Okay, it''s may be my fault." "It was your fault." Seeing Eric look embarrassed, Julia was quite pleased with herself: "Yes, that ... ... Why isn''t here? Is it not the weekend?" "She lives in a boarding school. And sometimes shee home on the weekends. She May not know that Ie back today. The girl likes ying, and when I''m not at home, she rarely stays at home alone." Julia said in a sour tone: "you''re so kind to her." Ericughed: "You are not the first to say that. The girl is now my creditor and owes me one million dors. These days, you have to take care of your creditors to get your money back." "Oh!... ..." "Are you going to celebration party at the Hilton Hotel in the evening?" "Of course," Julia nodded and looked at her watch: "It''s gettingte now. I have to go back." Eric helped her put back her disguise, and sent Julia out, and returned to the vi. He watched TV until sunset, Then went upstairs to change his clothes, and then drove to the Hilton Hotel. The celebration party of this big box office movie, is certainly the focus of attention of the paparazzi. Eric didn''t like dealing with the paparazzi, so he nned to take the parking lot elevator directly to the banquet hall. But he found that he forget to ask on which floor the party was on. He looked around the parking lot, and found no one around to ask, Eric reluctantly to waited in the parking lot, in hope of meeting a guest who came to the party. But unfortunately, his luck wasn''t so good, after waiting for a few minutes, no one appeared, if he waited for so long, it is estimated that the ones watching the overhead cameras, will think that he was as malicious car thieves. After a while he Reluctantly decided to get out of the parking lot, and be surrounded by a swarm of paparazzi. The Hilton''s security guards were doing their best, they quickly came over to help Eric block the crowd. While frantically pressing the shutter, the paparazzi was shouting their throat raw, asking their messy questions. "Director Williams, you disappeared for a week. Are you preparing for the next movie?" "Eric, did miss sleep with you to get the heroine role of ?" "Lamborghini announced that theirtest Countach car within a week the number of pre-orders reached 153%, Eric, are you going to continue to put ads in your next movies?" "Eric, why didn''t misse with you? Aren''t she living with you?" "... ..." Good, malicious, full of traps, all kinds of out-of-order questions drifted into his ears, it is very difficult for Eric to give the appropriate answer, so he chose not to answer at all, under the protection of the security guards he finally was able to walk into the Hilton Hall, leaving the crazy paparazzi behind. After entering a Hilton''s manager greeted him with a smile "Mr. Williams, wee. The celebration of is on the fourth floor. Shall I take you there?" Eric hurriedly shook his head: "No, I''ll do it myself." He Entered the elevator and pressed the button to go up, only to see the manager still standing there smiling at him. What''s going on? In fact, this matter is very simple, Eric in portrayed a very cool hotel manager named Bernie Thompson, because of that he had a very good impression of Eric.
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 86 After the champagne, the party officially begins. As a film project that could bring Fox hundreds of millions of dors in profits, including revenue from peripheral video tapes, even Fox current president Barry Diller had to personally attend Pretty Woman celebration. And in addition to Pretty Woman crew members, Fox also invited dozens of big and small stars toe, the party scene can be described as night sky filled with stars. There were a lot of big shots on the scene, hundreds of people in the ballroom danced together, some guests gather together in small groups, trying to forge new ties to make their positions in Hollywood stronger. "Eric, the Super Bowl Trailer thing, Fox promotion department is indeed too conservative, I guarantee you that in the next movie release, Fox will fully cooperate with you. And also, we will included this in the expenses, we will make sure that you get reimbursedter." Eric with a smile on his face: "Mr. Diller, don''t mention it. The $1.5 million in the Super Bowl ad is really a big expense, it''s understandable that FOX was cautious." Barry Diller smiled, and didn''t mention it any more. The topic was once again moved to Eric''s next film, though not yet seen, Fox have already decided to publish the film in the summer. This summer many big movies will be released, Warner Bros will release Batman, Paramount Indiana Jones and the Last Crusade, Colombia Ghostbusters II, these three movies are destined to be big at the Box Office. And because FOX put too much attention on developing their televisionwork, leading to this year number of film productions totaling only 10 movies, rankedst in the big six movie studios list. In order not to be in the bottom, Fox was bound to give full support to Eric''s film, especially after the sess of Pretty Woman. With the big blockbuster movies released this summer, wanting to get a cut of the box office is not easy. Eric can not put Home Alone sequel topete with those big blockbusters for the summer box office, he thought for a long time before deciding on a movie from his past life. "I already have a preliminary outline of the plot for the next film, I intend to invite Tom Hanks and Tom Cruise as the stars, It will be a y between two men." Barry Diller eyes narrowed slightly, if sessful, just the name appeal of Tom Cruise and Eric are enough to boost the box office to over 100 million dors. And with Home Alone sequel this year Eric will have three big hits, so FOX was no longer afraid of his film performance, they can now safely focus on the development of their TVwork. "Eric, if you want to invite the two Toms, Then their pay will be no less then $10 million each, what is your budget?" Eric thought for a moment: "The budget should not exceed 30 million, this is a drama, and doesn''t need any big scenes, or any special effects, the movie run entirely on the two actor''s personal y, so $30 million is a very Loose budget, and we probably won''t be able to finish it." "I heard that you have just spent a lot of money to buy Steve Jobs studio?" Although Barry Diller was talking in an indifferent tone, Eric immediately understood his meaning . Fox still wants to y a part in the new film investment. "Yes, I had Pixar make the logo for my filmpany, after seeing it i was very satisfied with their work. When I heard that Steve Jobs wanted to sell the studio, I bought it. However, the animation cycle is very long, and 3D animation is still in the exploratory stage, so I don''t know when the first animated movie will be made." Eric ignored the frustrated look on Barry Diller face, anyway, if he was going to beat around the Bush, Eric also was going to y the idiot card. Listening to the small fox in front of him ying dumb, Barry Diller had to pick the topic: "Eric, I mean, if you don''t have enough funds to produce the film, Fox can be responsible for part of the investment, which can also reduce your risk. Do not worry, Fox will not link the cost of investment with the sharing agreement we signed before." Barry Diller said the matter bluntly, and Eric didn''t directly reject the offer, of course, he will not hand over his own rights submissively. If he can sessfully invited Tom Cruise and Tom Hanks, with the box office appeal of the three of them, the film can not fail. Finally, Eric could only say: "No problem, Mr. Diller, If we need outside investment, Fox is definitely my first choice." When Barry Diller heard Eric halfhearted answer, he understand that the possibility of Fox investing in the movie is almost close to zero. But he will not make the same mistake like Columbia did before, now the cooperation between them is still in the honeymoon period, although in ordance with their previous agreement, Eric will earn a little more than Fox, but Fox also will make huge profits that make others which they were in their ce. After Talking about some other topics, The two separated to go entertain other people. When Barry Diller walked away, Eric instantly felt a lot of eyes focus on him. ... ... Okay, girls, the first one to throw herself at me will get a role in the next movie. a ridiculous idea emerged in Eric head, giving him a remarkable feeling. After all, he was ayman in his past life, if he can''t enjoy his position now, then what the hell is he going to do?. And soon the first person to start a conversatione to him. Bald head, six feet long, with a sturdy frame, and a crooked smile on his face, Ah ... ... it''s a man. "Eric, you finally came back, I want to know what you''re thinking, Julia got a lot of movie offers, and I think quite a few of them are good. But why did you rejected them all?" It was difficult for Eric to finally decided to indulge himself, but he was helplessly pulled out from his fantasy''s by Kapoor. "Kapoor, I don''t think you have a sense time and ce." "huh?" "Will you look around?"" Kapoor with a puzzled look on his face, nced around suspiciously, he found several beautiful girls looking at him, not concealing the hostility in their eyes. Although Kapoor is a workaholic, but he was still very proficient in the traditional code of conduct, or he wouldn''t work as a broker, shrugging he said: "I''m sorry, Eric, I don''t mean to dy your hunting. But if you don''t tell me about it, I won''t be at ease." Eric also wanted to tell him that Julia in his past life sessful movies, were mostly romanticedies, therefore she temporarily can''t take any of those movies. He felt that the most suitable movie for Julia right now is Steel Magnolias, the movie that let her win the Golden Globe nomination, and made close to $100 million at the box office. Unfortunately, when he did inquire about the film he found that until now TriStar Pictures haven''t started the project, either because of the butterfly effect caused by him, or they just didn''t start working on it yet. He can not write the script again. In The previous three movies, he was 100% sure that the original script has not yet appeared, or appeared but didn''t have a close resemnce to his film, like in the case of Pretty Woman, so he could make them with a peace of mind. But now he can''t guarantee that there won''t be any problem. "Kapoor, wait a few more days. I''m going to go to the writers'' union to see if any good scripts have been registered, and I will pick one for Julia." "Eric," Kapoor said: "do you know how many registered scripts the Writers union has? Thousands of them. It''s like going to San Francisco to pan for gold, a lot of work with almost no results." It''s easy to know where the gold is buried. All Eric have to do is find the screenwriter of Steel Magnolias. "Trust me Kapoor, be patient. I''ll give you an answer soon." Eric also made up his mind, if he can''t find Steel Magnolias script, he will pick another high-grossing movies for Julia from his memories, anyway, with Julia fame now, as long as the character is appropriate for her, and she have the intention to participate in the movie, no director will reject her, and many productionpanies in order to get her in their movies, will pay generously. Chapter 87 After he sent away Kapoor, Jeffreye to him, After that several executives from came to say hello, when he finally finished socializing with them. ran over and said that a few producers want to meet with him. No problem, continue! He spent more then an hour smiling to the point that his face have gone stiff, when things finally quieted down. Exhausted, he took a ss of wine and went directly to a couch in the corner and sat down. "Mr. Williams can I have the honor of dancing with you?" Eric subconsciously showed a stiff smile, the girl on the opposite side had no time to be happy only to see Eric shaking his head. "Sorry, miss. I''m too tired." "Oh, I''m sorry." The other side turned and left. After rejecting a the first two bold girls, no other girle to disturb him, until a blonde with beautiful eyes and and a gentle tonee to him. "Mr. Williams, my name is ... ..." Eric fought back his instinct to take a defensive stance. I don''t want to know what your name is. I just want to be alone for a few minutes. Is that so difficult? "Excuse me, can I stay alone by myself for a while?" "Oh, sorry ......" My mood can''t be so bad, Eric clutched his forehead. After enjoying the quiet for a few seconds, a voice sounded again. "Eric, would you like some fruit juice, for your hangover?" Eric looked up, only to see a girl with a lovely face, carrying two sses of orange juice. "Of course, thank you, Miss ," Eric took the juice from her. sat down beside Eric, and slowly leaned towards him, and started softly rubbing his arm, and said in a tone filled with resentment: "I''m d you still remember me, Call me Virginia, okay?" "Okay, Virginia, eh ... Vicky?" "Whatever," She said with a smile: "I see you have been rejecting a lot off girl, are you gay ..." Eric subconsciously raised his voice and denied: "absolutely not." "Oh, what a big reaction! don''t worry? I don''t discriminate against homosexuals. I have seen a lot of directors who are like this, I think gay men are more delicate." "Vicki, would you mind changing the subject?" Virginia carefully looked at Eric expression and nodded: "So you really are not ah, then what''s going on with you?" "Didn''t you see it?" She shook her head: "I went to the Restroom, when I came out all I saw is you rejecting the poor girls." Eric exined; "I was so tired that I had to turned down the invitation to dance with them. Maybe this move made them misunderstand something." "Oh, fortunately I didn''t invite you to dance, or else you may have driven me away." Eric didn''t want to talk about it. It was a bit rude of him to refuse their invitations. "By the way, what movie have you been working on recently?" When heard his question a feeling of strong loss grow in her heart, she often think of her first encounter with Eric, and of the words Eric said, she really thought that Eric based the movie on her as an inspiration. Unfortunately, she didn''t get the heroine role, more than once Virginia saw the crowds treating like a princess, she couldn''t help but feel a little envy in her heart. Julia had not been famous before, but now the lucky girl has be a world-famous Hollywood actress. If she had taken the initiative that evening, perhaps she well be the one enjoying the fame. Thinking of this, Virginia was determined to seize Eric this night. "I just finished shooting a film, ying a rich businessman''s wife, I ended up driving myself to the river to die." "Really! hhhh ... ... sorry." Eric was embarrassed and didn''t know how to answer. she didn''t seem to be ming him. she wasn''t really dead. then why does it sound like he was the killer? Think about it, Eric Assured her: "You will be fine." "It''s hard to see hope. I''m almost out of options. I can''t act as a pure girl. and in another two years, maybe I could only y the role of a housewife." Hearing the pure girl two words, Ericughed, it seems that Virginia have kept the words he said a few months ago firmly in mind. At that party, he just casually said, that her temperament and beauty doesn''t work for pure and young characters. He didn''t care about thought, Hollywood has always been a patriarchal world, a woman who have neither power nor backers and want to seed, will have to y by the rules and always try to please the ones on top. Thinking about his past life, even after ten years of work, he wasn''t even able to jump over the wall, and only staying in the periphery of the industry circle. "Vicky, do you want a chance?" Virginia eyes lit up: "of course." Erik looked up and down at the ripe flesh of the woman dressed in a ck dress: "But I''m not an angel. What can you give back?" "Everything!" The party has been going on for several hours, and many men and women were leaving in pairs, perhaps they have feelings for each other, or it was just a simpler one-night stand, and perhaps they have reached a deal. Anyway, in a Hollywood party, it''s hard to produce a love at first sight like in fairy tales, and there have always been news of people getting cheated by crooks from time to time. The two of them took the elevator together to the underground parking lot, with the night temperature this season reaching about 10 degrees in Los Angeles, wearing a thin dress, with the cool breeze blowingte at night, Virginia sobered up a little, she regretted recklessly epting Eric deal. She felt that she should at least try to string the young director along to wet his appetite, so she can reliably get the benefits, but now she only got a promise, if the young man afterwards didn''t keep his promise, she would be yed by him like a fiddle with nothing to show for it. Suddenly Eric gently covered Virginia body with coat to keep her warm. Well, it is a one-night stand, at least, the little man was very thoughtful. They quietly negotiated for a while and decided to go to home in . If Eric came out from the hotel door he will be surrounded by the paparazzi, they wanted to know if Eric will bring a woman home tonight, he was sure that the paparazzi will be camping outside of his Beverly mansion. Now if he go outside with her it''s like him taking the initiative to provide Virginia to the paparazzi on a silver tter. It took him almost an hour to drive from the Hilton Hotel to Malibu with no traffic jams on the way. Fortunately, the two of them were talkative people, so awkward silence didn''t appear along the way. He Followed her directions to a small vi north of the coastal highway, far away from the beach, it is estimated that even in her second floor balcony it will be difficult to see the sea, Eric casually asked her: "why do you live here?" Virginia put Eric coat on the hanger and said frankly, "It''s nice to have such a small vi in Malibu. You don''t think that after I filmed a few movies I will be able to afford a vi in Beverly hills like you?" Eric shrugged, realizing that he had asked her with sarcastic tone. thinking back to his past life, after the first debut of Virginia in a movie made by director called in 1984, she didn''t star in any remarkable film since then, even after the nies she didn''t have any good work, sheter shifted he focus to TV dramas. As an actress, although she was famous to some degree, but she had no box office appeal, therefore all the films offers she received were low-cost movies, where the paycheck only reach tens of thousands of dors. After tonight, another woman''s fate will be changed by him. After all, after his appearance, Hollywood history was bound to be mess, so why not change history to his own enjoyment.
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 88 Eric went to the living room and sat down on a sofa, after finished hanging the clothes shee and sat with him, their eyes met, and the atmosphere started to warm up, Eric could not help but grab her waist and pull her to him. "Take off your high heels." Virginia obediently like a littlemb kicked off her high heels, feeling her waist and shoulders being caressed by his strong hands, she said in a low voice: "Eric, can I take a bath first?" He did not answer her question. After Virginia took off her short high-heeled shoes, Eric was still not satisfied, he pushed her slightly with his hands, her eyes shed a few times, and obediently knelt on the carpet. Feeling the satisfied look of the man looking at her, put her little hands on Eric thighs, with her upturned charming face, and almond misty eyes, she said in dissatisfied small voice: "Does all males like the females to surrender under their feet?" Eric stroked her face softly, and said in agreement: "yes, but most of them do not have the power to make women surrenderpletely... ... What''s wrong with your hair? I remember thest time it wasn''t like this." Virginia with a puzzled look touched her blond hair, which was deliberately imitating Marilyn Monroe''s hairstyle: "What''s the problem?" "This color doesn''t look good on you. Let''s change it tomorrow." His tone made her somewhat resistant: "But my hair stylist said that this color matches my eye color." "I like golden brown." Virginia looked at Eric with grievance, and said: "All right." Eric slipped her dress shoulder strap off, removed her bra, and started wantonly ying with her abundance: "are you signed with any brokerage firm now?" Virginia gasped and shook her head: "I only have a broker, he ... ..." Eric interrupted her words: "you have worked for so many years without any improvement, that person is not qualified, fire him, and then go to UTA to find Kapoor, I will let him take care of you personally." "Kapoor Sid?" Virginia raised her head excitedly, she certainly knew who Kapoor was. In Kapoor Sid hands now there''s only three artists. The girl who have an ambiguous rtionship with Eric , the actor who made aeback with , and one who the media recently started calling "Hollywood Cindere" . never dreamed that she would be the fourth, until now, she has been worried that after Eric yed with her tonight, he will not keep his promise, or will give her a small role to send her away. "Eric, thank you." Ericughed and pull her to him and said: "now, your task is show me where is the bedroom?" Under the guidance of Virginia, Eric picked her up and came up to a bedroom in the second floor, he throw her petite body on the bed. and soon their clothes flow away. ... ... Eric was awakened by the sound of the waves of the sea, and the light of dawn shining though window curtains. He Looked at the girl curled up in his arms, although the natural reaction between his legs that happen to him in the morning, was hopping to thrive, but he did not want to disturb the sleeping Virginia. Last night, they yed too much, and Virginia was exhausted by him. He basically tried a lot of things he saw in porn in his past life. Ripe peaches are indeed much tastier then the smaller ones, and have much more endurance. Plus the girl wasn''t afraid to express herself, which made Eric feel good about himself. After putting on some clothes he went to the balcony, only to find that the scenery here wasn''t as bad as he thought the night before, he can view the distant sea from this ce, with the sun just over the horizon, the distant sea was stained with ayer of orange. A hint of sharp corner suddenly appeared in his southwest field of vision, he narrowed his eyes and looked carefully, Eric suddenly remembered what that ce was. His mind started moving fast, Eric returned to the bedroom, and started searching for papers. he found a stack of A4 papers in the cab bedside Virginia, it was a script for a movie, Eric was tozy to look at them, anyway a script that can be sent to is certainly not a script of a good movie, next he found a pen. Eric carried a chair to the balcony, and put the stack of A4 paper on his knees and started working. Looking carefully at the topography of the sharp corner not far away, andparing it to the memory in his mind, Eric bowed his head and started sketching on a nk paper. The rustling sound as he draws on the paper rang for more than half an hour, when the sleeping girl woke up and found the bed empty, Virginia panicked for a brief moment, but she calmed down when she found his figure sitting on the balcony carefully sketching. She put on a Sheer gauze robe to cover her delicate body, and went to the balcony, Virginia leaned over and hugged his shoulders affectionately and said: "Good morning, Eric." "Morning, Vicky, are you going to use this script?" Virginia shook her head: "it''s no use, I prepared for a long time for the role, but I didn''t pass the audition." Eric nodded and continued sketching. "Eric, what are you drawing?" Eric tore off a page with bird''s eye view drawing from the script and showed it to her, pointing out to the sharp corner in the southwest. Virginia looked at the paper in wonder: "This is ... ... Home design drawing?" "Well, it''s a n for a luxurious mansion, I''m going to buy thatnd and build myself a house just like this." Virginia smiled and give back the paper back to Eric and said: "But there''s a park there" Eric took the drawings: "It''s not the Central Park, I will think of a way to buy it, I''m going to buy close to a hectare ofnd, I''m sure the Los Angeles county government will be happy to add extra money to their budget." One hectare, Virginia did not notice that Eric was not using imperial units of measurement, she awkwardly attempted to convert the metric system units in her head, a hectare is about 100,000 square feet, and her small vi was only a little more than 1000 square feet. Oh, my God, one hundred times the size of her vi, clearly exceeding the limits of imagination. If this man belongs to her ... ... No, even if she was only his lover, it will be wonderful to live in such a luxurious mansion. "Eric, the geological situation there doesn''t seem to be good for the construction of a mansion. Otherwise, rich people must have tried to buy it. I think it''s better if you pick and with a private beach. Why do you want that ce anyway?" Eric once again looked at the picture spread on the white paper, and said with a mysterious smile on his lips: "because there is ." he paused, then added: "My " Chapter 89 Virginia didn''t understand what Eric was saying, quizzically she said: "" Eric nodded, and didn''t exin in detail, nor could he exin to her what 10880 Malibu means. In his past life , Tony Stark''s Malibu super sea view mansion impressed Eric a lot. Afterword, he and many fans, tried to inquire online on the mansion information, but they found that the filmpany chose the location of the mansion to be in Malibu, but they produced the mansion using CGI. Later it was said that the mansion really exists, but the address was in California, Santiago, and that the owner will list thend for sale. However, the crowd of inte users soon found that it was just a publicity stunt, the house in Santiago indeed have a good Ocean View Vi. Butpared with the house in the movie, is likeparing a wild duck with a swan. As for the more fancy Stark Building in New York is unlikely to be built, New York now is like a hedgehog back there''s no opennd to build in. but iron man''s Malibu mansion is within the scope of Eric''s ability. It''s only a question of how much money he have to spend, and for Eric now, money is not a problem. It is expected that will bring him almost a hundred million dors in revenue, all that money is enough for him to build 100 vis in Malibu. He turned and looked at the beautiful girl behind him, Eric smiled and reached out to touch her breasts, feeling the soft creamy skin in his palm: "Vicky, go and help me make breakfast, because I worked all night, I''m so hungry now." "Go ahead, Prepare toast with fried eggs, and then hold an apple andy on the table, so I can eat you too." "As you wish, your royal highness." said Virginia, smiling she kissed his cheek, and when she wanted to kiss Eric in the mouth. Eric suddenly thought of something, and tilted his head to the side: "Do not." With a loud thud, the chair he was sitting on fell to the ground, the papers and pen that were on his knees were scattered all over the floor. Virginia quickly lifted up Eric pped the dust on his clothes: "What''s the matter with you?" Eric pointed to Virginia Small mouth at night: "you eat thatst night, and you haven''t brushed your teeth yet?" Virginia immediately understood what Eric meant, and Angrily red at him: "You are so hateful, making me eat such disgusting thing, that was disgusting." "It''s not like you eat poison, it won''t hurt you." Eric smiled and started helping pick up the papers from the ground, and used a paper clip to bind them. When Virginia rushed to prepare breakfast, Eric sat down to work once again. More than ten pages of the manuscript were out of order, Eric fiddled with the papers trying to rearrange them. When he identally nced at the top of the page, he saw a striking two words "Steel Magnolias". ah! Eric quickly arranged the order the manuscript again, and began reading them from the first page. Although it was only an audition manuscript, it wasn''t aplete script, and there wasn''t any screenwriter or director information writing on it. Eric determined after reading the small lens clips that this is indeed the he was trying to find. The little fragments he read in the manuscript was obviously the parts for the timid Beautician Annelle yed by . "Fortunately, my luck attribute points are really high, perhaps I should go to Las Vegas to try my luck!" Eric smiled as he mumbled, "since the script appeared in Virginia''s bedroom, then the auditions should be a Recent thing, I hope the roles haven''t been settled yet." With the script in hand he went downstairs, have changed her outfit, and now was wearing an apron, busy at work in the kitchen. Noticing that Eric appeared behind her, Virginia turned and smiled at him: "breakfast will be ready soon." Eric raised the script and asked: "Vicky, when did you participate in this movie audition?" Virginia turned over the eggs in the frying pan with a spat, and said to him: "are you talking about ? ah, on Friday, the day before yesterday." "Can you tell me what you know about this movie? Virginia scooped off the omelette and turned off the fire, and said: "Okay, Eric, let''s go to the dining room to talk about it." Eric nodded and helped her take the breakfast to the dining room. poured Eric a ss of milk and said: "This is movie my agent rmended to me, the director is ... ... I have heard that was ning to invest, but because TriStar is owned by , and Columbia started the negotiation with , they worried that if they produced and distributed the film and the film flopped at the box office, will cause their stock prices to fall. And because Columbia wasn''t optimistic about many other film projects, many of them have been suspended, Herbert Ross had to pull the investment alone. and because the budget was small, I got a chance to audition." Because of Eric promisest night, she was no longer sad about failing to get the role, in a very t tone she said: "Unfortunately, I think ... ... thought that I was too old for the role, so I failed the audition." When she Mentioned her age, showed a worried on her face, and looked up at Eric, she was thirty years old, and can no longer afford to keep wasting her years. Opposite of her Eric sat eating slowly, but his mind was quickly calcting, since gave up the film, he may be able to take over the project. If Firefly want to grow and develop, it will have to stop producing only the movies made by Eric. Investing in more projects is a must,and may be a good choice. Of course, next Firefly will have to gradually establish their own distribution channels, in his past life because had no distribution channels, they had give their films to the six giants to issue, resulting in most of the benefits going to big six, which led to DreamWorks not making enough profits, and finally had to be sold to . In fact, also had it''s own distribution channels, but the films made by take arge budgets to produce, and with their ability to issue, if they tried to force distribute their films, then they will have to get $200 million at the box office globally just to be able to recover $100 million. That''s why Eric hasn''t thought about releasing his own film for the time being. The Weinstein brothers too start on the road of small cost movies, they too had the ups and downs of but because they only invested in small budget films they made a lot of money, but in the end they ended up losing , their ce in Hollywood was weaker then before even after that they established , and that''s because they didn''t have good distribution channels. He would willingly give close to half of the profits to Fox, because only with Fox giant distributing ability, will he be able to get the film to achieve it full potential at the box office. Even if he had released the movie himself, and achieved the same number of screens as Fox, it is impossible for him to achieve the same high box office. Because there are too many things involved in getting a good box office. Gradually, Eric rified how firefly should develop in the future, he will not keep giving his own movies to the bigpany''s, for now he will keep investing in movies with small budgets, he will use those "cannon fodder" films to slowly umte resources and experience. until he develop to a certain extent, then he will start releasing his own movies. Chapter 90 Putting down the phone, Eric turned to Virginia and said: "OK, go to UTA and find Kapoor. He will know what to do." At this time has changed her clothes to a rose colored suit with a skirt, and a small hand bag, making her look professional business woman: "Aren''t you going to go back with me to the city?" "No, I''ll wait here for mywyer toe over. And it won''t be good if the paparazzi spot us together." She took out a spare key and handed it to Eric: "this is a spare key to the vi, if you want to ... ... you cane here at any time." Eric smiled and took the key from her and put it in his pocket: "Trust me, I wille here often." he could not help but reach out and stroke her chin: "you look really sexy in this skirt, next time wear it to bed." gave him a wink and said: "It ''s only eight o''clock now, maybe we can go outter." Eric wrapped his hand around her waist and give her a little p on the ass,ughing he said: "Don''t tempt me, or I will not let you out of the door for the next three days, now go." "Oh, you crumpled my skirt." she swatted his hand away, and straightened her skirt: "Then I will go first." Virginia left soon after that, and a few minutester a ck Mercedes parked at the gate of the vi. Eric''s privatewyer took careful note of the address, with a puzzled look rang the bell. "Eric, did you buy another house here?" Edward Lewis asked, when he saw him open the door. "No, this is a friend''s house." Eric exined. Edward followed him into the living room, even without looking at the feminine home decorations, just with the faint scent in the air, he was sure it was a woman''s house. Eric led Edward to the balcony on the second floor, pointed to the sharp corner and asked: "Edward, what do I need to do if I want to buy thatnd there?" Edward put on his sses and squinted his eyes looking at the ce Eric pointed at, shaking his head he said: "Eric, it''s too far away. Let''s go and have a look." "No problem," Eric picked up the script with the design draft, and followed Edward out the door. ... ... The two of them stood at the edge of a cliff, they were surrounded by the exposed brown rocks and weeds, and In front of them there was the beautiful blue sea. Edward was holding the design draft in his hand, although it was sketched with a pen, but by virtue of Eric solid sketch skills, the building on the paper looked so vivid. Giving some words of praise in his heart to the how luxurious the building looked, if it is built, it will certainly be the most iconic building in Malibu: "Eric, are you sure you want to build such a luxurious mansion?" "Why not?" Edward nodded: "There is two private vis on both sides. Although I don''t have a lot of knowledge about building engineering, but with a little guess, you can know the reason why this ce was converted into a park, thisnd isn''t suitable for building, otherwise no one will let acres ofnd stay vacant." "As long as you can get this piece ofnd, I will take care of the rest." Eric said: "no matter how much money it takes, I have to build it. If thend isn''t suitable for building then we will use cement reinforcement, if we need soil, we will ship it from the outside, if thend is hard to dig then we will use explosives." Edward smiled and shook his head. Eric also felt that he was acting like a nouveau-riche wannabe,ughing he said: "Edward, You won''t be calling me a ''fool" in your heart, will you?" "Of course not, I just don''t think it''s necessary, you look at those houses." referring to the two vis for the second tome: "living in that kind of vi is veryfortable, but here there''s nothing but rocks and weeds." Edward finished saying, and looked at Eric, with a look of curiosity, he wondered why he suddenly wanted to build such a luxurious mansion here. "This is one of my dreams." Eric understood that his privatewyer wanted to know if this was a real or a fake excuse: "When I was a child me and my father moved from the United Kingdom to Los Angeles, he took me once to this park to y, at that time I thought that having a house here will be wonderful. Then I gradually forgot about it, until this morning, when I saw this ce again, I started thinking of the past. And now that I have enough economic power, why not realize that dream." With that, Eric pulled de of grass from the ground and put it in his mouth. "From childhood to adulthood, I had countless ideas, but most of them were lost, so why not achieve a few now, so I won''t regret it in the future... ... Edward, do you have any unusual dreams or ideas you wanted to achieve?" Eric words seems to have effected Edward by bringing back past memories: "In high school I wanted to be a rock star, I used to skip sses to learn, but I was caught by my father and got a month of confinement, after I was released I obediently applied for Yale Law School." Ericughed and looked at the man with the refined temperament: "now you look nothing like a rock star." Edward sighed: "of course, it has been almost thirty years. at that time the Beatles had just been established, and Elvis Presley also was very influential, now all those legend are gone." Elvis and the Beatles were too far away in Eric''s mind, but he still enjoyed hearing Edward talking about his memories and nostalgia, he Reached into his pockets searching for something. Edward took a look at his actions, and took out a box of cigarettes from his pocket: "Are you looking for this?" Eric took a cigarette and lit it. "I thought you didn''t smoke." Edward instinctively looked around, then lit his cigarette: "I smoke asionally, when I was in high school I used to smoke heavily, my father found out and beat me with a rattan cane ... ... that was very painful, which gradually formed a psychological shadow in my mind. Even after I left home and was no longer under the control of my father, I still sneak around when I want to smoke ... ... a lot of people think I don''t have this habit." The two of them with a mental age of more than 40 years chatted while smoking, facing the sea breeze for more than half an hour, Edward finally stomped thest cigarette butt off, and put the empty cigarette pack in his pocket and said: "For a long time I haven''t rxed like this." "Then you cane here often to rx." "Too busy," Edward shook his head, then said: "Eric, get the check ready. I''ll do my best to help you get this piece ofnd." "Thanks a lot." "You don''t have to thank me. I''m going to getmission." Edward joked, "but, you''ll need to find a financial manager, Today, this kind of thing, is strictly speaking beyond the scope of my services." Chapter 91 Eric also had ns to find a financial manager, but this is not an easy thing. Although he hasn''t received any dividends from his movies yet, but no one can deny that he is now worth more than 100 million US dors But only he knows, that in his hands, he has the copyrights, and if seed like it did in his past life he will be sitting on a gold mine, these things will make his assets easily exceeded the billion dors mark in the future. Under such circumstances, he could not hand over his assets to an outsider. If the manager didn''t have good professional ethics, he won''t be able to have peace of mind. Hollywood stars getting deceived by their financial managers are not umon, for example bankruptcy in his past life, Although Cage personally liked to squander his money on things he can''t afford, but it''s hard to say that his financial manager didn''t contribute to the problem by letting him do what he wanted without trying to stop him, otherwise This kind of thing is not easy to happen. The moreplex and confusing the financial situation of the employer, the easier it is for the manager to fish in troubled waters. And if the ounts are well organized, then your financial managers can only get his sry and rewards. Taking a ride back to Los Angeles with Edward, Eric went back to the Hilton Hotel parking lot to retrieve his car and drove straight to the Firefly headquarters. In the time he left Los Angeles, Jeffrey have already got the right to adapt , before Eric could write the script. Jeffrey also raised another issue, that is, Firefly''s financial situation. When filming Eric invested all the money thepany had in the movie, And to get the money back, as usual, he will have to wait until the movie stop screening a few monthster, Although he has a good rtionship with , but he was sure, if he opened the topic of money with , the other side is sure to want a piece of the pie. To get a $50 million loan Eric put the contract of as a coteral, to buy he spent $20 million, and he left $10 million as funds for , and now he only has $20 million left. The money isn''t enough for him to invest in the next movie, not to mention he also has several other movies nned. Eric signed a $20 million check to the finance manager of thepany, and then told Jeffrey: "The first thing you should do is prepare for , I''ll write the scripts these days." "What about your movie?" Eric shrugged: "We can only continue getting loans." Anyway, this kind of thing, even if you resist at the beginning, but by borrowing once, you get used to it and it bes a habit. Anyway, he won''t let other filmpanies intervene in his film projects. "By the way Jeffrey, this is ... ... a good script I found by luck, the director is , he is still in the casting stage, I''ve heard they have a problem with the budget. You should get in touch with him and see if we can win this project, Fireflies are willing to invest with him, and also you''ll have to convince to join the film." Jeffrey looked at the script that Eric handed him, and read a few paragraphs, he didn''t see anything special. But he chose not to raise any objections, long ago he decided to no longer question Eric''s taste in films. And as Eric said, he was more suitable for the role of a producer. "No problem. I''ll contact as soon as possible." ... ... After a day of work, Eric was nning to go home, when he heard a knock on the door. Jeffrey walked into his office and said: "Eric, do you remember ?" "Of course, if it wasn''t for her, wouldn''t be released so smoothly. I haven''t been able to see Amy to thank her." "She called," Jeffrey said, "I didn''t hang up, she wants to talk to you." Eric quickly followed Jeffrey to his office. ... ... "Amy ... ... Long time no see, I always wanted to say thank you all this time. But unfortunately, you suddenly quit your job ... ... Sure, no problem ... ... then, see youter." After hanging up the phone, Eric and Jeffrey looked at each other. Jeffrey took the lead to say what he knows: "Amy returned to Columbia, as a Vice President for the time being, and Blount Cohen have already left, I heard that he choose early retirement, it is said that he went to France." "Did she just tell you these things?" Jeffrey nodded: "I talked to her before. What did she want?" "She wanted to invite me to have a meal." The two of them shared a few more words, trying to find what''s going on, until Eric looked at his watch and said: "Then I will go to the appointment, Jeffrey I will leave and things to you, In the next few days I won''te to thepany, I will stay at home, if there''s anything call me." ... ... When hee to the designated restaurant, Eric found had been waiting for him. She wore a professional ck suit, her shoulder-length blonde hair was curly. It was said that a woman''s hair can tell you about her mood, but he did not know what her hairstyle represented. The Two of them gently hugged, and Eric said: "Sorry, Amy, The traffic was so bad that I let you wait for me." "It doesn''t matter" Amy smiled and said: "You''re notte. In fact, I came too early." They sat down at the table, she handed him the menu: "What would you like to eat?" Eric took the menu and said: "This feels strange. The order of things ispletely reversed, I feel like I should be the one saying that." "Well, big boy, this time it''s my treat, so don''t be a macho man." Eric shrugged and did not refute her, he didn''t have much contact with Amy Pascal before, so she didn''t know how mature his character is, so she habitually treated him like a young man. After casually choosing what to eat, Eric handed the menu back to her, as for her she didn''t look at the menu, and expertly made her request, and handed the menu to the waiter. "Do you oftene here to eat?" "Yes, the food here is delicious." Amy did not rush to exin her intention to him, and Eric didn''t worry, until they finished their lunch, all they did was casually chatted about tings like the weather, and current events. Only after ordering the coffee, did Amy start talking about her purpose. Chapter 92 After listening to reporting Coca-C CEO conditions, Eric felt that there was a big pit waiting for him, Otherwise, how could such a good thing happen to him? Providing enough budget funds, not meddling in the film production, and even providing him with a team to help him make another movie to cope with Fox contract, and after that, he will still be able to get 30 percent of the domestic box office, and 10 percent of overseas Box office. This condition are simply insane, even can''t get such favorable treatment. "Amy, giving this condition kinda seems unreasonable. You know that thest time I worked with Columbia wasn''t a pleasant experience, so it''s hard for me to believe that there is no ... ... trickery?" Amy said sternly: "Eric, believe me, in order to promote this cooperation and prevent anyone from obstructing it, the board of directors deliberately removed Mr. Blunt Cohen from the position of president, which is enough to show Columbia''s sincerity." Eric was still not convinced, although he was happy about Blunt Cohen leaving, but that wasn''t enough to convince him that Columbia had done so because of him: "I need the real reason why?" Amy hesitated for a moment, then said in detail: "Because we are negotiating with Japan''s the acquisition if Columbia, we need best selling movies to stimte the stock prices, and you are by far the most secure movie director, the three films you participated in all achieved amazing results at the box office, and with your continuous umtion of box office appeal, the audience has formed a certain viewing inertia, when your next film is released, many people by habit will go to the cinemas to have a look. As long as your next movie is up to standard, then once again getting a $100 million at the box office is reasonable thing." Seeing Eric''s gradually showing an enlightened look on his face, Amy continued: "So, don''t think will do business at a loss, this is a win-win cooperation. Eric, before pushed Columbia''s stock price from $12 to $14. And the market value from $2.2 billion to $2.56 billion." Eric calcted in his head, because box office was good, Columbia market value increased by $360 million. Under normal circumstances, although this growth is encouraging, but the shareholders will not sell their shares because the stock price increased by two dors, after all what they look at is the long-term interests, their main ie is the annual dividend. because once a film they invested in failed, the stock price will fall again. But after Sony decided to acquire Columbia, the situation would be different, each increase in the stock price would trante into real money. Remembering his past life, when acquired they spent nearly $5 billion, SONY was definitely royally screwed. Because Columbia''s real assets didn''t even amount to $2 billion. The acquisition only took a year, and after that Columbia''s stock prices again fell to normal levels, with the market value falling by more then $2.7 billion, $2.7 billion directly evaporating, he was sure that Sony''s Board of directors shed a few tears that year. Regardless of what happened in his past life, he did not have a good impression of the Japanese, and seeing the fat sheep going to the ughter house, how can he not participate. Of course, on the surface he still yed hard to get, because his own interests alwayse first. "Amy, if that''s the case, I''d love to work with Columbia again, but I''ve signed a partnership agreement with for three movies. As for what you said, about Columbia providing me with a team to make a movie to deal with Fox, I certainly will not agree, this is my personal reputation on the line, there have been many people questioning my age and my ability to make the first few movies." Hearing what he said, Amy asked: "Eric, do you already have ns in mind?" Eric smiled and said: "It is estimated that you have already seen the specific content of the contract, so if I want to get out of it I will have to pay a price, although domestically I get 5% less than Fox, butpared to the price paid by , their price is still very reasonable. " Amy cheeks got slightly hot, Eric and Fox''s contract, although the content isn''t strictly confidential, But it has not been disclosed, and to get to see the contract they''ll need to do somemercial espionage and spying. Eric has no interest in such gossip, he continued: "Since the content of the contract has already been known by Columbia, then you should be clear that Fox mainly want to acquire sequel distribution rights, many of the details in the contract have been specially formted just for that. as for the the other two movies they didn''t care too much, so ... ... " Amy Pascal said excitedly: "So, it doesn''t matter if your next movie isn''t handed over to Fox, As long as you give three movies by the end of the year, right?" Eric nodded, then shook his head again: "Although this does not vite the agreement, but Fox is not so amodating. Fox has scheduled my next film to be issued in the summer, and because doesn''t have many films to distribute this year, once I quit, then Fox will directly have to withdraw from the summer box officepetition, which will cost Fox tens of millions of dors, and as much as a hundred million dor in profits" showed a distressed frown, although between the big six there is bothpetition and cooperation, but can note up with enough chips to let Fox give up so much profits. ncing at the boy sitting across her, Eric shrugged helplessly. He could not think of anything to say for the time being, this year summer stalls has been saturated, especially big production movies. Although Eric can fight for a ce with them, by directing a film for , others may not have this opportunity, only someone with a golden touch like him can get it. However, in this case, if this extra film was issued in may, the film will run against , and if he chose June he will face . And as for July, he will bepeting with his own film, which is bound result in a lose-lose situation. But at the same time, he is not willing to give up the generous conditions giving by . Now even if his film only get $200 million at box office, he will be getting $10 million less then , while Columbia is willing to pay $30 million as a production cost. What''s more, he is not so confident about his new film, although if he can invite and , plus his box office appeal, braking the $100 million mark is certainly no problem. But specifically how much the movie can get he doesn''t know, because there''s no previous box office reference in his past life, because his next film isn''t from his past life Hollywood movies. "Amy, give me a couple of days. I need to talk to first. It will be for the best if I can get Fox to understand and reach a settlement. Anyway, If it is impossible to reach a settlement, I won''t breach the agreement." "Do you need to do something?" Asked Amy Pascal. Eric didn''t say yes or no: "What can Columbia do? Can you go to Barry Diller''s office and say to him: Hey, we''re going to start negotiating with the Japanese, and we need some chips, so how about giving us the next movie made by Eric Williams?" "This ... ..." Amy smiled and shook her head: "Well, I''ll be waiting for your good news, you can contact me directly if you need any help." Before they parted ways, they exchanged their contact info, Eric went home directly after that and called office phone, but he was told by his assistant that Barry Diller was in Europe on a business trip, and wille back four dayster. Although the assistant give him barry Diller contact info in Europe, but Eric chose not to call him directly, and made an appointment for four dayster. After all, this matter is difficult to tell on the phone, with the two of them separated by more then ten thousand miles, in case the phone call didn''t go smoothly and ended up breaking, that may cause more harm than good.
Next Chapter >>
Chapter 93 "You wrote the entire script, in just four days?" Jeffrey picked script, and asked Eric. "This is only the first draft, when shooting the film a lot of changes will be made ording to the specific circumstances." Eric replied, and took a few steps back to sitfortably on the sofa, and asked: "did you send the script outline, to and , and did they responded to the invitation?" Jeffrey flipped though the script, and said: "All of them responded, we sent Sean''s character offer to Tom Hanks, But Hanks wants to y the part of Andy, He felt that the role is kinda paradoxical, and doesn''t give more acting space. And also expressed a strong interest in being a part of this movie, but he hopes to be able to modify Andy''s dressing as woman scenes, he doesn''t want to damage his image in the eyes of his fans." The next film Eric is going to make is a movie called , made by a Chinesepany called Milkyway Image. When writing the script, he chose to keep the names of the two male leads as they were in his past life. If he was going to rece Andy Lau and Sean Lau by Hollywood actors, then is there any two actors more suitable than and ? Those two strong actors are kinda simr to the original actors. Of course, now Hanks is still somewhat handsome, But only so-so, and he will change a lot as he ages. But if Hanks reced Andy Lau? By virtue of his present image, Can he make a girl fall in love with him at first sight? ... ... Doesn''t he have some self-awareness. "Jeffrey, they should not know about each other getting an invitation. You should tell them this news, and see if you can make an appointment with the both of them to talk." "Okey, I would contact themter." Jeffrey replied: "Also, epted firefly investment in , but Kapoor insisted that sry be $5 million, if so, the film production cost will reach at least $13 million. Before Herbert Ross put $4 million in investment, and fireflies need to add $9 million, I think you should talk to Kapoor, to lower Julia paycheck, after all this is a group drama, and Julia won''t have too much screen time. Anything more than $3 million, is too high, and will cause more harm than good." "I''ll call Kapoor," Eric nodded: "Make a copy of script and give it to , to let him start preparing. In addition, send this script outline to , and . And see if anyone of them have the intention to director of this film." After Jeffrey took notes, he finally out thest script and read the name: Eric nodded, this film had another name in china "Ind Cry" But Eric felt that the original English name was more appropriate. As for the three directors he named, is the director of the famous andter he Directed the series. is the director of in 1973, a horror film that was once known as the best Hollywood horror film, of course, that tittle was lost after the rise of Japanese horror films. Finally, now is still a small director, but in parallel time and space, in two years he will direct . The reason he chose the two already famous masters and the still unknown , was for sake. Eric did not doubt that , this big horror film with a twisted ending, will not be recognized by the first two horror films masters who have been famous for years, but he was not sure if the two famous ones will ept Virginia as the heroine. At this point, Eric does not intend topromise. As for , he has no room to bargain with Eric. "Should we give them the same conditions, or they all have the same?" Jeffrey asked again. "Send them at the same conditions, and remember to say that the heroine has been set, there is no room for negotiation." Jeffrey gave an ambiguous smile, and said: "Eric, which girl are you eyeing?" "" Jeffrey remembered the big chested actress, that left with Eric at celebration party. "Eric, I have to remind you," Jeffrey advised him: "When investing in movies you need to be very cautious and prudent. You can''t because of a one-night stand, give the role of the heroine, it''s not worth it. Even if you have to give her a huge check, you can''t give her a promise like that easily. Because once the film fails because of the heroine, you''ll have to pay millions or even tens of millions of dors in losses. With that kind of money, you can get thousands of call girls." Eric will never be angry or ignore those who persuade him with goodwill, he patiently listened to Jeffrey''s advice, and exined: "Rest assured, Jeffrey, I was very careful in this regard. Before I have asked Kapoor to sign , and if she did not have such potential, I wouldn''t waste my time, weren''t you and Kapoor not optimistic about , how about now?" "Then it''s fine, if you know what you''re doing." "Well, I''ll be leaving things here to you." Eric stood up and said: "I told you about why called to me before, I have an appointment with Mr. today." "You seem to have got used to the phrase ''I''ll be leaving things to you'', I''m considering whether or not to apply for a raise?" Jeffrey jokingly said, in fact, he was enjoying his busy and fulfilling life now. Compared to his first time meeting Eric, Jeffrey now looks a lot younger and full of vitality. Eric knew he was joking, the other side current position now is the president of fireflies, plus he gets a lot of dividends from the movies firefly produce, although he has not yet obtained firefly shares, but his ie in Hollywood can definitely be considered to be on the top of the pyramid: "If you must, add a dor" Laughing at Eric Joke, and sent him out: "Don''t have a fall out with , and try to be tactful." Eric shrugged and said: "This thing involve tens of millions of dors in profits, being tactful is useless, who let Fox not attach more specific details to the contract ... ... Anyway, I wouldn''t miss this chance given by Colombia, I would like to put in my seat, I''m sure his choice be the same as mine." Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter / Status - [0 / 20$]
Chapter 94 Along the way, Eric was racking his brains trying to find a way to exin to this matter. In the celebration party of both of them have talked about the production of his next film, by default, the next film was going to be issued by in the summer. Now with him suddenly changing his mind at thest minute, what will Fox reaction be like is difficult to predict. If possible, Eric didn''t want to go against any one of the film giants, he isn''t strong enough now, it is difficult to say that he will not face some pressure. Moreover, also hold the right to distribute three films, which involves hundreds of millions of dors in profits. Because he was thinking too much, he identally ran a red light, but fortunately, nothing happened. Finally, he arrived at headquarters, reported his identity, and was guided by an employee all the way to outside Barry Diller office. "Mr. Williams, please wait a few minutes. Mr. Diller is having a guest." the secretary led Eric to a lounge area, and served him a cup of coffee. He nced curiously at Barry Diller''s office door, and tried listening to any sounds but unfortunately the sound instion was very good. When the young beautiful secretary noticed Eric''s curiosity, she hesitated for a moment, then whispered to him, "Fox TV Station Manager" Eric raised an eyebrow, and pretended that nothing had happened, he give her a grateful look. This girl is a real gem, she said just a simple sentence, and reveled nothing else, this can be regarded as a small favor to Eric. And when the girl bent over, he didn''t know whether it is intentional or unintentional, The badge on her chest appeared in front of Eric, she probably wanted him to remember her name, or maybe she just wanted him to see her big beautiful chest. After Patiently waiting for seven or eight minutes, a middle-aged man with sses opened the door and gloomily walked out of the office. Glimpsing the young man sitting on the sofa, he quickly put away his depressed look, and politely give Eric a nod and left in a hurry. "Mr. Williams, you may go in now." Walking to the office, a faint smell of smoke wafted into the air, from an ashtray full of cigarette butts that was in front of . "Sorry for keeping you waiting for so long." After Eric entered, Barry Diller put away his emotions and smiled, but Eric could still see the residual anger on his face. "No problem, I only waited for a few minutes." said Eric, and sat on the opposite side of Barry Diller on a sofa. Barry Diller didn''t exin anything to him, but just by linking the identity of that middle-aged man, he could guess the cause of his anger is that Fox TV performance was worse than expected. , and , those three big television stations, have dominated North American wireless TV markets for so many years, that it is almost impossible for ater to easily threaten their position. From his point of view, was indeed a media wizard, in his previous life, even with the pressure of the three major television stations, Fox televisionwork, was able to be the fourthrgest TV station in North America. After exchanging a few words, Barry Diller asked him why did hee. Eric did note up with any way to soften the blow on the way here, so he could only directly say: "Mr. Diller, I''m afraid my next film will not be released by ." Barry Diller was sure he didn''t hear wrong, his eyebrows immediately wrinkled, Both his eyes narrowed. He has just heard some bad news from the manager of Fox TV. and Unexpectedly, when he haven''t recovered from the blow yet, bad newses again. "Eric, do you want to break the contract? Have you ever thought about the consequences of doing so?" Since the matter was on the table, Eric was no longer indecisive, looking straight at Barry Diller''s eyes, he said: "Mr. Diller, I do not intend to breach of contract, the contract does not prohibit me from working with other filmpanies, and also there''s no specific schedule for the three movies, so I just need to deliver them by the end of the year." Barry was slightly stunned for a moment, a touch of remorse showed on his face. He signed the contract himself. It was Fawkes''s negligence by not prohibiting him from working with other filmpanies that led to this. Because when they were drafting the contract, most of their attention was on getting sequel. And Eric''s only signed the three movies contract, in Hollywood very few directors can guide three films a year, and most directors can only maintain the speed of one movie a year, and some of them take two years. Who would have thought that the young had so much energy?. But there was no rule in the contract that specify the film schedule, this was done intentionally by Fox. When drafting the contract, at that time Fox wasn''t too optimistic about Eric two films, so, although Eric specifically mentioned the scheduling problem, he wanted to issue all three movies on the popr holiday schedule, which led to him having a little argument with at that time. But finally refused to specify the schedule for a variety of reasons. Fox also had their own ideas, once they weren''t optimistic about Eric first two movies, Fox could easily put the two films in the spring or fall season, so the films won''t upy too much of Fox resources, and also sessfully fulfill the contract. Who would have that Eric''s next film would once again create a such great sess story, leading everyone to stop doubting the young man ability to make great films. Now many fans are starting to look forward to his next movie. Now, the atmosphere in the office be somewhat stagnant, when Eric had just said his words, Barry Diller found that, in the past he was proud he rejected Eric schedule requirements, but now his decision has be a big cocoon, wrapped around him. "Eric, are you not satisfied with your 35 percent share ? cost you only $7 million, if you subtract the $1 million from Lamborghini advertising sponsorship, the actual cost of the film drop down to $6 million. So far the cost paid by Fox in publicity has been more than 15 million US dors, that''s 2.5 times of the cost of your film, 2.5 times! And we only get to take 20 percent of the profits. With this kind of profit division. Is there anything you''re not satisfied with?" At the end of the speech, spoke almost with a roar, his whole body exudes a threatening feeling. He had juste back from Europest night, after few days of travelling he was very tired, and haven''t had good night sleep in a long time, aftering back this morning to Fox headquarters he heard that the TV department was being strangled by the joint effort of the three big TV stations, their ratings were miserable. The manager of Fox TV station had just been scolded and kicked out of the office, but after getting told this bad news again, all the suppressed anger erupted again. Eric was not scared or by Barry Diller anger, he retorted coolly: "Mr. Diller, although Fox paid $15 million in advertising, but in exchange Fox got $80 millions in profits, so I don''t owe you anything, to tell you the truth, when I came, I was very anxious, I didn''t want to have a fight with you, I just wanted to talk." Seeing the young boy opposite him wasn''t scared by his roar, and immediately started contradicting his words, quickly calmed down, and found that his ability to control his emotions wasn''t as good as the young man in front of him. Reflecting on himself, Barry Diller sat back in his big office chair, and took a few deep breaths. With eyes still staring at Eric, he said: "Okay, Eric, you ... ... What are the new conditions? Let''s talk about that first?" Eric realized that Barry Diller didn''t fully understand what he meant, so he started exining: "Mr. Diller, I did not want to revise the contract... ... Like I said, I do not want to put on airs to get more benefits from . Someone give me some conditions I can''t refuse, to get distribution rights of my next movie?" Barry Diller has been in Hollywood for many years, and now after he calmed down, he quickly was able to think of a possibility, after a moment of silence, he asked: "Is it ?" Eric nodded. Barry Diller bowed his head and silently pulled out a cigarette, lit it and took a deep breath. Since have been able to convince Eric, then that means that their conditions are really good. All Columbia trying to do now is raise their stock price even at a loose, to get more benefits from the Japanese. At this time, he was sure that in order to get Eric''s next film, was giving him some crazy conditions. Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $10 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 95 After taking a few mouthfuls of smoke, extinguished his cigarette in the ashtray, and said: "It looks like you won''t change your mind." "Mr. Diller, I could have just made a random low cost film toplete the contract, instead ofing here tomunicate with you. If I didn''t care about quality, then, ten days is enough to make a movie." Barry Diller know that this teenager have an iron heart, and will not change his decision. Although his mind also produced the idea of making things hard for the little guy. However, Barry Diller quickly rejected the idea. Once he did that, then the same thing that happened with Columbia will happen again, leading their cooperation to end. The other day when he heard that Columbia President Blunt Cohen was suddenly removed from his position, he was sure that Coca-C board off directors was responsible for him leaving, but since he knows they were trying to sell Columbia, he thought that was an unnecessary move. Now he understood that they did that to remove an obstacle that can stop them from re-establishing cooperation with this young boy. If he did something right now, to mess with the young man, then after this teenagerplete the contract, the rtionship between them will be destroyed, making lose this gold mine. Determining that things are irreversible, Barry Diller quickly thought of trying to get some extra benefit topensate for the loss: "Eric, You should understand that by doing that, you''re putting Fox out of the summer box officepetition. Although your approach did not vite the contract, but that still hurt us. To cate shareholders, perhaps the original contract should be modified?" After hearing what said, Eric immediately refused: "Mr. Diller, the contract will definitely not be modified, I will not make anypromises when ites to dividing the profits. I just said I don''t owe Fox anything. The reason why I''m sitting here and discussing these things with you is that I don''t want the rtionship between the two sides to be deadlocked. We can only discuss a win-winpensation strategy, rather than harm the interests of either party. That way our cooperation canst longer." "Well, I''m sure you already have ns?" Eric nodded: "Yes, my Fireflypany has just developed ns for three other films, can choose one of them to be released." Barry Diller almost wanted tough, is this apensation? if Fox wanted to release a film, as long as they announce it, stand alone studios woulde running to their door steps. Barry Diller suddenly thought of Fox TV manager that have been driven out by him a few minutes ago, a new ideae to him: "Eric, are you interested in making a TV series?" When Eric heard the words TV series, in his mind directly emerged the image of a stubborn little girl figure who is in New York right now. In his past life, for the ten years that was on air, Warner was able to earn more than 4 billion dors in profits, Eric wasn''t going to let this TV show get out of his hands, although he didn''t watch all the ten seasons, but he has seen the first two seasons, and by virtue of the cheat he got after his rebirth, every thing was clearly engraved in his mind. And as long as the first season seed, he can find writers to continue writing the following seasons? "Mr. Diller, I actually had some ideas for a TV series already. But maybe I didn''t say it before, those three films made by fireflies, although I''m not the one directing them, But two of them I personally wrote their script, and also I will serve as producer, and have the rights to the final cut of the film, which is equal me shooting the films myself. And I intend to let Julia star in one of them as the heroine, and with box office appeal, there''s no doubt that the film will seed." After Barry Diller listened to Eric words, without hesitation he said: "No problem, Eric, the three films Fox can take them as a package, as for the TV series as long as you write the script we can produce it." Although assumed a seemingly generous appearance, Eric could still hear the excitement in his tone, Obviously Barry Diller also judged the value of the three films. ... ... Eric had no intention of releasing the three films himself, he wanted to get the full potentials of those films, rather than using them to as cannon fodder to expand his distribution channels. But simrly, he didn''t n to give all his three films to the same filmpany to release, not even to Fox. He knew that if he gives them too much, gradually, the other side will take it for granted. And once you stop giving them things anymore, they will start to hate you. In fact, Barry Diller had already started showing signs of this. Eric''s actions did not vite the contract, nut Barry Diller felt that Fox suffered a major loss. Shaking his head, Eric raised a finger: "Mr. Diller, a TV series, or a movie, you can only get one as apensation. I''m very confident about the box office potential of those three movies, No less than the movies I directed myself. So, if Fox took too much, I''m afraid your publishing capacity will not be able to keep up." Barry Diller quickly figure out another solution: "Eric, how about a TV series plus a movie." "A TV series, or a movie." "Eric ... ..." "... ..." The two men argued in the office for a long time, and finally, because of his ambition to grow the TVworks, Barry Diller chose the TV series, if it wasn''t for the development of a TVwork, Barry Diller will not leave , so Eric was not surprised by his choice. But the other side didn''t easily let go of Eric, he forced him to promise to personally guide the first two episodes of the TV series. Eric didn''t think that Barry Diller was able toe up with such a forward-looking idea. More than 10 yearster, Inviting famous Hollywood directors to guide the first few episodes, has be a popr trend in America, after the strong rise of TV dramas in the 21st century, Hollywood directors have also put down their airs, and started directing TV Pilots. In fact, isn''t so far-sighted as Eric thought, Asking a famous Hollywood director to shoot a TV drama, Barry Diller himself would think it was a ridiculous idea. In this era, It''s a bad thing for a movie director to shoot a TV drama. TV directors has always been switching to directing films, but rarely has the reverse happened. The reason why he asked him to guide the first two episodes, waspletely because he didn''t get the right to release the film, out of a vindictive mentality, he wanted to put Eric in an embarrassing position. But unexpectedly, the other side nodded in agreement after thinking about it for just a moment, in ordance with the current mentality of Hollywood directors, The news that Eric is directing a TV series, will cause the criticism of the media and the die-hard directors. ... ... Barry Diller had no idea that his rude demand, willter cause such a great sensation, even making it a trend that big Hollywood directors will start guiding TV pilots to prove themselves. After reaching an agreement with , Ericpletely put aside his concerns, and reached a cooperation agreement with soon after that. And since the other side was so generous, Eric directly raised the production budget to $40 million, and even if in the future they add $20 million in advertising, ording to Colombia''s 25 percent split, if the North American box office reach $240 million, Columbia will be able to recover the cost, of course, if you count the overseas box office earnings, Maybe this figure will fall to $200 million. Eric estimated that Columbia simply didn''t intend to recover the cost, as long as the box office sales, give the investors a false vision of the future, the stock price will go up, if the stock price rises by one dor, Columbia''s market value will increase by 180 million directly. And all that money will be paid by . In this case, Eric didn''t n on giving up copyrights, he ned to share the copyrights between firefly and Columbia in half. After all, they paid so much money, It would be cruel not give back after taking so much. And although the film ends with the hero dying, but as long as the film seed, then like in his past life, they can rece the hero with another actor for a sequel. Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $0 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 96 TN Note: Thank you Jorge and Paul for sponsoring this chapter. An obscure ck business car parked in Firefly''s office building parking lot, a tall man with sunsses on and curly ck hair and his agent got off the car, and hastily walked inside the office building. Across the street, Johnny, the owner of a convenience store, nced idly through the ss window and immediately recognized the man identity, . Johnny is also a movie fan, almost every week he go to the cinema to watch a movie or two, although he was almost forty years old, past the age of chasing celebrity''s, he was still familiar with the big and small stars in Hollywood, such as Tom Hanks, although he was only wearing sunsses, he had no intention to disguise himself, that''s way Johnny could recognize him with just a nce. In the big and small movie studios in Burbank, it''s normal to run into one or two big stars, Johnny didn''t feel anything weird was going on. He knew that the owner of the filmpany opposite his shop is thetest Hollywood upstart Eric Williams, he thought perhaps and the little miracle kid will be working together on a new film. After five or six minutester, when Johnny was entertaining a few customers, he saw another business car parked across the street. Curious, Johnny fixed his eyes on the door, and soon another two people came out from the car. A man wearing sunsses and a woman, Although this man was slightly shorter than Tom Hanks, his reputation in Hollywood was much higher than Hanks. it is one of the most popr star in Hollywood, . "Tom Hanks and Tom Cruise" Johnny touched his chin and thought, perhaps the paparazzi might be interested in this. If a single persones here, then it''s hardly news, although the the paparazzi pay attention to every move of Hollywood stars, but they aren''t particrly interested in their normal daily activities. Who have time to focus on where a star by his clothes or what restaurant he go to or who he meets, unless you are a stalker. All the paparazzi care about now is what they are working on, sex scandals, divorce, drug abuse, arrest ... ... Any star that have this problems will be besieged by the paparazzi. When was originally released, Eric was chased all over by the paparazzi, because at that time, the public was interested in this small young director, if a newspaper carry Eric news, curious people will rush to buy it. But now, the two hottest stars in Hollywood appeared in firefly studios, and coincidentally, the two of them were named Tom, because of their simr age, Hanks hasn''t suffered much yet, but the two of them are in apetitive position in the acting circle, he was sure the news of them and the young director getting together is certainly a worthy topic in the entertainment news. After Johnny thought these thing, he excitedly found a tabloid newspaper, to get the number of the newspaper hotline. In order for the newspapers to collect news materials, many newspapers pay a certain amount of money to those who provide clues. Johnny certainly didn''t call the Los Angeles times or any well-knownrge newspaper, Because they aren''t short of news, and their price wouldn''t satisfy him. "Hello, is this the Hollywood Reporter? ... ... Yes, I have a big story ... ..." A few minutester, Johnny excitedly put down the phone, "Hollywood Reporter" was keen to judge the great value of the news, so they generously paid Johnny $500. But the condition was that Johnny could not sell this news to other newspapers, after Haggling over the price, he finally got 700 dors, for Johnny who work at a small convenience store, this was a windfall. In less than twenty minutes, the paparazzi sent by the newspaper rushed over, after learning from Johnny that and has not left yet, they readily paid him. Then patiently waited outside firefly office building. ... ... After reaching an agreement with , Eric started contacting the two leading men. After the sess of three consecutive films, Hollywood is no longer discriminating against Eric''s age, and no star will directly reject Eric''s invitation to cooperate, even superstars like Tom Cruise and Tom Hanks are no exception. More so, after reading the script outline, the two stars were keenly aware of how wonderful this story is, In this case, there is no reason to refuse. Before, both of them were not aware that the other party had also received an invitation. But after Hanks offered to y the robber, and Cruise made a list of his own modifications to the script. so Eric revealed the new to the two of them, and was hoping to talk to them face to face. The two Toms also know, if they can sessfully cooperate, with the fame of the three of them, the box office appeal will be immeasurable. Not to mention wonderful story, perhaps this film can be just like Eric first two movies, and once again create a box office miracle. Everyone wants to be a protagonist of a box office blockbuster, hence today''s meeting. ... ... Eric, and sat alone in a Conference room, Jeffrey and the two Tom''s agents were waiting outside, Although Cruise and Hanks are now CAA''s artists, but after arriving at their present level, the CAA almost have no constraints on them. So the two agents can only obediently do their job, and dare not ce obstacles in his way. Of course, once theypletely determine to cooperate and the fee negotiations timee, the two brokers who are eagerly waiting for that moment toe, will show their true colors. Eric put theplete script in front of Cruise and Hanks, until now the two stars only read the outline of the script. It took them half an hour to read the full script, after finishing Hanks touched his face smiled and said: "Eric, I now know that I''m not suited for ying Andy. If I wanted to change my appearance to a woman, the difficulty is indeed a little big." Ericughed, but did not seem to hear Hanks joke, he still had a slight frown on his face: "Eric, I still find it more appropriate to change the plot, in the scenario setting, Andy is a make up artist, then having him disguise himself as another man will also be a good choice, right?" Sitting opposite Tom Cruise, felt that Cruise''s behavior is too conservative, dressing as a woman is not a serious thing, as an actor, even if the director makes you dress like a dog, as long as the request is perfectly logical and reasonable, he will do it. He has just done some analysis of the script, this plot is not done deliberately, Andy dressing as a woman was done to let the viin rx his vignce, Andy dressed as a woman ande to the transaction ce with a second man to pick up the ransom from the viin. if he was a dressed like a man, he felt that the viin is more likely take the gun and kill them. Two men appearing at the scene of the transaction, isn''t that weird? Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $0 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 97 TN: Thank you Mr. Bruno for sponsoring this chapter. ... ... However, also know why Cruise was so careful, the other side has been taking the idol route, if he suddenly appeared on the screen dressed as a woman, it''s likely to cause some fans to be unhappy Eric did not immediately answer Tom Cruise''s request, but instead asked: "Tom, if I remember correctly, you should be 27 years old, right?" nodded and said in a proud voice: "I started making movies at the age of sixteen, when I was younger than you. By now, it''s been almost ten years." As a kid who grow up in a single parent family, and be a Hollywood superstar in only ten years, by virtue of his own diligence and hard work, and without any background help, was very proud of himself. "Well, Cruise, Every actor needs to undergo a transformation. Especially an actor who''s taking the idol route. Hollywood actors have a longer shelf life than actresses, they don''t need to expand their range when they go over the thirty-year-old mark. But someday the situation wille, so I think, this is an opportunity for you, to show that you are attempting to change." Cruise retorted: "Eric, there are many kinds of things to try, not necessarily ying a woman. Actually, the question you said just now, I''ve been thinking about it, and my agent also rmended some types of films to me." Eric shook his head slowly and said: "It''s the same as never changing, In all the movies you starred in before, many are biased towards literature and art, but till now you didn''t get an nomination, the reason is that although those movies were excellent, but your screen image hasn''t changed much. Think about it from this angle, it''s been ten years since you debuted, and you haven''t got any Oscar nomination, don''t you want to get the recognition of the academy? I think, if you y this role well, coupled with this small sacrifice, the Academy will at least give you the nomination for the best actor." In his past life, Andy Lau by virtue of , he won the Hong Kong film award for the first time, fulfilling the wish he had for many years. This was a result of Andy Lau''s good acting, and his boldness in ying this important role. The is a ridge every member of Hollywood can''t go around, and as long as someone is a member of Hollywood, It''s impossible for him to be indifferent to the Oscar. Especially the actors, In order to get the Oscar''s recognition, acting girly is the lightest thing you can do, self-destruction of your image is moremonce, whether it''s acting like a psychotic or a killer, as long as you can win the prize, then anything is possible. In his past life, the beautiful in order to win the Oscar, she got fatter, shaved her eyebrows, and resorted to every conceivable means, and she ended up getting the Oscar for her role in . Poor worked so hard to get his Oscar, the movies he stared in were all different from each other, to the point that the perfect image he had after waspletely chattered in the hearts of his fans. Sure enough, after Eric finished, Tom Cruise no longer directly rejected, but got into a short silence. How could he not know where his problem was?, but he was reluctant to admit it, and didn''t dare to change. He crawled up from the bottom, and was more afraid of failure than those born in a good background, no one wants to go back to their old days of life. The fear of falling again almost made Cruise forget, with his present status in Hollywood, he has qualified for a failure. But the temptation was huge, Cruise has been working in Hollywood for ten years, if he didn''t understand the meaning of the Oscar, then it will be impossible for him to reach today sess. Eric was keen to seize the shaken Cruise, he lost no time to add fuel to the fire: "Cruise, the role of Andy, in my opinion, is a more of a tragic figure than the count of Monte Cristo, he was left with only a few weeks left to live, and in order to get revenge for his father, he yed a desperate chasing game with Sean, if he slightly neglected anything in his ns he may suffer a big lose. In this case, the audience will pay more attention to Andy''s final fate than what he is wearing." "I arranged for him to dress as a woman in order to promote the development of the story, not to make a vulgaredy that deliberately destroy the image of the actor, just to amuse the audience, this is a very serious performance, I think, as long as it is your fans, they will understand" After a full two minutes of silence, perhaps because of Eric''s words yed a role, or perhaps the Oscar temptation ovee the worries in his heart. Finally, nodded slightly. This matter settled, the atmosphere in the conference room lightened a lot. Cruise and Hanks began expressing their views on some of the details in the script, thought that Sean''s character in the script was slightly blurred, he asked why didn''t Sean like the female executive from the Interpol who was interested in him? ... ... No girls, no nightclubs, even workaholics need to marry and settle down? And why will a powerful elite police officer, be delegated to a small police station. Because the time was tight, Eric spent only one day to write the script, all is ording to the memory of the movie in his mind, and didn''t do too much modification. Some of the bugs found by Cruise and Hanks, Eric has thought about them too, but he just didn''t have the time to change them yet. Although Cruise always seemed to act superior and talk in an arrogant tone to Eric because he was younger than him, and Hanks likes to ask about the details of the love life of the character almost rendering Eric speechless. Eric was still very patient with the two actors, after all, the two of them have participated in many Hollywood movies, with them participating in the script revision, Eric will not only save a lot of energy, but he can also ensure that the script will adapt more to the rhythm of Hollywood films. ... ... "Hey, Johnny, you wouldn''t be wrong, It''s been almost four hours. Why haven''t ande out yet?" Outside the firefly office building the paparazzi were squatting for nearly four hours, ''Hollywood Reporter'' paparazzi Kent finally couldn''t help but go back to the convenience store to ask Johnny. Although the paparazzi for the news, can stay overnight in front of the doors of Hollywood superstars, but that''s in the case they had a clear target. Now, he did not see the shadow of the two stars, he couldn''t figure it out, why would Cruise and Hanks spend the whole morning in firefly office. Therefore, suspicion is unavoidable. "No, no, Mr. reporter, I promise I didn''t make a mistake. You see the two cars over there, the one on the left is Tom Cruise, and the one on the right is Tom Hanks car. It''s almost noon now, they will definitelye out for lunch." "All right" Kent yed with the camera on his chest, and said: "I hope you are not mistaken, That will make everyone unhappy. Otherwise, the 700 dors will be returned." Johnny subconsciously covered his pocket, and swore. "Then I''ll wait a little longer, do you have soda? Give me a bottle, please." "Yes," Johnny nodded quickly, he was about to go and fetch the soda for Kent, when he suddenly saw the other three paparazzi stood up and pounced toward the door of the firefly office building. "Mr. reporter, they are out." Kent turned around and found his colleagues outside the door rushing across the street, cursing, he quickly rushed out the door. Although they belong to the same tabloid, the editor will pick just one picture, and the one who take the best picture, will get themission. Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $0 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 98 "Eric Williams secret meeting with Tom Cruise and Tom Hanks, to negotiate the new film deal." This was the headlines on the front page of the "Hollywood Reporter" the second day after their meeting, apanied by a picture of Eric, Cruise and Hanks side by side walking out of Firefly office building. In the picture, Eric was wearing a gray sports suit, he looked just like a high school student, Tom Cruise was wearing a ck casual jacket not buttoned up, revealing the white T-shirt below. Only Tom Hanks was properly dressed in a ck suit and tie, looking like an office worker. Because they talked about the script all morning, the two superstars rxed their vignce when they left, they didn''t wear their sunsses, so the faces of the three of them were quite clear, they were talking to each other and walking towards the door, the shot was captured by a lucky paparazzi. ... ... "Around eight a.m. yesterday morning, it was found that and the two superstars have visited director Eric Williams''s firefly filmpany office. Our reporter received the news and quickly arrived at the location, after four hours of waiting, Eric Williams and Cruise and Hanks finally walked out from the building, from the photo the facial expressions of the three, we can deduce that the meeting was quite enjoyable. Although the three did not ept the reporter interview, instead, they left in a hurry. But ording to some clues from an insider, the meeting is rted to a new film Eric Williams is preparing. Since the actor and screenwriter debuted in the film st year, Eric Williams suddenly broke into the Hollywood director''s circle, by directing the first low-costedy Film to reach the 100 million box office club. When a lot of people attributed the teenager''s sess to luck, only four monthster, Eric Williams second romanticedy film was released again, the first week box office was close to $30 million,pletely Proving the young director''s strength. In the first movie , Eric Williams took a group of TV actors and the little boy that lived next door to him, and created a stunning box office miracle, as for the second film that starred, who won a few Oscar nominations, but he has been in the shadow for four years, and had close to zero box office appeal. And who only yed a small role in low budgetedy, but Eric took the two people and sent them to the top ranks of Hollywood. And this time, the young director chose two Hollywood A-level actors, we have no doubt that the lower film will once again create a box office miracle. However, Although the three people appear very happy in the photo, and give a positive appearance to this cooperation, but we have to mention that and now belong to the brokerage firm. And it is well-known that, Eric Williams early acquisition of a well-known brokeragepany, has angered the high levels at CAA, during casting, CAA has also blocked its artist from cooperating with Eric Williams, and did not hesitate topensate Richard Gere by giving him a - big production film. In this case, we can imagine, Eric Williams''s cooperation with the two Tom will be full with twists and turns. Of course, Tom Cruise or Tom Hanks has enough strength to ignore CAA''s Ban on Firefly-film. After all, the two are now Hollywood A-level superstars, even if they lost the support of CAA, their careers will not suffer too much. Moreover, from the influence of Eric Williams''s first two works, his new work is likely to bring the career of the two stars to a new high. I believe that in Hollywood, no actor can resist such temptation, but I do not know if CAA''s seniors have not enough courage, to once again, strongly resist this cooperation. Thest incident led Mr. to lose the chance to break into ranks of A-level actors, and ording to the recent critics preview of the film , the prospect of the film isn''t very promising, there is little chance of a box office miracle. This film is clearly not enough of apensation for Mr. Richard Gere loss of . So what would Cruise and Hanks choose?, and how would handle Williams''s invitation? Let''s wait and see." ... ... Eric smiled and threw the newspaper on the table, he really wanted to blow up the editor who wrote this manuscript. Before, only increased the two superstars paycheck to express his dissatisfaction, but now it won''t be the same asst time, he was sure he will try to obstruct the cooperation between the two sides. After all, now the rise of UTA has been unstoppable, and with what Michael Ovitz did before, not only the loss outweighed the gain, their feud spread out to the public. can be considered a narrow-minded person, and the more narrow-minded people are, the more fearful and hateful they will be against others. If in the future they sessfully signed the contracts, even if their was infighting in private, but in the public mind, the two sides shook hands, even if they still have a strong animosity, this will be good for the public image of both Eric and the . But now after such a provocative tabloid article, if this cooperation was sessful, the title of ''Hollywood''s most powerful figure'' got will turn into a joke. ... ... Sure enough, the next day after ''The Hollywood Reporter'' published the article, Eric received the bad news. "That''s really too much, The price of US $6 million fee is passable, but they also want twenty percent of North America bow office profits after the movie is released. Everyone who worked in Hollywood for a few years, have never heard of any actor who will put forward such presumptuous conditions. Eric, do you have to use and ? They should know that other brokerage firms also have top of the line actors. Or you can y a role in the film, and self-direct." Jeffrey after talking to Cruise and Hanks''s agent,e back to Eric office, and startedining. Although Eric has expected such thing to happen, but he was shocked by the conditions put forward by the two agents. Hollywood stars asking for a share of the profits, The bad habit started with . Later, the fee plus profit sharing model has gradually be a popr mode of charging in his past life, in proportion usually between 10% and 20%. The so-called profit sharing, of the box office is divided into two concepts, Specifically, the producer gets his share of the box office, That''s part of the profit minus the production cost, minus the proportions required by the actors, that''s what the actors can get. What''s more, the profit sharing is divided into two categories, the global box office and the North American box office. Although Cruise and Hanks''s agents haven''t lost their heads and proposed the global profit sharing, but even after many years, it was not so easy for an actor to get such conditions. And to get such a high percentage the actor will have to give up something in exchange. For example, in his past life in ,pletely abandon his paycheck, in exchange for getting a higher proportion of the profits. But now this model of charging has only just begun, When shot hisst movie , he put forward this whimsical payment model, and because of Tom Cruise strong box office appeal, and the cost of production of isn''t high, the producer thought that as long Cruise joins them, the film can easily make profit. So he agreed to Cruise''s demand, but Cruise also had to lower his fee. What''s more, the profit sharing ratio was only 10 percent. Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $00 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 99 TN: Thank you Jorge and William for sponsoring this chapter. Looking at the angry man in front of him, Eric had to get up, and pour him a ss of water, after waiting for Jeffrey to finish drinking, he said: " All right, Jeffrey, can''t you see it, this is just a ploy so don''t lose face. If they keep insisting on twenty percent of the profits, then there''s no need to keep talking about cooperation. But if you calm down and think about it, you''ll find that CAA just want to drag on for a period of time?" "Why do they want to dy the time?" Jeffrey obviously did not calm down, he poured himself another ss of water and asked. "Because they want to save face, some time ago, the ''Premiere Magazine'' produced a list of Hollywood power rankings, came first, Even and at the helm of these film giants can only be ranked behind him. If you have just won this title, and the two stars under your hand, started cooperating with the man you previously put a ban on, wouldn''t you loose face as the most powerful man in Hollywood." Jeffrey sighed in relief: "That''s fine, I thought the other side really wanted to split the profits, this is too messy." Eric said solemnly: "Jeffrey, Maybe you should start epting the stars paychecks slowly raising, in addition to them getting a big part of the profits. Because after tried this model in the movie and seeded, other Hollywood stars are likely to follow suit." "Two people, getting 40% of the gross profit. Do they want to make more money than we do? We will only have 60% remaining, and we have to pay other expenses." In fact, Eric also thought of this problem, he felt that perhaps this may be an opportunity, to help his own interests, he was destined to join the Hollywood film producers Union in the future, so he must stand on the opposite side of the actors. Tom Cruise is just an attempt to give the actors a new fee charging mode, negotiations is likely to be the reference for many top Hollywood stars in the future. So, the lower their percentage of profits, the better. If he can control this ratio between 5% and 10%, then once it bes a standard, the umted expenses that will be saved in the future, would be an astronomical figure. Although Eric did not know whether this would seed or not, he would have to give it a try. "Jeffrey, don''t worry about this matter, just talk to them slowly, don''t let them think they can get 20%, and try to reduce the $6 million paycheck, and tell them if they want a cut of the profits they will have to reduce their fee, they can''t eat their cake and have it, too." Jeffrey was still not willing to reconcile: "Eric, why not bypass the brokers, and talk to Cruise and Hanks''s alone, didn''t you have a good time with them that day?" Eric smiled and pulled out "Hollywood Reporter" newspaper, and shook it in front of Jeffrey, and said: "They are artists, I don''t have a particrly good friendship with them now, they can promise to star in , but they won''t make loose face. Besides, they won''t object to CAA''s efforts to get them more benefits, right?" Instead of refuting, Jeffrey asked: "Eric, tell me exactly what you think I should do. It''s the first time I''ve ever encountered this kind of thing, I can''t drag things indefinitely, but as the boss, you''re the one who will have to make the final decision. So you''d better give me a baseline data reference, so when I start negotiating with them, I will have a sense of propriety." Eric thought for a moment and said: "I heard that in in order to get the contract, he had to take the initiative to reduce his fee. As for the bottom line, as long as Cruise and Hanks fee doesn''t exceed $5 million, and their cut of the profits is between 5% and 10%, then I''ll ept. Remember absolutely no more than 10%." "All right. I''ll keep that in mind." Jeffrey noted down what Eric said. Noticing that Jeffrey was still depressed, Eric patted him on the shoulder and said: "Well, Jeffrey, don''t worry about it anymore. Although, because of this new fee model, we lose part of our profit, but we can get it back from somewhere else, And that part of the profit doesn''t have to be split up with the actors, We can even charge more under the banner of the actor. "You mean? ... ... Imnted ads?" "Bingo!" Eric snapped his fingers: " This kind of film is very suitable for imnting ads. I saw it in the newspaper, Lamborghini because of the Ad imnted in , this year''s sports car sales has increased three times more than in previous years, The new Lamborghini Countach sports car is not even on the market yet, and already hundreds of orders have been received." "This is really a good idea" Jeffrey finally showed a smile, and subconsciously looked at the script, wanting to find in which ce they can imnt the Ad.s, Eric pulled out a piece of paper and gave it to Geoffrey: "Stop searching. I already found the ces." After Jeffrey took the paper and looked at the long list, his mouth slightly opened. Mobile phone, walkie talkie, sport car, boxed cookies, sunsses, camera, nes,ic magazine ... "Eric, isn''t this, a bit exaggerated?" Eric felt that he still has integritypared to the directors from his previous life, at least he isn''t spending $200 million on a three-hour Ad, he just used the plot cleverly to put in the Ad, Instead of changing the story for advertising. "Jeffrey, in fact, I just wrote them down when I thought of them. There will be a lot of walkie-talkies and mobile phones in the movie, So mobile phones and walkie-talkie ads can be packaged to amunication''s equipmentpany, Motor, for example, I heard that Motor is about to introduce a new small mobile phone, Only palm sized. I believe with the previous example of Lamborghini, plus Cruise and Hanks the two superstars, Motor will easily pay millions of dors as advertising fees. If their price is too low, then find their old rival, Ericsson. As for the sports car, keep in touch with Lamborghini, presumably the other side will not refuse." Jeffrey pointed to the list and asked: "What about the boxed cookies?" Eric exined: "Didn''t you read the script? In the movie, Andy nted several bombs, they were all fake, these bombs were made in boxes, not only will there be close-ups of the box in the film, there will also be rted lines, so it''s also a very important cement Ad. As for the sunsses and cameras, they are all used in the movie, so you can also pull some small sponsorship fees." Eric, aren''t you worried that inserting too much advertising will cause resentment from the audience?" "No," Eric said confidently! "None of these ads are deliberate, so the audience won''t feel any difort. Of course, because there are a lot of imnted Ad this time, goodmunication with the sponsors is required, not like thest time with Lamborghini, before the film is released, we don''t want the sponsors to reveal themselves." Jeffrey noticed something wrong, puzzled he asked: "The cement of the Ad is not prominent, and they shouldn''t publicize it, if I''m a sponsor, I''m sure I won''t pay for it." "It''s not that they shouldn''t announce it." Said Eric patiently: "I meant, before the movie release, they can''t promote it, otherwise, even if I did not deliberately imnt the Ad, the audience will regard it as deliberate, this preconceived idea will subconsciously cause the audience to be disgusted with the film. But as soon as the film is released, after word of mouth is out, we can then hype up the ads, wish will not only y the effect of free publicity, but also attract the audience who are curious about the imnted advertising scenes in the movie and went back into the cinema again, thus increasing the movie box office." Jeffrey revealed a meaningful smile, and said: "Eric, I feel like I''m sitting in front of a merchant of Venice." "Is that sarcasm?" "Yes, but I added a lot of praise and admiration emotions in the inside." Jeffreyughed. "Oh, Lord Jeffrey, how very generous of you." Eric answered with an English ent andughed. After the joke, Eric looked at his watch and said: "I have another appointment, so ... ..." Jeffrey did not wait for Eric to speak out and quickly replied: "You are telling me to go, right?" "Smart, never thought that you would figure it out yourself." Jeffrey thought of something for a moment, and asked: "is it a date with a woman?" "A man, a very famous architectural designer, his name is , I saw that he designed a mansion in Malibu for chairman , so I''m going to ask him to help me." "Are you talking about that piece of rockynd by the beach you spent $5 million to buy?" "Why, do you think I spent too much money?" Eric retorted: "Wait until I have sessfully built my . people will try to buy it even if I ask for 50 million dors." "To tell you the truth, your willful practice kinda makes me feel relieved, because you''re finally starting to act like boys you age should, otherwise, I will subconsciously start seeing you like one of my peers. Eric, why do you always call that ce ?" Eric blinked, and said: "it''s a secret" "Tell me, I promise not to tell other people." Jeffrey curiously looked at Eric. "Since it''s a secret, you can''t tell anyone other than myself, you''re also ''other people''." Eric of course could not exin to Jeffrey, so he quickly left the office. ... ... famed had an area of 11 square kilometers, with various buildings, It only cost him $19.5 million. Byparison, his piece ofnd is only about 0.06 square kilometers, which is equivalent to 60000 square meters, and he had to spend $5 million to get it, that''s a very big difference in price. That''s because of lobbying and his privatewyer additional "public rtions fee", because thend was a public small park and was not avable for sale. "Mr. Williams, the drawings of the building you sketched, although very imaginative, but there are too many irrational ces, and the construction is rather difficult, especially to build on the edge of the cliff." give his professional eye evaluation of Eric''s drawings. The two of them were standing together in the Malibu sharp corner, apanied by Frank Gehry''s assistant, Eric too wasn''t alone, happened to be at home, so he called her to act as a guest secretary. This ce had already be a private territory belonging to Eric, and he has also obtained a building permit. he can do whatever he wants in thisnd, as long as he doesn''t disturb or anger his neighbors, no one wille to manage him. "Mr. Gehry, you mean that the construction is too difficult, that doesn''t mean you can''t build it?" Frank Gehry nodded: "But it will cost a lot of money, I don''t think it''s necessary. If you must build the mansion here, then I will suggest moving the mansion north by at least ten meters, This will not only greatly reduce the difficulty of the construction, It can also save more than thirty percent of the construction cost. In addition, various pipeline lines will be more easily erected." Eric eye shifted to the ce Frank Gehry pointed at, if they built the mansion their a very unpleasant rocky area will block his sea view. Shaking his head, Eric refused Frank''s advice: "Mr. Gehry, if I insist, how much will it cost?" "I can''t give you a specific figure for the moment, because I don''t have the survey data yet, If you insist on building ording to your own design, we will need lot of geological surveys to be done to test the ground, To determine if the weight of the building can be sustained on the edge of the cliff, If not, we will need to reinforce the ground, that would make things moreplicated and more expensive. But I think five million is certainly unavoidable." "Only $5 million?" Eric was skeptical, to buy this piece ofnd he spent $5 million. "Mr. Williams, as far as I know, you can by the most expensive house in Malibu at that price." "Sorry, Mr. Gehry, I don''t know much about these things. I would like to take the liberty to ask, If I use $10 million, or even $20 million, What kind of building can be built?" In this era, even president , can''te out with $20 million in cash, after all, most of Bill Gates money is in stocks. But the movie industry is different, as long as the box office is good, you can get tens of millions of dors or even hundreds of millions of dors of funds in a rtively short period of time. looked at the boy in front of him with surprised eyes, he thought for a while then said: "In that case, I''ll build a piece of art for you ... ... Mr Williams, are you sure?" "I''m sure, Mr. Gehry, what I want is a piece of art." Eric replied without hesitation. Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $0 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 100 After the field visit, proposed to find a ce to discuss more details, Eric led them directly to the Virginia small vi not far away. did not show any dissatisfaction with Eric''s action, but quietly invited Frank and his intern assistant inside her house. Frank know in his heart that Virginia is Eric lover, but his expression didn''t show any difference, he felt jealous of the young miracle director enjoyable life. Regardless of appearance or body shape, Virginia is a high ss woman, and the rarer thing is, she was also extremely well behaved and sensible, such a woman is destined not to cause her man trouble. As a renowned architect, he oftenes into contact with the rich and famous celebrities who invite him to design their homes, he asionally saw all sorts of strange things in that secret society, so he got used to it. He even saw a rich tycoon who kept ves in his estate, not a maids who he have sexual rtionships with, but the real literal female ves, because those girls have been taught to live that way since they were small, to be as obedient as a pet. It was Frank new the intern assistant, who was curiously ncing From time to time between Eric and Virginia. Only after several stern eye warnings from Frank, did he settled down, and started doing his job taking notes. Eric bought about six hectares ofnd, after conversion that''s 60000 square meters, the sketch he painted from his memory of iron man Malibu mansion, plus the helipad and other facilities, will only cover a few thousand square meters. Therefore, apart from the main building, the rest of the design will be handed over to Frank''s designpany, and will eventually form a small estate of about 14 acres. is a master of deconstruction architecture, many of his designs are very unconstrained, therefore, he has received considerable criticism, but his designs has also been sought after by more and more people. After getting Eric''s promise not to limit the budget, Frank was even more daring to y, he proposed to use granite, Special ss and High-strength low-alloy steel as the main materials to constructing the mansion, that alone pushed costs directly into more then ten millions dors. From Frank''s exnation, Eric learned that those expensive materials are usually used only in some of the city''sndmarks and public buildings. Eric also intended for the mansion to bendmark building for Malibu. As for the question of money, for Eric that''s not a problem, the reason he worked so hard to earn so much money was just so he can do whatever he want''s. ... ... They kept talking until the evening, promised toplete the design as soon as possible and send it to Eric After he refused an invitation to dinner, he took his assistant and left. After getting on the car, Frank who was on the driver seat sincerely said to his young assistant: "Scott, In future jobs, you''ll have deal with all kinds of rich and famous celebrities. It''s unavoidable that you''ll see and hear some things, but you have to remember, if you don''t want to get into trouble, you''d better control your mouth." Not only was Scott familiar with Eric, he also know that Virginia is a less famous actress, he never thought that the 18 years old young Director was having secret a rtionships with who was ten years older than him. If this thinge out, he was sure this is going to be a scandal. Scott really was going to brag to some friends about this at a party tonight, however, when he heard his boss and mentor stern warning, Scotte bock to his senses, and directly dismissed the idea. Even if he sold the news to the paparazzi, the amount of money he will get will be small, and will led to him loosing this new promising job. "Mr. Frank, I will remember." Frank patted Scott''s shoulder and didn''t say anything more. After sending the two men away, started cleaning up the empty coffee cups, and casually asked the young man setting on the sofa reading a magazine: "Eric, you brought the two of them to my house, aren''t you afraid they will leak the news?" Eric continued looking at the magazine, and answered: "Rest assured, they won''t" "That might not be the case" Virginia retorted from the kitchen while washing the cups: "I think Frank''s assistant recognized me, I saw his eyes more than once, shifting between the two of us." Eric turned and asked her: "Are you worried about our rtionship getting exposed?" Virginia showed Eric a charming smile, and said: "of course not, I can not wait for a scandal to happen, so this unknown little actress can hit the headlines." "Then you should pray that the assistant sell the news to the paparazzi." Eric smiled and turned his attention back to the magazine in front of him. ... ... After finished washing the cups, she dried her hands and went back to the living room, sitting beside Eric she said: "I''m thinking about you, don''t you have an official girlfriend?, and you are also keeping a Lolita at home, if the news about mee out, aren''t you afraid of the media will start calling you a yboy?" "I well be happy to be called a yboy, that''s one of my two life goals." snatched the magazine from Eric''s hand and threw it aside: "Eric, you seem very sure that they won''t leak the news?" Eric picked up the magazine again, and turned the pages back to where he was before, He was interested in an article on women''s dresses and their personality, her little outstretched hand once again blocked his view: "Come on ... ... all I can tell you is, that Mr. Frank is a very stable man and won''t leak the news. as for his assistant, have you noticed that his suit doesn''t fit, it''s obviously bigger then him?" "Uh huh?" held Eric''s arm, her eyes wide open with curiosity. this expressioning from a mature woman looked very sexy, and also ... ... very cute. Eric could not help but look at the girl''s face for a few seconds, then he continued: "The suit doesn''t fit, it''s unlikely that he borrowed it, because no one wears a borrowed suit for a long time, the suit is more likely to be his father''s. That also indicate that his economic situation is not very good, he will definitely cherish his job ... ... Frank also noticed his eyes on us, he will certainly warn his assistant not to talk nonsense ... ... Him getting a job as an architect''s assistant, also indicate that he has a high IQ, and as long as Frank give him a little warning, I''m sure he will keep his mouth shut." Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $10 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 103 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter please tell me in thements.) ... ... Amy Pascal also knows what''s going to happen, so she didn''t insist, standing up she said: "Since that is the case, then I will take my leave. I''ll keep you updated." "I''ll see you off." Eric followed up: "Amy, I didn''t see you driving your car today?" "My car was sent for maintenance today." Eric enthusiastically said: "Then why don''t I give you a ride?, getting a taxi in my neighborhood won''t be easy" Amy Pascal knew that Eric was telling the truth, plus the ce she''s going to isn''t too far away, so she agreed. They walked out of the vi together, Eric opened the garage door and walked in, he went straight to the old Ford sedan. Standing in the garage door, Amy Pascal listened to the muffled sound of the old Ford engine, and looked curiously inside the garage, she found a huge garage that can house more than ten cars, but except for the old Ford sedan, only another car was parked in the corner, a purple sports car. "Eric, with your present worth, you can change to a better car." Amy smiled and pointed her finger at the Ford, then nced at the purple sports car in the corner with a curious look in her eyes. "Do you mean that Lamborghini?" Eric asked Amy as he carefully drove the car past the garage door. Eric said: "It''s a gift the Lamborghinipany sent me a few days ago, but I don''t like driving it on the streets of Los Angeles, i feel like I will have an ident, but I like driving it and racing on the freeway." "Lamborghini is really generous, this car is estimated to cost at least two hundred thousand dors." Eric smiled and did not answer, this car isn''t the ordinary sports car Lamborghini is about to release. It''s a hand-built four-wheel drive concept car, an ordinary Countach sports car price is about 240 thousand dors, while although there is no pricing on the car gifted to him, it''s value is estimated to be no less than 300 thousand dors. Lamborghini was generous, because they want to keep working with him. Their sales are at least three times as high this year as they were in previous years,pared to the profits earned by Lamborghini, a $300,000 concept car is nothing. Because the news that his new film will be a cooperation between and was "exposed" a few days ago, Lamborghini took the initiative toe to his door, they presented him with this concept car, but they also wanted to sign a long-term cooperation agreement with him. Eric, of course, will not do so, with the rapid development of the imntable advertising model in movies, profits from embedded ads will certainly grow higher in the future, signing a contract now is certainly not a good choice. ... ... Driving out of his vi, Eric was about to get off the car to close the vi door, but he saw a middle-aged man more than 40 year old quickly rushing up to him, and gently tapped on his car window. "Mr. Williams, Mr. Williams?" In this unexpected situation, Eric quickly stopped his action, and carefully lowered the ss window down leaving a little gap. The middle-aged man quickly took out his business card and inserted it through the gap: "Mr. Williams, please don''t misunderstand me, I have no malice toward you. My name is , you know me?" Eric took the business card, looked at it, then looked out the window at the middle-aged man ... only after determining that the image of the man matched the image in his memory, did he calm down. The man is one of the three directors he invited to direct . These days, Eric was mainly busy things ... ... as for director , he had already received Firefly investment and 3 million dors for to join the film, and rushed to Louisiana to start filming. As for , personally rmended a Director, Coincidentally, the man Al rmended was the original director of the film . Since it''s the original director, Eric didn''t worry too much, and after talking with each other, he was confident that Martin will do a good job ... ... Currently, Martin was hard at work preparing from the film. This kind of dy, led to Eric having no time to determine director, also because Eric wasn''t in a hurry to release , or Herbert Ross''s , he was nning to release them by the end of the year, so he still had plenty of time. Unexpectedly, today, one of the three horror movies directors he selected, suddenly came to find him. Eric thought it wasn''t good to keep staying in the car, and ignore the middle-aged man, getting out of the car, he shook his hand and said: "Mr. Demme, what can I do for you?" "Yes ... ah" said: "Mr. Williams, I want to talk to you about the script ... ... I know you also sent invitations to two other directors, but I think, I have enough strength to make this film better, I have done a lot of preparations, if you can give me some of your time, I can exin my ideas to you?" Eric said in an embarrassed tone: "Sorry, Mr. Demme, unfortunately, I have to take my friend back to her ce, so ... ..." "No problem, Mr. Williams. I can wait here until youe back." Eric was touched by his dedication, he thought for a moment and said: "Mr. Demme, why don''t youe with us, after I send her back, let''s find a ce to talk." "Is that all right?" nced hesitantly at Amy Pascal in the car. He didn''t know what her rtionship with Eric was, so he worried that by doing so will make them feel uneasy. inside the car was able to listen to their conversations, thinking about it she said: "Mr. Demme, get in the car, my destination isn''t far from here, it will only take about 10 minutes" "Then ... ... Sorry for bothering you." After confirmed with Eric again, he carefully opened the back door of the Ford and sat while holding his backpack in hisp. Eric locked the vi gate, before driving away. Because of , they didn''t talk too much along the way. But fortunately, Amy Pascal''s destination wasn''t too far, so the atmosphere didn''t be awkward. Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $10 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 104 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter please tell me in thements.) ... ... After Bringing home, Eric took to a coffee shop nearby. After they ordered two cups of coffee and some snacks, Eric took the lead and began speaking: "Jonathan, first let''s talk about your understanding of the script of " Jonathan Demme, like a student who''s taking a school test, straightening his thoughts, and said: "Compared to the films that rely on violence, blood and weird sounds or grotesque makeup to achieve the effects of scaring the audience, will undoubtedly create a new type of psychological thrillers/horror films. The script is full of Hitchcock suspense settings, and although the plot isn''tplicated, it can firmly grab the audience curiosity. And finally, at the end, when the truth about the ghosts is revealed, that great plot reversal at the end of the movie, is even more surprising ... ... Eric, many people feel that your present sess is due to the blessing of God. But if they see the script you created, I believe that no one will think so, your talent is simply amazing." At the end Jonathan couldn''t help but give him apliment, Eric saw that thepliment were reallying from the heart, and not to please him, smiling he said: "thanks for thepliment Jonathan, Your understanding of the script is in ce. However, this is not enough for me to give you the film. Although I haven''t had time to pay attention to the reply of the other two candidates, but I believe the other two will be very interested in this movie, what do you think your advantage is, whenpared to the two and those two masters of horror films, so what are your strengths?" "sticity," Jonathan replied without hesitation. "Eric, I''m more malleable than they are." Eric looked at the middle-aged man in front of him, who was already more than 40 years old, and wondered, "sticity?" calmly exined: "Yes, Eric, my biggest advantage is that I have never filmed a horror film, I have been in this business for almost twenty years, I believe my professional level as a director is OK, I can shoot the filmpletely in ordance with your concept of the psychological thriller you wrote in the script. But if you handed this film to the other two famous directors, the two of them will certainly bring their own shooting styles into the film, this may not be their intention, but habit is a very powerful force. As a result, they are likely to turn to other traditional horror films like or to , the film will have very scary effects, but that will inevitably weaken the sensation caused by the plot reversal at the end of the film." After Jonathan finished, he saw that Eric expression was loosening, Quickly he took out a thick stack of paper he prepared from his backpack, but he didn''t hand the file to Eric, he knew that if he did that, the other party may not be patient enough to read all that information. Instead, he selected just the most important pages and handed them to Eric. "Eric, you see, This is some of my thoughts about shooting , and those are also some script shots I envisioned. I think the film should focus on creating suspense, and arousing the curiosity of the audience. This can also cover the weak points in the plot, and not make the audience feel dull. I think we should focus on building the atmosphere, by that I mean we should put more emphasis on psychological pressure, not sensory stimtion." Eric looked down at Jonathan''s list of shooting ideas, and carefully looked at several sub lens design drafts, his fingers unconsciously started drumming several times on the table. knew that the most critical moment wasing, his right hand under the table tightly clenched into a fist. ... ... Compared to Eric, a director who was blessed by god to have a smooth journey, Jonathan''s journey in Hollywood has been rough, he has shown a strong interest in films since he was a child. So although when he was in college he majored in veterinary, but he did not embark on that road, instead of entering the then-flourishing work force as a veterinarian, he boldly choose to start at the bottom of thedder as a handyman in Hollywood. It was until the age of thirty that he had the opportunity to participate in the production of some low-cost B movie, in 1977, Jonathan finally won the opportunity to direct a film, Although his first film won the attention and apud of the critics, but the box office performance was a mess. To be exact, there was no box office at all, Jonathan in order to let more people enjoy his work, he had to pay from his own pocket to let his film be screened in a New York theater for free, but still only a handful of viewers showed up. The shock silenced Jonathan for three years, and in 1980, another work of Jonathan won two awards, that kinda improved his career again. But until now, all his works didn''t have amercial value, their box office is generally only a few millions dors, and the highest one only got ten million dor. In Hollywood, to be recognized as a director, without a good box office movie that''s impossible. Before when he was studying Eric personal experience, Jonathan found that, all the three films rted to Eric have been able to sell at the box office, and that the biggestmon ground between them, is that Eric personally wrote the scripts. Although he wasn''t clear why Eric Williams will send him an invitation to be the director of , but that didn''t prevent Jonathan from seizing the opportunity. After receiving the invitation, Jonathan stayed up all night, reading the script many times over and over again, more than once he was stunned by the plot ending, the next day in the morning, He sent back a reply to Jeffrey Hansen, expressing his willingness to direct the film. Originally he thought that the other party will soon contact him, to discuss signing a contract and so on, but after waiting patiently for a few days, no one called. Jonathan hurried to the firefly headquarters himself, to find Jeffrey, after knowing the whole story, Jonathan found out that,pared to the other two directors who have been famous for a long time, he has no experience shooting horror movies, he found that he was the leastpetitive one. But Jonathan didn''t give up, Although the performance of the films he directed isn''t good, But his vision isn''t very bad, He keenly sensed that if was shot by him, getting both a good box office results and the awards won''t be a problem, so he was more desperate to get this opportunity. He took a few days, racking his brains toe up with a set of arguments to convince Eric. At the same time, he also made a more profound analysis of the script, and did a lot of careful preparation ... To save time, and prevent the script director from being decided ahead of time, Jonathan has been sleeping for no more than three hours a day for more than a week. The reason why he can energetically sit in front of Eric and eloquently talk, is because he drank a lot of coffee in the morning, he knows that he will soon crash and burn. ... ... Eric didn''t notice Jonathan uneasiness, after drumming on the table for a few moments, he looked up and said: "Jonathan, can you wait for a moment, I''m gonna make a phone call." "Sure, no problem." Jonathan did not understand what he was doing, be he still nodded his head. Eric got up and headed to the coffee shop counter, after talking to the waiter, he picked the phone on the counter and dialed Jeffrey office number. "Jeffrey, it''s me ... ... there is something I forgot to ask about, it''s about the directors ... ... Yes, did and respond? ... ... Yeah ... ... Yeah ... ... Okey, I see ... ... actually came to see me personally, I think he has good ideas, and he showed great enthusiasm for the film, I think we can give him a chance ... ... Yeah ... ..., turn him down ... ..., I''m going to hang up ... ... I know, don''t worry I have a sense of proportion about what really matters." Hanging up the phone Eric went back to his seat. Jonathan knew that the moment wasing, so he couldn''t help but sit upright, and look at Eric with great anticipation. "Jonathan, when we sent you the invitation, we said that the film heroine has been set, do you have a problem with that?" couldn''t hide the smile from appearing on his face, he knew that Eric asking, is equivalent to giving him the film: "No, I have no opinion, the actor'' s choice is the right of the producer." Hesitating for a moment, Jonathan couldn''t refrain from asking: "Eric, the heroine ... ... is it your girlfriend ?" Eric shook his head and said: "No." Jonathan Demme was worried that Eric will choose his girlfriend, he was going to resolutely ept it, even if it is ... But after Eric denied, he felt some relief, Jonathan was originally worried that Eric deliberately mentioned this condition, just to make a star out of his girlfriend. But the girl is too young to y the role of a single mother, even if she wore make-up it will be hard to make the audience believe that she is a mother of two kids. As for the rtionship between the heroine and Eric, he felt that he shouldn''t pay attention to this matter. "So, Eric, did I get the job? ... ... " Eric nodded: "Yes, Jonathan, you''ve got the chance to direct the film. Mr. is directing another film, and naturally turned down the invitation. Mr. also showed a strong interest in the script. But he had some concerns about the default heroine ... ... plus your words and the ideas you showed me does have some truth in them, so I told Jeffrey to turn him down." Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $10 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 105 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter please tell me in thements.) ... ... almost started dancing in joy, of course, this was only his inner impulse, on the surface he will certainly not show it. "Eric, thank you, thank you for giving me this opportunity, I promise I''ll make a movie that will satisfy you." Looking at the middle-aged man in front of him trying to conceal his happiness, Eric also revealed a smile: "Jonathan, for the specific director contract, you can go to the firefly headquarters tomorrow to talk to Jeffrey about it... and I think, you''d better go back home to sleep" "What?" Jonathan felt that some of Eric''s words were out of hand, he slept very little for an entire week, but now that he managed to get this opportunity every cell in Jonathan body was in state of excitement, without any sense of exhaustion: "Eric, I''m not tired, maybe we can talk more about the movie, I still have a lot of ideas." Jonathan said, patting the thick stack of papers in front of him. Eric shook his head and firmly refused: "Jonathan, I understand that in order to get this opportunity you put in a lot of effort, maybe you didn''t carefully look at the mirror these days, right?" touched the stubble on his face, and said: "I''m sorry, Eric. I just washed my face this morning, and didn''t have time to shave" "No," said Eric: "It''s not the Facial hair, It''s your eyes. Your eyes are bloodshot, probably caused byck of sleep. So, listen to me this time, go back and take a good night of sleep, your healthe first" At Eric''s insistence, Jonathan had to get up and go home. ... ... The next day, Jonathan signed the director contract with the firefly''s, there was no profit split agreement for , he only got $500 thousand as a fee, he signed it without thinking. Because this opportunity for him is the most important, once The Others be sessful, he will be able topletely get rid of the previous B-film circle, and step into a new world. On the surface, Hollywood is the ce where the American dream happens most frequently, some obscure little actor, or some small director, because a film he worked on sold well, suddenly entered the ranks of top actors, and top directors, sought after by filmpanies and praised by the general public. But in fact, in Hollywood, there is more invisible barriers then you can imagine, There are circles for all types of movies, B-ss movies have B-ss circle, low-cost films have a low-cost circle, big productions have a big production circle, even the porn industry have it''s own circle. Each of these circles, although they have mutual intersection, but if you originally belonged to one of those circles and want to jump to another circle, you''ll find out in this process, that there will be a barrier or an obstacle in front of you, slowly, many people give up the struggle, and stayed in their own circle. Fortunately, asionally some people are lucky enough to jump from a lower circle to a higher circle, and suddenly shine, then they became the representatives of the American dream. ... ... After signed the contract, all the directors of Eric''s films were confirmed. has already started shooting, followed by , and those three films will enter the casting stage soon. Although the three films have identified some of the leading roles, but the remaining roles are still vacant. In Eric''s first two movies, even if just a supporting role, many people''s careers have risen directly to a new level. So, after the firefly released the audition news, Hollywood second and third line actors circle was almost boiling up. And many first line actors showed their interest. For reasons known to all, the three films casting tend to favor UTA actors, therefore, in just a few days, thousands of cooperation applications was handed over to Kapoor, many of them were of broker bringing their artists and wanting to collectively join the UTA. After Kapoor and Eric talked about it, the two agreed that it wasn''t the best time for the UTA to expand. Blind expansion of the scale that doesn''t provide enough opportunities for the artists, will only affect UTA''s reputation. So almost all requests for cooperation have been rejected, and because Kapoor was still receiving the application, he had to published a statement, saying that the casting was temporarily halted. ... ... The film that was most popr when casting the supporting actors, wasn''t the film Eric was directing , nor was it the film that have . Instead, it was the most obscure film . Because have two roles for two ten year young actors, a girl and a boy. Although the film director and actress are not famous, except for the name of the film ''The Others'', they didn''t disclose any information about the Theme and content of the script, the only thing they announce is that Eric wrote the script himself. A lot of people naturally thought of Stuart Runkle, who relied on to be the most famous child star, before Home Alone, the little boy was just Eric neighbor. Who would have thought that this child will be famous all over the world now. As a result, while the roles of the other two films received only a few hundred auditions, the list of young actors has expanded to over 5000, and continues to grow. With the dissemination of the audition news, firefly''s also received applications from Canada, Europe and Australia and some other ces. ... ... "I''m sorry, Charles, I don''t want to use Stuart in this film, this movie does not require an actor on the level of Stuart ... ... this isn''t the issue of the pay ... ...., I know, I know, the little boy doesn''t have many scenes in the film ... ... No problem. You are wee in my home if you have time ... ... Well, goodbye." Hanging up the phone, Eric rubbed his aching temples, since firefly''s released the auditions list, every day either at home or in thepany, he received numerous calls by people he knows rmending actors. The man he was talking to just a few moments ago is Stuart father Charles Runkle, it has been a long time since he contacted him, but today he personally called, wanting his son to win the little boy''s role in a horror movie. Stuart Runkle career in the eyes of outsiders seem to have infinite possibility of expansion, but only insiders know that Stuart fee is ridiculously high, and not many people have the courage to invite him, most of his ie nowes from advertising and endorsements. Maybe Charles Runkle understood that maintain Stuart fame is the most important, so he called Eric personally, and even quoted a $3 million low price, usually, when CAA start negotiating Stuart fee they always start with $8 million. Unconsciously, Eric found himself involved a lot ofmunication activity, although not many, but his interpersonal circle has be surprisinglyrge. Even if he only met to them once, they will call him and chat with him in a familiar tone, they will spend a few minutes talking about topics like the weather, then inadvertently rmend a certain actor. First he smelled a sweet perfume fragrance, then two milky white arms wrapped around his neck from behind him, Acting like a spoiled brat Drew started rubbing her face on Eric''s cheeks. "Hey,e on, don''t make trouble." Eric escaped the clutches of Drew beautiful milky white arms, he secretly sighed in his heart, this girl was really blessed by god, even after years of alcohol and drug abuse her skin didn''t suffer any damage. wasughing as she jumped over the sofa, and threw herself into his arms. "You are this old, and still so naughty " Eric could not help but give a p on the ass. "Aw ... ... that Hurts ... ... " After getting a second p, she immediately became tearful, but looked at Eric with glittering eyes as if to say: ''do it again, do it again'' For Drew anytime and anywhere is good chance to tease him, he has be ustomed to it: "Well, speak, why did you suddenly ran back, what''s the matter?" "Really, can''t I juste here whenever I want." "That''s right ... ... now say, youe back to do what?" "In fact, I missed you, ah ... ..., Eric, I saw the Lamborghini in the garage. Unexpectedly, I just said that I liked the car that one time, and you remembered to get it for me. I''m so touched." "You misunderstood, I was actually going to give it to jenny." Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $10 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 106 TN: Thank you, Mr. Jorge, for sponsoring this chapter. ... ... "Deceitful ugly man" like a cat scratched Eric chest a few of times, and said in a hurt voice: "I will forgive you, but just for this time." Eric by habit flipped her on the forehead, and said: "I would also like to thank you for your generosity? Reaching into her jeans back pocket, she dug out a crumpled paper, and said: "Well, here it is." He took the paper handed to him, and nced at the string of names auditioning for roles, smiling he said: "Looks like you have been very busy these days." "Ah ... ..." she involuntarily uttered a sigh of regret: "If I could refuse then I would have rejected them all, you don''t need to directly give them a role, just giving them a chance to audition is enough." "All right, I''ll arrange it." Eric didn''t say anything more since she suddenly came back today, he knew that it must have something to do with the recent auditions. His future ns for Drew were almost the same as her previous life, even the name of her future filmpany name is good, he liked . With her clever and capable character, she will be a big help in the future, It''s not bad to help her umte more connections now. And as she said, all he needs to do is give them a chance to audition, whether or not they get the roles, he has the final say, plus he can also help her earn some favors, so why not?. ... ... After carefully reading the list, he found that many of the people on the list will be well-known Hollywood stars in the future. There is also a goddaughter of , , she should be seventeen or eighteen this year, she wanted to audition for the role of the girl Andy meet on the bus after a robbery. Recalling Gwh appearance, Eric directly draws an X on her name in his mind. She ispletely ipatible with his aesthetic view. Perhaps in the eyes of Europeans and Americans, is a standard of beauty, but Eric doesn''t like her high cheekbones, Bridge nose, deep eye sockets. He prefers beautiful women with softer facial lines, , , and all belong to this type. Thinking of this, he couldn''t help but pull the TV remote control from her hand, and hold the girl''s little face in his hands to carefully look at, thinking that the girl may have long residual damage done to her skin in the future because of the drugs, he couldn''t help but sigh. was waiting nervously, she was expecting him to kiss her, but the result was a sigh, suddenly she got angry, bearing her teeth at him and threatened: "Eric if you dare sigh in my face again, I will scratch you." "Did you expect a kiss, why are you in a hurry" he stroked her smooth hair and said: "Just four years ago in you were a small sweet little girl holding that cat, how did you suddenly get so big?" Hearing the evilness in his voice, she pushed him down on the sofa, and got on top of him, giving him a condescending look, she said: "You damned Lolicon, I want to report you to the Los Angeles Police Department, maybe you''ll get chemically castrated, then see if that woman with the big breasts, will still wee you in her home!" Eric was surprised a little, he felt that his thing with Virginia, shouldn''t be known to too many people. "Ah... ... does everyone in Los Angeles know about this thing?" "Yeah, yeah, everyone in North America knows, a third-rate actress got Eric Williams to personally create a script for her, do you think everyone is a fool? You have to be careful, don''t be photographed by paparazzi, Otherwise, someone will say you have an Oedipusplex after all that woman is ten years older than you." "I absolutely don''t have thatplex," he raised his voice and snapped back. "Of course, I can prove that" because she was on top of him, she could feel the thing rising in his pants, she looked at him arrogantly and said: "because you are Lolicon!" "All right, maybe I''m a Lolicon," said Eric in surrender. "Can you of me now?" she quickly wrapped her legs around his waist and started rubbing down on him, seeing her intention, he quickly forced himself to reach out and hold her waist, and move her to the side: e on, don''t make trouble, in broad daylight." "Then I''lle to your room at night?" "I decided to go to her at night, anyway, all North America knows." Hearing his threat Drew immediately warped her arms around him and said: "No, Eric, you can''t give up. You should learn from me." Braking free from her arms, he quickly got up and started walking upstairs, and said: "are you going to teach me how to stay away from school?. I met at a partyst night, he said that he saw a naughty little girl at a party on Wednesday." Eric had no hope that she would stay in school, and he didn''t expect her to go to college. he only wanted her to stay in school until she reaches 16 years old, then she can go back to Hollywood. But as things stand now, that''s not very feasible. she didn''t like going to school, And the only thing that worries him now is that he doesn''t know what method she used to stop the school principal from calling him toin about her bad behavior. Hearing Eric''s words, Drew jumped up and angrily raised his little fist and waved in the air: "! That bastard, I''m going to break up my friendship with him, I specifically told him not to tell you." "Then he must have misunderstood what you meant," he said without turning back. "But I am very pleased, Al said you didn''t drink, By the way, when did your friendship with Al start?" "After the release of , I met him by ident once." Eric was quick to understand the hidden meaning in her words: "It seems that you have done a lot of ''bad things'' using my name, maybe I should torture you to get a confession." Acting afraid she said: "No, Eric, I don''t like pain, if you give me a kiss I''ll tell you everything." ... ... followed him into the study, and watched as he packed up a few files, and put them in his satchel bag, "Eric, do you have to go out, today is the weekend?" Eric picked up his satchel bag and went downstairs: "Because of you I have to go out, we will officially start the auditions next week, the staff will have to issue the audition notice to all the actors in two days. I have to add the names of the people you give me, to the list." "But I also want you to take me to Malibu to see our new home address." she said in an unhappy tone. "What''s good about it?, It''s still a wastnd. It will take at least a year to build. Just watch TV or something, and if you find it in your heart, make me a dinner or something." She blinked her green eyes, and said: "My heart tells me to order a takeout." "Then I''ll go to that third-rate actress home to eat her homemade dinner." "Don''t do that, Eric, let''s make a deal, I''ll order takeout and heat it personally." Sponsor a Chapter: If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do. Thank you.
Every $20 = 1 sponsored chapter $0 of $20 raised 0 chapters in queue
Chapter 107 "I just said it offhandedly; you don''t have to follow me all the time." Eric drove the car and helplessly nced at Drew, who was sitting in the copilot seat. Drew was mercilessly chewing gum, and ying video games with her Game Boy, the annoying beeping sound of the video game console was driving him crazy. "At the end of the month, Jennifer will return to Los Angeles, and will probably move to live with me." "Uh huh," Although she said it in a loud voice, she didn''t mind. Drew from the beginning wasn''t optimistic about Eric and Aniston''s rtionship. He is the kind of man who has a dominant character, and although he was usually friendly and pleasant, and it seems that you can discuss anything with him. But sometimes he can be arrogant and rude, and won''t allow others to go against his will. As for Jennifer Aniston, she is a stubborn girl with a strong inferiorityplex, and great dignity, getting along together in the short term is OK, even if friction between them happen they will bothpromise. But for the long term, their state of mutual tolerance cannot be maintained for long. What''s more, Eric is a yboy; it''s impossible for someone as prideful as Aniston to endure. Drew often fantasize, that she is probably the most suitable girl for Eric, She can tolerate or even indulge in his perverted personality. For her to better get along with him, she deliberately started reading a lot of Psychology books to the point that she sometimes get dizzy, all of that just to better understand him. Although she loves him and can give him all the things he wants, she knew he would not belong to her alone, thinking about it always make her sad. The reason she was clinging to him today, wasn''t because she''s jealous, well, maybe a little bit. The real reason is, she just wanted to be a little bit closer to him. ... ... Today was the first time Drew visited thepany, she grew up in front of the camera, but she doesn''t know a lot about howpanies work. She was curious about everything in the office building, so she spent this weekend exploring every nook and cranny in the building, lead by a dedicated female staff member, she visited the dubbing room, editing room ... ..., she also got to manipte some of the equipment, but because Firefly wasn''t a big moviepany, after just 10 minutes in the tour she found herself going in a circle, after that she obediently stayed in the small screening room watching some videotapes, and didn''t go to harass Eric. After adding the names of the people Drew had given him to the audition list, Eric looked at the roster of actors who passed the first screening round. After reading a few pages, he found that all the actresses on the list have passed the basic conditions he established before. He was sure that some of them probably don''t fulfill all his conditions, but he acted like he didn''t see anything. They probably were added by other people in thepany, even he himself has added the actresses on Drew paper to the list, so he didn''t want to make things hard for them. He was sure that by using some tricks in the auditions some good actors were eliminated from the list, but as long as the employees don''t make a Blunder, he won''t say anything. It is unfair to the actors who have no connections? But, this world has never been fair. He knows that with the rapid growth of thepany size, it''s impossible for him to put all the power in his hands alone, so picking minor characters will slowly be given to other people. The employees responsible for the casting will not joke about their career, once the selected actor does not meet the requirements and impact the filming, the person in charge will probably lose his job. So, if an actress had the delusion of going to bed with the casting director to get a role, and her acting isn''t up to the mark, the two of them will end up empty-handed. After reviewing the auditions list, Eric was in no hurry to leave, now that he''s here, he was going to look at the detailed budget of the three films. Because Columbia is responsible for Running Out of Time investment, Eric set the budget to $40 million, for a movie that doesn''t have any Special effects, this an extra high-cost production. But Eric isn''t going to save money for Columbia. If he doesn''t spend all the money, Columbia won''t put the rest of the money in his card. So Eric shifted his spending target to the actors. The role of the female Interpol supervisor, he directly sent invitations to Sigourney Weaver. The other side also epted the role, of course, her fee wasn''t small. Anyway, if you don''t spend, you can''t earn, plus he isn''t even spending his own money. As for the Chief Inspector of the Crime Unit, Eric took fancy to Joe Pesci, as in the original thief named Harry in Home Alone. When Eric was preparing to make ''home alone'' he wanted to invite him, But unfortunately, the budget wasn''t big enough, so he could only make do with TV actors. As a result, the role was taken away by Matthew Perry, his version of the performance wasn''t as good as Joe eye-catching performance. Joe Pesci had also received another big movie invitation from Warner Bros., a blockbuster movie series called Lethal Weapon, in his past life this film series had four movies and a TV series, he was hesitant between the two films, but after receiving fireflies paycheck offer, he epted without hesitation. Of course, Eric also specially designed an audition for him, which he passed easily, he just doesn''t know if his acting can keep up with Tom Hanks?. As for the other candidates who weren''t selected yet, Eric set the standard for second or third line actors. If they didn''t have the experience of acting in two or three films and have no connections, then they should be directly swept to the side, and not even qualify them to the auditions. As for the films he invested in, he set Scent of a Woman budget at $10 million; the film goal is to win some Oscar awards, Al Pacino only took a $3 million paycheck. The Others only had $5 million as a budget. Jonathan Demme fee is $500 thousand, and Virginia got paid only 300 thousand dors, just like Julia in Pretty Woman. And because they were going to shoot the whole movie in an old English house, the remaining funds were more than enough toplete the shooting. ... ... After reading the three films budget files, Eric stretched out and looked at his watch; it was already six in the afternoon. After asking a staff member about Drew whereabouts, he learned that she had already left in advance. That girl knows how to manipte him; she knows Eric was going to feel guilty if he didn''t go back home tonight. So he called Virginia and apologized to her, as he drove back to his Beverly Hills mansion. Drew was d to see him back, but he still had to eat pizza this night. Because Eric was busy all afternoon, he was toozy to cook, as for Drew she has no gift for cooking, if he insists that she cook him something, she may poison him by mistake. "Eric, maybe we should employ a chef?" Drew was apparently getting tired of eating reheated pizza. Eric took a Bite out of his slice of pizza and nodded: "It''s better to have a few more maids, I prefer Japanese maid costumes, what about you?" "I like ... ..." she said at the beginning, but then she closed her mouth and gave Eric a curious look: "Hey, I think you have a possessive personality disorder, you can''t even let another male enter your territory." "Oh my god" Eric looked in shock at the girl sitting opposite him: "I thought I would never be able to hear such big wordse out of your mouth." Drew bowed her head and said, "Jerk" and continued eating her dinner, no longer paying attention to him. Chapter 108 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter, please tell me in thements.) ... ... "Motor promised to pay $3 million in sponsorship fees, but their condition is that we must reveal to them who is the male lead, is it Tom Cruise or Tom Hanks." "Lamborghini sponsorship offer is a one-time payment of $800,000, The other side learned fast, they no longer ept the same rules used in Pretty Woman, They felt cheated by having the sponsorship fee be decided, by the size of the box office." "As for the others, Ray-Ban sunsses offer is $500 thousand, their condition is to have the Ray-Ban sses trademark appear in a close-up shot for more than 5 seconds. The Hershey Companyalso made a bid of $500,000, to buy the Ad cement in the box bombs ..." In the meeting room, Jeffrey was reading the sponsorship offers one by one in an excited voice. In fact, Eric also had the same document. However, Jeffrey couldn''t help but read it out loud, because he was happy. If the final offers were all finalized, then that means that before the movie has even started shooting, Firefly earned about $6 million in profit. In this era, Hollywood produces more than 500 films every year, but even if you count the box office, videotape sales, broadcast rights and other peripheral earnings, no more than fifty, reach $6 million in profits. Eric looked at thements and conditions made by thepany''s that offered to buy the imnted ads, then closed the folder and handed it to Jeffrey: "Well, Jeffrey, did just $6 million in sponsorship fees make you this happy?" "Only $6 million," repeating Eric''s words, Jeffrey raised his voice in disapproval, and retorted: "Eric, if you have the ability then try finding another movie that can get $6 million in sponsorship fees?" "Not now, but that doesn''t mean there won''t be others in the future," Eric said: "Perhaps in a decade or two, movies will be able to recover most of the cost by imnting ads." "You don''t have to wait for a decade or two," Jeffrey said with some emotion: "When we were making Pretty Woman, if we tried to find more sponsors, maybe we will have recovered the cost." "Maybe you''re right" Suddenly remembering another important thing, Eric asked: "by the way, did you tell these sponsors to keep this matter secret until we release the film?" "Of course I didn''t forget," Jeffrey said: "I exined to them why we are doing it, and they agreed. Before the movie is released, the sponsors won''t disclose anything to the media." Feeling relieved, Eric stood up and said: "That''s good, the second round of auditions are about to start, do you want toe?" "No, I''m Exhausted, I won''t go." Jeffrey quickly refused. Initially, he enjoyed the sense of power he felt during the auditions. But after sitting behind the audition table for a few days, asking the same questions repeatedly, and watching the same performance over and over again, slowly, the sense of superiority he feltpletely disappeared, leaving him feeling dull and tired. These days the auditions have also made Eric feel exhausted, especially Running Out of Time auditions, every character, had hundreds of actors who qualified for the audition, even after extensive screening? Some rejected actresses also through a variety of ways get a second chance to audition. In short, this was giving him a headache. So he decided to also include Jonathan Demme and Martin Brest in The Others and Scent of a Woman audition, he''s going to let two directors select less than ten actors for every character, then he''ll have a third round of auditions again, that will make things a lot easier for him. The only thing better than spending a couple of days slugging though auditioning the viin roles is that today''s audition was for the role of the heroine. Eric had set the standard for the applicants to be between age 18 to 30 years old, and they had to be beautiful and have the temperament of an officedy. So, today''s auditions will be very pleasing to the eyes. ... .... A girl walks out of the audition room, and gently closed the door behind her. After turning around, the happy expression on her face quickly disappeared, ignore the curious eyes of the other contestants focusing on her, she went to her broker who was waiting for her not far away, and whispered a few words in his ears, then walked outside. A staff member called Kurt walked out from the audition room and called the name of another girl. The one after her was going to be Gwh Paltrow, who quickly took out a mirror from her handbag, and checked her makeup. Born in 1972, she was only 17 years old this year. And ording to Eric''s criteria for the candidates, she should have been eliminated from the list, because she wasn''t even 18 years old. But that didn''t bother her because she knew that Eric Williams has a very close rtionship with Drew, and she and Drew share the same godfather Steven Spielberg. Gwh''s father is a producer, her mother is a well-known film and television actor, and her family conditions are one hundred times stronger than Drew, but she grew up despising how cute Drew looked every time she saw her baby face. Even at Spielberg party''s, she rarely talked to Drew; She prefers to get along with other people whose family conditions are simr to her family so she can help her future development. However, when she learned that there is a chance to cooperate with Eric Williams, Tom Cruise and Tom Hanks, she was ready to do anything to win this opportunity to enter Hollywood. If she can get this role, her career in Hollywood will be even higher than those little actors who struggled for many years. So, without hesitation, she immediately contacted Drew, hoping that she would help her get a chance to audition. Although she had no rtionship with Drew before, fortunately, she didn''t have any enmity with her. After asking the little bitch to help her get the chance to audition, she immediately epted. What a fool, Gwh thought contemptuously. ... ... After less than five minutes, the girl who had just entered the audition room, walked out looking lost. All the actresses waiting in the corridor eyes lit up, thinking one lesspetitor. "Next, Miss Gwh Paltrow." She quickly stood up, took a deep breath, adjusted her clothes, then walked into the audition room with a faint smile on her face and sat down on the chair. Looking at the blond man seated in the middle of the table with his head bowed written something, she thought, he''s truly handsome. Gwh heart rate speed up a little, she couldn''t help but fantasize about him inviting her to dinner, perhaps, she should say no to him at first, to show some modesty. After all, if a man easily gets what he wants, he never cherishes it. After more than 10 seconds, the young man sitting on the opposite side raised his head, and said with a smile on his face: "Hello, Miss Paltrow, first introduce yourself." After a brief eye contact with him, she was sure that Eric Williams knows who she was, this made her feel a bit excited, it seems that the little bitch did her job well, at least now the other party won''t treat her like a stranger. "Hello, my name is Gwh Paltrow. I am 17 years old. I graduated from......" After a brief self-introduction, Eric asked, "Ms. Paltrow, the information shows that you haven''t had any previous experience starring in a film. Why do you think you can get this role?" Gwh who had made some preparations for those kinds of questions, calmly replied: "Because I was born in a family of entertainers, my mother is an actress, so when I was very young, I started helping my mom with her lines. Because of that, I''ve always had a big interest in acting, starting from middle school, I have been the backbone of the school drama club, I participated in many stage shows, and has umted a wealth of experience in the performing arts." When she finished speaking, she saw several judges at the same time nodding their heads. "Miss Paltrow, do you believe in love at first sight?." Out of nowhere, Eric throws this personal question at her. Hearing the question, Gwh froze for a few moments; she didn''t know why he asked this kind of question, she does believe in love at first sight. But, she thought, if she gives that answer, she will appear very foolish?. After thinking for half a minute, she said: "No, I don''t believe in love at first sight, in contrast, I am more willing to ept the sincere feelings that were cultivated over an extended period of time." Chapter 109 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter, please tell me in thements.) ... ... Eric listened to her and didn''t say anything else, bowing his head he started taking notes, this reaction made somewhat perturbed, she felt that her answer should be very appropriate. But he didn''t give her enough time to think, after a few more questions, he asked her to start performing. A staff member moved a two seat bench on wheels to the middle of the room and exined: "Miss , the scene you want to perform is like this. On a bus, a strange man suddenly sat down next to you. He''s very handsome, just by looking at him you feel your heart start beating faster. But suddenly you feel a pistol pressing on your side, the man held you hostage, and want you to pretend that the two of you are a couple as a police officer investigate the bus, you dare not resist, and have no choice but to do as he said. Miss Paltrow, you have no lines, you can only rely on facial expressions and bodynguage to express your emotions, you have one minute to prepare." Not a single line, this was too difficult, that was the first thing that came to her mind. However, she knew she had no choice, but to adjust her mentality and prepare for the performances quickly. A minuteter, sat on the bench and said she was ready, the assistant reminded her ''when the music stops, then the show is over, using a pboard he announced the start of the performances. At the same time, another staff member pressed the start button on the music yer; a refreshing pianoposition rang in the room. This was the soundtrack that appeared in the original bus scene, the name of the song is Silent Love. The soundtrack was allegedly copied from a 1995 musical made by a Greekposer called and failed to make it to the film soundtrack album. This time Eric chose to copy all the music from , now he certainly will not be involved in any copyright issues, and in the future if he wanted he can also publish Vangelis original soundtrack. (TN Note: Listen to Vangelis original soundtrack from HERE), sat there quietly, after a few moments, a staff member sat down beside her. She gently frowned and turned to look at the man next to her, feeling something on her side she looked down only to find a stic gun pressed against her, her face immediately showed a look of fear, her body expressed a backward movement like she was trying to hide. Sitting behind the Audition table Eric frowned slightly, Gwh expressions were too exaggerated, but he didn''t make any noise to interrupt her. The performance of the two people was still going on, the staff member put his arm around Gwh''s shoulder, and said: "Don''t make any noise." Gwh''s body stiffened for a moment and pretended to stare straight ahead. From the perspective of Eric, he could see her hands on her knees gently trembling. The staff member took off his sunsses and put them on her. She didn''t have any reaction, like a puppet she didn''t make a move. Here the actor should have started talking on a cell phone, but because this was the actress audition, this part was omitted. "Lean over," the staff told her in a whisper again, obediently Gwh leaned against his shoulder. A few momentster, Eric made a gesture, and immediately someone stopped the music. Hearing the music stop, Gwh knows that the show is over, she quickly straightened up, and removed the sunsses and handed them back to the man beside her. Eric quickly said: "Miss , thank you for your audition, you can leave now, we will inform you of the results as soon as possible." "Ah, that''s it ... ... it''s over?" Gwh asked without restraint. Eric nodded and made a gesture as if to say "please leave," Gwh had to pick up her bag and get out of the room, after closing the audition room''s door, she immediately wiped out the smile on her face, and coldly walked through the crowd of girls waiting to audition. In the audition room, a few people were discussing her performance. n Fisemann, who was sitting beside Eric, asked: "Eric, what do you think?" Before meeting her Eric had already drawn an X on Gwh name in his mind, he wasn''t impressed by her beauty. Moreover, the other side''s acting was terrible, so he casually exined: "No, she isn''t fit for the role, her expressions are all over the ce, and look very artificial. Kurt, get ready to call the next one?" Sitting next to him, Nickel Frank quickly stopped the staff from calling the next one, and said: "Eric, would you mind changing the actor?" "Hey, this was only third one, we agreed to rotate after every ten girls." The man who was ying as a temporary actor retorted. Nicole gave him a look filled with hatred and resentment and said: "Royce, I don''t think you should be allowed to participate in the auditions. You are so ugly, thest three girls have been affected by you sitting next to them, so they didn''t perform well. You are literally killing the poor girl''s careers." "If auditioned, even if she had a gori sitting next to her, she could still act perfectly." "Royce, you finally admitted that you aren''t even as good-looking as a gori." He looked rough, but he wasn''t ugly, in an anger Royce said: "Nicole if you keep mocking me, I''ll tell everyone what happened that night at Brady''s Bar." "You dare!" Eric quickly patted the table, to stop the quarrel of the two, Nicole is Eric photographer, and Royce now holds the post of deputy director, the two formerly belonged to Jeffrey wife team, they are very close friends. This kind of thing happens every two or three days, so Eric was not worried that the two would really sh, but he was getting tired of their noise. The cause of the quarrel is today auditions, all the woman thate today were beautiful, Eric was going to find a temporary actor, but all the men present wanted to y the role of the robber Andy. So he considered it a small reward for the crew who had been working so hard for so many days. Unexpectedly, he underestimated how restless this was going to make their Testosterone filled bodies. At the start of the auditions everything was going great, but when this particrly sexy Latin girl with a curvy body entered the room, Nicole directly took the role of the temporary actor, even though it was Eric''s assistant n Fiseman turn. But because of the presence of an outsider in the room, all n could do was to sit and watch. "Guys stop quarreling, you''re starting to give me a headache. Royce continue doing your job, and if no one respect the rules, I will find a temporary actor, and nobody will get to y." Maybe because Eric still has a lot of prestige, or maybe the threat yed a role, the two men immediately shut their mouths, and give each other the middle finger. After Kurt had received the signal from Eric, he went out and called the next name on the list. ... ... It wasn''t until she came out of the office building that Gwh suddenly reacted. "Ah, I should have thought of that!" Gwh bitterly kicked the trash in the parking lot. When she started thinking about what the performance was about, she finally knows why Eric asked her about love at first sight. Apparently, what she was supposed to perform, was the scene of love at first sight. She felt stupid about her answer, moreover, when she was acting, she only showed fear, and there was no love at first sight. Even the staff member seems to remind her that the man is handsome, that just by looking at him you will feel your heart start beating faster. She put the me on the temporary actor he obviously was ugly, but they allowed him to y the role of a handsome man. If Eric Williams or sat by her side, she was sure her heart would start beating faster. But she didn''t me her stupidity and negligence on herself instead she transferred all her anger to Drew, she began ming the little bitch. She lived in Eric''s house, so Drew must have seen the whole script, but when she asked Drew about the script. But she only revealed a little bit of the content, if it weren''t for that, she wouldn''t be so unprepared. Passing a telephone booth, she wondered if she should contact again, to see if she can help her get a second chance to try again. Next time she was sure she''d be well-prepared, and will not make the same mistakes. Gwh didn''t take into ount, that at the current time, Drew should be in ss, after finding her address book, she put a coin in the coin-operated telephone, and dialed Drew bedroom number. After a few beeps, the phone call connected. "Hello! ... ..." There was a dazed girl''s voice on the other side as if she hadn''t woken up yet. She put on a warm tone and said: "Hey Drew, it''s me, Gwh ...... Oh, now it''s ten o''clock, are you still asleep, I envy you ...... Well, Today I participated in that audition, but I don''t think I did a good job. Can you help me talk to Mr. Williams to give me a second chance to audition? ....... Good ......, Ok ......, I''ll be waiting for your good news. Let''s eat together this weekend; I know this great Italian restaurant in Sunset Strip ...... That''s good ...... OK, that''s it. Bye bye." Putting down the phone in its ce, said in a voice full of envy: "For her to be sleeping during the day, the bitch definitely was out fooling aroundst night." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 110 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter, please tell me in thements.) ... ... After the morning auditions, only a few actresses impressed Eric, but none of them made his eyes light up. Therefore, the selected actresses can only be used as alternatives, If they couldn''t find a more suitable actress at the end, these candidates will have to go through the third round of auditions. Because isn''t a Hollywood film, he couldn''t use the original actors as a reference, so he can only choose in ordance to what he visualized the character to be like. In addition to the roles of and as well as , what Eric cares about most is the role of "the girl Andy encounter on the bus." Therefore, this role will be selected only after most of the leading roles have been identified so he could choose her slowly. This role is also the role that received the biggest number of applications. Although this role has only a few scenes, it is still the female lead. Therefore, this role even attracted the interest of a few A-level actresses, and because there are only a few scenes, a few of them even expressed intention of participating for no money, they only wanted to increase their presence in Hollywood using this highly anticipated film. Unfortunately, after Eric saw their information he had to refuse because they weren''t right for the role. The current cast of is solid, so there is no need to amodate an A-level actress who does not conform to the character image, just for the sake of adding another star to the list of A-level stars in the film, that might hurt the film instead of helping. He believes that the girl must be able to make people eyes light up, he wanted her to make a deep impression on the audience, in this brief appearance. In his past life, the actress wasn''t able to do it, all audience could remember is that there is a warm encounter on the bus, but the actress herself was not remembered. Although in the years after , the actress acted in a lot of films, but he still can''t remember her clearly. The afternoon auditions were still nd, but the list of alternative actresses got a few more names on it. After a busy day, Eric returned to his mansion in Beverly Hills, he found the house empty, so he switched On the TV in the living room and let it idly y the news, and started preparing dinner, after finishing hee back to the living room to slowly enjoy. Eric did not like solitude in his past life, he was a very lively person. But unfortunately, when he came to this world, he strangely found himself attracted to this kind of atmosphere. The solitude help calms his mind and body, and help him think calmly. So when Drew suggested he hire a servant he immediately rejected her proposal. Of course, it is possible that this change in behavior is caused by the original owner of this body, or maybe he just has some kind of primitive and instinctive sense of territory hidden deep inside him. When he was cleaning the dished, he heard the phone ringing in the living room. Picking up the phone, he didn''t immediately hear the sound of the caller, all he heard was the sound of a bunch of girls squealing. He vaguely heard Drew''s voice mixed in, smiling he patiently waited. ... ... In a girls'' dormitory, at this time everyone should be getting ready to sleep, but because the night owl wasn''t nning to sneak out at night to y today, she was still wearing her pajamas. Instead, she was having a party in her dorm room with a bunch of girls. After learning that Drew was going to call Eric, all the girls surrounded her with curiosity in their eyes, they have always been curious about the rtionship between her and Eric. Seeing the gossip girls surrounding her like a bunch of piranhas, she quickly decided to kick them out of her room, after locking her door, Drew returned to pick up the phone: "Eric, it ''s me, I would like to ask how audition went today?" Eric said the truth: "Her performance was awful, Drew, did Gwh ask you?" "Yes," when she heard his evaluation, she wasn''t surprised at all: "No wonder she called me in a hurry after her audition today, she wanted me to ask you for a second chance to audition." "I think her performance will be the same even if she tries again, plus her image is too far from how the character should look like. Otherwise, she can try again, the character doesn''t need much acting anyway. Drew, if you really have a good rtionship with her? I can help her get a few roles in the future inter movies, and if you want, I can give her a secondary role in ." "No, no, no, of course not," Drew quickly refused: "My rtionship with her isn''t that good." Puzzled Eric said: "Aren''t both of you the goddaughters of ?" "This is the only thing we have inmon," Drew said in a somewhat sad tone: "Gwh father is a film producer, her mother is an actress, and she has been carefree since childhood. I''ve met her several times before, at house, she always acted as proud as a princess. As for me, I have always been taken by my mother to go work shooting Ad and movies to earn money to support the family. In fact, she always looked down on me, If not this time she needed my help, she would never have taken the initiative to contact me." Drew words made him feel sad for her, leaning back against the sofa Eric sighed and advised her: "Drew, it''s different now. You don''t have to amodate any person as long as I''m still alive, you''re my little princess now. Next time you meet a nuisance, don''t give them face, you don''t have to worry, I''ll always have your back if anything happens." On the other side of the phone, he heard giggling a few times, then he started hearing the sound of the bed squeaking, she was probably jumping and rolling on the bed. When the phone line almost got cut off, shees to a stop and said: "Eric, this is the most beautiful love talk I''ve ever heard, I love you too." "... ..." "Well, well, I know you do love me, so you don''t have to say it" Drew''s voice again be energetic: "So did you select the actress for the role?" "I''m not sure yet. It''ll take another day and a half to go through all the auditions, and if I''m still not sure, then we will have a third round of auditions." "Oh, well, if there''s a third round, give another chance." Eric frowned: "didn''t you just say that she ... ..." Drew quickly interrupted him, and said with a smirk: "I just want Gwh to owe me a favor, in spite of her narcissistic and self-righteous character." Ericughed: "well if there is a third round of auditions, I''ll tell her." ... ... "Miss Lopez, thank you for your audition, we''ll let you know as soon as possible." Once again, after the woman went out, Eric drew an X behind the girl''s name. Coming over, Nicole saw Eric''s drawing a big red X on the name of the girl: "Eric, I think this girl isn''t bad ah, especially ... ... especially ... ..." Eric nced at Nicole and said: "Don''t tell me you have a fetish for big butts, do you? When you saw that woman, your eyes started to shine." Everyone in the audition room suddenly burst intoughter, staring awkwardly at his colleaguesughing, Nicole retorted: "I''m a photographer, It''s my job to appreciate beauty, and record it." The Deputy Director Royce could finally seize the opportunity to ridicule Nicole like he did to him the day before: "Guys have I ever told you about the time Nicole almost got to appreciate a big butt, we were in a bar, he ... ..." "Royce, shut up, I''ll kill you." He hurriedly rushed to cover Royce''s mouth, the two were entangled together for a few moments until the crowd broke them apart. Eric smiled and tapped the table. "All right, hurry up and let the next girle in. if we can finish today auditions early, we can get ready for the next job." After Eric finished giving his orders, he opened the next actress file, and before he could read her name, the girl entered the room, before he could look up at her, he clearly felt that all the men around him took a deep breath. Looking up, the first things he could think of is. Stunning! And his second thought was. She''s mine! ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 111 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter, please tell me in thements.) ... ... The girl''s face was delicate and wless, as if carved by an artist, raven ck hair, fair face, high nose, she was wearing an office girl''s professional suit, and holding a white handbag, when she sat in the chair opposite him, she exudes a quiet and beautiful atmosphere. From his past life memories, he remembered that she starred in a film called in 1984, when she was just a thirteen-year-old girl. Many yearster, she also starred in another movie called in 2001, that had big sess making more than $313 million at the box office. Instead of looking at the information in his hand, Eric blurted out: "Miss Connelly, please introduce yourself first." "Hello, my name is . I am neen years old. I am currently studying at Yale University in Ennd ... ..." Her voice was slightly hoarse, adding to her charm, in the following Q & A session, remained calm, it was until the performance that a problem appeared, she has appeared in many films, but she had no professional training. So, her acting was still very prone to exaggeration, she even had some facial paralysis when performing. But it didn''t matter to him, who can run just after being born, she can be trained. The key is, Eric was sure that can definitely make the audience eyes light up. Moreover, she can make the audience feelpassion and sympathy for her when the robber takes her hostage, and in the scene where she leans on Andy, the weak expression she disyed in this scene was lethal, he almost wanted to give her a hug. After her performance was finished, Eric made a note beside Jennifer Connelly''s name, then looked up and said: "Miss Connolly, can I invite you to dinner tonight?" Hearing his words all the staff in the audition room were stunned, he was too direct, it''s an unspoken rule in Hollywood to avoid this kind of thing in auditions. who was about to leave the room also was stunned, the expression on her face changed a few times before turning back to normal, she specifically came back from Italy, just for this audition, but in doing so, she made the director of a small film called unhappy. But if she can get this role, she canpletely not care about , going to Europe to shoot art films, this was a bottleneck many actresses in Hollywood face, but she had to choose this path. European films in this era haven''tpletely declined yet. So, many actors are expected to shoot European movies, and once they get the award, they rush back to their hometown, to start developing their career in Hollywood. If he invited her in private, might not have too much hesitation, but under the watchful eyes of so many people, the proud girl had a difficult time putting aside her modesty. So she was in a dilemma. "I''m sorry, I was abrupt, Miss Connally, thank you for your audition, we will inform you as soon as possible, you can leave now." Eric really regret that he invited her is front of everyone, he intended to rescue the girl and let her save face, but thought he took her hesitation as a refusal, If so, then she won''t be able to get the role. Standing still for a few moments, she didn''t push the door to leave, hesitating for a few seconds Jennifer said in a faint voice: "Mr. Williams, I ... ... I''d love to." "What?" Eric, who had already bowed his head and started written on a paper, raised his head again because the girl''s voice was so small he didn''t hear her clearly. Her face turned red with embarrassment, she really didn''t want to repeat her words again in front of so many people. Nicole couldn''t help but warn him: "Hey, Eric, don''t go too far, the girl agreed." Eric quickly reacted, and hurriedly nodded his head: "That''s really good, Miss Connery." he quickly wrote a series of numbers on a piece of paper and handed it to the girl, and said: "I hope you can contact me, at seven o''clock this evening, I''lle pick you up. After all, the audition must go on, many girls are still waiting." Jennifer quickly folded the paper and put it in her handbag, lowered her head and hastily left the room. "Hey, Eric, is she the one?" Nicole couldn''t help but ask. Eric nodded and said: "If there are no surprises, then she is the one." "Then do we have to continue auditioning?" "Of course," Eric started looking at the next actress information: "There are so many people still waiting, perhaps, we can find someone who is even better than her, so go ahead and call the next one." Everyone in the audition room knew that in Eric mind he has already chosen her, so in the next auditions, most of them didn''t even bother to pay attention. At five o''clock in the afternoon, Thest girl left the room, as the door closed behind her, everyone started packing their thing to leave as if the ce was on fire. ... ... Eric went back to his office, tidied up, and was about to leave when Jeffrey knocked at his door and walked in. After handing him a document, Jeffrey said: "Eric, this is thetest results of our negotiations, has made some concessions, the conditions for and are the same, they want $5 million plus 12% of the profits each." Eric took a look at the information in the document, and said: "Will, Jeffrey, Don''t talk to them for the next few days, let''s wait for another week, in Friday will be released, I''m sure that next week will be very lively." "I also wanted to tell you this," Jeffreyughed: "most of the critics who watched the preview of all said the film isn''t good. As a result, in the papers half of the voices are praising it and the other half are criticizing it, although recently United Artists tried to hype the film by saying that abandoned because he found that is better, But the effect isn''t good, it is estimated that many people are waiting to see the joke." Smirking Eric said: "who cares, anyway, as long as flop, will no longer have the energy to continue fighting with us. Otherwise, both and will not agree." "Why don''t we try to contact actors from the other brokeragepany''s, and make it look like we are looking for other protagonists?" Eric shook his head and said, "Not yet, at least not for the time being, let''s see what happens next." They didn''t talk about this CAA things too much, after that, they both left the office, no one has thought that was like a sting fuse, The noise caused by it was much more than Eric had expected. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 112 (I would like to thank everyone for all thements, and if you find any mistakes in any chapter, please tell me in thements.) ... ... Eric purple Lamborghinie to a stop in front of the hotel was staying in, as he got out of the car, he saw Jennifer who was wearing a pale blue dress standing outside the hotel with another middle-aged man waiting for him. As Eric got off the car, the two quickly found him, and brisklye over to greet him. Jennifer smiled reluctantly at Eric, while the middle-aged man enthusiastically stretched his hand out and introduced herself: "Hello, Mr. Williams, I''m Miss Connelly''s agent, Jim Lester." "Hello, Mr. Lester," Eric politely shook his hand, then turned his attention to Jennifer and said: "Miss Connelly, are you ready to go, I''ve booked the restaurant." Jennifer felt that Eric''s eyes and tone were too aggressive as if he regards her as one of his personal belongings, not knowing what to do, she looked at her agent for help. She began her debut at the age of thirteen, because of her perfect appearance, more than once she met some men who yearned to have her, but no one acted full of arrogant like Eric did. She felt that if she allowed herself to be alone with him, all the methods she used to deal with men would be of no avail. Eric followed her gaze at Jim Lester, who was standing beside her: "Mr. Lester, would you like toe along?" Lester did not dare to look at Jennifer cry for help, Smiling he shook his head and said: "Of course not, Mr. Williams. How could I possibly disturb the date between the two of you?". Speaking up to here, the middle-aged man hesitantly asked: "Mr. Williams, Can you tell me what the effect of J''s audition today?" It felt somewhat strange hearing him call her her J, the nickname doesn''t suit her. Putting aside those thoughts he went straight to the point and said: "If there is no ident! This role will be hers." Even who was skeptical about him, couldn''t help but look at him with surprise, let alone the ecstatic Lester. As a man, and also as her broker, he was aware that Eric was trying to woo Jennifer, so he was confident Eric would keep his words in the future. He knows that usually when Eric Williams discover a good actor, he will try to bring them into his brokerage firm. And as a third line artists broker, Lester knew that if he didn''t take this chance, he would never see such an opportunity again. "Well, Mr. Williams, I think UTA is a promising brokerage firm, so I would like to move over with my artists. What do you say?" looked with surprise at her broker, Lester didn''t mention the matter before, which made her somewhat dissatisfied with his decision. But she chose not to confront him about it in front of Eric. At the same time, she worriedly looked at the young man in front of her, She knew, that UTA was Eric''spany. So, once Eric agrees, she certainly would not have the leeway to refuse, unless she didn''t want the role in . But deep down, she resisted joining the UTA, not because she isn''t optimistic about the UTA, but because Jennifer felt that, she will be just like a sheep entering the lion''s den. Eric also noted Jennifer surprised and worried expression, with keen interest he looked at the stout middle-aged man in front of him. After thinking about it for a moment, he said: "Mr. Lester, you are a wise man, you know how to seize the opportunity, and you''ve made the right choice by joining the UTA." He did intend to dig into the UTA, but he was going to let Kapoor take care of her. However, since the girl''s agent took the initiative to mention transferring, Eric was also happy to ept. And since Lester wanted to continue managing the girls, he will let him try it. After all, Eric can''t put all the people he is optimistic about into Kapoor''s hands, plus even now Kapoor was barely keeping up with the ones in his hands now, and if Lester can''t prove his strength in the future, he will fire him. "By the way, how many artists do you have now?" Eric asked, remembering what Lester had said. "Four, including J." Lester immediately said, he was going to start introducing the other three, but was interrupted by Eric: "give up the other three people, at this point in time UTA can only look after Miss Connery." Lester struggled for a bit in his decision. He has a good rtionship with the three actors, one of them is a brother of a friend, who especially asked him to take care of, but, thinking of his future, Lester quickly made his decision: "no problem, Mr. Williams." After handling this matter, Lester eagerly took the initiative to leave, leaving alone with Eric. ... ... Starting the car, Eric looked at the girl sitting nkly in the Co-pilot seat and suddenly leaned over. Jennifer noticed Eric''s movements and immediately raised her hands in front of her body and asked in horror: "you! ... ... What are you doing?" "Why are you scared," Eric said as his hand crossed over her body and pulled the co-pilot seat belt: "I can''t drive this car safely, so it''s safer to fasten your seat belt." "I''ll do it myself," she said, and reached for the seat belt, but in a fluster instead of grabbing the seat belt, she caught Eric hand, in shock she immediately shrank back in her seat as if she touched fire. After fastening her seat belt, Eric sat back in his seat, but he didn''t immediately start the car. Instead, he twisted his head and looked at the restless girl sitting beside him for a few moments. "Are you afraid of me?" After a while, Eric finally asked. Unconsciously Jennifer nodded her head, but after realizing what she did, she quickly shook her head no: "Mr. Williams, I ... ... I didn''t mean that." "You can call me Eric." In a fluster, she looked out of the window and gently nodded her head. "Come on, look at me." Eric''s tone turned a little softer, so she involuntarily turned her head and looked at him with eyes filled with doubt. Eric suddenly stretched out his hand behind her head and leaned forward and kissed her delicate red lips. Eric''s move instantly petrified , she subconsciously put her hands on his chest, but she forgets to push him away. Feeling the young man sucking on her lips, and his tongue trying to get into her mouth. After Eric released her when the kiss ended, her eyes brimmed with tears. "How could you do that?" her first reaction was to give Eric a p, and then get off to leave, but she found herself tied up in her seat not able to move. Scrambling to undo the seat belt, Eric stepped on the throttle and drove the Lamborghini onto the road. But she still said: "Mr. Williams, would you please pull over I want to get off." "Come on, be a good girl and fasten your seat belt." "No! ... ... I want to get off!" She stubbornly raised her voice. Eric was about to say something to calm her when suddenly a convertible Mercedes-Benz sports car crossed over the middle line and drove closer to them. Swearing in anger Eric started Honking the Horn at them, they almost hit his car, maybe because the punks in the car saw the beautiful girl in the co-pilot seat. Their car stayed close to them, and started whistling at her, in anger he stepped on the throttle and drove faster. After the Mercedes-Benz car had disappeared from his Rear-view mirror, Eric found that his body has be covered in cold sweat, looking at the frightened girl beside him, Eric said in a serious tone: "Fasten your seat belt." didn''t dare resist this time, she wasn''t going to treat her life as a joke, so she obediently put on the seat belt, but she still stubbornly turned her head and refused to look at him. ... ... Ten minutester the purple Lamborghinie to a stop in front of a famous Italian restaurant in Beverly Hills when the doorman saw the expensive car he eagerly got up and walked over to open the Lamborghini door. Getting out of the car Eric handed the keys and a tip to the doorman, and Then he went to open Jennifer car door. Maybe she calmed down because she spent all the time on the road ignoring him, she obediently held his outstretched arm and followed him to the restaurant. "Why do woman always order a sd, Why don''t you order something else?" Eric couldn''t help but say after hearing her order. Jennifer nced at the waiter standing next to her and said softly, "I''m on a diet." Giving up on pursuing her, he instead he ordered his dinner, and a bottle of wine, and give back the menu to the waiter, After the waiter left Eric said: "All right, girl, smile a little, You make me feel guilty for what I did." "I don''t believe you." she bluntly gave Eric a stern look, and said: "and stop talking like you are older than me, You...... You''re only a few months older than me." "It''s an honor, knowing that you know when my birthday is, I''m sure we will get along well in the future. I also remember your birthday, the 12th of December, isn''t that right?." Eric''s words made her a little uneasy: "How do you know my birthday?" "From your file," Smiling he started telling her some lies to make her rx, "I know a lot about you, your first film was released in 1984. When I saw you in that movie, I instantly had a crush on you, then today the girl I dreamed about appeared in front of me." No woman does not lovepliments, let alonepliments from a famous young director, embarrassed she bowed her head and didn''t dare look him in the eyes. She quickly forgave him for the kiss he stole in the car. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 113 TN: Thank you, Mr. Garcia, for sponsoring this chapter. ... ... Eric continued trying to wow her, "Then there was Sarah in , to see more of you, I bought the video tape, but unfortunately I lost it. Oh, and yourtest work , I like it, too." Hearing Eric mention herst movie, Jennifer was a little ashamed, "Some Girls" was her first attempt at arger scale performance, so she was subject to a lot of conservative criticism by the critics. The reason why she starred in the film was that, after box office failure, for a long time she couldn''t find a job. She even tried going to Japan to seek for new opportunities, she shot severalmercials there, and even recorded two pop songs for the Japanese market: "Monologue of Love" and "Message of Love" she sang in phic Japanese as she didn''t know how to speak thenguage. But that still didn''t help her career. After returning to the United States, to continue staying in Hollywood, she had to shoot or else she would have to go back home. She was just a teenager girl, so after hearing Eric ttering words, she gradually put down her guard and opened her heart to him. After she had calmed down, she was just like a chatterbox, she became very open about her personal life, and as dinner went on, their talk started to be more and more intimate. After dinner, she put her arm around Eric''s arm and walked with him to the parking lot, once she sat in the Lamborghini, once again she was nervous he won''t bring her back to her hotel, what would she do then? Should she turn him down? Or should she ept his invitation? But perhaps... Feeling nervous her hand unconsciously started scratching at her handbag, when she tried to nce at Eric secretly, she ended up making eye contact with him. In embarrassment, she quickly averted her eyes. Smiling at how cute she was acting Eric still wanted to spend some time with her, so he said: "Before I take you back, let''s go see a movie first." like someone on the death penalty list suddenly received a notice saying that his execution was dyed, Jennifer nodded her head in excitement, realizing that her reaction was quite excessive she smiled in embarrassment. Seeing that beautiful smile, Eric said: "You should smile more. I like seeing you smile." ... ... Starting the car, Eric drove a fewps in the streets of Beverly Hills trying to find a luxurious cinema, when he finally found one he stopped his Lamborghini outside and looked at the row of movie posters, the first film he saw was the newly released . Parking his car in the parking lot, he first walked her to the cinema lobby, then he went to the ticket booth and bought two tickets. "What movie is it?" Seeing Ericing back to her side, Jennifer asked, but after seeing the movie ticket in his hand, she blurted out: " isn''t that new film, in the newspaper they said ... ..." Speaking up to here, she quickly shut her mouth. Eric took her by the hand, as they walked into the cinema, and said in amusement: "What did they say in the newspapers?" "They ... ... They stated that would certainly be able to exceed your movie ." "It seems that to create some hype for their movie, they will even use these cheap tactics," said Eric,ughing: "So, what do you think of what the tabloids are saying." "I believe that the analysis of the newspaper is very reasonable," Jennifer disproved weakly. "Oh, wait a minute. Tell me more about this press report. I''m very interested." ... ... As the two were having this conversation and buying coke and popcorn, they werepletely oblivious to the man not far behind them. The thin, short white man with a camera was frantically taking pictures of them, and he became even more, excited when he saw the two entering screening hall, the speed his index finger that was pressing the shutter seems to have be extremely fast. When Eric and Jennifer walked into the movie theater, Victor the short white man was reluctant to put down his camera. He was a Los Angeles fashion magazine reporter, responsible for the fashion pages, many times he hade in contact with many stars. So, when Victor encounters valuable scandals, he doesn''t mind acting like a paparazzi to earn more money. Meeting Eric and today waspletely an ident, because of working overtime, Victor was driving home when he saw Eric cool purple Lamborghini, so he tailed the car trying to take pictures. As a fashion magazine editor, after watching the movie he could at a nce recognize this type of car, he knew that this car model would be listed on the market only after a few months. So he thought if he could take some pictures, and write an article about the limited edition car, he could make a quick buck. Because of the movie , These days, Lamborghini has almost be the world''s hottest sports car brand in the market, leaving even Ferrari and other carspany''s behind. After a few minutes of carefully chasing the purple Lamborghini, the car finally stopped at the entrance of a cinema. Victor was going to wait until the owner of the car leaves then start taking pictures, but he found that the man who got out of the car is the famous young director Eric Williams. This discovery didn''t excite Victor too much; everyone knows that Eric and Lamborghini had cooperated in advertising the car, in this case, getting the limited edition car before it hit the market isn''t a strange thing. If Eric was the only one to get out of the car, Victor decided not to mention Eric''s name in the article, and keep the owner of the car unknown to added some mystery to the story and make it more appealing to the eye of the reader. But next, a gorgeous girles out from the co-driver side, giving Victor a mental shock. The girl wasn''t or , nor was it Eric''s girlfriend , it was another beautiful girl. Although wasn''t very famous, Victor was still aware of who she was. Eric Williams''s private life has always been the object of interest of the paparazzi. But unfortunately, after he became famous, he neither went to nightclubs or bars, and he didn''t have any hidden bad habits. Although there was a disturbance when it was known that he had a girlfriend named , the news quickly subsided, after that, there was that famous photo with them hugging in the streets of New York. In this case, although the paparazzi were curious about his personal life. But because the boy always keeps himself away from trouble the paparazzi gradually stopped chasing him, Hollywood has so many newsworthy stars; no one will spend months chasing Eric just to get a scoop. So today this scandal was all his, no paparazzi will take this scoop from him, swapping the used roll of photographic film in the camera with a new one, he patiently waited outside the cinema. While waiting his heart was tangled, should the scandal focus on Eric and his new girlfriend , or should he focus on Eric watching , or should he split it into two different topics? ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 114 After sitting in the theater seat, Eric and chatted about what the tabloid is saying about until the lights in the theater dimmed down and the movie started ying. yed the character of Dalton a professional "cooler" with a mysterious past who is enticed from his current job at a club in New York City by a bar owner to help him rectify his increasingly chaotic club/bar, in Jasper, Missouri. The first twenty minutes of the film didn''t make any sense, woman flirting with men, bar fights everywhere, and Richard Gere always showing a cold face in every scene, acting as if he is tougher than everyone else. As an action movie, at least the film should start with an intense fight to attract the audience attention, right? But the screenwriter apparently didn''t bother to do so, instead, in the first fight a wannabe gangster only scratched Richard''s arm, and then the romance plot starts when he goes to the hospital for stitches, and end up striking up a friendship with Dr. Elizabeth, which develops into a romantic rtionship. But this scene did not cause the audience to resonate with the character because performance was so rxed as if the doctor is sewing clothes, rather than stitching his wound, he didn''t even make a sound, or show in his expression that he is in pain, nothing at all. So although the scene is so bloody, Eric could still hear someone behind him chewing popcorn. Then, after arriving at the chaotic club/bar outside the city, the protagonist still didn''t do a thing he just watched, after understanding the cause of the chaos. The lead actor summons all the staff to a meeting, fired several unruly and corrupt employees, then opened the bar back again, and everything started going smoothly just like that. Then, the club/bar business started Growing, causing the small town bully Wesley to try to take over the bar, Wesley sought to recruit the protagonist to be one of his henchmen. And of course, he was rejected by the leading character. Then, more than 80 minutester, the film finally ushered in some fights, or maybe the director finally remembered that this is an action movie. After the protagonist rejected the bad guy Wesley, hees back with a crowd of thugs to destroy the club/bar, causing a sh. Although the director tried to add some Chinese martial arts choreography to the fights, in general, most of the fights were just punches and kicks, this was also first time shooting this kind of film, so as expected his fighting moves were bad, you can even say he looked ridiculous. The end of the movie was like this, the town bully Brad Wesley, began to do some evil things in the small town, to show his status as the ruler of the small town, forcing the protagonist toe out to stop him. First, he burned the auto parts store because he refuses to give ground to Wesley''s persistent extortion demands, then the next day, car dealership owner bes Wesley''s next victim when he also refuses to pay. As a result, Wesley has one of his thugs, demolish the dealership and crush four station wagons in the showroom with his monster truck as the protagonist and his friends look on with contempt. In thest ten minutes, he finally decides to settle the score with Wesley, he single-handedly dispatched all Wesley men one by one, and finally decide to kill Wesley at the end. When hees face-to-face with Wesley, the protagonist gains the upper hand in their fight and prepares to finish Wesley in the same brutal manner as he did to his henchmen, but decides against it. Everyone thought the protagonist will resolutely get rid of Wesley and then end the film, but he let him go, he smashed his ce, killed his closest friend, but the protagonist bes soft-hearted and lets him go ... what nonsense is this. Just after the false protagonist releases him and walks away, Wesley seizes the opportunity to reach for a gun. But he was promptly shot to death by the real protagonists of the film, a group oppressed town residents, whoe to save the false protagonist. At this point, the two-hour action movie finally ended. The lighting of the auditorium had not yet lit up, and Eric could already hear the voices of the audience around him. ... ... "That monster truck was really too domineering, Avril, what do you say we buy a car like that? " "This is Los Angeles. The police won''t allow you to drive that kind of car on the roads unless you want us to go back to the farm in Texas." "Well, forget it. I don''t want to go back to Texas. When the old guy hangs up, I''ll sell the farm, then we can buy a beautiful house in Santa Monica." "If your father heard what you said, he will kill you." ... ... "Hey, Victor, how many songs do you recognize?" " Don''t Throw Stones, I Sold My Soul to Rock and Roll, On the Road Again, and when the little blonde girl was dancing, Hoochie Coochie Man by . we don''t have to remember these songs, soon the original soundtrack will be released." "I just can''t wait. The soundtrack is great. I intend to buy all albums when I go back." ... ... With the lights on, the auditorium be noisier, so Eric could only hear the audience brokenments. "It was shit, I can''t believe I was fooled by the propaganda in the newspaper when we go back let''s unsubscribe from the "Los Angeles Daily News" I would rather watch again than watch this film." " will even give up to y this garbage movie. He must be out of his mind." "They call this fighting, and they even tried to imitate Bruce Lee, Lee can jump and kick a three meter high light bulb on the ceiling, Richard Gere can''t even do good high kick, he isn''t even as good as the supporting actors who y as the viins." "Although Richard Gere performance has no bright spots, I don''t think the movie was that bad. At least the girls are beautiful, and the music also was great." ... ... "Hey, Mr.wil ... ... Eric, let''s go." who was sitting next to Eric noticed that he had been listening to what the audience is saying about the move, so she chose not to disturb him, only when most of the people in the auditorium were gone, did she gently pull on Eric''s cuff, breaking his concentration. "Ah," Eric recovered, stood up and walked out with her, and asked: "so what do you think of the film?" Jennifer shook her head in disappointment, and unconsciously held Eric''s arm, and gave a one-wordment: "Noisy." They talked in a low voice, as they walked out of the screening hall. Victor who was waiting outside didn''t know the length of the . So he spent more than ny minutes outside the screening hall staring at the exit door, fearing that he will miss Eric and if he left the ce for too long, he had to go to the toilet once, but he quickly came back. Finally, after nearly two hours, the audience starteding out of the screening hall, Victor held the camera to take the pictures, but after waiting for more than two minutes, Eric didn''te out. "They couldn''t have gone out when I went to the restroom," Victor muttered in confusion, just when he started losing hoop, he saw a handsome man and a beautiful womaning out hand in hand. To get the best results, Victor quickly turned on the camera sh. Click click click The bright light of the camera shed several times in cinema hall, When Eric realized the situation was bad and attempted to raise his hand in front of him, it was toote. Originally the Movie theater security guards won''t stop reporters from doing interviews inside the cinema hall, this can bring some publicity to the cinema. But using the sh is not the same, this can cause the customers some trouble, so after Victor took a few pictures, two security guards quickly rushed over to stop him, and escorted Victor out. Eric patted Jennifer''s hand and gave her a reassuring look, looked around, then went toward the theater''s front desk. "Hello, sir. May I have your name, please? ... you are that ... Eric, wow, Mr. Williams, I didn''t expect you''de to our cinema to watch movies. My name is Linda, Linda ude." The front desk girl Linda excitedly stretched out her small hand and shook Eric''s hand who didn''t know how to deal with the super energetic girl. Eric withdrew his hand from her firm grip and said, "Well, Linda, you must have noticed the trouble we are in, so could you take us out from the other exit?" "No problem, Mr. Williams, pleasee with me." Linda quickly nodded her head like a chicken, and led Eric and Jennifer to the back door, while her little mouth kept chattering and asking a variety of questions. "Mr. Williams, is thisdy your new girlfriend? How beautiful!" heard the question and looked up at Eric with anticipation and anxiety. Eric knew that in this case there is only one right answer, or else he will risk embarrassing the girl, so he did not hesitate to nod and say, "Yes." "Mr. Williams, when are you going to start shooting , I"m a big fan of yours, I always watch your movies as soon as theye out." "I''m not sure yet, but probably in the summer." "Mr. Williams, which movie did youe to watch tonight?" "... ..." If he weren''t sure about her upation, Eric would have suspected that she was an undercover paparazzi, on their walk to the back door Linda asked more than ten questions, Eric could only answer the barrage of questions using short words. "Here it is," said Linda, referring to the security door in front of her, as she opened the door, she summoned her courage and said: "Mr. Williams, ah, can you give me a signature." "Of course," Eric nodded. "But I don''t have a pen or paper." "I do," Linda took out a pen from her the chest pocket, but she still didn''t have paper, after a few moment of searching all her pockets, she raised her arm and said, "Mr. Williams, please sign my sleeve." "Okay. " Eric quickly signed his name on the shirt fabric. and left through the back door and walked out of the cinema. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 115 The back door theye out of led them to a quiet and secluded alley, that leads to a street 10 meters on the left side, as they walked out of the ally, a small figure quickly darted over to them. After Victor was escorted out of the cinema by the security guards, he waited for a while, but he found that Eric did note out. Making a crucial decision Victor quickly ran back to the back alley, Eric really underestimated this paparazzi rookie, just as he thought of the back door strategy to deal with that paparazzi, the shrewd paparazzi already started moving. Victor didn''t take pictures this time, he already had enough pictures of two people in his camera. Instead, he walked over to them and put a tape recorder in front of Eric''s face, and asked: "Eric, is Miss your new girlfriend?" Eric didn''t answer. Instead, he pulled on Jennifer''s hand and quickly walked to the parking lot. But because she was wearing high heels, they were doomed not to walk fast. Victor closely followed Eric and kept asking questions: "Eric, why did youe to watch , are you worried about it threatening your film at the box office." "When are you going to start shooting ? Did and encounter the same strong opposition from like did?" Although Eric is a rookie at dealing with the paparazzi. But he firmly remembered the most useful tactic to use when dealing with them, and that is, in the face of the sudden emergence of paparazzi, no matter what the other side asked, and no matter how he provokes you, it is best not to say a word. Because no matter what you say, the paparazzi will distort your words and interpret them ording to their wishes. Seeing that nothing wille out of Eric''s mouth, Victor shifted his targets to Jennifer: "Jennifer, when did you start dating Eric, don''t you mind that Eric also has another girlfriend named ?" "Jennifer, will you be the heroine in ?" "Jennifer, are you going to move into Eric''s Beverly Hills mansion?" "... ..." In the face of Victor barrage of questions, Jennifer''s face slowly started showing an impatient look, she was about to say something, but unfortunately, they reached the Lamborghini, opening the passenger side door, Jennifer quickly hopped in. "Hey, Eric, why are you so rude to Miss Jennifer? Does that mean she isn''t your girlfriend? What''s your rtionship? Is it some kind of deal? Eric, Eric ... ... " Seeing the Lamborghini scissor doors closing behind Eric, Victor patted the sports car ss window and raised his voice to ask questions, but unfortunately, he was doomed to receive no answers. Soon after that the sports car slowly drove out of the parking lot and disappeared into the traffic. Along the way, Jennifer remained silent with her head bowed, Eric is neither a gentleman nor a patient person. Originally he did all those things tonight, the sports car, the movie, and the dinner were all just him trying to woo the girl so she will let down her guard so he can take her to bed. Unfortunately, the one thing he didn''t want to happen tonight happened, a lot of the questions asked by the paparazzi were implying that he as the director and her the actress had a transaction, which hurt her feelings, so Eric can only temporarily give up on taking her to bed. He didn''t want to spend money on Victor to shut him up. After all, the other side is a paparazzi, not to mention he had a tape recorder On, so he didn''t risk opening his mouth. If he tried to buy the paparazzi silence and failed in the negotiation, the original trip to watch a movie will turn to something bigger. ... ... After the Lamborghini stopped at the gate of the hotel where was staying. She sat there quietly, not rushing to get off as if wondering what she should do. Eric didn''t hurry her, he just sat there drumming a piano-like beat with his fingers on the steering wheel, he thought she had just been frightened by the paparazzi and needed to sit back and rx. After a while, finally raised his head, looked Eric in the eyes with all the courage she could muster and said: "Mr. Williams, you''re not breaking up with that girl named , right?" Eric''s finger on the steering wheel suddenly stopped the drumming, after hesitating for a moment, he nodded his head and said: "Yes." Although she didn''t have too much hope, a sad look still appeared on her face: "Well, Mr. Williams, I think, I''m not suitable for the role, you should consider other people." "Jennifer, If this because of what that paparazzi said, then I won''t pester you anymore," Eric made up his mind to try to stabilize her mind first. Not surprisingly, a look of struggle emerged on her face, but after a few moments her pride finally prevail over her thirst for fame: "I''m sorry, Eric, even if nothing happens between us in the future, the tabloid will say that I slept with you just to get the role. I don''t want to be seen as ... ... A woman like that." Eric stared at her for a few moment, and said: "well, as you wish." Although he was overbearing, he wasn''t a bully. Since she was so determined, Eric will not try to stop her. Hearing Eric''s words, did not have a happy look, she knows what it means to give up this opportunity, perhaps for a long time, her career will be at a low ebb. She was about to push the door to leave, when Eric suddenly called out to her, "Jennifer, wait a minute." Jennifer sat back and looked at him, as he searched his pockets for something, he was searching for a business card or something to write with. Giving up Eric reached for her handbag and took out a lipstick, forcibly pulled her hand and quickly wrote a string of numbers, and said: "this is my home phone number, you can call me anytime if you need any help in the future." Jennifer looked at the string of numbers on her hand, and nodded her head as if to say thanks, then opened the door to leave. ... ... When she got back to her hotel room, felt faint and weary, putting aside her handbag on the coffee table, she quickly took off her dress and underwear and walked into the bathroom naked. Turning on the tap, she looked nkly at the phone number for a long time. Eventually, she decided not to wash it off. Sighing, she returned to the living room to find her address book to record the number, then returned to the bathroom to take a bath. More than 20 minutester, she returned to the living room wearing a bathrobe and a towel covering her wet hair. Before she could reach for the hair dryer, she heard a knock at the door. As soon as she opened the door, her broker asked, "Jane, I just heard a waiter say you came back, how did things go?" when he heard that she returned, he immediately had an uneasy feeling in his heart. "I''m sorry, Jim. I turned down the role." "You! ... ..." The thing he feared the most has be a reality, his lips opened and closed a few times, but no soundes out, but after calming his heart he said: "Jane, you are too impulsive. Do you know how many girls submitted their resume to the Firefly, more than 2800, but only 200 got the chance to audition. I heard that Eric Williams also rejected a few Hollywood actress. Listen to these figures, do you have any idea how lucky you are." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 116 Jennifer became speechless after listening to Lester''s words, she was aware of her rash decision, but she still didn''t regret it. "Jane, Eric Williams only asked you to eat a meal, even if heter made some excessive demands, if you don''t want to, you can just be tactful and refuse. Although he is young, he is still a big shot in Hollywood, so even if he act outrageous, you don''t have to turn down the role?" "He didn''t do anything to me, but ... ... when I was with him we were photographed by the paparazzi," Jennifer exined in annoyance: "I don''t want to be seen as the kind of woman who will sell her body for fame." Lester who followed into the room sat on the sofa and exined in a Sincere voice: "Jane, Hollywood will only remember the winner, as long as you be a big star, no one is going to care about what you''ve done. You don''t even have to open your mouth; there are lots of people who will help you cover up everything, this is the real reality. Moreover, many women in Hollywood are willing to apany ugly old men to get a chance like this, By contrast, Eric Williams is both young and handsome, what happened with him should be an eptable thing?" "But he has a formal girlfriend." squeaked. "Then steal him from her," Lester said in frustration: "Do you have no confidence in your appearance. Jane, I also know that he has a formal girlfriend, but so what, they are not engaged, not to mention they have been separated for a long time, this is the best time for you to snatch him." "Ah, ah!" Jennifer grew more and more tangled, suddenly she couldn''t help but threw herself on the sofa, pulled a pillow over her head, and said in a muffled voice: "Jim, don''t force me to do it." "All right," Lester said when he saw that she wouldn''t bend. he has been her broker for so many years, so he was clear about Jennifer temperament, in helplessness he said: "Well, you''re going to have to call the director of tomorrow morning to apologize. because you wanted to catch this audition, the filming of was done in a rush, if he needs to take more shots, we''ll have to go back to Rome." "I know." her voice came from under the pillow. "Don''t answer so offhandedly, Jane," Lester said solemnly: "since you give up this opportunity, we don''t know when you''ll be able to get a role in Hollywood, so it''s better to maintain a good rtionship with the Europeans." "Ok," again she said in a loud voice. Lester wanted to say more to her, but looking at the girl acting like an ostrich with her head under the pillow. Giving up, he got up and patted Jennifer on the shoulder, and said: "Sleep early, I''m going back to my room." Shutting the girl door, Lester couldn''t help but shake his head, what a great opportunity, if they can stick to Eric Williams this rising star, it is equal to riding on a rocket to the moon. Eighteen-year-old, in the end, she was still just a child, Adhering to her pride, and not knowing what he had lost. Lester had spent most of his energy on Jennifer, the year after the box office failure of , the fifteen-year-old for a long time wasn''t able to receive a job. So he personally went to Japan to try to help her develop her career, then he went Europe to find other opportunities for her. To make this beautiful girl rid of the image of a vase, he arranged for her to study at Yale University in the UK, he even arranged for her to learn how to sing properly. But now, he suddenly felt that perhaps he should spend more energy cultivating the other actors he has, ah, the boy named Sean is a good actor, plus he is handsome, and the most important thing he was very clever, he was very mature for his age. And as for , he will just let her go. ... .... Sitting in his Lamborghini Eric watched as Jennifer walked into the hotel, it was frustrating to be rejected by the little girl. After his rebirth, although he encountered many twists and turns. But in general everything was going smoothly, this somewhat inted his ego, and made him almost forgot the taste of defeat. Irritated he looked at the road signs to know where he is, finding that Jeffrey house was close, Eric drove straight to the old man''s house. Knocking on the old man''s door, Jeffrey opened wearing a pajama, with a ridiculous pointed hood. When he saw Eric depressed face, Jeffrey quickly let Eric through the door, and asked in a surprised voice: "Eric, what happened thiste at night?" Eric shook his head and said, "Nothing, the date I was on, was canceled halfway through. And I found myself close to your house, so I came to talk to you." Jeffrey who was about to pour water in a cup for Eric stopped his action, and said: "that''s it?" "Uh huh ......" Jeffrey put the water pitcher back in its ce, and said: "You son of a bitch, quickly go away, don''t you see it''s nearly eleven o''clock already? I spent the entire day working so hard taking care of yourpany, and you came to harass me even in the night." Eric scratched his head and protested: "Hey, don''t be so angry, now I''m mentally weak, and in need offort." Jeffrey walked to Eric who was sitting on the couch grabbed him by the cor pulled him up and said: "Get out!" "Oh, Jeffrey, don''t pull, this suit cost more than $2000!" Eric got rid of the old man and threw the Lamborghini key on the coffee table and said: "I will have to leave my car here, loan me yours." Jeffrey looked at the car keys on the coffeebel and said: "Are those the keys to the car sent to you by Lamborghini, you are giving such a good car to me?" Depressed Eric said: "In your dreams, the paparazzi took pictures of the car, so for the next two days the car will be all over the newspapers, so I won''t dare driving it if I were you?" "Okay,e with me," Jeffrey took Eric to his garage and handed him new car keys: "you can take my Buick!" Seeing another car parked next to the Buick it looked almost like a brand-new Benz, Eric pointed at it and said: "lets trade, I will give you my Lamborghini for the Benz." "Don''t even think about it," Jeffrey red angrily at Eric as he stepped forward and stroked the hood of the Benz gently. his voice instantly turned soft and gentle. "This is Solina''s." (TN note: Solina is Jeffrey dead wife.) Hearing Jeffrey exnation Eric immediately shut his mouth and took the Buick key from Jeffrey''s hand. The old man treated everything his wife left like a treasure, he didn''t use the money he earned being Eric producer to by anything luxurious nor did he invest the money. Instead, he used the money to buy the copyrights of his wife movies; It is said that he was taken advantage of when he was buying the rights to his wife movies, Eric heard that he paid several times what the films rights were worth. Leaving the love-struck old man with the car, Eric drove the Buick to small vi in Malibu, knock on the door, and as soon as she opened the door for him, he swept her off her feet''s and carried her petite body into the bedroom. ... ... Waking up from her sexual fog, finally was able to put her thoughts together. With her hands up on Eric''s chest, Virginia asked softly, "Hey, Eric, what''s wrong? You look dejected." "Hmm! ... ..." Eric just hummed and didn''t answer. "Oh, Let me guess, when you came I smelled the fragrance of another woman on you. It was a mixture of gardenia, jasmine, and violets. Generally, only girls in their Teens will wear this type of Perfume, hmm ..., you were on a date with a young beauty didn''t you." Seeing the shocked look on Eric''s face, shepleted her spection: "and then ... ... you were rejected?" Eric directly pulled soft body to him and buried his face in her big breasts. Seeing Eric acting embarrassed, Virginiaughed and patted him on the back: "You''re a real jerk, another woman rejected you, and the first thing you do is,e to my bed. Oh, don''t rub there, you bastard, that itches." pushing Eric away from her, shey back on the bed and curiously asked: e on tell who is this mysterious girl who dares reject Eric Williams, I really wanna know?" "Vicky, let''s not talk about this topic, please." "Well, if you aren''t going to tell me, then don''t try to vent your frustration on me tonight." in a huff she turned her back on him. "Oh really" hearing her words, Eric decided to toss her around for a second time. as for she didn''t mean what she said when ites to sex with Eric, she can''t refuse him, she won''t refuse because he was that good. ... ... After the second round of sex, Eric gradually calmed down and found that his state of mind is too unbnced. Rubbing his face, Eric reflected on his actions for a while; he thought that this young body was affecting his behavior, if he were 100% himself, Eric wouldn''t get flustered by a girl rejection, only a teenager will act as he did. He inherited the memory of the original owner of the body, and although his soul has dominated everything, more or less he wasn''t affected by the young man''s personality and habits, or maybe he just wasn''t affected at first. Because the original owner of the body didn''t experience the same things as he did in his past life, because in his past life he experienced so many ups and downs, Eric didn''t know whether this was a bad or good thing for him. "Hey, Eric, are you all right?" Virginia saw Eric rubbing her face and frowning, so she leaned over and asked anxiously. "It''s okay, Vicky, I''m all right." Eric put his arms around her. Naturally, his hand went to her soft bosom, and started exining: "Actually, this is what happened ... ..." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 117 ", Ah, what a lucky girl. She was able to get a role in Sergio Leone''s at the age of thirteen, it is natural for her to have some naivety and pride. By the time she reaches thirty, and if she still didn''t aplish anything in Hollywood, she will regret losing this chance." After listening to Eric story leaned against him and sighed, she probably thought of her own experience. Eric could only hug Virginia tofort her, thinking of something at the same time, pride did persist to the age of thirty. At the age of twenty in 1991 she had a breakthrough in her career, she got the heroine role in a movie called the , but unfortunately, the film flopped. So far, since she debuted all the big productions she participated in including , and failed at the box office. Although these failures didn''t have anything to do with her. But Hollywood producers are very superstitious, so, after five years disappeared from the public eye. Virginia looked up at the absent minded Eric and suggested, "Eric, it''s not too hard for you to get her." "Huh?" Eric came back to himself. "You now have your own filmpany, there will be new film projects in the future, all you have to do is, from time to time throw a piece of bait at her. for a girl who''s longing for fame if you tempt her a few times, she will be obediently hooked." "Wow, I can''t believe you are this wicked" Eric give her a hug and a p on the ass: "It seems I''ll have to punish you." "Ah, looks like you aren''t frustrated anymore," Virginia warped her legs around his waist and started rubbing down on him. "Of course not," Eric turned over and again put under his body and said and positioned his tool at her entrance: "I''m the man who will be the king of Hollywood, what is frustration? In the future, I want to be a yboy like Howard Hughes, as long as I fancy a woman, someone will pick them up and bring them to my bed." Feeling the strong impact, Virginia cried out, but her mouth refused to admit defeat. Instead, she retorted: "That''s ridiculous, now is not the same era, no one can fully control Hollywood." "Actually, controlling Hollywood is easy," Eric again turned her over and put her in his favorite posture, and said: "All you have to do is turn all the big studios in Hollywood into one big giant studio." "That''s impossible, ah!" Virginia said sarcastically: "When you do it, don''t forget to send a message up to me in heaven because I will be long dead by then." Eric grunted as he took his tool out of her, and started putting it in the other hole, saying with a smirk on his face, "you want heaven, then I''ll bring you to heaven." "Ah, ha, no that hurt, you jerk, don''t push it in, uh ... ... this isn''t heaven, ah, this is hell." ... ... Although he sleptte at night, Eric still woke up early, if a person wants to make a difference, good habits are necessary. Bending over, he kissed the sleeping girl cheek, put on his clothes and walked downstairs. He went to the backyard and did some simple stretches to wake up his body, then after that, he went to the kitchen to make breakfast. Upstairs Virginia still didn''t wake up, so Eric let her keep sleeping, he then went to the mailbox to get today''s newspaper to read while eating breakfast. didn''t subscribe to many newspapers, but Eric still found the news about himself, it appeared on the popr Los Angeles times Entertainment edition. Although he didn''t get the headline, his news was still in a very prominent position. .............. Eric Williams bring his new girlfriend to watch , is he worried that the box office of will be affected. Last night our reporter met the young director Eric Williams in Beverly Hills Avenue, he was driving a purple Lamborghini. The reporter said that he saw Mr. Williams with Miss behaving intimately. At the age of thirteen, was lucky enough to be in the ssic film . Later, she participated in a series of works such as , But the girl, who looks as delicate as a doll, had no new works of art in recent years. In this case, appearing together with Eric Williams mean only one thing another "Hollywood Cindere" is about to be born? Coincidentally, Williams''s new film is carrying the selection of the heroine role this week, and ording to reliable sources, also participated in the audition. It''s hard not to think that the heroine role has been given to Miss Connelly, it seems that hundreds of hopeful girls who attended the audition full of expectations will be disappointed. Our reporter said that he didn''t see the two go shopping or do any other activities, Instead, they went straight to a cinema, to watch new film . When they walk out of the screening hall, Eric Williams looked somber, and after he had noticed the reporter, he pulled Miss Connelly by the hand and hurriedly left the cinema using the back door in silence. It seems that have put some pressure on Eric Williams, it was said that when saw the film script, he greatly praised it, and decided to give up on Williams''s . is a cutting-edge action film directed by and Richard Gere as the protagonist, this action film cost 20 million US dors to create, the film integrates fighting, car chases, gun fights, explosions, and other elements. After the preview, the film was praised by the critics and audiences alike, we believe in this Easter period can bring you an exciting visual feast. .............. It seems that executives spent a lot of effort to promote their film, they even used his name in this propaganda filled article to hype up their trash film. He had to admit this wasn''t an easy thing to do. Even if the investment in the film isn''t twenty million dors, recovering the cost is going to be hard. Eric didn''t mind the second part of the article, he knows the movie quality is bad, and yesterday after seeing the film, he heard the audiencements, most of them criticized the film, so even if they used him in this article, they were destined to fail. But after seeing the first half describing the rtionship between him and Jennifer, Eric couldn''t help but frown. Although their words didn''t point it out, everyone can see they are hinting that the selection of the actress was unfair and that behind closed doors some kind of trade happened between Eric and Jennifer. In Hollywood, it''smon for actresses to climb up the bed of producers, directors, or investors, everyone knows and tacitly epts this kind of consensual transaction. But this sort of thing can only be carried on in private. Once exposed by the media, the relevant people will certainly be questioned and condemned by the public, and their public image will also be affected. To reverse this situation, the easiest way is to release a public statement saying that the two people are in love, a lot of Hollywood directors use this trick, even if they use this method many times, all they will be used of is them being yboys, and wouldn''t affect their public image. Thinking about it for a few moments, Eric decided to let it go, if he refutes this kind of thing in the media, things will only get worse. Anyway, has rejected the role of the heroine, once he announces the list of actors in the future the rumor will copse in on itself. He''s not an actor, who relies on fame and public image to eat, many of the prominent directors in Hollywood these days have a bad public image, but their movies still earn awards and perform well at the box office. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 118 Eric also knows that behind this article must be the hands , for their own interests they will do anything to suppress and discredit theirpetitors. This kind of trick has been routinely used in all walks of life, but this simple and crude method can achieve good results almost every time. After eating breakfast, he put share in the fridge and said goodbye to the girl who was still lying on her bed. Eric drove the Jeffrey Buick to Firefly''s office because some actresses still need to audition today. As soon as he arrived at the office, he was taken into Jeffrey office, he didn''t have to ask. Just by looking at the dirty looks his employees was giving him, he could predict what''s going on. The Los Angeles times is the most famous newspaper in Los Angeles, in this era, there was no inte, so to get information people mainly depend on the paper media and television. In the great Los Angeles area newspaper subscription rate for residents is still quite high, So, Eric was sure, everyone in thepany has seen or heard of the news. In the face of Jeffrey''s worried eyes, Eric hastened to exin: "Jeffrey, I know that this is indeed my fault. But has rejected the role, So, when the list of the cast is published in the future, this rumor will copse on itself." Jeffrey sighed, "Well, Eric, I hope you know what you''re doing. Do you need me to contact Kapoor to do some PR?"" Eric shook his head and said: "There''s no need. If we try to exin this kind of thing they will consider it a cover-up, the best way to deal with this problem is to ignore it." Jeffrey nodded and handed Eric a copy of a document: "Those are the final offers the sponsors give. Except for Motor, everything else has been decided, the total is 3 million 400 thousand dors. If you have no opinion, I''ll sign these contracts today." Eric took the document and started reading it, Motor''s offered $3 million, but they are waiting until the negotiation with Cruise and Hanks are finished to sign the contract. Everything else has been set, the next highest offer was by Lamborghini they offered $800 thousand. And the lowest offer was by Marvel Comics only $100 thousand, for a scene in the movie where Andy was reading Comic books before he robbed a financepany, because the scene was short Eric wasn''t sure the Ad would sell. Seeing the name of Marvel Comics, Eric unconsciously touched his chin, this is a big gold mine, in the future in order to alleviate their financial pressure Marvel started mass selling the rights to their superhero characters. ... ... As the two men were talking, n Fisemann knocked on the office door: "Eric, Mr. Hansen, Audition time is up." "I''lle right away, you go ahead," Eric answered. "Jeffrey, sign the contracts. and have a good rest this weekend, because starting next week, we will start working on ." "I know," Jeffrey nodded, then said with resentment: "As long as you don''te to harass mete at night again, I"ll take a good care of myself." "I won''t," Eric waved his hand as he walked out of the office. ... ... Perhaps because they heard or read the news in the newspapers, many actresses were absent-minded during the auditions. Eric was toozy to remind them to focus, if they don''t have the drive to chase this opportunity, they can only me themselves. "Next, Miss ." A petite woman, about eighteen years old, came in, although she was wearing ck high heels, the girl height was still less than one meter seven. "Hello, everyone. My name is ." Eric looked carefully at the girl, she was the same age as him with a pointed nose, thick lips, and tanned skin. Taking a look at the information in front of him, Eric didn''t follow the procedures. Instead, he asked: "Miss Anwar. You came from the United Kingdom to attend this audition?" She nodded and said with a charming smile: "I was born in Laleham, Surrey. But I grew up in London." Eric smiled, he also grew up in London, but he moved to Los Angeles at the age of eight. Moreover, Eric himself still has British citizenship, Williams is one of Britain''s five most used surnames. Whether he wants to or not, he was destined to be included in the Hollywood English circle. "Well, Miss Anwar, the information on your resume shows that you attended a dance school. Can you dance the tango?" Gabrielle hesitated for a moment, but she quickly shook her head: "No, but I''ve studied ballet for ten years. If necessary, I can learn the tango in the shortest time possible." Eric showed a look of appreciation on his face and said: "Miss Anwar, I like your honesty. But I think you are not suitable for this role, so there''s no need to audition." was delighted when she heard Eric prize her in the first half of the sentence, but when she heard the second half, she just sat there stunned and speechless. When she first saw Firefly release the news about Eric Williams''s new film audition, she quickly mailed her resume without putting any hope on getting a reply. But unexpectedly, she received an invitation to audition, ecstatic she managed to persuade her old father to allow her toe to Los Angeles alone. But unexpectedly, the other side didn''t even give her the opportunity to perform, so she almost started crying because of the unexpected shock. "Oh, no," said Eric, and hurriedly waved hand to stop her tears from falling, "Miss Anwar, don''t do that. I have not finished yet." Hearing what Eric said, the tears she was trying to stop started flowing. Eric gave a nce to the assistant next to him, who immediately stood up and handed her a box of paper towels. Carefully wiping her eyes, Gabrielle took out a mirror from her handbag, and made sure she didn''t have smudges on her face, then said: "I''m sorry, Mr. Williams, I panicked a little." "It is my fault," Eric was very afraid of making women cry: "I just didn''t make it clear, I know, you are only eighteen years old, and you came all the way from Britain for this audition, this isn''t an easy thing." "Thank you for your understanding, Mr. Williams." "This is the case, Miss Anwar. I just asked you if you can dance the tango because you are very suitable for a role in another movie we are making. The protagonist is , do you know who is Al Pacino?" nodded: "Of course, in the UK many times I read that you are going to make another movie called , Mr. Pacino yed the role of Edward in he was very charming." "That''s good, Al''s next moviecks a tango dancer girl, it is also the role of the heroine,. when I first saw you, I know you are perfect for the role, and if you can y this role well, I believe this will help your career a lot." Gabrielle has only appeared in several TV shows in the UK and had no expectations when ites to winning the audition, but when she heard Eric words the disappointment and shock, she felt a few moments ago quickly dissipated. After suddenly hearing the good news, Gabrielle unconsciously started daydreaming. After , Al Pacino once again be a world-ss superstar. She would jump for joy even if she can act as a minor supporting character in a film he is starring in. What''s more, in this movie she will be the first actress. "Mr. Williams, I really don''t know how to thank you." held her hands in front of her chest and said excitedly. Eric quickly wrote something on a paper, and let his assistant hand it to her, and said: "Miss Anwar, don''t get too excited, although I do have the right to decide the movie roles. But I still have to take into consideration the opinion of Al and the director , you have a week time to prepare, if your performance is too bad, then I can only say sorry." "I''ll do my best," said , taking the note, she looked at the string of numbers and the message he wrote on the paper and asked: "Mr. Williams, this is?" "UTA, oh, It''s the phone number of Mr. Kapoor Sid, the CEO of the brokeragepany I own, you need to call him, and let him arrange a temporary agent for you, to help you find a tango dance teacher. If after a week your performance gets the approval of Al and Martin, then you''ll need to join the UTA. Miss Anwar, are you willing to join the UTA?" Being able to stay in Hollywood was a dream for many foreign actors, including Anwar who nodded without hesitation: "Of course, I''d love to." Meeting is purely an ident, Eric didn''t attempt to find the original actress from . Because the original film was released in 1992, he didn''t have much hope finding the original tango girl. But since fate brought her before him this day, he decided to yield. Plus she was perfect for the role. After was sent away, Eric looked at the next participant name: Oh, another legendary Hollywood beauty. Compared to the purity of , the beauty that walked into the audition room, was a bit more fierce. However, from the shining eyes of several staff members, Eric understood that appearance who was said to be a descendant of aristocrats was clearly more in line with western aesthetics. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 119 Although is twenty-four-year-old this year, she started her acting career at the age of 12, her first movie was a horror/sher film called , two yearster in the year 1978 at the age of 14 she starred in two films and . But after that, her career be a disaster. was the first actress to get the Golden Raspberry Award for worst actress in 1981, and again in 1982 she was nominated for the ''worst actress award'', then in 1985 she was nominated for ''worst actress'' and won the ''worst supporting actress award''. Then again in 1990, she was nominated for the ''worst actress of the decade'', but unfortunately, she lost it to actress Bo Derek for her roles in and , instead, she won the ''worst supporting actress award''. Then in 2000, she was nominated for the ''worst actress of the century''. Unfortunately, won that one for her roles in , , , etc. acting was so bad that if you try looking for a worse actress than her in Hollywood you can only find , which can tell you how bad she was at acting. If it weren''t that this role didn''t require good acting skills, Eric, wouldn''t have allowed her to attend this audition, even though she is beautiful he wouldn''t joke about the quality of his film. Because the role of the audition is set for a working girl, most of the contestants deliberately wore office girls suits, was no exception. As a result, Eric wasn''t able to appreciate her figure especially her two beautiful long legs. After introducing herself, Eric asked: "Miss Shields, what we need is a girl with a soft temperament, but you look too sharp, If you get the part, are you willing to let the makeup artist makes some necessary changes to your face?" Worried about what he said she asked: "Mr. Williams, can you be more specific?" Eric looked carefully at her and said: "For example, your eyebrows are too thick, we will have to trim them a little, which will make you look gentler and softer. Of course, this is only my personal opinion, for the specific makeup design, we will need to ask a professional makeup artist." When Brooke heard Eric exin, she nodded her head without hesitation: "No problem. If I can get the role, I am willing to listen to the makeup artist advice and make any changes if necessary." "Oh," Eric responded feeling mncholy and whispered to himself ''what a determined woman''. Although Eric bowed his head and started writing something in a document, Brooke was keen to capture the subtle changes in Eric''s expression, she didn''t know where she went wrong, but it was evident that the young director didn''t like her answer. After a few moments, Eric looked up and said: "Well then, Miss Shields, how about we start the audition?" "Ok," Brooke quickly stood up, only to find that no staff member will hand her the script, ignoring the helpless look on her face, Eric slowly exined: "Miss Shields, Pay attention, you are now a ... ... ah, " Eric slightly pondered, as he made a background for the role: "You are a small clerk working at a designpany in Los Angelos." Speaking up to her, Eric suddenly stopped and said to n who was sitting beside him: "n, write what I say." waiting until n was ready he started from the beginning. "You are a clerk working at a designpany in Los Angelos, you start work at nine and end at five every day, you live a boring life. But by chance, you fell in love with a mysterious man you encountered on the bus, but after meeting him a few times, he disappears. But your love didn''t subside you keep taking the same bus, again and again, hoping to meet that mysterious man again." Having said up to her, he stopped and looked at Brooke who was standing there nkly: "Miss Shields, do you understand what I just said." nodded quickly. "Then let''s start the performance," Eric pointed to a door next to the one she came through that leads to a changing room, and said. "Miss Shields, The scene I want you to perform is like this, the heroine has been busy all day, so she took the same bus like she does every day, but she still didn''t find the mysterious man. Pretend that door is the bus door, and show us how the girl should act when she gets off of the bus." hesitated for a moment not knowing what to do, in desperation, she asked: "Mr. Williams, can you ...... can you exin a little more clearly?" while giving him a pleading look that was hard to resist. Even Eric who was bing numb to the charm of woman couldn''t stop his heart from skipping a beat, after calming his heart Eric exined again: "Well, you have to show us the fatigue the heroine feels after a day of hard work. And the sense of loss she feels after not meeting the man she loves once again, and the loneliness of walking alone on the streets at night." Still confused Brooke walked into the small empty room and shut the door, after calming her racing thoughts. She again opened the door and came out from the room with her head lowered, her pace was very slow, she walked stiffly as if walking on a tightrope, giving them a feeling that she was ufortable. From the dressing room door to the wall on the opposite side, there is a distance of eight meters. So when Brook finished her walk, she knows that her performance was awful, so she took the initiative and said: "Mr. Williams, can I try again?" "Of course," Eric nodded and made a casual gesture as if to say go ahead. Brook hurried back to the room, but this time she took her time. Only after calming down did she open the door and walk out. Although this time her performance was better, she still wasn''t satisfied. Looking at Eric again with a pleading look, asking for another chance. Smiling Eric said: "Try one more time." ....... "Never mind, rx, and try again." ....... "Last time was better, try again." ....... "your expression needs to be a little bit more rxed, try again." ....... "Swing your arm a little bit more. try again." ....... At first, he was just asking her to repeat, but after a few times, Eric seems to have forgotten that this was just an audition and started acting like a director, ordering her again and again, to repeat, while trying to fix her mistakes. Brooke waspletely shocked by Eric''s momentum and almost forgot that she had the power to refuse. After ten times, she was almost in tears, but she still did what he requested from her. After nearly twenty times, Eric saw what he wanted to see, she walked out with her head hanging low, a lock of hair dropping over her face, with a sad look on her face. And as she walked she exuded a lonely feeling if Brooke previous appearance could arouse the desires of men, now she would cause the majority of people to feel pity for her. "Cut! that''s great, prepare for the next shot!" Eric blurted out what he always said on set instinctively. Brooke was stunned, everyone in the audition room was stunned, even Eric who finallye back to himself was shocked! After a short silence, someone couldn''t help but utter the first chuckle, then everyone startedughing even who was on the verge of tears couldn''t help it and startedughing. Eric feeling embarrassed by his behavior sat back in his, he didn''t know what happened to him. Maybe because her acting was bad, she aroused his instincts as a director. "Okay, we will stop here, Miss Shields." "You can call me Brooke, Mr. Williams," she said as she sat back in her chair. "Well, Brooke, like you saw a few moments ago, you still have great potential, perhaps you didn''t perform well in your other movies in the past because those directors weren''t willing to push you to do better." "Well, Mr. Williams, is there any hope I can get the part?" she said and give him a charming smile: "I also hope that you can ''push'' me more." All the staff around him involuntarily turned their attention to Eric. They didn''t know what happenedst night, but they still thought that Eric has settled on . So they were curious how Eric would respond to Brooke provocative words. Eric picked up his pen and started writing something on a document, as he said: "You can go back now, Miss Brooke, soon someone will tell you the good news. But you have to think about it before you make this decision, although this role doesn''t require too much acting skills, I''m still going to be very strict. I hope when the timees, you won''t start crying like you almost did just now, if your crazy fans know I made you cry, they''ll kill me." "Of course, I won''t," Brooke said, as she almost jumped out of her chair in happiness. She thanked him one more time then stood up and walked out of the room. "Hey, Eric, what about the little girl from yesterday?" Nicole asked just after left. Eric shrugged and didn''t say anything else: "OK, let''s continue, call the next one." After Brooke no girl impressed Eric, so he finally decided to give the role to . ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 120 March 17, this was the first weekend of the Easter season, many new films were released on this day, this includes the highly anticipated film . For this movie, United Artists used 1927 screens in the opening weekend, more than the number of screens used in by a few dozens. has been using a lot of money to grease the pockets of the critics, to get them to praise their film, but the next day after the premiere, the film was criticized by everyone. -----------"The hero character setting is very strange, he has a P.H.D., and he is also a master of mysterious oriental martial arts, but he is willing to work as a bodyguard in a bar, plus he dresses like a cowboy. And then, the director awkwardly built him into a paranoid avenger, but not a qualified Avenger, he can kill the henchman without any care, but he''ll show mercy to the big viin who he hates the most. To make a long story short, It''s a funny movie with a very ridiculous plot." The Chicago Tribune "The film is full of anarchy,wlessness, destruction and unbridled violence. It''s a farce." Movie Guide magazine "I only saw a stream of brawls, broken beer bottles, and groups of big breasted girls and sshes of fake blood. The story was pale andme, acting was dull, he wasn''t even on the same level as the viin." Montreal film magazine "A ridiculous and noisy film" The Reel Movie Review "You can remove the lead actor from this movie, and the plot wouldn''t change, The viin wants to control the Town, so hemit some violent actions like starting fights, murder, arson, and then the intolerable town residents revolt, kill the viin and his henchman. I can''t believe give up Eric Williams film for such a movie, I don''t know how he can sleep at night." The Hollywood Journal "The film was nothing but a rock and roll soundtrack." Rolling Stone Magazine ---------- Because of the strong publicity, on the first day the attendance in the 1927 screening rooms got for reached more than 70%, but with the one-sided criticisms after the movie release, the attendance quickly plummeted. Three dayster, the film box office started dwindling as the first weekend the Easter season ended. This was also the sixth week since was released, and with no surprise box office was up by $2.4 million more thanst week, reaching 11.27 million US dors, winning the first ce at the box office. In just six weeks the film umted $97.69 million at the box office, Eric believes that before the next week ends, his third film will break the $100 million mark at the box office. A month before he celebrated his neen birthday, the results will once again usher a wave of spection and uproar in the media. Although has nearly two thousand screens to work with, after the first day the attendance fell sharply, the film only got $5.25 million in the first weekend ranking second at the box office, less than half of what got. Universal Pictures crimeedy film won the third ce, earning $5.04 million at the box office with 1400 screens. Because increased its support, the film that was Released eighteenth weeks ago still was able to win $4 million at the box office, Steadily approaching the $300 million mark. For twelve weeks in a row, box office topped the list, for more than four months this dark horse has been shocking everyone again and again. Perhaps someday soon box office will cross the $300 million mark, he was sure this will create another media storm. .... .... The next week, Eric finished the casting auditions of , as for and auditions, he was going to leave it to the two directors. He was going to start running around the Greater Los Angeles Area to select the ces he was going to shoot in. Although doesn''t have many scenes outside, there are a lot of scenes that need him to seal roads toplete the shooting, but finding a suitable ce is not an easy thing. At the same time, Eric also discovered that hecks connections. As the base of Hollywood, Los Angeles policy support for the film industry is very strong, but that doesn''t mean a film crew can do whatever they want, many scenes require the approval of various municipal departments, although their flexibility is great, the process is veryplex. Moreover, having connections is essential, Eric is famous now, Butpared to the big directors who have been famous for years, he is still small. If it was another director of the same caliber as him, with just a phone call, he could probably get everything done, but Eric had to personally call repeatedly. Fortunately, this movie is very important to , so to ensure that Eric can start shooting as soon as possible, they specially sent an experienced producer to assist Eric in preparing, which significantly shortened the preparation time. --- --- When Eric was running around trying to find the right ces to shoot his film, another big thing also urred. The storm began when , who was nearly forty years old, saw first weekend box office result. He started to feel bitter about giving up the role in , he knew he had missed a rare chance to be an A-ss superstar. So he became more and more upset, especially after the recent box office failure of . After a series failures, was desperate to get a chance to turn thing around, he felt that had the responsibility and obligation to help him, if it weren''t for personal grudge, he wouldn''t have given up the chance to star in . After he finished filming "" his broker Horner Willie, rmended for him a small cost horror film, even though he took fancy to a medium cost production film made by for universal pictures, Richard thought he wasn''t asking for too much. But Horner Willie didn''t agree to win the role for him, he knows why he refused after he saw reviews, CAA wouldn''t risk giving a big budget film to an actor who''s reputation has fallen so much. Horner Willie is one of early group of brokers, he can be considered a gold broker, even A-level actors are polite to him, which slowly contributed to him having a big ego. When made the mistake of refusing to star in , he put all the me on body, and with the umtion of grievances in his heart, coupled with Horner Willie refusing to fight for that role, all that umted anger broke loose. The two had a big fight in Horner Willie''s office, if not others peoplee in time to break them apart, the two are likely to start fist fighting. After this incident,pletely cut ties with . On the third day after the incident, relying on a friend''s introduction, Richard joined another big brokerage firm called "William Morris Agency" also known as (WMA). Countless job-hopping events happen every year in Hollywood. Even the who ims to have a perfect system to stop actors from leaving, can''t stop this from happening to them. so-called system is there to prevent the brokers working for the firm from leaving, the five founders of Mike Rosenfeld, , Ronald Meyer, William Haber, and Rond Perkins originally worked at William Morris Agency, know the danger of letting the talents they nurtured for many years leave. So they put the system in ce from the start, to prevent that from happening. As for top stars, they don''t have too many constraints, they can leave whenever they want. As for second and third line actors, as long as they are willing to pay liquidated damages, they can easily leave. But now CAA-owned film and television industry chain resources are veryrge, so most of the stars can''t be lured away by otherpanies. Moreover, because promptly stopped the rumors about Horner Willie and quarrel from getting leaked, they thought that this matter was over, but they forget that Richard Gere is one of the parties involved in this fight. In order to get back at , in an interview with "The Hollywood Reporter," reporter Richard painted himself as a victim and mercilessly discredited . The next day after the interview, an article titled "Richard Gere: why I lost the protagonist role in ." appeared in "The Hollywood Reporter" front page. --------------- "Recently, the famous actor who was expected to star in Eric Williams blockbuster masterpiece suddenly left the brokage firm he worked with for many years, in an interview with our reporter, Richard Gere finally told us why he refused to star in . The following is Mr. original words: when I first saw script, I thought that this was going to be an excellent film and that the character was in sync with my image, I even did some preparation for the role. And although Eric Williams is very young, but after watching his first two works, I found that he was a very talented young man. But when I made an appointment with him, Horner Willie my agent, suggested that I refuse the offer. I was puzzled at first, then Horner Willie told me that because Eric Williams brought Kapoor Sid Agency and started working with him. Mr. who have a deep dispute with Kapoor Sid, won''t allow any artist to cooperate with Eric Williams, he made it clear to me that want''s to ban Eric Williams. Then, to appease me, give protagonist role to me, when I first saw the script, I said to Horner Willie: No, this character isn''t suitable for me. Although I yed in action films before, this role was too violent for me, and that perhaps finding a man with more muscles than me will be more appropriate. Horner Willie said I have no choice, and that I would have to take a meager pay in the film. To be more in line with the character image, I had to do a high strength workout for many months, but the film still failed in the end. The reason why I''m exposing all these things now is that I think has forgotten who they are. Because they monopolize too many resources, they be unscrupulous, doing whatever they like. Because of a little personal grudge, and to show how powerful they are, they will treat their artist''s career as a joke. even started treating otherpanies tens of millions of dors investment as chips to y with as they want, this is a terrible thing. Brokeragepanies should serve their artists, and should always keep their employer''s interests first, this is the only way a brokage firm can survive for a long time, but now that started treating their artists as pawns, sooner orter they will self-destruct." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 121 Chapter 121 - Cruise runs away(TN Note: I want to apologize for publishing chapter 122 yesterday, I made a mistake when I was editing chapter 122, instead of clicking on the save button I ended up clicking on Publish, which may have confused and spoiled the chapter for some readers. again I apologize for this mistake.) If Road House is a fuse, then Richard Gere interview that was published in "The Hollywood Reporter" is the spark that ignited it. The same day the interview was published, CAA spokesman refuted Richard Gere remarks and dered that if the other party publish any more irresponsible remarks, CAA will resort to legal means to seek justice. Although many people can see that, Richard Gere spoke to the reporter when he was agitated, and that he put himself in the victim position, and that there are many loopholes in his remarks that can be easily seen through by the industry experts. But that does not prevent the media from digging deeper into some of the facts in his speech. Gossip is a powerful force, the next day after the interview was published, articles about Kapoor Sid and Michael Ovitz conflict started popping up everywhere, inside stories about why Kapoor Sid left CAA, and him almost getting forced out of Hollywood and go into Europe have been exposed again. Although CAA has grown into a towering tree, their history was riddled with ck spots, Plus CAA forced bundling strategy, had lead to many film failures, these failures were naturally dug out by the media.
  • "From friends to enemies, exposing the dark side of CAA"
  • "10panies that were the victims of CAA forced bundling strategy"
  • "9 superstars who gradually declined after joining CAA"
  • "The ck hands behind the rise of the cost of producing Movies in thest ten years"
  • "The saboteurs of the film industry rules"
As more and more articles were written about CAA, some newspapers unwittingly began demonizing CAA and what they stand for. The rapid growth and development of CAA, not only squeezed the living space of other Hollywood brokeragepanies, the set of rules invented by Michael Ovitz and the forced bundling strategy, also made many filmpanies in Hollywood miserable. CAA not only let the actor''s paychecks increase significantly but because of the film bundling strategy, filmpany also had to increase their film budgets. The Six major Hollywood movie giant didn''t suffer too much, they usually don''t have problems with CAA, but arge number of Hollywood second and third line filmpanies, as well indie film studios, can''t resist CAA bundling strategy. They aren''t like Eric who manege to achieve phenomenal sess in every film, they can only obediently ept CAA binding conditions. Arge number of brokerage firms, and arge group of filmpanies, plus countless independent filmmakers, and finally some TV channels who saw that CAA has started to bundle some TV projects the same way they did to movies. These forces started using their power to discredit CAA. What''s more, almost all these forces have nomunication at all, they Instinctively started doing it. Of course, no one is saying anything in support of CAA, when some of CAA''s actors were interviewed, they more or less said just a few good words. After all, CAA to improve their profits they raised the filmpany''s production costs, and the biggest beneficiaries are those actors. But their words didn''t change anything, Mainly because of the maniption of those forces, they Deliberately diluted the voices of those actors who support CAA. Although CAA also has a strong media presence but facing all those powers, their strength basically weren''t able to change anything, they werepletely passive. Then, because of Road House failure at the box office, the CEO of United Artists whose position in thepany was in jeopardy because of the Road House failure suddenly jumped out. He used what Richard Gere said in the interview, to me the film failure of on CAA shoulders, he even threatened to im damages from CAA. Of course, this kind of thing is impossible, but that high-level person needed a scapegoat for making thepany lose tens of millions of dors in investment, and this scandal came just in time to save him. This quickly escted into a battle of words between him and CAA representatives. And at the same time, in this wave of unrest, several other Hollywood brokerage firms had a tacit agreement to take some talents from CAA, and within a week. CAA lost more than twenty second and third line actors, this didn''t cause any big harm to CAA, but another big thing happened that caused a wave internal unrest within CAA. Tom Cruise suddenly announced he was going to leave CAA! Tom Cruise can be considered Hollywood''s most popr idol star, Since his debut, none of the films he shot failed, Most of the films he starred in have made huge profits for filmpanies, and most of his movies are small cost films. in 86 his film Top Gun cost only $15 million to produce, but the film ended up making more than $350 million at the box office world wide. And recently his new film Rain Man although the film still hasn''t brook the 100 million mark, that is only a matter of time, and he also received a number of Oscar nominations. "premiere magazine" recently named him as one of the most powerful figures in Hollywood. Tom Cruise as an actor, was ced close to the top, way ahead of some filmpany executives, big directors, and golden producer. Him leaving CAA Without ident caused a wave of unrest in the industry. And Tom Cruise''s leaving, also caused another storm to start. Because all those forces were demonizing CAA, the media transferred their attention to the negotiations between Eric and the two leading men. After some digging, they were able to expose the conditions proposed by CAA. "6 million US dors plus 20% of the profits, this kind of offer only CAA this emboldenedpany can unashamedly propose, it is obvious that CAA want to make Eric Williams give up. It seems, that even after experiencing Pretty Woman sess Mr. Michael Ovitz is still obsessed with the ridiculous idea of banning Mr. Eric Williams. Through this unrealistic conditions, we can conclude that what Mr. Richard Gere said is true, CAA has already begun treating the actors in their hands as pawns to y with as they wish." Los Angeles Times In fact, before Richard Gere interview, CAA had already started backing down when negotiating Tom Cruise and Tom Hanks paycheck. Before the release of Road House CAA has already dropped their conditions to 12%, but after Richard interview, CAA again dropped their offer to 10%. Although after the exposure, CAA immediately made a rification, saying that their current offer is not so high, the media still sized this matter and repeatedly made a fuss. Some analysts also published their views in the newspaper, they said that if CAA keep using this mode, the cost of production of films will increase exponentially. At the same time, the profit margins will significantly decrease, and that achieve profitability will be even more difficult. In this case, Hollywood studios enthusiasm for making movies will diminish, causing a fatal blow to the rapidly recovering film industry in America. Some media outlets have even begun to call on the federal government to investigate the behavior of CAA that disrupts the film market. Under the influence of some forces, a member of the California State Legiture, who was interviewed by the media, said that CAA may be under investigation for alleged monopolistic behavior. Although he soon denied his statement, but that still put a lot of pressure on CAA. The thing American industry giants are most afraid of is not the tax bureau, but the anti-monopoly investigation. Let alone other industry cases, just Hollywood, Because of the Paramount Act that happened in 1948, has caused the film industry for many years to stay silent. Michael Ovitz who was responsible for the negotiations between SONY and Columbia returned CAA to try to stabilize the situation, he personally conducted a personal interview with Tom Cruise and Tom Hanks, hoping that the two can give up the previous Profit sharing program, and take a pure paycheck to help CAA through this crisis. Tom Hanks was easy to convince, because he has never took profits from any of his movies, even his highest paycheck still hasn''t reached five million, histest film Big that was able to get more than $100 million at the box office he only took a $2 million paycheck, and he also value this cooperation with Eric, so he agreed. Tom Cruise said he wanted to think about it, but the second day after that he Dered that he was gonna leave CAA with his agent Ms. Pa Wagner and that he will personally negotiate with Firefly his paycheck. Cruise has always been a very ambitious person, coupled with this public opinion storm, he really felt that CAA was treating him as a pawn. This feeling was a very hard for a powerful and capable superstar like him to ept. Plus, the sess of "Rain Man", has let him see another road. Coborating with filmpanies in profit sharing, can bring him more benefits, and can also help him gain more control over the film production. He wants to get all those benefits and not be subject to the constraints of a brokerage firm, getting out of CAA is the first step. But him ditching CAA this at this time, is like him thrusting a knife into Michael Ovitz back. Chapter 122 Because insists on staying a privatepany, even after thepany has now developed into an industry giant, but it is still not listed. So, although this was a menacing storm, as long as the proper response is made, this storm won''t cause too much real harm to CAA, but thepany business will still be affected for the next few months. Even the second and third line artists that were poached by other brokerage firms won''t have any impact on , The number of artists CAA has reached more than six thousand people, taking a few dozen artists from them won''t even make them itch. But superstars leaving is another thing, especially a star on the level of , he has a lot of influence among other Hollywood actors, Tom Cruise departure, will definitely give the other superstars a false signal. reaction was very fast, the day Cruise left, all of CAA''s partners, brokers and signing artists received a letter written by himself, rifying why Cruise left, and also earnestly added some words to enumerate the brilliant achievements of over the years, and the tremendous changes CAA brought to the actors, hoping that everyone will not be affected by public opinion and that CAA future will be even brighter. But this letter didn''t prevent the deterioration of the situation, three days after left, several other superstars, left for a variety of reasons. These stars joined CAA because of series of bundling strategy, which led to a substantial increase in their ie, but with the general increase in ie of Hollywood stars bing the norm, even if they left to other brokerage firms, they can still get a very high paycheck. Plus when Cruise suddenly left he caused a panic in , so this was the best time to move, with the news of other stars leaving CAA, be known, more and more stars began to falter. who was badly scorched by the mes of this storm, cursing , he lowered his head and Personally started trying to pursue the big actors who want to leave, he hasn''t done this kind of thing for a long time. --- --- And in the other corner of the city, Eric, who benefited the most wasughing his ass off, he wasn''t the instigator of this storm, but he certainly wasn''t going to let this chance go, this is a good opportunity, to stop from dominating Hollywood for the next ten years, like they did in his past life. "Eric, why are you suddenly looking for me, I dere in advance that my hands are full, four is the limit of my ability, I don''t want you to send any more people my way." Kapoor was in full swing when he appeared in Eric office when encountered this misfortune, he will be a hypocrite if he said he wasn''t happy, he was so happy even his bald head got a bit shinier. Eric leaned back in his chair and said: "What if it was ?" "Who?" Kapoor pricked up his ears and leaned slightly forward. "," Eric repeated. Kapoor showed a big smile, and said: "Eric, are you sure, if he epts, then I''ll bite the bullet and take him." "bite the bullet? if I didn''t see the huge smile on your face, I would have pitied you" Eric ridiculed. Kapoor did not care about Eric''s ridicule, and asked, "Eric, are you sure you can dig ?" Eric shook his head, "No, but I''m going to try. I''ve made an appointment with Hanks for dinner tonight, and he agreed." Kapoor is confidence that Eric can seed, the young man has brought him too many surprises: "Eric, maybe you can also try head hunting to UTA, he has no brokeragepany now." "Don''t even think about it, Mr. Cruise is a very ambitious person, I heard he want to be a producer. It is expected that he will soon start his own film productionpany." Eric didn''t expect that because of his appearance in this timeline, will cause to go solo seven years ahead than in his past life, in that time line Cruise choose to go independent only after he made huge profits from several of his films that sold well. After leaving , Cruise immediately made his agent Pa Wagner contact Fireflies, to began negotiating his paycheck. Cruise conditions weren''t as outrageous as CAA, he asked for a $5 million fee plus 10% of the profits, way more reasonable than the CAA crazy conditions. However, the profit-sharing model, after all, has just appeared, the terms proposed by werepletely out of mischief, as for the condition Cruise proposed there is still a lot of room for discussion, after thinking about it Eric decided to only give Cruise 5% of the profits. And he felt that the sess rate of this matter is very high, because thetest news he got, is that promised to give up on the profit sharing model and that he will only take a paycheck like he always did. At this time can be considered more famous than Hanks, but the difference isn''t big, but once the news about Hanks paycheck conditions is exposed, he was sure that would back down. Although Cruise has tasted the profit sharing sweetness in histest film , in this era generally no one takes profits from the movies they act in, was more like a special case. As mentioned before, Cruise was able to get the profit sharing option in because the film budget was insufficient, so Cruise had to drop his paycheck for the film toplete shooting. And because was good at the box office, he was able to make more money than if he took just a paycheck. When Eric heard that Hanks was going to give up the profit sharing n, he felt that this was the best time to dig up . has vowed to get him a piece of the film''s profits, but suddenly he was told to give up, Eric was sure that Hanks was dissatisfied with CAA. Others may not understand, But Eric knew Hanks''s potential, the next ten years will be the beginning of the outbreak of acting career, not only will his movies gross billions of dors at the box office, he will also win two Best Actor awards in the . Although he told Kapoor, he wasn''t sure he can dig Hanks, but in fact, Eric felt he has a 90% chance to win Hanks,pared to , he has more attractive chips in his hands. "Well, don''t mention , in fact, I called you because of something else." Eric said, he spent several nights awake writing this manuscript, handing the folder to Kapoor he said: "help me summarize this?" Kapoor took the file and read the title, CAA Revtion: How the broker giant formed. Opening the manuscript, Kapoor slowly started reading, page after page he flipped through them, the more he read, the more serious his facial expression got. When Kapoor finished, he slowly raised his head and looked at Eric as if he was staring at a monster. The manuscript is very long, more than ten full pages, giving a detailed description of what the five founders of did after job hopping from , how they developed and sold Tv shows like Rhyme and Reason, the Rich Little Show, and The Jackson 5ive. And how they gradually developed a bundling sales system, and how in just the short span of fifteen years, they formed a new and unique business philosophy. The reason why Kapoor was shocked, was because the manuscripts mentioned things, even he a former CAA gold broker, didn''t know was happening, but after reading it on paper, he knows that he experienced most of these practices. However, he didn''t have the ability to systematically form a rtivelyplete management theory of the brokerage firm. And he was also curious, How did Eric know all those things?. The reason CAA isn''t a listedpany is because didn''t want his personal business philosophy, to get leaked. Once thepany is listed, a lot of information will have to be giving to their investor, once CAA do that their opponents can easily learn their advanced business philosophy. You can''t apply for a patent for apany business strategy, so once the other brokerage firms study their mode of operation, the advantages CAA had for thest decade will no longer exist. Unable to restrain his emotions, Kapoor carefully raised the manuscript in his shaking hands, and asked: "Eric, are you the one who wrote this?" "Well, I want you to help me see if theirs anything wrong with it. And by the way, you won''t object to me publishing this article?" Kapoor quickly shook his head andughed bitterly, "If I had the ability to sum up these things, I would have personally published them. Eric, I don''t understand you anymore, all of the theories you mentioned in this article are true, even me who worked for for many years didn''t know these things were happening, if you had me write them myself, I wouldn''t even know from where to start." Eric just smiled and didn''t exin, in the eyes of otherpanies CAA set of business strategies are full of mystery, even when they stole some brokers from CAA, all they obtained was iplete information about their business strategy. But for someone like Eric who lived in the age of the inte, business strategy is not a mysterious thing, remembering his past life, Eric found that in 1996, CAA who has grown into an unshakeable Colossus has attracted the attention of a reporter. The reporter spent more than a year collecting a lot of information about CAA, and finally, he was able to unravel the mystery of CAA, after that the public finally realized why CAA CEO would be named Hollywood''s most powerful figure. But at that time, has already grown into a huge monster, even if otherpanies wanted the copy this behemoth strategy, they only end up frustrated. CAA brokers are just oneponent of the machine called CAA, they help keep going forward, but if you take just a piece of this machine, you won''t be able to know how this huge machine works. The only one who can fully exin how CAA works is , and of course, Eric whoe from the future and can remember every thing. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 123 In thest four years, the number of movies bundled by has reached more than one hundred and fifty films, as for the TV market, the CAA has upied more than 1/3 of the shows sold. In Eric view, CAA secret weapon is its own unique business model, even if left thepany, could still keep developing indefinitely. So although many people are trying to unveil the secret to CAA sess, most of their analysis missed the mark, ending up with specious reasoning. So Eric felt that this was a good chance to stop CAA from expanding like in his past life. If it wasn''t for CAA, then he will have had the original cast of , although Eric was confident in acting skills, he was still worried, he was afraid that changing the original with Al will affect the film box office, but fortunately, it turned out well. And then, when he invited the two Tom''s, still tried to inconvenience him, now the supporting roles for had been identified, and all the Preparations areplete, only the two main protagonists haven''t been settled yet. "Since you don''t have any objection, I''ll ask n to contact the newspaper for publication." "Ok," Kapoor nodded, but suddenly said: "Don''t worry, just give me a copy first, I want to study it, maybe I can optimize UTA work strategy." "As you wish." Eric nodded, got up and opened the office copier, and started making a copy for him: "In fact, Kapoor, in the next few years, I don''t intend to expand the scale of UTA, because now my strength isn''t enough. You know, A few days ago, when I was trying the find ces to shoot some scenes for the film, I found how weak I am. I just wanted to shoot a few scenes in the rooftop of the National Bank building, but when I contacted the building management department they directly turned me down, they said they were afraid that I will affect their business order, they didn''t even give me the chance to try to convince them. But when I told the producer that sent to help me what happened, he just made a few calls and got us the permission. Initially, I was pleased with the achievements I made in my previous films, but now that I think about it, I can see that I''m still just a little rat." Kapoor advised: "Eric, don''t put too much pressure on your self, you have done a good job until now. Plus, think about your age, you aren''t even neen years old yet, am I right? How many people your age do you think can earn hundreds of millions of dors by their own hands in such a short time?'' "Oh, those are the same words Jeffrey told me," smiling, Eric handed Kapoor his copy of the manuscript: "Here, by the way, I''ll have to go to the in a few days, can you help me prepare for it, I''m swamped these days. Plus, I''ll have to participate in a dress rehearsal, I shouldn''t have agreed to act as a guest presenter." "I really don''t know what to say, many little stars I know will do any thing to show their face in the , even sell their body, but you don''t want to act as a guest presenter." Kapoorughed: "By the way, who are you going to take as apanion?" "I originally wanted to bring my girlfriend , she was going toe back from Los Angeles at the end of the month, butst night she called and said that she can''t and that she will only be able toe back at the beginning of April. Anyway, I''m not sure, I will probably take with me like I did at thest time." Acting as if he remembered something, Kapoor said: "By the way, I got another movie that is suitable for , I think it''s a good book, are you still going to stop me from inviting her?" "Don''t send any thing her way, I don''t intend to let pick any movie for the next two years." Kapoor nodded and said after a few moments: "If that''s the case, then I suggest you don''t take Drew to the Oscar. This is a good chance to promote our other actors, I suggest taking Miss or the girl you pickedst week the little British beauty, she has gained the recognition of and . Oh, and there is also , for the sake of promoting your movies, I suggest you take one of the three." "So........" Eric thought for a moment, the one who needs help the most should be , She is going to have to hold up alone, she will gain great benefits by exposing her face on the Oscars red carpet. have , plus have and , so even if show up on the Oscar red carpet, it wouldn''t matter. "Then , you tell her to prepare." "No problem, I''ll help her prepare, but Eric, in front of outsiders, you''d better not act intimate with Miss ." Although Kapoor said it in a businesslike tone, he could see that he just joking, embarrassed Eric coughed and said: "Well, I will pay attention." --- --- After Kapoor had left, Eric handed the file to n and told him to see if he can find a newspaper to publish it. After that, he continued working hard for the rest of the day, then drove his care to meet . Their meeting was in a fancy restaurant in Beverly hills, after shaking hands, Eric didn''t rush to poach hanks from CAA, instead, they talked about . Although Hanks had a premonition about why Eric wanted to meet him, he didn''t think that job-hopping to UTA is a good choice. But he was very interested in talking to Eric about the film. Because wasn''t able to get him a share of the profits, Hanks and Fireflies contract was gonna be signed in a few days, so he was already on board to participate in . "In fact, I had intended to set Sean character as a someone who had to quit the special weapons and tactics (SWAT) because of the injury, who ended up being a civilian police officer but was unwilling to remain in the limelight. But I think that if this setting is pointed out in the movie, the audience won''t ept it easily, so I decided to keep this setting obscure, and give the audience some room to imagine things on there on." put down the tableware and wiped his mouth, and wondered, "Didn''t we discuss this problem in ourst discussion, and we made a whole new setting for Sean''s background, you didn''t tell me this detailst time." "Because this setting is somewhat ...... evil, didn''t you read the script? the reason why Sean doesn''t go to clubs and isn''t married is because of his injury, he doesn''t want to dy other women." Hanks paused, and quicklye to understand, smiling he said: "This setting is indeed true ...... but it kinda hard to ept, but I also prefer keeping Sean''s background blurred." The two of them spent more than half an hour talking about the film, until they finished their dinner, then ordered coffee. Taking a sip from his cup, Eric said: "Tom, in fact, invite you to dinner this evening, because......" After listening to his exnation, Hanks interrupted Eric and said in a lukewarm tone: "Eric, I think development is good, So I don''t intend to change brokerage firms for the time being." "Don''t you want to hear my condition first?" Eric said smiling. "Eric if I change to otherpanies the amount of money I get will drop, after all, doesn''t take a big cut from my pay, plus if I suddenly change to another brokerage firm, I don''t know how long it will take before I can adapt to the new environment. And, to be honest, although I know Kapoor Sid is apetent agent, the size of UTA is too small, and those two big stars had upied most of the resources, I don''t think UTA has enough energy to take care of me." Eric was very surprised by Hanks clear analysis, but when he thought about it, he understood why. Although Hanks look kinda silly, he was still able to achieve great sess in Hollywood thend of the sharks, so that tell him that Hanks is actually a very smart man. "Listen to my condition first, UTA won''t reduce your fee." Eric smiled and said: "As long as you join UTA, in the next decade, I can arrange for you at least five movies that can make more than $100 million at the box office." couldn''t help but stare at him with wide open eyes, within ten years five films that can make more than $100 million at the box office, what concept is that? from the year 1981 to now only one of his movies was able to achieve more than $100 million at the box office, the film that originally broke through the $100 million mark, wasn''t able to do do it this time. Because of the sudden emergence of , the film earned less than $80 million at the box office, but the movie was guaranteed to win some Oscar awards this year, so getting past the 100 million mark is just a matter of time. "Are you talking about the local box office?" Hanks asked subconsciously. "Of course, within ten years, at least five movies that can earn more than $100 million in North America." after a pause, he added: "and you''ll be the leading actor in all of them." "But........" Hanks wasn''t carried away by Eric''s promise of sess: "How can I believe what you said is true? Although several of your previous movies brook the 100 million mark, that doesn''t mean you''ll still keep seeding." "We can sign a secret contract, If within ten years I can''t arrange at least five movies that break the 100 million mark in North America, then I will pay you a lot of money." Eric did not hesitate to add: "Of course, you''ll have to star in a certain number of movies, after all, if you signed the contract and decided to just y around and wait for the money, then I won''tpensation you." was amused by Ericst sentence,ughing he said: "Of course I won''t, I love making movies. If I can''t continue being an actor, then I really don''t know how to live, you have to understand, a man who is used to regrly doing something he loves, if he suddenly stops, he will be bored to death." "Well, do you agree?" shook his head: "Eric, although what you said made me very excited, but I can''t agree so easily. If I quit, you won''t achieve your promise, how muchpensation can I get in ten years? Ten million, or twenty million, is not an amount worth losing my career over. Well, if nothing else, I''ll take my leave, this dinner was delicious, Eric, if you have time, let''s do it again, this time I will treat you." "One hundred million dors!" Eric said, staring at Hanks shocked expression: "$100 million, Tom, if I can''t fulfill my promise, then I will pay you $100 million, we can sign a contract now if you want, we''ll have to find a Notary public to do the notarization. I can even set up a fund and put $100 million into it in advance. Even if your future pay rise to $10 million a film, you''ll need to shoot at least one movie a year to earn 100 million, is this enough to show my sincerity?" Hanks who started wearing his coat, slowed down his movement, and said: "Eric, are you serious?" "Of course, and you know, I''m sure I can afford it now." "Well, I need to think about it." Hanks still didn''t ept. "Well, I''ll be waiting for your good news." Although Eric was disappointed, he made a sure to keep smiling. put on his coat, looked strangely at Eric, then walked outside the restaurant. Disappointed Eric sat motionless in his seat, and finished his cup of coffee. When he was about to settle the bill, Hanks suddenly appeared in front of him again. "Eric, since you are going to bet $100 million, I don''t understand why I have to hesitate." Hanks sat down opposite Eric, and said: "I ept this bet!" ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 124 part1 (TL Note: Thank you, Mr. Robinson, for sponsoring this half chapter, 2.5 chaptersing soon.) ---- ----- The next day, "The Hollywood Reporter" used a full four pages, to published the full article Eric wrote, keeping the same title "CAA revtion: how the broker giant was formed". Eric also chose not to take the $1800 royalties they offered, what''s more, because he was unable to exin the sources of the details in the article, he chose to anonymously publish it in the newspaper. The publication of this article, immediately caused huge waves in the Hollywood circle, almost overshadowing the uing 61st Academy Awards that were gonna happen in a few days. Most of the forces who were still immersed in smearing reputation, suddenly calm down and focused them attention on the Article. The next few days, the entire US media was boiling, this highly professional article was even reprinted a second time, and arge number of newspapers even followed the trend by publishing studies of the article. After reading the article, the senior executives of other brokerage firms, finally found out why they couldn''t stop the rise of CAA. The majority of filmpanies also fully understand why their production costs kept rising, and why they couldn''t stop it. also saw the article a few hours after it was published in the newspaper, it took him half an hour to finish reading it, he was frowning the entire time he was reading the article. Even he couldn''t help but be overwhelmed with admiration for the author of this masterpiece, the article discussed many things that coincide with his recent ideas, and some things even he didn''t notice he was doing. It was precisely because of this idea that he tried to take part in acquisition of . But after thinking about what this article will do to hispany, was so angry he even started thinking about killing the author of the article. Because this article directly ced business strategy in front of all hispetitors, before CAA''s rivals could only try imitating CAA Bundling Strategy, which involved manyplex operation processes. But with this article as a reference, as long as thosepetitors are a little bit ambitious, they will certainly make a series of reforms to their business strategy, even if they didn''tpletely imitate CAA model, they will not be defenseless in front of CAA expansion. Unfortunately, "The Hollywood Reporter" even made a special statement on the front page of the article, looking for the author of the article, but they didn''t receive any response. Two days after the article was published, CEO publicly said that if the author of the article is willing, WMA will pay him five percent of thepany shares in exchange for him joining as a vice president. Although the scale of WMA now is below what it was in the past, but it is still a century-old brokerage firm, the difference between and is not much, five percent of the shares means getting tens of millions of dors. The same day after the announcement, many people with fake "CAA Revtion" manuscript, went to headquarters trying to swindle them. --- --- A few dayster, Once again, another big star chose to leave like and several other big stars did, this star is , except this time this superstar didn''t transfer to arge brokerage firm like and , but instead he transferred to (also known as ), Eric Wims personal brokerage firm. Moreover, didn''t transfer alone, Eric didn''t know what method he used, but Hanks was even able to convince his agent a CAA gold medal agent to jumppanies with him. This news caused a variety of spection in the industry, stealing a gold broker from CAA isn''t an easy thing, most of them start from the most basic job as a mail clerk. Then they climb the jobdder step by step, after more than ten years of work, when they prove their strength, they be brokers. Then several yearster if they have enough qualifications they be gold brokers, with annual sries of more than one million dors. Hanks''s agent leaving, means giving up all the qualifications he umtion, even if in the future he wanted to return to the CAA, he will have to start from the bottom. Kapoor and hanks agent Simon Wilson were the witnesses to the secret contract between Eric and Hanks, the only other witness is a well-known notary public in Los Angeles. After signing the contract, Hanks was kind enough not to let Eric set the $100 million fund they talked about in the restaurant. The only thing that can do is make pay a small amount of money as liquidated damages, as well as a cut of Hanks paycheck. After Hanks signed the contract with the Firefly, learned about Hanks''s paycheck conditions, and as Eric expected, Cruise lowered his demands. Finally, the day before the Oscar ceremony, that The two sides quickly signed the contracts, Cruise took a $5 million fee and 5% of North American profits, those conditions were fully consistent with Eric''s expectations. And Eric finally decided to start shooting on the 5th of April. --- --- In March 29th, after more than a month of preparations, the 61st Oscar awards ceremony was officially held at the Shrine Auditorium in Los Angeles. Eric will serve as the presenter of the best-supporting actress award, it is said that the organizers originally intended to invite the newlyweds, and her husband, . Although Don Johnson isn''t very famous, his wife Mnie Griffith has directly jumped to the frontline star position by virtue of her new film . But unfortunately, couldn''tpete with Eric, who had the support of who had a lot of contacts with the Oscar organizers, who chose the more famous Eric, over and her husband, "Eric, is my dress okay, there is no problem, right?" in a Lincoln car that was slowly moving toward the Oscar red carpet, nervously asked Eric, she has never dreamed that she would walk on the Oscar red carpet. Eric patted her hand and said: "Vicky, rx, you look beautiful." Still unsure of herself, gently touched her hair trying to find any loose hairs. Remembering another thing, she asked: "ah ... ... Eric, if won the prize, Are you really going to let me go up to receive the prize?" "Of course," Eric nodded. "I don''t want the first time I get on stage in the , to be for the best animated short film?" , who should have been present at the awards ceremony, has be aplete workaholic after Eric put management in his hands, right now John wishes he could live in his office. If the Oscar organizers didn''t send the invitation, John would certainly forget about the short film award. But after receiving the invitation, directly called Eric, saying he was too busy and can''t leave, and that if won the award, Eric should receive it. Eric didn''t need to be persuaded either, he was sure if walks on the same road Pixar did like in his past life, then winning the in the future will be easy, so he didn''t feel bad about it. Originally and Steve Jobs wanted to win this award, mainly because they were hoping that by winning the award, they can bring more business to thepany, but now that he has ess to Eric money the is just a waste of time. At the same time, Eric didn''t want to board the Oscar podium for the best animated short film award, so he was gonna take this opportunity to let show her face to the public. Just then, the Lincoln stopped at the entrance of Oscar''s red carpet, the screams, and calls fans could still be heard even though he was in the car and they were far away. Eric got off the car first, then went to side, and very gentlemanly opened the car door for her and offered her his arm, then they slowly walked toward the red carpet. Maybe all actresses are born to walk the red carpet, who was very nervous in the car, once her feet hit the red carpet, she rxed as if all her fears just evaporated into the air, she gently took Eric''s arm, and walked along with him on the red carpet, gently waving to the crowd from time to time, with a charming smile on her beautiful face. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 124.5 part2 (TL Note: Thank you, Mr. Robinson, for sponsoring this half chapter, 2 chaptersing soon.) ---- ---- When they were about seven or eight meters away from the fans'' area, some girls saw Eric''s figure and started screaming his name, with some of them screaming "I love you" and so on. Most of the actors who attended the Oscar were over the age of thirty,pared to them the young and handsome Eric has a huge advantage. In addition to his young age, he also starred in not long ago, which enabled him to have arge number of fans in the youth group. If it were not for staff, who maintained order, he was sure someone would have rushed directly to the red carpet. Fortunately, this didn''t happen. Slowing down his pace, Eric put a proper smile on his face, and give them a nod, which created another burst of female screams. Without even realizing it, he had fans, Eric felt slightly emotional, giving Virginia''s arm a little squeeze he moved on. Because no one was calling her name, felt slightly lost, She even noticed that some girls in the audience were giving her hostile looks, those emotions subsided only when they reached the media area. "Eric, look here!" "Here, here." "Eric, Virginia, get closer?" Compared to the fans who were only concerned about their favorite stars, the reporters easily recognized her. They have long heard that , is about to participate in a film made by the Firefly and that Eric himself wrote the script. From the start of Hollywood development to this day, everyone in this circle knows the rule, that if an unknown beautiful actress or a handsome actor suddenly get a major role in a movie, people will subconsciously ask: who did She or He sleep with to get the role? Those pretty stars couldn''t possibly get the chance without reason, they possibly had to pay a price, and in addition to their body, they can''t pay with anything else. Most of the people in the circle don''t look down on these men and women, they will only envy them, and regret missing the opportunity. The reporter''s eyes shone the moment they saw the two, this is the type of gossip theye her for. While urging Eric and Virginia to get as close as possible and to show some intimacy, they pressed the camera shutter like crazy. When they finally walked out of the reporter''s area, they found the channel reporter was interviewing , taking this chance Eric took and directly slipped to stars resting area. "Hello, Mr. Williams, I''m " "Hello, Mr. Downey," Eric smiled and shook his hand, just as he wanted to give a few words of praise for his works, Eric found that he didn''t remember any of the famous young star early works, trying to save himself Eric pointed to the girl beside him and said: "This is ." politely shook Virginia''s hand, he was just trying to mingle with the other stars, in the hope that he can get the opportunity to cooperate with them in the future, so he didn''t spend too much talking to Eric, after just a few word, he left, Eric also took the initiative to start greeting other stars. Like, , , , , , , and his wife , , , , ... Like a ball, he bounced from one star to another, until a staff member told them to enter the auditorium where the Oscar ceremony was gonna be hosted. He didn''t know what the Oscar organizers were thinking, but no one came to get him. After entering the hall and finding the location of the crew, Eric walked straight to the backstage. Because he was the presenter of the best-supporting actress award he was ced first, there is no strict order to how the Oscar awards are presented. Many times, to attract the attention of the audience, the organizers will first present the more important awards, like the best-supporting actor, or the best-supporting actress. "Hello, Eric, I''m ." Backstage, a tall and strong man stretched out his hand and said: "I''ll show you around." Eric shook his hand and said: "Thank you. Mr. Selleck, I loved your film , I heard there will be a sequel?" is 1987 box office champion, this warmedy film was able to get the first ce at the box office, only by luck, because in the year 1987 no famous film was released all year round. As for , the only thing Eric remember about him is that he starred in and him ying boyfriend in the TV show. After hepletes filming , Eric intends to keep his promise to and start working on . Although performance as boyfriend was memorable, Eric knows he has to choose another actor because his career is flourishing now, Eric was sure he will reject the invitation if he asked him to y in a TV show, Tom might even see it as Eric looking down on him. --- --- Ten minutes or so after the opening song and dance, a staff member handed Eric a few envelope that contains his lines and the name of the winner. Then under the guidance of , Eric walked to the stage. All the things the audience see the guest presenters say and do on stage are written by screenwriters, in fact, no one is allowed to show their own skills. "Wow," walking to the center of the stage, Eric adjusted the microphone and said: "Hello everyone, after I received the invitation. I asked the producer, why don''t I have a female partner like all the other guest presenters, isn''t it unfair! An stared at me for a long time then said: Because you''re too young!" Speaking up to here, Eric gave the audience an innocent look. The audience was silent for a moment, then there was a burst ofughter, followed by apuse. In thest six months, although Eric has made a series of spectacr achievements, but there are always people in Hollywood who say that 18-year-old boy was just lucky and isn''t a genius and that he won''t be able to achieve such a big achievement again. After saying another few words, the audience Laughed again, then Eric got back on track: "In any movie, when the main actors and actresses show their acting skills, There is always other supporting actors in the background, a good supporting actor or actress, can make a movie even more colorful, we can even say that the supporting actors are the secret ingredient that can either make or break a film. Then let us see who was nominated to get the best-supporting actress award." Speaking up to here, Eric made a gesture, and footage of those who were nominated for the award appeared on the big screen. The first two were , and for their role in , third was for her role in , forth is for her role in and thest is in . Personally, Eric wasn''t optimistic about , before she was able to win , but now he was sure that the winner should be either or . After the nominated actresses were introduced, Eric slowly opened the envelope and looked at the name. Sure enough, just like he expected it was one of the two. "This year best Supporting Actress is , for her role in ." After he announced the name, loud apuse sounded in the auditorium. A red haired girl about 180 cm in height (6 feet tall) stood up excitedly, hugged the people around her, then hurriedly walked on stage. She didn''t rush to take the small gold statue, instead, she hugged Eric excitedly. Eric could only smile and pat her on the back, is already more than 180 cm in height, but with her wearing high heels, she looked much taller than Eric, when the two hugged, most of the audience couldn''t help but chuckle. A few momentster, when he saw that she wasn''t gonna let go of him, Eric softly whispered in her ear: "Hey, Ms. Davis, Can you let me go? And why do I feel you''re doing this just to tease me." "Impatient little fellow!" whispered softly to him, then quickly let go of him.Taking the trophy, she began giving her speech. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 125 : Party (TL Note: Thank you, Mr. Robinson, for sponsoring this chapter, 1 chaptersing soon.) Patiently waiting for to finish her speech, Eric went down the stage with her, and after giving her another hug, he returned to his seat. ---- ---- In this three hours Eric like most of the audience had tough over and over again at the unfunny jokes the guest presenters told on stage. was only nominated for the best soundtrack award which can be ignored. As a young man who broke into Hollywood for more than six months, he made great achievements, and more than once he suffered from all sorts of jokes aimed at him by the guest presenters. So the camera lens often sweeps over him or took close ups of him. In this situation, Eric didn''t have the chance to rx. But Eric did not feel bored. Instead, he relished the contrast between this version of the Oscar ceremony and the Oscar ceremonies ten yearster. An hour and a half into the show, Eric found that the biggest difference between the Oscar now and the Oscar in the future, is that most of the award-winning works such as , , and so on aremercial films. Unlike 10 yearster, when most of the winners are politically correct films or extreme art films. So after more than two hours, most of the major awards have been awarded, it was the technical awards turn. After the best cinematography award was presented, the best animated short film awarde-up. The ones who cared the most about those type of awards are the directors, producers, and the film crews, and there was a lot of them in this auditorium. The guest presenter for the best animated short film award is who starred in , feeling the audience expectations, quickly give a brief introduction of the nominees, opened the envelope and read: "The winner of the best animated short film is , by ." Hearing the apuse, once again nced at Eric. After receiving a look of encouragement, she got up and walked to the stage. The name announced was obviously a male name, but the one walking to the stage is a beautiful woman wearing a blue strapless dress, most of the audience in front of their TV''s were questioning who is this goddess. "Who is this?" "What a beautiful girl!" "It''s strange to have a girl be named John!" The organizer obviously know who she was, so after Virginia walked on stage, the camera directly zoomed to Eric''s face, giving him a big close up. Eric secretly had the urge to flee, but could only sit tightly in his seat, with a nk look on his face. As if he didn''t know that the camera was focusing on him. Trying to pretend he didn''t know anything didn''t have much effect on the audience in the auditorium, especially when Eric''s face showed on the huge screen, some of the crowd surrounding Eric quickly give him some yful smiles. Many people in front of the TV was also able to make the connection, especially those who pay attention to gossip news, they quickly remembered the identity of , they also remembered that Eric Williams himself personally wrote a movie script just for her. --- --- In an apartment in Manhattan, New York, was sitting on a sofa, while holding a teddy bear Eric brought her. She spent the whole night sitting there motionless, staring at the TV. Hoping to see her boyfriend just one more time, she even looked forward to the times those presenters ridiculed him. But every time she saw Eric, her eyes couldn''t help but involuntarily look at the girl sitting beside him. Seeing Virginia getting on stage to ept the award, she couldn''t help but bitterly mumbled ''Bitch'' and tore a few hairs from the fluffy bear in her arm. Looking at smiling at the camera, Aniston quickly made up her mind, "I''m going back tomorrow." she then went into her bedroom and began packing her luggage. As she was doing that, she remembered the words her father told her: ''If you really care about that boy, then you better stay by his side. Because keeping a long distance rtionship alive is a very hard thing to do. If you feel you can''t stand it anymore. Then you should give up early, to avoid hurting each other.'' "I won''t give him up, especially to that bitch!" she kept grumbling, as she neatly packed her clothes. Finally, she picked up the keys to Eric luxurious mansion, and stuffed them in her bag, then called a travel agency to book a flight ticket. --- --- was also watching the Oscar through cable TV in Rome, Italy. The night after she rejected Eric offer, she returned to Europe, and took the initiative to ask director to reshoot some scenes, and just as her broker said? Because she give up such an important opportunity, she can''t afford to break her connections in Europe. The first film she starred in is a film made by the Italian director Sergio Leone, since then she won the recognition of the Italian film circle, so she can''t afford to break this valuable life line. Connelly also noticed that her broker Lester had started acting cold toward her, he spent more time on his other artists and paid less attention to her. Even in this trip to Rome, he didn''te along with her. For the past few days, every time she thought about the missed opportunity, her regrets umted. And as the close-up of Eric face appeared on TV, her hand couldn''t help but reach for the phone book that was in her hand bag, trying to find his phone number. "Will he still give me the role if I called him now?" mumbled to herself, as she stared at the phone number in her hand. Although she was far away in Rome, she could still read the scattered news about the major things happening in Hollywood, even news saying that actors have been identified. Although only the two lead actors were announced, the casting list has yet to be exposed. She knew that the role of the lead girl had been identified, so if she called him now, Eric wouldn''t dismiss the new actress and give her back the role. He will probably give her another role, but she also know that he has a limited number of film projects in his hand, after all, he isn''t the boss of one of the six giant film Studios. So, in the end, she decided not to call. --- --- After boarding the Oscar podium, didn''t make any unexpected move, she was content with just doing what Eric told her to do. Taking a deep breath, she unfolded a paper and started reading the eptance speech Eric give her. Then she elegantly walked backstage with . After that, the best actor award was as expected taken by for his wonderful performance in . When the best director award was about to start, Virginia came back carrying the gold statue, cheeks flushed, hips swaying, her whole body was exuded a mature charm, making all the men close to them envious of Eric, even some women couldn''t take their eyes off of her. Although this wasn''t a good time to talk, Virginia still secretly stroked his leg under the table, trying to convey how grateful she was. Unsurprisingly won the best picture, the three-hour long ceremony was finally over. But that didn''t mean that after the Oscar ends, the stars will go back home, countless celebration parties happen every year after the Oscar ceremony, so most of the guests are able to find a party to go to. Because didn''t win any award, Firefly didn''t host any celebration party, so although the Runkle couple''s who came as part of crew wanted to go to some of those party''s. They couldn''t, because the little guy was tired and drowsy, after sitting motionless in his seat for more than three hours, the couple had to swallow their disappointment and take the little guy back home to rest. --- --- "So Eric, where are we going to go next?" asked. Eric looked at Virginia who was still carefully holding the golden statues and said: "You chose, I received invitations to a few parties, the big ones are the party held by crew, crew, As well as , and . Oh, and also said that would hold a party, so which one you wanna go to." "Uh, ?" Virginia said in a voice filled with uncertainty. "Smart choice, celebration party is held at the Sunset Tower Hotel in Beverly Hills, close to home." After making the decision, the two quickly found Kapoor Sid and drove to the Sunset Tower Hotel. --- --- As the biggest winners this year, crew celebration party is undoubtedly the grandest, at his arrival , and the director Barry Levinson personallye to wee him. As he was Greeting and chatting with some people in the crowd, Cruise came to his side and said to Virginia: "Miss Madsen, can I talk to Eric alone." After spending the entire night by his side, was tired, but she still stayed by his side because she didn''t want another woman to take him from her. But now that Cruise personally asked, Virginia happily nodded. "Eric, about , I have a new idea, you see, in the part where ...... maybe we can modify it to ...... Do you think we can do that?" As soon as Virginia walked a little far away, Cruise Began telling Eric about his new ideas. After listening to him for a few minutes, Eric could Sum up all of ideas into one short sentence: add more drama! ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 126 (TL Note: Thank you, Mr. Robinson, for sponsoring this chapter.) Shaking his head, Eric exined: "Tom, the film is named , Because the two protagonists are running against time. And at its core the rivalry between the two protagonists is what makes the film good if the time given to the two characters be unbnced, the splendor of the film will be greatly reduced. And, I think in this movie your character has the biggest y space, and also need to share his scenes with , plus your role is a one-man show, so there''s no need to added to it." Although Cruise knows that what Eric said is very reasonable, his face still showed a touch of displeasure. Originally, Eric didn''t have much opinion about personal qualities, he didn''t even pay attention to the rumors about him in the tabloids. After all, most of the rumors and gossip about the celebrities in Hollywood are false, and the things he heard and read about him from reputable sources, all said that he is a very dedicated and hardworking man, that''s why Eric decided to cooperate with him. But now, he began to regret that decision, because the two of them like to control things around them, Eric was sure that in the process of filming the disputes between them will be unavoidable. Thinking carefully about it, Eric thought that was feeling superior because in the film industry Eric qualifications were too shallow. "Well, Eric, about the bus girl, , isn''t she ...... too tall?" Cruise height has always been his biggest weakness. So, after getting rejected, Cruise impulsively brought up this topic, but he regretted it as soon as he said it. was six feet tall (183 Centimetres), and if she wore high heels, it is estimated that she can be as tall as when she hugged him at the awards ceremony. Trying hard not tough in his face Eric advised: "Tom, you don''t have to worry about her, you''ll both be sitting in the two scenes you share with her. There are no shots of the two of you walking side by side? In both the bus encounter and the restaurant date." "All right." Cruise nodded sheepishly and drank a mouthful of wine to hide his embarrassment, then he walked away in a hurry. Eric had just turned, wanting to return to mingling with the crowd, when popped out of nowhere and hugged his arm as if afraid he will slip away. "Hey, that''s too tight, I promise I won''t run away," Eric said whileughing, he could clearly see that she was afraid he will start talking to another woman. Trying to hide her embarrassment, Virginia gave him an aggrieved look and released his arm as she said: "Humph, run to another woman if you want, I don''t care." Eric looked down at his watch as he said: "Forget it, let''s go back so you can stop always being afraid, of me being taken away from you because tonight I''m all yours." "Really." Virginia once again grabbed arm in joy: "Can we go to your house tonight?" "Sure but will have to sneak away, because I''m sure the paparazzi must be keeping an eye on us." thought for a few moment''s then said: "If we take the lift directly to the parking lot, then leave using Mr. Sid''s car, I''m sure there won''t be any trouble." "That''s my smart girl," Eric said in a whisper, if they weren''t in public, Eric would''ve definitely reached out to pinch her beautiful cheek. ---- ---- When they were about to leave, amotion happened at the entrance to the banquet hall, when Eric tried to pay attention to what''s going on at the entrance, he heard someone call the name '''' loudly. And sure enough, a few momentster a middle-aged man with circr sses walked through the crowd. "It''s . What''s he doing here?" Virginia said curiously. "Who knows," Eric shook his head and said: "let''s go and say hello." "Ok," Virginia said while trying to hide her eagerness. But as soon as they decided to go meet him, Spielberg started walking toward them. To everyone''s surprise, took the initiative to reach his hand to Eric: "Eric, I thought you would go to the Hilton Hotel, but when I went there some friends told me that you came here." "Really! ...... I don''t know what to say, Mr. Spielberg, If you contacted my agent, I would''ve personallye to meet you," Eric humbly said as they shook hands. "I heard you were busy these days, and today is a special day so I can spare some time," exined: "Eric, I booked a room downstairs, let''s go talk there. Oh, and this ...... beautifuldy can alsoe along if she wants." "No problem," Eric nodded and followed after Spielberg while taking along with him, leaving everyone in the banquet hall to wondering what''s going on. After Eric left, everyone started specting why Spielberg personally came to find Eric. Although they lost the chance to talk with , but they know they don''t have the qualifications. Only felt a deep sense of loss in his heart as he watched Spielberg and Eric and disappear at the door. whoe all the way to crew party, directly went to talk to Eric, he didn''t even look his way, even though he was standing very close to him, it was as if he didn''t exist. He didn''t have much hope in cooperating with Spielberg, he just wanted to be friends with . As a representative of the Jews in Hollywood, having a good rtionship with Spielberg is equal to having a friendship with all the Jews in Hollywood. Jews run Hollywood, this is not a false statement, , , and many other moviepany executives are Jews. And , Harrison Ford and the other big famous directors and stars are also Jews. After Cruise left , if he wants to get rid of his status as an actor, and enters the producer''s rank, it is essential to make connections with the Jewish circle in Hollywood. ---- ---- In a room on the seventh floor, the two sides sat down, after a hotel staff member served them coffee they ordered, he took the initiative to withdraw from the room, leaving only and his assistant, and Eric, and Virginia. "Eric, is Drew OK? it has been a long time since visited me." Spielberg didn''t rush to get down to business. Instead, he casually started chatting. Eric also wasn''t urgent, but when he took a glimpse at who was sitting beside him, he found that she was looking at with googly eyes. Seeing her like that he felt very ashamed, after all, they were both directors. So he decided when they go back home tonight, he will do some evil things to her, things he always wanted to do. "What a heartless girl," Eric said with a smile: "when I go back home, I will give her a lesson, It''s really rude of her not to visit family members for such a long time." "I heard people that Drew''s rtionship with you was strange, like father and daughter. I didn''t believe it at first, but now that I listened to the tone of your voice, I think it may be true, maybe it''s a good choice for her to follow you. Her parents ...... let''s just say, they aren''t good parents, Eric, I hope you treat her well." "I will," Eric nodded, he didn''t know where heard the news after all the other side connections in Hollywood is beyond his reach. Spielberg slowly took a sip from his coffee and said: "In fact, I came to talk to you today, about , I''ve had people contact you a couple of times before, but they were all turned down, So today I came personally, Eric, how about selling me film copyright?" Eric didn''t answer right away, In fact, he was very distressed, selling movie copyrights to , is out of the question. He doesn''t even want to let Spielberg be the director of the film, like in his past life, because he just remembered some data when Spielberg started talking about the copyrights. In his past life, won more than $900 million at the box office, $350 million in North America, and $600 million overseas. ording to the local average of 55%, and 20% overseas box office dividends, the film was eventually able to get $310 million in box office split. Universal Pictures invested about 70 million US dors in the film. When you subtract the cost, you find that the film made a huge profit of $240 million. This looks like a big number because, in the past nine years, even the sixrge studios weren''t able to make this much profit in a year. However, this is why Spielberg is worthy of being called the most astute film businessman. As director, Spielberg by virtue of personal strength, connections and a series of negotiations, was able to sign a contract that was very unfavorable to Universal, that gave him a small share of the box office and most of the DVD sales profits. The end result is Spielberg was able to get 250 million US dors for directing ." Yes, $10 million more than the box office profit. In 1993, the era of the digital video discs (DVDs) still hasn''te yet, so the (VHS) video market in best cases ounted for only thirty-five percent of the movie''s earnings, other peripheral broadcasting rights ie is rtively less. In other words, most of the profits of video tapes were actually taken by himself, this was how he was able to establish ''''. If it was not for peripheral products and theme parks bringing huge profits for Universal, Eric was sure that Universal CEO would have lost his job. As for the rumors, that Spielberg was discontent with and investment getting bundled together, which led to him getting dissatisfied with Universal, and prompting him to establish '''' with his friends Jeffrey Katzenberg, David Geffen. this argument has no credibility at all, in reality, Spielberg established '''' because he finally was able to get his hands on a lot of money, that is the simple truth. Not a penny was invested, and he took away $250 million, what can he be dissatisfied about! What Eric was worried about now is how to politely refuse and without affecting their rtionship, after all, he doesn''t want to offend the Jewish director who has great connections in Hollywood, that will be like suicide. "Mr. Spielberg, actually ...... when I wrote this book. I originally intended to direct the film myself, so ......." Eric stammered trying to organize his words: "So ...... I didn''t intend to sell the film and television rights of ." Spielberg smiled like an elder, and said like he was doing him a favor: "Eric, I''ve seen some of your movies, I think you are good at low-costedy films and also drama, but when ites to , a science fiction novel, I''m afraid for a long time you won''t be able to shoot it. I don''t mean to belittle what you said, but you''re still too young after all andck experience. I too faced the same situation in the past, I made my first short film in 1959, but only until sixteen yearster, was I able to produce science fiction movies like . Your qualifications are much better than mine, but it will take you at least ten years or so to umte enough experience, to make a film like . Perhaps at that time, many people would have forgotten the novel , making it difficult to recover the cost of the film." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 127 (TN Note: I would like to thank ''Tamabiz'' for sponsoring this chapter.) -------------- "So, you still refused?" in a car in the parking lot, Kapoor who was sitting in the driver''s seat, helplessly looked at Eric who was sitting beside him. Thinking about what just happened, Eric sighed and nodded his head. Although didn''t show any displeasure when he left, he still regretted saying he will contact him if he changed his mind. And from the looks Spielberg assistant was giving Eric know that he had offended the famous Jewish director, it was as if he was looking at someone who can''t appreciate favors. If had previously expressed his intention to buy the copyrights through other people, and Eric refused then no one will say anything. But him refusing this time is much worse, after all, Spielberg personally came forward, this can be considered a sincere gesture, It''s like Spielberg has asked him for a favor. If they reach a deal, Eric will not only gain lots of money, but he will also get Spielberg''s favor, this connection may be of great help to him in the future. But he can not transfer an essential piece of his future careeryout to Spielberg just for a favor. After all, selling copyrights, mean losing a huge industry chain worth tens of billions of dors. Although Eric has never thought of swallowing this big cake alone, at least he wants to get the most delicious part. Once he sells the copyrights, then he willpletely lose the initiative to lead this project, and at maximum, he will only be able to get some residual leftovers after everyone takes their shares. "Eric, would you like to hear my advice?"" Kapoor asked. "I know what you''re going to say. Contact right away and sell the movie rights to him, right? Kapoor, there is no room for discussion, I will not sell." Kapoor scratched his bald head in agony and said: "Eric, have you ever thought about your situation? You are an independent yer, those big filmpany executives act familiar towards you now, only for their interests. They act nice to you now because all of your previous films have achieved great sess, bringing great benefits to them. But no one will seed forever, and once you fail, they will turn against you." "I think for a long period of time, I won''t experience failure, I have confidence in my film. " "There are many factors that can result in failure, and some of them are man-made." Kapoor went on: "Eric, think it over. Only two of your works have been released, and even if the now they only see you as a lucky little guy. But if your films seed all the time, those giants will try to suppress you at all costs, they will even try to destroy you. Like lions on the prairie, they will allow hyenas to nibble at the food they eat, but they will never allow a small hyena to take the lion share." Eric opened his mouth, but he couldn''t think of any thing to refute him, He knew that what Kapoor said is the truth, In fact, he still hopes he can find some strong allies, so that in the future when those giants start suppressing him, he won''t bepletely isted. This was a good opportunity to befriend him, Once Eric sells the copyright, wouldn''t be able to easily get rid of Eric because he is the film screenwriter, Spielberg also promised that Firefly Studios can participate in the investment. All these conditions can allow Firefly to establish a good rtionship with Spielberg, but Eric still wouldn''t willingly let go of the copyrights, Seeing the struggle and hesitation on Eric''s face, Kapoor continued: "Eric, do you know that Firefly closely resembles another movie studio in Hollywood?" Eric looked up curiously, as Kapoor continued his preaching: "The studio Firefly resemble the most is , in the beginning, joined several other famous directors like , , and actress , and founded 2. Thepany was a pure productionpany specializing in providing excellent film to the other giant film studios because like Firefly they didn''t have a distribution channel. As a result, the Film giants who had distribution channels at the time, all survived, except for RKO Pictures who was one of the big five studios at the time, thatpany was dismantled after a series of expensive film failures made by . Which lead to him selling RKO Pictures to anotherpany called ''General Tire'' who was interested mainly in exploiting the value of RKO''s film library for television programming. But now thepany that waspared to the other giants had be a subsidiary of . The reason has fallen this low is that they put too much emphasis on producing films, and ignore the expansion of their own distribution channels." As he was listening to Kapoor exnation, Eric''s mind directly thought of , the history of and is surprisingly simr. In his past life, he often saw the words "Distribution Channels First" in some economic magazines, In the memories of his past life, second line filmpanies, such as , , and Spielberg''s , always start strong. But they all die or get sold topanies like , , , and the other giants. "Compared to the original , Firefly is in a much worse shape, after all, Firefly has no way to issue its films, other than through other studios. And most of the distribution channels in North America and the world have been monopolized by those giants, if those film giant want to deal with you, all they need to do is not publish your films. So what you need most right now is allies, then once a bad situation urs, you can ask for their help. After all, hyenas can''t make friends with lions, but they live in the same ecosystem. It was unwise of you, to refuse Spielberg whoe to your door." If he wasn''t someone that came from the future, Eric was sure he would have caved and obediently handed to , but unfortunately, he wasn''t a from this era. "All right, Kapoor, I understand." Eric nodded. Delighted Kapoor handed Eric his cell phone, "Then quickly call Spielberg, don''t be afraid that the other person will think you''re fickle. Eric, you''re a young man. I''m sure Spielberg wouldn''t mind." Eric took the Motor DynaTAC (also known as the brick phone) in his hand and said: "Kapoor, I''m just saying I understand the importance of distribution channels to the Firefly, I didn''t say I would sell to Spielberg." snigger who was sitting in the back seat quietly listening to their conversation couldn''t help butugh, aware of her mistake, she quickly covered her mouth. Choked, Kapoor starred Speechlessly at Eric for a few moment. Eventually, he came back to himself, and said as he took back his brick phone: "Jeffrey is right, you''re a stubborn young man." "Do not worry, Kapoor, I have my own ns. Think about it, I''m British American, I still have my British nationality. So even if be friends with , it''s impossible for me to enter the Jewish circle." Eric wasn''t worried about those things, this year Firefly will produce several movies, his next three films have already been taken care of, One will be taken by Columbia, and the other two will go to FOX ording to their previous contract. Although he hadn''t yet identified the issuers for the other three films, but the other major studios already contacted him, as long as he is willing, they will sign the contracts anytime he wants. If all these movies achieve simr sess at the box office, then he will be able to umte arge amount of money. Even if one or two flop at the box office because of the butterfly effect, he will earn less money, but he wouldn''t get hurt. After all, only Running Out of Time have a budget of $40 million, his other films all have budgets less than $10 million. So even if one film isn''t able to achieve the same sess as his past life, he will still be able to recover his investment and earn a little more. And as Kapoor said, after this year, the big studios will certainly realize that he took too much, and will try every means to suppress him, they will even try to squeeze the profits he deserves, but at that time he will have umted enough money so that he won''t end-up defenseless. Not to mention the six won''t all try suppressing him, even if they all agree to suppress him, then he can slowly recharge his batteries. Moreover, he didn''t believe that all of them will be able to turn down someone who can bring them such great benefits, all he needs is for one of the six to cave in. ---- ---- "Kapoor, can you lend me your car tonight, you can take my car." Kapoor nced at the girl sitting in the back seat and shook his head: "No, Eric, you can''t borrow my car, not to mention you are still a little bit drunk, let me take you home., " "Kapoor, don''t be so serious, and don''t think you are a light bulb just because you shaved your head." quipped Eric while who was sitting in the back seat lowered her head in shame. (TL Note: Don''t be a light bulb means don''t be a third wheel, if you wanna know more then go here .) Kapoorughed: "You misunderstood, I don''t want to be a light bulb. I meant to say that I''ll send you back, I only drank a few mouthfuls of champagne. More importantly, I am very experienced, in detecting and running away from the paparazzi, it is by virtue of this skill that I was able to get my first employer, I don''t want to wake up tomorrow tocy news about the two of you ...... Eric, Beverly Hills or Malibu?" "My house, Malibu is too far away." "Well, then you sit in the back seat, the front seat can be photographed." As he drove away from the hotel, Kapoor looked at the mirror and said: "A total of three paparazzi cars were waiting outside. Fortunately, there were many targets at the party, otherwise, they will have started tailing us ." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 128 Curious, Eric turned and looked behind for a while: "I only see two cars, the silver Honda, and the ck Chrysler." "Oh, so. if I just let you drive my car and leave, you''ll have ended up on the newspaper tomorrow, take a closer look." "You mean? ......" Eric watched for a while, and finally found a hidden ck car: "the ck Mercedes Benz, how can a paparazzi afford such expensive car." "That''s the one," Kapoor replied with a smile, and asked curiously: "Is that Mercedes Benz expensive? I think that car cost only about thirty thousand dors." "Well, I will remember that." Eric felt embarrassed because when he saw the Mercedes Benz, he subconsciously thought of the more luxurious Mercedes car that cost more than a hundred thousand dors, in his past life he couldn''t even afford to buy the tiers of those cars. Kapoor didn''t talk again. Instead, he focused on driving in the busy streets of Los Angeles, even though it waste at night people were still out and about. As they got close Kapoor asked: "All done, now lets hope there is no paparazzi camping in front of your door." "Kapoor, my house has a back door." Looking through the rearview mirror, Kapoor unabashedly gave Eric a disdainful look, which made chuckle, feeling defeated Eric raised his hand and said: "All right, I''ll stop talking." When the car stopped at Eric''s house door, Eric and Virginia didn''t get out. Instead, Kapoor himself got out to open the door, then he drove the car directly into the yard. "There is a paparazzi parked 10 meters from the door, on the right side, be careful not to be photographed tomorrow when you leave." "Rest assured, I won''t let that happen." Eric grabbed Virginia''s little hand and said as he started walking toward the vi: "Kapoor, Would you like toe in?" Kapoor shrugged: "Although I don''t want to be a light bulb, but I have to stay here for at least ten minutes before I leave, or I shouldn''t have driven in." "Well,e in and have a cup of coffee." as they walked into the vi, they found that the light in the living room is still on, seeing the confusion on their faces Eric exined: " will be staying here for the next two days." Drew came back from school because she originally thought that Eric will take her to the Oscar, but unfortunately, he reced her with , so for thest two days she was short-tempered and wouldsh out from time to time. Opened the door of the living room, he saw the little girl curled on the sofa with the TV still on. Stepping forward Eric gently tried to wake her up: "Drew, wake up and go to sleep upstairs." After shaking her a few times, finally had a reaction, mumbling she said: "Hmm! ...... Eric, I don''t wanna do it now, so sleepy!" Uh ...... Eric looked at the two petrified people standing behind him and said with a guilty conscience: "This, I swear, I have never done anything with her!" This exnation sounded very pale and weak, Kapoor and Virginia obviously didn''t believe him. "Bastard ...... " Virginia muttered. "Don''t forget using protection ..... " Kapoor is indeed a professional agent who only think about his employers. Seeing that the two wouldn''t believe his excuses, Eric gave up and said: "Well, I won''t exin, Vicky, the coffee is in the kitchen, you entertain Kapoor., while I take to her room." After he said that, Eric carefully picked Drew and walked upstairs to her bedroom, then he carefully put her in bed and covered her with a quilt, then closed the door behind him as he left the room. The moment he closed the door, Drew her sparkling eyes, and looked at the closed door,ughing she threw the cover off of her and said: "ha ha, serve you right for not taking me to the Oscar!" bam The bedroom door suddenly was pushed open by Eric, who stood there ring at her: "I know you did it deliberately from the start, aren''t you afraid I will be sent to prison, do you want me to send you to sleep in the streets?" The mischievous girl who was caught red handed immediately pulled the quilt over her face, and said in a muffled voice as if she was asleep: "I really was asleep." ", Virginia will stay here tonight, don''t make trouble." Pulling the thin quilts down, Drew revealed just her sparkling eyes, and said: "Can I watch?" "Adolescents girls under the age of 18 are forbidden from watching those kinds of things." "Can I at least secretly watch." Eric raised his voice and said in a serious tone: "Drew, I''m serious." "All right ..... don''t get angry, I promise I won''t try to sneak around," said Drew, then she covered her head with the quilt, and turned her back to Eric, like a little wife whos angry with her husband. Eric looked silently at the girl as if he was judging if she told the truth, then after a while, he closed the bedroom door again. ---- ---- Kapoor quickly drank his cup of coffee and left, leaving the two lovers alone. Eric who started kissing Virginia as soon as Kapoor left, picked her up and went to his bedroom. Putting on the bed, Eric carefully examined every corner of the bedroom, when he was sure that Drew isn''t spying on them, Eric locked the bedroom door, turned off the light, and rushed back to the puzzled Virginia. The flustered Virginia asked as he started taking off her clothes: "Shall I uh ...... first ...... take a bath?" Eric who was breathing heavily, quickly stopped his movement and said: "It''s toote now if you want, you can take a bath when we finish." A few minutes after they started, gently opened her bedroom door, and walked bare foot through the dark corridor, making sure she didn''t make any noise. When she reached Eric bedroom, Drew carefully stuck her ear to the door. After eavesdropping for about five minutes, Drew who got bored, straightened up and pouted angrily, as she walked back to her room she muttered in dissatisfaction: "lucky bitch." Going back to her room, the bored Drew couldn''t sleep, she was originally a night owl, The deeper the night, the more energetic she got, not to mention the present situation was driving her crazy. The sound she heard when she was eavesdropping again emerged in her mind, Imperceptibly, the thin pink Nightgown was thrown out, and after that her small white panties flow out of the bed, then a very irregr and clumsy up and down motions started under the quilt. ---- ---- She didn''t know why she woke up so early today, Well, it wasn''t that early, it was past nine o''clock. However, rtive to her regr sleep schedule, this time is indeed very early. Dressed, she brushed her teeth and looked in the mirror. The first thing she noticed is the dark circles under her eyes, mumbling angerly, she finished her morning routine and walked out of the bathroom, Only to find the vi quiet. Apparently, the other two still didn''t wake up, perhaps they two stayed upte, she thought. she thought about banging the bedroom door to wake them up, but she quickly decided not to do it, he rarely sleepste, so why not let him rest this day. Putting on some fluffy slippers, she went downstairs and made her self a bowl of milk and cereal, and sat on the table in the dining room. As she stuffed the first spoonful of cereal and milk in her mouth, she heard a sound of the living room door getting opened. Curious, put down her spoon and went to see who came this early in the morning. Walking through the door, dragged her old dusty red suitcase and looked at whoe to see her. Seeing Drew emerge from the dining room, the interested expression on her face quickly faded. "Where is Eric?" Aniston asked like she was talking to a maidservant, if it were another time Drew would''ve answered back sarcastically, But now ...... Drew looked at Aniston with sparkling eyes, pointed upstairs, and said: "Upstairs, Second room on the left." Feeling that something wasn''t right, Aniston suspiciously ncing at , put down her luggage and walked upstairs. Only when figure disappeared upstairs, did Drew allow a wicked smile to appear on her face? "Eric, you can''t me me for this!" ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 129 part1 (TN Note: Sorry for this short half chapter, tranting this chapter was harder than usual. As you probably guessed, I don''t really speak Chinese, I don''t even know how to read it. I usually use Google, or Baidu to trante those chapters, so you should probably know how bad machine trantions can be, anyway I don''t know why but this chapter was hard to trante. The way the author of this novel structured his sentences in this chapter confused the hell out of me, especially when ites to conversations between people.) ---- ---- Drew hurried back to the dining room grab her bowl of cereal, then walked close to stairs ready to watch what was going to happen while having breakfast like a boss. But after thinking about for a moment, she chose to watch from the entrance of the dining room, that ce was safer. And like she expected less than a minuteter, the sound of a couple quarrel came from upstairs. "Eric Williams, I''ll never forgive you, you bastard, you son of a bitch!" said, and quickly run down stairs, giving a ferocious stare at the lively , she pulled her suitcase to leave. "Jenny, wait, don''t be impulsive." Eric''s voice rang from upstairs, and then Eric showed up wearing only a pair of trousers, seeing that Aniston was pulling her luggage to leave, the impatient Eric didn''t pay attention to the stairs, and ended up losing his footing. With the sound of a crash, Eric tumbled down the stairs. "Wow!" said Drew''s with her mouth full of cereal, she wasn''t too worried, when she saw Eric roll down the stairs. Instead, she was gloating, because the stairs were less than two meters high. When Aniston saw this scene, she too angrily scolded him, saying that he deserves it. Unfortunately, something unexpected happened, Eric who rolled all the way down the stairs, directly copsed on the ground. Then, blood began to gush from his forehead, as he Lay There Motionless. The atmosphere stagnated a bit, then the bowl filled with cereal and milk smashed on the ground, as rushed forward with a frightened face. "Eric, are you all right? Hey, talk to me, you...... don''t scare me!" Drew rushed to Eric''s side while shouting his name, but he has lost consciousness, she tried to wipe the blood on his forehead, but she soon found that the blood won''t stop, checking carefully she found a wound about one centimeter long on his forehead. The moment she saw the scene, who angrily wanted to leave, quickly put down her suitcase and run up to his side, maneuvering around Drew''s body, Aniston also panicked when she saw the wound that was overflowing with blood. "What ... the ... How did that happen?" Drew who started trying to stop the blood by putting pressure on the wound, but in the process she got the blood all over the cuffs of her pajamas, looking up with red angry eyes at Aniston, Drew shouted: "Bitch, call an ambnce. If anything happens to him, I swear I''ll kill you!" Scared by Drew violent threats, Aniston rushed to the telephone and frantically dialed 911. And at this time, the hastily dressed also went downstairs and also hurriedly rushed to Eric''s side. "Drew, leave it to me, I can do it." "Go away, you fucking slut, I me you both, if it weren''t for the two of you, Eric wouldn''t get hurt ...... " Although she was insulted by , Virginia didn''t take it to heart, after all, she is a mature woman, and know not to care about what this brat say about her: "Drew, you won''t be able to stop the blood with just your hands, so tell me where is the first-aid kit?" "I only know about the one in the closet in Eric''s bedroom," Drew said without hesitation, and watched as Virginia quickly ran upstairs. "They said we need to put him t on the floor ...... " said when she saw Drew kneeling on the floor with Eric in her arms. Coldly ncing at Aniston, Drew did as she said and carefullyy Eric t on the floor, while still keeping the pressure on the wound on his forehead. Looking at Drew''s appearance, Aniston felt a pang in her heart, she is Eric''s genuine girlfriend, so why does the scene look like this now, It''s like she is a third party. Looking at Drew acting like a mother bear, Aniston instinctively became timid, she felt that if she got closer to Eric, Drew wouldsh out like a wild beast. soon returned with the first aid kit and said: "Drew, let me do it. I know how to do first aid." Drew quietly backed off a bit, and watched as Virginia skillfully stopped the bleeding and dressed the wound, calming a little, Drew nced at Aniston who was standing at the side: "Didn''t you say you were leaving, well, you can leave now, and don''te to see him." "I ..." who finally came back to herself said angerly: "I am Eric''s girlfriend, who do you think you are tomand me? You''re just a pet he''s raising!" Sneering at her, shot back: "At least I''m not a stubborn fool like you, and why the hell are you always acting like a self-righteous bitch." "You are the fool," said Aniston angrily, then she pointed to Virginia and said: "I''m his girlfriend, shouldn''t I be angry about him sleeping with her." "He''s such an excellent man, what''s wrong with him ying with several women?" "You! ...... " Aniston was rendered speechless by illogical reasoning. who finally finished bandaging the wound on Eric''s forehead, then she touched his chest trying to feel his heart beat, only then did she allow herself to calm down. Listening to the two girls quarrel, Virginia was about to stop them when the doorbell rang. "The ambnce came," Aniston whispered, and Drew immediately forgot about the quarrel and rushed out to open the door. When the ambnce drove up to the vi door, Virginia got up and hide upstairs, she doesn''t want outsiders to know she was here, After all, her rtionship with Eric isn''t public. When Aniston saw move upstairs, she Subconsciously wanted to hide too, but when she caught sight of the figure of Drew waving her hands, eagerly exining what happened to the paramedics, she know it was toote to hide. The paramedics did a simple treatment for Eric, be he still didn''t wake up, so they carried the still unconscious Eric and loaded him into the ambnce who didn''t know what to do next, saw get on the ambnce, so she quickly followed after her, then the ambnce drove out of Eric''s mansion and speed all the way to the nearest hospital. One of the paparazzi keeping guard outside Eric''s vi, keenly felt that something big was going, so he quickly got back in his car and chased after the ambnce. Less than an hourter, the news of Eric''s being in aa, spread like a fire throughout the news media in Los Angeles. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 129 part2 (TN Note: Again sorry for the short half chapter, this chapter is big, there is still a third part.) "Breaking News, this morning, the young director Eric Williams identally fell down the stairs in his vi in Beverly Hills, and still remain unconscious. Let''s see what our reporter in front of the Beverly Hills Surgical Hospital can add." The TV screen switched from the studio to a scene in front of a hospital, where forty or fifty journalists were almost blocking the entrance of the hospital, surrounding who had just got off his luxurious car. A young blonde female reporter stood in front of the camera holding a microphone said: "Eric Williams has continued being in aa for more than three hours, ording to the current revealed news, Eric''s back, elbows, and knees have varying degrees of injury. But the most serious injury is the one on his forehead that was caused by the violent impact when he hit the floor, causing arge amount of blood loss. It is not clear whether the injury will lead to more serious consequences, after all, the consequences of brain injuries are hard to predict ......" ---- ---- Inside the hospital, Jeffrey and Kapoor whoe first, as well as , and the two directors of and were catching up as they waited for the news from the doctors. After a series of tests, Eric was finally taken to his own room, and the people who were waiting for this moment, all gathered in an office to listen to the doctor analysis. "The results of the MRI exam showed that Mr. Williams doesn''t have a skull fracture, and he also doesn''t have the symptoms of internal bleeding in his head, so there is no need to worry." "Doctor Duncan, when will he wake up?" who stood in front of the crowd eagerly asked. Dr. Duncan hesitated and said: "He should wake up in about eight hours." Drew who saw him hesitate asked: "Doctor, aren''t you sure?" Hesitating again, Dr. Duncan nodded "How could that be? You''re a doctor. How can you not be sure? Aren''t you the best doctor here?" Drew screamed back at him. Trying to get things under control, Jeffrey said: "Drew, don''t be rude." Dr. Duncan calmly looked at the hysterical girl, who was still wearing her blood-stained pajamas and exined: "Miss , ording to my past experience, people who have the same degree of injury as Mr. Williams, all woke by this time. But unfortunately, Mr. Williams didn''t wake up ording tomon sense. So, I can''t give you an urate answer, all we can do now is patiently wait." "No, I want to transfer him, I''m going to the best hospital in Los Angeles, I ...... " the furious demanded. Jeffrey who was trying to keep her calm; held her by the shoulders and said: "Drew, stop it, this is the best hospital in Los Angeles." The doctor who also tried to defuse the situation said: "Perhaps, you can try speaking to the patient, he may wake up." When Drew heard the suggestion, she immediately turned around and ran to Eric''s room. When her figure disappeared, Jeffrey asked, "Doctor, does this method really work?" Dr. Duncan smiled wryly and said: "I just wanted to calm Miss , her emotions are unstable, she might copse if she doesn''t calm down." ---- ---- When they left the doctor office, and came back to Eric''s room they found that Drew was lying beside him whispering in his hear, no one know what she was saying, but they didn''t have the courage to get closer, they could only watch from outside the room. and who were eager toe forward, but when they saw this scene, they also quickly retreated. Jeffrey who was the oldest finally said: "Everyone should go back, It''s no use staying here, Me and Kapoor will call you if any thing happen." Taking his advise, everyone left, except for Aniston who stubbornly refused to leave, she also wanted to get closer to Eric, but she was scared by the crazy looks was giving her. ---- ---- Eight hourster, Eric still didn''t show any signs of waking up, Drew who was going crazy, transferred all her pent up anger and fury to Aniston body. and at eleven in the evening, drew got in a fight with Aniston and ended giving her two scratches one on the neck and one on the arm, but she was quickly restraind by Jeffrey and Kapoor. ---- ---- At night, CEO , and from who couldn''t wait, showed up at the hospital, they were stopped by the excited crowd of reporters, but they were quickly rescued by the security. They first went to the ward to see Eric, and then, they went with Jeffrey to ask the tired physician to once again ask about Eric''s condition. "Doctor, is there a possibility that he is in ae?" After listening to Duncan''s exnation, Barry Diller finally asked the question most people wanted to ask but didn''t dare to. After hesitating for a few seconds, Dr. Duncan said: "There is a very small chance of that happening, but ...... it is not impossible." Fortunately, was still bedside Eric, if she heard this sentence, he wondered what that girl will do to him. Hearing what the doctor said, Jeffrey and others looked at each other, and didn''t know what to say. The ones who worried the most were and , they weren''t worried about Eric, but they were concerned about the movies Eric was going to make for and . If Eric''s next film project get aborted ... they will be in trouble. Finding that it was useless to worry about it now, and quickly left. ---- ---- The next day, at four in the morning, Eric who was in aa for nearly neen hours finally woke up. After the doctor finished examining him, Eric affectionally caressed the sleeping girl hair sleeping beside him. Drew who didn''t leave his side the entire day, fell asleep as soon as he woke up. "Eric, you rest, I will take to the next room to sleep?" Jeffrey said after the doctor left the room, Jeffrey and Kapoor spent all night awake sitting beside his bed. "No, leave her," said Eric, as he pulled the sleeping girl beside him, then he turned to Aniston who was standing beside the door and said: "Jenny,e here." Aniston who obediently came to him said: "Eric, since ... since you woke up, I''ll go first." Eric afraid that she will run away quickly grasped her hand and said: "Jane, please don''t go." Kapoor who understood what happened quickly said to Jeffrey: "Let''s go call the others, they must be worried by now." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 129 part3 (TN Note: Finally this chapter is over, I will go take a nap, I think I deserve it after this chapter.) ---- ---- Only after the ward door closed, did rx and sit down on a chair beside Eric''s bed. Eric curiously touched the red mark on Aniston''s neck: "This is ... ..." nced at Drew, who was lying next to Eric and said: "When you were in aa ... ... Drew attacked me, she told me she was gonna kill me if you didn''t wake up." "Oh, she will not." Eric stretched his hand and touched Aniston''s face. "No, she will," said Aniston, pulling away from Eric''s hand: "I think ...... We should break up, maybe ...... Maybe is better for you." "I only think of drew as my little sister." didn''t care about their rtionship. Instead, she said: "I ... ... I really can''t stand seeing you helping them, Eric, while I was in New York, I read what they stated in the newspaper. Tofort myself, I could pretend that it was all fabricated gossips made by the tabloids, but what I saw yesterday morning, let me no longer be able to lie to myself, it was all true. I just can''t stand it, so ... ... Will you please let me go?" Eric held Aniston''s hand tight and said: "Forget it, Jane, let''s not talk about it now. I''m nning to make a TV show, and I want you to y the heroine? I promise this TV show will let you be more famous than those movie stars." She tried pulling her little hand away, but she couldn''t: "I don''t want to ... ... " "I really can''t think of someone who is more suitable than you, Jenny, You don''t want me to have another audition? there will be a lot of girls around me, and you know that I have a weak will." "You! ... ... " "Well, that''s settled then." "I ... ... " Aniston is stubborn, but under Eric''s strong offensive and unreasonable demands, quickly caved in and agreed. She didn''t know how but she suddenly found herself lying on the other side of Eric, like , she stayed up all night, so she too quickly fell asleep beside him. ---- ---- Although Eric already woke up from thea. But because he woke upte at night, the newspapers were already printed out. So in the morning, the breaking news that Eric is in a deepa still appeared in the newspapers. "Mr. Williams idental injury, may lead to his new film getting shut down, which may lead to losing one of their heavyweight bargaining chip." "ording to internal sources, Williams who has been unconscious for a long time may enter a vegetative state, once this happens. The film contracts signed with and Columbia will be aborted, and the development of Firefly Studios will also face an uncertain future." This kind of news was clearly aimed at the twopanies, so Fox television quickly released the news that Eric isn''t unconscious anymore, so those articles were quickly reduced to mere scrap papers. Although and Fox shares both briefly declined after the stock market opened in the morning, and as the news cleared up, things quickly stabilized. At the same time, some newspapers focused on another thing, their approach has also attracted arge number of readers. For example, an article in the Los Angeles Times wrote this: "As everyone knows, Eric Williams currently doesn''t have any rtives, although the child star has a close rtionship with him. But the two don''t have a blood rtionship, so she legally doesn''t have any rights to his assets, and it is said that Eric Williams didn''t make a will. So once an ident happens to him, his huge assets worth hundreds of millions of dors will not be inherited, and my face the possibility of being taken over by the federal government." ---- ---- In the hospital, although Eric felt that he had fully recovered, the doctor advised him to stay in the hospital for a few days. Looking at the article in the Los Angeles Times, Eric smiled and said to Drew who was sitting next to him: "Maybe I should make a will, Drew, how much do you want?" "Did you forget what we talked about when we were shooting ? Of course, I want everything," said as she idly looked at a magazine. "Huh ... ... I thought you''d say you don''t want any money, as long as you could stay with me, but you actually want all my property? WoW, this really hurt." "Humph!" ---- ---- While Eric was suffering from boredom in the hospital, far away in Britain, the British paparazzi found another thing, Eric''s father is dead, but his mother''s identity is a mystery, this discovery made many paparazzi ecstatic, If they can find Eric Williams''s mother''s whereabouts, then They will have an explosive story in their hand. As the birthce of the paparazzi, the British paparazzi were really good at digging secrets, so they soon found out, where he lived in London when he was young, and when they visited his old neighborhood, they were able to find some clues. "That woman was very mysterious ... ... " "Every time I saw her outside, she was wearing a thin veil, I''ve never seen her face ... ... " "I think she was a richdy, but after the birth of the child she disappeared ... ... " After spending a tremendous effort, the British tabloids were only able to find this much. In other words, no one remembers Eric Williams''s mother at all, so they hypothesized that this may be a love story between a girl from a noble family and amoner. This fabricated news quickly spread to the United States, so when Eric saw those articles, he felt relieved. It was for the best that she stays mysterious forever, because if the mother of the original owner of the body suddenly appeared in front of him, he wouldn''t know how to deal with her. After April Fool''s day, Eric went through another careful examination, which he sessfully passed, and was cleared to leave the hospital. With this storm finally over, the preparations for once again got on track. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 130 part1 (TN Note: Sorry guys I''m sick, for thest two days I have constantly been throwing up, but after taking some pills I''m getting better.) is one of the few Hongkong film directors who Eric likes the most, because of the big sess of a film made by in the year 1986. Most people only think of when they see Chinese action films with that kind of violent aesthetics, but Eric prefers distinctive personal style, his movies have their own blend of cold, violent, tragedy, philosophy and other elements that evoke pity or sadness. is one of the few films made by that impressed Eric the most, if you Judged the film from the perspective of the ordinary audience, then the word that will appear the most is definitely the word: Cool! That''s the main reason why Eric chose this movie. This was a bold attempt by Eric, he wanted to see if a movie that didn''t exist in Hollywood history can seed. From his memories, he found that the copyrights for most of the films that were able to seed in the next ten years were already sold to other studios, taking those films from the hands of those big giants is almost impossible. Especially if they know that Eric himself is looking for those movies, and the film that hasn''t been sold yet are hard to find, if he keeps shooting films at his current pace, in a year or two he wouldn''t find any thing to shoot. Of course, this is a fairly safe attempt, first of all, have a very exciting story, and the film also received and Tom Hanks recognition, which shows that there is no difference in the taste of the eastern and the Western tastes audience. Second, The name recognition of the two Toms and Eric, can guaranty that the film will do good at the box office, at least at the start there won''t be any problems. ording to the data Department, with poprity once again reaching a higher peak after experiencing the sess of , and Tom Hanks just getting nominated for the best actor at the Oscar for his role in . Plus the box office appeal of Eric''s name, it was very easy for the film to get more than $100 million dors at the box office. On April 5, in arge studio owned by , Eric officially started shooting , the first things he was going to shoot is a series of indoor scenes, but this time Eric wasn''t going to shoot the scenes in a chronological order like he did in . In the image of the two protagonists is very clear, so he decided not to add any changes. As long as the actors can sessfully do their role, no matter from which scene he began shooting he wouldn''t have any problems. So Eric decided to start from the simplest to the mostplex. ---- ---- In an examination room, Cruise who ys Andy learned that his condition has gotten worse, so as he slowly wore his clothes he asked the doctor. "How long?" "Four weeks, if you start bleeding, you will die at any time." The fat doctor who was sitting behind a desk replied with a hoarse voice. Andy didn''t stop dressing when he heard the bad news, and after he fastened his belt, he handed a dozen banknotes to the doctor and said: "It does not matter, just give me four weeks of painkillers." Taking the bottle of painkillers, Andy put on his coat and decided to leave, as he opened the door the doctor who seemed sad said: "I don''t think we''ll meet again." "Maybe in the next life," Andy calmly replied. "Pause!" This scene waspletely finished, when Eric shouted pause, he didn''t say ''good'' which means that something wasn''t right, sitting behind the monitor, a slight frown appeared on his face as he was thinking about something. Although he has been discharged from the hospital, Eric still had bandages wrapped around him, and he will asionally get a headache, but after getting inspected several times, the doctor found no problems, so he wasn''t nervous about it. Cruise acting was perfect, so Eric can easilybine the footage from this scene to the footage of Andy''s on the rooftop, and with some montage to slow some shots, he was sure this part of the film can achieve the desired result. The staff who worked with him several times in other movies, have a tactical understanding not to disturb Eric once he gets caught in thinking, so they all started cautiously sorting the instruments without making any noise, waiting patiently for Eric to recover. But after waiting for a minute got impatient, he felt that there was nothing wrong with his performance, and he really didn''t mind repeating this scene several times, but this silence was driving him crazy. "Hey, Eric, how was that shot, do you need me to do it again?" Cruise finally could not help but walk to Eric side, and gently say to him Eric who quicklye back to himself, raised and said to Cruise: "Sorry, Tom, I was thinking about something, so I got distracted." "It doesn''t matter," showed a generous smile: "How was to shot, do you need me to start over?" "I''m afraid we''ll have to do it again," Eric answered, "Can you wait for a moment?" Shrugging Cruise retreated, and watched as Eric called the light engineer and ordered him to do something, then a few momentster all the lights in the studio began to dim, Eric who was staring at the monitor, and only told the light-engineer to stop when he was satisfied with the tuning. ---- ---- "OK, everyone ready, let''s do it again," Eric shouted. A momentter, with everyone in his ce, they started shooting again. Eric carefully stared at the monitor, this picture of Andy and the doctors was perfect, much better than the one at the start. This scene is used to illustrate the status of Andy and why he was in a hurry, Eric was gonnabine this shot with the shot on the roof to demonstrate to the audience that this was a memory, and create a misunderstanding in the mind of the audience that Andy was gonnamit suicide by jumping from the roof top, and in the montage he was gonna make it look like this was a shback. Since this scene was gonna be used as a shback, Eric felt the original lighting in the original film was too bright, the light was exactly the same as the light in the sunny rooftop, so this scene wasn''t able to give the audience a sense of difference, so the effect was much worse. Eric wasn''t going to just remake the film while making the same mistakes, he was going to add his own touch. used the same light tricks used in his films, but unfortunately, he wasn''t a master in using light and color like , Solving the light problem, Eric began focusing on performance, although this small scene doesn''t require too much acting, he wouldn''t let things slide. If Cruise performance can bring unexpected surprises, then he will be happy, and if not, then he wouldn''t hesitate to make him do it again until he meets his personal standards. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 130 part2 (TN Note: Hello everyone I''m still sick as hell, but not as before looks like the pills the doctor prescribed me have finally started to work.) Eric didn''t care if gets any award nominations for his performance, and he also didn''t care if this film gets any awards, all Eric cares about at this point in time is the film box office. As for the Oscar he promised Cruise, he really doesn''t know if he can win it, he only told him he can win the Oscar, so he agrees to dress as a woman, and he really didn''t feel guilty about tricking him. All directors, producers, actors, want to win the award but most of them don''t. So that''s why he is more concerned about the movie box office, after all, he is still young, he can still win it in the future, and for now, he will focus on making more money. The theme of is certainly novel, Only God knows if this film can get the attention of the Oscar judges?. In his past life, Andy Lau was able to win the Hong Kong Film Award for the Best Actor for his role in , but if you think about it, public rtions probably helped a lot. Plus, in 1999 the Hong Kong Film Awards has been in full decline, so not many excellent films werepeting for the awards. ---- ---- After repeating the shot for three times, Eric finally gave his approval, and the crew began moving to another room in the studio, this process took more than half an hour. When making a movie the time spent by actors in front of the camera is really short, most of the time is used to set theyout of the scenes. Most of the scenes filmed in the first two days are Cruise''s one-man show, hepleted the scenes where he talks to ''Sean'' the character yed by on the phone, as well as the scene where he dresses as a woman, as well as other scenes. Although he had the entire original film in his mind, Eric still chose to design some new scenes himself, So that when the time for post-productiones he will have enough material, After all, this is a brand new Hollywood movie, he will have to add some changes. ording to the shooting schedule, this process willst three days, in the Fourth days Hanks and the othere to the studio. Eric was looking forward to the moment and interact and show their acting skills on the screen. Because, in his past life, the two superstars have never worked together on the same project. Unlike in his past works, Eric has plenty of time to shoot the film, so on the fourth day Eric told the whole crew to pack up and leave after only eight hours of work, and told the deputy director to take the good film rolls to the editing room, and hurriedly left. In addition to shooting , he has other things to do. The initial casting work for and has beenpleted, but he still needs to attend the final selection process. Moreover, he also needs to keep an eye on the shooting progress of far away in Louisiana. has been filming for a month now, but he was very slow. In this month he onlypleted less than half of the film, and he will probably spend another month to finish filming, and at least another month for Post production. Moreover, the film may even face the risk of overspending, Eric was hoping this will happen, because Firefly isn''t the only investor in , also invested three million dors. So Eric didn''t mind spending another two million in the film, which will allow him to expand the shares of the Firefly, he was just waiting for to ask. ---- ---- "Hi, Eric, is your head all right?" Back to the Firefly''s office, Eric found that was already in his office waiting for him, he could see the fatigue on Jonathan''s face, but his voice was still full of energy. thanks for your concern, I''m much better now, did you bring the information with you?" "Here, I did what you said, and screened out the actors to a small list, that was exhausting." Jonathan smiled and said. He''s really had the hardest job these days, even though only need two child actors, but because Eric was the one who wrote the script, Firefly received more than five thousand resumes. Many of the resumes sent to the Fireflies showed that the children didn''t have any acting experience. Because the parents who sent their children''s resumes had the illusion? That their child can be the next Stuart Runkle. Some unscrupulous parents even deliberately fabricated their child resume, saying that their child was a guest actor in a certain movie or TV series, so the staff had to spend a lot of time confirming the authenticity of these resumes. So identifying the small actors who had potentials, was harder than they imagined. Eric didn''t want to rely on his past life memories to directly find the children who had potentials. Although he can remember everything from his past life, he still can''t remember a thing he didn''t know, like the names of all the actors he saw in his past life, he can still remember their faces but other than the names of the big stars he didn''t pay attention to the others. He thought about telling the staff the names of the famous Hollywood star of the future, but he soon gave up on this idea. ---- ---- The files Jonathan handed him, include not only the resumes of the child actors that passed the audition, but also the list of the actors who will y the roles of the three servants and the husband. Although for those minor supporting roles, Eric gave Jonathan the authority to decided, Jonathan still wanted Eric to see if they were right. The first file he opened was the file which has the child actors information, ncing at the list of the little boys, Eric was surprised to see the name of , as for the other boys he didn''t know any one of them. Reading information, he found that although isn''t on his resume, the boy still has acting experience in two films and , which exins why he appeared on the list. Seeing Eric go directly to Culkin''s resume, Jonathan asked curiously: "Eric, do you fancy the boy?" Shaking his head, Eric said: "No, he should be eliminated." "Well, I think, the boy called is one of the best child actors I have ever seen ...... " Eric couldn''t tell Jonathan, that he doesn''t want Macay to be as famous as his past life, although can''t bring him as much fame as , he will certainly get a lot of attention. Keeping that little boy out of the spotlight is for the best, at least until he became an adult, then he can choose his own way. He didn''t want history to repeat itself because if the little boy became famous, he was sure the boy parents will certainly destroy the poor little boy like they did in his past life. "Jonathan, you forgot that in the boy character is very somber, now look at the picture of this little boy, don''t you feel he is very clever." Looking at the picture, Jonathan quickly admitted his mistake: "uhh, I really overlooked that." Eric smiled and continued looking at the remaining child actors, but suddenly he looked up and stared at who was sitting opposite him: "Jonathan, do you know any of these kids?" face became slightly flushed, after stammering a little, he finally nodded and drew out a boy''s information: "This ... ... This is Brian Beck the son of a friend I worked with, I''m sorry, I shouldn''t have done this, but I swear, I carefully interviewed the boy, and I can guaranty that he has the qualification to be on the list." Jonathan was going to throw the resume in the trash bin, but Eric quickly stopped him, and took back the resume, after carefully reading all the information, Eric said: "Jonathan, give him the role." "I''m really sorry, I didn''t ... ... huh, what did you say?" Jonathan who was going to apologize looked at Eric in wonder. Eric smiled and said: "I mean, if he is good, then it''s okay. You know I don''t have the time to interview all of them, plus, I believe you won''t treat this film as a joke, right?" "Of course, " Jonathan nodded in affirmation, he know this was hisst chance. If this movie seeds, then he will have a bright future in Hollywood. But if the film fails, then he will have to find another job. "So, is there anyone else?" Eric asked again. This time Jonathan firmly shook his head: "Absolutely not, Eric, all the remaining actors have nothing to do with me." Eric decided to do Jonathan this little favor on the spur of the moment, only because he thought that has potentials because in his past life the guy didn''t only direct he also directed the film that got his first Oscar. Now that the child actor was identified, Eric found that there was no need to look at the rest, so he quickly switched to the little girl''s list. The first two names he saw were and . ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 131 (TN Note: Sorry guys I was in the hospital, first I was sick a little bit, I took some pills, but they didn''t do any thing, then I went to the doctor who prescribed new pills for me, but they too didn''t do any thing, the day after that I got really sick I couldn''t keep anything down, even, so I had to go to the hospital, they found that I had food poisoning, so after spending a few days there I finally came back. Again I''m sorry I will try to write as fast as I can.) Flipping to resume, Eric saw the photo of a doll-like seven years old exquisite girl, with golden hair, round face, wearing a white dress, with a lovely white sun hat, and a wisp of beautiful golden bangs on her forehead. It''s a pity that Eric knows her beauty will be getting worse and worse in the future, After reaching adulthood, she looked very different from how she looked in her teens. (TN Note: I don''t know what he is talking about, Kirsten Dunst still looks beautiful.) Perhaps in the eyes of Westerners, she is not too shabby, but with his Oriental aesthetics, he can''t see the beauty. So he chose to pass on , he didn''t make this choice based just on beauty, but because she didn''t have much potential as an actress, if it wasn''t for her role in , probably no one will remember her. In his past life, after the end of the trilogy, careerpletely plummeted, and she almost disappeared from the public eye. The other girl he remembered is , Compared to the Sarah from his memories, this Sarah had a round face. Although she was almost twelve years old, she looked very petite, so her ying a ten-year-old girl isn''t a problem, he estimated that this is the reason why Sarah was selected. Compared to Kirsten''s who only yed in one film, Sarah''s resume has a series of movie names, although they aren''t famous films, they can still count as having experience. "Jonathan, what''s your impression of the girl?" Eric asked as he handed resume to . Jonathan took a look, and quickly recalled the scene of Sarah''s interview: "This child began acting in films when she was just four years old, I can guaranty that all the information on this resume is true. When we were doing the interview, I could see that she really know how to act around adults, she was graceful and didn''t have stage fright. When I talked to her, she was brilliant and sensible, although the girl looks very thin, she is already twelve years old, and she also has the intelligent of a fourteen years old girl. Compared to kids who are ten years old, working with her will be easier." Hearing Jonathan''s opinion, Eric decided: "Then give her the role, and as usual, she must sign with the UTA ()." Although Eric told Kapoor, he didn''t want to expand the in the next few years, but he wouldn''t let the actors who star in his film projects go that easily to the other brokerage firms. Because of the article, he wrote a few weeks ago, many brokeragepanies are beginning to reform their original systems, although it''s impossible for them topletely imitate the . After the detailed business model of the CAA waspletely exposed, the CAA wouldn''t be able to maintain their superiority, so in the future, there will be a lot ofpetition among the brokerage firms. As a result, can make steady progress with ease, there''s no need to worry about dominance. Watching as Eric continued to flip through the actor''s resumes in a fast speed, Jonathan thought that Eric was just haphazardly deciding on who to give the roles to. Because it seemed to him that Eric was just ncing at them and not reading anything, unable to keep quiet, asked: "Eric, don''t you need to arrange another audition?" "Do you think I''m too hasty?" Eric asked with a smile on his face. Scratching his head, Jonathan said: "Shouldn''t you at least look at their auditions tapes, right?" Putting a circle on the name of an actor with a pen, Eric said: "No, Jonathan, I believe that you personally handpicked these people from thousands of candidates, so you won''t added someone who isn''t up to par. So I don''t need to do anything unnecessary, plus we don''t have much time, you have to start shooting as soon as possible, we need to finish the film before the and , but I also hope we can catch the in September. "Well, I will inform these people as soon as possible," Jonathan said as he bowed his head. It''s a pity for the actors who have been selected for the final list, perhaps they are all excitedly preparing for the third round of auditions, but they were bound to be disappointed. This seems a little unfair, but in Hollywood, such thing happens all the time, you can even say that Hollywood is the most unfair ce in the entire. Helping Jonathan gather and sort out the resumes on the desk, Eric asked again: "Is the shooting site avable yet? Nodding exined: "Imissioned a friend of mine from Ennd to help find a few mansions on a small ind, but I think it''s necessary for me to personally go on a field trip to investigate the ce, we also need to personallymunicate with the owners of those mansions. You know, most of the old historical houses belong to the British aristocracy, they are a dying breed, but they still kept their arrogance, so I have to personally visit each of them, maybe if they feel respected, they will be easier to handle." Then he added: "Actually, Eric, if you can personallye forward, things will go even smoother. You are British, and many British media now treat you as their hero. If youe forward, I''m sure those aristocrats will treat you as a guest, and perhaps, we can even get the right to use their Mansions without spending money." Smiling Eric shook his head: "Forget it, It has been a long time since I left Ennd, I even forget my British ent, plus I can''t leave the crew now, and I will probably be busy shooting my film for the next few months." ---- ---- In the next few days, the shooting process was still very smooth, after all, they didn''t have to leave the studio, so they weren''t restricted by the location. also showed his first-ss acting skills, if it weren''t for him always trying challenge Eric''s leadership, then Eric would be willing to further cooperate with him in the future. However, it is unlikely that the two will work together again, With Cruise''s character, perhaps only a director on Spielberg level can work with him without losing leadership of the film crew. In the past, in many of his films, even if he wasn''t the director, he still firmly grasps control of the crew, and even when the film giants cooperated with him, they weren''t allowed to intervene. "Brooke, don''t frown when you see Andy vomiting blood, you have to show signs of panic and dismay, not disgust." Eric said as he raised his arm and knocked on his wrist watch: "If you fail once again twice, then we will have to stop, we can''t keep wasting time." who stood in front of Eric, with downcast eyes, like a little girl who did something wrong. When ever she found her self in a situation like this, she will make this move, which always weakened the anger of the directors, but after doing it for about four or five times, Eric stopped caring and started scolding her. "Sorry, Eric, I ... ... I think I can do it." Sighing Eric said: "Then try again, everyone! Get ready, we will start in a minute." Nodding sat back in her position, this was the scene where Andy and her character meet for the second time in a small restaurant. Eric still chose to film this scene in the studio, not to save money, after all, gave him a $40 million budget, so saving money isn''t necessary. But because filming indoor scenes in real ces are kinda hard, just setting the lights are a nightmare, and he just wanted to finish the indoor scenes as soon as possible. What''s more, huge studios offer all the things he needs, if he wanted a to shoot in a restaurant, then the crew will build him one, and although it was noon outside, inside the studio, it was very easy to create a night scene. "There is no need to hurry, Miss Shields, take your time. I don''t think this is your problem, Eric is still too young." As the crew was preparing, Cruise eagerly started talking . If did so poorly in a film produced by Cruise, he would have been furious, But now, he was hoping she performs badly just so he can see Eric deted appearance, while at the same time keeping the appearance of a modest gentleman. "Thank you for thoseforting words, Mr. Cruise," said with a smile. "So, are you free this evening, Miss Shields, I will be honored to have dinner with you?" who had her eyebrows slightly trimmed, subconsciously nced at Eric who was standing not far from them, She was hoping to get this kind of invitation from Eric Williams, not from the married . But the young director who was almost six years younger than her was elusive, her intuition as a woman, told her Eric was interested in her, she was sure this wasn''t just her imagination ying tricks on her. But unfortunately, the young director still make any move. "Mr. Cruise, can I give you the answer in the afternoon? I''m not sure if there will be anything else at night." Brooke turned down the offer, but she didn''tpletely refuse. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on .
  • If you pledge $2 per month, you will have early ess to 1 new chapter. From .
  • If you pledge $5 per month, you will have early ess to 2 new chapters. From .
  • If you pledge $10 per month, you will have early ess to 5 new chapters. From .
Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 132 Between Eric and Cruise, was more inclined to the former, if after work today, Eric didn''t say anything, then Brooke wouldn''t mind eating dinner with , at least she will be deepening her connections. Although she began acting in movies at the age of twelve, she hasn''t fully entered the Hollywood circle, but what is more important is that she couldn''t grow her circle of connections because most of the films she starred in failed. In the year 1981 who was 15 years old at the time meet the king of pop, at the Academy Awards, from there, they became close friends, and she even started dreaming about marrying him. After reaching adulthood, she even admitted that to the media, so for a long time, Brooke who thought that there is a big chance of marrying ,pletely lost interest in her career as an actress. But after so many years, she discovered that from the beginning Jackson always treated her just like a good friend and that at heart Jackson was still childish, and not enthusiastic about marriage, and even Jackson''s family was against Jackson marrying her. (TN Note: I just want to point that most of what the author of this novel mentioned above is false, Brooke Shields and Michael Jackson really did meet at the Oscar in 1981, and they did be close friends. But it wasn''t her who wanted to marry Jackson, it was Michael Jackson who spoke about the two marrying and raising adoptive children together. His suggestions were met with disapproval from Shields, she even said this in an interview in 2009, "There were times when he would ask me to marry him, and I would say, ''You have me for the rest of your life, you dont need to marry me. Im going to go on...have my own marriage and my own kids, and youll always have me.'' I think it made him rx. He didnt want to lose things that meant something to him." any way the author is clearly binding facts to make Brooke Shields look bad. Plus, this is a warning to the readers, the MC is aplete scumbag, he will even start acting like a pedophile in the future, he doesn''t go over the line, but he wille close to it. Another thing I want to point out, this is a Chinese web-novel, so expect a lot of which fulfillment and plot armor.) So after getting her dreampletely shattered, had to start nning her own future,pared to Jackson''s childish temperament, has matured a lot over the years, and she knows what her biggest asset is. Hearing her reply, still gracefully said: "No problem, hope to hear the good news." After exchanging a few more words, they were told to get ready. ---- ---- Sitting in front of the monitor, Eric watched as Brooke who was ying the character , smiled and said: "What is your name?" Getting no answer Yoyo didn''t get angry and took the initiative to introduce herself: "My name is Yoyo." "Pause!" Eric frustrated voice sounded again, standing up, he pointed at Brooke and said: "Curious, curious, I''ve said it several times, you are curious about Andy, so keep your beautiful eyes wide open, Try again!" Everyone in the studio felt that Eric was on the verge of exploding, trembling the camera man restarted the camera while looking at with concern, hoping that the beautiful vase won''t make a mistake again. "What''s your name? ... ... My name is ." "Knowing who I am won''t be good for you." "I read the newspaper that day and know what you did." "Thank you." "You''re wee." "Unfortunately, I do not have time," Andy said sadly, as he tried to take a sip from his cup, he started coughing violently. "We can meet another time if you don''t have time now," as she asked, his coughing got worse, and blood starteding out of his mouth directly dyeing the cup red, Brooke''s eyes opened wide, and her lips parted as if she in shock. and fortunately, this time she managed not to frown. "Pause, this was almost perfect, but unfortunately, your frightened expression isn''t natural enough. There is still some time. So let''s do it again." Eric said as his expression rxed slightly. After doing it once again, Eric still wasn''t satisfied, because at thest moment Brooke reflexively frowned, it was clear to him that it was difficult for Brooke to ovee her natural reaction, giving up Eric told the crew to take a break, so they can try a few more times after lunch. Just as he got up to leave for lunch, n came over and said: "Eric, Miss Julia has been waiting for you for a while outside, because she has no pass she couldn''t get in." "Julia?" puzzled Eric asked, "?" "Yes," replied n. "Isn''t she in Louisiana?" In a teasing tone, n replied: "Maybe she came back because you were injured." Shrugging Eric ignored his assistant''s teasing and walked out of the studio. Out of the studio door, Eric saw amercial car parked across the street. And as Eric got closer, the car door opened, and Julia who was wearing a simple and stylish dress and sunsses came out, followed by her assistant, and the two men who looked like bodyguards also followed down. Almost at the same time, the seven paparazzi who were waiting for a long time outside the studio, began shooting at Julia, asking her questions. "Hi, big star!" Eric yelled when he came near, causing the surrounding crowd tough. "Hi, big director!" Julia shot back. Then they gave each other a gentle hug, causing a sudden burst of camera clicks as the paparazzi took pictures, then they swarmed them while trusting their recorders in Eric and Julia''s face, asking questions like why did she return to Los Angeles, and whats the progress of her new film and so on. Of course, they didn''t forget to ask Eric about . Looking at her bodyguards and assistant for help, Julia who chose not to answer any of their questions, quickly got back in her car and left with Eric. The crowd of paparazzi also quickly got into their cars and motorcycles and followed them. At the studio door, who juste out to eat lunch in a restaurant on the opposite street saw this scene. As she watched them leave, she felt a deep feeling of envy, Brooke has been famous for so long, yet she still hasn''t enjoyed the scene of the paparazzi chasing her. But , the actress who only be known for a few months, has easily gained such attention. Feeling lost Brooke looked around, originally there was always a few paparazzi waiting outside to interview the cast of , but now with and Eric leaving, there was no one left. The only one still standing around was the fat security guard who was staring at her long legs and giving her lecherous stars, making her feel irritable and disgusted. But after thinking about fame, she once again got eager. "Maybe I should have more patience," Brooke muttered in a low voice and made up her mind to refuse Cruise dinner invitation. Although fame is big, but after all, he is just an actor. Compared to Eric the young director, he can''t provide her with the same opportunities. Plus if the rumors about her and Cruise start gaining fame is impossible, because Cruise is a married man, those rumors will only hurt her. If Eric is still indifferent to her by the time she finishes filming , made up her mind to also give up on him. ---- ---- "These two are Hunter and Chris." sitting in the backseat of the car, Julia took the initiative to introduce Eric to her driver and bodyguard, with a proud tone, Alison Green who worked as Julia assistant couldn''t help but chuckle at how childish Julia was acting. Feeling embarrassed Julia give her assistant a knock on the forehead and said: "Alison, I swear I will deduct your sry." Laughing Eric reached out and pressed the button to make the noise barrier between the driver and backseat rise, only then did he start talking: "Well, I already know you are a famous big star, but where are we going?" "Not far, I booked a restaurant, there are five or six minutes till we get there, so you can rest assured that you won''t miss your work in the afternoon." Then she pointed at the gauze still warped around his forehead and asked: "When I heard the news, I was shocked. So what did happen?" Looking seriously at the two, Eric said:"before I say anything, Alison, I want you to promise not to disclose what I''m about to say in front of outsiders. If you do, the consequences will be severe." Nodding seriously Alison said: "Of course I won''t, you can trust me." She was clear about what happened between Eric and Julia, and in her heart, she also hoped that Eric and Julia end up together. So when she saw the news of Eric injury, she couldn''t help but urge Julia toe see him, hoping the rtionship between the two be closer. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 133 part1 In an upscale restaurant, Eric quickly orders his meal and smiled as he watched cheerfully talking with the waiter, while skillfully ying with the tableware in front of her. "Why are you smiling?" Julia who quickly felt Eric eyes on her, curiously asked. Shaking his head, Eric answered: "It''s nothing, I just suddenly remembered the first time I met you Jeff''s restaurant, I think you changed a lot." Julia obviously didn''t want Eric to remind her of that period of time, so she tantly stared him in the eyes, and said: "Are you trying to take credit for my sess?" "Of course not," Ericughed: "I just think ... ... That this is very interesting, you are just like Cindere, in the blink of an eye you have be a princess." "Please don''t mention the ''Hollywood Cindere'' thing in front of me, I hate that title." rolled her eyes, although the title this title was given to her by the media to express their admiration, but most of the time it was mixed with a lot of ridicule. "Well, why did youe back suddenly?" "I picked up an endorsement and came back to shootmercials, and ... ... and since I came back I decided toe and see how you were doing." she said with a little stutter. In fact, she mainly came back to visit Eric, themercial was just an excuse, if she wanted, shooting themercial in Louisiana isn''t a problem. Anyway, the equipment and personnel are easy to transport, especially if she demanded it. Eric had been unconscious for more than ten hours before, and although, he was alright in the end, but this thing has caused a big uproar in Hollywood, if she didn''te see him then she will receive a lot of criticism. After all, it was thanks to Eric that she has transformed from an unknown little actor to a big Hollywood star, if she didn''te see him after he was discharged from the hospital, then the media will inevitably paint her as an ungrateful girl. The reason why she was waiting for Eric outside the studio today, rather than visiting him in private, is because she wanted to gain exposure. Although was released only two months ago, because in thest month she was filming in a remote town in Louisiana, shepletely despaired from the media. Because the director worried that the journalists will disturb the filming process, he chose to keep the location where the movie was being filmed a secret, and even if one or two paparazzi found the ce, they wouldn''t be able to get any valuable news. At the same time, was afraid of visiting him in private, she often recalls the way Eric reprimanded her, which makes her hate him, but at the same time want to see him more. "Thank you for your concern, Julia," Eric replied earnestly, and curiously asked: "by the way, What kind ofmercials did you take?" "Lanc?me perfume endorsement," Julia proudly put up a few fingers and waved them in front of his face: "One year, for this much." "Wow, that''s ... ... a lot of money," Eric was toozy to ridicule the Little proud girl, he didn''t mind, but if she wanted to show off, then she should have found another person, not someone as reach as him. "Well, I know you aren''t impressed, so don''t give me that expression," replied with disapproval, "I can''tpare with you, I''m a little hurt, everyone in America knows who you are, even at the you were able to grab the limelight." "It should be said that the organizers have used me as a shield, If it were not for me, then this year Oscar session will have got more criticism." shrugging he added: "Actually, they should send me a thank you letter." "I''m not sure about that, but when I was in Louisiana, I saw in the news that Oscar''s director, , announced that he would never ept the invitation to direct the Oscar again, But things shouldn''t be as bad as you say?" "It''s worse than you think, but I can''t tell you too much because I and many other guests and performers have signed a confidential contract, to ensure that within twenty years we can''t mention that happened on the inside. What you don''t know is that has threatened to sue the for the use and portrayal of snow white without permission. Anyhow, If it weren''t for me getting injured, then this thing would have attracted the attention of the majority of the media, then the would at least had to make a public apology to quell the anger of the media and the public." opened her eyes wide while listening to Eric''s exnation, she has never attended the Oscar, so hearing Eric exining what happened, was a very interesting topic to her. And because she was filming that night, she wasn''t able to watch this season of the Oscar, so after finding that Eric wouldn''t too much about what happened, she shifted the topic to Eric''s condition, and what happened that day. "Well, I didn''t want to talk about what happened in the car, but now that we are alone let''s talk about it, I can''t believe that it was as simple as falling down the stair, so there must be a hidden secret?" "But that''s what happened." Eric helplessly replied. "Certainly not," Julia said with a sly smile: "I read in the newspaper a few days ago, that after you were injured, and your girlfriend sent you to the hospital." "and then?" leaned slightly forward lowered her voice and said: "I think your girlfriend suddenlye to your house that morning, found you and in a bed, and under impulse pick up a vase and smashed your head with it?" ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 133 part2 Eric was surprised by her spection, although was still far from the truth, but one thing was true, did find him sleeping with someone. Fortunately, was smart enough, to hide when the paramedicse to the vi, and only showing up after the whole event was over, and his state waspletely stable. Julia keenly grasped the brief change in Eric expression, revealing a surprised expression, she said: "No way, did I guess right?" "Absolutely not, I swear ... ..." Ericughed: "I just identally fell, my pathology report has been published in some newspapers, surely you saw it, I have bruises all over my body, do you think has the ability to cause me such a wide range of injuries?" "That''s not necessarily true," she looked Eric up and down as if trying to imagine where she will start if she wanted to cause Eric those kinds of injuries. "Well, let''s not talk about such an unpleasant topic, let''s talk about , I only spoke to Mr. a few times on the phone, so I don''t know how thing are going there." honestly shook her head, she wasn''t sure why Eric wanted her to star in such a film, she thought that Eric was trying to suppress her paycheck, because, in Julia''s view, isplete absence of any central story, the film was just depicting the ordinary day to day life story of a group of housewives. "I still think that this story is too ordinary ... ... there is no bright spot?" Eric was about to reply, but he stopped when saw the waitering to serve them their dishes, and patiently waited for the waiter to finish filling their sses with red wine, only after the waiter left did he ask: "What kind of bright spot do you think a film like this should have?" Taking a sip from her ss of red wine, Julia who didn''t know how to exin said: "At least ... ... at least something exciting?" "At least there should be an unforgettable love story, or big scenes, car chases, explosions, mes." quickly nodded her head: "Yes, there should be at least these things?" "I won''t criticize you in public," If you want to know why I chose this film for you thene to my house this night, I''ll give you a detailed analysis of the movie," Eric said while giving her a creepy smile. "Ah ... ... no thanks." Julia flinched and subconsciously leaned back in her chair when she saw the look Eric was giving her, and quickly refused, she knew if she did go with him, she would quickly lose control of herself. Eric was just teasing the little girl, quickly put away his cynical expression, and put back his poker face, and said: "Actually, the sess or failure of this kind of film, depends on the director''s ability to arouse the audience sympathy? I have carefully studied script, It is a good story that can bring the audience to tears." who was still giving him an uncertain look, asked the thing she was most concerned about: "How much money do you think this movie can get at the box office?" "What do you think?" Eric asked back. Julia hesitated for a moment, then stretched out two fingers, soon she thought the number was too underrated, so she added Two more, hesitating, she took back one. She thought it will be good if the film can get $30 million at the box office, with the size of the movie budget, fireflies can still make a small fortune. In fact, Julia thought, If she starred in a loveedy film, then she can use the poprity she gained from , to help the film to get a good box office result, But for a movie like , Julia wasn''t confident that she can add anything to the film. "Do you have no faith in me?" "I just ... ... I just have no confidence in this movie." told him the truth. Wiping his mouth with a napkin Ericughed and said: "How about this, let''s bet on it. I bet the film can get more than $50 million at the box office." "What''s the bet?" Asked Julia curiously. Showing another creepy smile, Eric said: "If you lose, you will have to work as a maid in my house for a week, and if I lose, I''ll work as your driver for a week." If Eric didn''t reveal a creepy smile when he said the word maid, then Julia would have epted. She felt that she have a 70% chance of winning, plus working as maid profession was still a serious profession in this era. But when she noticed Eric''s expression, Julia keenly felt she was wrong, and decisively refused: "No, I don''t want to gamble with you." "How about, sixty million?" Julia wasn''t swayed. Instead, she refused more firmly: "No way." Because Eric still had to go back to work, they kept theunch time short. After lunch, sent Eric back to the studio. "When will you return to Louisiana?" Eric asked, at the entrance of the studio. "I will take a ne back at four o''clock in the afternoon." Julia who didn''t get off her car replied: "By the way, Eric, the production budget doesn''t seem to be enough, maybe you will need to add at least another $2 million." "did Mr. Ross tell you to mention this thing?" nodded, didn''t know that Eric had noticed his budget was tight and was even prepared to start making some cuts. But before he does that he was going to use Julia, to see how Eric was going to react. After all, this was a small budget film, if you add another two million to the budget, then the cost will reach 10 million US dors, so to recover the cost the film has to earn at least $30 million at the box office. Although Julia joined, himself wasn''t sure the movie can make more than $30 million at the box office. "There''s no problem with that," Eric nodded and said: "Tell Mr. Ross to ask Jeffrey for money." "Then I''ll thank you on behalf of Mr. Ross," smiled and said goodbye to Eric, as her car started driving away. ---- ---- In the afternoon, Eric again returned to shooting the same scene of Andy and Yoyo in the small restaurant, he didn''t know why, but after lunch, returned to making the same mistakes she did in the morning. Although she repeatedly apologized and showed him that delicate and touching expression, Eric still couldn''t help but get angry, and vow to never work with her in another project. Working with this beautiful vase was really frustrating, no wonder she got so many Razzies. At the same time, Eric also gave up on the idea of starting a close friendship with , after all, Hollywood is a big ce, there are too many beautiful girls he can select from. After spending another half hour, the scene in the restaurant was finally over. "Eric, I''m so sorry. I was a pain," apologized to him afterpleting the scene, she was already dressed to leave, after all this the only scene she has indoors. She was wearing tight deep blue jeans, and a shirt tucked into her pants, showing the crowd her beautiful curves and her long slender legs. Most of the men in the crew have unconsciously cast their eyes on her body, at the same time, they thought about famous jeanmercial, they wondered about if there is anything between her and the jeans she is wearing. (TN Note: I did some research and found that in amercial she did for Calvin Klein Jeans in 1981 when she was 16, she said this line "You wanna know whates between me and my vin''s? Nothing." you can watch it from HERE.) Although Eric dismissed the thoughts of having a close rtionship with her, but he didn''t mind eating her up. Admiring Brooke elegant appearance, and perfect body, his expression eased slightly: "Never mind, Brooke, I hope you study your scenes when you go back, we will have to do those scenes outside the studio. If we waste too much time, we will end up affecting the shooting schedule, and unnecessarily consume the budget." "I promise, I will work hard," nodded, and put a slightly provocative gesture, but she found that Eric didn''t pay attention to her. Seeing that he wasn''t going to invite her to dinner, she lowered her head and said: "Well, goodbye, Eric." "Goodbye, I will have someone inform you when toe shoot the next scene," then he turned and started talking to his assistant. paused for a few seconds, then left, she just gave him an obvious hint, but Eric still remained unmoved, which made Brooke somewhat frustrated. "How long will it take before arrive?" Eric didn''t care about departure, although he also noticed her hint, but since he made the decision, he wouldn''t easily change it. In Hollywood, if you can''t resist temptation, then you will probably face an unfortunate ending. "Ten minutes," n said. "Well, hurry up and tell the crew to clean up the ce, and move to the next scene." solo scenes were finallypleted, so the next one he was gonna start filming is the scene where meet Cruise in a pub, today will be the first battle between the two main characters. Recalling his past life, the two big superstars have always had a parallel acting career, so he was very much looking forward to seeing what kind of spark can be produced by mixing the two stars. If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 134 part1 "Hi, Tom," Eric warmly weed when he appeared in the studio,pared to who was always acting polite attitude when interacting with the crew, Eric preferred the mild tempered Hanks. "Hi, Eric, I''m notte, am I?" Hanks asked as he gave Eric a hug. "Of course not," Eric said as he gave a nod to Hanks''s assistant, and turned back to hanks and said: "It will probably take us fifteen minutes to set up the scene. giving us enough time for you to do your makeup." The two men talked as they walked up to the dressing room, but they stopped from time to time for hanks to greet the crew members. Looking around, Hanks curiously whispered to Eric: "Where is Cruise?" "Maybe he went to put on his make up," replied back in a hushed voice. In their previous meetings, also didn''t have a good impression of Cruise, he found him too arrogant, was polite, but at the same time, he was giving him the feeling that he was just doing it to be nice. Hanks didn''t take too long to finish his makeup, he was able toe out before the crew finished setting the new scene. After the sceneyout of the pub was arranged, the photographer Nicole went to Eric who was talking to and and told him: "Eric, you''d bettere and take a look." Eric apologized to the two star and followed Nicole to the corner of the pub, where the camera was ced. "Eric, you see here, I''ll have to do a quick sweep with the camera, but I can only stand in this position to operate the camera," Nicole awkwardly demonstrated what he meant to Eric: "You see, it is difficult to operate the camera in this position." Although Eric wasn''t as professional as Nicole, he still have some shooting skills, so he stepped forward and tried operating the camera himself, finding that it was very awkward to control, Eric reached the conclusion that the best ce to put the camera for the optimal operation was in the ce upied by the wall. "Nicole, what do you mean?" Eric asked as he let go of the camera. "I can only try a few times, this is the best shooting angle I could find if it doesn''t work," Nicole pointed to the wall behind: "Then we will have to take down this wall." "Let''s try it a few times first," Eric said, he wouldn''t mind demolishing the wall. After all, this is a studio, not a real location, and will certainly cooperate, but they will have to waste at least another hour. "Okay," Nickel nodded. "let''s get started." This scene in the restaurant has three acts, the first act is where they eat breakfast separately like strangers, of course, ording to the story, this is the time Andy has begun paying attention to Sean, who waspletely unaware of him. The second act is where the two pass each other, where Andy will write the number 13 on a paper and leave it to Sean. The third act is the longest scene, where he takes more than a minute trying to persuade Sean, to let the police cooperate with him to arrest the viin, instead of him taking revenge for the death of his father. ", Act 12, Action!" Sean stared at the newspaper while eating a cake, hearing someone open the restaurant door, Sean looked up naturally, and quickly turned his eyes back to the newspaper. "Good!" Eric give a thumbs up, next is the part where eat something while staring at the TV with a slightly dazed look, this shot too wasn''t difficult for Cruise, so Eric fairly gave him a thumbs up too. In the original scene, the TV was showing a few shots from a cartoon show, which was a show he loved when he was a kid, but because he only had four weeks to live, every time he saw the familiar pictures, he will get sad and have a dreary feeling. In this shot, Eric didn''t intend to find a random cartoon show to show on the Tv, instead, he intends to use a few shots from . Although didn''t exist yet, but Eric is nning to start shooting after and are on track, probably in April, so long as he can identify six leading characters, he has plenty of time to shoot some footage for the movie. In the publicity of the new film, Fireflies will release the news to the media that shots from Eric Williams new TV show will appear in , this will be a good publicity gimmick that will help promote the film and the TV show, which will create a win-win situation. After thepletion of the two shots, the most difficult shot began. Laying his pperboard to the side, Eric stared at the monitor, Nicole who was operating the camera first took a slow shot of Hanks'' face, then rapidly swung the camera to side, Eric who was concentrating on the monitor clearly felt the dull and uneven lens conversion. Although Nicole was able to urately make the camera concentrate on Cruise face, but Eric who wasn''t satisfied quickly shout out cut. After that, Nicole made another six consecutive attempts, but the results still ended up in failure. Eric know the reason the reason why he failed, so he patiently let Nicole try again and again. But after the eleventh attempt failed, Cruise finally got impatient, he has eaten a lot of cream cakes continuously, he felt that the shot was simple, so he didn''t understand why he failed so many times, while the staff was transferring the camera back to its ce, stood up, scornfully nced at Nicole who was sweating profusely and said to Eric: "Eric, maybe I can introduce a better photographer to you." If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 134 part2 didn''t lower his voice, he said it out loud in front of everyone as if trying to directly embarrass Nicole. Because of awkward posture, and the Continuous operation of the camera for more than 10 times, Nicole began to have some pain in his waist, he didn''t expect that after all his effort he will get such evaluation. He wanted to re at , but he was afraid by doing so he will make things hard for Eric, so he could only helplessly stand there. A lot of people in the crew were dissatisfied with rude remark, They have cooperated with Nicole for many years, and they know how good he is at his work. Although he just experienced a dozen consecutive failures, more or less they understood how hard it was to operate the camera in that posture, so they patiently waited as Nicole tried again and again. In the face of everyone''s gaze, Eric knew that he has to handle this situation with caution and care. Otherwise, this situation will cause a rift between the crew and the actors, it was necessary to appease and soothe feelings, while at the same time not let the staff members get dissatisfied with him. After thinking about it for a moment, Eric got up and walked to the camera as he patiently exined to Cruise why this shot was so hard. As listened to Eric''s exnation, he also realized he has wronged Nicole, shrugging he showed the photographer a faint smile and said: "I''m sorry, let''s continue." Then he sat back in his seat. Patting his shoulder, Eric whispered to Nicole: "Try for another two or three times, if you aren''t able to do it by then, then let''s tear down the wall." Nicole knew that Eric could have exined the reasons to in privet, and not in front of everyone, after all, Cruise is a big superstar, so seeing Eric being protective of himself, he felt grateful to Eric, he didn''t even mind Cruise insincere apology. Nodding his head, Nicole replied: "I''ll do my best." Although this little incident was quickly resolved, it was destined to leave some traces in the hearts of many people. At first, the crew members were looking forward to working with , but after this incident, most of them were no longer enthusiastic about working with him. Perhaps because of luck or some other reason, in the next second attempt, Nicole was finally able to seed, when Eric shouted ''Good,'' a lot of people couldn''t help but apud. Feeling relieved Nicole started massaging his sore left arm. ------ ------ (TN Note: I really didn''t know how to trante the next part, so I downloaded film and the subtitles of the film and searched for this part, to make sense of what is happening.) Next, the second scene was quickly passed, and finally, the first interaction between the two protagonists was going to start for the first time. "You''re early, inspector." a young waitress warmly greeted Sean when she saw him enter through the restaurant door. "Yes, I''ve got a date." answered Sean, as he came up to the bar. Andy who was stuffing his mouth with pastry, proudly smiled when he heard what Sean words, because these days the former all-powerful police elite officer was running all over the city chasing his ghost. Andy took a sip from a ss of water and said: "Sit down." Sean slowly sat down in the chair opposite Andy and took a photo from the pocket of his suit put it on the table and said: "You''re made some urate predictions, Mr. Lo." "Have you checked that out?" Andy asked. "You''ve stolen the diamond and, you''ve avenged your dad. So, why do you want to see me?" "l told you before, this gamests for three days. Did you forget?" Sean patted the badge in his pocket and said: "Not today, you''re not in charge anymore, Remember, I''m the police." ... ... After a long dialog between the two protagonists, Eric shouted stop. "Well, , your smile should be more sarcastic," Eric first went to Cruise, and gave him his opinions, and demonstrated to him what he wanted to see from Cruise? Then he turned to : "Hanks, when you hear Andy''s ridiculing you, you should show that you are embarrassed. But you also have your own pride, so you need to add some bodynguage, Such as nodding, to cover up your embarrassment." "Ok, Eric, I''ll make sure to pay attention," nodded. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 135 Eric returned to his seat, and give the order to start shooting again. This scene was about three minutes long, so, of course, it''s impossible to finish it in one breath, Eric divided the three minutes into seven shots with an average of less than thirty seconds. And for every shot, Eric tried to make things look perfect, so he took far more time in this scene than the other shots taken in the past few days. and also gradually seemed to realize how stringent and demanding their own performance requirements for this role was, Eric also felt the shift in Cruise and Hanks attitude when they sometimes took the initiative in picking the ws in their acting and asking to re-shoot the scene. Eric was quite happy to see this situation happen, he didn''t know when will the two superstars have the opportunity to cooperate again. Therefore, Eric also made up his mind to make sure that the scenes where the two superstars interact look perfect in every way. "Cut ... ..." Looking at his watch Eric found that more than an hour passed and they still hadn''t finished filming this scene, they only shot five of the seven shots of the three minutes scene, thest two were the most important and the longest. But unfortunately, the time to leave work has arrived, looking at the motivated two leading men, and at who spent more than an hour waiting nearby for his turn to y the role of chief inspector Commissioner, Eric said: "Well guys, it''s time to get off work." As an Asian guy, he has no aversion to working overtime, he even thought that spending another hour toplete the Scene was something that should be taken for granted. But he found that he had severely underestimated how much the European and American people care about the eight-hour work system. As soon as they heard what he said, and quickly stood up smiled at each other and shook hands, then they separately packed up there things said goodbye to Eric and left, it clear to him that from the beginning to end they had no intention to work overtime. Feeling frustrated, Eric helplessly shrug his shoulders and told the crew to pack their things and leave. After that, Eric went to and apologized to him: "Sorry, Joe, I let you wait for an hour." didn''t mind, so he shook his head and said: "It''s alright, Eric, I just watched a full hour of excellent performances, I am now worried that my performance will not be satisfactory." "You don''t have to worry about this, and I think it''s who should be worried about you overshadowing him. Because your character lines and actions are designed to be hrious." "That''s true, but I haven''t acted in aedy before, you know, I have been in the , and, and recently , and none of them have anyedy." "Joe, I think you are more suitable for yingedic roles, perhaps in this film, you will find youredic talent To tell you the truth, when I wanted to film , the first one I thought of when casting the role of Harry the thief was you." Hearing what Eric said was slightly shocked, he felt that Eric didn''t lie to him, nor does he need the deceive him. Thinking about the opportunity he missed, he felt somewhat sad, the box office of was close to breaking the $300 million mark, he couldn''t even Imagine what a movie like that could do to his career. "Then why ... ... ?" Eric understood what the other side wanted to say, so he exined: "Because I couldn''t afford you, The budget for was too small." "Perhaps I would have epted if you invited me." "I don''t think you would have epted the offer, imagine if a little kid who has never made a moviee to you and offered you twenty thousand dors to y in his movie, would you ept." understood that what he said is the truth, although he wasn''t a very famous actor, he was still an actor who won a best-supporting actor nomination. Unless he can see the future, he wouldn''t have epted a $20,000 paycheck, shaking his head Pesci said: "What a pity." "Well, don''t say that even though we weren''t able to work together then, now we have another chance." "That''s true ... ah, I don''t think I can sleep this night, I missed such a good opportunity." "In life, we will all miss thousands of opportunities, so this is nothing," Eric said trying tofort him. "Forget it. I will go back first." Seeing leave with a dejected look on his face, Eric began to regret telling him about ; he just wanted to use this topic to get closer to him so he can add him to his list of connections. Hopefully, wouldn''t dwell on it. ---- ---- After arranging everything else, Eric intended to leave, but he found the director of waiting for him at the door of the studio, with his assistant behind him holding a thick stack of papers. Eric took a look at the stack of papers and immediately know what was in it, after greeting him, Eric asked: "Martin, didn''t you say you will bring the list of the alternate cast the day after tomorrow, why so soon?" "Sorry, Eric, originally I nned to bring them the day after tomorrow, but for a variety of reasons, I finished the screening two days ahead of time, also wanted to start as soon as possible, so I can only wait here for you." "Why didn''t Ale?" Eric asked curiously. " has begun trying to figure out the role, these days he is trying to adapt to living as a blind man, I was explicitly told not to disturb him." Eric nodded to show his understanding and pointed to the Passat parked not far away and asked: "Is that your car?" nodded. "Well, let''s talk about it in the car, just now I was going to go to Malibu. I hope you can take me there if it is convenient for you?" "Sure, no problem." After they got into the car, Eric said the address to Martin''s assistant who was sitting was in the driver seat. In the backseat, Eric first opened the list of candidates for one of the most important protagonists, Charlie Simms. "Eric, These are the guys who passed through the second rounds of auditions, excellent young men, because the film has so many student characters, we picked thirty guys. After you select the actor who will y Charlie Simms, we can choose the rest of the student roles directly from the list." "Ok," Eric said, as he opened the folder and casually asked: "by the way, what about Miss ?" felt that perhaps the petite girl have a close rtionship with Eric, so he exined in great detail: "After she passed the audition, she went back to Ennd, but Miss Anwar came back a few days ago, she is staying at a hotel on Wilshire Boulevard. By the way, when you were in aa, she also visited you. Eric, do you need her hotel address?" "No," Eric casually answered. Reading the candidate list, he found that the names of the actors were arranged in alphabetical order, as he looked at the names he found two Hollywood superstar names from his past life on the D prefix. Chapter 136 part1 (TN Note: Sorry for the dy, I had a lot of work to do these days.) and . After reading their names, a list of movie names immediately popped into his mind, but he quickly dismissed them. With those images and names put in the corner, he got back to reading the names. In addition to the two previous superstars, he no longer saw any familiar names, even who was in the original version of couldn''t be seen due to him making the film 3 years before the original version was made. Although was 18 years this year, the same age as him, he will only show up in a movie called two years from now. Of course, even if his name were on the list, Eric wouldn''t give the role to him, because he didn''t show a strong performance in the original version. Although there is performance to mask his weak presence, his performance was toockluster and dull, so why bother wasting such important role on him. After quickly going over the information of the thirty candidates, Eric took a pen from and put a mark behind and names. But after hesitating for a moment, Eric decided to choose for the role of Charlie Simms, he decides to give him the role, because he was handsome, and he had just turned eighteen this year, you could even say he was perfect for the role. As for , he was 14 years old this year, plus he looked scrawny. After drawing a circle on name, Eric told who was closely watching his movements: "Martin, give the role of Charlie Simms to , as for , give him the role of Charlie''s ssmate George Willis. Also, I don''t care if they are part of a brokerage firm or have their own broker if they want the role, they have to join the UTA." "Eric, if the two don''t agree to join the UTA?" Eric gave Martin a strange look and said: "What qualifications do they have to refuse?" At first, was surprised by what Eric said, but when he recalled the information of and , heughed and said: "Indeed, the two rookies have no grounds to refuse." Seeing Eric choose the two actors, in such a short time felt that Eric just wanted to show his dominance over the movie, just like felt when he saw Eric choose the young actors for . Although Martin thought that Eric was hasty and childish, he didn''t refute him. After all, he was already forty years old, in his eyes, Eric was really just a child, so he couldn''t me him for doing such a thing. All he and can do is to screen out the right actors, so no matter which one Eric chooses, they will end up with good actors. Eric didn''t have any justification to why he choose the actors without reading all their resumes, and the reason he did so was exactly as Martin and others thought. They spent forty minutes going from Columbia studio to Malibu, on the way Eric choose the actors for the other roles from the list, he mostly followed Martin advice, on who to select. At the intersection of the Malibu coastal highway, Martin''s car stopped, and Eric, wearing sunsses and baseball caps, got off and said: "Thank you for bringing me here, Martin, Goodbye." "Goodbye," Martin waved toward Eric and told the assistant to drive away. After the Passat drove away, Eric walked to the vi not far away, took out the key give him, opened the gate, and walked in. It waste in the afternoon, so the vi lights were already lit. As he walked through the door, he found Virginia standing there, she was wearing casual clothes, and carrying two big garbage bags." "Ah!" was startled, by Eric who suddenly appeared in front of her, which made the hand garbage bags slip from her hands and fall to the ground. "Eric, you! ... Howe you''re here?" she asked as she walked up to him to give him a hug. Eric smiled and embraced her fragrant body, and give her a kiss on the cheek: "Why are you so nervous, you wouldn''t be hiding a man at home?" "I just didn''t expect you toe to my home these days." Virginia rolled her eyes and said: "Even if I hide a man, what can you do to me?" Eric pinched her cheek and said with a poker-face: "Well, there''s a lot of methods to punish you, In some Eastern countries, women who cheat, will be sentenced to stoning. And in ancient times, in the east of China, they got drowned, they stripped the women, put her in a cage, then they throw the cage into a pond until she drowns." "How could there be such a barbaric thing?" shivered. "ah, I actually appreciate the way they used to punish women for cheating in India. it was very humane." "Oh," showed a curious look. Eric grinned and said: "In some parts of India when a woman was found cheating, the vige head would summon the finest men in the vige, and have the woman serve them one by one to ensure that the woman wouldn''t want a man for the rest of her life." "Wow, disgusting, you are only eighteen years old. Where did you learn such messy things." "I learned them when I was born," Eric told the truth. "Well, Mr. knowledgeable, is there any way to punish a man who cheats on his girlfriend? please tell me the cruelest one." Eric coughed twice and said: "ah ...... have sex with him." rolled her eyes and said: "don''t talk nonsense, you go ahead, and I''ll throw out the trash." "Come on let me do it, it looks very heavy," Eric said as he grabbed the stic bag. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 136 part2 (TN Note: Sorry guys I had a lot of work to do in the past few weeks, but I''m back now.) "Just throw it into the garbage bin at the door," Virginia said as she pointed a bin by the vi gate. When he came back, he found Virginia in the kitchen, making a cup of coffee with sugar and milk for him, so he said as he hugged her from behind: "Actually, I don''t like coffee very much, I prefer drinking boiled water, boiled water is said to be a secret to longevity." Virginia smiled and said as she added powdered coffee to a cup of hot water: "Why are you thinking of longevity at your young age, are you afraid of death?" "Of course not, I''m not scared of death, I''m just afraid of regrets." "Sorry, what regrets?" Yes, what regret? Eric put his chin on her shoulder and thought, about his regrets, he regretted not being able to see his kids grow up, and he also regretted not being able to shoot a movie on his own in his past life. Even though when he recriminated the film industry in China was dwindling, and he was past his forty''s, he still didn''t give up on making his own movie. He and several of his friends, spent a few years writing a script for a film but in the end, they didn''t have enough money to make the film by them self, so they started searching for investors, but he found that they didn''t have the connections to get the investment. Unfortunately, the n wasn''t implemented, and he inexplicably incriminated in America in the year 1988. Now less than a yearter, he was finally able to achieve his dream. "Why did you suddenly stop talking?" turned and asked him. "Nothing, I''m just wondering if I suddenly die, what regrets would I have?" Virginia put down the kettle of hot water, turned and looked at Eric''s face with concern: "Eric, if you have the problem of always think about the issue of death, then I suggest you find a psychologist as soon as possible, maybe you are under too much pressure?" "Of course not," Eric hastened to deny when he saw the worry in her eyes, he wanted to exin, but he didn''t know where to start. "Let''s go to the living room to talk about it," Virginia said as she handed Eric his cup of coffee, and went to the living room with her own cup of coffee in her hand. After sitting on the couch, Virginia asked: "Howe you''re here today? Aren''t you living with Aniston?" Eric gave her a bitter smile and said: "After what happenedst time, Jane refused toe live with me, she went to the Burbank to rent her own house." If he didn''t happen to fall downstairs that day, Eric was sure getting Aniston back was gonna be close to impossible. When he woke up from thee that morning, he took advantage of Aniston''s exhausted mind, and her soft heart, to stop her from leaving him. And he even managed to get her agree to be a cast member of Friends. But then he made another big mistake, he let her and Drew sleep on both sides of him on the hospital bed. As a result, when he returned to his ward, after eating dinner with Jeffrey and Kapoor in the hospital restaurant. He found a scene of chaos, the pillow, and the quilt was thrown on the ground, and the girls fighting like two wild cats that have gone mad, they were twisted together on the hospital bed, screaming and tearing each other clothes, and trying to push each other off the bed, as if the bed was Eric himself and thest one on the bed is the one who will stay with them. After a lot of coaxing Eric was able to break them apart, then Aniston wiped away her tears and used Eric of always taking Drew side, and Drew also opened her smart mouth and advised Aniston to break up with him, so she doesn''t suffer pain in the future when Eric leaves her. But Drew words had the opposite effect, instead of her breaking up with him, those words sessfully aroused Aniston rebellious psychology, she publicly vowed that she will never leave Eric to her. Hearing Aniston pledge not to leave him to Drew, Eric was secretly happy, but he quickly realized that she still didn''t forgive him when Aniston chose to rent an apartment and not to live with him in the vi. Although she didn''t say anything about breaking up she didn''t let him have sex with her, instead, she started ying a cold war with him. And because he began working on , he didn''t have the time to coax her, so instead he started calling her several times a day, to try and gain her forgiveness. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 136 part3 Hearing Eric''s exnation, Virginia blushed and said: "You should spend more time with her, all girls like getting attention from their boyfriends." "Well, let''s not talk about it, I came to see you because I heard you are going to Ennd the day after tomorrow? I spoke to Jonathan, and he said he will finish The Others before September, before the Venice Film Festival, so you are expected to stay in the UK for a long time." Virginia took a sip from her cup of coffee, and asked: "Aren''t you going to visit the crew in Ennd?" Eric shook his head: "I''m not sure, is scheduled to be released in July, if I can smoothly finish filming by the middle of May, then I will go to Ennd, if the shooting is not smooth, then I probably won''t go." "Oh," Virginia nodded and changed the topic. After chatting for a few minutes, Eric patted his stomach and said: "Ah, Vicky, I''m hungry." Virginia hurriedly got up and said: "I''m gonna go to the supermarket, so what do you want to eat?" Eric stopped her and said: "don''t bother, just casually make something light." "Well, I have spaghetti," Virginia said as she walked into the kitchen. After Virginia walked into the kitchen, Eric got up and walked upstairs to the second floor. He went to the balcony in Virginia''s bedroom, it was getting dark outside, but he could still see the sharp corner of Malibu from this balcony, he could even see a dim silhouette of the construction, it was expected that the building will bepleted by the end of the year. In addition to the iron man mansion, several vis and buildings will be built on the estate, to be used to entertain guests or for parties r for the staff. Eric has seen the design of the entire estate, the vis and buildings were located on a t terrain, away from the cliff, they were built there to save on the cost and to put more emphasis on the luxurious iron man mansion. In the design draft provided by Frank Gehry, the buildings were naturally fused together, with tunnels underground, and were separated with Facilities like gardens, stadiums, roads and so on, giving a totally natural feeling. Of course, the entire project cost more than $20 million, he even had to hire a special ounting firm to monitor the financial situation of the project, since he made up his mind to build an ideal luxurious mansion. As long as the Frank Gehry didn''t use any tricks to swallow the project funds, Eric didn''t mind spending more than $20 million to build the mansion from his dreams. After dinner, Eric was very tired, but he still patiently watched a boring soap opera with her. "Eric, I heard that you intend to shoot a TV series?" "Yes ah," Eric said as he put his hand on Virginia big chest: "it''s a si, A lot of big stars will be needed in cameos in the future, would you like to have a part?" Virginia gently gasped, and said after she gave him a kiss: "if you want me to, then I will do it." "Before you agree you should know that Jenny is one of the leading characters." Virginiaughed, and said: "Oh, then I have to go, but you will have to tell your girlfriend not to bully me in public, anyway, you are the one responsible for coordinating this show, so I''d like to see how you will handle your girlfriend when she starts bullying me in public." "I wouldn''t care," Ericughed and said: "ording to some ancient traditions in the East. If the house girl gets bullied by the first wife, the husband isn''t allowed to intervene. Well, I will be happy to see how you will deal with her." Although Virginia did not understand what a house girl meant, it didn''t prevent her from understanding the meaning of the words. Acting hurt, Virginia bit him on the arm and said: "You''re such a jerk." Eric massaged his arm, and drew Virginia into his arms and sad: "All right, how about we go upstairs so I can show you how sorry I''m." "Mmmm ... ... ah, let me first turn off the TV." Eric grabbed the remote control, turned off the TV, picked Virginia up, and walked upstairs. The next day, Eric woke up at seven o''clock, he hastily consumed his breakfast and let Virginia drive him to the studio. Although they left before finishing the scene, Cruise and Hanks quickly got back into shape andpleted the scene without any mistakes. And surprisingly , who was sad after hearing the bad news about missing the chance to star in Home Alone the day before, was very energetic this morning and ended giving a ster performance. When he was performing his lines, some people in the crew couldn''t help butugh, because of Joe Pesci joyful voice. Even Tom Hanks showed concern that he may be suppressed by Joe Pesci performance. For the next period of time, Running Out of Time shooting went ording to n, although the filming was advancing slowly, he still has a lot of time. A few dayster, the crew of The Others departed to the United Kingdom, in addition to the actors, the crew staff was selected by , Eric didn''t intervene, after all, Jonathan has spent most of his adult life in Hollywood, not only does he have more experience than Eric, he even has more connections and contacts. Eric didn''t take the time to send them off, instead, Jeffrey who acted as one of the producers went with them, but after a few days with the cast in Ennd, he came back. By the middle of April, officially started shooting Scent of a Woman, and at the same time, after more than 10 days of filming inside the studio, Eric finallypleted all the indoor scenes, and began shooting the most difficult scenes, although he had all the scenes in his mind, when he started shooting them, he found that thing isn''t as easy as he imagined. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 137 part1 In a high-rise building in Downtown Los Angeles, near Santa Monica Expressway, a 500 meters long street was blocked not allowing any external vehicles to enter. Starting from eight o''clock in the morning, only the vehicles that transported the shooting equipment''s, and the and the men responsible for unloading the equipment''s were allowed to enter. The nearby residents quickly got ustomed to the presence of the crew, because in Los Angeles there was countless movie crew on the roads. And because this wasn''t a busy road, every few months a new movie crew wille to their street, most of the times they didn''t even feel their presence because by the time theye back from work they find them gone. But this time because the film contained two famous superstars and , And because of Eric, the young director, who made great achievements before he has even reached the age of neen, many peoplee, in hopes of getting to meet their favorite superstars. The onlookers crowded around the streets with cameras just like the paparazzi, expecting to shoot some valuable photos, although the crew was doing everything in their power to prevent them from taking the pictures, but some of them still slipped by them and were able to take some shots. "Three actors are in ce, right?" standing next to three identical taxis, Eric asked his assistant as he watched the photographers install the cameras on the vehicles. "Fifty people are in ce, and Royce asked me to ask you, when will you like to start?" "Let''s do it ording to n, have them familiarize themselves with the path they need to walk, as we take a few street scenes." "Ok," n replied and said: "By the way, themunity agency stated that we will have to open the road for an hour at noon. And the reason they give was that at that time, the traffic will be rtivelyrge, and some people will need to pass from this street." Noon wasn''t the time peoplemute from work to home, so he was sure the traffic wouldn''t increase too much, and the crew also need to eat at noon. "Tell them, there is no problem, from twelve ''clock to one o''clock, we will stop filming, and we evacuate the street." After n left, Eric turned his attention to the three identical taxis, they also had exactly the same license te number. This was done so that after filming no loopholes will appear in the details of this scene. Once the shoot isplete, the crew will change the taxis license tes to the original ones. The inside of the taxis was also identical, one car didn''t require any processing, because the photographer will shoot from the copilot seat, and the other two cars were fitted with cameras, one was installed on the hood of the car, and one had the camera installed in the backseat. Today they will shoot the scene where Sean will drive Andy to the police station, this scene shouldst less than two minutes. But if things go smoothly, Eric was expecting this scene to take them the entire day, and he will probably end up with close to one hour of lens material to work with. After all the cameras were installed on the taxi, Eric picked up his walkie-talkie and began giving orders to all the crew. --------- As and got off the trailers they were staying in, the paparazzi who were nearby waiting for them started frantically pressing the camera shutter. The two weren''t dressed in anything special, Cruise wore ck casual clothes, while Hanks was dressed like delivery courier, a cap on his head, and a in white work suit. After Eric briefed them on what to do, the two men got into the taxi that had no modifications. ---------- After the short briefing, Eric went to look at the wireless monitor, to determine if the lighting and angle of the lens are correct, after determining that everything is alright he asked his assistance using the walkie-talkie: "n, is the shooting area clear of outsiders?" "Clear, the only ones left are our actors." n''s voice sounded from the walkie-talkie, mixed with the sound of static. Eric had to confirm again because if after the production is finished, someone who isn''t one of the actors he hired appeared on the screen, he will have a huge problem in his hands. Most of the crowds you see in movies these days are actors, and they are very expensive to hire. It was a known thing in the industry that you can''t have any scenes in your movie with real people in the background, even if you tell the crowds about it, and they agreed to cooperate, you shouldn''t do it. Because once they find themselves appearing in a movie, the first thing they will do is contact theirwyers, to sue you for reasons such as infringement on their rights. Usually, those kinds ofwsuits result in filmpanies paying at least eighty thousand dors as reimbursement, and in worst cases, your movie may be removed from the cinemas, until you edit the film, which can result in millions of dors in losses. So even though he confirmed that no one is in the background, he was going to do a detailed screening of all the people who appeared in the shoot, to make sure that there are no "outsiders" mixing with the actors. So, when you see a scene in a Hollywood movie where the protagonist is walking or driving in a crowded street, know that every one of them is a paid actor. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on . Chapter 137 part2
(TN Note: hey, I apologize for not publishing any chapters for thest two weeks. This time my wife got sick when I took her to see the doctor he told us that her Appendix was inmed and gave her a prescription, but unfortunately, they didn''t do anything. So I took her to see another doctor who told us that she needs a surgical procedure to remove her appendix immediately, that was three 6 days ago, now she is alright, that''s why I didn''t publish any chapters.) ---------------- After Hanks who was acting as the taxi driver familiarized himself with the road he had to take, Eric gave the order to start the tedious filming process that was gonnast the entire day. Staring at the monitor, Eric watched the performance of two men inside the car and listened to their dialogue using headphones, although the sound wasn''t clear, and the noise of the car engine was creating some disturbance, he could still hear what they were saying. Later he will have to re-dubb this scene, and he will use this soundtrack as reference material, to synchronize their speech and their lips movements. By the end of the day, Eric couldn''t remember how many times he had to reshoot this scene, and by the afternoon, he was so tired of sitting he had to ask the staff to deliberately elevated the monitor so he can watch the monitor while standing. Although Eric was feeling a bit tired, he had to keep going. and had plenty of time to rest because every hour they spent filming, the two had a break, to ensure they stayed in good shape, so they didn''t end up looking tired. But when they rest, he had to work on arranging other shots, because he promised themunity agency to take only one day today on this street. Because of that, he had to make sure everything went smoothly so he can umte enough materials, just in case a problemes up in the future. On the small monitor, Andy slowly zipped down his coat, pulled out his pistol, and casually asked: "Where do you want to go?" "To the nearest police station." Sean calmly nced at the rear-view mirror and looked at Andy who was slowly screwing the silencer to the pistol. Andy looked out the window and smiled: "You alone?" Sean shrugged and said indifferently: "Yep!" "You''re not armed. Aren''t you afraid that I might kill you?" "If you shoot." Sean turned his head and said calmly: "The care will crash over." "Yes, it''s dangerous." Andy''s slowly rolled down the window and said: "You will win if you take me to the police station." Poking his silenced pistol out of the window Andy said: "l don''t always aim urately," and pulled the trigger without hesitation. When the scene progressed up to here, Eric shouted: "Cut!" Hearing Eric''s voice, the taxi stopped and and got out of the car at the same time, with Nicole who was in the co-pilot seat getting outst while carrying the camera in his hand. After the three people left the taxi, a staff member quickly approached the taxi and drove it back to its original location. Many props and vehicles on the road also had to be transferred back to the starting point in an Orderly manner, to Wait for the start of another shot. Eric told the three people about the ws he noticed in the shot. When everything was transferred back to the starting point, Cruise and Hanks go back in the taxi, followed by Nicole who was carrying the camera. Soon after that, the shooting started again. ----------- isn''t a movie with too much depth, it''s a movie about a seventy-two hours contest between a policeman and a robber. When he makes the movie trailer, he will certainly use the plot ups and downs to market the film to the general audience. Action movies don''t need to have deep plots to seed, sometimes people just want to watch a film full of action scenes, and he was gonna give them just that, a cool film filled withmercials. A film like this doesn''t even need the actors to have hight acting skills, as long as the actors have decent acting skills, the film can seed. That''s why having and the two superstars on board is such a good thing because as long as he makes a decent movie, the film was guaranteed to seed. From mid-April to mid-May, The cast spent most of their time on the streets of downtown Los Angeles, sometimes they stayed on a street for two or three days, and sometimes it took them just half a day toplete the shots. To make a long story short, the process can only be described as boring. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on .
Chapter 137 part3
After a few days with the crew of The others in Ennd, Jeffrey went back to Los Angeles, then a few days after that, he flew to New York to meet the crew of . As for the rest of the Firefly staff, most of them basically followed Eric, only the security men and the employees responsible for processing the daily affairs of the building and the clerks responsible for sending and receiving Mail stayed in thepany headquarters. If you ignore the scary earnings from the movies, you will find that thepany is no different than the other small independent filmpanies in Los Angeles. Although filming was a very tedious andplicated process, he didn''t encounter too many problems when filming, but it was hard keeping up with the filming schedule. It was expected that he will be able to officially finish filming around May 15th, so Columbia decided to start a small-scale publicity early, to create some hype for the film and to spread the message. Since the start of the negotiations with the wealthy Sony consortium, Columbia''s market value has jumped up to $3.5 billion. seeing Columbia stock price rise day by day, the Japanese were going crazy, they weren''t expecting this huge acquisition was going to cost them this much money. The final contract between Sony and Columbia was gonna be signed in September, and even if they seed in signing the purchase contract, it will take them at least one year toplete handover thepany. As a result, this summer box office results is thest chance time Columbia can push up the stock price. ---------------- Warner had two big productions to be released, namely and Lethal Weapon 2, but because Running Out of Time was scheduled to be released on the 7th of July. Warner who initially also prepared to release Lethal Weapon 2 at the start of July, choose to postpone the film release until the end of the year. In 1987 the first film made more than $60 million at the box office, and because the first film sold well, the cost of the second film has doubled, so to recover the cost, the film had to earn at least $100 million at the box office. Under this pressure, Warner executives didn''t want topete against Eric, Tom Cruise, and Tom Hanks the three superstars, so they took the initiative to dyed Lethal Weapon 2 until the end of the year. So Columbia became the only film gaint to have two blockbuster films released in this summer file, the second film is Ghostbusters 2, a film that has a huge fan base that was looking forward to seeing the long-awaited sequel. was first released in the year 1984, five years in the past, the reason why Columbia suddenly decided to release the film is that they wanted to boost their stock price. ---------- Inte April, Jeffrey finished his tour, ande back to Los Angles, this was the first time they meet each other in close to a month. The first thing they did after greeting each other and some small talk, is going to the conference room to update each other on what happened on their end. "Eric, do you need to hire a few more people?" When Jeffrey asked the question, Eric was reading the files brought by Jeffrey, that exins the production progress of Scent of a Woman and The Others, so without lifting his head, Eric answered: "No, after thepletion of Scent of a Woman and The Others. I''ll ask and to rmend some of the crew members working with them now to join the fireflies." "Well, then, what about the TV series, The one you named ...... Friends was it, the time is getting tight, and Fox executives have been contacting nonstop for thest week. They want to know when you will provide the script, they are even willing to help with the preliminary preparations." Ericughed, He had already made it clear to Barry Diller before, that friends will only be produced by the Fireflies, but FOX still didn''t give up on the chance to get a piece of the pie. That''s understandable, After all, this is a si, the production cost is very small, and if you can co-own the copyright with the Fireflies, and the Tv show be sessful, then FOX can have a bargaining chip against Eric, and even if the Tv show fails. Then they will only lose a few million dors. "Reject their offer, you see, theye looking for you instead of me, because they know I will refuse." Jeffrey hesitated for a moment, then said: "Eric, you ... you really should think about it." Eric finally raised his head, and said: "Hmm?" "You!...... you are independent in everything you do, you won''t allow others to partner with you in your films, and you also don''t want to allow others to partner with you in this TV series, this won''t work in Hollywood. Nowadays, even a lot of small budget movies will have a lot of investors sharing the risk and profits, this is one of the orthodox rules of Hollywood, even the big six movie studios do it. Although thepetition between them is fierce, they always cross-share projects between them, so why are you so against it." ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on .
Chapter 137 part4
"I understand what you want to say," Eric said as he scratched his head: "But now is not the time, in the future, I will certainly share with others, but now we have to take as much as we can alone." Showing a helpless expression Jeffrey said: ""Well, when do we start preparing for the TV show?" "We are gonna start tomorrow," Eric said: "I called you here today, to discuss this matter, we have to start this project as soon as possible. I intend to insert a few shots of into some scenes in ." Jeffrey showed a confused look on his face and asked: "Eric, are you saying that you are going to insert shots from Friends like a patch Ad, even if Colombia agreed to this, it''s not worth it, and may even cause the audience disgusted." "It''s not a patch ad," Eric denied and started exining his intentions to Jeffrey in detail. "It''s a good idea," Jeffrey nodded, then asked: "but we only have less than two months time left, and you promised Fox to personally direct the first two episodes of Friends, do you think you can do this?" Eric shook his head: "No, I do not need topletely finish shooting the episodes, all we need to do is shoot the scenes I want to integrate into the film, the rest we can doter. What we need to do now is to find the actors, and to build the set so we can shoot the clips as fast as possible." Jeffrey thought that this n was feasible, and if the n seeds, Friends will have free publicity, what''s more, the audience wouldn''t even know that they saw an Ad. "But, Eric, I don''t have any experience in producing TV shows, maybe you need an experienced TV producer." "I said, I will not let Fox intervene in this matter," Eric said: "So, Jeffrey, you''ll have to find a way." Jeffrey revealed a little smile, and said in a teasing voice: "Actually, Eric, someone you are close to, know a TV producer." Thinking about it for a few moments, the image of the father of a small stubborn girl appeared in his mind, John Aniston. "Are you talking about John Aniston, isn''t he an actor," Eric first reaction is to resist the proposal, after all, he is the father of his girlfriend, an angry girlfriend. Eric shut the fail in his hand, slightly nodded his head and said: "I''ll try to contact him as soon as possible, Id he doesn''t ept then you''ll have to do it." Jeffrey nodded: "So, about the actors?" "The role of been fixed," Eric said: "That leaves us with the other Five roles, I''ll go back and write down the characters'' demands this night, and I''ll make sure to give it to you tomorrow. You should start the auditions as soon as possible, but make sure to keep things small, not like the other auditions, we don''t have the time to go through thousands of applications and interviews. The actors should at least have experience acting in other movies and movie shows, we don''t have the time to train them, and make sure they are willing to sign with the UTA." "I''m sure not a lot of people will be tempted toe to the auditions," Jeffreyughed: "after all, a TV series isn''t as tempting as a movie." ---- --- After a few hours discussing things, Eric left the Firefly''s office building and went to Aniston''s apartment. He decided it was better to leave inviting John Aniston to be the producer to Aniston. When he arrived at the door of Aniston''s apartment, he decided not to knock at the door. Instead, he took out the spare key she always kept under the flowerpot by the door. But when he tried to open the lock he found that the door was locked from the inside. Smart girl, Eric thought bitterly, put the key back under the flowerpot, then knocked on the door. "Who?" he faintly heard the sound of Aniston. A momentter, she opened just a little, Eric tried pushing the door, but he found that she had installed a new shiny security door chain, he knows that the chain was new, because thest time he came to see her, there was no door chain attached to the door. She definitely installed it because of him. Trying to break the ice, Eric said in a very hippie tone asked: "Hey little girl, I heard you can''t fall asleep, do you need a strong young man to cuddle with." "Beat it," Aniston red at Eric and mmed the door in his face. ...... ...... If you enjoy my content, please consider supporting what I do on . Current Goals: First Goal $150 = I will buy a to help improve the quality of my trantion Second Goal $400 = I will go back and fix all the mistakes I made in all the chapters I tranted, with the help of Grammarly to provide better reading experience for everyone. (This will probably take me weeks to finish.) For more information''s, please visit my page on .
Chapter 138 part1
After mming the door in Eric''s face, Aniston triumphantly leaned against the door, waiting for him to knock at the door again. At the same time, she wondered how she should deal with him, she should at least make him beg her to let him in, as for letting him stay for the night, will ...... that depends on his performance. Aniston wildly thought of how she would deal with him, but after a couple of minutes passed, there was no movement outside the door. "Humph, he''s definitely trying to trick me, don''t think I''ll fall for it." Although she quietly murmured that she wouldn''t break down and let him in, Aniston couldn''t help but peak from the cat''s eye in the door, but Aniston found that she could only see darkness outside because the sound controlled lights on the corridor have gone out. "Damn that guy, he must be hiding in the dark waiting for me to take the initiative to open the door." Aniston thought, her heart bing restless, finally, after waiting for close to five minutes, Aniston couldn''t help but open the door a little bit to take a look. But because the door was blocked by the anti-theft chain, Aniston could only see a narrow field of vision, and all she saw was a quiet, empty corridor. So Aniston decided to unplug the pin out of the anti-theft chain lock, open the door and walk outside. Right as Aniston stepped outside, a pair of big hands caught her by the waist and picked her up. "Ah!" Although she was aware of who caught her, Aniston still screamed and punched him on the shoulder. "You bastard, scumbag, help ah!" Laughing Eric gave her a p on the ass then walked into the apartment and shut the door behind him. The pain from her buttocks caused Aniston to feel shame and anger, so she started struggling in his arms trying to escape his clutches: "That hurt, you asshole, let me down." Getting annoyed by her screams, Eric gave her another p on the ass. This time not as hard as the first one, except this time he left his hand on her buttocks and kneaded it a few times while saying in a soft voice: "Honey, stop screaming if you don''t stop the neighbors will call the police on us." Aniston hit him a few times on the back and said: "Who let youe in? This is ... ... This is a private housing." "Wow, that is a big usation, you''re not gonna shoot me, right?" Eric said as he put Aniston on the sofa in the living room. As soon as she got free from his clutches, Aniston picked a pillow from the sofa and throw it at him, then she sat back on the couch, and red at Eric. Ignoring the angry girl, Eric walked into the kitchen, opened the refrigerator, took out a can of cold beer, and went and sat beside the agitated Aniston: "I didn''t buy the beer for you ...... I bought it for myself." Acting shameless Eric took a sip from the can of beer, smacked his lips and said: "Well, you have great taste in beer." "Humph, Well finish the beer, and go home, I''m going to sleep." just as she finished talking, a knock came from the door, followed by a man''s voice: "Miss Aniston, are you ok?" After a brief moment of surprise, Eric asked: "Who is he." "Probably a noisy neighbor." "Will you are the one who started yelling." Eric retorted. "That''s your fault," Aniston stood up and walked toward the door, followed by Eric. When they opened the door, they found a middle-aged couple carefully standing at the door, the man was holding a Baseball Bat, while the woman was holding a Baking Roller. When they saw that Aniston who opened the door was safe and sound, they rxed a little bit. "Miss Aniston, we heard you call for help ... ..." The man looked at the tall figure of Eric behind Aniston with a vignt look in his eyes. Seeing the man focus on Eric, Aniston opened the door wide, Hugged Eric''s arm and made an intimate gesture, and exined: "Sorry for disturbing you, Mr. Bertman ... ... My boyfriend surprised me, which made me scream." "Hello, Mr. Bertman, my name is Eric, sorry to disturb you." Eric took the initiative to reach out and shake their hand. "It does not matter," Mr. Bertman said as he shook hands with Eric. After exchanging small talk, Mr. Bertman politely refused Aniston and Eric invitation to enter and have a cup of coffee, and left with his wife. .... .... After closing the door, Aniston immediately released Eric''s arm and went back to sitting on the couch, Eric soon followed and sat beside her then hugged her, at first Aniston symbolically resisted, but she soon gave up and leaned on his shoulders. "Jenny, have you been in touch with your fathertely?" Aniston raised her head slightly and said: "Yes ah, why do you ask?" "What is John doing recently?" Eric did not answer her immediately, instead, he asked. "I''m not sure about what he is doing," Aniston said, fiddling while fiddling with her fingers: "But I know he has been working on a show called for the past four years." "So ...... Can you help me ask your dad? If he''s interested in being a producer of a TV series." Aniston asked with some doubt: "a TV series?" "I''m talking about the TV series I spook to you about before, the one you agreed to take a role in," said Eric, exining in detail to Aniston. "You mean, you are gonna let my dad be the producer of ?" Eric nodded: "Jeffrey isn''t good at producing TV shows, and for a while, we couldn''t find a trusted person to be the producer. I could ask Fox to help, but I don''t want them to intervene in this series, so I thought of your dad."
Chapter 138 part2
As she thought about what he said, something dawned on her; this guy didn''te to see her because he missed her, he specifically came here because he originally wanted her to connect him to her father. Feeling disgusted, she shook off his arm and asked: "You came here tonight ...... Just for this matter?" Seeing that things aren''t right, Eric hurriedly hugged Aniston, then kissed her red lips and said: "Of course not, I came over because I missed you." "No, don''t kiss me ... hmph." She tried to push him away but found that not only did his tongue invade her mouth, and his big hands has also opened the hem of her pajamas, and started fondling her. Feeling his skilled hands cover her tender soft breasts, Aniston body slightly trembled and froze for a moment. Geeting back to her self Aniston tried again to escape his clutches, but in doing so, she ended up scratching him a little on the arm. Felling the pain, and seeing that she wasn''t going to surrender, Eric pushed her back on the sofa and said: "Oh, what a tough girl. Let''s how long you can keep resisting." (TN Note: that kinda sound he''s trying to rape her.) "Wait, let''s go to the bedroom first." "No, I''m so horny right now that I want to do it here on the couch." "I''m angry at you, you bastard, you did not apologize to me for that day. And... And you give that big breasted woman a movie, but you only give me a role in a TV series." Ericughed and did not answer because Aniston knew perfectly well that if she asked Eric for a film role, he would surely give her one, so at this time she was just acting spoiled. Ignore the grumbling little girl, Eric stood up and began to take off his clothes. A momentter, Aniston felt his hot body touch her cold skin, as he Eric knelt on the sofa between her legs. ----- Along timeter, the intense movements in the living room slowed down, but he was still going, leaving Aniston whole body covered with a fine sheen of sweat. The Exalted Aniston raised her head slightly and told Eric with a re: "Are you satisfied now you bastard." "No." A few momentster a gust of wind poured into the living room through the balcony, making Eric feel a little chilly, looking at the goosebumps on the pale skin of the sweaty girl. Eric picked her up and took her to the bathroom, filled the bathtub with warm water, and sat with her in his embrace enjoying the warm water. Feeling content, Aniston leaned back on Eric''s chest, closed her eyes in satisfaction, feeling that everything would have been perfect if it wasn''t for the thing getting again hard behind her. Eric put some shower gel in his hand, and startedthering her creamy skin, and said: "Ha, did you think we finished, this is just the start." "Well ... I don''t care, you solve it yourself," said Aniston who wasfortably soaking in the warm water. With his hands still roaming all over her body, Ericughed and said: "Didn''t they teach you in school to always finish what you started. "No, I only remember that the story of Washington and the cherry tree that was meant to teach us, to be honest, is false and that textbooks are deceptive Washington had no cherry tree in his backyard." "Ok," Ericughed: "But that still a good story." "It''s too ironic to teach people to be honest by cheating them, and then I was never interested in reading stories like those anymore. Because when I grow up, I didn''t want to find that all the things I was thought were fake, there was no cherry tree, Edison didn''t help save his mothers life during an appendectomy by using mirrors to reflect light from candles, thereby giving doctors enough light to operate. And the apple didn''t fall on Newton''s head ...... " "I see," Eric nodded. Aniston looked back at him and asked: "what do you understand?" Eric gently fondled her small breasts and said with a smile: "I understand that you are trying to divert the topic, Don''t worry, you can''t run away from me tonight." "I''m sour," Aniston suddenly wanted to get up, but Eric pulled her back into his embrace: "No, you can''t run." "I''m not running, I just need a break" Aniston shouted and tried to get out of Eric''s arms. But her struggling only served to ignite his passion as her rump rubbed against him under water, "let''s do it here, the water is warm. Plus, I always wanted to do it in a bathtub." "Well, eh?" as wanted to keep struggling, she suddenly felt him enter her, and all she could do is protest: "Don''t... ... don''t push there, that the wrong ce." "Certainly not," Eric said with a grin, and held her waist tightly, then pushed. "Ah! Eric Williams, I''m going to kill you! " ---- "Jenny?" "Go away!" "Baby..." "Don''t touch me." "I... got some medicine. " "Oh, why don''t you kill me directly, you bastard." "I didn''t know it was going to be like this, I thought you were just bluffing." "Fuck off Eric, and go y with your big breasted woman butt, you asshole I''m going to break up with you." "Okay, Okay, now stop moving and, let me apply the medicine."
Chapter 139 After receiving an invitation from Eric, John Aniston quickly agreed with almost no consideration. Between being a soap opera actor or a TV producer, few people would be willing to choose the former, as whether it was a screenwriter or an actor from Hollywood, they were nothingpared to the top-level directors. As one''s career progressed, to a certain extent, it will always develop in the direction of a producer. To this end, John Aniston resigned some of his positions at NBC, while at the same time greatly reducing his role inDays of Our Lives. Although he is already in his fifties this year, and his age is equal to Jeffreys, but his career is not much weaker than when he was young. Whilst the box office dividends of ?Home Alone? and Pretty Woman are not recovered at all, fireflies are not short of money, because of Eric''s two huge loans. The budget for the production of each episode of this TV series is about 200,000 USD. The total investment is only 5 million US dors, equivalent to the investment of ?The Others?. The Friends project quickly started in early May with the addition of John Aniston. The crew rented two giant studios from the 20th Century Fox to shoot all the scenes in Friends. In his past life "Friends" was basically all shot in Warner Studios in Los Angeles. Although Eric didn''t want Fox to participate in the TV series, it would be too deliberate to go to Warner or Columbia if renting a studio. At a meeting, Eric suggested that they build a studio dedicated to Friends, but he was opposed by both Jeffrey and John. The two agreed that it was too costly and not worth the losses. Eric therefore had to give up temporarily. As for the actors, Eric fantasised that if he could gather the six people from his past life, then that would be perfect. "Friends" was appearing five years earlier than in his previous life, so ording to the current date, several of the starring actors were only 20 to 24 years old, and even the oldest Lisa Kudrow was only 26 years old. If they started to act now, then after ten years, the actors will not have obvious age marks in the camera. The main reason why the past "Friends" ended in the tenth season, although the actor sry is part of the reason, but the most important thing was that the age of the actors was no longer suitable for this ssic to continue; As in the tenth season, ying Phoebe is a forty-one year old Lisa Kudrow, who had already yed the role of a mother on the big screen. It would have been very out of sorts for her to continue to appear as a young woman. Naturally, gathering the same set of six from the past was doomed from the start if one thought about it. Matthew Perry, who yed one of the young thieves in ?Home Alone?, is now a premier movie actor, and anyone who tries to make a Hollywood star work on a si is simply an idiot. As for the others, Eric did have some of their movies in his memory. But before this year, Eric only had an impression of Courtney Cox ying a small role in Cocoon: The Return. The others didn''t even have a shadow now. It would be like trying to find a needle in a haystack, so Eric could only patiently start picking recements for the other five friends from among the applicants. On May 10th, Sunday, the filming of Running Out of Time has reached thest act. In next week of working days, so long there is not too big of an ident, the filming will have finished smoothly. Therefore today, as Eric could find the time, he carried out the final Friends audition, this was thest audition, as because of the Eric''s request beforehand, the crew carried out the first auditions, therefore they have only used ten days of time. The sets that were being built in the two Fox studios were in the initial building period, as auditions of actors entered thest round. In Eric''s n, during thete period of Mid-May to Mid-June, the ssic shots of Friendswere to be shot so they could be inserted into Running Out of Time, and the official shooting of the TV series was only after the release of Running Out of Timein July. ording to the n given by Fox, the release of the TV series will be in early September, just after the end of the summer movie runs, as the fall of American dramas begins. Moreover, Eric was expected to spend only two weeks to personally film the first two episodes of the TV series. Afterpleting this matter, he will need to continue the preparation for the two films in the second half of the year, and moreover also he also needs to work for the release of the other three. Basically, it is impossible to have the leisure time in the second half of the year. At 8 o''clock in the morning, Eric walked into thepany and saw many men and women waiting in the hallway. These people obviously knew Eric. After Erics appearance, they all greeted Eric. Several young girls openly looked at Eric with profound gazes. Eric then faced everyone, nodded and walked into the audition room. He hadn''t seen the final round of actors until now, and all the actors also had no clue Eric would be conducting interviews. It was not like ?The Others? and Scent of a Womanwhere everyone was drawn from his circle. "Jeffrey, John, good morning." Into the audition room, Eric saw that Jeffrey and John Aniston had been waiting here, and the two were whispering to each other. When they sensed Erics arrival they stood up to greet Eric. "Good morning, Eric." "Eric, morning." Eric walked behind them to a long table and sat down. A blonde female assistant took the initiative to go up to Eric and put a stack of information in front of him. She also bent over and spoke: "Mr. Williams, this is the full list of interview actors today, and the order has been marked above." When the girl spoke, Eric did not know whether it was intentional or not, but her chest was positioned just right. In front of Eric''s face, the top button on the white shirt was not fastened, and Eric easily saw the beautiful scenery of the girl''s breasts. D**, yes, it looks like you can''t hold it. Eric thought so thoughtfully, and nced at the side, noticing how John Aniston couldn''t see the scene, and thinking that his face would certainly not be too good if he saw. The crew of "Friends" was built of his ownwork in the TV circle. The blonde is also a more experienced staff member he has found. Now that Eric is his daughter''s boyfriend, in order to make sure John Aniston is happy, Eric was left guessing how long this girl can stay part of the crew. However, perhaps the girl did not understand the rtionship between John Aniston and Eric very well, or she understood and didn''t care, so she continued to make moves on Eric in front of John''s face. With Eric being a young man at his current age, Hollywood has several ambitious women who are willing to try and attract his attention. This is not the first time Eric has encountered such bait. Once the girl had finished spoken, and Eric had eaten enough of the proverbial tofu that was before him, he nodded: "Well, I understand." "So, my name is Linda Grant but Mr. Williams, you can call me Linda." The girl straightened up and consciously or unconsciously showed her wonderful body wrapped in a professional suit. "Thank you, Miss Linda," Eric smiled as he looked at the girl and thanked her. The voice of John Aniston finally rang out: "Linda, let the young people waiting for the interview prepare, then let''s start right away." "Okay, Mr. Aniston." The girl nodded and turned around. The beautiful buttocks wrapped in a tight skirts went out of the audition room. "Cough, Eric, Linda... is married, her husband is the sound engineer of the crew." John Aniston didn''t know what to think. When the girl went out, she whispered to Eric. Such a seductress. Eric shrugged innocently: "John, I can''t do anything." "Eric, although it''s inevitable that things are going on in Hollywood, you''d better be careful not to hurt Jenny, she''s actually still a very simple little girl. Erics guiltily nodded: Rest assured, John, I will pay attention. John Aniston shook his head: "Actually, I hope that you can break up with Jenny on own initiative. Eric immediately refused: "Unless Jenny takes the initiative to leave me, I will not break up with her." As Eric finished, he secretly added in his heart, even if she wants to leave me, I will try to get the little girl back. Of course, these kind of words can not be said, otherwise it''s difficult to ensure John will not make trouble. John Aniston certainly couldn''t guess Eric''s psychological activity, and he patted on his shoulder before starting the audition. Eric now had the opportunity to look down at the list of actors. Sure enough, at first nce, none are to be famous move stars in the future. Eric has not seen many American TV dramas in the past, so he didn''t know the people from these American drama circles. These are young people in their twenties after all, and there are very few who will be able to catch a break. When the American drama bes more sophisticated and can even challenge the status of the film more than ten yearster, these people are already thirty or forty years old. Even in the American dramas then, they are all insignificant supporting roles. The long list of auditions turned over and did not find a familiar name. Bored to death as he turned to thest page, it was a page of actresses who asked for the role of Phoebe Buffay. Eric finally found a familiar name and was very familiar with it: Nicole Kidman, This made Eric a little surprised, how could Nicole Kidmane to apply for a TV series? Eric carefully checked the spelling and decided that the name waspletely correct. So he waved to Linda, who wasing in again. The blonde immediately joined him and seriously asked: "Mr. Williams, is there something? " "Where is the detailed actor information, I want to look at the information of the audition actors in the afternoon." "Please wait." Linda responded, went out, and took a few folders and after a while came back in: "Mr. Williams, they are all here." "Thank you, call me Eric," Eric said thanks, regardless of the curiosity of Jeffrey and John Aniston. He started to rummage and quickly found Nicole Kidman''s profile. Just a look, Eric recognised the woman in the photo on the information, brown wavy hair, round face, blue sses, sexy nose, thin lips. After a quick look, the girl''s resume showed that she stayed on an Australian TV series called Bangkok Hilton, and she also participated in several TV series and movies. That is to say, the Dead Calm that allowed Nicole Kidman to enter Hollywood is gone. Is this also the butterfly effect brought by himself? Eric thought as he folded the corners of the paper, and finally had to admit that the facts were certain. Since he published Jurassic Parkst year, and began to enter Hollywood through ?17 Again?, Everything in this world has changed. This reminds Eric of the dominoes that he saw in previous lives. As soon as the first domino is pushed, it will cause thousands of dominoes to fall. This is the most vivid interpretation of the butterfly effect. ording to the time in memory, Nicole Kidman should have participated in "Dead Calmbefore she came to Hollywood, and then quickly hooked up Tom Cruise through Days of Thunder to stir up the originally single Cruise. She joined his family and became Mrs. Cruise, and she has since be a top vase in Hollywood and a silent vase actor. After more than a decade, she also won the Oscar for Best Actress. Thinking pasg these trivial materials, Eric can onlye to a conclusion, this is a very powerful woman. Among the women around Cruise, she was one of the best in her development. Even after divorcing Cruise, not only was she not negatively affected, but she went up to the next level and quickly entered 20 million sry club, and sessfully won the Oscar for best actress. Others, such as Cruise''s first wife, did not leave any impression at all. Thest wife, Katie Holmes, did not get any benefit from Cruise. After the divorce, because of her predecessor, the previously madame Cruise''s status, no one was willing to employ her. Throughout the morning interview, Eric wanted to be more interested in this woman. When she took a break at noon, Eric gave a look to the female assistant who had been trying to seduce him and came to the stairs at the end of the corridor. "Eric, is there something?" Linda was curious and nervously looking at Eric. She felt that she had no preparations yet. This little director would not have to do anything here. "It''s like this, Linda," Eric took out a page: "This Miss Nicole Kidman, after she finishes the interview in the afternoon, you take her to my office and let her wait there. I, I want to talk to her alone." Linda took the information and looked at Nicole Kidman''s photo and found that this woman was much more beautiful than herself. She was somewhat lost, but she nodded: "Okay, Eric, I will tell her, you... anything else? Eric shook his head honestly: No. Oh, Linda lowered her head and rubbed her toes on the concrete floor. After a few moments, just as she had the courage to look up and say something, she found that there was no one in front of her. "This iprehensible little guy is really... too irritating." The girl mmed her feet and turned and walked back in disappointment. After an afternoon audition, the remaining five characters have been initially determined. Eric also encountered Nicole Kidman, who participated in the audition at about 4 pm. The girls performance waspletely free of any problems, but inparison to the Lisa Kudrow of his memory, this Nicole Kidman is too beautiful inparison. Monica Gellers role has identified a brte beauty, simr to Courteney Cox. If Phoebe Buffay was chosen as a big beauty, then this si will definitely have somerge alterations. So Eric and John and others basically did not consider Nicole Kidman, but chose another girl who looks more ordinary. At five o''clock, the audition was over. Eric and John Aniston and others in the conference room had been negotiating the filming n for Friends until 7:00 pm, and all the talents had left. Erics thoughts turned around in a mess, almost forgot about the female assistants previous promise. When he walked out of thepanys office building, he thought about it and quickly turned back. Now that the sky is dark, Eric is not sure if Nicole Kidman will leave early, but this possibility is not great. With this womans intelligence, it is impossible to leave early, it was estimated by Eric that even if it he doesn''t appear this evening, this woman will patiently stay in his office. Pushing open the door of the office, he saw a woman sitting on the sofa. With only a deskmp to light the office, it was quite dark. Eric recognised the other party at a nce and she saw Eric open the door. Uponing in, the girl also stood up. Eric closed the door and turned on the office lights. "Hello, Miss Kidman." "Hello, Mr. Williams." The girl''s face was not impatient, with a faint smile. In the first two steps, she took the initiative to reach out her hand and grasp onto Eric. Eric nced inadvertently and found that the girl was barefoot, the high-heeled shoes ced to the side unexpectedly. Shes a careful woman, and she can notice the details like height. Eric is only one meter eighty tall in the first ce. Nicole Kidman is probably also around this height. Perhaps the girl thought that if wears the high-heeled shoes, and is therefore taller whenpared with Eric, he might be unhappy. Eric sighed and returned to his position to sit down: "Sorry, Miss Kidman, I have been keeping you waiting, as I have been in a meeting." "It doesn''t matter, Mr. Williams, you can call me Nicole. "Good, Nicole, simrly, just calling me Eric will be OK. Eric said, his body lying against the leather seats, no longer speaking, as he really looked at the woman in front of him. Nicole Kidman didn''t bother to ask Eric his intention for having him wait here. Maybe she didn''t even have to ask, this kind of thing is obvious, isn''t it? Chapter 140 In the bright office, Eric appreciated the beautiful of her little baby fat face for a while, his eyes gradually lost focus, and he couldn''t help but think of the divorce case of the previous life. It should be next year. Even though Eric at that time doesn''t care much about entertainment gossip, but Tom Cruise and Nicole Kidman are really too famous. Now that he is in that circle, it is impossible to to avoid hearing people talking about this kind of news. But until the two officially divorced, the specific reasons behind their divorce was not exposed, and all kinds of spections were flying everywhere. The most interesting of the few guesses Eric heard was that the two got divorced because of Kubricks Eyes Wide Shut, as Kubrick had Nicole y around with a male model, Gary Cuba, in the movie. The rtionship between the two was said to have produced irreconcble cracks. With Kubrick''s personality, Eric though tis matter was quite likely, but Kubrick was a jerk and not a madman. Though the truth of the matter is unlikely to be disclosed because of Cruise, and even this news came out after the divorce only. Two years before the couple divorced, a maid of the Cruise family identally revealed to the media that the two people were not getting along when they were at home, and there was no conversation between them. The maid had sumbed to awsuit because of this news. After winning thewsuit, the Cruises also publicly showed a few intimate moments to maintain their image, but after two years the couple divorced inexplicably. The media at the time spectes several reasons for the divorce. Firstly, some thought that Nicole had given Cruise a green hat and cheated on him, and as such her child that she bore for three months was not Toms. Eric thought this was the most likely, as Nicole left him with only the clothes on her back on her back, and the disposition of a western women would have meant that she should have taken half of Toms property, as Californianw states that after ten years of marriage the woman is entitles to half and Nicole signed the divorce days before their tenth anniversary. When George Lucas divorced his wife he lost a huge amount of property and had to sell Pixar. Vi''s chairman Sumner Redstone was also overwhelmed by his wife''s divorce. Lacking a prenuptial agreement, Nicole would have been entitled to half of Tom Cruise''s vast 360 million USD fortune, but it is said that she left with just one piece of art after the divorce. In that moment in the office, Nicole Kidman noticed Eric''s sorrowful expression with a little dissatisfaction. Am I not attractive? The man who is three years her younger was distracted. After a few more minutes of silence, Nicole finally couldn''t take it and spoke first: "Eric?" "Oh, sorry, Nicole, I was remembering something." Eric finally recovered. He apologetically smiled towards Nicole and asked: "Nicole, your file shows that you were developing well in Australia, why did you suddenly make the move to Hollywood?" "All actors globally yearn to prove themselves in Hollywood, and I am no exception, so I hope I can develop myself in Hollywood for the better." "It''s not easy, you haven''t even shot a Hollywood movie before, and if you wanted to prove yourself in Hollywood, you shouldn''t be auditioning for a role in a TV drama." "I just... didn''t find the right role," Nicole fumbled for a reason within her guilty conscience: "I think this TV show should be good, so I came to try." Nicole might have wanted a role in a movie, but she had no luck in her life. She came to Hollywood at the beginning of the year. Like all the budding new actors, she came to the centre of global cinema with all kinds of unrealistic fantasies. Several monthster, she had participated in several auditions, but only got a role in one film. It was a small supporting role in which she couldn''t even be counted as a vase. In the end, she had to turn her attention to TV series. From the small screen to the big screen, was the road to fame of many Hollywood stars. Eric suddenly though of one thing and curiously asked: "Nicole, did youe to Hollywood alone?" "Yeah" Nicole answered, felling a bit puzzled. Eric nodded. After a few seconds of silence in the office, Nicole couldn''t help but ask the question on her mind: "So, Mr. Director, I... Did I get the role of Phoebe Buffay?" "Sorry, no, the role is already set as another person." Eric shook his head and replied honestly. Nicole was stunned, this is... what''s going on, if the other person had said something like ''I''m still considering'' or ''this depends on your performance now,'' she could still understand what she should do, but she did not expect that the other party would directly tell her that the role was given to someone else. "Can you tell me why?" Nicole''s thoughts were a little chaotic. Eric shifted to a morefortable position and exined: "I decided this with the other producers, because you, um, you are too beautiful." "Ah?" Nicole was struck dumb. She had no words. "This is the case" Eric sat up straight and exined: "In the setting of the story, Phoebe is a very frustrated girl. She was abandoned by her biological parents since she was a child. Later her stepmothermitted suicide, and at only 14 years old, the girl made her way alone to New York, and struggled at the bottom before finally bing a masseur." "Does this have anything to do with appearance?" "There is a big rtionship," Eric continued. Do you think that if a beautiful 14-year-old girl was on the streets of New York, she would grow up to the age of twenty living an ordinary life. Would she still have arge group of good friends?" Of course it was impossible. As Nicole Kidman was born into a good middle ss family, she did not see the dark side of society. If Phoebe was very beautiful, with a little luck, she could find a good man to marry and be a housewife. After all, beauty is not a scarce resource anywhere. But if luck is bad, then one''s end will be rather miserable. "Eric, if this is the case, then why are you still waiting for me here?" "Because... curious, I am very curious about you, so I wanted to talk to you." "Just this?" The girl was looking at Eric distrustingly, as the reason is too far-fetched. Eric shrugged and stood up and said: "Just this, I just want to talk to you, but it''ste, Nicole, as a sorry for having you wait so long, I''ll invite you to dinner." "Okay, Nicole Kidman stood up in disappointment, put on her high heels, walked out of the office with Eric, and went down together under the watch of the security guard. When they were dining in a nearby restaurant, the tall girl looked quite serious. It seemed she was struggling with something in her heart. Eric was eating with relish, and chatted with her as if nothing had happened. After going out of the restaurant after dinner, Eric got into his car. Nicole looked at Eric with the intention to say goodbye, but finally couldn''t help but open Eric''s door and sit in the co-pilot''s seat. She understood very well that if she misses this opportunity, she would likely return to Australia in vain. In her months in Hollywood, Nicole had seen a lot of Hollywood''s brutalpetition. The person with the highest status she had worked with was just a director with no fame in Hollywood. Her performances had won her several small awards in Australia, but these had nothing to do with Hollywood. "Nicole..." Eric looked curiously at the girl who got into his car, with her own car stopped adjacent to his. "Well, Mr. Williams, what do I have to do to get the character, please tell me directly?" As she said this sentence, her breathing became a little short, and her pair of blue eyes stared at Eric earnestly. Her eyes held in them grandeur, but also the willingness to sacrifice. "But the role has already been chosen." Eric replied with simr gusto. "Then why did you have to do these extra things, giving me hope, only to burn it out so quickly, don''t you think this... is this too much?" "Okay, I apologise, I really just because... because I was curious." "You let a woman wait in the office for a few hours, only to talk about six or seven irrelevant matters. It''s ridiculous. Do you think anyone would believe it?" "What?" Eric was getting a little impatient. She hesitated for a moment, before pulling over Eric''s arm and cing on herp: "Mr Williams, I know very well who you are. You are the most promising young director in Hollywood. I have heard about it... Julia Robert''s thing, so, give me a chance?" Eric nced at the hand pressed by the girl onto herp. Eric felt an inexplicable temperature though her trousers. A warm aura. "After Running Out of Time, there is indeed a movie you can try. Like Pretty Womanit is also a romanticedy." Eric finally said. The girl held Eric''s hand tightly and her face showed an excited look. "You know, I have been busy recently. The movie will start at least seven or eight months, maybe eventer." "No problem, I can wait," Nicole did not hesitate. Eric shook his head: "That''s not what i mean, I mean, as I have been busy recently, I need a servant at home." "Ah," Nicole opened her mouth slightly. Eric''s mouth evolved into a smug smile: "I''m too busy, I need someone to help me prepare three meals, oh, but I''m not normally home at noon, so two meals a day is good. Moreover, my family needs someone for a part time job to help them clean their rooms. If you want, you cane and be my maid from May to September." "Ah!" Nicole was still for a moment before she turned her head and asked, "Eric I... am I the heroine?" Eric showed a sly smile: "Of course, if you do well, it will be like Julia, a movie. Even among the ranks of the A-level actresses, such a good opportunity, many will not be able to meet throughout their careers. "I need to think about it." Nicole looked up. "Of course, you go think about it, but contact me as soon as possible. If you agree, you will stay in my mansion for the next few months." "Why?" Nicole was a little scared. There was something embarrassing about the words in her mind. "I have a formal girlfriend, so I don''t want a young and beautiful woman toe in and out of my vi. And, if you want to be famous in the future, you wouldn''t want to let others know how you got this role would you?" "I understand" Nicole nodded. The two talked for a little longer before parking ways. As Eric was returning home, he felt excited after thinking some wicked thoughts. He was sure that Nicole wouldn''t reject his proposal. He even thought that he could use the same proposal in the future, such that he wouldn''t have to have random hourly wageworkers cleaning his house, and he wouldn''t have to worry about his three meals a day either. What''s more, what could be better than having the stars of his past life? Shining stars were the most satisfying thing as maids. As the beginning of the next week, Running Out of Time, started its final shooting, and with therger scenespleted, the rest was asional outdoor scenes. Five dayster, on a street in downtown LA, the crew of Running Out of Timebegan filming the final scene. Although the crew had been working hard for a month and a half, they all had rxed expressions. --------------------------------------- On the bus, Sean, hiding under a newspaper and holding a bucket of popcorn, glimpsed a sapphire ne on the chest behind him after sitting down. After hesitating, Sean couldn''t help but look back again, and look at the sapphire ne under the girl''s watch for for a few seconds. When the girl showed a vignt expression he said, "Sorry, I had the wrong person." "It doesn''t matter." Yoyo replied lightly, as she turned her gaze towards the window. "That ne is very beautiful, where did you buy it?" Sean couldn''t help but ask. "A friend sent it, but it''s fake, very cheap." Yoyo turned her head to the other side and lifted the ne, with little gusto. Sean smiled and said, "Boyfriend?" Yoyo shook her head. "I haven''t seen him for a long time." "Keep it well," Sean said, turning around, his eyes moved: "Maybe he might suddenly appear some day and scare you." Yoyo''s following expression was a smile, as if she was looking forward to it. Maybe she felt that her little bit of hope was embarrassing, but she still stubbornly took the bus every day, hoping she could see Andy one again. --------------------------------------- The bus gradually came to a halt, and as he pped the pperboard* he shouted with satisfaction: "This scene is over, only thest scene is left, everyone should get ready. Yoyo, oh no, it''s Brooke,e with me to the audition room. The scene has you performing, and although there are still several hours, I hope you can finish as soon as possible, as there is a celebration party at the end of the night." "I will try my best, Eric." Brooke Shields answered with a smile. Thest scene began: As the days passed, Yoyo still couldn''t meet Andy and disappointedly got off the bus. Several cameras shot images of Brookeing down from the bus from across the street. Although it was practiced many times in the audition room, Brooke only managed toplete the shot after four or five NGs. After Eric shouted "Good!" And everyone broke into a round of apuse. Eric screamed into the megaphone: "I announce that Running Out of Timehas officially finished filming. Quickly clean up the set, and this evening at the Hilton, everyone muste, no one can be missing!" "Yahoo!!" Cheers rang as many members of the crew couldn''t help but take off their hats and throw them into the air. Eric smiled after this, and then went to the armoured escort car near by. Four bodyguards with padded waists and suits stood near the armoured vehicles. A middle-aged man in his forties was loading the sapphire ne used by Brooke Shields into the safe. "Mr. Derek, thank you for your sponsorship." When Derek finished putting the sapphire into a safe within the car, Eric warmly greeted him and they shook hands. "You''re wee, Eric, this is a win-win thing." The middle-aged man named Derek politely shook hands with Eric: "So, Eric, I have to leave as soon as possible, the gems are still outside." A minutete, and I will feel unreliable. Its okay, understand, Eric replied with a smile. In addition to a series of sponsored brands, there is also a very important prop in theRunning Out of Time. The sapphire that he grabbed. No one had ever tried to use such a prop within a shoot, as they would just look for a piece of blue crystal worth hundreds of dors. However, after Eric thought, he decided to shoot with the real kind, but he did not have the right connections. After contacting Colombia, Amy Pascal had passed on the message to several others, one of whom found a blue diamond worth 10 million US dors. The gem was said to be from a collector in the United Kingdom, and he was intending to auction the diamond through Christie''s Auction House in the fall, but the top brass of Colombia and the collector had a good personal rtionship , and so after somemunication, the other party reluctantly agreed to lend them the gem. But the process was not easy. Every time the gem was involved in the shooting, there were four bodyguards with live ammunition with their eyes on the gem. They were always within five meters of the sapphire, even when the crew was working. Because of these people everyone was nervous. Fortunately, there were no problems during the entire shooting process. *https://en.wikipedia.org/wiki/pperboard Chapter 141 After one and a half months of high-intensity production, with an especially gruelling month of shooting on location, whilst the actors were a little better off, the dozens of crew and staff members were exhausted. Therefore, the celebration party following the final shooting had everyone suddenly rxed after a long period of pressure, and so everyone became extraordinarily unrestrained, the party room was noisy, and from time to time their were high-pitched screams. Eric could onlyugh at the situation. After all, everyone had been suppressing it for a month, and so some of the rudeness on disy now was excusable. Most of the actors inRunning Out of Timehad received invitations to the party, and even several of the starring actors had shown up. However, after seeing the chaos present, the self-sustaining Cruise only stayed for twenty minutes before leaving. Although he was born at the bottom, Cruise now thought himself as a person at the top of the pyramid. Of course, it was impossible for everyone working on the project to enjoy the party, so some of the older crew members and actors also left. With Eric''s psychological age, he couldn''t really enjoy the rave party, but he had to stay as the director of Running Out of Time. Out of everyone present, Eric is the youngest, although Eric''s face may seem very oppressive when he''s scolding others, but otherwise he still looks like a harmless young man. In addition, the members of the crew are familiar with Eric''s character, so knowing he was a joke-loving person, it was logical that he would be teased by everyone. After being filled with quite a few bottles of beer for various reasons, Eric got out of the crowd in the name of a urinary emergency and walked out of the banquet hall to the bathroom at the end of the corridor. When he came out, not knowing if it was a coincidence, he saw Brooke Shieldsing out of the bathroom opposite, drying her hands with a paper towel. "Hey Brooke" Eric said with a smile: "Having fun ying?" Brooke replied with a sweet smile: "Alright, though it''s a bit noisy." As the most beautiful woman at the party, Brooke was naturally the target of all eyes. She felt that Eric also enjoyed this sought-after feeling, but Erics attitude towards her had not been salty. After receiving Eric''s greeting, she turned to walk, and after quickly stuffing her paper towel into the trash can, she took two or three steps, and motioned to Eric. "Brooky, what''s the matter?" Eric asked in turn. Brooke whispered hesitantly: "I am just... I just wanted to say thanks to you Eric, thank you for giving me the role of Yoyo. This thank you did not simply carry the meaning of smalltalk. After it was revealed that Brooke would be the Running Out of Time Heroine, although many media outlets said it was because she had been nominated for several Golden Globe awards, more felt that it was impossible for to get the role through her virtue alone, and that their must be some inside scoop. Despite this the poprity of Brooke was also indisputable, and the media''s attention for her had increased rapidly. When she went out, she was once again pestered by the paparazzi. This situation had not happened for many years. Thest time was when she was close to Michael Jackson a few years ago. More importantly, this kind of attention could bring her actual economic benefits. During this time, she had received several advertising endorsement invitations. "It''s nothing, Brooke, your performance in Running Out of Time is very good, and I believe that after the film is released, your character will definitely leave a deep impression on the audience." "So," Brooke heard Erics praise and looked at him with anticipation. She asked, Eric, will we have a chance to cooperate again in the future? This... Eric hesitated, he did not think that she would ask so straightforwardly. To tell you the truth,I did not want to cooperate with you anymore. However, to avoid hurting this kind of person, Eric could definitely not say: "Brooky, you have to understand that we need to have an appropriate opportunity." Brooke Shield''s expression quickly dimmed, her broken look was one that would break the spirit of any man who saw it. Eric looked at her expression and even felt a faint sense of guilt. After thinking about it, he tried to persuade her: "Brooky, I think you should focus on a few movies alone. First select a few excellent scripts to hone your acting skills." Brooke had been acting in movies for 12 years before getting the role in Running Out of Time, and after spending more than a decade moving around in the movie industry circles, she understood that if she wants wants to emerge as a star on her own, the most important is to have excellent performing skills, and rely on these skills to attain a move award, and from their move into the mainstream movies. But this road was not going to work for her, because she is too beautiful, and even if she could act a little, it would be covered up by her face and her devilish figure, so not to mention that she does not have the kind of acting ability, even if she returns to her own industry circles, she can only y the role of a vase, with little chance of ever raising her status. Of course, Brooke understands that even if she has to y the role of a vase, it should be a vase in a big production movie. Even a supporting vase in arge production is more influential than the protagonist in the small production. It is a pity that although Brooke Shield has some fame, she is just a pretty star. It is not enough to attract the interest of Hollywood mainstream movie circles. There are many beautiful and acting actresses in this circle. A big production movie dared to invite her to be a vase was nominated by the Razzies several times. Eric could be the first director to dare to ''eat crabs'' in recent years. TN: It''s a pun "Eric, I know my strength. If I go back to the movie circle alone, I will never be able to break through. You... If you have time tomorrow, can I invite you to a meal, to thank you." "No need, Brooke," Eric said, refusing, noting the girl''s sly look, and quickly added: "To tell the truth, after the release of Running Out of Time, I believe that with the influence of your role, you will definitely recieve a lot of movie invitations, as long as you can carefully select the script, even if it is a vase role in several movies, as long as the movie is solid, you will definitely be among the ranks of A-level actresses, so you dont have to pin your hopes on mepletely." Brooke was very disappointed with Erics refusal, but after hearing thest few words of Eric, she began to understand. Although she is not very smart, she can still understand that ifRunning Out of Timemakes her a hot topic, she really will not have to go back to shooting low budget movies. "So, Eric, I still want to thank you," Brooke thought about it, and finally showed a satisfactory look, as if that previous expression of loss had never appeared on her face. When she was ready, her attractive eyes blinked twice, and she suddenly stepped forward to hold Erics shoulder, and began kissing him gently into the corners of his mouth, and as she saw Erics stunned expression following her sudden sneak attack, she showed a brilliant smile, before turning around and walking back to the banquet hall. Eric touched his lips and shook his head and smiled and walked back to the banquet hall. "Eric, you were gone for so long, are you sure others won''t envy you?" Seeing Eric had appeared, Tom Hanks walked up to him and handed him a ss of champagne, as he took a sly look at Brooke who was chatting with others nearby. Eric took a sip of champagne and revealed a knowing smile. Hanks also showed a smirk, and the two exchanged a perverted gaze. Then Hanks relieved his expression, so that his next words would not be misunderstood: "Eric, my own movies, I am waiting." Hanks also stretched out five fingers in front of Eric''s eyes, seemingly reminding him not to forget the promise of the five box office of over 100 million movies, as in the agreement, Eric could not count theRunning Out of Time in five movies. "The script has been around for a long time," Eric said. "Afterpleting thest dubbing ofRunning Out of Time, you can prepare." Hanks is also a workaholic, especially in recent years. He managed to film two or three movies a year, which made him one of the most diligent in the acting circles. When he heard Erics words, Hanks''s spirit improved: Tell me some of the plot first? "Let''s go over there," Eric pointed to a sofa in the corner, just then a coupe had left to join the dance floor. Hanks nodded, and the two of them moved over. "It is also a romanticedy, called ?Sleepless in Seattle?, it''s a script that I identally thought of when I went to New York." "A romantic loveedy?" Hanks hesitated and touched his face, in the past Hanks was a little handsome, and he had been in a few romanticedies. But after he reached 30 years of age, Hanks was basically not able to fit the role of the more handsome characters. "Eric, do you think my image is suitable for this kind of movie?" "Don''t worry, this is not a romantic romanticedy between an ordinary young man and women," Eric exined. "You will be in the movie, acting as a single father." "Single father!?" "Wait, don''t get angry yet, Tom, listen to me to finish the story first ok?" "OK!" Hanks lowered his raised hand. Eric continues: "The story is like this. After the wife identally died, the infatuated Sam was always unable to forget his wife for a long time, so he decides to leave Chicago sadly, with his eight-year-old son Jonah and they move to Seattle. A yearter, on Christmas Day, his son Jonah dialed onto a emotional radio hotline in the United States to find a new wife for the father who still did not leave the shadow of his previous wife. By coincidence, this The emotional phone hotline connected Sam''s family with a woman named Anne who lived far away in New York. Although Anne was engaged, she was moved by Sam''s infatuation and couldn''t help but write a letter to Sam. With the letter falling into the hands of Sam''s son Jonah, and Jonah feeling that Anne would be very good with his father, he decided to reply to the letter for his father. He wrote saying the two will meet on the top floor of the Empire State Building in New York. ?An Affair to Remember?? Part way through the narration of Eric, Hanks blurts out. Eric nodded: "There will be lots in the movie that pays homage to ?An Affair to Remember?" "Eric, ording to what you said, won''t this movie be simple?" Eric smiled and spread his hand: "Tom, I just told you the story. It''s a standard high-quality movie idea. The story is simple and clear. Some clichs cam be main features of high-quality movies. For a movie, if you want it to gross well, you must first have a simple and clear story line. The rest, well that depends on the strengths of the director and the actors." Chapter 142 "Well, I understand, then, when will the film start shooting?" "I don''t know," Eric took a sip of champagne and exined: "Look, first I need to go through thete phase of Running Out of Time. After the film is released in July, I still need to make a TV show for Fox. Barry Diller asked me to personally direct the first two episodes, so I am not sure when the film will start shooting. Tom, you have not shot two this year. Is it a movie? Just give yourself a vacation break for a while, be an actor so tiring, and you can''t enjoy life much longer. It''s fun to enjoy your high pay whilst you can." "Oh, is this ording to you, you who has shot four movies this year, and I heard that you are also the producer of three other films. Isn''t a madman who makes seven movies a year also not living life?" "No, this is not the same," Eric is at He shook his head and repeated: "I am different from you." Hanks could not help but roll his eyes and quip: "Are you an alien?" "Yes ah, my journey is through the stars !" Theyughed together again, and the party continued until midnight in the end. Eric, although at the beginning he drank a few beers, did not drink much in total. So he refused to let anyone drive on his behalf, and he drove home slowly. In order to avoid paparazzi, there were no street lights in front of many Hollywood celebrities'' homes in Beverly Hills. Erics house is also in such a situation. Therefore, when Eric got off the car and opened the door, the womans voice next to him really made Eric startled. The woman shouted his name and then appeared in the light of his car lights. Eric recognised the tall figure. It was for just a few days that there was no news of Nicole Kidman, for Eric. After proposing conditions that were full of bad taste, he temporarily put this matter behind him, and he did not expect that the other party would suddenly appear here. "Nicole, why are you here?" Eric asked subconsciously, and couldn''t help but look up and down the other''s dress. At this time Nicole wore a ck slim long trench coat with ck shoes on her feet. With the high-heeled shoes, the girl''s body seemed to be getting taller and taller. If you ignore the awkward hair that appeared in Eric''s view, it is quite a bit of the chilly queen from his memory of his past life. The girl couldn''t help but step back under Eric''s gaze, she then stuttered and said: "I... I understand, I... I am willing." "To do what, marry me?" Eric I couldn''t help but ridiculed that although the light was weak, Eric saw that the girl''s white face was quickly blushed, so he stopped teasing and then took out the key to open the door: "Well, let me go in first." Nicole returned to where he had just stood, pulled out a small suitcase and lowered her head into Eric''s car. Having parked the car, Eric took her to the vi and pointed to the sofa: "Nicole, you sit first." Nicole put the suitcase on the sofa, took off her windbreaker and then hung it on the hanger. Then she sat down on the sofa in a restrained way. She saw Eric turned and walked into the kitchen. The girls tight body rxed and looked around, although the vi was designed in a modern minimalist style, there was exquisiteness everywhere, and although Nicole was born into a good middle-ss family, she was still full of envy for the Beverly Hills mansion. She thought that, perhaps, if the man promises turn out to be true, she only needs a few years, and then she can buy a vi like this in Beverly Hills. When she though of this, the girls heart is a little less disturbed, and she felt a little more expectation. Eric quickly walked out of the kitchen with coffee, and Nicole quickly got up and wanted to take it from him. "Sit down, now you are still a guest." Eric pushed a cup of coffee to the girl, saying so. Nicole sat back down, picked up the coffee, felt the hot temperature, and put it back on the coffee table. Her slender fingers rubbed on her knees before she looked up at Eric: "Mr. Williams..." "Call me Eric." Read updates first at https://fizzhaztrantes.weebly/ "Well, Eric, can you first... that''s ok... I don''t want to..." The girl''s fingers were twisting around on her knees, and her voice was full of embarrassment, fearing that her performance would be too eager and provoke the opposite person to be unhappy. But she hopes that she can get some specific promises from Eric. She doesn''t want to stay here, and be a maid or a ything for a few months, before identally angering the other party and being driven out, making her toil useless. Before Eric said that she would only be his servant, but Nicole didn''t believe this at all. This is why she hesitated for several days, but the desire for fame and fortune finally made her unable to resist the lure. It enticed her to take the initiative and in the end she delivered herself to him. Eric, after having relished and appreciated the awkward appearance of the girl for a while, sets out saying: "Wait a bit. Saying so, he starting walking towards the staircase. Nicole stared at Erics figure and disappeared at the corner of the stairs before regaining his gaze. She nced at the trench coat hanging on the hanger not far away. As Eric quickly appeared again, she hurried to take a sip of her coffee as to not worry him. Eric came to the sofa and put a few printed documents in front of Nicole Kidman: "The above is the script. The following are two actors'' contracts. After you have checked them and signed words, you will keep one. Give the other to me." Nicole didn''t think that things would be so simple. She was excited as she picked up the top script and look at the name, ?Sleepless in Seattle?. Whilst she was flipping through, Eric exined as he sipped from his coffee: "The main actor for the movie has been chosen, it will be starring Tom Hanks, as long as you pay a little attention to entertainment news, you should know who Hanks is. The heroine role could have been handed over to Julia Roberts, but she also has a movie to be released at the end of the year. Moreover the influence of Pretty Womanwas too great, and she is not suitable for a romantic romanticedy for a short time. I haven''t had time to invite other actresses, and you have appeared in front of me. I have to say, Nicole, you are very lucky." Nicole listened carefully to Eric''s exnation, but her eyes also didn''t leave the script, she flipped through it quickly. She put the script back. She felt her head dizzy: "Eric, this, is it really for me?" "Of course, but your qualifications in Australia are not useful in Hollywood, so you can only be regarded as a neer. The pay will be the same as when Julia was filming Pretty Woman", 300,000 US dors, no dividends." Nicole listened to Erics narrative and reached out again to get the two contracts. Eric stopped the other party: Its toote today, we should rest, anyway, there are still months, you can look slowly, just give me a copy after leaving your signature. She heard Erics words and bowed her head slightly: That... thats okay. Follow me, Eric said, standing up. Nicole held several documents in her arms, took the windbreaker and the suitcase, and followed Eric as he walked upstairs. Eric led her to the second floor, and opened a vacant bedroom: "This is your bedroom, the bedding is in the closet, it is new, and if after the first night, you are not satisfied, then you can change tomorrow." "ah Thank you. She whispered, Eric briefly introduced a few of the facilities in the room, and said: You should rest early, I will go back to my bedroom. Read updates first at https://fizzhaztrantes.weebly/ ? Eric turned and left, and closed the bedroom door. Nicole stood by the edge of the bed and just as she was about to move, the door was pushed open again, and the girl subconsciously hugged her chest, but quickly put her arms down again. She bit her lips and hung her arms as if waiting for something. Certain matters. Eric looked at the girl''s appearance as if amb to the ughter, smiled and reached out a figure into the air, before exining: "Nicole, I just forgot one of the most important things, I want to remind you, from tomorrow, you have to start fulfilling your duties. I usually get up at seven o''clock, so I don''t want you to beter than me. You have to prepare breakfast before 8 o''clock. I am not picky in this regard. You can use from the kitchen the ingredients that are the best for you, and the dinner is the same. The cleaning of the vi and the surrounding areas are also your job. You can decide how to clean it yourself, as long as it is neat and tidy. The girl nodded nervously: Eric, I understand." "Well, good night, go to bed early." Eric said, pulling the bedroom door closed again. Nicole heard the clicking of a door locking, sat on the big bed before sprawling out, hurriedly breathing a few times, staring at the door, waiting for a few minutes, making sure that the other party would not open the door again. She then pulled the ck windbreaker on the big bed, took out a recorder from the inner pocket, and pressed the stop button. Then her gaze turned to several documents on the bedside table, and then the corner of her mouth moved, seemingly wanting to move into a smile, but she failed andughed. After thinking about it, the girl reversed the tape, adjusted the sound, pressed the y button, and the sound came out of the recorder. Although it was not too loud, it was enough to clearly distinguish the conversation. Rattling - The door was pushed open again and she was very surprised to see Eric who was holding a pillow appear at the door: "Sorry, I think you need this ......" Snap, the tape recorder fell on the floor and bounced a few times, but still ying the sound stubbornly. "...starring Tom Hanks, as long as you pay a little attention to entertainment news, you should know who Hanks is. The heroine role could have been handed over to Julia Roberts..." Eric heard the small but clear voice echo in the still bedroom at midnight. Eric stared at the little object and was a little worried. Nicole didn''t know what to do. She sat on the bed coldly holding her feet with her hands, her body twitching and her eyes held a look of despair. Despair and fear. Chapter 143 Seeing that Nicole looked frightened almost to the point of fainting, Eric walked in and threw the pillow in his hand onto the big bed, picked up the tape from the ground and shouted: Stupid woman, do you not know how to lock the door? I forgot, next time... next time... The girl was incoherent. Ericughed out loudly: "You want to have another time?"Trantion StOlEn from The girl slowed down and shook her head: "I''m sorry... I don''t dare anymore." Eric walked over and picked up the girl. He rubbed her pretty face carefully, which showed a little shyness, and it was like touching delicate porcin: "In fact, it is useless to do so, even if I don''t fulfil my promise, and you hand over the recording to the media, it wouldn''t affect me too much. Instead, your acting career will bepletely finished. No movie will dare to use such a silly woman." "I didn''t want to, I just want to protect myself," Nicole weakly justified herself with one sentence. "I understand, but I am still very upset. What do you have to say?" Eric asked. The girl trembled a little and reached out to the button on her shirt on her own. Eric stopped the girl: "Forget it, seeing you look like this can''t really make me feel good. Go to bed early, but don''t forget the words I said before." Eric said, then he threw the tape onto the bed before he turned away and left the bedroom. Nicole sat for a long time before she got up and locked the bedroom door. She then removed the sheets from the cupboard and mechanicallyid them out on bed. But she couldnt sleep once in bed, and her mind was in a mess. Life in Australia, stepping into the experiences of the entertainment industry, the dissuasion of her loved ones and friends towards moving to Hollywood, the bleak encounters in Hollywood for a few months, the situations with Eric several times, and her expectations of the future... In thispletely unfocused thinking, she didnt realise that the window had already started to light up. She looked at her watch. It was half past six, and although she had already started to feel tired, she still used her strong spirit to get out of bed. Her simple clothes were then hung in the closet, she went to the bathroom, brushed and washed, put on a beautiful white shirt and jeans, and picked a pair of ck t shoes before she opened the door and went out. She didn''t know where Eric''s bedroom was, and even if she did, she didn''t dare to call him to get up. She walked downstairs and opened the door. The vis had high walls and green trees and it was very quiet as she stood outside. She saw the vacant swimming pool to the side and took a few deep breaths of fresh air in the morning, and the tiredness of the sleepless night dissipated a lot. After a walk around to gain familiarity with the environment, she walked into the vi again and went to the kitchen. Eric got up at 7:00 on time. After going downstairs, he greeted the tall figure from the kitchen door. He turned to the gym and started the day with exercise. After half an hour, Eric took a shower and changed clothes. Coming out, he took the newspaper today and sat in the living room and saw it was past eight o''clock, only to realise that the girl seemed to be still busy, so he curiously walked into the kitchen. There are already a few foods, sandwiches, sweet soups, steaks, and sds on the kitchen table. The girl seems to be still be cooking omelettes. "Nicole, enough, these are more than enough." Eric took a sandwich and took a bite. She turned off the gas, the omelette abandoned, and exined: "I do not know what you like to eat, so I did some of everything." "I said, anything is fine, I''m not picky in this regard." Trantion StOlEn from The two then put the breakfast into the dining room together, the girl was hesitantly standing next to Eric. It seems that she is taking the identity of the maid very seriously. Eric couldnt help but smile: "Sit down and we can eat together, I have no ns to give you a sry, so you don''t have to be so dedicated." "Well, thank you," Nicole heard Eric''s words and sat down across the table. So, this somewhat weird life officially started after this breakfast. After breakfast, Nicole watched Eric drove away before returning to her bedroom and she began to read the documents fromst night, especially the actor contract of ?Sleepless in Seattle? and after repeatedly reading it over and over again, she found nothing improper inside. Although Eric told her not to leave the mansion, in order to prevent the paparazzi from taking pictures, she still left in the morning and went to aw firm and spent a few hundred dors. The consulting fee allowed the professionalwyer to help review whether the contract had legal effect. Only when thewyer confirmed that there was no problem, she was relieved topletely let go of her stress. When Eric returned home in the afternoon, he found that Nicole seemed to have changed a personpletely. The original uneasiness in her expression hadpletely disappeared. Her smile seemed to show she was pleased, and the vi seemed to be cleaned up. Nicole took Eric''s few hand bags and asked: "Eric, should this go to your bedroom?" Eric shook his head. "No, this is yours. Go upstairs and pick one, then put it on so I can look at it." "For me?" The girl opened a garment bag and nced inside. She found a set of ck and white clothing withce silk, curiously asked: "Is this a pyjama?" "No, you will know when you go to your room and change into it." "Oh," the girl nodded obediently, then carried the few bags and went upstairs. Eric sat down on the sofa and picked up the remote control to turn on the TV. After waiting for half an hour, he heard the sound of the leather boots stepping on the stairs, and there seemed to be hesitation in the footsteps. Having turned to look, first a slender leg wearing white suspended stockings appeared with the ck leather boots in his field of vision, followed by the signature maid skirt, then he moved his line of sight from the slim waist and the girls chest, to above where her delicate vicle was bound by a circle of white silk neck ornaments. Eric actually wanted to pick a cor, but after considering it, his taste was a bit extreme, and thece neckline is actually very beautiful. When Nicoles figure appearedpletely, Eric''s lower limb reached for the heavens, making a clown of himself, and he hoped she would forget this quickly. Nicole was still somewhat dissatisfied, but it took half an hour to get rid of it. If it is a normal maid costume, she would not produce too much resistance, since she has seen a maid costume, but this set of clothes is very different from what she has seen, the style is extra sexy with low chest straps revealing lots of skin on her chest, and there are a lot ofces and ribbons on the clothes. It looked very beautiful. There was no such style of attire for maids in her memory. More importantly, she dont know whether it is intentional or unintentional. This set of clothes was obviously smaller. Trantion StOlEn from https://fizzhaztrantes.weebly/ When she saw Eric turning his gaze away, the unpleasantness of the girl''s heart became inexplicable. She bent her neck down and looked at herself. She didn''t find anything wrong with how she was wearing the attire. She couldn''t help but ask: "Eric, there is ...... Is there any problem? Eric still waved his hand and shook his head: Go up and change first, wait for me to leave and then you can help clean up. Chapter 144 More than two hourster, in a hairdressing salon in Beverly Hills, Nicole looked at her new image in the mirror and realised the reason why Eric disliked her look previously. At this time, the woman in the mirror was totally differentpared with the previous one. If they were two different people, then the original image was a little girl, it is now a morous modern girl. Her hair in the mirror has been dyed a beautiful golden brown. The original fluffy little curls have also been straightened, with a bunch ofrge bangs in front of the forehead. This hairstyle made her look a bit more mature and intellectual. "Miss,pared to the hairstyle you had before, this hairstyle now makes you look more proper, your boyfriend really has vision." The haircut sister stood behind Nicole and did the final clean around for the girl, as she praised with her mouth. "He''s not..." Nicole whispered softly and wanted to defend. She nced at the rest area and looked at the person with a magazine and sunsses, and stopped her words. If he really was my boyfriend, that would be fine. But now she felt more like a Barbie doll, letting the hateful guy dress her up with his own preferences, so she looks a lot more beautiful, but Nicole was not too excited in her heart. "Sir, can you see?" After everything was done, the haircut sister got up and walked to Eric, and the little girl behind her was Nicole, both were looking at the man who seemed familiar with sunsses. https://imgur/a/T3SmIEu Eric turned and looked up at Nicole. The she smirked and nodded. Hers hairstyle was made by Eric in ordance with the hairstyle in the ?The Interpreter? in his memory. Among the many movies of Kidman, Eric''s favourite look of hers is from ?The Interpreter? , which he finds both intellectual and morous and, strong and sensitive. In a scene in ?The Interpreter? ,after a fierce bombing, Nicole ys a Sylvia with scars on her cheeks, who is wearing a professional suit and carrying a backpack as she walks down the stairs. Eric knew that If it weren''t for the temperament that Nicole showed in this scene, and how simr it was to Meg Ryan in ?Sleepless in Seattle,? when she stood on the opposite side of the road in front of Tom Hanks, Eric wouldn''t have given her the role of heroine in ?Sleepless in Seattle?. Thinking of Silvia in ?The Interpreter?, Eric couldn''t help but raise his hand and gently stroked Nicole''s left cheek, although there were no scars there. Many ssic characters can always be deeply imprinted into the hearts of the viewers. The haircut girl passed off Eric''s action as normal for this couple and snickered as she walked away. "Eric, are you touching me?" The woman''s sensitive instincts made Nicole ask unexpectedly. Eric retracted his hand and smiled: "Of course, what do you think?" "But I think..." She raised her hand and did not know how to describe it. "You feel right," Eric looked up and down and said, "You may be Nicole Kidman, or Silvia Bloom, or Grace Stewart, Gilly. Ann Owen, Alice Have, Ada Monroe, Virginia Wolf." "I don''t understand," the girl shook her head in confusion. "Well, let''s go," Eric did not exin. He greeted the cashier and handed over his credit card before leaving after checking out. Nicole, although she wanted to pay the bill herself, she was blocked by Eric. After looking for a restaurant and having dinner, Eric took the girl back. On the way back in the car, Nicole was silent, and once they walked into the living room of the vi, she whispered: "Eric, want me to... wear it and show it to you?" Eric looked to the sofa. He sat down and asked: "No, there is time in the future. The contract, you must have seen it today, did you make a decision?" Nicole nodded guiltily and ran to the upstairs and signed the two contracts for their agreement. One she was down again, Eric just looked at the girl''s signature, and then found the pen and signed it, then handing one of them to the girl he said: "Now I have to prepare scripts." After Eric finished, he didnt talk to the girl too much and went upstairs to go to his study. He had to write out the script of Friends. Jeffrey and John Aniston had proposed to form a screenwriter team dedicated to writing the script for Friends, and make Eric only responsible for providing a synopsis of the story. However, Eric did not ept this suggestion. Although this is amon practice in all TV series, Eric decided to write all the scripts of the first season in person to ensure the authenticity of the TV series. After all, even if you are a good writer, you can''t fully understand Eric''s intentions, and only Eric, who has all the scenes in his mind, has this ability topletely copy them out. Moreover, Eric also intends to make appropriate modifications to the first season based on some ssic clips in the memory, which will make this season even better. In his memory,Friendshas the best ratings in the second season, except for when they have star celebrities from time to time. In addition, the most important thing is that in the second season the script is very good, and as Eric has just seen the first two seasons, he made up his mind topletely integrate the two seasons, to create a new but fully blended version of Friends,and, in ordance with the rules of the US drama, as long as the first season is sessful, the ratings will be guaranteed in the future, as long as you spend time working out a good script. This TV series is also an important project for Eric and Firefly Studios. If they can make a name for themselves with Friends, then in the future, Fireflies will not be unable to sell other American dramas in the future. The market size of American TV dramas is actually not much smaller than the movie market, but because this market is very closed, it appears quiet. If they can sessfully enter this circle, Eric will be able to transform the ssics in his mind that he remembers into real wealth. The typewriter in his study has been reced by thetest IBM personalputer. Although the text editing software is still very backwardpared with the previous life, and the operation is quiteplicated, it is still much more convenient than the typewriter. Eric also found this simr to his past life in front of theptop. The feeling of the office. Every time he wrote a paragraph, Eric would stop and ponder for a while. Its not an easy task tobine the two seasons. In many cases, Eric will feel an impulse to directly copy the original version of the first season. Nicole knocked on the door of the study room with a tray. After getting permission, she walked in, put a coffee pot and coffee cup gently on the table, and saw Eric staring at the monitor with a focused look. Then she sized up the spacious study room. During the day, she also wanted to see inside the study, there were no thoughts other than pure curiosity, but unfortunately the study was not opened like other rooms, even if it was Drews bedroom. Nicole also saw in that room a photo of Drew and Eric ced on the bedside table. But the study was an exception. She guessed that the key to the study was with Eric alone. The most eye-catching things in the study was therge writing board and the ck piano that was out of tune. The writing board was densely covered in A4 papers, some were painted with rough sub-shots, some were paragraphs of text, some were scattered lines that werepletely iprehensible, and some were written with square characters. Nicole has seen these in Chinatown, they should be Chinese characters which are said to be a kind of text that is difficult to learn in the world. As if inexplicably attracted, she looked up and carefully looked at the manuscript papers, and took a picture of the A4 with Chinese characters before carefully pondering for a while, of course, she could not understand, but she also saw that Chinese characters were Handwritten, and although she didn''t understand what it meant, she thought it looked beautiful and had a flowing aesthetic. After she carefully put the A4 papers back on the writing board, Nicole couldn''t help but look back at Eric, who was still tapping on the keyboard quickly. This is a mysterious man. It is said that he is less than 19 years old and was known as the director who could do many things. He was also an actor, screenwriter, and publisher of two best-selling novels. In this study, Nicole found that the other party must also know how to paint andpose music. He can also write with such beautiful and mysterious hieroglyphics. It is too much to describe as talent. More importantly, he is also so rich. It is said that there were already hundreds of millions of dors in his worth. Women always admire the strong, this is an instinct that was engraved in the depths of the genes after the evolutionary process of hundreds of millions of years. Nicole, who was thinking all these things in her mind, was caught by some kind of emotion without knowing it. In the distance, Erics every move seemed more and more pleasing. If Eric turned to see the girl''s expression, then with his past experience, he would definitely ridicule: "Girl, are you not a love struck fool?" Unfortunately, he did not notice this at all, but was immersed in the conception of the script ofFriends, he didn''t even take a sip of the coffee that Nicole brought him to drink. Nicole looked at his back as he worked silently for a while. After returning to herself, she also noticed her strangeness. Unconsciously, a faint blush appeared on her cheeks and she moved to the piano in the corner. Her slender, white fingers crossed the ck keys and she looked at a handwritten score on the piano cover. "Isn''t this also written by him?" She stared at the string of small notes above. Although she couldn''t read them, it produced a very strong impression. Her fingers unknowingly touched the ck and white keys, and she yed some keyspletely unconsciously. Uh... Disturbed by a series of crisp sounds in the quiet study, Eric awakened from his ideas for ??the script. Chapter 145 "Why are you still here?" Eric turned his head and identally looked at the girl who was leaning on the piano. "I''m sorry, I will go out," Nicole carefully put the score back in it''s ce and walked to the door, but was stopped by Eric: "Nici." "What," the girl stayed at the door. One hand was on the doorknob as she turned around, with enquiry in her eyes. Eric turned around in the office chair and reached out to indicate the whole study: "This is not within your cleaning requirements. Although it is a little messy, I am used to the cement of the documents, you understand?" "Yes, I know, without your permission, I will note in." The girl nodded, her figure still figure stopped at the door, it seems she held other expectations:"Eric, are there other things you need help with?" Eric shook his head: "It''s okay, you should rest early, good night." "Good night," Nicole replied, as she watched Eric turn again and focus on the monitor, slightly lost. She then went out of the study and gently closed the door. In the next few days, the girl''s life seemed calm. She got up every morning, made breakfast for Eric, sent him out of the door, and then spent a few hours cleaning the house. If it wasn''t for her clothes always reminding her of her identity, she might have had the illusion of being a housewife. This life was actually pretty good, at least not like what she had originally imagined, doing a few months of being a sex doll in Eric''s vi, suffering from all kinds of unbearable abuse and teasing, although she had been psychologically prepared for this kind of stuff, but it did not happen. Eric dressed her as a beautiful look from his imagination, and then rarely paid attention to her, leading her to begin to doubt her female charm. One day she secretly stuffed her breasts with twoyers of pads, and walked in front of him. He just smiled with great relish, and then ignored it, which made her feel very embarrassed, and she didn''tter dare to do this kind of thing again. She acted in her role as a maid seriously. Every day, in addition to her work, there was a lot of leisure time. When she was bored, she read newspapers, watched TV, and repeatedly read the script of ?Sleepless in Seattle?. She also bothered Eric to make him buy her a lot of magazines. She was very obedient and didn''t sneak out. Since the reality is much better than she thought, she is willing to be a well-behaved canary. She knows that Eric is busy with a movie called Running Out of Timetely, and that he is not at home every day. Sometimes he spends the night at his girlfriend''s house. She is a lucky girl. She has seen Aniston''s picture, and she is very envious of that girls luck. Inte May, Eric also went to the United Kingdom and left her alone in the vi. It was said to be a search for talent, but after two days, he hurried back. At the end of May, the girl saw in the newspaper that the ?Home Alone? North American box office broke through the 300 million US dors mark. This news was in most newspaper''s throughout the next week. Variousments were praising Eric. The Colombia Picturespanys stock had therefore risen a lot. The focus of the girl''s attention is Eric''s uing dividend of up to $120 million. STOLEN FROM FIZZHAZ TRANSLATIONS 120 million US dors felt like an astronomical figure to Nicole. The reason why she came to Hollywood was because of her desire for money and fame and fortune. She wants to be the top Hollywood actress like Julia Roberts, but ording to Eric, who mentioned Julia Roberts''s sry of $6 million per movie, she would have to make 20 movies to earn that much money, which means that as a star she would have to always maintain a high poprity, be shooting two movies a year, and alsost ten years, which everyone knows is impossible. Most of the star''s peak status can onlyst for about ten years. In these ten years, their pay will also rise and fall ording to the performance of their films. Thinking of this, her already calm mind has be more and more eager to work. As long as she can remain the hostess of this mansion, she can directly get what she wants. She even figured out some ns that she thought were feasible, but unfortunately, these risky thoughts have not yet been implemented and as such they are temporarily dead. Because the summer vacation is now, the evil fairy is back. The time is more than four in the afternoon. Nicole had just trimmed thewn in the yard as she heard the sound of the door being opened. She knew that Eric would not normallye back this time, so she went forward to investigate and saw the Drew''s bags. The luggage was moved into the yard and the gate was closed. Nicole greeted her warmly and wanted to help with her luggage. It was a very important part of her n to have a good rtionship with Drew. But what was unexpected was that after the girl saw her appearance, her eyes were wide, an incredible expression, and her eyes was unconcealed hostility, then she walked around her several times before she asked a question that made Nicole copse: "Did-he-FUCK-you?" Seeing the girl who was in a messy state after being put on the spot, Drew showed a satisfied and somewhat rxed expression: "No, right? But that can be guessed as your chest is so small. "She said before suddenly reaching out and grabbing a hand onto Nicole''s chest. She snorted: "These are pitiful, not even A+ in size." "You..." After being attacked by Drew, Nicole finally reacted. Protecting against the small ws that Drew stretched out again in front of her, she couldn''t help but swear: "You are not big either." "I am only 14 years old, I can still develop for many years, madam, are you not thirty this year?" "I''m toozy to care about you," Nicole noticed Drew''s hostility, so she cut off the idea of developing a good rtionship with the little girl in the meantime, and just returned to thewn mower to continue pruning thewn. Drew used to listen to Eric and he said that he liked the Japanese maid costume. She thought that the other party was joking. She didnt expect that a tall beauty wearing a sexy maid costume would appear in the vi today, which made her instinctively resistant and hostile. She didn''t want Eric to have another woman, Aniston, that little fat girl hadn''t been pushed away yet, and now there was one more, so how busy will it be if moree one by one. "Hey, you, help me carry my luggage in?" Although she knew of Eric''s ''bad heart'', Drew didn''t think about it anymore. She really thought of Nicole as a maid hired by Eric. "Sorry, Miss Barrymore, I am not your servant, so I am not obliged to do this." Nicole continued to push thewn mower in the cold, and she did not turn her head. The little girl was suddenly furious: "I ...... I will tell Eric, today you will be fired!" STOLEN FROM FIZZHAZ TRANSLATIONS Nicole could see Drew though of her as a true servant, so she didn''t mind her at all and replied: "As you wish." Drew angrily mmed her feet and moved items from her pile of luggage to the vi one by one. After her several suitcases were moved, Nicole had also finished thewn, so returning to the vi, she began to prepare dinner. Drew looked at Nicole''s figure and became more and more angry. She thought about it for a bit before picking up the phone and dialing Eric''s number. Dudu - Dudu Then someone picked up. The little girl plunged onto the sofa in the living room, held a pillow, and her voice became soft and greasy: "Eric, I love you." In Fox''s studio, several of the main scenes of Friends had been arranged, just today. Shooting need to be done to insert several shots into Running Out of Time. Eric took Motor''s microTAC that was for advertising and walked to a quiet corner. He found it confusing to hear Drew''s words: "Drew, isn''t it a holiday today? , have you gone home? Eric, I love you. The girls soft voice came from the phone. "Okay, don''t make trouble, if there is something to say, I am busy, I will go hometer." Eric said as he held the mobile phone at his neck, and lifted his hand and opened the sleeve and looked at his watch: "But not yet. It is five o''clock, I will go back at about six o''clock." "Eric, I love you." The sounds of the spoiled brat resounded once more.. Eric was silent for a moment before he opened his mouth: "What do you want, say it straight!" "Calm down, Eric, you are really hateful," Drew turned over in the vi sofa and put the pillow behind his head. After she said discontentedly: "I have said that I love you so many times, but you haven''t given me a response." "I will hang up without saying anything?" Eric threatened. "Okay, okay, Eric, we must fire the maid," Drew said, raising her voice. The girl with the tomatoes in the kitchen heard the words and rolled her eyes. "You mean Nicole, she is not hired, just helping out." "But I don''t like her." "Nici''s food tastes good, you will like it at night, now be obedient, I''m going to hang up." Eric said that he hanged up the phone immediately. In the vi, Drew gasped and waved her little hand. She wanted to throw the phone out of her hand but stopped herself and looked up. She saw Nicole smugly leaning against the kitchen door, holding a ss bowl in her hands and stirring the eggs inside. With a slight smile: "How was it, little girl?" "You are not allowed to call me a little girl, you small breasted woman." Although Nicole had some inferiority in her heart, but in the face of Drew''s provocation, she still shrugged indifferently. "It may be someone likes this type." "He doesn''t like it," Drew couldn''t help but rebuke. "The taste of people will change," Nicole left just these few words, then she turned back to the kitchen, leaving the discouraged Drew. "Hey, I absolutely will never let you seed." Drew waved a small fist and said. On May 24th, with the release of Spielbergs blockbuster Indiana Jones and the Last Crusade, the arrival of thee of this year''s summer films was announced. Although Eric was busy with thete phase of the Running Out of Time, he was still very concerned about this film, the film received a $46 million box office on more than 2,300 screens in the first week, and then in the second and third weeks the box office take had declines between 20% and 30%. In mid-June, the box office of Indiana Jones and the Last Crusade broke through 100 million USD after three weeks. Thete work ofRunning Out of Timewas alsopleted in mid-June. Although Eric was willing to spend money in many ces, he only used $34 million for the production budget. After all, the crews finances were from Colombia. The film doesn''t have many of a big picture''s needs for spending money, and it doesn''t have any special effects. However, after seeing the currentRunning Out of Timethe Colombia executives readily agreed to put the remaining $6 million in budget into the promotion of the film. At the same time, the first summer-time blockbusterGhostbusters II, which was highly anticipated by Colombia, was also released on 2,400 screens. Chapter 146 Compared to the Indiana Jones series, which has a strong box office appeal around the world, the series ?Ghostbusters? had no advantages, because the movie type wasedy, andedy movies are not easy to remember as, after everyoneughed andughed, there was nothing left. And the shooting time between the two parts of the series is five years apart. For aedy, the loss of poprity over time is even greater. If it werent for Colombia not having a continuation for any other series of movies to put out this summer, they would not have started this project. However, Colombias efforts to spare no expense in this film have made up for most of the disadvantages. Although it is still worse than the frenzied propaganda ofRunning Out of Time,pared to the summer advertising of other filmpanies, the propaganda in Colombia waspletely as if they didn''t want to make money, but simple make their box office goals, their true goals were indeed this. Negotiations with Sony for acquisition have entered the final stage. The Japanese are determined to eat a fat sheep this time. As a result the ultimate goal of all business operations in Colombia is to raise the stock price. For listed studios, box office data is one of the most influential factors in stock prices. Ghostbusters II was released on June 16th. After the first week at the box office, the $45 million data made the Colombia executives ecstatic, knowing that the first week of the Indiana Jones and the Last Crusade was only 46 million. This also means that Ghostbusters II is likely to be like the Indiana Jones and the Last Crusade, and ording to the evaluation agency''s expectations, get nearly 200 million US dors in the North American box office. But this excitement onlysted for a week. In the second week, the box office of Ghostbusters II dipped directly, with a drop of 55%, and only got just more than 19 million in the second week at the box office. The box office appraisal agency quickly lowered the box office estimate of Ghostbusters II, and the box office valuation of 200 million US dors was reduced to 110 million US dors. The Colombia share price that had been rising rapidly did not fall due to this news, but the rising momentum slowed down. After all, as one of the six giants, the summer film is the main film, and it is really nothing special to get a box office of about 100 million. The reason for this drop is that, except for the film''s reputation after the film was released, the film was not as good as the first one. The most important thing was that the film had a bad luck and ran up against ?Batman?. ?Batman? started from the first serialisation in 1939, and now it has run for half a century. For this first superhero in the history of North Americanics, Warner was not very optimistic the chances of this movie. Thisck of optimism was reflected in the budget. Compared to therge-scale productions budget of nearly $50 million, Warner had only provided $35 million in production costs for Batman, which is inferior whenpared to the size of blockbuster budgets, even that of ?Ghostbusters? and Running Out of Time. Although Running Out of Timeonly cost 34 million, Colombia provided a budget of 40 million US dors at first, whilst Ghostbusters II had a budget of 40 million US dors. Because Warner was not optimistic about Batman, Colombia did not put it in their eye, so they put Ghostbusters II in the week before ?Batman? was released. But everyone had far underestimated the influence of this half-century superhero in the eyes of Americans. On June 24th, ?Batman? was released. A weekter, thisic book hero had swept away the rivals with a $68 million box office, upying 45% of the total box office in a week, and smashing the box office of many other movies. The biggest impact was on ColumbiasGhostbusters II, and after a 55% decline in the box office, the dream of the 200 million box office for Ghostbusters II waspletely broken. After all, after the box office crash, there was very little chance for a bounce back. Therefore, Colombia can only ce its hopes on Eric''s Running Out of Time. After all, this film has been internally audited, and the film critics have screened it and been consistently optimistic. However, after the box office of ?Batman? was released in the second week, it brought down the people at the top''s expectations ofRunning Out of Time, because ?Batman? dropped only 23% at the box office in the second week. It got a box office of $52 million, which is much higher than the box office of manyrge-scale screenings in the first week. Although the weekly box office total will be about 150 million US dors in the summer, this $150 million is spread between more than a dozen movies from the summer catalog, so each will not appear too much. either the movie will go big and gross well, or it will be cannon fodder. Even if it is a good movie that is highly anticipated, the proportion of thetter is stillrger. In this case, the movie ?Batman? upies one-third of the market, and if there is norge-scale box office decline next week, the box office pressure onRunning Out of Timecan be imagined. In a conference room at the Colombia headquarters, a group of high-level executives were nervously discussing the response n. Coca-C also sent a vice president to attend the meeting. Eric sat next to Amy Pascal and patiently listened to everyonesments. Although he is the director of this film, Eric doesn''t have much of voice in the film''s distribution. He appears here only because he is the director ofRunning Out of Time. The film production process ispletelypleted by Colombia. Autonomy of direction was given to him, but he was almost not involved in the distribution. Eric had previously submitted a paper of his own ideas about film advertising, but he did not receive a response from Colombia. "I feel that theRunning Out of Timeshould be postponed for release, at least one weekter. The momentum of ?Batman? is too fierce. It is very unwise to act stubbornly with the schedule of July 7. We have lost a lot toGhostbusters II, and if the box office ofRunning Out of Timecannot meet expectations because of ?Batman?, then we havepletely squandered the n to push up the stock price with two blockbusters." The executives of the department expressed their opinions. When the other party just finished, another executive asked: "Bob, ording to your n, what should we do with the agreements with the theaters?" "Coordinate with the other parties, properlypensate the losses of the theaters, this way they can push our film to the top. In short, we have to be sure that the box office of Running Out of Time is the first." The management of the data analysis department interjected: ?Batman?''s box office has already broken 100 million, this momentum is unlikely to continue, and the critics evaluation of the film is not too high. I think the box office in the third week should have a normal decline of more than 40%." "ording to your previous statement, the film should have had a normal decline in the second week, but the fact is that this did not happen. In the second week, it only fell slightly by 23%," some people retorted. "The media has begun to ridicule our schedule for the two films. If we do not follow the current schedule, it will definitely give a signal that we have no confidence in the quality of the Running Out of Time. This is very dangerous because once the fans have such misunderstandings, they will think that theRunning Out of Timeis a bad film. This blow to the movie would be the most deadly. As a result, it would be the safest way to release the movie ording to the original n. It is not that we do not want to dy the release, but in ordance to the current situation, we must not postpone it." "I also agree with Rhett that we want to postpone, but we can''t postpone it. Once it is postponed, it is equivalent to telling everyone that we are not confident aboutRunning Out of Time. They will say we are afraidRunning Out of Time is actually not as good as our advertising makes it out to be." "But even after ?Batman? has another drop of about 20% in the third week, it will still get around 40 million at the box office. Can you imagine how much box office pressureRunning Out of Timewill have in this case?" The crowd noisily discussing for another hour, and the vice president of Coca-C who was watching the whole scene during this process, listening, sat up straight when there was a lul in the conversation, but this change was ignored by everyone, and then he turned his gaze to Eric, who listened as silently as himself: "Mr. Williams, I see you haven''t spoken yet, why not talk about your opinion?" Chapter 147 Eric had kept looking down at the documents in front of him. In fact, he was slightly distracted. He also thought about ?Batman?. Although the first ?Batman? was a great sess, in his memory Warner started down the endless hole that was the ?Batman? series. In the next ten years, Warner will produce several Batman sequels in session, with an average investment of more than 100 million US dors, but these only made just more than a 100 million box office in North America. It is estimated that with the global box office and the other earnings, Warner can only just manage to recoup costs. For a big productions that require investments of hundreds of millions of dors, to approximately recoup costs, even if it is a small profit, is actually a loss, because if it was deposited in a bank, the money will be able to reap arge amount of interest in a few years. It may even make double if invested in other projects. It wasn''t until Amy poked his arm with a pen, that Eric found that he had be the focus of everyone in the conference room, and that many people were looking at him with obvious dissatisfaction. Although the Running Out of Time project was snatched by Columbia from Fox at a price, it does not mean that Eric will be loved and weed by Colombian executives. In fact, there were few that liked him in the entire management. Even Amy Pascal, who has always had a good rtionship with Eric, had a somewhatplex opinion of Eric. This is mainly because of ?Home Alone?, as after the end of May, the box office of ?Home Alone? will finally finish, and that Eric will receive a share of about 120 million US dors is a well-known thing in the conference room, whilst Colombia can only take 40 million of the profits, and overseas distribution rights were also snatched by Fox for various reasons. Therefore, Eric took most of the profits, which means that all the executives will receive smaller bonuses at the end of the year. Coupled with theRunning Out of Timeprofit split agreement, regardless of the oue of the box office of this movie, Eric is actually the biggest profit-maker, and this project does not have a penny of Eric''s investment, but the other party will get a high proportion of the box office when it is divided. As such it''s clear that the executives would be upset. Although many shareholders will also benefit fromRunning Out of Timepushing up the stock price of Colombia, most of the executives in the conference room do not have Colombia stock in their hands. With such aplicated mood, it is not difficult to understand that the people would intentionally or unintentionally ignore the existence of Eric at the meeting. Erics previous propaganda paper that he submitted did not receive a response. He had already predicted this situation today. Although he had prepared some rhetoric beforeing, because of the cold reception at the meeting, Eric was toozy to take the initiative to jump out and be reputed. Anyway, ording to the original signed agreement, after the film is released, regardless of the oue, he is the biggest beneficiary, and this just determines the difference between earning more and earning less. There is no possibility of loss for Firefly that has not invested a penny. Originally Eric did have some concerns about the box office prospects of the film. After all, this was a new type of work that waspletely unheard of and did not exist in Hollywood. However, after the series of internal screenings the film critics had given good reviews, so Eric has let go of his worries. The internal preview can basically determine themercial value of a movie, although sometimes mistakes can ur, but in most cases, the professional filmmakers who have been immersed in Hollywood for decades will not be wrong, and the results of the reviewer''s preview also indicate the reputation of a movie after the release of the movie. Before the Inte era, the establishment of a movie''s reputation was mainly word-of-mouth and through various kinds of film reviews in the media. Many fans read the newspapers and after the reading the film reviews, they will decide whether to watch a movie or not. Now that both have a basic guarantee, Eric is no longer worried that this movie will be his Kryptonite. As for the unfortunate timing with ?Batman?, it can only be said that his luck is not good, but it is not the end of the world. Amy Pascal saw that Eric had stunned eyes after looking up and came over to whisper a few words in his ear. "Sorry, everyone, I just got a little distracted." After Amy spoke, Eric sighed and said, "I actually sent a document with my propaganda advice directly to Columbia. The distribution department, maybe because I am an amateur in this regard, did not reflect content of that document in theRunning Out of Timepropaganda strategy as far as I have seen." In the conference room, there was a loud discussion. Most people didnt even know that Eric had submitted such a document, and the director of the propaganda department had a bit of a guilty conscience. He was originally raised by Blunt Cohen, although Blunt Cohen left the job, he has always maintained a good rtionship with his old boss. As a result, because of Blount Cohen, he didn''t have much affection for Eric. After the secretary gave him Erics document, heughed and tossed the document aside without even looking at it. He didn''t want Eric to intervene in the propaganda of Running Out of Time, nor did he think that Eric could have any new ideas. In the face of everyone''s gaze, the supervisor could only stammer and argue: "I... I don''t think Mr. Williams'' n is... there is nothing surprising, so I didn''t care too much, just... Just..." "Forget it, don''t say anymore," the current president of Colombia, who sat on the front, waved and interrupted the other''s defence. So many people can seen that you is lying, so arguing will only make peopleugh. "Eric, everyone is here, so simply exin your... well, n." "Good, so I will," Eric stood up and came to the meeting room under the other''s instructions. With the writing board in front of him, he picked up a ck pen and wrote a word on the whiteboard: "I call my idea "topic marketing". Of course, this is just an appropriate name that I temporarily came up with as there is no such concept in the theory of orthodox marketing, so please don''t mind." In his memory the concept of topic marketing gradually matured after the emergence of online blogs. Before that, there were some hype scandals. It was simr to marketing behaviours, but when this concept appeared, Eric does not know. "The advertising beforeRunning Out of Timehas already reached the maximum, so we can''t do anything else with the orthodox propaganda techniques, so if you want to make a breakthrough, you can only choose a topic that seems to have little to do with the movie. In fact, I think many movies have attracted attention of fans without advertising but with sex scandals between the male and female leads, and this can be ssified as topic marketing. After Eric finished, he waiting to take in everyone''s reactions before continuing: The focus of everyones debate before was whether theRunning Out of Timeshould be dyed for a week. I think that my n can just the best of both worlds. Without the dy, and if done properly, the second week''s box office will have unexpected results, and you can maximize thepensation for the loss in the first week''s box office that ?Batman? brings. As everyone in the meeting room watched with curious eyes, Eric wrote the words ''imnted ad'' and ''television'' on the whiteboard. "Everyone knows that there are a lot of imnt ads inRunning Out of Time, so there have been some small disputes between us." Eric pointed at the ''imnted ad'' with smile, the executives in the conference room alsoughed in kind, because Eric had previously received a $6 million advertising fee with by using arge number of imnted advertisements in Running Out of Time. After learning about this, Colombia wanted to take a share of it. After all, $6 million is not a small amount money and could be used to make the movie. However, Eric converted the advertising fee into his personal ie through a specific contract, rather than the ie of the movieRunning Out of Time. As a result, Colombia did not get a penny. When everyone''sughter fell away, Eric went on to say: "My n is centered on the topic of imnting advertisements and the TV series I am about to make. I am confident that the imntation of these advertisements is still very clever, so even the film critics who participated in the screening didn''t find anything wrong, and they didn''t notice the TV series that appeared three during the movie. As even these film critics didn''t notice, I believe the audience noticing is even less likely. I am betting that they will only be immersed in the story of the movie. The topic marketing that I am talking about is that after the film is released, we artificially create a topic that guides the audience to notice this. If it seeds, arge number of fans will, in the second week of the movie''s showing, return or even watch repeatedly." Here, a senior executive Interjection: "Eric, you can try the topic of your TV series, but I remember that you specifically exined us before, when advertising to not mention any topic of product cement, in order to prevent the fans from being repulsed." Eric exined: "Of course, so, I just said that we reveal it after the film is released. After the films first three days after first weekend, the reviews ofRunning Out of Timewill have been confirmed. I believe everyone knows this to be right. The film''s word of mouth will be full of confidence. Since the fans have already determined that this is a good movie, then when we will reveal the imnted adds, the fans will not be disgusted, but will treat it as an interesting thing, just like we are always tolerant of the shorings of those who are outstanding. No one will criticize Napoleons height, Einsteins indifference, or Mrs. Curies cough. Of course, this is a must condition. The media is guided by public opinion. We must ensure that most of the medias attitude towards this matter is based on ridicule rather than criticism. The specific n, I have already written in the document I submitted, but of course, the professionals must revise this, after all, I am just ayman in this regard, and their may be many things I have not considered." Eric finished, and once more sat in his seat. The president of Colombia turned his attention to the executive who was responsible for promotion: "Ryan, is Erics document still there?" Ryan''s hand under the conference table hit his knee and he responded with uncertainty: "Maybe ...... Still, I will ask my assistant to find out." "Go in person, make a few more copies and send them to us as soon as possible." "Okay, I will go." He stood up and left the meeting in a hurry. The meeting room was now in a tentative state, everyone talked about what Eric had just said, and Eric was no longer left out, as he was surrounded by people discussing with him. Chapter 148 ?Colombia eventually decided to give the go ahead forRunning Out of Timeto be shown as scheduled, because most of the executives believed that dying the film would be more risky than the collision with ?Batman?. Of course, the propaganda path offered by Eric also yed a big role. In the Beverly Hills vi, Eric stood in front of the mirror with his head raised. Nicole, who had already changed him into his suit, was carefully tying his tie, and on top of the big bed next to them Drew was lying, wearing a white vest and denim skirt, and part of her well-developed body was revealed by her small vest to show a slender waist, her white calfs were swaying, with toes polished ck. The girl held her chin and looked at Nicole do Eric''s tie. Although she wanted to do it personally, unfortunately... she cannot. "Eric, wait for me to walk with you on the red carpet" When the tie was tied, and Eric was wearing apleted suit, Drew asked, with a spoiled tone. "No, that has already been arranged. You can enter directly with Nicole." "Oh, why do I have to enter with her?" Drew did not hide her likes and dislikes in the face of Nicole. From the beginning of summer vacation, Drew kept up her temper, and no longer went crazy whilst ying outside but, very unusually, stayed at home every day, and after many days, Eric understood that Drew was against Nicole. Right now, for example, because it was time to participate in the premiere, and Eric wants to change clothes, Nicole hades over to help, so the girl had appeared at the side of the two like clockwork. When she heard Drews words, Nicole couldnt help but pluck up her eyebrows, but Drew urately grasped Nicoles change in expression and responded instantly: Eric, Eric, you see, she raised her eyebrows, and is scheming in her heart. Look, let us drive her away." Nicole finally couldn''t bear it: "Drew, don''t you say that in front of me, can I not even express my dissatisfaction?" "Don''t call me Drew, as a maid, you should call me Miss Barrymore." STOLEN FROM FIZZHAZ TRANSLATIONS "Well, Miss Barrymore." Nicole seemed helpless, knowing that if Eric was not here, Drew wouldn''t bother either. Drew did ruin her little n, and for more than a month, she had not made any substantial progress in her rtionship with Eric, although she always kept everything in the vi in order, taking care of Eric''s life meticulously, but after Drew''s summer vacation started, the two of them had had almost no time alone together, which meant she didn''t even have a chance to take the initiative. "Though I''m reluctant, I''ll be your maid, so Eric, let''s send her away." Eric wore a suit and smiled as he tapped on Drew''s head: "Dont make trouble and make me send you away, and go change your clothes." The girl squealed exaggeratedly, and walked out covering her forehead. When Eric got off the bus, the space in front of the Chinese Grand Theater on Hollywood Boulevard was already crowded with people. There were reporters on both sides of the red carpet, and there were a lot of fans. Eric saw that many pretty girls held high aRunning Out of Timeposter, and it was not surprising that the name of Cruise was shown in a big font. In the main credits of Running Out of Time, Eric is listed as the director. Although he appeared in ?17 Again?, and gained a lot of fame then, he afterpletely put down his actor''s career and the gained fame slowly dissipated. In addition, his various films did not have a unified style, and he also deliberately kept a low-key profile so, it was unlikely for him to umte fans. Hanks had no advantage in appearance. Although he is very famous, he can only be ssified as a powerful actor, and his acting career was still on the rise, so he had not gained the influence that he had during Eric''s previous life. Cruise was different. From his debut to the present ten yearster, Cruise had been taking the idol-type route. His image in the public''s hearts and minds is still very high. Before his divorce with Kidman, Cruises public image remained perfect. Eric didn''t mind the reaction of the fans. His personal goals were very clear. He never thought about being a public idol, but wanted to be a big hand behind Hollywood. The red carpet premier had begun to have some small starsing up from time to time. ording to the usual red carpet rules, more important people will generally arrive in the middle, so Eric does not go directly to the red carpet, but to the waiting area. There were ben a lot of people gathered there. "Eric, congrattions." After Hanks saw him, he smiled inexplicably and saw that Eric was confused. Hanks exined: "I heard that you took half the ?Home Alone? profits, andPretty Womanofficially ended screening in the past few days. The North American box office of 210 million, and the global box office of 530 million US dors really scared a lot of people, when totaled with ?Home Alone?''s global box office, your personal total box office has reached 1 billion US dors. In Hollywood, the number of people who have more than 1 billion US dors at the global box office can be counted on one hand. Shouldnt you celebrate? Its not too strange," Eric smiled and pointed to Cruise next to him: "The global box office of Cruise''s movies has already exceeded $1 billion." Cruise heard Eric''s words, but did not actually show self-satisfied look as he would have previously. Heughed modestly, and said: "Eric, how can Ipare with you." He starred in movies with a global box office of more than one billion, butpared to the huge box offices, Cruise himself received poor benefits from them. By now, Cruzs personal assets are only tens of millions of dors, and Erics two films, ?Home Alone? andPretty Woman, are expected to score more than 200 million for the director. Cruise during this time, every time he saw news about Eric in the newspaper, couldnt help but embarrassed by Erics luck. At the same time, he was more determined to develop towards the role of a producer. During the period, the productionpany established by Cruise was already starting to pick up scripts. As a femalepanion arranged for Eric by the organizers today, after the appearance of Eric, Brooke Shields naturally came to him and heard the contents of the mens conversation. She lots heart as she was reminded of the vague rejection Eric gave her once more. Her gaze towards Eric became fiery, as her extreme experiences between childhood and maturity had lead her to had lead her to worship and have an unusual love of money. If she had enough money, she could have lived the life of a nobledy without the need for the blood of nobles, Instead of selling nude photos for a few hundred dors at the age of ten, and participating inPretty Babyat twelve. Not to mention the sloppy jeans ads. STOLEN FROM FIZZHAZ TRANSLATIONS ? When the staff suggested that the several hosts could board the red carpet, Brooke Shields took the initiative to lean on Eric, holding his arm intimately, and she somewhat regretted wearing high heels today, making her taller than Eric. As she was taller, the two of them did not match very well. Eric didn''t care about this. His arm felt the softness of the girl''s chest. Although it was veryfortable, he still had to remind her: "Brooky, you are holding on too tight, can you loosen your grip?" "Oh, sorry, Eric, I am a little nervous." The girl retorted, as she slightly loosened her grip. Eric smiled and thought that this girl''s mind was a little different. She grew up in front of the camera from an early age. How could she be nervous? However, he was toozy to take this into consideration and took her onto the red carpet. Chapter 149 With fan''s cheering in the background, Eric walked through the crowd, smiling past the rope on either side of the red carpet, and signing his name on a few posters of ?17 Again?, ?Home Alone?" or Pretty Womanwith haste, before they would greet Brooke, who would also sign for the fans. The two went together into the media interview area in front. "Eric, do you have confidence in the box office ofRunning Out of Time?" "Brooke, you are so close to Mr. Williams, are you two dating?" "Eric, look here, look here " Mr. Williams, what do you think of the box office trends of "Batman"?" "..." In the crazy shing lights, Eric smiled as he held Brooke''s waist, letting the photographers picture what they will, but he did not intend to answer any questions. Once he spoke, these reporters would definitely ask about the sensitive issues ofRunning Out of Timeand ?Batman?, and whether they have learned from Ghostbusters II''s mistake. It was not suitable for Eric to answer any of these questions. If he is too confident, and in the future, the box office is not up to expectations, he will definitely be ridiculed. If he cringes at the questions, it will be more lively. A director has no confidence in his work. What more could the media want? Even if you answer the questions unbiasedly and clearly, this is also likely to be scorned by the people, so the best strategy is to not respond. Hearing the red carpet noises behind him, the cheers being louder than when he just passed through, Eric knew that Cruise and Hanks had walked on the red carpet. This was arranged in advance, and he nced behind and saw the two smile and slowly pass through the fascinated group. Eric knew that he should go in before the two superstars. He gestured to Brooke, and she took his arm again. The two walked into the theatre together. Outside the theatre where fans were shouting "long live the emperor", Nicole and Drew had just got out of their car and looked at the situation in front of them. Drew, with her pink framed heart-shaped sunsses, chewing gum, and her hands in her small jacket pockets, indifferently looked at both the crazy fans near the red carpet and Cruise and Hanks on it. https(COLON SLASH SLASH )fizzhaztrantes(DOT)weebly(DOT She learned this look from what Su Ryan had worn in Kubricks Lolita. She was convinced that Eric was secretly hiding a Lolitaplex deep down, so she ''identally'' dressed up in the look. Appearing in front of Eric, Eric was really swayed by Drew''s yful look. Su Ryans ssic Lolita styling matched Drew''s baby face, so Eric not being excited was impossible. After that, Drew liked dressing up like this because she knew that Eric liked it. She squinted and nced at Nicole standing next to her, although she did not like this woman, she still drove to the scene at Eric''s instructions. Seeing Nicole looking with envy at that Cruise and Hanks who were sought after by fans, she snorted and snorted: "Hey, do you want to be like them that much?" Nicole snorted and understood Drew was talking to herself. By some ident she still replied: "Of course, if you don''te to Hollywood for this, what do youe for?" "What can I hope for, you only have to wait for "Seattle Sleepless" to be released. After that, you can definitely get this kind of revelry. Oh, Nicole was even more surprised. She looked down at the girl next to her: This is not like what normallyes out of your toxic mouth, I didn''t think that you could praise me if you tried." "Hah," Drew squinted at her: "In which ear did you hear me praising you, I just have confidence in Eric''s script, that''s all. If you picked a beautiful woman from Hollywood randomly for the role of heroine in Eric script, she can be a big star, like Julia Roberts, she was picked by Eric from a small diner, you are just him. Just another lucky woman he picked." "Oh, How about you? "Nicole''s tone somewhat changed. Drew shamelessly raised chin, and replied with a little pride in her tone: "I am Eric''s." "Wow," the girl didn''t know what to say, so she could only make a meaningless syble. "I am Eric''s," Drew once again stressed: "Eric also knows that I am his. So, it is different for me and for you, even Aniston, she will not hinder me. I have a position in his heart." "But how could I be more like you..." Nicole nced at Drew, and she stopped talking, although Drew always broke her little n during this time, she didn''t want topletely offended Drew, after all, the rtionship between Drew and Eric was very close. Drew did not care to help: "But I''m a pet right, haha, its ridiculous, I didn''t think you would have the same thoughts as Aniston that stupid girl. And even if I am a pet, do you know what you women are?" Nicole knew that Drew wouldn''t say anything good, but she still couldn''t help but reveal a curious look. ythings, Drew said quickly. Do you want to know why I asked that question when we met for the first time? Because if the answer was yes, then Eric may feel a little bit about you, you may be his lover, but if the answer is no, this shows that Eric doesn''t look at you at all, he just treats you as a ything, a beautifully dressed doll, and he keeps you dressed up like that in the vi, as a kind of amusement. Nicoles face became a bit ugly, and her lips trembled as she retorted: That is impossible, certainly not. He... He gave me the role heroine of a movie. " "Oh, its just the heroine role of a movie. You are being too sentimental. Dont think that I dont know what you''ve been thinking. You have been trying to seduce him during this time. You want to be Mrs. Williams, right? That''s so ridiculous, he didnt even have enough interest to bed you, but you thought he could marry you? Nicole suddenly looked up and stared at Drew: I understand, you want to use these words to force me away, little girl, but it''s not what you think, if you are telling the truth, why are you stopping me from trying in the meantime?" https(COLON SLASH SLASH )fizzhaztrantes(DOT)weebly(DOT Drew shrugged: "I just don''t want Eric to be embarrassed. Some of his ideas are different from others. If you really climbed into his bed, being a women with such ns at heart, he will find it difficult to get rid of you in the future. So, before you leave my house, I will hold you back, Nicole Kidman, so you better have a change of heart early." "We will wait and see, miss Barrymore," Nicole said with a sarcasm, as she walked to the door of the theatre. Drew held her sunsses and followed Nicole. After Cruise and Hanks left the red carpet, when another star guest went up. Drew couldnt help but talk to Nicole: "Look at that actresses who caused the fans to scream madly, in fact, as long as Eric actually wanted, most of them would be happy to take off their clothes and climb up to his bed, lifting their asses of their own initiative. So it doesn''t matter that these actresses'' screams are more than Eric who has just passed, as in fact, talents such as Eric are the real controllers of Hollywood." Nicole was annoyed but pretended not to care. Concerning Drews words, at the bottom of her heart she had to admit that they were really true, as just for a role, she willingly ran to Erics house and put on a sexy maid outfit to please him. With Eric''s sess in several films in a row, there are very few women who want to be stars that will reject Eric''s requests in Hollywood. Chapter 150 part1 Chapter 150 - The Beginning - Part 1 As the two entered the theatre, and Drew immediately abandoned Nicole, running where her former crew members were. Nicole only saw Drew whispering to Tom Hanks from the side, who was sitting next to Eric. Hanks then smiled and got up and gave her his position. Although very envious, Nicole knows that she is not even qualified to sit in the front row, let alone have anyone in the front row give her a position, although she was not willing, she still scouted out a seat in the middle of the theatre. Then she sat down. There were more and more people in the theatre, and by coincidence, a 30-year-old man with sses and gentle personality sat down beside Nicole. The man seemed to coincidentally meet Nicoles gaze, revealing an astonished look. As if he just found the most morous girl around him, he took the initiative to greet: "Hey, hello." Although the man''s tone was very casual, Nicole, who often encountered simr situations, realized that this was other person''s intention from when he sat next to her. Although there was some resentment in her heart, the other party talked politely, so Nicole couldn''t ignore it. Her tone was in and t: "Hello." The man did not care about Nicole''s indifference, as he was a veteran flower hunter, and if one retreated because a girl was cold at the beginning, then they should never think about picking up women: "Forgive my abruptness, miss, but you are so beautiful, especially your hair style, with your facial contours, they let your whole person look like a kind of cool and ssical beauty. You know, many girls are used to ironing their hair into fluffy little wavy hair, but I see that kind of hair like a nest, like, it''s really bad to the extreme, and there are few girl with good taste like you." TN: Nicole''s hair was like that before Eric changed it for her. i.e. this -> this Nicole heard the man''splimentary words, but did not look pleased to be praised, and she shed a look of embarrassment as she replied somewhat helplessly: "Thank you for your appreciation, sir." "You''re wee," the man said with a smile: "My name is George Northern, a film critic of thePremieremagazine." "You can call me Nicole." "N-I-C-O-L-E? Isn''t that like Nike. Wow, I suddenly thought this name is appropriate for you. In Greek, ''Nike'' is used to describe a beautiful and delicate appearance, of a strong and independent young woman. George Northern was about to say something more, but the lights in the auditorium went dark, she dont know why, but she recalled Erics coldness to her at this time, and as such, she was somewhat disgusted by the diligent attacker and whispered: "The film is beginning, Mr. Northern." "Of course, I understand." George realized that he was being too eager, and quickly sat down and looked at his body, then he transferred his gaze to the screen. After the picture of the Statue of Liberty from Colombia, a little girl in the red hoodie flown by fireflies, and a string of beautifully drawn characters that rushed to the sky, turning into the brightest of the stars, the picture was short-lived. In the darkness, screaming and footsteps rang, as if they were happening in the audience''s mind, but the film still did not appear immediately, and the list of the crew began to appear on the screen. Fulfilling the curious expectations of everyone, the picture finally lit up. In a dimly lit corridor, Tom Cruise with sunsses climbed some stairsyer byyer, while singing with mysterious and sad but male voice. Nicole was staring at the screen, but behind her two girls whispered, they should be fans of Cruise. "Oh, God, I suddenly found out that my little Tommy is so handsome when he walks. Mickey, I can''t stand it anymore." "Me too, me too, Erica, wait, we must go up again." I want Tommy to sign a few signatures for us. In fact, Nicole also has the same feeling in her heart, although she does not know why. Fortunately, the professional film critic next to her, George Northern also heard the emotions of two female fans and approached them and whispered to exin: "This is the result of the atmosphere rendering, the echo of the footsteps, the mysterious singing, the cool lens, and the silent protagonist, constitutes a very imposing picture, so it is not surprising that they produce that feeling. Erik Williams is worthy to be called a genius, just for a few simple shots, the highlights in his first two films havepletely different styles. If you adjust the picture to normal, or remove the soundtrack and echo, even if you switch to other soundtracks, then these shots will not achieve the same effect, this kind of thing seems simple, but the ability tobine several elements together to form an irresistible appeal requires a high artistic attainment." It is obviously not a wise act to talk about other men in front of women when picking up girls. But George Northern had regarded Nicole as an ordinary movie fan. He doesn''t think that the girl sitting here would be in contact with Eric, not to mention being able to meet with Eric, so he is generous with his praise for Eric, but he simultaneously he is showing off his ability to appreciate movies professionally. Aftering to the rooftop, with the ring of the lens, the soundtrack style gradually became heavy. After the male protagonist crossed to the edge of the roof, the picture began to switch between his memories and reality, and the doctor confessed in his dialogue with Andy who was yed by Cruise that only he had only 4 weeks to live, in front of the audience within Cruise''s memory. "Hey, Tommy won''t jump off the building?" A girl''s worried voice behind her sounded again, which was actually themon voice of many fans in the theatre. Another girl immediately hugged herpanion andforted: "No, Erica, you see Tommy carrying a backpack. He must have another idea. If a person wanted to jump off a building, would he still carry a bag?" "Miki, do you think Tommy will die?" "He certainly won''t, I''ve heard reports of many end-stage cancer patients living. Moreover, this is the movie, in movies any miracle can ur, Tommy has not died in movie until now, so he will never die. "I hope so." Erica put her hands on her chest and made a praying look, while looking forward to the next move of Cruise who was standing on the bleeding edge. However, the film did not immediately reveal the answer to the audience. After the title of Running Out of Time, the picture was transferred to a restaurant. Shane was borrowing a newspaper from Hanks whilst eating breakfast, the camera quickly moved from the restaurant. In a bar, the same calm Andy is also eating breakfast, while looking up at a si on TV, with a touch of reluctance and nostalgia. The two protagonists appeared at the same time. The audience thought that the two would have a confrontation in this restaurant. After all, the name of the movie was calledRunning Out of Time, but the picture was quickly cut to other scenes again. "I dare say that these scene of Cruise will definitely appear again and again. This is a suggestion set by the director. Nicole, did you notice the look of Cruise? He only has four weeks of life, so, whether it''s eating, drinking, or watching TV, his look is full of concentration and nostalgia. He seems to want to use the remaining four weeks to engrave all the beauty of the world into the soul. I dare say Cruise will definitely die in the ending." George Northern next to her couldn''t help but show off. Nicole just nodded a little to show that she had heard the other person''s words, her eyes still staring at the screen without squinting, and she began to slowly enter the story. Chapter 150 part2 Inside the blockade, Shane got out of the car and hurried to a police car, in this version Shane was a inspector-uniform wearing Joe Pesci, and he asked Ian the police chief with a bulletproof vest who was outside: "Has the robber contacted you? Ian blinked. West spoke 20 minutes ago. Shane immediately raised his eyebrows and turned his head in surprise and looked at Ian: You talked? You mustn''t have said that you are the head of Los Angeles'' Central District Police Department Ian Spey, and that he should surrender andy down arms within three minutes? Ian shook his head and realized that Sean is now his own subordinate, and is no longer the famous police elite he was, {{{{{{{{so I stalked my neck and turned my eyes to the side, a look you can take me. This performance of Joe Pesci was very expressive both innguage and in action, and the audience has begun to smile. Although Shane had some helplessness, he still yed the negotiation recording. When his hand pressed the y button, the special voice of Joe Pesci was suddenly heard. "Hey, I am Ian Spey, the head of the Los Angeles'' Central District Police Department. You have been surrounded by me and have to surrender within three minutes." Shane shook his head and revealed a look of irritation. Ian was once again guilty. He turned his eyes to the window. During the recording, the robbers proposed a series of conditions. Ian had heard the other side wanting a bulletproof car and couldnt help but retort: "Why dont you want a helicopter?" Shane shook his head when he heard this and stamped his feet. With an expression of helplessness thates from expecting too much he replied: "Hey, don''t you talk nonsense!" The atmosphere that Hanks and Joe Pesci had created for the audience also broke at this moment. With Shane''s madness, after hearing this line, the first of theughter from the audience was heard in the theatre. Sure enough, the robbers changed their conditions from the bulletproof car to a helicopter. Shane could only sigh again and again, and asked for a walkie-talkie before entering the bank alone. After a series of verbal and psychological confrontations, Shane went and smoothly solved the hostage crisis and forced the robber tomit suicide. Although in this section of Eric did not make any changes to the plot, he consulted with real negotiating experts when writing the lines, so it seems more reasonable and sharp, even if it were a professional, he could not freestyle such a good paragraph of speech during a confrontation. Of course, the plot time has been dragged down for a few minutes, but this is not a problem, the original movie was only 90 minutes, and in Hollywood, most of this big production are about two hours, plus the lines are very cleverly designed, and the audience will not feel the drag of the plot, but will be able to interpret the excellence of Shane''s actor more carefully. Leaving the bank, Shane walked to a snack bar, bought a coke and a hamburger to eat. In the crowd, a thin-haired old man with a strange smile was holding the camera towards Shawn during this series of actions and captured it. The old man''s expression was a bit stiff, but with the iconic mysterious musical scores that appeared almost simultaneously, although most fans may still have some doubts, the professional film critics present will have guessed that the old man is likely to be Andy in disguise. Sure enough, the picture cut to a room filled with high-tech crime props such asputers, camouge equipment, etc. Andy spread out the photos of Seans bank robbery scene onto the wall. At the same time, there were other old photos on the wall, such as Sean''s SWAT (Special Weapons and Tactics) team, which was swept through by a camera facing the wall covered with photos and newspaper clippings. The audience finally understood Shane''s identity. Chapter 151 Andy walked into a financepany with a backpack, and from behind a Marvelic he pulled a pistol with which he shot the branch manager. The ''Running out of Time for the two men had officially began. "You are here, I have been waiting for you for a long time." Andy protected himself with the body of the financial branch manager and warmly greeted Shane on the roof. "Sorry, traffic jam," Shane replied with a smile. There is no sense of unfamiliarity in the tone. This is the most basic quality of negotiating experts required to get close to criminals. No matter how much they hate the criminal, even if they want to throw them into jail or send them to an electric chair. However, on the surface, it is necessary to maintain a mindset of old friends with the criminals. Only when they are close to the criminals, is possible to find out the weaknesses of the other party. "You can call me Shane, can I help you? Many people have their own purposes, some people want money, cars, nes, others want to see a wife, do you have a girlfriend?" After Andy allowed, Shane slowly walked up and started to get close. Andy didn''t answer, but he came out from the cover of thepany manager. When sniper in the opposite building wanted to aim at Andy''s body, it was stopped by Shane. "Is that very smart?" Looking at the helpless Shane, Andyughed. "Yeah, what would you call it?" "Who are you?" "What do you want?" "It''s very simple, I want to y a 72-hour game with you." "You want to y with me, no problem, the hostage is innocent, you let him go, and I will rece him." Bang The sad guns sounded, and there was a burst of exmation in the theatre. No one would have thought that Cruise, who always had always had a positive movie image, would open fire on an innocent person. More than half of the fans who were invited in the screening were fans of Cruise. The two girls behind Nicole also eximed. "Ah, how could this be, Miki, how can Tommy do this, he wouldn''t really be a bad guy?" "Definitely not, Erica, look at the officer''s wretched look, I think he is sure there is something damning about him." The girl named Mickey said this, but her tone was full of uncertainty. "It seems that this is a big breakthrough role for Cruise," George Northern said. Although his voice was not loud, it was enough to be heard by Nicole, but he nced at the girl and found her indifferent. With her not interested in this topic, he had to stop the series of expert analysis he was about to rattle off. Because of the discretion and embarrassment of the police chief Ian, yed by Joe Percy, Andy escaped using the vents into the building. In the mess, the branch manager covered in red ketchup got up from the ground: "Help, I am not dead." "Ha..." The reaction sounded with relief from the fans who were originally worried. Then, Ian''s stupidity and Shane were exhibited in a funny and maddening situation. When Shane put a chocte box disguised as a bomb in front of Ian, the theatre rang again with joy. "Good chocte," someone in the dark who studied Shawn''s face repeated the line he mouthed with great interest. If the confectionerypany''s executives heard this here, they would be very happy with the $500,000 advertisement. Good value for money. Andy, who escaped from the building, was rxedly seated in a taxi driven by Shane, and the two started their first positive contest. "Take me to the police station, even if you win." Andy said, putting the pistol out of the window and firing without hesitation. The sound of dampened gunfire resounded, sparks light up themppost, the balloons in the hands of the children suddenly burst, and the cardboard boxes in the hands of the porters burst into pieces... With one hand on Shane''s shoulder, Andy spoke indifferently: "I will open fire on three." "One...two..." Shane turned to look at the direction pointed at by Andy''s muzzle, wanting to gamble that the other side will not shoot, but seeing the pregnant woman in front of the road, and with the pregnant woman holding her child, and a student carrying their bag, Shane stepped on the gas pedal at thest moment. He didn''t dare to gamble. But it was toote. "...three!" "Hey!" Shane shouted in horror, nervously looking at the pedestrians ahead. Everyone was safe and sound, but when they turned their heads, the rear door opened, and Andy had disappeared. "Hey, hey, Mickey, you see, in fact, thest shot of Tommy was just ying," her''s voice that seemed a little excited rang again. "Yeah, this character is actually a good person." The girl named Mickey also followed the bandwagon. "He is righteous and evil, I began to fall in love with this role. Eric Williams is really amazing. I have never seen this role in other movies." Mickey smiled: "The key is still So young, I heard that he is less than 19 years old, younger than the both of us." "Ha... a little boy , but, I still like Tommy a little more." "Oh," When she heard herpanion. Some girls voiced, another girlughed. Nicole, who was sitting in front of their quiet voices, couldnt help but reveal a smile. After more than a month of getting along, the savvy girl already had a deep understanding of Eric, and she secretly knew, if he looked at the two girls, it is more likely that he will get rid of them than be stunned, let alone Tom Cruise. But the girl soon remembered her own experiences and became a bit stunned. He really... As Drew said, can''t he look at herself? As if to set off the feelings of the loss Nicole felt in the darkness, the ethereal and sad music of ?Speechless Sentiment? came out into the theartre. Entering a bus, Andy passed the police''s card check and walked up it before he sat down to the rightof a girl. The appearance of Brooke Shields was still amazing, but at the suggestion of Eric, through the borate carving of the makeup artist, the girl''s original thick eyebrows are slightly modified, and no lip gloss was applied to the lips. Her face only had a lightyer of makeup. This change has transformed the temperament of the girl. When many people saw this Brooke Shields in the magazine, they would naturally produce words like ''Goddess''. But at this time, her appearance made her whole person''s temperament a lot more feminine, faded the goddess temperament making her less eye catching, turning her into a woman who was easy for people to feel close to and care for on impulse. In the front row of the theatre, Brooke Shields, who was sitting in her seat, saw her appear, and her mood suddenly became awkward. She was still worried about her image change. She turned back and looked and because of the brightness of the screen, she could clearly see her facial expressions of the audience in thest few rows, their gazes were visible, and many men are staring at the big screen, many people have an obsessive look on their faces, their mouths are slightly open. Obviously, she was attracted by her appearance. Seeing these, Brooke Shields put a few of her worries down and turned her head back. As long as the audience''s reaction is good, as for the film critics, after several nominations for the Razzies, she has no hope of being recognized for her acting , so it was fine as long as she can get popr with the audience. Anyway, Hollywood has a lot of popr big stars with a high performances but a bad acting. In the movie, Yoyo, yed by Brooke Shields, curiously nced at the strange man who suddenly appeared beside her. She identally found the gun handle in his open cor, but her face was faint and she did not dare to attack out of fear. "You don''t have to talk, it''s okay," Andy whispered softly, taking his sunsses off and putting them on the girl, blocking the other person''s gaze of fear, taking off one of her headphones and putting it his ear, and finally moving his arm around her and pulling her such that she was resting on his shoulder. Chapter 152 ?As the music continued, Yoyo, leaning against Andys shoulder, unknowingly turned calm. Perhaps because her day to day life was so boring, meeting such stimtion made her think ''In fact, it is not bad,'' and gradually, the corners of her mouth moved until she hung up a faint happy smile. Because of the girl''s ''tacit understanding'', Andy sessfully passed the inspection, and returned the girl''s ear to the headrest before he got off the bus. In response Yoyo quickly shouted the driver to wait and followed. He put his hand in his pocket and walkedzily on the sidewalk. She lowered her head and carefully followed him, looking up from time to time, and nced at his back with a cozy look. Andy finally couldn''t help but turn around which scared the girl. "What are you doing here?" "I... I live here." She exined in a panic like a little girl who was caught doing a bad thing. Andy watched the girl pull out the key to open a security door, then turned and prepared to leave, but she reacted, shouted and chased after him, and put the pair of sunsses back into Andy''s hands. Nicole didn''t know that this scene was copied by Eric from his own mind, so when she saw this scene she involuntarily turned her thoughts to herself and Eric. He seemed to take such an attitude for himself, but he was overbearing and it also made her alienated. After the high intensity of the first scenes, the plot of the movie once again entered a gentle period. In the police station, Shane chattered with his colleagues about his doubts. Ian carefully looked at Shane''s enthusiasm and thought about his mediocrity. He felt that his position might be threatened, so he had previosuly decided in favour of the use of an elementary school students'' deadly magic weapon -ints. However, it was blocked by the superior who had a good rtionship with Shane, so he could only go forward and look for trouble for Shane. He was looking to put him down, but it made Shane realise the key to the matter. At the unintentional prompt of Ian, Shane hammered the table: "Stupid, I am so stupid, I forgot the most important clue, the financepany, hey, we should check it out..." Ian as such was more depressed, and could do nothing but words to run his mouth against Shane to the logistics director: "Ah how can such good people can quickly change in a sh." Shane''s investigation was weak as he went alone did not get the cooperation of anyone. The manager of the financialpany felt guilt in his heart, but such viins who were alert to the police and others were unwilling to cooperate. Shane could only return to the office again, and then received a report of a trail that Andy had left. At night, after deceiving the old man at the front desk, Shane sessfully entered the building where the financepany was located, and used the baby powder to discover the keybination to open the lock and enter the financepany. The second confrontation with Andy started. The rapid footsteps on the stairs, the rms of the security door, the roar of the car engine, the fierce friction between the tires and the ground, and the fierce gun battles eachsted for a few minutes,bined with an intense percussion, the actionsted for more than 20 minutes. Without an extra scenes, this entire process gripped the audience''s eyes. Finally, after getting rid of the viinous third parties, their car was driving in a quiet street in the Los Angeles night. "Hah, this situation seems to have turned around. This time the gun is in my hand. Do you know where the police station is?" Shane raised his eyebrows and with a pistol patted Andy''s shoulder. His expression was smug. Andy smiled and sighed with ungratefulness, and said: "Old rules, at the police station, you win." The car suddenly elerated. At the same time, the hearts of the audience that had just rxed once again hastened, and everyone was curious about how Andy would escape again. With the screams of many girls in the auditorium, Andy stepped on the gas pedal and did not hesitate to hit a concrete fence at the roadside. Bang - Broken windshield, the airbags stuck, Shane was shaken and sprawled across back seat, and in the corner of the scene, since the car windshield cracked, a small pill bottle of Andy''s next to the window popped out and bounced on the concrete road a few times. The scene slowly faded with the crisp sound of the pill bottle and the concrete, and then fell into darkness. - Here, Eric made a big change to the original version, and removed the act in which the two men tangled and grabbed for gem box. Eric thought that this scene waspletely superfluous, and it didnt make much sense. It also affected the movie''s rhythm. If the original 20-minute fierce confrontation gives people the feeling of eating a bowl of spicy hot noodle soup with a sweaty sweat, the act where they grab the box is more like after ast mix from the chopsticks, picking out half a caterpir from the noodle soup. Eric thought about it, and only thought that the purpose of this shot was to let Andy lose the small bottle containing the terminal cancer painkiller to cause Ian''s misunderstanding. So Eric only used a small bottle popping out of the windshield, cleanly and cleverly hiding this clue. - He don''t know how long he struggled in the darkness. Shane suddenly opened his eyes and found that he was in the hospital ward. After the doctor''s introduction, Shane knew that he had no serious problems, threw on his suit and hung his tie loosely at his neck before going out of the ward. Ians face was heavily vexed after seeing Shane''s appearance, and the two started a farfetchededic conversation. "Hey, don''t lie to me any more." Sane argued: "It''s like this. I met a friend dinner, and on the way..." Ian interrupted Shane''s drivelling nonsense: "We found your car covered with bullet holes." "Someone are looking for revenge, I can''t help it. Our police always have a lot of enemies." "You''re still lying to me," Ian excitedly turned Shane, pulled him aside and raised the small pill bottle in his hand: "What is this, it was found in the ce where you lost the car, I asked the doctor, and he said that the painkiller is for the terminal cancer patients." Shane was inspired, he seemed to understand something and looked at the wall pensively . Ian ced his hands on Shane''s shoulders: "Oh, what a pity, you''re so young." Shane raised his eyebrows and they looked at each other, but Ian continued. "I was wrong, I have always been biased against you." But you are also wrong, why do you always contradict me, I am the director, and older than you." Shane quickly understood that Ian had misunderstood the incident, but he decided to stretch the truth and not retort. This seemed to be a good thing to misunderstand for his somewhat narrow minded boss. As for the future, it may be cleared up... the future will be kept for the future. Thinking of this, Shane mmed the table and lifted the small medicine bottle: "It''s Western medicine, the effect is fierce." Ian once again grabbed Shane''s shoulder and said sorry for his previously narrow minded behaviour. Shane was a little embarrassed. Luckily, Sigourney Weavers, cameoing as an Interpol executive, appeared, and Shane got out of his embarrassing situation. Through Andy''s information, Shane understood the meaning the number 13 which a stranger had left him with on a coaster previously. On May 13th, in a small restaurant. After some verbal confrontation, Shane agreed to cooperate with Andys n to arrest the viinous parties'' leader. In a bowling alley, when Cruise appeared in a pretty women''s dress, not only was Shane scared in the scene, but the theatre also broke out into sounds of surprise from the audience. When a bowling ball was shattered and the financialpanys stolen diamonds were scattered all over the ce, the big viins who had always been untouchable were finally arrested. ording to the clues that Eric had previously buried, as long as the big viin could be brought into the police station, then Interpol will cooperate to provide a series of evidence, and the other party would not get to go out of the door again in this life. In the chaos, Shane found that Andy disappeared into the crowd, so he quickly chased him out. In the parking lot, a helpless Andy took the initiative to get in his own car, because this time, not only was the gun in the hands of Shane, but also the steering wheel in the hands of the other party. The Lamborghini with a custom hood rushed through the streets, followed by arge string of police cars. "Has it begun?" After several police blockades, Shane asked. Andy leaned his head against the back of the chair: "I have done everything" "But I haven''t it. If I can''t send you to the police station, I will be a little sorry in my life." "If you have regrets, you will remember me." Andy tone was full of teasing for Shane. Shane was silent for a moment: "Rest assured, I will not forget you." Andy shook his head with a smile, coughed a few times, blood poured out of his mouth, and sprayed onto the windshield. Shane''s hand that was holding the steering wheel tightened, and Andy said sorry, opened a ck cloth covering a bomb and took out the remote control. Shane nced at him: "Is this a trick again?" "If don''t believe why don''t you try it." Shane raised his hand and pressed the remote. A light blinked and the bomb started counting down from a minute. "That timer isn''t real?" Andy smiled. "As you said, when you die, it doesn''t matter where you die. The key is not to die in the hands of the police." Shane passed the information of the bomb to the pursuers through a walkie-talkie, then stepped on the gas pedal, and quickly passed through thest police blockade, and left the sports car in thest ten seconds of countdown. Although the two only met each other a few days prior, Shane had fully understood Andy''s style of acting, and he did not believe that the bomb was real. Therefore, making such a deliberate release of a criminal is a great pressure on his professional ethics. So when he got out of the car, Shane''s face was a bit heavy, but gradually, he seemed to figure out what he was doing, and his mouth gradually smiled and walked easily toward his colleagues. After doing things, he was always very hungry, so it was time to find something to eat. He didn''t know if the small restaurants were closed. After he thought so, he waved his hand to Ian who wasining at him and left. To no one''s surprise, once the countdown was over, the Lamborghini''s engine was automatically turned on, and Andy escaped smoothly again. A few weekster, in a small restaurant, Shane widened his eyes when he saw a message in the corner of a newspaper. Someone donated arge sum of money to the Childrens Cancer Foundation in his own name. So he swallowed food and the corners of his lips turned upwards. He smiled and seemed to want tough, but he couldntugh. Holding a bucket of popcorn and grasping a newspaper as he walked through the bustling crowd, Shane unexpectedly happened upon a bus. After sitting down, he glimpsed a familiar object in his vision. "Miss, your ne is very beautiful, where did you buy it?" Shane couldn''t help but ask. Yoyo held it and looked at it and with a faint smile on her face said: "A friend sent it, it''s very cheap." "Boyfriend?" Yoyo hesitated, and didn''t answer the question, but just said faintly: "I haven''t seen him for a long time. After he gave it to me, he''s never appeared again. Shane turned back sullenly: Keep it well, although its fake, it''s a very good fake. Maybe he will appear in front of you again someday and scare you." Yoyo smiled, but didn''t answer again, her eyes turned to the window. Soon, the girl got out of the bus. During the transitioning scene, the expressions of Shaun and Yoyo appeared through the camera. Putting a popcorn into his mouth, Shane remembered Andy again. Dude, all this is your scam. Its a fake pistol, a fake bomb, your illness is fake, just to defraud my sympathy and make me let you go. I don''t mind if you hide in the corner andugh at my stupidity, really! As he finally thought so, his face was nk. As if some kind of inheritance. Originally the soundtrack that only yed as Andy entered a scene, appeared again when Yoyo walked down the street with the jewel. Like some kind of reincarnation. Faintly recognisable, mysterious, but distant... Chapter 153 Thest line of subtitles rose and the lights in the auditorium light up. Appeasing the apprehension of the crew, a warm apuse rang out, until, with Eric leading, Cruise, Hanks and so on, smiled and waved to the fans. Then the apuse slowly stopped. Eric expressed his gratitude to the fans and made a few short interactions. The emotions of the fans in the auditorium continued towards excitement, but Eric and others still walked backstage at an opportune time. Although the fans were unwilling, they still left the auditorium in a very orderly manner. "The repetitive use of various techniques was really wonderful. You know, Nicole, many directors have their own unique styles, not to mention the intensely artistic directors, even those who focus on the box office have them. By studying their films, they can find that they use the same methods in many movies, but this feature surprisingly not present with Eric Williams. His films arepletely different in style. This can only be described as weird, because a person''s natural instincts are very potent, and many habits will develop unconsciously." Walking out of the theatre side by side with Nicole wasPremieremagazine''s film critic George Northern who was exining to the girl in a dance. He found that when she heard about Eric, she always showed some interest, not the disinterest she showed other topics, so he decisively no longermented about Cruise and Hanks, or the performances of Brooke Shields and others but rather found she was always very pleased to have the topic led towards Eric. When they arrived at the parking lot, George Northern probed as she spoke: "Nicole, there is a nice coffee shop not far away. Maybe we can go sit for a while, now it is still very early, there is nothing much else to do, right? FiZzHaZ tranted this and it''s hosted on his personal website essible every update via novelupdates. She refused coldly: Sorry, Mr. Northern, I am going back soon. Nicole said this, but she stopped at her car and turned to look at the theatre behind her. Although George Northern found himself rejected, seeing that the girl did not immediately get into the car to leave, it started him thinking, a morous beauty of Nicole''s level, he had not partaken in before, so he was unwilling to give up easily, this coupled with her attitude of being neither cold nor hot, had aroused George''s desire to conquer. "Nicole, do you like Eric Williams?" George quickly thought of another topic. The girl nced at him and told the truth: "I don''t like him very much." George Northern showed a clear expression: "Oh, don''t deny it, I''ve found that you always like to hear about Eric. Nicole, do you not want to see him in person? Nicole raised an eyebrow and faced with the mans stalker-ish attitude, her expression became more and more rotten, but due to the dim light in the parking lot, George Northern did not find a slight change in the expression of the girl, and continued self-righteously: "You know, I am a film critic ofPremiere, and in order to promote Running Out of Time, Eric Williams will have to ept a lot of interviews. With the current influence ofPremiere, if we send him an invitation, he will definitely not refuse it." "What does this have to do with me?" She replied coldly. "My rtionship with the editor is good. If the other party agrees, I can cover this task, and then..." Northerns expression was somewhat proud as he show off: "If you want, you can pretend to be my assistant so you''ll have a chance to meet Eric Williams face to face, maybe we''ll have a chance to have a meal together after." FiZzHaZ tranted this and it''s hosted on his personal website essible every update via novelupdates. "Oh," she spat out a meaningless syble, and her mouth moved to sneer, but just want to explicitly reject this self-righteous guy, a young man in a neat suit came to the parking lot and ran straight to the slim Nicole. George Northern saw the young man who came over and showed a look of alert. Nicole saw this and so was also alert herself. She also didnt know the new party. She didn''t want to find out that she had another stalker. "Excuse me, are you Miss Nicole Kidman?" The young man came up to her and looked at Nicole''s dress again before asking. Nicole nodded, and when George found that the two did not know each other, he breathed a sigh of relief. The young man identified himself with enthusiasm: "Hello, Miss Kidman, I am n, n Fishman." Seeing the girl''s confused expression, n quickly exined: "I am Mr. Williams assistant. Oh, hello, n, call me Nicole, she smiled and reached out, shook hands with the young man, and then nced at George Northern, to see if he had realized anything before she introduced: "This is a film critic of Premiere magazine, Mr. George Northern." "Hello, Mr. Northern," n said hello to George. Filmmakers usually don''t like film critics very much. This period''s film critics holds sway over the reputation of most movies, but there are very few film critics who can maintain a fair attitude. The filmpanies have to spend every time before a movie is released. A lot of public rtions fees are spent on this group of people, otherwise it would be difficult to get a fair evaluation from the other side. He greeted George, and waited for the other party to respond. n turned to Nicole again: "This is the case, Nicole, Miss Barrymore wants me to tell you, she wants to join Mr. Williams in the after party, and you don''t have to wait for her." "Thank you, n, I know," she nodded and understood. n did not say anything more. He nodded to the two and turned to walk inside the theatre again. "Sorry, Mr. Northern, pardon me?" After n left, Nicole was ready to open her car door and go home first, only to find that George Northern was in front of her car. FiZzHaZ tranted this and it''s hosted on his personal website essible every update via novelupdates. "Oh, sorry," George moved his body in a panic, and watching the girl open the door, his mouth twitched, and he wanted tough freely, but the muscles of his face seemed to be stiff and refused to cooperate. If n just mentioned ''Mr. Williams'', George could have still deceive himself, and pretend not to understand, after all, the number of people named Williams is too much, but then the next sentence with ''Miss Barrymore''pletely gave George no room for stupidity. Some strange rtionship between Eric and Drew has always been a topic that everyone in the circle had talked about. It was certainly impossible for George Northern to not know. Therefore, Nicoles identity was not difficult to guess. Waiting for Drew, George though she definitely had very close rtionship with Eric and Drew. Thinking of the words he had previously said, George Northern felt a strong embarrassment in his heart. Nicole and Eric knew each other clearly. He had also used the topic of an interview to seduce her. He estimated that in her heart she had alreadyughed a hundred times. Looking at Nicoles calmly drive, George, who was too frustrated to go to his car, felt more and more like a clown who was jumping up and down. When a person encounters such a situation and refused to admit their own faults, the usual response is to be angry. Therefore, George directly ignored the rudeness of his own impoliteness, but felt that he was yed by Nicole. Having found an excuses for his feelings, George mmed his foot into his car tires and screamed: "Bitch, let''s wait and see!" Chapter 154 "The ups and downs of the plot, the shocking soundtrack, the fierce and varied editing, and the outstanding performances of several actors, after the yfulness of ?Home Alone? and the warmth of Pretty Woman , Eric Williams has brought us a dark horse with a different style. From the mysterious opening song to the tragic symphony at the end of the film, the gorgeous soundtrack ofRunning Out of Timeruns through the whole movie, but there wasn''t a dull moment, with thepact plot full of intensity, and the movie was without redundant scenes, leading to a two-hour visual feast that provides a kind of inner peace." "Sex and blood have always been the two elements in a film that can stimte the audience''s adrenaline, but in many movies it''s for sensationalism and there is sex for the sake of it, or blood for the sake of it, but the use of blood inRunning Out of Timefeels more natural. Whilst watching the move, every time there was a shot of Tom Cruise coughing blood, I could hear the apprehension of the female fans around me, but the exmations were mixed with lots of excitement. A handsome, gentle but sinister and mysterious man that has most women falling in love at first sight, Eric Williams is still not satisfied, and there is a horny vomiting attribute attached to the main character. I am sure that the archetype of Andy, which is shaped by Cruise, will have filmmakers eager to imitate in the future." "The wonderful performances of the two protagonists did not hide the brilliance of the several supporting roles. Joe Pesci raised eyebrows and shakes of the head give off a pleasant happy feeling. Reappearing after a few years of silence, Brooke Shields is even more eye-catching, perhaps because of the girls study at Princeton for several years, her performance is no longer superficial, and its a bit more profound and influential. She only had a few minutes of screen time, but she left a deep impact, and I believe this time, even if Brooke Shields cannot get a performance award, the Razzi judges will certainly not consider her again, and I am looking forward to Brooke Shields'' performances in the future in other movies." The next morning, apanied by a slight tter of paper shuffling, Eric sat on a chair in dining room and was intently reading the fresh criticism of the movie in today''s newspaper. Then Nicole bustled around for a while, asionally putting good breakfast on the table. Soon, Drew, who was still sleepy, wore slippers and staggered into the dining room. She drew out a chair and sat down at the table, holding her chin in one hand as she squinted towards Eric to read the newspaper. "Why don''t you sleep more?" Eric asked without lifting his head. Hungry, Drew said, pulling the small basket from the centre of the table and reaching for a bagel, but she was hit by Erics newspaper: Brushed you teeth? After eating? " She squinted and looked pitiful. "Eating a.f.t.e.r. brushing," Eric stared at the girl, without any doubt, whilst waving the newspaper in his hand, ready to hit it again. "Okay, okay, really, you old-fashioned old man," Drew stood up softly and floated out. She had gone somewhat crazy at the partyst night, so that with not eating much, meant she looked ver lethargic at this time. Nicole stood in front of the kitchen counter and listened to the conversation between the two people. Her heart was slightly envious. Although the two did not have any intimate words or actions, this kind of in conversation made people feel the warmth of loved ones. Inparison, although Eric has been very polite to her, he has never treated her as his own. She had made an effort in this area, but it did not work much. Putting the cooked oatmeal onto the dining table, she began to distribute the breakfast for the two people, but after cing a bowl of porridge gently in front of Eric, she inadvertently looked up, and saw Eric slightly frowning at a newspaper. "What''s wrong?" She sat down and asked softly. Eric gently shook his head: "Nothing, it''s just a critic." Nicole looked at the newspaper in the hands of Eric that newspaper, opened her mouth and said: "Did some people criticiseRunning Out of Time?" "Well," Eric nodded and said: "It a little bewildering. This person seems to be specifically aiming for me me. I don''t even remember provoking this person." Eric said, his eyes moving down, hoping to find some authors'' information. If drafts are submitted by more famous film critics, they often attach the film critics'' information to the end of the article to make the reader feel that this person is very authoritative. "It turned out to be a full-time film critic ofPremieremagazine, who graduated from Columbia University''s journalism department," Eric whispered next to Nicole, who heard the name ofPremiereand her heart dropped: "Eric, can I have a look?" Eric handed the newspaper over, and she smashed at the author''s name. She felt a little guilty, as it was written by George Northern. "...can not understand the portrayal of the storyline, the mysterious soundtrack and the repeated meaningless shots, which patchwork of a two-hour movie. I feel that this movie is a waste of viewers time and money..." She just hurriedly sped through one of the sections, and quickly returned the newspaper, her eyes shing slightly, she understood that this article must have been produced because of herself, because George Northern wasn''t originally against Eric. The change in attitude may be due to the idental coincidences ofst night, which made the other party feel embarrassed. If she had said something to smooth things over, rather than directly reject him, it may not happened. Nicole thought so, and felt somewhat more guilty, so she cautiously asked: "Eric, this film review will not affect the box office?" "No," Eric said: "Most film reviews aren''t like this. As film keeps getting praise, even if asionally one or two criticisms jump out of the articles, it is nothing, as long as the general direction of the word of mouth is not a problem." "Oh," Nicole took a sigh of relief. Eric carefully looked at the girl''s expression: "Nic, what concerns do you have?" "No, none," Nicole shook her head and denied it. Eric did not ask further, and hurriedly turned towards the remaining newspapers and began to eat breakfast. However, George Northern did not seem to be willing to publish just one critical film review. On the second day, on the third day, and in several other newspapers he appeared again in the reviews, and his words were more intense each time. In the end, he even began to question whether the film was shot by Eric. George Northern first listed some of the usiblemonalities of Erics previous films. After all, the styles of ?17 Again?, ?Home Alone? andPretty Womanare very warm, and then had happy endings. In particr, his several films such as ?Home Alone? weren''tparable with the ck and cold style ofRunning Out of Time. Finally, the reader was given a feeling thatRunning Out of Timehad nothing to do with the previous films. Next, George Northern began toment on simr things that existed in movies made by other directors. From beginning to end, he instilled a point of view in the readers, that is, if several movies were made by one person, even if their style changed, directors can also find a lot inmon between their works. ButRunning Out of Timedid not, so George Northern boldly hinted that the film was not actually made by Eric, but by a ringer that Colombia brought in. It was a money move made under the pretence of the director of Eric Williams''s genius, and the fans were fooled. Seeing this article, Eric shook his head helplessly, and realized that the ideas were not terrible, and he was afraid of the swaying of opinion. Because the analysis of this article is too detailed, the high level of professionalism was something Eric was unable to hold a candle to. It is worthy of a student from an Ivy League school. Even Eric himself had to admit that the analysis of the other party was very reasonable. Because the influence of the newspapers that published George Northern were not bad, the ''ringer'' view ofRunning Out of Timehad had a significant impact on the public. The box office ughter in the summer catalogue was very fierce. Once there is an opportunity to crack down onpetitors, the other filmpanies will definitely be willing to push for it. So, in just a few days, the medias doubts have gradually increased, and Colombia was paying attention to this and contacted Eric to discuss emergency measures. "Perhaps, we can sue the film critic named George Northern," said one executive in the conference room. The management head of the legal department shook his head and retorted: "This method has been considered, it would be difficult to seed, and the federal court will not even ept our request for prosecution. George Northern is too savvy, his article is more like a professional essay. Its not clearly stated from beginning to end thatRunning Out of Timewas not shot by Eric. He is always hinting at it, and his suggestions are very convincing. To be honest, if I didnt see a movie before, during the filming process, I wouldn''t be able to help but believe his view." "Now, the most important thing is to make a rification. We can''t let this view continue to ferment." "This is obvious, but Its not easy to do it. You ask, how do we rify it was Eric? Is it possible to have Eric shoot live on a TV station? We also looked for some news photos from during the original shooting process, but unfortunately, we have photographs of Cruise, Hanks and even Brooke Shields but we only have a few pictures of Eric looking pitiful, which would not be very convincing." After everybody was worried for some time, because of some dys Eric finally entered the conference roomte, and in his arms he was holding a cardboard box. "Sorry, everyone, because I have to prepare these things, I had to dy." Eric sighed to the crowd and found a position to sit down. The people involuntarily turned their attention to the small box that Eric ced on the conference table. Eric noticed the doubtful eyes of the people and actively exined: "Oh, these are some videotapes. They''re Drews, who ran around the studio several times and often yed with a camera." Chapter 155 ?On July 10th, the first week ofRunning Out of Time''s box office was officially released. Although the question posed by George Northern caused a storm in the public, the reputation of theRunning Out of Timemovie itself had not been affected much. More than 70% of the film reviews had praised the film. The first week ofRunning Out of Timewas still under the pressure of ?Batman?, meaning it just won more than 27 million US dors during the three day box office weekend. For this data, Colombia''s view was mixed. They were happy because this meant that they would likely upy 40-50% of this summer catalogue week at the box office. The box office of the first seven days ofRunning Out of Timestill had the opportunity to hit the $40 million mark, although because of ?Batman?, they were sure it couldn''t catch up with the first week ofGhostbusters II''s 45 million, but this number was already enough to allow for a good night''s sleep for the senior officials of the Colombia who had been worried about theRunning Out of Timebox office. If first week reached 40 million, then the total box office had a good chance to break through 200 million US dors. Because of the precedent setGhostbusters II, Colombia was very worried that this film would follow in the footsteps ofGhostbusters II, which dropped more than 50% of it''s box office in it''s second week, and did not rebound again afterwards like ?Batman? which became a blockbuster. After the box office curve ofGhostbusters II, it was inevitable that Colombia had such concerns. Movies are like gambling, no one knows what will happen next. Therefore, when the turmoil caused by George Northern''s questioning article had just surfaced, Colombia would of course soon convene all the executives to discuss countermeasures. The consequences of such a thing are hard to predict, perhaps after people read it, they would forget after chatting a few words. But Colombia also found that many people do not want this argument to be easily overlooked by others. In just a few days, many media have begun to help fuel the mes. They would never allow theRunning Out of Time, which originally had good momentum, to be affected by this question. What''s more, Colombia has already understood Eric''s idea of ''topic marketing'', with the cement of ads in the movie and fragments of Eric''s TV series. They wanted to use these to increase hype for the movie in the second week of the box office, but for this n to be implement smoothly, they must first rify this wave of doubts, otherwise it will be difficult to predict the effect of topic marketing, as it is likely that because of the previous questioning fans might superimpose their negative ideas creating a worse situation. When a group of executives had some troubles about how to rify thatRunning Out of Timewas not a ringer''s work, the small box of video that Eric bought into the conference room made everyone shine, after ying a few videotapes. The people quickly discussed the possible countermeasures. CBS was located in a branch office building in Los Angeles. Eric was preparing for an appointment with a female host named Sophia Temple, and they would record a program called ?Sophia Talk show?. If you want to remove doubts as soon as possible, what better way than to y a videotape on the spot for more than than a million spectators on a talk show? When an executive made this suggestion, Eric first thought of the famous ?Oprah Talk show?, after all, this program is really famous, but unfortunately his thoughts were quickly dispelled. Because the airing period of the ?Oprah Talk show? was from September of each year to May of the following year, it was currently in the break period of this talk show. Moreover, even if the Oprah talk show was not on break now, it would be impossible to arrange their schedules in just a few days. As such, Colombia quickly arranged another program called ?Sophia Talk show? through their connections at the CBS TV station. This talk show is obviously imitating the ?Oprah Talk show?, but unfortunately Eric had not heard of it in his past life. Sophia Temple was a very temperamental caucasian woman, dressed in a sleek burgundy professional suit, dark blue hair, with the fringe of her nose curling upwards, Eric felt she looked quite like the Courteney Cox from his previous life''sFriends, but whilst their appearance was a bit simr, it seemed she had a little more schrly refinement than Courtney Cox. After their exchange, Eric also understood why this type of talk show was unknown in his past life. He estimated that this type of show would notst long. Because Sophia Temple''s character was very literary, and she spoke with a fair air, Eric guessed that the other party must have been born into a wealthy family and has received aplete elite education. Although this woman is very talented, her personality was somewhat conservative. Therefore, Eric felt that she was more suitable for a more serious high-end talk show, interviewing entrepreneurs, scientists or senior government officials, and was not suitable for this talk show that needed her to interact with the guests and mobilize the audience atmosphere. In contrast, Oprah, who was born at the bottom, is different. Her influence on the audience can make them distraught following a retelling of her experience being intimately harassed in childhood. Or she can make a lot of funny jokes on the spot, and make the audience burst intoughter on the spot. Eric could be sure that the conservative Sofia Temple couldn''t do this. "Ms. Temple, Mr. Williams, the scene is ready, we can start recording." A staff member opened the door to the rest room and told Eric and Sophia, who weremunicating details. Eric and Sophia left the lounge side by side and walked to the studio. "Speaking of a director, the first impression that many people have in mind is definitely an old man with a big beard, messy hair, and an entric character. But sincest year, there has been an alternative in the Hollywood director circle. He is not only young and handsome, he''s also more talented. Whats even more amazing is that this young boy has gotten a jaw-dropping box office score for several consecutive movies. Oh, I think everyone already knows who he is, then, please wee our guest today: Mr. Eric Williams!" After a skilled opening remark, following Sofia''s instructions, Eric walked in with his small box. The program crew had suggested that the box with the video tapes be ced in the scene beforehand, but Eric refused. The main reason for this program was to rify the ringer rumours, and so of course, the deeper the impression on the audience, the better. Whilst the girls under the stage screamed, Eric smiled and waved at the camera before he sat down with Sophia. "Eric, is this a gift you have prepared for everyone, do you want me to help you?" Sophia smiled and pointed to the box that Eric was holding. Not waiting for Eric to answer, the girls in the audience shouted excitedly again, and several girls couldnt help but stand up and look at the things in the box. Eric pressed his hands together slightly and then gestured to everyone to be quiet. He exined: "Sorry, everyone, I was too rushed to get presents today. As for these, they are just some videotapes. As for the content, I will be keep it for the time being. Wait a minute and I''ll give everyone a surprise." Although many people below the stage gave a disappointing sigh, they all went quiet. Sophia and Eric started going through the standard motions for talk shows, and they tried to get a little intimate. They recalled his childhood, and looked back on his past, got a taste of his present, and looked forward towards his future. Most of the questions were discussed in advance. Sophia did indeed work with Eric, so her evaluations were as conservative as before, and even the few minor surprises did not make Eric feel the slightest difficulty. After chatting about Eric''s past for more than ten minutes, the two began to turn the topic to the focus of the interview. "Eric, many people say thatpared to your first few movies, the style ofRunning Out of Timehas changed too much. What do you think of these people''s hypotheses?" Eric was staring at Sophia''s beautiful face, as he began to talk nonsense: "Actually, to be honest, there were many circumstantial factors in the making of my first few movies. At that time my father had just died suddenly, I had dropped out of school and began working in a small restaurant, but that was not the life I wanted. I was very interested in movies since I was a child. So I wrote the script ?17 Again? and ?17 Again? was what prepared me for work in Hollywood. ?Home Alone? was inspired one time when I had chatted with Stuart. The little guy came to my house one night, when I was filming ?17 Again?, and Stuart asked me if he could also get to make a movie, and I said yes, so ?Home Alone? appeared. And the script ofPretty Womanalso has circumstances. So, Running Out of Timewas a movie that I had truly wanted to shoot for a while. I had the idea of ??making the movie a long time ago. For this reason, I even went to Mr. Hanks before the filming ofPretty Womanand gave him an invitation" "Oh, so then you felt licensed to treat your first few movies lightly. If you told that to many Hollywood directors, they would be heartbroken!" Sophia asked as the her voice intonated somewhat mischievously and the audience once again rang out withughter, if Eric really casually made a few box-office movies, it could be estimated that many Hollywood directors who have struggled for many years to make movies would hit a wall. Eric quickly smiled and denied: "Of course not. For every movie I have done before, I tried hard to do it. I think that for people needing to get achievements, it''s very important that even if you are not very interested, you still try to do well. Sophia nodded thoughtfully: Eric, we know you are still young, but with your achievements, you will definitely not stop making movies. As you wont have too many constraints or restrictions, does that mean that your future movies will be in the style asRunning Out of Time?" "No, I prefer to try new things, so in my future movies there will definitely be many kinds of things, and I don''t want to bebeled as only a film director at such a young age." "But I have heard a viewpoint in the past few days, that is, even with those excellent directors, their movies always have certain simr factors, but some newspapers have analyzed thatRunning Out of Timehas nothing inmon with your first few movies, it''s just like... its like two different shoots from the same person." Sophia stared at Eric, and raised this rtively divisive topic. The audience at the scene immediately became breathless. In fact, many people had already guessed the reason why Eric came to participate in this talk show, so they were very curious at how Eric would defend himself. Chapter 156 ?"Actually, I am very helpless against this kind of questioning, because my age isrge weak point. There are very few directors under the age of 30 in Hollywood, let alone me who is under twenty years old." Eric said: "Though I don''t need to respond to this kind of questioning. After all, reality will be the best counter-attack weapon, but with the growth of this viewpoint, I feel that even if I ignore the irresponsible usations of the media, I should at least give an ount to the fans who have always supported my films. Just because of some coincidental factors, some videos of the filming process ofRunning Out of Time have been preserved. Here, these are the videotapes." Eric said as he took out more than ten cassettes from the small box and stacked them between himself and Sofia. "Wow, is this... shooting footage?" Sophia asked. Eric shook his head: "No, in brief, I won''t appear in the camera. These are some trivialities that were recorded with an extra camera within theRunning Out of Timestudio." "You mean a documentary of theRunning Out of Timeproduction process, taken from a third-party perspective, was allowed during the filmmaking process?" Ericughed. "In general, this is not allowed because the movie content needs to be absolutely confidential, but the person who photographed these videos is quite special. I believe she will not disclose the content whatever other people say to her. It is because of this original tolerance that I now have the opportunity to prove my innocence." Eric said that as audience under the stage stretched their necks and widened their eyes. Several fans also whispered to urge Eric and Sophia to y the video''s content. "Well, as everyone can''t wait, let''s take a look." Sophia did not tease the audience too much, then seemingly randomly picking out a videotape and stuffing it into the already prepared projector. Later, two people began to appear with some swaying of the picture on the big screen. It seemed that the person who operated the camera was still very unskilled. After a while, the picture slowly stabilised, and a girls slightly sloppy voice resounded from the picture: "Allen, give me a camera with good sound, or I will recon with you when I get there." The person responded with a touch of helplessness: "Okay, your Royal Highness." The audience smiled andughed. Many people thought that the girls voice should be Drew Barrymore''s, who is closely rted to Eric. Thinking of what Eric had just said, it was true that only this girl could be so unscrupulous in the studio, if other people dared to y in the movie studio, they would definitely be chased out . On the big screen, the picture began to move. Many people recognized that this should be arge studio. Looking at the full-scale street and house model in the picture, the audience gave a faint exim. Now, there''s still more than ten years until the development ofworks, where many things can be found as pictures or videos on the Inte. Although Americans often watch movies, they don''t know much about the specific process of film production. Arge-scale studio with this kind of full-scale model has never seen it before, so it is not surprising. Apanied by some noise, the person who was holding the camera quickly entered a room. Eric, wearing a military green director''s vest, appeared in front of the camera. In the picture, Eric waved a hand to Hanks to exin errors in the just recorded cut. After that, Eric stopped his conversation with Hanks, smiled and reached over to the camera, seemingly knocked on someone''s head, while a girl screamed in pain theughter of some people around him rang out. "Hey, Drew, that Sony professional camera is worth $128,000. If you identally broke it, I can only sell you to Colombia to pay off the debt withbour." Eric knocked on Drew''s head and said. The camera swayed for a short time, and Drews madness sounded: Wow, your annoying, how many times have I said, dont knock my head. Eric waved towards the camera as if it were a cat or a puppy. Saying: "Go on, run along now, we must start shooting." As the camera receded, Eric directed the crew to start shooting, and many of the staff behind the camera began to move. Hanks and some other actors began to leave their seats, and one of the stagehands went forward and was about to sound the pperboard. At this point, Sophia pressed the stop button in a timely manner and exined to the audience: "Sorry, the next scene will involve the content of the movie, so we have to stop." Although it was only a minute or two, the audience had been watching with great interest and when Sofia stopped ying, and many people sighed with regret. "Eric, I''ve started to be more curious about a different issue. I believe that the audience with us in the studio is also very curious about this problem." Sophia did not immediately start ying other videotapes, but insteadplied with public opinion and asked about many people''s doubts: "Although it just a few minutes of screen time, we all saw your love for Miss Barrymore. The camera was worth more than 100,000 US dors and you let her y with it like a toy. What is your rtionship with Drew?" Eric hesitated for a moment, sorted out his thoughts, and said: "How do I say it... I met Drew when I was filming ?17 Again?, and soon I fell in love with that little girl..." When he saw that some people were preparing to create a disturbance, Eric beckoned with the hand to prevent it and said hastily: "Don''t misunderstand, it''s definitely not the kind of thing you imagine. I just think of Drew as my sister. Drew was infected with some bad ... habits, although she had been to a few treatment clinics, but their effects were not very good, her mother was useless, I couldn''t bear the fact that a girl with the potential of Drew was gradually sinking down, so I talked to her mother under on impulse, and asked her to let Drew move to live with me, so I could supervise her to help her get rid of these bad habits, Ms. Barrymore agreed after considering, so there is now this situation everyone can see. Maybe I hit it off well with Drew. In short, she listened to me. Therefore, she haspletely changed her bad habits. She is currently attending a girls school. I hope she I can sessfully graduate from high school, and when she is an adult, she can freely choose her own path." Eric felt no psychological pressure from this nonsense. As an insider, he has long understood that these so-called interviews are a kind of show, and they too had to achieve their goals. After the stars in his previous life had been interviewed, some had even divorced after realising all kinds of broken things. It''s good to take a serious attitude to such programs, some stars talk about their inspirational stories or a silly love experience or a blood boiling story fully of tears. Of course, although he doesn''t think so in his heart, Eric is still creating lots of drama. He was embarrassed as he said these worse sincerely, as if he was the angel sent by God to save the lost girl. Sophia also showed a moved look, as for whether it was real or not Eric did not know. "So, let''s hope that Miss Barrymore will once again be on the big screen and bring us excellent works. Now, let''s see what else is shown on some of the other videotapes." Sophia said, and chose a predetermined one. A video tape was ced in the yer. The camera was still a little shaky. This scene was no longer the studio, but a blocked off street. There were many police cars parked around it. There were also many cameras and boom mics, as well as staff in groups of three or four chatting in the picture. Some had raised their heads and were drinking water, and others were leaning on the door of the car and letting the wind run through their hands. It could be guessed that the crew was temporarily resting. The voice-over sounded again: "Hello everyone, I am a reporter for ABC television, Drew Barrymore, and I heard that there was a bank robbery here, let us interview themander-in-chief, Mr. Eric Williams." The camera slowly closed in on Eric, who wore sunsses and a baseball cap, the girl seemed to say something, and then a furry extrarge radio microphone slowly appeared in front of the camera and moved towards Eric. It identally poked Eric''s nose. It looked funny. A wronged female voice rang: "Director, I was forced, don''t me me." Eric and Sophia saw this picture andughed. The audience in the studio was even more caught up in it. In the picture, Eric took off his sunsses and looked helplessly at the camera, with a look of helplessness. "Mr. Williams, I heard that there was a bank robbery here. How is the situation now, can you exin it to everyone?" Drew asked seriously. "Well," Eric pushed the radio microphone away from his face, and saidzily: "We have already controlled the situation. Miss reporter, you see, there were two robbers there and a special team, and they yed poker. The atmosphere was peaceful and harmonious, but the negotiator Hanks was not really just chatting with the inclothes policeman. He was actually testing the other side. We have already learned that the inclothes are like ghosts and are ready and waiting. In preparation to carry out the arrests such that they work, the police chief, Mr. Joe Pesci, left the emergency in an emergency and will note back in an hour. I am sure that the hostages will still be alive... Erics funny words once again got a sneer from the audience. After the yback of this dialogue, Sophia smiled and selected a few boxes of video tapes to y quickly, between which there was a conversation between two and interaction with the audience, unknowingly, because some scenes required multiple recordings, only 40-minutes of talk show took more than two hours to be recorded. Chapter 157 On Wednesday, the quickly produced new issue of the ?Sophia Talk show? was officially aired on CBS. The original guest of this issue was a famous rugby yer. Many rugby fans sat in front of the TV and waited for the idol to appear. When it was discovered that the guest was reced by the young director Eric Williams, some hardcore fans called the TV station and questioned them. But most TV viewers are not so picky, and they were pleasantly surprised. After all, Eric''s current influence was notparable to a rugby yer. "Wow, I can''t help but think of the gun battle. It was so cool." ...... "Eric Williams''s jokes are really funny. The robbers are ying poker with SWAT members, haha..." ...... STOLEN FROM FIZZHAZ "Drew Barrymore has never been seen, since the ?17 Again?, the media has not even had her news recently." ...... "Eric is really scary when he is angry, he doesn''t look like the same person at all. Its not surprising as he''s so young, and he wants his older employees to be obedient , hes not guilty. ... Such talk appeared in front of the TV sets in tens of thousands of households, the proportion of teenagers in front of the TV had increased greatly due to it being summer holiday, and Erics influence among teenagers is estimated to be higher than that of ordinary idol stars. After all, as peers, if they were within 100 metres, it might cause all kinds of envy and hatred, but as their distance exceeded 10,000 meters, what he mostly received was worship. Therefore, many young people saw Eric''s rare presence on the TV set, and they couldn''t help but share their starstruck emotions by calling their ssmates to remind them to watch the show. The influence of ?Sophia Talk show? was far from beingparable to the ?Oprah Talk show?, which has only been around for a few years, but already had an average of more than 11 million viewers per episode, and had an upwards trend. The ?Sophia Talk show? had an average rating of only about 4 million. At the beginning of the program, the viewing data was at only 4.2 million, but as the program was broadcast, the viewing curve soared. After the 40-minute program was broadcast, the number of viewers stopped at 7.5 million , almost double. After the program waspleted, the phone hotline of CBS TV was sted. "If you promoted it one week in advance, the program''s ratings would have definitely exceeded 10 million." After seeing the ratings statistics, a senior executive of CBS said with some regrets. More than 70% of the audience''s hotline calls were expecting the show to be reyed as soon as possible, while other chaotic reasons ounted for the 30%. Some hope that theRunning Out of Timecrew could go on the show together, and some people hope to see Drew and Eric appear on screen together, and arge number of people asked if the video tapes in Eric''s hands would be released to the market. CBS organized the feedback from the audience into a document and transferred it to Colombia and Firefly Studios. At the same time, it also responded to the public opinion by sending an invitation to Eric, Drew andRunning Out of Time. Colombia Corporation was very moved, after all, this could be good propaganda for the film, but this was rejected by Eric and others. If it weren''t for rifying the rumors, Eric would never have appeared on the talk show, Eric refused, and Drew would definitely not go. The agents of Cruise and Hanks also felt that the influence of this program was a little small and did not match the identity level of the two superstars. However, Brooke Shields was somewhat moved, asRunning Out of Timebrought her very good turning point in her carrier, but CBS, which was rejected by Eric and the two Toms, was not interested. The other big stars were not on, and whilst Brook was invited she had little hype. After all, Brooke Shields only yed in theRunning Out of Timefor a few minutes, so although the influence of the ?Sophia Talk show? was far less than the ?Oprah Show?, CBS was still a national TV station, and they were not yet at the point of needing to take whatever they were given. Although the invitation was rejected, CBS quickly came up with a way to maximize the benefits. When Eric participated in the recording of the program they umted more than two hours of material, whilst the talk show was only forty minutes long. As a result, CBS re-edited the two hours of material into a first and second episode, which were yed during the next two days, because of the short-term publicity advertising that night, the next day the audience ratings of the re-edited episode reached 9 million, and when thest episode was yed on Friday, the ratings directly rose by tens of thousands of people, and even reached 12 million at the peak. A daytime program that has a rating of 10 million, can be treated by the ace program. The ?Oprah Talk Show? was the result of more than 20 years of glorious build up. READ FOR FREE AT FIZZHAZ TRANSLATES - WHO ACTUALLY TRANSLATES THIS (ALBIET BADLY!) In order to capitalise on the the results, CBS directly gave up on several programs that had already been produced, and spent a lot of money to invite other more famous guests to try to create a talk show that rivals ?Oprah Show?. But in the end, they can only be disappointed. As Eric first judged, the biggest problem with this program was the host Sophia Temple. It was not that the she was good enough, but that character of Sophia Temple was not suitable for hosting talk shows. TN: ??? Therefore, after the second week, the ratings of this talk show experienced a magically high peak. Although as audience was changed, the ratings slowly fell. In the end, CBS could only give up the effort. The episodes of the show Eric participated in became an insurmountable peak of the talk show until the show was axed by CBS. Sophia Temple moved from one show to the next but the ratings never reached that level. Naturally, these were all things that would be talked aboutter. The storm caused by the ''ringer'' question forRunning Out of Timedisappeared quickly after the CBS talk show. After all, after the talk show was aired, especially the two re-edited episodes, in which show had more than 20 minutes of video, from where Eric was at the scene, with the actors, that detailed the shooting process. All affairs big and smaller were ce in front of the audience, and the big scenes such as blockades that appeared from time to time also shoed everyone that there was no possibility of forgery on the videotape, so the question was now purely a test of the IQ of the audience. As for George Northern, after the ?Sophia Talk show? was broadcast, he had note out again because Columbia Pictures had directly pressured Premiere magazine and forced them to fire him, after all, George Northern''s article almost caused an incalcble loss for Colombia. If Colombia did nothing, they would appear too easy to bully. Although other major filmpanies secretly apuded George Northern''s article attacking Colombia, they did not want it to be their turn in the future, so George Northern was cklisted as a film critic by the six major film studios. Chapter 158 ?In this era, a film critics ie mainlyes from two aspects: the public rtions fee of the filmpany and the publication fee of the film magazine. Of course, the top film critics will have other types of ie, such as publishing books or hosting TV programs. George Northern was obviously not a top-notch critic, orPremieremagazine would not have easily dismissed George Northern after being pressured by Colombia. Because of the cklist, when a filmpany was about to release new movies, George Northern would not receive a penny of public rtions fees, and wouldn''t even receive an invitation to a movie screening or the premiere . If you can''t participate in an early screening or the premiere, you won''t be able to get the first-hand viewing information ahead of the average audience. The newspapers and magazines are not as enthusiastic about the film reviews for movies that have already been released, so the revenue of the film review fee will be greatly reduced. For both reasons, the lost ie exceeds 80% of the original ie. Therefore, being cklisted by the six major filmpanies means that George Northern can no longer stay in the circle of film critics, and the fame that he had spent years building in the circle had also vanished. In fact, as a old-timer, George Northern also knows the rules of the game in the circle. Many lines cannot be crossed. Therefore, he has never done anything extraordinary before. After years of hard work, he had a lot of fame in the industry, and his annual ie had reached an enviable six-figures. Perhaps it was because of these many years of glory that George Northern was somewhat self-righteous and forgot his role, so he published several articles mmingRunning Out of Timein session. It was originally just because he felt that he was teased by Nicole. He wanted to blow off some steam and vent his anger. He didnt think that he had underestimated the ''influence'' of these professional article. He waited too long to curb his scalding and directly ruined his own career. After the end of the first week, perhaps because of the turmoil, or maybe because Eric went on the ?Sophia Talk show? to promote the movie, in the first working week,Running Out of Timeearned more than 16 million at the box office, so the total box office in the first week reached more than 43 million, which was at least three million more than the estimation of Colombia for the first weekend of the box office. This data gave Colombia confidence. At the same time, with the rification of theRunning Out of Timeringer question, the pre-determined ''topic marketing'' advertising also started, the event opened in several entertainment newspapers and fiercely attacked the embedded advertisements inRunning Out of Time. "More than 30 imnted ads, are we really watching a movie?" "These advertisements are entering hot water, we are not looking at ''dark wars'', it is ''advertising wars''" TN: "Dark war" ==Running Out of Timeso it''s a pun. "Eric Williams is starting down a road of no return with advertising!" A series of very eye-catching headlines which directly pushed the topic ofRunning Out of Timeto the cusp with the turmoil. The public opinion of the media was once again stunned after a storm of questions. Colombia also began to vigorously fight before otherpetitors could react. They manipted the direction of public opinion, turning most of the mediasments on this matter into teases rather than attacks. Soon, theLos Angeles Timespublished an audience survey report, which was prepared in advance by Colombia. The sample included those who had juste out from theRunning Out of Timetheatres. The content was about the audience''s opinion of the advertisement inRunning Out of Time. Among the survey of 1,000 random people, 76% of the audience did not feel the existence of advertisements in the movie, 15% felt the existence of advertisements, but did not care much, 7% of the audience expressed some concern about the advertisements, but only 2% felt that the choice of advertisements was annoying. In order to ensure their credibility, theLos Angeles Timesalso published photos of a peer-check for the surveyyout. This report set the tone for theRunning Out of Timeimnted advertising topic. Whenever this matter was mentioned, many people felt that most others didn''t even feel the existence of advertisements. In addition, Columbia published some articles ridiculing others for their previous ringer articles, and the public''s train of thought begun to be manipted. Immediately, Colombia also began to stand up and rify that there were indeed some advertisements in the film, but that it was not as exaggerated as told by the ''irresponsible'' media. Colombia also mentioned the ''ringer'' question storm that had just happened, and dais that these were malicious attacks onRunning Out of Timebypetitors. As the guidance of public opinion continued, more and more people began to be curious about what ads were inRunning Out of Timebecause as the survey showed, when arge number of people first watched the movie, they didn''t even realize the existence of advertising in Running Out of Time. When Colombiaspetitors reacted and began to manipte their own media to reverse the public opinion and lead the public to dislike the advertisements inRunning Out of Time, Colombia directly dropped another bomb. On the second weekend of the movie, early Saturday morning, several newspapers, including theLos Angeles Times,The New York Times, and ?The Washington Post?, published a statement from the Columbiapany. "Although ording to the survey, the advertisements in theRunning Out of Timedid not affect the movie-going experience of the majority of fans, but in order to thank the fans for their support, after the film production and distribution finishes, we have decided that the $2 million in advertising fees received will be returned to the fans. From the date of this announcement, the audience can send in letters with their guesses as to what the advertisements are to the following address. 200 lucky viewers will be selected, each winning $10,000 in cash." Subsequently, the statement had the address, the deadline and that the would be only one letter per SSN, and that repeated entries would be invalid. For a moment, the entire American media was once again stunned. Even a lot of spectators couldnt help but react. This was tant hype mongering. But even if one knew this, you can''t stop the enthusiasm of many of the viewers. After all, it was currently thete 1980s. For many American families, $10,000 is a huge sum. Anyway, during the holiday period, everyone had the habit of watching movies. If you watched the movie, and you took a few dozen cents to get an envelope and mail your guesses, you might get a $10,000 prize. Why not? Moreover, the number of winners, 200 people, seems to be quite high. On the second day after the announcement, many movie theatres that screened Running Out of Timewere packed to the brim. On the day of the announcement,Running Out of Timereceived a $13 million box office that same day, and then box office on Sunday also reached 11 million, so including Friday''s 8 million US dors, the box office ofRunning Out of Timereached 32 million for the second three day weekend, miraculously achieving nearly 20% of the box office in thepetitive summer catalogue. It is also the only movie in this summer catalogue that has a box office rebound. After thest day of the second week,Running Out of Timeonce again reached more than 49 million at the box office, so the total box office had reached 92 million. Inparison the five-week old showGhostbusters II, whose the box office had begun to weaken, only had a box office of 90 million US dors total, and ?Batman? was affected by theRunning Out of Timetrend, as it''s fourth week''s box office fell 44% again, only reaching 16 million US dors, so although the cumtive box office had reached 168 million, if the box office once again showed a drop of about 40%, the box office of ?Batman? can only be expected to rise by about another 10 million. That withRunning Out of Time''s current box office trend of tens of millions in box office revenue per week that may stillst three to four weeks, means that the final champion of the summer catalog''s box office is really hard to say. This result has made many filmpanies a little scared. Even many of Columbias executives felt a sense of giddy happiness sorge that it was hard to adapt. Columbias stock was rising again, with the total market value breaking through $4.5 billion after a few weeks. After, Sony, which had already reached an initial agreement, be anxious. It was originally nned toplete the acquisition at the end of September, but the head of Sony had made several requests, hoping to sign a final agreement in August. At that time, ifRunning Out of Timehas overtaken ?Batman? to win the summer box office, the rise in the stock price will definitely not stop. When the third week ofRunning Out of Timebox office fell 26%, still earning more than 38 million at the box office, the puzzled media can only attribute this to the masses'' desire for hope. Although many filmpanies also want to learn from the lottery method used by Colombia for publicity, it was a pity that the releases of the summer movies had ended. TheRunning Out of Timecan be said to be thest of the wave of big production movies, which was released earlier. There is not much meaning in such advertising for a smaller film. The films released afterRunning Out of Timewere not too optimistic about the moneying into the market at the end of the summer, so other filmpanies simply did not dare to put out 2 million, even if it were 1 million, there were very fewpanies are willing to spend it. After all, this risk was too great. Even if a movie gets a 100 million box office, after the theatre''s cut is removed, the remaining half will need to be divided between investors, producers, and issuers. Finally, after paying taxes, profits are usually only in the millions. Having a share of hundreds of millions Like Eric from ?Home Alone? is unique in the circle. Even if it is series currently recognized as the most profitable, "Star Wars", Lucas can''t get such a high profit from only the box office. This time, Colombia used the method of spection over insert advertisements to achieve a major reversal at the box office, and it was also destined to be a ssic marketing case studied by major filmpanies. Eric was not worried about this way being learned, because this operation is a new type of attack, and to put it bluntly, the audience will only feel that imnt advertisements are new and interesting once or twice. Once it is used a few times, the audience will definitely produce an ''I am watching the movie for entertainment, not the advertising'' viewpoint, so doing morepetitions would trigger reverse psychology and only be counterproductive. Chapter 159 ?"Eric, you see, I can guess to, right?" In the study, Drew, who was writing and drawing on arge executive chair, took a notebook full of advertiser''s names and ran to Eric. Eric looked away from the monitor, turned his head and looked at her. He shook his head directly: "Why are you asking this? Do you want to participate in the lucky draw?" "Can''t I? That''s $10,000," Drew took back her notebook. Her pen bounced off her chin for a while, then lowered she lowered her head and stopped: "What''s wrong this time?" "Oh, that''s not it," Eric looked again at the helplessly growing pile of documents in front of him on the desk. He gave a few sheets of paper to the girl: "Take these, don''t bother me any more." "I don''t want them, I have to guess them all by my own strength," Drew nced at them, immediately refused, and her two legs dug into the floor, pushing the swivel chair to move a little further, as if the papers that were close to her would tarnish her character. Eric shrugged and turned his eyes to the text on the disy again. He tapped the keyboard and said: "Then you can''t ask this knowledgeable person, that wouldn''t be your own strength." "Of course, you are also a kind of my personal strength." Drew said this, and changed her guesses a few times, Eric couldn''t help but directly pointed out her biggest mistake: "Hey, the TV series imnt is not counted as an advertisement, change it to Canon camera on this line." "Wow, how can you do this, I wanted to guess a few more times!" Drew opened her mouth and bit Eric, but she would not have found this otherwise. The mistake was changed. She always thought that the scenes ofFriendsshould also be regarded as an imnt advertisement. In fact, many people had the same idea. BecauseFriendswas also part of the hype, so like many fans, Drew naturally ced theFriendsscene as an imnted advertisement, and Colombia did not explicitly make a statement, letting the public specte. After a while, a soft little body fell onto Eric, the two soft masses on his back and the faint smell of the girl made Eric feel a little worried. "Drew, don''t make trouble, let me leave and sit on the office chair. It''s quite ufortable sitting on this stool." Eric shook his shoulder and wanted to get rid of the girl. Drew was holding the Eric''s neck like a precious candy: "Eric, I thought of a good idea to make money." "Howe you suddenly became interested in making money?" Eric threw off Drew''s arms to remove her. "I am envious," Drew followed Eric''s big hands and moved off Eric''s back, but she turned to Eric''s thigh and sat down without saying anything. What can there be for you to envy?," Eric gently hugged the girl''s waist andforted her. He understood that Drew was stimted by his split of the two films, ?Home Alone? andPretty Woman. But in fact Eric did not have the 200 million USD cash like the media boasted, although his share of ?Home Alone? had already entered Erics ount in early July, he had to repay two bank loans of $50 million so Eric has only 20 million US dors left. This money must then be divided between the actors of ?Home Alone?. ording to the contract signed at the beginning, only Stewart Runkle got as much as $3 million. But for other actors he could not be too harsh, so final estimates show that Eric had not much left. And because of Pretty Woman''s proportion of 35% in North America and 10% in overseas, Eric will also get a share of up to 105 million from this. However, Colombia had settled his share for ?Home Alone? about a month early, in order to obtain a promise for theRunning Out of Timemovie project from Eric. But Eric and Fox don''t have this kind of agreement, so everything has to be in ordance with the rules. With Eric''s current strengths, Fox has a good rtionship with Eric, so although they will not act maliciously, it could be considered good if he saw the money in three months. AlthoughPretty Womanhad been out of cinemas for a month now, Eric had not yet even got a cent. Right now, looking at the girl who seemed to be a little depressed in his arms, Eric didn''t expect that the little girl who had always been mindless would also have this kind of little emotion, and it felt ... very fresh. Drew fiddled with the pen in her hand and murmured: "That is more than 200 million. I don''t know if I can earn 200 million in my life." "Forget that, don''t say that, did you not just say you had a great idea for making money, let me help you with your staff." Drew immediately felt a little spirit, and said whilst gesturing with a finger, "This is the case, Eric, after the "Sophia talk show", many viewers called with hope that those video tapes will be avable for sale. I think this is a good opportunity. I heard that many video tapes can sell tens of millions of boxes now. We can sell one million boxes at a price of 30 dors. That is 30 million. Even after the costs, you can make a lot of money." Eric didn''t rush to break the little girl''s dream of making a fortune, but asked: "Okay, then, I want to ask you, who earns the money?" "Of course it is mine, the video was taken with my hard efforts," said Drew of herself, with a little embarrassment. She spit out her tongue: "At worst I have to give Colombia some and that''s the end, you will certainly not want some too right?" "It''s not going to work," Eric said, he felt a bit ufortable, so he let go of the girl, kicked the stool aside, pulled thefortable leather swivel chair over and sit down, he then readily embrace the girl again and exin: "You have forgotten the most important point, the content of the videotape." "Hmm?" The girl blinked in confusion. Eric carefully exined: "I want to talk about the contents of the videotape. You also shot the big stars like Cruise and Hanks. There are also a lot of extras or crew members. The people in it aren''t given a penny to appear. If you just record it, or y it for publicity like a talk show, then that''s ok. However if you want to make a profit, you have to get everyone in the video to agree, otherwise, you will be waiting for prosecution in the future, even if you can earn 100 million, it is not enough. If you wanted to get the authorization of so many people, it is moreplicated than shooting a big movie." "Wow, Soplicated, then forget it," Drew lost her spirit and put her head on Eric''s chest. Eric patted the girl on the back: "It''s okay, don''t be depressed. It''s mainly a matter for us men to make money. You just have to dress up yourself beautifully. It''s not too early, either. Go back to sleep, let me quietly write a script for a while." TN: Author not me okay... "But I want to make money, summer vacation is still so long, and very boring, Eric, how about you let me make a movie? It can be anything so long at it''s not stupid." Drew was getting tired whilst on Eric, and her little ws scratched Eric''s chest. "Okay, let me think hard about this for a bit..." Eric rubbed his temples and seeing the script of ?Sleepless in Seattle?, on the table, suddenly remembered something. Chapter 160 It should have been during a chat with a friend in his past life. At that time, the movieFinding Mr. Rightjust started screening. The two chatted about the movie at random, and finally began to trace back what they had said. And they realised that many movies such as Grey Gardens, ?Sleepless in Seattle?,Love Storyand so on were all inspired by Cary Grant and Deborah Kerrs famous ?An Affair to Remember?. Of course, this was not the point. Eric remembered that the friend had identally mentioned one sentence. It seemed that because of the poprity of ?Sleepless in Seattle?, the video tapes of ?An Affair to Remember? became hot and sold out in a short time. It had sold 2 million boxes, which was an unexpected windfall for the film studio with the copyrighted. ?An Affair to Remember? is already a 40 year old movie. Although the two leads were Hollywood stars at the time, their time had passed long ago, and this movie was not as infinite as movies like 007. There was nomercial value in shooting a sequel, so maybe one or two million can buy out all the copyright of this movie. Moreover, Eric knew that when he filmed ?Sleepless in Seattle? he would definitely need authorization from the copyright property holder of ?Sleepless in Seattle?. After the other party knew about this, it is difficult to guarantee that he would be able to get a good starting price, but it is better now, so he should buy all the copyrights. Seeing Eric thinking of something with a slightly excited expression, Drew who couldnt endure her temper, scratched Erics chest and hurriedly asked: Eric, is there any good movie for me, lets talk about it." "There is no movie, but if you want to make a fortune, there is a good chance," Eric picked up a pen and wrote the movie title of ?An Affair to Remember? on paper: "Do you know this movie?" Drew nced with her eyes and shook her head very earnestly: "I don''t know." Eric could only patiently exin; "Do you remember what I told you about my next movie?" Drew looked outside the stud to the location of Nicoles room with puckered lips: Of course. "In the setting of the movie, the heroine Annie is very fond of watching ?An Affair to Remember?. I think that after ?Sleepless in Seattle? is released, the sales volume of ?An Affair to Remember? will definitely increase, so you if want to make money, you can take advantage of your vacation time, trying to buy this film''s copyright, as it is a forty years old movie, and for old movies, as long as the price is right, the film studio will be very willing to sell. " Drew had blind trust in Eric. If Eric said this to other people, one could guess that the other party will doubt it, but Drew has no doubts in this regard, but she asked: "But, after I have bought it. How do I sell the videotapes?" "Fireflies have recently begun to build their own distribution channels, including video tape channels," Eric said, remembering ?Home Alone? and the three movie contracts signed with Fox with a hint of helplessness and regret. At the beginning, he was so isted and hadn''t made his debut, so he hadn''t considered and understood everything. Therefore, when signing the agreement, the film and videotape rights of the movie and the TV broadcast rights were handed over to the Fox agent. Fireflies could only get their dividends. It looked good, after all, many of the films produced by the independent film studios had no rights for their movie at all. They are usually bought at a price, but he could still enjoy a split. Butpared to distributing it themselves, giving Fox power of attorney and losing a big ie was still a loss. After all, after the release process, the film''s fame and reputation have been determined. If you can have your own video distribution channel, then even if it is not asprehensive as a bigpany, you can still get a profit by taking the biggest slice of the cake. Moreover, through this period of time, he learned that smallpanies with publishing capabilities, even if they hand over the distribution rights of their films to those movie giants, usually do not transfer the surrounding copyrights such as videotapes and other peripheral copyrights. The proportion that these made of the total movie revenue was getting bigger and bigger. The ie of these peripheral copyrights is likely to be an important source of funds for the second- and third-tier movie studios. If those second- and third-tier movie studios have obtained good industry connections, every year the peripheral benefits can support the day-to-day operations of the filmpany, without the need to repeatedly draw money from box office receipts or investors, so as long as there is no huge investment losses, these filmpanies can survive. Therefore, Eric was also eager to establish its own distribution channel as soon as possible. For his next the three films ?The Others?,Scent of a WomanandSteel Magnoliasas well as Friends, he would definitely not let the copyright go again. "But, Eric, I have no money." Drews eyes red at Eric. Eric couldn''t help but pinch the white and tender face of the girl: "You might not have a card but you should still have some for..." Eric spoke up to here, but then remembering that Westerners have no dowry, his argument can only be changed: "some pocket money I owe you." "Then I will do it," Drew wed at his face and licked it. She was going to smash into Eric''s lips, but whist she found a big hand waiting for her, she still didn''t mind sticking out her small tongue and licking Eric''s palm. "You must have been a cat in your past life, licking with such little control." Eric took the girl off hisp: "Okay, now that something has to be done, and you have money to do it, you can go to sleep." "Eric, you haven''t slept with me for a long time," said Drew with a look of resentment. "I am aw-abiding citizen," Eric said with a look of ''disgust'' and nodded his head toward the door. "And there are outsiders here." Drew heard the word ''outsider'' and seemed to be very happy, so she was willing to leave after kissing Erics face forcibly. Eric looked at the closed study door and smiled and shook his head. He turned his attention to the disy and began finishing off theFriendsscript. Barry Diller had called Eric to urge him to attend to theFriends filming process personally, although US dramas are broadcast while shooting andFriendsis no exception, it was now almost August, and the TV series starts in September, so Eric only had one month left. "Eric, this is today''s newspaper," the next morning, Eric routinely took a shower and returned to the living room. Nicole thoughtfully ced the newspaper on the coffee table in front of Eric. "Thank you, Nicole." Eric relished with interest the girl''s new pink maid costume, and then took the newspaper and looked down. Nicole returned to the kitchen again. A momentter, Eric saw the name of a movie in the newspaper. The film was also released by Colombia. He didn''t expect the result to be good. Moreover, it was calledWhen Harry Met Sally the starring role was taken by Oscar winner Billy Chris and Meg Ryan, the original female lead of ?Sleepless in Seattle?. Eric still liked this actress who was very sweet, but it seemed that her route to stardom was very tough. When ite down to it, it could be considered that this sweetheart''s selections were very bad, doing very poorlypared to her two sessful films. The films were both in cooperation with Tom Hanks, one was ?Sleepless in Seattle? and the other wasYou''ve Got Maila few yearster. Nothing else was outstanding. The reason why it was said that her eyes were not very good was because she had passed by a couple big movies, it seems very magical, since the 1990s, she had refused Pretty Woman, ?Ghost?, and ?Basic Instinct? one by one. She even let Sharon Stone, a nameless nobody, kickstart her carrier, but going into the new century, in order to transform her image, but also wanting to imitate the sess of ?Basic Instinct?, she participated in a simr movie In the Cut, but unfortunately this movie did not have luck as good as ?Basic Instinct? that year, and the movie was written off. Looking at the box office data ofWhen Harry Met Sallyin the newspaper, it could be estimated that this sweetheart would be a little bit hot. Because of Erics actions, the history of Hollywood had already experienced a great deviation. He hoped that this sweetheart would not be as unlucky in this time and space. "Nicole, can youe over?" Eric looked atWhen Harry Met Sallyon the newspaper and he remembered an image of the person from ?Sleepless in Seattle? and shouted to the busy girl in the kitchen. "Is there anything I can do?" Nicole walked out quickly, holding a small shovel in her hand. "That... forget it, you are busy right now, we''ll have breakfast and talk." "Oh," the girl turned around confused and walked back. At the dining table, Drew snorted and ate the breakfast quickly, took a paper towel and wiped her mouth, then hurriedly got up and wanted to go outside. "Come back, sit down and, drink the milk," Eric pointed at the milk that she had left most of in the cup and nced at the girl: "You aren''t rushing rushing back to Mars, so there''s no hurry." TN: Idiom probably She reluctantly sat back in the chair and exined: "I am going to find someone to buy the copyright of the movie." "Wait and finish your breakfast," Eric ignored Drew''s exnation and repeated. "Snort," Drew took her fingers and pinched her nose, took the milk, and then poured it down her throat. " "Was it that good!? You drank it quickly." "Hateful," Drew took a paper towel. She wiped her mouth and went out of the dining room door. She suddenly turned around and nced at Nicole. Then she turned her eyes to Eric. "When I am not at home, you two are not allowed to mess around." Chapter 161 ?"Eric, what do you want to say to me?" Nicole washed the tableware back to the living room and found that Eric did not go to thepany as usual, but still sat in the living room reading the newspaper, the girl was cleverly aware that he was waiting for herself. Eric hinted that she should sit down opposite, and said: "?Sleepless in Seattle? is expected to begin filming in early September, and I recently began to have a little spare time, so I think we should talk about things in the movie." She just nodded and looked at Eric waiting for him to continue. "It has been two months, so I think you should have alreadymitted the script of ?Sleepless in Seattle? to memory. Let''s talk about your understanding of the heroine." Eric put the newspaper back on the coffee table and rxed. He looked up at Nicole, and asked a question that would normally be asked during an audition. During that two months, Nicole had indeed remembered her lines from ?Sleepless in Seattle? and hearing Eric''s problems, she just thought a little and answered: "I think, Annie''s most prominent trait is that she is a very emotional woman. This is also the most important factor in this story. Just after she hears the protagonist''s story on the radio broadcast she flies from Seattle alone, just to see Sam. Such that it can be a good fantasy movie, she resolutely breaks up with her already engaged boyfriend and runs to the top floor of the Empire State Building." "It Sounds, you don''t like this heroine?" Eric smiled asked. Nicole licked her thin lips. As a very savvy woman, Nicole would only sneer if she actually met a woman like Annie Reid, but she was smart enough not to answer Eric''s question directly, but rather euphemistically she said: "That doesn''t prevent me from ying the role." Eric shrugged and pushed the newspaper he read about When Harry Met Sally: "Look at this, I see a female star who is more suitable for the heroine role than you," theWhen Harry Met Sallyactress, named Meg Ryan." Nicole''s hand, which was originally ced on the maid''s little apron, shook a little, and she looked up to examine Eric''s expression carefully. No useful information was exposed. She could only take the newspaper and quickly read the soft advertisements forWhen Harry Met Sally. Eric then exined: "The film''s results were good, as such the originally not-so-famous Meg Ryan''s box office appeal is definitely increasing. If I can invite her to participate as the heroine in, ?Sleepless in Seattle?. "It will just happen to cross over withWhen Harry Met Sallyin the New Year, and it will be very good for the box office." FIZZHAZ TRANSLATES FOR FREE ON HIS OWN WEBSITE - FIND ON NOVELUPDATES "I... I have signed a contract." Nicole held firm and defended but her confidence weakened. "Of course, I didn''t say that I want to change you. I just told you a possibility." Eric said: "If your performance can''t satisfy me, it is also clearly stated on the contract that I have the power rece the heroine midway, but I believe that you have the potential, so I will give you a chance." In his memory Nicole yed a stupid blonde sweetheart character in 2005''s ?Bewitched?. The sweetheart witch Isabel, who was yed by Nicole in the movie, was very sessful and thispletely subverted her image as a sexy and morous woman on screen. However, the film''s plot was too thick and there were few good moments, which eventually led to the film''s failure. Moreover, the main actor Will Farrell was very suppressed by Nicole in acting. It was guessed that he was not nning to take that role from the outset, but that his agent stole the role from Tom Cruise. Though many people think that the controversy was made up by a producer who deliberately sought to provoke such a topic, because Tom Cruise also yed a manager role in ?Sweetheart Mister?, although it was as a sports manager. "...thank you," as she heard Eric''sst words, she breathed a sigh of relief. "Well, let''s talk about another thing. You have been in my house for more than two months. It''s about time to leave." "Ah, that... shouldn''t it be another month before you boot me out?" She looked up, and although she didn''t it give away in her expression, she was a little uneasy because she knew that whilst she was able to get this role, and she was paid a little to work as a little maid for Eric for a while, there is still more than a month left, so if other party let her leave, she couldn''t help but think of buying something in a convenience store, but not having enough money to pay the boss and having to return the goods. Eric did not quite understand why she felt uneasy, but he patiently exined: "Beginning next month, ?Sleepless in Seattle? will begin formal preparations, and some information will slowly be disclosed to the public, such as the starring men and women. When the timees, the media will be very curious about who you are. In order stoke the heat of the hype, you must definitely show up from time to time. It would definitely not be appropriate to live with me." Se nodded. "I understand, then I ... move out today?" "Don''t worry too much, I will let people find a house for you first. There is one more important thing. After you move out, take the time to readWhen Harry Met Sallya few times. I hope that you can try to figure out the performance style of Meg Ryan. My ideal Annie has an image simr to her in this movie. You want me to imitate it? Her body slightly leaned forward, as she asked a question carefully. Eric reached out and said, "No, it''s not for you to imitate, and you can''t imitate it. Your temperaments are too different. Meg Ryan is a standard sweetheart, and her acting choices will as such be restricted for a long time. If you imitate it too much, you will definitely bebeled as a sweetheart in the future, which will be detrimental to your development. I want you to try to figure out Meg Ryan slight gracefulness to see that type, that type of... good, spoken lines with petty little detailed actions." If she can sessfully enter Hollywood, Nicole doesn''t mind being tagged. In Hollywood, being a sweetheart is always better than a vase. It''s still much stronger. However, she also understood that Eric was thinking about her future, so she nodded obediently. After a little more conversation, Eric stood up and picked up his coat and put it on: "So, take some time to pack your luggage. When you find a good house, you can move out immediately. I''m going to thepany." Nicole quickly stood up and smiled at Eric, wanting to take him to the door. Eric saw her little smile and couldn''t help but stop: "Nicole, show me that smile again." She was somewhat confused, but obediently revealed a smile, just it was shallower this time and the smile was exaggerated, revealing two small buck teeth. Eric shook his head in disappointment: "Forget it, you still can''t smile like that. It felt like you were nning to do something bad. A smile like that, would be good, so practice more." "I will" She sent Eric out of the door before returning to the vi and habitually doing a routine cleaning. Two hourster, she who had finished everything sat on the sofa in the living room, staring nkly at everything around her. "Eric, this is the information you requested for the film studios New Line Cinema and Miramax." In Firefly''s office, Eric''s assistant, Allen, ced two dispatch bags in front of Eric. "First is this: Contact Robert Shaye of New Line Cinema and the Weinstein brothers of Miramax. Ask them when they are free and say I want to have a meal with them. I dont need to hide my purpose, so you give it away a little." Eric dictated whilst he was writing something down. Allen wrote Erics words in a memo before he looked up: Eric, is there anything else? Well, wait a minute, Eric continued to write down, and after a while he signed the paper. Handed to Allen: "There are two more things. The first one is to rent an apartment in Beverly Hills. It can''t be too expensive. The monthly rent should be no more than $5,000. The second is based on the name on the sticky note. It''ll be useful to register a shell movie studio in my name. Allen looked at the sticky note and read it twice: Flower Films? Uhuh, Eric nodded and exined nothing: Go and do it, the apartment should be first, and it would be best to rent it within two days." "I will pay attention, but should I charge the apartment rent to apany ount?" "No, I will pay personally, you can just find a good house and let the real estate agent prepare a contract." Allen attached the note on to the back of his memo, and confirmed a few things with Eric before leaving Eric''s office. When the office door was closed, Eric opened the information dispatches from the twopanies. Although Firefly''s distribution channels will be created in the near future, Eric did not have the idea of ??starting from scratch. The most important thing is that his time is very tight, so the acquisition of a film studio with existing distribution channels is the more convenient and fast. From memory, two of the most promising filmpanies that Eric can think of are New Line Cinema and Miramax. As for the next century, Lionsgate, which almost bes synonymous with movie giant, has not yet appeared. Filmpanies such as Orion, Lianmei, and Samsung have already been in close contact with the six majorpanies. There is no possibility of them being acquired by him. Even if he wanted to buy them with a high price, once they realize that he wants to go it alone, the six big yers will not let him go. Although there are many second- and third-tier movie studios that are in the same range as New Line Cinema and Miramax, Eric has never heard of them before. It could be guessed that thesepanies willpletely lose their independence when they merge. Even their brand has not survived, be it because of poor management or investment failure. Chapter 162 After carefully reading the information of the twopanies, Eric discovered that, perhaps because it was established more than ten years ago, the strength of New Line Cinema is far stronger than that of Miramax. The simplest evidence is In terms of distribution capabilities, New Line Cinema of the second-tier film studios had been able to roll out to nearly 1,500 screens for a movie, but Miramax was still in the midst of small fights, and can only raise up to four or five hundred screens for their movies. Moreover New Line Cinema, whilst Miramax were still developing, had already started the production of the independent movies. They already had the very profitable copyright of theA Nightmare on Elm Streetseries, but Miramax was still in the process of buying pictures for release. Seeing this, Eric couldn''t help but wrap the table as he suddenly remembered that he missed one thing, that is, about Steven Soderbergh''sSex, Lies and Videotapes, with this film, Soderbergh became the youngest Palme d''Or winner at the Cannes Film Festival a few months ago. At the time, Eric had reminded himself to buy the North American copyright of the film, but because he was busy during shooting of theRunning Out of Timeat the time, he forgot it. If there isn''t a shift in history, the film''s rights will be won by the Weinstein brothers. In his past, Miramax relied onSex, Lies and Videotapesto make aeback. After a small profit, they had enough capital to enter the field of independent production, and slowly explored their own ideas. The road of which was survival began to flourish. Now it waste July, Eric only knew that "Sex, Lies, and Videotapes" had won the Palme d''Or at the Cannes Film Festival in May, but he was yet to see the film in North American newspapers or magazines. If the distribution rights of the film were already picked up by Miramax, then if one wanted to acquire Miramax, it would be best to reach an agreement before the film was released. Otherwise, onceSex, Lies and Videotapes had its good box office results, even if the Weinstein brothers still agree to be acquired, Eric would definitely have to pay more. The rule in the circle is like this, a good movie can make apany''s market value increase, just like his previous life''s Pixar, which was originally a 50 million US dor animated film studio, but because of the sess of ?Toy Story?, the market value increased by 20 times in a short period. As far as Erics vision was concerned, it would be best to take bothpanies together so that bothmercial and artistic films could be developed in tandem as the ssic Oscar-winning films in Erics mind, and as such even if Miramax once again goes down the road of art film distribution, it will certainly not earn less than a studio that focuses onmercial films. The estimated market value of New Line Cinema in the data was about 150 million US dors, because the other party was a veteranpany that had been in business for 20 years, and not only had a small film library, but also the very valuable copyright of theA Nightmare on Elm Streetseries, as following 1984, the series has filmed once per year. As a low-cost horror film, it was built to make money. Although the box office will not be too high each year, it willst forever. JOIN THE DISCORD https://discord()gg/DTDQ4mN Although Miramax is still in a third-tier position, the market value of thepany is estimated to be around 20 million US dors. Because these years, the Weinstein brothers have been drawing in quality films from across the globe, and have umted a lot of movie and resources. Eric also understood that Miramax''s value was not thepany''sbel, nor the movies in the film library, but the Weinstein brothers. His previous live''s Weinstein brothers gave up thepany in 2005. Afterwards Miramax was no longer a big name, and after a few years, Disney bought it at a discount price. But now thatPretty Womanhad made more than $100 million, Eric can borrow again, but wanting to take the twopanies at the same time is not a simple matter, and it definitely involves the management of stockholder rights. He knew that with the savvy of Robert Shaye and the Weinstein brothers, even if he managed to raise enough funds by means of loans, as long as he intended to wholly acquire the otherpanies, those people would not agree to a sale. Though there was still an advantage to be had in exchanging for the equity of a filmpany with great development potential. As he was thinking about these things with a slight brow, Jeffrey knocked on the door and walked in. "The news hade from Venice. ?The Others? sessfully entered the mainpetition. Also, Jonathan Demme made some revisions to the film ording to your advice. Eric, would you like to see it again?" "Sure, In my screening room," Eric nodded, and temporarily letting go of the idea of ??acquiring the twopanies, he got up and followed Jeffrey out of the office. Just what are you thinking about to be so troubled? Jeffrey and Eric walked side by side, asking casually. "I just saw New Line Cinema and Mmax''s information, you know." Eric replied: "I want to eat bothpanies at the same time, but I don''t want to pay too much equity." Jeffrey was somewhat at a loss, as once thepany expanded its scale, Jeffrey understood that his talents would not be enough to support the entirepany''s operations. After all, now he only needs to be responsible for the several films produced and invested in by Eric, and he doesn''t even worry about the release. After the acquisition of the newpanies, Fireflies will start to get involved in the releases, and Jeffrey, who doesn''t have and ability or experience in this area, will certainly have to give up the position of the CEO. However, after just a brief entanglement, Jeffrey decided he would be relieved as long as Fireflies was still Fireflies. He once thought they shouldn''t turn Fireflies into arge filmpany. Now that it had that trajectory he had wanted to give up his position of CEO as he had been unable to do anything since the bankruptcy of the original Fireflies, after his wives untimely demise, because of his own personal filming. As a result Jeffrey had be very self-aware and now he just asionally grumbled to Eric about film production. He would make smallments, but never intervene in the production of the film because he knew he had no strength in this area. After thinking about this, Jeffrey patted Eric''s shoulder: "It''s no good to rush. I have also read the information of these twopanies. To be honest, I prefer New Line Cinema, even if you have to sacrifice some shares, its worth it. The size of Miramax is too small, and I dont see what you''re seeing in it. Eric smiled: You will understand in the future. The two talked and walked into Firefly''s screening room together, and the Jonathan Demme they saw had clearly stayed upte, such that his eyes had faint dark circles, but his devotion to the film was also evident. Chapter 163 ?In a foggy mansion on the British Isles, the governess Grace once again woke up from her nightmare, wiped her eyes, and began another busy day. Her husband was not at home, she must be strong. She didn''t know why, but the servants at her home suddenly disappeared some time ago, so she posted an advertisement for recruiting maids. Today, three people came to apply. A white-haired gardener, a spirited old woman, and a confused dumb woman, thebination of the three looked very weird, but because the advertisement had been posted for so long, and no one hade to apply for it, Grace still epted them and introduced them to the customs and rules for the house. She didn''t know whether is was because of the arrival of the three, but there were all kinds of strange things in the big house. Her daughter Annie imed that she saw a little boy. Grace also heard some strange voices from time to time, and she also found three the new servant were always sly and seemed to be nning something. Because of this, Grace was getting more and more uneasy. Until one day, her husband who went out to fight suddenly came back. The excited Grace thought that now the family had it''s backbone again life would get back on track, but her husband did not find his reunion with Grace joyous, instead, seeing his wife and children, he became sad. After spending a few days at the home, he suddenly left again. The strange things in the old house were still going on, and with the husbands departure, Graces spirit was getting more and more tense. Finally, one day she found that all the curtains in the old house were torn down, and as Grace had repeatedly emphasized that her two children get sick in strong sun, she became so angry that she immediately med the three servants and drove them out. The two yful children ran out into the backyard garden one night, and the little girl Annie found three tombstones. Looking closely, she was horrified to find the three new servants who had appeared in the house some time ago. At the same time, the three servants also came out of the darkness again. Annie shouted at her younger brother and they ran to the gate, and the governess who also stumbled upon the ''truth'' also rushed out with a rifle to protect them. The children returned to the old house and blocked out the three ghosts. Whilst Grace repeatedly prayed for three ghosts to let go of their family, the two children went back upstairs screamed, and as Grace prayed she climbed the stairs and watched a door open because of the Ghosts telekinesis, before Grace finally saw another family in reality. Everything made Grace face up to reality. It turned out that she and her two children were dead. Helplessly holding her two children, the heartbroken governess had to remember her sad past. With the sobbing shrieks of Grace and the two children as if in a nightmare, the film officially ended, and as ending credits were not made yet, the lights in the auditorium lit up directly. "Eric, how about this time?" Jonathan Demme asked without confidence, as although he made a big change in ordance with the advice given by Eric, Jonathan still wasn''t sure whether it would make Eric satisfied. ?The Others? finished filming mid-June, and then part of the post-production was carried out in the UK, because some shots were retaken from time to time. The entire crew had been in the UK until July and then returned to the United States. Eric had visited the British film studio after the end ofRunning Out of Time, personally watching the shooting of some scenes, and after checking some of Jonathan''s shots, Eric was very satisfied with Jonathan''s shooting results. Perhaps because Erics previous affirmations, when Jonathan confidently submitted his edited version, the so-called directors cut, to Eric, he was confident that as he had spent a lot of effort editing it, the version will be recognized by Eric. However, reality had poured cold water on Jonathan. Eric had frowned after watching his edited version, and then Eric had signaled the staff to y it again from the beginning. They watched whilst it rewound quickly, and then the film was shown again. Eric wrote more than 20 amendments in a notebook, involving scening, the soundtrack, editing and other aspects, almost equal in work to Jonathan''s cut version. Although Jonathan was not convinced, he did not have the final editing rights. He could only make the substantial changes in ordance with the opinions given by Eric. Afterpleting the production again ording to Eric''s opinion, Jonathan looked at the film again. He also felt that this version is much better than the version he had edited before. Not only is the plot morepact, but the suspenseful setting was more eptably confusing and more focused on the creation of psychological suspense that made Jonathan admire this young man who is twenty years younger than himself even more. Whilst Jonathan did a great deal of preparation in order to get the position of the film director, and some of the ideas he put forward were in line with Eric''s ideas, many of his techniques still couldn''t escape the embarrassments that were old-fashioned horror films. This was not Jonathan''s desire, but few bad habits can be changed, and innovation, in any circle, is easier said than done. When he heard Jonathans question, Eric did not rush to answer Jonathans question. Instead, he carefullypared the original film in his mind using it''s difference andmonalities to the movie that he had just watched. Among the three films invested in by Firefly, ?The Others?,Steel MagnoliasandScent of a Woman, Eric felt the box office prospects for ?The Others? was the most promising, so he also paid it the most attention. For other two films,Steel MagnoliasandScent of a Woman, Eric was giving over power much greater than for ?The Others?. Herbert Rose waspletely responsible forSteel Magnolias, Eric did not even participate in the editing, and whilst the final editing rights ofScent of a Womanwere the hands of Eric, in the future, he would respect the views of Al Pacino. Inparison, for the production of ?The Others? he seemed to be somewhat ''willful''. He also knew thatpletely overthrowing Jonathan''s director''s cut version is very hurtful, but he has to do it in order for it to be sessful at the box office. When he originally saw Jonathan''s edited version, the reason he could list so many revisions in one breath was certainly not because of the talent of Eric himself, but with reference to the original film in his mind. Even if he had a little talent in his previous life, it had been eroded by so many years in shackles. His only remaining professional skills were those imprinted in instinct, like an old man who has been in the kitchen for decades. The master, who without thinking, can draw up a table full of vourful dishes ording to habit. A movie, even if based off the same material and the same script, can haverge differences between films edited by different people. Eric had heard of someone re-editing just the scenes, and editing a ssic serious historical film into a vulgar film, but the lines, materials, music, etc. had not changed, but rather just rearranged. Scening. Therefore, Eric was not demanding a perfect copy the ?The Others? exactly as in his memory. Besides, his past life''s version was not without ws. For example, the scene where Grace''s husband returns was light hearted in the original. In a horror film maintaining the tension and suspenseful atmosphere are very important, so Eric had made some modifications to the original plot in this version. It took about ten minutes for himpare them in detail, and then Eric nodded lightly. "Yes, basically, we will just do one or two small changes to the details. As for the release, Jeffrey, inform the heads of the major filmpanies besides Fox and Columbia to see if they are interested in participating in an internal viewing session." Jonathan heard Eric''s affirmative words and finally breathed a sigh of relief. Jeffrey was hesitant: "Eric, its not good to not inform Fox and Columbia. After all, isn''t our cooperation with these twopanies the closest?" Erics exined: "In the current situation, After Colombias acquisition by the Japanese, there will be no small number of personnel changes. Its hard to say how the Japanese will manage Colombia after they get it. Currently I''m worried about even receiving the dividends forRunning Out of Timeon time, so I dont want to work with them in the short term. As for Fox, they already have the rights to distribute my next two movies, and they will only be the movies we make ourselves with out resources. " Jeffrey suggested: "So that we look good, why don''t we invite the people of Colombia and Fox, and as for working together, isn''t it fine if we choose not to. If we don''t invite them that would be somewhat disrespectful." Eric looked down and thought about it, then nodded: "Well, just do as you said, also put together a preview forSteel Magnolias. Lets putScent of a Womanto rest for now. Let Al put it together slowly, so long as it can be ready for the down time at the end of the year, anyway, as that movie is to be used to attack the Oscars." As the two men discussed the film distribution, Jonathan Demme took a chance to interject. "Eric, will you go at the Venice Film Festival in September?" "Yes, I will at least go to the opening ceremony or the awards ceremony," Eric replied. Among the three major European film festivals, the Venice Film Festival was the closest one to the Chinese film circle. Eric had been interested in the Venice Film Festival in his previous life. This time now that he has the opportunity, naturally he must go. In the past year since his rebirth, Eric has been constantly busy, and theres been no time to rx. Maybe the Venice trip can be used as a vacation. As for the awards, Erics expectations are not too big. Although the story of ?The Others? is very novel, this movie is not only amercial film, but also a horror film. Any one of these two categories is very much discriminated against by the film festival. As the film contains these two most unpleasant factors, the ability to qualify for the mainpetition at all has been a very good result. Chapter 164 ?"I have an apartment that I found in Beverly Hills, with a monthly rent of $4,000. You can call this phone number tomorrow, mention the name of n Fisman, and the real estate agent will sign a contract with you. "Eric returned home in the evening. After dinner, he took out a business card and handed it to Nicole. When she hadn''t even had time to react, a small hand quickly robbed the business card. "Wow, wow," Drew waved the business card and nced at Nicole revealing a triumphant smile: "So, you finally have to move?" Nicole shrugged helplessly, and sat very elegantly back on the sofa, there was no meaning in fighting, so she did not answer Drews question. During this time, she had also surmised the way to deal with Drew, when facing her many provocations. Although deep inside, she couldn''t wait to rush into the kitchen and find a sharp knife to shave the unsightly baby face. It took her a much effort, but Nicole managed to stay magnanimous, and not lower herself to Drew''s level from the beginning to the end. She even guessed the reason why Drew was looking for trouble. This seemingly careless girl was only fourteen years old, but she was as smart as a goblin. Nicole thought that she wasn''t full of childish things. She does not really get a sense of happiness from bulling ordinary children. She just wants to make her mad, even wants to endure conflicts with her, even being bullied. She wants her to make some counterattacks. The two of them definitely went together like fire and water, one of them definitely had to leave the mansion, and Nicole also knew that even if she was on good terms with Drew, she would still have to leave the vi. Nicole didn''t mind falling out with Drew, but she was afraid of losing her chance to y the heroine in ?Sleepless in Seattle?. After this period of contact and understanding, she is more and more deeply aware of the value of being Eric''s movie heroine, so she is more and more respectful of Eric. Compared to this opportunity, being a maid for a month or two in this vi is nothing at all. If she could ensure the result, she would not even mind if she had to wear a sexy little uniform and be a maid for a year. Many women in Hollywood have not encountered such a good opportunity even in eight or ten years. Compare to that, one or two months, or even one year, is nothing. In the various media reports, not to mention the gorgeous Julia Roberts, even the only one who acted inRunning Out of Timefor a few minutes, Brooke Shields, recently received a big role in Warner''s new production as the film''s heroine''s film, the newspaper guessed that the pay was nearly three million dors, which is almost a top-tier actress rate. Before theRunning Out of Time, although Brooke Shields was beautiful and morous, she could only be regarded as a third-tier star, and her acting had been criticized by the media. Her box office appeal was even more difficult to talk about. Although Eric had made a series of promises before, and although there were contracts, she had always been cautious. "Drew, you better return the business card to Nicole. If you don''t want her to leave, I don''t mind letting her stay for a while longer." Eric nced at Drew, who was waving his business card. She knew that Eric was joking, and so she stuck out her tongue, smirked and rolled her eyes and twiddled the business card in her hand, and ced it on the girl in front of, directly under the seam of Nicoles maid skirt. After the end of her gloating she added: "It would be really pitiful, if as your clothes have no clips, they fell off." Nicole nced at Eric, and although he did not respond, he still showed some guilt. Usually in order to have the dancers undress, the guests of a strip club would have to ce money in the chest or the underwear. If they do this to ordinary women, they will provoke a fierce temper and a p. Seeing that Eric was still watching Drew''s yful expression, Nicole could only reach out to the business card on her abdomen as she got up and walked to the bathroom, preparing to take it out. When Nicole got into the bathroom, Drew directly rushed into Eric''s arms: "What''s the matter, my dear beloved?" "Nicole hasn''t had it easy, she has been bullied by you for more than a month without saying anything, if it were me I couldnt help but pour sulfuric acid on your face. Eric smiled as he gently twisted her sweet and tender cheek, saying so. "She won''t," Drew snorted, moving like a snake with a delicate body, finding afortable posture on Eric''s thigh, before reaching out and touching the stubble on Eric''s chin: "Only Aniston that brainless little girl can do that, and this woman, if it makes no advantage for her, will never do anything." "Oh, next time we see Jenny I will definitely tell her your evaluation." Drew smiled and waved her hand, and it didn''t matter: "Let''s just let little her face reality as soon as possible. The earth is so dangerous. Its just right to bury her. Eric couldnt help but smile. Perhaps because of a ssic movie that he saw in the past, when Eric spoke asionally he would use words like ''Earth'' and ''Mars''. This vocabry, unwittingly, was learned by the little girl in her arms: "I think if Jenny gets buried, she will have buried you first." "Oh, she didn''t have the ability," Drewughed. Then her face became serious, and in a slightly lowered voice: "Eric , how you y with stupid women in the bedroom isn''t for me to manage, but that woman should never be provoked. Oh, entangling with her may be troublesome." "Yes ah yes ah, since I have been wrapped up by a goblin, I will no longer I dare provoke woman of the same type." "I mean this for real," Drew grabbed Eric''s chin with dissatisfaction: "In fact, I me you, who ys with women. You may have fun, but you can''t help but entangle with each other emotionally after ying." Eric knew that Drew was referring to Virginia, and he had no choice but to avoid the harassment of her small ws: "Okay, I know. " The sound of shoes came, and the two stopped the topic at the same time. The girl returned to the sofa and sat down without any strange expressions. She looked at Eric with a usual look, but she thought about things. From the words of Drew that she just heard inadvertently, she recalled that the little girl had been strictly guarding against her during this time, and suddenly realized that she seemed to have missed a good chance. Originally when Nicole got this role for herself, she didn''t have to pay the price of her body, so she was quite pleased with herself. Now she found out that because she didnt pay for it, she had suffered a real loss. Chapter 165 ?Later at night, in her bedroom on the second floor, as Nicole was looking at her packed suitcase, she suddenly felt that the experience of these past two months were like a dream. Seven years ago, she first got a chance to y a role in a movie. It was also that experience that made her realize that her life could be more dazzling, and a pretty woman is always ambitious. So she quickly dropped out of her high school, and looked for opportunities while studying at drama school. In a few years, she yed a number of supporting roles in many movies and TV series, and also won the award for best actress at the Australian Film Academy. But these were far from satisfying her. Her eyes had never stopped at the small pool that was the Australian entertainment circle. She was looking forward to Hollywood. At the beginning of the year, she participated in an audition for a Hollywood movie in Australia. She was confident despite not getting the role, and As she she was 22 years old and couldn''t wait any longer, she packed her bags and came to Los Angeles alone. She quickly realized the cruelty of reality. Her performance qualifications from Australia and the performance awards she received did not help her career. She was basically a neer, with rolls in some unknown movies or small characters from TV series. Then two months ago, her career finally ushered in a big turn. She was fascinated by the young director Eric Williams, who suddenly rose to prominence in Hollywood. He asked her toe work for him for a few months as a maid, and then she would get to be the heroine of his new film. How could there be such a good thing! Outside of the office, she always began to think of these words. For the next few days, she had spent her time in a fierce mood. She was very eager to get this opportunity, but she felt that if she agreed, there was definitely a hellish life to greet her. It might have made her life a nightmare. She was not a little girl who knew nothing about the industry. She had heard many examples of women being tricked. A few dayster, she finally did not have the will to resist the temptation and took the initiative to goto his door. But her imaginary horror situation did not appear. She was not stuffed into the basement with ripped clothes, and she was not abused at all. He really only dressed her beautifully, and then she cooked and did theundry for him every day and make his bed. His life was also healthy, without bad habits, and he didn''t expose any delusions of fame. He was only 18 years old and he acted calmly like a middle-aged man who had gone through the world. Young and talented, charming and handsome, most of the women whoid eyes on him were caught in his. Even if she was sensible and knew that it was unlikely, she still wasn''t safe, and she couldn''t help herself. For this man who is smaller than herself, she had a faint affection. At the beginning, she has tried to seduce him, but unfortunately she had not seeded, but she had made some jokes. He even regarded her little tricks as a kind of performance and looked on with gusto. If you didn''t know that he had a girlfriend and a lover, or he kept a little goblin in his family, and asionally spent the night outside, then you would definitely think that he was a homosexual, as the proportion of homosexuality in Hollywood is too high. Without thinking about it, Nicole put on her pajamas, put the sexy maid uniforms in the closet, closed the closet, turned and climbed onto the bed, turned off themp, and her slender figure kept rolling in the dark for a while. Maybe I''ll try again. She remembered a few conversations between Eric and Drew after dinner. She couldnt help but think of this idea. Although she couldnt be the mans girlfriend or wife, as she would have to fight for ten years, at least she could leave a deep impression on him. From her analysis of the conversations she heard between the two people, this would definitely help her career. After a while, she finally thought of a good excuse. It was not an excuse. She originally intended to tell him at night, but Drew that little goblin was always there. She didnt want to beughed at by the wicked little Nazi*. As such she nned to say it before tomorrow. TN: Google Trante not me* After turning on the bedsidemp, she sat up and thought about opening her packed suitcase and finding a bottle of perfume to spray on her body. She used this perfume very little during this time because after one time, he had said that the smell was too strong and he disliked it. In order to please him, she never used it again. But this time it may be useful. The perfume was a musky rose. It is said that the musk had a sensational effect. After looking at her watch, she sat on the bed and waited for a while. When the watch pointer pointed at twelve, she gently pushed the door open and carefully walked through the hallway towards Eric''s door. After gently knocking a few times, she took a deep breath and waited patiently. She knew that he could hear it. He usually was in the study room until around eleven o''clock. At this point he must not have fallen asleep yet. After a while, the door opened, and Eric, wearing pajamas, looked at Nicole in confusion, his eyes shed a few times: "Nicole, its sote, is something the matter?" "Eric, this matter is one that is very difficult to talk about, but I dont know many people in Los Angeles, so I cant help myself. Nicoles calm look had be awkward. "Well?" Eric still had no ns to let here in. "I mean... can you lend me some money? You are saying that the apartment rent is going to be... It costs 4,000 dors a month, but I don''t have much money now." Nicole''s voice started to stammer a little. This is not acting. She did have stuttering problems when she was a child. Although it was already good once she had grown up, she would still speak awkwardly when she was nervous. Eric nodded in the door frame: "I can, wait a moment, I will get the checkbook." Eric said, and before he could add more, she had already followed him into the bedroom. Eric could only go with the flow, but fortunately Drew was forcibly stuffed into the closet, or otherwise there was bound to be trouble. "Is 100,000 enough?" Eric found the checkbook and looked up at the girl. Nicole nodded quickly: "Enough, I... I will get it back to you immediately." "Don''t worry, when you have money, you can return it to me. Oh, I believe that you will have the money after the first movie is released. At the beginning of the year Julia lived in a rented house. Now she has not only bought a Beverly Hills mansion, but also hired several assistants, bodyguards, and the like, which are more than mine. Eric casually said Julia''s interesting things, as he lowered his head and filled in the checkbook. Chapter 166: Go Hide Yourself in the Wardrobe ---------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------------- After filling out the check, Eric tore it off and handed over to Nicole. But when she took it, she showed no intention of leaving. Moreover, just as he headed down to write, the girl had already moved to his side without being noticed. Well, this is... No words had been uttered yet. The girl had thrown herself into his arms, and her red lips kissed him gently with warm air from the mouth. The softness of the breast rubbed gently against Eric''s chest through twoyers of nightie. Eric even felt the two bits were turning hard to wee him. "Eric, don''t refuse me, will you?" The girl said that dreamily, squinting her eyes, she put her arms around Eric''s shoulders, licked Eric''s ears like a cat. Sniffing the smell of perfume that was not the same as usual in the girl''s body, Eric somehow felt a little emotional, and could not help circling the girl''s waist. Suddenly the wardrobe behind Nicole was opened gently, and Drew popped out her head and made a face warningly, then quickly drew back. Eric could only slightly push away the girl wrapped around him. "Sorry, Nicole, you''d better go back." The girl wouldnt take no for an answer, she came up and quickly grasped Eric''s crucial point with one hand: "Eric, obviously you want it too." "Its one thing I want to, its another thing I have to, it''s..." Before Eric finished his words, the girl lowered her body. Eric felt his waiting erection was pulled out by a small hand. Then two moist soft lips came up and wrapped it all the way inward, into the abyss. "Wow..." Eric could not help moaning for the unprecedentedfort. He could not resist it any more. He touched the girl''s head with his big hand, directing her movements with a little force, in order to make himself more stimted. The wardrobe door opposite opened again, and the little girl jumped out barefoot. Eric quickly held on Nicole''s head with both hands to prevent the busydy from suddenly looking back. "Eric, weve made an agreement," Drew looked at Nicole kneeling in front of Eric, with a strong displeasure on her face, gesturing silently at Eric with her little hand. "Be good, go hide yourself in the wardrobe and dont let anyone see you," Eric said silently Drew scratched her hair crazily and really wanted to go straight forward to grab Nicole''s hair and pulled her out of the door. But she knew that if she did this, her dirty linen would be found by Nicole as well. Although she did nothing with Eric, they just cuddled and went to sleep on the same bed, but no one would believe it. She didn''t want Nicole, the annoying woman, to get something that might affect Eric''s reputation, so she only waved her hands reluctantly, pointed to the door and returned to the cab. Eric nodded in silence. After Drew returned to the wardrobe, Eric fixed thedy''s little head and moved it violently. "Uh... Cough... "Nicole got so awkward by the sudden aggressive change that she could only look up at Eric and pray for his gentleness, but she didn''t know that this pleading look could stimte more brutish nature of a male. As a result, It took seven or eight minutes for Eric to satisfy himself before he took a quick step back and gave the girl an order: "Use your hands!" She panted, with hair tangled. Her mind was absentpletely but she still obediently stretched out the hands and held the thing in front of her. Soon Eric fixed her head again, and she watched in horror as that thing in her hands began to erupt, leaving her face and hair stained with the liquid. Eric took a deep breath after the release, then he stuffed it into the girl''s mouth again and cleaned it up before putting on his shorts. After that, he copsed into the big bed behind him and lied down, while Nicole turned around and rushed to the bathroom without any instructions. As the door of the bathroom was closed, there came the sound of her retching, Drew finally jumped out of the wardrobe, breathing fast with the face blushed. She popped the head to confirm the bathroom door closed. Grinning, she quickly jumped on the big bed and mounted directly on Eric''s waist. Scratching at the man''s chest, she said "You bastard, although I was relieved to see the way you treat her, I feel disgusted to know you''re so perverted." "Don''t make a fuss, go out quickly, it''s not good to be discovered," Eric whispered, blocking the attack of her two little paws. Obviously he showed no intention of repentance at all. For him, that was the first time he ever did it that way, of course it was really refreshing. Moreover, the person who did it with him was an Oscar movie queen in previous life, the dream woman of millions of people. Thinking of this, Eric''s desire ignited again. Drew also knew that she couldnt be too willful, after venting out her discontent slightly, she jumped out of bed and walked towards the door. Lying in bed, Eric didn''t notice the girl walking in an odd way. Not to mention to find that pantie under her nightie was wet. Drew was not a well-behaved girl, or the word "behave" had nothing to do with the girl, so she had watched simr scenes in that kind of movies. However in this era, the blurred video images on the screen, in any case, wasnt as mind-blowing as the live show. Watching this through the chink of the wardrobe, she almost copsed inside. The woman stopped retching soon in the bathroom. Then there came the sound of showering. Ten minutester, the sound stopped. Eric looked up at the door of the bathroom. The girl still did note out. Was she likely to do anything stupid? Stricken with the idea, he got up and went to the bathroom. Although it was impossible as he knew Nicole. Under the bright light, Eric saw the bathtub full of water, and her thin, naked body immersed in it. Approaching the bathtub and squatting down, he looked into the water. Nicole quickly noticed him. She poked her head out of the bathtub and habitually covered her chest. Then she released discreetly. Smiling reluctantly at Eric, she said, "Eric, can you let me ... have a rest? Later we can... "Of course," Eric nodded. "Do you mind if I join you?" The girl hesitated and shook her head slightly. Eric took off his shorts and stepped into the bathtub. He took the girl into his arms and stroked Nicole''s sensitive points. A few momentster, he gently separated the girl''s long legs, and fiddled them for a few times. After that, he found the right ce and stuffed the thing in. The feeling of tightness and being bulged made them gasp at the same time, and for a long time, there was no movement. "Eric, do you need me to stay here for a few more days?" It waste at night after they enjoyed themselves again, Nick asked, snuggling up to him. "No," Eric shook his head, the hand touched the smooth back of the girl, slowly slid onto her round buttocks and gently kneaded it. The girl was thin and her breast was not that perky. Only here can give a plump feel. Nicole rubbed up to make it easier for men to knead with his big hands. She nodded and said, "I will do as you will. If you want me, you cane to me." Eric didn''t reply. A momentter, he said, "You don''t have a car, right? You can pick one up in my garage when you leave tomorrow. It''s inconvenient not to have a car in Los Angeles. You can return it when you can afford yours." Because his Lamborghini was discovered by the paparazzi, Eric bought several new cars of different models and put them in the garage, so that he didn''t have to worry that driving the same car all the time would be easily recognized. The treatment was really different---The idea popped up into her mind. She could feel that Eric was caring about her, the car was not for a deal or something. However the favorable impression was hard-won, the girl won''t spend it on such trifles as using his cars: "No, I''m going to New York to shoot a movie in a month. I''ll just go out and take a taxi." "You do what you want, but remember to call me whenever something happens." "Well," said Nicole, with a triumphant smile on her lips, and then she felt her hip patted, Eric said, "Once more, this time you ride me." She reached down and touched there, then sat obediently on the man, and her slim waist wobbled quickly. "Eric, do you want to listen to my moan?" The girl put her hands on Eric''s chest and asked with seductive eyes. On the two previous times, she had been passive and carefully satisfied the man''s desire. She didnt intend to take the initiative at all. After feeling Eric''s subtle emotional change, the girl became bold and provoking. Anyway, Drew already knew what they did. So Eric had no worries. He stroked the girl''s slender waist and said, "Don''t be too loud. It''s not good to attract the wild cat nearby." "Ah... I wont." The girl answered with a smile, and then began to moan seductively with her cherry lips. At breakfast, Drew, with dark circles under her eyes, stared at Nicole wickedly, and the bread in her hand was crumbed unconsciously. Nicole''s face was glowing fromst night. She didn''t care the girls sharp eyesight. She wasn''t the kind of woman who liked to show off. She considered it was very unwise. So she didn''t want to unt her sess in front of the girl even though she had won the game. Because she was leaving this day, the girl changed to normal clothes again. The snow-white shirt and cream-white casual trousers made her look intelligent. With a pair of sses, she even could go to the school to be a teacher. "I''m full," said the little girl, looking at them flirting with each other from time to time, at least she thought it was flirting, throwing down her spoon, pouring oatmeal into her mouth, wiping the oil from her lips and walking out. Her boots stamped the floor, making a loud noise. Chapter 167: Hi Although they had carnal rtionship, Nicole did not stay in Eric''s mansion for one more day and obediently moved into the apartment Eric had someone found for her. In August, for a movie in its fourth week of release, Secret Wars box office figuring more than $260 million were still strong, with a total number of more than $150 million globally already. Although it depended on luck whether this movie could surpass Batman in the following show time, there was no doubt that its box office in North America would exceed $200 million. In addition, "Secret War" in overseas markets was more popr than in North America. Although most overseas countries released itter, some didnt even show it, in those regions where it had been released, "Secret War" had won 12 first-week box office Championships altogether. In this case, it was certain that its overseas performance would be much better than domestic. Colombia invested in the film with no intention of making profits but only to boost its stock price, however the fact was that they could not only recoup investment, but also earned a lot just by ticket sales. Colombia was bound to take a big share in the next video revenue. Although Payback Period was long, this part of the revenue would bring Colombia Pictures hundreds of millions of dors in the next few years. For Eric, the project of "Secret War" was also a thing of the past. He only needed to wait to gain his share of profit. Based on the poprity "Secret War", it was sure to shoot sequels over and over again ording to Hollywood conventions. But for investment safety, Eric was not going to participate in the production of the sequel since the original ssic was hard to surpass. For instance, the sequel of the previous "Secret War" hadnt shown any edge. If the scripts of the sequels were well-written, Eric only intended to involve Fireflies in part of its investment. In case the Japanese could give a good price, Eric could even sell them half of the copyright of "Secret War" that belonged to fireflies. After all, without Cruise, Eric, Hanks alone could hardly recreate the brilliance of the original in the sequel of Secret War. With the investment conventions of such films, the cost of the sequels would certainly increase sharply in the future, so it would not be easy to make profit again. After this project, Eric began his intense work in the second half of the year. First, the first two episodes of Friends needed his participation. And Fox had already advertised it. Because of the fragment insertion of Friends in Secret War, the public was also looking forward to the y. The second was "Sleepless in Seattle", the penultimate movie of this year, and was actually thest one Eric would make with concentrated attention. Although Fox attached great importance to "Home Alone", Eric couldnt spend much energy on this movie anyway. Besides, he intended to follow the script of its second y, making it easier to shoot. "Sleepless in Seattle" was only in the early stages of preparation, but the propaganda had begun, the news of the leading role was soon revealed. When the names of the hero and heroine had been decided, many Hollywood actors who wanted to cooperate with Eric were disappointed. Tom Hanks as the leading actor had not been much questioned, but the unexpected Nicole had be the target of the media. With the release of the starring information, Nicole''s profile was exposed by powerful paparazzi in just a few days. An Australian actress, who had won some performance awards, made her debut at the age of sixteen and had no acting experience in Hollywood As the information was revealed, the girl quickly became the focus of controversy. Hollywood despised foreign actors, so as the media did. So, except Uta''s propaganda papers for the girl, Nicole had received no eptance, she was showered with one-sided criticism. Most media thought that Nicole didnt deserve the heroine of Eric''s new film. From the title of "Sleepless in Seattle", the media spected that Eric might go back to a Ro like "Pretty Woman". Then the Hollywood media ignored Nicole''s current look, and took great pleasure in picking up Nicole''s dowdy image in her Australian movies and TV dramas, criticizing her to nothing good. Of course, this criticism would also be countered. The most intense one was from the Australian media. Although Eric had only a few works and had not been popr for a long time, he umted a great reputation in Australia, no less than those big name directors famous for many years. Therefore, the Australian media are proud that the actresses in their country can act in Eric''s new films. So they fought back to Nicole''s criticism. Nicole, who was in the center of the storm, did not feel any pressure at all. She knew that the more the media made fun of her, the more fame she gained. On August 2nd, Friends quietly started shooting in a huge studio of Foxs. Among the six main actors, only Aniston had a little fame while the other young people were previously unknown and nameless actors. Eric chose them not only because they had acting skills, but also they were very simr to the images of the main actors in Friends. In addition, as neers, these actors were also paid very little, only $5,000 per episode. At first Eric wanted to secretly give Anniston a higher pay. Since the sry was confidential, as long as he didnt tell others, nobody would know that. Even if it was known by the other five actors, they would certainly not say anything because Aniston was not only more famous, but also the daughter of the producer and the girlfriend of the director. It would be self-defeating if they reallypared themselves to Aniston. But Eric''s kind offer was rejected by the young girl, who only took $5,000 for a film episode like other neers. Eric couldn''t get over the stubborn girl, so he had deliberately disclosed the news, and it was no surprise that he had a good effect. Like her predecessors, the little girl soon became a real good friend of five other actors. This was very helpful for the shooting of Friends. After all, when they became real friends in reality, they would surely have some tacit understanding in the shooting. "Everybody, get ready for Scene 5 Act 1, action!" With the voice of the supervisor, several actors began to chat in the Central Perk Cafe. The scene was about Ross divorced his wife, carrying an umbre and showing up in the cafe with a degraded face. In the original version, Ross Geller, yed by David Schummond, amazed many audiences when he first appeared. His simple word "hi" made the audience instantly remember the tall and thin figure in a big coat. Chapter 168: Freddie’s little house While Chandler and others were chatting, Rose suddenly emerged behind the sofa of the cafe like a ghost, holding an umbre in his hand, ying with his fingers awkwardly like a child, and greeting weakly, "Hey..." The cheerful atmosphere dissipated quickly, and Chandler''s expressions copsed. "My God, I have an impulse tomit suicide as soon as he opens his mouth." Chandler, sitting in a chair next to the sofa, had hardly finished these words when "cut" was heard "No, Ross, you just made a good move, but the emotions contained in the lines are still not expressed in ce. You need to be more withered and brew up your sentiment. As I told you before, this scene is crucial to you. I hope the audience willugh when they hear your first sentence and keep you in mind. Eric patiently spoke to the actor who yed Ross in the scene. Even the addressing was directly reced by the role name. And no one feels anything wrong, quietly watching his speaking. Even Aniston, who was waiting to go on the stage in her wedding dress, looked at the face of her serious boyfriend with admiration. Eric was young, but as a big director who has umted more than a billion box office around the world,ing to direct TV drama was enough for everyone on the scene to show their respect. Because it was the first work day, they did not shoot many scenes, mainly to develop the actors'' tacit understanding, and because it was si, although there was no cannedughter on the scene, the atmosphere on the set was generally very pleasant. At first, because of Eric''s personally directing, most of the staff on the set appeared to be trembling. But as time went by, with the increase understanding of Eric, they no longer worried and could even make harmless jokes with him. After a few days of running-in, the shooting of Friends had gradually elerated. Eric had only prepared a two-week-time slot for the first two episodes directed by himself personally, which was enough. After all, with the shooting while broadcasting, the group basically had to produce two episodes a week. "Well, everyone get ready, one more take," Eric waved to the crowd and sat back in the director''s seat. Because Rose''s appearance was a very demanding scene, it was shot more than ten times. In the end, the actor who yed Ross even revealed nervousness, but the scene finally passed. "Jenny, that''s your cue," several shotster, Eric said to Aniston, who had been waiting aside for a long time. Thedy quickly lifted her wedding dress and walked outside the door of Central Perk Cafe. "Eric, shall we go to have dinner tonight?" At the end of the day, Aniston, who had changed her costume, put her arms around Eric and said. Anyway, everyone around them knew their rtionship, and there was nothing to hide. "I''ve just made an appointment. If you don''t mind, you can join us." Eric wrote and drew on a document and answered casually. Aniston frowned slightly, but could not help asking, "Man or woman?" "Er... Of course it''s a man." "I knew it," the little girl still pouted her lips discontentedly. "If it''s a woman, you would certainly not take me with you. "It seems that I haven''t asked any women for dinner except you," Eric put his pen cap in the folder and pinched her face. Aniston discontentedly opened Eric''s hand. "I won''t believe you, who knows what you''ve done behind my back? What''s the matter with Nicole Kidman?" "What matter?" Eric pretended to look baffled. "You..." Aniston really wanted to ask Eric if he had slept with her, but then she swallowed the words since she could do nothing either way. Even if they didn''t have an affair now, he might get her into bed someday in the future. If they already had, could she bear to break up with him? Eric hurriedly scanned another document and signed his name, then gave it to his assistant Ellen. Then he reached an arm around the girl''s waist and said, "Okay, let''s go back and get ready first. The appointment is at seven. So we have two hours left. How about hanging out at my ce? Drew misses you." "Hum, I miss her too," she said, grinding her little white teeth immediately after hearing Drew''s name. Since thest time two girls shed in front of Eric''s sickbed, she had never seen her again. Aniston had never been to Eric''s house in recent months. Usually Eric asked to spend the night at Aniston''s. That''s why the Aniston never knew about Nicole''s business. She did not know there was such a woman Nicole until the newspaper published the news of the heroine of Eric''s new film. After saying goodbye to the crew, Eric drove Aniston back to Beverly Hills mansion. Although he said those words, Eric was relieved to see that the little girl was not at home. After having sex with Nicole, the little girl had a cold war with Eric for a whole day. After Nicole left, she ran to Eric''s bed in the evening and slept beautifully with her big human-shaped pillow in her arms. Although it was the second visit to Eric''s mansion, Aniston''s first experience was a bit of nightmare. She basically had no impression of his house. When she found that Drew was not home, thedy, like the hostess, wandered around the mansion, inside and outside, and ran to bounce on Eric''s big bed several times. "Hey, what are youughing at?" Aniston asked distastefully, holding a pillow and raising her head, happened to see Eric staring at her with a meaningful look. Eric shook his head. "Nothing. I''m curious about what are you doing, dering your sovereignty?" "Hmm," the little girl seemed to be seen through and turned her back to Eric indifferently. Eric shrugged and went straight in, opened the wardrobe and picked up the clothes. Aniston was wearing a long skirt today. It looked like a gown. With her natural beauty, there''s no need to get changed for dinner. "Well, let''s go," Eric changed his clothes and talked to the girl who was still in bed. "Well," Aniston answered, but did not get up immediately. Instead, she picked up a long strand of hair from the sheet and waved at Eric. Her look showed "you should exin it to me". Eric shrugged. "It must been just dropped from yourself." "..." Thedy choked, threw the hair on Eric, turned the bed upside down and buried her head in the pillow. Eric went over and pped on her upturned buttock. "Okay, stop being petty, let''s go." "Uh huh..." She shook her body and did not move. Eric gave a cunning smile at the corner of his mouth and suddenly said, "Jenny, there may be Drew''s saliva on that pillow." "Woo... Wow, bah, bah, that''s disgusting." Aniston heard Eric''s words and jumped up like a spring, the pillow hit Eric and she rushed quickly into the bathroom. "Well, don''t be angry," Eric said to thedy holding his arm after getting out of the car after handing the key to the doorman. "I said, that''s my pillow, even if there is any saliva, it''s mine." . "Huh, your saliva is more disgusting," said Aniston, touching her lips and rolling her eyes up. They went into the dining room together, and under the guidance of the waiter, they came to a table where a middle-aged man was waiting. Seeing Eric, the middle-aged manughed and stood up, and stepped forward to reach out to Eric. "Hello, Mr. Shea," Eric shook hands with him and introduced, "This is my girlfriend, Jennifer Aniston." Thedy shook hands with him very gently and sat down quietly beside Eric. "Eric, just call me Robert," the middle-aged man said as he sat down. Eric didn''t see too much information from his expressions and didn''t care about that. Anyway, things could not be settled over this meal. Eric knew that it was just a probe between the two of them and it was difficult to reach any consensus. After ordering the dishes, Eric and Robert Shea chatted casually. "A Nightmare on Elm Street is indeed a ssic one among horror movies. The setting of dream killing is very novel. As a master of horror movies, Wes Craven also has a unique insight into the creation of horror atmosphere. To tell you the truth, Firefly also has a horror film just finished. When choosing the director, I once considered Mr. Craven. Unfortunately, for various reasons, we couldn''t cooperate." They naturally talked about the Newline''s original film series "A Nightmare on Elm Street ". Although Newline has been independently produced films since 1979, it was not until the sess of the first film of "A Nightmare on Elm Street" series in 1984 that the strength of it rose to a new level. Therefore, because of the importance of "A Nightmare on Elm Street ", Newline even gained a nickname "Freddie''s little house". Freddie was the film''s leading role. Robert Shea''s face turned somewhat proud on hearing Eric''s tteringments: "Nevertheless, it can''t bepared with your Home Alone. I heard that the cost of it is only one million, but it has got 500 million dors at the box office globally, more than 500 times the cost. Such a return on investment may never be reached in the future. There will never be a movie like that again. " "Certainly there will be some," Ericughed, recalling the film The ir Witch Project in his previous life. Although the sess of that film was strongly contingent, it couldn''t be denied what a miracle it had created. Chapter 169: A roundabout talk Aniston, who had been sitting quietly beside Eric, was a little confused. Before she came, Eric did not hide the purpose of this invitation to Robert Shea. But now that dinner was past over half, neither of them had mentioned the acquisition of the filmpany at all. Instead, they were talking irrelevantly about kinds of industry insiders, such as the huge loss of MGM''s Heaven''s Door, the box office miracle of Gone with the Wind in 1939 when Robert Shea was born, why Disney rose so fast, or the truth of RKOs bankruptcy. Anyway, there was nothing about the acquisition, at least the not-so-intelligent youngdy didnt find anything rted. At first, Aniston listened with relish, then gradually losing interest, but she didnt want to be rude so that her boyfriend would lose face, thedy can only sit up and listen carefully, although her mind had flown to the horizon. Until the waiter removed the dishes and served coffee for them, Eric''s chat with Robert Shea was not over. "... Thetest issue of Variety published a data article. Statistics show that, from next year, the revenue from video tape and television rights of movies will surpass the box office. Moreover, the development of various copyrights of merchandising products from movies is more and more diversified. So the role of distribution channels will be increasingly important in the film industry chain. Pure content providers will find it difficult to survive. "That''s one-sided. If there are no excellent films, then the expansion of distribution channels will be impossible to talk about. Hollywood is developing its territory in the overseas market just by virtue of high-quality films one after another. If our films are as unproductive as European movies and few good ones were made, they will surely be like European movies, can only bepetitive in a small circle. Building highway is important, but without automobiles, highway has no value for existence. Moreover, the sry of Hollywood movie stars has increased more than ten timespared with ten years ago, and they have even begun to take cuts from the profits of movies, which is the most intuitive manifestation of the importance of content in the film market. Eric finished, took a slow sip of coffee and nced at Robert Shea. Shortly after the dinner began, they exchanged a few words of greetings and ttery, and insensibly started a secret confrontation. Although no one mentioned any issues aboutpany acquisition, they had been arguing about which part was of greater consequence, the content of the film or the distributor. The topic was initiated by Robert Shea, who had lost the upper hand since that moment. Now that Robert started the topic, Eric knew that he was very excited about the Firefly''s proposal to buy Newline. If he was unwilling to sell, he would not mention the topic at all. Robert Shea, was also slightly distressed. He found himself far underestimating the vision and insights of the youngd sitting opposite. . As an experienced man who has been making a living in Hollywood for more than twenty years, how could he not understand that once the topic was started, he was likely to uncover his intention? But Robert Shea thought Eric was only neen years old. Even though he had some talent in film making, he certainly knew very little about other aspects. And He was thirty years older than him, umting much more experience. Moreover, Robert thought his eloquence was not bad, so at first he was confident that he could hold Eric down. Once a seed was nted in Ericks heart that the distribution channel is the key, Robert would be able to take the initiative in future negotiations. Erics sessive films had worked wonders at the box office. So when Eric had someone invite him and leaked some info, Robert Shea felt tempted. Fireflies buying Newline was for sure, Robert Shea didn''t consider the possibility of the reverse at all. Robert Shea was already fifty years old, but still very ambitious. He didnt value the huge amount of money from fireflies purchasing. Instead, he hoped to achieve the merger of the twopanies and get as much equity as possible. Newline had now hit a bottleneck. Among the second-tier studios, Newline was already one of the best. It had a well-earned film series, and had built a good distribution channel in the United States while also cooperated with fixed distribution partners overseas. What''s more, Newline had not been attached to any film giant andpletely maintained its independent operation. Butpared with the six major filmpanies, Newline still got a very long way to go. The main reason was it had few box-office hits, or none at all. Up to now, Newlines most profitable series, a Nightmare on Elm Street, its highest box office was only over 40 million. However, the films box office in North America couldnt be considered qualified until reaching about 100 million U.S. dors. Without box office hits, Newline was doomed to be difficult to rank among the giants The pareto principle of the Hollywood market are particrly evident, namely, twenty percent of movies each year gained more than eighty percent of box office revenue. The top ten movies in the box office list are always monopolized by the six majorpanies, which meant that more than 80% of the box office revenue was pocketed into the six giants. In fact, the revenue proportion of the sixpanies had been reduced in recent years, because the vigorous development of various channels, providing independent filmpanies much space to grow. Therefore, the six giants upied only about 85%, leaving a 15% share to other Hollywood studios. This seemed to be a small percentage, butpared with that more than a decade ago, this proportion was veryrge. At that time, the sixpanies basically shared all the box office every year, leaving only a poor 1% to small studios. If Newline was aimed to make its way to rank among the giants to share the profits of that 80 percent, before meeting Eric, Robert had only two ways to choose, one was concentrating all its strength and risk making big investment, which might achieve big sales, but the risk was enormous. Once it failed, the Newline only had to go bankrupt. The other way for Newline was taking conservative approach, wishing maybe one day, a small-budget film invested by thepany surprisingly got box office sales, quickly helping Newline umte huge financial strength. If coupled with the good vision ofpany leaders, its following investment movies could also sell, that would achieve a virtuous circle. In this way, Newline would build up its strength and might join thergepanies one day. Lionsgate Film had risen by luck like this. Lionsgate, founded in 1997, was far less qualified and powerful than the old second-tierpanies like Newline and Miramax. However, its low-cost documentary Fahrenheit 911, which was released under great pressure of the government in 2004, luckily won 2.4 billion U.S. dors in worldwide box office, and quickly umted sufficient capital, and then with this capital, it developed a series of super-selling "Twilight" and "Hunger Games" series, once dominating giants like Universal and MGM. Following Warner, Disney, Colombia and Fox, Lionsgate ranked fifth in the box office. After Eric''s offer, Robert Shea saw another way to go for prosperity, which allowed Newline to move smoothly into the ranks of film giants without taking risks or waiting for good luck passively. Eric''s previous big sales had proved that he had the strength to do so. Since there was abined giant like MGM-United Artists in the Sixpanies, there would surely be another case like Newline-Firefly, well, Firefly-Newline. With a cup or two of coffee, Robert Shea had no patience to carry on with Eric. The young man''s patience was amazing. Although he was unwilling to admit it, Robert Shea had to face up to the fact that he had failed in the battle. If he didnt get to the point directly, maybe Eric would really take the meeting as a chat and got up to say goodbye. Maybe they could only meet again at the negotiating table next time. "Eric, I heard that Fireflies are ready to expand its distribution channels?" Stirring the refilled coffee with a spoon, Robert Shea asked casually. The corner of Erics mouth curled up. Finally he couldn''t cover the intention. The meal had been eaten for nearly two hours. Eric almost had no patience to spend time with Robert Shea. Thedy had thrown several charming winks suggesting that he should leave. Eric nned to finish his coffee. If Robert didn''t ask for it, he would go back home and get busy with Aniston. Now whats left was that fireflies officially and publicly issued the invitation to buy Newline. Eric wanted to probe Robert Shea''s intention and see if he was interested in selling Newline. Since in Erics memory, Robert Shea''s control desire was very strong. In his previous life, although Warner purchased Newline, it was Robert Shea that firmly controlled Newline, it seemed that almost 20 yearster, until Golden Compass underwent a great deficit, Robert Sheikh was forced to step down with great pressure. Robert Shea''s initial topic and long argument with Eric had shown his attitude, so it''s not necessary to talk about it at the dinner table. Anyway, even if a preliminary intention was reached, the specific terms still needed to be negotiated for a long time. Sony''s acquisition of Colombia had now taken more than half a year, with the time for previous nning, at least one year had passed. Firefly''s acquisition of the Newline would not be so troublesome, but it certainly couldnt bepleted in a month or two. Chapter 170: Bottom Line Yes, Robert, thats why I invite you here today, isnt it?, since Robert began first, Eric also came straight to the point. Robert Shea gave a hollowugh, trying to hide his embarrassment. It was weird. He had decided to give up in this invisible confrontation, but now, hearing what Eric had said, he regained a sense of frustration. After a sip of bitter coffee, Robert calmed down and said, "Well, Eric, I''m really interested in our cooperation, so lets hear your conditions first, shall we?" You know, Robert, I only value the distribution channels of New Line, so I''m going to buy out it with the initial price of $500 million. This price is negotiable of course. But the most important thing is, after the acquisition, I can make you the CEO of the brand-new Firefly. Come on, Robert, you are only 50 now, you want to retire? Course not. For 20 years boss, Eric, and now you want me to be your employee? The position of CEO is not attractive enough, Robert Shea raised his outstretched hands and continued, Sure, we can cooperate, only in the way like MGM-United Artists. New Line will have its channels and Firefly, excellent films. If we merge, a new film mogul called Firefly-New Line can rise in Hollywood in the next few years, what do you say? Then, after the merger, how do we allocate the equity? Roberts suggestion made Ericugh in his heart. Firefly-New Line? Interesting indeed, but Firefly alone was enough, any tail behind it was redundant. The brand, New Line would certainly be retained, but only as a subsidiary of Firefly. Hearing this question, Robert Shea shed a glimpse at Eric and again took his cup, lost in thought. Actually, he had begun to think about this question even before Erics invitation. Firefly was only more than half year old, with barely any distribution capability. The total value of its films was also negligible and worthless. However, the truth was, the profitability of Firefly was overwhelming. Excluding Home Alone, which literally was not a work of Firefly, even Pretty Woman alone had brought over $100 million to Firefly. Then, if Running out of Time achieved a box office of $200 million both at home and abroad, Firefly could gain at least another $80 million box office cut. Moreover, Robert Shea had learnt that Eric would cooperate with Fox on another two films, with additional three films already underway, among which, Home Alone 2 would definitely bring much profit. In addition, Tom Hunks had joined Sleepless in Seattle, which was directed by Eric himself, so no way would Firefly lose any money on it. As for the other 3 films, they were said to be low-cost investments of less than $10 million each. With Erics fame, they would certainly make a small profit. All the above suggested that this year, Firefly''s box-office profits alone would be equivalent to those of two film giantsbined, reaching an astonishing $400 million or so. The value of apany was about ten times its annual profit. Take the six film giants in Hollywood for example. The annual profit in good times for each of them was around $200 million, and thus the value tranted into $2 billion. Yes, Columbias value was surging now, but it was just a result of hype. Before Sony''s acquisition got leaked, Columbias value was also $2 billion. However, for New Line, only one of the six movies produced and releasedst year, a Nightmare on Elm Street 4, made a profit of more than 10 million dors, while othersbined only made a profit of several million dors. Taking video tapes and other film-rted products into ount,st year, the profit of New Line was only $30 million, which meant its value was no more than $300 million. Of course, the way it was calcted was only to provideymen with a general picture of thesepanies. In real business, by no means could apanys value be calcted in such a rough way. True, New Line achieved a profit of $30 millionst year, yet the credit should be given to the good year. A Nightmare on Elm Street 4 fortunately became a hit, while its former two works both only took some $20 million at the box office. Putting aside the cost, the profit share of those two films were insignificant. Therefore, Erics file showed that New Lines value estimated by the professional financial auditpany was only $ 500 million, which included its new film library, film series copyright, distribution channels and other assets. Its unstable annual profit was just a minor consideration. But it would a pain on the neck to calcte Fireflys value. Eric altogether spent less than $10 million on renting office and purchasing equipment. With the copyrights of the films like Home Alone, Pretty Woman and half the rights of Running out of Time, you could value Firefly at $100 million or even at $1 billion. So, when asked about the share of equity, Robert still failed to give a decisive answer despite days of deliberation. After a 5-minute-thinking, Robert raised the cup of coffee to his mouth with left hand, meanwhile, quite unassertively he stretched out 3 fingers with right hand, indicating the number 3. "Three percent?" Eric leaned forward and asked curiously. Hearing that, a mouthful of coffee spurted out from Roberts mouth. Thanks to a prompt turn, he did not spray the coffee on the whole table and Eric, but some drops did ssh on the chest part of Aniston''s long skirt. This absent-mindeddy was totally shocked, even having no time to dodge. She felt a little wet in her chest and screamed, grabbing a napkin to wipe the water stain. Meanwhile, she stared at Eric unpleasantly, not knowing what happened. She only heard Eric say something like three percent, and then her skirt was ruined. The service in this restaurant was indeed considerate. Noticing this incident, a waiter rushed to the table and delivered napkins. Having cleaned up the table and the floor, he stepped back quietly. "I''m so sorry," said Robert Shea, wiping his mouth and clothes with a napkin. He first apologized to Aniston and then turned to Eric, with a strong grievance on his face, "Eric, after twenty years hard working, mypany is only worth three percent of your share? If that''s the case, I think theres no need for us to waste time. All right, I get it, so you mean...thirty percent? Eric confirmed again. Robert Shea nodded: New Line has umted some assets over these years, so I dont prefer cash acquisition. I really expect our merger, but only on the condition that I take 30% stake. That''s my bottom line." Chapter 171: Not Much Time Left 30% is out of the question, Eric shook his head slightly, with eyes gazing at Robert Shea. Before any rebuttal, Eric leaned forward and continued: 30 percent of stake to merge a mere distributionpany is a losing proposition anyway, so I would rather give it up. As Firefly is going gangbuster now, all the seven Hollywood giants are willing to cooperate with me. I can even exchange Fireflys 30 percent of stake for 10 percent of stake of MGM, the underdog among the Hollywood giants. When Eric finished, Robert Shea rebutted instantly: Actually, Eric, you will not do that. If Firefly bes a subsidiary of seven giants, it meanwhile loses the chance to run neck to neck with them. I have been hustling in Hollywood for some 20 years, and I have been tired of seeing cases in which a film giant prevents the development of second-and third-tierpanies by acquisitions, so they will never threat its status. Its their same old trick, Eric. Of course, I will not do that. I just ount for a possibility. If I have to pay out 30 percent of stake to acquire New Line, I would rather exchange my stake for that of the giants. So, Robert, I have my bottom line, 10 percent at most, and if not enough, some cashes can be offered aspensation. Eric also bid his offer, 10 percent, a result of his long-time deliberation. He believed that it was enough to acquire New Line, and would attract other coborators. Thats far from enough, Robert said: I have run New Line for over 20 years, a child of mine it is to me. If your Firefly desires to merge it, 30 percent is not enough, and any offer less than that is uneptable. Eric almost burst outughing: Radio Keith Orpheum has longer history, where it is now? United Artists is an old brand but also became the subsidiary of MGM. So time, Robert, doesnt hold water. In 1981, United Artists was merged by MGM because of the huge losses of Heavens Gate, then only six giants, Warner, Universal, Paramount, MGM and Fox survived in Hollywood. But how about now? In just five years since Michael Eisner took the chair of Disney in 1984, the six giants had expanded into seven. Robert Shea was going red in the face---it seemed that Eric wasparing Robert with Michael Eisner. True indeed, he could hardly equal Michael Eisner, but it was ashamed to be pointed out by a young man 30 years his junior. In embarrassment, Robert blurted it out, Whatever, Eric, it must be 30 percent. Eric cated him as soon as he noticed Roberts anger: Well, Robert, we both have the intention to cooperate, so why dont we go deeper into the details. . Oh no, its useless, Robert Shea rejected: If 30 percent cannot be guaranteed, there will be no need for details. Eric''s was slightly agitated, with fingers tapping habitually on the table for a few times, because it did not make the usual light noise due to the tablecloth. Robert, you have to understand that there is not much time left for us. Robert Shea was slightly curious about Erics baffling words, but he didnt ask any questions after all to keep his momentum. Eric also went straight to the point: Over a decade ago, films could only make profits in cinemas, yet with the vigorous development of video tapes, cable television and other film-distributed channels, this small profiting circle had beenrgely expanded, which had also made films more and more important in the media industry. I believe that in the next decade, most of the Hollywood giants will be merged by media groups and be a part of the huge media industrial chain. Once this trend prevails, the Hollywood giants will gain the media and financial resources supported by media groups. That means film giants can spare the risks of bankruptcy caused by bad investment and will ultimately enhance their position with numerous media resources. By then, without Gods grace, second-and third-tierpanies can never weaken the impregnable position film giants backed by media groups. They will either be merged by film giants, and as you said, lose the chance to join them or carve up the scrapes of profits left over by the giants. Robert Shea restrained his surprise and kept it from his expression, resorting: There is something in your words, but this trend still has a long way to go. I have faith in New Line. It has chance as long as No, it doesnt, Eric interrupted Robert Shea firmly: Actually, this trend had begun a few years ago when News Corporation bought Fox. This year, with Columbia purchased by Sony, seven giants lessened to five. Moreover, I read in the newspaper that Warner intends to cooperate with Turner Network Television, establishing media group, then another giant gone. So, four film giants remain, and how long can they survive? Robert Shea went silent. Eric didnt stop his persuasion: Robert, as the second-and third-tierpanies, this is ourst opportunity to rise up. The time left for us is no more than 10 years, or even only 5 years. Yes, you can afford to miss the chance and be resigned to seeing the whole industry carved up. Then, as you imagined, you turn New Line into a first-ss filmpany through the umtion of luck and time, making more profits than any former giants. But the point is, by then except New Line, there will be no more pure filmpany anymore. All the former giants have already integrated into media group and you can neverpete with them, which means you are doomed to be a second-tierpany. Whening to this topic, Eric recalled the previous Lions Gate Films. With the poprity of The Hunger Games series and Twilight series, Lions Gate made more profits than two renowned filmpanies. However, at that time, except Lions Gate, all the other 6 giants had integrated into media groups. Although making more profits, Lions Gate had little chance to outdo them inprehensive strength. "What you said... is all hypothetical, isn''t it? Robert Shea could not help giving a short rebuttal. Eric could see that Robert Shea almost gave in and slowed down his tone: Robert, although it is hypothetical, with your experience in Hollywood for more than 20 years, you can certainly tell the possibility of this hypothesis, right? Robert Shea looked down at the cup with few coffees in it: But 10 percent is too puny Michael Eisner holds less than 10 percent of Disneys share, owning no more property than you. However, he ranks in the top three on the Hollywood power list, admired by 90 percent of people in Hollywood. Robert, you have mentioned that money is not attractive for us anymore. Think about it, after the acquisition, you will be the CEO of Firefly and you also trust the profitability of my films. It will only take few years for us to join the film giants party and we can win a seat in the industry after the integration with media groups. By then, your 10 percent of stake may be worth over $ 1 billion. But if you continue to run New Line independently, when will its value reach that number? OK, then 20 percent, Eric, 20 percent, this is the bottom line, Robert Shea was totally drawn by the prospect described by Eric, and offered a huge concession. Eric wore a slight and almost invisible triumph smile since Robert Shea had given up his original bottom line, then the negotiation could go on. Eric snapped his fingers to the waiter and handed the credit card to pay the bill. Then he said: Robert, currently it is hard for us to reach any results, and it''s a little bitte, so we should choose a more formal asion for further talks on details. No sooner had Robert Shea offered 20 percent than he regretted. He found that he should have been muddleheaded by a young mans tricky words. He would like to p on his own face---it was fine to decide to make a concession, but it was foolish to say it out. It seemed that Robert had made several mistakes tonight, which taught him not to underestimate Eric. Meanwhile, before the formal negotiation, any direct confrontation with Eric should also be avoided. Maybe it was good choice to entrusted this task with a professional negotiator. Noticing that Eric didnt continue to beat him down, Robert took the opportunity and said: All right, its quitete now, I should go back. After the three of them parted at the restaurant entrance, Aniston, who was quiet before, suddenly flung her arms around Erics neck, tiptoed andughed, Wow, Eric, you were so impressive just now. Robert was baffled by your momentum, huh. Eric fussed with a wisp of hair that had fallen from her forehead,ughing: So, do you admire me so much that you have the impulse to kneel down and kiss me shoes? Chapter 172: This is Just Unfair At first, Aniston felt cozy when Eric wasbing her hair but these words immediately rendered her pout, Bah! By no means! I think you were just talking nonsense though I did not quite get your point. Resources, M&A, territory, h, h, h. Eric pretended sadness and covered his chest with his hands, How badly you are hurting my pride! I shall teach you a good lessonter. Um Aniston lowered her head and blushed slightly and then suddenly looked up, Dont do that again! Otherwise, I will never let you go. Um? Do what? Eric was left in doubt for the moment. YouYou are deliberately annoying me, thess stamped her feet on the ground. She thought that Eric was ying dumb, thus letting go of his arm angrily and moving forward several steps. Seeing thess forward raising her bottom, Eric suddenly realized what had happened and strode along to catch up with a snicker. He patted on the sexy buttocks and said, Okay. Please forgive me for my slow reaction. Ah Thess was taken by surprise and dodged like a frightened little rabbit. She covered her bottom and nced around quickly. Not until she found there was no pedestrian walking by did she take a deep breath. Then she red at Eric, saying, YouHow indecent the action is! Eric smiled and stepped forward. Then he cuddled thess close and pinched her waist, kissing her hard on the face and whispering by her ear, You will see much more indecencyter on. Humph! The girl wanted to escape but stopped resisting after being continuously teased by Eric. She had no choice but to enjoy the cuddle. Very soon, the doorman drove Erics car here. After tipping, Eric and Aniston got into the car. Shall we get to my ce? Thess asked in a low voice after Eric started the engine. Of course, Eric turned the wheel and drove onto the road. Thinking of what happened several months ago, he could not helpughing, Drew must have alreadye back. Do you want to go to my ce and have another fight with the little girl? Humph! Thess turned around angrily. After a while, she thought of something and turned back, Eric, how is the house you had others build in Malibu? Considering the time of decoration, it will take altogether two or months. With good luck, we can move in by end of this year. Maybe we can have a fabulous party with great sea view for Christmas. Eric stared at the road forward and answered. The t in Malibu was modeled upon the super seaside vi of Iron Man in Erics memory. More than half a year had already passed since the building work started. The inefficiency of American workers was really annoying, showing a stark contrast with the efficiency Eric had witnessed in his previous life. At that time, it only took 10-plus days to construct a building of tens storeys high. However, if Erics t was just built in 10-plus days, he would be too worried to live in. At the very beginning, Eric would often ask Frank Gary about what was going on with the construction. After two or three months, though, he lost the interest in asking. Instead, he just looked through the project reports made by Frank Garys firm regrly andforted himself by trying to believe that soft fire makes sweet malt. Hearing Erics answer, thess asked in a low voice, ThenBy then, will Drew also move in? Eric used his thumb to rub against the wheel and replied, You know that Drew is just 14 years old. She is still a kid. Legally or personally, I shall by no means leave her alone. At least, we need to wait until she is 16. At that time, I may ask her to move out. Aniston wrinkled up her little nose and snorted in distaste, She is not like a little girl at all! Ha-ha, thats true. However, many things just go like this. To a certain extent, Drew is a public figure. These so-called child protection organizations will always pay more attention to her. If I ask her to move out now, it will surely cause dissatisfaction. Humph! Why was not the girl born in the slums? In that case, no one will bother to care about her. Yes, Eric gave a sighThe world is just unfair. Generally speaking, America is still dominated by the elite and its education only serves them. This county can only ensure that the top earners will remain prominent as always. Who will care about the children of the lower ss? They might drop out of school at 11 or 12, or give birth when 13 or 14. No one will bother to care about them. Drew is different and has already climbed to the higher part of the pyramid. This has brought her the benefits that will only be enjoyed by the elite. Those benefits include being cared for by child protection organizations. Leaning one hand against the window, pouting at Eric, Okay, you have once again sessfully changed the topic of our conversation. You always have one million ways to do this. Humph! I can sense your intentions but I just dont want to get to the bottom of it all. This time, it is you that have diverged from the original topic, Eric smiled. It is you! Okay, its me. Eric did not want to argue relentlessly and said, The t in Malibu is quite big! Jenny, you can also move in by then. By no means will I live together with her. Me or her, it is up to you! Eric patted on the wheel and said, Okay, just forget about what I have said. UmYou are such a jerk! You are always showing more affection for her! Her eyes wide open, thess stared at Eric. She looked here and there, seeming to give a bite on Eric somewhere. Eric nced at thess and warned her immediately, Stop messing around, please. I am driving now. Suddenly, Eric felt his Motor phone ringing. Then he instantly pulled over and answered the call. The call was from Drew who was talking excitedly. Eric nced at thess by his side and immediately got off. Not until he ran under a streetmp did he begin to speak up. Aniston sensed Erics carefulness, feeling angry but somewhatFine. After all, he cares a lot about my feelings, thess thought to herself. After a moment, Eric got back in the car, closed the door and started the engine. What happened? Aniston still could not help asking after a while. Eric shook head and repliedI do not know. The little girl kept on talking and tried to persuade me intoing back. She said that she had good news to tell me. Fine, just forget about it and wait until tomorrow. Lets go to your ce first. Um Aniston pinched the skirts and started to speak after a long while, WellMaybe you should go back and see what has happened. There might be something important. Chapter 173: A Trivial Matter Eric pushed the door open and walked into the living room. Hearing the sound, Drew immediately jumped up from the sofa and embraced Eric full of excitement. She was smiling sweetly but then snuffled and turned unhappy after sensing that Eric was trying to dodge. Drew pretended to dislike Erics reaction and drew a breath near his left cheek. Then she used her sleeves to rub against his face before kissing it. Eric found the little girls act both funny and annoying. Stepping forward, he got rid of the cuddle and put Drew onto the sofa. Then he sat down by her side and asked: Okay. Why did you hurry to see me? Eric noticed the striking ck file on the tea table and opened it. It turned out to be a copyright transfer contract. Haha, you have quickly secured the copyright on An Affair to Remember. I thought that I would have to wait until the summer vacation ended. Drew smilingly leaned against Eric and put her jaw on his shouldersThis is Hollywood. As long as you have money, things will be much easier. How much did you spend? Eric took the metal clipper away from the file and asked casually. 3.5 million, the little girl said the price unconfidently and promptly exinedBut it is all-inclusive and permanent copyright. We own the copyright on even the original soundtracks in the movie. Eric nodded. If what Drew said was true, the price would be eptable. He would just take this as a chance to erge the Firefly Film Stock. Maybe he could also wait until Sleepless in Seattle became a blockbuster and invest in the reshooting of An Affair to Remember. Eric had intended Drew to acquire only the 5-year copyright on the film, but the result was a bit different. After all, the original copyright owner would surely grasp the chance to rip off the potential buyer who was interested in the old film dating back 30 years. Five years? No deal! If you wanted to buy it, you had to ept the high price. Seeing Eric nodding his head, Drew felt at ease and began to exin further, This film was originally produced by Jerry Wald, an investor who started his own filmpany. The guy shot a number of fantastic films but then had the misfortune to die from a heart attack. His wife sold the copyright on several films to another filmpany. Later, that business went bankrupt. The twist and turn sent the copyright to Fox finally. Wow, while listening to the girl, Eric saw in the file the name of 20th Century Fox. Then he nearly sprang up. Drew was exining carefully when she was shocked by Erics exmation. She opened her eyes wide and askedWhatWhat happened? Is there anything wrong? You just said thatThis film was bought from 20th Century Fox? Eric tried his luck and asked once again. The girl fluttered her eyshes innocently and moved her chin up and down, Yes? Eric forced a smile, Gosh, I will court the hatred of Fox. On that evening, Eric was so fed up with the little girls disturbance that he suddenly decided to find her a part-time job during the summer vacation. Not for a moment did he think about the copyright on An Affair to Remember. If the copyright owner was Warners, Universal Picture or Paramount Pictures, Eric would let it go since he had no rtions with them. Making films was also a business and you could in no case keep making a profit. However, never could Eric imagine the copyright owner to be 20th Century Fox. Now he was still in a good working rtionship with Fox and he did not want to ruin the rtions. For this reason, Eric exined in person to Barry Diller and madepensation by giving the copyright on a TV series when Columbia Pictures wanted the copyright on Running out of Time. Life was ying tricks on him now and God was deliberately spoiling his rtions with Fox this time. After Sleepless in Seattle was put on show, if the videotapes of An Affair to Remember sold 2 million copies like his friend said in his previous life, the sales value would reach 60 million dors and the film would be like a box-office sess. Although filmpanies announced to the public that the videotape profits ounted for less than 20% and that the cost more than 80%, insiders would easily see through their lies. The percentage of videotape profits would easily exceed 50% and it was even higher than that of box-office profits. In this case, the videotapes of An Affair to Remember would bring Eric at least 30 million dors. Eric could almost imagine how some people would fly into a rage. Seeing Erics constantly changing expressions, Drew asked curiously, How can it be like this? We have spent 3.5 million dors and Fox has made money. Why will they hate us? Yes, it is true that we have spent more than 3 million dors. The point is that we are likely to make 30 million dors from this film in less than 1 year. How will Fox feel then? The little girl covered her small mouth with her hands surprisedly. Eric asked her to secure the copyright on the film and said the business could bring money. Drew had thought that the maximum profits would be 1 or 2 million dors. So she was a little nervous when confiding the film had been bought at the price of 3.5 million dors. If they could really make 30 million dors . ButIt seems thatEric, Fox does not know that we are the purchaser. For fear of making them link the business with you, I did not meet Foxs people in person. Instead, I found an agent who transferred the copyright to me after getting it. All through the process, Fox did not know that it was us that wanted the copyright. As she went on saying, Drews voice was getting lower. She immediately realized that Fox people, as long as they were sane, would surely link the business with Eric if Sleepless in Seattle gained poprity and then a big fortune was made from An Affair to Remember. Thinking of this, the girl stuck out her tongue, Then, Eric, what shall we do now? Eric rubbed against his temples and thought for a moment. If Sleepless in Seattle was put on show by the end of this year, then the videotapes of An Affair to Remember would not be a sales miracle until next year. By then, he had already fulfilled his contract with Fox for this year. So he would not worry about Fox making trouble for the film distribution. At most, Fox would y some tricks to dy the process of shared revenue. In that case, there was no need to worry since the contract signedst year had clearly stipted the rights and obligations of both parties. If Fox breached the contract, thepany would be unlikely to win thewsuit. The filmmakers in Erics previous life were so careless that they did not find problems with profit-sharing contracts until the films became blockbusters. At that time, it was toote to rid themselves of disputes that couldst for years. Eric was totally different from them. Well, lets just forget about it. The meat has been readily offered to us and we just cannot give it back. After all, it is Fox that has offered to sell the copyright and we have paid thepany arge sum. Ha-ha, the girl felt relieved, cuddled Eric and kept rubbing against his body coquettishly, Eric, but there is also a trivial matter Chapter 174: An Unexpected Gain "Atrivial matter?" Eric dragged her towards him and putted her on hisp, pinching her pretty face: "Have you stirred up trouble?" "That''s impossible, I''m not a trouble maker!" Drew denied: "Here is the thing, I approached an agent for purchasing the copyright of this movie." Eric immediately understood: "Oh, you''ve promised them benefits, but you can''t honor your promise. And it must be rted to me, am I right?" "Eric, you are so smart!" Snuggling in Eric''s body, the little girl raised her head and looked up to him. "Alright, tell me the truth!" Eric couldn''t help but gently flipped her on the forehead. "In fact, there is no big deal." The little girl assured him before saying: "When I was trying to approach the agent, there happened to be a man called Lawrence Banding closer to me with his friend in the party. He gives me a script and hopes that I can transfer it to you for your investment." "It''s understandable that they find you because they can''t reach me. But why do they want my investment when there are so many filmpanies. They probably have chosen the top seven filmpanies, even if they don''t, shouldn''t they choose tier-2 or tier 3 filmpanies?" Drew threw her arms around Eric''s neck, smiling: "Because you have money." Eric shrugged: "You should know that there is not much left in the revenue-sharing from Home Alone. Even if I can get the revenue sharing from Temptress Moon, I will spend all that money soon if I am to acquire a filmpany to establish our channels of film distribution. The revenue from Running Out of Time can''t be spent anymore and it should be saved for paying taxes next year, which is 35% of the total revenue. I don''t have much cash left after doing all those things.Ah! I just find that I don''t save even a penny after a year of arduous efforts." The little girl patted him on the shoulder: "Mr. Millionaire, don''t worry. I will support you if you don''t have money." "If only a woman could say that in my previous life." Eric smiled: "Let''s return to your topic. What''s the name of that man?" "His name is Lawrence Band. Those filmpanies think they are too young to produce a movie by themselves even if their script is good. After all, a formal movie needs an investment of at least one million US dors. I think that''s why they want your investment." "So you agree to let him to be your agentis he capable of being your agent?" Eric asked another question. "He is so smart that he opens a shell filmpany with his friend. There are many suchpanies in Hollywood. Two years ago, they made a low-cost movie written and produced by him and directed by his friend. But after the movie is finished, the negatives are burned down to ashes in a fire ident, causing a great loss to them." "It''s a pity. Lawrence Band, rightwait, Lawrence Band?" Eric suddenly raised his tone. "Ah?" Drew nodded, not knowing what happened. Eric lowered her down from his legs, pointing to the table: "Can you spell his name?" Through a bit confused, Drew still walked toward the tea table, dipping her fingers in the teacup and thinking for a moment before tentatively writing down two words: "It''s supposed to spell like this, isn''t it? After writing down the man''s name, the little girl turned backed and asked Eric uncertainly. Seeing what she wrote, Eric changed it from Laorence to Lawrence and gently knocked on her head: "I really want to know what you are doing in school. You can''t even spell such a simple name. I spend a lot of money sending you to the boarding school, but I''ve never seen your transcripts. Bring them to me next time." "Aha, you don''t need it, do you?" The little girl grinned with her hands holding on the tea table, preparing to take flight at any time. However, Eric forgot the whole thing. Looking at the name on the tea table, he thought it waspletely the same as what he remembered. The reason why he didn''t realize it when Drew mentioned that name was that he usually read the tranted Chinese version of it in his previous life and Drew''s English ent waspletely different from that he learned in his previous life. "Drew, what''s the name of Lawrence Band''s friend? Eric continued asking. The little girl scratched her head and thought for a moment: "It seemsmaybeto be Quentin Tarantino." Drew saw Eric''s expression changed abruptly after she said that, so she asked him: "Eric, you know them, right?" Eric calmed down and soon found an excuse, nodding: "I seem to have heard of the name when you mention it. I used to hear other people talking about these two poor guys shooting a movie together, only to find the negatives burned down to ashes in a fire ident when the movie ispleted." Not mentioning whom he was talking with, Eric said it unambiguously so he didn''t care if Drew wanted to verify it or not. But obviously Drew didn''t suspect anything and believed everything that he said. "Do you mean they expect me to invest in their movie? Do they give you a script? Eric asked. Drew shook her head: "No, I haven''t asked for that. I want to discuss it with you first and if you don''t agree with it, I will stave off them." "It''s not good. You can''t ke them since you''ve already promised them, though they are just nobody. It will have certain negative impact on our expanding of the business in movie making if news spreads out that you patronize them." Eric seated on the sofa and said: "You can bring them to the studio of Friends tomorrow noon. I will have a look at their script during the lunch break." "Eric, why do you need to see them? It''s time-consuming. Quentin Tarantino is only a scenarist in his twenties. Howe he writes a good script? I can get the script for you if you want, but is it necessary to see them?" Eric smiled: "Don''t you know that you are even less than twenty years old?" "Ah, I think you are at least forty years old." The little girl said. Her instinctwas so urate! Patting her head, Eric felt relived soon because it was not surprising that such a smart girl could guess his real age after years'' of living together with her. In fact, many others had known his real age. "Alright, it''s a deal. Bring them to the film studio tomorrow on time." "Hum." Drew replied. Then she acted like a spoiled child: "Eric, will I get a reward if I get it done?" Patting on her back, Eric said: "Sure. I''ve opened a filmpany for you and it will be yours when you turn eighteen. The copyright of An Affair to Remember we''ve purchased will be put under thispany." "Wow, what''s the name of it?" The little girl asked excitingly. "Flower Films." The girl was caught off guard, curling up her lips, and said: "Flower StudiosSuch a rustic name. Why not we change it to another one?" Was it Rustic? Staring at the baby face of the little girl, Eric said:" It is the one that you name in your previous life. How could it be rustic? Can you think of another name?" Leaning against Eric''s chest, Drew thought about it for a while before raising her head sadly. Obviously, she was not gifted with a talent for naming things, so she had to say: "thenjust name it Flower Studios" Eric smiled, touching her head and then said: "It''s toote. Time for bed." While the girl grabbed his hand and stopped him from standing up, saying: "No, no, no hurry, Eric. School doesn''t start for another month. Why not give me some other works, like purchasing the copyright of a movie?" "Humlet me see. I will give you a list tomorrow. Now it''s bed time." Eric said. "Don''t brush me off. I need to get it tomorrow!" Not letting him go, the girl continued to say. "I will certainly give it to you tomorrow." Eric said and then turned to the staircase. Instead of going directly to the bedroom, he went to the study room only to see the girl following him. Then he said: "Don''t disturb me. Just go to sleep. If you always stay up toote, you may be very ugly before 30 years old." "Hum!" The girl turned back and went to the bedroom reluctantly with her brow frowned. Sitting at the desk, Eric idly picked up a pen while unfolding a notebook before him. He wore a smile when thinking that Quentin Tarantino, known as the wizard director in his previous life, should visit him voluntarily. Although Lawrence Bender was not as well-known as Quentin Tarantino, they were actually old partners with the former being the producer of all of thetter''s movies. Due to Eric''s Butterfly effect, he had attracted them toe and visit him two years prior to their rising to fame. It was unknown that whether Reservoir Dogs and Pulp Fiction, both of which were popr movies in their previous lives, would be presented to him. After all, the Butterfly effect he created had so much impact that Quentin might give up those two movies with one thought in passing. In the meantime, Eric was intrigued to see what kind of script Quentin would present tomorrow. Chapter 175: Why Was it Black? The tall ck security guard, standing at the gate of Fox Studio, was staring from time to time at two men standing under the shelter not fat away from the gate. Having the same height of over 6 feet, those two men dressed formally. However, the younger one who was furrowing his eyebrows with arge forehead and a strong chin didn''t seem to be a good person. While the elder one carried a backpack without a camera, far from what a paparazzo would do. Therefore, the ck security guard paid more attention to them and informed it to other fellows in case they slipped in unnoticed. Although such thing rarely happened, it did before. There were celebrities shooting films in the studio frequently, once they were harassed by anyone slipping in, the security guards will be dismissed whether it incurred a loss or not. Yet both of them were well-behaved without any improper action, the security guard, as a result, had no excuse to drive them away. Having been waiting there since 10:00 AM, they didn''t even leave when it was almost 12:00 AM. It seemed that they were waiting for someone since they would look at the gate of the studio and the roadside from time to time. At around 11:50 AM, a yellow taxi stopped near the gate of the studio. As the door opened, a little girl of fair skin stepped out of the car. With a small yellow T-shirt and a heart shaped sunsses on, the little girl carried a canvas bag, holding a parasol in her hand. Upon seeing the girl, those two men quickly approached her and during their conversation, the elder man even took the girl''s parasol with full hospitality. Then they were walking towards the gate. The ck security guard seemed to have recognized the girl of fair skin wearing sunsses. As they approached and arrived at the entrance of the gate, he stopped them and said: "Sorry, please show your passes." When the other two looked at the girl, she wore off the sunsses and said: "Sir, Ie here to look for Eric Williams. Can we go inside without the pass?" "Youyou are Miss Drew Barrymore." The security guard recognized her as she wore off her sunsses. Letting down his guard, he smiled at Drew with sharpest white teeth: "Sure, no problem. But ording to the rule, one can''t be allowed to enter without a pass. So Miss Barrymore, can you wait for a minute? I will call for the studio of Mr. Williams to let him send personnel to pick you up." "Thanks, thisMr. Crick." Drew nced at his name tag and said. At noon in August of the Los Angeles, the sun was zing with a temperature over 30 degrees. It was hot that the ck security guard guided them to the lounge near the gate before making a call. Entering the lounge, the girl sat on a chair naturally, taking out a gum from her backpack and put it in her mouth. As she finished adjusting her hair against the cosmetics mirror, she smiled and said to those two men standing next to her: "Lawrence, have you been waiting for a long time?" "Certainly not, Drew. We arrive here only half an hour prior to you." Lawrence Bender replied, smiling. After hearing him saying like that, the security guard only shot a nce at him with no intention of giving the game away. Seeing their shirts soaked with sweat, the girl shrugged, asking no more questions. She had already told them to arrive after 11:00 AM. But they seemed toe here much earlier, probably for fear of being dyed by traffic congestion. Anyway, the girl didn''t care much about that. Quentin Tarantino, who stood next to Lawrence Bender, didn''t utter a word at all, not because he was shy or fear of strangers. Actually, he was more talkative than Lawrence Bender. It was just he felt somewhat ufortable when he flicked over toward the toes peeing out of her sandals. Her fair and delicate toes were as exquisite as a pair of artworks. But why were they painted ck nail polish, why ck! His heart being scratched by something, he even had an impulse to throw himself toward her and remove her nail polish. But he certainly wouldn''t do it. . Drew had a few words with Lawrence Bender. As she turned to Quentin, she happened to find that he was ncing at her feet. Instead of being angry, she smiled at him as if saying "I have caught you." Feeling awkward, Quentin quickly turned his eyes to the other side and covered his mouth with his hand before coughing twice to relieve the awkward situation. While the girl didn''t want to let him go, she raised her feet and directly asked him: "Is there anything wrong with my feet, Quentin?" "UmNo, certainly not, Miss Barrymore, your feet arebeautiful." Quentin answered incoherently. But soon he felt his waist was hit by Lawrence''s elbow, he suddenly came to his senses and said: No, no, I mean" The girl giggled boisterously as she saw Quentin''s nervousness. Feeling speechless, Lawrence Bender glimpsed at his best friend and thought to himself: "If Miss Barrymore were petty, our hard-won opportunity would be ruined." Luckily, with the personnel picking them up appearing, Quentin''s embarrassment was resolved. And they all went to the studio of Friends by an electric vehicle. Entering the studio, Drew went directly to Eric. As Lawrence Bender and Quentin Tarantino quickened their pace to follow her up, they found that Drew threw herself into Eric, a young man with a blue T-shirt. Eric hugged the girl and had no choice but let her rub against his face before letting her go and walking toward Lawrence Bender and Quentin Tarantino. "Hello, Mr. Tarantino and Mr. Bender." Eric shook hands with them. Quentin thought Eric would greet Lawence first since he was the one taking the lead. However, Eric indeed greeted him first, which created a sudden illusion in his mind of being ttered. Although Quentin was narcissistic in his friends'' eyes, he would naturally feel dwarfed in the presence of Lawrence Bender who had already secured over $1 billion at worldwide box office. Chapter 176: Seven Colored Robbers "Hi, Mr. Williams, I like your movie Running Out of Time very much. It''s well plotted with an excellent sound track, especially the song Silent Love started when the hero and heroine encountered. I hear that youpose the song yourself, which is really amazing." Quentin quickly opened his mouth due to Eric''s friendliness and directly talked about that movie still in the cinemas. Although Quentin admired Eric''s achievement in movies, he was indifferent to his other movies except thetest one with distinctive characteristics. Eric presents a modest smile: "I only offered some inspirations and actually it was the filmposer that contributes a lot to the song." While Lawrence Bender seemed to be anxious. Since the meeting time was limited within one hour, he knew that Eric would start working anytime with these personnel around him. Even if Quentin''s conversation with Eric about music could bring them closer, he shouldn''t waste much time on it. Afraid of interrupting their conversation, Lawrence had to wink at Quentin gently. Eric had noticed Lawrence''s anxiousness and without furthering his conversation with Quentin, he said: "Why don''t we go to the lounge and have a working lunch together. I guess you haven''t had lunch yet." "Sure, thanks, Mr. Williams." "Just call me Eric." Eric said. While seeing what happened not far away, he told them to wait for a minute and then walked immediately toward Drew and Aniston. He thought to himself that it would be troublesome if these two sweethearts fought with each other here, "Hey, Drew and Jenny, what are you talking about?" Eric asked as he went closer, seeing that they were ring at and ready to fight against each other. The little girl immediately gave up her confrontation with Aniston as she saw Eric approaching. She ran toward Eric, held in his arms andined: "Eric, she started the trouble first. I just say hello to her and then she bes angry. She is so mean." "It''s you"Aniston said with an expression of grievance and anger. Exactly. She was staring at Eric instead of Drew, which confused Eric. And he had to ask: "Drew, how do you say hi to Jane?" Drew seemed to be unaware of Aniston''s annoyance, she shrugged and said: "I just go and pat her hit as shees out of the room, saying ''Hey, plump girl, your butt be rounder,'' and then she bes angry." Eric figured out why Aniston got irritated without seeing the mes of anger in her eyes. Saying thosepletely unintentionally, Drew possibly only wanted to make fun of Aniston''s weight gain, thest thing that Aniston wanted to mention. She might think that Eric told that awkward thing to Drew who made fun of her this time. At the thought of that, Eric let go of Drew and hugged Aniston, whispering to her: "Jenny, Drew said that unintentionally. Just forgive her." "Do you promise?" Aniston blinked her eyes. "I swear. Thatthat is impossible, am I right?" Eric patted her on the back. Having realized that it waspletely a coincidence, Aniston pushed him away and said: "Humyou need to deal with the two guests waiting there and I am going for lunch." "I am also going for lunch. I don''t know how the lunch is here." Drew left while her eyes were still rolling. "You are in the studio. Don''t make a mess. Be good." Eric told them worriedly. "Humph!" "Of course!" Drew and Aniston left away without turning back. Seeing they were going toward different directions, Eric felt relieved and went to the lounge along with Lawrence Bender and Quentin Tarantino. In the meantime, he told the assistant to bring three bento for him. "Drew has already told me the story. Can I have a look at the script?" Eric said after seating by the table of an austere style. "Of course." Lawrence Bender took a thick script from the backpack and pushed it toward Eric. Eric found that the script was neither named Reservoir Dogs nor Pulp Fiction, it was Seven Colored Robbers instead. He couldn''t help but felt choosy about the script and then opened itposedly. Judging by the name of the script, Eric knew that it had much inmon with Reservoir Dogs. Seven Colored Robbers seemed to be echoed with the six robbers of jewelry stores represented in six colors in Reservoir Dogs created in Quentin''s previous life. For many scriptwriters, they already had some thoughts in their mind for years before they wrote scripts. But there must be much difference in a script written at different times. An ordinary person couldn''t see such difference. While Eric was lucky enough to encounter such an interesting thing as a time traveler. The assistant soon brought three set meals to them along with several bottled waters. "Quentin and Lawrence, you can have it first. Never mind me." Raising his head, Eric nced at Quentin and Lawrence who were gazing at him with expectations. "Sure, thanks." Quentin and Lawrence snatched the tableware, opened the bento and grabbed a bite. Actually, they had no appetite under such circumstance. Instead they seemed to be students awaiting the result of the examination. They ate slower after Eric finished reading the script. Noticing that they had slowed down having lunch, Eric flipped one more page of the script without telling them again to eat. The plot of Seven Colored Robbers roughly resembled that of Reservoir Dogs, in which the gang leader gathered together several people who didn''t know each other to rob a jewelry store, ending up being ambushed by the police officers. Judging by the name of the script, the number of robbers was increased from six to seven. At the very beginning of the plot, Quentin''s talkaholic style waspletely disyed. Then came the failure of robbery and two robbers had to drive away toward the meeting ce. In this script, Quentin imitated several settings in City on Fire, just as what he had done in his previous life. It urred to Eric that Quentin even went to Hong Kong to exin to the director of City on Fire for that movie, which, in the eyes of Eric, was a report made by the tabloids for putting feathers in their caps. It only took Eric about 20 minutes to finish reading the whole script of almost 100 pages, because he couldpare it with the original version in his mind. Putting down the script, Eric looked at Quentin and Lawrence who felt uneasy and said: "It''s nice. Let''s have lunch." Hearing what Eric said, they felt relieved. There would be much possibility that Eric invested in this film. To make the film more likely to be invested, Lawrence specifically listed the budget at the end of the script, which was about 1 million US dors. They were all convinced this film with a distinctive style would arouse Eric''s interest. And the budget of this film was only 1 million US dors. Eric, with his amount of wealth, would definitely invest in this film. Actually, if it were not they wanted to have the full power of directing the film, they wouldn''t have to choose Eric. Thinking through all of these, Quentin and Lawrence continued to have lunch with an easy mind. They were pretty hungry after waiting for 2 hours outside Fox Studio. After the lunch, Eric took the script again: "I hear Drew says you two want to direct the film yourselves?" "Yes, Eric. Iwe already have an experience of producing a film. So we think we can handle the script ourselves." Nodding his head, Eric didn''t say Yes or No and flipped several pages before saying: "You have your own filmpany, don''t you?" Looking at each other, they didn''t understand why Eric would ask such a question. And then Lawrence nodded: "Yes, it''s band-apart named by Quentin who got inspiration from Band of Outsiders directed by the film master Godard in his early works. Eric knew that Godard filmed the popr film King Lear but he didn''t know Band of Outsiders. Since he didn''t know the hidden meaning of the name of their filmpany, he wanted to figure it out. "So Quentin and Lawrence, do you have any interest in joining Firefly Films?" Eric asked. "Hum?" "Ah?" They both said a word indicative of their confusion simultaneously. Eric exined: "I mean, your filmpany is nothing but a shellpany. Do you have interest in joining my Firefly Films? As you know, mypany is thriving." Quentin and Lawrence looked at each other. They had some understanding of Firefly Films. Although it was established by Eric and most of the films it produced were directed by Eric, it had a strength that couldn''t be underestimated. It would be good for them if they could join in thepany. However, they were just nobody. They couldn''t figure out why Eric would invite them to join it. That didn''t make sense. Chapter 177: Changing the Name Eric did not bother to think about their considerations. Quentin and Lawrence did not agree immediately and then he stopped talking about this topic. After all, if the cooperation this time went on smoothly, the Firefly Film Company would be the top choice for the two persons. Looking at his watch, Eric continued, "Just forget about it. Time is running out and let''s first talk about the script. I can invest in shooting this film and you need not limit the budget to 1 million dors. You two can shoot withoutpromising." Quentin and Lawrence had felt doubtful about Eric''s invitation to the Firefly Film Company. After seeing him disregard this matter so easily, however, they started to feel disappointed, regretting not having agreed at once. This mood fluctuation had such a big effect on the two that they reacted slowly to what Eric said then. Not until Eric finished speaking and looked up at them did Lawrence finally start to respond. He tried for confirmation by asking joyfully, "Eric, is it true?" Then Quentin also realized what had happened and looked at Eric full of joy. Eric nodded once again:"Of course. But I have several conditions." The two suddenly understood what was going on. In the meantime, they felt at ease since it was quite unreasonable for Eric to both make an invitation and promise investment without mentioning any conditions. The two just hoped that Eric would not interfere too much in the film production. "Above all, the cast of the film must be selected from the entertainmentpany called uta. Do you know about it?" Eric asked uncertainly at the end of his statement. In these days, he had paid little attention to the operation of uta and had only called Kapoor Cid several times. So he knew almost nothing about thepany except that the business was thriving. Since he was bing much more famous now, Eric had, in order to avoid suspicion, hardly got involved in the management of uta. Surely, there were some media agencies that had tried to find fault with the monopoly of uta. In the end, however, their efforts did not pay off. In fact, the antitrustws in North America were not as strict as they were imagined to be. Several decades ago, the Paramount Act stipted that filmpanies could not vertically manage cinemas. The decree had already lost much of its binding force on major filmpanies. One could not say it existed in name only, but the truth was that the cinema screens owned by major filmpanies ounted for more than 1/10 of the total. The geographical advantages of theaters chosen by big filmpanies were undoubted and the 1/10 of all cinemas were the best among them. Secretly, major film businesses controlled an evenrger scale of cinemas. It all resulted from the federal government turning a blind eye. The then Paramount act had ended the monopoly of major film studios but dealt a serious blow to the Hollywood film industry. Now the business was booming with a bigger profit, exerting an influence on even the whole globe. Everything was going so smoothly that those big filmpanies were gradually expanding their business. In this case, the government would not be so silly as to ruin all of this without the interference of strong forces. Hearing Eric''s question, Lawrence Bender hurried to nod his head:"Of course, we definitely know about it." Then Lawrence and his best friend looked at each other before he started to reply:"We can meet this condition." "Moreover, some changes should be made to the script " Eric continued to speak. Quentin heard this and found the requirement displeasing. However, he dared not show his annoyance. Eric smiled slightly and said:"You can rest assured that I am quite satisfied with the content. I just find the name of The Seven-colored Robbers strange. We can use another great name. " Quentin then felt at ease and so did Lawrence. If Eric made big changes to the script, Lawrence would be quite worried about his friend raising a direct objection and spoiling the cooperation. Luckily, Eric just proposed to change the film name and this was eptable. Eric lowered his head, grabbed a pen, directly wrote down two words on the script and passed it to the two. Quentin and Lawrence moved close and read the words out in unison, "Reservoir Dogs?" "Yes, that''s it," Eric smiled yfully, "I feel that this name matches the plot exactly. All the characters in the story are like reservoir dogs, aren''t they?" This time, Lawrence Bender looked at Quentin. Thetter used his index finger to rub against his big forehead and hesitated for a while before nodding, "Okay. Let''s call it Reservoir Dogs." In fact, Quentin also felt that the name was much better than the original. As a scriptwriter, though, he felt a little unhappy when the name was changed by a young man sitting opposite him. "Moreover, I feel that there should not be 7 robbers. Six is Okay. I have looked through the script. 3 of them died directly but several paragraphs are about them. So the relevant dialogues seem a little redundant. Of course, what I said is just a suggestion and it''s you who have the final say." Eric added. This idea came up suddenly and was only intended to make this ssic B-movie as yful as the edition in the previous life. If Quentin did not want to make the changes, that was Okay since the script was simply characterized by its nonlinear narrative structure. If all got condensed, the story would be quite a boring one: the head of a gang called together several robbers with colors as the code names and asked them to rob a jewelry store of its diamonds. However, the group was betrayed and then besieged by the police. Some died in the gunfire and the remaining robbers fled into a warehouse. A series of fights happened and it was the internal conflict that killed all in the very end. That was all. The advantage of films was that they could, in various narrative methods, present in an interesting way apany that was too mediocre to be noticed. "I will consider it," Quentin nodded after sensing that Eric was just making a suggestion. Quentin''s first reaction was refusal but he did not refuse directly. What he should do then would not be decided until he discussed with his best friend. "Well, the rest is fine with me." Eric leanedfortably against the chair and looked at the two, "Do you have anything else to discuss?" Quentin pulled the script over and ced it under his hand before asking, "Eric, what aboutwhat about the film director?" Eric smilingly shrugged his shoulders, "I have promised investment and that surely means I have agreed to your previous conditions. I will say nothing about the content of the film and you can arrange it as you like. Moreover, you are in charge for the final editing." He had no expectations of the box office receipts. In his memory, this film was quite famous but failed to achieve a box office sess. Some outstanding actors and actresses were put in the spotlight, though. That was the biggest attraction for Eric. As long as Reservoir Dogs was cast by only actors from uta, all was worthwhile for Eric even if only a little fame was won and the costs were not recovered. Chapter 178: Alienation Thinking about actors, Eric suddenly realized that Michael Madsen who yed the role of Mr. Blonde was the brother of Virginia. Although Virginia had been his friend for more than half a year, Eric had never seen Michael Madsen. He only knew through his conversation with the girl that Virginia had quite a good rtionship with her brother. In Eric''s memory, Michael was characterized by roughness and seemed like a born viin. However, Virginia''s narration showed that Michael was a talented man who loved conjuring, photographing and writing poems. Acting was, for him, more like an avocation chosen for a living. Eric had not seen Michael yet, but the man could be treated as a friend since Virginia was Eric''s lover. Eric was always keeping the goodies within the family. Eric asked Quentin for the script and confirmed the colors before saying directly, "Well, Quentin, I have a nice actor to rmend for the role of Mr. Blonde. I am sure that you will be satisfied." Eric was smiling as if this were nothing serious, but Quentin Tarantino knew that he had no choice but to show satisfaction. After all, Quentin was already overjoyed that Eric promised not to interfere with the content production. Then the rmendation of an actor was eptable. ording to the rules, Eric was the investor and had the final say about the whole cast of the film. "Okay, Eric, I believe that your rmendation will be satisfying," Quentin smilingly replied. The three were about to go on discussing when someone knocked on the door of the lounge. A staff member looked in and said, "Mr. Williams, time is up." Eric looked at his watch and stood up, "Okay. Let''s do it that way." Quentin and Lawrence immediately stood up and shook hands with Eric once again. After that, they felt at a loss. What should they do next? Eric was hurrying to leave when he noticed the look of the two. He smilingly patted on his head and said"Sorry. I have such a tight schedule that I am always forgetting about things. Follow me, please." Eric called his assistant n and told him something before speaking to the two, "This is n, my assistant. He will take you to see Jeffrey Hansen. You can go through the specific matters with Jeffrey." Then Eric saw the two off. He was about to start working when the little girl suddenly appeared from nowhere. Eric was taken by surprise and asked"Howe you are still here?" Drew seemed unhappy already and these words only irritated her even more. Arms akimbo, she retorted"Why do I have to go? I will just stay here!" Eric shrugged and remembered that Drew behaved herself quite well when she visited the set while he was shooting Running out of Time. "Okay. You can do as you like as long as you do not make trouble." "Well, Eric, I don''t feel that they like me," the girl held Eric''s arm, followed him into the working area of the studio and whispered by his ear. She had been treated like a princess by the cast of Running out of Time and all the staff members except Eric were on call 24/7. However, the staff here were not familiar or that close. They were polite to Drew but kept her at arm''s length. Eric asked the crew to get rolling. Then he rubbed against the girl''s head and exined smilingly, "Why don''t you understand the reason? Jenny''s father is the very producer of the TV series and he has selected all the staff members. Jenny is the princess right here. Since she does not like you, all the others here will follow suit." "Um, how snobby they are!" Drew curled her lips. "It is natural and they are just trying to avoid trouble. This can not even be called office politics. If they are that close to you, they may be found fault with somehow." Eric smiled and sat on the director''s chair. Watching the staff walking to and fro in preparation for the shooting, he took the shooting journal from his assistant. Actually, the reason why Drew was alienated here was that Aniston was quite popr with the crew. Aniston had her likes and dislikes but she was good at making friends. She had a good rtionship with the main characters and was liked by most of the staff members. Furthermore, her father was the producer. Thus, it was reasonable for the crew of Friends to keep at arm''s length with Drew, a potential rival in love for Aniston. Drew also did well in maintaining interpersonal rtions, but her characteristics could be unreasonable sometimes. Before Eric appeared, the girl had good self-knowledge and dared not show her unreasonableness. However, now Drew had Eric standing behind her back thus she went wild. When she was with the crew of Running out of Time, the girl acted just like a spoiled princess. As Eric was busy shooting Running out of Time, Drew could go so far as to y with the camera worth several million dors everywhere she went. Only she would get away with it. Eric did not worry that his love would make the girl run wild, though. He knew that Drew understood exactly what she was doing. She simply had a seriousck of due love in her childhood. Once she got something from Eric, she would be greedy, desiring more to make up her losses when she could still act as a willful child. "Well, I may as well go back," Drew stood up leaning against Eric. Since she was not wee here, the girl did not bother to change the situation, "Eric, have you fulfilled your promise madest night?" "What promise?" Aniston was approaching with the script in hand. Hearing Drew''s words, she frowned slightly and asked Eric in a dissatisfied tone. "All is on the table of the study. I have written a lot on the spur of the moment. You can choose what you like." Eric answered and gave Aniston a hint that he would exinter. Drew smiled sweetly and then, right in front of Aniston, bent and kissed Eric on the face, leaving a striking lipstick mark. Then the girl turned around and left with her bottom shaking. "She is scantily d and seems like a street girl at night," Aniston said with envy, watching Drew leaving. The girl was already 160 cm tall. She boasted of both a slim figure and fair skin that could be the envy of a great many women. Aniston was among them since her skin condition was less perfect to some extent. As if sensing something, Drew turned around suddenly before reaching the gate. She opened the small sunshade in hand, put on the heart-shaped sunsses and whirled around on tiptoe coquettishly. Then she moved back and made a face at Aniston with her small tongue stuck out. This had not only irritated Aniston but also stunned most of the crew members. Everyone here was engaged in the entertainment business and many of them had watched Kubrick''s Lolita, especially the scene where Drew was dressed in a T-shirt and hot pants, exposing the fair skin of her arms and legs. The ck nail polish on her toes had rendered the girl even more attractive. Her every move highlighted the coquetry of women and the naughtiness of girls, tantalizing every man right here. "How flirty she is!" Aniston looked annoyed and said to Eric, "Are you sure that you have sent her to a Catholic school?" Eric smiled and held Aniston''s hand"Okay, Jenny, there is no need to get angry with Drew. She is always like this and you have seen this before. Well, why have youe here?" Pointing at Eric''s cheeks, Aniston said"You''d better remove the lipstick mark on your face first." Eric felt a little embarrassed and took out a tissue to wipe his face. Aniston made sure there was nothing left and then started to discuss the script with Eric unwillingly. She believed that she could offer great insights. In the next few days, the shooting of Friends went ording to n. Eric had a meal with Miramax''s Bob and Harvey Weinstein, talking about the acquisition. The brothers had just put on show Steven Soderbergh''s Sex, Lies and Videotape, a film that had won the Golden Palm Award at the Cannes Film Festival. This had brought them a good fortune, so they asked for a price that was much higher than what Eric had expected. Robert Schey had hinted that the New Line Cinema could be acquired. Some of Eric''s conditions could not be met, though. Thinking of this, Eric stopped the negotiation with the brothers. The brothers made their first sum of money from Sex, Lies and Videotape but their business did not thrive until Pulp Fiction was put on show. In the previous life, the film was released in 1994, 4 years to go from now. Moreover, Quentin had already promised cooperation. Hence, Eric could, for the moment, stop the effort to acquire Miramax and focus his attention on purchasing the New Line Cinema. Chapter 179: The Impossible Truth "Virginia, do you mean the Sunset Tower Hotel diagonally across Andaz." A white man in his thirties, with a rugged look, asked her as he stared at the road ahead. "Sure. Are there two Sunset Tower Hotels on the Sunset Street? Virginia sitting in the front seat answered as she took a small mirror out of the clutch for checking her makeup. When she pulled out a lipstick and carefully put it on her lips, the man next to her felt a bit discontented with her: "Virginia, I can''t figure out why are you together with that kid who are 10 years younger than you." "It''s none of your business." Virginia blurted out before realizing that she shouldn''t talk with her brother this way, so she softened her tone: "Mike, I''m happy to be with him. Although he is young, he is considerate to me." Michael Madsen still frowned: "He won''t give you any promise, will he? He won''t marry you." Hearing what he said, Virgin replied softly with a dim look in her eyes: "I never expect that he will marry me." "But you are twenty eight years old now. I hope you can find a reliable man to marry, instead of being a lover of a young kid." Michael said a little hysterically and he even couldn''t help but p the steering wheel before turning around to look at her: "I hope you are happy, Virginia." "Will one be happy after getting married? Our parents are not happy at all. And you''ve also divorced once." Virginia said as she took the lipstick and small mirror back to her clutch. Michael Madsen continued trying to persuade her: "That''s why I want to marry a good man. There must be a good man in the world, even ifyou fail to find a right person one time, you can try several times. Look, although I''ve divorced, I am happy to be with Chenoa. You will possibly have a nephew or a niece after half a year." "All right, good to know. Why not drop off this topic today?" Avoiding eye contact with Eric, Virginia started to divert the topic just as all otherdies on the shelf who were under the pressure of marriage. Since her parents divorced in her childhood, she had almost been brought up by her brother four years older than her due to her mother''s preupation with her own business. Even if she could ignore what her parents said, she valued the rtionship with her brother. "Ok. If you don''t like it, I won''t say it anymore." Michael Madsen looked the road ahead resignedly. Virginia felt relived after her brother stopped talking about that topic. They remained silent for a while. As Virgin looked out of the window, she felt that they were almost reaching the Sunset Tower Hotel before saying: "Michael, I know you don''t like him. But can you please show him some respect? I hope you can get the role he rmends." Michael Madsen replied: "I won''t be impolite. This time Ie here only to watch your new movie though. Don''t expect me to tter him for a character in a movie." Virginia knew her brother too well. To put it mildly, he was indifferent to fame and wealth. To put it bluntly, he rested on hisurels. His original intention to be an actor was to make a living rather than rising to fame, which was unchanged until now. They soon arrived at the Sunset Tower Hotel. As there are many paparazzi gathering outside the hotel, Virginia immediately wore sunsses. Even though, they were acutely aware of her appearance, flocking to and taking photos for her. At the sight of those people desperately seeking the news, Michael had no choice but to slow down, which made them even more excited. They patted the window and shouted at Virginia in the car. Even if they shouted at the top of their lungs, Michael and Virginia didn''t respond to them and drove the car directly to the underground garage before entering the hotel through a lift inside. "Hah, one more. Julia Roberts just showed up too. What is Firefly up to?" Stopped by the security guards, a group of paparazzi had to wait resignedly outside the hotel in the hope of getting a little detailed information from the next guest. "Jake, you just arrive here less than 10 minutes. Some big celebrities from Hollywood have already entered there 30 minutes before." "Oh, Kane, who else hase?" Jake asked. Kane whispered to Jake: "Among the top seven filmpanies, four of them have sent representatives to attend the event, including Michael Eisner, the CEO of Walt Disney Pictures, a vice president responsible for film distribution in Warner Bros, Nard Tarn, the president of Paramount Pictures and Amy Pascal, the vice president of Colombia Pictures. I think the rest three will surely send representatives here." The imagination of Jane''s description of the scene had sent a chill down Jake''s spine: "Is that because something important is happening in Hollywood?" Kane shook his head: "It''s not clear, but it must be rted to Firefly. I hear an insider from the hotel that there will be a party tonight." Jake looked at his watch: "Tonight? It is just 13:35 now. Maybe you get the wrong message. If there is a party tonight, howe these big celebrities arrive here at such an early time?" "It can''t be wrong. My insider is working in the kitchen. They''ve been tasked with food preparing for the party tonight." Jake asked: "Kane, what do you think will happen?" "MaybeAll right. It''s abnormal. I can''t figure it out. But rumors have it that Firefly intend to acquire New Line Cinema. If it is true, there will be one more film giant in Hollywood within a few years with thebination of Eric William''s films of huge box office and the capability in film distribution of New Line Cinema." Jake guessed: "You''ve said that Firefly is taking the lead this time, haven''t you? Is it because Firefly wants to select distributors for its new films that the senior executives of seven filmspanies havee here?" Hearing what he said, Kane and other paparazzi froze for a moment before bursting intoughter. One paparazzo said with a whiff of sarcasm: "How could it be possible? Firefly can''t be that influential. If it were a movie directed by Eric Williams, the senior executives from seven filmpanies possibly wouldpete for the distribution of his film since his capability has been fully proved. As we all know, the right of distribution for his next two films has already secured by Fox Studio." Finding what he said quite absurd, Jake scratched his head and retorted, "Well, it''s been said Eric Williams is the actual screenwriter of The Others and Scent of a Woman." But what he said didn''t attract the attention from other paparazzi who continued discussing the purposes of these celebrities gathering here while waiting eagerly for other guests to arrive. The seemingly ridiculous guessing was mostly true. This event was the internal test screening for The Others and Steel Magnolias held by Firefly. When Eric sent out invitations to the top six moviepanies, he thought that they would only send one or two junior executives to attend the event. But he received a response from Disney soon after that. Michael Eisner informed his assistant to contact Firefly, saying that he would appear in person, which in turn made Eric change the location for test screening to a luxurious projection hall in the Sunset Tower Hotel from the small projection room in the headquarter of Firefly originally nned. With Michael Eisner''s established status, it would be disrespectful for him if Eric still used the small projection room of Firefly. Possibly hearing the news that Michael Eisner would attend the event, otherpanies also said that they would send out senior executives there. But only Disney Studios sent its CEO to the event, Paramount Pictures sent a president, for Columbia, it was Amy Pascal who had a good rtionship with Eric, and for the rest of the four filmpanies, they have a vice president or a senior executivee here. With that being said, such a plethora of A-list celebrities gathering for the right of distribution for one or two films had almost never happened in the past ten years. Virginia and her brother took the elevator to the floor where the test screening was held and as they walked out of the elevator, they saw n Feisman, the assistant of Eric. Virginia asked him: "Hi, n, where is Eric?" "Mr. Williams is busy right now and can''t meet you. Ms Madsen, could you please follow me to the lounge." n said politely. Virginia nodded, feeling disappointed. While her brother, not knowing the situation, thought Eric was treating her sister coldly, which made his hear filled with anger. Noting expressing their dissatisfaction, they followed n to arrive at a lounge. It was only after entering the lounge that Virginia saw there were already many people, including two film crews, namely Steel Magnolias and The Others. There were many people in the film crew of Steel Magnolias, including the director Robert Rose and heroines of Julia Roberts, Sally Field , Shirley MacLaine, etc. By contrast, there was only Jonathan Demi in the film crew of The Others. It was understandable that two main actors of The Others were too young to attend the test screening and other actors were unqualified to attend the event because they were neither well known nor main actors. But it was different in the film crew of Steel Magnolias. Not to mention the popr director Robert Rose, Sally Field and Shirley MacLain, who had won a series of Oscar awards, had a fame and experience surpassing that of Julia Roberts who had risen to fame recently. The other three main actresses had also been famous for a long time. At the sight of Virginia, Jonathan Demi finally presented an expression as if they wererades before and stood up first to say hi to her, followed by other members of his film crew. Chapter 180: The Second Daughter of Rubert Murdoch In another room by the lounges of the two crews, Eric was talking with leading figures from otherpanies who had already arrived. These senior managers served differentpanies but most of them were quite familiar with each other since the turnover was frequent among the seven major filmpanies. Barry Diller was absent. He had been controlling Paramount until 1984 but now worked as CEO of Fox. When he was in Paramount, Michael Eisner and Jeffrey Katzenberg served as his assistants. Now, however, the two turned into CEO and President of Disney respectively. If history remained the same, Jeffrey Katzenberg would be CEO of DreamWorks several yearster. Now, Amy Pascal worked for Columbia Pictures. Before her appointment, though, she was a senior manager of Fox. Suchplex interpersonal rtions had ensuredpetition and cooperation among the major filmpanies. "How much will your two films take at the box office this time? Clue us in for some reference for future bidding." Michael Eisner asked in front of others. Although he put on a look of casualness, he could not conceal the expectation hidden in his tone. Eric put down the coffee cup and replied smilingly"Mr. Eisner, seriously, I can only ensure that the two films are of high quality. The box office will be determined by the reaction of the audience and the market." "This will not work. You are still at a young age but have already be so sophisticated. A youth shall speak and act daringly," said Nade Tarn, president of Paramount. The speaker was nearly 60 years old. He was an amiable old man with all gray hair and all smiles. His words sounded like encouragement given by the older generation to the younger generation, drawing the speaker and the listener much closer in a natural way. Eric smiled as if he were listening carefully. In fact, he was thinking to himself that those old fellows were birds of a feather, craft and craftier. If he had followed their advice, he would have been trapped without knowing about it. Since Barry Diller and Michael Eisner quit together with arge group of senior managers, Paramount had witnessed a bad time. Now its films were poorly received except Indiana Jones, a movie put on show this year. However, the producer and the director were George Lucas and Steven Spielberg respectively. The two were shrewd businessmen and would take most of the profits, leaving Paramount only some payment for distribution. In the previous analysis, Eric believed that Paramount would make the biggest offer. This time, everyone would participate in secret bidding. After watching the film, every participator would offer their own profit-sharing conditions. Then, the Firefly Film Company would, based on the conditions, choose its partner. However, the appearance of Michael Eisner had rendered the result much moreplex. Michael''s attitude was likely to spur thepetition from other big filmpanies. After all, it had taken him only 5 years to send Disney''s business booming. Now the status of Hollywood was even more prominent than at the time when his former superior Barry Diller took charge. n Fisman opened the door gently and approached Eric softly, trying his best not to arouse any attention. He bent and whispered by Eric''s ear"Mr. Williams, Fox''s people have arrived." Eric nodded and said smilingly to Michael Eisner and others"I am sorry. Wait a moment, please. I have another guest here." Leaving the room, Eric walked in the direction of the lift together with n. Fox''s people were likely to go up soon. n then said"The receptionist downstairs Mike said that two people from Fox areing here. One is Carta Hunter and the other is a woman." Eric was lost in thought for a moment before asking"Has he recognized who the woman is?" n shook his head and replied"He does not know. He said that the girl is just about 20 years old. But Carta Hunter shows great respect for her." Carta Hunter was in charge of Fox''s film distribution and could be regarded as vice-president of thepany. He would show respect for only Barry Diller and several other big figures. Such personalities would by no means include a girl in her 20s. Eric could not figure out the reason and then just stopped thinking. When he walked by the lift, the exclusive lift stopped with a ding and a man and a woman stepped out. "Nice to meet you, Carta," Eric smilingly moved forward and hugged Carta Hunter, giving a nce to the blonde girl who was standing by and looking at him with great interest. The girl was about 20 years old. She was 170cm tall and her rtively short blonde hair just covered her ears. This was a beauty with a heart-shaped face and long eyebrows and eyes. She was dressed in a id ck-white shirt, long light yellow pants and t ck shoes. Eric thought to himself that she must be a high-flying career woman since she was quite simr to Amy Pascal, the woman sitting in the room. Carta Hunter received the greeting and was about to introduce the girl when she reached out her hand and said"Nice to meet you, Mr. Williams. My name is Elizabeth Murdoch." Eric raised his eyebrows slightly and thought"The girles from the Murdoch family. Carta Hunter''s respectful attitude shows that she must be a direct rtive of Rubert Murdoch." "Nice to meet you, Ms. Murdoch. You can call me Eric." The girl let go of Eric''s hand and asked seriously: "Why don''t you call me Elizabeth?" "What a difficult woman!" Eric thought to himself. Then he unhurriedly exined"Since we have just met each other, I would not call a girl by her name without her permission." Elizabeth Murdoch raised her chin slightly and looked into Eric''s eyes"Okay, Eric, you now have my permission to call me Elizabeth." "Um" Carta Hunter saw Eric''s embarrassment and hurried to mediate between the two"Eric, Elizabeth is the second daughter of Rubert Murdoch. She has been interning in Fox these days and she is quite interested in youyour films. That is why she hase here. I hope you won''t mind it." "Of course not," Eric smilingly replied. "Let''s go to the room. We will have to wait a moment since the test screening starts at 2 o''clock." Then the four went to the room at the end of the hall. Elizabeth Murdoch deliberately moved closer to Eric. n saw this and quickly stepped backwards, following the three behind. Chapter 181: He Is a Real Jerk "Hey, Eric, I have watched all your films. They are allmon except Running out of Time." "Thanks for your appreciation, Elizabeth." "I am not praising you," the girl said angrily. "I am just curious about why quite a few of your films have be a huge box office sess. It is an interesting topic and I am going to use it in my thesis." "Do you major inmunication?" Eric asked, making a guess based on the girl''s family background. "Of course. I am studying in Vassar College, New York and will graduate next year." Eric just nodded without making anyments. Although he possessed the body now and could remember most of the things, he could not recall the 8 universities in the Ivy League, let alone Vassar College. The girl was dissatisfied with Eric''s reaction and asked"Haven''t you heard of Vassar College?" Eric replied"Elizabeth, in fact, I am just a senior high school graduate and cannot even remember the names of the Ivy League, so" "Fine," the girl shrugged her shoulders and became even more interested in Eric. A young man that had not gone to college could make such an achievement in such a short time. How strange it was! The senior managers of Universal Picture and MGM arrived at almost 2 o''clock. After everyone was there, the staff ushered them into a luxury video hall in the Sunset Hotel. Eric just nodded at Virginia and others and then sat in the first row. By his side were Michael Eisner and Paramount''s President Nade Tarn. There were altogether 8 seats in the first row and the remaining ones were upied by senior managers of 5 other major filmpanies. Elizabeth Murdoch was an uninvited guest. She did not want to cause trouble for the staff and just sat in the back row among the crews of The Others and Steel Magnolias. She even moved closer to Julia. Julia took a look at this strange girl that had suddenly appeared by her side and felt a little strange. She did not know who the girl was. Eric was quite a yboy so it was easy for Julia to link Elizabeth with Virginia. Then she became somewhat hostile towards the girl. Julia had made up her mind to break up with Eric, but he had surely left a deep imprint on her. Such an imprint had even stimted Julia topare other men with Eric. Then her romantic rtionship with them was unlikely tost for long. Dn McDermott yed the role of Julia''s husband in Steel Magnolias. He had been courting Julia during the shooting. He was a tall and handsome man who had graduated from the School of Drama in Fordham University, a private college in New York. Moreover, the man was talented, mild and considerate, showing a stark contrast with Eric who was always overbearing. So Julia had tried to get on with Dn. After the shooting, however, the imprint left by Eric ruined the romantic rtionship between them. All ended up in vain. These days Julia had been bearing a resentment towards Eric, since she thought that Eric had influenced her private life. In order to weaken the influence, she had never seen Eric after the shooting of Steel Magnolias, even though they were in the same city of Los Angeles. While the staff were preparing for the show, Elizabeth Murdoch greeted Julia. After being acknowledged, Elizabeth asked softly as if they were friends"Julia, what do you think of Eric Williams?" "He is a real jerk!" Julia directly blurted it out without even thinking. Elizabeth''s approach had somehow put her in a bad mood. "" Elizabeth looked at Julia, confused and wordless. Julia spoke in a low voice and others were chatting softly, so her words were heard by only several persons around. Sitting by Julia was Sally Field who could not helpughing. Sally had simr experiences and heard about the affairs between Julia and Eric. Thus, she could surely sense a woman''s jealousy hidden in Julia''s words. Julia realized what she had just said and blushed scarlet, trying to find a ce where she could hide herself. Fortunately, the video hall became darkened. Not until then did Julia draw a deep breath. Elizabeth Murdoch sat straight and could not help but nce at Julia several times before focusing her attention on the screen. Since Eric prioritized The Others among the 3 films he had invested in, it was naturally arranged in thetter half of the show as the highlight. The first movie to put on show was Herbert Ross''s Steel Magnolias. Steel Magnolias was featured by plots characterized of trivia. The whole film was centered around the daily life of 6 women and the highlights included the Eatentons'' wedding, Easter, Christmas, the New Year and funerals. Although Herbert Ross had added someic elements, it was a drama film on the whole. The movie started with the wedding of Shelby Eatenton, a role yed by Julia. Minutes of narrationbined with trivia presented to the audience the images of 6 women with distinct characteristics. Shelby''s wedding was followed by the New Year. The hairdresser named Annelle was no longer shy or self-abased like she used to. She got to know a waiter at the wedding and the two fell in love and started living together soon. Annelle felt that all was a god-given gift and treasured her life a lot. For this, she began to embrace Christianity hectically and kept on praying all the time. Shelby suffered from hyperinsulinemia, a disease that was in stark contrast with diabetes. The illness could cause hypoglycemia and the patient would faint in an attack. So the doctor advised Shelby never to give birth. After marriage, Shelby''s medical certificate showed that she could not adopt children. Then she tried to get pregnant without telling her parents. Life went on slowly and Shelby gave birth to her child smoothly. However, another nightmare befell the family. Due to her delivery, Shelby suffered from serious kidney failure. In this case, her strict mother tried to save her by giving one kidney. The operation was sessful and Shelby seemed to go back to her normal life. Her son was growing up gradually and she continued to devote herself to her beloved work. However, life was not all roses. One day, Shelby fainted on the floor while taking care of her son at home. After she was sent to hospital, the poor woman could only stay alive with the help of life support apparatus. Shelby''s mother was staying by her side all day and all night, only to find her incurable. Eventually, Shelby''s father signed his name on some papers and the apparatus was removed. Chapter 182: Various Motives Life had to continue after the funeral. Jackson, Shelby''s son, had been growing up day by day with the affection from people around him. While Annil, who had been pregnant, expressed to Maureen, Shelby''s mother, about her hopes of naming her baby as Shelby after it was born in memory of the dead woman. Maureen epted it with tears in her eyes. It was Easter again. In the vivid spring time, there were many people having a pic delightedly in the outskirts. Suddenly, Annil felt a sharp pain in her stomach and all others hurriedly helped her get in a sports car which was driven through crowds, streets and bridges. And the scene stopped on a stream in the shades of green trees in the melodious sound of harmonica. Subtitles rose up slowly. "Tomorrow-is-another-day" Elisabeth Murdoch who was sitting behind Julia involuntarily uttered the concluding remarks of Gone with the Wind. Although the life experience of heroines in Steel Magnolias is not as much sorrowful as that of Scarlett who had been through decades of trials, and those in Steel Magnolias didn''t even have any emotional outbreaks, their strongest emotions were hidden in tears running down their faces in silence. They led an ordinary life, which contained an emotion no weak than that of Scarlet who had been through the vicissitudes of life in troubled times. The Jeep gradually driving far away symbolized the hopes in the future. All the people in the projection hall apuded involuntarily after the light was turned on. "Julia, this movie was really amazing. I think Shelby is more lively and vivid than Vivian in Pretty Woman." Elizabeth apuded while whispering to Julia in sincerity. "ThanksMiss." Julia pped her hands gently, sizing up the beauty next to her. It urred to Elizabeth that she hadn''t introduce herself yet, so she extended her hand: "Hi Julia, My name is Elizabeth. You can call me Liz." "Hi Liz." Julia shook hands with her politely without any change in her expression, which showed she didn''t know the meaning of the surname of Murdoch. But Elizabeth didn''t mind it and continued whispering to her: "Julia, why do you say that Eric Williams is an asshole just now?" "Ah, I...what I''ve said is nothing personal Mr. Williams is a good person. Without him, I was just an actor in obscurity." Julia tried her best to act collectedly, but her flickering eyes had betrayed her. Elizabeth, who smiled a meaningful smile, didn''t continue the topic that made her awkward: "Julia, can you tell me something about Eric Williams, I intend to use the sess of his films as my graduation thesis." "Liz, you can ask him, I don''t know much about him." Julia didn''t know the background of Liz from her surname, but she realized that the bright girl was not familiar with Eric, so she opened her heart gradually to Liz. "It''s fine. Just tell me what you know" Sensing the subtle change of Julia''s attitude towards her, she started asking questions that interested her. In the meantime, the senior executives from top seven filmpanies harbored different motives after watching the movie. After watching the movie, Michael Eisner was the first to express his feelings about the movie that deserved appreciation, which was no more than formality, though he actually thought it the other way. Steel Magnolias was a movie too insipid and not well-plotted, which was not fitting his taste, although it indeed had some highlights. As the right-hand assistant of Barry Diller who had advanced the theory of high concept film, Michael Eisner witnessed the rise of Paramount Pictures under the guidance of this theory, which made him a hard-core supporter for it. The fast development of Disney Studios under the leadership of Michael Eisner was highly rted to his sticking to such a theory. However, this movie had no rtion with high concept film. Steel Magnolias was like a meaningful prose, while high concept film was more simr to an interesting novel. Herbert Rose was no doubt a great essayist with more than twenty years'' of experience in directing movies. Even though, such type of movie would not be that popr among the audience. Although Michael Eisner did not embrace the film, he was determined to get the distribution right for it. Otherwise, he would note here personally. Since Eric thought highly of the film and he had achieved a remarkable sess in his past films, he thought those would be solid reasons for hising here. Nard Tarn, the president of Paramount Pictures, who was sitting next to Eric, had the simr opinion of the film as that of Michael Eisner. But he kept tricking Eric into telling him the information about the movie in the hope that Eric would tell him the box office expectation so that Paramount Pictures could provide an urate quotation for dividends of the movie. This year, Paramount Pictures witnessed a steep decline in its performance after Barry Diller resigned five years ago. Although Raiders of the Lost Ark had a stunning performance pocketing 400 million US Dors globally, including 20 million US Dors in North America, the dividend it got from this movie was even less than that Columbia Pictures got from Home Alone in a VAM agreement, due to the strong presence of Lucasfilm and Steven Spielberg in the film. Therefore, Paramount Pictures paid more attention to these two films, if it were not Frank Mancuso, the CEO of Paramount Pictures, could spare time to attend the event, he would surely attend this event instead of sending Nard Tarn. Although he didn''t think Steel Magnolias would perform well, Eric thought it would have a good performance. None of the films that Eric had participated in its making got a box office less than 100 million US Dors. After watching the film, Nard Tarn quickly estimated that its box office would be between 30 million to 50 million US Dors in consideration of the schedule and the bankable stars such as Julia, Sally Field and Shirley MacLaine, etc. Though Julia had be popr worldwide with Pretty Woman, Nard Tarn didn''t expect much overseas box office from this movie. It would be a miracle for its box office to reach 30 million US dors since it was deeply imprinted with the culture of indigenous Americans. If it were the same as her estimate, the maximum revenue of the movie would be 10 million US Dors after deducting the cost of making and distributing, which was nothingpared with that from Eric''s other films. Nard Tarn believed that Eric wouldn''t input many resources in promoting the movie just for a profit of 10 million US dors. No matter how did he beat about the bush and tricked Eric into telling him the estimated box office of the movie, Eric would only give him a usible answer, letting him judge by himself. For the sake of prudence, Eric didn''t reveal his estimate of the box office. Although he was optimistic about the film, he was not fully certain of the box office, which he reckoned would be around 10 million US dors since that movie hit more than 80 million US dors in his previous life. With Julia being the heroine of the film, it would pocket an additional 20 million US dors. But he wouldn''t reveal his estimate of the box office. Once said, if the box office failed to reach his expectation, his reputation would be damaged. Even if this movie was as sessful as its predecessor, it had nothing to do with Eric since Firefly was only an investor and Eric did nothing but made Julia a heroine of the film. Amy Pascal, sitting one seat away from Eric, liked the movie the most among seven senior executives. As a typical feminist, she preferred movies focusing on women and had supported a series of feminist movies in her previous life, the most well-known of which wereCharlie''s Angels. She was such a sentimental woman that she waspletely attracted by joys and sorrows of the women in the movie, feeling an impulse to take a vacation immediately and headed to southern town to live a trivial and peaceful life there. But she also knew that she and Calta Hunter, the representative of Fox Studios, came here only for formality, since Fox Studios had owned distribution right for Eric''s two films at the end of the year. Therefore, Firefly, in consideration of the marketing resources, wouldn''t grant the distribution right of this film to it. As to Colombia Pictures, it would soon conclude a contract with Japanese whose strategy of business operation was hard to be anticipated, to avoid the risk, Firefly wouldn''t let it distribute the film. The representative from Warner Bros. was the calmest among those from top seven filmpanies since hispany had a good performance this year. Though it wanted to make more profits, it would only make a suitable quotation for the revenue sharing of the film. If it could get the distribution right of the film, it was lucky, if not, there would not be much regret for it. Universal Studios was experiencing a turmoil because its two leaders werepeting for the power of controlling thepany and they were not in a mood to get the distribution right of the film. While MGM was totally ruined by Kirk Kerkorian, a Casino Tycoon, who would only pay attention to its performance when he wanted to cash out and sell it for a good price. Even if the senior executives wanted to further develop thepany, they could do nothing. The representative of MGM sitting in the front seat were having a good conversation with the vice president of Warner Bros., seemingly to consider a job-hopping. Chapter 183: The Exchange After s short rest, all cheered up, waiting for the second film. In contrast with the star-studded cast of Steel Magnolias (4 of the 6 heroines had already won an Oscar), the yers of The Others were not worth mentioning. However, enough attention was attracted when Eric''s name was shown in the column of scriptwriters. Before Home Alone became a box office hit, the film''s cast had drawn little attention. After the opening, Grace was telling a story with the backdrop of caricatures. Slowly, the voice was disappearing and appearing in scratchy drawings were horrifying scenes like a frightened girl with her eyes wide open, a ck shadow approaching the child and a marite whose neck was broken. In the bedroom, Grace suddenly opened her eyes full of tears and then breathed desperately like a fish out of water, her body trembling violently with fear. All knew that the heroine was having a nightmare. Some viewers woulde to realize that the caricatures at the beginning were exactly what the heroine dreamt of. In this version, Virginia did not shout herself hoarse like Nicole Kidman who yed in the original version. The fear showed by the big eyes full of tears was as visible, though. The fear and desperation showed by silence could, together with the mottled setting in a dark room, more easily make the spectators'' hair stand on end. This was the first change Eric made to the script. In the previous life, he felt nothing except being startled by the cry of Nicole Kidman. The scene was shot with great difficulty. Virginia was truly frightened and the fear in her eyes was by no means pretended. By the camera were a cluster of horrifying creatures like cockroaches. The "props" were of great help and Virginia''s performance was a lot more expressive than Nicole''s in Eric''s eyes. In Hollywood, no one was irreceable and opportunities were what most yerscked. Somehow, all in the video hall were focusing their attention on the strange behaviors of Grace, 2 children and 3 servants. Except Eric and some other insiders, all were trying to guess what happened in this house and why there were haunting shadows and strange sound. If this had been a ghost story, the ghosts would have appeared far earlier. Why did Grace''s husbande back and then leave all of a sudden? Although the mystery remained unsolved, no one lost patience and the suspenseful plot attracted even the representatives from the 7 major filmpanies. Even Michael Eisner could not restrict himself from asking Eric about the plot development. However, Eric just smiled and refused to disclose any spoiler alert. More than 80 minutester, Grace''s son and daughter found the graves. Not until then were the 3 servants revealed to be "ghosts". However, no one became clear about what happened and all began to doubt why the 3 "ghost servants" appeared. What was their purpose? Their words had shown that they meant no harm to Grace and her children. Then the whole film reached its climax. When Grace opened the door of the living room upstairs to reveal a family and a psychic olddy, the puzzle was finally solved for the audience. "The film keeps everyone in suspense and all the plots are intricately woven together. Fantastic!" Michael Eisner could not help but exim. He rarely thought so highly of a film. The president of Paramount Nade Tarn secretly clenched his fist, determined to acquire the distribution right of the film. Other senior managers felt sorry since they didn''t n to or were not able to secure the right. The calmest representatives from Warner Bros were not as calm as before at this moment. The symbolic fog cleared as the truth was revealed. The room brightened. The apusested for minutes long and it was louder than what was heard after Steel Magnolias was shown. Jonathan Demme was sitting in the back row. He saw this and his lips twitched with excitement. Eventually, he could not helpughing, showing the white teeth. Jonathan knew that he had made it. Michael Madsen patted on her sister''s hand to show his congrattions. The apuse ended and then all followed the server into the banquet hall downstairs. Eric was walking in front and by his side were Michael Eisner and Nade Tarn. The representatives of Warner Bros were not so reserved as before and they approached and greeted Eric cordially. Following behind were representatives of Fox, MGM and other filmpanies that were destined to lose the distribution right. Elizabeth Murdoch moved closer to Carta and whispered"Why don''t youpete for the distribution right?" Carta shook his head and exined gently to Elizabeth"That will not work. The two films of Eric belong to Fix already. They will not give us the distribution right." Elizabeth thought for a moment before saying"Why not? What we prioritize is Eric''s sequel to Home Alone at the end of this year. We can then exchange the distribution right of another film for that of The Others. I feel that this horror film is unique and has the potential to be a box office hit like Home Alone." Carta Hunter could not help but nce at the girl by his side several times. He was quite surprised by her words. He had thought that Elizabeth was only an arrogant and self-willed girl born into a rich family. After all, it was she that insisted on participating in the show today together with him. It was a willful decision. Elizabeth Murdoch was the second daughter of Rubert Murdoch and Carta Hunter had no choice but to agree to her request after thinking for long. Fortunately, Eric did not close the door upon the girl since he was familiar with Carta and knew who Elizabeth was. Unexpectedly, very soon after the show, Elizabeth could think of quite a feasible n. Elizabeth came to Fox in the name of interning on vacation, but she rarely fulfilled her duty as an intern. So she could know nothing about the cooperation between Fox and the Firefly Film Company. In this case, she could surprisingly think of a pretty feasible n in such a short time. This caused Carta to treat Elizabeth with great respect. He himself had the idea of securing the distribution right when The Others was yed in the video hall but he just could not think of any good solutions. "Fine, Ms. Murdoch, I will, in the form of written paper, present the n to Barry Diller. However, I must say that Fox has not seen the script of Eric''s another film at the end of this year yet and I doubt whether it can make a decision before otherpanies secure The Others. After all, Fox''s own people will object to your proposal. The films directed by Eric himself have earned a good reputation and huge box-office takings many times. This y was written by Eric himself and is as outstanding as his other films, but I don''t think many will dare to take a risk in trying to secure the distribution right." "How inefficient! If I controlled Fox, I would secure the film directly," Elizabeth curled her lips and began to show her self-will as a spoiled girl. This time, Carta did not treat the girl with disdain. Instead, he exined the whole thing patiently"Ms. Murdoch, this has a lot to do with the interests of all parties and the sess of the exchange is not determined by us only. Even if we would like to make the change, will Eric Williams agree? Will other filmpanies agree? You can see that Michael Eisner and Nade Tarn are here today. This shows that they pay great attention to Eric Williams. So we don''t have a great advantage inpetition." Chapter 184: The Anti-War Theme As more people were gathering at the party, Michael Eisner who had just stayed for about 10 minutes took his leave with the excuse of having other things to deal with. In this case, Eric needed to see him off. "Eric, I hear that The Others has entered the mainpetition of the Venice Film Festival. Is that true?" Michael Eisner asked suddenly while waiting for the lift. Eric nodded and replied"Yes. But this is, after all, a horror movie and there is little hope of winning a prize. It was sent to Venice just for the purpose of making it better known and this is helpful for its distribution in Europe. " "However, I think that it is quite likely to win a prize, as long as the promotion gets right," said Michael Eisner. Then the lift opened and the two walked in. "Right promotion?" Eric asked in confusion when pressing the lift button. "Yes," answered Michael Eisner. "The Others is a horror film, but I believe it can present deeper meaning, such as the mankind''s longing for life and fear of death, and a mother''s deep love for her two children. Most importantly, the movie was set in a time after the Second World War ended. Then you can promote the film in the name of fighting against war. The aim is to show that war has done great harm to the mankind. It is because war has cast asting shadow on the heroine Grace that she has gone so far as to suffocate her two children madly. Now Europe is in turmoil and a slight move can lead to another conflict. In this case, if The Others presents the anti-war theme in promotion, and exerts a good influence as expected, then it will surely win a prize since the jury of the Venice Film Festival needs to show its stance. After all, films and politics are always linked with each other." "Experience truly counts," Eric thought to himself. He had been troubled by the fact that horror films were not favored by the judges of the film festival and had not tried to break a new path. "Thanks for your great advice, Mr. Eisner. I will soon ask others to deal with the promotion." If The Others just entered thepetition without winning a prize, the impression on the movie fans would be less deep. Likewise, all paid great attention to Oscar-winning films while little attention was attracted to those Oscar-nominated movies that might be as outstanding as the winners. The lift sent the two to the underground parking lot and they walked towards Michael Eisner''s car. Waiting there were his assistant and driver. Michael got into the car but did not leave immediately. Instead, he beckoned Eric to get in as well. After Eric sat by his side, Michael Eisner asked"Eric, how about cooperating with Disney next year?" Eric was distracted for a moment. He had thought that Michael Eisner was going to talk about the two films shown today. Unexpectedly, Michael started to talk about the schedule of next year. "Mr. Eisner, I am sorry that I cannot give you an immediate reply. Now I have been working smoothly with Fox." Eric shook his head slightly and answered. Michael Eisner could see that Eric did not tell the truth. Interests were always prioritized in their cooperation. If personal feelings were involved in the work, interests would be influenced and the rtionship would break up eventually. Michael knew through his contact with Eric that Eric was by no means an emotional person. "You don''t need to reply immediately, Eric. You can take your time in thinking about my proposal. As for the two films shown today, Disney''s profit division and offer will fully show our sincerity for cooperation." Michael said and then stopped for a moment before continuing"I hear that Firefly will acquire the New Line Cinema to establish its own distribution channel. But I need to point out that Robert Shea will not do a good job in managing yourpany. I have met him several times and I feel that he is a control freak with no matching abilities. Moreover, he is not rational enough and his management seems too subjective." Watching the Bentley leaving slowly, Eric thought about Michael Eisner''s words. Recalling something about the New Line Cinema, he felt that Michael Eisner''sments were based on the facts. In the previous life, Robert Shea was so carried away at the sess of The Lord of the Rings that he went his own way by putting on show The Golden Compass willfully, only to find himself making a big loss. Worse still, the New Line Cinema lost its independence and was merged into the parentpany of Warner Brothers. Eric was not worried about that, though. If the acquisition of the New Line Cinema was sessful, he would let Robert Shea take responsibility for film distribution only. He himself would manage film production and Robert Shea had no right to interfere. Eric saw off the representatives of other big filmpanies and one-to-one exchanges were unavoidable. No matter how the senior managers tried to persuade Eric, he did not make many promises to them. Amy Pascal was thest to leave and then at the party were all Eric''s own people. They included the other yers of The Others and Steel Magnolias who did not attend the show, and some people having a close rtionship with Firefly. The little girl Drew was sure to appear on such asions. She was a party animal by nature and used to frequent nightclubs. After staying with Eric, she managed to get out of the bad habit but could not restrain herself from going to all kinds of parties. Eric caught Drew in the crowd and the girl was dressed in a carmine dinner jacket. He knocked on her brain and warned her against drinking alcohol before walking towards Quentin Tarantino and Lawrence Bender. "Eric, good evening," the two greeted Eric as he was approaching. Eric smiled at them and asked"How are you preparing for Reservoir Dogs?" Quentin replied in an excited tone"All goes on well. Mr. Hansen has greatly facilitated our work and we have selected half of the cast. In this case, we can start shooting in September. " "Okay, thene with me and meet ''Mr. Blonde''," Eric pointed in a certain direction and led the way. "Eric," Virginia could not help moving forward when seeing Eric approaching. But she immediately stopped. Even though everyone knew her close rtionship with Eric, a polite distance was needed in public. Eric sensed Virginia''s carefulness but directly came forward, gave a hug and kissed her on the cheeks. Not until the girl refused shyly did Eric let go of her and turn to the tall man beside her. "Nice to meet you, Michael," Eric reached out to Michael Madsen. "Nice to meet you, Eric," Michael Madsen sounded a little cold since he did not like Eric very much. His reaction left Virginia in a worry. If Eric was not standing by, she would surely give her brother a hard pinch. Luckily, Eric did not mind Michael''s coldness and still introduced him to Quentin and Lawrence enthusiastically. "This is Michael Madsen. I believe he will y the role of Mr. Blonde quite well in Reservoir Dogs. Michael, the two are Quentin Tarantino and Lawrence Bender. For specific matters, you can talk with each other in private. " Quentin and Lawrence knew that they could not refuse the person rmended by Eric. Thus, they greeted Michael warmly. Now they needed to establish a good rtionship with him so that conflicts would be avoided inter shooting. After the three started talking, Eric left with Virginia. "Virginia, I hear that you have been asked to y in several films?" Eric took a ss of wine from the server and then sat on the sofa at the corner. Then Virginia sat down by Eric and answered"Yes, Kapoor made the rmendation. I feel that some scripts are favorable but have not made up my mind yet. I had intended to ask about your opinions first. " Eric shook his hand in disapproval and said"Reject them all and at least wait until The Others is put on show. Even if you agree to y in another film, it will not be shown until the end of this year. If it is not well received, then the remuneration will not be high and your reputation established by The Others will be negatively influenced." "Okay, I will follow your advice," the girl nodded submissively. "Eric, Michael''s attitude is not that good. I hope that you will not take it to heart. " "Of course not," Eric smiled. "If someone steals away my sister, I will not treat him nicely, either." "Haha" The girl smiled and tried to exin for the man by her side"You did not steal me away." "Virginia, it is true and I have exactly stolen you away. You belong to me already. " "Fine," the girl blushed slightly and lowered her head gently. "Eric, will you go to my ce tonight? You have not been there for a long time." "No problem," Eric smiled mischievously. "How about leaving now?" The girl shook her head immediately and said"Eric, you''d better go and meet other people. Don''t stay by my side all the time." "There is no need to hurry. I have just seen off a group of people. Now I feel tired and want to take a rest." On the other side, Elizabeth was holding a ss of red wine and chatting with Julia. She found that Julia was a little absent-minded and kept on looking in a certain direction secretly. Elizabeth looked there and found the idle figure leaning against the sofa. By his side was a woman wearing a ck evening dress. It was no other than the heroine of The Others. "Julia, do you like him?" Elizabeth asked gently by Julia''s ear. "Oh, itIt is not him," Julia hurried to deny the im when she realized that Elizabeth was referring to Eric. After a short panic, however, she began to admit in a low voice"Actually, I myself don''t even understand my feelings towards him. He is aplicated person." Maybe Julia had been trying to restrain her feelings for a long time and Elizabeth had won her favor in a short time. In this case, Julia somehow regarded Elizabeth as a reliable friend and eventually told the truth. "Follow me. Let''s have a good talk with Mr. Williams," Elizabeth directly grabbed Julia''s arm and walked towards Eric despite her resistance when seeing she was that distressed. Chapter 185: A Hint "Hi, Eric," said Elizabeth when she pulled the embarrassed girl Julia towards Eric. Virginia stood up and left when seeing the two. Then, Elizabeth pressed Julia''s body on the sofa and sat down as well. "Elizabeth, why haven''t you left yet?" Eric asked in confusion. Elizabeth felt dissatisfied and stared at Eric"Why should I leave? Am I not wee here?" "Of course not," denied Eric. "But this kind of small parties will never attract the second daughter of Rupert Murdoch, right?" The second daughter of Rupert Murdoch? Julia heard Eric''s words and curiously looked at the girl by her side. Eric noticed Julia''s puzzlement and introduced Elizabeth to her"Julia, has not Elizabeth told you about her identity? She is the second daughter of Rupert Murdoch, the owner of the News Corporation which controls the 20th Century Fox." "Hey, Eric, are you trying to ruin my rtions with Julia? Julia was totally right in saying that you are a jerk!" Elizabeth angrily thumped Eric''s shoulders. Julia was just a little unhappy about Elizabeth concealing her identity at the beginning and then turned deeply embarrassed when hearing thest sentence Elizabeth just said. My goodness! How could she speak that out? Eric was distracted for a moment and then burst outughing"Julia eventually told the truth." "No, Eric, I did not" Julia blushed scarlet and shook her hand in disapproval but could not say anything. After saying something inappropriate, Elizabeth sensed her slip of the tongue and showed an apologetic look to Julia. Then she changed the topic as if nothing had happened"Eric, is that woman your lover?" "Yes," Eric nodded and did not try to conceal the fact at all. "Um You think you are totally right," Eric''s quick admission had stunned Elizabeth for a moment. "What about Julia?" Julia was trying to stop this outspoken girl from saying more but quit after sensing that nothing could be done. Instead, she looked at Eric nervously, waiting for his answer. "Does this have anything to do with Julia?" Eric was left in confusion. "II don''t want to hear your nonsense." With these words, Julia immediately fled like a small rabbit hunted by a hound. Eric''s answer gave her a sense of relief but she was also deeply depressed. Watching Julia flee in a hurry, Elizabeth showed Eric an angry look"You reallyck a sense of romance, Mr. Williams." Eric shrugged and did not notice Elizabeth had addressed him differently"Elizabeth, you do not know about the story, so don''t rush to reach a conclusion." "Oh, I am bing more curious about you now. Eric, how about treating me to a meal when you have time? I hope to talk more with you. " "I am afraid I cannot," Eric drank up the wine and stood up, ready to meet others. "Hey, hey, how can you do this?" Elizabeth lost the good manners of ady and grabbed Eric''s clothes"If that does not work, then I will treat you to dinner, okay?" Eric did not hear Elizabeth''s conversation with Carta and his memory recorded nothing about the girl, so he directlybeled Elizabeth as a typical self-centered girl after a short talk with her. Although the girl was of noble birth, Eric had no need to cater to such a spoiled girl since he himself was now powerful enough. Eric tried many times and eventually pulled the edge of his clothes back. He saw the wrinkles and managed to remove them from his shirt. Noticing the girl''s angry look, he suddenly bent with a grin and moved closer to Elizabeth"Elizabeth, I need to remind you of something" Elizabeth felt the aggressiveness shown by Eric''s eyes and could not help but move backwards. "W-w-what?" She stammered, her hands covering her chest. As the girl was moving backwards step by step, Eric kept on moving forward. He smelt the alluring perfumeing from the girl''s body and swayed his index finger before her"I need to remind you not to show a great interest in a man. Otherwise, you will easily fall in love with him." "Ah" Elizabeth was about to say something when Eric left with these words. Not until then did the girl realize what had happened. She stomped on the ground and said angrily"Bah! No one will fall in love with you. What a jerk! How conceited you are" Such a stream of derogatory words fully vented out the anger of the spoiled girl. Then she immediately looked around. Not until she found that no one heard her words did she feel at ease. Elizabeth then stood up and neatened her clothes. Raising her chin slightly, she walked into the crowd with a ss of red wine in hand. She was still that proud noble girl. The great author Lu Xun once said"No roads have existed before. Theye into being after more and more walkers appear." The meaning of his words could be extended. Some things could not have happened. If someone mischievous gave a hint unintentionally, however, they would happen sometime in the future. "Mr. Williams, may I propose a toast to you?" A little girl followed her mother and approached Eric with a ss of juice when Eric was chatting with others. The girl looked up at Eric full of expectations, her pretty big eyes shining brightly. "Of course, Sarah," Eric smiled and bent. He clinked sses and then drank up the remaining red wine. The little girl took a gulp of juice and watched Eric drinking up his wine"Mr. Williams, thank you for casting me as Anne Stewart." "Never mind. You have yed the role quite well." Eric looked at the girl before him. She was 12 years old and her growth could by no means match Drew''s. Eric heard that the mother and her daughter led a reasonably good life. Maybe it was due to the family background. Sarah was just 1.2 meters tall and shorter than her peers. In Eric''s memory, she eventually reached just 1.6 meters in height. Her round face was characterized by the baby fat. "Then, Mr. Williams, could I y in the film directed by you?" The little girl asked suddenly in a girl-like tone, her big eyes full of hope. Eric looked at Sarah and her mother and could not figure out if the girl was taught to speak such words or just said what she liked. In fact, if Sleepless in Seattle was not shown at the same time with The Others, Sarah could y the role of Jessica, Jonah''s little girlfriend in Sleepless in Seattle. However, Sarah had already yed in The Others and the role of Jessica could only be yed by others. Otherwise, the audience would feel strange when seeing the same girl in two films with different styles at the same time. "When the right timees, of course," Eric found it hard to refuse such a little girl full of anticipation and had no choice but to give an ambiguous answer. Chapter 186: Drunkenness "You can hardly figure out what he is like. Tender, overbearing, meticulous, flirtatious, self-abandoned, unfaithful, arbitrary, cynical, talented and mischievousAll in all, he has a great many sides. As time goes by, you will find that he can hardly make you feel confident no matter what you do. When Pretty Woman was put on show, I felt that I had made it and be a Hollywood star. I had really made it, had not I? Elizabeth " Julia squinted her eyes and showed ack of confidence. She kept muttering to Elizabeth by her side, her eyes showing a bit of confusion and adoration that were hard to conceal. Theplex feelings she was harboring could even be told by Elizabeth, a girl who was not so familiar with Julia. "Of course, Julia, you did make it," Elizabeth answered. Sensing Julia''s drunkenness, Elizabeth knew that the girl must be stopped from drinking more. Then she quickly grabbed the ss from Julia and beckoned the server to bring a ss of juice instead. Eric had just revealed Elizabeth''s identity and this could negatively influence her rtions with Julia. Fortunately, her sincere apologyforted Julia and the influence soon disappeared. However, Eric''s words left Julia quite unhappy. The girl kept on drinking wine and got drunk in the end. Maybe it was due to her drunkenness that she was gradually opening up to Elizabeth and began to share the stories between her and Eric. Julia dizzily took the ss from Elizabeth and gulped down the juice, having no idea that the wine had already been reced. Then she continued to mutter in a half-drunk state"II thought I had made it. Then I was invited to y in arge number of films and all of them promised the remuneration of millions of dors. I had never thought about this before. ButThat hateful jerk turned them down without even consulting me first. I was in a rage and came to reason with him, only to find myself scolded harshly. He did not stop until I burst out crying. Hum, I was always trying to show more confidence in front of him, but a single word or a simple look of him would totally belittle my achievements. Now he has even made it hard for me to get a boyfriend. When I am trying to develop a romantic rtionship with a boy, Eric''s image will appear before me and the good impression of the boy will be ruined. " Julia took another gulp of juice, her eyes half open. Suddenly she mocked herself byughing aloud"ButBut he has just said this has nothing to do with Julia. Nothing! Nothing! What a jerk, haha" Julia kept on muttering, showing a tendency to act out of control. "Let''s forget about it, Julia. You are drunk now and I had better drive you home." Elizabeth sensed the tendency and tried to persuade her tenderly. If someone was drunk, the best way to help them was to humor and coax their will. "Yes, go home. I want to go home. I don''t want to see that jerk anymore," Julia stood up suddenly, only to find herself falling down the sofa with dizziness. Elizabeth rushed to hold her. Not until Julia regained her consciousness did Elizabeth help her stand up slowly. n found Eric who was talking with Herbert Ross and whispered by Eric''s ear. Eric looked at the gate of the banquet hall and excused himself before going in that direction. Soon he saw Julia and Elizabeth there. "What''s the matter, Julia? Why have you drunk so much?" Eric felt dissatisfied. He looked at the girl supported by Elizabeth and then looked around, as if looking for somebody. After a while, he asked Julia in disappointment"Where is Alison?" Alison was no other than the petite assistant of Julia. The girl had a freckled face and always kept Juliapany. "LeaveLeave me alone! I can drink as I please." Julia saw Eric appearing before her and shook her arm violently. Her voice was getting much higher"You are trying to lesson me again! Who gives you the right?" "Quite! Do you want to appear in tomorrow''s news saying that you hit the bottle?" Eric red at Julia and looked around. A lot of guests noticed what was happening here. Eric hurriedly beckoned Elizabeth to help Julia out of the hall. Not until they reached the empty hallway did Eric feel at ease. "Where is Alison? Will she send you home?" Eric asked once again. Julia lowered her head and curled her lips unhappily. Maybe it was due to Eric''s shout and re that she had regained some of her consciousness. She answered: "Alison is on leave. She stayed with me in a southern town for several months and was a littlea little unustomed to the climate there. So she fell ill." Eric gave a sigh and said to his assistant behind"n, could you please drive Julia home?" n was about to answer when Elizabeth interrupted"Let me do this. n is after all a man and it is not convenient. Julia has drunk too much and she surely needs someone to take care of her." "You" Eric looked at Elizabeth in confusion and then nced at Julia. "I wantI want Elizabeth to take me home. Not himYou hateful men, hateful men!" Julia seemed to lose her consciousness once again. She held Elizabeth''s arm tightly and leaned on the girl. Eric shrugged in embarrassment. Looking at Julia, he had no choice but to agree"I am sorry to trouble you. Elizabeth, do you know where Julia''s apartment is?" "I know, I know! It is at No. 11070, Wilsey Avenue, Beverly Hills," Julia raised her hand subconsciously, like a pupil who was trying to answer the teacher''s question. Her tone seemed like that of a little and ignorant child. Eric shrugged his shoulders and smiled at Elizabeth"Fine, you get the address now. Let me send you upstairs." As the lift was getting down slowly, Eric kept on ncing the two girls by his side and felt strange. Although he was not familiar with Elizabeth yet, he could tell that she was like a tomboy. Maybe she was a lesbian? If it was true, then what would happen to Julia tonight? The pictures were getting dirtier and Eric even unconsciously gave a yful smile. Luckily, Elizabeth was carefully helping Julia all the time and did not notice Eric''s strange expression. If she knew what Eric was thinking about, she might kick him on the leg. "My car is over there. Hey, could you help me please? You are not like a gentleman at all," Elizabeth said angrily to Eric and pointed at a red sports car at the corner of the parking lot after they walked out of the lift. She could feel that Julia was about to fall. "Well, I am sorry. I think you can do it by yourself," Eric moved forward with a smile and grabbed the other arm of Julia. The two helped Julia by the car. Then Elizabeth left Julia leaning on Eric''s body and took out the key to open the door. After opening the back door of the car, Elizabeth turned around and beckoned Eric to help Julia in, only to find the girl grabbing the man''s arm tightly. She kept on muttering"Eric, umI dreamed of you again. Will you scold me once again? Eric, you are so hateful! Could not you be tender to me? Kiss me, please" Sensing the dullness in Elizabeth''s eyes, Eric was also quite helpless and tried to exin to her"ThisYou seeShe is drunk." Elizabeth soon realized what was going on and silently took Julia away from Eric before putting her on the back seat and closing the door with a bang. Then Elizabeth also got in the car and was about to start the engine. Finally, she could not help but lean out of the window and say to Eric who was bidding farewell"Mr. Williams, Julia is totally right. You are such a jerk!" After the car left, Eric saw the middle finger stuck out of the window and shook his head with a wry smile. Julia opened her eyes dizzily and felt that a big stone had been stuffed in her brain. She raised her hand and knocked gently on her temples and looked around. Fortunately, she was in her own bedroom. Deep inside, she felt both lucky and depressed. Last night, she drank too much and dreamed of that guy once again, saying something inappropriate. Luckily, it was in a dream. Or else, how embarrassed she would be! Julia heard someone opening the door and immediately covered her body with a nket, looking at the door with her eyes wide open. Elizabeth was only dressed in a loose men''s shirt and appeared by the door. She saw that Julia had already woken up and then smiled"Hi, Julia. You have finally woken up. Otherwise, I will have to disturb your good sleep." "You" Julia gradually remembered what happenedst night. Thinking of the girl''s identity, she forced a smile and said"Elizabeth, good morning. Did you send me back?" "Yes. You drank too muchst night and threw up several times, dirtying your and my clothes. So I had no choice but to change my clothes with a shirt in your wardrobe. Will that offend you? " Elizabeth pulled the shirt on her body and asked. "Of course not. I should thank you instead," Julia soon realized that the shirt on Elizabeth was the one she hid long long ago. It belonged to Eric but Julia did not give it back. Elizabeth did not realize that the shirt was for men and Julia would by no means tell her about it. Chapter 187: I Got It "Get up, then, I''ve made you something to eat, and I hope you''ll like it." said Elizabeth, leaving a faint smile, and turning away. Julia craned her neck through the crack of the door and saw she had already left. Then she wrapped herself in the nket and shilly-shallied her way to the bathroom.She was not that careless like Elizabeth, and was not ustomed to exposing herself to anyone, even of the same sex, whom she had known only a day. Twenty minutester, Julia appeared in the dining room in a long, baggy, pale green dress. Elizabeth had already picked her own breakfast. When she saw Juliae in, she just nodded to Julia, still sitting at one side of the table with a roll of newspaper in her hand, reading news and eating her own breakfast, not like a guest at all. Julia didn''t mind it. She sat down on the other side, picked up a piece of toast, spread some peanut butter on it, and ate a few bites. "Did you sleep wellst night?" Elizabeth said across the dining table. "Ah, well... Of course, "Julia said quickly. Somehow she felt guilty, but she couldn''t remember anythingst night.Her memory after drunk had been blurred. "If possible, I would advise you not to do it again." Elizabeth said in a meaningful tone. "Again... Do what again?" Julia blinked at the girl opposite. "Get drunk. Don''t get drunk again." Julia seemed to realize something. "I... Did I do something badst night?" Elizabeth did not hesitate to nod. "Yes." "Oh my God!" Julia pped her forehead, "This is awful. Should it get out... " "Don''t worry, it won''t." Elizabeth shook her head gently without lifting her head, and turned the page of the newspaper before her. "Why?" "I don''t think that asshole will get the word out." Elizabeth said in an understatement. Julia stared at her. "The asshole... You mean Eric." "Bingo!" Julia was so nervous that her voice even faltered. "So... Well, Liz, I... What the hell did I I do on earth? What thing out of line I have done?" "Not too much. You''re just clinging on that jerk, crying and begging him to kiss you." "Oh. Jesus!" Julia groaned bitterly, with her head on the table and banged her head against the solid wooden one. Seeing her reaction, Elizabeth could not help but smile, "Stop it. Nobody would throw a pity on you even if you smash the wood." After a long time, Julia lifted her head, reached for the ss jug in the middle of the table and poured herself a cool ss. She took a few deep breaths to muster up the nerve and said, "Well, Liz, can you tell me more aboutst night?" "Are you sure you want to hear it?" Elizabeth Replied. Resisting the thought of retreating, Julia nodded. At first Elizabeth''s mind was clear. And she wasn''t drunkst night, but everything turned when she startedining about Eric. Sheined a lot about him, and even added many details in a vivid way. "I... I even told you about the dream?" Julia looked imploringly at Elizabeth hoping she would deny it. "Yes!" Elizabeth nodded in a vague attitude when hearing Julia''s question, raising her bowl and finishing her food. Julia banged her head on the table again. "I am done. That was too embarrassing. How could I face him again?" Elizabeth finished her food, wiped her mouth and gave a quizzical look as she asked, "Julia, does Eric Williams really have such an abnormal hobby, like hitting women?" "No," replied Julia at the table in a muffled voice. Elizabeth seemed relieved. "So," she said, "Those are your sexual fantasies. I almost believed he was an aberration. If he were really like that, that''s too disgusting! I had some crush on him before." ''Liz, will you stop it? I want to kill myself now." "It doesn''t matter at all. Who made the rule that a woman can''t have a little sexual fantasy? However yours were really very special, because you wanted him to beat you." "It was just a dream," Julia said weakly, clutching her head. "Dreams are a convenient and fast form of virtual realization of human desires. They are essentially the same as the fantasies when you are awake, except that fantasies are controble and dreams are unconstrained, but you wouldn''t dream like that if you don''t have the idea at all in your mind." "Uh-huh... "Julia let out a few cries. It seemed that if Liz said continuously she would cry harder. So Elizabeth stopped the topic and changed for another, "Julia, are you in love with him?" Julia flipped up and clearly became more sensitive to this topic. "No, of course not, I hate him." "OK." said Elizabeth, with an uncritical tone, and sensibly not to inquire further, for she might have been driven out by the maddened woman, while muttering to herself that what a worst reflection of hate. Julia red at Elizabeth, her fingers pressed slightly down on the edge of the table, prepare to do something. After waiting for a while, she found that Elizabeth had no further words. Her highly tensed nerve soon relieved and she began to speak inwardly: "I just... actually... " "Forget it, Julia, hurry up and eat your breakfast. I think your life was too boring to have such wild imagination. I can borrow a private jet and we can fly straight to Manhattan. The Fifth Avenue is a shopping heaven. In the evening, I can take you to some parties and introduce you to some young guys, whose family must be richer than Eric Williams'' while they might not be as excellent as him. "I met some guys in that type at some parties. They were neither too old for me nor too self-righteous, who led a life of luxury and debauchery with the money earned by their family. I doubt they will not be able to pay the legacy tax for their property inheritance. In the United States, you can only inherit the property when you pay the tax. I heard that many rich young guys can only give away a lot of legacy because of failing to pay huge inheritance tax." "Well, you''re talking about the very few," Elizabeth said with a smile. "With a little thought, billionaires have a million ways to pass on enough money to their next generation." The topic imperceptibly turned fromst night''s embarrassment, they began to find more and more topics, chattering up. "Liz, how does this blouse look on you? Don''t you think that the one on you is a bit big for you?" After breakfast, the two girls went into Julia''s closet to pick out clothes. They were about the same size and height, so there was no problem about size. "However, I prefer looser clothes, and this one on me looks nice." said Elizabeth, who did not wish to change her clothes, still wearing nothing below but her bare thighs, and was standing nearby, plucking at another wardrobe, picking out her trousers. Julia pressed her lips and tried hard to figure out how to take off her shirt without noticed by her. "Well, that''s a good pair, I will wear it." said Elizabeth, taking a pair of khaki cks from the wardrobe, cing them at her waist, and putting them on. "Yes, it looks good," Julia said, her eyes rolling. "But I think khaki pant looks better with a light blue top, and pink is fine, but white isn''t," she said while quickly took down two smaller size blouses than the shirt on Liz''s from the wardrobe in front of her, and matched them before Elizabeth, "Try it!" Elizabeth blinked, looked at the two blouses, and looked at the shirt on her top, suddenly lifted it and directly stripped down, naked with only small white underwear below, shouting: "Jesus! This was too disgusting, I got it, and it must be the jerk Eric Williams'' shirt, too disgusting, bah, my god!" Chapter 188: Being Alarmed "Does it have to be like this, Liz? Maybe...... I can give it back to him." She asked while her eyes shing as she looked at the tin bucket used to burn debris in Julia''s yard. Elizabeth forcefully pulled Julia''s shirt out of her clutched hand, slipped it into the bucket, struck a match and threw it in. The me briefly raised, the cotton fabric quickly reduced to ashes, finally only a few stic buttons are still flickering in small me. pping her hands, Elizabeth patted Julia''s shoulder as she stared at the fire in the bucket. "Done. Julia, if you want to get that guy out of your life for good, this is a process you have to go through. Go pack. I''ve already arranged the private jet. We''re going to New York, and if you haven''t had enough fun, we can then fly to London and Paris." "I thought I''d talk to my agent first, and I remember i still have the announcementsing up these days... " "Hey, you''re one of the top actresses in Hollywood right now. Julia, you are not one of those underprivileged little actors who are in the hands of agents and don''t have a lot of freedom." "But...... " Elizabeth interrupted Julia. "No buts! Where is your passport? If you don''t want to pack, bring your passport and your credit card is enough. Let''s take an instant get away." More than an hourter, a private Boeing ne took off from Los Angeles international airport. At the same time the movie director of the Others Jonathan Demme also took off. After Michael Eisner''s tip and themunication with Eric, Jonathan Demme flied to Venice, Italy, the second day early in the morning for preparing for the anti-war publicity in the movie the Others. Although there were more than two weeks before the Venice film festival started, Jonathan Demme had no connections in Italy, so all depended on him to work hard. It''s never too early to make preparation. A few dayster, when Eric identally heard Kapoor''sint, he knew Julia was taken away by the Murdoch tomboy. In addition to the imagination that the two might be lesbians, he never rted it to his me at all. In turn, he thought it was reasonable for Julia to go out for fun, who left a deep impression on him after she was drunk. By mid-August, Eric hadpleted the first two episodes of Friends. After his hands-on experience, the six "Friends" stars were fully in character mode, doing Kevin Bright a big favor, who took over as the show''s director. Almost one week after the test screening, Disney Company, Paramount Pictures Inc. and Warner Bros. Entertainment Inc. had given their offer. Michael Eisner certainly was determined to win it. The day after the test screening, Disney Company directly submitted their offer, for the movie the Others and Steel Magnolias, they would offer 35% profits of the north American box office and 10% of the overseas box office. Seeing the figure, Eric had a familiar feeling in an instant. Jeffrey directly pointed out that Disney Company gave him the same share he enjoyed in directing the film at Fox Film Corporation, and the offer was based on the North American box office which was above 100 million, otherwise, Disney would hardly get any profit. If carefully to calcte, in fact, this offer was much higher than that Fox Film Corporation offered, because at the beginning Fox Film Corporation possessed several Eric''s movie videos and rights of management on the movie sideline range products, from where they can also be assigned to the substantial profits, but this time the Firefly Company had made it clear that they would not sell the copyrights of the videos, including the Others and the rights of management on the movie products, except for the distribution rights in North America and overseas. After Disney Company, Paramount Pictures Inc., the aspiring distributor, came in second, followed by Warner Bros. Entertainment Inc. and others, while Colombia Pictures Inc. did not even make an offer. Eric was surprised by Fox Film Corporation. On the second day after the test screening, Fox Film Corporation sent someone to take back the outline of the movie Sleepless in Seattle. A few dayster, Carl Hunter from Fox Film Corporation personally found Eric himself and wished to change the movie Sleepless in Seattle to the Others as Fox Film Corporation suggested, no mentioning Steel Magnolias at all. Apparently, Elizabeth''s improvised-n caught the attention of Barry Diller, who was canny, and after reviewing Sleepless in Seattle, Fox Film Corporation was clearly more interested in the Others, which was why it happened. Eric didn''t know what else was going on, but he refused Fox Film Corporation''s suggestion. Changing the contract would certainly require a series of negotiations, and it was hard to know what would happen during that time. Now that Disney Company has offered the same price, Eric wouldn''t be looking for trouble. Making sure that there was nopetition, Firefly Company quickly signed a distribution deal for two movies with Disney Company. "Eric, I heard you bought Pixar Animation Studios?" Michael Eisner asked at a reception party after signing the contract. Eric calmly shook his ss of wine, "Yeah, I''m interested in cartoons, so I bought them for fun." "You are indeed...a young man," Michael Eisner shook his head while rting it to something. "So it''s you who cut off the previous graphic animation corporation between Pixar Animation Studios and Disney Company?" "Since Disney Company is such a giant, how could it care about such a smallpany like Pixar Animation Studios? Once Disney Company showed cooperation willingness to the other animationpanies, they would kill to work with you." Michael Eisner smiled with helplessness. Although Disney Company started its business by making animation, after Michael Eisner took over, he did not pay due attention to the animation like his several former chiefs, which also ignited the opposition from some board members. However, with Disney Company''s business thriving day by day, the opposition died away. However, theck of emphasis on animated films was onlypared with live-action films which gained more attention from Michael Eisner than previous ones, which does not mean that Michael Eisner did not pay attention to the status of Disney animated films in Hollywood. So as Eric slowly rose, his purchase of Pixar Animation Studios six months ago caught Michael Eisner''s attention. More importantly, he was rmed to learn that Pixar Animation Studios was producing a new form of 3D animation. Chapter 189: One More Film Taken Away Eric''s sudden emergence was certainly unique in more than fifty years of Hollywood history. It was not that Eric had produced many great movies because his previous works, including Home Alone, Pretty Woman and Running Out of Time, didn''t contain too many artistic achievements or any impressive innovations when carefully studied. But after Eric''s films continued to achieve an astonishing performance in box office, news media began to take delight in talking about and analyzing the reason why his movies could achieve great sess so as to attract public attention or improve ratings, moreover, the top filmpanies had called upon professionals to analyze his movies in detail and the conclusion would be gradually manifested in Hollywood''s movie market in the next two years with an increase of live action targeting at children and Romantic movies of Cindere''s type and many crime and gangster film would spring up. Disney wouldn''t be an exception in studying Eric''s films. But only after looking through various analysis reports on Eric''s movies did Michael Eisner soon realize that the miracle in box office of Eric''s films was neither owing to his catering to the demand of children nor satisfying of young women''s yearning for Cindere''s love, and it was Eric himself that was the most important reason for this. The reason why this conclusion was made was that there was nothing inmon among the genre of Eric''s films, with 17 Again being a youth campus film, Home Alone a children''sedy, Temptress Moon a romantic movie and Running Out of Time, a crime and gangster film. Their subjects were non-rted while they all had been sessful. The only thing inmon was Eric who was behind all of these movies. Eric was the producer for all of these movies. Although 17 Again was a film produced by Fox, all the people wouldn''t attribute its sess to James Brooks or Penny Marshall. Eric was the key person behind its box office surpassing 100 million US dors. After arriving at such a conclusion, Michael Eisner paid more attention to Eric and Firefly''s actions and prepared to win Eric over whenever necessary Although his ambition gradually expanded with the ever-growing business of Disney, he did not be an arrogant Disney Tyranny who ended up being dismissed from his job for his willfulness. His prestige was iparable in Disney thanks to his achievements in the past few years. It was known that Disney took off by making animated movies. Although Michael Eisner focused on the development of live animations, he knew that the biggest advantage of Disney lied in animation movies, whose advantageous position in Hollywood must be maintained. Along with producing live action movies, he had also expanded the business of animated movies, arranging the releasing of videotapes on ssic Disney cartoons and extending the authorization of the copyright ofic rted products, which had achieved an amazing performance. Therefore, after Eric gradually emerged and acquired a 3D animation studio, Michael Eisner became alerted to that studio. 3D movie was apletely unfamiliar concept to many people and Michael Eisner had limited knowledge about it not long ago. But the centenary history of film''s development has demonstrated that silent movies were reced by sound films and ck-and-white motion pictures were overshadowed by color motion picture film. He had to pay more attention to it and slightly anticipated that 3D movie would create a massive trend bringing earthshaking changes to the movie market. So he watched and analyzed Tin Toy, the Academy Award for Animated Short Film for this year, with the management personnel of the animation department in Disney. Though the baby image in the movie was so poorly made that the senior animators in Disney despised it, the expert inputer graphics that Disney invited from Silicon Valley introduced its technical points and difficulties for them after studying the movie and imed that they could produce 3D animation movies of more than 90 minutes almost the same quality as 2D animations with the technology in Pixar Animation Studios as long as there were ample funding. What that expert had said came to Michael Eisner''s mind. Since Eric was wily and stubborn, he knew it was impossible for Disney to interfere into Pixar''s business and establishing 3D animation department in Disney wouldn''t be realized overnight. "Eric, Pixar is producing animated feature films right now. We wonder if you can authorize their distribution rights to us." Since he couldn''t meddle with Pixar''s business, another idea of acquiring the distribution right of Pixar''s first 3D animated feature movie burst upon him. That way, the situation could be kept under Disney''s control. Eric smiled "Mr. Eisner, why are you so anxious? It takes at least two years toplete our first animation feature film. Both of us will bear higher risk if we sign an agreement now." Guiding Eric to a sofa and sitting down, Michael Eisner continued enticing him: "Eric, most movies of big production have already contacted their distributors before shooting so that they can retrieve funds within the shortest possible time. An animation feature film needs an investment of at least 30 million US dors and 3D animation movies certainly requires more funding. If not fully prepared in advance, we will take a much higher risk. There were still some points that Michael Eisner didn''t mention. For instance, if an animation movie became a lemon that no one was willing to get its distribution right, tens of millions of investment would be wasted away. Signing an agreement with a filmpany in advance could prevent such thing happening. Even if it turned out to be a stinker, a part of the cost could be recovered. But he didn''t think Pixar would produce a terrible movie under the supervision of Eric. Shaking the goblet, Eric lowered his head pretending to contemte and then he raised his head: "Mr. Eisner, all I can say is that Disney will be my first choice when selecting the distributor in the future." That amounted to no promises. The first choice was only a possible one and it rarely became the final choice most of the times in Hollywood. Michael Eisner felt disappointed and a little irritated. As the leader of Disney, few people would dare to refuse him repeatedly. Though he didn''t show his temper in the presence of Eric, his tone became frosty. "Eric, you know, I am under great pressure in Disney when offering such a high revenue sharing for Steel Magnolias and The Others. So I need to exin it to the board of directors. You haven''t decided which filmpany to cooperate with next year, am I right? Eric acutely felt the indifference and unpleasantness in his tone. He did not intend to seek cooperation with otherpanies because the negotiation with New Line had almoste to an end. He would definitely focus on the development of his ownpany next year. But he thought the rise of Firefly would face pressure from all sides and removing an enemy would be even better. After thinking about it for a moment, Eric reluctantly stretched out a finger: "One movie. Mr. Eisner, you know the development path for Firefly. All I can give you is the distribution right for one movie although its videotapes and peripheral products not included. "Is that gonna be one that you direct?" With his face brightening, he confirmed again. "Sure." Eric nodded. Finally Michael Eisner raised his ss with a faint smile: "Cheers." "Cheers." Eric smiled, clinking Eisner''s ss with his own. He knew that they had finalized the cooperation. In Hollywood, some people never honored their promises. You would be deceived if you believed in them. Sometimes what they had said was even more effective than a contract, just like now. Since he had already made a promise, he would be an enemy of Disney if he broke itter. Having gotten benefits from Eric, Michael Eisner instructed him and then left to entertain other guests without pestering him further. Eric sighed at Michael Eisner''s retreating figure, gulping down some wine of unknown vor. "Eric, here you are, I am looking for you." After a moment without any disturbance, Jeffery walked towards him hurriedly with a handkerchief wiping his sweat away. Eric moved a little to make room for him and asked: "Aren''t you negotiating with Robert Shea on acquisition?" "It has been done. There is nothing to talk about." Jeffery shook his head and when he noticed Eric''s depressed expression still lingered on, he asked: "What happen to you? Why are you not happy when Disney offers such a high revenue sharing?" Chapter 190: Such A Poor Judgment "How can I be happy? Michael Eisner have just ckmailed a movie from me." Eric said resignedly. Although Eric didn''t make it explicit, Jeffery knew what he meant: "Thenwhat does Disney offer?" Nodding his head, Eric said: "It has not been officially negotiated yet. I just make an oral promise to Michael Eisner." Jeffery felt relived: "It''s just a movie. Anyway, you are a high-producing director. But two days ago I''ve heard news that Disney will terminate the cooperation with Warner in terms of overseas distribution and transfer all businesses to Buena Vista International, its affiliatedpany. "Does it have anything to do with me?" Eric asked, ignoring Jeffery''s teasing. "It certainly does. After stopping cooperating with Warner, Disney''s overseas distribution will be in disarray for a while. It may take at least half a year for Buena Vista International to integrate it. If the movie you have promised to authorize Disney to distribute is arranged on the first half of next year, it will possibly be cannon fodder of Buena Vista in its process of expanding the overseas market. The condition will be much better if the movie is released in the second half of next year." Eric felt confused: "Disney is unlikely to use us as cannon fodder. Don''t they want to make profits?" Putting the handkerchief into his pocket, Jeffery summoned the waiter to send him a ss a wine and said: "Bigpanies like Disney does not care about the petty profits from one or two movies, instead they pay more attention to expanding their distribution channels. The influence you''ve umted around the world in your previous movies is the best tool for them to expand their distribution channels. Taking advantage of your movies, Disney will sacrifice some interest to overseas distributors to make things much easier for them, thereby establishing new distribution channels in several countries after distributing a movie. Compared with those channels that can create long-term profits, it is not even a big deal to give some benefits to others." Eric nodded his head. Disney used his movies to pave the way for expanding the overseas market and it will surely suffer a great loss in overseas box office due to the imperfect distribution channel. Disney could expand the overseas channels through this way, but he and Firefly could get nothing from it. Although the percentage of revenue sharing in overseas market was not high, his previous movies had pocketed more than 10 million US dors in overseas box office. He would not help Disney in sacrifice of his own interest unless Disney could make up for losses. Fully understanding the situation, Eric made up his mind and then asked: "Jeffery, I remember you''ve just said you can''t reach an agreement with Robert Shea. What do you mean?" "There is no need for negotiation anymore. Robert Shea insists on giving him 15% of shares and 60 million US dors in cash. He won''t make a concession anymore and that''s why I hurriedlye inquiring about your decision." Eric thought for a moment and asked: "Are you sure this is his bottom line?" Jeffery nodded: "Certainly. He clearly expressed that this is the bottom line and he won''tpromise anymore. And" Jeffery smiled a strange smile: "He stresses that he won''t ept your invitation of having a meeting with him unless you ept his conditions." "Hmmthis," Eric felt confused. Jefferyughed and exined: "When you have dinner with him for the first time, your speech might give him an impression so strong that he can''t help but retreat when thinking of meeting you again. I suppose that is the reason. Though I don''t attend the meeting that time, Robert Shea makes a big concession due to your persuasive rhetoric, doesn''t he? "I am telling the truth." Eric refuted with a smile. "Anyway, that''s it. I think it is a reasonable price because Newline has been established for 20 years. I will focus more on the preparation of Sleepless in Seattle in theing days and handle the business of acquiring Newline to you. I''ve already prepared all the relevant documents which will be sent to your office by the secretary." Patting him on the shoulder, Jeffery shot a look at Eric asfort: "I''ve been over it. I will hand over the CEO position to Robert Shea and serve as a president responsible for producing; even a vice president will be fine." "Thanks Jeffery." Feeling grateful, Eric looked at the fat old man who had been sparing no effort to support him since he produced Home Alone. "Do we need to talk about this?" Jeffery raised a cup of wine and clinked their sses before asking him: "Can Jonathan Demme deal with it alone in Vince? How about I tag along. It''s better to let Kapoor go to Europe since he has more connections there. But he is an agent and has no intention of changing his career." "Michael Eisner had talked with me about that before youe. He will mobilize Disney''s resources to help us win an award in Vince Film Festival because John Landis, a director from Hollywood, is among the jury of nine people." Jeffery furrowed his brows and lost in thought: "Join Landis, the director of Coming to America?" "Yes. He is better at shooting horror movies. So the topic of The Others coupled with the tag of a Hollywood movie will surely impress him. Disney will also send a person to contact him." "When are you going to Venice?" "I will arrive there during the opening ceremony and won''t attend the award ceremony which is to be held in the middle of September. I suddenly find that my schedule is too tight because I have toplete the production of Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2 before the first half of November, during which I also need to deal with the business of New Line and keep track of the post-production of Scent of a Woman. That gives me no time for pleasure." Ericined hastily. "You are doing so many things at the same time. You are nning to produce four movies this year and you have to supervise the shooting of two films when most directors could only produce two movies in a year. Jeffery smiled: "You won''t have such a busy schedule next year, do you?" "I will take a well-earned rest next year. I''ve never enjoyed life so far!" "You are as old as 19 now." Teasing him with a touch of envy, Jeffery looked around and patted him on the shoulder: "You may go back to have some rest if you are tired. I''ve seen some acquaintances and will greet them." "Ok", Eric replied without standing up. Not caring about it, Jeffery left with a ss of wine. Sipping the remaining red wine in his ss slowly, Eric decided to go back to take a rest after drinking it. However, a talldy with a strapless evening dress appeared before him. "Eric, I''ve intended to say hi to you but there is always someone around you." Brooke Shields sat down gracefully beside Eric. "You look pretty tonight Brooke." Eric smiled, raising a ss of red wine to her. "Thanks, but someone turns his nose up at me." She said ruefully, seemingly taking to heart Eric''s continuous refusing of her several times. Eric smiled without answering that question. Thedy is good at disying the flirting expression. She may expect to reply on him before Running Out Of Time. But her stunning performance in Running Out of Time has made it unnecessary for her to trade sex for movie roles. Looking her up and down, Eric was craving that she could stand up and turn around so that he can appreciate her beauty fully. "It''s said that you''ve got a role in a movie of big production by Warner. Is that the sequel of Batman?" ''It will flop badly if it is true.'' Nheless, the fact that starring in a film of big production amounting to hundreds of millions of investment will bring her even greater fame. Brooke Shields shook her head with a smile: "Our negotiations have broken down. I choose to cooperate with Disney and that''s why Ie here today." "Oh, it''snot a pity. Do you mind telling me the name of it?" Eric asked curiously. Nodding her head, Brooke Shields said: "I can only say it is temporarily named as The Rocketeer. The name will possibly be changed in thete stage, it''s just a working title." "Rocketeer," Hearing its name, Eric almost spewed the red wine. He remembered that movie was released in 1991. It wouldn''t be shot until next year. Eric knew that, with his presence, many Hollywood movies didn''t disappear, though, their shooting and release date had be disordered. But the focus was that, as he remembered, the movie was a box office bomb that resulted in Jennifer Connelly''s cold treatment in the industry for five years. Eric looked at thisdy up and down and found that she still maintained a gentle image as shown in Running Out Of Time. Obviously, she knew that this image was more suitable for her career development in Hollywood than her previous aggressive and morous appearance. Eric thought pitifully that her judgment of a movie was so poor that she fell into such an unlucky situation. Chapter 191: Her Heart Flipping up He vaguely remembered that Jennifer Connelly, who got little attention after she had grown up, caught the eyes of Hollywood with her bold performance in a thriller movie. She had luckily transformed from a child star with clean and pure image since then. It was not a long time until she starred in The Rocketeer. However, with the box office of that movie flopping, other films of big production that she acted as the leading actresses had all failed in term of box office. As a result, for a long time no one had invited her to star in any mainstreammercial movies in Hollywood where people were obsessed with superstitions. From then on, she never got any role in a movie in the next five years. It was several yearster when she appeared on the screen again and her screen image waspletely different from what it was before. "Eric?" Seeing Eric zoning out, Brooke Shields slightly patted on him unpleasantly. This man was so terrible that he should get distracted in front of a gorgeous beauty like her. "Oh, sorry." Eric apologized, no longer being distracted by those thoughts. Then he asked her in uncertainty: "The rocketeer you have mentioned is fiction movie that happened in Los Angeles in the 1930s?" Her jaw dropped when she heard what Eric said. Therefore, Eric waspletely certain of it. In the face of Eric''s confident eyes, Brooke Shields asked him: "Eric, how do you know that? Itshould it be a secret?" "If I''ve guessed it right, this movie is adapted from the original novel of the same name by Stevens. I happen to have read that book." Eric shrugged. He indeed watched that film before, but he never read the novel, a fact that he wouldn''t reveal to her. As for the content of the film, the scene that he found most interesting was when the sign of Hollywood Heights was reduced to Hollywood after being smashed. Many Hollywood movies preferred to echo the plots with historical events, among which the most popr one was Forrest Gump. "Eric, how do you like this movie being shot based on the novel?" Brooke Shields was somewhat clever, raising an important question after hearing what Eric said. "I don''t know about it. It was a marvelous novel and depended on how Disney is going to adapt it." Eric shook his head without hesitation. He had no intention of reminding her not to ept the role in this movie since it might not be helpful if she had already signed a contract with Disney. What was more, since Disney shot the movie one year in advance, the plot would be different from what it was previously. Sometimes, even if one day difference would lead to a change in a screenwriter''s mind, let alone one year. The Rocketeer might achieve an unexpected sess in the current time and space. If he ventured to remind her not to star in this movie, which instead turned out to be a blockbuster in the future, he would ruin her career. It was him who had to make up for her losses and offered her a role in his movie. So it was better to be an onlooker. Shaking the red wine in the ss, Eric absent-mindedly thought about The Rocketeer, which then reminded him of Jennifer Connelly. He did not know where Jennifer Connelly had been. Since he already forgot the taste of her lips, he wondered when he could kiss her again. "Eric, I''d better not to bother you as you are always zoning out." Standing up unpleasantly, Brooke Shields looked at him withint and left away. Staring at her body covered in a silver mermaid gown, Eric suddenly felt that her body was perfectly suitable for dressing up as a mermaid with tail. Eric shook his head to leave every muddled thought behind, deciding to go to Aniston''s house to spend a night with her. At night, in Aniston''s house. She leaned against Eric''s arm, suddenly talking about bearing a child: "I am only twenty years old. I don''t want to be burdened by a child, unable to do anything." "As a man of nigh teen years old, even I am not afraid of having a child, why are you so concerned having a baby now that you are twenty." Eric said with a smile. "Anyway, I don''t want to be pregnant at such an early age. I should wait until thirty years old, and" Aniston said quite nervously, raising her head and staring into Eric''s eyes: "If I were pregnant now, would you marry me immediately?" Hearing what she said, Eric''s heart beat rapidly. He hesitated for a moment and before he replied to that question, Aniston pinched his waist lightly: "You are so scared that your heart almost leaps out. I know it" His hands slided over her smooth back, whispering to her: "Jane, please forgive my greedy mind. I swear that I will be good to you forever." "But I need more than that," Aniston murmured with her face rubbing his body "I hope you are good to me only", "I know, but it''s impossible. And you don''t want to let me go." Aniston''s tone soon became resentful: "Howe there is such a jerk in this world." Kissing her face with a smile, Eric said: "Little girl, you need to keep in mind that all men in this world are jerks. Just stop struggling as all men are the same." Rolling her eyes at him, Aniston said: "It seems to make sense. Instilling your strange life philosophies into me, you resemble a wicked heretic who would be burned to death if you were in Europe several hundred years ago." Eric couldn''t help but argued: "Only a pagan can have a carefree life. They tend to believe in God in their imagination, which is more like the incarnation of their deep minds." "No more talking. You start brainwashing me again" Shaking her head, Aniston stretched out her hands to cover Eric''s mouth to keep him from talking about it anymore. However, her twisted corner of the mouth indicated that she would listen attentively to him even if he continued talking about it. Wearing a grin on his face, Eric grasped Aniston''s hands andpared the size of her hands with his. The thin callus had slightly grown on his hands due to a busy year. He said: "Fine, I won''t talk about it." Though had not raised her head, Aniston scratched the palm of his hands: "Eric, are you going to Venice in September?" Eric recalled the arrangement of his schedule, nodding: "Yes. The film festival will open on September 4 and I will stay there for a few days. I won''t attend the awards ceremony as they have nothing to do with me. So there is no need to spend much time there. Although I don''t want to attend the event, I can''t keep avoiding everyone since I''m in this industry. I am not like Woody Allen. "September the 4th." Aniston suddenly raised her head and repeated that date, unnoticing what Eric had said next. Something seemed to ur to her, which made her unhappy suddenly. She intended to make a slightint that Eric and Virgin would dawdle in Vince. But upon hearing the date of the opening ceremony, she said unpleasantly: "Friends is to be broadcast on September 3, which means you can''t see the premier with me." "Watching or not watching is the same. That TV series is produced by me. Why do I need to watch it when I know every plot?" Eric felt confused. Aniston was a bit irritated: "Certainly it is different. It is the first TV series that we produce together. I thought you could watch the premier with me." Eric apologized: "How aboutI watch the premier with you in the second season?" Aniston was disappointed. She punched Eric, turned her back on him and murmured: "Who knows if the TV series you shoot have the second season or not. I''ve watched it and it''s just so-so." The petntdy had Eric in stitches and he had to beg her: "Alright. I will call the person responsible for the film ceremony held in Vince and let them postpone the opening ceremony for two days because I need to watch the premier of a TV series with my girlfriend." Aniston was stunned and then burst intoughter: "You asshole. You deem yourself as a God." However, Aniston had thought it through; knowing that there was no perfect solution to this issue. What Eric would do was more important. "Ok, I will let you go. Don''t forget to bring me some gifts." Eric stretched out his hands to draw the virtual image of a small boat: "No problem. How about a fully hand-made Gond?" Aniston patted on his back and chuckled: "Where can we go boating if you purchase a boat. I want a mask." It urred to Eric that in his previous life, he indeed saw a mask brought from Vince. Not knowing the material of the mask decorated with various floral patterns and feathers, he thought it was weird and gorgeous. "What kind of mask do you want?" Recalling the details of that mask, Eric asked her. "Surprise me. Let''s see if you can guess my preferences." Aniston give him a naughty smile. "Why are you here?" Early in the early morning of the second day, Eric left vigorously for hispany. When he entered his office, he found that Drew had already sat on his chair ying theputer in front of her. She apparently didn''t know how to use the currentputer system. Eric was sure that she was only mishandling it, so he hurried forward to shut down theputer to prevent some cases from being destroyed. Chapter 192: I Have a Big Plan Hearing what Eric said, the girl immediately gave him a resentful look: "Where have you beenst night? I''ve called you, but your phone has been switched off. I am so worried about you." Pretending not to notice her changing face, Eric went toward her, picking her up and putting her on the other side, and then he sat on the chair: "All light. Tell me." Not caring about that, Deru went to the opposite of the desk and sat on another office chair. It was not until then that Eric noticed she had worn a light purple long sleeve shirt of a conservative style. She seemed to be wearing casual pants and a pair of shoes instead of a pair of open toe scandals that she had been ustomed to wearing before. It was abnormal for her to dress up like a decent and elegant girl. Was she converted to an elegant girl? When Eric was thinking about her quirky behavior of embroidering a flower, she suddenly said: "Eric, I have a big n." Eric felt a little difort on the little girl''s rare decency and he could not help but make a joke: "Have you found a boyfriend to conspire to have my property?" "You are so hateful. I am being serious." The little girl became angry, grabbing some documents and throwing them away to Eric. Eric caught those documents hurriedly, putting them aside and said: "Now tell me your big n." Deru red at him. Having ascertained that Eric won''t make any jokes, she pulled the bag toward her and then pulled out two sets of hardcopies, one for Eric and one for herself. She told Eric:" You have written a purchasing order for copyright. I decide to establish a team to get all of them one by one. Here is the n. How do you like it?" A purchasing order for copyright? Eric was caught off guard before realizing that Deru had asked him to give her other works to do after she acquired the copyright of An Affair to Remember. Out of boredom, he wrote down the names of the original novels made into well-known Hollywood movies and those adapted from TV series that he remembered in his previous life, including the copyright of such ssic or blockbuster films as the Forrest Gump, The Shawshank Redemption, Charlie''s Angels, The Bourne Identity, Mission: Impossible, etc. He had even penned down the original series of The Lord of the Rings. He thought the little girl would still select one from those 20-some names. But her ambition was so big that she wanted to get them all. Eric frowned, flipping the thin proposal to read. "Deru, redemption is spelled wrongly. You''ve missed ''e''. Let me teach you" "Eric, I will be sad if you continue do to so." Seeing her almost bursting into tears, Eric stopping joking her, closing the document and said: "Why do you want to do it?" "I just want to do something and I am interested in doing it." Deru said with a begging expression: "Eric, can you give me a promise?" Counting in his head, Eric said: "It will take at least 50 million US dors to acquire the copyright of all those films if the average cost stands at 2 million US dors." Deru thought that Eric would refuse her and she hurriedly replied: "I''ve calcted that you can get hundreds of millions of revenue-sharing this year. Since I am not asking you to give me 50 million at once, I don''t think it''s hard for you to provide me that amount of money." "Don''t interrupt me," Eric made a gesture towards her to let her calm down. "I can certainly give you 50 million US dors. But have you ever thought that such a big move of acquiring the copyright will attract the attention of many filmpanies. They will certainly associate your action with me. All of these filmpanies willpete for the copyright of the movie that catches my fancy. Even if they don''tpete with me, sellers will take advantage of this opportunity to increase price of the copyright if they know I am going to purchase it. Therefore, the final price will be brought up and we have to spend more money than expected." After Eric''s analysis, Deru drooped his head while rubbing her fingers. Apromised approach urred to Eric when he see the girl feeling disappointed. "Deru,e one. Instead of finding a team to acquire the copyright in arge scale, you can hire two or three people in the name of Flower Studios. Then you can slowly start purchasing the copyright one by one, which won''t keep them on the alert. It will keep you busy until you are 16. You can do more things after you are a grow-up." Hearing what Eric said, Deru had a glimmer of hope: "Is three people enough?" Eric stretched out his fingers: "It''s enough. An assistant to help you deal with daily affairs, onewyer familiar with thew in this field and one negotiator responsible for contacting the publisher." "That is the only way." Deru said with disappointment. Eric continued: "I will inform Edward to rmend awyer for you. It''s also easy to hire an assistant. The only person that is difficult to find is a negotiator for copyright." "I can find this person by myself." Deru immediately raised her head and replied. Looking at her, Eric didn''t object her when remembering that she had found Lawrence Band by herself. "All right, You can just y it by ear. But don''t make promises in my name." Deru felt unpleasant with a duck face: "Do I look stupid?" "It''s even more horrible when a smart person does dumb things." Eric replied with a smile. Snorting gently, the little girl stood up with her bag packed up: "Shall I leave?" Eric thought about something when he was about to nod his head: "There is one more thing. I will make somements on the adaptation right for those films that you are going to acquire. You need to negotiate with them ording to those requirements." "What kind ofments?" Deru sat down and asked. "For some novels, we need to get twenty years of adaptation right, for others, we need to acquire the permanent adaptation right and still only one time right of adaptation of others need to be purchased. There are some TV series who copyright needs to be bought together with the broadcasting right." Eric exined to her, flipping to the end of the proposal that contained the film names he listed. "I will give it to you after makingments." "You wille back home tonight?" The girl immediately curled her lips, indicative of her habitualints. But soon she stood up and said: "If it is fine now, I will go home." "Be careful." Eric told her from behind. ''Ok, old man!" Chapter 193: Bargaining Chip "I look forward to a smooth cooperation, Eric." After signing on the contract, Robert Shayne showed pleasant smiles while standing up. Eric stood up too, holding the hand of Robert Shayne" Sure, Robert." On thest day of August, Firefly finally acquired New Line with 15% of shares and 60 million US dors in cash after nearly one month of negotiation. The scale of twopanies was nowhere near that of Colombia Pictures that Sony wanted to acquire, nor were they like Colombia that involved many partiespeting for interest, and both sides had a stronger intention of cooperating with each other. As a result, it stood to reason that they would cooperate with each other after the price was finalized. The merger of Firefly and Newline, with the former being an emerging film studio in Hollywood andtter an old second tier filmpany, had attracted the attention of the media. Inpliance with the requirements of those media, they held a brief press conference after the signing ceremony. Obviously, a celebration party would be held afterwards. Eric preferred to stay quietly in the study room than attending such social events. It was inevitable to go to parties living in such a country, though he did not want to go there. If it were not for his refusal of many invitations, given his current status, he would have received various kinds of invitations to a party nearly every day. Eric, I hear The Others written by you is popr during its audition." "Yes, but you may know that I have already signed a distribution contract with Disney which provides a quotation so high on the revenue sharing of The Others and Steel Magnolias that I cannot reject it." Nodding his head, Eric briefly exin the situation to Robert. He thought that Robert wanted to get the distribution right of The Others, so he exined to him patiently. As they had already signed a contract, Robert was a member of Eric''s team now. He would serve as the CEO of Firefly Film Studio and work together with Jeffery, the new president of thepany, to integrate the business of bothpanies in the next few months. "No, I think you''ve misunderstood what I mean." Robert shook his head "I don''t mean to obtain the distribution right of The Others. What I mean is that you are good at writing scripts about horror films as The Others written by you is popr. So I am wondering if you can write a script for the sequel of A Nightmare on Elm Street. How do you like it?" The requirement of Robert reminded Eric of that movie''s information that he had seen before. In the negotiation process, Firefly collected more detailed information which was more urate than that in Eric''s memory. As an important horror movie series, the first episode of A Nightmare on Elm Street pocked 25 million US dors in box office, from which New Line earned a fortune. Although the distribution cost of the next three series increased gradually, it could still make a profit. Recalling what he had written, Eric said:" Robert, the horror style of A Nightmare on Elm Street has been established, which means that I cannot create any new plots. I think we can terminate this series temporarily in light of the box office performance of thetest sequence of that movie. We will suffer a great loss if we continue to produce that series when the audience have been tired of watching the plot of Freddy killing children in their dreams. We''d better stop the series and wait some years until the young generation of audience grow up and the old one feel nostalgic about that series." Hearing what Eric said, Robert''s expression slightly changed. He understood that what Eric just said made much sense, but he still felt ufortable since Eric intended to stop the sequence of A Nightmare on Elm Street when he just concluded a contract with him. He associated this situation with the purging of forces in the new country annexed by a king from another country in ancient times in order to erase the original memories of the people in that country. Having lived through two lives, Eric quickly knew what Robert was thinking when he discovered a change in his expression. Since he didn''t want to nt a seed of rift in their cooperation because of this low-cost horror film, he hurriedly exined: "Robert, it''s just my personal perspective. I am new to Hollywood and cannot think clearly over many things. If you think it necessary, we can continue to produce the series. It might be an idental mistake this time since both the third and fourth episode of that movie hit more than 40 million US dors. Realizing that Eric waspromising with him, Robert showed an expression of relief. Since Eric had made concessions on this issue, he wouldn''t be too stubborn to change his opinions: "Eric, just do as you''ve said. But I don''t think it is good to stop this series immediately. How about making a final sequence named as Freddy''s Dead: The Final Nightmare to close the series temporarily. It will surely seed at the box office with the final sequence being a gimmick. That''s a good idea." Admiring Robert''s wisdom, Eric also made a promise: "Maybe I can help devise the script of thest episode." "Really?" Robert couldn''t help but confirm it again because he thought Eric had clearly rejected him just now. The value of Eric''s scripts is highly recognized in Hollywood. "Certainly!" Eric nodded his head decisively, thinking to himself that he wouldn''t have his name shown on the film since he didn''t care about the fame and profits gained from being the scriptwriter of that film. He would face much criticism from cinephile if the movie had a bad reputation because he was the most striking one among all the cast if his name was on the cast list. Though there was an old saying that goes: "Touch pitch, and you will be defiled," Eric didn''t want to have any rtions with stinkers when he just entered Hollywood. His best chip lied in the consistent good performance of the movies produced by him, and it would be a loss for him if the value of the chip diminished due to one or two stinkers that almost had nothing to with him. It was also the reason why Eric only chose to copy the ssic movies he remembered instead of shooting some movies fully created by himself. Maybe several yearster when his status in Hollywood had been unshakable, he would make movies never seen in his previous life Chapter 194: Hey "Eric, isn''t there a movie that Firefly does not find a distributor?" Robert moved on to the topic Firefly''s films involuntarily after talking about some other things. Eric looked around, thinking that The Scent of A Woman just finished itsst cut, entering a stage of post-production. He had seen Alfredo Pacino who nodded at him just now when he was chatting with Robert. Although there were many people greeting him when they saw him, he didn''t find Alfredo Pacino and had to turn his eyes to Robert quickly: "As an art film tipping for Oscar, it will get a stunning box office performance if it can win the award. But it will be hard to predict the box office if it fails to win. Though Alfredo Pacino presents an amazing performance in that film, there are so many filmspeting for Oscar that excellent movies don''t necessarily get an award." Robert knew that Eric did not trust his connections in Hollywood: "Eric, I admit that my connections are inferior to that of the top 6 filmpanies, but it does not mean that they can get Oscar award. With this advantage, they could at best improve the performance of box office and sales volume of the subsequent videos after receiving more nominations. Last year, Working Girl had won a series of nominations, but it ended up getting no award, which was a result of the publicity of Fox Studio. To win an award requires an actual strength. The publicity of a film is important, but it does not mean everything. Eric, just think if bigpanies distribute The Scent of a Woman, they won''t concentrate on this film because they also need to take care of others, while I can mobile all resources to distribute the film. Eric was thrown into a moment of hesitation. Robert knew that Eric''s mind had been shaken and he hastily said: "Eric, don''t you find that this year is a typical tiny Oscar year?" "Eh.." Eric felt confused. He seemed to know there was a saying like that, but he didn''t know the reason. Robert exined to him patiently: "Last year, a standard grand Oscar year, saw a number of blockbusters emerge such as Rain Man starred by Dustin Hoffman, The used of Jodie Foster, he idental Tourist, Mississippi Burning and Dangerous liaisons and three actresses had won Golden Globe Award for Best Actress at the same time never seen before. However, two thirds of this year had passed and there was not even an Oscar-buzzing film until now. Maybe you think that they will be released at the end of this year. But as far as I know, there won''t be any new films of well-known directors or actors released at the end of the year. That''s why I am certain that this year will definitely be a tiny year. As you have mentioned, Alfredo Pacino gives a stunning performance in The Scent of A Woman, it''s hard to imagine whether he will get the reward finally given the fact that he has been nominated the best actor for Oscar several times before. Eric was lost in thought. He did not care that Robert had neglected the potential of Milk Money and Running Out of Time in Oscar. It would be a desirable result if his films could get nominations since he knew that the conservative film academy wouldn''t present any award to him, a young director less than 20 years old. What he cared about was the "tiny Oscar year" the Robert had mentioned. Robert''s introduction reminded Eric of the "grand Oscar year" and "tiny Oscar year" in his previous life. He remembered that The Scent of A Woman only won the Best Actor of Oscar, knowing not which movie had been nominated Academy Award for Best Picture. The movie might be the top contender for Best Picture at Oscars if this year was a small Oscar year. "Eric?" Robert reminded him when he found that Eric still didn''t respond to him after some time. Hearing his name, Eric took back his thought suddenly. The red wine in his ss almost sshed out when his wrist shook involuntarily: "Oh, sorry, Robert, I am lost in thought." Robert replied: "How do you like it?" "Yes?" Eric didn''t get it after Robert''slengthy exnation. "About the distribution of The Scent of A Woman?" Robert seemed to exin to him patiently. Eric was in a dilemma. If it was a tiny Oscar year, it would be safe to authorize the distribution of the film to top seven filmpanies. Big filmpanies had dominance over others in the publicity of Oscar award before Weinstein Brothers became the excellent producers of movies winning Oscar award. In the meantime, he knew that none of the top seven filmpanies would concentrate on the publicity of The Scent of A Woman unless he gave away much of his interest to them. However, isn''t winning an award for their interest? Eric was about to promise him before he found that Alfredo Pacinoe from nowhere and walk towards him. It urred to him that he had made a promise to Alfredo that this movie was created for him to win Oscar award. If he epted Robert''s advice and authorized Newline to distribute the film, he would bear certain risks in the publicity of the award. What if Alfred missed the Academy Award for Best Actor in a Leading Role again due to the butterfly effect, though it was very unlikely to happen? If it happened, it would create a barrier between Alfred and Firefly. Eric paid attention to the cooperation with Alfred as Firefly could reap more benefits from the box office and Oscar award by maintaining a good rtionship with him. Besides, 1990s also saw an apex in Alfred''s career. Then it was all up to Alfred. Though there was a high possibility that he would agree with Robert, he would be unlikely to take his anger out on Firefly even if he didn''t win the award this year. "Robert, I agree with that." Eric replied and then he continued before Robert showed any expression of happiness: "I have promised Alfred that he will win an Oscar award by starring in The Scent of A Woman in order to invite him to y a role in Temptress Moon. I can''t break my promise even if he has received many awards due to Temptress Moon. So you need to convince him if you want to retain the distribution right of The Scent of A Woman. Oh, there he is." Putting the goblet on the tray of a waiter passing by, Eric went towards Alfred: "Al, long time no see." Greeting Eric with a warm embrace, Alfred said: "Eric, long time no see. You look more mature and handsome now, being more attractive to young girls. Don''t forget to give some chances to us old man." "Haha, can''t you catch beauties with you tricks? Eric and Alfred had a simple conversation before introducing them: "Al, this Robert. This is Al." "Actually you don''t have to introduce us. We know each other." Alfred said, shaking hands with Robert: "Hi, Robert, I believe it is a right choice to cooperate with Eric." Robert smiled: "I hope so too." "We are just talking about The Scent of A Woman. You can talk with each other and I need to go to the bathroom." Eric pointed to the corridor not far away. Though he wanted to continue chatting with Eric, Alfred had to nod his head when seeing the direction to which Eric pointed. Greeting guests along the way, Eric passed through the crowd and walked slowly towards the entrance of the banquet hall. As he stepped into the corridor, a delicate body wearing red clothes bumped into him identally, falling backwards with a gentle sound. Eric hurriedly stretched out his hand to hold the girl, holding her in his arms. "It''s you. Your name is Gab" Eric recognized her at first sight, but couldn''te up with her name. Although copying his memories in the previous life miraculously, his body never possessed the capability of photographic memory. "Gabrielle." She gently replied. She felt pleasant when she found that it was Eric who was holding her, but then her feeling was reduced to sorrow after knowing that Eric didn''t recognize her. Holding her hand to Eric''s chest, she almost forgot to let go of her. Eric just recalled that she was the one flying from Ennd to Los Angeles to attend the audition of a chance encounter in Running Out of Time and she was also the heroine presenting an amazing tango performance in The Scent of A Woman. A middle aged man lowering his head turned to the corridor from the banquet hall, looking at them strangely. When Eric turned around, the man recognized him at first sight, retreating back swiftly with a mirthless smile. Eric recognized that he was an employee of Firefly. Though he was overactive, it was understandable to shy away from the situation in which Eric was hugging a woman who was not his girlfriend in case that his boss made things hard for him. "Sorry for that, Ms Anwar." With such an interruption, Eric released her hastily, putting her hair on her forehead involuntarily. "It''s alright." The girl shook her head, a slight flush crept into her face with the movement of Eric''s fingers on her forehead. But soon she found that Eric was so square that he simply left away after apologizing to her. Feeling a little angry, she stamped her feet lightly and had to open her mouth to call him: "Hey." Chapter 195: Cameo

Chapter 195: Cameo

Eric stopped and turned around as he asked, "Did you need something else, Miss Anwar?" Right as the words left her mouth, the young woman began regretting it. She felt that she was being a little too forward, but since she had already spoken, she gathered her courage and said, "Mr. Williams, can I invite you to a danceter?" Eric looked at the young womans petite figure wrapped in a red dress with a deep v neck and the short-heeled shoes under her slender legs. He naturally thought of her amazing tango dance scene in Scent of a Woman with Al Pacino as he smiled and asked, "Is it Tango?" Gabrielle nodded, her lips curled up into a smile with a hint of naughtiness, "If you want." "Alright, wait a moment," Eric pointed to the end of the corridor. The girl nodded understandingly and watched Eric walk away and turn the corner. Right as he walked inside the door, she quickly raised her hand and patted her chest a few times. At the same time, she quickly began considering the words she should use to attract more attention from the young man. After being lucky enough to get the role of the tango girl in Scent of a Woman, Gabrielle has been in the United States for several months. As she continues to learn more about Hollywood, she has be more determined to stay. Although the tango dance segment in Scent of a Woman is only a few minutes long, because of Al Pacino''s strict requirements, it was filmed in a New York hotel for more than a week, during which time she stayed in the crew. There, she was shocked to find that everyone from the director to the films entire cast were kind to her. Due to being a neer, she often made mistakes during the week-long filming, some mistakes were even foolishly annoying. However, neither Director Martin Brest nor lead actor Al Pacino ever became angry with her, at most they only frowned to express their dissatisfaction, but then patiently exined her mistakes. At the beginning, Gabrielle simply thought that the two of them were well-natured, but her thoughts changed on the third day of filming. Due to the mistake of an extra, aplicated shot that took a lot of time to set had to be repeated several times. As a result, Al Pacino lost his temper and threw a ss at the floor in rage and angrily berated the extra who took the initiative to leave the crew due to being embarrassed. Moreover, sheter discovered that director Martin Brest was also not a mild-tempered person. As a result, she began to wonder why she received special treatment. An event a few dayster, however, allowed her to solve that mystery. The cause of the incident was the young man named Matt Damon whom she had be acquainted with during the filming. She had a good impression of him, so she didnt mind whenever he tried to talk to her, however, one day, Al Pacino saw them together. She saw Al Pacino call the young man in his room to talk. Afterwards, Matt Damon never took the initiative to speak to her again. After that incident, she finally became sure that the reason behind the special treatment she received was because she was rmended by Eric Williams. In fact, the crew may regard her as Eric''s lover, so they treat her with courtesy. Thanks to that, despite being a neer actress, she never encountered any form of harassment which could be considered a miracle. Even when she was in the UK, although both her father and mother were part of the TV circle and could shield her from many things that neers went through, she still encountered harassment when she was in a TV show. Due to the misunderstanding, she obtained a lot of benefits, so she no longer wished to rify the misunderstanding. Even when chatting with others, she asionally mentioned Eric''s name casually to give them some hints. Most people who know her well, including her agent, Kapoor Sid, the President of UTA, thought of her as Erics lover. However, they didn''t look down on her because of this since Eric Williams is currently single. Maybe when she will be lucky enough to be his official girlfriend, or even his wife. However she knew that there was nothing between the two of them. In fact, she had only ever spoken a few words to him and had only met him once before. However, recently, she had begun to worry about other people realizing the truth behind her rtionship with Eric, orck of it. Once this fact is discovered, how would those people who realized that they had been deceived, especially Kapoor Sid, react? "Hey, what are you thinking?" A voice suddenly sounded in her ear, interrupting Gabrielle''s thoughts. She turned around and saw Eric in front of her. She quickly shook her head and said, "Nothing." "Let''s go in," Eric said casually without much paying attention to her unusual reaction. "Sure," she said and took a bold step forward, stretching her arm around Eric''s. Eric felt the girl''s sudden act of intimacy and looked at her with interest. Gabrielle lowered her head with embarrassment. She didn''t dare look at Eric''s piercing gaze, but continued to maintain a tight grip around Erics arm. Eric chuckled lightly, but didn''t reveal that he knew what was going through her mind. In fact, he was slightly disappointed by theck of soft and squishy feeling on his arm. Even Nicole had two bumps on her chest that could barely be grasped when she was lying on her back, but the girl currently holding his arm was fully t-chested. Just as the two walked into the hall, the sharp-eyed Al Pacino immediately noticed Eric and walked over with a smile. He saw Gabrielle leaning against him and unscrupulously winked at Eric before he said, "Eric, I have decided. Scent of a Woman should be released by Firefly itself. I think what Bob said makes sense." Eric had actually anticipated this result. Bob Shaye had a way with words. What''s more, the more eager Al Pacino was to win an Oscar, the easier it was for Bob Shaye to influence him. "I believe this will be a good choice," Eric nodded and smiled before he asked, "By the way, Al, do you have ns for your next movie?" Al Pacino shook his head, "I n to take a break; Kapoor also suggested that. It is more than enough for me to shoot two movies this year. Kapoor said that I''d better wait until the Oscars before considering my next film. After speaking, Al Pacino paused, looked at Erics expression, and immediately said, However, Eric, if its your movie, I can do it anytime. "No, Al, I dont have any movies suitable for you currently," Eric exined, "Its actually like this. You should have heard that I made a TV show..." Al immediatelyughed, " Of course, I heard that. I also know that you went to direct two episodes by yourself. Eric, you''re really...different. Among all the directors I know, unless they really have to, no one wants to direct an episode of a TV series. By the way, you were saying..." Eric said, "It''s actually like this. I''m making a si and I wanted to invite you for a cameo in an episode." "This..." Al Pacino suddenly hesitated. It wasnt a big deal to do a cameo on a TV series, but he was worried about the reputation of the TV series produced by Eric. If the ratings of that TV series ended up being bad and he did a cameo, it wouldnt be much different from acting in a bad movie. He still has a lingering fear towards the bad movies that caused him to lose his box office appeal, so he dared not agree to Erics offer immediately. Eric also knew that this matter could not be forced, and said, "Al, this TV series will be broadcast while filming. It just so happens that the first episode will air on September 3 on Fox TV. I know what you are apprehensive about its reception. Lets do this: if the shows average viewership is less than 15 million then forget what I just said, but if it is higher than that, I hope you can at least consider it." "Alright, thats fair," Al Pacino heard Erics suggestion and immediately agreed. He has a decent understanding of TV shows. A show with more than 15 million views is, without a doubt, a hit. If he does a cameo on that show, it will also help enhance his own poprity. "You should watch the show when you have time." Al Pacinoughed and said, "The first two episodes were directed by the great Director Williams himself. I will definitely watch it when it airs. By the way, have you thought about what kind of cameo I will y?" "Of course, I intend to let you y yourself." "Myself?" Yes," Eric said, "The plot is roughly like this: one of the six fixed protagonists on the show works as an extra in movies. One day, he received a job to y your nude substitute..." In the original episode, although Joey yed Al Pacino''s nude substitute, and it was quite funny, Al Pacino never showed up. Now, it''s different. Since Eric has a good rtionship with Al Pacino, he doesnt mind making use of it to have him really appear during that scene. "Wow," After hearing Eric''s narration, Al Pacinoughed, "Actually, I don''t mind being naked if you need me to." Eric shrugged, "The plot requires Joey to be nude." Of course, I think this scene will be very interesting. Oh, Miss Anwar must be getting impatient, sorry I took up so much of Eric''s time. You two should go dance, Eric, Miss Anwars tango is very good." "Thank you for yourpliment, Mr. Pacino," Gabrielle didn''t show any impatience. How could she? She was, instead, grateful for his words. "Alright, enjoy the party, I''ll go and talk to others for a while, goodbye." "See youter," Eric nodded and walked to the dance floor with Gabrielle. Chapter 196: “Do you have any hobbies?” (R-18)

Chapter 196: Do you have any hobbies? (R-18)

"What have you been doing since the filming for Scent of a Woman ended?" On the dance floor, Eric swayed gently with his arms around her waist. Although he said he was going to dance tango, since tango music didnt suit the atmosphere, they decided to just sway. Gabrielle had her arms on Erics shoulders as she looked up at him and said, "Kapoor rmended that I y the supporting actress in a romanticedy. I passed the audition and will begin filming my scenes soon. The film is likely to be released on Valentine''s Day next year." "Oh, not bad," Eric replied with a smile. Through her words, he became even more certain that Gabrielle had obtained the role using his name. As a result, hisrge hands that were originally on her waist slid gently along her smooth dress before finally resting on her full, round buttocks. He gently squeezed and said, "So, whats my reward?" "Huh, I...I don''t know what you are talking about," she stiffened a little and replied softly while quickly blinking her eyes. But how could she not know what he was talking about. If it wasn''t for his name, how could she, a British girl who came to Hollywood alone, with no connections or background, and meager acting skills, manage to get two important roles in just six months? In fact, UTA must have taken special care of her because they misunderstood her identity, and got her the role of the supporting actress in the romanticedy. Feeling Eric''s unscrupulous hands on her body, she began to look around worriedly. There were still many people on the dance floor. Although the lights were dim, it did not affect visibility much. With a little attention, anyone could see Eric''s hands. He... how can he do this? Even if he wants to, he shouldn''t do this here? Gabrielle anxiously thought, but she could only bury her head on Eric''s chest as if she were an ostrich. Fortunately, Eric didnt go too far. After briefly fondling her butt, he quickly moved his hands back up to her waist. However, Gabrielle secretly looked around and was able to see the meaningful and ambiguous gazes of the surrounding people. There were quite a few actresses who were aware of Erics identity. Seeing the intimacy between Eric and the nameless girl, they felt unconceble envy towards Gabrielle. If they had the chance, they certainly wouldn''t mind being the woman in Eric''s arms. That damn little bitch! a nameless actress on the dance floor saw Gabrielle slightly panting while in Erics arms and cursed bitterly in her heart. After the party had started, she had tried to talk to Eric, but unfortunately Eric didn''t care to speak more than a few more words to her. Eric did not mind the ambiguous nces since his reputation as a yboy was already cemented. He retracted one of his hands from Gabrielles waist and gently lifted her sharp chin as he said, "Look at me, I like the expression on your face." Gabrielle didnt dare resist, raised her head obediently and stared at Eric with her slender, watery eyes with her pouty little mouth opened slightly as she continued panting gently. Eric nodded in satisfaction upon seeing her appearance. He gently squeezed her tiny chin as he continued to dance sensually with her lithe body. "Actually, this is not bad," Eric said again after a while. "Huh?" Gabrielle looked puzzled in response. Eric said casually, "It''s not easy for a young girl such as you toe to Hollywood alone, so if someone asks if theres something between us, I won''t deny it. It can serve as a kind of protection for you. After all, if it wasn''t for me, you wouldn''t have stayed in Hollywood till now." "Mr. Williams, thank you," Gabrielle replied with a grateful expression as her delicate hands held him tighter. "Call me Eric," Eric said casually before his tone changed and he solemnly said, "But, it''s limited to this. Remember to act responsibly. I best not hear that you are doing things that you shouldn''t do in my name." Gabrielle quickly replied, "No, I definitely won''t." "That''s good," Eric smiled and said, "Also, don''t be so nervous." "Hmm..." Leaning on Eric, Gabrielle gently agreed. "By the way, do you have any hobbies?" Eric asked nonchntly. Gabrielle didn''t know why Eric would ask about her hobbies, so he hesitated for a few seconds before truthfully replying, "Reading, dancing, and maybe...sleeping." "That''s not good. You should nt some flowers so I can visit you often and help out." Gabrielle blinked her eyes for a few seconds before sheughed and said in a slightly teasing tone, "I have a cactus in my house, is that enough?" Eric alsoughed. In fact, he wanted to go to her house, so he wanted to find an excuse. Still, Eric replied seriously, "Raising cactus balls also requires skill. How about we go and see now?" "No problem," Gabrielle nodded as she naughtily winked at him. *** "...I know, I know, you just need to put it in my study...ha!" Eric, who was leaning on therge bed, couldn''t help moaning, and quickly reached out and held the woman''s head down and patted her as a warning before he suddenly felt rxed and replied, "It''s nothing, I identally hit my foot on the coffee table... Okay, I know, I will get back tomorrow. You go to bed early... *smooch*, go to bed early!" After speaking, he hung up Drews call in a hurry. An apartment in West Hollywood. Gabrielle could only afford to rent this ce. However, despite being small, the one-bedroom apartment was decorated very exquisitely with a hint of feminine touch behind every decoration. At this moment, Gabrielle was lying in a heap of messy clothes between Eric''s legs with her tiny mouth around his member as her flexible tongue brought him wave after wave of pleasure. After hanging up the mobile phone and enjoying the beautys skilled fetio for a few minutes, Eric patted the bed beside him, "Come on, lie down here." Gabrielle raised her head, unconsciously stretched out her tongue, licked the corner of her mouth, and obediently crawled towards Eric, at the same time reaching behind to take off her now-wrinkled dress. "No need to take it off," Eric patted the girl''s butt to stop her, pulled her to himself, lifted the hem of her little dress and pulled down her tiny panties that covered her genitals as admired it briefly. Hisrge hand subconsciously stretched out to her breast, but after fondling it for a few seconds, he retracted it, filled with disappointment. Gabrielle seemed to feel Eric''s disappointment as she pulled Eric''s retreating hand, opened her tiny mouth, put his fingers inside and began licking them gently. "Oooh," the sudden stimtion made Eric moan as he used his free hand to turn her on her stomach and mounted her from behind. He began thrusting quickly while his fingers remained in her mouth, allowing her to y with them, and from time to time he fiddled with her slippery little tongue. Chapter 197: Loss of Power

Chapter 197: Loss of Power

The sound of running water rang for a while before Eric, who was taking a shower, walked out of the bathroom. The sunlighting in through the gaps in the curtains already signaled a sunny morning. On an early September morning in Los Angeles, the temperature was just about 72 degrees which was the so-called golden temperature that the human body loved. Eric found his clothes and put them before looking at the young beauty who was still lying in bed, asleep. Her nude body was unreservedly disyed in front of Eric''s eyes because of the nkets being scattered to the side. Due to her Asian ancestry, Gabrielle had a small, yet exquisite physique with skin that was smoother and more delicate than Caucasian women. The soft curve in her back moved all the way down, forming a slender arc on her waist, and then quickly bulging at the hip, forming two tiny mountains, full of feminine temptations. The round thighs underneath were together, but it was difficult to hide the secret garden in between. Even after Eric put on his tie and jacket, Gabrielle showed no sign of waking up. Eric looked at the young woman sleeping like a baby with her right thumb in her mouth. Seeing her mouth, he couldn''t help rememberingst nights events and feel a little excited as he sat beside her on the bed, reached out and pulled her fingers out of her mouth, and gently pushed his index finger inside. Suddenly, Eric felt the two wet lips unconsciously sucking on his finger. As he slowly pushed his finger further inside, the two rows of tiny teeth gently bit on it. Then, as if suddenly feeling a difference between the new finger and the previous finger, her soft tongue began to push up with dissatisfaction as if it wanted to drive out the strange intruder. Unfortunately, the strength behind her tiny, soft tongue was notparable to Erics finger, and after a bit of a tug of war, Gabrielle suddenly opened her eyes. "Woah!" After quickly sitting up and pulling the nket to cover her nude body, she saw Eric and breathed a sigh of relief. "Morning good morning, Eric," possibly embarrassed by her gaffe, Gabrielle smiled and greeted him quickly. "Morning," Eric smiled and shook his wet index finger in front of her as he said, "Unexpectedly, you still suck on fingers while you sleep." "Ah, I... did I?" Gabrielle lowered her head with shame. The moment she had opened her eyes, she saw the movements of Eric''s fingers, so she recalled some scenes fromst night. Eric smiled and nodded, "Of course, this is the first time I have seen a girl who likes to suck on her fingers while sleeping." "I didn''t even know I did that," Gabrielle still had her eyelids drooping as she nced around, seemingly looking for something. Eric understood what she was looking for as he passed her bra and panties from the floor to her, "Its not a big deal. In fact, many people dont even know that they snore while sleeping, and even after waking up still refuses to acknowledge it..." Just as she was about to put on her tiny panties, Gabrielle raised his head in horror and asked, "I... I didn''t snore, did I?" "Of course not," Eric shook his head quickly, "I''m just giving an example." "Oh," she sighed in relief. After she put on her bra and panties and walked barefoot to her closet, Eric said, "Baby, I have to go." Standing by the closet, thinking about what to wear today, Gabrielle stiffened for a second before she turned her head and asked, "Wont you have breakfast?" Eric looked at his watch and replied, "It''s almost half past eight, and there may be traffic jams on the road. I don''t know if I can get to thepany by nine o''clock. Since I have to fly to Venice at two o''clock in the afternoon, there are some things that I need to deal with this morning. At ten o''clock, I have a meeting with Bob and Jeffrey to discuss the merger of Firefly and New Line. My new movies shooting schedule has also been determined and I need to see it myself... In short, I have to deal with a lot of things in the next five hours." However, seeing the disappointment on her face, his tone softened, and possibly due to feeling guilty, he said, "Hmm is there a breakfast restaurant nearby? Maybe, I can afford to spend ten minutes on breakfast together." "Of course, can I wash up first?" Gabrielle raised her face in surprise and asked. Now that he has decided to have breakfast with her Eric doesnt mind spending some time, so he replied, "Take a shower, but do it quickly, if possible." "Wait just a minute!" Gabrielle said and excitedly picked out a few clothes before rushing into the bathroom. In less than fifteen minutes, she was ready in a light blue shoulder bag hip skirt, ck stockings tightened around her slender legs and her hair tied into a small bun. After putting on her only pair of high heels from the side shoe rack, she stood up and said to Eric, "Alright, let''s go. The restaurant is just a few minutes from here." *** "Eric, it''s almost half past nine! What''s going on with you today? Your phone was also turned off, don''t you know how tight the time is today?" When Eric appeared at thepany, Jeffrey anxiously questioned him. Facing the anxious and worried old man, Eric felt slightly embarrassed as he exined, "Sorry, Jeffrey, there was a traffic jam on the road." "Impossible. There was no traffic jam from your house to here." "Actually, I came from West Hollywood," Eric immediately raised his hands and said honestly. "Uh..." Jeffrey was stunned and soon understood what Eric was implying. At the same time, he realized that he had overstepped his bounds; after all, Eric is his boss, not the other way around. Although he knows that Eric wont mind his stern tone, he is not Eric''s family. If he asionally reprimands Eric, Eric wont say anything out of respect for him, but over time, anyone would feel dissatisfied. "Anyways, there are a few documents that you need to sign. I have asked n to sort them and put them on your desk. You have half an hour to process them. Bob has already brought someone over. I''m going to the conference room to prepare." "I''ll take care of it," Eric nodded to Jeffrey and walked quickly to his office. Jeffrey also went to prepare his own business. Although the M&A agreement has been signed, for the twopanies to be truly merged, they need to deal with arge number of issues such as business integration, management organization,pany structure adjustment and personnel integration and abolition. Therefore, it will take at least a month for the twopanies to be truly integrated. During that time, the business of neitherpanies can be stopped, so there will be a period of parallel operation. While he was quickly reviewing a few documents, n came and knocked on his door, so Eric put down the folder and walked to the conference room. *** In the conference room, besides Robert Shaye, there were six or seven executives from New Line. Among the people from Firefly, everyone except Eric and Jeffrey could be ignored. As a result, theparison made Firefly seem very weak. Although the profitability of New Line was far inferior to Firefly, its various businesses were very sound withplete production, copyright, publicity, and distribution departments. On the other hand, other than its terrifying profitability, Firefly was more like a tiny workshop. Jeffrey was responsible for the management and also served as the producer for Eric''s films. Although sometimes he ended up very busy, most of the time he was more than capable of taking care of thepany. In fact, not much was agreed upon during the two-hour meeting except a quick agreement that they needed to find another office space to move the twopanies together as soon as possible. The main dispute was regarding who would have power over production. Of course, Eric hoped that Robert Shaye wouldpletely let go of production and concentrate on film distribution. So long as the film distribution could grow stronger, coupled with his film vision, Firefly could leapfrog to the position of a movie giant in just a few years. Not surprisingly, his proposal was directly rejected by Robert Shaye. A member of the board of directors of a filmpany having no say over production? Could there be a funnier joke? Eric immediately proposed that Robert Shaye could be responsible for the production of some low-cost horror movies. After all, this could barely be considered his strong suit. But surprisingly, Robert Shaye still refused. Not only did he want production power over the low-cost movies, he also hoped to be able to personally operate several of thepanys major productions in the future. Back when he was in-charge of New Line, Robert Shaye did not dare dabble in big investment since a single flop could lead to the studio going bankrupt. But with Firefly''s funds backing him, his ambitions were inted. He knew that with the proceeds from Erics next few films, Firefly would be flush with cash for investment. After all, there were few dark horse movies that had a low budget but earned big at the box office, otherwise Eric''s sess would not be so amazing. Generally, to obtain a stable and high return, big investment and big production were a necessity. Of course, Eric couldn''t agree to Robert Shaye''s demand easily. Even if Firefly had money, it wasn''t filthy rich. Not to mention, he didn''t have much confidence in Robert Shaye''s film vision. Although during his previous life, New Line had had great sess in The Lord of the Rings series, there was also the fiasco of The Golden Compass. Altogether, Robert Shayes career had been dependent on his luck. However, in the face of his insistence, Eric had to make concessions. After all, what he most urgently needed was New Lines distribution channel. Therefore, quickly integrating with New Line was the priority with a slight loss in power being an inevitable oue. In the end, Eric reluctantly agreed to give the New Linebel two major productions with a total cost of just under $50 million in the next year andplete authority to Robert Shaye regarding those two films. After the two-hour meeting, Robert Shaye and his party left with satisfaction. Eric was eating a simple lunch while continuing to look through the documents. He was about to set off directly to the airportter, but he had to finish reading and sign thest few documents as soon as possible. Chapter 198: Countermeasures

Chapter 198: Countermeasures

Jeffrey was sitting on a couch in Eric''s office, eating lunch while discussing some issues with him. "Eric, except for Running Out of Time, the cost of none of our other films exceeds $25 million. Is it too much to promise Bob Shaye a $50 million budget for the two films?" Hearing this question, Erics face contorted. After taking a bite of his lunch, he pushed it aside, took out a tissue, wiped his mouth and said, "I dont want to do this either, but if I want him to do his best with distribution, I have to give him some benefits first. At the end of the day, its only $50 million, and although I said Ill give him full responsibility, if his film doesnt have any selling points, I definitely wont be signing off on the project n. Jeffrey didnt have the slightest doubt regarding Erics vision of films and felt relieved when he heard his words, but he still said, "Still, giving Bob too much power would certainly not be a good thing." "There is nothing to worry about," Eric signed a document, quickly pulled another one, and said while perusing it, "Once we have gained control of New Line, we willpletely integrate it with Firefly. The rest will be much simpler." Jeffrey''s heart secretly skipped a beat as he realized that Eric was already thinking about driving Robert Shaye away. In fact, Eric does have the ability to do this. After all, Robert Shaye only owns a 15% stake in thepany while Eric holds a controlling stake. If he wants to remove Robert Shaye, he doesnt even need to go through the board; just issuing a single document would be enough. "Do you think that I''m throwing him away after making use of him?" Eric looked up at Jeffrey and asked with a smile. Jeffrey smiled awkwardly, but he still answered truthfully, "It does feel like that." "You know, Jeffrey, I''m not such a person. I would normally never do such a thing as throwing someone away after theyve outlived their usefulness. If Bob can perform his duty effectively without reaching beyond his post, I would have no problem keeping him around. Unfortunately, his ambition is toorge; you must have noticed. He brought so many people here today as if to tell us that he is very important to Firefly." "I''m suddenly feeling worried," Jeffrey heard Erics words and said, "All those people today are Bobs direct subordinates. If you drive him away in the future, wont they leave with him?" Eric shook his head and said in a rxed tone, "Do you think that those people under him will give up millions of dors in sry and dividends yearly and follow him to start a new business together? Or, are there so many other big filmpanies that have so many empty positions which they can jointly fill? Both of those scenarios are unlikely. If Bob leaves, I can easily find a new CEO to take over the distributionwork." "But..." Eric interrupted Jeffrey and said, "Jeffrey, you don''t have to worry so much. I said I might drive Bob away, but its not set in stone. Maybe after a year or two, he may realize that his strengths lie in distribution and no longer intervene in production. In that case, I won''t have to drive him away. After all, his talent in film distribution is beyond doubt." "I see," Jeffrey nodded helplessly and lowered his head to continue eating. After a few minutes, there were several quick knocks on the office door which was pushed open without permission. Drew, wearing a tie-dyed T-shirt and hotpants, rushed in and threw herself on Eric,ughing. She even asked Eric about what happenedst night. Standing at the door, n patiently waited and watched the littless bickering with Eric. Finally, Eric looked at him and he promptly said, "Eric, the luggage and the car are both ready. Considering traffic, I think it would be best for us to leave now." "Lets go," Eric gently pushed away the littless who was sitting on his knees and said, "Be obedient over the next few days. You can call Jeffrey if you need something; don''t mess around." "Hey, I''m not a kid!" Drew scratched Eric to disy her dissatisfaction, and said cutely, "Eric, I want to go to Venice too. " "Forget it, you wont be able to stand the journey," Eric rubbed her smooth hair. Recently, the littless had learnt to speak cutely such that Eric couldn''t easily deny any of her requests, "The flight from Los Angeles to Venice takes 17 hours for a one-way trip, not to mention, there is also a transfer in the middle." Drew really couldn''t stand being idle for 17 hours on the ne. Hearing Erics words, she didn''t mention it anymore. She held Eric''s arm while they walked out and said, "Eric, let''s buy a private jet. No matter how long the trip, It won''t be boring." It''s not time yet," Eric shook his head, "Wait another year or two." "Ok," Drew nodded. Soon, the group came downstairs. Drew got into the car first as she said, "I''ll take you to the airport." "Eric, Ill stay here. There are still a lot of things to be taken care of," Jeffrey said as he patted Eric on the shoulder,"Good luck." "Goodbye, Jeffrey," Eric waved to Jeffrey and got in the back with Drew while n sat in the front with the driver. After ensuring that Eric and Drew were settled, he asked the driver to drive. n would be going to Venice with Eric as an interpreter since the locals in Venice mainly speak Italian. Coincidentally, ns mother was Italian, so he grew up speaking English and Italian. Since he was able to speak fluent Italian, it saved the trouble of finding a trantor. *** Fortunately, it only took a little over an hour to reach the Los Angeles International Airport from Burbank. There was still half an hour before the boarding time when they arrived, so Eric and n could check in without hurry. "n, what are you checking for?" While waiting to board the ne, Eric asked curiously, seeing n carefully checking his backpack. A book; I brought a collection of Stephen King''s novels to read on the ne. Eric, did you bring anything?" Eric spread his hands and shrugged. During his previous life, he often took long-distance trains, but the environment on the trains was not suitable for reading, and he had never taken a long flight, so he didn''t think about it. Moreover, Drew had packed his luggage yesterday. With her restless temperament, it was impossible for her to remember to pack a book with the luggage. "There are still a few minutes, maybe I can buy one here. There is a book store outside the lobby," n offered. "I''ll go, Eric, you wait here, if I don''te back in time, you can just board the ne." Eric was just about to tell her not to trouble herself, but Drew had already ran off. Just as Drew ran out of the lounge, Eric and n heard the boarding announcement and they looked at each other. "Let''s go and line up first, maybe she will get back in time," Eric said and the two took their luggage and walked towards the boarding gate. Ten minutester, just Eric and n were left at the boarding gate. The other passengers had already entered. The boarding staff nearby also began to remind the two of them to enter. Eric took onest look behind him and saw a small figure rushing towards the two of them. Drew quickly handed a thick hard-covered book to Eric, bent over forwards and began panting. She waved for the two to go in. Eric knew that he didn''t need to be polite with the littless, so he put the book inside his handbag and said goodbye to her before pulling his luggage into the boarding gate. The huge Boeing airliner taxied on the ground before it roared off the ground and took flight. A few minutester, it slowly stabilized in the air. *** In the first-ss cabin, Eric unfastened his seat belt and n, sitting next to him, took out their schedule and exined their itinerary to Eric. "After taking the connecting flight in London, we will arrive in Venice on September 2nd at 3pm local time. Mr. Demme and Miss Madsen said they would pick us up at Marco Polo Airport. Afterwards, you have a meeting with Director John Landis in the evening. There are no events the next day so we can take the day off and get over the jetg. The red carpet at the opening ceremony of the festival will take ce on the 4th. In addition, the organizingmittee has invited you to the afterparty. Finally, we have a return ticket in the afternoon of the 5th and well be back in Los Angeles at 5 am ET on the 6th. Eric, is there anything else that needs to be added?" Eric listened patiently and shook his head, "No, this is fine." If possible, he didnt want to go to the Venice Film Festival since he was already on a tight schedule. However, after the Venice Film Festivals Organizing Committee learned that he might appear, it proactively sent him an official invitation, hoping that he could participate in the opening ceremony. The Others originally had no ns to try for an award, so it was fine for Eric to decline the invitation, but with the promotion strategy proposed by Michael Eisner, The Others was quite hopeful to win an award. As a result, Eric was now unable to refuse. Because the invitation was signed by Andrei Smirnov, the chairman of the jury, and included a sincere invitation, if Eric declined the invitation, Demirnov would definitely have ill feelings towards The Others. Compared to the Oscars thousands of judges, the Venice Film Festival had only nine judges who sat down and discussed whom the awards would go to. Therefore, in order to avoid The Others from leaving empty-handed due to him, Eric had no other choice than to ept Demirnovs invitation. After sighing helplessly, Eric stopped thinking about it and took out the book that Drew had bought for him. After a single nce, he couldn''t help butugh. Walden. What book did this girl buy? Who reads prose on the ne? he thought, Forget it, Ill just use it to sleep. Thinking so, Eric pulled apart the stic film that was wrapped around the book. Chapter 199: Awards Selection

Chapter 199: Awards Selection

After changing flights in London and flying for another two hours, Eric and n finally arrived at Marco Polo Airport in Venice. Including Jonathan Demme and Virginia, a middle-aged man named Bill Gallo and his two assistants also came to receive him. After he introduced himself, Eric learnt that Bill Gallo was the head of Disney''s European branch. Since Disney obtained the distribution rights of The Others, he was sent to assist Jonathan Demme in the marketing and publicity of the film. After they exchanged greetings, Eric and his entourage boarded a yacht. Instead of going to the main Venice ind, they arrived at Lido ind and checked into a boutique hotel. The boutique hotels actually have a very interesting history. It is said that the Venice Film Festival was born to solve the problem of ack of patrons at the boutique hotels during fall. As a result, staying at a boutique hotel has be a status symbol during the Venice Film Festival. Only the film crew that enters the mainpetition unit and any specially invited crew can stay at such hotels. As one of the biggest guests of this film festival, Eric certainly has the right to stay at a boutique hotel. In fact, his room is a luxurious suite with a view of the sea. "Bed, bed!" After Jonathan, Bill and the others left, Eric sighed and jumped in the big bed in the bedroom, rolling around vigorously. Virginia, who was unpacking Erics luggage, chuckled, "Is it that tiring to fly?" "It''s not just slightly tiring, it''spletely exhausting. We also encountered turbulence above the Antic Ocean." Eric kicked off his leather shoes,fortablyid down in the big bed, and turned to look at the beautiful young woman who was putting his clothes inside the closet. Virginia was wearing a thin sleeveless white shirt with hercy dark bra barely visible and tight white trousers on her legs. When viewed from the side, her outfit vividly disyed her perfect curves. Eric jumped out of the bed and walked towards Virginia before holding her from behind. His hands wrapped around her slender waist as he stroked the soft skin exposed between her shirt and trousers. At the same time, he looked at her delicate earlobes adorned with ruby ??earrings and kissed her fair cheek. Virginia felt Eric''s sudden intimacy as her body trembled and the coat in her hands fell to the floor. Her delicate hand held Eric''s arm moving around her waist and she said, slightly panting, "Eric, don''t be like this. They they are waiting for us in the restaurant downstairs." Eric turned her face to him as he kissed her red lips and sucked on them before he whispered, "Come to my room tonight." "Thats no..." Virginia felt Eric fondle her hips as she gasped and refused, "It won''t be good if someone sees me. Just wait until we return to Los Angeles, and then... and then... okay?" "Okay," Eric had just momentarily gotten horny, but he soon realized that the hotel was full of film crews from around the world, as well as the judges of the film festival. If someone saw him and Virginia alone, it would have an unpredictable effect. Still, he was disappointed as he raised his hand and fondled her busty chest, "You look really sexy in this dress." Virginia raised her head and gave Eric a kiss on the cheek as she smiled and said, "Ill wear it often for you in the future." "Actually," Eric leaned down into the girl''s ear and whispered, "You look better without clothes." Virginia thought Eric was going to say something important, however, hearing his words, she rolled her eyes and lightly pped his shoulder, "Pervert." Ericughed and pped her peachy butt before he picked up his coat which she had dropped on the floor and said, "I''ll help you. Lets pack up together and get downstairs quickly." *** "Eric, this is John Landiss information. Before the meeting in the evening, you should check it." In the hotel restaurant, Eric and the others were sitting at a table when Bill Gallo from Disney handed him a document. Eric had already read John Landis'' resume before, but he knew that the information given by Disney must be more detailed. He opened it and casually asked, "Whats the general situation surrounding The Others? Jonathan Demme and Bill Gallo looked at each other before thetter replied, "We have made sufficient preparations and have contacted several judges. Although we have not received any promises, they all have a good impression of The Others. Also, Ive contacted some local media. After the film festival starts, they will heavily do public rtions." "Good," Eric nodded with satisfaction. In fact, for a film festival like Venice, public rtions is enough. After thinking some more, Eric immediately asked, "What are our chances of winning?" Bill Gallo said, "The Golden Lion Award is definitely hopeless. A City of Sadness is almost certain to win it. However, we have a chance topete for the Silver Lion Award and the Best Screeny Award. After Bill finished, Jonathan Demme and a few others looked at Eric in unison. He will definitely talk about this issue with John Landis, one of the judges this year. John Landis had been in contact with Disney before, and he had actually agreed to help lobby for The Others. After all, he is an American and he is not an old stubborn filmmaker who insists on voting strictly for the best film. John Landis has always been amercial film director. As for his meeting with thetter, Eric wasnt sure who brought the idea. Maybe John Landis was interested in him, or maybe it was Jonathan Demme or Bill Gallo who suggested it. However, since it was good for The Others, Eric didn''t mind and readily agreed. Erics decision meant that John Landis would definitely fight to lobby for The Others. However, even with its theme and anti-war gimmick, the jury would only give it one prize at most, so among the two nominations they could only win one. In fact, Eric hopes to win the award for Best Screeny for himself, but for the sake of the film''s box office interests, he must focus on the more influential Silver Lion Award. "Don''t worry, I know what to do," Eric said as he looked at some people who were waiting. Chapter 200: Chills

Chapter 200: Chills

Everyone present seemed to breathe a sigh of relief as they had been a little worried that Eric would stubbornly choose the best screenwriter award. After all, the current Eric has achieved a sess in box office that most people wouldnt be able to match in a lifetime, so it was likely for him to have a stronger desire for personal film awards. If The Others won the Silver Lion Award, it would belong to the entire team, but if it won the best screeny award, it would belong to Eric, alone. "Eric, it''s actually not a big deal. I think the Oscars is your real stage." As if to appease Eric, Bill Gallo joked and Jonathan Demme nodded quickly. Eric shrugged casually, "Thank you, Bill, if only the old men of the Academy thought so as well." The groupughed and talked some more before they separated. Eric returned to his room alone with the information about John Landis. This time, to avoid suspicion, Virginia did not live with him, while his assistant n lived in another suite downstairs. There were still a few hours before night in Venice, while the east coast of the US was still in the morning, so even though he spent more than ten hours on the ne, his internal clock resulted in him not feeling too tired. After reading the information of John Landis, Eric stayed in his room until 7 o''clock in the evening before changing clothes and going out to meet him. The agreed upon ce was in a restaurant near the boutique hotel. Eric did not need a guide nor did he bring a date. Virginia is the female lead of The Others. As a result, if she was seen having dinner with one of the judges, it would definitely result in controversy. Inparison, Eric could remain anonymous. Even if he was seen having dinner with John Landis, it wouldnt be a big deal. John Landis was about 40 years old, wearing a pair of ck-rimmed sses on hisrge nose. He had a beard and a standard Jewish appearance. It''s another Jew! Eric sighed as he thought. ording to the information he read, John Landis and Steven Spielberg are good friends, and both have had cameos in each other''s films. In fact, John Landis was a famous director at the same time as Spielberg. In 1975, Spielberg became a top Hollywood director with Jaws, and three yearster, John Landis directed Animal House which earned a box office of more than $100 million. Coincidentally, both of them became famous directors when they were just 28 years old. However, ording to the information he read, John Landis'' directorial career has been slipping since thete 80s. Therefore, Eric had no impression of him during his previous life. In the restaurant, John Landis ordered food and watched Eric with interest as he spoke to the blonde waitress who was able to speak English. After she left with the menu, John Landis said, "Eric, you seem well-versed with Italian cuisine." Eric smiled and exined, "My father used to be an Italian chef." "Oh," John Landis nodded, but didnt mention the topic anymore. Obviously, he knew that Eric''s father had passed away. While waiting for the dishes to be served, Eric and John Landis continued chatting. Of course, the topic was still movies. "The thing I find most interesting about you is not that each of your movies is from a different genre, but the fact that all of them have achieved box office sess. This is very difficult to understand. You know, I have also tried directing movies from different genres, but at their core, theyre all satiricaledies. Even Steven has been trying to break through for so many years, but his most movies are all science fiction movies such as Jaws, E.T. and so on." Eric replied, "This doesn''t mean anything, John, maybe Im just lucky. I''ve only directed a few movies until now, once I shoot more movies, I will definitely fail, and then realize what I am best at." John Landis listened to Eric''s words, thought for a while, before he shook his head and said, "It''s not the same. You are very different, Eric. Can you tell me where you learned to make movies? I am very curious. After all, at your age, its not easy to make even a simple movie like Home Alone. It took me years to umte experience from the time I first became involved in film production to the time when I directed my first movie. " Of course, Eric cant say that he had umted experience during his previous life, so he said, "Actually, I was just lucky. I wrote the script of Home Alone, and then luckily found a very good team. I only need to tell them what I want and they helped me make it. If I didnt meet them, maybe Home Alone would never havee into existence." John Landis has no doubts about the truth behind Eric''s words. Eric''s sess could only be attributed to his good luck. "I''ve watched Home Alone several times, that... Stuart Runkle, the little guy is really good. If you have a chance... actually, never mind." Eric knew from the information he read why John Landis said this. Seven years ago, while he was directing Twilight Zone: The Movie, a horrendous ident that took ce which resulted in the death of three actors, two among them barely seven-years-old. If there had been no minors, it wouldnt have been that big of a deal. After all, Hollywood has many such idents every year. However, because of the two children, John Landis was dragged into thewsuit for six years, and he was only acquitted from itst year. Although he didnt face jail time, his career essentially ended. "John, actually you should move on. That ident is in the past, right? And, it really was just an unfortunate ident." John Landis took a sip of red wine before he solemnly said, "But, they insisted that I hadmitted manughter. I mean, I was just a producer. I was not even present when the ident happened. I apologized to the public, and I paid enoughpensation, but some people continued holding on to this matter. I barely got out of it after a full six years. For a while, I had fallen to the point that I wanted to escape abroad like Roman Pnski. I didn''t want to go to jail." Eric recalled the incident mentioned in the information, and gradually smelled something different from John Landis'' tone. Whether Roman Pnski was caught or not, he had indeedmitted the crime. After all, he was caught with the minor girl he assaulted. However, the John Landis incident was full of controversy. Perhaps someone wanted to ruin him. If he fell, hispetitors could free up arge portion of the box office. After all, although John Landis was not as famous as Spielberg in the early 80s, he had made two films that had earned more than $100 million at the box office, while his remaining films had also achieved decent sess. Thinking of this, Eric couldn''t help but feel a chill in his heart. John Landis is Jewish. There is the entire Jewish circle in Hollywood who will support him. If such a person can be framed and dragged into awsuit for six years, he, who is alone in Hollywood, would be easy pickings. If someone decides to deal with him, he might end up in a much worse situation. Quickly shaking his head, Eric knew it was not the time for unfounded worries, and said to John Landis, "Stop thinking about these things, John, everything is over, alright? The sess of your film Coming to America fromst year ??is the biggest indicator." John Landis heard Eric mentioning his hit film and smiled as he said, "Indeed, shortly after the release of Coming to America, all the controversies ended. However, if it hadnt been such a sess, who knows what position I would be in right now. After speaking about his insecurities, John Landis felt a sense of intimacy with Eric and said, "Eric, I have watched The Others several times. Whether it is the suspense setting or the final plot twist, both of them are amazing. In May, Cannes has just selected its youngest best director winner, I believe that the Venice Film Festival will certainly not wish to look too conservative, either. Hearing John Landiss words, Eric realized that he might be inclined to help him lobby for the best screenwriter award, so he shook his head and said, "John, I''m only 19 years old now. I haven''t considered too much about honor. If I win awards too early, I might lose motivation to move forward in the future. What do you think?" John Landis was stunned, then suddenlyughed, and nodded, "I understand." Eric also smiled, raised his goblet of red wine and clinked it with John Landis goblet of red wine who said softly, "Don''t worry, I will try my best." Eric did not reply as he slowly drank the remaining red wine. Putting down his goblet, Eric was about to talk about other topics with John Landis when he suddenly heard a familiar female voice not far behind him, along with a few vague words, "Haha, that fat guy was really funny... Im like hehe, and that Im a director but you so funny. Raising his eyebrows, Eric couldnt help but nce at the source of the sound. The back of the brown curly hair appeared in the field of his vision as he smiled. Surprisingly, Julia hade to Venice. The girl who was sitting across her must be Rupert Murdochs second daughter, Elisabeth Murdoch. "Is she an acquaintance?" John Landis followed Eric''s gaze, but he was not familiar with Julia. If he saw her face, he might know her, but he didn''t recognize her just by looking at the back. Eric nodded, "Two acquaintances, but they may not want me to say hello, just ignore them." John Landis looked at the two girls from a distance, and smiled ambiguously as he said, "You should take the initiative when chasing women. If you just sit here, you wont have any women to take home." Chapter 201: Prank

Chapter 201: Prank

After dinner, John Landis had originally wanted to chat with Eric over coffee. However, seeing the two women sitting nearby, he took the initiative to say goodbye very "understandingly" and winked at Eric as she left. John Landiss actions left Eric dumbfounded. He realized that the former had misunderstood, but there was no easy way for him to exin his rtionship with the women so he just let it be. After John Landis left, Eric called the waiter and paid the bill. After paying the bill, he turned to look at Julia and Elisabeth who were sitting not far away. Since they were sitting near the entrance, he would have to walk by them while leaving. There was no way they wouldnt recognize him. Recalling Julias gibberish that night when she was drunk, Eric felt a little helpless. He found it impossible to understand Julias condition. Did she have real affection for him or had she simply surrendered to him, psychologically, due to Stockholm syndrome. Still, one thing was certain: she obviously wanted to get rid of the emotions she felt towards him. Eric does notck women. Although he would do everything possible to keep the women he likes with him, Julia was not exactly his type, so he doesn''t wish to get entangled with her. After the waiter brought his change and receipt, Eric paid him a tip before standing up and walking directly to Julia''s table. Since he couldn''t avoid them, he decided to at least say hello. As Eric walked towards them, Elisabeth was the first to spot him. She was momentarily stunned, but quickly held up her coffee mug to cover the surprised expression on her face. As a result, Julia, who didn''t notice the strange expression on Elisabeth''s face, continued to whisper quietly, but excitedly. Although Julia was three years older than him, she had always been a little cautious around him, and rarely spoke so much. So, Eric was curious what she was talking about. With a silencing gesture to Elisabeth, Eric slowly creeped behind Julia. "...The producer told me, Julia, we will shoot in the studio the whole time. If theres an outdoor scene, you can use a stand-in. You can finish the filmingfortably, and if youre not satisfied with the script, you can make changes right then and there. I was so excited when I heard that. They came to Louisiana where I was shooting Steel Magnolias in person to show their sincerity, and even offered me a paycheck of $5 million. I had never been treated so well by a producer, so I asked them to send me the script, but I couldnt stand my characters name. Can you imagine, Liz, they actually named my character Vivian?! My god! It was so obvious that they were trying to follow the trend of Pretty Woman. I suggested that the producer change the name first, but he said that the plot can be changed ording to my demands, but the characters name couldnt be changed. In fact, he also told me a lot of such benefits. I remember some things he once told me about following the trend..." Listening to Julias non-stop talking, Eric, who was standing behind her, smiled, slightly. Elisabeth, who was sitting across from Julia, heard a few of her words as her eyes narrowed and she asked, Julia, who is the ''he'' you are talking about? Julia seemed to have gotten thirsty after speaking so much so she took a sip of her juice. After a few sips, she replied, "Oh, you know, although that guy is a total bastard, but many things he said are quite reasonable." "Oh..." Elisabeth raised her chin and secretly nced at Eric who was standing behind Julia with his hands in his trouser pockets, "So, you arepletely over that guy?" "Of course," Julia waved her delicate hand without hesitation, and slightly raised her voice as she said, "I pulled that bastard''s image out of my head and crumpled it up before I stuffed it down the toilet and flushed it away." Pssshh- Elisabeth couldn''t help it anymore as burst out inughter with her shoulders moving up and down as she beganughing hysterically. The people sitting nearby couldn''t help but look over when they heard the hystericalughter. Of course, some people noticed Eric standing behind Julia. If Julia had still been unable to realize what was going on, she would certainly need mental help. Eric easily noticed that her waist was involuntarily straightened up a bit and she seemingly wanted to turn her head, but her neck was stuck as if it had gotten rusty. "It makes me sad to hear you say that," Eric jokingly said as he stepped forward and sat down in the chair between the two women. When Julia heard Erics voice, her face began to change colors quickly. When he sat down beside her, she fell into shock as her eyes remained stuck on his face for a few seconds. Suddenly, she shrank her neck and bent her waist as if he was about to curl up inside her chair to hide herself, and he exined quietly, "E... Eric, I... I didnt... that... mean, I..." Eric realized that Julia was really embarrassed, so he smiled and was about to make a joke when she suddenly stood up and said, "I... Gone." After speaking, she ran out of the restaurant in panic. Eric watched Julia''s back disappear and began wondering if he really was so scary? He patted Elisabeth who still had her face on the table and said, "Hey, Liz, don''tugh so much or you will start having stomach cramps." Finally, Elisabeth raised her head, her face flushed, her shallow dimples still present on her cheeks, and nced around before asking, "Hey, where''s Julia?" Eric replied, "You yed a prank on her, so shes angry." Elisabeth red at Eric and asked, unwilling, "What? You can me me. You hinted to me to keep quiet." "Julia probably thinks you pushed her into a trap." Elisabeth turned her head and looked at the door, but she couldn''t find Julia, so she had no choice but to say, Alright, Ill apologize to herter. But, I still me you. I only said a few words to make her not notice you, but she ran away because you suddenly showed yourself and scared her." There is no talking logic with this woman, Eric thought helplessly, and had to change the subject, "Aren''t you still in college? It''s September now, shouldnt it be starting?" "I havepleted all my mandatory courses. The final year mainly revolves around the graduation thesis and actual practice," Elisabeth briefly exined, and then said, "I said before, my graduation thesis is based upon analyzing your films. How about it, Mr. Director, can you provide me with some confidential information?" Eric ignored her words, but asked, "You should have gotten a lot of information from Julia over the past few days, right?" Elisabeth stared at him and asked, "I''m really curious. What happened between you two? Julia hates you so much. If her words are true, I want to kill you, but I feel like theyre not true at all." "Maybe she is telling the truth," Eric replied with a smile. "Thats impossible," Elisabeth shook her head decisively. Eric was puzzled and asked, "Hey, Liz, do you want to study me or my movies?" "Both," Elisabeth didnt hide her intentions and replied, "Everything about you is interesting." "I should warn you not to be too interested..." Before Eric couldplete his words, Elisabeth, who was like a cat whose tail was stepped on, interrupted him, "Shut up, you rascal!" "Okay, okay," Eric said helplessly, "I''ve said hello so I''ll be leaving now. Remember to take Julia back to Los Angeles soon. Kapoor has been so worried about her that his hair might turn gray." Elisabeth rolled her eyes at Eric, "Nonsense, don''t think I don''t know, Julia''s agent is bald" "Im just making an analogy," Eric stood up and answered, "Anyways, just remember it." Elisabeth saw that Eric was about to leave, so she quickly grabbed his shirt and hurriedly said, "Hey, hey, what are you going in such a hurry? Since you ran into me here, just sit down and tell me about your movies." Eric looked at the girl clinging to his clothes tightly, so he sat down again and said, "Liz, let me give you some advice. Actually, what you have to do is reverse analysis of the known results. This method is very simple. Exaggerate a lot, just like what the newspapers and media do, mention a lot of advantages of the movie, so that you can get a lot of praise for your thesis." Hearing Eric''s casual words, Elisabeth rolled her eyes in dissatisfaction and said, "Hey, am I such a superficial person?" Eric raised his eyebrows and gave her a look as if to say isn''t that obvious? "I... Im warning you, if you don''t help, I will abduct Julia and take her to an Australian ranch. You wont be able to find her even if you want to make a movie with her." Eric couldn''t bear to hear her childish words and replied with a smile, "Do whatever you want, as long as Julia is fine with it." Eric didn''t want to be pestered by Elisabeth any longer, so he stood up and walked outside the restaurant. She waved her hand and called the waiter to pay the bill and ran after him. Chapter 202: Mutation?

Chapter 202: Mutation?

After she ran out of the restaurant after Eric, Elisabeth found that he had disappeared, so she could only return to her hotel, disappointed. "Julia, what are you doing?" Back at the hotel room, Elizabeth saw a suitcase lying in the middle of the bedroom with Julia packing her clothes. Julia folded a small t-shirt into the box, looked up and answered, "I...I''m leaving, I think I should go back to Los Angeles." Elisabeth stomped her feet, pulled Julia up and sat her down on a chair before she questioned, "Why are you acting like a tiny animal that has encountered a predator and is running away with its tail tucked between its legs?" Julias eyes dodged Elisabeth, flustered before she gathered her courage andined to Elisabeth, "Why are you ming me? Why didn''t you remind me when you saw him behind me? Since I said all those things about him, that asshole will definitely cause me trouble." Elisabeth couldn''t help butugh and ask, "Haha, how will he settle with you, spanking? Stop it, Julia, all this is just your conjecture, OK?" Julia shrank her neck and said, "You...you don''t understand, Liz, that guy is very bad." Elisabeth really didn''t understand Julia''s behavior. She couldn''t help but pat her forehead and thought for a while before she grabbed Julias hand and said, "Come, follow me." "Where to?" Julia stood up and asked. "Let''s go see Eric Williams. Since you are worried, I will make it clear in person, so that he doesnt harass you again." When Julia heard Elisabeth''s words, she freed herself from thetters hand and sat back down in her chair with her small hands holding the handrail tightly, and she quickly exined, "He he never harassed me." "Then tell me, what''s wrong with you?" "I I don''t know. I''m just a little bit ufortable in front of him. And because of that time when I was drunk and today''s matter, I don''t even dare to see him. Liz, just leave him alone, okay?" Even though Elisabeth is her best friend, Julia never revealed her greatest secret in front of her. Her secret was only known by herself and Eric. In fact, she didnt know whether her emotions were truly caused by Stockholm Syndrome. She had read some books about Stockholm Syndrome, but the symptoms seemed different. Is it a mutation? Elizabeth wandered around the bedroom before she suddenly pped her hands and said, "Julia, do you think its that simple?" Julia raised her head curiously and Elisabeths analysis, "Perhaps, it''s just like you told me. You have met him very few times, but in those few short meetings, he seemed very powerful which might be why he left such an impression in your heart?" "Maybe..." Julia nodded after carefully thinking about it. In fact, Elisabeths words are quite reasonable. Even while filming Pretty Woman, she had been alone with Eric just a few times. From the day she met to the present, she only slept with him once, and although the impression he left was very... profound, it was only once. Then, other impressions... On the night of their first encounter, he looked down at her and said that he could make her the top actress in Hollywood... While filming Pretty Woman, she mentioned Al Pacino''s invitation to her to test him, but he simply replied, Go, but don''t dy tomorrow''s shooting... In the vanity van, he raised his palm as if to strike her and she felt excited. Then, he opened the door with a crash... After the sess of Pretty Woman, she went to him in an imposing manner, and he reprimanded her while saying, So impatient, what are you going to do... UTA had assigned her a driver plus bodyguard which she found very cool, so she ran over to show off, but he simply mocked her with his eyes... It seems that from the beginning, she has been standing at bottom, looking up, while he has remained as unattainable as a god. At the same time, he blocked the sun and covered her in his shadow. Seeing Julias pensive appearance, Elisabeth couldn''t help but snapped two fingers in her ear. "Huh?" Julia was suddenly awakened and looked up at Elisabeth suspiciously. "Julia, don''t you want to change the status quo?" "How how can I change it?" Elisabeth replied, "It''s very simple. Interact with him more. I think Eric Williams is not as terrible as you believe. Currently, he is in Venice, free from the pressure of directing a movie. Once you get to know him better, you wont be that timid in front of him." Slightly expectant, Julia raised her head and asked, "Will that work?" "How would you know without trying?" Elisabeth saw that Julia was no longer tense, so she quickly pulled her up and said, "Let''s go find him now." "Wait, I I think I''d better change my clothes," Julia said, embarrassed. Elisabeth looked at Juliasrge pink sleeveless t-shirt and jeans and replied while shaking her head, Forget it, you look beautiful. Besides, its already past nine PM, so we might miss him if we take too long. After speaking, Elisabeth dragged Julia out of the room. *** After returning to his room, Eric took a quick shower, changed into simple clothes, turned on the TV and browsed through the channels. Although the hotel had cable signals from several major TV stations in North America, there were no good programs on, and he didnt even care to look at local TV stations. Finally, he turned it off and picked up the Walden book that Drew had bought for him before he boarded the ne. Even as a middle-aged man, it was difficult for Eric to read this collection of essays. He tried to read it on the ne before finally getting so tired that he fell asleep. This time, just looking at it made him feel sleepy. He was about to go to bed when the rooms phone rang. Upon answering it, he learnt from the front desk that someone hade to meet him. *** "Come in, it''s sote, what are you two doing here?" Eric asked the two women casually. Forgetting Julia who fell behind her, Elisabeth walked around the spacious living room of the suite before she picked up Walden from the coffee table, looked it over, and asked, "Who wouldve thought you like this book, as well." Eric poured two sses of juice and handed it to them. Hearing Elisabeth''s question, he casually replied, "I don''t like it." Chapter 203: Basic Method

Chapter 203: Basic Method

Hearing Eric''s answer, Elisabeth rolled her eyes at him and said, "You... are really uncultured." "What does this have to do with being uncultured?" Eric opened a can of beer and sat down on the sofa before he continued, "Should I be like you? Say that I liked the book then you mention some philosophy regarding life conveyed by the book and we begin discussing the book like fanatics?" "Isnt that how its supposed to be ?" Eric smiled slightly and replied, "When you were in college, you must have often encountered such things, right?" Elisabeth nodded honestly. Julia, who was drinking her fruit juice, couldn''t help butugh. She became independent after graduating from high school. Although she did not have a high IQ and education like Elisabeth, she was better at seeing through people than Elisabeth who had lived a sheltered life. Elisabeth was quite intelligent, but she was unable to understand the meaning behind Erics words. Faced by her puzzled gaze, Eric alsoughed and exined, "As you are the second daughter of Rupert Murdoch, the boss of News Corporation, if a man wanted to get close to you, he would certainly show off his intellect and high cultural level rather than his wealth or sessful career. So, most of the men who discussed philosophy with you had actually wanted to pick you up." Learning the truth, Elisabeth was left dumbfounded with her mouth open. Eric took a sip of his beer while leaning on the couch and spoke, as if reminiscing, "Speaking of which, I often used this basic method of picking up girls during my previous life." "Bullshit!" Although Elisabeth realized that Eric was probably telling the truth, she was unwilling to believe it and said, "You think all men are nasty like you." "Most men wouldnt mind being a little nasty if they could be the son-inw of Rupert Murdoch. Elisabeth retorted, unconvinced, "These... these are all just conjectures." "I think youre just being blind to the truth," Eric didn''t mean to quarrel with Elisabeth so he changed the topic and asked, "By the way, why did you twoe here sote?" Hearing his question, Julia''s waist involuntarily straightened, an instinctive reaction whenever she feels nervous. Elisabeth replied casually, "Since you are in Venice, we should hang out together. How about tomorrow?" Eric thought about his schedule and nodded, "No problem, Im free tomorrow." Elisabeth originally thought Eric would need some convincing, so she was confused when he readily agreed. It waste at night in Venice and inappropriate for two women to stay in a man''s room for too long, so after speaking a bit with him she took Julia, who never spoke word, and left. *** The next day, Andrei Smirnov, the chairman of the jury who had learned of Erics arrival, invited him to have breakfast early in the morning.Although they needed the help of an interpreter tomunicate, the two of them still had a good time. After chatting in the restaurant until past nine o''clock, Andrei Smirnov had to reluctantly leave because of work. After taking n to the agreed upon dock, Eric discovered that Julia and Elisabeth had been waiting for a long time. As soon as he arrived, Elisabethined to disy her dissatisfaction, "Hey, Eric, you are really not punctual. How can you let two women wait so long for you?" "I have things to do, okay. Im not free like you two," Eric replied and then had n rent a boat since they nned to go to the main ind of Venice today. Finding a speedboat, Elisabeth took Julia into the cabin, but drove n off since she could also speak Italian. Arriving on the main ind by speedboat, the three took a gond ride and drifted along the Grand Canal. The morning sun was shining warmly. Eric, dressed in casual clothes, leaned on his chair in the gond and looked at the enclosed buildings around him with relish. From time to time, he raised his camera up to take a few photos. Elisabeth, who was sitting on the other side, was busy chatting loudly in Italian with the old ferryman named Loviso standing on the bow of the ship. The two of themughed heartily from time to time. "Hey, Julia, why are you so quiet? Are you feeling ufortable?" Eric pressed the shutter towards an arch bridge a few times, only to realize that the woman sitting next to him had been quiet the whole time. This gond had only one seat, so the three people were huddled together. Eric was on the right, Elisabeth upied the left, and Julia was stuffed in the middle. The two women were quite thin and Eric was also quite fit, so even though three people were sitting in seats meant for two people, it didnt feel too crowded. Julia raised her head and faced Erics concerned gaze, and quickly replied, "No, Im fine." "Oh," Eric thought for a while but didnt know what to say, so he raised his camera and continued shooting. When the photo was taken, Julia quickly, but quietly, said, "Eric, when are you returning to Los Angeles?" "September 5th, the day after tomorrow." Julia raised her head, looked at Eric, and curiously asked, "Why are you in such a hurry? Dont you want to spend a few more days in Venice?" Eric raised his camera, snapped a silhouette of a seabird flying over the water, and exined casually, "I want to rest for a while, but I have to shoot two movies in just over a month so time is very tight." Julia nodded, then gently lowered her head. "By the way, Julia, when do you n to go back?" Julia hesitated, then said, "Originally, Liz said that she would take me to Australia. Her family has many ranches there, but I don''t n to go." "It''s time to go back. Steel Magnolias is scheduled to release in November. You should be part of the promotion. In addition, you also need to choose the script for your movie next year." Julia had aplicated look on her face as she nced at Eric, and uttered a word after a while: "You..." Eric lowered his head and took out the used reel of film from his camera and put it away. He reced it with a new reel of film. He then looked up at Julias expression and quickly understood what she was thinking, so he smiled and said, " I wont interfere with the movie. You can choose by yourself if you want. Of course, its best to listen to Kapoors advice. By the end of this year, Julia will be in two hit movies which will bring her career to its peak. Although Eric can help her career remain at this peak over the following years, with Julia''s current personality, Eric felt that it is better to let her experience some ups and downs. Moreover, next year, he wont make so many movies like this year. If he keeps shooting hit movies frantically, the giant studios who have control of Hollywood will see him as a threat. He might even end up being jointly suppressed, so he nned on making ayout for his future in Hollywood next year. When Eric had interfered with her movie selection, she had wanted to escape his control, but now, hearing that Eric no longer cared to select movies for her, Julia had a sudden feeling of emptiness. "Hey, look! Its the Bridge of Sighs!" Elisabeth, on the other side, suddenly shouted. Eric raised his head and looked towards Elisabeth''s direction. In a narrow waterne, there was a fully enclosed white stone arch bridge that looked like an attic. The boatman named Loviso smiled and waved the oars to row the gond into the waterne. "The Bridge of Sighs, what a beautiful name. Julia, do you know the history behind it?" Elisabeth sighed like a young literary youth before she turned and asked Julia sitting beside her. Julia shook her head. The early 90s was not a time when one could learn about anything by simply clicking on a webpage and typing just a few words. Seeing Julia shaking her head, Elisabeth waved her little hand triumphantly and exined, "Look, this kind of arch bridge connects the two buildings. This is the Venice Governors Pce and that is a prison for criminals. After trial in the Governors Mansion, the prisoners who are escorted to the prison are able to experience the beauty of the open world onest time. As a result, the prisoners who cross this bridge always sigh in regret which was where the name Bridge of Sighs came from." Eric took a few photos, put the camera down and said with a smile, "ording to what you said, I think it would be more apt for this bridge to be renamed the Gates of Hell. If the bridge is alive, hearing so many criminals sigh over and over again, it must be full of violent emotions. In the context of a movie, such a being would be a typical viin who feels that the whole world is filled with hatred and decides to destroy humanity." Elisabeths excited movements stopped, and she subconsciously thought that Erics words made sense, but she quickly shook her head and rolled her eyes at him, "Hey, why are you always so negative?" "I''m just telling the truth." Elisabeth simply ignored him and held Julia''s arm as she continued to whisper. The gond drifted slowly under the Bridge of Sighs, and the boatman standing at the stern raised his voice slightly and spoke a few words in Italian to the three people. Eric and Julia looked towards Elisabeth who raised her chin arrogantly before tranting, "Mr. Loveso said that if a couple kisses under the Bridge of Sighs, they will forever remain in love." When Julia heard this, she blinked her eyes and nced at Eric secretly, but after just a glimpse, she lowered her eyes with a guilty conscience. However, Elisabeth couldn''t help standing up slightly, her eyes traversing between Eric and Julia, eagerly waiting for one of them to make a move. Eric saw Elisabeth''s reaction, put his hands on his chest as if scared, and said sternly, "Forget it, I will never kiss you." "Fuck, I won''t kiss you even if this bridge copses, asshole." Elisabeth retorted with her hands on her hips. After speaking, she turned herrge eyes, and under Eric''s astonished gaze, she hugged the unsuspecting Julia, leaned over and kissed her cherry red lips. Chapter 204: Impossible

Chapter 204: Impossible

Although the boatman named Loviso was in his fifties indicated by his gray hair and beard, he had obviously never seen two women kissing. Seeing Elisabeth kiss Julia, he was left frozen for a long time before he burst out inughter and gave a thumbs up to the two women, while loudly saying something to Eric gleefully. Although Eric couldnt understand what the old man said, he could guess that thetter was gloating. He must have thought that Eric had been trying to court Julia only for Elisabeth to snatch her from him. In response to the old man, Eric could only smile in embarrassment as there was no way for him to exin the situation due to thenguage barriers. However, the scene of the two women kissing under the Bridge of Sighs was indeed very beautiful. After being momentarily shocked, he pointed his camera at them, and clicked quite a few images of them. Simrly, Julia had been left wide-eyed from the sudden kiss. Feeling Elisabeth''s arms around her waist and her thin red lips sucking on her own lips, she remained unresponsive for well over a dozen seconds when she heard the shutter sound of Eric''s camera. Suddenly, she came to her senses and pushed the woman who was holding her away, and yelled in protest, "Liz, you... how can you do this!" Seeing Julia''s blushing face, Elisabeth hugged her waist again and kissed her cheek. Then, she raised her head and said to Eric, arrogantly, "Eric, Julia is mine now. You better not bully her again." "Liz, what nonsense are you saying!" Hearing Elisabeths words, Julia became anxious and pinched her waist, causing Elisabeth to scream. The two continued fighting, causing the tiny gond to sway around. Finally, the old boatman yelled at them to stop lest the gond tip over. *** The three spent the whole morning strolling along the Grand Canal and had lunch. Eric asked the local guide and took the water bus to a well-known Vian mask shop. "I don''t like these things." Walking into the storefront, Elisabeth looked at the variety of masks on the surrounding walls and said. "Why?" Eric took off a golden mask without a mouth hole and asked while looking at it. Elisabeth replied, "These masks are said to have been worn by the nobles whomitted adultery and fugitives who smuggled themselves inside. They symbolize disguise and pretense." "But doesnt everyone wear invisible masks to hide their true selves? Eric replied casually, put down the simple Bota mask, and picked up another white ghost mask painted with golden patterns which he put on Julia''s face before continuing to look around. Hearing Erics reply, Elisabeth couldnt help but retort, ??"Sure... everyone has a mask on but thats because they dont want to appear... naked in front of everyone." "You are just getting entangled in the question of real and fake. In fact, it is hard to tell. Look, Im not wearing a mask, but actually I am, but in order not to be seen through, I wont tell others that Im wearing a mask. But if someone is wearing a tangible mask, you can tell right away oh that guy is wearing a mask. Honestly, those who put on tangible masks are more honest than those who mask their true feelings behind hypocritical smiles." Elisabeth carefully pondered Erics words. Although she had to agree that his words made sense, she still continued arguing, "You... you are changing the topic." Think whatever you want," Eric replied and then beckoned to the shopkeeper and asked, "Excuse me, do you speak English?" "Of course," the forty-year-old shopkeeper with a moustache nodded and asked in fluent English, "Sir, which one do you like?" Eric looked around for a bit and said, "I want to buy a full set, including hats and cloaks. But I don''t seem to see those here?" "Come with me," the shopkeeper led Eric to a room nearby filled with clothes and said, "Here, please feel free to pick and choose." After showing Eric the room, the shopkeeper left and returned to his spot behind the counter. Eric didnt mind. In fact, he prefered being able to choose clothes alone. He chose hats, cloaks, and folding fans and used them to dress Julia up as a mannequin. "Hey, you''re so rude! Did you even ask Julia if she wants to be your muse?!" Elisabeth yelled to express her dissatisfaction. The masked Julia shook her head quickly and replied, "It''s okay... it doesn''t matter." Eric raised his chin at Elisabeth triumphantly, causing her to stomp her feet in anger. Soon, thanks to Eric dressing her up, Julia was covered from head to toe. A white wide-brimmed hat, decorated with purple feathers, sat on her head; underneath it was a purple cloak embroidered with gorgeous golden patterns; avender silk scarf was wrapped around her neck; and her hands, covered with ck long-sleeved gloves, held a purple silk folding fan. "How is it?" Eric asked after he pulled Julia to the dressing rooms mirror. "Very... very beautiful." Julia nodded as she looked at herself in the mirror through the mask. Elizabeth also came over. Although she was enraptured by Julias look, she still asked, "Why is it purple?" "Purple represents mystery. Don''t you think it matches the style of the mask?" "I still think white would look more beautiful," Elizabeth pointed to a white cloak hanging on a shelf. Eric smiled and said, "Then we will make up another white setter." After that, Eric instructed Julia to take off the mask and cloak, and asked the shop owner to help pack it. He spent another houring up with several other sets of different styles. Elisabeth took off a hat, handed it to Eric and asked, "Why are you buying so much?" Eric replied, "Theyre gifts. Since I came to Venice I naturally have to take back some gifts." Elisabeth teasingly asked with a smile at the corner of her mouth, "It''s for a woman, right?" Eric smiled casually. Seeing his reaction, Elisabeth cursed with contempt, "What an asshole." Julia, who was in between the two and had been modeling for thest hour, heard Eric and Elisbeths words and her cheerful eyes quickly turned gloomy. After making five sets, Eric stepped forward to check out. After asking which currency Eric would pay in, the shopkeeper calcted. Then, he raised his head and said with a smile, "A total of $2200, but for you $2000 is enough." Eric, who had already taken out his wallet, looked at the shopkeeper suspiciously who quickly exined, "I really like what you said about masks when you had walked into the store, so would like to give you a discount." Eric smiled and replied, "Thats very nice of you," *** Walking out of the store while carrying a few bags, Eric put one bag in Julias hands and passed another to Elisabeth. "Im not your servant," Elisabeth quickly stuffed her hands inside the pockets of her jeans and raised her chin at Eric with an arrogant look in her eyes. "Don''t you like this white set? It''s for you. If you dont want it, Ill give it to Julia." "Hmph, I wont do it for free," Elisabeth quickly grabbed the bag. Eric took the lead and walked towards the water bus stop with the remaining three bags. Meanwhile, Elisabeth, who followed closely behind, approached Julia and asked, "Julia, what is yours like?" Although Eric did not say anything, Julia already knew that Eric had gifted her the clothes in the bag she was holding. She opened it and took a look, then held it tightly in her arms and replied, "It''s the purple set I put on at the beginning." Elisabeth frowned in dissatisfaction and said, "Why are you holding it so tightly? I won''t steal it from you." Ignoring Elisabeth''s ridicule, Julia hastened her pace and ran towards Eric. Elisabeth also had to catch up. "Eric, will youe out to hang out tomorrow?" Sitting in the boat, Elisabeth asked actively. Julia also raised her head and looked at Eric expectantly. Eric shook his head and replied, "I''m afraid I won''t have time because of the opening ceremony tomorrow." "So when will you take the time to tell me about your movie?" "I''ll be so busy all day..." Eric began making excuses and suddenly Elisabeth pinched his arm. After she pinched him, Eric and Julia were slightly stunned and looked at Eric''s arm together. Eric was only wearing a ck sleeveless T-shirt, so a faint pinch mark was left on the arm. This was not the crux of the matter; the crux was that... such an action filled with a bit of intimacy and bitterness was usually only done between couples. But Elizabeth was obviously oblivious to this. Seeing the expressions of the two people, she furiously said, "What''s wrong?! He deserves to get pinched! All he knows is how to make money all day long. What a vulgar guy!" After her rant, she turned her head aside angrily, as if she didn''t n to pay any more attention to Eric. Even Julia, who was a little jealous in her heart, saw Eric''s slightly embarrassed expression and dropped her head with a mischievous smile on her face. *** "Oh, my legs are so sore!" After returning to the Lido Ind Hotel, Elisabeth put down the bag that Eric had given her, pounced on the couch, turned her head and said to Julia who came in afterwards, "Julia, please massage my legs. Ill also manage your legs, otherwise your calves will definitely hurt tomorrow." "Okay," Julia sat down on the other side of the couch and lifted Elizabeth''s calves to her thighs and began massaging them gently. Elizabeth hummedfortably before muttering, "No, I figured out a way to let that guy spare some time for me, so I don''t want to deal with the thesis carelessly." Julia continued to massage Elisabeth''s legs. After thinking for a while, she said, "Liz, you have been fighting with Eric all day, but have you ever thought of a possibility?" "Hmm?" Elisabeth hummed in question without looking up at her. Juliaughed and said, "If you watch movies or TV shows, you will find that there is often a type of couple with a love-and-hate rtionship." Elisabeth suddenly looked up and jumped off of the couch. She got up, stepped on the couch and began waving her arms wildly, yelling, "Impossible! Impossible!" Chapter 205: Friends Pilot

Chapter 205: Friends Pilot

Julia woke up after hearing some voicesing from the living room. She rolled over while holding her pillow in an effort to go back to sleep, but soon the voices seemed to get louder. After a brief struggle, she reluctantly opened her eyes and noticed that the curtains shone with a subtle hint of light, indicating the sun had risen. She turned on the bedsidemp and looked at her watch which was adjusted to the local time in Venice; it was slightly past five o''clock in the morning. Lifting her nket and getting out of the bed, she put on her slippers and tied her hair in a bun as she walked to the living room to locate the source of the noise. The lights in the living room were not on, and the curtains leading to the balcony were also tightly drawn. The brightly shining TV was the only source of light in the room and also the source of the noise which had awoken her from her slumber. Elisabeth was sitting cross-legged on the couch with a bag of potato chips in her hands while staring at the TV intently. Suddenly, a small crackling noise came from her mouth. "Liz, why are you up so early?" Julia walked over to sit down beside Elisabeth and pulled the nket on the couch to cover her body. Elisabeth swallowed the snacks in her mouth, and then whispered, "I couldn''t sleep at all. I think Im experiencing insomnia." Julia leaned against Elisabeth and asked, confused, "Insomnia, why?"Immediately afterwards, Julia suddenly remembered something and asked with an incredulous look on her face, "Its not... because of what I saidst night, right? I was just joking. You didnt think I was serious, did you?" Elisabeth remained quiet for a few moments before she quietly asked, "Julia, do you think that bastard has been secretly seducing me?" Julia blinked her eyes in quick session after hearing Elisabeths words and burst out intoughter. "Liz, you stayed up all night thinking about... Eric?" Despite the dim lighting in the room, the flush on Elisabeths face, caused by Julia''s remark, was quite visible. She lightly pped her friend in dissatisfaction and asked, "How can you joke around? I am asking you a very serious question." Julia had somehow managed to quell herughter, but seeing the embarrassed look on Elisabeth''s face, the corners of her mouth stretched again and she fell into another round of hystericalughter. "Hey! I... I''m getting angry!" Elisabeth was about to leave in anger, but Julia quickly held her back and finally replied to her earlier query, "Impossible, you don''t know that guy at all." Elisabeth saw that Julia had finally stoppedughing so she sat back down. However, hearing Julias reply, she protested, "Do you understand him?" "I don''t understand himpletely," Julia shook her head, but she continued, "But I know one thing." "What?" Elisabeth shook Julia''s arm and impatiently asked, "Quickly tell me." Julia realized that her friend was not in a mood for games so she quickly replied, "He has always been very arrogant and direct when interacting with women. If he wants you, he wont bother to waste time seducing you, he is more likely to drag you into a room and press you down under him on the bed." Julia involuntarily recalled the night when she had been with Eric, and unknowingly felt a fire rising in her heart. Elisabeths tiny mouth had opened slightly due to her shock. She quickly said, "He wont dare do such a thing to me, or my father will definitely ruin him." "Perhaps," Julia replied, nomitally. But inwardly, Julia was unsure about Elisabeth''s self-confidence. With Eric''s current wealth and status, if he truly did sleep with her, perhaps old Rupert Murdoch would be jovial, instead of angry. For News Corporation, which is still weak in the fields of film and television, Eric is the perfect partner. Nothing would be better than Eric bing a part of the Murdoch family. Elisabeth didn''t sense the doubt in Julia''s voice, and asked, "So, he is not interested in me, right?" "Of course not," Julia shook her head with a smile. Elisabeth breathed a long sigh of relief, as if a heavy load had been unloaded from her shoulder. However, after a few moments, she mumbled in dissatisfaction, "How can he not be interested in me? Am I not pretty enough?" "Hahaha..." Julia suddenly beganughing. Elisabeth also realized the error in her words. Seeing Julia who wasughing at her, she stretched out her little hand and pinched in anger. "Oh, don''t, don''t pinch," Julia quickly begged for mercy, took a few deep breaths, and said, "I suddenly remembered something that guy once told me." Before Elisabeth could speak, Julia quickly said, "He said that a woman is a very troublesome creature. When you approach her, she will ridicule you and sneer at you. When you stay away from her, she willin about you. This sentence is really too apt for you, hahaha." Seeing Elisabeth was about to attack her again, Julia quickly stopped her friend and said, "Ok, stop, Liz, while it''s still dark, let''s sleep for a while. Otherwise you will be tired throughout the day, um... I''m going to bed." Elisabeth immediately grabbed Julia, who was getting up, and said, "No, you can''t leave me alone." Julia was pulled back on the couch by Elisabeth. She helplessly asked, "Then what do you want?" "Let''s go for a run? Anyway, it''s already dawn outside." Julia immediately rejected the proposal, "It''s too early right now and there are likely not many people on the road. Italy is the birthce of the Mafia; who knows what the public order situation is like here. Maybe were out running and sackse out of nowhere and then we will be in for a terrible time. " Although Julia was just making things up, Elisabeth, thinking about her friends words, was genuinely scared and quickly replied, "Then... lets watch TV. Anyway, I can''t sleep." After she finished speaking, she quickly put the remote control in Julia''s hands. "Okay, okay, you really look like a kid." Julia said and helplessly took the remote control. An Italian soap opera was ying on the TV, but Julia couldn''t understand it, so she changed the channel. After changing several channels in a row, a burst of cheerful cannedughter sounded on the track, and Julia stopped herself from changing the channel. After hearing a few lines of dialogue, Elisabeth immediately said, "Its my TV station." Julia also recognized the Fox TV logo, so she put the remote control down. The scene on the TV is inside a coffee shop. A group of friends are discussing how the wife of a character named Ross has suddenly be a lesbian. After a few funny lines, Julia and Elisabeth were hooked. Suddenly, the character named Phoebe attempted to remove the bad aura from Ross''s head and made the two girlsugh out loud. "Wow, it''s so funny! Howe Ive never seen it before?" Elisabeth asked, pping her thighs inughter. Julia was alsoughing, but she quickly responded, "It should be the prime time in America. This is probably the shows pilot, otherwise, we would have surely heard of such a hrious si before." Elisabeth nodded in agreement, "Yeah, Ill write down the name so we can keep watching in the future." While the two were talking, Ross on the TV said to his sister Monica, "I don''t want to be single. I just want to be married again. As soon as his voice fell, the sound of footsteps sounded. Soon, the door of the coffee shop was pushed open and a bride in a wedding dress walked in, causing everyone to look at Ross with surprise. Immediately, Chandler waved his hand expectantly to the door and said loudly, "And I just want a million dors!" This time, of course ''the wish'' was not fulfilled. "Hahaha, it''s it''s so funny," Elisabeth held her stomach and began to guffaw. After a few moments, she raised her head and nced at Julia next to her, only to find that her eyes were open wide in shock. "Hey, Julia, what''s the matter with you?" Elisabeth poked at Julia''s waist with her finger. Julia pointed to the TV screen and said, "Look, that... the bride in the wedding dress is Jennifer Aniston." Elisabeth looked back at the screen and casually nodded, "Yeah, shes a beautiful girl, but what''s the matter?" "You... you dont remember, Liz?" Julia quickly spoke, "Jennifer Aniston, she is that guy''s girlfriend. In other words, this show is the one that he directed some time ago." Elisabeths eyes slowly opened wider, recalling a few shots in Running Out of Time, there was indeed a scene that had the show running on a TV, "Friends?" Julia nodded slightly. She usually kept an eye out for news rted to Eric. Therefore, when Eric began to promote the show, she memorized its name. Elisabeth looked at Julia for a few moments before pouting her tiny mouth in dissatisfaction and said, "Why is he everywhere?!" Julia also smiled and said, "If I recall correctly... it seems that today is indeed the date when the pilot episode of Friends is set to air." *** Because of the new information they learnt, although the two girls smiled from time to time, they did notugh as much as they had in the beginning, but their eyes also never left the TV screen, even when themercial break took ce they didnt change channels. Near the end of the second episode, Rachel, yed by Jennifer Aniston, called her ex-bridesmaid to "wish" her that the child born to her ex-fianc would be ugly and bald like its dad. Elisabeth quickly said, "This woman is so cheap. I don''t like her. Chapter 206: Qualitative Leap

Chapter 206: Qualitative Leap

Julia didn''t know how to reply to Elisabeth''s words. Although she seemed to be just evaluating the characters in the show, a hint of jealousy could be heard in her voice. In fact, Julia herself felt a bit jealous. Although only two episodes have aired so far, anyone can see that Friends is destined to be a superhit show which would naturally lead to the six main actors turning into overnight stars, and Jennifer, who ys Rachel, will definitely be the most popr among the six. In addition, she would be able to maintain her poprity for many years toe due to the natural longevity of a TV show, as opposed to a movie. Eric is so kind to her, she thought while gently biting her lips. After the two pilot episodes ended,mercials had begun and the two women noticed that the outside sky was already bright. Julia stood up and stretched before taking a shower. She walked out of the bathroom a few minutester and asked, "Liz, do you want to go to the restaurant downstairs for breakfast?" Elisabeth shook her head and replied, "I''m a little tired, so Ill stay inside. Julia, can you bring me a fruit sd?" Julia nodded, got dressed and walked out of their hotel room. Back in the room, Elisabeth continued watching the TV screen for a while before she suddenly remembered something. She stood up, picked up the phone and dialed a series of numbers from her memory. A few minutester, Julia returned to the room with two take-away breakfasts. She saw Elisabeth put down the phone and asked casually, "Who were you talking to?" "New York," Elisabeth replied, but realized that Julia seemed uninterested. She walked back to the couch, sat down and said, "I just talked to the Fox TV station in New York. They said the ratings of Friends have been calcted." Julia gave one of the sds to Elisabeth and walked to the refrigerator to get two cartons of milk. Hearing Elisabeth''s words, Julia still seemed uninterested and asked, "Was that necessary? The shows script was written by Eric himself. The ratings will definitely not be low. It might have even crossed 20 million by the end." "31.7 million..." Elisabeth replied hoarsely as if something was stuck in her throat. She is a media student, and unlikeymen, she is able to understand the meaning behind this number. "Oh..." Julia poured the milk into two sses and responded casually. Suddenly, she turned her head and asked, wide-eyed, "How much did you say?!" Elisabeth fiddled with her fruit sd and slowly replied, "The average ratings of the two episodes are 31.7 million. The highest number even reached 35 million. It''s... incredible." "Oh my God," Julia took a few sips of milk in an attempt to suppress the shock in her heart and quickly asked, "Isn''t it a mistake?" "How could it be wrong? The people at the TV station checked three times. Theyre going crazy." It was crazy. After Foxpiled the ratings data of the first two episodes of Friends, even if it waste at night, the news seemingly had wings and spread throughout the film and television industry and countless newspapers in just an hour. Many people who had fallen asleep were awakened by the shocking news. During the ''90s, the main sources of audio-visual entertainment were movies and television. Therefore, ratings of more than 30 million were not umon. But such ratings were only obtained by an important ceremony orpetition, or a major plot twist or season finale of a hit drama that has umted several years of fame. However, a si obtaining such ratings was simply unprecedented. And more importantly, Fox was a TV station that had been around for less than a decade. Although it was nominally ranked fourth in North America, itgged far behind the top three TV stations i.e. ABC, CBS and NBC. As a result, the ratings of Friends had a special significance for Fox. Prior to it, Fox''s highest ratings record was from an interview with Michael Jackson. And even that had only 19 million viewers. The ratings of Friends increased Fox''s highest ratings record by more than 10 million in one fell swoop. And the person most critical to such sess, Eric, was woken up early in the morning by the tireless ringing of the phone in his room. The first call was from Barry Diller himself. Barry Diller informed him about the phenomenal ratings of Friends, expressed his congrattions, and then hoped that Eric could return to the United States as soon as possible. He also informed him that News Corporations Chairman Rupert Murdoch would arrive in Los Angeles in a few days and that he really wanted to meet him in person. The two chatted for another ten minutes. After Barry Diller repeatedly asked Eric to return to Los Angeles as soon as possible, he reluctantly hung up the phone. Eric put down the phone and before he had time to ponder over the news he received from Barry Diller, his phone rang again. The second one was from Jeffrey, and then, the third, fourth, fifth Eric spent the next two full hours answering the phone. Both of his ears were red due to the phone being held against them for so long. Finally, aorund nine o''clock in the morning, Eric couldn''t stand it anymore and unplugged the phone line. He figured that he had already talked to most of the more important people so it didnt matter if he didnt answer any more calls. Moreover, the purpose behind most calls was not very pure. Except for Jennifer who quickly called and congratted him, most callers were lobbying him to obtain broadcasting rights to Friends. Last year, out of caution, Fox only signed the contract for the first season of Friends. This was an open secret. Now, Friends has just begun broadcasting and has already achieved such amazing feats. Even if the ratings fluctuate in the future, with ratings of 30 million during the pilot, the future ratings will not be too bad. As a result, if the other three major TV stations continue to remain indifferent to Friends, those at their helm simply do not deserve to sit in their positions. However, these people are indeed very well connected. They sent representatives in just a few hours and expressed their intentions to Eric. NBC even sent John Aniston, James Brooks and Robert Shaye to lobby on their behalf. Except for John Aniston who originally worked at NBC, Eric couldnt figure out how the other two were rted to NBC. James Brooks is a famous producer who has maintained close cooperation with Fox over the years. Wasnt he afraid of going behind Foxs back? Moreover, Robert Shaye''s actions left Eric even more confused. In fact, regarding the performance of Friends, Eric had his own estimates. Since Running Out of Time was still in theaters, the three episodes of Friends that were advertising cements have aroused strong public curiosity. Coupled with the gimmick that Eric personally wrote the script and directed the first two episodes, as well as Fox sparing no effort in publicity, Eric had predicted that the pilot ratings of Friends would definitely be in the 20 million range. Anything lower than that would be pathetic. But when the actual ratings of over 30 million came out, even he was greatly surprised. The ratings of an American TV show usually follows a set process. Going from 10 million to 20 million was an easy quantitative change. A decent TV show could reach 20 million over time depending on the ups and downs of the plot. But going from 20 million to 30 million was a very tough qualitative leap. Only a very small number of popr TV shows had one or two such episodes and that too after they had umted years of poprity. However, Friends has created such a miracle during its pilot which is enough for it to leave its name behind in the annals of TV history. Therefore, it is only natural that Friends has caused such a sensation in the entire North American film and television circle. Chapter 207: Ratings Miracle

Chapter 207: Ratings Miracle

Next morning, headlines such as "Friends", "30 Million Viewership" and "Ratings Miracle" appeared in bold in arge number of North American newspapers along with numerous reviews of the show. "The spoiled Rachel Green, the clean-freak Monica Geller, the entric Phoebe Buffay, the nervous Ross Geller, the sarcastic Chandler Bing, and the simple-minded Joey Tribbiani... In just two episodes, Eric Williams introduced six characters with distinctive personalities and caused the audience to fall in love with them." "A plot that is close to reality which the audience can easily rte with along with unlimited humor. The 31.7 million ratings score of Friends is the greatest empirical proof of this. When the audience watched the six characters living in an apartment in New York, they were able to see parts of the characters in themselves. This may be the most important factor behind the sess of this si, just like ABC''s Growing Pains. Eric Williams is worthy of being called a genius since he managed to turn everyday life and happenings of these six characters into interesting conversations, which firmly captured the audience''s hearts." "The interesting dialogue between the six protagonists of Friends will undoubtedly be popr amongst youngsters for a long time toe. In just two episodes, the personalities of the six protagonists have been fully shaped. I look forward to the future plot development. I fully believe that Eric Williams, who wrote the script personally, will definitely bring more surprises to the audience in terms of plot. There is no doubt that Friends is another of Eric Williams masterpieces." "..." Aside from the countless reviewsplimenting the show, of course, there were also reviews filled with criticism. Los Angeles based Metropolitan News-Enterprise did a simple survey through random interviews with the audience of Friends and found that less than 60% of the audience were interested in the plot. Over 20% of those interviewed said that Friends did not meet their expectations while the remaining 20% thought that Friends was a pretty average si. Therefore, Metropolitan News-Enterprise concluded that the miracle of more than 30 million viewership of Friends was entirely the result of a series of publicity and hype. The results of the survey indicated that the quality of Friends did not meet the psychological expectations of many viewers who had high expectations for Eric Williams, and that the ratings would surely fall. Simr to Metropolitan News-Enterprise, many other newspapers and media outlets were pessimistic of the future ratings of Friends, but such remarks could only fool ordinary readers. Anyone with the slightest understanding of the broadcasting industry would understand that although the ratings miracle of Friends was supported by hype, if the shows quality had been poor, it wouldve been impossible for it to reach an average viewership of 31.7 million. With just two episodes, Friends has created a viewer base of more than 30 million. Even if there is a major decline in ratings in the future, the ratings would still continue to exceed 20 million at the least. During the ''90s, TV shows with ratings of more than 20 million were few and far between. *** In the past, the three major television stations in North America, ABC, NBC, and CBS, didn''t pay much attention to Fox TV. Even the youngest of them, ABC, had been around for almost half a century while the history of NBC and CBS was even longer. Over the years, more than one media group had tried to challenge the status of the three major television stations, but without exception, they all failed. Therefore, when News Corporation appointed Barry Diller - who was known as the top dog in the media industry - to take charge of their TVwork business and even when Fox TV became the fourthrgest TVwork in the United States, in the eyes of the three major TV stations, Fox was still just a neer in the North American broadcasting industry. After all, the growth of a TV station was dependent on the ratings of their shows. However, Fox had not had any hit TV shows in the past years. Before Friends, the highest ratings record of Fox TV did not even exceed 20 million while the highest ratings record of the three major TV stations that jointly owned the Super Bowls broadcasting rights was more than 100 million. Even without the Super Bowl, the three major TV stations each had a few hit shows with ratings of more than 20 million. Therefore, although News Corp. made a lot of noise in North America, such as when Rupert Murdoch obtained American citizenship in order to create a televisionwork, the three major TV stations all scoffed at the "upstart" from Australia while waiting for him to return home like each of their previous challengers. However, Friends obtaining ratings of more than 30 million was aplete wake-up call for the top executives of the three major TV stations. They suddenly realized that Fox TV, a neer that had only been around for a few years, already had more than 100worked television stations, covering more than 90% of the United States. The first reaction of the three major TV stations was that Fox could not be allowed to continue to develop. After all, the domestic TV market in the United States was limited. If Fox gained market share, it naturally meant that the three major TV stations would lose market share. The top executives of the three major TV stations held a rare emergency meeting. After several hours of negotiation, the first countermeasure they decided upon was to take away the broadcasting rights of the second season of Friends from Fox at all costs. They even agreed to take over the broadcasting rights for the remaining episodes of the first season of Friends, even if they had to pay a high penalty for Eric Williams. Without Friends, Fox''s pace of expansion would certainly slow down and the three major TV stations would have plenty of time to slowly destroy Fox, the "outsider" who attempted to steal from them. However, since the three major TV stations could think up such ns, Foxs CEO Barry Diller and News Corps Chairman Rupert Murdoch could also anticipate their actions. Although several of Erics films had brought great benefits to Fox Films, Rupert Murdoch previously did not pay too much attention to him, and only regarded him as a neer director who was working with hispany. Naturally, he never cared to meet Eric. However, this time was different. The newspaper business of Murdochs News Corp. had reached its limits in terms of growth. As a result, his main focus was now on his Fox TVwork. Erics Friends had brought an opportunity for the rapid expansion of his TVwork. Since the three major TV stations were nning to make their move, Murdoch had toe out in person to win Eric over with better terms. When Eric was attending the opening ceremony of the 46th Venice Film Festival on the evening of September 4, a huge private Boeing jetnded at the Marco Polo International Airport in Venice. Chapter 208: Back to L.A.

Chapter 208: Back to L.A.

"Thank you," Eric replied to the pretty blonde flight attendant who handed him a ss of cocktail at the small bar. He was currently on the private jet of the Murdoch family. Eric had not expected that Murdoch would be so eager as to send a private jet to Venice to pick him up. Still, it would be rude of him to decline the jet that was essentially delivered to his doorstep. Moreover,pared to his first-ss seat, a fully equipped private jet would certainly be much morefortable. After attending the opening ceremony of the Venice Film Festivalst night and attending the premiere of The Others in the morning, Eric handed over the rest to Jonathan Demme and others, and boarded the huge Boeing private jet back to Los Angeles. Since Friends achieved such amazing results, it would be a lie if he said that he wasnt in a hurry to return to Los Angeles. In addition to his assistant, n, and a Vice President of Fox TV who came to receive him, Julia and Elisabeth were also on the ne. The two women were sitting on the couch near him, secretly whispering something. n and the Fox V.P. were sitting in the other lounge to give Eric some "privacy." "What are you talking about so happily, Julia?" Eric turned towards the two women and asked. Julia looked up and was about to reply when Elisabeth red at him and yelled, "What''s it to you!" Since learning about the ratings miracle of Friends Elisabeth''s attitude towards Eric had gotten even worse, possibly due to being annoyed by his sess. "If youre talking about me, then it is my business," Eric replied with a smile before he stood up, walked towards the couch and sat down beside Julia. Julia saw Eric sitting down beside her and wanted to say something but she stopped herself, however, Elisabeth protested, "Hey, who asked you to sit here?" "Liz, I''m a guest. How can you be so rude?" "Since youre a guest, you should be more conscious of your position," Elisabeth replied in a confrontational manner. "You are so inhospitable, Liz, it seems that when I return to Los Angeles, Ill have to speak to Mr. Murdoch about you. Maybe he should enroll you in adies etiquette training ss or something," Eric replied. Wittingly or unwittingly, he used the tone of an elder, which made Elisabeth, who was already annoyed, very angry. She stared at him for a while, but couldn''t find a harshereback, so she suddenly stood up and said, "I''m going to rest. Enjoy yourself, Mr. Guest!" After she finished speaking, she walked to her bedroom under the tter of her high heels. Soon, silence prevailed as the two flight attendants had also quietly left, leaving Eric and Julia alone in the cabin. Julia nced at Eric, who was sitting next to herfortably and leaning back to rest. She straightened her waist, but continued to quietly sit beside Eric and began to unconsciously enjoy the calm atmosphere. The past few days in Venice had been the longest time she spent with Eric when she was not working. She found thatpared to his irritable and controlling self when he was at work, Eric was very casual most of the time in private. Even when Elisabeth deliberately confronted him, Eric never lost his temper. Through their time together, Eric''s image in her heart had greatly changed. At least, she no longer believed that he was the Devil. Even after some time passed, Eric didnt speak to her. Finally, she secretly turned her face and looked at the man next to her. Due to running around over the past days, in addition to not being able to rest well because of jetg, Eric''s youthful face looked tired with a stubble growing on his chin. However, this made him look a lot more mature which made Julias heart beat uncontrobly, and she even had the urge to reach out and touch it. However, in the end, she couldnt gather the courage to do so and the urge in her heart soon died down with a regretful sigh. Still, she reached out and took the empty wine ss from Erics hand and put it aside, and began to think about the miraculous ratings of Friends, including the things Elisabeth told her about the broadcasting industry. She had known from the start that Eric was brilliant since every film he made was a blockbuster hit. Even his first TV show easily created a ratings miracle. But she didn''t have any specific measurement of how brilliant he was. It was only after the slightly more well-informed Elisabeth exined it to her that Julia began to understand the height of Eric''s current position. Eric, who had fallen asleep next to her, seemed to find his sleeping position ufortable so he unconsciously moved down such that his head was just resting on Juliasp. Moreover, his arm subconsciously hugged her slender waist. Julia, who had been in thought, was startled by Eric''s sudden action. She had thought he was awake but when she looked down, she found that he was sleepingfortably on herp. She softly chuckled and finally managed to gather up her courage as she stretched out her fingers and gently touched his handsome, angr face. The blond flight attendant who had been bartending for Eric not long ago appeared in the cabin again, seemingly to ask the guests if they needed anything. However, when she saw the intimacy between the man and woman on the couch, her eyes opened wide. She naturally knew Julia and Erics identities, and was even aware of the gossip in Hollywood, but seeing the young and famous director sleeping on thep of Julia Roberts, a top Hollywood actress, the blond flight attendant still found it a little weird. Seeing the surprised look on the flight attendants face, Julia''s face turned red, but she reached out and made a gesture at her to keep quiet. This gesture awakened the surprised flight attendant who quickly showed Julia a professional smile and nned to return. Julia stopped her and made a few gestures at her. The blond flight attendant nodded and quickly brought a nket and gently put it on Eric. After she left, Julia finally rxed and looked down at Eric''s sleeping face in a daze. *** Because Venice is nine hours ahead, when the jet arrived in Los Angeles, after more than ten hours of flight, the local time was less than eight o''clock in the evening of the same day. Many people had learned that Eric would arrive in Los Angeles, so arge wave of people were waiting outside the airport. Fortunately, he came back on a private jet, and the itinerary was secret. If he had taken a normal ne as originally nned, he would definitely be blocked by arge wave of reporters while exiting the airport. Just as Erics group exited the airport, a few groups of people surrounded them. These people didnt know each other but they understood the others purpose immediately, so they quickly rushed towards Eric. "Mr. Williams, I am Mr. Murdoch''s assistant..." "Mr. Williams, Mr. Eisner asked me to wait for you here..." "Eric, we met when we were recording "Sofia Talk Show." Im the head of CBS''s Los Angeles branch..." Eric smiled and shook hands with the groups of people who were rushing to introduce themselves. After everyone was done, he finally said, "Im so sorry, but I just got back to Los Angeles and I''m very tired. Can we talk tomorrow? Naturally, it was impossible for these people to leave simply because of Erics words. They continued to insist even when Eric told them to leave but they didnt dare to annoy him. Eric had expected such a situation, but even he didnt expect that there would be so many people who woulde to the airport to intercept him. He hurried into a car specially sent by Jeffrey. After n ensured that all the luggage was put in the car, Eric bid farewell to everyone outside the window, especially to Julia and Elisabeth standing outside the crowd. Seeing Eric''s car leaving in the distance, the people that had wanted to intercept him walked to their car in disappointment and nned to leave. Of course Elisabeth didnt mind when the others left, but seeing that the assistant sent by her father also nned to leave, the tiny me in her heart ignited, and she yelled, "Hey, Vincent, am I invisible?!!" The assistant named Vincent had been focused on Eric and did not notice Elisabeth who came out afterwards. He hurried over and apologized, "Oh, sorry, Miss Murdoch, I didnt notice you. I also failed to receive Mr. Williams. I dont know how to exin this to Mr. Murdoch." Elisabeth took Julia towards the Bentley and said angrily, "I don''t care how you exin! First take us to Beverly Hills!" "But," Vincent followed and hesitantly replied, "Miss Murdoch, I have to report to Mr. Murdoch as soon as possible. He is still waiting at the Century City headquarters for me." "It''s sote! Would you have us girls take a taxi back home?! What if we run into a bad man?!" Elisabeth yelled and put their luggage next to Vincent before she took Julia inside the Bentley and mmed the door. Vincent wryly smiled and spoke to the Fox TV V.P. who was neglected by Elisabeth. The two put the two bags into the trunk before he sat next to the driver and told him to drive. At the same time, he picked up his phone and dialed a number. Chapter 209: Offers

Chapter 209: Offers

As the car drove down the road, Ericughed and said, "I really didn''t expect that besides the three major TV stations, even cable TV stations such as HBO would send someone. But, why did Michael Eisner send someone?" Friends has achieved an unprecedented feat in the TV industry. Thanks to the pride he gained from being chased by bigwigs of the TV industry, n was also a little excited when he heard Erics question. After thinking for a while, he replied, "I think Mr. Eisner sent someone on behalf of ABC." Hearing ns remark, Eric instantly recalled the acquisition of ABC by Disney that took ce during his previous life. However, although Eric was not certain of the exact year of the acquisition, he did remember that it was around the end of 90s. So, why did Michael Eisner send someone on behalf of ABC now in 1991? Noticing the puzzled expression on Erics face from the rearview mirror, n quickly borated, "Disney and ABC have always had a close working rtionship. Even when I was a kid, Disney cartoons aired only on ABC." Eric was quiet for a few minutes before he said, "n, take two days to gather all the information regarding Disney and ABCs past cooperation." He paused before adding, "Actually, gather all the information regarding the rtionship between the other major TV stations and Hollywoods Big Six studios." "No problem, but it may take around a week or so," n replied. "Take your time, theres no hurry, but make sure that the information is urate." "Alright. By the way, Eric, where are we going now?" n asked again. In public, n addressed Eric as Mr. Williams, but in private, he simply called him by his name. This was actually something Eric told him to do. After all, n was in histe-twenties, almost ten years older than Eric. If he addressed him formally even in private, Eric himself would feel awkward. Eric casually replied, "Home; its prettyte at night. Theres no hurry so we dont need to disturb anyone. Ill just make a call to Jeffrey and the others." *** Back at Erics Beverly Hills mansion, n and the driver helped move his luggage inside. Drew, who had been waiting for Eric to return, jumped on the pile of luggage and started looking for gifts without waiting for the outsiders to leave. Eric lightly knocked on her forehead before sending n and the driver away. "Over the next few days, if Fox contacts you, find an excuse to avoid them. If other TV stations contact you, take some time and meet them." Standing at the door of the mansion, Eric informed n. n is also aware that Eric is nning to y hard to get with Fox, but he still asked, doubtfully, "Eric, what if Murdoch himselfes?" "He won''t," Eric confidently answered, "Previously, sending a private ne to Venice to pick me up was just Foxs way of expressing sincerity for the subsequent negotiations. In fact, it showed that they were a little anxious to begin negotiations. If old Murdoch appears in person, then naturally I will ughter Fox TV like a fat sheep." "Eric, do you n to switch Friends to a different TV station?" n subconsciously asked, but regretted it right as he finished speaking since it was a sensitive matter. Naturally, Eric wouldnt tell n about his ns. Although n has always been clear-headed and loyal, it is difficult to guarantee that he will not reveal some things in the face of temptation. The surest way of ensuring anyones loyalty is to reveal as little as possible to them so that the opponent is not able to tempt them into betrayal no matter how many chips they employ. If his opponents learn of his ns through n, it would be difficult for Eric to get the most benefit from them. However, he also noticed from n''s expression that he had unintentionally asked the question, so he replied with a smile, "Well, that depends on the offers by the different parties. We will naturally choose the one with the best offer." n nodded and refrained from asking any more as he quickly left. *** Back at the vi, Drew picked up the phone in the living room, so Eric had to spend a long time on the phone like the morning when the ratings of Friends were released. This time, Rupert Murdoch had personally called and invited Eric to have lunch the next afternoon. Eric made a few random reasons and declined his invitation. He nned to at least publicly get in touch with the three major TV stations, so that Fox would feel a sense of urgency. Then, he would negotiate with them so as to maximize his benefits. Although the other major TV stations were very eager, Eric had never had any intention of switching Friends to a different TV station. Compared to the "youthful" Fox, the three major TV stations are like gray-haired old men. Even if they cooperate with him, it is inevitable that they will attempt to establish their supremacy. However, Fox is different. Eric knows that in just another decade Fox will almost be on the same level as the three major TV stations. But apart from Eric himself, even Murdoch, the head of News Corporation, would not expect this. Hecks confidence in the prospects of Fox TV without Friends. As a result, ensuring that it remains on Fox is very important to him. *** The next day, the first thing Eric did was to visit the cast of Friends. Afterwards, at noon, under the introduction of Michael Eisner, he met with a Senior Vice President of ABC who came to Los Angeles. After eating together, he went to meet an NBC executive in the evening with Robert Shaye. He spent the entire next morning ying golf with the head of CBSs Los Angeles branch. Actually, the offers presented by the three major TV stations were quite very generous. They didnt even mention anything about buying out the episodes at a fixed price. They directly proposed to allow him to obtain a share of the shows advertising revenue which is where the big bucks lie. And ording to the information Eric read previously, the proportion of the advertising revenues share they quoted was quite high. In addition, the three major TV stations also revealed their intention to intercept Fox and take over the remaining episodes in the first season of Friends. During these contacts, Eric also realized that the three major TV stations must have reached some consensus before, and may have even formed a loose alliance. But such an "alliance" could be easily blown away by a light gust of wind. The three major TV stations are in fiercepetition with each other. Although they asionally cooperate, each station strives to earn better ratings than the other two stations. Naturally, in the matter of Friends, each of them likely have their own ns since Friends is destined to be the trump card on any TV station. Although the three major TV stations had reached a prior consensus, when it actually came to getting the show, they were each looking to beat the other two which allowed Eric to implement his ns smoothly without too much pressure. After all, if the three major TV giants of North America jointly pressurized him, he would certainly have to consider the consequences of offending all three of them by ultimately leaving Friends with Fox. Chapter 210: Player or Pawn?

Chapter 210: yer or Pawn?

Although Eric kept his focus on Friends, he still continued to take care of hispany. On his third day back in Los Angeles, Eric, along with Jeffrey and Robert Shaye, came to the new building chosen as the headquarters of Firefly Films. "Eric, what do you think about this ce?" After the three got out of the car, Robert Shaye asked while pointing to a seven-story building near the highway. There are not many high-rise buildings in Los Angeles except for the City Center. Therefore, this seven-story office building with a silver and metallic design located in Burbank was to Eric''s liking. However, after looking around, he pointed to the highway nearby and asked, "Bob, this ce close to the highway. Wont it be noisy?" "No," Robert Shaye shook his head and said, "I have been inside the building with Jeffrey previously. The sound instion inside is very good. With the windows closed, the sound of cars outside is muffled. Another plus point about this property is that we can also get the approx. 10,000 square feet ofnd on the north side of this building. In the future, we can build a few more office buildings there if necessary." Eric looked at the map and asked, "In that case, why didn''t they build an office building a little further away from the highway in the first ce?" "The real estatepany that owned this piece ofnd originally nned to build a small office park here. Unfortunately, after the stock market crashst year, they were left short on cash and could only build this building. So, Eric, if we buy this property, I think it would be a good investment for Firefly." Eric inwardly nodded. If they bought the property , it would be Firefly''s first major piece of real estate. Even before his rebirth, real estate had been a very lucrative investment. Even though the North American real estate market had experienced several crashes such as the Subprime mortgage crisis, the overall market had always been climbing. "How much will it cost to buy the whole thing?" "20 million," Robert Shaye replied. Seemingly afraid that Eric might find it too expensive, he quickly continued, "Eric, this is a very good price. You can''t find another such property in Burbank with so muchnd and a highway nearby." Eric smiled and asked Jeffrey standing beside him, "Jeffrey, what do you think?" "Bob and I are of the same mind. I also suggest that we buy all of thisnd. This ce is perfectly suitable to be the new headquarters of Firefly. Disney, Warner and Universal are all located within a radius of two miles," Jeffrey answered before he pointed to a hill on the map and said, "Eric, look at that hillside beyond the D sign." Eric looked down at the gentle slope that Jeffrey pointed at which was likely an extension of Beverly Hills, but he did not see the famous Hollywood sign. Jeffrey exined, "I heard that the owner of that hillside was the famous Howard Hughes, but I don''t know which real estatepany currently owns it." Eric looked at the hillside yearningly in a daze. Seeing Erics look of yearning, Jeffrey and Robert looked at each other before they both smiled. Howard Hughes; every man in Hollywood with the slightest of ambition perhaps yearns to be the second Howard Hughes. After a while, Eric recovered from his daze and said , seemingly having made his decision, "Okay, let''s go in and see." Robert Shaye followed Eric with a smile on his face. This piece ofnd was introduced to him by a friend in hopes that he could facilitate the transaction. Although Robert Shaye would not get any direct benefits from the transaction, he would be able to have the real estatepany owe him a favor.Of course, no such favor is worth $20 million. After all, Robert Shaye is also a shareholder of Firefly. In fact, there is no shortage of buyers for thend thanks to its great location. Some may even be willing to pay a higher price, however, few hold enough cash to pay all at once like Firefly. The real estatepany was willing to sell for $20 million since it was in urgent need of money to alleviate its financial crisis caused by the housing market crash. *** The three strolled around and sat down on a bench next to awn to rest when Jeffrey asked, "Eric, are you nning to attend the Friends celebration party tonight?" Robert Shaye also turned his attention to Eric. Eric shook his head before he nodded. Seeing the confused expressions on the faces of the two older men, he quickly exined with a smile, "I will go. If I dy, Murdoch will definitely sense something." Jeffrey smiled and replied, "Since you have avoided seeing them over thest few days, Fox is likely very anxious. They must have heard that the three major TV stations are nning to snatch the broadcasting rights for remaining episodes of Friends." Eric looked up at the blue sky of Los Angeles and said in a rxed voice, "If they remained calm, they wouldn''t have such worries. But, in the current situation, I guess even Rupert Murdoch is unable to remain calm." "Why is this?" Robert Shaye asked curiously. Jeffrey also looked confused. Eric exined, "If the three major TV stations do take over Friends, Fox will definitely not sit quietly. Then, awsuit will ensue during the course of which Friends wont air. Such awsuit wouldst at least a year and a half during which time the three major TV stations can slowly suppress Fox TV and its rising momentum. But, if such awsuit does happen, we will also suffer since Friends wont air. When thewsuit finally ends and the dust settles, who knows whether the three major TV stations will honor the promise they made to us in the beginning." After hearing this, Robert Shaye suggested, "Then leave the first season alone, but give the broadcast rights of the following seasons to the three major TV stations. I have estimated that with their scale the advertising revenue we can obtain will increase by at least 10%." Eric turned his head to look at Robert Shaye and said, "Robert, try having a broader view. Even if we get a higher share of the advertising revenue, we will still remain just a pawn on the chess board. Since we have such a good opportunity, why dont we try to be the yer?" Robert Shaye was momentarily stunned before he wryly smiled and thought inwardly, ''Am I getting old, or is this boy simply that ambitious?'' *** On the coastal road, a purple Lamborghini Diablo quickly drove through the traffic. Jennifer, who was wearing a white white evening gown, took out her makeup mirror and checked her makeup from time to time. She looked at herself from all angles and fixed her bangs before she turned to Eric and asked, "Eric, can you check if there is any problem with my makeup?" Eric held the steering wheel and nced at her before quickly turning his head back and replied, "Yes, it''s beautiful. But, Jenny, did you choose your dress by yourself?" "Yep. It''s beautiful, right?" If she wasnt in a car, Jennifer would definitely stand up and show Eric her dress. Eric didnt speak for a few minutes before he said, "Tomorrow, I will call Kapoor and let him find a stylist for you. You are a big star now, so you should learn how to dress yourself." "Yeah," Jennifer heard the words "big star" from Eric''s mouth and pridefully nodded. However, she wasnt stupid so she quickly understood his meaning. She hesitantly asked, almost forebodingly, "You mean theres a problem with my outfit?" Eric nodded and gently replied, "Theres no problem per se, but this dress is more suitable for attending an awards ceremony or walking on the red carpet, not parties." Jennifer looked down and carefully studied her dress, especially the extra long skirt, and immediately pulled Eric''s arm as she said, hysterically, "Uhh... youre... youre right. No! Eric, turn around! I have to go back and change!" "Hey hey, don''t make trouble, I''m driving." Jennifer quickly retracted her hand, but still said, "Quickly turn around, I need to go back and change. This is the first party Im attending with you. I don''t want to beughed at." Eric tapped his wrist watch and said, "It''s toote to go back now." "Ugh..." Jennifer buried her little head in her arms before she suddenly looked up at Eric and yelled, "If you noticed that my outfit was wrong from the start, why didn''t you tell me?!" "I didnt really notice your dress," he replied. "Hmph, then what should we do now?" Eric looked at a nearby sign and said, "There is a way. Were very close to Virginia''s house. If you want, we can go see if she has any dress that suits you. I have the key to her house." "No thanks, I would rather be aughingstock," she replied and turned her head in annoyance. Eric shrugged helplessly and said, "Forget it then, but be careful not to trip over your skirt at the party." *** The celebration party for Friends did not take ce in a hotel, but in a mansion in Malibu owned by the Murdochs. After reaching their destination, Eric gave the key to the valet and walked inside with Jennifer. Upon receiving the news of Eric''s arrival, Rupert Murdoch and Barry Diller, who had arrived early, appeared to receive him. Eric was a little surprised to see Elisabeth, whom he hadnt seen in a few days, walk out with old Murdoch. Although she had adylike smile on her face, Eric could sense a hint of reluctance. Chapter 211: Nicole: Expert at digging her own grave

Chapter 211: Nicole: Expert at digging her own grave

Looking at Rupert Murdoch, who was currently younger than sixty, Eric''s first thought was News Corporation''s eavesdropping scandal that happened in the early teens. Perhaps because of the eavesdropping scandal, the media used pictures in which he looked very old and infirm, but at this time, Murdoch seemed full of energy, his remaining few hair neatlybed, wearing rimless sses with a friendly smile on his face. While Eric observed him, Murdoch was also carefully examining the young man less than twenty years old standing opposite him. However, this all took less than a few seconds before the two reached out their hands at the same time. "Hello, Mr. Murdoch, Im Eric Williams." Although Murdoch must have seen his photo, out of courtesy as their first meeting, Eric still introduced himself. "Hello, Eric," Murdoch shook hands with Eric, then turned to Jennifer, "And this must be the beautiful Miss Jennifer Aniston. Your performance in Friends was truly wonderful." Since it was the first time she had beenplimented in front of her boyfriend, Jennifer was a bit embarrassed but she quickly reached out and shook hands, "Thank you, Mr. Murdoch." When Eric and Jennifer were greeting Barry Diller, old Murdoch nced at his daughter. Elisabeth couldn''t help feeling a little upset when she saw the intimate couple in front of her. After she realized this, she felt even more ufortable. But soon, she made up a reason to justify her emotions. She imed to herself that she was feeling upset for Julia. A few days ago, on the ne, she saw Eric sleeping on Juliasp. After he woke up, Julia remained seated for a long time as her legs had gone numb. Julia was so kind to him, but since returning to Los Angeles, he never contacted her, and now he appeared together with another woman. What a bastard! she thought while gritting her teeth. "Hi, Liz, you look so beautiful today," After greeting Barry Diller, Eric turned to Elisabeth. "Hello, Mr. Williams," Elisabeth quickly shook hands with him before retracting it as if she wanted to keep her distance from him. Immediately, she brightly smiled and hugged Jennifer as she said, "Hello, Miss Aniston, my name is Elisabeth. Wow, your dress is so beautiful! Come on, lets go inside." Jennifer looked at Eric inquiringly. Although Eric felt that Elisabeth was a bit unkind for bringing up Jennifer''s dress, he was certain she would not go too far on this asion, so he nodded at Jennifer who then let herself be pulled inside by Elisabeth. His daughter''s actions werepletely opposite of what he had instructed her which made old Murdoch a little angry, but he was helpless. Murdoch is busy with his business empire and pays little attention to his children. Although he is reluctant to ept that he is aging, he must also consider the sessors to his media empire. Compared to his eldest daughter who has no interest in the family business and his two young sons who are ipetent, Elisabeth is undoubtedly the most capable. During her school days, she had managed to sessfully establish a small local cable TV station. It''s just that she is both stubborn and prideful, and she tends to rebel against his decisions. Seeing his daughter greet Eric lightly and pulling away his girlfriend, Murdoch said to Eric, "Sorry, Eric, Liz is still a little ignorant. Let''s go inside." "Its no problem, Mr. Murdoch. In fact, I like Miss Elisabeth''s frank character." Eric replied politely, and the three of them walked inside the mansion where the party was held. More than twenty guests had already arrived in the vi, and as time went on, more people arrived. In addition to the actors and creative team of Friends, Fox invited many Hollywood stars to join in. Although Eric has avoided Murdoch over the past few days, it is impossible for thetter to mention the topic of Friends'' broadcasting rights right away, so he chatted with Eric casually. Then, after telling him to enjoy the party, Murdoch and Barry Diller went to entertain other guests. After the two left, Eric looked around the crowd, and quickly found Jennifer, but he couldnt help having goosebumps. Elisabeth had definitely done this on purpose. Jennifer was among a group of women who seemed to be talking andughing together. The group included Julia Roberts, Brooke Shields, Gabrielle Anwar and Nicole Kidman. Taking a closer look, Oh My God! Even Drew?! Isn''t that little fox supposed to be in boarding school? Realizing the situation, Eric immediately turned around, intending to stay far away, but Nicole, who was facing him, saw him. The young woman was wearing a ck pencil skirt with high heels when she appeared beside Eric who was hiding in the crowd. "Good evening, Eric," she approached Eric and stood around a foot away from him as she gently raised the ss of red wine in her hand. It is said that the distance between intimate people is usually less than 1.5 feet while the people standing more than 1.5 feet apart are usually nothing more than friends. Nicole was likely unaware of this theory. Standing so close to Eric was probably an unconscious act on her part. Sure enough, several people standing nearby involuntarily nced at them. Of course, even Eric was unaware of the 1.5 feet theory, but he instinctively felt ufortable, and took a small step back subconsciously before asking, "Nicole, why are you here?" Nicole noticed Eric taking a small step back and looked at him with a hint of resentment, but she didnt move closer to him as she exined, "I am Australian." Eric unconsciously thought of the Australian Gang in Hollywood from his memory. It is said that the Australian Gang is the most united circle in Hollywood. However, it is currently the end of the ''80s and the Australian Gang has no presence yet. Main representatives of the Australian Gang such as Hugh Jackman, Russell Crowe, Cate nchett and Nicole standing in front of him are still unknown actors. Thus, he can be sure that Nicole''s presence here has nothing to do with her being an Australian like Murdoch. Although she didnt tell him the truth, Eric had a few guesses. He thought back to Gabrielle misrepresenting her rtionship with him which allowed her to livefortably in Hollywood and even get the role of an important supporting actress despite being a neer. Naturally, Nicole, who is going to be the heroine of his next movie, coupled with her scheming means that go far beyond Gabrielle, could easily pull a simr scheme. Although she has yet to make a movie in Hollywood, she is already livingfortably. After understanding this, Eric didn''t care to think about it anymore. He didn''t care what tricks Nicole used, as long as she acted sensibly in public. "Nicole, what were you... talking about?" Eric asked as he pointed at the ce where the girls had gathered together. She chuckled lightly and replied with a hint of ridicule, "Don''t worry, Eric, no one mentioned Miss Aniston''s dress. We talked a bit, um, about Friends since it''s the theme for tonight. Also, you; Miss Murdoch pays much attention to you." After speaking thest sentence, Nicole winked mischievously. Eric took a sip of red wine to cover up the embarrassment on his face before asking, "Anything else?" "Nope," Nicole shook his head, and then whispered in a charming voice, "However, you won''t be able to sleep in someone''s bed tonight. Do you want toe to mine?" "You are really unkind," Eric replied with a wry smile. Jennifer tends to get easily upset regarding his scandals. Since so many women with whom he has had a close rtionship appeared tonight in front of her, she must be very upset in her heart. If he dared to leave her to spend the night with other women tonight, then there would definitely be a storm the next day. "Really, do you think I''m a bad woman?" Nicole looked at Eric, dissatisfied. If he hadn''t caught the gleam in her eyes, Eric would''ve really thought that she had said that sentence without any ulterior intentions. "Do me a favor, Nicole," Eric thought for a while and said. Seeing her showing a look of interest, Eric continued, " Look after Jenny for me. She is pure-hearted; you could surely make her happy easily." "Hmph!" Nicole coquettishly snorted and protested, "I won''t." Eric nced at her and said solemnly, "Drew is also there. Go and make sure the two of them don''t cause trouble." Eric has a lingering fear of Drew and Jennifer fighting. Both girls use an ancient method of fighting. Inyman''s terms, they scratch each other with their sharp nails. If they scratch each other''s faces, he will be the one to suffer. Nicole had stayed in Erics vi for a long time and knew Drew''s entric and psychotic personality very well. If she really lost her mind and attacked Jennifer, no one would be able to stop her. Thinking of the two girls, Nicole had a bitter look on her face and faintly pleaded, "This is too difficult, Eric." Eric took a sip of his red wine casually, but his tone was t and unquestionable as he said, "Go on. If the two of them quarrel tonight, you won''t have to worry about being in Sleepless in Seattle." Nicole could tell that he was not joking. She sighed regretfully and cursed herself for digging her own grave by approaching Eric. Still, she no longer dared to argue with him as she turned around and walked away quickly. Chapter 212: Honey Trap

Chapter 212: Honey Trap

"Mr. Williams, you are so arrogant," said Elisabeth who appeared beside Eric as soon as Nicole left. Eric turned to look at her, shrugged, and replied, "This is just a small punishment for a woman who likes to y tricks. So, Liz, this oue teaches us that it''s better to be honest. I''m really sad that you have been speaking to me in such a distant tone. Have you forgotten the good time we had together in Venice?" Elisabeths face turned slightly red, but she smirked and said provocatively, "Ha, do you want to punish me as well, Mr Williams?" Eric held his chin as if he was contemting something before he replied, "Perhaps, I could ask for a better offer for giving Friends to Fox, and then tell Mr. Murdoch that this was due to Miss Elisabeth''s indifference towards me." Elisabeth suddenly frowned in anger at Eric and angrily stomped her foot on the floor. Her father had told her that if she annoyed Eric he would block her credit card again. In fact, if Eric really did as he said, her fathers anger would result in a lot more than just blocking her credit card. The more she thought about it, the more angry and aggrieved she felt. Elisabeth finally gritted her teeth and barked, "Eric Williams, you are such a bastard." Of course, Eric had only been joking, but he didn''t expect that she would react in such a manner. He quickly exined, "Liz, don''t be angry! I''m just joking." Elisabeth had wanted to turn around and leave, but her feet did not move as if they were stuck. Her angry expression didn''t ease much despite Eric''s exnation as she said, coldly, "Mr. Williams, my father asked me toe and invite you to talk. I don''t know if you are free?" "Of course, you... will take me there?" Elisabeth nodded slightly before she turned around and walked up the stairs. Eric followed swiftly. *** Elisabeth knocked on the door to a room on the second floor and pushed it open without waiting for a response before making an inviting gesture to Eric. Entering the room, Eric nced around. This is a simple reception room with a row of bookshelves, a few sets of couches, and a coffee table in the middle. Only old Murdoch was in the room. Not even Barry Diller was present. "Eric,e sit down." Seeing Eric walk in, Murdoch quickly stood up, smiled and motioned for him to sit down on the couch opposite him before he said to Elisabeth, "Liz, make a cup of coffee for Eric." Elisabeth nodded and walked to the side quietly. Eric saw Murdoch looking at his daughter, who was making coffee, with a smile, and followed his gaze on her. The red one-shoulder dress she was wearing highlighted her slender figure. "Eric, you are 19 years old, right?" Murdoch asked suddenly. Eric nodded. His new bodys birthday is May 16th in the Gregorian calendar. Speaking of it, his 19th birthday passed during the intense filming of Running Out of Time, so there was no party, just dinner with a few people close to him. "Liz is actually only two years older than you. I still remember how Liz was when she was a child. Unfortunately, I have been too busy and havent had many opportunities to spend time with my children. Liz is a grown woman, but her personality is still like a child." "Dad, how am I like a child?" Elisabeth turned her head and asked, dissatisfied. She handed the two cups of coffee to Eric and Murdoch, and then sat down beside her father. She wanted to leave, but old Murdoch had warned her severely before. Although Elisabeth sometimes liked to rebel against her father, she dared not disobey him when he was truly serious. Old Murdoch chuckled before he said to Eric, "Look, she''s so impulsive, just like a child." Eric also chuckled lightly, however, he had be clear of the old man''s thoughts. Eric had no intention of marrying Elisabeth since he had never nned to give up the forest for a single tree. Unexpectedly, after Murdoch spoke, he changed the topic again and asked, "Eric, Sleepless in Seattle''s production is going to start soon, right?" Eric quickly replied, "Yes, it will start within a week at thetest. It''s currently September, but I n to finish both Sleepless in Seattle and the sequel to Home Alone together. Since the time is very tight, the filming and post production of the two films will happen simultaneously." Murdoch asked with a hint of fascination, "I do have some understanding regarding film production, but I believe it''s very rare to be able to make films as fast as you, so I am very curious about how you make films." Eric chuckled and said readily, "If possible, Mr. Murdoch, youre wee to visit the set." "That''s highly unlikely to happen," Murdoch replied while shaking his head in regret, "I''m too busy for that, but, Eric, what do you think of Liz?" "Hmm...huh?" Eric looked confused and thought inwardly, ''Why did he turn to her again?'' Murdoch exined, "Liz''s college courses have beenpleted, and now she just needs toplete an internship. You must know the major Liz pursued. How about letting her be an assistant director for Sleepless in Seattle, so that she can experience working with an outstanding director such as yourself." Eric suddenly had an urge to curse out Murdoch''s mother. It turned out that the old man had been waiting to trap him verbally. Elisabeth, sitting next to Murdoch, had her head lowered and gently fiddled with her fingers, like a good daughter who allowed her father to make the decisions. "Mr. Murdoch, the crew is going to run around New York, Seattle and Chicago... Being an assistant director is very tedious and boring. Elisabeth won''t be able bear it." Maybe because she had been feeling triumphant, Elisabeth immediately raised her head and retorted to Eric, dissatisfied, "Do you look down on women?" "Umm..." Old Murdoch saw Eric being left speechless by his daughter and immediately burst intoughter, "Alright it''s decided." Eric wanted to refute again, but Murdoch did not give him the chance as he patted his daughter on the shoulder and said, "Liz, you go out. I have to talk with Eric about something, alone." Elisabeth nodded and gave Eric a derisive look before turning to leave. Chapter 213: Negotiations (part 1)

Chapter 213: Negotiations (part 1)

After Elisabeth closed the door, Murdoch picked up the pot of coffee and refilled his cup before asking Eric if he wanted any through a gesture. Eric shook his head and replied, "Drinking too much coffee at night is not a good habit." Murdoch chuckled and said, "You youngsters have it easy. At my age, you have to drink a lot of coffee to have the energy to function." "Exercise is actually a healthier way of remaining energetic." Murdoch shrugged and changed the topic as he said, "Eric, your first film was with Fox. Wouldn''t you say the cooperation between us has always been very pleasant?" Eric shrugged and replied, "Of course, even I didn''t expect that 17 Again''s box office would cross $100 million." His reply seemed simple but he had indirectly stated that there was no use in attempting to leverage their previous rtionship to influence his decision. While it was true that he was able to enter Hollywood thanks to Fox producing 17 Again, he didn''t owe them anything. 17 Again not only brought Fox tens of millions of dors in box office profits, the subsequent profits from the sales of video tapes and TV broadcasting rights resulted in a total profit of more than $100 million for Fox. However, he only got $1 million from the movie. In fact, Eric felt like Fox had robbed him. Despite the sess of 17 Again, he never received a bonus which was standard practice in case of hit projects. Eric believed that this was likely due to Fox missing the distribution rights to Home Alone. Although Fox had been the one to refuse the distribution rights, after Home Alone was released and became a blockbuster hit, he likely became the target of their anger. Murdoch had only mentioned the topic to make Eric feel closer to him. However, he ended up feeling embarrassed after Eric indirectly berated hispany''s past behavior. "Eric, I heard that other TV stations have contacted you?" Over the past few days, news of contact between the representatives of the three major TV stations and Eric had been flooding the newspapers. Even the reputed Los Angeles Times and New York Times had published a few articles on the topic with deep analysis. Like most newspapers, they concluded that the odds of Fox being able to retain the broadcasting rights of future seasons of Friends were slim. "Yes, the terms they offered are very sincere." Murdoch took a sip of his coffee to hide his irritation. He had realized that the young man in front of him was no fool. If he continued to talk in circles with him, he would be the one in a disadvantageous position. Putting down his coffee cup, Murdoch decided to cut to the chase and said, "Eric, here''s my offer: Fox will give Firefly 70% of the advertising revenue, in exchange for the broadcasting rights of the future four seasons of Friends." Murdoch was sure that as long as it obtained the broadcasting rights of the first five seasons of Friends, Fox TV would gain a foothold in North America by the time their contract ended. After five seasons, Fox would have the confidence to renegotiate the contract with Firefly to obtain a higher share of the advertising revenue. Eric raised his head and stared at Murdoch as he asked, "Mr. Murdoch, is this Fox showing its sincerity?" Murdoch asked,"Does this not reflect Fox''s sincerity?" Eric immediately shook his head in response. If this were a normal situation, such an offer would indeed be considered to be very sincere. The TV industry is different from the film industry because TV stations are not heavily restricted by anti-monopolyws. In fact, mostrge TV stations have productionpanies that are owned by amon parentpany to circumvent thews regarding TV stations being restricted from producing their own TV shows. Therefore, TV stations have always been very dominant against independent TV producers such that they usually directly buyout the broadcasting rights from the producers. Only giants such as Warner Bros. could obtain a share of the advertising revenue, but even their share capped at 40%. However, the situation with Friends was anything but normal. For Fox TV, which was currently in its infancy, the super-high ratings brought by Friends was only secondary. Their primary gain would be being able to use Friends to help Fox TV rapidly increase in poprity and gain market share. "Mr. Murdoch, before Friends, the average viewership of Fox TV was only a few million, which is less than one-tenth of the number of fixed TV viewers in North America. Thanks to its super-high ratings of over 20 million, even after this season is over, Friends can increase the average number of Fox TV viewers to at least over 10 million. Compared to this, doesn''t your offer seem grossly insincere?" Murdoch firmly gazed at Eric as he said, "Eric, you should know, the share I offered you is more than twice what even the best producers can get." Despite being under the gaze of the veteran media tycoon, Eric did not show any weakness. Instead, he smiled and said, "Mr. Murdoch, I believe you must have conducted some investigations. You must be aware that the offer made by the three major TV stations is not much lower than yours. I had someone make some calctions which showed that if Friends is broadcast on any one of the three major TV stations, its advertising revenue will increase by more than 10%. And thanks to this 10% increase, their offer will actually be worth more than your offer. If I choose to work with them, instead of Fox, I will definitely obtain more benefits." After Eric finished speaking, he lowered his head and took a sip of his coffee without looking at Murdoch''s expression. He was sure that the so-called 70% of the advertisement revenue was just Murdoch getting a feel of him. Feeling the delicate white porcin in his hand, Eric noticed that there was a pale green nt painted on the ceramic coffee cup, almost like an ink painting. Seeing this, Eric suddenly had the urge to turn the cup upside down to see if the words "Made in China" were engraved on the bottom. However, just as quickly, he ended up smiling at his thoughts. This sudden smile by Eric left Murdoch confused, but his face also rxed thanks to Eric''s smile. "Eric, let''s talk about your terms. What can Fox do to get the broadcasting rights to the following seasons of Friends?" Chapter 214: Negotiations (part 2)

Chapter 214: Negotiations (part 2)

In response to Murdoch''s statement, Eric gently put down the coffee cup in his hand and raised his head as he said, "Mr. Murdoch, first, you must know something about me: I am a very stubborn person. My terms will be very strict andck any form of concession for Fox which you, ultimately, won''t ept and the negotiations wille to a standstill. Therefore, you should be the one to make the offer. If you show some sincerity and your offer satisfies me, I will ept it. After all, I''m not an overtly greedy person." Murdoch slightly nodded and, after a few moments of consideration, he said, "Eric, Fox and Firefly have always had very pleasant cooperation, so how about this: Firefly will obtain 5% of Fox Film''s equity in exchange for giving 5% of its equity to Fox. Presumably, you must be aware of Fox''s market value. Through this transaction, Firefly will greatly profit. This will also allow our two filmpanies to cooperate more closely in the future. In addition to this, my previous offer of 70% advertising share for the broadcasting rights to the subsequent four seasons of Friends will remain unchanged. What do you think of this?" Hearing Murdoch''s offer, Eric was pleasantly surprised for a few seconds. Murdoch had stated very clearly that Firefly would be exchanging shares with Fox Films, not Fox TV Network. Perhaps ayman would think that these twopanies are the same, but Eric is very clear about the differences between them. Although they are both run by Barry Diller, Fox Films and Fox TV Network are two entirely separate entities. The market value of Fox Films is currently around $2 billion, so 5% of its shares are worth $100 million. Indeed, 5% of Fireflys shares are not worth that much at the moment. Based on the price at the time of its merger with New Line, the market value of Firefly is only about $600 million. If it''s calcted like this, if Firefly agrees to exchange equity with Fox, it will make a profit of more than $70 million. But, this matter is not as simple as it may seem on the surface. After Firefly and New Line merged, everyone in Hollywood understood that if Eric''s momentum of producing hit movies was maintained, the new Firefly had the potential to stand as equals with Hollywood''s Big Six within just a few years. Correspondingly, its market value would also skyrocket, perhaps going even beyond Fox. Eric was very confident that if everything went well, this would take less than five years. Previously, he paid 15% of Firefly''s equity and arge sum of money to acquire New Line. He was willing to do this because this made up for the shorings in Firefly''s limited distribution capabilities and greatly hastened its development. 5% of the equity is enough for one to have a certain say among the board of directors. After swapping equity with Fox, Eric would not only gain little to no benefit, he would instead be held back. Not to mention... The corner of Eric''s mouth twitched slightly before he leaned forward and asked, "Mr. Murdoch, how much do you think Fox Films will make this year?" Murdoch''s heartbeat suddenly quickened, and he wondered whether he had been seen through by the young boy sitting opposite him. However, Murdoch still maintained his poker face as he shook his head and replied, "I''m not very well aware of this. I won''t know until the year-end financial report is released." Eric sneered and said, "Mr. Murdoch, I can do a little calction for you. Because Mr. Barry Diller has been focused on Fox TV Network, Fox Films itself has not produced many movies. In fact, there has not even been a single big production with a high box office potential. This year, Fox''s main features are all my movies: Pretty Woman, Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2. Pretty Woman has earned 210 million in North America and 530 million worldwide. After removing the distribution costs, Fox can make a profit of at least $70 million. In addition, I personally think that my two remaining films, Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2 will earn at least $100 million in profit for Fox. Not to mention, the profit from the other films distributed by Fox, sales of video tapes and other peripheral sales. Hahaha, this will likely be a good year for Fox, maybe it could have an annual profit of $300 million this year, almost twice that of any ordinary year." Hearing Eric''s analysis, Murdoch naturally felt happy. If Eric''s analysis was correct, Fox will definitely rank first among the Big Six. Even Warner, which made a fortune this year thanks to Batman may not have such a high annual profit. After the year-end financial reportes out, Fox''s market value will greatly increase. However, after his pleasant surprise faded, Murdoch realized that his scheme had likely been through, but he still asked in mock confusion, "Eric, isn''t this great?" "Of course it''s great," Eric replied before he continued, "Alright, let''s calcte Firefly''s profit this year." "Pretty Woman, $105 million; Running Out of Time, ording to the current box office trend, its global box office will reach about $500 million, meaning Firefly can make around $100 million. By this year''s end, Firefly can get at least $100 million in profit from Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2, like Fox. Don''t forget, we''re releasing three other movies around the end of the year. I am very optimistic about all the three of them, but even if the threebined can only earn us $100 million, Firefly will still make $400 million this year. If both of ourpanies give dividends, ording to the 5% of equity exchanged, Fox will get $20 million, but Firefly will only get $15 million. After he finished speaking, Eric sat back with a frosty look on his, but his heart was burning up with anger. After Murdoch proposed the equity exchange, initially, Eric was a bit tempted because of the $70 million difference in stock value, but after some analysis, he realized that this "generous offer" was another pit dug up by the old bastard to swindle him. Equity exchange between Fox and Firefly and Fox''s acquisition of the broadcasting rights for the first five seasons of Friends were two entirely separate matters, but Murdoch cleverlybined them together and gave Eric an illusion of Fox being very sincere. However, if Eric really went through with the equity swap, he may not benefit at all. Instead, because of the profit gap, he will have to pay Fox a handsome dividend every year. In addition, the transaction would likely have a long sale restriction period. By the time the sale restriction period ends, the market value of Firefly and Fox might be almost the same. Moreover, Fox will definitely have a priority to reim its equity. Even if Eric does sell the equity, in the end, Fox will own Firefly''s equity and dictate the affairs of Firefly, but Firefly won''t be able to interfere with Fox at all. Another hidden danger is that after the equity swap, the interests of Firefly and Fox will be tied together. Even if he is unwilling, Eric will have to give preference to cooperating with Fox. This is likely the main purpose of Murdoch''s desire to swap equity with Firefly. If Eric had been a naive and impulsive young man, like others his age, he would have likely lost his cool when he figured out Murdoch''s scheme, and shouted in anger, "You cheat, I''ll never work with you." To be honest, Eric did have a slight impulse to do exactly that, possibly due to some remaining influence on him by the original owner of his body. However, his body was still under the control of the soul of an experienced middle-aged man who had been through years of struggle. In addition, due to having the unique experience of reincarnation, Eric has be rtively indifferent to other people, unless they n to harm his interests. Naturally, Eric was quite angry at Murdoch for attempting to swindle him, but he replied, indifferently, "Mr. Murdoch, maybe Fox doesn''t want to show any sincerity at all, in that case..." Murdoch wryly smiled and replied, "Eric, listen to me. How about we..." "No," Eric immediately interrupted Murdoch. He wasn''t sure if there were any deep pits hidden in the old man''s new offer, nor did he care to find out. He quickly said, "Let me make my terms clear. I''m not interested in Fox Films'' equity, but since our discussion today is about Friends, let''s talk about Fox TV Network. I want the equity of Fox TV Network. If you want the broadcasting rights for the following seasons of Friends, I want 10% equity at the price of 80% of Fox TV Network''s market value before Friends aired." Murdoch was taken aback by Eric''s outrageous terms. Although he was called a media tycoon, he actually owned just a little over 30% of News Corporation, and News Corporation only owned about 80% of Fox TV Network, meaning his family''s share of Fox TV Network was only around 24%. If he agreed to Eric''s terms, Firefly would be the secondrgest shareholder of Fox TV Network, second only to his family. In case a conflict arises between him and Eric in the future, Eric would be able to seize control of Fox TV Network so long as he obtained the support of other shareholders. Murdoch had painstakingly created Fox TV Network to enter the North American market. It was impossible for him to agree to Eric''s terms. To be honest, Eric''s original n had been to get around 5% of Fox TV Network''s equity. Fox TV Network''s market value is currently just under $1 billion, far less than the three major TVworks that are worth between $4-5 billion. But Eric knew that in just a decade, Fox TV would be an equal of the three major TVworks, reaching more than $30 billion in market value. Currently, he only needed to invest less than $50 million. Within a decade, his 5% equity would be worth more than $1.5 billion. In addition,pared to filmpanies, the performance and profitability of TVworks is far more stable. In the future, he could get tens of millions of dors as dividends from the annual profit of Fox TV Network. Chapter 215: One Minute

Chapter 215: One Minute

Murdoch stared at Eric as if he had spoken nonsense before he frowned and replied in a deep voice, "Eric, you should know that 10% equity is impossible. Even if I agree, the board of directors will never agree." Eric didn''t seem to feel the pressure behind Murdoch''s frown as he softly replied, "Mr. Murdoch, although you don''t have a 51% controlling stake, the whole world knows that News Corp belongs to Rupert Murdoch. I believe you could easily decide on this matter, so don''t use the board of directors to fool me, alright?" "Then, I will tell you explicitly, Eric. You should change your terms since there is no room for negotiation regarding this." Eric still looked rxed with even his right foot on his knee, but his tone became more and more aggressive and strong, "Mr. Murdoch, I''ve said before that I am a very stubborn person; once I make a decision, I won''t change it." After his words ended, the reception room seemingly became cold as if due to the tension. The old man and the young man stared at each other, but after a few seconds, Eric took the initiative to look away. He wasn''t cowed by Murdoch nor did he feel guilty for his terms, instead, he felt that it was pointless. What was the point of ring when the victor in a negotiation was the one who had more bargaining chips. And currently, the one with the most important bargaining chip was Eric. After drinking the remaining coffee in his cup, Eric finally flipped over the ceramic cup. Unfortunately, "Made in China" was not engraved on its bottom. After putting the cup back on the table, Eric raised his head and looked at Murdoch. "Eric, let''s talk about this another day. Maybe we should both calm down." Eric was keenly aware why Murdoch wanted to dy the negotiation. During their talk, Eric undoubtedly gained the absolute upper hand. This was the time for him to push Murdoch rather than letting him withdraw. "Mr. Murdoch, my schedule is very tight. After today, I don''t know if I can spare time for the next two months. Moreover, the three major TVworks are still waiting for my reply," Eric replied, however, feeling like it wasn''t enough, he added, "Oh, yeah, ABC has been going through a tough time in recent years and their offer was also the highest. They also mentioned that they were willing to pay the liquidated damages to buy the broadcasting rights for the remaining episodes of the first season of Friends. To be honest, I am very satisfied with their offer. After all, during the first season of Friends, Firefly can only get 40% of the advertising revenue due to our contract with Fox, but if Friends moves to ABC then the price offered by them is Oops, sorry, that''s a trade secret." This was equivalent to a naked threat. Murdoch even had a momentary urge to pour his coffee on Eric''s face. Of course, his urge was only momentary. Still, he replied angrily, "If you want to breach the contract, then I''ll see you in court. I promise, I''ll sue you for everyst penny." "Mr. Murdoch, do you think that News Corp. canpete with the three major TVworks and the conglomerates behind them? You should be aware that if thiswsuit truly does happen, Fox will undoubtedly lose. Maybe Friends will be suspended until next year, and maybe Firefly will lose a lot, but there is no doubt that Fox will lose a lot more. Without Friends, it''s impossible for Fox to grow in a short time. As a result, the three major TVworks will have joined forces to kick Fox TV out of North America." "If you really do this, Firefly won''t get off easily. Eric, don''t forget that in the major English-speaking countries such as the United Kingdom, Australia, New Zend, and the United States, News Corp. has a strong influence on the media and the general public thanks to our numerous newspapers and TV stations. Even the British government must maintain a good rtionship with News Corp. to maintain their image in the media. I can easily destroy the reputation of every movie produced by Firefly. Not to mention, I can ruin your personal image all over the world. Do you know how many reports about you and numerous actresses have been suppressed from the New York Post? There were a few times when I personally intervened. A reporter from the New York Post had been interested in you six months ago and even followed you for two months, taking many pictures of your private life. The New York Post had originally intended to publish an article about all your deeds, about the actress named Virginia Madsen, about your current girlfriend, about Julia Roberts. Oh, I almost forgot Miss Drew Barrymore. She''s only 14 years old, isn''t she?" After Murdoch finished speaking, he took a sip of the coffee, almost triumphantly, but Eric, who had had his head lowered, slowly raised it up. Murdoch discovered that Eric''s eyes were very cold, almost frosty, but his slightly pale face had an abnormal blush as if he had gone mad. ''Oops!'' Murdoch yelled in his mind. He suddenly realized that Eric was only 19 years old and a young man with immense talent and sess. Thanks to these two qualities, Murdoch deduced that it was far easier for Eric to be enraged and outraged when faced with threatspared to other mediocre young men. If this little bastard went mad and really breached the contract and took Friends away, then even if he mobilized the entire power of News Corp. to destroy his image, News Corp. won''t gain the slightest benefit from it. Eric didn''t seem to notice the change in Murdoch''s expression. He slowly raised his wrist and looked down at his watch before he raised his head to look at Murdoch. "Mr. Murdoch, you have one minute to think about it. Agree to my terms, or don''t. We will both do as we please and see who loses the most in the end. Now, I will start the count." After speaking, Eric once again lowered his head. Murdoch suddenly panicked and thought, ''Has this little guy really lost his mind?!'' "Eric, please don''t act like this. You are already an adult," Murdoch said helplessly, almost pleading. Eric didn''t seem to hear Murdoch''s words as he began quietly counting down to himself, "55 54 53..." Seeing that Eric had ignored him, Murdoch leaned back on his couch. He had decided to see if Eric really dared to follow through with his threat after the countdown ended. He had seen Eric''s information before and knew that this young man had a level of maturity and stability that far surpassed that of his peers. Maybe Eric was momentarily enraged because of his threats, but after a one-minute countdown the bright young man might calm down. "36 35 34..." The countdown continued slowly. Chapter 216: New Condition

Chapter 216: New Condition

Normally, a minute was fleeting for Murdoch. However, this was not the case today. He had originally hoped that the young man sitting in front of him would calm down, but soon, as Eric slowly continued the countdown, Murdoch himself could not calm down. He began to quickly calcte the pros and cons of Eric''s terms. He soon realized that Eric was right. If Fox TV lost Friends, it would miss the best and possibly the only opportunity for it to develop enough to truly be able topete with the three major TVworks. If Friends had been an average si, even if they lost it, Fox TV could continue to remain under the radar and develop silently. However, after Friends'' ratings miracle, the three major TVworks have realized the threat posed by Fox TV Network, and would certainly not allow it to develop further if it loses Friends. Having been in the media industry for decades, Murdoch was ustomed to all kinds of cruel antipetition tactics. When he left Australia and went to the UK to grow hispany, the most difficult period was when hispetitors were unscrupulous. To retaliate against him, an outsider, the existing mediapanies even threatened his family''s personal safety. A group of kidnappers had once mistakenly kidnapped the wife of a manager at News Corp, believing her to be his wife. When they learned that they had kidnapped the wrong person, they killed the poor woman. Whening to the United States, Murdoch had been aware that thepetition in North America would not be much milder than that in the United Kingdom. *** In less than 30 seconds, Murdoch had already had countless thoughts in his mind. Eric, who was sitting opposite him, was still staring at his watch, slowly counting down. "9 8 7 6..." When his countdown reached thest few seconds, Murdoch finally sighed, waved his hand gently, and said, "Alright, Eric, I agree." Eric paused when he heard Murdoch''s words before he slowly raised his head. Naturally, Eric wouldn''t impulsively go through with the threats he had made due to a moment of anger. Although Murdoch made a lot more threats than his single threat to take away Friends, as a mature middle-aged man, he would never be swayed by his emotions while doing business. He had calcted that there was a 70% chance of Murdoch epting his terms because Fox TV Network needed Friends more than anything. Of course, he had also thought of what to do in case Murdoch really refused his terms. He was sure that even if the countdown really ended and he walked away, Murdoch would definitelye to find him. Due to his original n, he never nned to sever Firefly''s cooperation with Fox TV. In case negotiations failed, he had nned to y hard-to-get for a few days before finally agreeing to renegotiate. But if this happened, Fox would definitely be aware of his bottom line and he would never have the opportunity to obtain 10% equity of Fox TV Network. In fact, Murdoch''s attitude after he put forward his terms had made Eric think that he would not be able to obtain 10% equity of Fox TV Network. But after hearing his subtle threat to transfer Friends to ABC, Murdoch used his women to threaten him which gave Eric the perfect excuse to pull off his little countdown act. Wouldn''t a proud and ambitious young man be easily outraged in the face of threats? Since the odds of Murdoch readily epting his terms were originally slim, Eric had taken that gamble. However, unlike Eric, Murdoch did not dare to gamble on the future of Fox TV. He was afraid that Eric wouldpletely cut off negotiations with Fox TV and transfer Friends to ABC TV. In the worst case scenario that such an event took ce, there would be no chance for Fox to get Friends back. Therefore, Eric won the gamble. Although Murdoch agreed, Eric didn''t gloat. He simply picked up the coffee pot in front of him, poured himself a cup of coffee and slowly drank it while waiting for Murdoch to continue. Murdoch was also not a fool. From Eric''s overtly indifferent actions, he quickly realized that he might have just been fooled. Regret! This was Murdoch''s first thought. However, if previously Eric had only pretended to threaten him, if Murdoch reneged on his word now, Eric would truly turn those threats into reality. To think that after more than 30 years of struggling in the media industry, he was actually swindled at the hands of a little boy. How could Murdoch be willing to ept this. Since he couldn''t immediately renege on his words, Murdoch still had to try to recover some of the loss. "Eric, I can give you 10% equity of Fox TV Network, but you should also know that if you had used Friends alone to put forward such terms to the three major TVworks, they would have kicked you immediately. So. Friends alone is not enough. You need, um..." Murdoch pondered for a moment before he said, "You need to provide Fox with two more excellent TV shows. Of course, I know that a show of Friends'' level is very rare, so as long as the average ratings of the two other TV shows can reach 15 million, I promise to transfer the equity to you." Eric almost burst intoughter when he heard this condition. If Murdoch had put forward some other conditions, Eric might''ve been in pickle, but since he had asked for hit TV shows, let alone two, Eric coulde up with 20 from his memory. During his previous life, most subtitling groups were toozy to trante American TV shows with terrible ratings, so usually only hit American TV shows with high ratings flowed into his country. As a result, most of the American TV shows that he had seen had been the most acimed American TV shows. However, Eric quickly noticed a w in Murdoch''s statement. Murdoch was stating that he would not transfer the equity to him until after he provided Fox with two hit TV shows. How could he possibly agree to such a vague promise? He was sure that if he really gave the three TV shows to Fox first, and waited for the ratings toe out, old Murdoch woulde up with some excuses to avoid giving him the equity. In that case, all three TV shows with high ratings would air on Fox, allowing it to obtain a decent fixed audience. Afterwards, what Fox would do to him was obvious. "Mr. Murdoch, I can provide two more shows for Fox, and the ratings will also exceed 15 million because I happen to have a few good ideas. However, I don''t like to y word games. Today is the 8th, and the next episode of Friends will air on the 10th. If Fox TV doesn''t transfer 10% equity to Firefly before tomorrow night, I can''t guarantee what will happen." After Eric finished speaking, he started to get up. If Eric had only said thetter few sentences, maybe Murdoch would let Eric leave. But when he heard Eric''s words about "having a few good ideas," Murdoch became excited. He had asked for the two TV shows with more than 15 million ratings only as a way to renege on his promise. Even among all the North American TVworksbined, there weren''t more than 10 TV shows with average ratings of more than 15 million and most of them were sequels. It was much more difficult for brand-new TV shows to achieve such a result. This was why the pilot Friends having more than 30 million viewers had caused such a sensation. Seeing Eric about to get up, Murdoch waved his hand to stop him and quickly saaid, "Wait, Eric! Why would I y a word game with you? You have to believe that since I have agreed to your terms, I won''t renege on it. So, can we sit down and talk about your... ideas?" ''Like hell you won''t renege on your words!'' Eric sneered as he cursed inwardly. He didn''t want to continue talking with an old fox like Murdoch since he might fall into another one of his traps if he didn''t pay attention. But after hearing Murdoch''s question, Eric decided to briefly exin. "Actually, Mr. Murdoch, I believe that if you want to increase the influence of a TV station, just a few hit TV shows are not enough. I n to create a variety show to give Fox a different type of TV show from Friends. I guarantee that if this variety show is operated well, reaching an average viewership of more than 20 million is not a problem." Murdoch''s heart jumped and quickly asked, "Eric, can you talk about the idea behind ??your variety show?" Eric smiled and shook his head, "Mr. Murdoch, like I said, I hope that I will see a preliminary equity transfer agreement by the 10th. Before that, there is no need to talk about the show." "But if you are not willing to disclose anything, how do I know that what you said is true?" Murdoch asked. Eric lightly rubbed his forehead in annoyance and replied, "Mr. Murdoch, dont forget, you promised to give me the equity of Fox TV in exchange for Friends. As for the other two TV shows, you can only choose to trust me." "Alright, Eric, I can transfer the equity to you, but it must be specified that it''s only for a one-year period. If you can''t provide two TV shows with average ratings of 15 million within one year, you will return 5% of the equity. What do you think?" Eric sneered and replied, "Mr. Murdoch, falsifying ratings is 100 times easier than falsifying a movie''s box office. Do you think I would agree to such a dubious condition?" Chapter 217: Negotiations Concluded

Chapter 217: Negotiations Concluded

Murdoch smiled with "sincerity" and replied, "Eric, everyone knows that Nielsen is responsible for the ratings statistics." "Nielsen is amercial market researchpany. It exists to make money, doesn''t it?" Eric asked in response. Since Nielsen was amercialpany, it could very easily tamper with the ratings statistics, in exchange for a sufficient profit. Murdoch cursed in his heart. Their negotiation today might end up determining who dominates Fox TV Network in the future. How could he be willing to let it go easily? If it weren''t for Eric''s countdown act, Murdoch would never have agreed to his terms. However, he was aware that since he had been defeated in the negotiation and Eric had dodged his following tricks, it is very likely that he would have to pay him the 10% equity as promised. This was because, even until now, he was unaware of Eric''s bottom line. He was still not sure if Eric would be willing to default on their contract and transfer Friends to one of the otherworks. He also didn''t know what exact conditions the three major TVworks had offered Eric. However, conversely, Eric had figured out his bottle line. The moment he epted his terms, Eric knew that even if he had to introduce a new major shareholder to Fox Network, Murdoch would never allow Fox to lose Friends. This alone allowed Eric to upy an absolute advantage during their negotiation. Since it was now irreversible, Murdoch wished to obtain as many benefits as possible. After all, he was someone who always wanted to be in control. Even if Eric''s Firefly was destined to be the secondrgest shareholder of Fox Network, he still regarded Fox as his personal property. Murdoch recalled that Fox had originally wanted to be involved in the production of Friends but were rejected. He realized that Firefly couldn''t be allowed to have the sole copyrights to the two new TV shows. In case, he and Eric have some irreconcble contradictions in the future, it was obvious which side the shareholders would stand on in order to keep Fox from losing the hit shows. After hesitating for a moment, Murdoch softly said, "Alright, Eric, I... agree. We will talk about the specificster. But regarding the two shows you mentioned, since Firefly is about to be a shareholder of Fox, I hope that you can submit the ideas of these two programs to Fox for production." Eric could tell that Murdoch had really agreed this time. He was secretly excited about how many folds this equity would appreciate in the future. Rather than being just a simple stake in Fox Network, this deal signified that his business empire had expanded to a whole new domain. Of course since Murdoch gave him such a positive answer, he also needed to express his sincerity. What Murdoch said previously was actually correct. If Firefly''s wants 10% equity of Fox Network, just Friends alone is far from enough. Although he was somewhat reluctant, Eric replied, "Mr. Murdoch, I can''t hand overplete control of the two shows to Fox. But, I promise that they will be jointly produced by Fox and Firefly and the investment and copyright will be divided equally." Murdoch didn''t expect Eric to hand over the two programs to Fox so easily. His purpose had been to gain some say regarding the production and copyright of the two shows, so that a repeat of the crisis with Friends doesn''t happen. Eric''s proposal was in line with his expectations, so he didn''t have any other conditions. In fact, during their short negotiation, Murdoch had gotten far more exhausted from dealing with Eric rather than the other way around. "In that case, deal." Although there was some wine in the cab next to him, Murdoch didn''t have the energy to fetch it, so he simply raised his coffee cup towards Eric. "Deal." Eric also brought his coffee cup up and lightly touched it with Murdoch''s. The old and the young man faintly smiled at each other, like a pair of old friends, as if the quarrel and threats had been an illusion. They talked about a few more things for another hour before Eric left. *** A gentle wind blew through the corridor. After taking a few deep breaths of fresh air, Eric walked down the stairs and returned to the party hall on the first floor. It was already past nine o''clock and the party was at its climax. Countless men and women shuttled back and forth, and there was a loud buzz in the hall, but it didn''t seem noisy at all. Near the band, a small group of men and women danced together on the dance floor. Eric was about to go find Jennifer when Robert Shaye and Jeffrey, who had been waiting anxiously at the top of the stairs for an hour, found him. "Eric, how did the negotiation go?" Robert asked quickly. Although there was a huge gap in his equitypared to Eric''s, he was the secondrgest shareholder of Firefly. Therefore, the issue of Friends was closely rted to his interests. Although Jeffrey was also very concerned about it, he was not as anxious as Robert. Eric looked a bit gloomy and replied to Robert, "Robert, I have some bad news for you." "Ah," Robert Shaye subconsciously opened his mouth. Eric had already revealed some of his ns to him, so when he heard Eric say this, he felt a little disappointed. Still, he couldn''t help but ask, "Did the negotiation not go well?" Eric shook his head and replied in a gloomy tone, "I mean, Robert, I had originally nned to pay your $60 million from the box office share of Pretty Woman, but now, that money might be used somece else." Robert and Jeffrey suddenly realized that Eric must have won the negotiation but had been ying a prank on them. Pretending to be angry while lighting pping Eric''s shoulders, Robert Shaye smiled and scolded, "Brat, don''t speak in circles. Hurry up and tell the truth." Eric smiled and said, "Murdoch has agreed to give us 10% equity of Fox Network at the price of 80% before the broadcast of Friends. The two middle-aged men stood still, wide-eyed. Robert Shaye obviously wanted Eric''s words to be true, but he instinctively felt that such a thing was impossible. Fox Network is ranked fourth in North America and has been on a bull since the broadcast of Friends. How could Robert Shaye believe that it would give 10% of its equity to them so easily? "Eric, this is not funny. How could Murdoch be willing to give us so much equity?" Jeffrey had known Eric for a long time, and had seen Eric do miraculous things more than once. Therefore, after a brief surprise, Jeffrey had almostpletely believed him but he still asked, "Eric, are you sure you''re not kidding?" Eric took a ss of champagne from a passing waiter and raised it to two people as he dered, "Of course I''m not kidding. We are about to be the secondrgest shareholder of Fox Network." After Eric''s deration, neither Robert nor Jeffrey doubted him any longer. Instead, they were both pleasantly surprised. Robert Shaye was even more excited as he raised his ss of red wine and quickly drank it. Although he personally had only 15% of the 10% equity, as the CEO of Firefly, he could exercise control over its 10% stake in Fox Network. Since his worth had crossed $100 million, Robert Shaye no longer cared too much about money. Instead, he cared more about power. His goal now was to be the head of a movie giant like Michael Eisner. Michael Eisner also didn''t have much equity in Disney, but he still hadplete control over Disney. Of course, there was something that Robert Shaye didn''t realize, or chose to deliberately ignore. Firefly had Eric, but Disney had no such person. After a brief moment of excitement, Eric exined, "Like I was saying, Robert, if you want, Firefly can stille up with $60 million to pay you, but this will cause Firefly''s capital chain to be tense. So, I was wondering if you can wait until the end of the year. Rest assured, beyond the contract payment deadline, I will pay you with interest at the rate used by banks while giving out loans." Robert Shaye smiled and patted Eric''s shoulder as he replied, Of course it''s okay. We''re a family now. I''ve read the financial information. Firefly can''t spend too much money at the end of the year. After all, the rest of our movies will be released at the end of this year, and we will only get the returns on them by mid next year. So, just pay me then." Robert Shaye replied, and immediately added, nonchntly, "Actually, Eric, you don''t have to pay me in cash. Just pay me in Firefly''s equity." Eric smiled, pretending not to have heard Robert Shaye''s words, and turned around casually. After saying a few more words, Robert left, content. But Jeffrey, who noticed Eric''s hint, walked a step behind him and returned to Eric. Chapter 218: Foxs Copyrights

Chapter 218: Fox''s Copyrights

When Robert Shaye left, Eric said to Jeffrey, "Jeffrey, because of this deal, Firefly will have an extra $80 million expenditure this year, and the funds will be very tight. So, at the end of this year, how about you take equity instead of cash for your share as the producer?" Jeffrey was surprised for a few seconds before he smiled and replied, "I don''t have any problem with that, but Eric, are you doing this to dilute Bob''s equity?" "Of course not," Eric chuckled and said, "If I do that, Bob will likely kill me. I will transfer a part of my equity to you. I hope you don''t mind if it''s not a lot." "No, I''ll be fine with whatever you give me," Jeffrey quickly replied before he continued, "If not for me wanting to see Firefly reach the top, I would have retired already. In fact, some time ago, I bought a 2,000 acre farm in Marnd. It was where my wife grew up. Currently, someone else is looking after it for me. When Firefly no longer needs me, I will voluntarily retire, go to that farm to grow corn, hunt, and guard it while I enjoy my twilight years." Hearing his words, Eric couldn''t help but feel a little emotional. If it weren''t for the excellent film crew trained by Jeffrey and his deceased wife, it would be hard to imagine that Firefly could grow so quickly. When Jeffrey finished speaking, Eric pretended to be annoyed and said, "Alright already Jeffrey, you are not Juliet''s Romeo nor the mermaid''s prince, you are just an old fat guy. Stop acting all romantic, alright?" Jeffrey knew that Eric didn''t mean any ill will. The talented young man just wasn''t good at expressing his emotions. Jeffrey chuckled and said, "Of course, I am not any one of the people you mentioned. I am Solina''s Jeffrey." "Ugh, I''m going to throw up." Jeffrey chuckled and replied, bitterly, "But, Eric, if I really leave in the future, don''t forget to visit me at the farm from time to time. You know, I dont have many... rtives." Eric asked, carefully, "You... and your son haven''t reconciled yet?" Jeffrey sorrowfully replied, "We still don''t get along very well. Not to mention, Chris is always busy and I hardly see him, so it''s not surprising that our rtionship is quite strained." Eric was a little curious and asked, "Speaking of it, I have never seen your son. You just said that his name is Chris. What does he do for a living?" "He works on Wall Street." ''Wall Street...'' Eric thought and couldn''t help but ask, "Whichpany on Wall Street?" "Morgan Stanley." "Oh!" Eric couldn''t help but exim. Although he didn''t know a lot about Wall Street, he knew that Morgan Stanley was one of the fourrgest investment banks alongside Merrill Lynch, Goldman Sachs and Citigroup. "I was just thinking about letting him work at Firefly if possible. But since he works at the famous Morgan Stanley, he likely won''t care much for our small filmpany." Hearing Eric''s words, Jeffrey couldn''t help but feel a little proud. Even if his rtionship with his son is distant and strained, any father would be proud of his son''s excellence. "Eric, if you want to invest in the future, you can contact him. Although I am not sure about his specific job, Chris has always been brilliant. When he was at the University of Pennsylvania, he received a full schrship, and I never had to pay a single penny for his tuition." Hearing Jeffrey''s words, many ideas popped into Eric''s mind. However, he quickly suppressed these ideas. He had never even seen Chris Hansen''s face. Of course, he wouldn''t make any decisions based on Jeffrey''s words. Still, he decided to be on the lookout for Chris Hansen. While Eric and Jeffrey were chatting, Barry Diller arrived. Other than Robert Shaye and Jeffrey at Firefly, as the head of Fox TV Network, Barry Diller was the one who paid the most attention to Friends. Barry Diller had originally wanted to wait for Murdoch toe down to ask about the result of the negotiation. However, for unknown reasons, even after Eric had been down for a while, Murdoch never reappeared, so Barry Diller had no other choice than to approach Eric. "Hello, Mr. Hansen, Eric," Barry Diller smiled and greeted Eric and Jeffrey. Jeffrey knew that Barry Diller wanted to speak to Eric so after nodding at him in reply, he graciously said, "Eric, I see an old friend over there. You two talk." After Jeffrey left, Barry Diller didn''t immediately ask about Friends. Instead, he softly asked, "Were you the one who bought the copyright to An Affair to Remember?" Eric knew that it was fruitless to lie to a smart person like Barry Diller, so he simply nodded. "I actually didn''t care much when I saw the document regarding the sale of the copyright of An Affair to Remember, but then I read the script of Sleepless in Seattle," said Barry Diller before he looked at Eric and continued, clearly dissatisfied, "Eric, that waspletely unnecessary. Hasn''t the cooperation between us been very pleasant? If you had asked for it yourself, we might have sold you the copyright for just $1 million, not $3.5 million." Hearing Barry Diller''s words, Eric felt somewhat embarrassed just thinking about the millions of An Affair to Remember video tapes that would sell after the release of Sleepless in Seattle...... He couldn''t imagine what Barry Diller would look like at that time, but the section manager who sold him the copyright of An Affair to Remember would certainly look very miserable. Naturally, Barry Diller didn''t know what Eric was thinking. He believed that Eric was embarrassed because he felt ashamed of going behind his back. He patted Eric on the shoulder and said, "Forget it, this matter is over. Remember, if you need help next time, just ask me, okay?" "Of course, I will," Eric nodded sincerely, and pretended to toast with Barry Diller gratefully. At the same time, Eric made a decision in his heart to remind Drew to purchase all the adaptation rights rted to Fox in the copyright list he gave her before the end of the year. After the release of Sleepless in Seattle at the year''s end, Fox would likely never sell anything to him. Chapter 219: Garden Lights

Chapter 219: Garden Lights

Afterwards, Barry Diller asked about the results of the talks between him and Murdoch. Eric did not hide anything and clearly told Barry Diller that Firefly will soon be a shareholder of Fox TV Network. Barry Diller''s reaction after hearing the results was simr to that of Jeffrey and Robert Shaye. After asking if what Eric said was the truth multiple times, Barry Diller slowly patted Eric on the shoulders and walked away quietly. Eric can understand the reason behind Barry Diller''s sour mood. The Fox TV Network was established in 1986 and has grown into the fourthrgestwork in North America in just four years. To attain this feat, Barry Diller has made great contributions. But even so, Barry Diller only owns less than 5% of Fox TV''s equity. Meanwhile, Eric managed to obtain 10% of Fox TV''s shares with just one TV show. It''s only natural that Barry Diller is unable to reconcile with the unfairness of the situation. However, Eric didn''t feel too bad for Barry Diller. The world has never been fair. Hard work doesn''t always result in an equal amount of gains. After walking through the crowd and speaking briefly to a few people who struck up a conversation with him, Eric finally found Jennifer who was chatting enthusiastically with Nicole. "Jenny, what are you talking about, so happily?" Eric nodded to Nicole and put his arms around Jennifer''s waist before he gently kissed her on the cheek. Eric''s public disy of affection made Jennifer feel a little embarrassed as she shrank her neck and replied, quietly, "We''re talking about girls'' topics. Why do you care?" "Heh, I have always been very interested in girls'' topics, so tell me quickly," Eric teased as he lightly squeezed the sensitive flesh of her waist, causing Jennifer to re at him in annoyance. Nicole smiled as she looked at Eric and Jennifer, feeling a hint of envy, but Eric looked up right then and casuallymanded, "Nicole, I''m a little hungry, can you bring me something to eat?" Maybe it was because she had worked as a maid at Eric''s house for a long time, Nicole nodded habitually. However, she suddenly realized her gaffe and hesitated for a moment before she continued to walk towards a dining table filled with food nearby. Jennifer saw Ericmand Nicole like a servant, so she looked at him, dissatisfied, andined, "Eric, how can you speak to her like that. Hey, Nicole, wait for me! Don''t listen to this guy, let him starve to death." Jennifer yelled as she chased after Nicole. "What an idiot. Eric, dump her as soon as possible. If you ever have children with her, even your genius IQ might be gically neutralized by her empty brain and you might have a retard for a child." Eric turned back to the source of the words and reached his hand out to ruffle Drew''s hair before he joked, "You must have been burning the midnight oil at school. I never thought I would hear you use a scientific word like gics." Drew knew that Eric was being sarcastic, so protested, dissatisfied, "I''m not skipping ss. It''s night right now." Eric reached out and lightly pulled the girl''s tiny ear and asked, "The distance from your school in Pasadena in northeast LA to Malibu in west LA is more than 40 miles. Given the traffic in LA, you wouldn''t be able to get here in less than two hours. So, tell me: If you didn''t skip school, how did you get here?" Drew could only tilt her head slightly because Eric was pulling her ears, but her little mouth continued to defend herself, "What kind of an idiot would drive through the city? Don''t you know that there is such a thing as a highway? From Pasadena to Highway 101 and then to Mulhond Drive, it takes less than an hour... Ouch!! It hurts!" Hearing her excuses, Eric pulled slightly harder and the girl closed her mouth immediately. Soon, her eyes became watery and she looked at Eric beggingly. The people nearby looked at them curiously. Some people who were unsure about Eric and Drew''s rtionship asked the people nearby before they looked at Eric and Drew, ambiguously. Jennifer, who was walking back with a small dinner te with Nicole, saw Eric pulling Drew''s ears, snorted, and said to Nicole, "Nicole, let''s go. Let him starve to death." Nicole hesitated for a second, looked at Eric helplessly and followed Jennifer. Eric was about to continue to teach Drew a few more lessons words when "Heroes of Justice" appeared bravely to criticize Eric for inflicting "child abuse." "Hey, Eric, how can you treat a girl so rudely!" Elisabeth, who came with Julia, removed Eric''s hand and pulled Drew to her side. Drew hid behind Elisabeth and stuck her tongue out at Eric while grinning. Eric didn''t know if Elizabeth was really not sure about the situation or pretending to be stupid, but since someone intervened, he couldn''t continue to teach Drew. "Liz, what''re you here for?" Elisabeth thought Eric would attempt to make excuses, but when she heard his words, she had to say, "Julia is leaving, don''t you want to see her off?" Julia, standing behind Elisabeth, didn''t expect those words and she quickly pulled Elisabeth''s dress. Eric nced at Julia, who avoided his gaze, and realized that this was Elisabeth''s idea, but he still nodded and readily replied, "Okay." After he spoke, he noticed Drew trying to slip away and yelled at her, "Don''t run,e with me." "Julia, it''s not even ten yet, why''re you going back so early?" While walking to the parking lot outside the vi, Eric asked. Julia opened her mouth and hesitantly said, "I uh..." "Julia is feeling slightly under the weather! Why are you embarrassing her?!" Seeing Julia''s embarrassed look, Elisabeth immediately rebuked Eric. Eric smiled bitterly and shook his head. When they got to the parking lot, Eric said, "Julia, can you do me a favor?" "Huh?" Julia looked at Eric, confused. Eric pulled Drew towards him and continued, "Can you let Drew stay at your ce tonight and take her to school tomorrow?" Drew seemed to want to object but seeing the look in Eric''s eyes, she knew that he wouldn''t listen to her excuses, so she reluctantly nodded. She knew that Eric had to take Jennifer home tonight so he wouldn''t be able to take her, as well, since the two girls would definitely end up in a fight. After seeing that Drew got in the car with Julia, Eric spoke a few words to thetter before seeing the two off. After Julia''s car left the gate of the estate, Eric did not return to the vi, but sat down on a bench in a small garden nearby. Elisabeth hesitated for a few seconds before she sat down next to him. Seeing Eric take out a pack of cigarettes from his pocket, Elisabeth habitually wanted to rebuke him for smoking when she realized that they were outside, so she finally didn''t say anything. Eric lit the cigarette and took a deep breath before exhaling a light blue smoke. He then turned his head and asked, "Liz, what''s the matter?" "Are you troubled?" Elisabeth asked instead. Seeing Eric''s confused expression, Elisabeth asked teasingly, "Instead of mingling with your many women, you''re hiding here and smoking." Eric chuckled and replied, "I dont have many women. Besides, women and films are the two major pursuits of my life. I can''t wait to enjoy them. Why would I be upset about it?" This was the first time that Elisabeth had heard Eric speak so straightforwardly. After being left stunned for a few seconds, she rolled her eyes and said, "Your pursuits are really... vulgar." Eric ignored her words and continued to enjoy the cool sea breezete at night under the dim street light while smoking a cigarette. He had thought that Elisabeth Murdoch would eventually leave, but even after he finished smoking the cigarette, she was still sitting next to him, which made Eric feel a little ufortable. Finally, he asked, hesitantly, "Liz, your father forced you to be my assistant director. If you''re unwilling, should I ask Murdoch to forget about it?" "Do you hate me?" Elisabeth asked suddenly. Eric shook his head and quickly replied, "I never hate beautiful women." Hearing Eric''s words, Elisabeth felt her heartbeat speed up, but her mean tongue was still in service as she replied, "You never fail to use your glib tongue, you yboy." Eric turned his head towards her as he leaned back on the bench, unrestrained admiring her beautiful body wrapped in a dress, before he smirked and said, "Then you don''t have to run away." Feeling the aggression within Eric''s eyes, Elisabeth subconsciously wanted to cover her chest, but she suppressed the impulse as she refused to bow down to him and asked, " You narcissist, why should I run away?" Chapter 220: Script Purchase

Chapter 220: Script Purchase

Eric quickly noticed that Elisabeth seemed to be getting embarrassed as her face became rosy, but she seemed to regard their confrontation as a ''battle'' so she stared back, stubbornly. Finally, she asked, "Hey, what are you thinking?" Without looking at her, Eric pointed to the floor-to-ceilingmpshade on thewn nearby, "Thempshade over there is pretty. I''m thinking that I can''t wait for you to leave so that I can remove it from thewn and take it back with me." Elisabeth couldn''t help butugh briefly, before she frowned and sternly looked at Eric, "Don''t even think about it. I''m watching you closely." "That''s a shame," Eric sighed, yet he didnt seem regretful, at all. "Hey, can you not be a child all the time," Elisabeth finally asked, helplessly. Eric threw the used cigarette into the trash can nearby and replied, "Liz, can you just tell me why youre here?" "I..." Elisabeth hesitated, "I wanted to remind you not to forget to pay me a sry." Eric asked, confused, "Huh?" "As your assistant director. Although my father asked me to do it, I don''t want to do it for nothing. I want to be financially independent as soon as possible, so that the old man will stop threatening me with freezing my credit card." Eric smiled, "We both know what you are really going to do as my assistant director, Liz. Your father knows why he made you my assistant director, as well, so please stop making trouble, alright? Although you don''t have many sses left, I suggest you finish school and enjoy yourst year in college. Once you leave, you won''t be able to find that feeling again in life." "You don''t need to worry about my business!" Elisabeth replied, dissatisfied. She added, "I already have my own ns for my future. I n to be a film producer. So, first of all, I have to familiarize myself with the process of film production." He asked with a raised eyebrow, "Oh? What about News Corporation? Weren''t you studying media to inherit your father''s business?" Elisabeth couldn''t help feeling a little sad when she heard Eric''s words. She haltingly replied, "I know that he wants my brothers to take over." "Your father is kind of traditional." Eric truly didn''t expect Murdoch to be so patriarchal. "Sexist is the more apt term," Elizabeth murmured aggrievedly, and then said to Eric again, "Um, there is actually something else." Eric curiously gazed at her. "I have discussed this with Julia. Maybe next year, after I gain some experience, I n to produce my first movie, and she agreed to be the female lead in it." "So?" "So, I mean can you uh sell us a script?" Eric remained silent before he slowly took out a cigarette from his pocket. This time Elisabeth finally couldn''t stand it. She grabbed the cigarette from Eric''s hand and threw it directly into the trash can. She yelled, annoyed, "Hey, dont you realize that smoking in front of ady is rude?" "Okay, okay, I won''t smoke," Eric raised his hands and surrendered, but then he asked, "Forget the script for now. If you want to make a movie, from where will you get the investment? Didn''t you just say that you want financial independence? Even with Julia as the female lead, it wont be that easy to find investors?" "I''ve already thought about it; I will borrow $10 million from my old man to establish a filmpany. The money is enough to make a movie, Julia also agreed to take equity in thepany as her pay for the movie, along with a share of the movie''s profits." Elisabeth exined quickly. Eric thought about it for a moment and understood. This is amon method used by billionaires to avoid high inheritance taxes in order to pass on family wealth. They give their children a sum of money in the name of assisting them in establishing and developing their ownpany. After the childrenspany develops to a certain scale, they would sell it back to their parents at a high price by means of equity swaps. This method can dilute profits on paper and make it possible to pass on wealth to the next generation at a small price. Of course, this method of inheritance also has higher requirements on the abilities of the children. Although Murdoch does not intend to let Elisabeth seed him as the next head of News Corporation, he would certainly not refuse to pass on his wealth to her as her inheritance. While Eric was thinking, Elisabeth interrupted him, "Eric, what are you thinking? Do you agree or not?" Eric looked at her and asked with a smile, "Alright, how much will you bid for my script?" Hearing his words, Elisabeth was left speechless. All of Eric''s personally-written movie scripts have a box office return of no less than $100 million, and almost each one can bring investors no less than $50 million in profits. ording to this standard, his scripts would sell for even more than what Hollywood''s top screenwriters earn. Eric quickly said, "Look, you haven''t thought about anything yet, so let''s forget this matter until you have given it some more thought." He stood up after speaking. Unless Elisabeth was stupid, she would realize that he was rejecting her. In fact, this was not just a question of money. Eric has many scripts in his mind. Even if he gives one to Elisabeth, it wouldn''t matter much to him, but it is a risk he is unable to currently take. Although he has achieved box office sess for several consecutive movies, his strength in Hollywood is still not stable. If he hands out a self-written script to Elisabeth, and he can''t personally ensure the quality of the movie during production and she messes up, it will destroy the aura of infallibility he has established through several consecutive hits. Even though Elisabeth had Julia, it was not enough to convince him that the two girls would seed. "Hey, Eric, wait," Elisabeth quickly stopped Eric. Although she was unaware of Eric''s concerns, after some thought, she decided to forego the n of buying a self-written script from him because she realized that she could simply not afford it, but she was quite clever, and quickly thought of another idea. Elisabeth smiled and asked, "Eric, how about this: I won''t buy a script from you. Instead, Julia and I will choose the script by ourselves. All you need to do is help us check and see if the script has any potential or not, alright?" Chapter 221: Sharp High Heels

Chapter 221: Sharp High Heels

Eric quickly shook his head, "Liz, Im afraid this is not possible. Even if two different sets of producer and director produce a film using the exact same script, the two films will bepletely different due to the differing ideas of the two sets of producers and directors during filming. Even if I say that a script has potential, if the skills of the director you choose are not up to par, the film could still end up being terrible which will ruin my reputation." Elisabeth pulled Eric''s sleeve and hurriedly said, "Then join us. You can be a producer on the film, so that you can personally check the quality of the film." Eric smirked and said, "If I release the news that I n to coborate with anotherpany to produce a film, not to mention smaller studios like Orion, New World and Carolco, even the Big Seven will rush over and ept all of my conditions. So, tell me, why should I work with you?" "You..." Elisabeth gnashed her teeth and cursed, "Youre such a bastard!!" Eric smiled and put one hand on the bench as he leaned down towards Elisabeth and whispered in her ear, "Hey, little girl, since your father doesn''t want you to inherit the family business then stop causing trouble. Instead, you should enjoy your life since you were lucky enough to be born in a rich family. You can rx and find a man to marry in the future." In all the time she had known Eric, he had never shown any particr interest in her. At this time, however, he had suddenly closed the distance between them. He was so close that she could even smell the faint musk emanating from his body. Elisabeth, who had been caught unprepared, was like a deer caught in the headlights as her heartbeat and breathing quickened and her cheeks became flushed. Under the soft lighting of the gardensmps, Elisabeths pretty face looked even more beautiful and amorous as she unknowingly began releasing pheromones and the atmosphere between the two became more sensual. Maybe because he had been infected by this sensual atmosphere, Eric, who had only been nning to joke with Elisabeth, couldn''t help but move his face closer to hers as he sniffed the grant scent emanating from her neck. Finally, his eyes fell on her delicate, cherry-red lips. Elisabeth felt something on her lips, waking her from her stupor. She had never expected that Eric would suddenly kiss her like this, so she opened her eyes wide and wanted to push him away, but she felt an electric sensation throughout her body which left her powerless, unable to even lift a finger. Feeling the girl''s lips quivering like a frightened animal, Eric suddenly regained his senses and became aware of his blunder, but since the damage was already done, he decided to kiss Elisabeths soft and sweet lips for a few more moments before he withdrew. Seeing her lower lip still open due to his intense kiss, Eric reached out and used his index finger to gently push it up as he said, "Sorry, Liz, I didn''t mean it." During the past few seconds, Elisabeth had felt like she had been floating on clouds. First, her eyes became covered by Eric''s face; then, she felt him gently sucking on her lips for more than just a few seconds; finally, she felt the touch of his slightly rough fingertip on her lip. It truly felt like she was in bliss until she heard his words ''Sorry, Liz, I didn''t mean it.'' She thought, ''Oh, he said he didn''t mean it Didn''t mean it...??? He didn''t mean it!!!'' Elisabeth quickly opened her eyes and blinked them a few times, wanting to confirm that she had not heard incorrectly, but of course she had not heard incorrectly. ''How can he say this??!! What an asshole!!!'' Suddenly, the mes in her heart ignited as if someone had set a barrel of oil on fire. Her body which had be soft quickly hardened and her strength quickly returned. She bowed her head before she noticed his foot nearby and instinctively lifted her leg and mmed her sharp high heels down on his foot with all her might. "Oww!" As Erics scream rang in the background, Elisabeth walked away without turning back. Soon, two security guards rushed into the park and noticed Eric sitting on the bench alone with one of his feet ced on the bench. He was massaging foot after he had taken off his shoe and sock. The two guards quickly recognized Eric and rxed as they ced the baton back into the strap on their waist. One of them stepped forward and asked, "Mr. Williams, what happened?" Eric smiled awkwardly as he shook his head and replied, "Nothing, I just identally hit my foot on the bench." The other guard nced at the increasingly-clear ck-green mark on Eric''s foot as he asked with concern, "Mr. Williams, should I call a doctor?" "No, theres no need for that. I will rest my foot for a little while before I return." The guard thought that Eric might not want others to know about his injury, but he also noticed that the injury needed to be treated, so he asked, "Mr. Williams, theres a first aid kit in the guard quarters. Should I bring it?" "Oh, thank you. Ill be in your care," Eric nodded and smiled gratefully at the man. Meanwhile, Elisabeth did not return to the party hall after she left the garden. Instead, she went to her bedroom and took off her evening gown before she entered her bathroom to take a shower. Although she had stepped on Erics foot, her mood had still not calmed down. She paced back and forth within her room, punched her pillow a few times, attempted to do some deep breathing, but nothing helped. Finally, she jumped in her bed and covered her face with a pillow to muffle her screams as she vented her annoyance. After a few screams, she finally became quiet. Then, she picked up the mobile phone ced on the bedside table and dialed a series of numbers. Just after entering Beverly Hills, Julia heard the ringing of her mobile phone and parked the car on the side of the road before pressing the receive button and pushing the mobile phone to her ear. Immediately, Julia heard the aggrieved voice of her friend, "Julia, he kissed me." Julia quickly understood who was the he. Even though Julia always acts submissive in front of Eric due to some psychological reasons, her character has not changed. Hearing her friends words, Julia not only did not get jealous, but, instead,ughed as she had long expected that this would happen one day. She asked, "Liz, didnt you just go to talk to him about the script? How did you end up getting kissed? Also, did he agree?" Elizabeth felt frustrated as she replied, "No." Then, she briefly exined what had happened. Of course, she didnt forget to omit many details. Julia patiently listened to her friends words as she sighed many times and calmed her down before she hung up. Then, she started the car and hit the road again. She looked at the curious Drew from the corner of her eyes and snorted as sheined, "Your little daddy is really abominable. He kissed Liz, but isnt even willing to give us a script." -To be continued- Chapter 222: Drews Ambition

Chapter 222: Drew''s Ambition

Drew heard the term "little daddy" and realized that Julia was referring to Eric. In fact, she seemed to feel envious of Drew due to her being pampered by Eric. To her, it seemed like Drew had him wrapped around her finger, but Drew, herself, was the only one who truly understood Eric''s personality. He wasn''t someone who could be manipted by others. Still, she kept her thoughts to herself. She then asked, "Why do you want to buy a script from Eric?" Julia didn''t hide anything as she readily informed Drew about Elisabeth''s n. Drew''s eyes shed and she asked, "Why didn''t you look for me?" Julia frowned and asked, "Look for you? What does this have to do with you?" Drew smirked and proudly replied, "Let me tell you, Eric likes to brainstorm in his study, so there are many scripts in his study that he thinks are good." Julia opened her mouth in amazement and asked, "You''re not nning on stealing them, are you?" "How is that poss-," Drew subconsciously refuted before she stopped herself and said, "In fact, if I just take an outline, Eric will never know." Julia immediately shook her head and refused, "No, even if Eric doesn''t find out right away, he will definitely find out after the film is released in the future." "That''s true," Drew indifferently shrugged her shoulders. She didn''t believe that Julia wouldn''t be tempted, so she leaned back in her seat and stared outside the window, pretending to look bored while she waited for Julia to speak again. Sure enough, the car continued down the road for a few minutes before Julia finally couldn''t help but hesitantly ask, "Drew, you mean that Eric has a lot of spare... script outlines?" "Yea," Drew nonchntly lightly replied as she continued to stare out the window, a smile slowly started spreading on her face. Julia slowly asked, "Eric pampers you so much, so can''t you ask him to sell us one? Anyways, he... he has so many." During the call, Elisabeth had been so focused on the kiss that she forgot to mention the reason why Eric had refused to sell them a script. As a result, Julia thought that maybe she could ask Drew to persuade him. However, Drew directly broke Julia''s illusions. She said, "Since Eric has rejected Miss Murdoch, he must have a good reason. Even if I try to persuade him, he won''t change his mind." Julia became silent again. It wasn''t that she didn''t want Drew to steal Eric''s script, but that she really didn''t dare. Even though she wasn''t sure how Eric would react after he found out, it certainly wouldn''t be aughing matter. After gauging Julia''s thoughts, Drew said, "In fact, Eric is not the only person in this world who can write scripts." Julia stopped the car at the red light and asked, "What do you mean?" "I mean, we can find a script ourselves, and then I can have Eric read it and see if it has any potential." Drew quickly replied, unaware that her ideas coincided with those of Elisabeth. Julia was keenly listening to Drew, so she grasped a word and asked, "You just said we?" "Yeah," Drew didn''t conceal her purpose and said, "Julia, you see, since Elisabeth Murdoch wants to set up a filmpany, why don''t we all take some equity and work together? You''ll be the female lead, I''ll be in charge of the script and production, and Elisabeth will be in charge of distribution. How about it?" After hearing Drew''s offer, Julia looked surprised. She looked at the young girl sitting beside her who looked 17 or 18, but was actually just 14 years old in a daze. Among the few women who were close to Eric, Julia had the least contact with Drew, so she had been unaware of Drew''s precociousness. Hearing the horn of the car behind her, Julia snapped out of her daze and noticed that the light had turned green. She quickly stepped on the gas pedal and asked, "Will Eric even allow you to do this?" Drew quickly replied, "We don''t need to tell him." "Then... uh what about the money? Where will you get the money to buy thepany''s equity?" Drew immediately took out a VIP card from her purse and waved it in front of Julia as she said, "There''s more than $10 million in this card." Julia was not aware that Eric had given the credit card to Drew to acquire scripts, so when Drew told her about the bnce on the credit card, Julia once again fell into a daze. She even felt that Eric''s favor towards Drew seemed unreasonably high since he even gave a young girl like her so much money. Even though Julia has be one of the top actresses in Hollywood thanks to the outstanding sess of Pretty Woman, due to her career having just started, she has a worth of less than $10 million. Drew realized that her purpose of greatly surprising Julia had been achieved so she put the credit card back in her purse and said, "I don''t want too much equity. Just give me 30%. The two of you can discuss how to divide the remaining 60% yourself. Don''t think too much, you won''t find a better deal than this anywhere. Just the fact that I can let Eric choose the script for us is well worth 30%. After all, if the script you choose is bad, it means that you''re doomed to fail. No matter how hard you tried, you would be doomed to aplish nothing. Moreover, even though Elisabeth Murdoch''s family owns 20th Century Fox which will solve the issue of distribution, during filming, you will definitely encounter a lot of problems. At that time, if Eric knows that I have a stake in thepany, he won''t be able to just stand by and watch right?" Seeing that Julia nodded her head again and again, Drew, who was talking nonstop, realized that this venture was likely dominated by Elisabeth, and Julia likely only joined in due to their friendship. Realizing this, Drew no longer wasted her breath and suggested, "Julia, why don''t you call Elisabeth Murdoch toe over and discuss this matter?" Julia looked at her watch and asked, "Isn''t it toote now?" "Hey, girl, time is money," Drew said, picking up Julia''s mobile phone from the dash and asking, "Tell me her number; I will call her." Julia reluctantly pointed at her bag and said, "The address book is in there." Drew found the address book and began to look through it. After more than an hour, Elisabeth arrived at Julia''s apartment. One thought about going behind Eric''s back while the other thought about giving Eric a big surprise. After talking for a few minutes, Elisabeth and Drew hit it off. The ambitious young woman began to discuss her big ns for the filmpany with the ambitious young girl while they sat next to the small coffee table in the living room of Julia''s apartment. As for Julia, she had gone back to her struggling days as a waitress. ********** Eric was oblivious to the ns of the three women. He waited for the two security guards to bring the first aid kit who helped put the bandage on his foot. After resting for a while, he carefully returned to the party. The pain in his leg made it tough for Eric to stand and he quickly wanted to return home. Thankfully, Friends was still in the process of intense production, so many people had already begun to leave in order not to dy the next day''s work. Eric began looking for Jennifer, intending to return to Beverly Hills together. "I am going with Nicole," said Jennifer while holding the arm of the taller girl beside her. "Also, I don''t want to bother my father, so I n to move out of his house tomorrow. Nicole was also looking for a housemate with whom she could share the rent." Eric was left stunned. He looked at Jennifer before he looked at Nicole, feeling confused as to how these two got along so well. Due to the poprity of Friends, Jennifer had once again be the object of the paparazzi''s pursuit, so she could no longer live in the small Burbank apartment. Due to her pride, she was not willing to move in with Eric, so she had temporarily moved to her father''s house while looking for a safer ce to rent. "What about me?" Eric asked, helplessly. Jennifer hesitated for a few moments upon hearing his words, but she soon raised her chin and said, "I can''t control what you do. I have to shoot tomorrow, so I''m going with Nicole. You can return back to Beverly Hills by yourself." It wasn''t until Jennifer pulled Nicole away and left that Eric began shaking his head while smiling wryly. He had only made Nicole socialize with Jennifer to prevent thetter from fighting with Drew, but he never expected that this would be the oue. He didn''t think that Nicole had done this intentionally since it didn''t benefit her. After a while, he finally understood the cause of the unexpected friendship between the two women. It can only be said that this happened because the status of Jennifer and Nicole are too far apart. Nicole, who wants to retain her role as the female lead in Eric''s new film, did her best to keep Jennifer happy by showering her withpliments. As a result, Jennifer''s strong defense against beautiful young women was easily destroyed and she quickly became very close with Nicole due to having few close friends. Eric decided that since Nicole had no ns to harm Jennifer, he would just let the two of them alone. After experiencing so many things in one night, Eric felt a little tired. He didn''t even have the strength to drive all the way to Beverly Hills, so he went straight to Virginia''s tiny vi nearby for the night. ********** The next morning, Julia got up while feeling slightly groggy, scratched her hair and went into the bathroom to brush her teeth. As she looked at the foamy brush in her mouth, she suddenly realized that there were two more people in her apartment. After quickly freshening up, Julia walked into the living room. The living room had turned into a mess. The bundle of A4 paper she had bought was scattered everywhere with a lot of messy things written and drawn on them. Elizabeth and Drew were still eagerly discussing something with great interest. Julia picked up an A4 paper and looked at it. She didn''t understand what was drawn on it. She casually asked, "Did you two get any sleepst night?" Her voice finally caused the two girls to notice her presence as Drew looked up and said in amazement, "Oh, wow, the sky is bright." Julia rolled her eyes and thought, ''I guess that answers my question.'' Drew deeply yawned and said to Elisabeth, "Liz, this is enough for now. I am going to sleep." After that, she unceremoniously walked into Julia''s bedroom, nning to sleep in Julia''srge bed. Julia didn''t mind, but she recalled something else and asked, "Drew, Eric told me that you had to go to school." "&-#-#[email protected]%-#[email protected]" A few sounds came from within the bedroom, seemingly Drew covered her head with a pillow. Julia looked confused and asked Elisabeth, "What did she say?" Elisabeth quickly wrote something on a piece of paper before she casually replied, "She said she has already taken the day off." Julia looked at the direction of the bedroom before she looked back at Elisabeth and said, surprised, "Wow, that''s amazing. How did you hear her?" "I didn''t; I just guessed." "..." While Julia stood there speechless, Elisabeth picked up a piece of paper and asked, "Julia, look, how about this for the name of our filmpany?" "This is... what does it mean?" Julia looked at the two letters on the paper and asked, "T.G. Films?" "T.G; it means Three Girls," Elisabeth replied. "You... didn''t sleep all night just toe up with this name?" Elisabeth asked, "Of course not, we discussed a lot of things. Drew will take 30% equity, you will also take 30%, and I will take the remaining 40%. Is that fine?" It''s been less than a year since Julia became famous, so her mind was still on acting, not production, so she didn''t have any opposition to Elisabeth''s offer as she readily nodded before she asked, "Well, do you want breakfast?" "No, I''m going to sleep," Elisabeth replied as she stood up and swayed into the bedroom. Julia followed her into the bedroom and saw Elisabeth and Drew sleeping on opposite sides of the bed. She pulled the curtains and covered the two with nkets before she returned to the living room and began to clean up the mess. On this early morning, in this small apartment, the famous T.G. Films was born. -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 223: Impact of Friends

Chapter 223: Impact of Friends

The day after Friends'' sess party, Murdoch couldn''t wait to use News Corp''s vast media empire to release the news that Firefly will obtain a 10% equity in Fox Network, Friends will continue to broadcast on Fox Network, and that Firefly and Fox will continue to closely cooperate in the future. When this news came out, most of the media which had been pessimistic about Fox''s chances of retaining Friends due to the influence of the Big Three immediately changed their stance by 180 and began expressing their optimism about the future prospects of Fox Network. Not to mention the fact that Firefly will work closely with Fox, just the already existing Friends is more than enough for Fox to seize significant market share, create more sophisticated TV shows and cultivate a loyal audience. This will allow Fox to cement its position as the fourthrgestwork in America. In addition, it''s even possible for Fox to overtake one of the Big Three in the future. Thanks to this good news, Fox Network''s original market value of less than $1 billion rose rapidly. After hearing about the imminent deal between Firefly and Fox, the Big Three not only did not give up on Friends, instead they began to contact Eric more frequently. After all, the transfer of thework''s equity won''t bepleted overnight. Among the Big Three, ABC, which had been in a slump since its merger with Capital Cities Communications in 1985, was the most eager and even offered equity simr to Fox. However, Tom Murphy, the Chairman and CEO of ABC, only managed to obtain the board of directors approval to sell 3% equity to Firefly. Even though the value of ABC''s 3% equity is more than twice the value of Fox''s 10% equity, Eric was not interested. He was aware that ABC has been losing money for the past four years and will continue to do so until its acquisition by Disney which means that he will receive no dividends from ABC for the next few years. Therefore, investment in ABC will bear no fruit. In addition, a tiny 3% equity stake is not likely to give Eric arge voice within ABC. As long as one has a little sense, one can see whichwork has a higher potential between the booming Fox and the decrepit ABC. As a result, Eric''s choice is obvious. ********** On the evening of September 10th, under the close attention of the Big Three andughter of the audience, Friends'' second week of broadcast came to an end. Two hourster, Nielsen released the episode''s ratings data. The average viewers for the third and fourth episodes of Friends reached 24.6 million while the highest ratings even reached 29 million. The Big Three also received this data and began to analyze the factors behind the sess of Friends. Finally, they concluded that the reason behind Friends'' high broadcast ratings was that, in addition to its humorous writing, the first two episodes had been directed by Eric. Of course, there have been many film directors who have been involved in the production of TV shows in the past and a few have even personally directed a number of episodes, but those film directors had done that because they didn''t receive work anywhere else. Unless they had no other choice, no film director would stoop so low as direct TV shows since it was considered taboo in Hollywood. Therefore, the publicity gimmick that Eric, a young man who has directed many hit films and has be famous enough to rival Spielberg and Lucas, would personally direct a TV show has aroused a strong curiosity within the audience. They wanted to see the TV show directed by Eric who has performed one box office miracle after another. Eric did not disappoint them as the quality of Friends more than lived up to their expectations. After they understood this, the Big Three rushed to follow suit almost simultaneously. Soon, Steven Spielberg, Francis Copp, George Lucas, Martin Scorsese, Tim Burton and many other bigshot Hollywood directors received extremely generous invitations. The Big Three even stated that they would be willing to pay them millions of dors even if they just put their name in the credits. Although most directors refused mary offers due to their pride, some still capitted. The results were also quite good. A few TV shows with the name of a film director in the credits obtained higher ratings than expected. As a result, it became a trend to invite famous film directors to direct the first two episodes of a TV show. In fact, if a TV showcked a famous film director, it''s reputation would plummet and the audience would feel that the quality of that TV show was likelycking which would, in turn, result in a loss of ratings and this vicious cycle would continue. ********** After Friends'' second weekly broadcast, some people discovered that any news regarding Friends on TV shows of otherworks, besides Fox, had vanished. Even the talk shows that like to discuss the current events in the country and the entertainment industry seem to have never heard of Friends. Obviously, this was deliberately done by the Big Three after Eric refused all of them. However, this "gag order" has not caused any harm to Friends. After all, Fox''s parentpany, News Corp, owns major paper media in all English-speaking countries in the world. It can publicize Friends in paper media or TV media in every corner of the world. Even though the Big Three control most of the TV media in America, they are still pure TVworks as they have not been merged into media conglomerates. Thus, they own few newspapers and magazines. During this era, the word-of-mouth of a TV show was mainly spread through newspapers and magazines. The Big Three, as Fox''spetitors, have not failed to publish some attacks on Friends in newspapers and magazines which they can influence such as pointing out the incessant use ofugh tracks in Friends. However, it didn''t have much of an impact since the more authoritative newspapers have given good reviews for Friends. ********** Eric was sitting in his office reading a piece of news about Friends in the Los Angeles Times. "ording to Nielsen ratings, the second weekly broadcast of Friends has removed the unstable audience. They predict that the average number of viewers of this si will remain at around 22 million, which will undoubtedly make Friends the king of ratings amongst the TV shows this fall. ording to sources, the average advertising revenue of Friends has reached $3 million. Therefore, Friends will bring in more than $70 million in ad revenue each season. Although we are unaware of the exact ad revenue distribution between Firefly and Fox, with the dominant nature of Eric Williams, the ad revenue share obtained by Firefly will definitely be unprecedented in the industry. In addition, just the first round of reruns can bring nearly $30 million in revenue to Firefly. What is even more surprising is that the copyright of Friends is held exclusively by Firefly. Afterwards, the licensing ie from the syndication and the sale of videotapes will bring in at least three times the ad revenue of the original run. All of thises from the less than $5 million investment of Friends. Eric Williams, the young man who has been the center of attention in Hollywood for the past two years, has proven to the world that he can not only shine in the film industry, but also in the TV industry. While writing this article, I suddenly had a thought: Will Eric Williams extend his reach to the music industry next? After all, in all the films he has directed, the soundtracks have always been written by Eric Williams, himself. A Silent Voice during the bus scene between Tom Cruise and Brooke Shields in Running Out of Time had touched many fans. The media even praised Running Out of Time as the most beautiful film of the year thanks to this song. So, I would like to give some advice to the CEOs of the major recordbels. Look at the turmoil within the Big Threeworks and learn from their mistakes. Why not send an invitation to Eric Williams before someone else does?" After reading the article in the Los Angeles Times, Eric fell into deep thought. When he had filmed Pretty Woman and used the song It Must Have Been Love by the pop duo Roxette, he had thought about producing a few songs and entering the music industry. The ''90s was the final glory of the global recording industry. As long as a recordpany had several singers, the profits were no less than those of a sessful filmpany or TV station. In addition, even if the recording industry declines in the future due to the rise of the advent of the inte, the copyrights of songs owned by recordpanies would remain a huge asset that would bring long-term ie, especially in the West where intellectual property protection was taken very strictly. While thinking this, he wrote a few notes on his memo. Eric was about to pick up another newspaper when he received a call from his secretary, "Mr. Williams, Miss Murdoch is here." Soon, Elisabeth Murdoch, wearing a blue and white id shirt and dark jeans with arge dark blue purse on her arm, mmed the door and walked in before rudely sitting down opposite Eric. Then, she stared directly at him without any hesitation as if to say that she was unaffected by Eric''s kiss that night. She nced at the newspaper in Eric''s hand and mocked, "I didn''t think you were so narcissistic. Even secretly hiding in your office to read articles about others praising you." Eric ignored Elisabeth. If he was just a film director, he wouldn''t have to care about anything else and just focus on filming. However, he is also the chairman of a filmpany, so it is necessary for him to remain aware of the industry''s happenings. -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 224: The X-Files

Chapter 224: The X-Files

Putting the newspaper aside, Eric crossed his arms and looked at the woman sitting opposite him. During this era, whether in film and television or in reality, quite a lot of women seem to like to wear shirts. Of course, Eric also prefers women who wear shirts and jeans since it makes women look more mature and gives them a slightly androgynous look. At the very least, he feels that these women look much betterpared to women of the future who only wore odd dresses. Moreover, in Eric''s opinion, a woman in a shirt can also ooze sex appeal, especially when a woman wears arge mens size shirt without anything on the bottom, disying her two bare long legs... Elisabeth noticed Eric staring at her intently and her courage quickly dissipated. She put her arms on the desk and covered her chest before she yelled at Eric, dissatisfied, "Hey, what are you looking at, you bastard?" "Nothing, I was just thinking, are you going to wear this to work?" Although she looks pretty good, the shirt and jeans are obviously not fit as office attire. "Of course, I''m your assistant, not an office girl. Do you want me to wear a skirt and high heels while I run around with you on the set?" Eric realized that she wouldn''t budge, so he shook his head and acquiesced. Anyways, he never expected that she would actually prove helpful since she was essentially Murdoch''s spy. He would just focus on his work and forget about her. Of course, he didn''t n on letting her be privy of hispany''s private affairs. Eric opened the drawer in his desk and began to look through it. Elisabeth smiled triumphantly as if she had defeated Eric. Eric found a document and a pen next to it and gave it to Elisabeth before he said, "This is the contract for your position as my assistant as a crew member of Sleepless in Seattle. There''s one copy for you and one for me." Elisabeth picked up the documents and began to peruse through it, not rushing to sign it. Eric looked at his watch and picked up the newspaper and began to read it, once again. After a while, Elisabeth asked Eric, "Eric, I signed it. What should I do next?" Eric put one copy of the contract back in the drawer and replied, "You can go back now. When the crew leaves for Seattle a few dayster, someone will inform you." "Wha..." Elizabeth opened her mouth slightly and quickly realized that Eric didn''t n to keep her around. She angrily yelled, "How can you do this?! I protest! If you don''t assign work to me, I... I will not leave your office today!" Eric frowned and began to regret agreeing to Murdoch''s request. Just when he was considering how to get rid of her, a knock sounded on his office door and n walked in as he said, "Mr. Williams, the writers have arrived. They''re waiting in the conference room." "Alright, I''ll be there in a moment," Eric replied and waited for n to leave before he said to Elisabeth, "Liz, I really don''t have any work for you here, so you should just go back. Someone will inform you when the timees." "I won''t go. Since I have signed a contract, you should assign some work to me." Eric was starting to feel a little annoyed. Suddenly, he noticed the coffee machine nearby and said, "Since you want to work, go make me a cup of coffee." Elisabeth retorted, "I''m not your servant!" Eric chuckled and said, "This is part of the job of a director''s assistant. If you don''t want to do it, just go home and wait for the crew to inform you." "You..." Elisabeth frowned as she nced at Eric. Finally, she got up and brought Eric a cup of coffee. Eric looked at Elisabeth''s stubborn face and picked up the phone and dialed a few numbers before he said, "n, bring two copies of the confidentiality contract you had signed." Elisabeth''s eyes shed as she remained silent. Soon, n walked in with two copies of a confidentiality contract. Eric picked up the contract and said with a serious look on his face, "This is the confidentiality contract that n signed when he became my assistant. As Mr. Murdoch''s daughter, I believe you''re what its contents entail. If you vite this contract, you will have to pay a huge amount of liquidated damages and you might even go to prison. After you sign it, you will be able to follow me around during the filming of Sleepless in Seattle and temporarily act as my personal assistant to help share some of n''s work." This time, Elisabeth didn''t mess around. She took less than a minute to flip through the over ten-page contract before she quickly signed her name. Eric nodded and said, "Okay,e with me, and, at least while we''re in L.A, don''te to work like this. You should buy some official office attire." "I understand," once again, Elisabeth didn''t retort and quickly followed Eric back to the conference room. ********** There were about eight people sitting in the conference room, six men and two women, all seemingly in theirte-20s or early-30s. These eight people will form the screenwriter team which Eric has created for the new TV series. Fox Network had signed a preliminary letter of intent for equity transfer with Firefly a few days ago, meaning the transaction will bepleted within a month. Therefore, Eric began to work towards fulfilling his promise to Murdoch to prepare a TV show and a variety show before he got started on thest two Firefly films of this year. ording to the n, the variety show will be broadcasted during the spring season of 1990, but since the variety show that Eric intends to produce is rtively simple, it won''t require too much of his time or effort. Meanwhile, the TV show will be broadcasted during the fall season of 1990. This TV show, however, had encountered a small bump. Although it is created by Eric, after learning that the average production cost of each episode might reach up to $2 million, Fox suggested that he should only shoot a pilot for now and then shoot episodes each week if the ratings are good. Eric, however, rejected this suggestion. First, he was very confident in this show, and second, he was worried that considering the theme of the show, week-by-week shooting would lead to a fall in the show''s quality due to the hasty production. Initially, neither side was willing to make concessions. Eric even said that if Fox was unwilling to take the risk, Firefly could invest in the show alone, but this would mean that Firefly would solely own the show''s copyright. This proposal was immediately rejected by Barry Diller. After all, who can guarantee that this new TV show might not turn out to be as popr as Friends? The two sides remained in a stalemate for a few days before Murdoch personally made a decision. He announced that since Eric was so confident, can''t Fox, one of the Big Six, even take such a small risk? After all, despite the huge profits from Friends, Fox will still umte a loss of tens of millions of dors for the year 1989 due to the many failed projects. Therefore, even if the cost is higher, Eric''s project is less likely to fail, so it''s a better choice. After receiving Murdoch''s approval, Eric got back to work. The TV show which Eric had nned to produce was The X-Files which, ording to his memory, was the only hit show, which was not a cartoon or si, produced by Fox during the ''90s. However, the ratings of this show during the first few seasons were not great. In fact, if it weren''t for the die-hard fans, The X-Files, which was extremely popr on streaming in the future, would''ve likely been cancelled after the first season. Even though the style of the first three seasons of the X-Files was very unique, the ratings only started to grow from the fourth season after the show''s unique style was changed. In his opinion, the biggest reason behind the ratings of the first three seasons being low was due to theck of a main storyline. Although there were strange monsters or supernatural events in each episode, theck of a main storyline led to a low audience retention rate. It wasn''t until the show''s screenwriter Chris Carter connected the seemingly random clues revealed throughout the first three seasons in the fourth season that The X-Files turned into aplete sci-fi story. Another reason for the initial unpoprity of The X-Files was due to the sci-fi elements being unpolished and dull. Eric believes that this might be due to Chris Carter not having conceived the entirety of The X-Files'' main storyline at the start. Nevertheless, initially, he had sent an invitation to Chris Carter to be the lead screenwriter of The X-Files. After all, he had been the show''s creator, so he might have some ideas even if he hadn''t yet conceived the entire story. Chris Carter, however, is not a fledgling screenwriter. He is currently working as a screenwriter for Disney. When Eric sent someone to contact him about The X-Files, Chris Carter replied that he was not interested in a science fiction TV show, so he rejected the offer. This event once again allowed Eric to witness the awesome and mysterious power of the butterfly effect. The father of The X-Files stated that he was not interested in creating a science fiction TV show. Needless to say, Eric''s reaction was...very wonderful. ********** After walking inside the conference room, Eric pointed towards the end of therge table to let Elisabeth sit down and walked towards the front of the table. He greeted everyone and had the six men and two women introduce themselves. After the self-introductions, Eric stood up and walked towards therge white board at the front of the room. He picked up a ck marker and wrote a word on the white board: The X-Files. "Ladies and gentlemen, all of you present here are writers who specialize in writing science fiction for movies and TV shows, so you must have realized that I have called you here to write for a sci-fi TV show. The name of this TV show is The X-Files." Under the nine pairs of curious eyes, Eric put down the ck marker in his hand and continued, "Alright, let me first introduce the background of this sci-fi show I have conceived." "The story begins from the origin of life. The universe is sorge that we can''t imagine how far it extends. There are infinite possibilities in this vast universe. During the hundreds of millions since the supernova, across the vast universe, our was certainly not the only one that can produce intelligent life. The Brett star is the origin of this whole story." -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 225: The X-Files (part 2)

Chapter 225: The X-Files (part 2)

"Mr. Williams, what does ''Brett'' mean? Elisabeth, sitting at the end of the table, quickly raised her hand and interrupted Eric. Eric nced at her and asked, "Miss Murdoch, let me first ask you, what is Coruscant in Star Wars or Cybertron in Transformers?" "I don''t know!" Elisabeth bluntly replied. "Then, shut up!" Eric coldly berated. He did not intend to pamper this youngdy. It''s fine if she makes a few jokes in private, but work is work. Her immature behavior had already reached his bottom line. He warned, "If you interrupt me again, I will have you thrown out." Elisabeth instinctively wanted to retort ''you dare?!'' but seeing Eric''s gloomy face, she remained quiet and simply lowered her head. Eric coughed lightly, ignoring the curious gazes of the screenwriters shifting between him and Elizabeth, and said, "Okay, let''s continue." "In the vast universe, a named Brett gave birth to an intelligent species known as the Brett. After hundreds of millions of years of technological umtion, the Brett mastered the technology of space travel, which made them a very powerful force in the universe. However, as time continued, not only did their significantly deteriorate, but the Bretts themselves have almost gone extinct due to long-term natural evolution..." After Eric said this, he noticed that Elisabeth had once again raised her hand, but this time she didn''t interrupt him. She just stared at Eric with a pair of curious eyes. Eric felt more than a little annoyed at being interrupted again. He yelled while gritting his teeth, "What?!" At the same time, he swore in his heart that if Elisabeth asked another stupid question, he would have her thrown out immediately. "Mr. Williams, ording to Darwin''s Theory of Evolution, doesn''t life continue to grow more advanced and more advanced through evolution? Why do you say that the Brett have almost gone extinct due to evolution?" Eric thought for a few moments and replied, "Darwin''s Theory of Evolution covers only a short period of the evolution of a species. What I am referring to is the development trend of species at the gic level. Birth, growth, stagnation, and death; this is an irreversiblew of the universe. It doesn''t matter whether one is a huge gxy or a tiny atom; it is impossible to circumvent thisw. If you read more books, you will find that the genes of a species are not suited to evolution. After a certain amount of time, the gic sequence will begin to decline and disintegrate. Currently, there is a saying within the scientificmunity that the Y-chromosome in humans has begun to degenerate, so perhaps after millions of years, there will be only women on the. Well, that''s if there are any humans still alive on earth." While the writers chuckled, Eric turned to Elisabeth and solemnly warned her, "Okay, Liz, that was yourst question. If you have any more doubts, either remain quiet or leave this room." Without waiting for her reply, Eric said, "Alright, like I was saying, due to their imminent extinction, the Brett have developed a grand alien colonization n for the continuation of species. Through their technology, they have created a very advanced spacecraft, and at the same time they havepressed their vitality into an autonomous ck liquid." Eric quickly wrote the word on the whiteboard and said, "This ck liquid carries the vitality of the Brett species. It is called ''ck oil.''Meanwhile, the spaceship carries the remnants of the Brett and the ck oil and begins its journey through the infinitelyrge universe. When they encounter a suitable for life, they stop. Using the gic blueprint of the Brett within ck oil, they guide the''s life to evolve until the right species appears. Then, the ck oil begins its invasion of this species through infection, and after a series of gic modification, the original species disappears and the new species, the revitalized Brett, appears. Through this process, the Brett have continued to spread their species throughout the universe." As Eric''s exnation progressed, more and more keywords appeared on the whiteboard which became the branches of a tree, and the writers in the room soon became immersed in this novel sci-fi plot conceived by Eric. Even the restless Elisabeth continued to listen with great interest. ********** "...then, time reached 3.7 billion years ago, and the extraterrestrial spacecraft of the Brett species finally reached the Earth. They began to guide the evolution of the species on the earth in the same way. In order to establish a new colony suitable for breeding, the Brett destroyed the new species again and again. 440 million years ago, 85% of the species went extinct; 195 million years ago, 76% of the marine life disappeared; 65 million years ago, the age of the dinosaur came to an end... With the extinction of dinosaurs, mammals began to prosper, and after 3.7 billion years of long waiting, the Brett finally found a species suitable for the ck oil to colonize - Humans!" "In fact, the original humans did not have the advantage of survival in their genome. In order to ensure that humans can prosper, the Brett began to catalyze the development of human civilization. Therefore, humans learned to use tools, creatednguage, learned a variety of skills, and even created different religions. Unbeknownst to them, all of this was done under the influence of the Brett. The final colonial time set by the Brett for ck oil is December 21, 2012. On this day, the hidden ck oil willunch an invasion, destroy mankind and rece it with the Brett - a tiny gray creature." Eric attached a stereotypical alien image on the whiteboard with a ma as he continued, "However, during the Second World War, because of the rise of aerial power, humans finally realized that we are not alone in this vast universe. In 1945, at the end of the Second World War, the US military discovered a sunken spaceship in the Pacific Ocean near Japan. During the secret salvage process, they discovered the ck oil. Next, in 1947, the infamous Roswell incident took ce. The US government not only recovered alien spacecraft but also the body of an alien. Through a series of studies on the data found within the alien spacecraft, they discovered the imminent alien colonization. In order to prevent the colonization by the Brett, the government secretly formed an organization that attempted to develop a weapon against the Brett colonization. Unfortunately, the scientists discovered that the colonization of ck oil was inevitable. Therefore, in order to ensure that they and their family can survive after December 21, 2012, most of the people in the secret organization rebelled against humanity and turned to the Brett. They used the threat of nuclear destruction to force the Brett to ensure that they would be spared after the colonization. This organization is called ''Syndicate''." After writing down the word ''Syndicate'' at the end of the tree, Eric turned around and said, "Alright, from here, the story of our show officially begins. Bill Mulder, the father of our male protagonist, Fox Mulder, was originally a member of Syndicate, but he broke away from them because he resolutely opposed the aliens. However, the aliens kidnapped Bill Mulder''s young daughter Samantha Mulder. Fox Mulder had identally witnessed the kidnapping. When he grew up, through deep hypnosis, he recalled the kidnapping and became sure that it was real. As a result, Fox Mulder began to have a strong curiosity about supernatural phenomena, and never gave up on finding his sister. After graduating from the Department of Psychology at Oxford University, Fox Mulder joined the FBI and soon joined a department which dealt with supernatural phenomena: the X-Files. He worked alone for a few years until he was partnered with Dana Scully and the two began their adventures." Just as Eric finished the show''s background, one of the screenwriters quickly asked, "Mr. Williams, you n to have the protagonists, Fox Mulder and Dana Scully, look for Mulder''s sister and, in the process, discover the existence of the Syndicate and the colonization conspiracy of the Brett and then save the world, right?" ''These American screenwriters have already begun to have thoughts of saving mankind, huh,'' Eric thought with interest before he asked, "You''re Mr. Peter Creeks, right?" The Caucasian man who looked to be just about 30 nodded and replied, "Yes, Mr. Williams, I have been a scriptwriter for Star Trek: The Next Generation." Eric did not look too highly upon this writer for the famous Star Trek series. Even though it was also a sci-fi series, Star Trek and X-Files havepletely different styles. He chuckled and said, "Peter, if that was all that there was to the story, I could''ve finished the script myself. There would''ve been no need for you to sit here." Peter Creeks heard Eric''s words and smiled awkwardly. However, he didn''t dare retort. He was nothingpared to Eric, so he had neither the confidence nor the qualifications to argue against him. Eric continued, "Since the name of the show is The X-Files, the plot will be based around the two protagonists'' investigation of supernatural phenomena while working for the FBI. The style of the show is mainly based around thriller and suspense. So, ording to my n, the first season will have 24 episodes and 24 supernatural events." This time, Peter Creeks asked, "Mr. Williams, in that case, this sci-fi show is actually more like a police drama. Then, what about the Brett species?" Eric smiled and replied, "That''s where you alle in. Your job is to link these 24 seemingly-isted supernatural phenomena with the Brett colonization and the Syndicate''s conspiracy to form a vague yet intrinsically connected storyline like a spider''s web." After Eric finished, he turned around and wrote another word on the whiteboard. He then turned back and said, "ording to this clue, I''vee up with a title for the first stage of the show: the puzzle. This stage mayst for about three seasons. Through their adventures during the first three seasons, Mulder and Scully will collect a series of clues which will serve as pieces of a puzzle. When these seemingly-unrted clues are integrated, the background of the story that I just mentioned will be revealed, and the next stage will begin." -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 226: Precocious Boy

Chapter 226: Precocious Boy

Seeing that the people in the room still looked confused, Eric exined, "In fact, I already have a lot of ideas about this story. After this meeting, you can use it as reference. Also, remember this: Mulder''s ultimate goal is to find clues about his sister''s disappearance and reunite with her. Through deep hypnosis, he bes sure that his sister''s disappearance was rted to aliens, which is why he gravitates towards supernatural phenomena. Each time he encounters such a phenomenon, he records it. Using the skills he developed from his work, Mulder ssifies the potentially useful information and puts together the pieces of the puzzle, eventually forming aplete clue to the Brett colonial conspiracy. You should remember to add a scene where Mulder takes notes in each episode." The plot of ??"the puzzle" is something which Eric hase up with. In the original show, Dana Scully was the one who took notes on the supernatural phenomenon, but there was no special significance behind it. Thus, Eric feels that it is better to have Mulder do it. Moreover, the plot of "the puzzle" can also trigger fans'' curiosity. Such a suspenseful plot has always been popr in TV shows. This time, the writers did not raise any concerns. After all, they were the best sci-fi screenwriters that Fox and Firefly had found. Eric not only gave them the story''s background, but also his own ideas for reference. In this case, if these eight peoplebined can''t write a decent script, they themselves would feel ashamed. After another half-hour discussion, Eric finally concluded, "So, you have two months toe up with a script that will satisfy me. At the end of the year, Firefly and Fox will co-produce samples from the first episode. I hope that you all won''t let the audience down. If you have no other questions, you may leave." After everyone left, Eric whispered about something with n before he quickly put the documents in the folder and looked up to find Elisabeth still sitting at the end of the long table, looking at him curiously. "I am going to C.A.A''s head office. Are youing along?" asked Eric. "Huh?" Elisabeth quickly blinked her eyes and looked at her watch before she replied, "It''s already eleven o''clock; it''s almost time for lunch." Eric coldly replied, "I''ll eat there at noon. If you don''t want toe, you can go home." "I''ming along!" she replied reflexively before she thought, ''Don''t think you can get rid of me'' Thus, Elisabeth followed behind Eric as if she were his tail. After stepping out of the building, she got in the car after Eric. She sat beside Eric and continued to nce at him from time to time, her eyes filled with curiosity. Eric, who had been reading the documents, noticed Elisabeth''s incessant stares and couldn''t help but ask, "Do you have something to say?" "I am just curious, how did youe up with those things? The Brett, Syndicate e.t.c?" Eric put the folder on hisp and turned to look at Elisabeth as he stared straight in her eyes. He replied in a mysterious tone, "Actually, I am a person who came back from the year 2012." "What?" Elisabeth blinked her eyes a few times, unable to respond. Eric lowered his voice and continued, "The things I said about the Brett are true. After December 21, 2012, the ck oilunched an invasion, and 99% of humans were infected. The remnants of humanity formed the Resistance. I am one of them, but the Resistance was too weak. When the Brett were about to destroy the Resistance, we used the Brett''s technology to invent a space shuttle, and myrades sent me to this age, hoping that I could destroy the Syndicate''s conspiracy before the Brettunched their n. However, I am alone. so I can only rely on The X-Files to covertly inform the people about the Brett." "The Brett must have sent a robot called T-800 to chase you, right?" Elisabeth red at Eric and shoved his shoulder before she said, "Don''t think I haven''t seen The Terminator." n and the driver sitting in the front chuckled. Eric shrugged and said, "I told you the truth, but you don''t believe it." Elisabeth rebuked, "You''re obviously talking nonsense." Eric shook his head and went back to reading the documents. After a few minutes, Elisabeth couldnt help but ask, "Hey, why are we going to C.A.A?" Eric was toozy to exin, so he waved his hand and said, "You will know when we get there. Let me read this information and don''t disturb me anymore." Elisabeth snorted in annoyance, but she did not bother Eric again and turned her head to the other side. ********** "Eric!!!" Just as Eric walked into therge reception hall at the C.A.A''s head office, a tiny figure rushed towards him. Eric picked up Stuart Runkle and waved him around in the air once. Then, he put him down and patted the little guy''s head as he smiled and said, "You''ve gotten a lot taller." "You are still the same," replied Stewart. He stood in front of Eric and raised his head as he looked Eric up and down before he said, "Eric, it seems that you will not grow any taller." Eric smiled and yfully patted the little guy''s head as he replied, "Don''t act too smart; an eight-year-old child should behave like an eight-year-old child." Stuart saw that Eric was walking towards his parents, so he shrugged and turned to look at the other people who hade with Eric. Seeing Elisabeth, he quickly walked towards her and said, "Hello!" Elisabeth felt like the little boy seemed familiar when she suddenly realized who he was. She squatted down and patted Stuart''s head as she asked, "You are Kevin from Home Alone, right?" "My name is Stuart Runkle, but you can call me Stu," the little boy introduced himself, pretending to be naive and as he innocently asked, "Miss, you are so beautiful. Can you give me a hug?" "Of course," Elisabeth didn''t think much of it. She just smiled and bent down to hug the little boy. Eric who was greeting Stuart''s parents and his new agent named Brian Kurtzman heard the little guy''s "innocent" request for a hug. He smiled and patted the little guy''s head. Eric chuckled and said, "Stu, don''t trick my girl. I haven''t seen you for half a year, but you''ve be a little wolf." The little guy struggled for a while before he finally escaped Eric''srge hand. He turned around andined, "Eric, you''re so stingy. Even if she''s your girl, it''s just a hug. She won''t lose anything." Eric lightly admonished him, "Wait until you are 18 years old before getting involved in these. For now, act your age." Stuart was about to retort when Mrs. Runkle came over and dragged the little guy away, worried that he might annoy Eric. Meanwhile, Elisabeth, who heard the brief conversation between Eric and Stuart, was left standing in shock as he wondered if Stuart was truly just an eight-year-old child? Soon, Eric walked into a nearby conference room with n, Charlie Runkle and Stuart''s new agent while Elisabeth, Mrs. Runkle and Stuart remained behind. Therge reception hall was quiet. The little guy didn''t seem to care that the meeting in the conference room was rted to him. He ran to a couch and found a Rubik''s cube from his small bag and began to y with it on his own. Feeling a little bored, Elisabeth also walked over and sat down on the couch. She picked up a magazine on the coffee table and randomly began to look through it. Only Mrs. Runkle stood at the door of the conference room with her ear glued to the door. She put her hand on the door handle a few times, but, in the end, she did not push the door open. Still, she continued to pace back and forth outside the conference room. Elisabeth was looking through the magazine when she heard a child-like voice, "What is your name?" She looked up and saw the little boy staring at her as he continued to fiddle with the Rubik''s cube, which was muchrger than his tiny palm, "Are you asking me? You can call me... Liz." "I don''t know you, so I''ll call you Elisabeth," replied the little guy. He continued to stare at her with his clear,rge eyes and casually asked, "Miss Elisabeth, are you Eric''s woman?" Elisabeth quickly replied, "No!" She felt like she should no longer speak to this little boy, but she had to answer his question, so she continued, "I am his assistant." Just as she finished, Elisabeth heard a reply filled with disdain, "Liar." Elisabeth stared at the little boy and asked, "Little boy, what are you saying?" Stuart bluntly replied, "I just think you are a liar." "Me... a liar?" Elisabeth pointed at herself with an incredulous expression on her face. She quickly asked, "Why do you say that I am a liar?" The little guy shrugged as he replied, "Eric didn''t bring you with him to the meeting, indicating that you must be amon secretary which means that your sry will definitely not be high. So, if you are not Eric''s woman, where would you get the money to buy something so expensive like a Chanel bag?" "My family has ten times more money than the bastard!" retorted Elisabeth with a shout,pletely forgetting Stuart''s age. "Oh," answered the little guy as he deliberately paused and said, "I understand." Elisabeth leaned back on the couch and picked up a magazine as she quickly began to turn the pages with the intention to ignore the little boy sitting beside her. However, the little guy didn''t n to let her off so easily. He said, "You like Eric, but he doesn''t like rich girls, so you ran over to be his assistant to spend time with him, right?" When she heard this, Elisabeth immediately changed her mind and yelled, "I don''t like that bastard!" The little guy sighed and muttered, "Such are the words of a guilty woman, even willing to deceive children." "you" The little guy was about to ridicule her again when Mrs. Runkle finally reprimanded him in a sharp voice, "Stu, shut up! Leave that youngdy alone." -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 227: Negotiations

Chapter 227: Negotiations

Upon hearing his mother''s reprimand, Stuart teased Elisabeth by pointing his tongue at her before he returned his attention to the Rubik''s cube in his hand. After calming down, Elisabeth felt annoyed as she realized that she had been teased by an eight-year-old child. She gritted her teeth and squished the magazine in her hand before she suddenly turned her eyes to the closed meeting room. "It''s all that damn bastard''s fault..." she muttered, turning Eric into the target of her annoyance. ********** Sitting inside the conference room, Eric was unaware of the incident which took ce outside. He had his attention on Brian Kurtzman and Charlie Runkle who were sitting across from him. After a momentary silence, Eric asked, "$10 million plus 10% of the North American box office gross? Charlie, is this your will?" It seemed like C.A.A. had not learnt its lesson from their previous encounter with Eric, having made an even more outrageous demand. During the negotiations for Running Out of Time when C.A.A. had represented both Tom Hanks and Tom Cruise, C.A.A. had only tried to obtain a percentage of box office gross profits. Box office gross and box office gross profit might have just a single word difference, but the actual difference could even reach tens of millions of dors. Charlie Runkle avoided Eric''s gaze due to his guilty disappointment. Seeing this, Brian Kurtzman quickly said, "Mr. Williams, Mr. Runkle has appointed me to lead the negotiations. He is just here to listen. If you have any questions, you can ask me directly." "Oh, really?" Eric sneered and asked, "If this negotiation breaks down, Mr. Kurtzman, will you take responsibility for that?" Just as Eric finished his sentence, Charlie Runkle subconsciously looked at the agent with a wary expression. Apparently, he was also aware that their demands were beyond the usual pay system in Hollywood, but he couldn''t tame his greed. On the one hand, he wants his son to get this gold-studded contract. On the other hand, he is aware that if they insist on this contract, the possibility of a breakdown of negotiations is high. Eric noticed the look of wariness in Charlie Runkle''s eyes, and his lips curved up slightly. As long as Stuart''s new agent didn''t haveplete power during the negotiations, he was confident that he could dominate this round of negotiations. Eric didn''t know why C.A.A. had reced Horner Willie, Stuart''s former agent, but he thought it might be due to the recent upheaval in the agency. Still, he didn''t care. He was well aware of Charlie Runkle''s character. He was a mediocre middle-aged man, but he tried to do things beyond his ability and inevitably failed. Thus, Eric knew that Charlie Runkle was the weakest link in this negotiation. Regardless of Brian Kurtzman''s eloquence and skill as an agent, the oue of this negotiation was sealed. Meanwhile, Brian Kurtzman was also inwardly swearing at his client. Prior to Eric''s arrival, he had already discussed with Charlie Runkle that as long as he didn''t intervene, he would win a very generous contract for Stewart. Unfortunately, the Runkle couple remained steadfast in their refusal to give him theplete power of negotiation. Now, Eric had just barely mentioned it, but the ipetent middle-aged man had already exposed their situation to him. Brian Kurtzman was aware that if this continued, they would be left even more passive as the negotiations progressed. "Mr. Runkle, maybe you wait outside," suggested Brian Kurtzman with a smile. He wanted Charlie Runkle to leave before he sabotaged the negotiation any further. Eric acted as if he hadn''t heard the agent''s words. He had no ns to counter the agent''s words, either. There was no need for anymore words since he had already nted a seed of distrust in Charlie Runkle''s heart. Sure enough, even after Charlie Runkle heard the agent''s suggestion, he remained seated and said, "Brian, I''m fine here. You continue to talk. I promise that I won''t interfere." Brian Kurtzman clenched his hand which was on the table, but a smile remained on his face. He turned back to face Eric and said, "Mr. Williams, we are aware that you signed a three-movie distribution deal with Fox, which includes the sequel to Home Alone, so I don''t think that Fox will allow these negotiations to break down." "Then you should also be aware that the box office of Running Out of Time has now broken through the $200 million. It was originally meant to be distributed by Fox, but was eventually taken by Columbia. Simrly, I can just shoot another film for Fox," replied Eric in a rxed tone while fiddling with the pen in his hand. When Brian Kurtzman heard Eric''s words, he momentarily hesitated before he said, "Fox will certainly not allow you to change the film because there''s no guarantee that your new film will be just as sessful as the sequel to Home Alone." Noticing the skeptical tone within Brian Kurtzman''s words, Eric put down his pen and became sure that C.A.A. was unaware about the specifics of his contract with Fox. Eric''s three-movie distribution deal with Fox was focused on the sequel to Home Alone since no one had expected that he would direct a hit like Pretty Woman right after Home Alone. Thus, while Fox readily agreed to give a generous share of the two other films'' box office to Eric, it also imposed a series of harsh conditions on the sequel to Home Alone. Chief among them was that Eric had to ensure that Stuart Runkle would reprise his role in the sequel. Since C.A.A. knew nothing about it, Eric became even more confident. He smirked and said, "Even if Fox does not agree to change the film, I can still change the actor. There must be countless families out there who would be willing to let their child appear in the sequel to Home Alone at a low price of $10,000, or maybe even lower." After he said this, Eric looked at Charlie Runkle who would understand his meaning. Although his pay in Home Alone was quite low, thanks to his worldwide fame from the movie, this year, Stuart signed a number of high-priced endorsements that brought him tens of millions of dors in ie. Eric asked, "Charlie, I think most of the endorsements signed by Stu are only valid for one year, right? If the advertisers learn that Stu will not appear in the sequel to Home Alone, do you think that he can still sign endorsements worth tens of millions of dors next year?" Brian Kurtzman urgently said, "Mr. Williams, you are talking about Stuart but what about yourself. Without the sequel to Home Alone, Firefly will lose hundreds of millions of dors. Compared to that, our terms are very reasonable. After all, Stu is irreceable in Home Alone." Eric shook his head and said, "If I agree to your outrageous demand, Firefly will only get 25% of the box office gross after paying Stu. In addition, the budget of the sequel may exceed $25 million. In the end, Firefly may not make much more than Stu. And, you are wrong, Brian; no one in Hollywood is irreceable. I can tell you, Firefly has an alternative n. If your price is too high, we will simply do a nationwide audition for the sequel to Home Alone. Through the nationwide audition, we can once again hype Home Alone and save on publicity costs. In addition, the sequel''s budget may be just a fraction of $25 million." Brian Kurtzman was just about to rebuke when Charlie Runkle, who finally couldn''t hold back, said, "Eric, you still haven''t mentioned Firefly''s offer." Brian Kurtzman inwardly groaned and felt a strong urge to punch the face of the man sitting next to him. "$8 million," Eric said and immediately added, "Charlie, you shouldn''t just focus on the pay. Many people can see that Stu has great potential in advertising endorsements. As long as he can maintain his fame with Home Alone, you can still get tens of millions of dors in endorsement fees next year. With this, Stu can be the highest paid star in Hollywood. Whether it is Tom Cruise or Bruce Willis or Julia Roberts, none of them can get more than $8 million in pay. On top of that, it''s impossible for them to get so many high-priced endorsements like Stu because they have manypetitors of the same age group, unlike Stu." "Mr. Williams..." Brian Kurtzman knocked on the table, wanting to interrupt. But Ericpletely ignored him and continued to speak to Charlie Runkle, "So, if Firefly is forced to implement the alternative that I just mentioned, there is no doubt that Stu''s poprity will plummet next year. Meanwhile, for Firefly, although recing Stu in the sequel might be slightly risky, the chances of sess are quite high. If the sequel is a hit like the original, isn''t it obvious whom the advertisers will choose as their brand ambassador between Stu and the new Kevin? Think about it, Charlie, would you risk tens of millions of dors for this unrealistic contract, oh no, maybe hundreds of millions of dors because Home Alone will have many sequels?" After Eric finished his words, Brian Kurtzman leaned back in his chair, aware that he hadpletely failed in the negotiations. There was ayer of sweat on Charlie Runkle''s forehead. The man had beenpletely yed by Eric, so it was now impossible for him to convince him otherwise. -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 228: When Harry Met Sally

Chapter 228: When Harry Met Sally

The door of the conference room slowly opened. Mrs. Runkle, standing nearby, looked at her husband, who came out behind Eric. She happily smiled after Charlie Runkle gave her a slight nod. Brian Kurtzman held out his hand to Eric and said, "Mr. Williams, I hope we can work together in the future." Since the matter has settled, he no longer cares about the unpleasantness during the negotiation. As an agent, maintaining a good rtionship with a famous director like Eric was very important to him. "I, as well," said Eric as he smiled and shook the agent''s hand. Brian Kurtzman''s temperament was indeed admirable. Any normal person would''ve mmed the door and stormed off if they had been in his position. Brian Kurtzman didn''t n to stay. After speaking with the Runkle couple for a few minutes, he found an excuse and left. Scrutinizing his actions, Eric had a feeling that even though Brian Kurtzman would be able to make a lot of money as Stuart''s agent, he would soon withdraw from that position. It is estimated that any outstanding talent agent would find it unbearable to work for a pair of ipetent and uncooperative clients. Eric looked at his wristwatch and noticed that it was half past noon. He looked at the Runkles standing nearby and asked, "Charlie, would you all like to have lunch together?" Charlie Runkle looked at Eric and noticed that he had a friendly expression on his face like just another boy next door, but Charlie Runkle knew that Eric had changed. He would likely not forget Eric dominating him in that tiny meeting room for a long time. Charlie Runkle replied apologetically, "I''m sorry, Eric, we have some things to do." Little Stuart heard his father''s refusal and immediately shouted, "No, I wanna go!" He even tried to rush to Eric, but his mother held his hand tightly and red at him in warning. Eric realized that the divide between him and the Runkles due to their conflicting interests had now be irreconcble. He said a few words to calm the little guy and left with Elisabeth and n. ********** In a restaurant in Century City, n and the driver consciously sat at a separate table, leaving Eric and Elisabeth alone. After she ordered her food, Elisabeth quickly asked, "Eric, howe your talks ended so soon?" "How long did you think it would take?" asked Eric. Elisabeth recalled something and said, "I remember that Tom Cruise and Dustin Hoffman''s negotiations for Rain Mansted more than half a year, and even came close to breaking down. And your negotiations with C.A.A. for Running Out of Time had also been in a deadlock for a long time, right?" Eric smiled and replied, "The situation this time was different. If I had talked with C.A.A, it might''ve taken a long time, but I talked directly with Charlie Runkle." Elisabeth''s eyes shed as she understood his meaning. She then asked, "How much is the pay for that little guy this time?" "$8 million plus 3% North American box office gross." "So high! That little troublemaker is basically robbing you," Elisabeth replied with a hint of irritation. Eric realized that while he had been negotiating with Charlie Runkle, she had gotten teased by the little guy again. He smiled and exined, "It''s not too high. In fact, Stu is well worth this price. If I had talked with C.A.A, they would''ve gained the initiative and the final price would''ve been much higher. Fortunately for me, the Runkles are neither smart nor trusting, so, in the end, they suffered a loss." Elisabeth sneered and said, "You''re so ruthless. Weren''t they your neighbors?" Although Eric liked the clever little Stuart, he had no good feelings for the Runkles, but he didn''t want to exin this to Elisabeth. After the waiter delivered his food, he simply bowed his head and silently began to eat, ignoring Elisabeth. After lunch, Eric and his entourage returned to the Firefly HQ. ********** "Are you this busy every day?" asked Elisabeth as she looked at the wall clock that had moved past six. After Eric had returned to his office, he had gotten busy with signing documents rted to the merger of New Line and Firefly. Currently, there were not many people left in the building, but Elisabeth didn''t leave work like everyone else. Instead, she continued to shadow him. "Not really. It''s just that there are a lot of things to do during this time," replied Eric without lifting his head. "Oh," murmured Elisabeth. She then opened the filing cab and randomly took out a document and began to look through it. It was after seven when Eric finally put down the documents in front of him and leaned back on his chair as he stretched his back. He soon noticed that Elisabeth was still curled up on the sofa nearby. "Everyone else has gotten off work, so howe you''re still here?" She realized that Eric seemed to be done with his work, so she stood up and put the document back in the filing cab before she casually said, "I''ve nothing to do at home." Eric was about to habitually tease her, but since she had obediently followed him the whole day, he swallowed back his words. However, Elisabeth noticed this. She red at him and asked, "You were definitely about to speak some nonsense, right?" "Nope," Eric shook his head before he got up and he said, "Let''s go." Elisabeth quickly caught up to him and said, "You were about to say that I''m just a woman who has nothing to do, right?" "I did think that," replied Eric as he raised his hand in surrender. Elisabeth berated, "I have been working all day, and I haven''t even asked you for overtime yet you''re thinking such things. You should apologize to me." Eric was too tired to argue with her, so he rolled his eyes and nonchntly said, "I''m sorry." Elisabeth smirked and quipped, "You''re so insincere. You should at least take me to dinner or something." Eric had just been thinking about dinner, so he casually said, "Okay." Elisabeth suddenly looked wary and asked, suspiciously, "You agreed so easily? You don''t have ulterior motives towards me, right?" Eric felt annoyed as he muttered, "Such a typical woman." Elisabeth asked, "What did you say?" Eric decided to just ignore her and soon they arrived at the parking lot. He looked around and asked, "Where''s your car?" She shrugged and said, "I didn''t drive today." Eric got in his car and said, "Get in." ********** After the two had dinner, it was half past eight by the time they left the restaurant. Eric looked at Elisabeth who was sitting beside him and asked, "How are you going to get back? Why don''t you call your driver to pick you up?" She looked at Eric and asked, incredulously, "How can you ask me that? Isn''t it obvious that you should drop me home?" Eric scoffed and said, "Spare me, Your Royal Highness; your home is in Malibu. It takes two hours for a round trip!" Elisabeth snorted and said, "Alright, then I will take a taxi." She walked out of the car with her hands in the pockets of her jeans as she took a few steps down the sidewalk. She looked at the traffic on the road and said, "I''ve heard that there have been several taxi robberies in Los Angeles in recent days. I heard that the victims are usually young women, but you don''t have to worry. Even if I have an ident, my father won''t me you." Eric watched Elisabeth''s performance as he sighed and yelled, "Get in!" Elisabeth cheerfully smiled and quickly pulled the door as she sat down beside Eric. She noticed the annoyed expression on Eric''s face when sheughed and said, "Don''t worry, I lied to you; I''ve lived with Julia over the past few days." Eric snorted and stepped on the gas pedal. Not long after the car started, Elisabeth suddenly pointed to the side and said, "There is a movie theater nearby. Let''s go watch a movie. I haven''t seen a movie in a long time. Eric parked the car on the side of the road, but kept his hands sped over the steering wheel and asked, "Liz, what do you want?" Elisabeth noticed Eric''s annoyed expression and waved her hand as she said, "Forget I mentioned it. We don''t have to watch a movie if you don''t want to. Come on, just drop me at Julia''s." Eric sighed and said, "Forget it, it''s just a movie." "That''s more like a gentleman," said Elisabeth cheerily before she untied her seat belt and got out of the car. Eric parked the car into the parking lot and walked into the nearby theater with Elisabeth. In the ticket booth, she pulled out a small wallet from herrge handbag and said, "I''ll pay; which one?" Eric nced at the few posters on the wall before he pointed to one of them and said, "This one." "When Harry meets Sally?" mumbled Elisabeth before she narrated the words on the poster, "''Can two friends sleep together and still love each other in the morning?'' It seems interesting!" -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 229: When Harry Met Sally (2)

Chapter 229: When Harry Met Sally (2)

After sitting down on her seat, Elisabeth looked around the nearly empty hall andined, "Why did you choose this movie? We have to wait another 15 minutes until it starts." Eric ate some popcorn and said, "You were the one that suddenly wanted to see a movie. Also, it''s better to wait a few minutes than going halfway through the show since this movie is quite good. Hearing Eric''s high evaluation, she asked, "Have you seen it?" Eric shrugged in response. Elisabeth red at him and said, "Have you seen it or not? It''s a simple question." Eric ignored Elisabeth; he couldn''t say that he had seen this movie in this life. Speaking of it, after it was released, Eric had also told Nicole to watch this movie and try to understand Meg Ryan''s style of acting since she had originally been the lead in Sleepless in Seattle. While waiting for the movie to begin, Eric suddenly realized something very interesting. The screenwriter of When Harry Met Sally was Nora Ephron. Although this female writer and director had been integral to the sess of many movies, she never really became famous. When ites to her movies, the fans usually only remember the male and female leads. Of course, this wasn''t a very interesting fact. What Eric found truly interesting was that, at least within all the movies of Nora Ephron he had seen, the female lead had amon trait - sweetness. Meg Ryan became known as "America''s Sweetheart" after she starred in When Harry Met Sally. The same was true for many other actresses. Besides Meg Ryan, Nicole Kidman began to be considered a sweet woman after she starred in Bewitched. Simrly, the in-looking Lisa Kudrow became sweet in Lucky Numbers. Even Meryl Streep became sweeter in Ephron''s early work, Heartburn. It was likely that, deep down, Nora Ephron herself had a sweet personality even though she usually acted quite curt towards others. Therefore, she gave simr attributes to the many different characters she wrote, but inpletely different styles. While Eric was thinking that, the lights in the hall turned off. After the silent subtitles, the distinct scene of this film appeared on the screen. An old white-haired couple gave an interview while reminiscing about how they came together so many years ago. Although the old couple on the screen are actors, the story they told was a true ount which the screenwriter Nora Ephron had obtained after she interviewed a real couple. As Eric kept his eyes on the screen, Elisabeth, sitting beside him, patted his shoulder and asked, "Eric, what''s going on? I thought this was a rom?" "Don''t worry. Keep watching." Soon, the scene changed and arrived outside the campus of the University of Chicago where the young college graduates, Harry Burns and Sally Albright, meet for the first time. They carpool to New York and discuss their personal outlooks on life which leads to arguments. Neither of them could convince the other, so after reaching New York, they both went their separate ways. Five yearster, they meet again, but, this time, Sally has a boyfriend. Harry is also about to get married. Perhaps, they both felt that their lives were on the right track. Both of them have matured and have a feeling that maybe they can be friends. Five yearster, Harry is divorced while Sally is single. By a twist of fate, the two people who came to New York together met again and thought that they could be true friends. As they get along, they be friends who share everything with each other. They even try to set up their respective best friends with each other, in an attempt to set up all of them. They seed. At least, halfway. Their best friends end up falling in love with each other, and soon decide to get married. The stubborn Harry and Sally continue to remain single, and feel that since they are friends, they should not go further, lest they destroy their friendship. Unfortunately, in a moment of weakness, they go further. In short, they sleep together. After they wake up in the morning, they begin to panic and begin to avoid each other. Finally, on a lonely New Year''s Eve, the two finally confess their feelings to each other, and kiss. The scene cuts back to the interviews with an old couple, but, this time, it''s not a white-haired old couple; it is Harry and Sally. The two still continue to challenge each other and argue on almost everything, but one thing has changed; they''re married. Twelve years and three months after they first met, Harry and Sally became husband and wife. The lights slowly turned on in the hall. The crowds of men and women who watched the movie seemed to have be newly-weds as they stuck to each other and whispered sweet words of love. In fact, many men and women were still sitting in their seats, making out. Elisabeth held the bucket of popcorn which was almost full. After lightly colliding with the nearby people, she finally caught up to Eric and hesitantly said, "Umm this movie was very good." "Yeah, the director took some great shots, especially the scene where Billy Crystal and Meg Ryan were walking through Central Park. The maple leaves in the scene were like life; right before they fade away, a new leaf blooms anew. Oh, there were also the eyes. I dont know if it was intentional or not, but you could always see that the two were looking at each other clearly as if their eyes were the windows of their soul. Through these shots, you can convey a lot of emotions to the audience which simply can''t be conveyed through words. Maybe I can use it in my own movies in the future..." As they walked out of the theater, Eric continued giving his analysis of the movie. Suddenly, Elisabeth felt an inexplicable surge of anger. She threw therge bucket of popcorn into the trash can which made a loud bang, attracting the attention of the people nearby. Eric flinched and stopped as he watched Elisabeth stomp her feet and walked towards the car. He smiled wryly as he shook his head and followed her. After the two sat in the car, Eric asked, "Are you still going to Julia''s?" "Yeah," Elisabeth nodded before she continued, "Julia''s ce is still far. Should we go to your house first? After dropping you off, I can drive to Julia''s. You most likely have more than one car, so you can just drive to work in a different one tomorrow." Eric found that this was the most convenient solution, so he nodded and drove back home. ********** The drive to Eric''s mansion took more than 20 minutes, but Elisabeth, who is never quiet, didn''t speak a word the whole time. Eric stopped the car and untied his seat belt before he turned to Elisabeth and said, "So, see you tomorrow?" Elisabeth quietly stared at Eric with zed eyes without saying a word. The car becamepletely silent for a few seconds before Eric turned the key and turned off the engine and all the lights. In the dark, he reached out and held Elisabeth''s chin between his fingers as he closed the distance between the two. -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 230: Night Together (R-18)

Chapter 230: Night Together (R-18)

The sudden darkness evoked Elisabeth''s scream, but Eric''s next move caused her scream to be cut off halfway. "Hey... you can''t... mmm..." In the dark, Elisabeth briefly managed to free her lips from Eric''s, but before she could say much, her pouty little mouth was blocked again. In the beginning, she had been fiercely pulling his clothes, but, in less than a minute, the sound of the rustling of clothes had be very low, and it was soon covered up by the sucking sound of two pairs of tongues and lips. After an unknown amount of time, Eric finally released Elisabeth''s lips and sat back in his seat. He asked softly, "Should I turn on the lights?" "It''s a free country," replied a slightly panting voice. Elisabeth''s face had reddened and she was still breathing heavily, but she still refused to quit her quips. Eric smirked and moved his hand to lightly pinch her nipple, causing her to squirm and let out a tender moan. "You... bastard! Let go..." said Elisabeth, but Eric felt her soft hand gently press his hand as if indicating him to continue. He smiled and slowly increased the strength between his fingers. After a while, Eric heard some muffled moans and asked in a husky voice, "Do you want me to continue?" Elisabeth asked as she lightly gasped, "Why...? Are you... scared?" "Wow, so you''re provoking me," said Eric as he pushed back both his and Elisabeth''s seat before he pushed her down. Pressing her soft body underneath him, Eric ripped off her shirt and threw it aside. Although the car was dark and locked, they were still outdoors. Elisabeth, who suddenly felt her back touch the leather seat, asked, "Hey, you bastard, you''re not going to... do it here, right?" "Don''t forget, you asked for this," said Eric before he unhooked Elisabeth''s bra, and began to grope her breasts with his cold hands. Feeling the breasts directly was definitely much better than feeling them through ayer of clothing. As she felt Eric''srge, cold hands groping her breasts, Elisabeth''s breath quickened, but, soon, she noticed that one of his hands was moving towards her lower belly. She quickly grabbed his hands and said, anxiously, "No, absolutely not! We''re on the streets; anyone passing by could see us!" "Such a tease," quipped Eric before he quickly pulled back his seat and drove the car inside his mansion''spound. After he parked the car, Elisabeth quickly turned off the lights. Eric smiled as he went back to licking her breasts while he moved his hands down her lower belly. "Men really only want one thing,"ined Elisabeth, but, after feeling that Eric had unbuttoned her jeans, she willingly raised her hips to allow him to pull her jeans off. "I... I think... we should go inside," whispered Elisabeth as she twisted her body a few times after her bare butt touched the cold leather seat. Although doing this in the car was very exciting, Eric also felt a bit ufortable going further here, so he quickly walked out, picked up Elisabeth, who was almost naked, spare her panties, from the other side and put her on his shoulder before he rushed to his mansion. "Hey, I don''t want to be carried off like this,"ined Elisabeth as she hammered her fists on his back. Ericughed and thought that she was really worried about the wrong thing. Under normal circumstances, even though it waste at night, any woman who was naked would first ask for her clothes to cover herself up, but she was worried about how she was being held. He chuckled as he yfully pped her soft hips and asked, "Then, how do you want to be carried?" "Princess hug! I want a princess hug!" yelled Elisabeth as she shook Eric''s back. Eric stopped and changed the position to hold Elisabeth in his arms, lowered his head and kissed her lips before he began walking again. Because of his familiarity with theyout of his mansion, Eric managed to reach his bedroom with Elisabeth in his arms without needing to turn on the light before he unceremoniously threw her on therge bed. ********** His eyes opened slightly after Eric felt some movement. Through his squinted eyes, he saw that the woman in his arms had carefully slipped out and moved to the bedside. He opened his eyes wider and managed to see Elisabeth''s lithe naked back as she slowly moved her hand towards the phone at the bedside. Eric wondered what she was doing as he continued to quietly and secretly watch her. After a series of beeping dials, Elisabeth put the phone on her ear. After a while... Elisabeth spoke in a low, but anxious voice, "Hey, Julia, what should I do? I slept with him!" When Eric heard this, he grabbed his forehead as he wryly smiled. Does this silly girl really think that he would continue to sleep even after she made so much noise? Elisabeth, whose back was facing Eric, still didn''t know that he had woken up, so she continued, "What, that... it felt pretty good. Hmph, do you think I don''t know? You also slept with him, so what are you asking me for?" "..." "''Where am I?''" she repeated the question before she nced back at Eric who quickly closed his eyes. Assured that he was still asleep, she lied, "Of course I escaped... I know it''s still early, but I''m not going to wait for him to wake me up. Well... um... hmph, I knew it was a waste to call you! I''m hanging up... no, no, no! Pick me up... alright, I''m hanging up." After she hung up the phone, Elisabeth was about to quietly walk towards the bathroom when a pair ofrge hands grabbed her from behind. As she screamed, Eric smirked and said, "Liz, I don''t know if I should call this cute or silly? Do you talk about this kind of thing with your girlfriend? Shouldn''t you keep my reputation in mind?" Elisabeth stuttered as she asked in a panic while her hands were on Eric''s hands, "Ah, you...wh-when did you wake up?" "Just around the time when you said that ''it felt pretty good''." Elisabeth turned beet red as she shyly covered her face. Eric pulled her into his arms and said, "There''s no need to be embarrassed. Lovemaking between a man and a woman is supposed to feel good. To be honest, I am quite happy that it felt good for you." "You, you..." Suddenly Elisabeth opened her mouth and bit down hard on Eric''s shoulder. Eric yfully gasped and patted her back to appease her as he joked, "Hey, Liz, even if you bite it, you can''t eat it." Elisabeth pushed Eric back and broke free from his arms before she quickly escaped into the bathroom. -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 231: “You have to marry me!”

Chapter 231: You have to marry me!

Eric leaned on his bed as he watched the nude Elisabeth flee into the bathroom. He was going to freshen up and do his morning exercise when Elisabeth, now wearing a bathrobe, returned from the bathroom. Elisabeth gripped the cor of her bathrobe as a hint of nervousness appeared between her eyes, but she stared straight at Eric before she said, "Eric, I''ve thought about it. Although I haven''t known you for a long time, I think you are a good man." Upon hearing her words, Eric suddenly had a premonition, but before he could say anything, Elisabeth continued, "We went to bedst night, but I am not a casual woman, so, so..." After hesitating for a few seconds, she finally said with all her might, "So, you have to marry me!" After she finished these words, she slightly panted as if she had used up all the power in her body, but her eyes still stared at Eric, waiting for his answer. Eric stiffened for a few seconds before he slowly said, "What the fuck!" ********** In Julia''s apartment, Elisabeth sat on the couch and narrated her story. Julia, who was sitting beside her, listened with relish when Elisabeth suddenly stopped after she said that she had asked Eric to marry her. Julia quickly looked up and asked, "Well, what happened after that? Finish the story!" Elisabeth shook her head and said, "Then he ran away." Julia subconsciously asked, "What?" Elisabeth made a running gesture with her hands and said, "Eric put on his clothes, opened the door and ran away. By the time I realized what had happened, he was nowhere to be found. I even checked the whole mansion." Then, the two women looked at each other for a few seconds. Elisabeth bit her lip and didn''t seem to know what to say. Suddenly, Julia burst out inughter as she pped the couch. "Hahaha, Eric is such a jerk! Hahaha, he ran away! Hahaha..." Elisabeth picked up a pillow and threw it at Julia as she yelled, "Hey, don''tugh!" However, Elisabeth''s embarrassment only seemed to exacerbate Julia''sughter. Finally, Elisabeth said in a gloomy tone, "If youugh again, I won''t talk to you ever again!" Julia quickly stifled herughter and took a few deep breaths to calm herself down. Suddenly, she seemed to recall something as she red and asked, "So, you lied to me when you called me this morning and said that you had already left Eric''s ce?" "I... I didn''t know what to tell you, but this... why do you care about the details?!" Julia looked at Elizabeth, who was getting annoyed, and quickly said, "Okay, okay, I won''t ask, but what happened afterwards?" "What do you mean afterwards?" "Didn''t you think about destroying that asshole''s expensive things, such as electronics and watches?" Julia felt that since a rich and pampered girl like Elisabeth had been humiliated like this by Eric, she would''ve definitely given in to impulse and done something. "How could I be so naive?!" retorted Elisabeth, but faced with Julia''s questioning face, she finally lowered her head and admitted, "I mean, I was really angry at first. If he didn''t want to marry me, he should''ve just told me clearly on the spot. Why did he run away without saying a word? For a moment, I had thought of burning his mansion." Julia covered her mouth in surprise and asked, "Isn''t that a bit too much?" Elisabeth ignored Julia''s reaction and continued, "I found a barrel of gasoline in the garage, but I couldn''t find anything to ignite it. By then, I had calmed down, so I decided toe here." Although Elisabeth did not burn Eric''s house in the end, Julia, who heard this, looked surprised. To be honest, she felt a lot of resentment towards Eric. At one point, she had also had some thoughts about getting revenge on him, but even her most ruthless thoughts had never reached the point of burning down his house. Elisabeth failed to notice Julia''s reaction. She lowered her head and asked, "So, what should I do now?" Julia thought for a moment and replied, "Currently, we have a very great opportunity. If you ask him for a script, he definitely won''t refuse." Elisabeth red and yelled, "What kind of person do you think I am?!" Julia also knew that a prideful person like Elisabeth would never agree to this, so she shrugged and said, "In that case, what''s done is done." "But, I don''t know how to face that bastard." "Stop being his assistant, and you won''t have to see him everyday. Instead, you should focus on T.G." The two women were about to discuss further when Drew, wearing a pink backpack, entered the apartment and saw the two of them sitting on the couch. She greeted, "Good morning; hey, Liz, what are you doing in a bathrobe?" "I just took a shower." "Oh," Drew just nodded. She had obviously only asked randomly. If she had looked carefully, she would have realized that the bathrobe came from Eric''s house since she was the one who had purchased the household products for Eric''s house. After sitting down on the couch, Drew opened the backpack and pulled out a script and handed it to Julia and Elisabeth as she asked, "What do you think about this script?" Julia took the script and looked at its title before she asked, "''Silence of the Lamb''; what is this?" "It seems to be a novel''s adaptation," remarked Elisabeth as she looked at the script in Julia''s hand. Then, the two of them began to read it together since there was only one copy. While they read the script, Drew poured herself a ss of juice andmented, "This script is based on Thomas Harris'' novel of the same name. The film adaptation rights were originally bought by Oscar-winner Gene Hackman who was the lead inst year''s Best Picture nominee Mississippi Burning. He nned to direct the film, but the poor guy had been experiencing serious manic episodes since he finished Mississippi Burning. His doctor advised him not to get involved with such an intense violent thriller, so he decided to sell the script. I had been purchasing scripts for Eric when I came across it. I felt that the story was very exciting and the script wasn''t too expensive, so I bought it." Julia looked up and said, "Drew, the lead in this script is a woman; you''re not thinking..." "Julia, didn''t you want to have a breakthrough in your career? The role of rice in this script would definitely allow you to significantly hone your acting skills." Julia quickly shook her head. She felt that the role of Shelby in Steel Magnolias was already enough to hone her acting skills. She rejected, "No, I''ve only read a part of this script, but it already feels so creepy. If I y this part, I might develop some... mental illness." Thinking of this, Julia shuddered as she thought about the odd emotions she felt for Eric. Elisabeth, who had briefly browsed through the script, also said, "Drew, I don''t think this script is a good idea. It''s a thriller which will definitely be rated R. After its release, it will definitely cause controversy which will have a significant impact on the image of ourpany. After all, T.G. Films is run by three girls." "On the contrary, Liz," retorted Drew, "T.G. is apany run by three girls, so I think we should try some films with exciting and unexpected themes, so that people don''te to believe that we only make tame films since we''re women." Upon hearing this, Elisabeth looked at Julia, but she, once again, shook her head and tly rejected, "I won''t y this role! In fact, my agent will never agree since my image is centered around roms." "I heard that the screenwriter who wrote this script expressed his hope that Jodie Foster could y the role of rice. Julia, are you saying that you''re inferior to Jodie Foster?" Julia sneered and said with a smug tone, "Although she has won an Oscar, but since she began her career, the box office of all her moviesbined can''t equal the box office of my Pretty Woman." "But, as an actor, don''t you want to win an Oscar?" "I don''t," replied Julia tly. She had only been famous for less than a year, so she hadn''t yet realized the influence of the Oscar. Although Drew was a lot younger than Julia, she had been in Hollywood for a much longer time. Upon hearing Julia''s words, she revealed a surprised expression and said, "If Eric heard what you just said, he would definitely regret letting you star in Pretty Woman. He would be so disappointed in you." "Why should I care if that bastard is disappointed?" murmured Julia. Drew sneered and asked, "Well then, can you say the words you just said in front of Eric?" Julia instinctively turned her head away as if she had decided to ignore any future remarks from Drew. -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 232: First Project

Chapter 232: First Project

"Enough, stop fighting!" Elisabeth scolded the two. While the two girls were busy pouting, she thought for a moment and dered, "I think that we can give Drew''s script a try." Wanting to strike the iron while it was hot, Drew quickly said, "This is the script was selected by the Oscar-winning veteran actor Gene Hackman. It definitely won''t be bad, and if you two agree, I can ask Eric to take a look at it." Julia proposed, "Drew, hasn''t Eric been letting you buy a lot of copyrights? Why don''t you use one of them? Since those are his picks, they must be much better than this one, right?" "No!" Drew shook her head and categorically refused, "The copyright to those scripts is held under my Flower Films." "Aren''t you also a member of T.G?" asked a dissatisfied Julia. Drew replied, "Of course, I am, but those are two separate things. Flower Films was apany given to me by Eric." Julia chewed on her lips, feeling envious, but she didn''t know what to say. Elisabeth mediated between the two and said, "Alright, Julia, that''s enough. Our T.G. will produce this Silence of the Lamb." Julia picked up a pillow and squeezed it in her arms before she shook her head and announced, "Whatever! I still won''t y the female lead." Elisabeth and Drew looked at each other and exchanged a nce before Elisabeth immediately said, "In that case, we will hold a vote. All those in favor of Julia ying the lead role raise their hands." Drew and Elisabeth smirked as Julia as they slowly raised their right hands. "You..." Julia stared at them, shocked. Elisabeth smiled at Julia and said, "If you still don''t agree then Drew and I will find another person to convince you." Julia immediately thought of Eric''s face and jumped up in surprise before she threw the pillow at Elisabeth and yelled, "You... How can you bully me like this?!" "So, do you agree or not?" Elisabeth asked. Julia red at Elisabeth and gritted her teeth before she replied, "I have to ask my agent first." Elisabeth exined, "The role of rice is not a negative, so I think Mr. Syd will definitely agree. And don''t try to fool us by hiding behind your agent. In front of stars of your stature, agents only have the right to make suggestions, not the right to decide which script to ept and which to reject. In fact, why bother to ask your agent. That bastard''s vision is better, so we can simply ask him." "Alright, alright, I agree! I''ll y the role of rice," Julia finallypromised. "In that case, I will go back tonight to let Eric take a look at this script," Drew quickly said. Then, she nned to put the script away when Elisabeth suddenly reached out and took the script from her. She quickly said, "I''ll do it! I will be with him during the filming of Sleepless in Seattle, so I can take some time to show him the script." "You?" Drew looked at Elisabeth with a puzzled look and asked, "I remember you said that Eric said no to helping you choose a script?" Elisabeth quickly exined, "I don''t think the investment in this movie would be too high, so I doubt that Eric would consider our low budget film to be hispetition. He shouldn''t be too stingy with a few words. Moreover, if you ask him about this film''s prospects, Eric might start to suspect that you are doing other things besides going to school." Drew thought for a moment and nodded as she said, "Right, if I see him right now he might figure out that I skipped sses." Elisabeth breathed a sigh of relief. If Drew went back and found the gasoline in Eric''s vi, she might figure something out which was not what she wanted. In fact, Elisabeth wasn''t worried about Drew''s reaction after discovering this incident, but she was worried that this incident might be learned by other people. Then, Drew noticed the bathrobe that Elisabeth was wearing and got up. She walked towards a bedroom as she took off her shirt and said, "Now that we''vee to a decision, I''m also going to take a shower. Man, I hate my dorm bedroom and bathroom. Julia, how about you rent a bigger vi? Actually, you could just buy it." Julia retorted, "Nope, I''m afraid that if I live in a bigger ce, you might be a permanent resident." Drew shrugged as she walked into the bedroom. Once the bedroom door had been closed, Julia whispered to Elisabeth, "Hey, Liz, are you going back to Eric''s ce?" "What choice do I have?" Elisabeth picked up the script and shook it, "I can''t let Drew go there and find gasoline that I poured everywhere. Besides, why should I avoid him? He''s the one that should feel guilty for running away. I''ve decided; I''m not going to escape. I''m going to go back and torture him even more." Julia couldnt help but ''praise,'' "Liz, you''re so vicious." Unaware that two girls were nning how to torture him, Eric, who was busy reading a production n, suddenly felt a chill run down his back. * * * * * * * * * * The next day, Elisabeth arrived at the Firefly HQ. The staff was aware that she was Eric''s new assistant and that she had a close rtionship with Eric, so reached the door of Eric''s office unimpeded. As she stood outside his door, she raised her hand with the intention of knocking on his door, but she suddenly paused. After a moment''s thought, she gently rotated the door knob and quietly walked in. "Jeffrey, I have seen the photos of the set. There is nothing wrong with the indoor scene, but Jonah''s roomcks an egg-shaped space chair... Remember to remind the production designer... Ok, I will wait for the updated production design in my fax. There is no problem inside the house, but the outside feels a little empty. There is only a single seat on the patio, which will give people a sense of istion. Remember to tell them to put a fewrge flower pots there Right, it''s best if they''re wooden. Also-" Eric had been speaking on the telephone when he suddenly had a feeling that someone was watching him. He subconsciously raised his head and was shocked to see Elisabeth standing in front of him. His hand shook and the telephone fell on the ground. Until a moment ago, she had been feeling slightly embarrassed, but upon seeing Eric''s stunned face, Elisabeth quickly became rxed. She pulled a chair and gracefully sat down in front of Eric. Seeing Eric''s shifting eyes, she smugly asked, "What? Do you want to escape from the window behind you? Although this building is not too tall, you will sustain at least a few fractures." Eric opened his mouth and smiled. He bent over and picked up the telephone and put it back on his ear, "Jeffrey, it''s nothing, I just identally dropped the telephone on the ground... Well, I''m in a hurry, so why don''t you take care of the things that I told you and then get back to me? Alright, bye." Hanging up the phone, Eric didn''t know what to say. The night before, Eric had thought that his encounter with Elisabeth was going to be simple. Who would''ve expected that she would suddenly talk about getting married. Although he had experienced marriage during his past life, in this world he was less than twenty years old, so how could he be willing to let himself fall into the trap of marriage so early? Although celebrities are known to be promiscuous, if one carefully checks it, one will find that among the mainstream celebrities, those men and women who are seen with new lovers each week are almost all unmarried. In other words, although Westerners are quite open before marriage, but after marriage, whether it is the social atmosphere or public opinion, both husband and wife are required to maintain high standards of loyalty. If he remains single, Eric can continue to see multiple women. At worst, he would be ridiculed by most media, but after a few years, everyone woulde to ept his lifestyle, but if he attempted to do this after getting married, he would be greeted with widespread condemnation from the media and the public. As a person who is determined to be a yboy, Eric certainly does not want to confront the whole public opinion. Thus, he had never had any n of ??getting married, which was why he had run away yesterday morning. Although this may not seem like the best solution, Eric doesn''t know how to dissuade a woman who has already begun to think about marriage. "Why don''t you say anything?" Elisabeth noticed Eric''s guilty look and became more aggressive. "What can I say?" Eric smiled and said, "I guess that I should thank you for not burning down my vi?" Elisabeth snorted and said, "You were lucky that I wasn''t able to find a lighter." "Umm" Although Eric had been backed into the corner, Elisabeth did not care to continue this topic. She sighed and asked, "What were you talking about?" Aware that Elisabeth also wanted to change the topic, Eric quickly said, "Just talking with Jeffrey about the production design of Sleepless in Seattle. I have too much on my te, so I can only leave these things to him; he is currently making the final arrangements on location in Seattle." Elisabeth simply nodded. "That umm do you still want to be my assistant?" Eric slowly asked. "Why wouldn''t I?" Elisabeth arrogantly replied before she red at Eric and slowly said, "And you bastard don''t you ever try to do that with me again..." "Of course not," Eric quickly nodded his head. For a woman who asks for marriage first thing in the morning, Eric would rather not touch her for a lifetime. "By the way, I need your help with another thing today," said Elisabeth as she took the script of the Silence of the Lamb out from her handbag. She ced it in front of Eric and said, "I have decided to make this movie next year, so give me some advice. You don''t have to assess the box office prospects of this script, and you won''t be responsible for its sess or failure. I just want you to give me some guidance about how to go about making this film." Eric picked up the script and was about to tell Elisabeth that he would take a look at it when he had the time, but his eyes popped open as soon as he read the title on the cover. TO BE CONTINUED Chapter 233: Eric’s Suggestions

Chapter 233: Erics Suggestions

Seeing the astonished look on Eric''s face, Elisabeth looked at the script''s cover and asked, "Is something wrong?" "Uhh nothing," Eric shook his head and replied as he opened the script and quickly began reading it. After more than ten minutes, Eric put the script down and asked, "Where did you get this script from?" Elisabeth recalled Drew''s words and how she had repeatedly asked the two of them to keep her involvement a secret from Eric as she nned to secretly make some achievements and give him a big surprise in the future. She decided not to tell Eric that the script came from Drew, but told him that she had identally happened upon it. After hearing that Elisabeth had "identally" obtained the script, Eric could only sit there and shake his head in awe. If he had known that this script came from Drew, he would definitely give that little girl a nice good spanking for giving such a good thing to outsiders. Elisabeth quickly asked, "Since you have finished reading it, what do you think? How do you feel about it?" Although she had already decided to make this film, she wanted to get some affirmation from Eric about the script and possibly some of his notes or remarks about things that could be improved. Eric looked at the cover of the script, and for a moment he had the idea of hiring Elisabeth to produce this film for Firefly. After all, The Silence of the Lambs was not only a superhit blockbuster, but it was also one of the few ssics to win all five of the most important Academy Awards. However, soon after he had this thought, he quickly dispelled it. After all, there was no need for him to take all the benefits in the world. Not to mention, he had only recently spent a very intimate night with Elisabeth. Eric gently replied, "The story is not too special, but that will change after it''s made into a movie, so I think the film''s actor selection is crucial. Have you considered whom you will cast in the roles of the male and female leads?" "I talked to Julia about ying rice Starling, and she agreed. For now, there are no other candidates. Anyway, this is my debut as a producer, so I n to take things slowly." Eric immediately shook his head and replied, "No, Julia is not suitable for ying rice. rice is a veryplicated character. Julia''s acting skills simply haven''t reached that level yet." Elisabeth frowned and asked, "Then, who do you think is suitable for rice?" Eric blurted out, "Jodie Foster." Surprised, Elisabeth uttered, "Ah... wow, I heard that the writer who adapted this script also suggested that Jodie Foster y rice." Then, she asked, "But, Eric, this is just a horror film. What the audience wants when they watch a horror film is suspense and excitement, so I don''t think that we need a particrly skilled actress. I don''t expect to win an Oscar with a horror film. I don''t think there have ever been any horror films that won Best Picture." Eric replied, "Just because it hasn''t been done before doesn''t mean it''s impossible." Then, he said, "Of course, I''m only making a suggestion. You don''t have to listen to me." Since this film had nothing to do with him, Eric did care to forcefully intervene. In fact, the future of Hollywood had already beenpletely changed due to his interference. Even if The Silence of the Lambs failed to reach its original glory, there may be other great movies. Elisabeth cautiously nodded and said , "Then I will go back and think about it," before she looked back and asked, "Is there anything else?" "Professor Hannibal, you can try Anthony Hopkins." "Anthony Hopkins?" Elisabeth repeated the name curiously, clearly she had never heard this name before. Although the famous Hannibal had already been in the film industry since the sixties, he didn''t catch a break until the sess of The Silence of the Lambs. At that time, Anthony Hopkins was already in his fifties. Eric didn''t know how to exin to her why he knew Anthony Hopkins, so he just vaguely replied, "He is an old Hollywood actor. He has participated in numerous indie-art films, so there''s absolutely no problem with his acting. I can''t recall exactly which movie I had seen him in, but his image in that movie was verypatible with Professor Hannibal Lector. You can look for him and see if he fits the role." "Alright, I will remember him," Elisabeth nodded before she quickly took out the notebook from her bag and carefully wrote down his name. Eric observed her for a moment before he asked, "Have you heard of Jonathan Demme? The script of The Others that I wrote before was directed by him. After the release of The Others, he will certainly gain a lot of fame, so you should quickly approach him for The Silence of the Lambs. Although I believe he''s still in Venice. Alright, once he''s back, I will introduce you to him." Elisabeth continued to write for a moment before she looked up and said to Eric, "I don''t need you topensate me!" Eric nced at her and immediately understood what she was thinking. He smiled and said, "You''re too sensitive. I''m not doing this topensate you. This is just business. Jonathan Demme has signed with UTA, so UTA will also get a cut from his director''s sry, and I happen to be the majority shareholder of UTA." Elisabeth frowned and said, "I will talk to Jonathan Demme myself. You don''t need to intervene, and you don''t need to give me any discounts. I will pay him a substantial amount for his services." Eric shrugged and said, "Alright, as you wish." After negotiating the matter, Elisabeth put the script in her bag and asked, "So, what work do you have for me?" Eric handed a few documents to her andmanded, "These things are to be taken out and shredded, and then thrown away. Also, the top one is the shooting schedule of Sleepless in Seattle, you should familiarize yourself with it. Once you''re done with this, there''s some documents that need to be organized. There''s a desk in the outside room, you can stay there. If I need something, I will call you." "Okay," Elisabeth nodded. She was satisfied with Eric''s attitude of finally letting her do something productive. Holding the documents, she stood up and was about to leave. Suddenly, she stopped and asked, "Eric, you seem to only have n as an assistant. Don''t you have any female secretary or something?" Eric smiled and said, "I rarely left thepany in the past, so I never needed one. However, after this year, I will need to handle more things, so I will definitely find a beautifuldy to handle the menial tasks." At this point, Eric looked at Elisabeth and asked, "Why? Do you have anyone whom you wish to rmend, or do you want to rmend yourself?" "Hmph, you can''t afford me!" Elisabeth proudly replied, turned around and walked out. -TO BE CONTINUED- Chapter 234: Farewell

Chapter 234: Farewell

The 46th Venice Film Festival closed sessfully on September 15th. Despite the Venice Film Festival''s insistence on its artistic nature to set itself apart from the increasinglymercial Cannes Film Festival and the politically-oriented Berlin Film Festival, "The Others" which is firmlybeled as anti-war, has eventually won the Silver Lion Award of the Venice Film Festival thanks to a series of promotions by various media amid the current turbulent world situation. After the announcement of the award results, with Disney''s relentless publicity, there was no doubt that "The Others" overshadowed "A City of Sadness", which won the Golden Lion Award this year. Most people agree that "A City of Sadness" is far more artistic than "The Others" in depicting the joys and sorrows of small characters in the backdrop of arge era with a richer humanistic atmosphere. However, this is still a profit-driven world, and although "A City of Sadness" won the highest honors, it was destined to have littlemercial sess as an art film. Although The Others won the Silver Lion at the Venice Film Festival, distributors from all over the world knew it was amercial movie with great potential, as long as they had seen it at the Venice exhibition. Therefore, after The Others won the Silver Lion, the distributors who had already started negotiations with Disney for the distribution of the film in all countries of the world rushed to it. On the day the award results were announced, Disney sessfully sold the distribution rights in 12 countries around the world, with more countries and regions in negotiations. Of course, Disney would not overlook domestic promotion in the United States. As Hollywood rises and European cinema declines, the influence of the three major film festivals in North America is bing lower and lower, but for Hollywood movies to win awards abroad is certainly something for Americans to be proud of. After a media blitz, the fame of The Others spread quickly throughout the country. Immediately, Disney announced the movie''s schedule. November 1st, Halloween Although this was not the most popr schedule, and even some suggested that The Others be put in the summer schedule next year, aftermunicating with Eric, Michael Aisner decisively determined that many people did not look favorably on this schedule. Actually, there were Eric''s considerations behind why he proposed this suggestion. The Others is not a Western traditional horror film that relies on gore and violence to draw audiences into the theater. It focuses more on psychological suspense and plot, and with its PG-13 rating, it won''t prevent families from going to the movies together during the holidays, so it will be perfectly fine to release it during the new year''s season. Not to mention, who said horror movies are not suitable for the new year''s file? Eric remembers very clearly that the famous Scream in his previous life was released during the Christmas period, and it achieved more than 100 million box office receipts at a cost of more than 10 million. That is a real R-rated horror movie that relies on violence and bloodshed as its selling point, and even the poor person who opened the scene was killed within a few minutes... By the beginning of September, most of the cast of "Sleepless in Seattle had already rushed to Seattle to prepare for the filming of the movie. It wasn''t until September 16th that Eric hadpletely dealt with the recent affairs of the Firefly and was ready to go to Seattle to start filming Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2. After shooting Hank''s scenes in Seattle, Eric would rush to New York to shoot most of Nicole''s scenes, and then start on Home Alone 2. Since the prequel of this sequel had been a great sess, Eric didn''t n to change the script. Although the time was tight, Eric, who had gotten used to this shooting rhythm, wasn''t feeling too much pressure. Now he was mostly just feeling ufortable. The location was the lobby in the Los Angeles airport, and in addition to some of the crew members who were apanying Eric to Seattle, there were several women who gathered around him. On one side there was Drew, Elizabeth, and Julia, and on the other side there was Aniston and Nicole. Lights shed intermittently in the distance, and even the onlookers raised their cameras to join in the fun, aside from the pesky paparazzi, who had been stopped by airport security several times but still wouldn''t give up. After all, other than Elizabeth, the other four girls are all famous actresses. Eric has always been trying to reduce his exposure and move towards being a behind-the-scenes figure, but unfortunately his fame has only been growing and the media that follows him has never been less. Therefore, it would be impossible for the passengers at the airport not to recognize him. Tomorrow''s newspaper will almost certainly have headlines like "The cast of the yboy departs, five beauties bid farewell sweetly," and other suggestive flowery titles. course, there''s no sweetness, if eyes had a tangible form, he would already be skewered with all kinds of sharp implements, ready to be put on the grill. Take a look at these women, all dressed up and looking so pretty, but their eyes and expressions tell a different story. Little Nellie looks suspicious, Anniston is full of resentment; Nicole''s inner mockery is all over her face; Elizabeth just pretends not to care; and what kind of expression is Juliet wearing? Sometimes she looks helpless, sometimes resentful, sometimes downcast, then suddenly she switches to a nonchnt look with a hint of sadness. Is she trying to show off her acting skills in this group? Although they were there to see him off, the women all seemed to have agreed to leave him aside and split into two groups, chatting among themselves. It is understandable that Nicole and Anniston Eric are being hyped up in the newspapers as being close friends, going shopping, eating together, and pictures of Nicole visiting the set of Friends were taken in abundance. Many newspapers attribute Nicole''s role in Sleepless in Seattle to her boyfriend''s rmendation. Nicole cleverly refrained from refuting this. Of course, Eric is also pleased to hear this, after all, among the female protagonists of several movies rted to him, due to the very good cause covered by the maid experience, Eric and Nicole are probably the "most innocent" ones. It is probably so that Anniston and Nicole became good friends. Eric even thought that the little girl did this for sure with the intention of preventing herself from stealing. But the other three women, Eric, seemed confused. They seemed to be very familiar with each other. Elizabeth and Julia he was clear about, but what about the little girl? After bearing it for half an hour, the melodious voice of the airport announcer finally sounded out, announcing that it was time to board the ne. Chapter 235: Seattle

Chapter 235: Seattle

Eric hastily said goodbye to Anniston and the others, taking Nicole, Elizabeth, and the other staff members to the boarding gate. The massive Boeing ne glided along the long runway and rushed into the clouds. After the ne steadied, Eric unbuckled his seatbelt and finally sighed with relief. Elizabeth coldly snorted as she inadvertently nced towards Eric, "This is the fate of greedy men, humph." Eric did not want to discuss these things with Elizabeth, this little girl was obviously trying to stir things up, so whatever he said sounded like he was trying to provoke her, and the best thing to do was to remain silent. The ne arrived at Seattle-Ta International Airport after four hours of flight. Looking out the window, the runway was wet and the sky was gloomy, obviously, it had just rained. Inparison to Los Angeles''s more than 300 days of sunny weather per year, Seattle''s weather is practically the opposite extreme due to its temperate marine climate. Seattle is kept in a state of dampness all year round, even when it''s not raining, giving it a perpetually moist feeling. It is said that the line in the original screeny, "It rains nine months of the year in Seattle," was aint from director Nora Ephron due to filming dys caused by rain during production. With the flight attendant''s careful reminder, Eric and the others added an extrayer of clothing before disembarking the ne. However, as soon as they stepped out of the airport, they still felt a chill in the air. In Los Angeles, the temperature in September can still reach 30 degrees asionally, but here in Seattle it is already autumn chill. The temperature is only around 15 degrees. "Hi, Eric." After Jeffrey saw Eric, he walked up and the two of them embraced. After Eric greeted him, he let go of Jeffery and asked, "How''s it been in Seattletely?" "That''s too bad. I really don''t like the weather here," Jeffrey shook his head. Eric smiled reassuringly, "Just bear with it for a few more days, when I get things back on track here, you can go to New York." "Let''s go, the car is outside," Jeffrey said, greeting the rest of the group. With everyone together, they left the airport and boarded a few business cars. After a half-hour journey, the group arrived at the filming location of the movie in Seattle, Alki Beach. The beach is located on the southwest side of the city, about twenty kilometers from the city center. Because it is rtively remote, the living environment of the crew is also quite simple. Elizabeth stood in her room, looking at the simple bedding and furniture in front of her with a face of terror, as well as the old-fashioned TV that looked like a little box. Sheined to Eric, who had been dragged in by her, "Eric, is the budget of the drama team so tight now?" "Of course not," Eric found the girl''s expression very amusing. Teasingly he said, "But it''s not to the extent of building a five-star hotel here just for the cast to stay." "But, I..." The girl gestured disdainfully at everything in the room. "Liz, you must understand that we are here to shoot a movie, not to enjoy ourselves. In order to save time, we must choose a ce to live nearby. We can''t have the crew driving more than 20 kilometers from the city every day just for a better residence, right? This area within several kilometers is all residential. You can imagine how much traffic would be caused if people drive to the city for work every day. How much time would be wasted." Elizabeth frowned and said, "But this ce looks... so dirty." "If you can''t stand it, you can go to the city and stay in a hotel. This nearby motel is still pretty good, you see. Look, there''s even a television." Eric smiled and pointed to the old television set with a wooden box-like shell. He was calcting whether he should take one of them home. This thing has been in existence for more than ten years and it will give people a feeling of postmodern literary style if it is ced in the house. Elizabeth rolled her eyes and gave Eric an expression of "Are you kidding me?". Eric joked, patting the girl''s shoulder: "Liz, didn''t you say you wanted to be a producer? If you can''t even handle this, I suggest you give up now. When you make movies in the future, you will often encounter shooting environments even worse than this one, like camping in the wild. What will you do then?" "Um..." The girl bit her lower lip and couldn''t help but ask, "Does everyone in the drama team stay in a ce like this?" "Of course," Eric said, "I''m in the room across from you, and Nicole is across from you. And a hotel can''t fit everyone, so I said this was the best one. The crew and prop master are staying in the one across the street, and it''s worse." Elizabeth paused for a moment, then turned silently and dragged her suitcase inside. After having lunch, Eric spent the whole afternoon to do a field inspection of the locations selected by Geoffrey and others. Later that evening, the crew had a simple opening party and the next day, Sleepless in Seattle officially started shooting. "Hey, Victor, how''s it been hanging with Uncle Hans these days?" Eric crouched next to a seven or eight-year-old boy wearing a red jacket and a baseball cap as the crewid down the camera track. Viktor Morris, the little boy, looked up to his mother standing by his side and, after receiving encouragement, said, "Uncle Hans is a very nice person; he bought me lots of gifts." As he spoke, he pulled a tiny Transformer model out of his pocket and waved it in Eric''s direction, looking like Optimus Prime. Eric smiled and said, "Okay, if you behaveter, I''ll buy you a gift too. How about a full set of Transformers?" The little boy looked at his mother again and then shook his head: "No, Director Sir, my mom said you already paid me for the movie, so even if there was no gift, I would still perform well." Eric patted the boy on the head and exchanged a few words with the little one before standing up and asking Hans, "What do you think?" "Victor is well-behaved and clever. I just don''t know if he has the spark you are looking for. To be honest, I think a boy would be the best fit for the role of Jonah." Eric knew that Hank was referring to Stewart. But clearly this wasn''t very likely, even as a supporting role. Stewart''s fee was also in the million range, while the little boy in front of him was only paid one hundred thousand dors. Firefly may not be short of money, but it wouldn''t make such an unnecessary waste. Although Jonah ys a very outstanding role, he is still a supporting role, and Sam and Annie are always the male and female protagonists. "Just try a few times and it will be okay. The key to why I chose this boy in the first ce is that he is obedient. The shooting time for Sleepless in Seattle is not very flexible, if we choose an unruly child actor, it may dy the shooting time which would be a disaster for the crew." "Haha. I understand," Hankughed. The shooting track was quicklyid out and Eric had a brief conversation with the two people, then Hans took the little boy to the beach. The first scene was simple; it was mainly a shot of Sam taking Johnny out for a boat ride and ying by the sea. Since it was all long shots, there were no acting requirements, so as long as Hans and the kid improvised, it was fine. Eric gave a few instructions to the cameraman and assistant director, letting them take as many shots as possible, before walking over to the nearby trailer. The trailer door was open. Eric walked in directly, the makeup artist was doing makeup for Nicole, waiting for the shot of Hanks and the little guy ying. Thedy would also start her first scene, that distant gaze of the father and son ying, and also the first conversation between Anne and Sam. Although the male and female leads didn''t have any interaction until an hour into the movie, Eric was determined to put this scene at the start of filming. "Mr. Williams," the two female makeup artists greeted him as soon as they saw Ericing in. "Keep going," Eric calmed Nicole who was about to stand up and walked behind the girl. He looked at the beautiful woman in the mirror. A momentter, the skilled makeup brush had cleared Nicole''s face. The makeup artist then said to Eric: "Mr. Williams, does this look okay?" Nicole also got up and stood in front of Eric, showing off with a twirl. The girl was wearing a white zer and skirt, with white high heels, and an oversized gray hooded windbreaker on the outside, exactly the same as Meg Ryan''s outfit in her memory. But despite their simr beauty, there was no connection between their personalities, and Eric wanted a silly and sweet female lead. "Nicole, imagine you''re Anne Reid, and thenugh for me so I can see." Eric leaned against a table and said this to the girl. Nicole mulled it over for a moment before puckering her lips and tilting her head to the side, innocently staring up at Eric. In an instant, a silly yet sweet vibe filled the atmosphere. Eric was taken aback for a second before giving a thumbs up and praising, "Very good, that''s what I''m talking about." After Nicole received Eric''s approval, she quickly collected her expression and changed back to the tall and cold Nicole Kidman, looking at Eric, was waiting for his next orders. Eric didn''t mind the changes in Nicole''s expressions as long as she was able to transition quickly during performances. "Right, you should have gotten a sense of Anne''s way of walking too, right?" "Of course," Nicole nodded, nced around, picked up a sling bag slung over her shoulder that looked like it was about to fall off, and then sauntered out to the trailer with a gait that waspletely different from her usual one. "That''s amazing," Eric said again, praising Nicole''s performance which was far beyond his expectations. Chapter 236: Lie down and take a bullet

Chapter 236: Lie down and take a bullet

When Eric had initially intended to cast Nicole for the lead role in "Sleepless in Seattle," he had her audition, and though she had met his requirements, she was far from the performance she gave this time. This time, Nicole had transformed herself into another person, the exact same Anne Reid from the script. It seems that Nicole has not been indulging in the glory of bing the lead of Seattle Nocturne, but has put in a lot of effort to understand the role in private. In Hollywood, an actor will eventually have to rely on their acting skills to speak, andpared to many beautiful stars who are stuck in the flowers and glory, Nicole obviously understood this early on. Upon hearing Eric''spliment, the girl had a happy expression on her face and then cautiously asked, "Eric, can I tone down the lip color a bit?" Eric looked at the girl''s lips, which were thick and bright red, and nced at the two makeup artists. He couldn''t figure out what was going on for a moment. The older makeup artist quickly exined, "Mr. Williams, this is the styling we did for Miss Kiddman based on the initial makeup design. I had also suggested lightening Miss Kiddman''s lip color at the time, but it seemed like you personally vetoed the suggestion." Eric gave it some thought and then suddenly realized, "Oh, I remember now, this is just right, no need to adjust." "But it looks so unnatural," the younger makeup artist chimed in weakly. "This is the effect we want," Eric exined. "If we fix even this w, Nicole will be too perfect. Don''t forget that Annie Reid is a woman whocks a bit of care in her life. How can a woman like that make herself perfect without ws? Some ws fit her character more." Upon hearing Eric''s words, all three of them nodded thoughtfully. Eric continued, "I know you are all very professional makeup artists, but don''t forget that you are styling for actors, so your job is not to make the actor perfect, but to create the actor''s image as much as possible ording to the director''s requirements, no matter how ugly or beautiful it is." "Thank you for your advice, Mr. Williams, we know now." The older makeup artist nodded hastily. Due to her thorough preparation, Nicole had very few NG takes, so the scene of Sam and Annie''s first meeting on Alki Beach waspleted quickly. In theing days, once a few airport scenes were filmed, Nicole could leave the crew temporarily if she wanted to. As usual, the crew didn''t shoot anyplex shots on the first day, except for the scene where Sam and Annie meet, which was mostly just a few scenes of Sam ying with his son. In order to be able to act as a father-son duo with the young actor Viktor Moeris, Hanks had started spending time with the little one a week before, so by the time the shooting started, there was no barrier between the two. After the first day of getting to know each other, the "father and son" were already in the flow, and with time not allowing the crew to take it slowly, the second day started with moreplicated scenes. Of course, problems followed. The backdrop of the scene is that Jonny reveals his home address to the radio station, and soon Sam receives love letters from all over the United States. The living room table was stacked with a pile of mail, and Jonna casually picked one up, reading aloud, "Dear Sleepless in Seattle, you are the most attractive man I have ever heard of, pfft..." The little fellow snorted, throwing the letter aside. He reached out to open another. Before Hank had a chance to speak his line, Eric shouted "Cut!" again. The boy had not the mischievous look that he should have had on his face, but rather a look of anxiety. His eyes could not help darting around. Eric made a gesture to the others and said, "Forget it; let''s take a break; Victor,e over here and let''s talk." "Did I not do it right again, Mr. Director?" The little fellow hopped off the chair and came over to Eric, asking timidly. Although he had only taken five shots, the boy had be timid after the third shot. Seeing this, Eric decisively stopped shooting. He knew that forcing him to shoot any further would create greater psychological pressure on the boy and might even make the little guy lose the confidence to continue acting. Upon hearing Victor''s words, Erik quickly shook his head: "No, no, no, you have done well enough; it''s just that you haven''t done your best. Do you want to be the best one?" Victor nodded fiercely and said, "Of course, when I grow up, I want to win an Oscar too." "Hmm, what an ambitious kid, but the Oscar is not so easy to get. Those who can stand on the Oscar podium and receive the little gold man are the best of the best." "What should I do?" Viktor asked with anticipation on his face, momentarily rxing under Eric''s gentle encouragement. At Eric''s gesture, he even sat beside him. The crew members knew Eric was teaching the young one his way of acting, so in order not to interfere with the two, most of them left the room consciously. Only a few staff members remained in the room, and all of them were moving around lightly. Hank pulled another chair and sat on the other side of the little guy with a smile. This action made Viktor more secure, after all,pared to Eric, Hank, who had been with him for more than a week, could bring him a sense of security. Eric ruffled the boy''s head and smiled, "It''s simple. When you encounter failure, don''t be discouraged. Like the shooting just now, if it didn''t work out this time, just try a few more times. But if you be unconfident because of one or two failures, then one can never progress." The boy nodded vaguely, as if he realized something, but then he scratched his fingers and said in a low voice: "But, seeing so many uncles and aunts wasting their time because of me, I''m a little worried and afraid that they will get angry." "No, you''re wrong," Erik said. "You got paid to act, same as them. They get paid too. And they''re different from you. They get paid by the hour. The longer you shoot, the more they get paid, so they''re actually quite happy." Erik gestured to Niks, who was changing the film in the camera and had a faint smile on his lips. "Niks, are you happy now?" Niks released a forced smile and nodded, "Of course, little one, you can try as much as you want. The more takes we have, the happier we''ll be. Of course, we can''t deliberately mess up the shot because the director will definitely notice and we won''t be paid for it." Eric gave Nick a stern look to stop him from rambling on, then said to Victor, "So, tell us about your performance, Victor. Have you seen Home Alone?" "Of course, Kevin and the two dumb thieves, but unfortunately I only watched it once. Mom no longer took me there. Director, sir, Mom said that movie was directed by you, will this movie be as interesting as "Home Alone" now?" "That''s for sure. So, if you do a good job, kids all over the US will look up to you just like they do to Kevin." The boy immediately showed a yearning expression, although he didn''t quite understand what Eric said because he hadn''t learned the meaning of the word ''worship'', but the little guy instinctively felt that being worshipped by children all over the United States must be something very impressive. In order to prevent the boy from steering the conversation off-topic again, Eric said, "Since you''ve seen Home Alone, you must remember how Kevin looked in the movie, and that''s what you''re going to have to do for the role of Jonah. It''s simr to Kevin. What you just did wasn''t right, when you were reading the letter. You should be a bit more mischievous, like grinning and ring. Oh, and can you do a silly face?" "Wow--" The little one immediately hooked up the corner of his mouth, rolling his eyes and making a funny face. Eric patted the boy on the shoulder: "Good job, so then you''re going to do it like this..." In ten minutes, shooting will resume. Still the same pile of letters, the little one opened one and read it as usual: "Dear Sleepless in Seattle, you are the most attractive man I have ever heard of, puff..." "Cut!" Eric shouted out instinctively, but then realized it was inappropriate. He had just built up confidence in the little guy, originally thinking that he would wait until the boy finished the scenepletely before saying anything else. But seeing the boy''s expression not being done properly, Eric instinctively shouted out, but it was toote to take it back at this point. The boy looked back with bright yet hesitant eyes, and Eric had a sudden idea. He grabbed a baseball cap beside him and threw it towards Nichs, who was not far away. It hit the innocent photographer''s face: "Nichs, you idiot, you messed up such a good shot with the shake of your camera." Eric roared while giving Nichs a few winks, even though he was shot in the ground. The poor photographer didn''t dare pretend he didn''t understand Eric''s meaning and could only apologize with a forced smile: "Sorry, director, this was really an ident. I will pay attention next time. Can you forgive me?" "I''ll let it go this time, but if you do it again, I''ll... deduct your sry," Eric said with gritted teeth, then changed to a gentle look and said to the boy, "Victor, it''s not your fault this time, it was Nichs who messed up the shot. See, even adults make mistakes too, so don''t be nervous; shall we continue?" "All right, Mr. Director," the little one said firmly. Perhaps encouraged by the idea that even adults make mistakes, I failed a few times after that, but this shot eventually made it through. Having found that this method could stimte the confidence of the young ones, Eric immediately singled out a few ''dummies'' and even Hansenplied and yed the fool a few times. This was followed by a sudden improvement in the boy''s performance. Chapter 237: Isnt that too tiring?

Chapter 237: Isn''t that too tiring?

"I didn''t expect you to be quite resourceful. It''s just that everyone else has be a fool, and you''re the only one still being shrewd." It was another morning, and in Eric''s room, Elizabeth was sitting in a chair next to a small wooden table, watching Eric brush his teeth in the bathroom and asking. "I''m the director, the one in charge of the entire crew, just like the alpha wolf in a pack," Eric said, wiping the foam from his mouth, "and if I make a mistake, it''s as if all of you have made a mistake as well." "Hmph, you sure can talk your way out of things." Elizabeth huffed and puffed, seeing Eric walk out. She pointed to the breakfast tray in front of her and said, "Here, for you." Eric was not polite either, and he pulled the tray in front of him and quickly ate it. He knew Elizabeth had already eaten. ording to thedy herself, she was on a diet and only ate an apple and a ss of milk for breakfast during this time. But in Eric''s opinion, it was definitely because Elizabeth couldn''t stand the hygiene conditions here and couldn''t find a ce to make her own breakfast, so she had to simplify things, and thedy also ate very little for the other two meals. Looking at Eric starting to wolf down his food, the girl helplessly picked up the file in front of her and read out today''s shooting schedule and a few other things to Eric, reminding him of some things that he needed to set aside extra time to deal with. These were originally n''s jobs, but since Elizabeth insisted oning, Eric naturally delegated this part of the work to her while also taking the opportunity to enjoy the view every morning. Although she was aware of Eric''s "lewd" thoughts, Elizabeth did not reject them. "Right. I think you definitely need to take a look at this newspaper." "What?" Eric put down the ss and picked up the newspaper. This is a copy of the Seattle Times. It is thergest newspaper in cirction in Washington State. Of course, this is not what Eric cares about. What he was paying attention to was the headline on the front page of the newspaper. "Sony acquires Columbia Pictures for $5.5 billion." Although I had known that Sony mightplete the acquisition in September, I was worried about the problem of Running Out of Time future revenue sharing after the Japanese acquisition of Columbia, but Eric couldn''t keep it on his mind all the time. Eric read the article carefully, let out a sigh of relief, and put the newspaper aside to continue his breakfast. From the article, he saw a piece of news that, due to public pressure, Japanese people issued a statement saying that Sony will not be involved in the management of Columbia Pictures. Thepany will still be managed by the American team, and Sony will only maintain an investor status. Since nothing will change, there shouldn''t be any twists and turns in the distribution of Running Out of Time. Elizabeth stared at Eric for a while before she couldn''t help but ask, "Are you feeling proud of yourself right now?" Eric swallowed the food in his mouth and looked up, puzzled, wondering, "What do I have to be proud of?" The woman raised her eyebrows and said, "Or maybe you didn''t read the fourth paragraph of the article carefully. Because of the movies Home Alone and Running Out of Time, Columbia''s stock price has risen, and the Japanese have paid at least 700 million dors for it. Isn''t that something to be proud of?" Eric shrugged. "Of course I''m proud, but it''s not to the point that I''m jumping around with joy since the Japanese didn''t put the 700 million dors into my bank ount." "What about Running Out of Time? I heard about the contents of that contract, Firefly didn''t invest a penny yet they got more than half of the box office profits." Why are you looking at me with those eyes as if I took advantage of you, even though I got the bigger share of the profit? Colombia also made money out of it. At this point, Eric pretended to be angry and said: "And you just said that the Japanese paid 700 million US dors for it. So if you count it up, I''m still in the minus. On average, each of my movies made the Colombia shareholders 35 million US dors, but they wouldn''t give me a penny." The girl was so surprised by Eric''s brilliant logic that her mouth opened slightly. After a while, she said, "You really are..." "Alright. These aren''t things you should be worrying about now," Eric finished his breakfast. Taking out a napkin, he wiped his mouth and said, "What''s most important now is that we finish filming this movie." "Now that you mention it, I remember something else," the girl said, raising her head and looking at Eric, who was picking up clothes by the wardrobe. "I have been reading the script these days, and I feel that this movie is... strange." "Strange?" Eric turned and gave the girl a nce. Elizabeth nodded: "Yes, don''t you think it''s too far-fetched for two strangers, one of whom has never seen the other, to start talking intimately and the other to act like they are long-lost friends when they meet for the first time?" Eric, wearing a coat, said to Liz, "I don''t think so. Have you ever heard of...fate?" The youngdy repeated the phrase that Erica had puzzled out after a moment, then shook her head. "I don''t think it''s possible; how could there be something destined in this world?" "Everything has already happened, things that can no longer be changed, are predetermined, which is what is called fate. Like me and you, me and Jane, me and Drew, me and Vee... Elizabeth rolled her eyes dramatically: "With the way you''re talking, I get the urge to punch you. And, don''t put me in the same category as other women, okay?" Eric smiled: "Alright, just kidding. Actually, in the far east, there is a very romantic point of view, called 500 nces in the previous life, in exchange for a passing in this life." Elizabeth asked, "What does that mean?" "This will take a while to exin," Eric looked at his watch and said: "Everyone must have left already, let''s go too and we can talk on the way." This small hotel is less than a kilometer away from the seaside cabin used for filming by the crew, so everyone in the crew walked there. After exchanging greetings with others, the two of them walked side by side down the street. Elizabeth asked, "What were you saying?" Eric nodded and said, "Eastern Buddhism has the view that life does not end, that their souls will reincarnate and have past lives. So, think about it, you should understand now, right?" "Five hundred lifetimes of looking back, for just a passing nce in this lifetime," Elizabeth murmured to herself before looking at Eric and asking, "Isn''t that... too much?" Chapter 238: Maidens

Chapter 238: Maidens

"What?" This time it''s Eric''s turn to be perplexed. Elizabeth repeated, "Having to turn around 500 times to get one chance to pass by someone, isn''t that too tiring?" Eric was speechless. Was this girl not romantic, or was she too serious? But he still followed the girl''s words and said, "So, since it''s so tiring, then meeting in this lifetime should be treasured even more, right?" "Oh," Elizabeth nodded thoughtfully, then asked, "But what you are saying doesn''t have much to do with "Sleepless in Seattle," does it?" "No worries, Sleepless in Seattle is about a story of fate: a male and female separated by a thousand miles, through a radio program, finally got together romantically, isn''t this fate?" Elizabeth objected, "But I feel like your story could never happen in reality." You''re absolutely right. With billions of people on this, anything can happen. And if it were too easy, what would be the point of making a movie about it? Eric spread his arms out. "It''s because there are so many impossibilities and disappointments in reality that stories appear in various forms, like movies. It''s all for the purpose of giving people some kind of spiritualpensation and constion, which is the beauty of stories." "Alright, you always have a lot of reasons." Elizabeth realized she could not argue with Eric, so she gave up. ---- On New Year''s Eve, the father and son still spent the night in a dark house, isted and lonely. After Johnna fell asleep, Sam carried his son into the bedroom. Then he came to the deck alone, watching the fireworks rise in the distance, and the loneliness in his heart became even more intense. He fled into the living room in confusion andy on the sofa. After drinking some beer, he finally fell asleep drowsily. Unbeknownst to him, he saw his wife Marge again, the woman with short hair wearing a white dress, tall and delicate. "Can I have half a can of beer?" Maggie picked up Sam''s half-drunk beer and sat down next to him, leaning back against the sofa and looking at him with a loving gaze. A charming smile hung at the corner of her mouth. Sam also stared nkly at the other person. Maggie said again, "What did I say before?" Sam finally reacted, subconsciously asking, "What do you mean?" I said, "Respect your eyes." Sam shook his head: "Respect us." The two of them stared at each other for a moment, and Sam finally said with a groan of pain, "Baby, I think you know it hurts." "Good!" Eric shouted out in satisfaction as the people around him stirred. The woman sitting on the couch then stood up and came to Eric''s side with a charming smile, asking, "Director Williams. Did I do okay?" "Of course, you''re remarkable, Ms. Lowell," Eric said to the tall woman. The woman''s name is Carey Lowell, who is thetest Bond girl in this year''s "007 License to Kill," and the role of Sam''s wife in the original "Sleepless in Seattle" was guest-starred by this woman. Therefore, given that the other party''s current fame is greater than a few yearster, Eric sent out an invitation. Carey Lowell quickly responded, indicating that she was willing to make a cameo appearance in Eric''s movie. This is also understandable, although she is thetest Bond girl, this year''s "007: Licence to Kill" only grossed more than $30 million at the summer box office. If it was another movie, 30 million would definitely be good. But this is 007, and 30 million is not a good result to go out and greet people. Not to mention that the publicity cost of this movie together would be far more than 30 million. Although MGM released the film worldwide, it not only recovered its costs but also made a small profit. But the North American gross of $30 million directly resulted in the 007 series being suspended for a period of six years, and when it was restarted, all the main creators were changed again. Because her grades weren''t good, Kaylee Lowry didn''t gain the corresponding fame. To be honest, the Bond Girls of the 007 series have never achieved much fame. People will remember the actors who have yed 007, Sean Connery, Pierce Brosnan, and Daniel Craig, but not many people can name the Bond Girls. "Do you want me to go over it again, or are we just going to let this pass?" Hearing Eric say this, Kelly Lowry asked, her appearances were few, other than a few seconds in Sam''s dream and a family outing. All her scenes added up to less than a minute in the entire movie. Since one must have a good figure and appearance to be a Bond girl, simrly to Vesper Lynd, 28-year-old Kelly Lovey was born in 1961, so if her acting career doesn''t have a breakthrough, her career won''t have much development after she turns 30. So, since she managed tond a role in Eric''s movie, the girl decided to try to get more roles for herself. When Kelly Lowry initially agreed to guest star, she didn''t even ask for any payment. It''s easy to understand her motive. Although it was just a guest star role, no one would belittle the role besides Eric himself, who knew the specifics. Originally, there were many people rmending people to Eric here, but they were all rejected by Eric, and he directly chose Kelly Lowell''s name. The girl was also extremely treasured. After all, although Polly Simmons was the nominal heroine of Running Out of Time, ording to the appearance time, it was almost the same as a cameo. Therefore, Kelly Lowell also hoped that Sleepless in Seattle could bring her the same effect as Polly Simmons after her appearance in Running Out of Time. But Eric shook his head: "No need, Ms. Lowell. It''s already quitete now, so you can go back to the city. You should know that the living conditions here for the crew are not very good." "It''s okay, I''ll wait a bit. We''re almost done taking pictures anyway; maybe there''s something else that needs me." "Alright." Eric nodded, and the girl wisely stepped aside. The camera continues, and the scene is still on the sofa. Sam opens his eyes and wakes up, only to find out that everything was just a dream. Rubbing his eyes, he looks around. The light is dim and silent, as if echoing his lonely feelings at the moment. "Okay, Hans, let''s wrap it up here for today," Eric said, addressing the crew around him. "Let''s start packing up and head home for some rest. We''ll be going to the Seattle airport for shooting tomorrow." Chapter 239: Save the flowers

Chapter 239: Save the flowers

Eric had just taken a shower and was lying in bed at the hotel where the film crew was staying, chatting with Anniston in Los Angeles, when a knock on the door sounded. Eric replied hurriedly to Aniston on the other side, "Baby, someone is knocking at the door, so I have to hang up... How could it be, I guess it''s someone from the crew who''s looking for me to talk about something... Little silly, don''t think I don''t know, you let Nicole help monitor me, right?... Haha, now she''s living next to me, this crappy motel, talking a bit louder and the next door can hear, how can I... Alright, alright, kisses, bye." Eric put down the microphone, got out of bed, and put on his slippers. He opened the door, and there was Carey, wearing a khaki windbreaker. Her delicate face was carefully made up and looked even more morous than when she was ying Sam''s wife, Marge, on the set. There was one button missing on her high-cored windbreaker, leaving a hint of white that made one want to pull it open to see what was inside. Her slender legs were revealed beneath the hem of her windbreaker, wearing ck stockings, and the ck leather ankle boots gave her a youthful energy. The woman still had a blue folder in her hand, and seeing Eric''s brief expression of amazement, Carey Lowell''s eyes shed with a hint of pride: "Mr. Williams, may Ie in?" "Oh, of course," Eric finally reacted, smiling as he let Carey Lowell into the room and shut the door behind her. "The selection is limited here, it''s just milk and orange juice. Miss Lowry, which one would you like?" Eric walked towards the cab with the old-style television and opened a small cubby, asking casually. Carey Lowell sat down in the chair beside the round table. She put the blue folder on the table and heard Eric''s inquiry. She slightly moved her expression and said, "If it''s possible, give me a ss of milk." Eric didn''t think much and poured a ss of milk for the girl, delivering it in front of her, while he sat down on the other side of the small round table. Carey, lowing her voice in thanks, picked up the ss of milk seemingly without effort and brought it to her lips. Her blue eyes stared intently at Eric, with a hint of charm. After taking a small sip, the girl then stuck out her rosy tongue to lick off the creamy residue from her lips, a subtle yet suggestive movement that was extremely alluring. In the quiet little room this night, watching thedy''s teasingly suggestive actions, Erick couldn''t help but touch his nose and ask, "Miss Lovey, shouldn''t you be back in the city? There is no part for you here anymore." The girl looked at Eric with a hint of bitterness and said, "Do you want me to leave? It''s sote now; I can''t even find a hotel in the city, and I''m a woman, so I don''t dare to run around in the middle of the night." Carey Lowell is obviously talking nonsense. Eric saw with his own eyes that the other person had an assistant following along. But he didn''t point it out, upon seeing Carey Lowell for the first time, Eric could almost imagine what the woman hade for. "Okay. What do you have in mind?" Eric asked directly. Kelley Lowell opened the blue folder in front of her and said, "Actually, Mr. Williams, I wanted to talk to you about my role." Eric took the several pages of A4 paper bound together that the girl handed over, nced at it, and understood that it was an understanding and ideas about the role of Maggie, and many actors would do simr work after taking on the role. Eric simply didn''t expect the other person to do so little role analysis work for such a minor role. After roughly going through it once, Eric found that the understanding of Maddie in these analyses was even more profound than his own. There were some details that he himself hadn''t thought of. He looked up in surprise and asked, "Miss Lowell, did you do these yourself?" Carey Lowell moved her lips, hesitated for a moment, and then spoke honestly: "It was discussed by my agent and... me. Eric, what do you think?" "Your agent is not bad," Eric said with a smile, seeing the girl''s embarrassed expression with a slight twinkle in her eyes. Eric did not continue to entangle this question, then he continued: "The analysis of the role of Maggie above is very urate, to be honest; some details even I did not think of. And Maggie is indeed the fuse of the whole story; without this character, there would be no basis for the development of the whole story." "So," Carey Lowell heard Eric''s approval and leaned forward in surprise, "Mr. Williams, don''t you think that the role of Molly has too little of a part? Since the role is so important, it would make sense to add a few more scenes, right?" Carey Lowell, you must understand that the focus of this story is on Sam and Annie. I hope that when the movie is released, the audience will have a strong resonance for the wonderful fate of the male and female protagonists; only then will this movie be sessful. Carey Lowell heard Eric''s words, not discouraged in the slightest, her cat''s-eye stone blue eyes gleaming as she stared at Eric, her body leaning forward again, and she said softly, "Mr. Williams, I don''t mean to steal the limelight from the female lead. Besides, with your talent, this won''t happen, right? I just want to give Maggie more scenes." Eric''s lips curled up into a faint smile, his legs spread apart under the table, and he grabbed the restless leg that was poking out, not letting it fidget anymore. Even through the fabric, Eric could still feel the smoothness of the leg he was holding. Carey Lowell''s body stiffened momentarily at the feel of Eric''s movements, but her expression soon softened into a coyness. She thought that by doing this, Eric was tacitly agreeing to her request. "Mr. Williams, so you agree?" Eric gazed at the girl''s mesmerizing red lips as they moved while she spoke, and he chuckled as he asked in response, "Agree to what?" Carey lowered her gaze, yet didn''t show any signs of impatience: "Add a few more scenes for the character of Maggie. Actually, we don''t need to add too many shots, as long as it can help the audience to remember... to remember the character of Maggie. You can do it, right?" "Of course, it''s easy, just like Polly in Dark War." Eric nodded, but before thedy showed a surprised look, Eric shook his head again firmly and said: "But I can''t do that. If Sam and Molly''s feelings are made too perfect, it will not only distract the audience''s attention, but even make the audience inclined to the idea that Sam will stay single forever, and even have a negative reaction to the fate between Sam and Annie, which would be a disaster for the movie." Carey Lowell was looking at Eric and heard him finish, still not indicating any intention of loosening. She felt disappointed, wanting to reim her leg that was being held captive by Eric. But after trying to pull a few times, she felt her leg being firmly held by him. Biting her red lips, the girl blushed and said to Eric timidly, "Mr. Williams, since... since it''s like this, can you let go of me?" "Why should I let go, I think it''s quitefortable," Eric asked with a chuckle. When Carey Lowell saw Eric''s aggressive gaze, her face flushed even more.The girl lowered her head, pushing on the edge of the round table with her tiny hands, but she still failed. She was too scared to make too much noise and call in other people, nor did she dare be angry at Eric, so she weakly pleaded in a pleading tone, "Mr. Williams, don''t... don''t do this; I should go back now." Eric lowered his voice and coaxed, "What are you going back for sote? And I remind you, there are mice in this small hotel, these little things are quite bold, they dare to climb onto people''s beds in the middle of the night." Carey lowered her neck, but still immediately said, "I''m not afraid of mice, Mr. Williams." "They''re afraid of me, it''s so sad," Eric made a disappointed expression. "No, no," the girl shook her head quickly, then thought of something and said, "Right, I... I have a partner, so, Mr. Williams, we can''t do this." Eric put his hand on his chest: "Wow, that''s really too bad. Another beautifuldy is taken, I''m sure all the men who know you will be heartbroken. Can I know who the lucky guy is?" Carey Lowell said, "His name is Griffin Dunne; he''s an actor too, and he... he proposed to me." Eric recalled and found images of Griffin Dunne in his memory of the moviea man who looked simr to Robin Williams but much shorter than him. He had acted in supporting roles in many films and directed a few, but was never very famous. After a brief pause, Eric asked, "Did you agree?" Carey Lowell shook her head: "I''m still thinking, but he... is well connected in Hollywood." Eric understood that thedy referred to him marrying Griffin Dunne, which could bring more opportunities for his career. Looking at the tall and beautiful woman in front of him, Eric suddenly had the urge to rescue her from the lecherous guy, who was only one meter and six tall. He blurted out, "He can''t help you." Carey Lowell said, a bit flustered, "Mr. Williams, I don''t understand what you are saying." "You know," Eric smiled meaningfully, "I can tell you that he can''t help you." The girl couldn''t take it anymore and had to look up and ask, "What makes you say that?" Eric muttered to himself, "Why? In my memory, besides a cameo in the 16th Bond movie, there wasn''t much that Carey Lowell had to show for." Chapter 240: How should I tell Jenny?

Chapter 240: How should I tell Jenny?

Of course, Eric couldn''t tell the girl the truth, which she wouldn''t believe, so he had to analyze ording to the facts: "I''ve heard of Mr. Griffin Dunne, and although he has good connections, he has no power to decide which actor to choose, he can only help you with rmendations and get you more auditions than an agency. But I''ve just seen the summer 007, and to be honest, Miss Lovey, your acting cannot help you grasp those opportunities. So I say, he can''t help you." Carey lowered her head and fell silent, her expression struggling slightly, even as she forgot that Eric was still pinching her leg. After a while, thedy seemed to have figured something out and lifted her head to look at Eric, daringly asking, "So, Mr. Williams, can you help me?" Eric shook his head without even thinking: "I can''t either." Carey Lowell and Vi are the same age, yet Vi has been in many movies and has been nominated for a Golden Globe, so her acting skills are not a problem, she justcks opportunity. But the current Carey Lowell doesn''t have much acting ability, and it''s hard for her to take on roles other than the Bond girl type. If the girl was ten years younger, Eric could take the time to personally teach her, but for now, forget it. "Then you still..." The girl seemed to suddenly remember her current situation and struggled again to free her leg from Eric''s grip, "Mr. Williams, please, can you let me go?" After Carey Lowell finished speaking, she noticed the man across from her rx his legs, quickly pulling them back in. Suddenly granted freedom, the woman who had been so eager to escape the room became hesitant. Eric gave a mischievous smile and pushed the ss of milk towards the girl, saying, "Finish this. It helps you sleep." Carey Lowell nodded unconsciously. She obediently picked up her cup, like she was spellbound. Under Eric''s piercing gaze, the girl hastily finished her milk, put down the ss, and said, "Then I''ll be going back to my room." "Hmm," Eric gave no resistance, nodding to the girl as he sat on the chair. Carey Lowell stood up, took a few steps to the door, but her hand on the doorknob hesitated for a few seconds before opening the door. Eric didn''t know when he had already stood behind the woman. He coaxed, "Why don''t you stay for a cup of milk, I have plenty here." "Ium, nono need," the girl said, feeling the warmth of Eric''s words on her neck and a pair ofrge hands around her waist.Her words stuttered. Eric disregarded the girl''s rejection and leaned in to kiss her long-awaited red lips. The girl gently pushed him away twice. He immersed himself in this kiss and felt the girl''s thick, milky scent between her lips. Eric decisively extended his tongue to pry open the girl''s teeth and invade her. After an exhrating kiss, Eric picked up Carey and walked over to the round table, throwing away the empty sses and cing thedy on top of it. Carey Lowell nced around the round table, her body slightly tensing with resistance. "This isn''t going to work," she said without responding. She felt her coat buttons being undone, and then the awful man leaned into her ear and whispered, "I''ll get you some milkter." ---- The morning sun nted through the wooden window into a corner of the room, and Eric opened his eyes to look at his watch. He then stretched out a big,zy waist. Soon, he realized that it was not his own room. He nced at the small single bed on the other side, although there was a pillow, there was no figure of Carey Lowell. Eric thought that the girl had already gotten up and didn''t care; he put on clothes and went to his own room. When washing up, Elizabeth came in again, but the woman had a gloomy expression and didn''t greet Eric or sit down like usual. Once Eric had left the room, Elizabeth threw the memo on the small round table and said, "Here, take a look at it yourself." Eric was stunned for a moment, then realized something and didn''t pay attention to it, and asked, "Uh, where''s my breakfast?" "I saw a few stray cats on the street that looked pitiful, so I gave them some money. With a haughty toss of her chin, the girl stomped off in her little boots." Eric smiled and shook his head, picked up today''s schedule, and took a look, deciding to go out and buy some breakfast for himself. The door opened quickly again, and Nicole, tall and slender, walked in and sat down next to Eric, cing a convenience bag in front of him and saying, "Hey, I think you might need this today." Eric has sniffed the faint smell of food, and he smiled to the girl and said, "Nicole is still the best to me." Nicole lifted her leg and put her hands on her knees with enthusiasm as she looked at Eric: "So, what should I tell Jane?" Eric, having looked over the schedule and the memo, took out the food from the convenience bag and began to eat, "What did you say?" Nicole raised her eyebrows: "What do you think?" Eric quickly made a "suddenly enlightened" look: "Wow, I didn''t expect you to have the habit of eavesdropping around the corner. What did you hearst night?" The girl blushed and said, "Nothing; I just heard something about drinking milk. Oh, and at midnight there was a big rat running around the hallway." "It''s nothing, just be honest with Jenny. A lot of people have the habit of drinking milk before they go to sleep." Eric said nonchntly. Nicole was just joking with Eric; she wouldn''t dare use it to pin him down. Hearing Eric say that, she could onlyugh along. "Oh right, did you see Miss Carey Lowell?" Eric asked as he ate breakfast, suddenly looking up. Nicoleughed as if she remembered something funny: "Yeah, I guess she didn''t want to stay and be teased, so she left early in the morning. Seriously, what did you promise this time, and why did you y so crazyst night?" Eric shrugged, "Nothing at all, it''s your call. in old ones." Nicole smiled in surprise and said, "In that case, I guess that poor woman must have been bamboozled by you." Eric red at the girl. Chewing his food, he mumbled, "This is nder. Be careful, or I''ll sue you for libel." ---- John''s girlfriend''s house. Jessica silently sat on a small stool, with a pile of rm clocks behind her. The little girl''s mother walked up to her in two or three steps: "Jessica, you must tell us where he is; Mr. Jonah''s father is going crazy." The little girl rolled her eyes and ignored it. Next, the girl''s father took three steps forward, with an air of authority as a father. He sternly asked, "Jessica, I''m your father. Tell us where he is." Jessica hesitated for a moment, feeling that it was time, and with her usual way of speaking, uttered two letters: "NY." "What is that?" Sam asked hastily. "No way, which means impossible!" said Jessie''s dad. "New York, he went to New York," the little girl continued. "What!" "How did he get there?" Three adults all showed a look of surprise. "United Flight 597," Jessica continued, announcing the flight number. Sam hurriedly asked, "When are we leaving?" "Seven thirty," said Mr. Jackson without hesitation. The three of them looked at the pair of rm clocks behind the girl, and the chime for seven thirty sounded. "Good. Alice, your performance was amazing!" Eric shouted happily, looking at the girl standing up from the small bench and saying this. All the people around were excitedly pping their hands, not because the little girl had performed exceptionally well, but because this was thest shot for the crew in Seattle, on the morning of the 24th of September, the eighth day of shooting, which was supposed to be ten days in Seattle. Thanks to Irv''s special guidance, Victor Morris, who ys Jonah, made a lot of progress in his performance quickly, thus saving two and a half days of shooting. Perhaps two and a half days will not seem like a lot. However, for a crew that spends hundreds of thousands of dors every day, two and a half days saved can amount to millions in budget. Looking at his watch, it was not yet 10 o''clock, so Eric raised the megaphone in his hand and said to those around him, "Let''s take the day off and explore Seattle, but don''t miss the ne tomorrow morning. If anyone misses the ne tomorrow morning, they can just fly to New York by themselves." "Haha..." Amidughter, many people were packing up and preparing to leave, apart from the necessary personnel who had to stay to tidy up the scene. By the side of the road, Eric gave a detailed description to the workers responsible for escorting the photographed negatives back to Los Angeles for initial processing and editing, and watched as several people got into the business car and left, before finally returning to the inn with peace of mind. Eric came back to the room, took off the director''s vest, and changed into a ck windbreaker. He thought about the weather outside, got an umbre, and went out again. "Hey, where are you going?" Elizabeth saw Eric with a look of wanting to go out and curiously called out to him. The girl was very forgetful, and after a few days, she no longer remembered the matter between Eric and Carey. Lowe and her rtionship with Eric had returned to the way it was before, at least on the surface. Eric did not answer but instead asked, "Is there something you need?" Elizabeth stepped forward two steps: "It''s okay, so I asked where you were going; can I go with you?" "If you like," Eric nodded. "Wait for me then; I''m going to change my clothes." Elizabeth answered without thinking and then turned back to the room. Chapter 241: Come and take a look

Chapter 241: Come and take a look

Hey everyone! I''m really excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! With your help, I can trante chapters faster, and you can get ess to them before anyone else. As a patron, you''ll get 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. I would be so grateful for your support, so if you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much! Soon, Elizabeth emerged from the room dressed in a bright pink cored windbreaker, carrying a folding umbre in her hand: "Eric, let''s go." Eric shook his head: "This outfit won''t do, don''t you have a dark blue checkered windbreaker? Go change into that one." Elizabeth curiously nced at Eric and defended, "It''s not that cold today, that one is a bit thick." "Then don''t follow me." Eric shook his head and was about to leave, but Elizabeth quickly grabbed Eric: "Okay, okay, I''ll go change it." Because he was unfamiliar with the roads, Eric looked at the map while driving a rented car, bumping along the way, and it took him an hour and a half to reach his destination. Elizabeth looked outside the car and then looked at the map again. She couldn''t tell for a moment, so she asked, "Eric, is this the volunteer park? What are we doing here?" Eric shook his head. "Take a closer look; the park is on the south side." The girl looked outside the car carefully for a few moments, her eyes suddenly widening and her neck shrinking: "This is a graveyard; oh, oh, oh, I shouldn''t havee with you if I had known." "You can wait here." Eric didn''t force it either; he said it lightly and got off the car. Elizabeth looked at Eric''s back with a strange look on her face and hesitated for a moment before getting out of the car and following him up. Eric bought a bouquet of flowers from the florist by the cemetery and asked the shopkeeper a few questions. The shopkeeper, who clearly had been asked this before, immediately took out a small map of the cemetery and warmly gave Eric a few pointers. Elizabeth also heard words like "Bruce Lee" from the conversation between the two people, and followed Eric into the cemetery. After a while of walking, she eximed, "Oh, I remember now, that... Bruce Lee." Eric, walking ahead, turned and gave the girl a stare. "Be quiet. Don''t forget where we are." The girl immediately covered her small mouth, looked around, stuck out her tongue, and quickened her pace to follow up. Eric turned a few corners from the entrance, heading west, and quickly saw a deep red tombstone, confirming it was the same one the shopkeeper had told him about. Eric then walked over. Elizabeth followed, looking at the photograph on the tombstone and pulling on Eric''s arm: "What are we doing here?" "Look," Eric whispered, stepping forward and crouching by the ck tombstone sculpture, cing the bouquet in his hand beside the tombstone. Elizabeth quietly crouched down, looking at Eric''s concentrated profile. She could clearly feel some inexplicable emotion emanating from the man, neither sadness nor nostalgia. asionally, a hint of a smile would appear at the corner of his mouth, as if he had thought of something funny. Eric did not hide his emotions, but he did not exin anything to the girl either. Since he hade to Seattle, he might as welle and take a look. He wasn''t a die-hard fan of Bruce Lee, but his emotions towards Bruce Lee''s movies may be more pure than those who called themselves die-hard fans. Don''t even speak of this lifetime; even in thest lifetime, by the time he was born, Bruce Lee had already passed away. Eric was still a little kid who didn''t understand anything when he first watched a Bruce Lee movie. It was in the mid 1980s, a friend''s father made money from his business. They bought a VCR, so a bunch of kids would go to that friend''s house after school to watch videos every day. That was also when Eric first watched Bruce Lee''s Fist of Fury, which was the movie that the group of friends liked the most among the few VHS tapes they had, so they watched it the most. Every time after watching, a group of little guys would be making loud noises in the alleys, imitating the moves from the movie, making simple double-ended sticks with wooden sticks and ropes, and often ying the role-ying game that kids from that era often yed, arguing over who could y Chen Zhen. As age increased, the amount of information epted also increased, and it was easy to watch movies. But the pure joy of childhood could not be found anymore. Although many years have passed, even wrong reincarnations, Eric can still clearly remember every detail of Fist of Fury, which is an emotional memory that can bring a smile, not a cold memory from aputer hard drive due to time travel. After squatting in front of the tombstone for a while, Eric stood up and took two steps back, bowing slightly to the tombstone. Seeing Elizabeth, who was unwilling but still followed his example, Eric finally smiled and said, "Okay, let''s go." "Hmm," Elizabeth still asionally nced at Eric with a questioning look, and followed Eric onto the concrete road. The girl blushed and took a deep breath, then stepped forward and grasped Eric''s arm. In Eric''s questioning gaze, the girl softly said, "You''re walking too fast; I can''t keep up." There seemed to be a different meaning in the girl''s tone when she said this. "Oh, then I''ll go slow." Eric hadn''tpletely shaken off the emotions in his mind, so he didn''t realize the other meanings in the girl''s words and just nodded, letting the girl hang on to him. Until she got into the car after leaving the cemetery, Elizabeth still couldn''t muster up the courage to ask her doubts, and of course, Eric couldn''t answer her questions voluntarily. "Are you hungry? I''ll take you to get something to eat." Eric looked out the window at the light rain that was beginning to fall and asked Elizabeth, who was in the passenger seat. The girl finally rolled her eyes and said, "I haven''t had a full meal in days." "Then I''ll take you out for a big meal to make up for it," Ericughed as he started the car. "Where do you want to go after lunch?" Elizabeth thought for a moment and then shook her head. Eric tentatively asked, "What about Washington University? It''s not far from here." "Washington University will be better when spring arrives, when we can see the cherry blossoms. There isn''t much to look at now." Eric unconsciously thought of Japan, but he never thought that on the other side of the distant ocean there was a school famous for its cherry blossoms. "What about going to the Space Needle?" Eric asked again. Although Seattle often appears in movies, Eric really didn''t know what attractions there were in Seattle; besides Bruce Lee''s resting ce, Eric only knew of the Space Needle. "No, I''m from Manhattan; I''m sick of climbing the Empire State Building." Eric finally shrugged: "Okay, let''s go back after we have lunch, and I have some things to take care of." Hey everyone! I''m excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! As a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release, and you''ll be helping to support me in my work. Your support is invaluable to me, and I would be so grateful for your help. If you''d like to be a patron and help me out, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much for your support! Chapter 242: True freedom is without shackles

Chapter 242: True freedom is without shackles

Hey everyone! I''m so excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! As a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. Your support means the world to me, and I couldn''t do this without you. If you''d like to be a patron and help me out, head over to Patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much for your support! After a short half-day rest, the crew took a chartered flight to New York the next day. Jeffrey was still in charge of picking up the passengers. There was also a Firefly team here, responsible for the pre-production preparation of Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2. Compared to Seattle, most of the roles are for the father-son duo, John and Noah. Shooting scenes in New York is going to be troublesome, just in terms of characters. In the scenes shot in New York for Sleepless in Seattle, not only is there Annie''s family, but also Annie''s friends, co-workers, etc. Eric felt that this plot design was likely to weaken the presence of Annie''s boyfriend Walter, just like the few shots of Sam''ste wife Maggie. Although it was indeed a very romantic love story for Sam and Annie. For Walter, who had already proposed to Annie, it was very sad when he was dumped on Valentine''s Day for some ''mysterious'' reason. Eric remembered some reviews from his past life in which there werements about this matter, mostly criticisms of Anne''s infidelity and sympathy for Walter. However, in this country with a divorce rate of up to 50%, it seems that people don''t care too much about these things. To put it simply, whether it''s politics or love, people in this country are all pursuing two words: freedom. Eric remembered seeing a phrase somewhere that said that true freedom is not doing whatever you want to do, but rather not doing whatever you don''t want to do. Although this sentence has a suspicion of being deliberately obscure, it fits Anne in Sleepless in Seattle very well. Even though they were engaged, she still refused him without hesitation when she found out that Walter was not the one destined for her. "How is the discussion about the Empire State Building and the Twin Towers going?" As soon as he got off the ne and got into a business car with Jeffrey, Eric''s first words were about the two matters he was most concerned with. These two things are about Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2 respectively. Jon and Kevin will shoot on the two tallest buildings in New York, respectively, and until Sleepless in Seattle starts shooting, these two things have not been determined. "It''s all taken care of," Jeffrey told Eric with a reassuring look, then added, "but the management of both buildings doesn''t give us much time." "It''s okay. There aren''t many shots anyway, mainly the Empire State Building and a few aerial shots of the tops of the Twin Towers." Eric nodded contentedly. Jeffrey said again, "There''s one more thing about the snow. I asked the meteorological department in detail. The earliest New York can see snow is November, possibly in the first week of November, but it''s not certain since it''s only September now, you know. Weather forecasts are never urate. Maybe we''ll get lucky and it''ll snow at the end of October, or maybe not. It might not snow in New York until Home Alone is released. "In any case, you have to be prepared for it." Eric nodded: "It''s nothing. Just have someone prepare artificial snow. I''ll try to put the outdoor scenes of Little Boss 2 at the end of shooting, but even if we dy it, it won''t be for a long time. So I think there''s a 90% chance we''ll use artificial snow." "I have already had someone estimate ording to your script, although it does not need to be filled with scenes. However, artificial snow needs to be realistic enough for the audience to believe. The budget will increase by around 1.5 million US dors." Eric could tell from Jeffery''s tone that he was in emotional pain, so he patted Jeffery''s shoulder. Although Firefly had grown increasingly in scale, Jeffery was still the same thrifty person that Eric had first seen him as. But such a personality was also best suited to be a producer: "Jeffery, it''s notst year now. When we were making the first Home Alonest year, we had to be thrifty and even had to go to a remote Canadian town in the north to shoot. But our budget for this movie is very generous, so there''s no need to save money on where it should be spent." "I also know, I just subconsciously think, if the schedules of Sleepless in Seattle and Home Alone 2 were switched, then maybe the 1.5 million could be saved." Eric smiled, "ording to what you said, we could save 1.5 million if we wait for natural snow, however, by dying Home Alone 2 to Christmas, we may lose tens of millions in box office. You should know that from the box office performance of Home Alone, it is a children-oriented movie that is suitable for long-term release, so we must try to extend the schedule within the holiday season, and the peak of the Christmas box office will start inte November." "Why not put Sleepless in Seattle inte November as well, even if it doesn''tpete viciously with Home Alone 2? I think it could be dyed by a week too," Jeffrey asked again. "Because Sleepless in Seattle is not only heading for the Christmas season, but also rushing to the Valentine''s Day season in February, as it is a romanticedy, if it''s released one month in advance, then by February, the poprity of the film will be almost exhausted. But if it''s released around December 24, after two months of screening, then when entering the Valentine''s Day season, it can give the romantic film a rebound in box office. You know, my movies, therge-scale box office harvest period is more than eight weeks, such asst year''s first Home Alone, took 10 weeks of box office champion, andter Pretty Woman, Running Out of Time are the same." Jeffrey smiled and said, "I really don''t know where you learned all this. I was going to tell you about the schedule of The Others, You encouraged Michael Eisner to put The Others on November 1st, and I also think it''s not very appropriate. Halloween is indeed suitable for horror movies, but those are small-budget horror movies with no box office ambitions. Although The Others is also a small budget production, we have high expectations for its box office. Now it seems that you must have your own ideas." Eric nodded, not exining further to Jeffrey, who didn''t press for an exnation. In fact, the concept of movie schedules in the US is rtively mature now, but it is still very crudepared to more than twenty yearster. Although Erick fromter generations did not direct the movie or do distribution work, he naturally understood some of the distribution rules of the movie under the influence of the information explosion in that era. Hey everyone! I''m really excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! With your help, I can trante chapters faster, and you can get ess to them before anyone else. As a patron, you''ll get 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. I would be so grateful for your support, so if you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much! Chapter 243: Pretty good at troublemaking

Chapter 243: Pretty good at troublemaking

Hey everyone! I''m thrilled to announce that I''veunched my Patreon page, and I''d love for you to join me! By bing a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 chapters before anyone else. Your support is invaluable to me, and I wouldn''t be able to do this without you. To join, head over to Patreon/inhollywood and be a patron today. Thank you so much! Although the protagonist Annie works in Baltimore, besides some exterior shots in the Sun Newspaper Building and other ces in Baltimore, all the other shots of Annie''s role were filmed in Manhattan, New York. The reason Eric did this was to take care of the preparations for Home Alone 2 at the same time, most of the scenes in "Home Alone 2" were near Central Park in Manhattan. In the renovated apartment, Eric called "Action" again and then said to a chubby white woman in her thirties: "Ms. O''Donnell, when you say those lines about your character''s ex-husband, try to be a bit sharper. Remember, when you say that passage, you should have a feeling of resentment in your heart, because everything was the fault of your ex-husband and had nothing to do with you." Rochelle Austin, who was cast to y Annie''s roommate, shrugged her shoulders and said, "You know, director, I don''t have any feel for this kind of thing, so maybe we''ll need to do a few more takes." The cast around herughed lightly, as Rosie O''Donnell had said that the already 36-year-old rapper and actress was not only an extreme feminist, but also a lesbian. More importantly, she had never tried to hide this like other public figures, as she had a steady same-sex partner and they had already been living together. Althoughing to New York, since there are more chaotic shots needed than in Seattle, there are bound to be some problems, but so far, the filming progress is still consistent with the previous expectations, so Eric is not in a hurry. Hearing Rosie O''Donnell say this, heughed with the others and said, "No rush. We will take our time; I believe you will get the feel after a few more times." Rosie O''Donnell nodded, and Eric immediately beckoned for the start of the next shoot. This shot takes a long time. Therefore, the performance demand for Nicole and Rosie is high, and they have failed several times before. None of them seeded. ording to the dialogue between the male and female protagonists of An Affair to Remember when they made an appointment, the crisp sound of the pperboard guided Annie to write a letter. Anne finished typing on the typewriter with a bang and realized that she was a little crazy, she was obsessed with the idea of meeting another man on Valentine''s Day at the top of the Imperial Tower, like the one in the movie An Affair to Remember. She realized that was the same day she was supposed to meet her fiance, Walter. She frantically scratched her hair, and Anne crumpled up the letter she had written and threw it away. Becky picked up the little paper ball she had dropped on the sofa and looked at it, then said with aining face, "You know, because of that awful fate, I married Martin and bought a house with a dead tree, so I divorced him, and I even ran into Rick in a car ident." Becky said the words without any remorse, but the expression on her face showed hatred. Eric nodded slightly behind the monitor, but he felt that Rosie''s expression was a bit exaggerated at the moment, but he didn''t stop her immediately. Instead, he let the conversation continue. Anne sat down beside Becky with a bowl of popcorn, listening to her friend''sints. With enthusiasm, she asked, "Wait, didn''t you say you got divorced because of a tree?" "It''s because of the gardener," Becky blurted out. Annie asked, "Have you fallen in love with the gardener?" After Becky said that, she showed a brief moment of panic, then said, "Did I say I was in love with him? Have I said it?" Becky asked in return. Then she quickly changed the topic and directed Annie''s attention to the drama An Affair to Remember ying on the TV. Anne followed Becky and started to recite the ssic lines of the male and female protagonists from the TV show. When they came to the emotional part, they both cried out uncontrobly, but their expressions were extremely exaggerated. Thus, not only did it fail to evoke a sense of sadness or emotion, but it was actually quite funny. Ha ha! Eric heard a brief chuckle, and his eyes immediately swept towards the source of the sound from the monitor he was staring at. He shot a stern warning look to the light technician who made the chuckle, who quickly apologized to Eric. At first, Eric thought he could edit the shot of two women looking stupidly at the television for the movie, but with thatugh, the shot was ruined. After calling stop, Eric rubbed his temples and said, "Okay, I know it''s funny to many men to see two women crying like crazy over a romanticedy, but remember, you guys are working now. If anyone can''t help it, go out. If you get caught making troubleter, even if it''s not intentional, I won''t let you off easily. Everyone get ready, let''s do it again!" After a few more takes, the shot finally passed and it was already noon. Eric announced the shooting pause and was about to go for lunch when Elizabeth rushed in. Eric, Donald Trump has been waiting outside for you for two hours, but I didn''t notify you since you were shooting just now. Do you want to go and see him? Eric skeptically asked, "Who is Donald Trump? Are you very familiar with him?" Elizabeth exined, "Not too familiar, just acquainted. He''s a real estate tycoon in New York, and there are buildings named after him in many ces in the United States. He''s a very powerful person, and I''ve met him a few times at parties before." Eric listened to Elizabeth''s narrative and quickly dredged up some fragmentary information about Donald Trump from his memory. The information was not too much; it seemed that Donald Trump had left his own star on Hollywood Boulevard with a few fiery variety shows as an outsider. It seemed that this person was quite capable of making trouble. At the same time, Eric quickly remembered the other party''s beautiful daughter, Ivanka Trump, because Ivanka had been praised by the benevolent media as one of the world''s top ten unmarried female billionaires in the previous world, with a wealth of more than 2 billion US dors. Eric had seen Ivanka Trump''s photos on the Inte, which was indeed a big beauty, with a few simrities to "Fan Bingbing" in the previous world entertainment circle. Although Eric remembered this person, the two of them were in different fields: one made movies and the other was in real estate. So Eric wasn''t very interested and asked, "I don''t know Donald Trump; what does he want with me?" Elizabeth shrugged. "Who knows? I''m just here to let you know. If you don''t want to see him, I''ll tell him you''re too busy." Eric looked at his watch and said, "Since Mr. Trump has been waiting for me for two hours, let''s see him. Anyway, it''s lunchtime now." "Come with me," Elizabeth said, taking Eric with her as she headed towards the film set. Eric quickly saw a blond, middle-aged person in their forties wearing a gray wool coat. "Hello, Mr. Williams," Seeing Eric walk out of the scene, the middle-aged man who was sitting in a luxury car quickly crawled out and warmly shook Eric''s hand. Eric was a bit perplexed by this familiar stranger, but he still smiled and said, "Hello, Mr. Trump. May I ask what brings you to me?" Donald Trump seems to appreciate Eric''s directness,ughing, "I think you should almost be in lunch time; let Miss Murdoch help pass the word, Eric, don''t mind me calling you like this; there is a good restaurant nearby; I have already booked a seat; can I invite you to have lunch together?" Eric wasn''t particrly bothered by the symmetry of the call, nodded, then shook his head and said, "Mr. Trump, I only have an hour of time, so I''m sorry... " "I promise not to dy your work; the restaurant is around the corner of the street in front," Donald Trump said, pointing not far away. Eric, faced with Donald Trump''s enthusiasm, didn''t know how to refuse at first. He looked back at Elizabeth, wanting her to help him out of his predicament. But Donald Trump obviously misunderstood and immediately said, "Miss Murdoch cane too." Elizabeth, who was just about to help Eric find an excuse, shook her head immediately when she heard herself being dragged into it, "No need, Mr. Trump, I still have something to do." "That''s a shame," said Trump, shaking his head, then cheerfully opening the door of the luxury car for Eric. "Eric, let''s go." I don''t think I said yes yet, Eric muttered to himself. But seeing the other person''s attitude, refusing again would be too rude, so he had to get in the car. Donald Trump followed and ordered the driver to go to the destination. The two arrived at a restaurant and were led by the waiter to a quiet corner seat. Donald immediately sat down on the chair and instructed the servant to start serving the dishes. After the waiter left, he breathed a sigh of relief and carefully looked at Eric, who was sitting across from him. Since 1987, the crash of the US stock market has also affected the real estate industry, resulting in a major recession in the real estate market. Hey everyone! If you''d like to read tranted chapters ahead of the rest, then Id like to invite you to join my Patreon today! By bing a patron, youll get to read 10 tranted chapters ahead of every one else, and help support me in my work. Your support is invaluable to me, and I would be so grateful for your help. To be a patron, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today! Thank you so much! Chapter 244: Lazy

Chapter 244: Lazy

Hey everyone! I''m so excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! As a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. Your support means the world to me, and I couldn''t do this without you. If you''d like to be a patron and help me out, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much for your support! Under the influence of this great depression, Donald Trump''s assets shrank rapidly. In just over two years, Donald Trump''s assets have shrunk from the peak of 1.7 billion US dors to the current 500 million US dors. If it''s just this, it''s not much; after all, the market value of many real estatepanies has been greatly reduced. Before the Great Depression, Donald Trump was at the peak of his career, full of vigor, and his real estatepany had a veryrge booth, so he owed hundreds of millions of dors in loans to major banks and financial institutions. After the Great Depression began, due to continuous losses, the capital chain of his real estatepany was on the brink of copse and could go bankrupt at any time. Although he had managed to convince several banks to postpone the high interest payments required for the loan, he was no longer able to borrow any money from any institution. Without funds, his real estatepany could not continue running normally and remained in a semi-paralyzed state. A few days ago, Donald happened to see an article about Eric in a newspaper, which used an exmatory tone to detail Eric''s miraculous rise and predicted that Eric''s Firefly Film Company could get at least $400 million in pure profits with several films released this year. After carefully reading the article several times, Donald Trump immediately had an idea. Evenrge conglomerates worth billions of dors are unlikely to have two hundred million dors in cash. If he could get this money from Firefly, even half of it, he could get through this bankruptcy crisis. Donald Trump has the same advantage that all smart businessmen share, which is the ability to seize every opportunity avable to him without thinking about the chances of sess. There are only two possibilities when trying something: sess or failure. Without trying, there is only one possibility. After Donald Trump made up his mind, he immediately found a detective agency. He gathered a lot of information about Eric and found out about his acquisition of Pixar Studio, owned by Jobs. Pixar has always been a heartache for Jobs, losing money since it was bought, yet this studio was acquired by Eric for $20 million at the beginning of the year. In the data he collected, Pixar''s losses this year will reach a record high of 10 million US dors, so the evaluation of Eric''s acquisition in the data collected was very low, even using words like ''foolish''. But this was exactly what Donald wanted to see. He felt that the boy, while very talented in the film industry, was not too clever in business, or rather, not too clever outside of the film industry, which would be just fine if it were true. Donald Trump originally nned to go to Seattle himself, but then he found out that Eric had led the crew to New York, which is his headquarters. Because it was unlikely to contact the middleman for an introduction in a short time, and Eric was busy shooting the movie. Without participating in any social activities, Donald had to take the risk of going to Eric''s door in person. He had previously made an analysis of Eric''s character. He felt that since Eric achieved fame at a young age, he must have the pride and vanity that young people of this age should have. In order to cater to Eric''s mentality, Donald specially arrived two hours early and let the crew know about it. Looking at the 19-year-old in front of him with a faint stubble on his chin, Donald Trump felt a tinge of envy. He still had notpletely lost his youthful innocence. Investment institutions have estimated the market value of Firefly after the merger with New Line to be more than one billion US dors. ording to the share calction, the teenage boy''s worth is now twice as much as it is now. And the other side did all this in just a year. But this was not a time for reflection. Donald Trump quickly organized a series of prepared speeches in his mind and was about to speak, but Eric spoke first. "Mr. Donald, are you my movie fan?" Donald Trump paused, wanting to nod subconsciously, but then decided to speak truthfully: "No, I''m not, but I really like the movie "running out of time" you made. When the videotapees out, I''ll definitely buy a box and keep it." "Oh, thank you," Eric nodded politely, not saying anything more, watching the waiter bring the two people''s lunch and pour red wine for the two, but in his heart he was secretly calcting. Donald Trump obviously wouldn''te to the door for no reason, but Eric couldn''t understand why the other was looking for him. Can''t he be trying to pull a fast one on in his own movie? Eric recalled Donald Trump''s liking for the entertainment circle and thought it was quite possible. However, there was no chance for "Sleepless in Seattle" for sure. Could the other party want to guest star in "Home Alone 2"? Eric was about to discard this "absurd" thought, but suddenly he raised his head and looked carefully at Donald Trump across from him. What the heck! Eric muttered under his breath, "Could it be this coincidental?" Because he just had that thought, his subconscious mind suddenly recalled the plot of "Home Alone 2" in his memory, and he realized that Donald Trump had indeed made a cameo in this children''s movie. Around twenty minutes into the movie, when Kevin mistakenly arrives in New York and checks into the za Hotel near Central Park, Donald Trump portrayed a fleeting, passerby role for the little guy with one line of dialogue and a positive close-up. Eric originally knew about the role of the guide, but he has been too busytely to pay attention to it. Besides the main cast of Home Alone 2, he didn''t care about the minor roles and left them to the casting director. For roles like Donald Trump''s cameo, they don''t even need to determine the actor in advance. Usually, when shooting, they just find an extra or pick a strongman from the crew to make a cameo. So Eric had never really given much thought to the person''s identity, and if it weren''t for Donald Trump, Templeton sitting in front of him, Eric probably would never have remembered. After a few seconds of pondering, Eric still couldn''t see the meaning of guest-starring a nameless, faceless character with just one line of dialogue. He could only say that the New York real estate tycoon must have been pretty bored. Hey everyone! I''m excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! As a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release, and you''ll be helping to support me in my work. Your support is invaluable to me, and I would be so grateful for your help. If you''d like to be a patron and help me out, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much for your support! Chapter 245: How do you think of me?

Chapter 245: How do you think of me?

Id be honoured if you joined my Patreonmunity! By bing a patron, youll get exclusive ess to 10 chapters ahead of the regr release. Its an amazing way to show your support. If you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood to join today! Thank you! Just as he was about to open his mouth, Donald Thump was suddenly interrupted by Eric. After the waiter finished serving the dishes, Donald Thump saw Eric''s strange expression across the table, worrying that the young man would say something iprehensible again. Donald Thump hastily opened his mouth and said, "Eric, have you been to New York before?" "Been here a few times," Eric said, nodding. "What do you think of this ce?" Donald gestured outside. Eric smiled and said honestly, "Nothing really. I''ve been here a few times before, but it''s all been pretty rushed and for official business." Donald nodded and said, "You should go out and explore more. New York, this world-ss metropolis of prosperity, is truly a paradise for people like us. By the way, have you ever thought about buying a house in New York? You should know that the prices are very cheap now. Maybe after a year or two, the house prices in New York will surge again." Eric suspiciously looked at Donald Trump. The real estate mogul hade to his door personally; it couldn''t be to sell him a house, that was too much. Eric lifted his wrist and looked at his watch, then said: "Mr. Trump, you should know my time is limited, so if there is something you can say directly." Donald Trump originally wanted to spend a few minutes slowly guiding, but when he heard Eric''s straightforward question, the always-decisive real estate tycoon was also decisive. He put down the tableware and changed his posture, then said to Eric, "Eric, are you interested in the real estate industry?" Eric felt he was beginning to understand, yet was still somewhat in the dark, and could only continue to ask, "What does that mean?" Donald Trump said with full temptation, "I mean, do you want to invest in real estate? You should know that this is a great opportunity to bottom out the North American real estate industry. If you miss this one, it might take at least twenty years to wait." Eric didn''t know if the real estate tycoon was doing it intentionally or not, but he really did do the math in his head, from now to the subprime crisis in 2008. That''s twenty years. Discarding this somewhat mysterious thought, Eric asked quietly, "Why me, Mr. Trump? If it''s really such a great opportunity as you say, there should be lots of people picking it up, right?" Donald Trump answered without hesitation: "There are certainly many people who want to bottom out, but they don''t have your advantage." Eric smiled slightly and asked, "You mean my... funds?" Donald Trump nodded solemnly: "Eric. I happened to read some news about you in the newspaper, so I couldn''t help bute to visit you presumptuously. But this is also a great opportunity for you. Your fireflypany will generate a lot of profits this year, right? If you invest in real estate, I can guarantee to you that in a few years, this money will appreciate more than doubled, which is much less risky than investing in movies." Eric excitedly asked, "Mr. Trump, if I decide to invest in real estate, do you have any good advice?" Donald Trump was taken aback, not expecting the young man to be so direct. But seeing the yful glint in the other''s eyes, Donald Trump finally shed a hint of embarrassment on his face. However, he quickly remembered his purpose this time. Putting this emotion aside, he said, "My real estatepany recently needs financing, but you should also have heard about the recent economic situation in our country, so it is not too easy to get a loan from the bank. I just happened to read something about you in the newspaper, Eric. What do you think?" Eric shook his head. "Mr. Trump, I don''t actually have much money in my hands. If you knew me a little bit more, you would find out that I have almost spent all the money I have earned this year." "What about... the few films at the end of the year?" Donald Trump said immediately, "Eric. Yourpany has five films released at the end of the year, and they are all highly favored by distributors. At least it can bring in a hundred million dors in profits, right?" "Sorry, Mr. Trump, I''m not interested in investing in real estate," Eric said directly, shaking his head. Although Eric''s previous knowledge made him think that real estate was very profitable, he had a negative attitude towards this industry. It is estimated that investing one or two hundred million US dors would be just a drop in the bucket. Finally, whether the money can be recovered is a question. Compared to Eric, he would rather invest in movies; after all, he knows the best-selling movies of recent years like the back of his hand. Even if he can''t spend the most money, he will definitely invest in the industry he is familiar with, rather than real estate that he knows nothing about. After Donald Trump was rejected by Eric, he was not discouraged at all but did not persuade again. He knew that no matter how much he talked at this dinner, the other party was unlikely to agree with him immediately. The most important thing now is to establish a long-term connection with Eric first. He believes that with his social skills, even though there is a big age difference between the two, he can easily be friends with the other party. So, Donald Trump''s expression eased, and he casually said, "Eric, I heard that your crew of "Home Alone 2" was talking to a hotel about shooting on-site. How about the Hyatt on 42nd Street? That''s my property, and I can let your crew stay for free for shooting." Eric refused, saying, "No, we have already negotiated with the za Hotel next to Central Park, and they agreed to let us use it for free." Donald Trump was crystal clear about the grade of the Grand za Hotel and incredulously asked, "For free?" Eric nodded slightly, a bit proud. To be able to get a five-star hotel to offer its services for free to the cast and crew, and even have the staff willing to be extras, was something that wouldn''t have been easy to achieve in the past. This is all due to the original Pretty Woman movie. After the movie became popr, the Wilshire Hotel in Los Angeles, where the movie was filmed, also became popr and even became a tourist attraction in Beverly Hills. Many people who visit Los Angeles will specifically go to Wilshire Hotel to take a look, and those in good condition will even stay there. Donald Trump''s hotel at the 42nd Avenue Hyatt is not bad, but it has not reached the luxury level of the za Hotel, so when he heard Eric say this, Donald Trump did not persuade him any more. After thinking for a moment, Donald Trump then said, "So, Eric, what do you think of me?" "What?" "I''m saying, can I have a cameo in your movie?" Eric raised his eyebrows and thought of a certain scene in Home Alone 2, and asked, "Are you sure?" Donald Trump saw the door and hurriedly said, "Of course, I''ve also guest starred in a few TV dramas before. I guess movies must be pretty simr, right?" Donald Trump is not so eager for the guest role; even if he had such a passion for it before, under the precarious situation of hispany, he cannot have any interest. He just wants to keep in touch with Eric and continue to persuade him through this. Eric nodded as expected since it was delivered to his doorstep, but with a hint of yfulness in his smile, he said, "If you wish, of course it''s no problem." ---- The lunch was quite enjoyable, and soon afterwards, Donald Trump quickly sent Eric back to the set. "Everybody, everybody pay attention; it''s time to work, Allen, where''s Allen?" Eric walked into the set, picked up the megaphone, and shouted. The people who were originally resting immediately gathered and started to busy themselves in their own positions. "Mr. Williams, are you looking for me?" n popped out of nowhere, asking. Eric nodded: "You don''t need to be here in the afternoon, go help me collect some information about the Donald Trump Company." "Who is Donald Trump?" n asked, puzzled. Ericzily pointed to the approaching Elizabeth and said, "Ask Liz. Give me the materials tonight." n nodded and walked towards Elizabeth. Eric immediately began to order the crew members to prepare for the shots to be filmed in the afternoon. ----- The hotel where the crew stayed this time was infinitely better than the one in Seattle. The sound of gurgling water in the bathroom stopped for a moment, and then Eric, wrapped in a towel, walked out. Nicole, who was originally wearing a light blue nightgown and lying on the big bed reading a magazine, heard some noise and got up. She picked up a file from the bedside cab and said, "Allen just came by; he brought this." Eric raised his eyebrows in surprise: "You opened the door?" The girl lowered her head guiltily: "I called you, but you didn''t hear me, so I had to...." Eric sighed and stared at the girl for a few moments before saying, "Alright." Nicole saw that Eric hadn''t pursued it further and secretly let out a sigh of relief. Very few people knew of their rtionship, including even Anniston, who still thought Eric had chosen her through a legitimate audition. However, although Nicole didn''t want outsiders to know about her rtionship with Eric, those who need to know, such as Jeffrey, Eric''s assistant, or other important people around Eric, still need to be informed. Hey everyone! Id like to invite you to join my Patreon today! By bing a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. I would be so grateful for your support, so if you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much! Chapter 246: A crafty move

Chapter 246: A crafty move

Hey everyone! Id like to invite you to join my Patreon! By bing a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. I would be so grateful for your support, so if you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much! If it is like this, there are many benefits for her, like Aniston, as Eric''s girlfriend, her status in the "Friends" crew is like that of a princess. Even now, the other five actors are no less famous than Aniston, but in the "Friends" crew, Aniston receives much more special care than the other five people. UTA''s preference for Aniston in terms of resources is iparable to the other five actors. Although this is rted to Aniston''s father being the producer of "Friends," everyone knows that this is mainly due to Eric. Nicole of course also wanted to enjoy this kind of "treatment," and she didn''t care if people behind her back gossiped about her. As long as they knew she was Eric''s woman, they had to hold her carefully. But although Nicole had this intention, Eric never actively introduced her to other people. So the girl had to do it herself. During this time, she created some small idents and hints, and almost everyone who should know about her rtionship with Eric knew, while those who shouldn''t know still didn''t. Eric was actually quite clear about the girls'' little schemes, but Nicole was always very cautious and never crossed his line. What could he do? He couldn''t exin it to everyone who knew about their rtionship. Eric silently walked to the big bed, put two pillows against the headboard, picked up the file sent by n, and patted it casually beside him. The girl immediately showed a coquettish smile, took off her thin silk nightgown, climbed onto the bed in a delicate ckce nightdress, and slid into Eric''s arms like a docile kitten. She gently teased and rubbed Eric''s body with her soft and smooth body, and her small hands even tried to pull off the bath towel around Eric''s waist. Eric pped the unruly girl''s butt. Eric said, "No more fooling around, wait until I finish looking at these things." Nicole came up and asked, "What''s going on?" Eric ran his big hand along the warm skin and slid to the girl''s chest. He caught a soft one from underneath thece and gently massaged it, saying: "The information of the real estate tycoon who invited me for lunch today." "Oh," the girl nodded, her face expressionless, leaning against the man''s chest with little gasps under Eric''s big hands, asionally nibbling his chest with her teeth. Eric paid no attention to the girl''s little gestures, asionally taking his hand back from her chest to flip the page of the file. The information n had hastily gathered was not much, but it was enough for Eric to have a full understanding of Donald Trump. After looking at the information in the file, Eric realized that what Donald Trump had said at noon was half true and half false, and perhaps the other person knew it too. If he was interestedter, he would definitely collect relevant information, so he dared not fabricate it. However, some concepts were changed in some ces, and some things were said ambiguously. As Donald said, it''s true that his real estatepany needs financing. Donald''s capital chain has been stretched to the point of breaking at any time. But the banks are reluctant to lend him any more. not because of the overall economic situation in the United States but because of Donald Trump''s ambition to spread hispany''s too wide. Therefore, he was hit hardest in the real estate industry''s downturn at the beginning of this year, so much so that the banks were caught between a rock and a hard ce, treating him like an elder, because if Donald''s real estatepany went bankrupt, the banks would suffer the most losses. Although the bank groups have done some work to avoid Donald''s real estate stockpany going bankrupt, they are still not willing to lend him a penny. Nicole''s hands on her chest became lighter and lighter as she massaged it. Eventually, she stopped, and her eyes shed. She lifted her thigh and rubbed it against Eric a few times, then asked in a soft voice, "Eric, what do you think about me getting a breast augmentation?" Eric curiously shifted his gaze from the file and peeked under the girl''s bo: "Pretty good, what kind of breast augmentation?" Nicole pulled the nket down and straightened up towards Eric, asking, "Um... don''t you think it''s too small?" Eric said indifferently, "Do whatever you want; go ahead and get it done." After that, Eric put his gaze back on the document. Nicole bit her lips, although Eric said it casually, the girl still keenly caught the hint of displeasure in Eric''s eyes, directly dispelling her original thought. Eric flipped to the back and found that n had also conveniently found some articles about economic experts'' analysis of the North American real estate industry in recent years. He then found a question: Donald told him during lunch that it was a good opportunity to bottom out the real estate market, but economic experts analyzed that this decline in the real estate industry had just begun. ording to the past rules, this decline would continue for two or three years. As for how long it would stay in the undervalued period, it would depend on the subsequent economic situation. That is to say, investing in real estate in North America is not a wise choice for at least five years in the future. Thest North American house price curve illustrationpletely eliminated the slightest hint of motion in Eric''s heart because, from the 1950s to the 1990s, the overall trend of house prices in North America was not what Donald Trump said at lunch time to maintain an upward momentum. Although it fluctuated, it still remained in a rtively stable range. In the past 40 years, although the currency is certain to have experienced intion, the house price has not changed much. This is different from the other side of the Pacific in the previous life, the house price in North America is closely rted to the economic situation, and the political influence on the house price is not great. On the other hand, the other side of the ocean was just the opposite. House prices were held hostage by politics. That''s why, in the past, experts from the other side of the ocean shouted year after year that house prices would plunge, but they never did. Because those experts simply analyzed from an economic perspective, forgetting the political factors. Therefore, prices cannot be allowed to fall, even if money is not required, face must be maintained. So whenever there is a downward trend in house prices, the original tight policy is like a belt around the waist of a wolf seeing a naked woman, it loosens with a snap, and various stimulus policies follow. Eric shook his head vigorously, throwing out these ideas, threw the file aside, pulled down the towel around his waist, and pushed the girl''s shoulder: "Go appease it; I''ll give you a lessonter." "You''re so annoying," Nicole gave Eric a cold nce, yet meekly crawled down. Eric sighedfortably and deeply. Are you looking for a way to show your support? Join my Patreon today! You will get ess to 10 exclusive chapters before theyre released to the public. I would be so grateful if you be a patron. Visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join now. Thank you! Chapter 247: Come and go

Chapter 247: Come and go

Be part of something special - join my Patreon today! As a patron, you''ll get exclusive ess to 10 chapters ahead of the regr everyday release. Id be incredibly grateful for your support. Visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join now. Thank you! After nearly 20 days of intense shooting, "Sleepless in Seattle" finally wrapped up; however, Eric didn''t enjoy any leisure moments at all because the shooting task of "Home Alone 2" was even more strenuous. Although the second part''s plot mode is the same as the first, there are quite a few innovations, the most important being that,pared to the majority of the first part being in Kevin''s home, the second part''s plot is more abundant. In addition to the evil two thieves, there are also story branches such as the square hotel and Central Park. "Do you have to leave so early?" Early in the morning, Eric walked out of the hotel room and saw Elizabeth with a simple backpack, ready to leave the hotel. "..." Eric was at a loss for a moment. He had initially resisted the girl joining the Sleepless in Seattle cast, thinking she could cause trouble. However, after spending a few weeks together, although the two of them still bickered privately, Elizabeth had done an excellent job with her job. Although it had not been a month, Eric and her had already established some tacit understanding. After a moment of silence, Eric still shook his head and said, "Forget it; even if I agree, your dad would never let you stay with me." Elizabeth''s eyes shed a hint of disappointment. Biting her lip, she softly defended, "My dad can''t control me." Eric chuckled and then asked, "Are you still nning to go back to Los Angeles?" "You''re really dumb, my family lives in Manhattan; you don''t think everyone in the world should live in Los Angeles," the girl subconsciously teased Eric, seeing Eric''s faint embarrassment on his face. He opened his mouth, then said, "I ... I''m going back to school, and thank you for the information you have provided me in the meantime." "It''s nothing, I''m just..." Eric said, stopping himself before he said too much. They were talking about their first meeting and Eric''s graduation thesis on the sess of his films at the box office. Eric was merely recounting some of the random analyses he had seen in his past life while providing some of his own ideas and details from when he was shooting. Elizabeth waited a moment, seeing Eric say half and not continuing. She didn''t ask further and said, "I n to finish my paper before the end of the year. I''ll start making my first movie at the beginning of next year, and it''ll be released in the summer. Will you have a movie released by then?" Eric nodded even though he won''t be working as hard as this year next year, but the summer season is definitely not something he can ignore. "How about wepare the box office at that time?" The girl''spetitive spirit was aroused, and the words came out without going through her brain. Erik subconsciously thought he could ask her for a zero, then remembered Elizabeth was making the famous "The Silence of the Lambs", a movie that had be so popr in its prequel that the box office would surely not be too bad. Over a hundred million dors should be no problem. Elizabeth said this and soon realized she was overreaching, fumbling with her backpack straps. "Nevermind, I''m sure I can''t beat you. Well... goodbye." Eric followed up with, "Well, bye... should I help you with your luggage?" "No need; the bellboy has already taken my luggage downstairs, the taxi is waiting below." "I''ll send you down," Eric followed the girl to the elevator. Eric watched a yellow taxi drive away, then he walked back to the hotel and towards the restaurant, where Nicole, wearing a slim fit jacket and jeans, was walking towards him. "Eric. Good morning." "Good morning," Eric said as he nodded to thedy."Breakfast?" "Hmm." Nicole stepped forward and walked side by side with Eric towards the restaurant. The two of them ordered breakfast and sat down at a table. Eric only asked, "By the way, when are you leaving?" Nicole showed a faint hint of sadness: "You sent off Miss Murdoch with such reluctance, yet now you want to rush me away." "Stop it," Eric gave the girl a gentle re: "You know that''s not what I meant." Nicole could see that Eric wasn''t in the best mood, and he stopped joking around. She said, "I haven''t been back to Sydney in over half a year, so I''m taking the opportunity of this free time to go back home and spend some time with my family. As for when I''ll be back, it depends on the publicity schedule of "Sleepless in Seattle"." Eric suggested, "How about this? I''ll tell them you''ll be back after Thanksgiving?" Nicole shook her head with a smile and said, "No need. Don''t you remember? Australia doesn''t have Thanksgiving, and since it''s summer in the Southern Hemisphere, Christmas is lively but alwayscks that atmosphere, so it''s not a big deal to miss it. I''lle back on time ording to the schedule." The two people chatted while eating. Nicole quickly finished the simple breakfast in front of her and wiped her mouth with a tissue. Looking around, she leaned over to Eric and said softly, "My ticket to leave tomorrow will be for a while. Can Ie to your room tonight?" Nicole''s voice was not loud, but it was not small either. If someone paid attention to them, it was likely to be heard. Eric gave the bold girl a nce and finally nodded gently: "Be careful; don''t always get touched by chance." Nicole giggled; she had almost figured out Eric''s character. Although this man was strong, he was not a harsh person. So sometimes she even enjoyed seeing Eric''s helpless look when he clearly knew her tricks. In thest few days of shooting for "Sleepless in Seattle", an assistant director had already started shooting some simple shots for "Home Alone 2" ording to Eric''s instructions, such as aerial shots of Kevin climbing the top of the Twin Towers or shots of a taxi passing over the Brooklyn Bridge. Therefore, after the closure of "Sleepless in Seattle" yesterday, the crew had a day of rest, but Eric couldn''t rest for a moment. Not only did he need to make countless calls to remotely control the post-production of "Sleepless in Seattle", but he also had to check the footage from the pre-production of "Home Alone 2" to determine which could be used and which needed to be re-shot. The next day, Eric personally started shooting "Home Alone 2", and ording to the order of easy first and then difficult, the first scene was ced in the Grand za Hotel. "Stu, wait a minute. You go straight from here; when you get to that ce, stop and ask this gentleman for directions, and then go on. Remember, don''t go too fast, got it?" "Of course, Eric. Do you think I''m an idiot when you have to tell me something so simple again and again?" The little guy rolled his eyes. At that moment, the boy was wearing a heavy suit, a knitted cap on his head, and a small brown backpack on his back, standing beside Eric. When Erik saw the little guy''s words, he had a depressed look on his face, while on the other side, Donald Trump, who had speciallye for a cameo,ughed out loud, looked at Stewart, and said, "What a funny little guy." "Alright, anyway. Just remember, go to the entrance now, and we''re ready to start." Eric said and walked towards the monitor while carrying the walkie-talkie, instructing the group scattered in the corridor to start burying their positions. This long shot was not at all difficult for Stewart; with his pint-sized talent, just walking from the doorway through the hallway to the hall was no problem at all. The hardest toe by are photographers and sound engineers. Because it was a positive tracking shotsting over half a minute, the cameraman, Nick, had to stoop and step back with the heavy camera while following the rhythm of the child. Therefore, although it was just a simple walking shot, it required at least five people to cooperatethe soundman, the cameraman, and several assistants. Along with the soundman and cameraman''s movement, the lines connected to the microphone and camera had to be managed. "Nigel, are you ready?" Eric walked up to the hotel lobby, where the director''s monitor was set up, still holding the walkie-talkie to confirm one by one to everyone, and the walkie-talkie also asionally sent out "ok" sounds. Eric came near the monitor, and he saw a golden strand of hair faintly shing behind the monitor. Eric quickly stepped forward and finally saw a little girl in a pink children''s coat, lying behind the director''s monitor and other equipment, curiously touching and looking around. The little Lolita looks about ten years old, a bit taller than Stu, with a beautiful pink cartoon hair clip on her golden hair, beautiful bangs on her forehead, long eyshes shing twice from time to time, and a small pointed chin showing a hint of beauty. When Eric looked at her, the little girl only nced at him, still fiddling with what she was curious about, while the few staff members around her acted as if they didn''t notice her. What''s going on? Has my position been unknowingly taken over by an alien from the Lolita? "Hey, little one, who are you?" Eric stepped forward and blocked the little girl''s hand that was reaching to press the button next to the monitor, while he couldn''t help but reach out and pinch the chubby baby face of the little loli. "Who are you again?" The little girl agilely dodged Eric''s ws, looking at him warily. Eric smiled and pointed to the seat behind the little girl, saying, "I''m the one who should be sitting there." The little Lolita twisted her head, pouted her little mouth immediately, and disdainedly said, "Humph, why didn''t you just say you were the director? Adults always like to beat around the bush." "Okay, I''m Eric Williams. Can you tell me your name, littledy...Miss?" Eric said, reaching out to the little girl. The little Lolita immediately stepped back with a disdainful face, not intending to shake hands with Eric at all. She raised her chin and said in a crisp, childish voice, "My name is Ivanka." Eric raised an eyebrow: "Ivanka? Ivanka Trump?" "Hmm." The little girl nodded. Are you ready to join the exclusive club? Be a patron of mine on Patreon and youll get ess to 10 chapters before anyone else. Its a great way to show your support. Visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join today. Thank you! Chapter 248: Im not acting anymore

Chapter 248: I''m not acting anymore

Help me make something amazing - join my Patreon today! As a patron, you''ll get special ess to 10 chapters before they''re released to the public. If you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood to join now. Thank you so much! Eric immediately understood why the little girl was there; she must have been brought by Donald Trump, but the staff around were also negligent; even if they let the little one stay, they shouldn''t have let her touch the film equipment. Just when he was about to scold a few staff members who acted as if nothing had happened, the walkie-talkie crackled: "Eric, is everything ready? Can we start now?" "Oh, of course," Eric replied, temporarily putting the matter aside and hurrying to put on his headphones and go behind the monitor. The camera starts rolling, and Kevin walks into the hotel lobby, looking around, and starts walking towards the lobby this way, the camera also follows the boy''s movements, step by step, backing away slowly. "Cut, Nichs, what''s going on there? Didn''t you notice that the camera was a bit off? Let''s do it again!" Eric shouted into his walkie talkie after only a few steps. From the inte came a sorry from Nichs, and then it took two minutes for everyone, including the cast, to reposition themselves before shooting could resume. "Cut," Royce said, "That guy in the blue knitted jacket that you''re responsible for, get him to concentrate. Unbelievable that someone would be looking at the camera lens. If it happens again, kick him out and make him start over!" "Cut..." "Cut..." Eric had retried the mistake countless times and was about to start again when Nichs''s voice came through the inte: "Eric, I''m losing strength, I can''t do it anymore." Eric froze, then realized that this time there was no track for the camera, but Nichs was following him with a heavy camera in his hand. Reiko reluctantly took off her headphones and said to the stage manager beside her, "Pass on the message. Everyone take a ten-minute break." Eric sighed with relief and said, "Well, Ivanka, I apologize for not calling you Miss Trump." "You''re so stupid, you can''t even get one shot right after taking it so many times," Eric just sat down on the director''s chair. Evan, who had been lurking around him, said this as he received the cup of water handed over by the assistant. Eric just spat out the mouthful of water he had just drunk. The sudden situation scared the little girl next to him. Eric coughed a few times and then said, "Ivanka, don''t you see, this has nothing to do with me." The little Lolita stuck her hands in her pockets, pouting, and said haughtily, "Sir, please call me Miss Trump." Eric felt a ck line appear on his head, and he instantly remembered the famous line, "Please call me Queen." Just as he was about to say something, Nichs, Stewart, and some other important crew members also came over. "Daddy." Ivanka saw her father appear and walked towards Donald, grabbing his hand. Eric sighed with relief and said, "Well, Ivanka, I apologize for not calling you Miss Trump." Donald just saw Erica talking with his daughter, so he curiously asked, "Ivanka, what were you talking about with Eric?" "Nothing really. You kept praising him so much and all, but I''ve been watching for so long and he can''t even shoot a simple walking scene properly. He''s far worse than the directors you''ve taken me to see before." Eric had not yet reacted, but the expression on Nichs'' face was already contorted. Because of the shot just now, most of the mistakes were made by his photographer, and now Eric was being mocked by a little girl in front of so many people. "Eric. I''m sorry," Nichs said apologetically to Eric. "It''s okay, we all know this shot isn''t easy." Eric patted Nichs on the shoulderfortingly: "Why don''t you take a break, get someone to massage your arms for a bit, and try again in ten minutes. If it still doesn''t work, let''s film other shots first." Nichs nodded and turned away. "Are you Kevin?" Eric quickly heard the voice of the little girl. "Actually, my name is Stewart Lancaster," Stewart said as he ran into someone his age in the crowd. He made the introduction himself. "I heard you''re also eight years old, why are you so much shorter than me?" The little girl cutely approached Stu, her small hands brushing his head. She pointed to her own nose. Stu, because he was precocious, had a nascent awareness of his sexuality as a boy, so when he was ridiculed by a pretty little Lolita for being short, he was unwilling and retorted, "I''m sure I''ll be taller than you in the future." "You are not taller than me now, so what are you talking about in the future?" Suddenly a group of people burst outughing, although Donald Trump was alsoughing. He held his daughter and said, "Ivanka, don''t be so rude. Actually, Stu is also very powerful. He shot a moviest year." "What''s so great about that? Just walking around like that, I can act too," Ivanka retorted indignantly. "Come on, let''s see you perform," Stu immediately seized the opportunity. The little fellow, though only eight years old, also knew that performing was not so easy. "Um..." Ivanka looked around, then fixed her gaze on Eric: "Mr. Williams, can I try out that shot just now?" No longer using formalnguage, the little girl asked for help. Eric shrugged: "I''m sorry, Miss Trump, our photographer is on a break." "What about you, You''re a director; why aren''t you directing?" "Me?" Eric asked doubtfully. "Yeah, you don''t expect me to believe that you can''t do anything else other than directing, do you?" Ivanka said with a mocking tone. Besides the director, nothing else can be done... That phrase from the little Lolita is really powerful. Although the staff members who had been around Eric for a long time were absolutely multi-faceted directors, when he heard the little loli''s words, he couldn''t help butugh and tease her. "Eric, show her what you can do." "Mr. Williams, you can''t let this youngdy see you getting scolded." "Director, I''ll help you drag the cable for what you just said." "......" Amid the humming and moring, Eric pounded his hands in distress: "Quiet, everyone! Be quiet! Don''t forget where we are!" As everyone gradually calmed down, Eric turned to the little girl and said, "Miss Trump, are you sure you want to try it?" Ivanka raised her chin: "Of course." "Okay then," Eric said, "you just saw Stu''s performance on the monitor, so there''s no need for me to tell you how to perform, right?" "Hmm," the little girl nodded, then repeated: "I came in from the main entrance, asked my father for directions at the second corridor, and then walked here." "That sounds good, let''s do it" Since it was a y during the intermission, the cast naturally did not have to rehearse. However, Donald Trump was evidently very pleased with his daughter''s performance, so he asked to take part in the filming. He also requested that Eric keep the film and convert it into a videotape as a souvenir. In the entrance hall, Ivanka saw arge crowd of people behind Eric with a camera, and although she tried to stay calm, the shing lights betrayed the little girl''s confusion. "Miss Trump, Act One, Scene One!" The stage manager mmed the pperboard and quickly stepped aside. The little Lolita quickly blinked her eyes, looking at the camera lens and the crowd looking at her, feeling a slight numbness in her limbs, but still stubbornly lifted her feet and walked forward, copying Stu''s movements, looking left and right. But these actions onlysted for a few moments, and Ivanka felt she couldn''t take it anymore, and her steps quickened. So, she kept walking to the second corridor, saw her father encouragingly looking at her from outside the lens, and Ivanka, as if seeing a savior, perhaps only her father could give her a sense of security at that moment. Without hesitation, the little girl ran towards her father, tears streaming down her face, with a faint sobbing voice: "Daddy, I won''t act anymore." --- Nick, how about this, We shoot the scenes in the first and second corridors separately, which will increase the chances of sess and save us some trouble. Although Ivanka had run away halfway, Eric still took the camera and looked through the empty lens. At the same time, he found that it was not an easy job to shoot this lens, and there was still post-production, so it was better to divide it into two parts. Therefore, after Nichs had rested, Eric did not start shooting immediately but negotiated again with the photographer. In front of the two people was a simple map of the za Hotel. Eric pointed with a pencil, saying, "From here to here, we''ll do the first shot, and then the next shot will start here and go all the way to the hall." Nichs mulled over Eric''s words and said, "So, the group performance will have to be divided into two parts too?" "Hmm, that shouldn''t be a problem. I can arrange it in ten minutes, and Stuart shouldn''t have a problem either. It mainlyes down to you; how do you feel about it now?" "No problem for me," Nichs shook his hand. "If we break it into two parts, it''s no problem." "Okay, then let''s do it," Eric said, looking up and addressing the people around him, "You heard it too, everyone go and get ready, ten minutes." After everyone dispersed, Eric returned to his director''s chair. At this time, Ivanka was holding a box of undeveloped film in her arms, like a little phoenix that had been drenched in rain, her face was dejected, and she was no longer the sharp-tongued little Lolita she had just been. Donald Trump was also sitting next to his daughter, quietlyforting her. Hey everyone! Id like to invite you to join my Patreon today! By bing a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. I would be so grateful for your support, so if you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much! Chapter 249: Not merely a goal

Chapter 249: Not merely a goal

Be part of something special - join my Patreon! As a patron, you''ll get exclusive ess to 10 chapters ahead of the regr everyday release. Id be incredibly grateful for your support. Visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join now. Thank you! Eric... Donald Trump softly called out Eric''s name and made a kissing sound toward his daughter in his arms. Ivanka, looking very disheartened after her just-failed performance, was not responding to Donald Trump''s well-spoken attempts at consoling, motivating, and even scolding her. Nothing seemed to work, so he had to turn to Eric for help. Although it was the little girl who started it, if Eric hadn''t agreed, there wouldn''t be any trouble now. Eric could not escape the responsibility and had to drag a chair to Ivanka''s side. The little Lolita gave Eric a sidelong nce and snuggled up close to her father. "Ivanka, this must be your first performance, right?" Eric thought for a moment and asked gently. Ivanka took a while before she nodded gently. "I remember when I was in school, it was a music ss, and the teacher asked a ssmate in our ss to sing a song on the podium. As a result, the guy was so nervous that he sang a few lines clumsily before he fainted on the podium. That was his first performance, so I''d say you did very well; you even managed to finish most of the song." Eric made aparison beforehand, and provided a pretense to help the little girl clear her psychological shadows. Sure enough, after hearing what Eric said, Ivanka seemed to rx a lot. But still, she said softly, "But when I was in school, I sang for everyone, and nothing like what you said happened." "So, you must be up on stage a lot, right?" "Hmm," Ivanka nodded. "Look, here is the crux of the matter. Acting and singing are the same. You''ll be nervous the first time, but just try a few times, and you''ll get used to it." "Um..." Ivanka finally lifted her head, batting her beautiful eyes, and asked, "Mr. Williams, why was I so nervous even though I told myself this was going to be an easy thing?" "This...?" Eric hesitated, as this involved the issue of liberating his true nature. In principle, performing should be easy for an eight-year-old, as the so-called liberation of his true nature was to let the adult actor return to a carefree and unconcerned state of mind, like a child. However, nothing is absolute, just like the little Lolita in front of him; she had already lost that state. But for Stewart, that little guy had not yet kept his natural freedom, so he could easily perform ording to Eric''s request, but Ivanka would be nervous. "Ivanka, this question is tooplex for me to exin to you right now, because even if I did exin it, you still wouldn''t understand." Ivanka nodded obediently and didn''t ask any more questions. Her expression was no longer dejected like before. "Mr. Donald, it''s time for you to take your seat," a staffer said. Donald Trump nodded and hugged his daughter. "Ivy, Dad will be back soon. Can you stay here obediently?" "Yes," Ivanka replied, managing to give her father a faint smile. "Action!" the director called. This time, Ivanka quietly sat to one side without saying a word, still curiously watching Eric through the walkie-talkie as he directed the crew''s operation. Her eyes sparkled brightly. After Eric split the corridor shot into two parts, the filming went much smoother. After a few takes and twenty minutes, the shot was finally finished. Donald Trump was also getting ready to leave with his daughter, but Eric was too busy to even greet them, even though he didn''t know they had brought his daughter with them. Now that they were leaving, Eric could not treat them lightly any longer. After all, Donald Trump, a real estate mogul, hade here to make a cameo without charging any money. Even if he had other thoughts in his heart, it was still a great honor. "Mr. Trump, thank you foring," Eric said as he shook Donald''s hand at the entrance of the Square Hotel. "It''s my pleasure," Donald smiled and patted his daughter''s shoulder, "Irene, say goodbye to Eric." The little girl stepped forward and extended her hand. "Goodbye, Mr. Williams." "Goodbye, Miss Trump," Eric said, holding Ivanka''s tiny hand and gently shaking it. Ivanka pulled her hand back, her big eyes still shining brightly at Eric. "Mr. Williams, are we friends now?" Eric paused for a moment, then smiled and nodded. "Of course." "So, you can call me Ivanka, or like my parents and older brother, call me Ivy. I''ll also call you Eric, okay?" "Of course," Eric replied, nodding again. "Eric, maybe..." Ivanka stammered before ncing at her father. "Daddy, can I invite Eric to our house as a guest?" Donald Trump wanted to scoop up his daughter and give her a big hug; it was so sweet. He had been trying to find a way to befriend Eric all day and hadn''t been sure how to start. He had nned to host some parties at home to test the waters and invite Eric, but his daughter had solved the problem for him. Of course, although he was pleased in his heart, Donald Trump showed no sign of it, but only said to his daughter, "Of course it''s okay, you are part of our family and you have the power to invite guests." "So, Eric,e visit my ce when you have time," the little girl said, looking expectantly at Eric. "I will," Eric replied half-heartedly, viewing the little girl''s words as childish innocence, not thinking much of it, and probably forgetting it in a couple of days. Watching the father and daughter leave, he returned to the crew. ----- Mr. Williams, this is the draft script of the first five episodes of "X Files" sent by the script team. Furthermore, Fox has pushed again, hoping that you can quickly cut the trailer of "Home Alone 2" as soon as possible. They n to release it on TV before October 17th. Additionally, Mr. Robert Shea said that several documents will be delivered tonight. Eric flipped through the script of "X Files" in his hands as he listened to n reciting the memorandum beside him. After a while, n closed his notebook: "That''s all. Oh, right. Royce called from Central Park just now, saying that the crew encountered some trouble while preparing for the outdoor scene there." Eric immediately looked up; "Home Alone 2" was the top priority. "What''s going on?" n replied, "It seems that an environmental organization in New York doesn''t allow us to use artificial snow on arge scale and they have even sent people to supervise. Royce said that just now these people even had a small conflict with our crew site staff." Eric was confused for a moment. How could artificial snow be rted to an environmental organization? "Eric asked, "Do you know what''s going on here?" Although the producer should be concerned about these matters, as director and one of the producers, Eric had the ultimate power on the set and needed to step in when something major happened. Conflict had already urred and seemed unlikely to be easily resolved, so Eric paid more attention and was about to go to the scene himself when Allen caught up and asked concernedly, "Eric, it''s not easy to get a break for an afternoon. I''m sure Mr. Hanson will take care of those things. You should rest." Eric nodded, understanding the situation. "It''s okay, I''m notfortable until I see it with my own eyes." He shook his head. Allen had no choice but to get in the car with Eric and rush to Central Park. On the way, Allen exined to Eric: "The thing is, there are two kinds of artificial snow. One is to make real snowkes with snow machines, but that is too expensive, and the environmental requirements are very strict, which can''t be achieved under the current climatic conditions. So we use another method, which is to rece it with something simr to snow. The chemicalposition of this artificial snow is magnesium sulfate. Magnesium sulfate is actually harmless, and can even be used as fertilizer for many nts. However, the environmental protection organization does not listen to our exnation, and does not trust ourmitment to clean up afterwards. They just keep restricting our use of this substance. That''s how it happened just now, when a staff member couldn''t help but conflict with the other party. He felt that the other party was being too nit-picking, and he was young and vigorous, so he acted." Eric leaned back against the car seat, his eyes shing. He then asked, "Was it too bad?" "No," n shook his head. "They were separated just as they got close." Eric sighed and then asked, "What about the media coverage of this?" n heard the seriousness in Eric''s tone and quickly understood, but he didn''t answer right away. "I''m not too sure. I thought it was just an environmental event. After all, many production teams have encountered simr entanglements." Eric took a deep breath and said to the driver in the front seat, "Burt, drive faster." Arriving at Central Park, Eric passed through the barricade of the film crew''s location and saw seven or eight young men and women lying in all directions, their faces masked and their bodies lightly dressed with green paint smeared on their exposed skin and disying various environmental slogans. Eric recognized several of the crew members standing helplessly around the periphery, while Jeffrey was engaged in a heated discussion with a woman in her thirties, dressed simrly to the young people lying on the ground, who looked excited. "Ms. Schneider," Jeffrey began, "I have said it over and over again: This ce must be paved with fake snow because it is an important shot. Without snow, it will not work. We have already made a lot ofpromises. What else do you want?" "Absolutely not, Mr. Hansen," the woman replied. "If those chemicals are ced directly on the vegetation, it would be fatal to them." "I have repeatedly promised you that after we finish filming, we will clean up here and I even bought a special vacuum cleaner for this. Is that not enough?" Ms. Schneider shook her head again. "No, absolutely not. Central Park is the lung of Manhattan. If your lungs were to rot away, Mr. Hansom, how would you feel?" "How can I convince you to agree?" "We will never agree, absolutely and absolutely not, toy artificial snow on thiswn," Mrs. Schneider seemed to be getting excited as well. The two were arguing heatedly when Eric approached. Jeffrey suddenly found himself facing Eric and, not knowing the situation, he was surprised to see Ms. Schneider recognizing Eric and walking up to him with a serious expression. "Mr. Williams," she began. "I''m Cheryl Schneider from the New York Green Environmental Group. I must protest your crew''s action ofying down chemical substances on thewn. You must change the setting." At that moment, Jeffrey also arrived at Eric''s side and, helplessly looking at the woman, he said to Eric, "Sorry, Eric, it looks like our performance here this afternoon will have to be dyed." "It''s okay," Eric replied, patting Jeffrey''s shoulder. Then he turned to Cheryl Schneider and said, "Ms. Schneider, right? I just heard some of your argument. Could I ask you a question? Do you know the ingredients we use for artificial snow?" Cheryl Schneider sneered coldly, "Of course I know. Magnesium sulfate heptahydrate." "What else?" Eric asked persistently. Cheryl Schneider paused: "Is there anything else?" Eric said, "Don''t you know that magnesium sulfate heptahydrate is not only harmless to nts, but also a kind of fertilizer? Therefore,ying fake snow will not only not harm these nts, but even be beneficial." Cheryl Schneider''s face changed a few times and she said quickly, "I don''t understand what you said yet, I''ll go back and collect some information. But even if it is a kind of fertilizer, your application of such a thickyer must be excessive. I know that overusing anything can have adverse effects." Jeffery interjected, "I''ve said it before, we will certainly take care of the clean up after the shoot." "I don''t trust you capitalists who only seek profits. Who knows if you will say one thing and do another? So, if you want toy down something... " Cheryl Schneider gestured towards the men and women scattered across thewn: "Try it on us first!" Eric nced at thewn and a thought quickly came to his mind. Hey everyone! Id like to invite you to join my Patreon! By bing a patron, youll get to read 10 chapters ahead of every one else, and help support me in my work. Your support is invaluable to me, and I would be so grateful for your help. To be a patron, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today! Thank you so much! Chapter 250: Two Things

Chapter 250: Two Things

Are you looking to show your support? Join my Patreon today! As a patron, youll get exclusive ess to 10 chapters before they''re released to the public. Id be incredibly grateful for your support. Visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join now. Thank you! "Ms. Schneider, do we need to avoidying the fake snow directly on thewn?" Cheryl Schneider saw the hesitation in Eric''s expression, and he spoke confidently: "Yes, you cany it on the side of the road, but not on thewn. And after the shooting of the artificial snow on both sides of the road ispleted, it must be properly cleaned up." Eric kept his eyes fixed on the woman in front of him. He could see the struggle in her expression, and he felt more certain of his guesses. If the woman was solely motivated by environmental protection, she would not hesitate to ept his feasible solution. Although Eric understood all this, he still suggested an alternative in a bargaining tone: "Well, then, if we put ayer of stic cloth on thewn pad andy fake snow on top of it, that should be alright, right?" Cheryl Schneider was stunned for a moment, then reluctantly nodded and said, "I think...maybe...it''s possible." Eric ignored the woman and said to Jeffrey, "Let''s do it this way. Jeffrey, suspend the scene in Central Park and get everyone to prepare for the next scene. I think my next scene should be where Kevin escapes from the Grand Square Hotel and is caught by two clumsy thieves in the back alley. Get someone to set up the scene there. We can''t stop shooting in the afternoon." Jeffrey had also noticed something unusual in Cheryl Schneider''s expression, and he said to Eric, "Eric, the headquarters of News Group America is in New York. They must have deep connections locally. Should we contact Murdoch?" "If we go to Murdoch for help with such a small matter, how will he look at us? Besides, Murdoch is not a phnthropist. " Eric shook his head and then said, "Moreover, ''Home Alone 2'' also involves the interests of Fox Film Company. If we can''t solve this in the end, Fox will definitely take the initiative, and we don''t have to take the initiative to send goodwill." Jeffrey smiled and said, "As you thought, I''ll have someone buy stic film. But I don''t think it will take too long; we don''t even need to change the scene." Eric pointed to the men and women lying all over thewn and said, "With so many people here, we won''t be able to shoot properly. I''m worried they''ll intentionally cause trouble, just like what happened when I wasn''t here. If something does happen, it''ll be even more troublesome to resolve. So, let''s change the scene for now. Oh, did any media reporterse by just now?" Jeffrey was surprised by Eric''s question and, after thinking for a moment, he said, "It seems like there were a few, but they just took some photos from a distance and were driven away by our staff and left obediently." Eric grumbled, "Looks like the trouble is only just beginning." He said to Jeffrey, "You get it sorted out first. Thene back to the hotel with me. I think you have more important things to do in the afternoon." "OK then," Jeffrey nodded and hurried off to do what Eric had instructed. After he left, Eric asked the staff for a camera and took some photos of the protesters lying on thewn. He then asked n to get them printed out immediately. After almost an hour, Jeffrey returned to the hotel where the crew was staying, and Eric handed him a stack of photos. Jeffrey picked up the stack, flipped through it with a perplexed expression, and asked, "What is this for?" "Just in case," Eric said. "Haven''t you noticed that the purpose of this so-called environmental organization suddenly appearing isn''t pure? We''ve filmed a few scenes on some sections with vegetation before, and we didn''t see any trace of them. But thisst week, we filmed scenes in Central Park and they showed up." Jeffrey quickly understood what Eric said. It was obvious that someone wanted to dy the filming of "Home Alone 2" and the trouble they brought was greater than when they first intervened. Central Park holds a special ce in the hearts of New Yorkers, so if the filming crew was met with resistance from environmental organizations and maliciously fabricated facts about the harms of man-made snow ingredients, such as magnesium sulfate, on the vegetation of Central Park, then they would certainly face greater resistance, and even the New York City government would have to intervene to appease public concerns and directly stop the filming of "Home Alone 2" before the crew presented a reasonable n. "Home Alone 2" is scheduled on a daily basis, and now they havee to thest minute. If it is dyed for a few days, then all the ns made initially would have to be postponed. And even now it is impossible to edit the script and remove the Central Park scene, as the previous shooting was interlinked within the plot and included many shots of Kevin running out of Central Park. If it were edited, then a lot of the shots captured before would be wasted, and if they had to be reshot, then "Home Alone 2" could only be postponed until Christmas. Jeffrey grew increasingly concerned, holding the photo in his hand and asking Eric, "Who do you think is causing trouble this time?" Eric picked up the newly bought "Movie Guide" beside him and pointed to the movie schedule listed on the page: "The release date for ''Home Alone 2'' is set for November 17. If we were to dy it due to some trouble, it would be beneficial to the movies released during this period, so we don''t know who is causing the trouble at all." Jeffrey picked up the newspaper and saw that there were seven or eight movies being released that day, November 17th, including Warner Bros. avoiding thepetition of "Running Out of Time", "Deadly Weapon 2" which was dyed from the summer to the Thanksgiving file, Paramount''s Christmasedy "Harlem Night Club" starring Eddie Murphy, and the following two days having Universal''s "Back to the Future 2". Eric said heavily, "You see, several major filmpanies have movies released during this period, and the total box office during Thanksgiving is estimated to be around 100 million US dors. So, if ''Home Alone 2'' is postponed, the other movies can share at least 30 million US dors of the box office that would have gone to ''Home Alone 2''. ording to thew of two eight, it''s likely that the main movies of those majorpanies will get the most, making their suspicion the greatest. However, we don''t have the time or energy to investigate this further. Even if we do find out who is behind it, it won''t do us any good. The only thing we can do is to find a way to finish the movie on time." Jeffrey put down the newspaper and thought that this opponent was likely to be a giant such as Warner or Universal. Realizing that Firefly had little chance ofpeting against thesepanies, he hesitated before asking, "Eric, do we really not need to inform Fox?" Eric thought for a moment and shook his head again. "Not yet. Let''s wait and see what tomorrow brings. I''m sure the newspaper tomorrow will have a report on the damage caused to Central Park from using artificial snow." "What should I do now?" Jeffrey asked, as he had never been in such a situation before. "Two things," Eric said, raising three fingers. "First, Central Park is managed by the Central Park Preservation Committee. You should donate a sum of money to themittee in the name of Firefly, let''s say $500,000; this will increase the chances that they will talk to us in case of public opinion storms." After saying this, Eric handed the photos to Jeffrey and said, "Second, these. You should contact as many local newspapers and media outlets in New York as possible to reveal what happened today when we encountered the environmental organization''s protest. Ask them to help with some reports, emphasizing our efforts to protect the environment of Central Park. Also, find one or two professionals in rted fields to exin in detail why sodium sulfate magnesium cannot harm vegetation, and that it is even a kind of fertilizer." "Eric, will five hundred thousand dors be too much?" Jeffrey asked weakly, as he still couldn''t bear to give away so much money. Eric put his hand to his forehead and said solemnly, "Jeffrey, you must understand the situation. If things change and ''Home Alone 2'' is notpleted on time, it will not only cost $500,000. Moreover, the budget for ''Home Alone 2'' was originally estimated to be $25 million, and there will be some surplus. So, the $500,000 can be counted as part of the production cost." Jeffery finally nodded: "Okay, I understand. Additionally, because we need to temporarily adjust our shooting n, the shoot in the afternoon might be dyed by an hour, as we have to coordinate with the relevant streets." "Got it, I''ll take care of it personallyter, you just go and do your thing." Jeffery picked up the photos that Eric had taken and rushed out. Perhaps because they wanted to make a full show, when they were shooting in the afternoon, a member of the environmental organization came back. Although he still pointed out the crew''s behavior ofying artificial snow from time to time, and even taunted a few words asionally, he no longerid on the ground to stop the crew''s shooting like he had done in Central Park. Eric also gave a stern warning to the cast members at noon; no matter how these people provoked each other, they must not get into a conflict, as it would be ying into the hands of the other party. Hey everyone! I''m inviting you to join my Patreonmunity! As a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters before the regr release. Your support would mean the world to me, so if you''re interested, visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join today. Thank you for your support! Chapter 251: Fantastic!

Chapter 251: Fantastic!

Jeffrey stayed up until past 8 o''clock to finish all the tasks assigned by Eric. Nevertheless, he still felt worried and tossed and turned throughout the night without being able to sleep. Early the next morning, when the sky was just beginning to brighten, Jeffrey got up from bed with dark circles under his eyes. After a quick wash, he went out to buy a plethora of newspapers and stood beside the newspaper stand, eagerly reading them. Sure enough, in the Manhattan Morning Post, a photo of the environmental organization''s members sprawled on thewn was printed in a very prominent position, and the quality was not as clear as the few photos Eric had taken specifically. What made Jeffrey even more anxious was that the newspaper also published a photo of the crew members and environmental organization members pushing and shoving each other. The paparazzi was quite shrewd. Although you couldn''t see the expressions of the two people above, it was clear that one of the crew members had raised his foot to kick the environmental organization member opposite, and the protester seemed to be retreating in fear. Yesterday, the sequel of "Home Alone" was shooting intensively in Central Park, Manhattan, when it encountered obstruction from the famous environmental protection organization GEPO. Jeffrey couldn''t help but swear when he read the first sentence of the newspaper, as he had negotiated with this so-called environmental organization for so long, yet he had not even known who they were. Though Jeffery was furious, he read on. It was said that the crew of "Home Alone 2" wanted to spread the chemical substance magnesium sulfate hexahydrate, which is simr to snow, on the vegetation in Central Park, which would cause great damage to the nts. In order to stop this improper behavior, the members of GEPO had a long negotiation with the production team of the other crew. Even when they encountered physical conflicts with them, they could only lie on thewn to protest. The journalist we went to interview also experienced the rude expulsion of the crew of "Home Alone 2". Members of Gepo revealed to us that their strength was inadequate. Despite their strong protests, the crew of "Home Alone 2" temporarily ceased shooting, yet the other party was unwilling to give up. Central Park is famously known as "the Lung of Manhattan," and Manhattan residents are able to breathe fresher air than other areas of New York, thanks to the purifying effect of Central Park''s vegetation. Thus, we urge the people of Manhattan to pay attention to the development of this case and strongly suggest that the Manhattan District Government intervene to prevent the crew of "Home Alone 2" from causing reckless environmental destruction. Jeffrey had a chill after reading the article. Thest paragraph of the report incited the citizens of Manhattan to protest against the crew shooting in Central Park. If the government of Manhattan couldn''t withstand the pressure of public opinion and intervene, then "Home Alone 2" would have to wait for a real snowfall in New York before resuming shooting, with no telling when that would be. Without snow, the scenes in Central Park would look out of cepared to the snow scenes already filmed elsewhere. After reading the report, Jeffrey had no desire to read any other newspaper and went straight to find the few he had done public rtions for the day before. Fortunately, several newspapers such as ''The New York Times'', ''The New York Post'' and ''The New York News'' have fairly reported on Jeffrey''s PR yesterday, as the writers received a PR fee. Thenguage was biased towards the crew, and ''The New York Post'' also included an interview with a chemistry professor from New York University, which was also arranged by Jeffrey. The professor exined in detail and objectively the material of magnesium sulfate heptahydrate used as artificial snow, stating that as long as it is not used inrge amounts, it will not only not harm the nts, but also promote their growth. After quickly reading a few newspapers, Jeffrey hurried off to the hotel. Dong, dong, dong... Eric knocked on the door with urgency, and after a few moments, the door was cautiously opened and a blond beauty in a nightgown appeared. Jeffrey stared, bewildered. He didn''t know this woman, and he thought it was unlikely that Eric, his outrageous friend, had resorted to hiring a call girl just because Nicole had left the show. The blonde beauty saw Jeffrey clearly and opened the door in a hurry: "Mr. Hanson, pleasee in. Eric is taking a shower." Hearing the blonde girl call him by name, Jeffrey rxed a bit; at least it wasn''t a call girl, making it easier to ept. The blonde beauty quickly noticed Jeffrey''s puzzled gaze and hastily introduced herself, "Mr. Hanson, I''m Leigh Zimmerman and I have a small role in the movie. But you may not have noticed me." Jeffrey nodded, opening his mouth several times, but finally just pointed to the girl''s neck. Leigh lowered her head, her cheeks flushing, for her neck was full of red kisses, which stood out prominently against her fair skin. Leigh Zimmerman nervously tightened her cor, not knowing what to say, when the bathroom door opened and Eric, wearing a white bathrobe, emerged, drying his hair with a towel. He paused for a moment upon seeing Jeffrey sitting on the sofa, then smiled and said, "Hi, Jeffrey, you''re here... so early?" "Yes, it is quite early," Jeffrey said, ncing awkwardly at the blonde girl standing beside him. Eric smiled as he walked over and gently embraced the girl. He kissed her cheek and asked, "Have you two met?" The two of them nodded slightly, looking a bit awkward. Leigh Zimmerman noticed that Eric and the girl seemed to have something to discuss. She politely said, "Eric, may I use the bathroom?" Eric noticed the faint red marks on the girl''s neck, despite her cor being tightly held. He gave a slight smirk and patted her upturned buttocks before saying, "Of course, go ahead." Leigh Zimmerman gave Eric a disapproving look, although her eyes were full of charm, unlike the fierce gaze she had when she punched two stupid thieves during the shoot. Like Donald Trump''s character in the za Hotel, asking passersby for directions, the fashionable woman who encountered the bumbling thieves twice, first giving Marvin a p and then beating them both up together, was also found temporarily in New York. The production team contacted the renowned elite model managementpany. Although it was a small role, it was in the "Home Alone" series and the audience was mainly children, with adults watching with them. This was an excellent opportunity for the models to enhance their fame, and possibly even enter the big screen identally. Everyone knows that even a first-line star has an annual ie much higher than that of most supermodels. Therefore, this small role caused a scramble, and the assistant director responsible for the casting looked through the list of up to 46 candidates sent by the other party, and even some models personally came to the door. Suddenly he felt that this matter was not easy to handle, because although he had the right to cast, he was very moved by the hints of some small models, but he also did not dare to choose an unknown small model under thepetition of those supermodels, so he cleverly passed the decision on to Eric. Eric looked through the list, but didn''t recognize any of the women, so he eagerly flipped through the thick photo album that came with the list. Soon, he chose Leigh Zimmerman from the countless pictures of different styles. Leigh Zimmerman was not the most famous or the most beautiful model among them, but it just happened that this blonde was the actress from his previous life. Originally, Eric chose Leigh Zimmerman out of a desire to stay true to the source material, and not for any other reason. However, when shooting yesterday, Eric suddenly felt something for the girl wearing a ck dress and ck leather gloves in the lens. He felt that she was so cool when she punched the two clumsy robbers. A few jokes and hintster, when Eric was cuddling with the girl in bed, he specially brought out a pair of ck leather gloves and let her wear them. Seeing her delicate and white body only wearing a pair of leather gloves, he felt gentle and joyful; the feeling was really great. The bathroom door clicked shut and Jeffrey pointed in the direction of the bathroom, asking, "Eric, what''s going on here?" "Haven''t you seen the script? The one where the woman teaches the foolish thief a lesson twice?" Jeffrey remembered something and nodded. He opened his mouth to try to persuade Eric to be more restrained, after all, he now had not only a girlfriend, but also two regr lovers (due to Nicole''s scheming, Jeffrey also considered Nicole to be Eric''s lover, and the other one was Veronica). Jeffrey quickly dismissed the thought. After all, Eric was not like himself; he was of an age where his blood was boiling. As long as he didn''t indulge in women and neglect his duties, a little bit of flirtation wouldn''t be a big deal. In his position, even if Eric wanted to restrain himself, there would still be all kinds of womening around. "Forget it, let''s just look at these first; I''ve already seen them," Jeffrey said, pushing a pair of newspapers in front of Eric. "The pile on top is the newspapers I contacted yesterday, and the bottom is the ones they did for us." Eric quickly drew out a stack of papers and began to browse through them quickly. Chapter 252: Black pot

Chapter 252: ck pot

After Leigh Zimmerman had taken a bath and changed her clothes in the bathroom, Eric had just finished reading a pair of newspapers. ncing at the somewhat bewildered girl, Eric said, "Leigh, could you go downstairs and help me pack two breakfasts for Jeffrey and me? Anything is fine." "Oh, hmm," Leigh nodded quickly and picked up her handbag to leave the room, relieved that Eric hadn''t asked her to leave directly. "Are you still a bit reluctant?" Jeffrey asked mockingly. Eric paid no attention to Jeffery''s tone, smiled and said, "Of course,st night was wonderful." "Alright, let''s get down to business. What do you think about these reports?" Jeffrey gestured helplessly at the pile of newspapers Eric had been flipping through. Eric fixed his contemptuous expression and said, "If I hadn''t taken action yesterday, we''d be in a difficult situation today, since people tend to have preconceived notions. It''s still okay now; at least, the waters have been muddied, so public opinion won''t be totally against us. As long as we handle our PR well, nothing major should happen. Oh, I called Robertst night. He''ll be flying over to help out in the morning. He has more experience in this than me." "Yeah, I was about to suggest something like this, but I thought you might have had something else in mind?" Eric smiled: "What could it be? You don''t mean to say I''ve been excluding Robert?" "Isn''t that the case?" Eric denied, "Of course not. Although I do mind the 15% stake he took away since the twopanies merged, I will still treat him as one of my own. As long as Robert does not start any internal strife, I will not do so either." Jeffrey, whom Eric was already quite familiar with, gave Eric a scornful look and said, "Your words are not convincing at all." "No, I''m telling the truth," Eric countered, "Jeffrey. My goals are much bigger than you imagine, and if I start arguing with people over benefits now, it would be very hard for me to move forward." "What is your ultimate goal?" "Hollywood!" Jeffrey stared nkly, not understanding, and asked, "What?" "Hollywood," Eric repeated, with a hint of youthful recklessness in his voice, "I want that one day, when people mention the word ''Hollywood'', the first thing they think of is not Los Angeles, not the big movie studios, not any movie stars that are engraved on the Hollywood Walk of Fame, but me, Eric Williams. Hollywood is me, and I am Hollywood!" Eric''s heartfelt words sounded very inspiring, and Jeffrey stared at him, wanting to say something to undermine Eric, but he opened his mouth and instead uttered a blessing: "Well, I wish you sess." Eric nodded emphatically: "So, Jeffrey, what do you think? My goal is so far away, the road is so long, should I stop and quarrel with apanion who might help me walk faster, for a few rations?" Jeffrey sighed and shook his head: "I understand." The two had briefly discussed a n, and then Leigh Zimmerman entered with a few breakfasts in her hands. "I think I''ll just go back to my room to eat," Jeffrey said, feeling ufortable at the sight of the couple cuddled up on the sofa across from him. Without waiting for Eric to say anything, Jeffrey grabbed his portion and left. "Don''t worry about him. Let''s keep eating," Eric said, noticing Leigh''s expression. "Am I bothering you guys?" "No, not at all. Everything has been said. Oh, by the way. Didn''t you say you''re also performing in a Broadway y, in addition to modeling yesterday evening?" Leigh Zimmerman nodded: "Yeah, I really enjoy performing. Oh, Eric, I''m performing on Broadway next month, are youing back to watch?" Although the girl was looking at Eric with very expectant eyes, he could only shake his head: "Sorry, Lily, I have to rush back to Los Angeles right after wrapping up Home Alone." Leigh lowered her head and started fiddling with the sd in front of her. Though she wanted to take the initiative to ask for some opportunities, the woman who knew the industry rules well knew that if she actively asked Eric for something, she would only get a nk response. Therefore, this kind of thing could only be initiated by Eric. If the other party never mentioned it, she couldn''tin either. Just treat it as a one-time thing. After all, Leigh Zimmerman had also heard that Eric had chosen her, a nobody, among a group of supermodels. Whenever she thought of her roommate, another elite model of the modeling managementpany, and heard that she had gotten the role, the girl felt proud. Because she had only been in the industry for less than a year, when she heard about the opportunity, she never even consideredpeting, as she felt she couldn''tpete with all those famous models. Her roommate, however, encouraged her, and they both submitted their resumes. Unexpectedly, she was chosen. However, due to her roommate''s jealousy of her luck, they soon had a falling-out. After hearing several sarcastic remarks from her roommate, Leigh stopped talking to her and began to n to move out. Compared to this opportunity, what was a not-so-reliable friendship worth? Not to mention that her roommate was not treating her as a true friend, often using her earlier entry into the industry to show off and act like an elder. In other words, it was difficult to develop real friendship between models in such a fiercepetition, except for... Lesbians. Eric sniffed the faint scent of perfume from the girl and, after eating breakfast, asked, "Do you want to pursue a career as an actor?" Leigh Zimmerman was delighted and nodded eagerly. "Perfect," Eric said, "Do you know "Friends"?" "Of course, I know," the girl said excitedly, "and I also know that you wrote the script for that situationaledy! I watch it every week. I like Ross the most; I think he''s the kind of na?ve perfectionist, which is much better than his sister''s obsessive perfectionism. And then there''s Phoebe..." Realizing her babbling was inappropriate, the girl quickly shut her mouth and awkwardly nced at Eric. Ericughed and said, "Thank you for liking this TV show. There''s an episode of ''Friends'' where there''s a ckout in New York and Chandler and a famous model get locked in a bank vault. It''s about an episode long. I''d rmend you try it out." ording to the original script, this episode was supposed to take ce in the seventh episode of the first season. Chandler was meant to meet a Victoria''s Secret underwear model, but since Victoria''s Secret wasn''t very famous at the time, Eric changed the identity of the girl to a famous model. The script was revised and the scene was dyed to the twentieth episode, which hasn''t been filmed yet. Leigh Zimmerman asked in surprise, "Really, Eric, do you think I can really do it?" Eric nodded confidently, as he was sure there would be many simr characters in the movies or TV series he was preparing. It would be better to do the favor than to hire a cheap and unscrupulous casting assistant to scout young actresses. The influence of "Friends" now is much greater than it was in the first season, so it can be said that making a cameo in it is equivalent to showing up in front of more than 20 million viewers in the US, which is much better than shooting a few magazine covers. Of course, that''s all Eric can give to Leigh Zimmerman. Having appeared in two consecutive hit TV series and a blockbuster film, it would be easy for her to get more roles. Whether she can make further progress will depend on her own efforts and luck. Leigh saw the certain gaze from Eric and immediately rushed up to him, giving him a few quick kisses on his face. "Alright, alright," Eric licked his warm little tongue on his lips. He hurriedly pushed thedy away: "Stop fooling around, let me finish my breakfast." n went through the day''s agenda with Eric as usual, and after n was finished with his business, Eric pointed to the girl beside him and said, "n, contact Los Angeles and I remember there was a model role in ''Friends'' Episode 20, give it to Miss Zimmerman." Allen quickly jotted down the matter in his memo, nced at the woman next to Eric, hesitated for a moment, and then said, "Eric, do you think you should speak to Mr. John Aniston directly?" Eric almost forgot about this, but he knew that John Aniston, the producer of "Friends", had the most power. If he pushed Leigh forward, John Aniston would not only not let the girl get the role, he would also call to scold him. Eric thought for a moment, waved for Aaron toe over, leaned in to Aaron''s ear and said, "Tell him it was rmended by Jeffrey. He''s been single for so long and he''s getting on in years; it''s hard for him to find a girl. Let John do some more work." Allen gave a slight twitch of his mouth and asked, "Eric, should we inform Mr. Hansen?" "Don''t worry about it, I''ll tell him," Eric replied. Allen''s heart said it was strange to be told about such arge ck pot, but he just nodded helplessly, closed the memorandum, and hurriedly left. "Eric, I can''t believe you''re being so reckless," Leigh Zimmerman scowled at Eric after Allen left. Although Eric had whispered it into Allen''s ear, his voice was loud enough for her to hear: "I''m only guest-starring this episode, and I''m not going to pick a fight with your little girlfriend." Eric smiled and said, "If you hadn''t said it like that, you wouldn''t have gotten the role." Leigh Zimmerman asked curiously, "Why isn''t ''Friends'' one of your Firefly investments?" "Yeah, but the producer of ''Friends'' is my girlfriend''s dad." Although due to Eric''s prior arrangement, the public opinion did not unanimously condemn the "shocking behavior" of the cast of "Home Alone 2" for destroying the ecology of Central Park, the incident still had a great impact. While some people epted the viewpoint of Jeffrey''s PR, as seen in the newspapers, there were many who disagreed. Thus, a huge debate began to unfold over the next two days, centering around the question of whether the set of "Home Alone 2" should continue to be shot with artificial snow in Central Park, quickly gaining traction and bing a hot topic across the United States. Eric''s donation of $500,000 to the Central Park Preservation Committee had a significant influence. When interviewed about the environmental impact of the filming of "Home Alone 2" in Central Park, Mr. Frick praised the crew for taking numerous precautions, calling them a very responsible crew. Of course, themittee epted the $500,000 donation from the production team, and Tim Frick didn''t hide it; otherwise, it would have been more troublesome to be caught by the media. But Tim Frick couldn''t say that this was apensation for the possible damage caused by artificial snow to the vegetation in the park, or else he would have been pping himself in the face. Instead, he said that the production team saw that some public facilities in Central Park were quite old, so they donated this money to rece them with a batch of new public facilities. Because the interview with Tim Frick was broadcast in prime time, a lot of people saw the news, and with a series of PR by the cast of "Home Alone 2", the truth gradually became clear. Finally, the Manhattan District Government issued a statement indicating that a supervisory team would be specially dispatched to monitor whether the filming crew in Central Park adhered to the promised rules when using artificial snow during the shooting period. Additionally, several volunteers would be selected from the citizens to ensure the fairness of the supervisory team. After the statement was issued, the production team also immediately released a statement, indicating that they would not only cooperate with the work of the supervisory team, but also were willing to bear expenses beyond the Manhattan government budget. Both sides exchanged friendly gestures, and with the news group quietly doing its part, the matter was eventually resolved properly. And hence, the so-called environmental protection organization Gepo did note to stop the shooting of the drama team. Inte October, "Home Alone 2" wrapped up sessfully. Besides rushing back to Los Angeles to conclude post-production for two films, the release date of "The Others" was also imminent. This was the first shot of the Firefly Thanksgiving-Christmas file. If they could get the opening red, it would have a positive impact on the box office of the subsequent movies; thus, Eric attached great importance to this matter. Chapter 254: Maybe its time to do something

Chapter 254: Maybe it''s time to do something

Hey everyone! I''m thrilled to announce that I''veunched my Patreon page, and I''d love for you to join me! By bing a patron, you''ll get ess to exclusive content, including 10 tranted chapters before anyone else. Your support is invaluable to me, and I wouldn''t be able to do this without you. To join, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and be a patron today. Thank you so much! "What is your name, and which newspaper are you from?" Eric asked. "My name is George Norton," George Norton said hurriedly, inventing a false name for himself. Eric didn''t realize George was lying, so he nodded and said, "You said it was a foolish decision to release ''The Others'' on November 1st. What''s your reason for that?" George Norton confidently replied, "It''s simple. Although November 1st is Halloween, there are still many horror films released during that period, but it''s not an ideal time slot. The total box office of movies in these weeks is no different from the box office of films in the off-season. Since Disney and Firefly have high hopes for this movie, releasing it on November 1st is not a wise decision. Or, do you not have much confidence in ''The Others'', so you chose to put it in such an unpopr time slot?" After listening to George Norton''s words, Eric couldn''t help but nce at the other person a few times. This middle-aged man dressed in paparazzi was much stronger than those who only asked questions about the stars: "Since you can talk straight, you should also know that in Hollywood''s top ten box office every year, there will always be a few movies whose release time is neither during the summer nor Christmas season, yet they still manage to squeeze into the ranking list with their own excellent quality." Mr. Williams, I understand what you are saying. Just like "Look Who''s Talking," which was released a few weeks ago, Orion Pictures originally had no high hopes for this movie, so it was released in obscure October, yet this "ck horse," with only a few million in production costs, has now taken nearly sixty million US dors in box office and may even be apetitor of "The Others". But Mr. Williams, you still haven''t answered my question. The ck horse movies you mentioned were put in the off-season because they were not expected to seed. But "The Others" was obviously a movie that Disney and Firefly had high hopes for, and it even won the Silver Lion Award at the Venice Film Festival. Eric smiled slightly and said confidently, "I just answered your question. As long as the quality of the film is good, sometimes it can be released outside of the traditional summer or winter slots and still be sessful." George Norton widened his eyes in surprise, and some of the more professional reporters in the crowd also showed expressions of shock. Nobody in Hollywood had ever confidently made such a statement before; most people are usually scrambling to get their movies into the summer or winter slots because they know a good slot means more box office revenue. Eric, however, was going against the grain and boldly proiming to ''ignore the schedule''. Many paparazzi were keenly aware that this would be a very explosive topic, pushing their recording devices forward uncontrobly in Eric''s direction. George Norton knew this would be a highly controversial topic, and he had a rough draft in his mind. He thought many people would see the arrogant side of Eric Williams the following day, and if the "The Others" failed to get an unexpected result, Eric Williams would be disgraced and have a great impact on the box office performance of several of his uing movies. Despite this, George Norton still innocently moved his recorder closer to Eric and asked, "Mr. Williams, do you truly believe that the movie ''Little Ind Shocker'' can ignore the restrictions of the schedule and still achieve a high box office?" Eric shrugged and nodded, "I''m sure I have the confidence since I''m releasing the movie on November 1st." The reporters outside the cordon line murmured again. Eric finished speaking and, without paying attention to the crowd, pulled Virginia into the theater. "Hey, Mr. Williams. Can you exin in more detail?" one reporter asked. "Mr. Williams, can you please exin why you have such confidence in this movie?" another reporter asked. "Mr. Williams..." Amid the frenzied cries of reporters from behind, Eric and Victoria stepped onto the steps of the movie theater without looking back. Since the premiere didn''t start until 7 o''clock, they didn''t go directly to the screening room. Instead, they were guided to the pre-prepared lounge, where the celebrity guests who hade to pay their respects were waiting. As they walked along the VIP channel, Victoria asked softly, "Eric, are the words you just said going to be a little inappropriate?" Eric replied with a smile, "Don''t you even trust me?" Virginia shook her head quickly: "No, I certainly have confidence in you, but anything can go wrong, and if it does, you''ll definitely beughed at." Ericfortingly held the girl''s hand: "Don''t worry, there''s no need to worry." Virginia opened her mouth, wanting to say something more, but Eric pulled her into the restroom. After greeting the many stars who hade to cheer, Michael Eisner, the CEO of Disney, arrived on the scene after about ten minutes. Michael Eisner: "Eric, I heard what you said on the red carpet just now." As soon as they met, Michael Eisner said to Eric. Eric raised his eyebrows: "Mr. Eisner, do you think my words were inappropriate?" Michael Eisner shook his head and said, "I just think it''s too risky to say that. I''m curious why you insist on putting this movie on November 1st. Now I''ve done as you said, shouldn''t you tell me the reason?" "Let''s go over there and talk," Eric pointed to a set of sofas against the wall not far away. Michael Eisner nodded, following Eric and walking past. The people in the lounge were all eager to establish a rtionship with Eric and Michael Eisner, but seeing the two of them discussing something, they tactfully did note over. "In fact, I had this idea a long time ago, probably before Dark War was released," Eric said, looking at Michael Eisner. "I thought, since there are five movies rted to meing out by the end of the year, why not create a beautiful grand m miracle in this timeframe?" "Grand m, miracle?" Michael Eisner repeated the two key words, but he couldn''t figure out what the grand m had to do with the movie, not a ball game. Eric didn''t mince words and quickly said: "Mr. Eisner, ''The Others'' will be released on November 1st. After our hard work in publicity, it''s certain that we can take the championship of the two-week box office." Next, Eric continued: "Home Alone 2 will be released on November 17th. Last year, this movie took an entire 10 weeks of the weekly box office champion, and I have watched the films released during the same period. Only ''Lethal Weapon 2'' and ''Back to the Future 2'' canpete with ''Home Alone 2'', but the audience of those two films is not enough topare with the poprity of ''Home Alone 2''. Even if there will be a certain decrease in the box office of this sequel, it''s certain that we can take the championship in five weeks." Finally, on Christmas, "Sleepless in Seattle" will take over as the champion of the weekly box office. I have watched it, and since there is no big movie this Christmas, I expect this situation to continue until February. Furthermore, if we can effectively publicize this gimmick, then the several movies in this ''ry race'' will receive more attention at the same time, which will also y a role in mutually promoting the box office of the different movies. Michael Eisner heard Eric''s n and was shocked beyond words. The young people around him clearly wanted to dominate the whole new year slot! At least 30% of the weekly box office champion movie, plus the box office of any other movies, will increase to 40% or more. ording to the total box office of 600 million US dors at the end of the year, these movies are expected to garner a total of 240 million US dors, which is less than the total box office of the first movie "Home Alone"st year. Nevertheless, these movies still have one to three months of box office harvesting period after the new year; therefore, the total box office is expected to exceed 240 million US dors. On average, five movies are expected to hit 100 million US dors in box office each. If that is the case, five of the top ten spots in the box office rankings this year could be taken up by Firefly, which would be a major humiliation for the seven major filmpanies. Even though Disney may be the beneficiary of this, Michael Eisner can''t help but feel resigned. Suddenly, an idea popped into his head, and he looked at the eager youth next to him. Michael Eisner murmured a few words of encouragement and then got up and left. Eric stayed on the sofa for a while, as he had noticed something peculiar in Michael Eisner''s eyes, but he couldn''t put his finger on it. After informing Michael Eisner of his ambitious n, Eric was filled with anticipation, and so he failed to recognize the significance of Michael Eisner''s fleeting gaze. Hey everyone! If youd like to read tranted chapters ahead of the rest, then Id like to invite you to join my Patreon today! By bing a patron, youll get to read 10 tranted chapters ahead of every one else, and help support me in my work. Your support is invaluable to me, and I would be so grateful for your help. To be a patron, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today! Thank you so much! Chapter 255: Be quiet

Chapter 255: Be quiet

Hey everyone! I''m really excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! With your help, I can trante chapters faster, and you can get ess to them before anyone else. As a patron, you''ll get 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. I would be so grateful for your support, so if you''re interested, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much! The premiere of "The Others" started punctually at seven o''clock, after some interactions with the movie fans. Vivienne''s hoarse storytelling marked the beginning of the plot, as the mist slowly dissipated. When Virginia pushed open the big door that revealed the truth, Eric heard a clear "Wah!" in the cinema. The subtitles slowly rose, and after the lights lit up, scattered ps of apuse broke out in the theater. These ps were like sparks igniting a dry straw stack, and in less than five seconds, a loud roar like heavy rain beating everything ensued andsted for more than a minute. This is definitely one of the best horror stories I have seen over the years. Despite the simple plot andck of Hollywood special effects, the chilling atmosphere lingers in my heart throughout the viewing process. After captivating different fan bases with "Home Alone," "Pretty Woman," and "Dark War," Eric Williams extended his reach to horror movie fans with "Running Out of Time," which is incredible. The movie ends with a frightful twist that temporarily transports viewers away from reality for an hour and a half, only to bring them abruptly back to the stark reality, making them shudder. This is an amazing movie. In this era, where horror effects are often created with a lot of blood and disgusting special effects, "The Others" is undoubtedly the first and most clever horror movie. It does not rely on the usual methods but still manages to make people scream in fear. "A supernatural thriller that relies on eerie tension rather than gore and violence, Virginia Madsen''s performance stands out. The pretty vase that debuted with David Lynch''s "Dune" has finally found its footing in Hollywood after years of trial and error, and I hope she can continue to give us great films. Admittedly, it is not easy to surpass ''The Others'', yet I am sure the audience will be satisfied if she can bring equally great films." "Immersed in tense emotions and uncertain premonitions, it is almost a clich of horror films. However, this movie does not have any strange masked killers, abrupt kitchen knives, or bloody and cruel conflicts. Nevertheless, it still manages to keep the audience''s appetite tight throughout; no one knows what happened, yet everyone wants to know the truth. Finally, when the door opened, we all suddenly realized what was going on." The day after the premiere, newspapers such as the New York Post, Newsweek, New York Times, Variety, Hollywood Reporter, and Chicago Tribune all gave positive reviews of "The Others," and many found that the word used most often in these reviews was "creepy." Consequently, the audience, especially horror film lovers, all looked forward to November 1st with anticipation. Moreover, Eric''s words on the red carpet naturally caused a stir. Hollywood Online subsequently published George Norton''s overnight article the next day. Perhaps, after the sess of a few movies, Eric Williams has be so arrogant that he has forgotten that he is only a human, not a deity. Surprisingly, in front of many fans, he boasted that ''The Others'' was so excellent that it could ignore any schedule restrictions. Such arrogant words, which neither Steven Spielberg nor George Lucas would dare to say easily, came out of this young man who is not yet twenty years old - what an arrogant behavior. Moreover, although the author did not attend the film, ording to informants who watched it on site, ''The Others'' was far from as excellent as Eric said, and even far from the quality of Eric''s previous films. Not only was the setting rough and simple, but it was mysterious from the beginning to the end. The plot of the whole movie dragged slowly, after a dy of more than an hour. Although the ending was somewhat unexpected for the sleepy audience, there was no surprise. I really want Eric Williams toe and analyze in detail what qualifications does such a slow-paced movie have to im ''ignore the schedule''? Many newspapers are wary of Disney''s influence and openly criticize the movie "The Others", unlike small newspapers like "Hollywood Online". This is evidenced by the ironic response to Eric''s remark about "ignoring the schedule" on the red carpet. In just two or three days, "ignore the schedule" became a popr joke. The three televisionworks, unhappy with Eric due to his involvement in "Friends", frequently use this topic to satirize him. On NBC''s daytime talk show, the middle-aged host named Bonnie Goodwins didn''t sit directly at the desk and talk but let the audience wait for a few seconds before slowly descending with a steel wire, with a pair of funny miniature angel wings behind him. When a guest asked for the reason, he satirized Eric''s so-called "ignore the schedule" theory by demonstrating his own supernatural ability to "ignore gravity". The outside world was buzzing, and even Jeffrey had advised Eric to rify, but Eric refused to listen. On Wednesday, November 1st, "The Others" was released in 1,700 theaters. Amidst all the attention, the following day saw the release of the first-day box office statistics for "The Others": it had earned only 3.1 million. The media was quick to take delight in this misfortune, since Eric Williams'' screeny had been unable to ignore the working day, and thus, it was an impossible dream to ignore the film''s period. But then, after a rough estimate, "The Others" earned 3.9 million USD on Thursday, followed by 6.3 million, 7.1 million, and 6.4 million USD on Friday, Saturday, and Sunday, respectively. Finally, after a detailed statistic, the first five-day box office totaled $27.19 million, and all individual and media questions were immediately silenced. 27 million plus in the first week box office is a very impressive result even in any popr film period. Hey everyone! I''m really excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! With your support, I can trante chapters faster and give you ess to them before anyone else. As a patron, you''ll get 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. Your support is invaluable to me, and I wouldn''t be able to do this without you. To join, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and be a patron today. Thank you so much for your support! Chapter 256: Because of the suspense

Chapter 256: Because of the suspense

Hey everyone! I''m really excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! With your support, I can trante chapters faster and give you ess to them before anyone else. As a patron, you''ll get 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. Your support is invaluable to me, and I wouldn''t be able to do this without you. To join, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and be a patron today. Thank you so much for your support! It''s not over yet, ording to box office statistics, "The Others" has not dropped in its second week, and even shown a slight increase during the first few working days. "It''s very simple," Eric said in response to Jonathan Demme''s curiosity at the Sunset Tower Hotel banquet hall, "because of suspense! In ''The Others'', I set up enough suspense, such as the fog in the Graces'' house, the dream Graces had at the beginning, and the implied meanings in the lines. Most importantly, the unexpected ending with the reversal of humans and ghosts has attracted moviegoers to repeatedly enter the cinema to find out the root cause. After all, humans are the most curious animals, and I also gave Disney ideas to promote it through newspapers or TV shows to maximize the curiosity of moviegoers, leading to this situation. " Jonathan Demme asked again, "So, if there are enough analyses of the plot in the newspaper, gradually solving all the suspense, does it mean that the box office potential of this movie will end here?" Eric shook his head and gave a sly smile: "It''s inevitable that such analysis will appear in reviews, but don''t worry, such a situation is impossible. For instance, there is still the question of why Grace killed her two children, which even the three-hour cut of the Venice screening did not have a clear answer to, only some obscure hints in the dialogue of the characters. ording to these hints, someone may think that it was because the Nazi soldiers upied the ind, and in order to avoid being discovered by the enemy, Grace covered the two children and didn''t let them make a sound, thus inadvertently killing them. Others may argue that ording to the hint, Grace killed the children most likely after the war, so she was either crazy or had other reasons. In short, it is difficult to find a unified answer, and in order to find more evidence to persuade the other party, someone will watch the movie again." Jonathan Demme seemed to have understood something, nodding his head. Then he asked, "Eric, when shooting this movie, I''ve nearly memorized the script, but I really don''t understand why Grace killed her two children. Do you know what''s the matter?" "Well, I don''t know either," Eric replied. Jonathan Demme looked at him in disbelief, raising his voice in surprise, "You don''t know either?" "Yes, because I never thought about it. At the beginning, I didn''t think of any reason why Grace would kill two children. I just wrote out this story, and in the story Grace killed her two children, and then everything in the big house happened." Jonathan Demmeughed and said, "No wonder you weren''t worried. I guess there are many mysteries in it and you don''t have the answers for them, right?" "Bingo!" Eric smiled and snapped his fingers. The two of themughed together, and then Jonathan Demme said, "Oh right, Eric, Miss Murdoch contacted me about the script of ''The Silence of the Lambs''. I heard you''re interested in it. I''ve agreed to it." Eric was stunned. Jonathan Demme must have had a reason for bringing up this topic. He asked, "Is there a problem?" "Yes," Jonathan Dime nodded, "Miss Murdoch said that you rmended Judy Foster to y the female lead. But after I read the script a few times, I think Michelle Pfeiffer might be more appropriate." Eric recalled and quickly remembered the profile of this woman. Michelle Pfeiffer has good acting skills and has been nominated for several Oscars for her previous roles, but she has no representative works. Moreover, this blond beauty and ire in Judy Foster''s "The Silence of the Lambs" have little simrity. Although Eric wished that Judy Foster would star in the lead role, he didn''t interfere much if Jonathan Demme insisted. Nheless, he noticed that the money spent on buying and adapting the rights for the movie seemed slightly higher than usual, but he didn''t think the little girl had secretly spent three million US dors. Even if he had found out, he would only have spanked the little girl''s butt and been done with it; he still didn''t know that Drew had a 30% stake in TG Films. "Why do you think Michelle Pfeiffer is suitable for the role?" After pondering for a while, Eric still couldn''t understand, so he posed the question to Jonathan Demme. I have seen several of Michelle Pfeiffer''s films, especially her Oscar-nominated performances inst year''s "Dangerous Liaisons" and "The Witches of Eastwick" with Jack Nicholson, Cher, and Susan Sarandon. Pfeiffer is a very versatile actress, and her acting is more than sufficient to bring diverse characters to life. I think she could make the character of rice even more perfect. Eric nodded, as Jonathan Demme had be a respected director with the sess of "The Silence of the Lambs". Although he knew that if he expressed his opinion, Jonathan, who was still grateful to him for giving him the opportunity, would likely take his advice. However, Eric was no longer a producer, and getting involved in this matter would only lead to unpoprity. Maybe we can also consider the idea of what would have happened if the lead actress of "The Silence of the Lambs" had been reced with Michelle Pfeiffer - would it have had the same effect? It''s an interesting thought, isn''t it? ording to Jonathan Demme''s style, the movie would be almost the same as the original one, recing the lead actress to prove if it''s the character that makes the actor, or the actor that makes the character. Eric and Jonathan discussed the idea, and Eric suggested that if Jonathan could convince Liz to take the lead role, he could go ahead with his n. Jonathan nodded confidently and after a few words, the two parted ways. Eric then meandered through the crowd at the party, passing by a dining table, when he inadvertently heard a few people gathered together seemingly talking about something rted to "The Others". He then curiously joined in. Hey everyone! I''m so excited to announce that I''m now on Patreon! As a patron, you''ll get ess to 10 tranted chapters ahead of the regr release. Your support means the world to me, and I couldn''t do this without you. If you''d like to be a patron and help me out, head over to https://.patreon/inhollywood and join today. Thank you so much for your support! Chapter 257: What to do?

Chapter 257: What to do?

Come join my Patreon page and get early ess to 10 chapters of "I''m in Hollywood," Don''t miss out on this amazing opportunity - join my Patreon page today! "Mr. Jaffe," Bruce began again, "since ''The Others'' was sessful with its ghostly perspective, I think a love story with a ghost as the main character could certainly be worth exploring." The middle-aged man with sses, who appeared to be in his forties, had not finished his sentence when the one he referred to as Mr. Jaffe interjected: "Alright, Bruce, I understand that you have been trying to pitch your script, but I''m really not interested at the moment. I''m currently in the process of pre-production for another movie." The others around the table nodded in agreement. "Bruce, let it go," one of them said. "Don''t you think it''s a bit far-fetched to have a love story with a ghost as the main character, and moreover, it''s a tragedy." "Many iconic stories are tragedies," Bruce argued. "What''s the use of having a good memory?" asked the brte with curly hair. "I heard about your script too. It''s going to use a lot of special effects and require an investment of no less than 20 million dors. That''s already a medium to high investment for the producers C a big risk. Bruce, since you''re interested in ghosts or supernatural phenomena, why don''t you put in some effort to write a horror script like ''The Others'' instead ofing up with a ghost love story?" Eric approached and heard the brte''s words. His heart suddenly stirred. With just the two keywords ''ghost'' and ''Bruce'', Eric was already confident of his suspicion. In his previous life, wasn''t the scriptwriter of the heartbreaking movie "Ghost" named Bruce Joel Rubin? And if he hadn''t appeared, perhaps the movie would have already gone into production. Although Jonathan Demme was the director of "The Others," Eric was the most eye-catching person at the party. When he approached the buffet table, the people chatting nearby immediately gathered around him. They warmly introduced themselves, and Eric courteously exchanged business cards. He asked casually, "I heard something about a ''Ghost,'' what were you all discussing?" At a loss for how to establish a connection with Eric, the middle-aged man presented by Mr. Jaffe quickly responded, "It''s a script about a murdered bank clerk who turns into a ghost to protect his girlfriend from evil." Eric remembered the self-introduction of the middle-aged man named Charles Jaffe and thought he must have been educated by the concept of Barry Del''s high-concept movie. He summarized the plot of "Ghost" in one sentence, which convinced Eric of his guess - that the middle-aged man wearing sses who was pushed to the periphery of the crowd must be Bruce Joel Rubin, the screenwriter of "Ghost". After some investigation, Eric found that many movie copyrights had been taken by major filmpanies, and some of the films he had gone through a repeated sorting and recollection of the well-known films of the past few years in Hollywood, and had tried to get the filming rights of, were nowhere to be found. One of the scripts that was nowhere to be found was "Ghost". Before this movie, Bruce Joel Rubin was unknown in Hollywood. After Eric''s inquiries, he couldn''t even find this person. Finally, Eric decided to take one step at a time. ording to the general production process of movies in the parallel universe, "Ghost" should have started preparations that year, and the script should have appeared earlier; perhaps it had already appeared before he crossed over, making it impossible for Eric to copy it and use it directly. Eric showed no interest in the script and casually nced at Bruce Joel Rubin before turning his attention to idle conversations with those around him. Don''t be deceived by how these executives and renowned producers are now so warm and weing to him, given his history of producing multiple box office hits. Had he been brave enough to publicly show his interest in the script of "Ghost" right then and there, they would have instantly altered their attitude andpeted with each other to secure the script. After they exchanged some pleasantries, Eric and the others went their separate ways, and he never again had any contact with Bruce Joel Rubin. Since he had been seen, it would have been simple for them to locate himter. But things don''t always go as expected. Just as he was leaving, Bruce Joel Rubin rushed up to him and said: "Mr. Williams... The red-haired middle-aged man behind Eric, who had just given Bruce Joel Rubin a beating, saw his move and smiled at Charles Jaffe, saying, "It looks like Bruce is still unwilling to let go. He''s bothering Williams again." Charles Jaffe gazed deeply at the middle-aged man chasing after Eric and asked, "Brian, do you think William will take a look at that script?" "Who knows, but with Eric''s eye, if he takes a look at that script..." Brian, the red-haired middle-aged man, stopped here and exchanged nces with Charles Jaffe before they both went their separate ways. The two were just nodding acquaintances, and Charles Jaffe was the vice-president of Paramount while Eric was employed at Warner. If Eric identified the potential of the script, they would be rivals if theypeted. Upon hearing the conversation between Charles and Brian, several people around them all directed their gazes towards Eric. Eric was now in a dilemma, as Bruce Joel Rubin had already started to narrate the plot of "Ghost". What could he do? Act as if he didn''t care and ignore it? After the party, Eric sent people away warmly, as Bruce Joel Rubin was not a fool and it would be more troublesome otherwise. Criticizing the script harshly likely means no chance of cooperation. Neither of the first two methods can be used, and if he expresses his interest in the script on the spot, Eric cannot help but look around, noticing the attention of many people, particrly those who had just discussed it. These people are all shrewd. If he dares to divulge his thoughts, it will undoubtedly be fiercely contested. Among a group of tigers and wolves, the firefly can only be considered a thin and weak jackal. Join my Patreon page https://.patreon/inhollywood and get early ess to 10 chapters before I publish them. With your support, I can continue to bring you the best trantions. Thanks for your support! Chapter 258: Nobody is a fool

Chapter 258: Nobody is a fool

Are you looking for a way to read more chapters ? Look no further! Join my Patreon and get early ess to 10 chapters before I publish them. Get early ess to all the content I have to offer and support my work by signing up today! Patreon/inhollywood "Mr. Williams, what do you think of the story in which Carl unexpectedly died from a ss shard lodged in his heart, his soul dragged to hell by the Grim Reaper, and Molly and Oda Mae bidding farewell to Sam as he slowly walked into the gates of Heaven after their wish was fulfilled?" Bruce Joel Rubin noticed that Eric seemed distracted, so he told the story briefly and without expectations, then asked thisst question, expecting a negative response, before politely leaving. Upon hearing Bruce Joel Rubin finish talking, Eric snapped back to attention. "Mr. Robin, do you think Charles and the others had a good opinion of this story?" Upon hearing Eric''s words, Bruce assumed he was being rejected like everyone else and said dejectedly, "Well, excuse me then, Mr. Williams." However, Eric quickly interjected before Bruce had a chance to leave: "Mr. Robin, actually, I don''t think this concept is bad." Bruce immediately stopped and turned around to confirm: "Mr. Williams, did I hear you correctly?" "Of course," Eric replied with a smile. "I think your concept is not bad, but I just heard your oral story outline and didn''t find any highlights. Do you have aplete script?" Eric said nothing more and nodded. ncing around at the eager guests, he left the ballroom as if nothing had happened. "Eric, what were you thinking about?" In the ballroom, Virginia, who was standing beside Eric, raised her head and asked. Eric nced at Bruce, who was being approached by people from outside the ballroom, and said, "I spotted a script, and I think a lot of people are interested in it now." Following Eric''s gaze, Virginia looked over: "Is that the man? I just saw you talking to him for a while. If you like it, why don''t you buy it right away?" "Right now? Overnight?" Eric stroked the girl''s waistline and said, "Nobody is stupid. If I act too eager, I guess the owner of the script won''t be in a hurry to sell it, so it could cost more in the end if I want to get it. Plus, other filmpanies maye to try and grab it." Virginia hugged Eric''s waist, pressing her face against his chest and rubbing it: "I didn''t really understand. I guess I''m a fool." Eric lightly pped the bulging hips of the girl''s dress when no one was looking, his tone carrying a tinge of flirtation: "I like foolish women." Virginia protested by hitting Eric. Then, she raised her face, blinked her big eyes, and asked in a soft tone, "Eric, what about tonight?" Eric shook his head helplessly and said, "Wherever you go, you are followed by paparazzi. Can I go to you?" Virginia felt helpless upon hearing Eric''s words. Since the screening of "The Others", Veronica had not only gained huge fame, leaping from a third-rate actor to a first-line star, but her private life had also received intense attention from many tabloids. Eric knew that those people''s goals were not only Veronica, but himself as well. Whenever Eric thought about the night he negotiated with Murdoch, the old man mentioned that a reporter from the New York Post had been secretly following him for several months. This made Eric feel ufortable. To be honest, that matter has still not been resolved. Eric didn''t foolishly go to Murdoch afterwards to ask for those photos; he was aware that the other party would not relinquish the photos to him without keeping a backup. Therefore, he didn''t make a fuss about it. However, since then, Eric has be more cautious. Although he didn''t care about the media exposing him or the rumors about the actresses, he had to consider Anniston''s feelings. If the rumors in the newspapers kept circting, it would be impossible for her to act as if nothing was happening. Eventually, she had no choice but to break up with him. Although they couldn''t go to Virginia, they could go somewhere else. In the bedroom, Annistony on therge bed, her breathsing in short pants and her body trembling softly. Ericy on her back, moved aside her disheveled golden hair, and kissed her face. Below them, the firm object moved gently and soon prated the slick opening. "Stop it, I''m going to die," Anniston said as she resisted, arching her round and plump buttocks in an attempt to push Eric away. However, this only served to make Eric feel morefortable. "Come on, let me do artificial respiration for you," Ericughed as he kissed Anniston''s small mouth, his tongue breaking through the barrier and ying with her small, fragrant tongue. After resisting a few more times and Eric eventually letting her go after ying enough, Anniston red at the man hovering over her. After a while, she said in a muffled voice: "Eric, let me take a bath; otherwise, the bed sheets will get dirty." Eric shed a naughty smile, kissed Anniston''s face, and whispered in her ear: "It''s okay, let me rest for a while, and I''ll help you plug it up soon." Anniston heard this and immediately struggled beneath Eric, her mouth still shouting: "No more, no more, if youe again, I will die." Unfortunately, Anniston did not realize that her struggle had actually stimted Eric''s desires, and what had been dormant quickly rose again. Eric quickly got up and turned around Anniston, who wanted to escape, picked up her two slender and beautiful legs and pressed them to her chest. In the bright morning light, Eric woke up on time with a clear and refreshed look, and pulled the nket up over the poorly sleeping little girl before getting dressed and walking into the bathroom. When he opened the bedroom door and stepped into the living room, Eric heard a faint sound from the kitchen. "Good morning," Nicole, who was making breakfast, heard the noise and turned to greet Eric. "Good morning," Eric said as he smelled the delicious aroma of food in the air."Is there a portion for me?" Nicole gave him a look and said, "What do you think?" "Of course there is," Eric said as he walked up, encircling the girl''s slender waist and looking into the small pot in front of Nicole. Nicole was stunned by Eric''s sudden move, but soon rxed and felt the man''s imposing presence on her buttocks. She said helplessly, "Didn''t you work hard yesterday? Have you not had enough rest?" "Are you here to eavesdrop?" Eric blew into the girl''s sensitive earlobe and asked. Nicole''s face flushed red, denying: "Do I need to eavesdrop? You were talking so loudly, if it weren''t for the soundproofing of the vi, the neighbors would have called the police." "What about you?" Eric asked maliciously, but a hand was already sneaking into the girl''s waist. "Eric, you really are a scoundrel, aren''t you afraid Anniston will find out?" Nicole twisted her body lightly, unsure if it was in resistance orpliance. "She won''t be waking up anytime soon," Eric said, pulling his wet fingers away from the girl''s lips. Nicole gave Eric a few helpless nces, then obediently opened her mouth, allowing his finger to enter. After a while, Eric retracted his finger and patted the girl''s buttocks, saying, "OK, I''m going to wake up Jane now. You hurry up and make breakfast." "Jerk," Nicole murmured, nearly fainting from being released so suddenly. She hastily propped herself up on the kitchen counter, letting out a displeased remark at Eric who had already walked out the door. After having breakfast and leaving the apartment that Nicole and Anniston shared, Eric had not even entered the office building when Bruce Joel Rubin approached him. "Mr. Rubin, weren''t we supposed to meet at nine o''clock?" Eric looked at his watch. "Well, William, I was afraid of traffic jams on the way, so I came early," Bruce said. "Oh, then let''s go to the office and talk," Eric said, taking Bruce with him into the Firefly Building. This was the same office building that Robert Shay had rmended a few months ago, which was now owned by Firefly. The new staff of the Fireflypany had already moved in at the beginning of the month. Eric had originally nned to move UTA in as well, but the suggestion was opposed by Jeffrey, Robert, and even Kappel. After some exnation, Eric understood that this was to avoid suspicion, as a productionpany cannot own an agency at the same time. Eric had initially only intended to y a sideline, but if he moved UTA and Firefly into the same building, it would only cause trouble for himself. Two people came to the office and sat down. Eric asked someone to bring them two coffees, then he said to Bruce Joel Rubin, who was sitting opposite him, "So, Mr. Rubin, did you bring the script?" "Of course," Bruce replied, taking the script out of his bag and handing it to Eric. Eric nodded and opened the script, looking down. Hey readers, Are you looking for ess to more chapters? Look no further! Join my Patreon page and get early ess to up to 10 chapters ahead of schedule. So don''t wait any longer - join today and read 10 more chapters right now! Chapter 259: The Lion Opened Its Mouth

Chapter 259: The Lion Opened Its Mouth

Visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join my Patreonmunity and get exclusive early ess to 10 chapters before the regr everyday release. It''s a wonderful way to show your support. Thank you in advance! After reading the script, Eric found that there were many differences in detailpared to the actual movie he remembered, but the main plot remained unchanged. Therefore, when he shoots it in the future, he can easily modify these details. Most importantly, Eric didn''t find the song "Unchained Melody" in the script. The reason why "Ghost" became a ssic has a lot to do with the famous "Unchained Melody". It can be said that the song is a sublimation of the entire story. If the insert song was changed to any other one, "Ghost" would never have been as ssic as it is today. Eric, sure of the power of the "Butterfly Effect", was certain that, if the script was not directed by him, "Unchained Melody" would not appear. Other changes would also be made, and if the script were made into a movie, it would take a miracle to achieve half the results of the past. He closed the script and looked up, asking Bruce: "Mr. Rubin, I have already read the script. While there are many ces that need modification, it''s still good overall. How much do you n to sell this script for?" Bruce''s eyes glinted slyly behind his sses, and rather than answering Eric''s question, he asked: "Mr. Williams, what do you think needs to be modified?" Eric stared at Bruce, shaking his head, "It depends on the situation when shooting." When Bruce saw Eric say this, he didn''t continue to ask. He even felt that Eric''s words just now were probably meant to lower the price. He was confident that the script, which he had revised in detail many times, would not need many modifications as Eric had said. "Actually, Mr. Williams," Bruce said, "at the partyst night, I promoted my script to some people, and many of them were interested. Mr. Charles Jaffe of Paramount promised that if I sold the script to them, he would not only personally act as the producer and fully support the shooting of the movie, but also let me serve as a co-producer and share in the profits of the movie." Eric smiled coldly in his heart. Without changing his expression, he asked, "Mr. Rubin, how much profit sharing does Paramount n to give you?" Bruce hesitated, wanting to increase the figure, but he didn''t dare to tell such a tant lie. Thus, he said honestly, "In addition to a 300,000-dor script fee, Mr. Jaffe also promised to give me a 1% share of North American profits." "So, do you think that if this screeny is made, it could have how much box office sess?" Bruce smiled proudly. "Mr. Williams, since you like this script, I think it can get at least 100 million dors, or even more." Eric said, "You see, even if you give it to other directors to make, the box office can still reach 100 million. ording to the production cost of 20 million and the promotion cost of 10 million, you can only get amission of 250,000 US dors, which is less than your basic script fee." "Of course, I know that," Bruce shrugged. "That''s why I''m here today, Mr. Williams. I don''t know how much you n to offer for this script?" "Fifty thousand," Eric said. Of course he wouldn''t price it too high at once; otherwise, there would be no room for negotiation. Bruce Joel Rubin gave an incredulous look, raising his voice: "Mr. Williams, is a script worth one hundred million at the box office, only worth fifty thousand?" Mr. Rubin, don''t be naive and always talk about what one could expect from a hundred million box office, okay? Before a movie is released, no one can predict how much it will make. So, let''s discuss how much you would like to receive? Bruce extended three fingers and gestured to Eric: "Three million. I also had two scripts made into movies before, so I am familiar with Hollywood''s so-called profit sharing. I don''t want profit sharing; I want 1% of the North American box office share." Even though Eric had some mental preparation, he was still taken aback by the exorbitant price Bruce proposed. Even he himself had never received such a remuneration; the original script for Return to Seventeen was the lowest priced at 200,000 dors, without any royalties. Subsequently, for films such as Little Devils at Home, the investor was himself, so in order to prevent future disputes and tax-rted issues, the contract clearly stated the remuneration for the scriptwriter and director. For example, in the recently released "The Others", the investment of which was only $5 million dors, and as the scriptwriter, he did not get the basic script fee, but enjoyed a 3% share of North American profits. ording to the box office trend of "The Others", this money was likely only one million. Eric leaned back in his chair and shook his head with a smile: "Mr. Rubin, the price you are offering is simply unbelievable. No Hollywood scriptwriter has ever gotten such treatment." "No, no, no," Bruce said, offering a smallpliment to Eric. "Mr. Williams,pared to the profits this movie can bring, my price is not too much at all, right? Maybe the actor of just one movie will get much more than me." "You''re wrong, Mr. Rubin," Eric replied. "I don''t get that much either. The ie that was reported in the newspapers was the total after I took on the roles of investor, director, and scriptwriter. If I were just a scriptwriter, I wouldn''t even get a tenth of those numbers." "Mr. Williams," Bruce continued. "How about being honest with me? This script is like my child, and I hope there will be an excellent director to make it into a movie." Eric felt contempt in his heart. He despised those who always said that xxx was like their child. While some of them were genuine, most were just pretending. Upon hearing Bruce''s words, Eric realized that the middle-aged man before him must be of thetter category; otherwise, he would be discussing the script''s content instead of asking for a mary amount. "Three million dors for the basic script fee and box office split is out of the question," Eric said. "You mentioned that Paramount will be providing a script fee of $300,000 and a 1% profit split. I''m willing to offer the same price. Mr. Rubin, I guarantee that my 1% will be more than Paramount''s 1%." Bruce Joel Rubin immediately shook his head: "Mr. Williams, I understand your sincerity, but this offer still seems too insincere." Eric wanted to demonstrate his sincerity; he was not a stingy person. However, with the greed of the middle-aged man in front of him, Eric understood that if he raised the price too high, the other party would likely go to other filmpanies to ask for a higher "price of sincerity". "Mr. Rubin, I have been very sincere. My first script only got me $200,000 with no royalties. Now you still get 1% of the profits. To be honest, I just think your script is good. This is the first time I have tried someone else''s script. The risk is great; it may ruin my reputation in a moment." Bruce took the script back and put it in his bag, then said, "Maybe I should go to other filmpanies to show it. Last night, I received a lot of business cards." Eric stretched out his hand and made a casual expression, adding, "Please, but I don''t think anyone will offer a higher price. And even if you go back to Paramount, ording to the film''s production and publicity costs, the box office must reach $60 million to break even. I don''t think you will make a lot of money from the box office, because I don''t think your script can be directed by someone else and get a high box office. And if it fails, maybe no one will dare to take your script anymore." Bruce Joel Rubin hesitated slightly after hearing what Eric said, and still got up to say goodbye. Watching the other person leave, Eric shifted his attention to work and didn''t think about it anymore. Although Bruce Joel Rubin was a little greedy, he was still a smart person who could make a smart choice. Perhaps the other person does not understand the significance of hisst words now, but eventually he will. Since the script was ruined, no one was willing to ept his subsequent scripts. Therefore, if this script was turned into a movie, then Bruce Joel Rubin''s scripts would be highly sought-after. The only one who could guarantee the script would be filmed and sell well was Eric. It had to be said that Bruce Joel Rubin was a person who could remain patient. For the following week, he did not contact Eric, and Eric heard no news about the script "Ghost". At the same time, "The Others" achieved 25.54 million at the box office after its second week of release, although it did not decline as expected, the drop of less than 5% exceeded everyone''s expectations, and the total box office has umted more than 52 million, which is more than ten times the cost of the film. Initially, some Disney executives were concerned that Michael Eisner''s injection of twice the promotional funds might not be able to recoup the cost. However, after two weeks of release, Disney has already recouped the promotional cost ording to its own share, and any revenue generated by "The Others" afterwards will be pure profit. Other moviepanies envy Disney''s luck and no longer criticize Michael Eisner''s high percentage of the Firefly; instead, they begin to praise Michael Eisner''s courage. Are you looking for a way to show your support? Join my Patreonmunity today and get exclusive early ess to 10 chapters before the regr everyday release. Your support would mean the world to me, so visit https://.patreon/inhollywood to join today. Thank you for your support! Chapter 260: Second-hand goods

Chapter 260: Second-hand goods

Are you interested in reading more chapters before anyone else? Then you should join my Patreon page! As a supporter, you''ll get early ess to 10 chapters ahead of schedule. Don''t miss this chance to get a first look at thetest story updates - join my Patreon today! The third week of November, with Thanksgiving''s arrival, has also seen arge number of holiday movie releases. The most anticipated of these is "Home Alone 2", followed by Warner''s "Lethal Weapon 2" and Universal''s "Back to the Future 2". In addition to these highly anticipated films, there are also seven or eight other movies that are set to be released on November 17. Among these is the usually overlooked "Steel Magnolias." Despite everyone else treating it as a mere apaniment, Eric has great confidence in this movie. Compared to Disney''s emphasis on "The Ind of Terror", "Steel Magnolia" had no difference in terms of adoption. After the third week of "The Ind of Terror" being released, the number of screens had already increased to 2000, while "Steel Magnolia" only opened in 1000 theaters, due to Julia''s involvement. If Julia had participated in "Steel Magnolia" ording to the original timeline, the movie could have potentially achieved 500 screens. Because of this collective negligence, Julia made a phone call to scold Eric, her tone full ofints. Eric could onlyfort her with kind words and various assurances. Due to the shooting location in New York, Fox ced the premiere of "Home Alone 2" in arge theater on 42nd Street in Manhattan. After some negotiations between Eric and Fox, Fox agreed to broadcast the premiere of "Home Alone 2" live. Compared to "Little Ind Shock", the premiere of "Home Alone 2" was even more lively, as the first movie of this series had achieved a miraculous 300 million US dors in North America''s box office, and only two movies had ever achieved more than 300 million US dors in North America''s movie history. Foxid a fifty-meter red carpet outside the premiere theater and invited dozens of Hollywood stars to attend the premiere. "Eric, I''m a bit nervous," said Aniston, still clinging to Eric''s arm as the luxury Lincoln drove to the entrance of the red carpet. Eric could only pat Aniston''s head and said, "Come on, Jenny, rx. You''re also a big star now, and you''ll get to wait for a more grand Oscar red carpet in the future. So why are you shrinking back from such a small scene?" "You said it would be easy," Aniston pinched Eric''s arm and said again, "Also, Eric, I''m cold." "Well, I can''t do anything about it either. Your dress is already very conservative. You can take a lookter; there are lots of off-shoulder, backless, and thigh-revealing dresses that you can choose from." Aniston heard Eric say this and immediately frowned unhappily. "I''m not going to be like those women." "Of course not. With me here, my baby won''t show too much, and will still be more famous than those actresses." "I don''t need you either. I... I..." Aniston said quietly, not being able to finish the sentence and eventually pinching Eric''s arm hard. "It''s all your fault for pushing the role of Rachel to me. Don''t think I didn''t hear it. Once Dad said that you wanted to make this TV show for 10 seasons, so I''ll probably be Rachel Green in the audience''s heart forever!" How many female stars wish to be in the same position! Eric scoffed inwardly but responded without hesitation, "Baby, anytime you don''t want to shoot, I''ll cut off Friends immediately." Aniston stared at Eric, "Am I such an inconsiderate person?" "No, no, no, my little baby is the most understanding. Hey, the red carpet is here, let''s get ready to go." Aniston snorted, but quickly took out a small mirror from her bag and checked her makeup again. Eric just got off the car, arm in arm with Aniston, walking towards the red carpet of the premiere. The crowd of fans burst into deafening shouts. "Eric! Eric!" "Eric, I love you!" A group of pretty girls shouted loudly while holding posters of "Back to 17". "Rachel, Rachel, can you sign a name for me?" Apparently, Aniston has a lot of fans. Eric nced at the tight security measures on both sides and reassuringly pushed Aniston beside him and whispered, "Go help your fans sign a few names." Aniston, experiencing this kind of scene for the first time, felt no cold even though the temperature in New York had dropped below 10 degrees; instead, her cheeks were slightly warm due to excitement. This was the feeling of bing famous - no wonder so many people like it. Thinking this, Aniston skillfully leaned towards the crowd of fans and quickly scribbled her name on the notebooks or posters that were handed out, upon her boyfriend Eric''s reminder. He also smiled, and signed a few names for some fans, and took a photo with the group of girls with the loudest cheers. After a brief interaction, Eric gently took Aniston forward. When they arrived at the journalists'' interview area, Eric and Anniston posed for a few intimate photos and were then stopped by a reporter standing in the center of the red carpet. The reporter was from Fox TV, which had agreed to broadcast the premiere of "Home Alone 2" live. To maximize their benefit, they imitated the Oscar red carpet segment and arranged for a reporter to conduct interviews on the red carpet. With the envious gazes of the reporters who could only shout helplessly on both sides, Fox''s female reporter invited Eric and Anniston aside for an exclusive interview. "Hi, Mr. Williams and Miss Aniston, let''s greet the audience." "Hello everyone," Eric and Aniston waved at the camera with a smile. "By the way, Mr. Williams, is this the first time you and Miss Aniston have appeared publicly together?" Under Aniston''s slightly mncholic gaze, Eric chatted freely: "No, not at all. We were featured in the newspaper together a long time ago, at the start of the year. I was in New York and I was snapped by chance, I still have that picture now." "Oh, that time I knew it too, you and Miss Aniston were a perfect match," Laura Pena said with a smile. As for the rumor about the yboy Eric, Laura Pena wouldn''t be foolish enough to mention such a topic in this situation if she didn''t want to lose her job; he was still her boss after all. "Thank you for saying so," Eric smiled. After a few idle conversations, the female reporter turned the topic to "Home Alone 2." However, she didn''t ask Eric directly, but instead turned the microphone to Aniston: "Miss Aniston, how much box office do you think ''Home Alone 2'' can get?" "Of course, the more the better," Aniston gave a versatile answer. "Can you give a specific number?" Laura Pena inquired. Are you looking for a way to read more chapters ? Look no further! Join my Patreon and get early ess to 10 chapters before I publish them. Get early ess to all the content I have to offer and support my work by signing up today! https://.patreon/inhollywood Chapter 261: Wrong Direction

Chapter 261: Wrong Direction

In response to Laura Pena''s question, Anniston nced at Eric, her boyfriend, who indifferently blinked his eyes before approaching the microphone and saying, "I saw a preview of ''Home Alone 2'' and this movie is even better than the first one. Macay Culkin''s performance is still excellent, and Matthew is still so bad, and the other actors'' performances are also excellent. So I think this movie should at least be able to achieve a box office of 200 million US dors." "Wow, 200 million US dors, a surprising number, I hope Miss Anniston''s words will bring good luck to this film," Laura Pena showed no intention ofparing this movie tost year''s ''Home Alone'', and then asked, "Oh, by the way, Miss Anniston, I heard that Mr. Matthew Perry, who ys the young stupid thief Marvin, was your former ssmate, right?" "I didn''t expect there to be such an interesting anecdote," Laura Pena continued in a tone with a hint of ridicule and provocation, "So, Miss Anniston, you introduced Mr. Matthew Perry to Mr. Williams, aren''t you afraid he''ll be jealous?" Anniston''s eyes widened upon hearing this question, and she tightened her grip on Eric''s arm and said, "How is that possible? If Eric was jealous, he wouldn''t have chosen Matthew as Marvin''s performer." After a short interview, the two people walked through the red carpet and entered the movie theater. After Xiao Niu finished speaking, she really ran away from Eric and deliberately walked towards Matthew Perry, even warmly hugging him. Eric helplessly shrugged his shoulders and was just about to follow Xiao Niu when Donald Trump, who had previously guest starred, walked over with a smile on his face and greeted Eric from a distance. Donald was apanied by a blond woman who looked under thirty and was holding a little girl, Ivanka. "Hey, Eric, long time no see," Donald Trump walked over and warmly hugged Eric, then introduced, "Eric, this is my wife, and Ivanka. Ivanka, this is Eric Williams." Eric politely shook hands with Ivanka Trump. At this moment, a crisp little girl''s voice sounded out: "Eric, do you remember me?" "Of course, Ivanka," Ericughed and reached out, wanting to pinch Ivanka''s delicate face, but was met with strong protest from the little girl: "Hey, Eric, you''re not allowed to casually pinch a girl''s face." Eric squatted down in front of the little girl and asked with interest, "Why can''t I pinch it?" Ivanka tilted her little head and thought for a while, but couldn''t find a suitable reason, and then red at him fiercely and said, "Anyway, you just can''t pinch it." Eric was just about to continue teasing Ivanka when Anniston walked back and, upon seeing Ivanka Trump, excitedly called out, "Wow, such a pretty little girl, like a doll." Without waiting for Ivanka to react in any way, Anniston reached out and pinched the little girl''s face. "Ah, ah, you adults are so annoying!" In the midst of Ivanka''s frenzied struggles, everyoneughed. Anniston saw that the strange little girl was reacting so intensely and quickly let go, apologetically saying to Ivanka''s mother, "Sorry, did I do something wrong?" "It''s nothing, Miss Anniston, Ivanka is usually very well-behaved, she just resists unfamiliar people a bit," Ivana smiled and exined. "Friends" is now well-known and needs no introduction, Ivanka also knows Anniston. Anniston still looked apologetic and looked at Eric. Eric quickly introduced her, and then the four of them ignored the angry little Lori and started chatting. "Eric, the words you said at the premiere of "Ind of Horror" at the beginning of the month were really domineering. I heard that this movie has already made more than 50 million in box office, and the cost was only 5 million, right?" "Yes, although the production cost was only five million, the distribution cost is a bit higher." Donald Trump knows a little about movie distribution and said, "Even so, Firefly is definitely going to make a lot of money. Eric, how much do you think this movie will make in total in box office?" Anyway, these data are analyzed in full detail in the newspapers, and Eric didn''t feel that there was any need for secrecy. He replied, "Conservatively, I''d estimate around 150 million USD in North America. It''s hard to say for overseas, but the main overseas box office market is in Europe. With the Venice Golden Lion award and the quality of the film itself, I think overseas might be higher." Hearing this, Donald Trump''s eyes lit up even more. Based on Eric''s words, this small-budget film with a production cost of only five million USD is estimated to bring in a profit of around 70-80 million USD for Firefly. This doesn''t even includeter sales of DVDs and other peripherals. And the uing "Home Alone 2" is sure to bring in even more profit. Without even considering Firefly''s other uing films, just these two films alone will bring Eric at least 200 million USD in cash. Donald Trump is practically going crazy just thinking about cash right now. Eric noticed that Donald Trump''s eyes changed and he sighed inwardly. Although he had not known him for long, Eric had a good impression of the real estate tycoon. However, as a very mature man, Eric knew that he could not allow his personal feelings to influence his actions and he believed that even if Trump was his best friend, he would only be able to offer limited help and not invest arge amount of money into a real estate project that Trump might copse at any time. In order to prevent Trump from having unrealistic expectations, Eric thought it would be better to be clear. At this time, the staff notified the guests of the premiere that they could enter the screening room. Eric said to Annie, "Annie, can you go to the screening room with Mrs. Trump first? I need to talk to Donald." He did not avoid mentioning the Trumps. Donald nodded at his wife, and Ivanka was about to take little Ivanka and leave with Anniston when Ivanka broke away from her mother''s hand and said seriously, "Mom, you guys go first. I have something to discuss with Eric." Ivanka sensed that her husband and Eric had something important to talk about, so she pulled on her daughter and said, "Ivanka, don''t be naughty. Go with Mommy, and we''ll go watch Kevin." "I''m not interested in that little brat," Ivanka suddenly broke free from her mother''s grip and hugged her father''s leg tightly, not letting go no matter how her mother tried to pull her away. In the end, Eric spoke up, "Mrs. Turnbull, let Ivanka stay here. I don''t have anything important to say." Perhaps realizing something, Donald picked up his daughter and nodded at his wife. Almost everyone had left the rest area when Eric and Donald sat down on a sofa together. The little girl didn''t rush to speak either, she blinked her big beautiful eyes and looked between her father and Eric. Eric organized his words before speaking, "Donald, I have looked into some of the information about yourpany." Donald smiled awkwardly and jokingly said, "A mess, right?" Eric shook his head honestly, "Of course not, ording to the normal progress, the few projects you are working on can bepleted by next year. Although the real estate industry is not booming, I believe that with your ability, you can definitely make a profit. This is not ttery, I have seen your information. In thete 60s when you were still in college, you operated an apartment project in Cincinnati, Ohio, and earned one million dors in one year, and also the Hyatt Hotel on 42nd Street in Manhattan, and the skating rink in Central Park." Donald Trump heard Eric mention some of his past aplishments with a trace of pride on his face, but quickly remembered his current situation and couldn''t help but sigh. Eric didn''t wait for Donald. Trump to speak, and continued: "But, Donald, just like you need money to develop your own business, I also need a lot of money to expand my filmpany, and even if there is extra money, it is of no usepared to the needs of your several real estate projects." Donald Trump knew that Eric was telling the truth, nodded his head in eptance, and smiled: "I understand." The two of them fell silent for a moment, and Eric suddenly asked again: "Donald, you must have been thinking of ways to raise money during this period of time, right?" "Well, the bank group that loaned me money has refused to provide me with more funds, so I can only try to find financing from other ces. I have already reached out to all the investors I can ess during this period, and I even went to Japan with a friend''s introduction. Unfortunately, the Japanese have too high an appetite and want to take over the whole project at a very low price, which is not enough for me to repay my debt, so of course I won''t agree." Eric thought for a moment and said, "Donald, perhaps you have been focusing in the wrong direction from the start." Chapter 262: Here You Go

Chapter 262: Here You Go

Donald heard Eric''s words and a sh of inspiration crossed his mind, but he couldn''t catch it, and quickly asked, "Eric, what do you mean?" Eric said, "I mean that your financing direction is wrong. ording to the data collected by my people, the funds borrowed from banks alone for your several projects have already exceeded 1 billion US dors. If your project is stopped and failed, the biggest loss is the bank. So you should try to persuade the bank to continue to lend you money instead of trying to introduce other investors in the current situation." "Eric, I really don''t know how to thank you," Donald Trump patted Eric''s shoulder gratefully and suddenly stuffed the little girl who was sitting on his leg into Eric''s arms: "This is for you." Eric was stunned by Donald''s sudden action and received the little girl, who was frightened. He thought to himself that this was too precious. He had to take care of her and could only see her but not... Well, okay. Donald Trump immediately said, "Eric, sorry, I have to go back to thepany to hold a meeting about this right away. I''ve wasted four months. Four months! I can''t waste any more time, so can you help me take Ivanka to her mother?" Eric nodded quickly. Seeing that Eric nodded, Donald Trump turned around and left without looking back. A momentter, the empty hall was left with only Eric and the little girl in his arms. Looking at the door that stopped swinging, Eric retracted his gaze and gently pinched Ivanka''s face, joking, "Ivy. Did you hear that? Your dad gave you to me,e back to Los Angeles with me." Eric''s pinch of the face woke up the little girl, she clenched her fists and hammered Eric a few times, angrily saying, "Hey, how annoying, I said not to pinch people''s faces." After saying this, she broke away from Eric''s embrace, still ring at Eric angrily. Eric still smiled and said: "Okay. Ivanka, let''s go. Let''s find your mom." Ivanka subconsciously nodded, but then she remembered something and said: "Um, Eric, I have something I want to discuss with you." Eric became interested and asked: "What is it?" "I''ve recently started learning acting and I joined the school''s drama club. Everyone says I''m making progress quickly." Seeming to remember something proud, the little girl''s face was flushed, and she continued: "Eric, Dad always says you''re a great director. How about I act in one of your movies?" Oh, this won''t be easy, Eric said in a drawn-out voice, "lots of people are fighting to be in my movie, and you won''t even let me pinch your cheek, why should I agree to you?" Little Lori of course couldn''t tell Eric was joking, she widened her eyes in anger and red at Eric for a few seconds, seeing that Eric had no intention of backing down, she hesitated a bit before closing her eyes and bringing her cheek close to Eric as if she had made up her mind, and in a voice that seemed to ept her own fate, said, "just a pinch, not too hard." Eric looked at Ivanka''s rosy cheek and a sense of guilt arose in his heart, he lifted his hand but immediately put it down, surrendering, "okay, no need to pinch, I agree". Hearing that she didn''t have to endure ''torture'', Ivanka didn''t bother to be polite to Eric, she quickly jumped to the side and said in a soft voice, "you just agreed, don''t go back on your word". "Of course not," Eric nodded, "but Ivanka, if you want to act in a movie, you still need your parents'' approval." Ivanka immediately gave Eric an eye roll: "You''re so stupid, they wouldn''t have sent me to the performance ss if they didn''t agree." Eric thought about it and it seemed that it was indeed like this. In the previous life, Donald Trump didn''t even oppose his 16-year-old daughter running to be a model, let alone being an actor. The model circle was much more chaotic than Hollywood. However, as soon as she got her way, she immediately started to mock. This sassy little girl was really too much! Eric hummed twice, thinking of an excuse to fight back the little girl, when the door to the screening room suddenly opened and a man wearing a staff uniform from the movie theater ran in. Seeing Eric, he immediately rxed and said: "Mr. Williams, you''re here. The premiere is starting in two minutes, everyone is waiting for you." "Oh, I''ming right away," Eric said to the staff. Without any time to argue with the little girl, he stood up and said: "Come on, Ivy, let''s go watch the movie." Ivanka nodded, jumped off the couch, and politely grabbed Eric''s hand, following him towards the screening room. ...... The McCallister family is off on another trip, and this time Kevin, although not left behind, identally gets on a ne to New York. At the same time, two bumbling robbers, Harry and Marv, also escaped from prison and arrived in New York, no longer targeting residential homes, but rather the seemingly easier to rob toy store. After booking a hotel in Central Park, Kevin goes out for a stroll and runs into the two bumbling robbers again at Duncan''s Toy Store, and thus begins anotherugh-out-loud story. To be honest, Home Alone 2: Lost in New York is rather rich in plot, with a lot of side stories such as the pigeondy in Central Park and the greedy hotel concierge, but there''s not much innovation in the bridge. But this sequel isn''tpletely without any changes. Compared to the entirely kid-oriented first movie, this sequel adds some adult elements. At the beginning, Kevin quotes his uncle''s obscure adult joke. Then there were two shes between the robbers and the modern girl, as well as many funny lines from the young bumbling robber Marv, which are all humorous bridges targeted at adults. After the movie screening ended, Eric received loud cheers and congrattions from many people. After the premiere party, Eric drove Aniston to the Trump Pce in Manhattan, with his mother in the back seat, as Donald Trump had rushed away and taken the car with him, so he probably wouldn''t think of sending a car to pick up his wife and daughter, so Eric had to personally take them back. "Sorry for the trouble, Mr. Williams," Eric and Aniston only stayed at the Trump Pce for a while before they left, and Ivanka Trump personally sent them off. "That''s alright, Mrs. Trump, if there is nothing else, we''ll be on our way." Ivanka Trump was about to nod when Ivanka, who had been standing by, pulled at her mother''s sleeve immediately: "Mom, movie, movie." "Oh, that..." Ivanka Trump was embarrassed and a bit irritated with her daughter''s behavior, looking at Eric. Eric looked at the little girl''s expectant face and said: "Mrs. Trump, if you and Donald agree, I''ll try to get Ivanka to be an extra in one of my movies in the future." "That''s really very grateful of you, Mr. Williams." Ivanka said. Being a model, she had the same longing as most models for the acting industry, and Donald Trump''s ambition was even stronger. If possible, the couple wouldn''t be against Ivanka showing up in Eric''s movie. Due to Aniston needing to hurry back to Los Angeles to shoot thest few episodes of the first season of Friends and Eric having a lot of things to do, the two left New York the next day and returned to Los Angeles. After the premiere, on November 17th, Donald Trump''s Home Alone 2: Lost in New York was officially released. Due to the Thanksgiving Dead period, Fox heavily promoted the movie, but Home Alone 2''s reputation was not as good as Home Alone, which was released earlier. The media''s reviews of the movie were prized, with some praising it strongly and some criticizing it harshly. The New York Post wrote about Home Alone 2: Lost in New York: "Too many sequels are subject to the same criticism, only because fans love them so much, because their expectations are too high, so they cough more. But Home Alone 2 fully deserves fans'' wait for a year. Although some people say it is a copy without any improvement, the sequel is more full and interesting than the first one. As for it being a ''copy'', this is inevitable. If Kevin didn''t trap the two stupid thieves, would Home Alone still be Home Alone?" The Hollywood Online, representing a number of newspapers, fiercely criticized, "Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, produced by William, is a sequel without any sincerity. The plot is repetitive, the plot is inexplicable and illogical, even more unbearable is that the movie for 6-12 year old children is full of unbearable adult jokes. I think this is definitely a huge mistake of the movie ratingmittee. Home Alone 2 should at least be rated PG-13, not PG." Chapter 263: The Biggest Dark Horse

Chapter 263: The Biggest Dark Horse

Despite the prized reviews for Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, it has been a box office hit. On its opening weekend, the sequel earned $31 million in over 2,200 theaters in North America, and after its first week, it grossed over $46 million, significantly higher than the $27 million of its predecessor. This made other Hollywoodpanies fearful that "Home Alone 2" may break the first film''s box office record. Coming in at second ce this week was Warner Bros.'' Lethal Weapon 2, which released in over 1,900 theaters, but only earned $25 million, slightly more than half of Home Alone 2s total. Third ce went to Paramounts ckedy Harlem Nights, which earned $22 million. The movie "Home Alone 2: Lost in New York" made 46 million dors at the box office, which is not too surprising. What was more surprising was the Thanksgiving weekend first-week movie, "Steel Magnolias", which had been overlooked. Admittedly, it was a bit exaggerated to say it was overlooked, considering this was the first movie that Julia Aniston starred in after the sess of "Pretty Woman", and it still got quite a bit of attention. Butpared to the big publicity for other New Year films such as "Home Alone 2", "Lethal Weapon 2" and "Back to the Future 2", the publicity for Julia''s movie, which tells the story of ordinary life of several women in a Southern town, was much weaker. Despite grossing only $17 million in its opening weekend, Steel Magnolias was undoubtedly the biggest dark horse of the new year''s lineup. Compared to the $10 million opening, Steel Magnolias had an impressive $17,000 per-screen average, and a high upancy rate, higher than Home Alone 2 with its $20,000 per-screen average. Lethal Weapon 2 had $13,000 per-screen average, and Harlem Night Club had $10,000, just enough to qualify as a hit. Next, under the impact of a wave of newly released films, Home Alone 2: Lost in New York saw a 41% drop in ticket sales, earning $14.75 million and just barely squeezing into the top five. Universal''s "Back to the Future 2" only made over $130 million at the box office, not because the movie suffered a box office slump, but because Universal, for whatever reason, neither put the film on November 17th nor the next week on November 24th, but on the awkward November 22nd, the day before Thanksgiving. Speaking of Thanksgiving. Eric can''t help but ache. While receiving joyous box office data every day, Eric''s vi in Beverly Hills was also in chaos. As an important festival in the United States second only to Christmas, Thanksgiving is a day for family reunion. Donald Trump certainly couldn''t go back to Carl''s to spend Thanksgiving with his mother. As for Aniston, her parents had both remarried after their divorce, and she had a brother from her father''s side and a sister from her mother''s side, which made thingsplicated. Plus, Ivanka was already grown up, so no matter which side she went to, she felt very ufortable. Unintentionally, sheined to Eric a few times, and Eric then invited Ivanka to his house for Thanksgiving. Aniston was not expecting to agree this time, but surprisingly, she did. So, Eric, who was sitting in front of theputer in the study room without any intention of working, had a strong feeling of self-me. Eric stared at the document for half an hour, but couldn''t type out any words. Bored, he closed hisptop and walked out of the study room. From far away, he heard voices downstairs. "Hey, Fatty McFat, I told you how many times already. This pillow is for my personal use only, don''t you touch it!" "You little brat. Call me Fatty McFat one more time and I''ll touch it." "... ..." After a brief pause, Aniston''s terrified and disgusted voice immediately came: "Wow, that''s so gross, you actually touched your own saliva on the pillow." "Have the guts toe closer!" "Get away from me, no changing channels, give me back the remote, I''m learning to make pumpkin pie." "Who would dare to eat what you make, yesterday''s salmon egg rolls were inedible." "It was inedible but you ate so much, don''t think I didn''t see." "My stomach was rumbling in the middle of the night." "You''re talking nonsense, Eric and I are fine!" Eric hesitated for a few moments, then sighed and returned to the study, picking up the phone and dialing numbers randomly. Ivanka had gone home to celebrate the holiday with her parents, Nicole was in Chicago, promoting Seattle Nights. Even Julia wasn''t in Los Angeles, so in the end, out of sheer boredom, Eric called the number of the home of Jeffrey. "Hello, this is the Hanson home." After the call was connected, Eric was stunned, because it wasn''t Jeffrey''s voice that came out, but a young person. Immediately, Eric thought that the other party might be Jeffrey''s son, Chris Hanson. "I''m Eric Williams, may I ask who this is?" Even though he was pretty sure, Eric still asked. There was a pause on the other end of the line before a voice replied, "I''m Chris Hansen, Mr. Williams. Are you looking for my Dad? I''ll go get him." Eric didn''t say anything as he didn''t know the person, and after a while Jeffrey''s voice came from the other end of the phone, "Eric, it''s Thanksgiving tomorrow. What is it that you need? I''m telling you now that I won''t be getting involved in any big deals since Chris just came back home with his girlfriend. If it''s something to do with thepany, you should talk to Robert about it." Eric was a little surprised, then he chuckled, "Nothing, I''m just feeling a bit bored at home so I randomly called your number to chat." Jeffrey asked curiously, "Isn''t Donald''s daughter supposed to be at your ce? With that strange little girl there, why are you still feeling bored?" "Well, Janine is here too. So, you know," Eric replied. Jeffrey of course knew what Eric was talking about, he had seen the two little girls fighting on the hospital bed with his own eyes before. After a pause, Jeffrey burst outughing: "Ha ha ha, Eric, how did you manage to get them together again?" Chapter 264: Wolf of Wall Street

Chapter 264: Wolf of Wall Street

Eric sighed, "I can''t exin it in a few words, but somehow, I''m just d they didn''t burn down my house these few days." Jeffrey on the other end of the phoneughed again, then said, "You must be feeling quite ufortable at home now. Why don''t youe over for dinner and meet Chris? It''s dinner time now." Eric just wanted to chat with someone to pass his time, not wanting to disturb Jeffrey from enjoying his quality time, he hesitantly asked, "Is that okay?" "Why not? It''s a holiday, the more the merrier. It''s always so quiet here at my ce. It will be better if youe. Oh, if you want, you can also bring those two girls." Eric thought that the two girls wouldn''t fight with each other in front of strangers, so he agreed, "Then I''lle now?" "Hurry up, it''s nothing, the oven is still on," Jeffrey said before hanging up without waiting for Eric''s response. Eric put down the receiver and went downstairs after changing his clothes in the bedroom. Donald and Aniston, who werepeting for the TV remote, saw Eric walking down the stairs formally and were wary at the same time. "Eric, where are you going?" The two girls asked in unison. Eric put on a displeased expression and said, "You two are too noisy, so I decided to go somewhere else for Thanksgiving." "No!" The two girls jumped off the sofa and walked up to Eric. They grabbed his arms on the left and right, gave each other a nce, then said in unison, "It''s all your fault!" Eric rubbed his temples and said, "Alright, stop arguing. Jeffrey just called and invited me over to his house for dinner. Who''sing with me?" "Me!" came the chorus of replies. "Ok, ten minutes to get changed. Whoever isn''t ready won''te." A flurry of activity ensued as Donald and Aniston disappeared around the corner of the staircase. ...... Eric drove to Jeffrey''s house. He pressed the doorbell and the door opened soon afterwards. A young man, wearing a suit and looking somewhat simr to Jeffrey but much taller, opened the door and gave them a faint smile. "Hello, Mr. Williams," he said as he extended his hand. "Just call me Eric," Eric said as he shook the young man''s hand. "It''s nice to meet you too. Chris." Chris Hanson nodded at the two girls then took the bottle of red wine from Eric and said, "Come on in." Chris Hanson, Donald Trump, Ivanka, Aniston, and three other people walked into Jeffrey''s house, which was still the same, or maybe even neater than when Eric hadst visited, likely due to Jeffrey''s soning back home. It was both Donald and Aniston''s first time at Jeffrey''s house, and seeing the apartment that was clearly not up to Jeffrey''s current financial status, the two girls had a look of surprise. Aniston was able to hold her tongue, but Ivanka was quick to say, "Jeffrey''s so rich now. Why is he still living here?" Eric turned and gave Ivanka a warning look to not say anything else, but Chris Hanson stepped in and exined, "My dad is attached to the past. He doesn''t want to move out." "Oh," the girl nodded, not daring to say anything else. Three people sat in the living room and Jeffrey soon emerged from the kitchen with an apron tied around his waist. Seeing Eric and his twopanions, he said, "Eric, you guys rest first. Dinner will be ready soon." "Do you need help?" Eric asked quickly. Jeffrey shook his head, "No need. Amelia can help me. You guys talk to Chris first." After finishing his sentence, he disappeared back into the kitchen. Chris Hansonughed awkwardly and exined, "When I was seven, I yed around in the kitchen and got burned by hot oil once. After that, my dad never let me near the kitchen again." Eric nodded with a smile and gave the two little girls a look. The two girls obediently walked towards the kitchen. Eric and Jeffrey exchanged a few words of deference in the kitchen, along with a pleasant female voice, which soon quieted to whispers. The two men in the living room exchanged nces and chuckled. Eric had been observing Chris Hansen since the start, and so far he hadnt seen any signs of an academic prodigy like Jeffrey had asionally mentionedsomeone who got a full schrship for four years at college, and worked at one of the four big investment banks, Morgan Stanley. Eric could only gather from Chriss meticulousness in even dressing up indoors that he was either a perfectionist or a little too rigid. Of course, the former was more likely. "What are you thinking about, Eric?" Chris suddenly asked. Since he was Jeffrey''s son, Eric naturally felt a touch of kinship towards Chris and candidly said, "Jeffrey said you work at Morgan Stanley. I was wondering why you don''t have a hint of the Wall Street wolf about you?" Chris paused and thenughed and asked, "Eric, what do you think the so-called Wall Street wolf should be like?" Eric thought for a moment and said, "At least it should be aggressive, but I see you more like a meticulous researcher from someboratory." Chris shook his head and said, "Eric, you''re wrong. The more aggressive the so-called ''Wall Street wolf'' is on the surface, the less aggressive it looks. You can take a look at the photos of some of the famous investment bankers on Wall Street, and almost everyone looks ordinary, so much so that you can''t even tell them apart in a crowd. Eric raised an eyebrow when he heard this opinion for the first time and asked, "Why do you do that?" "It''s more of a disguise, to fool the enemy and make them lose vignce," Chris replied. Eric nodded thoughtfully and asked, "By the way, what do you actually do for a living, Chris?" "Whatever makes money, of course," Chris said with a smile. Eric chuckled and asked, "If The Firefly wants to go public, can I find you?" Chris, upon hearing the question, slightly held back his smile and said, "Eric, whether you are joking or not, if the Firefly is really going to be listed, it must be left to me to operate. You must know what this name means to me, and I hope it can develop better." Seeing Chris so serious, Eric also nodded seriously. Chapter 265: Cisco

Chapter 265: Cisco

I strongly rmend: Eric nodded, Chris took a deep breath and said, "However, Eric, if, I mean, if you can make sure that Firefly can develop as quickly as it is now, it would be better not to go public. Manypanies have gone all out for privatization after being listed for many years. Although listing can obtain arge amount of financing, it also means more responsibility and risk. Taking Hollywood as an example, several major filmpanies have almost all experienced hostile takeovers, thest one being in 1984, when Disney was maliciously targeted by Saul Steinberg, and finally Disney spent $325 million to redeem the 11.1% of the shares in Steinberg''s hands. At that time, Disney''s market value was less than $2 billion. The three hundred million dor cash made Disney''s injury painful, and had to give up family-style management and hire Michael Eisner as the helm of thepany." At this point, Chrisughed and said, "Of course, it has now been proven that Disney made a very correct decision at that time, and it was a blessing in disguise. However, not everypany has such good luck, and the more attention Firefly attracts with its rapid development, the more it will be coveted Chris said, "Of course, mostpanies go public to get more development funds. In my opinion, Firefly doesn''t need money. Why go public?" The two were talking when Jeffery came out of the kitchen and invited them to dinner. At the restaurant, Eric also met Chris''s girlfriend, Amy Bolton. She was tall and slender, with golden hair and blue eyes, dressed in a fashionable style. From the girl''s surname and the name of the clothingpany, plus the girl''s age, it was impossible to start from scratch. It was obvious that the girl was the boss''s daughter of this clothingpany. Emily nton was more talkative than Chris, and when she saw Eric she even shrieked with delight, expressing her love for his movies. At the dinner table, she not only talked about how she and Chris had met in detail, but also kept pushing Aniston to be the spokesperson for their family''s fashionpany. Aniston, facing Emily nton''s enthusiasm, didn''t know how to refuse, and could only look to Eric for help. Although Little Niu was only a TV actor now, she had already be famous with one movie. But Emily nton''s family fashionpany was not famous at all, and if Aniston went to be the spokesperson, it would be a little demeaning. Before Eric could open his mouth, Chris noticed Aniston''s awkwardness and took the initiative to say, "Emily, can you be quiet and eat? Yourpany is too small. Now having a second-line star as a spokesperson is enough for me." Emily was unwilling to hear this andined, "It''s all your fault. If you hadn''t messed up the listing of ourpany, the three factories in Florida and the order worth $9 million in Asia would have been built now..." "How can you me me? Obviously, your dad was too greedy and got caught for falsifyingpany information," Chris replied. "It was you who caught him out!" Emilyined with an injured look. "Allpanies do this when they list, why can''t we?" Chris put down his knife and fork and raised his voice in rebuttal, "Don''t you know how much your dad falsified? Fortunately, I caught it out, otherwise yourpany would have been fined into bankruptcy." Hearing the anger in Chris'' voice, Emily shrank her neck in embarrassment and muttered, "But Dad changed itter, why are you still..." Eric and Aniston, who were sitting on either side of him, looked at each other confusedly. Seemed like things were getting heated? But they didn''t want it to end in a break-up; it would be a big mistake for the three of them. Jeffrey, who was at the head of the table, coughed twice to break the tension before saying, "Alright, let''s not argue." Chris and Emily, who were already getting into the argument, snapped out of it and quickly closed their mouths. To keep the atmosphere lively, Eric took the initiative to bring up a new topic of conversation, and the dinner mood slowly improved. After dinner, Emily dragged Aniston and Drew into the room to have a private chat, leaving the three men in the living room. Eric apologetically said, "Sorry, Chris, I was just at the dinner table..." "Eric, it has nothing to do with you, you don''t need to worry about it," Chris shook his head. Jeffrey sighed with emotion at this time, "It''s okay, sometimes we have a quarrel, in fact, when Solina was here, we often argued." "Dad, can you not talk about those things anymore?" "Okay, I won''t say it anymore," Jeffrey nodded, knowing his son was doing it for his own good. Chatting, Eric gradually pulled the topic to something he was more interested in: "Chris, are you familiar with foreign exchange trading?" "I know something about it, but I haven''t participated in such projects. I''m currently working in the securities department." Chris shook his head: "The Japanese Yen has already appreciated by a full fold. Even if you have money, you won''t make much money entering now." Eric was a little regretful that he didn''t pay more attention to the history of the Japanese economy in the past. Hearing Chris say this, he had to give up, but another huge opportunity had not yete. Eric said, "Then, what about the ruble? Do you not know anything about the Ruble of the Soviet Union?" Chris advised: "Eric, I think it''s better for you to stick to making movies. The foreign exchange market is not something that everyone can y. Just like the Japanese Yen. Although it has appreciated by a full fold in the past few years, international capital has not gained the terrifying profits in the foreign exchange market as you think. The Federal government only allowed the Japanese Yen to appreciate, making Japanese goods losepetitiveness in international trade, and arge amount of domestic funds and enterprises fled, eventually leading to the bursting of Japan''s economic bubble and economic stagnation." Alright, I mean, did you guys not realize that the Soviet Union is about to go under? Chris shrugged, "It''s possible, but who knows when the Soviet Union will go under and even if the Soviet Union economy copses, we still can''t get involved because this country requires a fixed exchange rate for the ruble." "Alright, have you guys considered this possibility, that the dozens of Soviet Union''s member states all copse and restore the capitalist system, at that moment, because of the economic turmoil, the ruble will definitely take a nosedive. That would be a really good opportunity, right?" Chris and Jeffrey exchanged nces and they both looked at Eric strangely. After a while, Chris smiled, "Eric, your opinion would be weed by the whole world if you put it out there. If the Soviet Union really copses, everyone would no longer worry about the threat of nuclear war. ''Big Ivan'' who bombed the entire Arctic Circle back then had scared the whole world." Eric was somewhat helpless. Even though the Eastern European drama had changed and East and West Germany had unified in August of this year, it was still almost two years away from the copse of the Soviet Union in his memory, and after a half-century ofpetition between the US and the USSR, the Soviet Union was repeatedly vilified, but its strength was unquestionable. Few people thought that such a big country would disintegrate within a few months. "Let''s just assume it," Eric continued. "If it were possible, if the Soviet Union copsed and the ruble plummeted drastically, could I take 10 billion US dors to specte on the ruble and leverage it several hundred times to turn this capital into several tens of times?" Jeffrey didn''t respond, but Chris looked at Eric with a stupid look: "Don''t say 10 billion, even if you take out 1 billion, if you dare to use more than 100 times leverage in the extreme financial turmoil you mentioned, maybe you will lose it within a few minutes." Eric stared nkly, "Uh, well, I don''t really understand this." Chris knew that Eric had never even gone to college and was just an ordinary high school graduate, so he patiently exined, "Take the 100-times leverage you mentioned for example, if you invest one billion US dors, then you can amplify this money to one trillion US dors for foreign exchange transactions. But your one billion US dors is only equivalent to 1% of one trillion, which means that you can only bear the fluctuation of 1% in foreign exchange. Even if the overall trend of a currency is down, due to the game between buyers and sellers, there will be intense ups and downs during the process. As long as the currency rises by more than 1% in a certain stage, your money, whether it is 100 million or one billion, will be liquidated immediately. Generally speaking, the leverage used in the foreign exchange market is usually around 20 to 30 times, and asionally someone will take the risk of using a 50-time leverage." Eric awkwardlyughed and shrugged, "Let''s just pretend I never said that." Seeing Eric''s awkwardness, Chris and Geoffrey bothughed. Chris added, "The more severe the financial turmoil, the lower the leverage used to ensure the safety of funds. If you go in with 1 billion, it would be considered very impressive if you can double it." Since foreign exchange investments were not working out, Eric thought it would be better to invest in something he was familiar with. Apart from movies, the only industry that would be booming in the next 20 years was IT. With no chance for the big softwarepanies yet, as the inte had not developed, and variousworkpanies not yet in the time. On the hardware side, Eric had long been eyeing Apple Inc., but unfortunately the future of Steve Jobs is unknown, and Apple has not reached the brink of bankruptcy. So what else is there? After some thought, a name shed in his mind. Cisco? Cisco! Eric almost leapt up in surprise. In his past life, Cisco had a market capitalization of up to $500 billion. Chapter 266: Investment Company

Chapter 266: Investment Company

"Chris, do you know Cisco?" Eric asked excitedly. In his memory, Cisco was probably not yet listed, so his current wealth would surely allow him to make a significant share. Eric didn''t even ask for too much, even if he only got 10%, after ten years, the value of this share alone could make him taste the taste of being the world''s richest man. Chris thought for a moment and asked, "You mean the routerpany invested by Sequoia Capital?" "Yeah, you know Cisco too?" Eric asked nervously. It seemed like it was not a good news that Chris knew thispany, could it be... Eric didn''t notice the unease on Erik''s face and said with an inexplicable smile, "Of course I know, because thepany that operates Cisco''s IPO is also ours, but it''s not the same group, his name is George Kelly. He spent several months persuading Cisco''s main shareholders to agree to the IPO n, and now he''s lobbying around, hoping that some investment institutions will take over Cisco''s stock when it goes public in February next year." So that means it hasn''t gone public yet. Eric immediately breathed a sigh of relief. Just now he heard that Chris was very familiar with Cisco and thought that thepany had already gone public, or that thepany was being targeted by big investment banks like Morgan Stanley. Then it would not be easy for him to snatch it. "Chris, can you do me a favor?" Eric thought for a moment and then looked at Chris seriously, "Help me buy as many shares of Cisco as possible." Chris was confused: "Eric, a lot of investment firms are avoiding George Kelly now and many people don''t have faith in thepany." Jeffrey, who had been quietly listening all the time, also advised: "Eric, if you want to invest, let Chris help you find some more valuablepanies. This one you mentioned... what was it called, Cisco? Maybe you should just forget about it." Eric shook his head firmly and kept looking at Chris, "Chris, can you do me this favor?" Chris seemed to be infected by Eric''s gaze. He subconsciously nodded and then said, "Eric. If you are interested in thispany, I can help you get some more detailed information from George Kelly, and you should look at it before making your decision." "No need, I have already decided." Chris and Jeffrey exchanged nces, and Jeffrey said softly, "Eric, did you just... drink a bit too much?" "Listen, Jeffrey, and you too, Chris. I ampletely sober right now, neither tipsy nor drunk. Okay, the truth is... I have seen some data about Cisco, and I feel like it could be an industry giant like Microsoft, Oracle, or Apple. So Chris, give me some good advice, okay?" Chris looked at his father; he knew Jeffrey was most familiar with Eric. Jeffrey thought about Eric''s character before, and it seemed he never seeded in dissuading him from doing anything he decided to do. So Jeffrey nodded at his son. With his father''s approval, Chris said, "So, Erik. If you decide to, it would be best to set up an investmentpany first or have an investmentpany act as an agent for you. Morgan Stanley has a dedicated private wealth management department that would certainly provide you with top-notch service, of course, at a heftymission. So I rmend the former option. Then it''s quite simple. Use this investmentpany to acquire Cisco stocks, and then find a professional manager to join their board of directors to help you take care of the post-acquisition matters. Of course, you can do this yourself, but I don''t think you have the time, nor do I suggest you do these more specialized tasks yourself." Erik thought for a moment, studying Chris across from him, before suddenly speaking up, "Chris, what if youe to help me manage this investmentpany?" "Me?" Chris pointed to himself. Eric nodded: "Yes, rest assured, thispany won''t be a small fry, I guarantee that thepany''s funds won''t be less than one hundred million dors." Chris knew that Eric wouldn''t joke around and was immediately conflicted. He was already a senior manager at Morgan Stanley, and it took many people at least seven or eight years to reach this level, but he had only taken four years, and he was likely to get another promotion in another year. Now, suddenly, another opportunity had appeared before him, and if it had been someone other than Eric who spoke to him, he might have agreed immediately. But Eric was too young, which made him hesitate and fear that Eric was just having a whim. I know what you''re worried about, Chris, but trust me, it''s not a decision I made on a whim. I assure you of that. If you don''t believe me," Eric looked at Jeffrey beside him and said, "Jeffrey can be a witness." Jeffrey touched his nose and chuckled, "What should I guarantee?" "Guarantee that I''m not making a decision on a whim--you should know my character by now." "But from what I remember, you have done quite a few things on a whim," Jeffrey said with a smile, then added, "But it turned out right in the end. Chris, I think you should give it a try." Chris hesitated for a moment and said, "Eric, I need to think about this, and I will get back to you soon". "No problem," Eric nodded without pressing him. It was not until 10 o''clock in the evening that Eric took the two girls away from Jeffrey''s house. The Thanksgiving Day full of hustle and bustle passed quickly, and none of the three people had a chance to eat the turkey because of the quarrel. The two girls joked about pardoning the two turkeys they bought, one by one, surpassing the US President. After the festival, Aniston started to work and left the vi, and Eric also breathed a sigh of relief. While paying attention to the box office of three movies rted to fireflies, the casting of "X-Files" also began. After two months of busy work, the "X-Files" script team had basicallypleted the first season of the script. Assistant knocked on the door of Disney''s headquarters and opened it, saying to the busy Michael Eisner: "Mr. Eisner, Mr. Robin has arrived." "Let him in," Michael Eisner put down the pen in his hand. Bruce Joel Rubin soon entered the office. These days, he had a very morous life, because the script of "Harlem Night Club" was seen by Eric and spread throughout Hollywood. The senior executives of the seven majorpanies almost met him once. The small filmpanies that came together to cooperate were innumerable, and the people who wanted to get the script were also getting higher and higher prices, but they never reached his expectations. "Nice to meet you, Mr. Robin," Michael Eisner walked around the desk and smiled, shaking hands with Bruce Joel Rubin. Bruce was no longer felt intimidated like he had when meeting with the seven senior executives not long ago. After shaking hands with Michael Eisner in an unhurried manner, the two of them sat on the sofa together. Michael Eisner did not make anyments on the script for "Harlem Night Club." He said: "Mr. Robin, I have read the script, and today I invited you here to ask you something." "Mr. Eisner, please feel free to say anything." Bruce picked up the coffee brought by the assistant and took a sip. Michael Eisner patiently watched Bruce''s show and asked after Bruce put his cup down, "I just want to know one thing, what did Eric Williams say when you guys talked before? If your answer satisfies me, I will give you a very suitable price." Bruce Joel Rubin furrowed his brows, feeling ufortable with Michael Eisner''smanding tone: "Mr. Eisner, Mr. Williams said he was very interested in this script and wants to buy it to direct it himself." Michael Eisner shook his head: "No, I''m very familiar with the little guy, he definitely wouldn''t say something like this, I need you to restore the scene when you met him as it is. If you keep lying or don''t want to say, then you can leave now. If you tell me the situation of that timepletely and the result makes me satisfied, I will give you an extremely generous script contract. I know that Paramount is currently the highest bidder, they gave you 600,000 US dors in price and 2% of the profits. Believe me, my offer is absolutely higher than theirs, it all depends on whether your answer can make me satisfied or not. " Bruce felt a bit annoyed in his heart and almost wanted to leave, but he couldn''t pass up the money either, so he endured it and roughly described the scene when he met Eric. Michael Eisner listened patiently, knowing full well that Bruce couldn''t possibly tell the truth without embellishing it. So, he was trying to decide how much of what Bruce said was true. When Bruce had finished, Michael Eisner leaned back on the sofa and pondered for a full ten minutes. The whole thing began with a celebratory party for the huge box office sess of Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, hosted by Disney, with the most Disney people in attendance. So, Michael Eisner had already heard aplete ount of the incident from many people. Eric can currently determine that Eric was not actively approaching that group of people at the party, but was passing by and was identally surrounded by that group of guests, and identally heard about the script, and only had a few conversations. Among the group was a general manager from Disney''s distribution department. ording to the other party, Eric did not show anything strange at the time. So when Eric first heard a few people talking about this script, he was very optimistic about this possibility. Chapter 267: Extreme Measures

Chapter 267: Extreme Measures

Excluding this possibility, the level of the script would be reduced. Then, Eric left the group, Bruce followed him and told him the outline of the script. After listening, Eric just left a business card and asked Bruce to talk about it in detail at thepany the next day. So it can be determined that Eric was interested in the script, but there were too many scripts that Eric was interested in. Although Donald Trump''s little girl had been buying copyrights everywhere in silence, everyone who should know knew it, but the script was actually the least valuable thing. Hollywood produces thousands of scripts every year, and only a few hundred can be made into movies. Therefore, what Michael Eisner wanted to confirm was whether Eric woulde to direct the script himself. So far, the three films Erik has directed have all surpassed two hundred million dors in North American box office. With the first week''s box office of 46 million for Home Alone 2, it''s only a matter of time before it surpasses two hundred million. Under such circumstances, Erik decided that the next film he would direct would definitely not be less than one hundred million dors, and may even reach two hundred million. Michael Eisner personally read the script for Harlem Night Club and it definitely does not fit the art film route to attack the Oscars. "Bruce, can you be sure that Erik intended to direct the script himself during the negotiation process?" Bruce, somewhat disgruntled by Michael Eisner''s long pondering, nodded, "Yes. William has always expressed that he wants to direct the script himself." Of course, Bruce left out Eric''s emphasis of him directing it versus someone else doing it. This would interfere with Bruce''s negotiations with other movie studios. In fact, Bruce already had another n in mind; as long as the other movie factories could give him a satisfactory price, he did not necessarily have to sell the script to Eric, as long as it was stipted in the contract that the other party must let Eric be the director, it would be fine, and how the bigpanies would invite Eric was not something he should worry about. After a moment of contemtion, Michael Eisner finally made his decision: "One million dors plus 3% of North American profits. Mr. Robin, this is Disney''s final offer, no room for negotiation, and I don''t believe any other moviepany will offer a higher price. So, if you agree, we can draw up the contract right away, if you don''t agree, you can leave now." Bruce Joel Rubin''s lips twitched as he quickly calcted in his mind. The price had already met his psychological expectation. After all, a few weeks ago, he was just trying to find ways to sell the script, and now one million dors plus 3% of the profits had far exceeded his initial psychological expectations. As for the 300 million and box office split conditions that were originally proposed in Eric''s office, it was just for negotiation. Moreover, Michael Eisner sitting opposite him seemed to be even tougher than he thought, he knew that the other party was not joking and he wouldn''t get much result from negotiating. After some consideration, Bruce quickly made a decision: "Mr. Eisner, I can sell the script to Disney for the price you mentioned, but I have one condition." "Go ahead," Michael Eisner said with a nod. "I want Eric Williams to direct the movie himself," Bruce Joel Rubin said. Michael Eisner was briefly taken aback, knowing that a movie made by different people would yield a vastly different result. Thus, he had already been thinking of buying the script and making the movie with Eric, otherwise he wouldn''t have offered such a high price to Bruce. "I can agree to that condition," Michael Eisner pretended to ponder for a moment before nodding in agreement. "No, I''m not finished yet, said Bruce with a sly smile, I will sell the script to Disney at the price you just said, Disney must first pay me 1 million dors, and there will be a three-month deadline. If Disney can''t determine Eric Williams to be the director of the film within three months, the contract will be invalid. As for the 1 million dor deposit, I can only refund Disney 50% at most." Michael Eisner frowned: "Don''t you think this is too outrageous?" Bruce shook his head: "Of course not, I am taking a big risk here. If you can''t invite Eric Williams to be the director of the movie, outsiders will definitely be able to guess our conditions after the contract is invalid. I can''t get much benefit if I want Eric Williams to be the director of this movie." "How can I make sure you won''t secretly tell Eric Williams about this?" Michael Eisner asked. Bruce was surprised and said, "That''s impossible, Mr. Eisner. Even if the news leaked, it''s more likely to have been leaked by Disney itself because if I leaked it, I would at least lose a million dors, which is nothing to Disney but a lot of money to me." Michael thought about what he should do next and then said, "Three months is too short, at least a year." "Six months at most, a year is too long," "It''s not too long at all. As a Hollywood screenwriter, you should know that there are plenty of scripts that take ten or eight years to make into a movie, so a year. After a year, even if Disney doesn''t seed, the value of your script won''t depreciate, so only a year." Bruce lowered his head and said, "Alright, just one year." "Then I''ll have someone draw up the contract," Michael Eisner said, picking up the internal phone on his desk and saying a few words. A few hourster, the script contract was signed, and Bruce Joel Rubin was sent away. Michael Eisner drove to the vi that had been arranged in Maribor. It was already afternoon. If you were very familiar with Hollywood, you would recognize that several people had already arrived in the vi, they were all the bigwigs of the seven majorpanies. "Hi, Barry, long time no see," Michael Eisner said as he walked up to Barry Diller first, greeting him warmly. "Yeah, everyone''s been busy. I can''t remember when Ist saw you," Barry Diller said with a smile. Michael Eisner exchanged greetings with Steve Ross and Universal''s Sid Sheinberg, then took a seat next to Barry Diller. Soon after, Peter Guber, recently acquired by Sony, also arrived at the vi. Next was Paramount''s Frank Mancuso, and with that, six of the seven major studios had arrived. The heads of the major studios all knew each other, and most had worked together before, so even though there waspetition between them, they had a friendly conversation. After a while, an assistant of Michael Eisner rushed in and said something in his ear. After the assistant left, Barry Diller asked: "Did the MGM guy note?" Michael Eisner nodded. Frank Muncuso, head of Paramount, said with a sigh, "It doesn''t matter if wee or not, he can''t make any decisions anyway, it all depends on Coke. That rascal Coke is taking the lead, but it doesn''t matter if wee or not." A few months ago, Coke wanted to invite him to host a screening for MGM, but now whoever took it over is in for trouble. As the heads of several major filmpanies, everyone in the room had some feelings for movies, and when they heard Frank Muncuso''s words, they sighed and recalled the glory of MGM. "Then let''s get started," said Michael Eisner. This gathering was his idea. Hearing Michael Eisner''s words, the other five people stood up and walked to the conference room that had already been prepared. Sitting at the conference table, an assistant came in to distribute the pre-prepared materials to the few people present and then quietly closed the door of the conference room and left. "Let''s take a look, we can''t let Firefly continue like this," Michael Eisner said, presenting the data he had asked to bepiled, which was actually avable to the other studios, but Michael Eisner wasn''t about to let them "bring their own food". The room was silent for a long time, with Steve Ross of Warner Bros. closing the material in his hand first, and the others finishing their materials. Then they all looked at each other. They all knew that the Firefly had be a huge threat to the Seven Greats, and all of them had the relevant information in their hands, but they had not yet organized it. Now, the results of Firefly''s work this year were presented to these people all at once, and the impact on the few leaders could be imagined. "I never expected Firefly''s profits this year to be more than half of the total profits of the Seven Greats," Steve Ross sighed. Frank Manucso shrugged, nced meaningfully at his old boss Barry Diller, and said in a bachelor tone, "Martin Davis wants to intervene in everything, but he doesn''t even understand the business. Paramount''s profits this year are negligible, and maybe they will be in the red next year." Universal''s Sid Sheinberg was flipping through the folder with a stic cover and nced at Michael Eisner: "If webine Home Alone 2: Lost in New York and Steel Magnolias, we can probably get more than 200 million at the box office. Disney will also be a beneficiary. Michael, what do you n to do?" Michael Eisner could hear the sarcasm in Sid Sheinberg''s words and said, "Disney didn''t make much money. Williams only gave us the right to distribute the movie, and the VHS and TV broadcasting rights are not in Disney''s hands." "Then you should at least make forty or fifty million," Steve Ross chimed in. "Don''t argue, don''t forget what we are here to discuss today," Barry Diller interrupted the conversation. Then, the five people turned their eyes to Barry Diller, whom everyone knew was the closest partner to Firefly. He was not only in charge of the distribution rights of three films directed by Eric personally but also had control over peripheral products such as videotapes. In addition, Fox Television got "Friends". Barry Diller certainly could feel the meaning in their eyes and said with a deep voice, "If you think I''m not suitable here, then I can leave. But if so, today''s gathering will have no meaning." After that, Barry Diller coldly swept the room, and no one said anything, so he continued, "I won''t talk about the past. You must have seen the box office data this week. From November 17th to November 23rd, the total box office in North America was around 130 million, but the three films rted to Firefly ounted for more than 70 million, which was more than half of the total. If we continue to allow Firefly to expand like this, you should be able to imagine what the Seven will face." Universal''s Sid Sheinberg said, "I had already reached out to you before Firefly acquired New Line, hoping that the acquisition wouldn''t go through. But it did, without any resistance from you all. Now that New Line is in their hands, Firefly has a distribution channel, even if their overseas presence is still very weak. As long as they keep making huge profits domestically, expanding their overseas distribution is just a matter of time. So, what do you think we can do now?" Everyone fell into a brief silence, then Barry Diller looked over at Michael Eisner, who had organized the meeting: "Michael, since you initiated this gathering, you must have some ideas in mind, right?" Michael Eisner nodded his head: "Now, it''s not likely that we can stop the development of Firefly, so we can only try to get a stake in it. Since we can''t destroy it, we''ll have to try to control it as best we can." "Well, if it was that easy, I think several of us here have already discussed what ifs with Firefly?" Peter Guber, who had been rtively quiet, said. "Of course, so normal means won''t do. In that case, we can only use some extraordinary means." Michael Eisner said softly: "This will require us to join forces together in order to seed." "What about MGM?" Frank Mancuso asked worriedly. "Kirk Kerkorian isn''t an idiot, after we join forces, MGM will surely follow suit." Chapter 268: Financial Summary

Chapter 268: Financial Summary

The CEOs of several majorpanies in the meeting room had nearly all climbed up from the bottom of Hollywood, so they were also very familiar with all kinds of tricks in Hollywood. After several hours of discussions, a series of strategies for Firefly and Eric were formted, and the benefits that the majorpanies were going to get were divided. After Thanksgiving, Eric entered the busiest period of the year. ording to the n, as long as he finished the busy month inte December, Eric could rest for a long time. Even Donald had already been thinking about whether they should go on vacation during Christmas. Eric had been participating in the audition of the protagonist of X Files at Fox all morning. Since X Files was getting far more attention than before, the selection of the male and female protagonists who would support the entire series was also very cautious. Due to the sess of Friends, thepetition for the male and female lead roles in The X Files, which was directed by Eric, was very intense. Several Hollywood actors who had not been doing very well in recent years had participated in the auditions for the lead roles. Although the auditions had already entered the second round, the selection of male leads had not beenpleted in one morning, and none of the auditionees had made Eric satisfied. In addition, Eric had not considered the two from the previous life. Because in the original version, David Duchovny, the male lead, had an elusive smile on the corner of his mouth no matter what kind of mood he was in, which gave people a very exaggerated feeling. Therefore, Eric had not nned to give this role to him from the beginning. The reason why the previous life producers chose David Duchovny as the male lead was mainly because his fee was very low. As for the female lead, Gillian Anderson, it was even less in line with Eric''s expectations. Whats more, she hasn''t debuted yet. The lead female character, Dana Scully, in the X-Files should have been a highly intelligent woman with a physics andw degree and a teacher to boot. But the petite Gillian Anderson didn''t act like a highly intelligent woman in the show but more like the male lead''s little secretary. Eric imagined the actress who would y Dana Scully should be tall, smart, andpetent with a touch of coolness. Instead of being a sidekick, the role should be that of a worthy opponent to the male lead. After having lunch at Century City, Eric could only hand the afternoon auditions over to the two producers as he had to return to Firefly headquarters for the first annual meeting after its merger with New Line. "I''m sorry, Carol, the traffic was really bad," Eric rushed into his office, apologizing to a brte in her forties sitting in his office. The woman, Carolin Elwitt, had her own well-known ounting firm that handled the financials for Firefly and Eric himself. Seeing Eric''s rushed appearance, Carolin, who had been waiting for a while, could only smile lightly and say, "It''s alright. Eric, I just got here too." Eric didn''t go to his desk but instead sat down on the sofa opposite Carolin and said, "Carolin, have you got my personal financial information ready?" Carolin took the prepared information from her bag and put it on her knee. Looking up, she asked, "Eric, now?" Eric looked at his watch. There were still more than twenty minutes before the two o''clock and a half meeting. He thought that listening to his financial situation should be enough, so he nodded. Carolin flipped through the papers and began her report: "Eric, your main ie this yeares from a few movies, of which Home Alone 2 earned $120 million, Fox bought the foreign distribution rights for $24 million, and the Home Alone 2 home video and TV broadcast rights for a total of $32 million, for a total of $176 million for Home Alone 2 so far." Although Carolin had seen this data many times before, it was still her own personal arrangement. However, when the young man, who was not even 20 years old, read it out in front of her, Carolin still felt that her life was wasted. After a brief moment of sentimentality and distraction, Carolin quickly shifted her attention back to the data and continued to read: "Because Firefly and New Line will only merge financially next year, all the box office profits from Firefly''s films this year will still be yours personally. The total global box office profits of Steel Magnolias is 102 million dors, and the video and television broadcast rights currently only ount for 19 million, totaling 121 million dors. In addition, the total global box office profits of Lethal Weapon 2 is 88 million dors, and there are currently no video profits. The advertisement profits of Home Alone 2 is 29 million dors, and these two payments have yet to be received ording to the contract, which Columbia and Fox Television willplete before December 31st. In addition to these major box office receipts, Firefly''s advertising department made a total of 18 million dors from the advertisements nted in Steel Magnolias, Lethal Weapon 2, Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, and Seattle Nights. Additionally, the profits from Pixar Studios, which you own, is zero, and the profits from UTA is 9.3 million dors." Carolin Everett paused for a moment and looked at Eric earnestly: "Eric,pared to movies, I don''t think UTA (the talent agency) can bring you much profit, so I personally rmend that you should quickly get rid of the stocks of this agency, or it may cause trouble for you." Eric nodded, having gradually be aware of this problem over the past six months. Even though he owns 90% of UTA, that doesn''t mean that 90% of the artist''smission goes to him. Thepany can only get a small portion of the 10%, with the majority going to the artists'' direct agents. So even though CAA holds only 10% of UTA, if you only count the ie of the agency, CAA, which has contracts with several A-list stars like Al Pacino and Julia Roberts, earns no less profit than Eric. After all, agents not only take a cut from the actors'' sries, but also share the ie they get from sources such as endorsements. Furthermore, Eric can''t intervene in any of UTA''s affairs in order to avoid suspicion, so this share of thepany is of no importance to him and can be transferred at any time. "I''ll take that into consideration, Carolin, you can continue." Carolin Elliott continued, "In total, your ie for this year has reached 441 million dors, with two payments still outstanding totaling 117 million dors. For expenditures, Firefly produced seven films this year, with expenditure for Zero Dark as zero, and the other six covering various bonuses for personnel, totaling 84 million dors. The purchase of Pixar and the following investments totaled 30 million dors, the purchase of New Line totaled 60 million dors, and the purchase of Fox Television shares totaled 80 million dors. In addition, the construction of the estate in Malibu totaled 27 million dors, your personal credit card ount covers severalrge payments, totaling 71.4 million dors, and..." Carolin Elliott curiously looked at Eric and said, "Also, Miss Pam''s credit card expenditures were 21.56 million, bringing the total expenditure to 309 million US Dors. Eric, before you can pay the other two payments to Columbia and Fox, you only have 15 million US Dors to be spent. And even if those two payments arrive, you can''t use them freely, because even after some reasonable tax avoidance, the taxes you have to pay this year will still reach 140 million US Dors." Eric specifically asked Carolin to help him sort out his finances in preparation for the uing investmentpany he was setting up, to which Chris Hansen had already agreed after a few days of consideration. ording to the data collected by Chris, the stock price of Cisco may be $18 when it goes public, and the total market value is only $224 million. Eric knew that this was definitely the only chance to get Cisco''s shares at such a low price, and when Cisco went public, the stock price would skyrocket. Even if he wanted to buy then, it was estimated that those investment institutions would not be willing to sell the shares in their hands, so Eric of course wanted to get as many shares as possible this time. But now, he found that his remaining funds were not even enough to pay taxes. "Carolin, can we apply for a tax deferment?" Eric tentatively asked. He just happened to know that there was a way to extend the tax payment for half a year. If it could be dyed to the second half of next year, then the royalties from these movies released at the end of the year would have certainly been credited, and his financial situation would be very rxed. Carolin shook her head: "Eric, no matter if it is Firefly or your personal financial situation, it''s toote to get a deferment from the tax office through financial means. If you wanted a deferment, you should have notified me at least half a year ago." Eric smiled wryly and said: "Looks like I need to get a loan again. Oh, by the way, Carolin, what do you think of Firefly?" Carolin puzzledly asked: "Which aspect do you mean?" "You should know that after merging with the New Line, it will be impossible for us to outsource our finances to your firm this year," Eric replied. Carolin, felt a chill in her heart. Firefly was her biggest client, and if she lost them, her firm''s ie would drop by at least half. But then Caroline suddenly realized what Eric had just hinted at: "Eric, are you saying you want me to..." "Yes," Eric smiled and nodded, "I want to invite you to join Firefly as the Chief Financial Officer. Although this would mean closing down your own firm, I am sure you can see that Firefly is worth it." Chapter 269: Long Time No See

Chapter 269: Long Time No See

Carolin Elwitt almost had no hesitation when she said, "I need a few months toplete the business I have in hand. Firefly has great potential, as Eric pointed out, and it was obvious to everyone which job would be the right choice for a small ounting firm''s owner and the financial director of argepany. "Of course, no problem," Eric said. Several departments of thepany were now under Robert''s control, and Eric himself had no suitable person, so he didn''t say anything else. But Eric had to pay more attention to thepany''s finances, and it was the best choice to have Caroline Elwitt, whom he was still quite familiar with, take this position. As for Robert Shaye, Eric believed that as long as he was smart enough, he would not oppose this decision. The two chatted for a while and then went to the office together under the notice of the staff. Carolin Elwitt almost had no hesitation when she said, "I need a few months toplete the business I have in hand. Firefly has great potential, as Eric pointed out, and it was obvious to everyone which job would be the right choice for a small ounting firm''s owner and the financial director of argepany. "Of course, no problem," Eric said. Several departments of thepany were now under Robert''s control, and Eric himself had no suitable person, so he didn''t say anything else. But Eric had to pay more attention to thepany''s finances, and it was the best choice to have Caroline Elwitt, whom he was still quite familiar, take this position. As for Robert Shaye, Eric believed that as long as he was smart enough, he would not oppose this decision. The two chatted for a while and then went to the office together under the notice of the staff. The meeting didn''tst long, and the main issue discussed was the financials of Firefly and New Line, as well as development ns for next year. Robert Shaye''s face was very interesting when Carolin Elwitt reported on the financials of Firefly, since New Line had released six or seven movies this year, including Harlem Night Club, but the total revenue wasn''t even close to the first installment of Home Alone 2. And ording to the contract, Robert Shaye had 15 percent of the shares of Firefly but he could only listen to Carolin Elwitt read out the profit data without getting any money from it. Eric also announced during the meeting that he would appoint Carolin Elwitt as thepany''s Chief Financial Officer, although Robert Shaye was unhappy with it and did not refute it. The meetingsted for an entire afternoon. After it was over, Eric stopped Robert Shaye, who was about to leave, and asked, "Robert, how is the videotape release of ''Harlem Night Club''ing along?" "I have already made the first batch of 100,000 boxes of videotapes, Eric. Do you really think ''Harlem Night Club'' can rely on the influence of ''Seattle Night'' to rekindle its sales?" Robert Shaye asked with doubts. Eric nodded affirmatively: "Of course, Robert. 100,000 boxes are too few. The first batch should be at least 300,000 boxes. You should pay attention to this matter as much as possible." Robert Shaye hesitantly rocked back and forth like a pendulum: "Eric. This is too risky. I think 100,000 copies is enough, and that''s already a million dors. We''ll definitely have to spend more money on marketing. If the videotape really sells well, then we can have the factory rush it." "What if we can''t catch up?" Eric countered: "Robert, trust me, make 300,000 copies and spread them out. Tell those distributors that they can pay after they sell. "We must ensure that the videotape "Golden Bond" is avable through all channels avable to us." "This..." Robert was still hesitant. An old movie from more than 30 years ago, after being stimted by "Sleepless in Seattle", would be quite good to sell 100,000 boxes. However, Eric directly asked him to produce 300,000 boxes and to use such sales methods, which in Robert''s opinion was almost like throwing money into the river. Eric thought for a moment and said, "Robert, this time listen to me, okay? If it turns out I''m wrong, I won''t get involved in any business of thepany for a year." Robert was immediately moved when he heard Eric say this. What he was most afraid of was Eric interfering with the management of thepany. Out of age prejudice, Robert did not think that Eric had any ability in managing a moviepany, but only possessed the current wealth and status relying on a few sessful movies. In that case, he should obediently go to make movies instead of talking about the management of thepany. But what made him helpless was that Eric owned 85% of thepany''s shares. With Eric''s promise, even if it was just verbal, Robert Shaye felt that he could take a gamble. With a cost of $3 million for 300,000 videotapes, in Robert''s view, it was very worthwhile to exchange for his "absolute control" of Firefly for a year: "Okay, Eric, I will implement your n as soon as possible." Eric watched Robert Shyly leave, smiling to himself, thinking that this method might work to drive Robert to do things ording to his will. After tidying up, Eric left the office and prepared to drive home. Just as he stepped out of the building, a thirty-something brte white woman came over and stopped him in a few strides. When Eric stopped, the woman introduced herself eagerly: "Mr. Williams, I''m Carolina Cody; do you remember me? We''ve met before." Eric had almost forgotten about Carolina Cody, whom he had met in New York, but he could not fail to recognize the man who was following herBrad Pitt. Hello again, Ms. Cody. Eric smiled and shook her hand, feeling a bit embarrassedpared to Ms. Cody''s enthusiasm. It seemed like he was definitely against his agent''s initiative to make contact. "Hello, Ms. Cody, nice to see you again," Eric smiled and shook her hand. He thought the situation was quite amusing; he had thought he would never see Brad Pitt again after that incident. Ms. Cody smiled when she saw Eric remembering her. She was really well-maintained; Eric couldn''t even tell how old she was. "Mr. Williams, do you still remember your invitation? I have already joined UTA with my team." Eric remembered and recalled that indeed something like this had happened. He had seen Carolina Cody with Brad Pitt taking the initiative to apologize, and thinking that this woman is really good at dealing with people, he casually said something, but Eric looked at the two people in front of him and still asked: "When was this?" "A..... a week ago," Carolina Cody answered. Seeing that Eric showed no other expression, the woman quickly added: "Mr. Williams, can I invite you to have dinner?" Eric looked at Carolina Cody and nced at Brad Pitt, who was standing behind her with a polite smile. Soon he remembered the other party''s purpose of finding him: "Ms. Cody, Mr. Pitt is not auditioning for the lead role in The X-Files, is he?". Eric saw through the situation, and Carolina Cody smiled awkwardly. She then said, "Mr. Williams, Brad Pitt had an audition this afternoon, but unfortunately you werent there. Thats why I came personally to talk to you." "Alright then," Eric nced at the man behind Carolina and said, "Mr. Pitt, you dont have to go. Just wait for news." Brad Pitts face suddenly became awkward when he heard this. Carolina realized that Eric still didnt like the man behind her and could only give him a nce. "WellI will go back then," Brad Pitt finally spoke up, "Mr. Williams, goodbye." Eric just nodded slightly towards Brad Pitt and waited until he drove away by himself before he opened his car door and said to Cheryl Cody, "Ms. Cody, please get in." "Oh, thank you," the woman quickly climbed into the passenger seat. After ordering in a restaurant, Cheryl Cody eagerly said to William Smith, "Mr. Smith, in fact, Brad''s acting is very good. If you don''t believe it, you can watch the audition tape of Brad in the X-Files. He just didn''t get any good opportunities." Eric naturally knew that Brad Pitt was very good at acting, and he had won more awards and nominations than Tom Cruise. However, there are countless Hollywood actors who are excellent but have not been sessful, but there are only so many opportunities. Eric smiled yfully at the woman in front of him and asked, "Ms. Cody, do you only have one actor, Brad Pitt, under your management?" Carolin Elwitt was taken aback by the question, and shook her head, "No, there are only four or five." Eric shrugged. "Oh, then you must be really good to Brad." Carolin''s face flushed a bit. Of course she could tell what Eric was implying, but being a talent manager and having actors under her was nothing to be embarrassed about. She had heard of a music producer in histe 40s who made a twelve year-old girl famous and even made her his wife. The girl''s name was something like Celine. Having adjusted her attitude, Carolin Elwitt spoke with a hint of appeal: "Mr. Williams, can you give Pitt a chance? He won''t let you down." Eric looked at the woman in front of him and was quickly calcting in his mind. With this enthusiastic agent helping Brad Pitt, although he was already 26, male actors, especially handsome ones, had a rtively long shelf life. Brad Pitt was bound to make it in Hollywood sooner orter, which was something Eric didn''t want to see happen. Since this was the case, giving the lead role in X-Files to Brad Pitt would do only harm and no good. Like Friends, The X-Files had very fixed character images; after ten or eight seasons of acting, it was almost impossible for the actors to change their screen image, and the possibility of restarting in the big screen was even slimmer. Of the six lead actors of Friend, only Aniston had sessfully transitioned to the big screen. And Aniston had paid a great price for it. In order to transition to the big screen and not let the audience associate her with Rachel Green, Aniston had taken on many very challenging roles. Although he had already made his decision, Eric was still quite generous, and after a moment of thought, he directly reminded Ms. Cody, "Ms. Cody, you have to think it through. Once Brad takes on the role of the lead in ''X-Files'', his image on the silver screen could very well be fixed and it will be very difficult for him to transition in the future. Because the lead actor in this TV series has to sign a contract for at least five seasons." Chapter 270: City of Liberty

Chapter 270: City of Liberty

Eric''s words made Carolina Cody hesitate for a moment. She soon realized that her hesitation was ridiculous. She was well aware that Brad Pitt had only been able to make small appearances in movies and TV shows during the past six months. Given this situation, what was there to worry about when she had the chance to be the leading male actor in a major TV series? After all, many of Hollywood''s second- and third-line stars hadpeted for the roles of the male and female leads in "The X-Files". Carolina Cody said, "Mr. Williams, I believe the X-Files would be an excellent television show, and what does it matter if he is typecast if he is the lead actor?" Eric thought to himself, what a woman! Cody then went on to say, "However, Mr. Williams, isn''t signing a contract for five seasons a bit too long?" Eric immediately shook his head and said, with no room for negotiation, "Not at all. The six main actors of Friends all signed contracts for five seasons." Eric did not know if what Eirek said was true, and even if it was, she couldn''t find a reason to bargain. Let alone five seasons, even if it were more, she and Brad Pitt seemed to have no qualifications or chips to bargain. Eric watched Carolina''s expression and said, "If you don''t mind, I''ll go and watch Brad Pitt''s audition tape tomorrow. If his performance satisfies me, I will notify you to sign the contract." The next day, Eric arrived at Fox''s audition venue, found Brad Pitt''s audition tape, and watched it repeatedly. He confirmed that Brad Pitt''s current acting skills were enough to take on the role of Fox Muller. He then discussed it with the producers from Fox and Firefly. Soon, it was decided. The rest was the selection of the female lead and some other minor roles. Of course, Eric couldn''t care about those minor roles. He just put some energy into the selection of the female lead. Fox''s other variety show was finallyunched, and after much consideration, Eric finally chose the safest variety show, "Who Wants to Be a Millionaire?" This show originated in the UK at the end of the 90s and became popr all over the world. Eric remembered that many domestic TV stations on the other side of the Pacific had simr imitation programs. Until Eric crossed over, the show had not left the TV screen. It was often heard that a millionaire had appeared in a certain country''s show. This show seized the psychology of ordinary people wanting to get rich overnight, so there was no limit of time, unlike some other programs that could be sessful now, but would be more troublesome to operate. "Who Wants to Be a Millionaire?" is much simpler. Therefore, after writing out the n, Eric first sent people to many countries with strong protection of intellectual property rights to register the program''s copyright. When this program caught fire, it was believed that arge sum of money could be earned solely by selling the copyright. "Hey, hey. Eric, what do you think of this question. How many siblings do Kevin have in Home Alone?" In the car on the way to Maribor, Drew, sitting in the passenger seat, held a hard-covered notebook, writing and drawing on it from time to time. Hearing the girl''s question, Eric shook his head and smiled: "No, I said it before, the questions have to be closely rted to life and have to be very interesting. This question ispletely testing people''s memories. Who would be bored enough to care about how many siblings Kevin has." Drew pouted. He retorted: "Then your question is even more boring. Who would be bored enough to care about how insects breathe?" Eric rolled his eyes at the girl and said in resignation, "You obviously weren''t paying attention in school. This question is definitely in the biology textbook." "You''re beating around the bush. Only nerds would care about these kinds of questions," the girl shook her head. Biting her pen for a moment, she asked, "What about this one? What year did the Hollywood Sign appear?" Eric nodded and said, "That''s a good one. Write it down, write it down." The girl smiled proudly and wrote it down in her notebook. Eric thought for a moment and then asked the girl, "By the way, I really don''t know when the Hollywood Sign was established, what year was it?" The girl gave Eric a nk look and said, "How would I know?" "...What?" Eric asked in disbelief, "Then how did youe up with this question?" "I just passed by there yesterday." The girl bit her pencil and started to think again before looking up the road in front of them, "How much further is it?" "Five minutes, we''ll be there soon." The car stopped outside the mansion in Maribor''s Corner and Eric opened the door to get out, but heard a strange cry from inside the car: "Oh, Eric, I bumped my head,e and get me out quickly." "Climb out yourself," Eric thought the little girl was ying pranks again, and ignored her, walking straight towards the people waiting for him at the entrance of the mansion, Frank Gair and his privatewyer Edward. "Oh, Eric, you''re so cruel," just as Eric was about to reach out warmly to Frank Gair, a soft body suddenly jumped onto his back. Eric gave the little girl a p on her bottom: "Stop messing around, can''t you see there are so many people here? If you continue to act up, I''ll stuff you into the trunk." Eric picked up the little girl hanging from his back and embraced her, looking at her white and tender legs revealed from the knee-length skirt underneath. Although there was a small red and blue spot, it neither bled nor swelled. "You won''t beme; just run two kilometers on the ground," Eric said while releasing Duke. The little girl giggled and continued to fool around for a while before reluctantly letting go. Just as Eric let go of Duke, he felt like someone in the distance was looking in this direction. He looked in the direction of his instinct but didn''t find anyone. He thought he might be too suspicious. He had been feeling like he was being followed these days. Eric had the thought of hiring a bodyguard team, but he put it aside and focused on the people in front of him. "Sorry, the girl always likes to make trouble," Eric shook hands with Frank Gair and Edward Lewis and others. "No problem," Frank Gairughed, Edward Lewis also echoed. "Let''s go in, we''ve been looking at the ns for more than half a year, and finally it''s built." Eric was impatient. This made Frank and the othersugh. Frank said, "Come with me," and the group got into their cars as the gate to the estate was opened by a temporary guard. They drove straight to the luxurious cliff-side mansion, and Eric had no time to look at the other buildings on the estate; as long as they passed the inspection, it was all good. These buildings were all where servants or guests would stay. The cars drove along a winding road until they reached the main building, which Eric called "the city of freedom." The group got out of the cars, and Eric saw a more exquisite and grand silver-shelled building than the one he had imagined in his mind. He couldnt help but exim in surprise. The Mansion in his memory was just a concrete building, but the building in front of him was also inevitably made with some reinforced concrete, but most of the main structure was built with granite, special ss, and low-alloy, high-hardness steel. The shell-shaped building surface was also covered with silver titanium alloy material, shining in the sun. Frank Gair originally submitted a budget of only five million dors to build the estate, but with Eric''s promise of unlimited funds, Frank Gair increased the budget first to ten million, and finally to twenty million. At the end of the construction, he also applied for two million dors in the budget, and 90% of this money was spent on the building. To put this into perspective, in this era, twenty million dors was enough to build a twenty-story building. Nowadays, the prices of houses in Malibu have not yet reached the level of tens of millions of dors. Most Malibu vis are only worth hundreds of thousands of dors, and luxury homes with private beaches are only worth a few million. This shows how luxurious the single building that cost twenty million dors was. Eric remembered that Bill''s hundred million dor mansion that many people praised in the past was actually only worth fifty million dors, and that was after the year 2000. Frank Gair lead the group of people to the silver building and after a few minutes, he said with a proud tone, "Alright, let''s go in and see what the inside of the building looks like, I believe it will be more surprising." The staff opened the door to the mansion, and Frank Gair led the group inside. As soon as they stepped into the hall, the first thing they saw wasn''t the wide living room, but a glittering sea view. "Wow, it''s so beautiful," the group of men kept their restraint and politeness, but the little girl ignored this and eximed, rushing to the 10-meter-long, two-meter-high floor-length window. "Eric, Eric,e look," Drew disregarded the manners and pressed himself against the ss window, looking out to the sea. Eric was a bit worried, "Mr. Gair, is it okay for these windows?" "No, of course not," Frank Gair said: "This is a special kind of ss, it looks no different than ordinary ss, but this ss is actually threeyers, with ayer of polycarbonate material in the middle. Even if it is shot at, as long as it''s not arge caliber sniper rifle, it can be blocked. So ordinary collisions won''t cause any harm." Edward''s assistant heard Frank Gair say this and was surprised: "Mr. Gair, ording to what you said, isn''t this bulletproof ss, and shouldn''t it be expensive?" Frank Gair shook his head and said honestly, "It''s not quite up to the level of bulletproof ss, but it''s almost there. As for the price, two hundred million dors was spent on these things. Eric, shall I take everyone to have a look?" Eric nodded as he followed Frank Gair around the vi, not paying further attention to the girlying on the ss to look out to the sea. Frank Gair exined as they walked, "This floor is mainly the living room, kitchen, gym and reception room. ording to Eric''s design draft, the basement is a studio. The second and third floorsbined have eight bedrooms, a study room, a small screening room, and twelve bathrooms throughout the vi." Eric nodded and followed Frank up the spiral staircase to the second floor, taking in the details as he looked around. Finally, they reached the top floor, where arge master bedroom with ss windows surrounded them, giving them a view of Maribor City and the sea in the distance. Eric took a look around and suddenly had a question for Mr. Gair, "Mr. Gair, are these sses one-sided?" "Of course, I wouldn''t possibly miss such an important detail. All the ss windows in this building have been specially treated. Although you can see the light from the outside, you can''t see anything inside." "That''s good," Eric nodded and looked at the scenery around the master bedroom. It would be terrible if he and a certaindy were rolling around in the big bed and someone looked in through the window with a telescope. After more than ten minutes of turning around, the group returned to the living room, but the little girl had already disappeared. Frank Gair smiled and said, "I think Miss Barrymore must have gone to the pool outside. Perfect, the view is great, lets go there to talk." They went through a door next to the living room and came to a huge open-air swimming pool facing a cliff. Although the indoor business was also very good, there was no obstruction here, only an open sky without any obstruction after passing through ayer of ss. "Mr. Gair, are we swimming now?" The little girl''s voice came from behind a sun lounger. Only then did they find that the girl had found a pair of sunsses and was lying on the deck chair, sunbathing. "Of course, Miss Barrymore," Frank Gair seemed to like the little girl, and said with a smile, "But it''ll have to wait until Mr. Williams signs the contract for the engineering inspection." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 271: Resentment

Chapter 271: Resentment

The Maribou Estate had drawn attention since its construction began, as it upied a 14-acre plot ofnd and was thergest estate in newly founded Maribou at its pointy corner. But the attention was limited until thepletion of the eye-catching ''City of Freedom'' on the cliff, when some local newspapers started to report on it. People guessed which wealthy person had built such a magnificent Mariboundmark building. But, because the news was kept secret, everything remained a mystery until early December, when it was discovered that Hollywood''s newest directors, Eric Williams and Drew Barrymore, began to visit the estate on a regr basis, and the news finally broke. ording to people involved in the design of Freedom City, the initial concept of Freedom City was hand-painted by Eric Williams, and finally it was handed over to the famous architect Frank Gair for detailed design. After seven months of meticulous work, the dream mansion was finally built like a work of art. Eric Williams is worthy of being a Hollywood director who created a series of box office miracles. Compared to Oracle CEO Larry Ellison, who is like a Middle Eastern tycoon buying vis everywhere in Malibu, this young director, who is not even 20 years old, is undoubtedly more tasteful. "After investigating, the total cost of Maribou Pointe Estate was nearly $30 million, five times higher than the previous most expensive estate in Maribou. Located on the edge of Maribou Bay, the ''City of Freedom'' covers an area of over 40,000 square feet and has more than thirty rooms, as well as a range of facilities such as a swimming pool, tennis court and helicopternding pad. Although the newspaper was not granted an interview with the owner of the estate, Mr. Eric Williams, a remote aerial photo taken by helicopter reveals that the ''City of Freedom'' is like a magnificent silver shell perched on the edge of Maribou Bay. ording to an analysis by a professor in the architecture department of the University of California, building this dream vi on the cliff is very difficult, which may lead to an increase in construction costs of more than 30%. However, it appears now that it was all worth it and perhaps in the future many people wille to Maribou and be willing to take a boat out to sea and look at this dream house from afar." "So far, we have found that, in addition to Drew Barrymore, no other actresses who have close rtions with Eric Williams, such as Jennifer Aniston, Julia Roberts and Ivanka Trump, have visited Eric Williams'' new mansion. Eric Williams has repeatedly imed to the media that he only treats Drew Barrymore as his own sister. It was not until three weeks ago at the premiere of "Home Alone 2" that Eric Williams and Jennifer Aniston made their first public appearance together, and he confirmed their rtionship in person. But ording to insiders, their rtionship is not stable. So who will be the mistress of the most expensive mansion in Malibu, undoubtedly leaving us with a huge suspense." "......" "......" Michael Eisner, CEO of Disney headquarters in Burbank, threw a newspaper with an aerial photo of ''Freedom City'' on his desk with a gloomy expression and muttered a few words before smirking. Soon after, his assistant knocked on the office door and walked in. "Mr. Eisner, this is thetest information from the IMS Detective Agency," the assistant said as he ced several folders on the desk. Michael Eisner opened the folders and took out a thick stack of photos, flipping through them one by one to find pictures of Eric and Drew being affectionate in public. After looking through the photos emotionlessly, Michael Eisner took several files from the folders. "Have you contacted John Barrymore yet?" Michael Eisner nced at the documents in his hands and asked casually. The assistant nodded and thought for a moment before saying, "Mr. Eisner, I think the key is still in the hands of Drew Barrymore, if she doesn''t cooperate, it will be impossible to have a huge impact on Eric Williams." Michael Eisner kept his head down and said in a low voice, "That''s not what you need to worry about, you just need to do what I told you to do." The assistant heard the displeasure in Michael Eisner''s voice and quickly nodded, "Yes, Mr. Eisner." Michael Eisner murmured for his assistant to leave the office, then he opened up several more folders. Even though he didn''t know that Columbia''s former president had already used the tactic of attacking Eric with the underage Drew situation, Michael Eisner didn''t expect the small matter to have much of an impact on Eric, as long as some trouble was caused for the naive young man. And when that day arrived, the young man would find himself suddenly facing a lot of trouble, and Michael Eisner didn''t believe that Eric could hold on without bowing down given a series of measures. Leaning back in his office chair after reading all the documents, Michael Eisner said with satisfaction, "Hollywood isn''t so easy to blend into." ...... "Eric, they''re so annoying," said Drew, standing by therge window in his vi and pointing to several speedboats floating on the sea, "It was a beautiful sea view, now it looks like there are a few pieces of garbage floating." Sitting on the sofa by the window and flipping through a book, Eric heard the little girl''sint and pointed to the party organizers who were preparing for the evening PARTY in the living room and said helplessly, "It''s all your own doing, why do you have to have a party, or there wouldn''t be so many paparazzi on the sea." Hearing Eric say this, the little girl immediately acted spoiled and jumped to Eric''s side: "It''s such a beautiful new home, it''s a pity not to have a party." "Stop it and go set up your party," Eric pretended to be angry and pulled the little girl away from him. Drew smiled and ran off obediently. Eric was a little annoyed by the peopleing and going around him, so he got up and walked to his studio. The studio was located in the basement of the living room and was built exactly as Tony Stark''s studio in his memories. Of course, there was no Iron Man armor here, but it was set up ording to Eric''s study in Beverly Hills. The whole wall on the west side of the studio was remodeled into arge maic whiteboard, which was still attached to many manuscripts with mas. Eric liked the feeling of many things showing in front of him. Other ces are filled with bookshelves, filing cabs and other furniture, as well as the piano. Therge desk for work is ced by the window, and you can see the sea outside. However, at this time, the stars on the sea surface are indeed like Little Ni said, it looks like floating garbage. Although these people can''t use the most advanced long-focus camera to see the interior of the vi, they still refuse to leave because some paparazzi took pictures of Donald swimming in the terrace swimming pool the other day. Eric guessed that these people were waiting for the guests for the party tonight to arrive on the terrace. Shrugging helplessly, Eric turned on the light and pressed a button by the window without thinking twice, and a panel in the same colour as the studio silently rose up beneath the window. Soon enough, the panel blended in with the wall, and there wasn''t a trace left of the window. The studio was nowpletely enclosed. Satisfied, Eric sat down by the desk and continued to flip through the book about corporate management. ...... As they drove along the coastal highway, the red car slowly cruising along, Nicole nced over at Aniston, who was sitting in the passenger seat, as Ivanka leaned out the open window, boredly looking out. Out of boredom, Nicole asked, "Jenny, are you really not going to move there? Those mansions in the newspaper are really beautiful." Aniston blinked and shook her head, "No, I can''t move there. Uh, Nicole, don''t you think it''s a bit of a bother for me to live with you?" Nicole quickly shook her head, "Of course not, I just don''t understand." After a brief silence, Aniston said, "I told that guy that there can only be one woman in the house and he promised me that he would make Donald sixteen move out. If Ipromise now, maybe two yearster, he won''t keep his promise." Nicole heard this and her lips moved, but she didn''t speak. She thought Aniston was too naive. A lot of things could happen in two years, and who knows what would happen then. She was very aware of Donald''s shrewdness because of that experience, and who knows if the little fairy would move out when the timees. Nicole thought that if she were in this situation, she wouldn''t care about anything and would just rush up and grab the man; otherwise, she would probably end up empty-handed. Why not me? Recalling Eric''s attitude towards her, Nicole couldn''t help but feel a faint resentment, followed by a hint of envy as she nced at Aniston. What did sheckpared to this brainless girl? Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 272: Anistons Intuition

Chapter 272: Aniston''s Intuition

As the car drove up to the estate entrance, the security guard spotted the vehicle and was about toe over to ask for an invitation when he saw the two people inside, so he immediately forgot about the invitation and put on a friendly smile: "It''s Miss Aniston, pleasee in." After saying that, he ran back a few steps and opened the gates. When they got off the parking lot, the twodies reacted just like when Eric first saw Freedom City, standing there and looking at the vi for a while before walking in together. Pushing open the ss door, in the more than 600-square-meter hall, the personnel wearing server and chef uniforms were busy shuttling around. When they saw the twodies, there was not much reaction. Now the party hasn''t started yet, but as Eric''s girlfriend, Ivanka feels like she should be the first to arrive. After waiting for a while, seeing no one paying attention to her, Ivanka was a bit angry and even forgot about Nicole beside her. With her high heels clicking, she walked towards the kitchen. After entering, she saw a middle-aged man in a suit discussing something with Drew. Ivanka straightened up her chest and walked up with a haughty attitude: "Hey, how is the preparation going?" Drew looked up and nced at the white-dressed Ivanka, smiling slightly: "Madam, you are here too early, the party hasn''t started yet, but you can rest in the living room for an hour." Seeing that Drew treated her as a guest, Ivanka was even more angry: "You little rascal, don''t forget who you are, be careful or I''ll have Eric kick you out." "I''m scared!" The girl tapped her chest with a look of ''fright'' on her face, then changed her expression and put on a mischievous smile, saying unabashedly, "Go ahead if you dare." Ivanka red fiercely at Chris a few times, then shifted her gaze to the middle-aged man wearing a suit: "Are you in charge of this party?" The middle-aged man smiled and nodded, as if he hadn''t heard the argument between the two girls. The two girls in front of him were both close to Eric Williams. He did not dare to offend either of them, so he could only reach out to Ivanka and say, "Hello, Ms. I''m Will rke. Is there anything you want me to do?" "I don''t like the position of the self-service table outside. Can you help me move it?" The girl casually found an excuse. Will rke almost immediately said, "Mr. rke, don''t forget that I''m here to settle the bill today." Will rke looked around, as a party manager, he often encountered disputes between members of the host family. In such cases, Will rke usually pushed the decision to the person with the authority. In this mansion, the only master was Eric. So, Will rke quickly said smoothly, "I think the twodies should discuss with Mr. Williams first." Two girls red at Will rke. who just shrugged his shoulders, not saying a word, as if to say whatever you want, but I''m not going to do it. The two girls exchanged nces, knowing they shouldn''t make a scene with so many people around. Of course, they wouldn''t embarrass Eric. Finally, the girl spoke: "One and a half each!" "Let''s y rock-paper-Scissors!" said Drew. Ivanka clenched her fist, as if something had juste to mind. She quickly shook her head and said, "Don''t even think about it, or let''s go find Eric." Drew furrowed her brows: "This time you started the fight, there are more than a hundred guests invited today. If you cause a scene and make Eric embarrassed in front of all these people, hmph..." Ivanka wasn''t Drew, if their positions were switched, the fearless little girl wouldn''t mind making Eric embarrassed, but Ivanka didn''t dare do so. With an unwilling re towards Drew, Ivanka asked: "Where is Eric?" Drew shrugged. Without blinking, and said: "I don''t know, there are more than thirty rooms here. You will have to go find him one by one." "You..." The youngdy almost couldn''t help but charge forward, then she looked towards Will rke who was standing by the side with a low head, pretending he didn''t hear anything, and Ivanka asked: "Mr. rke, do you know where Eric is?" Will rke chuckled sadly and shook his head, "Miss Ivanka, I''ve been in the kitchen the whole time, I''m sorry, I really don''t know." Ivanka stamped her foot angrily and then turned to leave. ...... In the living room, Nicole looked at Aniston walking towards the kitchen, looking around the style of the vi, taking a leisurely stroll, standing at the floor-to-ceiling window and looking at the sea outside for a while, and then turning around to go upstairs to take a look. Suddenly, she saw a tightly closed door beside her, and Nicole curiously pressed the button beside the door. "What''s the matter?" Eric''s voice came out of the speaker above the button, which startled Nicole. "Um, Eric, it''s me," Nicole said hurriedly to the speaker. "Oh,e in!" Eric''s voice fell, and the door automatically opened. Nicole curiously looked at the stairs leading to the lower floor and walked in, and the door behind her closed silently. Eric walked up the spiral staircase to his studio and saw Eric sitting at the desk reading a book. He surveyed the room and noticed that it was simr to the one he had seen at Eric''s vi in Beverly Hills. He walked a few steps to the wall and looked at the papers densely packed on the wall. Nicole, without a word, said, "Eric, I didn''t expect you to still have this habit." Eric put down the book in his hand and reopened the window, turning off the daylightmp in the room, and said to the girl, "Why change? I like it this way." Nicole strolled around the room with her hands behind her, saying, "I envy you, you can do whatever you want." Eric smiled and said, "As long as a person doesn''t want too much, they can do whatever they want." "No way it''s that easy." Nicole shook her head and walked to Eric''s desk, propping up her hands on therge desk and raising her legs, kicking off her high heels and swinging her white feet around. Eric raised an eyebrow as he watched the seemingly casual movements of the girl and asked, "Is Ivanka Trump with you?" "Of course, she''s outside, maybe arguing with Miss Back to the Future 2," said Nicole. Eric subconsciously nced at the door, then realized that no one hade to notify him that the two girls were not arguing. Of course, he also believed that the two girls had their own limits and would not argue in front of so many people. Since this was the case, Eric also let go of his worries and sat back in the leather chair, looking up at Nicole who was sitting on the desk. The girl was wearing a red one-shoulder dress, showing off her perfect figure to the fullest, with a red silk scarf around her neck, and bright red lips, looking incredibly beautiful. Ivanka Trump looked at Nicole with her aggressive gaze and Nicole felt a little uneasy. She wanted to jump off the desk, but some thoughts in her mind stopped her and she slightly raised her chin and straightened her chest. "Did you put something in there to make it look bigger?" After a while, Eric teased. Thedy gave him a white eye, but still said provocatively: "Touch it and see." Eric was never a polite person. He reached out and picked up thedy''s two long legs, pulling Nicole into his arms. After some hesitation, Nicole spoke up with reluctance: "No, don''t take it off. What if someonees in?" "Nobody cane in without my permission," Eric exined, and the girl in his arms stopped resisting. The red dress soon flew up and fell on the sofa next to it, followed by a small piece of cloth. The white and tender naked body was pressed against the desk, and the cold feeling made Nicole hum involuntarily. She turned her head and looked at the man behind her with a grievance on her face, but felt a pair of strong hands holding her waist firmly, and then a hot invasion. ...... Ivanka Trump left the kitchen sadly after she didn''t take control from Drew, but she couldn''t find Nicole anywhere. She asked several staff members, but no one paid attention. Finally, a waiter pointed to the stairs leading upstairs and said, "I just saw Miss Kerkorian go there. She may have gone upstairs." Aniston thanked him and walked towards the stairs, Ivanka noticed the tightly closed door to the next floor, but she was not as curious as Nicole, so she went upstairs. After a long time of searching, she still couldn''t find Nicole or Eric. Aniston had a strange feeling in her heart, and she searched again reluctantly, and knocked on many doors, but there was no response. Ivanka Trump and the others were in the foyer preparing for the party when Aniston asked about Eric''s whereabouts. "We don''t know, sir. Mr. Williams might be in one of the rooms." "We are here for the first time, Miss Aniston," "I''m sorry, Miss Aniston, maybe you can go outside and look. The estate is quiterge, and maybe Mr. Williams is somewhere else." "......" Ivanka was frustrated and stamped her foot, saying, "This is just like a big game of hide and seek." However, she still went outside to look for Eric and Nicole. The weird feeling in her heart became stronger and stronger, but she didn''t want to think in any particr direction. Although it was the simplest way to ask Drew directly, Aniston was very unwilling to have any dealings with him. In verbal sparring, she was no match for Drew, and she preferred to fight directly, as she was slightly better than Nicole in this regard. But obviously, it was not suitable to fight today. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 273: Evil Neighbors

Chapter 273: Evil Neighbors

Drew was walking around, checking the preparations for the party when he noticed Ivanka Trump was gone. He grabbed a waiter and asked, "Where is Aniston?" The waiter, carrying a tray, recalled, "Miss Aniston was looking for Mr. Williams and Miss Kerkorian, but didn''t find them at the vi. I saw her leave." "Oh, you go ahead with your work," Drew nodded and the waiter left. He looked around and walked to the entrance of the studio, pressing the button on the door. After a while, Michael Eisner''s voice came through, "Who is it?" "Eric, it''s me, Aniston. Open the door?" Drew mimicked Aniston''s voice, his throat dry. Inside the studio, Nicole, who had been kneeling in front of the man and working, heard the voice and panicked, raising her head and looking at Eric in confusion. Eric was also startled by the sound and, in the excitement, couldn''t help but smudge the makeup on the woman''s face. After a moment, Eric took a deep breath and realized that Aniston and Drew''s voices were too different, and so Nicole''s imitation of Aniston''s voice waspletely unconvincing. Giving Nicole a reassuring look, Eric handed her the box of tissues on the table, then picked up the microphone and said directly: "Drew, no goofing around." Eric let out a chuckle when he saw the little girl standing outside the door and asked, "Eric, you''re not scared, are you... what''s the matter?" Eric snorted coldly and gave no response, but Drew continued tough and said, "Just reminding you, Pretty Woman is looking for the both of you." After saying that, he hung up the phone. Eric put down the phone and motioned towards the bathroom door, "Go take a bath. We''ll leaveter and say you were reading a book here, I''ll leave first." Nicole nodded her head. Eric quickly tidied up and left the studio. ...... As the night came, the party began. The guest list Donald had arranged was full of elites, and Eric had no intention of intervening. In addition to many familiar faces, there were also the usual neighbors from the nearby Maribor corner, pluspanions brought by the guests, totaling nearly two hundred people. Eric quickly took a shower and changed into new clothes, then left the vi to look for Aniston, who was sitting on a bench by the tennis court. Seeing Ericing alone, Aniston, who was originally gloomy, finally showed a relieved expression. Although a little embarrassed, Eric still made up an excuse for his outing and knew that Ivanka wouldn''t like to hear the truth. He couldn''t be stupid enough to tell the truth. At this moment, Eric was facing a "nasty neighbor", who had beenbeled as such since their first meeting due to his unappealing attitude of offering an immediate payment to buy his estate. "Eric, $35 million. How about $35 million? Sell me this estate, and I guarantee a one-time payment," said the middle-aged man with a beard, despite Eric''s refusal. Eric sighed, "Mr. Ellison, I have already said many times that I will absolutely not sell this estate." "$37 million. This amount is even one million more than the cost of your entire estate. Eric, think about it again," Larry Ellison insisted, with a hint of fanatical determination in his expression. Recently, I saw some information about the ''Liberty City'' from the newspaper. The luxury-loving Larry Aniston immediately set his sights on the majestic ''Liberty City'' perched on the cliff edge,pared to the series of mansions he had bought in Marlborough before. Larry Aniston, arrogant and conceited, thought that such a mansion only deserved to be owned by him. Therefore, as a ''neighbor'', Larry Aniston received a party invitation and arrived at the manor. He immediately approached Eric and the price went from 27 million to 37 million US dors. "How about this, Mr. Aniston? You can contact Mr. Frank Gair, and I can authorize the design of this mansion to you for free. You can find a ce and build one yourself." Eric Elson shook his head immediately and said, "Such a mansion must be unique. Besides, where else can you have a location like Maribou Point? Oh my, why didn''t I think of this earlier? I should have bought it sooner. Eric, do you think it''s possible for me to exchange the sixteen mansions I have in Maribou for this one? What do you think?" Eric opened his mouth in surprise. With Elson''s wealth, the mansions were worth no less than a million dors each. That would make a total price of forty or fifty million dors. However, Eric shook his head without thinking twice: "Mr. Elson, I won''t sell the estate no matter what, so let''s not talk about it anymore. Besides, I have to attend to other guests, sorry." Ivanka Trump was getting impatient and had to leave, so Larry Ellison had to say: "Well, Eric, please contact me as soon as possible if you ever think of selling it." "Alright, I promise that if I ever have the thought of selling it, I''ll contact you first, Mr. Ellison." Eric said before walking off with an Asian man in his fifties, Robert Shaye. "Hey Eric, this ce is really great, I''m kind of tempted myself." Robert said while hugging Eric. Eric let go of Robert and said, "Larry Ellison from Oracle has been bugging me for more than ten minutes now. Robert, don''t tell me you want to buy this estate too. If you dare to say it, I won''t hesitate to call security to throw you out." Robert smiled and said, "Of course not; how could I not be courteous? Oh, let me introduce you; this is Mr. Raymond Chow from the other side of the ocean, Hong Kong." Eric had already recognized the man. Although he was much younger than the one he first saw in the media, he had not changed much: "Hello, Mr. Chow, I am Eric Williams." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 274: Fox Made a Wrong Guess

Chapter 274: Fox Made a Wrong Guess

"Hello, Mr. Williams," Raymond Chow tried to appear nonchnt, but his face couldn''t help but show a bit of eagerness: "Mr. Williams, I have seen your ''Lethal Weapon 2'' movie. To be honest, this movie is simr to some of the styles of Hong Kong movies, and it was our Golden Harvest that released ''Lethal Weapon 2'' in Hong Kong and had great box office sess." "Actually, I have always been a big fan of Hong Kong movies," Eric said: "Like Bruce Lee''s several movies, ''Fists of Fury'', ''Way of the Dragon'', ''Enter the Dragon'', ''sh of the Titans'', and half of ''Game of Death'', it''s a pity." At the end, Eric shook his head regretfully. Hearing Eric suddenly say this, Raymond Chow also showed a nostalgic look on his face, shook his head and said: "It''s a pity, s, these have already been more than ten years ago. I still remember the first time I worked with Bruce." Raymond Chow suddenly looked up and gazed at Eric, saying with emotion, "I remember, Mr. William is only 19 this year; when Bruce passed away, you were only three. It''s unbelievable." "Good movies are always good movies. Speaking of which, when I was shooting in Seattlest time, I even went to Bruce Lee''s graveyard. Even though it''s been more than ten years, fans from all over the world still go there to pay tribute." Raymond Chow was silent for a while, a faint blush of embarrassment shed across his face. If it weren''t for Bruce Lee, maybe he wouldn''t have achieved today''s sess. But apart from when Bruce Lee was buried, he hadn''t been to Seattle a few times. "After I''ve finished my business, I''ll also go to Seattle to pay homage." Eric nodded withoutment. He then looked at Robert Shaye who had not said much. He didn''t know what Robert was thinking when he introduced the other party to himself. Robert gestured to Raymond Chow as he said, "Well, I was part of a movie in Hong Kong that was funded by Golden Harvest called Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles. You may have heard of it. Fox agreed to distribute it, but after they saw the finished product, they backed out." Eric recalled the movie from hearing the words ''Ninja Turtles''. He wasn''t too familiar with how it had done in the US, but he did know a bit about the history of Hong Kong films. It was said that Raymond Chow of Golden Harvest had long wanted to break into Hollywood. After a few skirmishes, he purchased the rights to the adaptation of Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles and decided to go big, investing 80 million dors in the movie. In the end, it brought in 1.3 billion Hong Kong dors in North America. ording to current exchange rates, that''s close to 100 million US dors - an amount that a foreignpany simply couldn''t take out of Hollywood. So it must have been the North American box office that Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles took, which is more than one hundred million dors - enough to make the top ten of the current box office. Fox had decided to pass on such a movie, which makes sense as they usually like to do this. Fox had previously passed on the North American release of ''Titanic'', selling it to Paramount for a low price of $60 million, only to see ''Titanic'' gross over $600 million in North America. Despite this experience, Fox didn''t learn their lesson and ''stuck to their guns'',ter on, with James Cameron''s ''Avatar'', Fox worried about the risk and got other investors involved, only to see ''Avatar'' be a box office smash. Fox again lost hundreds of millions of dors due to this wrong decision. Shaking his head to get rid of these jumbled thoughts, Eric asked, "Robert. What did you think?" Robert said, pointing to the nearby, "I saw an old friend, let''s go say hi. Eric smiled and said, "Go ahead, have fun." Eric watched Robert leave and noticed that Raymond hadn''t followed. "Mr. Chow, is there anything else?" "No, um, Mr. Williams, you said you like Hong Kong movies, so what do you think of them?" Eric and Raymond walked towards the self-service table and grabbed some food, then they came to the sofa near the floor-to-ceiling window and saw Ericing, the pair of men and women who were originally snuggling on the sofa had to give up their seats. When the two walked down, Eric said, "Mr. Chow, I think Hong Kong movies havepletely lost their rationality now, giving people a feeling of thest crazy before the copse." Raymond just wanted to chat with Eric about some excellent Hong Kong movies, hoping to get cooperation. Unexpectedly, he heard Eric talking about the current state of Hong Kong movies. With a wry smile, Raymond said helplessly, "Everyone is making money crazy, who will think so much. Mr. Williams, you as an outsider can see clearly, so, Mr. Williams, do you think there is any solution?" Eric had no idea how to respond. Due to various restrictions, the future of Hong Kong movies was almost predetermined, and he could only say with seriousness, "Although I like a lot of Hong Kong movies, I don''t have any solutions for this situation." Even if there were, they wouldn''t be usable now. At least it would take 20 years for maind China to open up its movie marketpletely. By then, it''s likely that the concept of Hong Kong movies will no longer exist. Leonard sighed and looked at Eric, tentatively asking, "So, Mr. Williams, do you think there is any possibility of our cooperation?" Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 275: Urging

Chapter 275: Urging

Cooperation? When asked this question, Eric thought for a moment and shook his head. Although he had another soul in his heart, he did not feel any obligation to help Hong Kong films break into Hollywood. Moreover, there are not many sessful examples of Hollywood and Hong Kong films cooperating. The only one he could remember was the Lethal Weapon series, which was obviously not suitable to be taken out now. In the past, it took several movies for Jack Cheung to build his reputation in Hollywood beforeunching the Lethal Weapon series, and luckily he hit the Western appetite and was a great sess. Although Jack Cheung is now very popr in Asia, he is not well-known in Hollywood. If he is invited to star in Lethal Weapon, it makes no difference to randomly find a Hollywood Chinese action actor, but the other party''s remuneration converted into US dors is almost the same as a Hollywood first-line star. Mr. Zou, I don''t think this is a good time to coborate. I know something about the history of your filmpany. Mr. Jackie Chan, the star of Golden Harvest, tried to enter Hollywood in the early 1980s, but several attempts failed. I think he would definitely not give up his position and career in Hong Kong toe to Hollywood rashly now. Mr. Zou pondered over Eric''s words, and his eyes showed disappointment and helplessness. Eric was right. The Hong Kong film industry is now in an explosive period. Jackie Chan has learned from his previous failures and would never agree toe to Hollywood easily. Besides Jackie Chan, he could note up with other actors who could attract Hollywood''s attention. Even this time, the big-budget Ninja Turtles was also just a cover of martial arts. The four Ninja Turtles in the movie were all yed by Hong Kong martial artists. "What a pity," Mr. Zou shook his head and said, although he still had some thoughts about investing in Eric''s movie, but the young man in front of him was the director of the most popr movies in Hollywood this year, and the number of people in Hollywood wanting to invest in his movie was innumerable, and an outsider like Gaharm could not participate in it. After finishing the food in front of him, Eric said goodbye to Mr. Zou and got up and left. Just a few steps away. A tall woman in a ck dress walked towards Eric with a ss of red wine. It looks like the same old trick. What ack of creativity, Eric smiled helplessly, slightly sideways, and quickly stretched out his hand and grabbed the woman''s wrist, and the other hand took the red wine from the other hand and raised it to the blushing face of the woman: "Thank you for your red wine, Miss." Ivanka Trump, the woman, realizing her intentions had been discovered, was embarrassed but quickly seized the opportunity to say, "No...no need to be polite. Mr. Williams, my name is..." The woman was about to introduce herself when Eric stretched out a finger and pressed it against her red lips, looking into her slightly widened eyes, and said, "This youngdy, I once heard a very philosophical phrase called ''no need to be acquainted when running into each other'', so can you not say your name?" After Eric withdrew his finger, the woman nodded: "Uh...okay, Mr. Williams, may I have the honor of dancing with you?" Eric shook his head: "Sorry, Miss." Ivanka Trump was about to leave when a voice with a hint of mockery sounded behind her: "Why did you leave me in the office the first time we met, Eric?" Eric turned around and smiled at Nicole next to him. The woman had a distant look on her face,pletely different from when she was in the study. Seeing Eric nce at her face, Nicole red at him and said in an angry tone, "Next time you''d better not... don''t make me do that again." Eric shrugged indifferently and said, "As you wish, Nicole. You know I''m a gentleman who never forces a woman to do anything." Nicole bit her lip angrily, recalling the situation in the study where Eric had firmly held her face and wouldn''t let her escape. She almost couldn''t help but pour the red wine in her hand on Eric''s face. "You are really shameless." "I love it when womenpliment me like this," Ericughed, "Miss Kidman, may I have the pleasure of a dance with you?" Nicole hesitated for a moment and still put her hand in Eric''s, while they were walking towards the dance floor, Nicole couldn''t help but ask: "Why did you reject that ''nameless'' Miss? This isn''t like your character." "Do you ept the reason that I don''t like her eyebrows?" Eric asked as he hugged the girl in the dance hall. Nicole leaned closer to the man following his force and rebutted, "Nonsense, I think you are afraid of Jenny seeing us here." "What about you? Being so close, don''t you fear that Jenny will get the wrong idea?" "Of course not, because Jenny is out." Despite saying that, Nicole couldn''t help but look around. Seeing Nicole''s reaction, Eric grinned and said, "Nicole, don''t you think our conversation is like that of a lewd couple?" "You''re so low ss." "Oh, you''re starting to tter me again, that''s not good, men are not supposed to be ttered; how about we go to my study again?" Nicole pressed her red lips to Eric''s ear and threatened, "As long as you don''t mind people seeing, I have no objections, but if it''s exposed, I''ll be shamelesslypeting with J for you." "Wow, nevermind then," Eric seemed to think of something terrible and pretended to make a truce, not mentioning it again. The lively party went on until midnight. Eric used the master bedroom with a 360-degree view of the Maribor scenery for a "seduction", and Little Girl was half-pushed and stayed. On the second day, Eric went to watch "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" with Robert Shaye and Mr. Chow from Hong Kong. To be honest, after being baptized by countless special effects blockbusters in his previous life, Eric had the urge to stand up and leave several times while watching this "five-cent" special effects film. Knowing the box office results, it was easy to see the benefits of this film, so after watching it, Eric endured the difort in his heart and praised the film fervently, so that Robert could rest assured that the film would be distributed.After all, no one can fight against dors. Receiving Eric''s affirmation, Robert Shaye set the release date of the movie during Easter, which was not as good as the summer file, but it was still quite good. Besides, summer file must be reserved for their own movies. Although there was some investment in Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles New Line, it was still not a natural one. After discussing Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles, Eric just left the screening room and saw n and others outside. He saw Ericing out and said, "Eric, Walt Disney''s CEO Frank Wells and Fox Television''s CEO William Bell are waiting for you." "Are they here together? What did they say?" Eric asked curiously. n shook his head: "They are not here together, and they didn''t say why they are looking for you." Eric looked at his watch and said, "Let''s go then." When he arrived at his office, Eric saw two middle-aged men chatting in the lounge. He greeted them and wanted to invite them to his office together, but Frank Wells and William Bell exchanged nces and had no intention of going together. Eric realized that the two people had different purposes for looking for him, so he looked around and suggested, "Mr. Bell, why don''t you rest here for a while." William Bell smiled and sat back on the couch after saying, "No problem, Eric. I dont have anything nned for this morning anyway." Eric asked what the purpose of Frank Will''s visit was after they both entered the office. "Well, Eric, you had promised Disney the distribution rights to one of your films, and Mr. Eisner asked me toe here and discuss this, and also to sign a contract so that Disney can include the distribution n in their work for next year." Eric thought for a moment and said, "I''m sorry, Mr. Will, I haven''t decided yet what movie to make next year. How about we wait until after the new year? Don''t worry, I promise to give Disney the distribution rights for one of my films." Frank Gair remembered Michael Eisner''s instructions when he arrived: "Eric, this could work too. Can we sign an intent contract first without you having to provide a specific movie n, as long as you can make sure to deliver a movie to Disney next year? Just like the three movie contract you gave to Foxst year, I remember you didn''t discuss the content of the other two movies besides Home Alone, right?" Eric spread his hands and said: "Frank, you have to know that Firefly isn''t the same small studio it was a year ago, so I can''t answer you so rashly. Many things need to be nned. Since you mentioned the contract I had with Foxst year, you must know about some of the troubles that happened during that time, so I will n the specific ns for next year and make sure to sign with Disney." Frank said a few more words before leaving in disappointment, seeing Eric not move. Not many people knew about the matter that was discussed yet and in order to ensure the secret wouldn''t leak out, only a few people directly responsible for the execution were aware besides the six. Michael Eisner hadn''t informed Frank Will about this matter either, so Frank Will thought the reason Eric gave was enough to take back and report to Michael Eisner. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 276: Premonition

Chapter 276: Premonition

After Frank Wells left, Eric weed William Bell into his office. "William, how have Fox Television''s performances beentely?" Eric asked, sitting on the sofa in his office without asking William Bell''s purpose right away, but instead started talking about the current situation of Fox Television. William Bell was slightly excited upon hearing the question. Although Barry Diller was the head of Fox Television, due to the sess of "Friends", Fox Television had been steadily rising, so William Bell had been feeling content these past few weeks. Before, he felt he couldn''t even look up in front of the top executives of the three major television stations, but now he could stand tall even when facing the chairmen of the three major television stations. Good job, Eric! The finale of Friends'' first season had an average viewership of 28 million, and the average viewership of the first season was also 23 million, making it undoubtedly the champion of TV dramas this year. Although Friends has ended, Fox''s regr viewership has also reached 11 million. Oh, and our animated series had a great result too, called The Simpsons, averaging 13 million viewers. Thepany has already renewed it for a second season... Eric listened patiently, nodding asionally. After William Bell finished speaking, Eric asked, "So, William, what did youe to see me for today?" William Bell said, "It''s about the two programs, X-Files and Who Wants to Be a Millionaire? Mr. Diller wants to start production of the two programs as soon as possible. Oh, Eric, I remember the original n was to start production of the X-Files this month, why is nothing happening now?" Eric had a look of helplessness on his face. Although his n was indeed like this, ns can never keep up with changes. Due to the importance of Fox and Firefly to the X-Files, the two producers sent by the twopanies often had differences in many aspects, and it often took Eric to make decisions here, which caused the dy in the preparation progress. In addition, although the male protagonist of X-Files has been confirmed, the female protagonist still has no clue. It''s estimated that it will be good to start shooting in January next year. But Eric was not in a hurry. Just as Firefly''s finances were getting tight at the end of the year, it was a good idea to start the production of X-Files after the division of Running Out of Time and Friends at the end of this month. Regarding Who Wants to Be a Millionaire, the show is quite simple and Eric is not in a hurry at all. The issue still remains money, although the show is quite simple, but it will still require an investment of several million dors, half of which is to be provided by Firefly. Due to Cisco''s matter, Eric has transferred the 10 million dors in the ount of the investmentpany hosted by Chris Hanson, and now the joint activity funds of Firefly and New Line do not exceed 10 million US dors. The distribution of tapes for Steel Magnolias and Pretty Woman also require this money. So everything has to wait until the total of 117 million for Running Out of Time and Friends arrives at the end of the month. Eric did not avoid it, and told William Bell his difficulties. He said, "William, you see, Firefly has no money now, so our part of the funds cannot be injected in time. Besides, X-Files will be broadcasted in September next year, and now the time is very loose. As for Who Wants to Be a Millionaire, it will definitely beunched with the spring season of American dramas in March, and one month''s preparation and publicity is enough for this show. " Eric had a point, and with the air of authoritying from the other person, William Bell had no idea how to respond. He didn''t even understand why Barry Diller had been so insistent and pressing for him toe. "Eric, to be honest, this was Mr. Diller''s request," said William Bell honestly. "I think that after the incident with Friends being picked up by all the majorworks, Mr. Diller was worried something might happen." Eric smiled and said, "This worry ispletely unnecessary, William. Firefly now has 10% of Fox''s shares, how can Ick the standing to give the TV program to someone else? Besides, we have already signed the contract, what else are you worried about?" William Bell had the same thoughts, but all he could do was say, "Eric, why don''t you call Mr. Diller and exin it yourself, otherwise I won''t be able to exin it when I go back." "Okay, okay, I''ll call now." Eric shrugged helplessly, feeling a bit of sympathy for this cautious president. To be honest, although he was working for a giant in the film and television industry like Fox, having a powerful boss was really a very troublesome thing. Eric guessed that the Disney president Frank Wells who had just left was in a simr situation to William Bell. Michael Eisner and Barry Diller were both very strong people. Barry Diller was surprised when he received Eric''s call, and he realized he had made a mistake when he heard what Eric had to say. However, since the situation had already happened, he had to agree with Eric''s statement and urge him to quickly prepare for "X Files" before hanging up. It was already 10am when William Bell left with relief. Allen knocked on the office door and walked in. Seeing Eric leaning on the big chair as if he was thinking about something, he said softly, "Eric, the audition at Fox Studio must have started. Are you still going to attend?" Eric shook his head, but then nodded again and said, "Let''s go. Oh, right, n, have you felt something strange?" "In what way?" n followed Eric out of the office, asking. Eric rubbed his forehead and said, "Maybe I''m too tiredtely, so my nerves are tight. But I always feel something is wrong there." n paused and suggested, "Eric, why don''t you go back and rest for a day?" "No need," Eric shook his head, "If we can directly select the female lead, we can even skip the third round of interviews, we have already been through so much trouble for days." Eric and n walked to the parking lot in silence. Thepany''s driver greeted Eric and kindly opened the car door for him. Just as Eric was about to get in, he suddenly paused and raised his voice, "I got it!" n and the driver looked at Eric in surprise. Eric realized his awkwardness and said, "Let''s get in the car." Once the car started, Eric told his assistant sitting in the co-pilot seat about the two CEOs'' visit, then he asked n, "Have you noticed that they came together so urgently today?" "Hurry up?" n pondered for a moment and smiled, "If it were me, I''d be in a hurry too, Eric. I think you still need some rest." Eric shrugged and didn''t say anything else, but the feeling in his heart remained, and he didn''t know what was wrong. ------- Eric arrived at Fox Studios for the audition that was already underway inside a small studio. Eric walked straight into the audition room and took the seat at the center of the judging panel. "Please continue, miss," Eric said as he settled into the chair and an assistant handed him the auditionee''s information. The woman paused and then continued with her somewhat awkward performance. Although there were many auditionees, the audition didn''t move very quickly, only seven or eight in an hour. After another stern-looking woman had left the room, said from Fox producer David Greenwalt said "The actress, Sharon Stone, is great - not only is she experienced enough, but she also meets the requirements of the female lead, Dana Scully." David finished and looked inquiringly towards Eric on his right, only to find him distractedly writing and drawing on the paper. Since Sharon had just entered the room, David had noticed that Eric had not been paying attention to her performance. The man on Eric''s right was Hans Whitel, who had participated in the production of the "Cocoon" series and was therefore recruited as the producer of the "X-Files" series. Seeing Eric not speaking, Hans curiously nced at the paper Eric was writing on. "What does instinct mean?" Hans Whitel asked curiously. Eric raised his head, seeing both of them staring at him, and exined: "Nothing, I just remembered a good script and got a little distracted." The two producers were a little surprised and admired that Eric could think of a script even in such a situation. However, they did not forget what they were doing and made some jokes. Hans asked, "Eric, what do you think of Sarah Aniston just now?" Eric shook his head: "No." David Greenwalt grudgingly asked, "Eric, I think Sharon Stone fits your requirements exactly - she''s got the talent, the age, and the look that you wanted. Why isn''t she an option? Should we put her in the third round of candidates?" Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 277: The reason is too powerful

Chapter 277: The reason is too powerful

Eric handed his hastily written outline of the script for "Instinct" to his assistant Allen and told him to register it with the Writers Guild. He then said to David Grinwalt, Because I dont like this woman. Both producers were speechless at this powerful reason. David Grinwalt and Hans Whitel felt helpless and envious at the same time, wondering when they would be able to influence someones fate with an I dont like. Eric didnt exin any further. He was not an extreme nationalist, nor would he be sensitive enough to boycott something just because someone said something against it. If you dont like me, I dont like you either. Its just that simple. They were both justmoners, so there was no need to take it too seriously. But after the disaster that resulted in thousands of innocent civilian deaths in his previous life, he could only describe the woman whoughed and said retribution with cold blood. No matter what political stance or other nonsense one might use to justify it, it was difficult to forgive. At the moment he saw Sharon Stone''s profile, Erik instantly dismissed her and took advantage of her audition to write out the outline of the controversial movie, Basic Instinct, which made her famous and earned over a billion at the box office. Although it was impossible for Erik with his current fame to personally produce such a controversial movie, and he even nned to not use his real name when producing movies in the future, handing the script over to Robert Shaye was just perfect. Robert was going to direct two major movies this year, he was willing to make any movie so long as it made money. As for the female lead, a lead from a TV show could draw hundreds of contenders. Could Hollywood everck female leads? Eric was lost in thought when another poor girl was neglected in the past, and the next woman walked in. Eric looked up and nced at the other person, then flipped through their profile to see the name on it. Confirming he hadn''t made a mistake, Eric raised his head with a strange smile: "Miss, have we met before?" Just as Hans Whitel and David Grinwall were about to speak, they shut their mouths at the same time. It seemed that the female lead had been found, and finally they didn''t have to endure for a few more days. Although they could see nearly a hundred beautiful faces every day, they certainly wouldn''t feel anything if they saw too much, let alone with Eric pressing down on them. They had little power to decide on the roles, so they could only look but not eat these beautiful women. Famke Janssen, who had just taken a seat on the chair, saw Eric''s strange gaze towards her and felt a bit of joy inside, d that she was noticed rather than being ignored. "Mr. Williams, you might have seen the advertisement I shot in some magazines, I have shot quite a few," Famke said. Eric openly nced at the two long legs of the girl wrapped in white leisure pants, and asked, "Miss Janssen, are you a model?" Famke Janssen shook her head: "Not anymore, I just retired." Eric asked immediately: "If you are not chosen this time, what will you do in the future?" The girl''s expression did not change much, and she thought for a while: "In that case, I might apply to a university. Study for two years, and then get a certificate and look for other jobs." "Other jobs, such as?" Famke Janssen paused for a moment before shaking her head: "I don''t know, I haven''t thought about it yet." Eric nodded and said to the two producers around him: "I''m fine, you guys go ahead." "No more questions, like do you have a boyfriend or something?" Hans Whittel joked quietly. Eric gave him a white look and thought to himself, I''m interested in the woman. What does it matter if she has a boyfriend, am I going to fight him for her? David Grint asked in a low voice, Eric, is it her? Eric replied without showing any emotion, Let''s finish the audition in the morning first. To be honest, there weren''t many famous female stars born in the 1960s who were able to take advantage of the rise of Hollywood. There were only about two or three dozen, and a few others were added as the next generation. Among the Hollywood women born in the 1960s, Famke Janssen was one of the more famous ones. Sharon Stone made the deepest impression on Eric with her tough yet beautiful Russian assassin in "007 Golden Eye", using her long legs to pinch the opponent to death in a very impressive way. So naturally, when Eric met her, he had to try out the power of those long legs himself. Famke Janssen was a bit nervous when she saw the three main judges having a private conversation, not knowing what they were discussing. But what happened next made her quite happy, as the three of them were extra meticulous in her audition. Other auditioners usually had an audition time of no more than 10 minutes, but herssted a full 20 minutes. Famke Janssen and Sharon Stone both smiled after David Greenwalt said, Not bad, her acting was a bit clumsy but with more practice it will get better. Shes got a great camera presence, no wonder shes a model. Hans Whitel also chuckled in agreement. Eric showed no concern for the two, and continued to fill out the form in front of him with a hint of mockery on his face. The auditions in the morning went by quickly, and since the characters were already cast, everyone was done for the day. Eric packed up his things and left with n after saying a few words. As for Famke Janssen, he was not in a hurry and would talk after this busy period. As December rolled around, Christmas was fast approaching. In the five weeks since the Thanksgiving season on November 17th, the North American box office was led by Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, which had earned over one hundred and one million dors in the short period of five weeks. The top five box office rankings in North America, in addition to Home Alone 2, are followed by Warner''s Lethal Weapon 2 and Universal''s Back to the Future 2, which upy the top three spots, while Home Alone 2 and Steel Magnolias are repeatedlypeting for the fourth spot, consistently earning more than ten million dors a week. Home Alone 2 has umted seven weeks, and the box office is about to break 100 million. The final box office may exceed the original target of 150 million US dors, because in the past few weeks, the box office of Home Alone 2 has not dropped by more than 20%, and the box office trend of Steel Magnolias is more stable. After five weeks, the cumtive box office has exceeded 60 million US dors, coupled with the atmosphere of Christmas stalls very suitable for this movie. It is estimated that there will be a box office rebound during the Christmas season, and there is no suspense that the box office will break 100 million. Famke Janssen''s ckedy Harlem Night Club, which had a good box office in its first week, was thrown out of the top five after two consecutive weeks of more than 50% massive drop, once again proving the truth that ck films cannot enter the mainstream of Hollywood. The impressive results of the films Home Alone 2, Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, and Steel Magnolias also attracted media attention. From the beginning of November, Firefly, or Eric''s, films have been dominating the box office chart for seven weeks. On December 22, Sleepless in Seattle, which was directed by Eric himself, will also be released. With Fox''s strong publicity, no one expected Warner''s Crazy Christmas Vacation topete with Sleepless in Seattle. On December 22nd, the seventh week hade to an end and Seattle Nights finally premiered after its screening at the Chinese Theatre in Los Angeles, ying in over 2,200 theatres across North America. At the same time, the Oscar-bait movie Pretty Woman, starring Al Pacino, was released in just 60 theatres, following the usual pattern for releasing an Oscar-bait movie. After Famke Janssen was confirmed as the lead actress in The X-Files, Eric had pretty much finished his work for the year. After attending the premiere of Seattle Nights, he stayed at the Malibu mansion to rest and read books and write scripts, having a very rxing time. In contrast to Eric''s leisure, the media in North America were closely watching the first week box office of Seattle Nights. If Seattle Nights could sessfully take the box office champion for the week, then Eric''s movie would truly achieve the grand m of the entire new year''s eight weeks box office champion. Although many media did not have high hopes for Warner Bros.''s Home Alone 2: Lost in New York to make a box office miracle, no one dared to bet against it. After all, although the movie is not starring children, its style is quite simr to Home Alone 2. In this anxious wait, the box office results of the first weekend came out. Famke Janssen''s Seattle Nights definitely won the box office champion with a total of $17 million, while Home Alone 2 only earned $11 million, not even as much as the Christmas-themed Home Alone 2. The victory and defeat were already determined. A weekter, Seattle Night Awake earned over 27 million dors in box office receipts in its opening week, taking the top spot on the box office chart and thus, through three films, the Firefly had sessfully won the box office champion of the entire New Year''s file. The media began to operate this spontaneously, althoughst year''s Home Alone 1 won 10 weeks of the box office champion, but that movie can only be ssified as a miracle. This year, Firefly took the box office champion for eight weeks through this ry-style, truly proving its strength. Although Firefly only released one movie, Pretty Woman, the other several movies were all distributed by Disney and Fox, however, the media of the entire United States did not give this credit to Disney, but instead, while praising Firefly, they ridiculed the seven major filmpanies one after another. At the same time as Seattle Nights was taking the box office by storm, several other events also happened, including Pretty Woman, which premiered in 60 theaters but earned over 900,000 dors in its first week, with an average of over 15,000 dors per theater, far exceeding the 10,000 dor threshold for a hit movie. And the movie was also very well received by critics, with Al Pacino''s portrayal of a blind colonel being praised as his most iconic role since his film debut. Eric remembered that after the release of "Seattle Night", with the proper promotion of Firefly, the video sales of "Steel Magnolias" broke 200,000 boxes in the first week, entering the top 10 of the weekly sales of videos. It is worth noting that this is an old movie from more than thirty years ago. With a sales of 200,000 boxes in the first week, it is not a problem to break through 1 million boxes in the following sales, or even 2 million boxes. Calcting with the cost of less than 10 US dors per box of video, with a profit of 5 US dors given to distributors, Firefly can get half of the profits from each video box sold at a price of around 30 US dors. If the sales reach 2 million boxes, Firefly can get a profit of 30 million US dors. This amount of money is equivalent to the total profit brought by a movie with a box office of over 100 million US dors in North America. While many were amazed at Eric''s vision, the senior executives of Fox who sold the copyright of "Steel Magnolias" for 3.2 million US dors left Fox in embarrassment. Despite the buzz surrounding Firefly, Eric discovered things were going wrong. Under contract, Columbia Pictures was supposed to pay Firefly an $8.8 million share of the profits for Dark War, and the advertising share of Friends was due in December, but bothpanies found various excuses to dy payment. Eric even traveled to Columbia and Fox but did not meet representatives from eitherpany. Next, when Eric asked the newly appointed Firefly financial director Carolyn Aitken to apply for loans from several banks with Firefly''s film contracts, the loan applications were blocked for various reasons within a few days. On thest day of the year, December 31st, Eric had been running around all day with no results. Back at the Maribou Vi, Eric sat on the couch and thought for a long time, then he had to call Jeffrey, who was going to New York for Christmas. After the call was connected, Eric said heavily, "Jeffrey, something big might happen..." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 278: The messenger

Chapter 278: The messenger

Eric had finished telling Jeffrey on the phone all that had happened and his guesses. Jeffrey, on the other side in New York, realized the severity of the situation, and said he would be back in Los Angeles the next morning. After hanging up the phone, Eric stayed in front of the window, continuing his deep thoughts. As the sun sank into the sea, the living room without lights became dark. Little Nie did not know where she had gone, without orders, the servants of the estate would not enter here on their own, so there was only Eric in the whole mansion, seeming quiet and deste. After a while, the inte in the living room made a sound. When Eric got up and pressed the call button, the voice of the estate security came: "Mr. Williams, there is a person named Aron Campbell visiting." Eric asked curiously, "I don''t recognize this person, did he say what he wanted?" The security guard replied, "No, but he said he was a ''messenger''." "Messenger," Eric repeated in a low voice, quickly understanding what it meant and said to the security guard, "Let him in." "Yes, Mr. Williams," the voice on the other end replied, ending the call. Eric turned on all the lights in the living room, quickly transforming the once dim room into a bright one. Then, he headed for the study. A few minutester, a well-mannered white man with sses, carrying a ck leather bag, walked into the room and looked around the luxurious decoration of the mansion in the bright light, making a few low exmations. Although he knew he would never be able to own such a luxurious mansion in his life, he still couldn''t help but feel a littlecent in his heart when he thought of the thing he had to do today. The man saw that there was no figure of Eric in the living room, and with no politeness, he walked to the sofa by the floor-to-ceiling window and sat down, looking at the shimmering sea outside, patiently waiting for the owner to appear. After a while, Eric came out of the study and saw the stranger sitting on the sofa. He frowned slightly. But soon he regained hisposure and walked towards the stranger. Hearing footsteps, the man stood up but didn''t move, standing in ce and waiting for Eric to approach him, he then extended his hand and introduced himself, "Hello, Mr. Williams, my name is Aron Campbell." Eric extended his hand and shook it but didn''t say anything. Seeing Aron Campbell''s indifference to his cold attitude, he was about to sit back down in his spot when Eric finally spoke, "I apologize, Mr. Campbell, this is my favorite spot, please take a seat over there." Aron Campbell''s expression changed but a mocking smile quickly spread across his face as he stood up and said, "As you wish, Mr. Williams." Eric sat down in the seat Aron had vacated and stared across at Aron. "So," said Aron, "I hear you''re the ''go-between''. What brings you here?" Aron didn''t answer right away. Instead, he opened the leather satchel he was carrying and pulled out a stack of photographs, pushing them across the table to Eric. "Mr. Williams. You can take a look at these first." Eric picked up the thick stack of photographs, and the first one he saw was of a little girl curled up like a kitten in William''s arms, taken outside the gates of the Maribelle estate a few weeks ago, when the little girl had beenining about scraping her knee. Eric felt a sudden realization. His instincts had been right after all - someone had been following him and taking pictures. Maybe his other instincts over thest few days had been right too. Eric was shocked, but he still silently flipped through the next photos, in addition to his and Drew''s "intimate photos". He had not spared any of the women he had interacted with, and the time span was a full year. Even many of the photos Eric did not immediately think of, he had to remember carefully to remember approximately when and where it happened. And these photos were taken quite cleverly, so that people could tell the rtionship between the man and woman in the photo was ambiguous. After looking at the photos, Eric immediately determined that Fox was involved in this matter, because Murdoch had admitted that a reporter from the Post under the News Corporation had stalked him for several months. And even his and Nicole''s joint photos were in this stack of photos, but there were no photos of him and Elizabeth. If these were the work of other forces, then wouldn''t the rtionship between the daughter of the newly emerging famous director and media mogul be even more sensational if it were exposed? Eric could be sure that things were not going to be so easy, even though Fox could be seen in the photos. If only News Corporation wanted to use these tactics to pressure him, the result would only push him towards other forces, neither Murdoch nor Barry Diller would be so foolish. Eric threw the photos carelessly onto the coffee table in front of him and looked up at Aron Campbell across from him coldly: "What does this mean?" Aron Campbell slightly dodged Eric''s cold and intimidating gaze and said: "Mr. Williams, this is what you asked for." Eric said without any emotion: "Do you think you can have an effect on me with these little tactics?" Aron Campbell said, "It depends on whether my boss is willing or not. Mr. Williams, you should understand that many famous people like you in the history of Hollywood, may just disappear like a meteor because of a small scandal. Do you need me to list a few?" Eric said solemnly, "I was willing with the women in the photos. If they were exposed, I would only be regarded as a yboy in Hollywood, which is not umon." Aron Campbell sat up straight andughed coldly, "Mr. Williams, the ''public'' you mentioned is the most foolish group. What kind of person they think you are depends on the media controlling the public opinion. And the people who let me pass the message just control arge part of the North American public opinion. Therefore, these photos are enough to make your reputation muddled. Moreover, this is only the beginning. After a few small troubles, there will be bigger ones waiting for you." Eric''s eyes shed with a hint of something when he heard Aron Campbell''s words, but he quickly covered up the emotion with a slightly angry tone. "Mr. Campbell, can you tell me who your bosses are behind you?" Seeing that Eric had finally been provoked, Aron Campbell said proudly, "Mr. Williams, you''re so smart, how can you not guess?" "Alright," Eric continued, "what are the conditions for them?" "Forty percent of Firefly shares," Aron Campbell said smoothly, like an endorsement, "You see, Mr. Williams, my boss is not greedy at all and leaves 40% of Firefly shares so you will still be thergest shareholder. But if you don''t agree, once everything is set in motion, the cost of getting my boss to stop will be much more than this." Eric snorted. Forty percent of shares did seem like a generous offer, but if he lost forty percent plus the three percent he had just transferred to Jeffrey, he would only have forty two percent remaining, which was still thergest shareholder, but not absolute control. Robert Shea, although mediocre, had always been a strong believer in power*. If those people got forty percent of the shares and promised Robert what he wanted, Eric could be sure that Robert would turn to the other side, and Eric would lose control of Firefly at that time. After merging with the new line, Firefly, which had gained a movie distribution channel, was still far from being one of the seven major giants, but it had already begun to have the shape of a giant moviepany. Once the control of Firefly was lost, Eric could be sure that it would be difficult for him to develop a moviepany with aplete distribution channel under the joint suppression of the seven major moviepanies. In addition, with the arrival of the 1990s, the moviepanies and media groups will usher in a wave of integration. At that time, facing the movie giants that merged with the media groups, Eric would only be thrown farther and farther away. Even if he could still shoot blockbusters, he would no longer have the strength to bargain with those moviepanies, and he would eventually be a pawn of the big group, instead of a yer who can control the game. Thinking of all this, Eric had no intention of ttering the strange man in front of him. He immediately issued an ultimatum: "Mr. Campbell, go back and tell your boss that if he wants to get Firefly, he cane and try it." Aron Campbell looked even more pleased and continued, "Mr. Williams, my boss had already guessed that you would reject this suggestion directly and so he asked me to tell you to take one more day to think about it and calm down. You see, this vi is so luxurious and extravagant, the annual expenditure must be at least one million dors to maintain all of this." Eric seemed not to have heard Aron Campbell''s words and pointed to the door, "Mr. Campbell, I am very ufortable with a stranger like you here, so please leave immediately. I''m afraid I may not be able to control myself and have the security throw you into the sea. You should know that this is private property and I have the right to do so." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 279: The Storm Rises

Chapter 279: The Storm Rises

Eric saw Aron Campbell''s expression that was likely to burst out at any moment, so Aron left without further dy, leaving a business card with his contact information and said, "Mr. Williams, feel free to call me whenever you want to talk." After he finished, Aron left. Eric threw the business card into the trash can and went to the study room. He took out his recorder and pressed y. Conversations between two people could be heard. Then he took out the video tape he had just recorded from the machine with a monitor in the study room and inserted it into the video yer and pressed y. Aron Campbell''s figure sitting in front of the camera appeared on the television screen. The clear picture made every gesture of Aron stand out and even an ordinary person could guess what he was saying from the movements of his lips. It''s funny to think that no one would usually install cameras in their own home, but this mansion was built in imitation of Tony Stark''s mansion from memory. Since it''s a copy, these small details can''t be forgotten. Not only in the living room, but many ces in the estate are connected to cameras in his study, so Eric can know the wind and grass of any ce in the estate as long as he wants. Unexpectedly, the impulse at that time today brought him a gain that was very important to him. On January 1, 1990, New Year''s Day. Jeffrey returned to Los Angeles around 10 o''clock in the morning. Chris Hanson was also with him. Chris had resigned from Morgan Stanley. He had been preparing Eric''s investmentpany. After hearing what Eric said from his father, Chris was uneasy and followed him to Los Angeles. After understanding the situation in detail, the three of them not only did not discuss any solutions, but found that Firefly was now facing many difficult problems, but Jeffrey and Chris never suggested that Ericpromise with those people, and finally agreed to see what happens next. New Year''s Eve seemed to pass quietly. But it was like thest peace before the storm. On January 2, Eric got up early and asked the servants to get today''s newspaper, the Los Angeles City Times, with the headline on the front page in ck and bold. "Eric Williams: Hollywood''s Most Shameless yboy" "Humph, they are not leaving any room for me," Eric nced at the few photos on the front page, and his group photo with several women appeared on it without leaving a trace. Since the end of the studio era, Hollywood''s film industry has be increasingly developed, and the so-called unwritten rules have lost the soil to survive. Stars are no longer powerless members in the studio, so they don''t have to be manipted by powerful people. However, this does not mean that the unwritten rules have disappeared, but that it has been put in the open. The article in question distorted the story of Eric chasing women in arge-scale way, and painted him as a shameless person who could not get roles without giving physical favors. Although the more famous Los Angeles Times did not have this news, many newspapers of the next level had simr reports. In Hollywood, an actor has to work hard to make it to the top without any background support. As a result, yearster an American magazine listed dozens of secrets to sess as a star, with the first one being that no matter your gender or sexual orientation, if you want to make it big, you must always be ready to offer sexual services to those who can open doors for you. Of course, although this kind of thing is verymon in Hollywood, most people silently abide by the rules and don''t cause any big waves. Of course, the public is notpletely unaware of the situation in Hollywood circles, but they only get to see the most morous and sunny side of it. Therefore, the image of most Hollywood stars in the public''s eyes is very positive, and everyone is happy to indulge in this mour. Today, suddenly someone distorted the rumors linking Hollywood director Eric Williams and many female actors, and then widely publicized it. Eric was undoubtedly passively be the rebel of Hollywood rules, so after seeing these articles, Eric''s image in the public''s mind was certainly plummeted. In just a few hours after the new day''s newspaper was published, Eric''s mansion in Malibu was surrounded by paparazzi who had received the news. Eric originally nned to go out, but seeing this situation, he could only stay at the manor obediently. ... ... In a small cottage in Beverly Hills, Famke Janssen waved a newspaper in her hands and shouted desperately to Sharon Stone sitting at the table: "Why, why, I took you as a good friend, but you hooked up my boyfriend, you and Drew Barrymore are all bitches, and Julia Roberts, and...". The little girl was excited and read out a series of names on the newspaper, then ripped it up and threw it at Sharon: "You are all bitches, I''m fed up!" Sharon calmly took out the scraps of paper that flew into her cor and said, "You say we are all bitches, then what are you? If it weren''t for Eric, could you get the role of the female protagonist in Friends, could you have the fame you have now?" Aniston was speechless, then said: "I''m the one who''s his girlfriend!" Famke Janssen asked coolly, "So what if you got married? What difference does it make?" The girl pointed at Famke and gritted her teeth before storming off to her bedroom. She grabbed her stuff and put them in a simple leather suitcase before returning to Famke with a check. "This is my rent, from today onwards I have nothing to do with you." Famke took the check, folded it, and stuffed it in her bra with a flirtatious look to Sharon Stone. She said, "The extra money is a tip for me." Sharon cursed before walking away with her suitcase. Famke watched the door m shut and picked up a newspaper fragment off the table to look at its contents. She murmured, "What an idiot, she can''t even tell when Michael Eisner is in trouble, all she knows is to be jealous." ... ... Aniston put her suitcase into her car and just opened the gate of the courtyard without waiting to get in the car, but was surrounded by several paparazzi. "Miss Aniston, what do you think about the content in today''s newspaper?" "Famke, will you break up with Mr. Williams?" "Miss Aniston, living together with Miss Nicole Kidman, does it mean that you are already clear about her and Eric Williams?" "... ..." Famke Janssen pushed away the recorder in front of her anxiously, shouting, "Get out of here, I have nothing to do with Eric Williams from now on, don''t bother me anymore." The reporters were even more excited when they saw Aniston''s outburst, that''s exactly what they wanted. If she kept herposure, they wouldn''t be able to get more explosive news. "Jenny, will you continue to y in Friends?" "Miss Aniston, are you sure you just said you are going to break up with Eric Williams?" "Jenny..." Famke Janssen coldly pushed her way through the crowd and got into her car, slowly driving away from the paparazzi. She aimlessly drove around the streets of Los Angeles for a while before her cellphone rang. Upon answering, she heard her father''s voice, and she slowly pulled her car over to the side of the road, finally breaking into tears into the phone. ... ... We are now live in front of the estate of Eric Williams in Malibu Point for an update on the scandal involving Eric Williams and several female celebrities that broke out two days ago. 72 hours have passed since then and the estates gates remain closed and Eric Williams has yet toe out and make any rifications. A woman in a blue zer and holding a microphone stands in front of the bustling crowd of reporters and towards the closed gates of the estate. Despite the fact that it has been three days since the news first broke, the controversy is yet to die down and the number of reporters in front of the estate only continues to grow and is currently over a hundred. This week, due to the scandal of Eric Williams, the five films currently released by Firefly have all been affected to varying degrees, with the most serious impact being felt by Seattle Nights, which suffered a drop of more than 40% in its box office in the following week, earning only 17 million US dors. The other three films, Home Alone 2, Steel Magnolias, and Pretty Woman, also experienced a drop in ticket sales beyond expectations. Pretty Woman, which had a limited release, was least affected. ording to statistics from relevant agencies, the total box office losses due to the Eric Williams scandal for the five films may exceed one hundred million US dors. Due to the scandal, the three famous actresses, Drew Barrymore, Julia Roberts, and Nicole Kidman, have all been silent and no statement has been issued by any of them. It is not known whether they were warned by certain forces. On the day the scandal broke out, Jennifer Aniston, Eric Williams'' publicly known girlfriend, announced her break up with him. The copyright of Friends, which Jennifer Aniston stars in, belongs to Firefly, so after the couple became enemies, there is a great suspense in the cast of the second season of Friends. Famke Janssen, a famous model with an outstanding performance in Home Alone 2, revealed to a reporter at the Manhattan Morning News that Eric Williams was a very gentle and considerate man and the attacks on the young director by many newspapers werepletely libelous. This was the only actress who defended Eric Williams among all the movies he has directed. In the mansion of Maribou, Eric sat motionless on the sofa, watching the rolling news about himself on the TV not far away. Various newspapers were spread out on the coffee table and floor. Drew carried a small tray with some delicacies carefully to Eric: "Eric, would you like to have something to eat?" Eric''s eyes, which had been fixed on the TV, moved slightly, then he turned to look out the window. The blue sea still had a few pieces of ''garbage'' floating on it, and somehow the sky had darkened again. "Hold on, I''ll eatter," Drew obediently put down the tray he was holding on the coffee table and tidied up the scattered newspapers before carefully moving closer to Eric. After being with Eric for so long, she could keenly sense any slight change in his emotions. Now, she could tell that Eric was very angry and could erupt at any moment. Even though she was sure Eric would not take it out on her, she still shrank back in fear. After sitting quietly by Eric''s side for a while, the little girl said, "Eric, do you want me to find a woman for you?" "Hm?" Eric looked at her confusedly. "I think, I feel that you might need some venting," Drew said cautiously. Eric smiled bitterly, "Find who? Aren''t thingsplicated enough as it is?" Drew slowly crouched down to the floor and crawled over to Eric''s side, reaching out to unbuckle his belt. Eric stopped her, gently patting her fuzzy head and forcing a smile, It''s okay, I''m not in the mood for this right now. Upon hearing this, Drew stopped, but stayed close to Eric, rubbing her face against his thigh, Eric, no matter what they do, I will always be yours. You are misunderstanding, Drew. I called them and asked them not to speak. In this situation, it is best if they don''t say anything. Mm, Drew hummed quietly, knowing that whatever Eric said was right. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 280: Four Subpoenas

Chapter 280: Four Subpoenas

When the two were quietly talking, the mobile phone on the coffee table suddenly rang. The girl attentively took the phone and put it next to Eric''s ear, and leaned on him. Eric put his arm around the girl''s waist and pressed the call button with his other hand. On the other end, Jeffrey''s concerned voice sounded: "Eric, are you okay now?" "I''m fine, just watching the show. How''s thepany doing?" Eric nced at the TV, which was still showing the news. But his tone was inevitably a bit forced. He was not a person with an iron will, so how could he not feel anything after such arge-scale attack. If he had not made preparations beforehand, he would not know what he would do now. Thepany is holding steady, but a few unimportant employees resigned today due to the pressure of public opinion, and I didn''t even try to retain them. Also, Robert tried to probe me in the afternoon, as if he wanted me to try to persuade you. I guess he was prompted by some people. Don''t care about him, just do what you should do. I understand, just want to tell you about this. What are you nning when to counterattack? Can''t let things develop like this? Eric took a pause and then said, "It''s not the time yet. By the way, how about the money?" Jeffrey heard the question with a heavy tone and said, "We are dragging it out. I went to Columbia and Fox myself, but I didn''t see anyone in charge. I asked Edward, he said if this kind of thing goes to court, we can definitely win, but it will take several months. As for loans, Caroline contacted several banks, and Citibank was interested. They agreed to loan us 50 million dors, but then Disney and Fox sent outwyer letters saying that there are problems with our contract. They prevented Citibank from lending us the money, and this issue has boiled over again." "What do you think their purpose is for doing this?" Eric thought to himself and asked. Jeffrey on the other side of the phone said, "I think it may be rted to taxation, but if that is the case, I believe that the IRS would agree to dy our tax payments, as Firefly is apany with good operational conditions." Jeffrey could think of it, and so could Erik. So he knew that the next storm was definitely about money, and it was probably a lot of money, otherwise the bigpanies wouldn''t be so desperate to prevent Firefly from getting the funding. "Jeffrey, forget about those two sums of money for now, try to have Carolyn try for a loan. If the domestic banks don''t work, try abroad. Since Citibank is willing to loosen up, I''m sure there will be other banks willing to lend us." "I know. Actually, Erik, Carolyn and I have another way of getting a loan, which is to mortgage the Firefly shares in our hands, so that otherpanies have no reason to block it." Erik refused without thinking: "Jeffrey, there is no room for discussion on this matter. Our opponents are now trying in every way to get the Firefly shares, can you guarantee that I will get them back after I use them as coteral?" "I can only mortgage a part of it, like 10%," Geoffrey said. "No, Geoffrey. Let''s not talk about this anymore," Eric replied. "Since they have made their move, we can''t just sit here idle. We need to put a stop to the production of Who Wants To Be A Millionaire and X-Files. In addition, they have sent out a message that Friends may not have a second season." Hearing Eric''s silence, Geoffrey suggested, "Eric, why don''t I talk to Jennifer? She must have acted on impulse and now she will understand your predicament." Eric sighed. When John Aniston called him the other day scolding him and warning him to stay away from his daughter, Eric said, "No need." Jeffrey shook his head on the other end of the phone and said, "Okay, Eric, stop watching television and don''t read the newspapers anymore, you know they''re all fake. Find something else to do, like writing a script or something?" Eric thought for a moment and said, "How about you help me find a band?" "A band? What do you need it for?" "Something creative, I want to make a song." Jeffrey knew that Eric was knowledgeable about movie soundtracks and had seen himpose interludes himself, so he didn''t doubt anything and said, "Um... okay. What kind of band do you need?" Eric said, "A rock band, industrial heavy metal, get me the best one." "Uh... alright." Eric hung up the phone after saying one more sentence, pushing away the girl who had been listening to him intently by his side, and he turned off the television, saying a few words, then went into his study. The next day, Jeffrey brought the best rock band from Los Angeles to Eric''s mansion, along with a whole truck of sound production equipment. For the next few days, the paparazzi were still waiting for Eric to appear, and asionally they could hear a faint rock sound from the mansion. The turmoilsted for a week, and Eric still did not make any response. But things did not dissipate, and protesters with banners appeared outside the Malibou Mansion and around the Firefly office building, demanding that Eric announce his withdrawal from the director circle and no longer "trouble" Hollywood. Some media outlets that wanted to remain impartial asionally published some rtively reasonable analysis articles on this incident, but all of them were buried in the one-sided public opinion frenzy, after all, it was very consistent with many people''s dark desires to trample a famous and genius director and also a billionaire into the dust. The start of a new week brought with it escting turmoil, as Eric awoke to four summons from the Los Angeles County Court, delivered all at once. John Barrymore, father of Drew Barrymore, stepped forward with a series of evidence using Eric Williams'' former wife, Edie Goddard, of neglecting their daughter and even allowing Eric to keep her as a pet, while simultaneously suing for custody of Drew and using Eric of viting his minor daughter. A Los Angeles County government employee in charge of property management made the initiative move to expose that Eric Williams had used bribery and other illegal means to acquire fourteen acres of publd in Maribor Point. An unknown Hollywood screenwriter, Randy pp, used Eric Williams of giarizing his police-criminal movie, "Light Dark War," which he wrote five years ago, in the movie "Shadow War." He asked Eric Williams to pay him 20 million US dors inpensation. Eric Williams, the newly formed Sony Pictures, sued Columbia Pictures for the contract for "Running Out of Time" for allegedly fraudulent, and Eric received an unreasonable box office split, disrupting business rules. When the news of the fourwsuits against Eric Williams came out, not only the media in North America, but also the whole Western world were focused on Eric. Up to now, many people are beginning to understand that the events of this period are far from as simple as they thought. Nevertheless, most people still just watch the development of the situation with a spectator attitude. In the Malibou Mansion, Eric and privatewyer Edward Lewis, who had just arrived, discussed the fourwsuits in front of them. Eric listened quietly as Edward Lewis, his privatewyer, analyzed the situation. "Edward, no matter the oue, just do your best," Eric said after thewyer had finished speaking. "That goes without saying," Edward said, nodding. "Of the fourwsuits, the one against Sony for breaching the contract is the simplest, as I was personally in charge of the negotiations. As for the other two..." He looked up at Eric. "When I helped you purchase the Malibound, I did use certain tactics, but all in cash, so there''s no evidence. Even if it''s eventually proven, I won''t let it implicate you. Just im that you were unaware of it." Eric could tell Edward wanted to take the responsibility, and he nodded gratefully: "Thank you, Edward. Oh, and don''t worry about thewsuit, I''ll take care of it." "Are you sure?" Edward looked at Eric, "I was just about to say, thiswsuit is the most dangerous one, you may lose if you''re not careful." Eric shook his head confidently: "Don''t worry, I won''t lose." Edward wasn''t sure about the exact rtionship between Eric and Famke Janssen, but seeing Eric''s decisive attitude, he nodded. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 281: Brick

Chapter 281: Brick

A ck business car stopped outside an apartment in Calver City, Los Angeles. A few burly bodyguards quickly got out of the car, separating the group of reporters who followed them. Dressed in conservative casual wear and wearing sunsses, Drew emerged from the business car and, under the protection of the bodyguards, passed through the wild reporters without saying a word, and entered the courtyard of the apartment. Although the reporters often go to great lengths to get news, they dared not break into a private residence in broad daylight, and had to wait outside in disappointment. "Come on, what''s going on this time?" Sitting on the sofa in the living room, Drew took off his sunsses and coldly looked at his mother, Edie Goddard. Famke Janssen had not seen her daughter for nearly a year and had wanted to say some kind words to her, but hearing her daughter''s cold attitude towards her, Famke Janssen suddenly felt unwilling: "I''m your mother after all, do you have to talk to me like this?" "Tell me, what''s going on?" Drew suddenly stood up, throwing his sunsses on the floor, and the broken lenses scattered everywhere. Her daughter suddenly flew into a rage and Famke Janssen was taken aback, but she soon refused to show any weakness: "What are you angry about? It''s your scoundrel father and Eric Williams who caused this. He even sued me. Now I have to pay for thewsuit. I''m telling you, you mustpensate me double, otherwise forget about me taking this case and let your scoundrel father take you away directly." "I just want to ask one question, did you receive money from anyone this time?" Drew raised his voice and asked. Edie Goddard waved his arms excitedly and said, "What money? Who would give me money? I guess all the money went to your scoundrel father. I haven''t seen a penny. I still have to pay for awyer. I still have to pay for awyer!" Drew stared at his mother for a while, then took out a check from his bag and threw it over, warning, "Take this money, you don''t need to hire awyer, just keep quiet. And don''t let me know what you are doing behind my back, otherwise I will let you know what it means to be miserable!" Edie Goddard, who had bent over to pick up the check, heard his daughter''s words. He was about to refute, but when he looked down at the amount on the check, he immediately closed his mouth, and the angry look on his face became stiff and then disappeared, with a hint of reluctance to appease, he opened his mouth, but for a moment he didn''t know what to say. Drew also ignored Edie Goddard and said to the middle-aged female servant who was peeking into the living room from the kitchen: "Miss Martha, go and tidy "No problem, Miss Drew," the maid said and immediately went up the stairs from the kitchen. After the maid disappeared around the corner of the stairs, Drew turned to Edie Goddard and said, "During this time, don''t attend any random parties or ept invitations from strangers. Also, don''t bring any men back." "I''m your mother!" Edie Goddard couldn''t help but rebut. Drew immediately stretched out her hand and said, "Give me the check back." Edie Goddard unconsciously stepped back and shoved the check into her pocket. After hesitating for a second, she asked, "How long will it take?" "Until this matter is finished," Drew said, walked to the door, asked the bodyguard to bring her luggage in, left Edie Goddard in the living room and went upstairs. Few cases in the United States make it to the final phase of a civil suit, with over 90% of cases resolved before going to court. Consequently, when the father of Drew sued Eric, his legal team immediately reached out to John Barrymore in an attempt to negotiate a settlement. However, John demanded a payment of 10 million dors, which was nothing short of extortion. Edward Lewis, Eric''swyer, engaged in private negotiations with John Barrymore, but he refused to budge. In the end, the case had to be heard in court. The third week of the scandal, media attention was still focused on Eric with negative news stories. At the same time, John Barrymore''s case against his ex-wife, Edie Goddard, and the famous director, Eric Williams, was heard in court for the first time. Early in the morning, the number of journalists outside Eric''s Malibou Peaks estate had grown to over 300 and the number at the Los Angeles Superior Court was no less. Drew and his mother arrived at the court outside the downtown Los Angeles in a business car. As soon as they got off, they were swarmed by reporters. At almost the same time, Drew''s father, John Barrymore, who had often appeared in the media with a distressed fatherly posture, also arrived. Seeing this scene, the reporters seemed to have received some kind of hint and consciously opened a path between Drew and John Barrymore. Drew got off the car, carrying a heavy-looking bag, smiled and walked straight through the crowd, in a sh of lights, towards John Barrymore. John Barrymore didn''t expect his daughter toe to him on her own. Although he had shown a fatherly sorrow in the media, he didn''t feel much closeness to this doll-faced girl. Of course, when his daughter approached him willingly, John Barrymore couldn''t not react. He thought for a moment, then showed a gentle smile and walked towards Drew, as if wanting to give his daughter a warm embrace. The reporters around had their cameras shing even more urgently, as they were more informed on this dispute than the general public, and many of them quickly realized that Drew Barrymore had taken the side of his father, meaning that Eric Williams would most likely lose this case. John Barrymore opened his arms with a smile, wanting to give his daughter a hug. Drew tilted her head and stared at her father, her smile bing increasingly strange. She then reached into her bag and quickly pulled out a bright red brick, and without giving John any warning, smashed it onto his face. The loud thud was followed by a sound of bones cracking, and the brick shattered, falling to the floor. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 283: Ultimatum

Chapter 283: Ultimatum

Robert, can you believe it''s been almost half a year since we first met? Robert nodded as he put down his coffee cup, "Pretty close." "Do you remember what we talked about the first time we met?" Robert looked up, "We talked about a lot of things. What part are you referring to?" Eric didn''t pay attention to Robert''s confusion. He reminded him, "I told you, we don''t have much time left." ocean view and fell silent, lowering his head to pick up his coffee cup again. Eric continued, I said at the time that the trend of media groups and filmpanies merging had begun, and if we didn''t take advantage of thest few years, when the merger wave was over, we wouldpletely lose the opportunity to develop and grow, and would only be the vassals of the future big media groups. Robert Shaye remained silent. Eric sighed lightly, there were some things he couldn''t tell Robert Shaye. In his memory, twenty yearster, more than 90% of the media channels in North America were controlled by the six major media giants. If this happened twenty yearster, Eric had almost no room to resist and could onlypromise. Now things are different, as the control over American media is no longer highly monopolized, but rather spread across more than 50 medium-sized andrge mediapanies. Therefore, even if all the media resources held by the major filmpanies arebined, they would not be able to control more than one third of the public opinion channels, although this wave of public opinion seems to be overwhelming, most of them are just following the trend, changing with the wind. Therefore, Eric also has noplete countermove, just waiting for his enemy to show theirst weapon so that he can fight back. This time, the fourwsuits may once again hurt his reputation, but just like the scandals at the beginning, it will not cause him any fundamental damage. After all, even though he is a public figure now, he is not a public figure who purely depends on fame for a living. Even if this wave of public opinion makes him unable to pick up the director''s baton for a short time, he can still dominate the production of the film in other ways. Therefore, everything he does now is to keep the Firefly. Famke Janssen and Sharon Stone were both silent for a while, until Robert Shaye broke the silence and said to Eric, "I heard that you might need a lot of money to calm this down? "It should be okay," Eric nodded slightly and guessed Robert''s intention. Robert didn''t let Eric wait any longer and said, "The 60 million US dors that you paid mest time, plus the bonus of the new line at the end of the year, although I spent a part of it on investment, I can still take out almost 60 million US dors. This time, it was Eric''s turn to be silent. 60 million was neither a lot nor a little. Eric lowered his head, staring at the three lines on his palm without saying a word. Which one was the career line? It must be the longest one. After a moment of thinking, Eric finally looked up and said to Robert Shaye, "I agree with you. 15% is too little, I think it should be at least 25%." The two discussed some specific details and Robert Shaye left satisfied. As Eric sighed in disappointment after Robert Shaye left, he had originally nned to merge Pixar Studios and Flower Films, which had rights to many popr films from past eras, into Firefly, but now it seemed best to not do that. Because John Barrymore was injured, the court case was postponed to a weekter, and the other threewsuits were all handed to Eric''s team ofwyers to handle without him having to appear in court. However, despite his efforts to stay out of the public eye at this time, there was one thing he had to appear for. On January 20th, the 47th Golden Globe Awards for Television and Film were held at the Hollywood Hilton in Los Angeles. Famke Janssen''s Firefly earned a total of 11 nominations for movies such as Pretty Woman, Lethal Weapon 2, Steel Magnolias, Home Alone 2: Lost in New York and the TV series Friends. Among the nominations that involved Famke personally, were two Best Screeny awards from Lethal Weapon 2 and Home Alone 2. Since the Golden Globe Awards do not have a category for Best Director, Famke could have at least received one more nomination. If it wasn''t for this controversy, Famke, who was nominated for two awards at the same ceremony at the age of less than 20, would have undoubtedly been the brightest star on the red carpet. Although Famke had considered not attending the Golden Globe Awards, it would have been seen as a sign of weakness towards her adversaries, so she finally decided to take a stand and go to the red carpet. This time, Famke didn''t bring any femalepanion and went to the ceremony alone. After stopping in the media interview area, Eric shed a confident smile and let the shes go wild. "Eric, Eric, can you say something?" A reporter called out at this time. Eric smiled without saying yes or no. If the other party asked something difficult to answer, Eric decided to leave directly. "Eric, you have not been seen for a while, what are you doing in Malibou Manor, is it preparing a new script?" Eric was stunned, he didn''t expect the other party to ask such a question, now under this situation, what mood does he have to think about the script. However, since this question was not too sharp, Eric replied: "I have just registered a musicpany, and may release a single in a while." "Eric, can you give us a hint about the theme of the single?" "Mr. Williams, what''s the name of the musicpany?" "Eric, are you giving up directing movies and switching to music?" Eric didn''t intend to answer any more questions and was about to leave, but he heard thest one and just rolled his eyes and said, "It''s just a joke, I''m still mainly focused on making movies. After saying this, Eric ignored the reporters and walked straight towards the end of the red carpet. Compared tost year, Eric has achieved even more this year, but there were obviously fewer peopleing to greet him and most of them were men he already knew. As for the female stars present, except for Julia, Virginia and Nicole, who nodded at Eric ording to his instructions beforehand, no other actresses dared toe forward and talk to Eric because of his current reputation. Eric didn''t care either, it was everyone''s instinct to take advantage and avoid harm. During the wait, stars continued to appear on the red carpet. About ten minutester, amidst a chorus of cheers from movie fans, Eric saw Jennifer Aniston walking over wearing a white strapless dress and did some photo-ops in the media area before arriving at the rest area. Their eyes met as expected and the reporters who were paying attention lifted up their cameras, hoping for a newsworthy action from this formerly broken-up couple. "Jenny..." Eric didn''t move his feet and called out softly. Since that day, Eric had tried to contact Aniston more than once. But this time it seemed that Jenny had made up her mind, never picking up any of his calls and not responding to any of the letters he sent. The flowers he sent were also returned. Aniston nced at Eric''s face for less than two seconds before quickly turning away, walking in the opposite direction as if nothing had happened. Eric sighed and didn''t dare toe close in this situation; it was not because he was worried about his reputation, but he was considering Aniston''s wellbeing. Recently, Aniston had been rtively unscathed in terms of criticismpared to the other close women, due to her having cut ties with Eric on the day everything happened. If Eric were toe closer now and rumors of them potentially getting back together surfaced, it would definitely bring trouble to Aniston. "Eric, are you okay?" Noticing Eric''s low mood, Jonathan Daimi, who was standing next to him,forted him. Eric shook his head: "I''m fine." Tom Hanks, who was on the other side, also said: "Eric, I believe everything will pass." "Of course." Eric confidently smiled. ... ... At the ceremony, Eric was sitting at the table for Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, since it was arranged in the back, he felt rtively at ease and would not draw too much attention. Of course, the world will never revolve around one person, so the turmoil Eric was experiencing didn''t affect the lively atmosphere of this Golden Globe Awards. Perhaps due to instructions beforehand, the hosts of this year''s award ceremony didn''t make fun of Eric, and throughout the entire award ceremony, his name was rarely mentioned, and the camera rarely swept across the table that Eric was sitting at. Eric gradually became aware that someone was nning to give him the cold shoulder. So although the movie and TV series rted to Firefly had 11 nominations tonight, it definitely wouldn''t get any heavyweight awards. Eric''s predictions turned out to be true, as the release of Pretty Woman missed the Golden Globe nomination, so the more important categories such as Best Motion Picture - Musical or Comedy and Best Motion Picture - Drama all went to someone else without exception. The two Best Screeny nominations associated with Eric were also unsessful. Even the two nominations that Julia Roberts was originally awarded were all zero, let alone the Best Motion Picture - Drama Actress nomination that Winona Ryder got for Home Alone 2: Lost in New York, which was no suspensended on Michelle Pfeiffer, the female lead of the movie Back to the Future 2 that Eric had no memory of. Finally, Eric no longer had any hope that all 11 nominations would be unsessful. However, when it came to the TV series, Best Actress in a Musical or Comedy Series, Aniston surprisingly won the Best Actress award. Eric smirked as he watched the young girl on stage delivering an award eptance speech without mentioning herself, what was this, a warning to the women close to him that they could get an award if they broke up with Eric Williams? Two hourster, after the award ceremony, Eric had no ns to attend the after party. Just as he was about to leave, a strange waiter handed him an envelope. Eric got into the car to return to Malibou Manor and opened the envelope. Inside was only one piece of paper with a series of numbers written on it: 19900201. It was easy to decipher. It meant February 1, 1990. Eric knew without a doubt that this was the ultimatum from the puppet master behind the scenes. He couldn''t help but sigh, thinking back to Michael Jackson''s three-month-long media storm in 1993. It had only been a month since his own troubles began, and already they were pulling out the big guns? Thinking of Michael Jackson, Eric couldn''t help but notice the many simrities between his current situation and his past life. The reason Michael Jackson was attacked on such arge scale in 1993 was not only because of his ck identity, but also because he had jumped from being a signed singer to the Chairman of Sony Music, gaining 50% of Sony Music''s shares and owning the copyrights to famous superstars like The Beatles and Elvis Presley. In the nies, the music industry was still booming, with the value of the song copyrights alone exceeding one billion dors, not to mention Sony''s 50% share in the industry. For the industry giants and the white-dominated Western world, it was unbearable. Thus, after a storm of controversy, Michael Jackson began to fade away. More than ten yearster, in 2009, Michael Jackson was fifty years old, and he nned to hold 50 world tour concerts tomemorate his life. Many people thought that the fifty-year-old pop star would not be as dazzling as before, but the reality was not as expected. More than 750,000 tickets for the concert were sold out in just a few hours after the pre-order started, proving that the Emperor Superstar was still the Emperor Superstar. So, a few days before the start of the highly anticipated 50 concerts, the Emperor Superstar died inexplicably. Eric couldn''t help but shiver when he thought of these, thankful that he had not been reborn into a ck body. Thus, while he was now facing joint exclusion from several bigwigs, he did not suffer from discrimination from the public at heart. After the Golden Globe Awards, Eric quickly signed a contract to transfer 10 percent of Firefly shares to Robert Shaye, and directly deposited the $60 million cash that Robert Shaye paid into an investmentpany ount in New York. Although Jeffrey and Chris objected to this, hoping that Eric would leave a sum of cash for contingency, Eric was determined and asked Chris to use the $60 million plus the $10 million that had already been credited to purchase as much Cisco as possible. Before this incident, Eric had not been too concerned about money. He felt that as long as he developed steadily, he would eventually reach the top step by step. After the storm, Eric realized that in this capitalistic world, money is the most important thing, it''s like a talisman. If Eric was already a billionaire with billions of dors in assets, even if he was young, these people wouldn''t dare to attack him like this. As time passed, Eric endured the bombardment from the newspapers and media, but he could also asionally hear good news. Since most investment institutions were not very optimistic about Cisco''s prospects and its market value was only $225 million, under Chris''s price attack, some investment institutions that had already decided to buy Cisco''s stock surrendered their subscription shares. The shares acquired increased bit by bit, and by the end of the month, the $70 million had been spent and 23% of Cisco''s shares were obtained. Although it was a great loss to get 23% of Cisco''s shares for $70 million based on its $225 million market value, if it was calcted based on Cisco''s peak market value of $500 billion, the value of the shares would be astronomical. Of course, Eric knew that as Cisco grew, the stock would be diluted over time, but as long as he could keep around 10% of the shares, it would still be a huge fortune in the future. On the same day that Chris spent all of his 70 million dors, February 1st finally arrived, and the fourwsuits were still lingering. The Los Angeles branch of the Federal Trade Commission, the US antitrust investigation agency, held a press conference announcing an investigation into the suspected monopolistic behavior of Firefly and the United Talent Agency (UTA). As soon as the news came out, public opinion was abuzz again. A variety of analyses soon appeared in the press. At Malibou Manor, Edward Lewis hurriedly walked into the living room. Sitting opposite Eric, there were already several people in the living room at this time, Jeffrey, Robert Shaye and UTA''s CEO Capwell Hyde. "Edward, let''s talk about the situation first," Eric said, pouring a cup of coffee for Edward Lewis. Edward took a sip of coffee and then put a thick stack of documents on the coffee table and picked up one of them saying, Eric. This is whats going on. The Federal Trade Commission has started an investigation into Firefly and UTA for evidence. If the charges are established, then, you could face a hefty fine in addition to handing over all of your UTA shares. How much would the fine be? Eric asked the question he was most concerned about. Columbia and Fox both owed Firefly arge share of their profits, and Eric realized that money was the ultimate trump card. Edward Lewis found another document and said, Under antitrustw, the fine is usually based on 20% of the revenue generated by the illegalpany. But this number is not fixed. It has a lot of flexibility and if its handled properly, you don''t have to pay a penny. All you have to do is transfer the UTA shares in your hand, but if Edward interjected, Sorry to interrupt, but you know we are all not too familiar with thew, so just tell me how much I might have to pay for this. Well, Edward Lewis said, ording to the vitions from Firefly and UTA, you may have to pay up to one hundred and sixty million dors in fines. Eric jumped, How can that be so much? UTAs profit is only a few million this year? Edward exined, Eric, its not just your algorithm. You should count UTA and Firefly together. Because they were both your individual properties before. And I got some information from Ms. Caroline earlier, your total revenue this year is over four hundred million. Add the potential ie from the five movies still being released, since the vitions from UTA and Firefly are not serious, the 20% base penalty does not exist, so the total amount of fines you have to pay could reach one hundred and sixty million. Eric was stunned, asked, What is the time limit for collecting fines? Edward knew exactly what Eric was asking and said, "Given the current situation, the litigation will not exceed three months, and after that, you have three months to pay the fine. Right, Eric, I just emphasized to you that the $160 million is only the worst possibility, actually, in general, the fine will be far lower than this number, even no need to pay." "Half a year," Eric murmured to himself. He did not ask Edward what would happen if the fine was not paid by the due date. Obviously, there was nothing left but to freeze his assets and then auction them off. What were his assets? Only Firefly. Moreover, although the profits of these films at the end of the year could be far more than $160 million, Eric was sure that after these films were withdrawn, he could not get this money except for litigation. And when he won thewsuit, half a year was estimated to have passed. Since things were irreversible, Eric no longer felt sorry for himself, and said to the people around him, "Since we have reached this point, we should fight back." Jeffrey had been holding his breath for a while, as Erked trust in others, so, as of now, only Jeffrey knew about the video tape he had left behind: "Eric, what do we need to do, just tell us?" Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 284: when all schemes are exhausted

Chapter 284: when all schemes are exhausted

The day after the Federal Trade Commission announced an investigation into Firefly and United Talent Agency for alleged anti-trust vitions, Firefly responded by filing awsuit in the Los Angeles Superior Court against Fox Television, demanding $29 million in back-owed Friends advertisement royalties, and requesting the court to terminate the already-signed Friends post-fourth season premiere rights contract due to Fox''s breach of contract. Upon receiving the news, Barry Diller and Robert Murdoch were immediately unsettled, and they sessively called Eric to make some oaths that Fox had nothing to do with the recent events, asking Eric to drop thewsuit and expressing that they would settle the debt owed to Firefly as soon as Fox''s financial audit was over. Since the situation had be so dire, Fox still refused to admit its involvement in the scandal and Eric was reluctant to lose face, so he also shared his hardships with the other party and stated that he was doing this out of desperation since the situation had developed to this point. Eric smirked as he hung up the phone, knowing that things were definitely going to loosen up from Fox. Although only one season was aired, Friends had already be a trademark for Fox. Just like in the previous life, when many people thought of the NBC television station, the first thing that came to mind was Friends. After Friends aired in 1994, it brought NBC an average of more than 3 million US dors in advertising revenue per episode. Not only that, but due to this trademark, in the 10 years that Friends was on air, NBC''s overall strength was almost the sum of ABC and CBS. Ten yearster, due to the end of Friends, NBC had no new follow-up US drama and its ranking dropped directly from the first ce among the three major TV stations to thest ce, even behind Ox, and it has not risen again for many years. This shows how important a hit show is to a TVwork, let alone Fox, which had stepped up a notch due to the sess of Friends, but stillgged behind the Big Three and could easily be outpaced again with one misstep. So Eric could be sure that Fox would not be willing to give up on such a show for a debt of less than $30 million. Eric was not willing to give in this time, not for the $30 million ad royalties, but decided to continue thewsuit against Fox if they refused topromise. This caused the alliance of the major moviepanies to start to unravel. Or, until Fox finally got back the rights to the next four premieres of ''Friends''. In the seven major moviepanies, Fox and Firefly had the deepest entanglement of interests. Therefore, it was also the easiest to break through. As long as Fox began topromise, Eric believed that the otherpanies would not be able to persist for long, because they would realize that if Foxpromised, Firefly would no longer be surrounded, and the release of ''Home Alone 2'' and ''Sleepless in Seattle'' by Fox could provide enough resources for Firefly to respond. Even if Firefly lost the antitrust investigation in the end, Eric would still not be in a desperate situation. Under this situation, the rest of thepanies will continue to persist, and there will be no benefit to forming an irreconcble contradiction between the two sides. And, since it hade to this, Eric also no longer held back anything, throwing out all the other chips in his hand at once. ... ... "Barry, you must hold on. Don''t forget, as long as the end result is sessful, not only the copyright of Friends, but also the two programs that are temporarily stopped by Firefly now, they all belong to Fox..." Michael Eisner said in an office with a hint of excitement on the phone to Barry Diller on the other side. After he learned of Firefly''swsuit against Fox TV station, he knew what Eric was up to. Therefore, at the first moment he got the news, he dialed the phone in Barry Diller''s office. The two were discussing on the phone when Michael Eisner''s assistant rushed into the office. "Mr. Eisner, something bad has happened. It''s a big deal!" Michael Eisner noticed his assistant''s anxious expression, frowning strongly in annoyance, he hastily said a few words to Barry Diller before ending his call and asked, "What''s going on?" The assistant stammered, "You''d better take a look, many TV stations... many TV stations are broadcasting a video clip." Michael Eisner''s heart skipped a beat, a vague premonition rising, he got up and followed the assistant to a lounge, where several other Disney executives had gathered, quietly whispering as they watched the program on the lounge TV. Ignoring the others, Michael Eisner looked directly at the television screen. On the silver screen, Aron Campbell''s lips curled into a smirk but the expression on his face was somewhat victorious as he faced the camera and spoke to the young man sitting opposite him: ...Mr. Williams, the ''public'' you talk about is the most foolish of all groups, it depends on the media to control public opinion as to what they think of you..." Michael Eisner was filled with rage and he picked up a coffee cup on the table in front of him and threw it furiously at the television screen. Crash! The television screen shattered and smoke billowed out. The high-level executives who were watching attentively were suddenly silenced. "That idiot!" Michael Eisner cursed and then he nced around the room. "It''s working hours now, don''t you all have work to do? Get out of here!" When Michael Eisner''s rage was unleashed, no one dared to refute him and all of them hurriedly scurried away around the corner of the wall. After everyone had left the lounge, Michael Eisner called to his assistant: "Go and tell that fool to get out of here as far as he can right now, immediately, without letting anyone find him." The assistant nodded carefully and hurried away. After Aron Campbell''s threatening video of Eric was exposed, it quickly spread across the world, especially Aron Campbell''s words about ''the public being the most foolish group'', which caused a strong reaction among the ordinary people. In this overly free society where freedom is shouted out as being above all else and even written into the Constitution, people found themselves to be a group of people who were being fooled and the anger that followed can be easily imagined. Therefore, no one questioned the contents of the video, and since Firefly simply released the video without any exnation or usation, there was no force stupid enough to stand out and deny the authenticity of the video. Thus, the series of public opinion storms in North America about Eric began to reverse. The media that had originally attacked Eric had to restrain and even stop the attacks, and many of the newspapers that had followed the public opinion in order to distance themselves from being seen as a part of Aron Campbell''s fooling of the public, changed their stance and began to appeal for the various attacks Eric had faced in this period. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 285: New Divide

Chapter 285: New Divide

Since the video was released and the public opinion started to reverse, North American media began with a bit of reserve, while British media from across the Antic, even including several British newspapers owned by the News Group,pletely lost all restraint and changed its position to support Eric. Of course, the reason was his British identity; at least, this is what British media thought, just like anyone from Britain who made it big in Hollywood would be called the English Rose, no matter if the actress had joined the American citizenship. Eric, as a Hollywood director who grew up in London till the age of 8 and still holds British citizenship, and created a series of box office miracles, was of course the pride of British people without any surprise before the scandal happened, which was obvious from the box office performance of his several movies in Britain. Therefore, although British media followed the trend to criticize Eric as the scandal began, most of the media used the tone of being unable to do anything about their own children. Eric Williams, who was originally thought to have been brought low, was actually the victim of a vicious attack, as evidenced by the emotion of the British media. The day the video was released, the famous British newspaper, The Guardian, published an article on the front page, summarizing the attacks Eric had suffered in the past year as "the most serious public persecution of thete twentieth century." "Eric Williams has left a series of ssics in the world film industry in just one year, which is very rare in the history of world movies. His Home Alone series broughtughter to children all over the world, his Pretty Woman and Sleepless in Seattle gave young men and women a longing for love, his Lethal Weapon let us experience an exciting battle between justice and evil. His Ind of Terror made us realize that horror movies can still be scary without blood and violence..." It was this incredibly talented young man who suffered a series of heartbreaking usations due to his miraculous rise. It was arguably the most serious public opinion persecution of the twentieth century. If we look closely, we will find that for more than a month, the media''s series of scandals about Eric Williams were basically baseless fabrications based on a few blurry photos, and the severalwsuits Eric was facing werepletely manipted from behind. It is unimaginable that in a country like the United States, where freedom is always proimed to be above all, the news and public opinion would be manipted to such an uncontroble extent, which must be said to be ironic. After thement article of the Guardian was published, the thesis of "the most serious public opinion persecution of the twentieth century" that Eric Williams was undergoing was quickly recognized by many media outside the United States and quickly returned to North America. Most of the American media, which had only been following the trend, quickly epted this point of view. While clearing themselves up, they began to defend Eric. The most intense reaction to this reversal of fortunes was not from the media, but from ordinary people. History has proven time and again that the people are the most easily fooled, yet also the most difficult to fool. Aron Campbell''s words in the video were undoubtedly a huge provocation to the freedom- and transparency-seeking American public. In just three days, through the fan organizations spread across North America, protests in support of Eric erupted in more than a dozen major cities in the US, including New York, Washington, Los Angeles, Seattle, Chicago, and Phdelphia. Although the number of participants in each city was small, even in Hollywood''s home base of Los Angeles, the number of participants did not exceed two thousand. But it involved almost all the major cities in the US, even the most stupid person knows that if the federal government does not take action, this matter will definitely expand and eventually be uncontroble. When the Federal Government was still in the midst of urgent deliberations for a response, Erik had made a statement, announcing his first single to be released on Valentine''s Day as his response to the controversy. All proceeds from the single''s release would be donated to a legal aid foundation in North America that helps vulnerablemunities. Never before had something like this been done, and Erik''s fans and those not familiar with him alike were anticipating the release of this single with great excitement. Sensing the opportunity, the major recordpanies in North America all contacted Erik in the first moment with their most favourable terms to release the single. Seemingly aware of something, the Federal Government held a press conference on February 13th, announcing the formation of a special investigative team to thoroughly investigate the series of attacks Erik Williams had experienced in this period. On February 14th, the day of love and celebration for couples all over America, many couples in North America seemed to have gone out less to shop, go to bars, and watch movies. Many people pulled out their recorders from storage and after some tuning, found their desired channel. Of course, many people did not have recorders, so on this day, sales of recorders that were already in decline due to the poprity of the television, surged, with many storespletely sold out. After the event, the media counted ipletely, with the recorders sales totaling over 2.6 million, far surpassing the annual record of millions of televisions sold during the Super Bowl. Back in Beverly Hills, Michael Eisner returned home after a busy day. Ever since Eric revealed the video, Michael Eisner had keenly realized that the series of actions taken by him and other movie tycoons against Eric over the past month would yield no fruit. Moreover, as the initiator and main executor of this incident, after the appearance of the demonstrators in major cities across the country to support Eric, Michael Eisner had to personally clear up the evidence of his previous actions and specially arrange for several newspapers to act as scapegoats for the federal government. Michael Eisner sat on the living room sofa for a while, looking at his watch, before quietly instructing the servant to bring a radio and entering the study in silence. At the same time, countless people across North America were doing the same thing before 8 o''clock in the evening. At exactly 8 o''clock, the Federal Public Broadcasting Station''s music show officially began. Hi everyone, this is your good friend, Matthew Lasell, and as a radio host, I can certainly assure you that today will be the most listened day of my professional career as everyone''s eyes turn to the TV screens. You may not know that in the past two hours since I started work, I have already listened to the same song over twenty times, and that kind of exciting shouting is probably the most inspiring melody I have ever heard in my life. Wow, my boss just gave me a thumbs up sign through the window, okay, so I''ll finish with onest sentence: This is Music Heaven from the Federal Public Broadcasting Radio, I''m your host Matthew Lasell and now let''s listen to the new song "New Divide" by the famous director Eric Williams. The host''s voice fell and after a short silence, a distant drum sound was heard, followed by a series of rapid piano, drum and guitar sounds, the melody getting higher and higher, with an inexplicable shock of power. The preludested for more than half a minute, and before the singing started, countless people in front of the radio felt a resonance and trembling from the depths of their souls. Michael Eisner had not felt this feeling for a long time. Sitting in his study''srge armchair, his fingers on the desk started tapping unconsciously in time with the music from the radio, but soon stopped. Although there was nobody else in the room, Michael''s face still showed a hint of embarrassment and awkwardness. But the music from the radio didn''t change in reaction to Michael''s response and soon Eric''s voice came out of the radio. I remembered ck skies The lightning all around me I remembered each sh As time began to blur Like a startling sign That fate had finally found me And your voice was all I heard That I get what I deserve ... ... you can listen to the song from here https://.youtube/watch?v=ysSxxIqKNN0 ...... Michael Eisner shifted in his chair, forcing a half-smile to his lips as he muttered, "Is this aint? How juvenile." Despite his words, Michael''s face no longer held a mocking expression. As the CEO of a moviepany, he was aware that the spread of this rock song could give more power to the already-favored Eric. Thus, Michael began to subconsciously check if he had cleaned up everything and if there was any handle left in someone else''s hands. As a qualified businessman, after realizing that he should not have acted that way, Michael naturally felt that he should continue to cooperate with Eric, after all, interests were the first priority. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 286: Challenge

Chapter 286: Challenge

John Aniston circled in front of his daughter''s door at another vi in Beverly Hills, wanting to knock, but eventually he turned away disappointed. On the other side of the door, Jennifer curled up on the bed, resting her chin on her knees, silently listening to the caged beast-like roar that revealed a strong ambition from the radio, her eyes not blinking, not knowing what she was thinking. After the storm started, Elizabeth Murdoch moved directly to Los Angeles and lived with Julia after several unsessful disputes with her father. Although the two girls pretended not to care, when the radio on the coffee table in the living room yed the tune of "New Divide" they both looked at each other. Julia silently reached out and turned off the loudest sound of the radio. Nicole was in the kitchen making cupcakes, wearing a big headset on her head, wearing a simple shirt and jeans, and a small radio around her waist. She swayed her body gently with the music in it, holding a big bowl in her hand and stirring the ingredients in the bowl with a mixer. Despite the incident, Nicole had some short-lived worries, but after Eric called her personally, instructing her not to make any sound for the time being, Nicole put her heart at ease and simply did whatever she needed to do. She thought to herself, how could such an awful man possibly survive, plus the confidence in his voice when he called. Moreover, he was single now, so she thought she should take a chance, despite his awfulness. Drew turned the volume of the home speaker connected to the radio to the highest, and the deafening sound spread across dozens of meters in the small apartment. A fat white neighbor jumped out angrily. He shouted curses out of the window towards Drew''s room. "Get lost, don''t bother Grandma from listening to her music," Drew heard the fat man''s angry shouts and immediately grabbed an apple from the table and threw it out, giving him the middle finger. Faced with Drew''s aggressive stance, the fat man was a bit intimidated, but soon shouted back, "Drew, don''t think you''re a star. If you don''t lower your voice, I''ll call 911 to report you for disturbing the peace." "Go ahead and call, my dad just dropped thewsuit, I haven''t had enough of court cases yet, prepare somewyer fees for me," Drew stuck his head out of the window and shouted, throwing another apple which hit the fat man on the head. "You ... you''re really unreasonable," the fat man said, covering his head in anger. "How much is this so-called reason worth? Buy some for me, or get lost," Drew said. Seeing the girl so fierce, the other neighbors who originally wanted toe forward to argue all shrunk back, intimidated. The fat man stood in his own yard and gasped for a few breaths, about to continue scolding, but suddenly noticed that Nicole had a bright red brick in her hands and was staring ferociously at him, as if she would smash it down if he talked more. The fat man had seen the tragic pictures of the mad girl beating her own father in the newspaper, and immediately closed his mouth, stepped back and returned to his house. Holding the brick in her hands, Drew returned to her bedroom, and the singing ceased atst. "on- ;-day, i -- war -on -the- " Drew was swaying her cute little waist to the beat, and let out a cry, although her small face was flushed, due to her iplete pitch, it sounded horrible. The song eventually ended and Matthew LaSalle, the host, spoke up again. Drew switched off the recorder and speakers, then picked up the phone on the bedside, calling the Malibou Estate. After getting through, Drew had no trace of her previous brave stance when scolding the fat guy. She became a meek cat, with a soft voice and a hint of grievance. "Eric, I just got bullied by the neighbors again..." In the living room at the Malibou Mansion, Eric andpany made a gesture for her to wait, then said to the girl on the phone, "Thank goodness you don''t bully others...Mmhmm...No problem...I understand, I understand..." It took Eric at least ten minutes before he hung up the phone, letting out a soft sigh. Due to the reversal of the wind direction, the fourwsuits that Eric had originally received, including the father of Drew and the scriptwriter who sued for giarism, were directly withdrawn. It was obvious that the forces behind the two people must have understood the current situation and knew that the deed could not be done, so they gave up their support for the two, while thewsuit for Eric''s illegal acquisition of thend at Maribou Corner was not withdrawn, but Edward also brought news that this matter would probably be over if it dragged on for a while. As for Sony Pictures''wsuit against the "Dark War" contract, although they were unwilling, they also knew that if they kept it up, they could dy the payment of the "Dark War" split for a while, but if they angered Eric, the sequel of "Dark War" might be distant. Such a big-selling movie, once the sequel stalled, the loss could be more than tens of millions of dors. Therefore, the two parties also began the reconciliation process. Of course, Eric wasn''t sighing over these things, but thinking of Nicole, the little girl of Drew. After Drew''s father withdrew thewsuit, Eric called out to let her move back, but Drew refused and said she wanted to stay in Calver City with her mother. Eric knew the girl didn''t want to trouble him anymore, so he patiently talked with Nicole whenever she called. Sitting again on the sofa, Eric asked the people sitting around him, Jennifer, Nicole, Julia, and Malibou, What were we talking about just now? Frustrated, Jeffrey reminded him, The musicpany. Oh, right, Eric thought again. Then he said, About the musicpany. Lets go with Firefly for now. I think we can build a simple distribution channel through the release of this single. Robert, Jeffrey and I dont know much about distribution. How about you take charge of the recordpany for now? Robert Shaye nodded with a smile, as he had already thought of this idea: "Of course, no problem, but what about the other side?" "Let''s keep cooperating," Eric said. They were talking about the major recordpany, and Eric''s newly establishedbel, named after his single, was just an empty shell with no distribution capabilities. Therefore, for this single release, they had to choose to cooperate with the famous major recordpany: "Because of The Firefly incident, I suddenly established a recordpany, and now several old recordpanies are wary of it, so we can only keep cooperating. Otherwise, we don''t have a chance to develop. When we umte some strength in a few years, we can consider going solo." The people in the living roomughed. There was a hint of pride in their tone, after all, it wasn''t easy for a newly established musicpany with nothing but one single to attract the attention of the world''s major recordpanies. Edward looked to Edward and said, "Let''s talk about UTA now. Let me give you an update on the situation." Edward took out the information he had prepared in advance and said, "The situation is very favorable for us now. The fewpanies that were trying to take advantage of the situation have now abandoned their efforts, so all we need to do is follow the normal procedure for filing awsuit. Since the damages caused by Firefly and UTA''s vition of anti-monopolyws are minimal, the Federal Trade Commission won''t likely give a harsh punishment even if a fine is imposed. All you have to do is get rid of UTA''s shares as soon as possible." Jennifer, Nicole, Julia, and Malibou are all listening intently, hoping to gain more insights on the situation. Edward finished speaking and Eric looked towards the other side at Capwell, asking, "Capwell, what do you think now? I mean, do you want to take over UTA?" Capwell sighed and shrugged, "Of course I do, but unfortunately I can''t afford it." Eric was silent. Since the anti-trust investigation began, the new North America''s three major brokerage firm giants, CAA, WMA and, had all reported acquisition prices to him, the highest of which was 30 million US dors. The other two also reported prices exceeding 20 million US dors. To know that Eric bought UTA for only 1 million US dors a year ago. However, it is certain that the offer of such a high price must have been considered carefully. UTA now not only has a series of A-list stars such as Al. Pacino, but also has another advantage after the acquisition. Once UTA is merged, Eric''s movie productions will be given priority consideration to artists, which is undoubtedly the case. In just one year, Eric used a few movies to revive Al. Pacino and bring several unknown actors to the position of world-ss superstars, which is why the three major talent agencies are willing to pay a high price for this terrifying star-making ability. Among the three major talent agencies, UTA is the one at the bottom, with the least Hollywood A-list superstars, which is why they are so eager for it. Hearing this, Eric asked, "Let''s not talk about money for now. Capwell, I just want to ask, what do you really think in your heart?" Capwell thought for a while and said, "Eric, Marvin Josephson has already contacted me. If you don''t mind me saying, I''m inclined to sell UTA to Marvin Josephson and he promised to give me a partner''s position. As for the other twopanies, I don''t think you''ve considered CAA and I haven''t either. WMA has been reforming and integrating over the past six months, but it''s still too old and the system is still somewhat rigid." Eric nodded in agreement. Although he wanted Capwell to have UTA by himself, it was not realistic. Not to mention that Capwell could not afford to buy the entire UTA, even if Eric gave UTA to Capwell, with the development of UTA, he still had to introduce partners and eventually develop into the model of the three major agencies. It''s better to take it one step at a time. Just sell UTA directly. Although this wouldpletely deprive Eric of his influence on the agency, he no longer needs any influence on the agency with his current status. "Since this is the case, let''s talk and see if we can raise the price a bit," Eric said to Edward after making the decision. Edward nodded and said he would remember. "Alright, let''s talk about wrapping things up. After a month of feeling down, we can''t just let it go quietly." Eric just finished speaking when Jeffrey softly advised, "Eric, I think letting it go quietly is the best oue." Eric was stunned, looking at the others. Whether it was Robert Shaye or Chris Hanson who rushed over from New York in the afternoon, they all nodded in agreement. Eric forced a smile. "Fine, I''ll listen to you guys. We won''t take any substantial actions, but we should at least show some attitude, otherwise people will think they can bully me easily." Everyone felt relieved when they heard Eric say this and all of themughed. They had been worried that Eric would be too headstrong and try to get into a fight with the seven major moviepanies, which would have been a very unwise move. It was a blessing that Firefly and Eric were able to make it through this unscathed. Now they no longer had the strength to fight back. "Eric, what do you want to do?" Jeffrey smiled and asked. Eric had already thought of some of the fighting strategies from his past life. When one person is surrounded by a group of people, he could make a fierce move and single out one of them to fight and beat, believing that the rest of them would be scared and not dare to provoke him again. Eric originally chose Fox, but seeing that no one around him was willing to do such a thing, Eric had to give up. After a while, Eric''s mouth curled up into a smirk again: "Since we can''t beat someone up, let''s try to stir up the rtionship between this person and hispanions." The people present were all smart and they soon understood Eric''s meaning. At the same time, they also realized that Eric''s target must be Fox, after all, the two sides had the deepest cooperation, and Firefly even held 10% of Fox''s shares. ... ... Eric''s single "New-" has caused a stir in North America, and the lyrics of the song are not meaningless mumbling, but a true reflection of his experience over the past period. Therefore, the single sold more than 1 million copies in just three days, and more than 3 million in a week, undoubtedly topping various music charts and rankings. At the same time, due to the influence of the song, Eric has received more and more public support, and he almost doesn''t have to worry about this incident anymore. At the same time, several women who are close to him, under the guidance of public opinion, have also stepped out of the shadow of this incident and started to consider their work arrangements for this year. On February 19th, another important event for Eric also happened. On this day, Cisco went public and the initial offering price was 18 US dors. Since there was no limit on the stock''s first day of trading, the stock price of Cisco reached 22 US dors that same day. Although this result was not very impressive, Cisco soon experienced a series of sessive limit-ups in the following period of time, and its stock price doubled within less than a month. Chris praised Eric enthusiastically over the phone with an envious tone, and asked Eric mysteriously how he had confirmed that the Cisco stock would explode. Of course, Eric could not answer it and could only chat with Chris. At the same time, the nominations for the 62nd Academy Awards were announced in mid-February. "Scent of a Woman" was nominated for Best Picture, Best Director, Best Actor and Best Adapted Screeny, undoubtedly bing the hot favorite for the Oscars. In addition, Julia was nominated as Best Actress and Best Supporting Actress with "Pretty Woman" and "Steel Magnolias", which again caused a sensation in the media, because it is very rare for the Oscars to have two nominations in one year, let alone two important performance awards. Jennifer, Nicole and Julia are all nominated for best screeny awards for their films "Scent of a Woman", "Mystery Ind" and "Dark War" respectively. Eric himself received script nominations for "Scent of a Woman" and "Mystery Ind", and was initially also nominated for "Dark War", but he gave up his nomination to increase the chances of "Mystery Ind" winning an award since the plot was very new and the horror film "Sixth Sense" had not yet been released. However, due to the public rtions incident between Eric and the Seven, thepanies responsible for the films'' distribution were not keen to promote them, so Eric had to take matters into his own hands with the help of Robert Shaye, who had some experience in this area. Eric is now dealing with another issue which involves stirring up trouble between one person and his associates. At the entrance of a famous Italian restaurant on Sunset Boulevard, a ck luxury car slowly stopped in the parking lot, and the driver opened the door. Robert Murdoch walked out of the car, and as soon as he got off, shlights lit up nearby. Robert Murdochughed dryly and still adjusted his suit. Elizabeth, who came out from the other side, also went forward and held her father''s arm. The two of them walked towards the restaurant. The waiter had already recognized the two of them, and weed them: "Mr. Murdoch, Mr. Williams has been waiting for a while, let me take you there." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 287: is too fake

Chapter 287: is too fake

After being reminded by the waiter, Eric stood up and saw that there was more than just Murdoch there, there was Elizabeth, clinging to his own father. The girl looked at him with a faint sneer, obviously Elizabeth knew that Eric would choose this ce, wanting to make his father embarrassed. After all, it was a woman who had been intimate with him before, so Elizabeth''s faint sneer made Eric a bit embarrassed. Since Eric had gone through this crisis, because of thewsuit of "Friends", the production of "Who Wants to Be a Millionaire" and "X Files", Murdoch had more than once proposed to meet with Eric. After Eric hesitated, he agreed and refused to go to Murdoch''s family manor, and did not invite Murdoch to his own Maribor Apex Manor, but chose this restaurant on Sunset Avenue in the city center as the meeting ce. Not only that, Eric specially asked someone to notify the paparazzi. Malibou clearly wasn''t taking any shortcuts; not only did he drag his somewhat ambiguous daughter into the situation, he also put on an act of being an old man who needed help. After some media embellishments, Eric would definitely be depicted as a young, vigorous and unsympathetic man, who needed an old man toe and plead with him before he would relent. Eric muttered to himself in annoyance, wishing he could pour a cup of coffee over Malibou''s head for his false pretense. The old man wasn''t even sixty yet. As a time traveler, Eric clearly remembered Malibou''s spirited appearance when he was over eighty in his previous life. Malibou saw Eric''s expression, and the corner of his mouth curled into a mysterious smile. He walked up to Eric and offered his hand, saying, "Eric, hello, we meet again." "Hello, Mr. Malibou," Eric shook his hand, then looked at Elizabeth beside him. The girl gave him a nk stare, showing no intention to greet him. Nicole, don''t be so impolite, Mr. Murdoch pretended to be a strict father, although he was very satisfied with Eric''s performance in front of his daughter. Elizabeth cast an unhappy look at her father. She had objections to Eric''s choice of this restaurant for their meeting, but she also did not approve of her father''s behavior. She snorted, ignoring the two overly nosy men, and went straight to the table and sat down, picking up the menu to look through it. Mr. Murdoch and Eric both exchanged an awkward nce. Mr. Murdoch, let us sit down too. In the end, Eric was the one who spoke. Mordock nodded and sat down. The three of them ordered their food and there was a moment of silence. Mordock took the initiative to start a conversation: "Elizabeth, how is the movie you are preparing going?" Elizabeth, who had her head down and was folding the napkin in front of her, had no choice but to reluctantly say: "It''s all ready, we will start shooting at the end of the month." "Oh," Mordock nodded, "I heard that the heroine is that Jennifer Foster, seems like she has some good acting skills, the movie will definitely be great when it''s made." Elizabeth looked at Eric before saying: "Yes, someone rmended I let Jennifer Foster y the heroine, and after the audition I thought it was okay so I agreed." Mordock saw his daughter ncing at Eric, and he knew without a doubt who the person was rmending for the female lead. He smiled and looked at Eric, Eric, why dont we have Firefly distribute this movie? Eric raised his brows, before he could say anything, Elizabeth shot her father an unhappy nce, Dad! Eric followed up with a sincerement, Mr. Mordock, it doesnt really have to do with Firefly distributing it, its just that our overseas channel is not well established yet, so it might limit this movies box office performance. Eric had finally said something genuine but Mordock took it as evidence that he didnt like the movie. He knew that Fireflys distribution capabilities were limited and assumed Eric didnt want to use their limited resources on a movie he didnt think highly of, and thus politely refused. In fact, Murdoch himself had read the script for his daughter Jennifer as a producer for the movie "The Silence of the Lambs". After all, Elizabeth had invested nearly $20 million in the film, with Julia and Drew contributing $6 million, and the rest of the investment being ''borrowed'' from her father. Although Murdoch has a strong desire for control, and is still not willing to give up the power of the news group in the parallel world at the age of over 80, he has never been unfair to his children in other respects, such as economics. Elizabeth has found her life goal as a movie producer, and Murdoch is naturally happy to support it, and readily paid the investment. As for whether or not to make money, he never considered it, just as it was an exercise in her daughter''s ability. Jennifer, Nicole, and Julia all knew that this script was for a limited-release horror movie, which usually do not get high box office ratings or awards recognition. So, that was why Murdoch proposed that Eric''s Firefly Distribution release the movie - his initial goal was to match Eric with Elizabeth. Eric had just gone through a major crisis, and with steady work, he would surely achieve a lot in the media industry. Murdoch also thought that if Eric became his daughter''s husband, it would be beneficial to the News Corporation. Additionally, recently when Eric was attacked, Nicole had a fight with her father, which made Murdoch sure that Nicole had a deep liking for Eric. With this foundation, Murdoch thought that it would be beneficial for them to be in contact - then, there would be a chance for something to happen. Malibou, Jennifer, Nicole and Julia all looked at Eric with surprise when he mentioned Fox Studios. Eric smiled and said, "It''s only a horror movie, and New Line is specialized in distributing horror films, so I''m sure the Firefly would be able to handle it. If it needs to be released overseas, Fox Studios will definitely cooperate." Eric could no longer refuse Malibou''s ''good intention'', and he looked at Elizabeth. She was pouting, folding a napkin with her hands and tearing it into pieces. "Liz, what do you think?" Eric asked tentatively. The girl shrugged her shoulders and said, "Do whatever you want." "That''s settled then," said Mordock, smiling like a father, without waiting for Eric and Elizabeth to say anything else. Seeing Mordock say this, Elizabeth did not object and Eric nodded. At this moment, the restaurant waiter began to serve the three people and the conversation was interrupted briefly. After the waiter poured red wine for the three people, Mordock raised his high ss and took a sip, praised a few times, then said to Eric casually: "Eric, you were born in 1970, right?" The drama wasing. Eric thought to himself, but showed a look of recollection on the surface: "Yes, I was born in London, but I came to the United States when I was eight years old, so I don''t remember much about London anymore." "I should have gone back earlier," Murdoch sighed. "I remember more than 30 years ago when Liz''s grandfather passed away from a heart attack, I had to drop out of school ande back to take charge of the family business, not much older than you. At that time, Sydney''s press was dominated by three major families. Seeing the sess of my Sunday Post and News papers, they had the idea to take over these two papers. After my repeated rejections of their acquisition invitations, they began to use various means. Within one year, theints andwsuits received by my presspany almost totaled those of many previous years, and I even received death threats. But I didn''t surrender. It took me 20 years to not only develop my presspany into thergest media group in Sydney, but also to take over thepany of my former enemy." Although Murdoch saw Eric pretending to be indifferent, he knew that Eric was definitely listening to him, so he continued, "So Eric, the things you have been through recently are quite normal. Therefore, I think you should look forward and not always pay attention to these things." Eric then smiled and raised his head: "Of course I am looking forward, Mr. Murdoch. Otherwise, we wouldn''t be sitting here so peacefully today." "Well," Murdoch tentatively said, "Drop thewsuit about ''Friends'' and don''t rush for ''X-Files'', but the ''Who will be a millionaire'' which was scheduled to be broadcasted in March, now it''s the end of February. The whole team hasn''t made any progress yet, Eric, I think you should hurry up. I think one month of publicity from now, and thenunch the program after the Oscar award ceremony at the end of the month, it will be a very good opportunity." Eric swallowed the food in his mouth, wiped the corners of his lips with a napkin, and then looked at Murdoch and said, I feel the same way. But Mr. Murdoch, you also just said that after you became the first in the Australian media group, you turned around and acquired your former enemies... So, what about this time, the five films at the end of Firefly''s year, because of this incident, the box office losses will not be less than one hundred million US dors, and Firefly''s losses will not be less than 30 million. But I still don''t know who my enemy is? Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 288: is too immoral

Chapter 288: is too immoral

"Eric, we all know the situation, why do you have to..." Eric interrupted Murdoch directly and asked, "Who initiated this? I want to know. I know it wasn''t Fox, not just because of the cooperation between us, but Fox has gained enough benefits, and even if you wanted to do something, you would not choose the beginning of the year, the box office of Seattle Nights was greatly affected by this incident. So, who was the one that started it?" Murdoch was stunned for a moment and said, "Eric, even if you know it, what does it matter? This time the means were a bit fierce, but it''s just a normal industrypetition." "Who?" Eric asked coldly again. Eric, Nicole, Julia and Jennifer all know the situation, but Jennifer was the one who initiated it. Elizabeth, who was originally just listening out of boredom, mmed the utensils in her hand onto the table and gave Eric an angry re, displeasedly saying, "Hey, Eric, how can you talk to my father like that? He''s an elder after all!" The tense atmosphere was immediately broken by her low chuckle. Murdoch really wanted to pat his daughter''s head andpliment her, but he knew she had grown up now and so simply smiled, raising his ss of red wine and taking a sip. Eric helplessly looked at Elizabeth, but the girl was still unfaltering and stared back. These girls were so meddlesome, how can a man even talk! Eric took a deep breath, making his tone softer, and said "Mr. Murdoch, ''Home Alone 2'' was still a great sess in terms of box office, although not as high as the first one, it has already made more than 300 million dors globally, and ording to Stewart''s age it can still be made into at least three sequels. What do you think?" "Michael Eisner," Murdoch replied without hesitation. Elizabeth looked at her father in shock. Is he really selling out his teammates? I just helped him out of the situation. She nced at the two ''annoying'' men before her, and with a blushing face she picked up the red wine and drank it all with one gulp. She swore to herself that no matter what happens next, she won''t say anything. However, Eric didn''t notice the girl''s action, he was only shocked at the moment. Recently, he had thought about it more than once. Behind the scenes, it could have been Warner, Universal, Columbia, or even Paramount, which is not doing so well now. But Michael Eisner of Disney was the least suspected, and even Disney''s suspicions of manipting the situation were ced behind Fox. After all, although he had not been in contact with Michael Eisner many times, Michael Eisner had always shown his appreciation in front of him. Moreover, Disney had been sincere in cooperating with the movies "The Others" and "Steel Magnolias". Seeing Eric''s face of disbelief, Murdoch said, "Eric, if you don''t believe it, you can verify it. This is all in the past and I have no need to lie. From the beginning, it was Michael Eisner taking the lead and many things were under his control, while the otherpanies only did their best to cooperate." "How could this be..." Eric muttered in disappointment. Murdoch thought for a moment and then said slowly: "The three professional managers who left Paramount back then, Barry Diller was the most practical one. He thought that as long as he kept working hard, he would definitely get enough returns, so I think he was also the most naive. So I was relieved to let him take over Fox. Jeffrey Katzenberg was the most devoted to film making. He put his main energy into movies. Therefore, he was not suitable to be the helmsman. As for Michael Eisner, he was the most unscrupulous, he could do anything to develop his career. So, I think these three people in the future, Michael Eisner must achieve the most, but I know I can''t control this person, so I never even thought of recruiting him." Eric sighed and shook his head, "I just find it too unexpected." Michael Eisner, for some reason, couldn''t help but defend himself: "Eisner just did what a typical businessman should do." "Yes, a typical businessman," Eric smirked. "So, Eric, about the Little Devil series..." "Firefly can sign a future distribution contract with Fox for the next three Little Devil series. I won''t be directing myself anymore, but I''ll be a producer." Murdoch showed a mixed expression of joy and worry: "Eric, why didn''t youe yourself?" After producing two consecutive films, Eric was feeling a bit burned out and wanted to save time to make other movies. Plus, the signature of Home Alone was Macay Culkin, so as long as they kept the same style of the film, it didn''t matter who directed it. Eric replied that this was also part of the reason, but the primary reason was that the first two Home Alone films had been sessful, but the third one, due to Macay Culkin growing up, had flopped. Although this timeline had the right cast due to Eric''s casting, as Macay Culkin was only nine this year, they could continue to shoot, but Eric had no confidence in the future of the series, so he generously signed a distribution contract with Fox for the next three. After hearing Eric''s exnation, Murdoch couldn''t find any reasons to refute it either, and for directors at Eric''s level in Hollywood, most of them didn''t like making sequels. Therefore, he easily epted Eric''s exnation. Eric nodded: "I''ll definitely be involved in this." At this point, the dinner in front of the three people had already been eaten, and the waiter took away the tableware and reced it with coffee. Now that Eric had gotten the answer he wanted, Murdoch began to discuss with Eric about several programs of Fox Television. After all, Firefly was a shareholder of Fox Television, so Eric readily agreed to personally supervise the production of "Who Wants to be a Millionaire", ensuring that it would be broadcast sessfully by the end of this month. In fact, the preparation of "Who Wants to be a Millionaire" had already been very perfect, and even the question bank had been almost designed. If it had not been for this incident, it would have been officially released in early March. The situation of "X Files" was also simr. The first episode should have beenpleted by now. Although the Firefly''s procrastination vites the contract both parties agreed to sign, Fox originally thought that if Fireflyplied, he could get the full copyright of several programs, so he didn''t respond too much to Firefly''s breach of contract. Now that the two parties have reconciled, Fox can''t pursue this matter anymore, but just skip it in a few words. After discussing the important matters, Murdoch picked up the coffee and took a few sips before asking casually: "Eric, do you have any ns for your movies this year, are you going to make a few?" Elizabeth, who was originally inattentive, also cast a curious nce at the question. Eric slowly took a sip of coffee and thought for a moment, then said: "Two, one has been confirmed, but the script is still in a stalemate. The scriptwriter''s price is a bit outrageous, plus the recent events, I haven''t had time to talk about the script." Elizabeth couldn''t help but ask, "Is it the script about the ghost?" Eric looked curiously at the girl, had the news spread so widely? Under Eric''s gaze, the girl''s face flushed a little, she said, "I heard that you...like this script, so I asked around a bit." Eric could tell that Elizabeth had obviously tried to buy it, but it seemed that she hadn''t been sessful. Embarrassed by being seen through, the girl became even more embarrassed, but continued, "But when I had someone contact the scriptwriter, Bruce Joy Robin, they said that the script had already been sold." Eric suddenly stood up in surprise, looking at Elizabeth: "It was sold?" "Yes, isn''t it you who bought it?" Elizabeth raised her face and looked at Eric doubtfully. "Sorry, I need to make a few calls," Eric said to the two of them, picking up his mobile phone and walking to the corner of the room. Looking at Eric, who was standing not far away holding his mobile phone and dialing continuously, a little agitated, Murdoch asked his daughter: "Liz, what script is it?" The girl looked at Eric''s figure and said to her father with some Schadenfreude: "It''s a love story script. I didn''t see the whole story. I just heard about it roughly. It seems that a bank employee was murdered by his colleague and became a ghost, then protected his girlfriend and avenged. Anyway, that''s roughly it." Murdoch looked at Eric, his eyes shing, not knowing what he was thinking. After a while, Eric returned to his seat with a disappointed look on his face. Murdoch continued to drink his coffee without saying a word. Then Elizabeth spoke up: "Eric, who bought it?" "Michael Eisner," Eric said reluctantly, naming a person. Thedy asked again: "What are you going to do?" Eric could almost imagine what he could do. Michael Eisner was too smart to let Disney shoot the script directly, but nned to coborate with him. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 289: Cant bite back

Chapter 289: Can''t bite back

Michael Eisner was the main instigator of the recent turmoil ording to Murdoch. Eric had no intention ofpromising and decided that they should find a way to get the song "Rampant Melody" from Justice Brothers tomorrow. As for the rest, he had plenty of ideas for good movies in his mind. It was a pity that Eric had nned to spend a year to create a special effectspany to get familiar with movie special effects and prepare for the production of Jurassic Park. Without a doubt, "Love Without End" was a perfect experimental object. The wall-passing and grim reaper special effects in the movie could give him some practice. Without this movie, Eric''s original ns would be disrupted. "Alright, Eric, it''s gettingte now, so let''s wrap up this meal," Mordoc suddenly said. Eric didn''t have much enthusiasm to chat further, so he called the waiter and handed over his credit card to settle the bill. Mordoc stood up directly: "Eric, Liz has been staying in Beverly Hills recently, and I''m getting a bit old, so I want to go home directly. Could you help me send her back?" "Dad, I can go back by myself," Elizabeth said. "You''re a girl, what if you run into bad people? I''m sure Eric won''t mind sending you back, right, Eric?" Mordoc said with a smile, looking at Eric. Eric looked at Elizabeth and said, "If Liz is willing, I''m of course fine with it." "That''s it," said Murdoch, signaling to his assistants and bodyguards who had been waiting nearby, and he turned and left. Since it was almost 10 o''clock, there weren''t many people left in the restaurant. Eric and Elizabeth were looking at each other. "I don''t need you to take me back, I''ll go by myself," Elizabeth said stubbornly. "Oh." Eric nodded and made a gesture of invitation. Elizabeth, who had just stood up, red at Eric unhappily. She reluctantly sat back down and said, "I''ve never seen a guy without manners like you." Ericughed and settled the bill before standing up and saying to thedies, "Okay, let''s go." Elizabeth reluctantly stood up and followed Eric into his car. "Do you still stay with Jennifer?" Eric asked as he started the car. "Yes, two of us live together to keep it lively. Besides, Jennifer is also my filmpany''s partner, so it''s easier to talk about business when we live together.", Elizabeth replied. "By the way, I don''t know what your filmpany is called?", Eric drove the car onto the highway and asked casually. "TG Film Company.", Elizabeth said. "What does TG stand for?" Elizabeth opened her mouth to reply, but then realized if she exined, Eric would certainly ask who the three girls were, and Nicole would be exposed. Nicole had already insisted more than once that she and Julia keep things from Eric, and the girl felt she was more morally upright than her unscrupulous father, and wouldn''t so easily betray her friends. "TG is TG. Why ask so much!" "Oh, okay," Eric graciously didn''t probe too deeply. Changing the topic, he said: "By the way, about The Silence of the Lambs, did you not exin it to your dad?" "Exin what?" Elizabeth was curious. "For example, I''m quite fond of this script and so on." The girl blinked a few times: "My dad didn''t ask". "Guess when The Silence of the Lambses out, someone will regret not having dinner," Eric said with augh. "Hmph, now that you mention it, you are really detestable. You secretly bought the rights to Golden Alliance from Fox beforehand. I heard that the sales of the movie videotapes have exceeded one million boxes. My dad called over and scolded Barry Dilers, and Fox had to fire some of their executives." Eric shrugged: "It''s business. Besides, you all bought it voluntarily, I didn''t steal or rob it." The woman was unhappy and said, "We haven''t even signed a contract yet. Don''t think I''m going to give your smallpany permission to distribute ''The Silence of the Lambs''." Eric stopped the car in front of a red light and casually looked out the window. "Whatever you want, it might not even be a big seller. Who knows, you might be the one crying at the end of it." "If it really turns out that way, I won''t be the only one crying," Elizabeth said pointedly. Seeing Eric''s nomittal expression, the woman continued, "Firefly should handle the distribution in North America, but I want 35% of the earnings. I''ll give Fox the rights overseas." "20%," Eric immediately bargained with a smile. The woman raised her fist and punched Eric''s shoulder. "35%, or else I''ll give it to Fox." "How about 21%?" "Get out of here!" thedy was just about to speak again when a silver convertible with its top down came roaring up behind Eric''s car, and several young people inside were screaming, "Hey, the light''s green, drive, drive!" Eric nced in his rearview mirror and stepped gently on the gas. As the silver convertible passed them, the young people shouted tauntingly towards Eric''s car window, but Eric seemed to not notice and just continued to drive at his own speed. The convertible soon passed them, and Eric thought they would be gone, but it soon slowed down and began driving side-by-side with them. "Hey, beautifuldy in the passenger seat, how abouting for a ride with us guys?" a young man with spiked hair called out to Elizabeth in the passenger seat. Eric nced out the car window, pressed the button and raised the window ss, Elizabeth followed suit, but her small mouth said mercilessly: "You are really too weak, thedy beside you was harassed and you don''t even dare to fight back." Eric nced at the girl and said: "Will you bite back if you get bitten by a dog?" "You... are really vulgar." Elizabeth angrily turned her head away and decided not to pay attention to Eric anymore. Eric did not pay attention to them, and drove on with concentration. Although Eric had rolled up the car window, the few young men in the convertible still refused to leave. They sped up and slowed down, circling around Eric''s car and making various provocations from time to time. Eric nced out the window and saw that it was not far from Elizabeth''s house, so he decided to ignore them. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 290: Safe driving is very important

Chapter 290: Safe driving is very important

Eric stepped on the gas as soon as he saw an SUV driving in from the other side of the intersection, cutting off the convertible that was behind them. The driver of the convertible frantically turned the steering wheel, narrowly avoiding a head-on collision but still losing control and smashing into a transformer box. Sparks flew, and the lights in the nearby houses all went out at the same time. The driver of the SUV elerated and drove away as they realized what had happened. Eric got out of the car and saw several young people in the convertible, knocked out and twisted in all directions. He shook his head and said to Elizabeth, "See, this is what happens when you drive dangerously. I told you it was dangerous." "Stop preaching and call 911," she snapped, stepping forward before stopping short. Eric took out his cellphone from the car and dialed 911, telling them the situation. The two of them waited patiently for help to arrive. Elizabeth looked around at the dark houses nearby and suddenly said to Eric, "Julia''s vi is not far from here, it must have lost power too." Ericforted her, "It''s alright, it will probably be fixed soon." The two waited patiently for a couple of minutes, but the police had not yet arrived. Suddenly, a young man in his twenties appeared from one of the nearby vis, mumbling to himself as he walked towards them. In the light of the streetmps, they could tell that he was drunk, with disheveled hair and an unkempt beard. The young man walked up to Eric and Elizabeth. He whistled at Elizabeth, then he saw the tragic car crash and the people inside: "Oh wow, an ident! Are they dead?" Elizabeth furrowed her brows and leaned towards Eric. The young man felt bored and walked around a few times, but had no intention of leaving. Instead, he approached Eric with a sly grin and examined him under the light. He then eximed, "Wow, you look like that... that... let me think, oh, the director of ''Dark War'', Eric Williams, right?" Eric nodded slightly, and the young man looked at Elizabeth beside him. "Is this your new protg? Haha, not bad, but not as beautiful as Nicole Kidman, that girl with the long legs. I''ve had a few with long legs before, but not as beautiful as Nicole Kidman..." Eric, bored and with nothing better to do, realized that this man was obviously a "fellow traveler" and was about to say something, but a small hand reached to his waist and twisted a piece of flesh. Eric gasped and pushed Elizabeth''s hand away, rubbing his waist and asking, "What are you crazy about?" "Hmph!" Elizabeth snorted and turned her head away. But this action was seen by the young man, who let out a wicked smile. Lowering his voice, he said, "Such a feisty girl, Eric. I think she needs to be taught a lesson. Want me to teach you a few moves?" "Uh, no, that''s alright," Eric held back the urge to retch as he smelled the alcohol on the young man''s breath. He tightly grasped the girl''s wrist as she reached out again and furrowed his brow. Soon, the police car, fire truck, and ambnce arrived. Eric briefly exined the situation to the police officer, who recognized Eric and didn''t press further. He took down a quick report and let Eric and Elizabeth leave. Eric got into his car and waited for the girl to get into the passenger seat before starting the engine. He looked once more at the wrecked convertible and heard the music as the drunken young man gestured wildly to the police officer, "Officer sir, this has nothing to do with me, I don''t know those guys, yeah I had a little to drink but I didn''t drive, I live in that vi over there, see, that one, I was just going to bed but my bedsidemp broke and then the power went out..." Julia''s small vi was not far from the incident, it took only a minute or two by car to get there. As Elizabeth had suspected, the power was also out here and the vi was pitch ck. Eric parked the car and looked at Elizabeth in the passenger seat, "You can go in now, I''m going back." The girl hesitated, then said in a low voice, "Julia went to San Francisco, she said she may not be back today, there''s no one in the vi." "Hmm?" "I... I''m afraid of the dark," the girl stuttered like a mosquito. Eric thought for a moment and said, "Then I''ll escort you in." Elizabeth paused for a moment before nodding gently. The two of them entered the vi together and stood in the dark living room. Eric asked, "Do you know where there''s a shlight or candles?" In the darkness, Elizabeth shook her head, "I''m not sure, but Julia always likes to put small things in thepartments under the TV." "Oh," Eric responded, "You go look." "I... you go," the girl said, her voice slightly trembling in the dim light. Eric said, "I don''t know where it is, I''ve never been here before." "Lies," Elizabeth said, "Don''t think I don''t know about your rtionship with Julia." "I don''t deny that, I did have a few times with Julia, but I really haven''t been here before," Eric said. "Oh, the TV is on the east wall," Elizabeth said. "Forget it, let''s go together," Eric said, feeling his way through the darkness until he found Elizabeth''s hand and grasped it, saying, "You lead the way." Elizabeth struggled subconsciously, but not too hard, instead, she obediently followed Eric as he walked towards the TV. After a few steps, her foot tripped over something, her body fell forward, and Eric felt her pull him. He quickly pulled in the opposite direction, and her fragrant, soft body fell into his arms. His hands unconsciously held on to her waist, and he felt her breathing quickly be rapid. Eric tentatively leaned in and kissed her lips. After a silent kiss thatsted for an unknown amount of time, Eric was pushed away by Elizabeth, who had regained her strength. "You scumbag, you must have nned this," the woman muttered softly. Eric''s hand had unknowingly entered her clothes, lightly caressing her smooth skin, while he whispered in her ear, "If you don''t agree, I''ll leave right now." Elizabeth raised her hand and hit Eric''s body a few times, then raised her head slightly and actively kissed Eric. With such a clear hint, Eric, of course, would not be polite anymore; his actions became more rough. "Not here, oh, don''t remove it." The sound echoed in the darkness with a strong sense of embarrassment, but soon turned into meaningless murmurs. Perhaps it was the cover of darkness, but the woman''s resistance wasn''t as fierce. So Eric quickly stripped off her clothes and found the couch. He pressed her down on it, and the sound of heavy breathing and moans filled the room. Eric''s hands roamed over her warm body as he explored her curves. He didn''t stop until he heard her muffled cries of pleasure. After some time, the woman suddenly clung onto Eric tightly, like an octopus. Eric, feelingpassionate, temporarily stopped his movements and gently caressed her back as she trembled. "I...I''m okay," the woman whispered after a while. Eric paused, then grinned and suddenly thrust into her again with a wicked smile. "But what about me?" The woman let out a cry and her body trembled as she quickly used her hand to hold onto Eric, not letting the man move any further. She breathed heavily before saying, "I don''t want to be here anymore, I want to go to the bedroom, there, there, do whatever you want." "OK, where is the staircase?" Eric picked up the woman and held her in his arms. "It''s in the northwest corner, can you take it out first?" "No," Eric said, lifting the woman''s soft buttocks and fumbling his way back to the staircase. Due to the darkness and the fact that he was holding someone in his arms, Eric was very careful, and it took a long time for him to reach the upstairs. "Go east; my room is the second one," Elizabeth''s head hung on Eric''s shoulder as she spoke softly. Eric nodded, found a door handle and walked in. Although Elizabeth felt a little uneasy, at this moment the woman was already a bit dazed, so the uneasy thoughts in her mind were fleeting and were soon forgotten. Eric walked towards the bed in the bedroom, even though the curtains were closed, there was enough lighting from other areas of Los Angeles to see the outline of the bed. He ced the woman on the bed, turned her over, and thenid on top of her. "Again, it''s like this, pervert," Elizabeth, who was clearly conservative in this aspect,y on the bed, raised her waist, andined. Eric whispered a few words to her, moved her head, and kissed her before she finallyplied. He held onto her soft waist and moved a few times, but in the dim light of the bedroom, Eric was surprised to see something moving on the other side of the bed. It was a person''s shadow, a woman''s shadow. The only other woman who could be in this house was undoubtedly Julia. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 291: Killing Mosquitoes

Chapter 291: Killing Mosquitoes

Julia went to San Francisco for a business event during the day and, since the event ended early, she didn''t stay in San Francisco and took a flight back home. Therefore, after a busy day, Julia went to bed early. She didn''t know how long she had been asleep when she heard her bedroom door open and someone walked in. Elizabeth had slept in the same bed as her before, so Julia thought it was Elizabething to sleep in her bed again and didn''t mind. But, as she saw the two figures on the other side of her bed, she gradually realized something was wrong. At the same time, she easily recognized the man''s identity. While ming Elizabeth for causing trouble, Julia intended to sneak out unnoticed while the two were not paying attention to her. However, as she carefully moved, she was caught by Eric''s gaze before she could reach the edge of the bed. The two locked eyes and both were stunned. "Hurry up, if you''re not going to do anything then let me go, I want to sleep, it''s so ufortable, and swollen," Elizabeth, who was lying on the bed and enjoying the moment, said grumpily when she felt Eric stop moving. "You''re so shameless, to say such embarrassing things," Julia muttered to herself, at the same time she realized that since Eric had found her, she no longer intended to sneak away without being noticed. After all, the girl lying on the bed and enjoying herself wouldn''t have noticed her leaving anyway. Her original n had been good, until that damn guy reached out and grabbed her. What is this for? Julia''s eyes opened wider, with a hint of unease and...anticipation. But her body reflexively started to struggle, Julia''s movements were not too strong. After a gentle struggle, Julia stopped moving, and even though Eric couldn''t see, she red at him in anger. Julia felt her body rx as Eric began to move again. She listened for a moment to the embarrassing sounds, finally unable to resist the urge to escape. Just as she began to move, she felt her body being pulled violently, flipping over andnding on her stomach on the bed. Her nightgown was pulled up and arge hand found its way to her backside, lifting it high before striking it hard. A crisp sound echoed through the room, and Julia bit her lip to keep from crying out in pain. "You damn son of a bitch," she thought to herself. "I''ll fight you for this." But as another pnded on her backside, the intense pain spread throughout her body and Julia''s thoughts of rebellion dissipated. Shey there, soft and submissive. "What are you doing?" Elizabeth groggily asked, her face buried in the pillow, after the sound of two ps had finished. "Killing mosquitoes," Eric replied, looking at the motionless woman beside him. Elizabeth let out a groan and, in her confused state, had a thought that maybe she should sell some mosquito repellent tomorrow. After fidgeting for a moment, Eric released Elizabeth''s body, covered her with a nket, then went over to another woman and held her. Elizabeth, who was already very tired, did not notice much of anything else before she quickly fell asleep. On the other side, Julia, who was being held by the man, breathed softly and didn''t have a single thought of resistance as Eric pulled off her nightgown and exposed her in a very embarrassing position. At the same time, she felt the man put a small piece of cloth in her mouth, although she didn''t intend to make a sound, she obediently opened her mouth and held it... .... .... The morning sunlight filtered through the curtains and into the bedroom, where Elizabeth groggily opened her eyes. As she looked around, she realized that she was in Julia''s room, and a flood of memories came back to her. Sitting up quickly, she remembered that Julia had gone to San Francisco yesterday. Relieved, Elizabeth thought that it was good that she was in Julia''s room and not Eric''s, since her clothes were neatly folded on the chair beside the bed. She picked them up and went into the bathroom. After a long time, Elizabeth came out, dressed, and walked downstairs barefoot. She heard noisesing from the kitchen and a sweet smile appeared on her lips. "At least that son of a bitch has some conscience, he didn''t just eat and run and he even made breakfast for me," she thought. Elizabeth walked a few steps to the kitchen door and saw Julia, who was facing away from her and wearing her nightgown, busily working. Elizabeth stared nkly for a moment until Julia turned around and noticed her presence. Elizabeth stammered, "Um, Julia, um..." "What''s wrong?" Julia asked with a curious look on her face, showing no signs of suspicion. Elizabeth gestured with her hands in front of her chest, "Um, when did youe back?" "Yesterday afternoon," Julia turned back to the hot pan and added an egg. Elizabeth felt a strong sense of unease and asked again, "Yesterday afternoon?! " "Yes," Julia turned her head to look at her and nodded. Elizabeth frantically ran her hands through her hair, wondering if everything she experienced yesterday was just a dream. It couldn''t be, it was impossible, because Eric''s actionsst night were too intense and she still felt difort between her legs. How could it be a dream? "Um, Julia,st night..." "I was right beside you, that jerk finished with you and then came to y with me," Julia said calmly. Elizabeth was stunned for a full minute before she slowly blurted out, "What the F***!" Julia didn''t seem to hear Elizabeth''s profanity and put the finished egg in a te, then turned her head and asked, "Liz, do you want breakfast?" If Eric''s behavior had made Elizabeth angry, then Julia''s current reaction made Elizabeth feel like she was on the brink of copse. "Julia, are you still able to eat breakfast?" Elizabeth asked, following her into the dining room. Julia had already served herself and was now making her way to the table. Elizabeth watched as Julia sat down and picked up her utensils, eating her bread and fried eggs one bite at a time. Just one bite after another. But then, after a few minutes, Julia, who was still sitting at the table, continued to stuff food in her mouth while tears streaming down her face. "Liz, I''m sick. I can''t be cured. Waaah..." Julia cried between sobs. Upon seeing Julia''s heartbroken state, Elizabeth immediately forgot about asking about the events of the previous night. She had thought that Julia had some terminal illness and had limited time left. But after someforting, Elizabeth slowly learned the truth from Julia''s broken speech. "How could he do this? Let''s go find that scumbag. If he doesn''t give us an exnation, this isn''t over." Elizabeth said, angry. After finally revealing her biggest secret to someone else, Julia seemed to feel much better. She grabbed Elizabeth''s hand and said, "Liz, don''t be like this. Actually, this doesn''t have much to do with Eric." "Julia, after all this, you''re still defending him? You''ve disappointed me." Elizabeth said, disappointed. Julia shook her head and said, "No, I talked to him about this. He also wants me to recover. For so long, I thought I was fine, butst night, he...he hit me twice. Then I realized, not only did I have no resistance in my heart, I actually looked forward to it." "Hit...hit mosquitoes?" Elizabeth raised an eyebrow, remembering the details ofst night. Julia''s face turned red, and she nodded. "So what do you n to do?" Elizabeth finally asked. Julia shook her head, "I don''t know, I wish I knew how to deal with it." "I think you should talk to Eric again," Elizabeth suggested. Julia''s head shook violently, "No no no, I can''t see him now. If I see him, I''ll...I''ll..." "Then I''ll go talk to him," Elizabeth stood up abruptly but was again pulled back by Julia. "Please don''t go, it will just make things more awkward for us," Julia pleaded. Elizabeth thought for a moment, then dejectedly sat back down. The two people leaned against the sofa, silent for a while, until Elizabeth spoke: "Actually, Julia, it''s my fault. If I hadn''t brought him back, this wouldn''t have happened." Julia took a tissue from her pocket and cleaned her face. Upon hearing Elizabeth''s words, she thought for a moment and couldn''t help butugh, teasing: "You were really something in bed, saying all sorts of things. I''was blushing just listening to you." Julia''s words immediately brought up the awkward incident from the previous night that had been forgotten. Elizabeth''s face changed several times. Although she hadn''t said much in the bedroomst night, now that she thought about it, it was indeed embarrassing. And to top it off, it had been heard by Julia next to her. "You, you saw us go in, why didn''t you run away?" "I wanted to, but that guy caught me and hit me a couple of times. I didn''t have the strength to run." "I figured it out, you must have wanted him to treat you that way too, that''s why you were sopliant," Elizabeth said. Julia immediately shook her head: "I didn''t." "Still trying to deny it," Elizabeth immediately lunged towards Julia, pushing her onto the sofa and yfully wrestling her. Julia, of course, didn''t take it lying down and fought back. Soon, the two women were disheveled and out of breath. Then, they noticed that they were tightly embraced and lying on the sofa, their faces just a few centimeters apart and their breaths clearly audible to each other. "Julia, did you go to San Francisco yesterday? Did you see them?" "Hmm," Julia quickly blinked and showed a confused expression. "I mean, did you see any homosexuals," Elizabeth finished speaking, noticing Julia''s expression change several times. And then, impulsively, she opened her red lips and leaned in to kiss her. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 292: Roberts Worries

Chapter 292: Robert''s Worries

After meeting on Sunset Boulevard, Eric and Murdoch had a public performance, but Eric was not without preparations. He had previously instructed someone to leak some information to the paparazzi. Therefore, early the next morning, many newspapers had a lot of questionable news. Fox would continue to distribute all films directed by Eric for the next three years; Fox would exchange equity with Firefly to ensure deeper and longer-term cooperation; or Fox would cooperate with Firefly to produce the special effects blockbuster "Jurassic Park," and other simr news came out one after another. Although these news seemed unimportant to the general public, they caused a huge sensation in the Hollywood circle. Undoubtedly, many people in the Hollywood circle who knew about the recent turmoil realized that Fox hadpletely "betrayed" the alliance of the seven major filmpanies and turned towards Firefly. Without a doubt, after this storm, except for the unharmed Firefly, Fox would be the biggest beneficiary. Despite Fox''s efforts to clear things up and repeatedly stating that Fox had not coborated with Firefly too much, the TV shows "X Files" and "Who Wants to Be a Millionaire," which were originally put on hold, quickly resumed. This unmistakably demonstrated that Fox had reached some sort of coboration agreement with Firefly. In this situation, the other major filmpanies, who were already no longer expecting anything from this suppression of Firefly, quickly fell apart. At the same time, in order to mend the rift between the two sides, several major filmpanies expressed goodwill to Firefly and looked forward to reaching some kind of coboration with Eric. After all,st year, the total box office in North America broke the $5 billion mark, and a series of films rted to Eric ounted for nearly one fifth of that. Therefore, no one would doubt Eric''s strength in the film industry. Since suppression had no effect, then cooperation was undoubtedly the best way to achieve a win-win situation. "Robert, the selling point of this movie is not simply a portrayal of desire, pure sex can only bring simple and short-lived excitement, but when sex isbined with bloody violence, human desire bes extremely intense. This is the biggest selling point of the script for ''Instinct''. You must have read the script as well. If the first sex scene in the script were only a sex scene, perhaps the audience would only make a cheering gasp, but when the originally passionate sex suddenly turns into a blood-sttered ughter, the audience''s adrenaline will be quickly stimted, thus unconsciously being drawn into the story," In Firefly''s small conference room, Eric was introducing the script for "Instinct" to Robert Shaye. Originally, when Eric brought out this script, Robert had expressed strong interest. But when Eric subsequently indicated that he would not put his name on the script, Robert became doubtful again. Despite this, after reading the script, Robert understood that Eric was doing this for his own public image and not wanting to put his name on a script that was sure to stir up a lot of controversy after it was made into a film. However, this reason did notpletely alleviate Robert Shaye''s worries. Inst year''s negotiations with Eric, he had only barely managed to secure the rights to independently operate two big-budget films this year. If he messed this up, it would be difficult for him to speak up and demand to lead big-budget films again, and he would have to be content with only being in charge of film distribution. Therefore, although "Basic Instinct" was a script personally written by Eric, when Eric said he did not want to be associated with this film, Robert Shaye became apprehensive. From Eric''s recent response to the recent scandal and his methods of breaking apart the alliance of the seven major filmpanies, Robert Shaye did not see Eric as a young person not even twenty years old. As a result, he did not dare to take Eric''s script withplete confidence, thinking maybe this was a trap set by Eric. If the film turned out to be a flop, he could not imagine that Eric would not ce the me on him. After all, all the scripts Eric had written so far had been huge hits. After thinking for a moment, Robert Shaye came up with another excuse: "Eric, I think that when this movie is made, it will definitely have a lot of trouble with ssification. You just said that the production cost of this film is over 20 million US dors. If it is ssified as NC-17, we will definitely lose a lot of money. We just had a confrontation with the seven major filmpanies, and we can''t guarantee that they won''t try to hold us back in this area, after all, everyone knows that the film ssificationmittee is controlled by the seven major studios." Eric listened to Robert Shaye''s insincere words and understood what he was worried about. He sighed inwardly and didn''t n to persuade him anymore. Since Robert was not willing, then he would have Jeffrey take over the production of this film. This way, he could also intervene without hesitation and prevent this film from deviating too much from his previous life. Just as he was about to speak, the mobile phone on Eric''s right hand suddenly rang, the ringtone was unusually loud in the conference room where there were only the two of them. Robert Shaye didn''t show any displeasure and gestured to Eric to pick up his phone. Eric was sitting in a small conference room with Robert Shay, discussing a new script that Eric had written. Robert was initially excited about the script, but as Eric revealed that he wouldn''t be putting his name on the project, Robert began to have doubts. He had worked hard to secure a spot for two independent films this year and if this project failed, it would be hard for him to secure another big production in the future. Eric understood Robert''s concerns, but he couldn''t shake off his own doubts about the script. He was concerned about the film''s ssification and the potential bacsh from the major film studios with whom they had recently feuded. As they were discussing the project, Robert came up with an excuse not to proceed with it, citing potential ssification issues and high production costs. Eric, who had grown tired of trying to persuade Robert, suggested that they give the script to Geoffrey to handle. As they were about to continue their conversation, Eric''s phone rang. He hesitated for a moment before answering. It was an unknown number and he had a feeling it might be one of the women he had been with a few nights ago. He made a gesture to Robert and left the conference room to take the call in private. Eric hesitated for a moment before reaching for the mobile phone, silently praying that it wasn''t a debt collector. The night before, Eric had identally ended up in bed with Elizabeth and Julia, and although it was thrilling at the time, he knew he had to make a quick escape in the morning before the two women woke up and found out what had happened. He figured that by leaving early, he would also give them some time to cool down and process the events of the night. But things didn''t go as nned. Eric had expected Elizabeth and Julia toe looking for him the next day to confront him about what had happened, but days passed and there was no sign of them. Instead of feeling relieved, Eric found himself bing increasingly anxious and uneasy. Robert Shea made a gesture to Eric, who then stepped out of the small conference room and walked to the end of the hallway to answer the call. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 293: Eisners Decisiveness

Chapter 293: Eisner''s Decisiveness

After a while, Eric picked up his hand-held phone and returned to the conference room. Robert Shay also put down his coffee cup and looked at Eric curiously. "It''s Michael Eisner," Eric exined with a hint of cheer in his tone. "He wants to invite you to talk?" Robert raised an eyebrow, he knew that Michael Isner was behind the recent trouble. Eric nodded and sat back down in his chair. "Yes." "Did you agree?" Robert asked curiously. "I''ll go listen to what he has to say. It doesn''t hurt. I don''t have anything nned for tonight," Eric said, cing his hand-held phone on the table. "Robert, since you don''t want to take on ''Instinct'', then we need to find a script soon. It''s already March, if we don''t finalize the project soon, it will be hard to make the summer release." After a while, Eric picked up his hand-held phone and returned to the conference room. Robert Shay also put down his coffee cup and looked at Eric curiously. "It''s Michael Eisner," Eric exined with a hint of cheer in his tone. "He wants to invite you to talk?" Robert raised an eyebrow, he knew that Michael Eisner was behind the recent trouble. Eric nodded and sat back down in his chair. "Yes." "Did you agree?" Robert asked curiously. "I''ll go listen to what he has to say. It doesn''t hurt. I don''t have anything nned for tonight," Eric said, cing his hand-held phone on the table. "Robert, since you don''t want to take on ''Basic Instinct'', then we need to find a script soon. It''s already March, if we don''t finalize the project soon, it will be hard to make the summer release." Robert felt a sense of relief that Eric was no longer pushing the script for "Basic Instinct" on him, but at the same time, he couldn''t help but feel a twinge of disappointment. After all, it was a script that Eric had personally written. However, he quickly adjusted his emotions and said, "I understand. I''ve collected six more scripts these past few days, I''ll have my assistant give them to you, and you can help me take a look." Eric shook his head. "No need. I think it''s better for you to personally choose. I can''t guarantee that the movie will be sessful. Just pick a script and bring it to me for signing." Robert hesitated for a moment and then understood that Eric was preparing topletely let go. From now on, the sess or failure of the film would have nothing to do with Eric, and he himself would have to bear full responsibility. But Robert was not apletely irresponsible person. After a moment of hesitation, he nodded, "Okay, I''ll choose the script as soon as possible." .... .... After work, Eric drove back to Malibu, but his destination was not his own mansion. Instead, it was a luxurious house belonging to Michael Eisner. "Eric, I''m d you coulde. Pleasee in," The butler led Eric just as he walked into the door, Michael Eisner greeted him with a big smile. "Hello, Mr. Eisner," Eric gave a polite smile and shook hands with Michael Eisner. Michael Eisner paid no attention to Eric''s coldness. He still said with a smile on his face, "Eric, I specially invited a famous French chef to prepare tonight''s dinner. Let''s go inside." Eric nodded and followed Michael Eisner to the dining room. During the entire dinner, except for the asional appearance of butlers, there were only two people in the dining room, Michael Eisner and Eric. Michael Eisner skillfully introduced the delicacies of each French dish to Eric. After the meal, he even specially invited the French chef with a certain high chef hat to take a photo with them. While admiring Michael Eisner''s patience in his heart, Eric also enjoyed the dinner without making a sound. After all, the initiative was in his hands now. After dinner, Michael Eisner took Eric to his study. After the butler finished serving coffee and left, Michael Eisner said, "Eric, now that things have passed, I think we should talk about cooperation." Eric''s mouth finally hung a hint of a mocking smile, "Cooperation?" Michael Eisner still smiled and said, "Yes, cooperation. Eric, there are no eternal enemies in this world, only eternal interests. Although this is the diplomatic strategy of the United Kingdom, I think it''s also applicable topanies." "There are no eternal enemies, only eternal interests." Eric shook his head andughed a few times, then continued, "Mr. Eisner, if you have a choice to cooperate with your friends or neutral parties, would you still cooperate with your enemies?" "Of course not," Michael Eisner said, "However, Eric, do you think there are friends in Hollywood? Although you cooperated with Fox very happily, believe me, as long as there is an opportunity, Murdoch will definitely stab a knife in the back of Firefly. " "I know that too, so I will try not to give Mr. Murdoch this opportunity. At the same time, for enemies who have already stabbed me in the back, I will be even less likely to give them a chance," Eric said casually while sipping his coffee. Michael Eisner heard Eric say this and still kept a smile on his face. "Eric, I''m sure you know some things too and I don''t deny it. So, I think we should reconcile." "Reconcile?" Eric raised his head and asked. "How can we reconcile?" Michael Eisner said confidently, "What do you think about the script for ''Ghost''?" Eric shook his head without hesitation. "Mr. Eisner, I don''t need a script and I''m not interested in coborating with Disney. Without ''Ghost'', I''ll choose something else. And I can guarantee that Disney won''t be able to produce the version of the film that I have in mind. Maybe you''ll make a small profit, but it''s impossible for it to be a ssic and even more impossible for it to be a big hit." "No, no, no, Eric, I don''t think you understood me fully. I mean, Disney will transfer the script of ''Ghost'' to you, and then we reconcile, how about that?" Eric finally raised his head in surprise and saw Michael Eisner''s confident gaze. He then thought of another question: "Mr. Eisner, I think Disney must have spent a lot of money to buy the script of ''Ghost'', maybe even promised Bruce Joel Rubin a portion of the profit, right?" "Yes," Michael Eisner nodded, "One million dors in cash and 3% of North American profits." Eric calcted, if it followed the performance of the previous life, then that money would add up to more than three million dors, maybe for future profits it''s not much, but for Disney, who doesn''t know the oue, the price is quite unreasonable. Seeing that Eric was silent, Michael Eisner said, "Eric, Disney is very sincere, so as long as we reconcile, I''ll transfer the script to Firefly for free." "Then what about your contract? "Eric asked unconsciously, "I think Bruce Joel Rubin won''t be willing." "That''s actually easy to solve. Disney will transfer the script to Firefly and after the movie is produced, Disney will handle distribution. That way, Bruce Joel Rubin''s share can be allocated from Disney''s portion of the profits. How does that sound?" "Firefly and Disney will jointly distribute, and the movie rights belong to Firefly," Eric quickly thought and said, since Michael Eisner could make such a bold choice, he himself should not be petty. On the other hand, if the movie ispletely handed over to Disney for distribution, although it would maximize profits, it would mean that Firefly''s own channels would not be expanded. And if this situation continues, Firefly will definitely be like the Dream Factory in the past, able to produce good movies but without enough strength to distribute them, struggling to survive among the major moviepanies. Furthermore, these years are the best andst opportunity to expand Firefly''s distribution channels because the cost of movie production in the early 1990s is not too high. Therefore, Eric decided that even if he earns less in these years, he will expand Firefly''s distribution channels. Otherwise, in thete 1990s, when special effects blockbusters rise, the production cost that easily reaches hundreds of millions of dors, if there is no own distribution channel, the situation will be very tragic. Most of the profits will be stripped away by the major moviepanies that control the distribution channels, and at the end, the productionpany will even find that they can''t even recover the production cost. Hearing Eric''s tone loosen, Michael Eisner nodded without hesitation: "No problem." With Michael Eisner''s words, the atmosphere between the two suddenly became a bit silent. Michael Eisner''s own goal was achieved and Eric, who originally wanted to make Michael Eisner difficult, also gave up. Finishing the coffee in front of him, Eric stood up and said, "So, Mr. Eisner, there''s nothing else, I''ll go back now." "I''ll see you off," Michael Eisner stood up as well. As Michael Eisner walked Eric out of his mansion, he finally let out a sigh and returned to his study in silence. He picked up a few unassuming folders that were sitting in the corner of his desk. Inside, were several movie project proposals for "Ghost" made by Disney directors. Michael Eisner was one of the few studio heads who knew Eric best and had the most insight into his personal potential. That''s why he had tried to join forces with other studios to suppress Eric''spany, Firefly, earlier in the year. Unfortunately, the n had failed due to some oversights. But when he heard the news that Rupert Murdoch had reached out to Eric, Michael Eisner quickly made the decision to reconcile with him. After all, as he had said before, there are no permanent enemies, only permanent interests. Eisner had not originally nned to use "Ghost" as a bargaining chip for reconciliation, but after having several well-known directors at Disney study the script, none of the project proposals they hade up with were satisfactory to Eisner. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 294: What a Coincidence

Chapter 294: What a Coincidence

Furthermore, in the contract signed between Disney and Bruce Joel Rubin, there is also a use that Eric must personally serve as the director of this film. If the designated directors coulde up with a satisfactory n, Michael Eisner would not mind breaking the contract and forcing Disney''s directors to take over the script, but unfortunately, this was not the case. So, Michael Eisner made a decisive decision today. After all, if Disney forcibly produced it, the final results would be average, so it would be better to give the script to Eric to produce. After all, Eric still has a very strong box office guarantee. Sitting in the study for a long time, Michael Eisner took the proposal documents from the file folder and threw them into the trash can next to him before getting up and leaving the room. .... .... In the middle of March, after a month-long investigation, the Federal Trade Commission announced its decision on the alleged monopolistic practices of Firefly and UTA. The FTC did not impose harsh penalties on Eric due to the loss of support from several major corporations and a series of public pressures.In addition to requiring Eric to relinquish all shares of UTA, he was also fined a symbolic $1 million. After the decision was announced, Eric did not object and promptly paid the $10 million fine. He then sold 90% of UTA''s shares to ICM, one of Hollywood''s top three talent agencies, for $30 million. At the same time, Sony Pictures and Firefly also reached a settlement on the distribution of profits from the film "Running Out of Time." A weekter, Sony settled the $88 million distribution deal for the film. As for the other threewsuits Eric was facing, two of the intiffs withdrew theirwsuits, and the third case, regarding a piece ofnd in Marlborough Corner, was dismissed due to ack of evidence. The TV show "X Files," a coboration between Firefly and Fox, had begun filming. Another show, "Who Wants to be a Millionaire," had begun a massive publicity campaign since early March, although some of the show''s managers had suggested inviting some celebrities as guest questioners for the first episode. However, this proposal was immediately rejected by Eric. Inviting celebrities may attract some attention, but it would also make the show lose its sense of reality. After all, the show''s selling point is the overnight wealth of themon people, so the show team still adopts the national selection method and sets up registration points all over North America. Disney then quickly announced that they would be coborating with Firefly to release Eric Williams'' new film, "Ghost." Thus, the two-month-long storm targeting Eric and the firefly that began on New Year''s Day haspletely dissipated. After a series of prelude awards in the award season, on March 26, 1990, the 62nd Academy Awards ceremony was held at the Los Angeles Music Center. Eric fastened the buttons on his tuxedo as he stepped out of the limousine. Cheers erupted from both sides of the red carpet and Eric could barely hear someone singing "New Divide" with all their might. He smiled and waved at the crowd as he walked past them, not stopping for too long. He continued on to the red carpet, where the disappointment of the journalists in the interview area was palpable. What was even more disappointing for them was that Eric had not brought a date with him, leaving them with less to talk about. Despite his young age, Eric''s status and wealth were well-known, and since his break-up with Aniston, the question of who would be able to live in Eric''s "City of Freedom" located on the Malibu coast, had been a topic of interest for the gossip media. If someone had known this information, they could have made a good profit off of it now. As he neared the end of the red carpet, Eric was stopped by the NBC host in charge of broadcasting the Oscars this year, and was politely invited to the interview area. "Mr. Williams, hello. This is your second time on the Oscars red carpet, do you feel any different?" The female host, dressed in a ck tuxedo, asked into the microphone. Eric smiled and said, "Of course, the fans have be even more enthusiastic, and I want to thank everyone for their support during this time." The host understood what Eric meant, and did not continue with the topic, as NBC was not innocent in the recent scandal. "So, Mr. Williams, can you talk about your expectations for tonight''s awards? You have not only been nominated for Best Original Screeny and Best Adapted Screeny, but you also unexpectedly received a nomination for Best Original Score, it''s truly surprising." Eric heard the question, responded with the standard, clichd answer that everyone would say, such as waiting to see if the judges liked his work. He then answered a few more questions before the host reluctantly let him leave. As soon as he walked into the waiting area, Eric felt countless eyes on him. He gave a warm, unfocused smile to the crowd, then headed towards the groups of people associated with the movie "Firefly." The men were all friendly, with Jonathan Demme, Al Pacino, and Tom Hanks among those who came up to greet him. But the women were more reserved, knowing that they were still in an area where they could be photographed by the media. After chatting with the men, Eric turned his attention to the women. Viginia was standing quietly on the outskirts of the crowd, her face bearing a faint smile and an air of detachment. Nicole looked eager and excited, but seemed to be holding back for some reason, standing still and watching Eric with a mixture of emotions in her eyes. As for Julia, she was now intimately linked with Elizabeth, and the two women looked at Eric with aplex mix of emotions in their eyes. After thinking for a moment, Eric decided to walk over to Julia and Elizabeth. "Julia, Liz, I know it may bete, but I still want to apologize," he said. Hearing Eric''s words, Julia tightened her grip on Elizabeth''s arm and stepped back slightly. Elizabeth stepped forward, like a protective hen, and whispered, "Mr. Williams, there''s no need for an apology, we just hope you stay away from us in the future, and we would be grateful." "Of course, no problem," Eric raised his hand and touched his nose; he felt strange, but he couldn''t tell what was wrong, but he was sure of one thing: "By the way, Liz, how did you end up here?" Eric asked, trying to make small talk. "Hmph, I have my ways," Elizabeth said, pulling Julia, who had been silent all this time, and walked away. Everyone thought that Eric had been rejected by the two women, and they all had a teasing expression on their faces. Eric shrugged indifferently and greeted Nick, then walked over to Virginia''s side. "Virginia, I''m sorry. I wasn''t able to attend the premiere of ''Reservoir Dogs'' at the beginning of the month," Eric said apologetically as he walked up to the woman. As the muse of the talented Quentin, "Reservoir Dogs" had not only won the Special Jury Prize at the January Sundance Film Festival, but it also opened on 500 screens in North America, thanks in part to Eric''s support. Virginia had attended the premiere specifically to support her brother, who was in the cast, and had even invited Eric toe along. But even though the storm had passed, Eric still couldn''t spare the energy to attend the premiere of ''Reservoir Dogs." After being promoted by the firefly, "Reservoir Dogs" had a box office of over six million dors in its first week. Quentin Tarantino also became a first-line director because of the film''s single-week box office of more than 10,000 dors. He is currently working on his next script, of course, with Firefly as the investor. Eric is not sure if Quentin can write "Pulp Fiction" again. After all, because of Eric''s butterfly effect, although "Reservoir Dogs" was not blown away by the "butterfly" wings, "Pulp Fiction" was hanging. Eric also decided that if he had time, he would talk to Quentin, and if Quentin didn''t have this idea, he would write the script himself. "It doesn''t matter; Iter regretted it a little; you must have a lot of things to do; how can you possibly spare time to attend the premiere?" Virginia spoke softly. Eric smiled, thinking that Michael Madsen would not say such a thingit was probably the girl''s own idea. He also paid attention to the situation of "Reservoir Dogs" during this period of time. Following the release of "Reservoir Dogs," Michael Madsen stated that he did not want to work with Quentin again and even called Quentin Tarantino a scumbag in front of other creators during a promotion of the film and an interview with the crew on a talk show. Michael Madsen nearly copsed while filming the scene of the kidnapped police officer''s murder because of some lines. However, Quentin also stated on the spot that he loved thebel of "asshole," and no one knew whether he was joking or not. With too many people around, Eric couldn''t make any intimate moves and chatted casually with Virginia. The crowd began to enter the Los Angeles Music Hall. "What a coincidence, we sat togetherst time," Eric said as he sat down next to Virginia after finding his seat in the music hall lobby. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 295: Accident

Chapter 295: ident

"Can I sit next to you next time?" Now that the reporters were gone, Virginia rxed a bit and gave Eric a flirtatious look. Eric smiled and took Virginia''s hand in his, squeezing it gently. "Of course, as long as you want to." Virginia looked around. The ceremony was about to start in a few minutes, and everyone around her was familiar. So, she didn''t pull away and allowed Eric to hold her hand. It was 4:30 p.m. Pacific Time, the 62nd Academy Awards ceremony officially began. Learning from thest ceremony, this time, the ceremony once again had a host, Billy Crystal. Eric remembered that Billy Crystal had hosted the Oscars nine times before. Many people are puzzled as to how this rtively unknown Hollywood figure always manages to appear on the stage of the Oscars ceremony. In fact, the host of the Oscars does not necessarily have to be a Hollywood actor. Many times, it is the host of a talk show. Of course, Billy Crystal and another famous Oscar host, Bob Hope, can be said to be the most famous hosts in Hollywood. In addition to his actor identity, Billy Crystal is also a famous host of shows such as "Saturday Night Live". The show began, as usual, with a medley of nominated films, with Crystal singing and praising films such as "My Left Foot," "Steel Magnolias," "The Others," "Driving Miss Daisy," and so on. Because the lyrics were very wonderful, and he made a few jokes to the guests below, it made people listen with interest. After the climax of the Best Supporting Actor award, there was a series of unimportant small awards. It wasn''t until more than 20 minutester, when famous actor Steve Martin, also known as "the Hollywood elder statesman," took the stage, that Eric felt a little more alert. Because the next award was for best original score. The piece "Silent Love" that Eric copied from "Running Out of Time" was nominated. "An outstanding score can make a movie even more exceptional, so let''s take a look at which films were nominated for this category," Steve Martin said, gesturing towards the big screen as clips from the nominated films'' scores began to y. "Nominated for Best Original Score are ''Kiss the Girl'' from The Little Mermaid, ''I See Your Smile'' from Parenthood, ''I Was Once That Girl'' from Second Spring, and ''Silent Love'' from Running Out of Time." After introducing the nominees, Steve Martin opened the envelope and looked inside, his expression slightly surprised. He then looked out at the audience, his gaze briefly locking onto Eric before quickly looking away. "And the winner for best original score is: ''Silent Love'' from Running Out of Time," he announced. Wow - before the music for Silent Love had even begun to y, the entire hall erupted into a unified gasp of surprise, and countless eyes turned towards Eric. Eric felt a sense of disbelief as he stood up. He quickly hugged those around him, smiling as he made his way to the stage. After epting the small golden statue from the award presenter, Eric approached the microphone. He quickly organized his thoughts and scanned the crowd before smiling and saying, "This is truly unexpected; I never thought that my first Oscar award would be for Best Original Score, but this little golden statue is heavier than I imagined." There was a lightughter from the crowd. Once theughter had subsided, Eric continued, "Over a year ago, I was just a young adult who had recently lost my father and dropped out of school to work at an Italian restaurant. But one day, I realized that I couldn''t continue living like this, I had to do something, and that desire was incredibly strong. So, I began trying to write my first novel and script. Luckily, with the help of some people, I was able to seed and make it to where I am today. I''ve always loved music, and after receiving the paycheck for my role in the movie 17 Again, I was able to buy my first piano. In my free time, I would often y with some melodies and clumsily write them down on sheet music. The theme song for the movie "Silent Love" is the product of this inspiration. I am not a professional musician, so receiving this award is very unexpected. I would like to thank everyone who has helped me along the way, including Mr. Michael Kross who helped me publish my first book, James Brook and Penelope Marshall who gave me the opportunity to enter Hollywood, and Geoffrey Hanson who helped meplete my first movie and then supported me silently in the following year. Andstly, I want to thank all the beautiful women in my movie. Oh, well, don''tugh, I''m serious. Thank you all. Thank you everyone." Despite the fact that he had not prepared a draft, Eric finished his eptance speech quickly and then walked backstage with the two award presenters. When Eric returned to his seat, the award for best makeup, which came immediately after the best soundtrack, had already been awarded, and the guests were introducing the nominees for the best foreignnguage film. As two people that Eric wasn''t too familiar with announced the winner for best foreignnguage film, "Camille udel," Eric looked at the screen and saw the somewhat nervous woman, and his expression moved slightly. "What''s wrong? Another inspiration?" Virginia asked with a hint of teasing in her tone. "Nothing," Eric shook his head, "just suddenly thinking of a few people." "Why not just say it? You''re thinking about women," Virginia teasingly added. Eric nodded, he had indeed thought about women. On the big screen, Isabelle Adjani was appearing, along with two other women, Sophie Marceau and Monica Belli. Eric had always had a feeling that these three women had a lot inmon, even though Isabelle Adjani''s acting was the best, Sophie Marceau''s was second, and Monica Belli was just a decorative vase. However, in terms of appearance, the three of them had many simrities. Eric had read in a previous life that someone hadmented that Isabelle Adjani looked like abination of Sophie Marceau and Monica Belli. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 296: Oscar (1)

Chapter 296: Oscar (1)

Eric was deep in thought,paring and contrasting the various screen images of the three Europeans, while also searching for the figure of Isabelle Adjani. If it weren''t for the butterfly effect, then ording to time, the actress who had won the French film industry''s highest honor, the Csar Award, several times should have met and fallen in love with Daniel Day-Lewisst year. However, now it''s hard to say. After a long time of searching, Eric still hadn''t found Isabelle Adjani''s figure, when the woman sitting next to him, Virginia, poked him in the side: "Eric, it''s the award for Best Supporting Actress." Eric quickly shifted his attention to the stage, where the presenter for the award for Best Supporting Actress, Kevin Kline, had finished his introduction and had started announcing the nominees: "Nominated for this year''s Oscar for Best Supporting Actress are Brenda Fricker, ''My Left Foot''; Anjelica Huston, ''Enemies, A Love Story''; Lina Olin, ''Enemies, A Love Story''; Julia Roberts, ''Steel Magnolias'' and Diana West, ''Home Sweet Home''." As Kevin. Kline introduced them, the nominees for the best supporting actress appeared one by one on the big screen behind him. Although the movie "Enemy, A Love Story" had two nominations for the best supporting actress, Eric was slightly surprised. However, Eric paid more attention to Brenda Fricker, who won the Academy Award for Best Supporting Actress for "My Left Foot." "My Left Foot" was the first very sessful Oscar-chasing movie that Mira MacKs directed, which not only won the five nominations of best picture, best director, best actor, best actress and best adapted screeny, but also, Eric clearly remembered, Daniel Day-Lewis won his first Academy Award for Best Actor for this movie. As for the other award results, Eric is not very clear. Therefore, the nomination of "My Left Foot" for Best Supporting Actress is undoubtedly the greatest threat to Julia. When the nominations for this year''s Academy Awards were announced, Eric was still in the midst of the scandal and unable to focus on the public rtions for the awards. At the time, Disney, which distributed the film, was even less likely to do public rtions for the film. So now, all he could do was look and see if Robert Shaye, who has ten more years of film distribution experience than the Weinstein brothers, can defeat the Weinstein brothers in terms of award public rtions. Eric looked at Julia''s image on the big screen, the woman was nervously staring at the stage, but her body was slightly tilted. Eric curiously found Julia''s position and looked over. It turned out that the woman was leaning against Elizabeth next to her, and Eric could still see the two women''s arms intertwined from the gap in the seat. The strange feeling he had when he met them at the end of the red carpet came to mind again. But before Eric had time to think more, Kevin. Kline opened the envelope and announced: "The winner of this year''s Academy Award for Best Supporting Actress is Julia Roberts." The music and apuse erupted simultaneously, and in the front row, Julia was surprised, covering her mouth and leaning back in her chair. After a moment, she stood up with encouragement from those around her and hugged the cast of "Steel Magnolias" one by one before walking to the stage. Although she didn''t turn to look at him once during the whole process, Eric wasn''t angry. In fact, he felt a sense of relief. At least this oue proved that Robert Shea''s abilities in award PR were not much worse than Wayne''s brothers. On stage, Julia carefully held her little golden man and finished her eptance speech. She walked off the stage with the award presenter, and the next round of irrelevant technical awards began. A few minutester, Julia walked out of the stage''s left backstage exit and came over to the cast side. Finally, she looked at Eric, her eyes filled with gratitude, but before Eric could respond, a white arm pulled her away and he saw Elizabeth turning her head, ring at him fiercely. "Eric, did you do something excessive again? Why do Julia and Miss Elizabeth both seem to have a problem with you?" Observing the reactions of the two women, Virginia asked in a low voice. Eric scowled at Virginia, "Why do you say ''again?''"Do I often do something excessive?" Virginia gave him a flirtatious roll of the eyes, "You tell me?" Eric clenched his fists together. Making a cracking sound, he said, "It seems that you have some opinions about me. Hey,e to my ce tonight and we''ll discuss what these ''excessive things'' you''re talking about are." Hearing Eric''s words, Virginia''s face turned red. She didn''t refute him, although her ce was very close to Eric''s Pointed Manor, but so far Virginia had never been there. When Eric just moved, the woman either went to her parents'' ce to spend the holiday together or was busy promoting "The Others" everywhere. When he finally had some free time and returned to Los Angeles, Eric encountered that scandal again. It had been several months since theyst had any physical intimacy. As a ripe woman like Virginia, to say she didn''t want it would definitely be false. However, due to Eric''s previous words and Virginia''s own Hollywood career, which had just begun to take off with "The Others," Virginia didn''t leave the idea of Eric. In any case, the little man beside her, although sometimes detestable, was still very considerate most of the time. As a series of technical awards such as Best Photography and Best Sound Effects were handed out, the ceremony slowly reached its climax. After Tom Hanks and Meryl Streep presented the award for best photography together, the famous "Roman Holiday" male lead, Gregory Peck, went on stage. Although Sigourney Weaver had just won nominations for both Best Actress and Best Supporting Actress at the Golden Globe Awards for her roles in "Goris in the Mist" and "Working Girl", Eric knew that it would be unlikely for her to win both categories at the Oscars, an award show that is known to be more conservative. Even more so, at only 23 years old, Julia Roberts'' chances of winning Best Supporting Actress and simultaneously receiving a nomination for Best Actress were slim. The likelihood of that happening was even less likely than an alien invasion. As Eric''s thoughts drifted, Gregory Peck, the famous lead actor of "Roman Holiday," had finished announcing the nominees for Best Actress. Many media outlets had predicted that this year''s Oscar winner for Best Actress would likely be Jessica Tandy, who had given an outstanding performance in "Driving Miss Daisy." Tandy, an 81-year-old actress known as the "First Lady of Broadway," had a brilliant acting career that was evident from her nickname alone. Even if Jessica Tandy, who had just won the Best Supporting Actress award for her role in "Driving Miss Daisy," hadn''t been nominated, Eric knew that Julia would not have won the award for Best Actress. Another strong contender was Isabelle Adjani for her role in "Camille udel." Hollywood often discriminates against foreign actors, but if Tandy hadn''t been a strongpetitor, the Academy would have likely given the award to Adjani. On stage, Gregory Peck slowly opened the envelope and, in the tense silence, announced the winner: "The winner of the Best Actress award is Jessica Tandy." Apuse erupted once again as the 81-year-old Tandy, known as "The First Lady of Broadway," slowly stood up and made her way to the stage, surrounded by the cast and crew of "Driving Miss Daisy." Eric also looked toward the cast of "Driving Miss Daisy" like everyone else. His gaze was fixed on Morgan Freeman, the male lead of the film. Morgan Freeman, an old Hollywood veteran, began performing on stage at the age of eight, but his career had been rocky. It wasn''t until 1987, at the age of fifty, that Morgan Freeman made a name for himself in Hollywood and became known as the most legendary "inspirational guy" in Hollywood. After Jessica Tandy''s speech, she walked off the stage with the help of the guests. Host Billy Cristal followed them and walked up on stage. He silently watched as the figures of Jessica Tandy and herpanions disappearedpletely. Only then did Billy Cristal turn to the microphone and, without making any jokes, said in a serious tone, "There is no doubt that ''Driving Miss Daisy'' is a very excellent film, and it has also brought two very excellent actors to the forefront. In addition to thedy who just left, Jessica Tandy, there is also Mr. Morgan Freeman, who is sitting here with us. Mr. Morgan Freeman is 53 years old this year, and if we add in Jessica Tandy''s age, then this pair of male and female leads, with an average age of 67, is definitely the film with the highest average age to win both the male and female lead Oscar in history." Billy Cristal finished speaking, and the audience immediately erupted in apuse filled with respect. Although Morgan Freeman still maintained a dignified posture, the excitement on his face was hard to hide. After all, from the beginning of his own acting career to finally receiving recognition, the time span of several decades was truly too long. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 297: Oscar (2)

Chapter 297: Oscar (2)

Billy Cristo waited patiently for the apuse to die down before speaking, "So, Hollywood is a ce full of dreams. Whether you''re under 20 or over 80, as long as you have talent and are willing to work hard, you will be recognized." Another round of apuse erupted, many of the audience''s eyes turned towards Eric, it was clear that Cristo''s mention of "under 20" was referring to him. The camera lens also turned towards Eric. Eric gracefully pped his hands, a faint smile on his lips, acknowledging the recognition. Cristo finished his speech, and another group of award presenters came on stage, and he left the stage. After a few insignificant awards, another Hollywood legend, actress Jane Ford, stepped onto the stage. Eric couldn''t help but sit up straight, because the next two awards were the most important ones for him at this year''s Oscars. Although Eric directed four films this year, and the studio submitted "Pretty Woman" and "Running Out of Time" for best director, he didn''t receive a nomination. Therefore, the two best screeny awards that Eric received for "The Others" and "Scent of a Woman" became the most important nominations for him at this year''s Oscars. Born into a family of actors, Jane Ford and Morgan Freeman are about the same age, but Jane Ford only looks like she''s in her forties. Her ck, slim-fit long dress gave the actress a hint of her youthful charm. "This year is undoubtedly a bountiful year for Hollywood, not only did the domestic box office first exceed 5 billion US dors, but also more excellent films emerged than in previous years. And no matter any film that can be called excellent, it can''t be separated from a good script. The script is the foundation of a film. So, let''s take a look at the films that have been nominated for the best adapted screeny at the Oscars." Jane Ford said and slightly tilted her body. She gestured towards the big screen and continued to read: "The nominees for best adapted screeny are: "Driving Miss Daisy", Alfred Uhry; "Enemies, A Love Story", Roger Simon; "Field of Dreams", Phil Alden Robinson; "My Left Foot", Jim Sheridan; "Scent of a Woman", Eric Williams." The camera pans to the five nominees on the big screen. Eric''s eyes are fixed on the stage, trying to appear nonchnt, but his hands, resting on his knees, are clenched into fists due to the tense atmosphere. The Best Adapted Screeny and Best Original Screeny awards may not be as highly anticipated as the final four major awards, but they hold more weight than the earlier technical award for Best Score. After introducing the nominees, J.F. quickly opened the envelope and announced into the microphone, "The Oscar for Best Adapted Screeny goes to: ''Driving Miss Daisy''." Amidst the thunderous apuse, Eric''s heart dropped. ''Scent of a Woman'' was the likely winner in this category. Everyone knows that horror films aren''t typically favored by the Academy. He had considered submitting ''Sleepless in Seattle'' or ''Pretty Woman'' for Best Original Screeny, as romance films are more popr, but ultimately decided to submit ''The Others'' for that category instead. After all, the likelihood of a romantic movie winning the award for Best Original Screeny is low, and although "The Others" is a horror film, the screeny is undoubtedly more exciting than traditional horror films, and the likelihood of winning an award is also higher than the other two romantic films. Although the Oscars also do not prohibit Eric from submitting the other two romantic films together, and the likelihood of being nominated is also not small, but that way would only dilute the number of votes, making the chances of several script award-winning very low. But Eric now finds that, despite his calctions, he has overlooked another fact. Regardless of whether it is Best Original Screeny or Best Adapted Screeny, the voters are members of the Screenwriters Guild. Therefore, after he relied on "Scent of a Woman" and "The Others" to simultaneously win the nomination for Best Screeny, although the screenwriters with voting rights will consider that he has received two nominations, making it inappropriate for all his nominations to fall short, at least they will vote for one of the two films. But Eric can also be sure that most screenwriters will not vote for both scripts at the same time and will only choose one of the "Scent of a Woman" and "The Others" scripts. This also means that although the Best Original Screeny and the Best Adapted Screeny are two different awards, the voting for these two awards is still shared. So, without a doubt, if the screenwriters'' guild members were to choose between the two, the more artistically aplished "Scent of a Woman" would undoubtedly receive more votes than "The Others," so since even "Scent of a Woman" did not receive an award, the chances for "The Others" were even less. Eric sighed deeply and shook his head slightly, quickly regaining hisposure and directing his gaze towards the stage. After the award for Best Adapted Screeny, J.F.D. did not leave the stage, but instead continued to announce the nominees for Best Original Screeny: "Nominated for the Oscar for Best Original Screeny are: ''Dead Poets Society,'' Tom Schulman; ''Crimes and Misdemeanors,'' Woody Allen; ''Sex, Lies, and Videotape,'' Steven Soderbergh; ''The Others,'' Eric Williams; ''When Harry Met Sally,'' Nora Ephron." Eric''s face once again appeared on the central screen of the stage, even though many people in the audience could see him on the stage, many people still turned their gaze towards where Eric was sitting. There was no doubt that these people were also aware of Eric''s current situation, and whether anyone was gloating or not is unknown. Eric ignored the nces of others that were not important, he just nodded at a few people in the crew who were rted to him and gave them a reassuring look. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 298: Oscar (3)

Chapter 298: Oscar (3)

Although he held no expectations for the award, Eric''s expression still carried a hint of nervousness. However, he also reassured himself in his mind that he was still young and that winning the award too early wouldn''t be a good thing. On stage, after introducing the nominees for Best Original Screeny, Jane Fonda scanned the crowd briefly. Eric noticed that her gaze lingered on him for a moment, whether intentionally or not, but before he could confirm anything, she lowered her head, opened the envelope, and took out the card with the winner''s name. Her face briefly registered surprise before breaking into a smile and looking at Eric again. Eric was certain that this time it wasn''t his imagination. If that previous nce could have been idental, then this one surely was intentional... His heart racing, Eric unconsciously clenched his fists and stared intently at Jane Fonda. Jane Fonda seemed to sense the growing impatience of the audience and, without further ado, leaned into the microphone and announced, "The Oscar for Best Original Screeny goes to: ''The Others''." The most unlikely thing had happened, most of the people in the Los Angeles Music Hall were Hollywood veterans, and many of them wore expressions of surprise upon hearing the name. Although he had received a hint beforehand, Eric still stared in disbelief until the people around him began to stand up, he followed suit. Apuse erupted like thunder. At the same time, an even more surprising scene also unfolded in the award hall. As Eric stood up, more people followed suit, including the crew of "The Others," "Sleepless in Seattle," "Crimes and Misdemeanors," "Pretty Woman," and other films associated with the Firefly Production Company. The number of people standing reached as far as five rows around Eric. Although some of the people who stood up soon realized that it was inappropriate, sitting down again would have been even worse. So, they stayed standing. Eric briefly hugged a few of the people around him before feeling the pressure of time. He quickly shook hands with the others who stood up, even those who were too far away to do more than touch fingers. Even with this, it took nearly a minute for Eric to sessfully make it onto the stage. Meanwhile, in the audience, the original expressions of doubt, shock and helplessness had mostly turned to envy. A small award for Best Original Screeny had caused such amotion, and from then on, no one dared to underestimate Eric''s position in Hollywood. Eric''s eptance speech was prepared in advance, and it was easier to say than when he received the award for Best Original Score an hour ago. Even as he spoke, Eric couldn''t help but wonder how he had managed to win the award. There was no doubt that this was a result of the Oscar''s distribution of meat. Eric felt that he had underestimated the Oscars, and with his current influence in Hollywood, if he hade away empty-handed in a situation where he had been nominated for two awards, the fairness of the Oscars would once again be questioned. Eric knew that this time, the questioning would not onlye from the media, but perhaps also from the general public. The reason was because of that incident from before. Eric had already gone through a malicious suppression scandal, and if the Oscars let him leave empty-handed despite his two nominations for best screeny, then the public would inevitably have some negative associations, resulting in disappointment towards the Oscars. As for why he didn''t receive the Best Adapted Screeny award for "Scent of a Woman", a film with a greater likelihood of winning, but instead received the Best Original Screeny award for "The Others", Eric understood that this was probably the result of a series of behind-the-scenes games. Although he was very interested in the series of inside stories, Eric knew that he hadn''t yet reached a level where he could touch upon the internal games of the Oscar awards. Thinking this way, he followed Jane Fonda and the award presenters into the backstage. The staff came forward politely to take the small golden statue from Eric''s hand, which did not yet have a namete, and pinned on the gold namete for him. "Mr. Williams, congrattions," Jane Fonda extended her hand with a smile towards Eric. "Ms. Fonda, thank you for the tip you just gave me," Eric replied, trying to maintain a good face despite his anxiety. "I''ve watched many of your movies, ''Coming Home'' and ''Klute'' are great, but my favorite is ''The China Syndrome'', the portrayal of family in the film is very moving." "Thank you for liking it," Jane Fonda''s smile remained, "Mr. Williams, you''re probably going to have a celebration party next, right?" Eric''s expression moved slightly, quickly realizing that this woman was not just passing by to greet him. Although he didn''t know her purpose, being able to establish some connections with a famous Hollywood family was definitely beneficial for him. Eric hesitated for a moment, then said, "Yes, Ms. Fonda, if you have the time, we would be delighted to have youe to our post-ceremony party. It will be held on the third floor of the Beverly Hills hotel." "I''ll be there," Jane Fonda nodded, knowing that Eric was also eager to return to the hall. She didn''t say much more and quickly left. When Eric returned to the award hall, he was disappointed to find that the director of "Born on the Fourth of July," Oliver Stone, was giving his eptance speech on stage. Nearby, Al Pacino from the cast of "Scent of a Woman" gave Eric a sympathetic look. As for Martin Brest, Eric couldn''t read his expression, but he could only assume it was one of disappointment. Speaking of "Born on the Fourth of July," it reminded Eric of the unfortunate Tom Cruise. It was only after watching this movie that Eric remembered that Cruise had originally been nominated for his first Oscar for Best Actor for this film. Unfortunately, due to his role in "The Silence of the Lambs," Cruise missed out on the movie. And while both the firefly and Cruise himself had tried to fight for a nomination for best actor, they were unsessful. Although Tom Hanks won a Golden Globe for best actor in "The Silence of the Lambs," he did not reach the Oscars. Therefore, Eric, who met Cruise a few days ago, had never seen him give him a good face. Cruise had already received enough pay for his role in "The Silence of the Lambs," so Eric, although he was a bit helpless about Cruise not getting an Oscar nomination for best actor, did not think he owed him anything. After all, Cruise''s sry was significantly higher than Hanks''. Thinking this way, the previous winner of the best actress award, Judi Foster, began to introduce the nominations for best actor. Listening to the woman on stage, Eric suddenly thought again that if "The Silence of the Lambs" had been produced and releasedst year, Judi Foster would probably have won the Oscar for best actress. It has to be said that this is a regret. "The nominees for Best Actor are: Morgan Freeman, ''Driving Miss Daisy''; Al Pacino, ''Scent of a Woman''; Daniel Day-Lewis, ''My Left Foot''; Keh Branagh, ''Henry V''; and Robin Williams, ''Dead Poets Society''." As each nominee was announced, a clip of their respective films yed on therge screen behind Judi Dench. Eric looked over at Al Pacino, who sat with a slightly tense posture. He could understand some of Pacino''s emotions; since starting his acting career 17 years ago, Pacino had received five Oscar nominations but had yet to win. It was not an exaggeration to say that the Oscars owed him one. As for Daniel Day-Lewis, the previous year''s Best Actor winner, his performance was undoubtedly outstanding, but his disadvantage was clear. Firstly, being British, he was at a disadvantage with the Academy''s bias towards American actors. There was no denying it. Furthermore, Daniel Day-Lewis was only in his thirties, barely reaching the average age of an Oscar-winning lead actor, making him appear even younger inparison to the fifty-year-old Al Pacino. Lastly, in terms of experience and connections, Daniel Day-Lewis couldn''t possiblypete with Al Pacino who has been in Hollywood for almost twenty years. Eric reflected that the reason why Daniel Day-Lewis had won the award in his previous life wasrgely due to luck, as the Oscars had a rtively weak year. Although he couldn''t recall all the details, Eric could tell from the current list of nominees that most of the films nominated were the same as in his previous life. However, besides "Born on the Fourth of July" which had some fame due to Tom Cruise''s performance, the other films on the list had little impact. This time, things didn''t take Al Pacino by surprise. After Judi Foster opened the envelope, she quickly read out Al Pacino''s name. Amidst the thunderous apuse, Al Pacino didn''t immediately take the stage. Instead, he walked towards the back row where Eric was seated. Realizing what was about to happen, Eric smiled and stood up. Jonathan Demme, who was sitting on the other side of Eric, made way for Al Pacino. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 299: Interesting Things

Chapter 299: Interesting Things

Al Pacino gave Eric a big embrace and said, "Eric, thank you." Eric, who was hugged tightly by Al Pacino, took a deep breath andughed, "Al, this is what you deserve. Even without me, I believe that with your strength, you will eventually get the Oscar for Best Actor." After patting Eric on the back, Al Pacino didn''t say anything else. He looked gratefully at Eric and then walked towards the stage. Eric returned to his seat and watched as Al Pacino approached the stage. As he climbed the stairs, his footsteps were unsteady, and he almost fell, but no one in the hallughed. Instead, the apuse became even more enthusiastic. Taking the little golden man from Judi Foster, Al Pacino walked to the microphone. Although his eyes still had some shine, they became razor-sharp again. Looking at the audience below the stage, Al Pacino took a moment before speaking with generosity, "I''ve been waiting for this day for 17 years..." Although he was extremely excited, Al Pacino didn''t say much. A minuteter, he followed Judy Foster backstage. Later, Michelle Pfeiffer, the winner of this year''s Academy Award for Best Actress, walked onto the stage and after a speech, introduced the live performance of the nominated song "Fly Over the Rainbow". A few minutester, Al Pacino returned to the audience seats as thest and most important award of this year''s Oscars was about to be presented. Warren Beatty and Jack Nicholson walked onto the stage together, after a briefedy skit, they started introducing the list of films nominated for Best Picture. Due to the lengthy, hours-long awards ceremony, the films nominated for Best Picture have already been thoroughly introduced, so this introduction was very brief. The five winning films appeared on the big screen one after another, and Warren Beatty quickly opened the envelope and soon read out the name "Driving Miss Daisy." After Eric''s disappointment at missing a nomination for best director, he was less hopeful for a nomination for best picture. However, when he heard the name "Driving Miss Daisy," his heart was a bit more at ease. This film was a previous winner of the Best Picture award, and Eric didn''t feel too disappointed at its nomination once again. The oue wasn''t so bad after all. Although Eric''s presence at this year''s Oscars brought in many films that were not originally on the list, a closer examination revealed that this year was still a rather low-key Oscars. "Scent of a Woman" was undoubtedly excellent, but its excellence was mainly reflected in Al Pacino''s performance. As far as the film was concerned, it was far from reaching the impact of films like "Schindler''s List," "Forrest Gump," and "Titanic" in the history of the Oscars. As a result, there was no film that dominated the major awards this year, and the Academy divided the four major awards among several different films like pork.Eric was lucky to receive a nomination for best actor. With the conclusion of the final award, the 62nd Oscars ceremony officially came to an end. Some were joyful, while others were disappointed. As Eric walked out, he noticed that this year''s group of people seemed to be the most disappointed. The Weinstein brothers, from the film "My Left Foot", were among them. Although "My Left Foot" had received five nominations, it didn''t win a single award, and it seemed to be due to the attack from the fireflies. For example, Daniel Day-Lewis, who was supposed to win the Best Actor award, had it taken away by Al Pacino. Julia was also named Best Supporting Actress.As for Best Adapted Screeny, Best Director, and Best Picture, although they had nothing to do with the fireflies, "My Left Foot" still didn''t win. Eric had a connection with the Weinstein brothers when they attempted to acquire Miramax, but their offer wasn''t satisfactory to Eric, and the deal didn''t go through. Eric then focused his energy on a new line. Half a yearter, Eric saw the Weinstein brothers again. Harvey and Bob approached Eric, who was part of the firefly group, with a warm greeting, only hesitating briefly. Eric smiled and shook hands with them and also noticed Daniel Day-Lewis'' unhappy gaze towards Al Pacino''s little golden man, but he just smiled. "Mr. Williams, congrattions," said Harvey Weinstein with a smile, showing no sign of disappointment. He squeezed past Jonathan Demme, who was originally standing next to Eric, and faced Eric with aplimenting expression: "Mr. Williams, I regret that we were not able to cooperate sessfully before, but I think perhaps we could find a time to talk about it again someday." Eric raised his eyebrows slightly. Now that the Firefly and the new line have been integrated, although the Firefly will no longer be underestimated, its overall strength still cannot bepared to the seven major filmpanies. Therefore, if they acquire Milo Max from the Weinstein brothers, he doesn''t know where to put the Weinstein brothers. Moreover, Robert Shaye''s operation for the Oscars has also proved that the Firefly''s public rtions ability for the Oscars is not much worse than that of the Weinstein brothers, and even a little stronger. Furthermore, with Eric there in terms of selecting films for the Oscars, his vision will not be much worse than that of the Weinstein brothers. Therefore, Eric is no longer as eager as he was originally to acquire Milo Max. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 300: Its Too Late

Chapter 300: It''s Too Late

The spacious party hall was bustling with people; this was the Oscar celebration party being held by Firefly Film Company. Normally, apart from the winning movie teams, it was only Hollywood''s seven major filmpanies that would host simr parties after the Golden Globes or Oscars, inviting all of Hollywood''s stars to participate. Second and third-tier filmpanies would never do this. This was not a matter of money but a demonstration of strength. If a second or third-tier filmpany held a simr party, they would be in an awkward situation where there were no heavyweight stars to show up, which would be even more embarrassing. But Firefly was different. Although currently still in a second-tier filmpany position, with the huge impact that Firefly has made in awards and box office this year, apart from most of the stars of the original UTA, there were also other Hollywood stars who came to support or look for opportunities. "I feel that the academy is still too conservative. This year, the four movies that you personally directed all achieved great sess at the box office, except for ''Home Alone 2'' which is purely aedy. I think the other three movies deserve a nomination for Best Director, especially "Running out of Time." It''s a shame," Harvey Weinstein said, with a sincere look, as he brought his round face closer to Eric. Eric ran into the Weinstein brothers right after the Oscars ceremony. He originally nned to chat with them, but after they heard that the Firefly was hosting a celebratory party, they brought the entire cast of "My Left Foot" over. Although "My Left Foot" received five nominations, it ultimately went home empty-handed. The Weinsteins cancelled the original celebration party, and no one from the cast of "My Left Foot"ined. Eric, holding a ss of red wine,ughed and said, "Harvey, it''s nothing. I''m so young now, there will be more opportunities in the future. Winning awards too early is not a good thing. It easily causes someone to lose their direction and be stagnant." "No, no, no," Harvey Weinstein immediately shook his head and said, "Eric, actually, I think the Firefly''s awards strategy has several ws. For example, the two Best Screeny nominations you received. If I were in charge, I would not separate a Best Original Screeny and a Best Adapted Screeny. It''s not that your screenys are not good enough, but... both screenys are good enough, this actually caused both nominations to fail. As for the reason, I think you probably know it by now. And "Scent of a Woman," only received a Best Actor nomination, which is also a shame." Eric looked at Daniel Day-Lewis, who was not far away, and said, "I think Mr. Daniel Day-Lewis'' performance in ''My Left Foot'' is also outstanding. If it wasn''t for ''Scent of a Woman'', perhaps he should have been the best actor. It''s said that when Daniel was performing, he was once so immersed in the role that he couldn''t extricate himself. He even really treated himself as a disabled person and often needed help to eat." Harvey Weinstein took a look around, then lowered his voice slightly and said, "Actually, I was originally preparing for the best actor in PR, because although ''My Left Foot'' is good enough, this is after all a British film, and the movie''s protagonist is also an Irish artist. So, although ''My Left Foot'' received five nominations, the most likely is only the best actor, but after ''Scent of a Woman'' appeared, I knew that Daniel''s best actress was definitely hopeless. And the possibility of best film is even lower. So I changed to PR for the best director. Unfortunately, I still couldn''tpete with Oliver Stone in the end. After all, the other side is a big director who has been famous in Hollywood for many years. And Jim Sheridan is directing a movie for the first time. Ultimately, M Max''s luck was not good this time." Eric nodded withoutmenting, continuing to wait for Harvey to continue. He knew that Harvey had prepared so much, and he was definitely not just revealing a little inside information to him. Harvey Weinstein stared intently at Robert Shea, who was animatedly discussing something with a group of people nearby. "Eric," Harvey continued, "I know that the Oscar PR for Fireflies is led by Mr. Shea, but you saw it too. Such an excellent movie as Scent of a Woman, andpared to My Left Foot, it reflects typical American values, and director Martin Brest''s credentials are sufficient. However, it only got the Best Actor award, and both Best Director and Best Picture passed by. This is really unfortunate. If Scent of a Woman had been handled by M Macs, I believe that at least one of the Best Director and Best Picture awards could have been obtained." Eric sighed regretfully after listening to Harvey''s words. "Harvey, what you said is indeed very reasonable, but now Fireflies no longer has M Macs. When I was nning to expand Fireflies, I investigated some of M Macs'' information, knowing that both of you brothers often buy films in Europe or the Far East and then bring them back for domestic distribution. So, you must have a lot of foundation and connections overseas. My original n was for Robert Shea to be responsible for domestic distribution in North America, and for you two brothers to expand overseas channels." Harvey Weinstein listened to Eric''s words, he couldn''t resist sticking out his tongue and licking his interfering lips. The overseas expansion of the Firefly movie was a huge cake. After all, the first few movies that Eric personally directed had about the same box office performance overseas and domestically, and even "Pretty Woman" had a higher box office overseas than domestically, a hundred million US dors. The reason why the Weinstein brothers focused their main energy on selecting art films to hit the Oscars was simply due to theirck of strength. In the end, winning awards to gain fame and then making box office and peripheral profits was also a way of making a difference. After all, the Oscars are held in Hollywood every year. If there is a chance to release a big-sellingmercial film, the Weinstein brothers would definitely change the course without hesitation. "Well... Eric, I think now..." Eric shook his head, "It''s already toote, Harvey, Firefly and the new line are now integrated. Although I am still thergest shareholder of Firefly, I also have to consider Robert''s feelings and the current Firefly. Mira Max''s influence is too weakpared to what it used to be. If we follow the original n, Robert would not be willing for you two brothers to split the overseas release rights." Harvey Weinsteinstein''s face showed a hint of disappointment. He quickly spoke again, "Eric, actually. I''m better at PR awards. Maybe we can..." "Harvey, do you think, so many people are passionate about the Oscars, what''s the ultimate goal?" Eric interrupted. Harvey hesitated for a moment, and said a single word: "Interest." Ericughed, "You see, that''s right. So, any big moviepany, although they value the Oscars, no one puts the Oscars in the first ce, and most of the films they produce aremercial films. The Firefly is the same, and in the next few years, Firefly''s main focus will be onmercial films, waiting until thepany reaches a certain strength and scale, it will venture into the art film sector. Acquiring some honors to add to thepany''s aplishments." "Eric, don''t you think these two things can be done at the same time?" Harvey said unwillingly. "Of course, that''s possible. So, we can still coborate, but merging is not an option. Oh, there is a movie that I really like and its producer is here today. Want me to introduce you?" Harvey Weinstein nodded dejectedly and Eric quickly led Harvey to Elizabeth and Julia, who were sitting on a sofa in the corner whispering something to each other. "Hey, beautifuldies. Can I sit down?" Eric approached them and asked. At the sound of Eric''s voice, Julia stiffened, and Elizabeth raised her leg to kick in his direction. "Get lost, yboy," she said. Eric quickly dodged to the side. He saw the sharp ck stiletto and felt a cold sweat break out. Suddenly, he realized that these two women seemed to have kicked him in the same leg and that people are often judged based on thepany they keep. "Liz,e on, I''ve already apologized. Hey, let me introduce a person to you." Elizabeth reluctantly stood up as she heard Eric speak, and Julia also rose to her feet. Her gaze drifted aimlessly for a moment before finally focusing on Eric''s face, forcing a weak smile. Elizabeth nced at the fat man beside Eric. "You mean Harvey Weinstein?" Elizabeth rified. "I know him." But Harvey looked at Eric with confusion. In Hollywood, there were few women who would dare to kick Eric without hesitation, so he was extremely curious about Elizabeth''s identity. Eric quickly exined, "Harvey, this is Elizabeth Murdoch, the second daughter of Mr. Rupert Murdoch." "Ah, Miss Murdoch, hello, I never expected you to know me, it''s really an honor," Harvey said with a smiling face as he extended his fat hand. Elizabeth awkwardly shook hands with Harvey, then turned her gaze back to Eric, "What''s up?" "So, I think that after "The Silence of the Lambs" is produced, it will definitely have some impact at next year''s Oscars. And Harvey is very skilled in public rtions, so that''s why I introduced you guys to meet him." "Oh..." Elizabeth sighed with a slightly angry expression, "So, Firefly made some money after the release and then stopped caring about awards?" Eric waved his hand, "Of course not, Lizzie, you misunderstood. I mean, Harvey is really good at handling award PR, so I want to give next year''s "The Silence of the Lambs" award PR to them. Rest assured, all PR fees will be paid by Firefly." After listening to Eric, Elizabeth snorted, raised her chin and said, "That''s about it." She then turned her gaze to Harvey Weinstein and had a questioning look in her eyes. Harvey Weinstein was overjoyed at the opportunity to establish a rtionship with the princess of the news group. Despite only hearing a few words, Harvey was keenly aware that Elizabeth was now a producer and this was a great opportunity. With the financial power of the Murdoch family, wouldn''t it be a waste to continue causing trouble for M Maxwell? Thinking about these things, Harvey''s face became more polite, with a smile in every wrinkle on his chubby face. "I have no problems here, Miss Murdoch. It''s an honor to work with you." When things were said, Elizabeth gestured to Eric and Harvey. "Well, if there''s nothing else, you can leave." The two big men looked at each other, and Harvey thought in his heart that he still needed to leave a contact. Eric remembered the scene from his past life when he saw the pce drama and the queen made the little eunuch kneel. Elizabeth was about to sit down with Julia, but she suddenly remembered something and told Eric: "Wait, I have some questions for you." Harvey, seeing the situation, had no choice but to temporarily leave. After Harvey left, Elizabeth asked: "Mr. Williams, I heard that "Untangled Souls" has started." Eric nodded cooperatively and said: "Yes, Miss Murdoch, do you have any orders?" Before Elizabeth could say anything, Julia was amused by the two people''s demeanor and burst outughing. The atmosphere was ruined, and Elizabeth pretended to be angry, until Julia begged for mercy whileughing. "Hey, in public like this, you two should watch your influence," Harvey said as he returned. "Mind your own business, you jerk," Elizabeth replied. Eric raised his hand in surrender and said with a forced smile, "Alright, I give up. Queen, please tell me what''s going on." He couldn''t help but think, ''Once a free bird, always in debt.'' There was no way he could keep up with their level of cunning. "I''m talking about the female lead in your next movie. What do you think of Julia?" asked Elizabeth. Eric looked at Julia and was about to respond when Elizabeth raised her eyebrows, "You''re not allowed to disagree. This role is set in stone." Julia quickly reacted and pulled Elizabeth back, "Liz, don''t be like that. And I don''t want to be involved with... " Elizabethforted her by patting her thigh and said, "Rx, I''ll be there with you during the shoot. I won''t give any chance to those miserable guys again." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 301: Audition Chance

Chapter 301: Audition Chance

Eric spread his hands helplessly, "But, Julia is really not suitable." Hearing Eric say this, Julia''s eyes still showed a sh of disappointment, even though she was not very willing at heart. Elizabeth, however, asked, "So where isn''t she suitable?" "Julia ispletely different from the female lead I imagined. In my imagination, the female lead should have short hair first." Elizabeth said stubbornly, "It''s just hair, it can be cut. Julia cut her hairst year when she filmed "Steel Magnolias." You''re just forcing your argument." "Okay, okay. Actually, the character I imagined should be like this," Eric looked around, then dipped his fingers in the red wine in the cup and quickly drew on the coffee table in front of the three of them. Soon, the image of Molly, shaped by Demi Moore in his memory, appeared on the ss tabletop. The two women watched Eric''s quick drawing curiously, and after Eric finished drawing, Elizabeth looked at it for a while, then raised her head angrily, "I understand, it''s just a little smaller mouth. You''reining now that Julia has a big mouth, but when...what, why don''t youin that Julia has a big mouth, you bastard." Eric wore a solemn expression as he spoke, "Liz, can we be serious for once? Stop bringing everything back to the bed." Julia also grabbed Elizabeth''s hand, "Alright, Liz, even if he lets me act, I won''t act." Just as Elizabeth was about to reply, a voice from a woman beside them interrupted, "Mr. Williams, so you are here." Elizabeth and Julia both looked at Eric, and their eyes widened in surprise with a slight gasp. Eric turned around, also staring in shock, to see none other than Jane Fonda, who had just presented him with an award on the Oscar stage, but the important part was the young woman by her side, clinging to her arm. Jane noticed the three of them looking at her and her niece in surprise, and quickly followed Julia''s gaze to the tea table in front of them. She too looked puzzled. "Mr. Williams, I didn''t expect your painting skills to be so good. With just a few simple strokes, it looks so lifelike." Eric awkwardlyughed and then stood up to look at thedy next to Jane. Facing Jane, he asked with a hint of humor, "Ms. Fanda, who is this...?" "Hmph, fake," Elizabeth sneered, as she pulled Julia and left. "You''ve drawn her picture already, and you''re still asking who she is." Jane was not aware of Elizabeth, but she knew Julia, so she didn''t mind the twodies leaving and instead introduced thedy to Eric. "Mr. Williams, this is my niece, Bridget Fanda, my brother''s daughter." "Nice to meet you, Miss Fanda," Eric extended his hand and shook Bridget''s hand. At this point, Bridget noticed the portrait on the coffee table, which was almost done. She recently got a short haircut for a movie role, so her appearance now was simr to the woman in the portrait. Although she didn''t know why Eric painted this picture, Bridget felt that her purpose today might be smoother. Eric knew that Jane and Bridget Fonda had started to contact him after the Oscars, and he was sure they had something to say. Eric gestured to the couch where Elizabeth and Bridget Fonda were sitting and said, "Ladies, please sit down." The two cousins thanked him and walked over to the sofa together. Eric looked at the two women in front of him. In his memory, Jane and Bridget Fonda had fought with Peter, Jane''s older brother. However, looking at these two women now, perhaps the conflicts of the previous generation had not affected this generation. It should be noted that, although the Fonda family''s power in Hollywood is not as great as the Copo family, it is still not to be underestimated. This power can be seen from Bridget Fonda, who is sitting next to Jane. This actress, who had average acting skills, debuted in thete 1980s, yed in more than ten movies, but never stood out in awards or box office, even until she had to retire from the movie industry due to a car ident. Bridget Fonda had yed in dozens of movies, most of which were leading roles, but none of them were representative works. This is difficult to imagine for other actresses in Hollywood whock a background or connections. If an ordinary actress does not have a background or connections, even if she ys in a few movies, she will not be popr, and Hollywood producers will give up on her. "Mr. Williams, may I ask why you just drew that portrait?" Bridget Fonda spoke first as she sat down with the other woman. Eric hesitated, giving a vague exnation to the other person: "I just exined something to Miss Julia and drew it by hand. I didn''t expect it to look so much like Miss Fonda." J, however, wouldn''t let Eric off the hook so easily. She smiled and asked, "Mr. Williams, isn''t that the appearance of a female lead in one of your films?" Eric coughed, finally speaking, "Well, sort of." "Isn''t that the film you''re about to shoot, ''Love Unforgotten''?" J asked again. Eric couldn''t change the appearance of the well-established character in order to tell a small lie, so he nodded once more. The two cousins exchanged a nce. Jane Fonda up immediately, "So, Mr. Williams, since things are so coincidental, I was wondering if you could give Bridget a chance for an audition?" Eric was hesitant, as Jane''s words were not about the initial rounds of actor selection, but rather the final audition for the role. Despite the fact that Demi Moore, who yed Molly in the original "Ghost," was criticized for her acting, she had a breakthrough performance in that film and was even nominated for a Golden Globe for Best Actress. Demi had at least a few years of movie experience before taking on the role in "Ghost," but the young woman in front of them had only debuted a couple of years ago, and herter films showed no potential in her acting abilities. Bridget saw Eric''s hesitation and looked to her aunt Jane for help. Jane gave her a reassuring look and said, "Mr. Williams, I know this request may seem sudden, but just give Bridget a chance for an audition. I''m sure both myself and Bridget''s father will remember your kindness." Eric quickly nodded when he heard the other person speak. Although the favor would likely be heavily discounted if Bridget Fonda didn''t get the role, it was still a favor and maybe it coulde in handy someday. "Alright, Miss Fonda, but I can only give you a chance to audition. As for the result, I can''t make any guarantees," Eric said. "Of course," Bridget Fonda nodded and looked at her niece beside her. She stood up and said, "Mr. Williams, I''ll leave now. Bridget loves your movies, maybe you two can talk." Eric also stood up and watched Bridget Fonda leave. He sat back down and the two of them, Bridget and Eric, made eye contact a few times, like two strangers on a blind date, unsure of what to say. Finally, Eric spoke first, "Miss Fonda, I actually watched one of your movies." "Hmm? Which one?" Bridget Fonda asked. "Aria," Eric replied and pointed to the corner of his mouth. Bridget Fonda pursed her lips and said, "At that time, I had a pimple on my cheek which wasn''t very attractive in the shots." "I think you still looked pretty good," Eric replied with a yful tone. Most of the shots in the film "Aria" were nude scenes. Eric watched the movie solely for those scenes, so it was only natural that Bridget wouldn''t be an exception. Eric couldn''t understand why the actress would take on such a movie in the first ce. Perhaps she was fearless with her family as a support system, not having to worry about her image like other actresses did. Bridget''s face turned slightly red upon hearing Eric''s words. Due to their initial encounter, the two didn''t talk much and only chatted a bit. Eric then said, "Miss Fonda, I''ve been sitting here for a while and with so many people here, I have to go socialize." "Okay, please do, Mr. Williams, and you can call me Bridget." "No problem," Eric smiled and nodded, getting up and walking towards somewhere else. ------- After the Oscars, the newspapers, as usual, gave aprehensive analysis of the results. Most people thought that the awards were over-distributed this time. At the same time, many people were disappointed that Eric missed the Best Adapted Screeny award for "Scent of a Woman," and in this case, "Driving Miss Daisy," which took away the Best Adapted Screeny award from "Scent of a Woman," became the target of attack. "Driving Miss Daisy" is a movie released by Warner Bros. Currently, Warner Bros. is one of the sevenrgest Hollywood filmpanies and is the strongest one in terms of strength. Therefore, after "Driving Miss Daisy" caused controversy, Warner Bros. quickly counterattacked, causing a small stir in the newspaper, even covering up the momentum of several major awards. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 302: No Choice

Chapter 302: No Choice

The academy, as usual, did not respond to the controversy over the award results in the media. Everyone knows that no matter who the award is given to, it will always cause controversy. A few days after the Oscars, the Firefly Studio, after the early-year turmoil, released its first film, "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles". Many people were paying close attention to the movie with various emotions. Although the film "Downfall" released earlier, also had good box office results, the box office of that movie, although it was greatly increased under the influence of Eric, still counted as a small fight. Because Eric was very optimistic about "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" beforehand, Robert Shaye raised as much as $2000 for the film, which is already the limit of Firefly''s current capabilities, while the seven major filmpanies could raise more than $3000 if necessary. Moreover, even if the box office of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" is much better than nned after its release, it is still difficult to increase the canvas, and once the box office is not satisfactory, hundreds of screens may be removed next week. Therefore, this release has attracted the attention of most people inside and outside the Hollywood circle. If Firefly suffers a setback this time, many people will rejoice in their misfortune and even add salt to their wounds. Eric, the producer of "The Instinct," was not nervous like Robert Shaye or Jeffery. This was because of the box office results from their previous work, which served as a guarantee,bined with the muchrger scale of promotion for the movie nowpared to the previous one. Firefly invested a huge $6 million in the movie''s promotion budget, not including the cost of producing 2,000 copies. Although Eric attended the premiere, he kept a low profile, letting the creators of "Ninja Turtles" take the spotlight. At this moment, he was discussing the preparations for "The Instinct" with Jeffery. "Jeffery, if Hollywood doesn''t find the right actor, I suggest you try Europe. Just like the movie ''La La Land'' a few years ago, the director chose European actors because the majority of Hollywood actors he liked were too conservative to act." Jeffrey nced at the stage where Robert Shaye was speaking passionately. He shook his head and said, "Eric, I''m not worried about this. There are still many things, such as the director you rmended, Paul Van Hove, who just took on a big production movie starring Arnold Schwarzenegger and has no interest in ''Instinct''. And the budget is also a big problem. I had someone do a detailed budget based on the script you gave me, and the result is that the cost of this movie is at least 30 million dors, far exceeding your 20 million dor budget. And the most important ssification issue, the scenes you designed are a bit over the top, and it''s easy to be rated NC-17. We now have no ability to interfere with the ratingmittee, and once it''s rated NC-17 and shown in restricted theaters, this movie will definitely end up being a loss." Eric ran his fingers through his hair in frustration. He knew that what Jeffrey said was true. The movie ratingmittee in the United States waspletely controlled by the seven major filmpanies, and many people had analyzed that some of the same scenes appeared in some movies. If a movie was produced by one of the seven major filmpanies, it would be rated R, but if it wasn''t, it would be rated NC-17. Eric clearly remembered that in a previous life, Meg Ryan starred in "Naked Cut" in search of a breakthrough, and because it was released by a major filmpany, some of the shots in the movie could be considered equal to the level of an "Ava" movie, but it was rated R. If the movie was shot in the future and wasn''t rated NC-17, then the seven major filmpanies must have collectively gone crazy. Although there is still a way to re-rate the movie by modifying the plot, the story will inevitably undergo significant changes. The box office results are then difficult to predict. After thinking for a while, Eric knew that he had no choice. He had to say, "Okay, Jeffrey. Contact the seven major filmpanies and see which one is willing to cooperate, and choose one that is more favorable to us." "And about you being the screenwriter..." "If that''s the case, there''s no way to hide it. Let''s just use our real names. I''m not even twenty years old yet, and writing this script is just a way for people to think I''m wild and young. If we hide it, I bet those guys, no matter what their intentions are, will find a way to reveal it." Jeffrey shook his head helplessly. "Eric, I just don''t understand why you have to make this movie. I can''t see anything special about it." "Just watch the script a few more times," Eric teased. "Do you know who the killer is yet?" Jeffrey shook his head again. "I won''t be able to fully determine that until you tell me what exactly ''I...'' means when the female lead, Beth, says it after she''s shot by the male lead, Nick." Eric hinted, "Perhaps it''s ''I''m sorry,'' ''I was wrong,'' ''I love you,'' etc.?" "I think the least likely is ''I love you,'' and the most likely is ''I was wrong,''" Jeffery said. Eric was stunned. Actually, the original line was "I love you," but Eric felt that it would be difficult for someone deeply loved to say "I love you" just before they die after being shot without hesitation by the person they love. Therefore, Eric made a small modification in the script and only left "I...", letting the audience guess. Just like "The Ind," leaving a suspense would benefit the box office. On stage, after several main creators of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" took turns giving speeches, the movie began to y. Eric frowned as he watched the movie again on the screen. The strong vor of a B-grade Hong Kong film was unavoidable. Although the total cost of $13 million was a super-production for Hong Kong films, it was only a moderate cost in Hollywood. In addition, there had to be some special effects in the movie, the result of which was predictable. One scene, in particr, stood out to Eric. When a group of people were fighting, a knife-wielding viin cut the power line. Here, even if you were unable to do a glowing special effect, you should at least have some sound of electricity, but the result was...nothing. The viin just shuddered a few times, even if he had touched the electricity, it looked a bit funny. Of course, this was mainly because Eric''s appetite was spoiled by the special effects of his past films. Although Eric frowned frequently, the audience in the theater participating in the premiereughed or gasped softly from time to time because of thenguage and martial arts movements of the four ninja turtles. The previously nervous film crew finally rxed after hearing the sounds. Perhaps it was due to the film''s budget, or perhaps it was a tradition in Hong Kong films, but the movie only had a ny-minute time slot and soon ended. The lights hadn''t even turned on yet before the theater filled with enthusiastic apuse. "A fantastic science fiction action movie. Although many areas of production are unsatisfactory, with a 13 million dor investment, this is a remarkable film." "The asional jokes about Renaissance figures in the movie are hrious, and the action design is also full of surprises. It''s worth a watch." "..." After the premiere, a variety of reviews came in, and due to the Firefly''s aggressive promotion and public rtions, the overall evaluation of the movie was very positive. Many newspapers gave high scores, although there were asionally a few harshly critical articles appearing, they could not cause a stir. Although the seven major filmpanies did not want to see the sess of this movie, no one would spend hundreds of thousands of dors to smear the movie in the face of Firefly''s relentless spending on promotion. Moreover, the seven majorpanies were not particrly optimistic about this movie, otherwise, Fox wouldn''t have refused to distribute the "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" after seeing thepleted film. Under the attention of many people, three dayster, "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" received $25 million in box office revenue for its first weekend in 2000 theaters in North America, causing many people to be shocked. Fox, who had once again fallen for the wrong movie, quickly fired several executives in a short period of time. With the "Golden Alliance" incident, Fox was inevitably subjected to ridicule from many media outlets. Facing this situation, Fox had no choice but to endure. One weekter, the "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" had its first-week box office results, reaching 32 million. Seeing this result, many media outlets that were previously speaking out had no voice. People within the Hollywood circle also realized that Firefly, after experiencing the storm at the beginning of the year, was not affected in any way. The news that Eric was the first to have a good look at this movie was inevitably revealed, and once again caused a heated discussion within the Hollywood circle. Besides the several movies Eric participated in, including "Steel Magnolia," this was the second time that a movie was not liked by others but was liked by Eric and became a great sess. All of a sudden, many people started asking around about which movies Eric had an eye on. As a result, the matter of the series of copyrights that Eric had had Drew acquire before the year ended once again caught the attention of many. Because Niki wasn''t in too much of a hurry, only about half of the 20 or so copyrights that Eric had listed were acquired. When the two copyrights that were currently being negotiated were discovered, all of Hollywood''s strongest filmpanies joined thepetition, and the copyright owners also held off on selling. In this situation, Eric could only have Drew stop acquiring copyrights, even though there were still a few that hadn''t been obtained. If he were to act now, he would definitely fall into a frenzy, and the chances of getting his hands on them would be extremely low. At the time, many people started to ask Eric which movies he was interested in. So, the matter of the series of copyrights acquired by Drew before Eric''s list came into the eyes of many people again. Because of the reason that Nina was not too impatient, Eric''s list of over twenty copyrights only acquired half. And after two copyrights that were being talked about were found, all the Hollywood moviepanies with strength joined thepetition, and the copyright owners also waited for a good price. And Eric''s most valued adaptations, such as "Charlie''s Angels", "Mission: Impossible", and "The Bourne Identity", have already been acquired. Of course, these are all afterwords, and after the sess of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles," the mostplicated person was undoubtedly Robert Shaye. After all, if Robert Shaye could wait for half a year, waiting for the release of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles," then the new line would bepletely different. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 303: Why Are You Here?

Chapter 303: Why Are You Here?

At an old-fashioned prison in the suburbs of Pittsburgh, Pennsylvania, a man and a woman are facing each other through a ss door. The woman, dressed in a drab brown striped jacket but with a clearplexion, tries hard to persuade him. "So, take this test!" she says. "No," the man replies, "but I''ll make you happy. I''ll give you a big opportunity." "What?" the woman asks, confused. Interrupting the woman, the man in the prison uniform behind the ss window says, "It''s a promotion! Listen, Christine Stradlin, you need to reflect on yourself and find Miss Murphy, one of my former patients..." The woman tries to regain control of the conversation, but her efforts seem useless in the face of the imposing man on the other side of the ss door. Her attempts to insert a word are barely noticeable and she ispletely suppressed. "I don''t believe Myers will act out so soon, even though he''s crazy," the man said, raising his voice suddenly. "Now go!" The woman was frightened and quickly left, with her neck slightly tucked in, amid the crazed shouting of the prisoners in other rooms of the prison. "Cut, that''s great, simply impable," Jonathan Dime, who had been wearing headphones and watching the performance of Judi Foster and Anthony Hopkins on the monitor, shouted excitedly. At the same time, the cast members around him also pped enthusiastically. "Mr. Hopkins, your performance is truly amazing," Elizabeth, who was still pping, stepped forward topliment Anthony Hopkins as he left the room. "Thank you, Miss Murdoch. Actually, Miss Foster''s performance was excellent as well. Without her cooperation, I don''t think I could have found my state so quickly," said Anthony Hopkins, wiping sweat from his face with a towel handed over by his assistant. "Mr. Hopkins. I have to admit, this scene, I am not as good as you," said Judy Foster with a smile, taking the towel from her assistant. "OK. You both are great, so I think we should stopplimenting each other," said Drew, standing next to Elizabeth with a cheerful smile. she then looked towards Jonathan Demme, "Demme Sir, is today''s shooting done?" "Yes, Miss Barrymore, this scene is finished. Although there''s still more than an hour, but there''s not enough time to prepare for the next scene," said Jonathan Demme, walking over. He then ordered his assistant to prepare the equipment. Drew looked at her watch and said to everyone, "Julia and I will leave first. Our flight to Los Angeles is at 4:30." "Of course, no problem," Jonathan immediately replied. "I''ll have the driver take you to the airport." This was already the fourth day of filming for "The Silent Lamb" in Pennsylvania. As the first movie from TG Movies, Elizabeth, Drew, and Julia took it very seriously. They arrived here before the filming began and had been in Pittsburgh for a week. Because the three women were the producers of the movie. Jonathan had initially worried that they would interfere with the filming, but that concern quickly disappeared after filming began. First was Elizabeth and Drew. The two women followed the crew, seemingly eager to learn, and not only didn''t cause any trouble, but asionally helped out. The most famous of the three, Julia, was the most carefree, not getting involved with anything at all. Julia, being a popr Hollywood actress, still had work to do, while Drew wanted to stay with Elizabeth on the set, but the young girl was still underage and no one dared to let her stay on the set for too long. Additionally, Eric still didn''t know that Drew was the producer of "The Silence of the Lambs," and when he heard that the girl hade to the set. He specially called and instructed her not to y too wildly and to return to Los Angeles earlier. Therefore, Drew and Julia booked a flight back to Los Angeles together today, while Elizabeth, as the main producer, would continue to follow the crew until the end of filming. In the Pittsburgh airport lobby, Elizabeth hugged the girl and then embraced Julia, kissing her gently on the corner of her mouth in front of Drew''s slightly raised eyebrow. She said, "Goodbye, Julia, and Drew, have a good trip." "Goodbye," the two women waved to Elizabeth together, and then each took their own assistants and walked towards the boarding gate. Once the Boeing ne entered the stratosphere, Drew unfastened his seatbelt and finally looked at Julia who was sitting next to him, flipping through a fashion magazine in boredom. "Julia, you and Liz..." Drew said, addressing her. Julia''s face suddenly showed a hint of panic after she heard Drew mention Liz. "What do you mean?" she asked, sounding nervous. The young girl rolled her eyes and replied, "These past few days, the two of you have been staying in the same room at the hotel. Don''t forget, I was in the room next door and heard a lot of noise." Julia tried toe up with a defense, but Drew quickly patted her shoulder to calm her down and chuckled, "Rx, I won''t discriminate against you." Julia opened her mouth, looking at the serious expression of the young girl. She couldn''t help but ask, "Uh... don''t you find it strange?" Drew immediately showed a strange expression upon hearing Julia''s question. "You two... already did that. Don''t you find it strange yourself?" Julia honestly nodded. "Since you find it strange, why are you still with Liz?" Drew asked curiously. "I don''t know. I just feel that, well, being with Liz is still pretty good. Liz also thinks it''s good, and that''s it," Julia replied. "The maid was momentarily confused by what Julia was trying to convey. But she realized that the woman had not fully changed her sexual orientation yet and that she was temporarily in a fake rtionship with Elizabeth for some unknown reason. This can''t be right. It needs to change. It would be better if it changed to the level where she feels sick at the sight of a man. Thinking of these things, Drew''s eyes turned, and he said, "Julia, this is just the inherent idea that you''ve formed from a young age. There are countless same-sex rtionships in Hollywood, so there''s no need for you to have any psychological burden. I think you and Liz are a pretty good match, and Liz is also very caring for you, isn''t she?" Julia flinched upon hearing the word "homosexuality" being said so carelessly. She couldn''t understand the thoughts of the girl, who she believed was genuinely considering her well-being. After pondering on Drew''s words, she felt that there was some truth to them and nodded slightly. Perhaps Drew felt that the fire wasn''t big enough and continued to stir things up: "Julia, you might not know this, but Judi Foster is also homosexual." This time, Julia was truly surprised and turned to look at Drew, incredulously asking, "No... that can''t be possible?" Drew firmly nodded her head and said, "This is a fact. Judi is just low-key about it, but many people know she''s homosexual. It''s said that after the assassination of the President by Sinir, she waspletely disappointed in men and changed her sexual orientation." Julia made a soft hum and didn''t say anything more, once again focusing her gaze on the magazine in front of her. Several hourster, the nended at Los Angeles airport. Due to the time difference, Los Angeles was still in the evening. Drew and Julie split into two groups and each got into a car. After dropping off their assistants in the city center, Drew directly ordered the driver to head to the Malibou Cape Estate. "Hey, Ron, it''s me, open the door," Drew shouted to the security guard at the entrance of the estate. The security guard, hearing Drew''s voice, quickly opened the door and weed him: "Miss Barrymore, you''re back?" "Yeah, is Eric at home?" "Yes, Mr. Williams has been at home these past two days," said Ron, the security guard. After looking at Drew''s luggage, he kindly asked, "Miss Barrymore, do you need help with your luggage?" "No need. Oh, by the way, why is there only one person here, where''s the other one?" Drew looked suspiciously at the empty security booth behind Ronald, warning him, "Don''t tell me the other one is no longer there." "No no no, Miss Barrymore, George went to the bathroom, he''ll be back soon," Ronald quickly exined for his colleague, then pointed not far away, "Look, he''s back." The girl nodded as she followed Ronald''s gaze and saw the other security guard. She didn''t say anything else and walked towards the vi with her luggage, with gardeners greeting her along the way. Because Eric was toozy to manage these trivial matters, most of the people here were selected by Drew, so even though Drew didn''t live here for a while, when she came back again, the people still treated her as thedy of the house, and this attitude made the girl very satisfied. Walking into the living room of the vi, the girl looked around and said, "Eric, I''m back." After a moment, Nicole, dressed in a casual home outfit with her hair standing up on her head and a small apron around her waist, walked out of the kitchen. "Hey, Drew," Nicole greeted, stepping forward to take the girl''s luggage. Drew finally responded and looked Nicole up and down, and the girl immediately felt a sense of animosity: "What are you doing here?" Nicole had been with Drew for a few months, so she could easily sense the girl''s animosity. However, the woman was unfazed and brushed her hair back from her temples, loose strands falling into ce. She said nonchntly, "I had nothing to do these days, so I came to stay for a few days." "Hmph, it''s all because of the role in ''Ghost,'' isn''t it? You''re really determined," the girl said, with a hint of anger in her voice. "What can I do? I don''t want to be one of those people who get everything they want just because they are favored. I have to fight for it myself," Nicole replied. The girl snorted again, but her face had a hint of self-satisfaction: "Since Eric hasn''t approached you, it means you''re not the female lead he wants." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 304: Reserved

Chapter 304: Reserved

Nicole shrugged indifferently and said, "It doesn''t matter. I''ve received several other movie offers, and I just happen to be staying here so Eric can help me choose. His taste has be well-known throughout Hollywood, and I heard that you have contributed a bit to that." Drew shot a dissatisfied look at the woman upon hearing her words and asked, "Where''s Eric?" "In the study, talking to a guest," replied Nicole. "Put my things in my room," the girl said, pushing her luggage towards Nicole and ran towards the study. Nicole looked at the small luggage in front of her, wrinkled her brow slightly, and soon a mysterious smile appeared on the corner of her mouth. She picked it up and walked towards the staircase. Drew arrived at the door to the basement library and quickly punched in the code on the keypad. The door opened automatically, and he descended down the spiral staircase, but he didn''t see Eric''s figure. Drew realized that Eric must be in the library on the second floor, and someone who wasn''t close to Eric would not be allowed to enter the room filled with sensitive materials such as scripts. As he climbed the stairs to the second floor library, Drew pushed open the door and saw Eric sitting across from a brte man discussing something. Upon hearing the noise, the brte man turned his head, and Drew, who had a good memory, recognized the man as Michael Kraus, the publisher of Eric''s book "Jurassic Park." Drew greeted Kraus with a polite, "Hello, Mr. Kraus." Michael Krause was taken aback as he saw Drew effortlessly call out his name. He stood up, a bit surprised, and said, "Hello, Miss Balmoral. I''m surprised you still remember me, we only met once atst year''s party, right?" Drew shook hands with Michael Krause and then turned to Eric, flitting over to him like a swallow returning to its nest. She rubbed her face against Eric''s chest and said, "Eric, I miss you so much." Eric chuckled and patted the girl''s head, "Okay, enough of that. We have a guest here. Go and make us another pot of coffee, we just finished it." "Grr. As soon as you get back, you start bossing people around," the girl grumbled unhappily but still jumped up and went out with a light step. "Drew has always been like this, making youugh," Eric exined helplessly to Michael Krause, who was still staring in disbelief. Michael Kraus awkwardly chuckled and then said, "No, nothing. Let''s continue talking about The Matrix, Eric, I think the novel is written too short, only about 50,000 words, a lot of things are written ambiguously, I think, if it could be expanded to 200,000 words, it would be better." "I also want to do that, Michael, but you should understand that I don''t have that much time right now. Writing 50,000 words is already good, and you should also know that I wrote this novel just for the movie rights," Eric said, spreading his hands. The two of them were talking about the famous movie "The Matrix". Due to the release of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" and some previous events, Eric''s vision in the movie industry has spread throughout Hollywood. As a highly risky industry, Hollywood filmmakers are inevitably more interested in these things, which is why Drew acquired the rights silently. After the incident, Eric had originally nned to obtain the script for "The Matrix" from the Wachowski brothers, but that n could no longer be carried out. The "Matrix" from his previous life was only released in 1999. Now, the concept was just some scattered thoughts in the minds of the two brothers. Eric wrote it out without any hesitation, making some ambiguous changes, so that the novel and the movie were quite different, but the main plot did not change much. Although it was only about 50,000 words, it was enough to upy this pit and he would not have to worry about copyright issues in the future. "Eric, actually, this story is quite wonderful, so I think I might be able to find someone to expand the story to 200,000 words, don''t worry, there will be no problems with the copyright, I guarantee it and I''ll sign a perfect contract with the hired guns." Eric immediately shook his head: "Michael, finding a hired gun is a very risky thing. in the future, when the benefits reach a certain level, I just guarantee that the hired gun will definitely jump out, so I won''t take that risk." Drew, carrying a pot of coffee, walked in as the two were talking. He poured coffee for both of them and, curiously, picked up the manuscript of the novel in the middle of the two and asked, "What are you guys talking about? Hmm... The Matrix. Interesting name." Michael gazed at Drew, who was sitting on the sofa next to him flipping through the manuscript, and looked helplessly at Eric. "It''s okay, let''s continue our conversation," Eric gave Michael a reassuring look; he knew that Michael was worried that Drew might overhear something she shouldn''t and spread it around. Michael said, "Well, Eric, since you don''t agree, let it be. I want to ask about the matter of "Running Out of Time", have you ever thought of turning this story into a novel?" "Michael, the rights to "Running Out of Time" are jointly owned by Firefly and Columbia. The first installment in the series grossed over four hundred million dors worldwide, and with the subsequent sequels, the box office revenue could exceed one billion dors. Involving such massive funds, Columbia would not agree to turn the series into a novel for just a few hundred thousand or a million dors in royalties." "That''s too bad," Michael Kraus shook his head, and he talked to Eric about the details of the publication of "The Matrix." Michael declined Eric''s invitation to stay for dinner, and he said goodbye. Eric escorted Michael out of the vi and returned only after the other man had driven towards the gate of the estate. "Wow, Eric, how did youe up with this? It''s amazing," Just as she entered the living room, Drew excitedly waved the manuscript in her hand and said to Eric. Eric snatched the manuscript of "The Matrix" from the hands of Drew and asked, "When did youe back?" "I came here right after I got off the ne," Drew chuckled and hugged Eric''s arm, walking into the basement''s study room together with Eric. "Then what were you doing at the crew of ''The Silence of the Lambs''? If it was okay to shoot in Los Angeles, why did you, little girl, go to Pennsylvania?" Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. - Index - Chapter 306: Eric thinks so too

Chapter 306: Eric thinks so too

"Hello, Miss Kidman, I''m Tom Cruise; you can call me Tom. Wow, you''re really beautifuleven more beautiful than in the movies. May I call you Nicole?" Eric was conversing with Pa Wagner when he heard Tom Cruise''s eager voice behind him. "Of course, Mr. Cruise," Nicole''s voice rang out, with a hint of aloofness in her tone, but Cruise seemed to be unaware of anything and started to speak about other topics. Pa Wagner smiled awkwardly at Eric, silently ming Cruise for his inappropriate behavior. Nicole Kidman was Eric''spanion, and their rtionship was clear. Eric turned his head and saw that Cruise had already sat opposite Nicole, so he said to Pa Wagner, "Well, Ms. Wagner, let''s sit down too." "Okay, Eric, it''s... I''m sorry," Pa Wagner said apologetically in a soft voice. "This is nothing," said Eric, returning to the table and sitting down. He signaled for the waiter, and the group began ordering their meal. "Nicole, the pan-fried foie gras here is really exceptional. I hear all the ingredients are airlifted directly from France. I think you should try it," Cruise flipped through the menu for a moment and then looked up, smiling at Nicole. "I''m sorry, Mr. Cruise, I''m on a diet," Nicole gently shook her head, then ordered a sd from the waiter and closed the menu. Cruise was taken aback, and his smile faded a bit. But his eyes showed an increased interest. Eric and Pa soon finished ordering as well. After the waiter left, Cruise spoke without hesitation: "I''m sorry, Eric. I''ve read the script for "Ghost." But my and Pa''s productionpany is preparing to start shooting our film soon, so I can''t take that role. To be honest, I think it sounds silly to y a ghost. Furthermore, I have studied the entire script, and I don''t find anything remarkable about it. I suggest you try another film, like the second installment of "Running Out of Time." Although I can''t participate, I''m sure that with the poprity of the first film, box office sess can be guaranteed." Upon hearing this, Pa Wagner rubbed her forehead with one hand. Gently tapping her temple a couple of times, it was clear that Cruise had fallen prey to his self-important tendencies andpletely forgotten her prior instructions. Nicole raised her mouth slightly upon hearing this and then surreptitiously lifted the juice in front of her to her lips, blocking the smirk at the corner of her mouth. Eric ced his hands on the table and rubbed them back and forth with a criss-cross motion, eagerly listening to Cruise''s words. After thetter had finished speaking, Eric looked at him with interest. "So, Tommy, you invited me here today. Is there something on your mind?" Fearing that Tom Cruise might say something inappropriate, Pa Wagner quickly picked up Eric''s question, saying, "Mr. Williams, Tommy is just that kind of person who doesn''t like to hide anything. So, please don''t mind him. We feel that the script for ''Ghost'' is quite good, but Tommy''s schedule is already arranged, so this time, we won''t be able to coborate." "Oh, so this time..." Eric continued to inquire. Tom Cruise was about to open his mouth but felt his legs being kicked under the table. He nced at Pa Wagner. Upon seeing the faint look of plea on Pa''s face, he sighed and closed his mouth. After Tom finally stopped speaking, Pa let out a sigh of relief and spoke to Eric, "As you see, Mr. Williams, Firefly''s Blossom Studio began acquiring a multitude of novel and film copyrightsst year, including a television drama titled ''Mission: Impossible''. I was wondering, would you be able to transfer it to us? We would definitely offer a very reasonable price." Eric raised an eyebrow and asked curiously, "Ms. Wagner, why are you interested in this television drama? If it were made into a film, it would be a spy-thriller action movie, which is quite different from Tom''s current screen image." Upon hearing Eric''s statement, Tom couldn''t help but speak up again, "You see, Pa? Eric also thinks this way. I think it''s better not to mention this anymore. I''ve already said I''m not suitable for pure action movies. That''s something that Schwarzenegger or Stallone should y. I''m more suitable for dramatic films, even if they contain some action elements. They should focus on the storyline, just like the movie ''Top Gun'' a few years ago and our recent film. Eric, you should think so too, right?" Eric smiled slightly and said: "Of course, I also think Tom is more suitable for a type of film dominated by narrative, blindly transforming carries a great risk." After a conversation between the two men, Pa Wagner was at a loss for what to say next, with a look of distress on her face. She nced at the man who was proud of receiving recognition next to her, and at Eric with a faint smile on his face, not knowing why, she always felt Eric''s smile was strange. Having bypassed the matter of the original version of "Mission: Impossible," Eric quickly said, "Tom, let''s talk about the movie you''re currently raising funds for; I''m sure many fans are very eager." "Definitely," Tom Cruise immediately became enthusiastic and nced at Nicole from time to time. "A few years ago, when I worked with Mr. Paul Newman on "The Color of Money," I was interested in racing, so I have always wanted to make a racing movie. In the script setting, the racing scenes in this movie will be grand and thrilling. Paramount promised to invest 60 million dors in this movie. I believe this movie will definitely create the same box office sess as "Top Gun" in 1986. By the way, Nicole, the movie currentlycks a female lead; would you like to try it? From the first time I saw you, I felt that you are very suitable for the role of ire." "Nicole heard about the 60 million dor investment in the movie and suddenly felt moved, she nced at Eric and saw the unmistakable expression on the man''s face before tentatively asking, "Mr. Cruise, can you tell me more about this role?" "Of course. ire is a physician, and after a car race ident, the male lead, Cole, meets her. ire is quickly moved by Cole''s strength and perseverance, and she falls in love with the male lead..." Cruise excitedly spoke for seven to eight minutes, only halting reluctantly when the server was serving a few people, with Nicole following the rhythm with a few probing statements. Listening to the conversation between a man and a woman nearby, Pa Wagner worriedly looked at Eric across the table, but seeing that he was enjoying his food with indifference, she gradually rxed. "Ms. Wagner, are you still working as Tom''s agent?" Eric ignored the conversation next to him, took a few bites of food, raised his head, and suddenly asked Pa Wagner across from him. "Pa Wagner was unsure of what Eric''s sudden inquiry meant, but still answered quickly, "No, I am now responsible for managing the C/W productionpany, so Tommy has a new agent, named Pat Kingsley." Eric muttered inwardly, Tom Cruise was indeed fortunate, even as an outsider who inserted himself into this time and space, the two women who were extremely important for his career development still appeared beside him. Pa Wagner can be said to be Tom Cruise''s benefactor, directly bringing Cruise from an unknown soldier to the ranks of A-list Hollywood stars, then assisting Cruise in establishing a productionpany and serving as producer for a series of Cruise''s films, half of Cruise''s sess can be attributed to Pa Wagner. Afterwards, Cruise and Pa Wagner established the Cruise/Wagner productionpany, with Pa Wagner as the head of the productionpany and Cruise having another agent, Kingsley. This female agent was also very capable, taking over Pa Wagner''s position and conscientiously managing Cruise''s agency affairs for 14 years. Over the past decade, although Cruise has generated a lot of incidents and has been a mess in personal affairs, under Pat Kingsley''s maintenance, Cruise''s public image has always been maintained perfectly." Previously, the agents of Tom Cruise and Nicole were both managed by Pat Kingsley, but after Cruise and Nicole''s divorce, Cruise''s career did not flourish much while Nicole''s skyrocketed to fame, not only winning the title of Oscar Best Actress but also entering the 20 million dor sry club. Unbnced by his emotions, Cruise arbitrarily found a pretext to fire Pat, his hard-working agent, by using her of being detrimental to his Oscar PR, then recklessly appointed his inexperienced sister as his agent. Not long after, Cruise tasted the consequences of his actions as a series of events came one after another without a strong agent to negotiate and manage his public image. He broke negotiations with Paramount, had the couch-jumping incident, had his beliefs attacked by the media, and was frequently implicated in scandals involving female stars. In just over a year, Cruise''s public image plummeted, and his acting career was greatly impacted. In the following years, Cruise''s productionpany lost Pa Wagner and several other key personnel. Apart from the Mission Impossible series, Cruise''s films were on a losing streak. This is why Cruise couldn''t show any strength against Paramount in negotiations over the Mission Impossible series, and his reputation of earning $75 million for one film was forever gone. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 307: I will give you a stamp

Chapter 307: I will give you a stamp

Upon hearing Paul Wagner''s response, Eric recalled some information and quickly said, "Actually, it''s not a bad idea. You could free yourself from a lot of unnecessary tasks and concentrate on being a producer. Perhaps, we can coborate in the future." "Coborate?" Paul asked with a hint of confusion. Eric nced at Paul''s side, where Cruz, the protagonist of "Days of Thunder", was eagerly rying the story to Nicole. Then, he turned to Paul and said, "Yes, I think you''re a capable talent manager, and the Firefly is also in a stage of rapid expansion, we need someone like you." Paul quickly picked up on Eric''s implicit meaning, shaking his head andughing, "Mr. Williams, I have a pleasant cooperation with Tommy, so let''s not bring this up again." "Of course, I know you can''t agree to this now. However, the world is unpredictable, and if you ever want to change your working environment, Firefly''s door is always open for you." Eric just finished speaking when Cruise''s voice rang out: "Hey, Eric, I''m still here, it''s too much to dig up my partner in front of me." Seeing Cruise''s indifferent joke, Eric alsoughed: "Tom, excellent movie talents will be happily epted by anypany, so you better keep a close eye on Ms. Wagner, who knows when she might switch to anotherpany." Cruise looked at Eric with a look of a fool: "How could that be, Pa wouldn''t leave, Hollywood can''t find a second Tom Cruise." Pa Wagner heard Cruise''s words, her face slightly became somewhat ufortable, Eric acutely caught the fleeting embarrassment of the woman across from him, a satisfied smile appeared on his lips. This is a seed buried. Perhaps in a few years, Pa Wagner will once again serve as the producer of the Mission: Impossible series. The woman''s ability is undoubtedly. As for the male lead ... anyway, it won''t be Mr. Cruise. Tom Cruise''s words sparked Pa Wagner''s urge to smooth her brow again. Given that the original goal of acquiring the "Mission: Impossible" rights was disrupted by the two men and Cruise''s current situation, Pa can no longer stay put. Although on the surface, Eric seems unaffected by whatever Cruise says, he is still a hot-blooded young man, and to Pa, Eric''s demeanor is no different from those who pretend to be mature, and he may burst out at any moment. Therefore, Cruise resumed his harsh criticism of Eric''s screeny, and Pa quickly interjected, "Tommy, I think we should go, there''s still some work to do this afternoon." Cruise was interrupted by Pa, and quickly reacted. It was always the crying and pleading actresses who begged for cooperation, and since the woman in front of him wouldn''t, could he not find a female lead? "Nicole, please give it due consideration, however time is running short," Tom Cruise continued to speak with a smile, then with a flourish he snapped his fingers, summoning the waiter to bring the check. "I will, Mr. Cruise," Nicole replied with a polite nod. After paying the bill, Tom Cruise and Pa Wagner left directly. Eric still sat there and had the waiter serve them a pot of fresh coffee, then he turned to thedy beside him and asked, "What''s your impression?" After thinking for a moment, Nicole said, "Arrogant and not particrly astute, with a haphazard approach to interpersonal rtions." Eric raised an eyebrow, "Such a man can easily be caught in one''s hand." Had it been prior to her role in "Sleepless in Seattle," Nicole would likely have held such a belief, but now, as a Hollywood A-list actress, why subject herself to the humiliations of associating with a self-centered man like Tom Cruise, certainly not for a pleasurable experience. As she stirred her coffee with a silver spoon and looked at Eric with bright eyes. She rarely took the initiative to speak, but this time she said, "Actually, I would rather have another man in my grasp." Eric was taken aback by the sudden turn of the conversation. He replied, "You better give up now, you won''t seed. I will always be a hunter, never the hunted. And in Hollywood, there are only women who interest me and women who don''t. There are no women who can hold me in their grasp." Nicole raised her eyebrow and asked, "So what kind of woman am I?" Eric replied without hesitation, "The kind that doesn''t interest me much." There was a moment of silence before Nicole asked, somewhat indignantly, "If you''re not interested, why did you keep me after the audition for ''Running Out of Time''?" Eric tilted his head and thought for a moment before answering, "It was fun." Nicole incredulously stared at Eric for a moment. The woman''s lips suddenly curled into a triumphant smirk as she whispered, "I understand." Eric was taken aback by Nicole''s response. He asked, puzzled, "What do you understand?" Nicole assertively replied, "You''re jealous. Seeing me talk to Tom Cruise, you''re definitely jealous." "How could you think that?" Eric asked in surprise, "I mean... what makes you think I''m jealous?" "It''s obvious from what you just said," Nicole retorted, tilting her chin up. She continued, "I know you wouldn''t admit it, but you''re definitely jealous." Ericughed and shook his head, "Okay, think what you want." "Nicole heard Eric''s response and assumed the man had given the default answer, she was a little proud and walked over, curiously asking: ''What do you think of the film "Days of Thunder" that Tom Cruise is producing?" "Take it or leave it, don''t ask for my opinion. Remember, a man who is inwardly jealous will never have good words to say." Nicole shook her head with a smile: "I wouldn''t take it, that role of the female doctor is just a decorative vase, and there aren''t many scenes. Even if the film makes a high box office, it won''t help my image much, maybe the film critics will even criticize me for being a vase." "Then there''s nothing to say," Eric finished his coffee and stood up, walking out. Nicole quickly got up and followed Eric: "Hey, wait for me." Eric and Nicole arrived at the parking lot together. After Eric started the car, he continued, "Oh right. You mentioned the other day that your current agent wasn''t satisfactory, now there''s an excellent option avable." "Who are you talking about?" Nicole asked curiously. "Tom Cruise''s current agent, named Pat Kingsley, perhaps you can reach out to her, she''s an incredibly capable woman." Nicole was a little disappointed, although Eric had already sold UTA to ICM and CAA had be an ICM partner, the two''s rtionship was still very close. Furthermore, CAA''s abilities were top-notch in Hollywood. No matter what aspect to consider, Nicole would prefer to leave the management of her agency to CAA. "Whether you are willing toply or not. If you still want Pat Kingsley to help you as your agent, then you should directly speak with her yourself. If she is willing, I have no objections." "Alright, alright, I''ll go see Pat Kingsley," Nicole said as a hint of cunning shed in her eyes. "But don''t you worry, that something will happen between Tom Cruise and I?" Eric shrugged, looked around and then slowly stopped the car by the side of the road. He quickly unbuckled the safety belt, pulled the woman into his arms, and kissed her gorgeous red lips. Nicole was surprised at first and then looked around anxiously, but soon realized that the windows of the car had been specially treated and that people could not see inside. So the woman hesitated for a moment, then clung to Eric''s neck and countered with her little tongue. Eric finished kissing the woman''s red lips and slid down her face, cheek, and neck. He roughly tore open the buttons on Nicole''s chest and pulled down the bra. Nicole quickly breathed, pressing Eric''s head against her chest, letting the man move, a momentter, the woman suddenly felt a sharp pain spread throughout her body. "Ah..." Nicole eximed as she pushed Eric away and quickly recoiled into the passenger seat, looking down at her little breast, with a shallow bite mark appearing around her right nipple. Eric looked at Nicole and chuckled evilly, and said as he started the car, "I''m marking you, remember, you''re mine from now on." Nicole worriedly massaged her breast for a moment, then hearing Eric''s words, she struck him several times on the shoulder, "Eric Williams, you evil, bastard, scoundrel, pervert, sexual predator..." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 308: One Breath

Chapter 308: One Breath

"Good morning," Nicole carelessly ced the tray in front of Eric and sat down on the other side of the table. Eric, who had just sat down next to the table, looked at the items on the tray and asked, "Where''s the milk and, I already told you, I don''t like single-sided fried eggs." "Eat it or not. And, I have to go to New York for a few days. When Ie back, I won''te here anymore. You can keep having the maid prepare your breakfast," Nicole said, poking at her sd with a fork. Ericughed, "You''re still upset. Drew left yesterday, and now you''re leaving too. I''ll be the only one left in the vi." "Hmph, that''s none of my business. You just wave your hand and some woman will surelye running," Nicole huffed. "Okay, okay, I officially apologize for my behavior yesterday. Miss Kidman, can you forgive me?" "I won''t forgive you. You''re a scoundrel. My ... it hurts for a long time." Eric carelessly spread out the newspaper on the table and said, "It''s not my fault, if you wouldn''t constantly tempt me, this wouldn''t happen." "I... I''m not talking to you," Nicole pouted and lowered her head, chomping on her breakfast, making a crunching sound as she bit into her sd, almost as if she was biting Eric. The woman had always been steady and stable, Eric had never seen her lose herposure, and this was the first time he had seen Nicole behave petntly. To be honest, she looked quite adorable. Smiling, Eric got up and got himself a ss of milk from the refrigerator, and then pushed it towards Nicole, "Do you want a ss of milk? If you keep eating sds, your body won''t be able to handle it. You have a good figure. Why are you suddenly going on a diet? I still prefer a meatier feeling." Nicole gave Eric another re, but she still poured herself a ss of milk. Ericughed and picked up his milk, taking a few sips while idly flipping through the newspaper in front of him as he ate breakfast. After a while, Eric suddenly put down his utensils, picked up a newspaper, and it was clear from the photo on the paper. It was the scene of his meeting with Cruise yesterday. The photo was taken through the ss window, and Eric and Nicole were only backdrops, but Cruise and Pa Wagner''s faces were surprisingly clear. "Tom Cruise criticized ''Ghost'' in person, suspecting trouble with Williams." "Hollywood famous director Eric Williams'' new film is in the midst of tight preparation, and the choice of male and female lead is also the focus of attention. Yesterday, this reporter found that Eric Williams met with Tom Cruise at a famous restaurant on Wilshire Boulevard in Hollywood, suspected to be Eric Williams inviting Tom Cruise to join the male lead of his new film. However, things seem to be very unsessful, as evidenced by Tom Cruise''s lipnguage analysis. This reporter found that both sides of the negotiation seem to be very unsessful." Tom Cruise referred to the lead actor of "Ghost" as ''stupid'' in front of Williams. Tom Cruise did not discuss much about "Ghost" with Eric Williams, but instead, he chatted amiably with Nicole Kidman, who rose to fame with "Sleepless in Seattle", and even invited Kidman to join his new film. Cruise further stated that the female lead of "Ghost" had no room to perform, and was just a crying vase. After Cruise and Pa Wagner split from Williams, Williams and Kidman sat for a long time. Due to their backs facing us, we couldn''t know what they discussed, but after a short conversation, Williams immediately got up and left, and Kidman followed him anxiously. Judging from the situation, our yboy was not pleased with Kidman and Cruise''s conversation, and perhaps he left in anger due to Kidman''s failed invitation to appear in Cruise''s new film. There may have been a rift between Williams and Kidman because of Tom Cruise. Eric resignedly read the newspaper several times and then handed it over to Nicole on the opposite side, saying, "Take a look. Something''s happened again." Nicole took the newspaper in front of her, read it once and said, "The newspaper is right. There are indeed cracks between us." "Nicole, in fact, your temper tantrum looks adorable. Don''t believe it, take a look in the mirror." "Hmph!" The woman snorted coldly, ignoring Eric''s teasing and continued to have breakfast. However, Eric no longer had the appetite for breakfast. Although he didn''t care about feuding with Cruise, the evaluation of "Sleepless in Seattle" by Cruise in the newspaper had to draw his attention. If he didn''t rify and counterattack quickly, if the media shifted its focus to "Sleepless in Seattle", it might create a preconceived notion in the public. If the movie had a bad reputation before filming, it would be terrible. Retrieving the newspaper, Eric arrived in the living room and dialed Pat Kingsley''s number. After a discussion, Pat expressed that she would make an official statement regarding Cruise''s situation as soon as possible. There were noments regarding Eric and Nicole in the newspaper, indicating that the tabloid''s informant only had knowledge of some of the conversation through lip-reading, not audio recording. Otherwise, the conversation between Eric and Nicole after Cruise and Pa Wagner left would have been more newsworthy and been exposed. Putting the topic aside, Eric returned to the living room, ncing at Nicole, who was still leisurely eating breakfast. He remarked, "Tabloid journalists can even read lips now, it seems like we need to be more careful with our speech in the future, even if there''s no one around and no eavesdropping devices." Nicole rolled her eyes and ignored Eric, who continued to eat breakfast and read the newspaper. However, the meal was destined to not be peaceful, as Eric soon saw a man and a woman walking side by side in another newspaper, with the man looking attentive and the woman wearing a faint smile. Eric shook his head, picked up the newspaper, got up from the living room once again, made a call and exined, and finally returned to the living room. He finished his breakfast. After breakfast, Eric drove Nicole to the airport and then headed to the headquarters of Firefly. When he arrived at thepany, it was almost ten o''clock, but he just made it to the meeting with Robert Shaye at ten o''clock. Because of the box office sess of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles", Robert Shaye''s mood has been somewhat unusual these days. After all, when Firefly acquired New Line, the market value of New Line was only 150 million dors. Robert Shaye took advantage of Eric''s downfall and barely squeezed out 10% of the shares from Eric. He increased his overall shareholding in Firefly to 25%. But then "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" was released, and the movie earned 30 million dors in its first week. While Robert Shaye was thrilled, he inevitably fell into a huge disappointment. Because if he had stuck to not selling New Line, then the sess of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" would now be exclusively owned by New Line. The current box office trend suggests that this film is highly likely to surpass one hundred million dors in terms of its box office returns, both domestically and abroad, including video and peripheral markets. Generating over a hundred million dors in profits should also be easily achievable, and the potential for sequel development further bolsters the film''s financial prospects. With just this film alone, the new productionpany''s value can at least be doubled. "Why did we sell more back then," Robert Shaye oftenments in private, but to no avail. In a small conference room at Firefly, the four individuals took their seats around a small conference table. Robert Shaye introduced the two people around him to Eric: "Eric, this is the script I''ve been selecting these days. Take a look at it first? Oh, and these two people are Ronald Bass and Nancy Price, the screenwriter and the original novelist of this script." Eric nodded his head and took the script, looking at the title on the cover. His eyebrows raised slightly as he saw that it was titled "Sleepless in Seattle." He remembered this being a film starring Julia Roberts, and the box office seemed to be doing very well. "Eric, is there a problem?" Robert Shaye, perceiving the anomalous expression on Eric''s face, believed that Eric was once again dissatisfied with the script. However, this time, with the sess of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles," Robert''s confidence had increased. He even felt that even if he failed once, what could it matter? "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" had already earned a substantial amount of money for Firefly, money that should have been his in the first ce. Consequently, even if Eric opposed him again, Robert had no intention ofpromising. Eric shook his head. "Nothing." With that, Eric released the script and began flipping through it quickly. A few minutester, Eric had finished reading the script and looked up at Robert, saying, "Robert, are you sure you want to make this movie?" Robert nodded affirmatively. "Eric, you said before that you wouldn''t interfere with my script selection anymore. As long as I choose one, you will sign it." Eric heard the dissatisfaction in Robert''s voice, and he of course understood why. He smiled slightly and said, "Of course, I''ll keep my word. The script for this thriller is quite good, by the way, have you selected any actors?" Robert was ready to argue with Eric, but seeing Eric''sck of objections this time, he felt embarrassed and kept silent. However, he quickly said, "Yes, that''s why Norman and Nicole came along today. Norman, you speak." Norman, who had been sitting beside Robert, said, "Mr. Williams, the script has been written, and Nicole and I agree that Julia Roberts would be the best choice to y the female lead. However, we have already sent an invitation, but Julia Roberts'' agent directly rejected it. Mr. Shaw said perhaps you could help us." "Robert, what do you mean?" Eric turned to Robert again. Robert Shaye nods, "I also think that Ms. Julia Roberts would be the best fit for the lead role in this movie. I even personally called Pat Kingsley, but Pat said that Ms. Julia Roberts didn''t like the script and didn''t want to act. I think, with your rtionship with Julia, you should be able to help persuade her." Eric rubbed his chin for a moment before nodding, "Alright, I''ll give it a try." "Eric, we''re not unaware of your rtionship with Julia, so could you please give me a precise answer?" Robert Shaye continued to speak. Eric raised an eyebrow and thought for a moment before nodding, "Alright, I guarantee that Julia will act, but in terms of pay, you''ll need to talk to Pat personally. UTA is no longer and I and Pat are only good friends, so it''s impossible for me to interfere in Julia''s pay." "This is not an issue at all," Robert Shaye said: "By the way, for the movie, I made an initial estimate, and the budget is roughly around thirty million dors, and I''m also nning to have an A-list star y the lead." Eric slightly pondered over the script he had just read and reminisced about a movie in his mind, realizing that the movie wouldn''t cost thirty million dors. Watching Robert Shaye, who was eager to argue with him, Eric smiled slightly and said, "Okay, thirty million dors." Robert Shaye''s umted frustration had nowhere to vent, and he was somewhat annoyed, picking up the cup in front of him and drinking some coffee. He didn''t know why, but he had been motivated today and wanted to argue with Eric or something, but until now, Eric hasn''t given him any chance. "Ronald, Nicole, you go to my office and wait for a while, I''ll talk to Eric about some other things, and I''ll talk to you about the movie in a little while." "Alright, Mr. Shea," the two individuals, being personable, also became aware of the not-so-amicable atmosphere between them and thus soon left the office. "Eric, regarding the overseas distribution of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles," I think it would be best to leave it to Disney for distribution. Michael Esiner''smission is quite high, and if we go ahead with your previous n to handle it ourselves, I think we''ll be losing at least 10 million dors." Robert Shea brought up the matter of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" distribution after the two left the office. "Has Michael Esiner contacted you?" Eric asked, surprised. "Of course," Robert Shea seemed to have caught Eric''s discontent in his tone and immediately said, "Eric, I know that Michael Esiner has targeted you before, but that''s in the past, and you''ve also epted the script of "Endless Love." I think that matter can be put to rest. Furthermore, my contact with Michael Esiner was for the sake of the firefly''s interests." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 309: Complete Disappointment

Chapter 309: Complete Disappointment

Eric listened to Robert Shaye''s arguments impassively, making an effort to conceal his urge to sneer. Robert proimed to be without ulterior motives and presented a facade of fairness. But Eric was certain that Michael Eisner must have negotiated with Robert in private, offering him some incentives, which was an undeniable fact. Otherwise, Robert would not so obviously try to hand over the overseas distribution rights of the "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" to Disney. Thanks to a string of sessful films, Eric was no longer the novice he once was in Hollywood, and his ambition was growing by the day. He had told more than one person that his goal was the entire Hollywood. In this context, it was inevitable that he would recruit talented individuals for his own benefit, and he didn''t mind distributing power to those who could help him quickly rise to prominence. "This is also one reason for Eric''s tolerance towards Robert; even during the recent controversy, Robert clearly ''took advantage of the fire'' and took away 10% of the Firefly shares again, Eric still tolerated it. To know that at that time, the end of the year for Firefly, all five films had great sess, Firefly has produced five highly sessful film copyrights, and the 10% shares are not just 60 million US dors. But as long as Robert can fully and sincerely manage Firefly, Eric feels that these sacrifices are nothing. Now that New Line and Firefly havepletely merged, the profits generated by the film "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" will be distributed at the end of the year ording to each person''s share ratio. Eric will take more than 70% of the profits. Robert, the biggest contributor, can only receive 25% of the bonus. In this case, it is understandable that Robert is not well bnced. Therefore, Robert just yed some tricks in the film "Sleepless in Seattle", and Eric also allowed it." Upon hearing that Robert Shaye is going to hand over the overseas distribution rights of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" to Disney, Eric has be thoroughly disappointed in Robert Shaye. He had not failed to mention to Robert Shaye his own ns for Firefly. Despite merging with the new line, Firefly''s distribution capability is still rtively weak. Like with "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles," with Eric''s endorsement, Firefly invested 2 million dors into making the movie a theatrical release. This, however, was Firefly''s limit, as the release of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" resulted in a small production movie that was originally ted to be released being postponed because Firefly was unable to allocate any theater resources. Compared to any of the seven major moviepanies, if necessary, they could all raise more than 5 million dors to support the simultaneous release of two to three big budget movies, of course, generally moviepanies would not do this, as it would only form a viciouspetition. Eric initially intended to leverage the next few years with the advantage of having box office hit films from Firefly to expand domestic and international markets. As long as aplete distribution channel can be established, it doesn''t matter if it makes a little less profit in the meantime because having aplete and powerful distribution channel is the fundamental survival of arge filmpany. After all, as everyone knows, relying on the distribution channels of other filmpanies is not a long-term n. Now, with just the idental sess of a "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" film, Robert Shaye''s mentality has be so unbnced. As Firefly grows and develops, the internal turmoil of Firefly is almost inevitable. Firefly is Eric''s most important cornerstone in his foray into Hollywood, and he will not allow this situation to ur. Therefore, the only solution is to remove Robert Shaye. Although resolute in his mind, Eric is aware that the present is not an opportune time to take such actions, as the integration of the new line and Firefly has just beenpleted, and most of the current department heads are still Robert Shaye''s lineage. If Robert Shaye is immediately ousted from thepany, it is uncertain if those individuals, under the influence of other forces, would leave with him. In the event of such a scenario, the distribution channels of the new line integrated from Firefly would quickly paralyze, something Eric does not want to see under any circumstances. "Eric, are you listening to me?" Robert Shaye, noticing Eric''s daze, tapped the table gently with a displeased expression. "Oh, right, where did you just leave off?" Eric raised his head and asked impassively. "I''m saying, what if we entrust the overseas release of "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" to Disney? I''ve had someone calcte it, and based on Michael Eisenstein''s offered profit split, we could at least earn an additional 10 million dors." Eric shook his head: "Robert, I disagree." "Why," Robert raised his voice. Eric said: "Robert, have you ever considered why Michael Eisenstein would offer us such favorable terms?" "It''s...a win-win situation," Robert hesitated before saying. Eric immediately shook his head: "No, Robert, based on Firefly''s current overseas release capabilities, if we were to personally release it, the overseas box office might only be 60% of what it was during the Big Seven release, or even lower. But, as I previously discussed with you, even though we may earn less money, we can use this opportunity to expand our channels and establish a distributionwork overseas. If we follow Michael Eisenstein''s proposal, we may temporarily earn a bit more money, but we will never be able to establish our own distributionwork." "Eric, don''t you think the cost of expanding the distributionwork is too high? I believe that we can use low-cost, low-budget productions to expand, so that we don''t lose too much money. And using a sessful blockbuster like "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" to expand the channels is too much of a waste." Eric pressed his right hand slightly on the conference table in front of him, as if suppressing something that arose in his heart, but soon, he took a deep breath and continued, "Robert, if a low-cost, low-budget film can''t sell well overseas, it won''t make much money. If it can''t make money, then those overseas distributors are not going to do charity work. Why would they help distribute it? You know that many Hollywood films with box office receipts below 50 million US dors are basically sold directly to overseas distributors. Even the big seven moviepanies are toozy to do global distribution." "Eric," Robert Shea looked into Eric''s eyes and said seriously, "Teenage Mutant Ninja Turtles" is a movie I led, and I hope it can maximize its profits. I think the main task of Firefly now is to make money. Once we have the money, I believe that expanding the channels will be a breeze." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 311: Mumbling

Chapter 311: Mumbling

Brad Pitt and Famke Janssen got into Hans Whistler''s car together, sitting in the back seat. Although they were sitting next to each other, they both instinctively sat by the door, avoiding any contact with one another. "Hans, may I borrow your mobile phone?" Brad Pitt thought for a moment and decided to inform his agent, about something. Hans handed him the brick-shaped phone next to him, and Brad Pitt thanked him before dialing his agent''s number in front of Famke Janssen and Hans . He exined the situation and then hung up. Seeing the undisguised contempt on Famke Janssen''s face, Brad Pitt wanted to curse her face-to-face, wondering what qualified her to despise him just because he relied on men to climb to the top. After more than an hour, the three arrived at the Firefly headquarters, where Brad Pitt''s agent, was already waiting outside. Hans spoke to the receptionist, and then led the three directly upstairs to Eric''s office. "Mr. Williams is currently conducting auditions for actors, so you will need to wait for a while. I have some business to attend to, so I''ll be leaving now," said Hans Whitel, briefing the secretary who brought coffee to a few people and quickly leaving. Eric only instructed Brad Pitt and Famke Janssen to meet him, and Hans did not want to ''eavesdrop'' on such matters here. After Hans and the secretary left, Sheryl Cody and Brad Pitt whispered on arge sofa, then looked at Famke Janssen across from them and said, "Miss Janssen, can you help us?" Famke Janssen was originally bored, flipping through a magazine on the coffee table absentmindedly. Unlike Brad Pitt, who had been rolling in Hollywood for seven or eight years, she was still a neer and didn''t fret as much. In any industry, before encountering numerous setbacks, neers always believe that they will definitely have many opportunities, and that they can start over even if they fail or miss out. Upon hearing Sheryl Cody''s words, Famke raised her head and looked at the petite yet elegant woman across from her, but remained silent. "Well, it''s like this, Miss Janssen. You and Brad really have no rtionship, right? So, can you...?" "Don''t worry, we never had any rtionship to begin with. You don''t have to worry about me speaking out of turn," Famke said coldly, lowering her head again. Sheryl Cody felt somewhat embarrassed, but continued to exin: "Miss Janssen, unlike you, Brad has worked very hard to get this chance as the male lead." Famke tightened her grip on the magazine in her hand, but did not say anything more. The atmosphere suddenly became silent. ... ... "Thank you for your audition, Mr. Brosnan. We will inform you of the result as soon as possible," said an assistant to a handsome man in his thirties in a spacious audition room. After the man left, Eric''s two assistant directors came over and asked, "Mr. Williams, how was he?" "It''s still a no," Eric shook his head and crossed out Pierce Brosnan''s name on the list. The impression that the actor who yed 007 left on him was really deep, after all, the actor yed the role in four consecutive 007 films, all of which were quite recent. It was impossible not to remember. Although the actor''s acting skills were good and his image was very suitable for a bank manager, Eric couldn''t see him as the male lead, Sam, in "Ghost". "In that case, we''ve gained nothing from today''s audition," one of the assistant directorsined with a smile. "Take it easy. Let''s take our time," said Eric, closing the folder in front of him and instructing his assistant to tidy it up before addressing the others. "Let''s continue tomorrow. I have some other things to attend to and I need to leave now." Leaving the audition room, Eric took the elevator to the top floor where his office was located. Upon entering, he immediately saw three people sitting in two separate groups. Seeing hime in, the three people in the office stood up and greeted him. "It''s okay, please sit," Eric waved his hand and smiled at Sheryl Cody. "Ms. Cody, what brings you here?" Sheryl Cody smiled and replied, "I just happened to have some free time." Eric nodded nomittally, walked to his desk and pulled out a newspaper. He then went over to the couch in the lounge area, and ced the newspaper on the coffee table in front of him. "When ites to the matter at hand, I..." As soon as Eric began to speak, Brad Pitt interrupted him again, anxiously blurting out, "Mr. Williams, it really was a misunderstanding this time. There is nothing going on between Miss Janssen and myself." Eric furrowed his brow slightly. "What do you mean?" "Well, Mr. Williams," Sheryl Cody took over Eric''s question, despite being annoyed at Brad''sck ofposure, "yesterday, when ''The X-Files'' was being filmed in Santa Monica, Brad and Miss Janssen coincidentally arrived at the filming location at the same time. After parking their cars, they happened to walk together towards the set, and that''s when the paparazzi took that photo. It''s all a misunderstanding. They have nothing to do with each other." Eric looked at Brad Pitt and Sheryl Cody, both eager to clear things up, before turning to Famke Janssen. The woman reluctantly nodded when she saw Eric looking at her and said, "Yes, I have no rtionship with Mr. Pitt, it''s just a coincidence." Eric closed the newspaper, shrugged, and said, "Well, it seems there is no need to discuss this further. Miss Cody and Mr. Pitt, you may leave now." Brad Pitt and the agent were delighted to know that Eric didn''t intend to pursue the matter any further. They thanked him and quickly left. After they left, Eric went to the coffee machine and poured two cups of coffee again. He returned to the sofa and handed a cup to Famke Janssen. The woman took a sip and quickly looked at Eric before whispering, "What are you going to do with me?" Eric, tired after a long day, leaned back on the sofa and didn''t quite catch the woman''s voice at first, asking her to repeat herself. Famke Janssen gave a light hum, with a hint of a jaded mood, "I mean, what are you going to do with me?" "Did something happen to you?" Eric asked curiously, hearing the despair in the woman''s tone. "It''s all your fault," the woman murmured, but she stopped herself from saying thest word. Eric chuckled and leaned back on the sofa, exhaling a breath, "Could you help me massage my temples? I''ve had a long day and my head hurts." After a moment, a pair of slender fingers, which felt cool to the touch, gently pressed on his temples. The scent of the woman''s body was different from that of other women, but it was still pleasant. "If I told you that I only called you here to brief you on keeping a low profile, after reading the news in the newspaper this morning, you probably wouldn''t believe me now, would you?" Eric suddenly said after a while. The fingers paused for a moment, then started massaging again, gently. "Oh, you probably wouldn''t believe it, but even I can''t believe it myself, but it''s true. In the setup of this TV series, the lead actors won''t get together until the very end and they will maintain a vague rtionship throughout to keep the ratings. If they get together in reality, then it would seem fake for them to continue a vague rtionship in the show. That''s why I want you guys to keep a low profile and try not to get caught by the paparazzi." The actress still remained silent, but her fingers massaging Eric became gentler. Eric continued, as if talking to himself: "I almost had a fight with my partner this morning. She feels that what he''s gotten so far is not enough and he wants more, always wanting more. People are inherently greedy, and there''s nothing wrong with that. But if you want more, you have to have the corresponding strength to back it up. Does she have that strength?" "Jenny left me a while ago. She was my first woman, and all that drama. It was her choice to leave, and that''s okay, but I always wanted to win her back, even if it meant building a castle on a cliff like a viin in a story, locking her up and raising her like a princess, my own princess." "I built a house by the sea, hoping to face the ocean in warm spring and blossoms. But then, one by one, everyone left and I found myself alone facing the sea. The house was too big and empty." "Wanted too much but could never hold onto anything, and in the end, everything ran away. I don''t even feel like trying to hold onto anything anymore, they''re always going to run away anyway. I was actually interested in you before, you have really long legs, which I like." "That''s because you''re too soft-hearted," for some reason, the woman, although blushing slightly at Eric''sst words, finally couldn''t help but interject. Eric was briefly stunned, thenughed, "Yeah, I''m too soft-hearted, they''re all a bunch of brats that need to be taught a lesson." The woman seemed to choke for a moment, then said, "Uh... I take back what I just said." Eric grabbed the woman''s small hand, pulled Famke Janssen over, and hugged her waist, and the woman obediently let the man take control, gently pressing her face against Eric''s chest. "Have you seen ''Scent of a Woman''? I wrote the script for that movie." After hesitating, the woman still denied, "I haven''t seen it, I''ll find time to watch it." "Actually, I can distinguish the body scent of every woman I have been intimate with, and now I remember yours too." The woman scoffed, "That doesn''t sound like a good thing, does it?" "It seems that it really isn''t a good thing," Ericughed at himself, "If I set my sights on them, how could it be a good thing? They can hardly escape." "Well..." "You see, since it''s already like this, you don''t need to run away," Eric said. "You have to try, maybe you can escape, if you don''t try, you won''t be reconciled. Besides, which man wants to have so many women? At least, it''s not possible in this era, right?" "No, you''re wrong, it''spletely possible," Eric said. The two of them chatted aimlessly for a while, and before they knew it, time had slowly slipped away. Eric fell asleep holding the woman. When he woke up again, it was already dark outside. He found himself covered by a woman''s coat. Setting the coat aside, he stretchedzily and noticed a light behind him. Turning around, he saw Famke Janssen sitting quietly at his desk, reading a magazine. The woman noticed Eric waking up, looked up, and asked with a smile, "Did you sleep well?" "What day is it now?" Eric stood up and asked. ncing at her wristwatch, the woman replied, "It''s 7:20. The security of thepany came knocking on the door just now, but I told them you were busy and they didn''t say anything else." "Oh, why didn''t you go back?" Eric nodded and asked subconsciously. Famke Janssen raised her eyebrows charmingly and asked, "Do you want me to go back?" "Very well, forget I asked," shrugged Eric. "So, do you have any ns for tonight?" "If you didn''t call us here, I''d probably go to a bar with Brad Pitt. But now, it''s toote. Maybe if there''s nothing else, I''ll go back, get some rest, and then continue working and filming tomorrow," the woman replied. "Have you had a boyfriend before?" Eric asked curiously. "I''m 25 years old, of course I''ve had a boyfriend," the woman said helplessly. "He was a photographer, but we broke up beforeing to Los Angeles." "Oh," Eric nodded. "What''s next for you?" "Hmm?" The woman tapped her lips and saw Eric''s smile turn sinister. She asked curiously, "What do you think?" "Well, perhaps," Eric thought for a moment, walked around the desk, and came to the woman''s side. Famke Janssen saw Eric''s movement and thought the man was going to do something here. He shrunk his neck but did not show any intention of dodging. Instead, his eyes showed a hint of expectation. However, the woman obviously misunderstood Eric''s meaning. She saw the mane to her side, opened a drawer, fidgeted inside, and then took out a stack of invitation-like things with a smile, saying, "Let''s go to the party. We''ve received so many invitations, and we''ve never been to one before." "Ah..." the woman opened her mouth, but quickly looked at her own attire. "But, I''m not dressed for a party. By the way, where is the party held?" "Most of them should be in Beverly Hills. You know, that''s where most of the stars are." Eric said as he casually flipped through one. "How about this one from the Copp family?" "Francis Ford Copp?" the woman raised an eyebrow and asked. Eric nodded. "Yes, it''s the Copp who directed ''The Godfather''. I''m also quite surprised how we received an invitation from their family," Eric looked at the invitation in his hand and confirmed, "It was received today. Usually, my assistant handles these things, but even though we receive invitations almost every day, I''ve never actually gone." "So I''m the first?" the woman raised her eyebrows. Eric smiled. "Yes, you''re the first." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 312: Occupational habits

Chapter 312: upational habits

At a brightly lit estate in Beverly Hills, the celebration for themencement of filming "The Godfather Part III" was in full swing. Next to the swimming pool outside the mansion, a middle-aged man in his forties, who was slightly overweight and balding, was gesticting wildly while speaking to a ck-haired girl. "I served as Mr. Copp''s assistant director for two consecutive ''Godfather'' movies. You should know that I was only in my early thirties then, and it was not an easy feat to be an assistant director in Hollywood at such a young age. Over the years, I have maintained contact with Mr. Copp. He introduced the investors for my movie. They were very optimistic about my screeny. So, Miss Connolly, as long as you can perform well, I guarantee that this time you will sessfully make the transition." Although Jennifer Connolly was somewhat impatient, she did not dare to show it. Since she lost the role of the romantic interest in "Running Out of Time"st year, her agent, Jim Reston, had stopped focusing on her. As a result, she had not gotten any roles for a year. If she continues to drag on like this, she may bepletely forgotten by Hollywood. Whenever she thinks about this possibility, she feels a strong sense of unease. What else can she do if she leaves Hollywood? She has no other skills besides acting. Although she can ept the option of marrying a man and bing a full-time housewife, she does not want to live that kind of boring life where she only cares about household chores. Even if she gets married, she hopes to live a more affluent life. However, among the people she knows, the only ones who can provide her with this kind of life are those with a certain reputation and status in Hollywood, like the man in front of her who is in his forties or fifties. Not to mention that these people are usually as old as her father, and their marriages in Hollywood are also the most unstable. She might be dumped at any time, and what will she do when she gets older and loses her beauty? "Hey, Miss Connelly, are you listening to me?" The young woman had only briefly drifted off, and soon heard a slightly displeased voice in her ear. She quickly perked up and shed a smile. "I''m sorry, Mr. Brant." Tony Brant was pleased with the woman''s attitude, and without leaving a trace, his gaze nced at the woman''s bosom, which was lifted high by the ck dress. Only then did he say, "Miss Connolly, it''s quite impolite to be distracted on such a grand asion. Those bigwigs won''t be as forgiving as I am. Oh, Mr. Copp ising out now, and there''s Al Pacino, and that... seems to be his nephew, Nics Cage." Jennifer Connolly also saw the group of people walking out of the vi,ughing and chatting. The bearded man in the middle with sses was clearly Francis Copp. The people who had been chatting in the yard all gathered around to greet them. "Miss Connolly,e on, let''s go say hello," Tony Brant said, raising his arm slightly. Jennifer Connelly hesitated for a moment but eventually took the man''s arm and walked towards Francis Copp and hispanions. Once they reached the vicinity of Francis Copp, Tony Brent quickly let go of Jennifer Connelly''s arm and approached the group with a look of eager friendliness. "Congrattions on directing the final installment of The Godfather series, Mr. Copp. I''m sure it''s going to be another sensational movie," he said. "Thank you, Tony. How''s your movieing along?" Francis Copp shook hands with Tony Brent and casually asked. "We''re almost ready to start shooting. Oh, and this is the lead actress I''ve selected. Jennifer Connelly, she starred in Sergio Leone''s "Once Upon a Time in America". She yed the young Deborah, in case you don''t remember," Tony Brent introduced Jennifer to Francis Copp. Francis Copp scrutinized Jennifer Connolly up and down, his gaze resembling that of examining an object. For Hollywood bigwigs like them, no beauty could surprise them anymore. Under this scrutiny, thedy who had nned to greet Francis Copp suddenly felt a wave of restraint and unease. Her right hand, which had been prepared to be raised, gently lowered, clutching the hem of her dress in difort. "Hmm, not bad, just a bit too pretty. Tony, your movie is a drama, and having an overly beautiful female lead is not a good thing." Tony Brent was about to speak, but Francis Copp waved his hand and said, "Of course, that''s your movie that you''ve been preparing for a long time, so it''s up to you to choose the female lead. I won''t interfere." "No, no, no, Mr. Copp. If it weren''t for you, I wouldn''t know where to get the investment from. Moreover, your eyesight is much better than mine. If you think it''s not suitable, I will definitely consider it carefully." Upon hearing Tony Brent''s words, thedy opened her mouth slightly and looked towards Francis Copp. Her fingers, which were clutching the hem of her dress, were trembling with frustration. She had fought hard for this role, and now it seemed like it might all be for nothing just because of a passingment from these people. In that moment, she wished that all these big shots would be dragged down to hell. Copp noticed Connelly''s expression and quickly patted Tony Brent''s shoulder, saying with a smile, "Don''t be like that, Tony. This little girl is actually quite good. If you rece her, I don''t know how many times she''ll curse me in secret." "How could that be? Miss Connelly really admires you. We were just talking about your movie," Tony Brent quickly added. He even gave a little nudge to thedy standing next to him. Jennifer Connelly tried topose herself and sniffed before she could speak, but Francis Copp had already walked away with Al Pacino and Nics Cage to another area. "Frank, who was that person just now? I feel like I''ve seen him somewhere," Al Pacino asked after the three had left. Francis Ford Copp replied casually, "He was my assistant when we made the first two Godfather movies, so that''s probably where you recognize him from. We''ve kept in touch over the years and recently he came to me with his own movie project. I couldn''t turn him down, so I introduced him to some investors." Al Pacino thought for a moment but still couldn''t remember who Tony Lambert was, so he pushed the thought aside. Seeing Nics Cage still looking towards the door on the other side of Francis Ford Copp, Al Pacino chuckled and said, "Okay, Nick, I''ve already told you that Eric rarely attends parties. He doesn''t really like these kinds of asions. You should focus on preparing for your audition. As long as you can impress Eric and with the added advantage of being a member of the Copp family, I believe Eric will give you the leading role in ''Ghost''." Upon hearing Al Pacino suddenly mention Eric, Francis Copp also showed a thoughtful expression, "Speaking of which, during the recent turmoil, many people thought that the young man wouldn''t make it, but not only did he survive unscathed, he also made Michael Eisner suffer a loss and gave away a script. Al, you''ve worked with Eric Williams before. What do you think of him?" Al Pacino thought for a moment and shook his head gently, "I can''t say for sure. At the end of the year beforest, when I just made myeback to Broadway, Eric came to me in a caf and told me about his script. I didn''t find anything special and was about to refuse, but then the young man talked to me confidently about the script of ''Scent of a Woman'' and I found myself intrigued. Soon after, I went with him to Los Angeles. If I had to say, he...is very mature, far beyond his age, and when you are with him, you quickly forget that he is a young man under the age of twenty, but rather feel like you are chatting with someone of the same age." "After hearing what you said, I would also like to meet this miraculous young man," said Francis Copp with a smile. "It seems that Steven had contact with him and wanted to get the adaptation rights for ''Jurassic Park,'' but the young man refused him. Ha ha, in Hollywood, there aren''t many people who can make Steven eat his words." "He certainly has the qualifications now," Al Pacino said, also smiling. Francis Copp was taken aback for a moment, thenughed. "Yes, he certainly does have the qualifications. It won''t be long before Hollywood''s Big Seven bes the Big Eight. I really don''t know how he managed to create so many blockbuster films. Last year, half of the top ten highest-grossing films were produced by Firefly, which is truly astounding." As the three were talking, they saw amotion at the entrance of the estate in the distance. They exchanged a nce and all walked in that direction, wanting to see what was going on. ... ... "Eric, why do you look a bit uneasy? Is the dress not fitting properly?" While driving towards the Copp estate, Eric looked at Famke Janssen sitting in the passenger seat and asked curiously. At this time, thedy was wearing a rose-colored one-shoulder waist-tight evening dress, and her hair was also tied up into a bun. Although she only applied ayer of simple makeup, she still looked much more beautiful than when Eric had just seen her in the afternoon. "No, it''s nothing, just a professional habit," Famke Janssen said, embarrassed, and finally put her hands on her knees. "A professional habit?" Eric became even more curious. "Yes," thedy smiled awkwardly and exined, "When I used to participate in fashion shows, the clothes I wore were made by the designers who just finished their work. If I identally broke them, we small models couldn''t afford to pay for it, so as soon as we finished walking the runway, we couldn''t wait to take them off." Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 313: Why are you clapping

Chapter 313: Why are you pping

"Wow, you don''t have such an urge now, do you?" The woman nodded gently, her face turning even redder. Eric''s smile turned wicked instantly: "Then you''ll have to hold back, at least until we finish the party." The woman raised her small fist, as if wanting to punch Eric''s shoulder, but stopped halfway and whispered, "Eric, I think we should return this dress and shoes after the party." "Don''t you like them?" "Of course I do, I... I really like them," Famke Janssen bit her lip, then continued, "But they''re too expensive, I can''t keep them." "As long as you like them," Eric said casually. "Anyway, I will return the dress and give you back the money tomorrow," the woman said firmly. Eric turned his head and looked at the woman as if he was scrutinizing her, his voice soft and with a hint of other implications, "Don''t worry, you won''t be able to return it." The car stopped outside the Copp estate, and as soon as they got out of the car, a ck doorman greeted them and immediately recognized Eric''s identity. He shed a white smile and graciously took Eric''s car keys, then drove the car to the parking lot. At first, it wasn''t noticeable when she was sitting in the car, but after Famke Janssen put on her high heels, she stood at six feet three inches tall, and with the rose-colored evening gown handmade by a famous designer, she appeared stunning to the security guards and doormen at the entrance of the Copp mansion. Everyone has a sense of vanity, and Famke Janssen is no exception. At this moment, she enjoyed the admiring looks of the security guards and doormen at the entrance, even more than the biggest runway show she had walked in, because at that time, she was just a clothes hanger. But now, the expensive evening gown had be her apaniment. But Eric was still notpletely satisfied, and looked regretfully at the girl''s fair neck. "It would be even more beautiful with a ne. But we''re short on time today, let''s talk about it next time." "I think it''s already great like this," the girl said, intimately taking Eric''s arm. "But I like perfection, not just good," Eric said, handing the invitation to the security guard in charge of checking, and then walking into the Copp mansion. Although Hollywood is never short of beauties, there are not many women like Famke Janssen, who are as tall and beautiful. Therefore, as soon as the two walked shoulder to shoulder into the mansion, the guests who were chatting in groups turned their eyes to them. Some female guests, upon seeing Famke Janssen, even subconsciously hugged the men beside them. Many male guests quickly recognized Famke Janssen''s model-like demeanor, and in Hollywood, female models are very easy to get involved with. However, these people soon noticed the young man next to the girl before they could have any other thoughts. In Hollywood today, anyone who pays even a little attention to Hollywood affairs would not fail to recognize Eric. And those who can attend the party at the Copp family''s mansion are surely of a certain status. The chances of recognizing Eric are even greater. "It seems to be Williams..." "What do you mean ''seems to be''? It clearly is him. How did he get here? I haven''t seen him at any of the parties before. I heard he doesn''t like socializing and only attends some of the firefly''s internal parties at most." ... ... "Wow, it''s really Eric, he''s so handsome. Who''s that woman with him?" "He''s a yboy, having a woman by his side is just normal for him. Hey, Julie, don''t let his appearance deceive you." ... ... "Shall we go and say hello?" "That might be a bit presumptuous." "Come on, let''s go. It''s not often we get a chance to meet new people at these events." Eric couldn''t help but slow down his pace as he felt the strange atmosphere around him. This was his first party after the controversy at the beginning of the year. And it was a party with not many familiar faces, so he couldn''t anticipate how people would react. Seeing people pointing and whispering about him and Famke Janssen, Eric regretted his decision toe. He was worried that he might be snubbed, and that would be a huge embarrassment for him. As he debated whether to continue forward or turn back, a few guests who recognized them whispered to each other before approaching Eric and Famke. "Hello, Mr. Williams. I am Gary Fredrickson, the executive producer of "The Godfather III." Wee to the party." "Hello, Mr. Williams. I am Richard Bright, and I yed a role in "The Godfather III."" "Hello, Mr. Williams..." Eric breathed a sigh of relief as he saw the three men approaching him, and he greeted them with a smile. The surrounding people who were hesitant earlier, seeing Eric''s reaction, eagerly came over to join in the conversation. As Francis Ford Copp, along with Al Pacino and Nics Cage, who had noticed themotion, curiously walked over, they saw that Eric was already surrounded by a group of enthusiastic people. Al Pacino was the first to recognize Eric through the crowd, and after exchanging a few words with Copp, he walked towards the group. The peripheral people soon noticed the arrival of Francis Ford Copp and his entourage and willingly made way for them. "Hello, Eric. It''s been a while. I never expected to see you here tonight," Al Pacino warmly embraced Eric before turning to Famke Janssen and nodding his head, then turning back to Eric. "Eric, let me introduce you to Mr. Francis Copp." "Hello, Mr. Copp. I''m Eric Williams. I really admire your ''The Godfather'' series, and I believe this sequel will definitely be another ssic," Eric said. "Thank you for yourpliment, Mr. Williams," Francis Copp warmly shook Eric''s hand. "Just call me Eric, Mr. Copp. Oh, by the way, this is Miss Famke Janssen," Eric gestured to the girl beside him. Francis Copp smiled and shook hands with the girl, then made eye contact with his nephew. Nics Cage, who had been eager to meet Eric, came forward. "Hello, Mr. Williams. I''m Nics Copp." Compared to Francis Ford Copp, Eric is more familiar with Nics Cage. Despite being dubbed as the "king of bad movies" at one point, it cannot be denied that Nics Cage has starred in many ssic films. "Hello, I think it''s more friendly to call you Mr. Cage. I really love your film "Moonstruck," and both you and Ms. Cher delivered excellent performances." "Thank you, Eric. Just call me Nick," Nics Cage shook Eric''s hand with a slight force. Clearly, his emotions were running high. This detail struck Eric as a bit strange, as if Cage''s eagerness was a bit over the top. After a moment''s thought, Eric quickly realized why he received this invitation - Nics Cage clearly has his sights set on the lead role in "Ghost," just like Brigitte Fossey. After sizing up Nics Cage, who was only twenty-six years old at the time, Eric observed that his hairline had not yet receded like it would twenty yearster. His hair was thick, his eyes deep, and there was a hint of mncholy in his entire demeanor. I noticed Eric scrutinizing Cage, while Francis Ford Copp stood by with a knowing grin, and Al Pacino smiled beside them, understanding that the astute young man had likely picked up on something. Though it felt strange to be scrutinized by someone several years his junior, Cage wisely remained silent. The entire party was held in celebration of the uing production of "The Godfather III," and as the director and lead actor remained silent, the others in attendance sensibly fell quiet as well. After a minute or so of careful consideration, Ericbined his observations of Cage''s performance in "City of Angels" and made a decision. He reached out his hand once more and asked, "Nick, would you like to join the cast of ''Ghost''?" Cage was incredulous, as someone from the Copp family would understand better than most that the lead role in a majormercial film was not easily attained. This was not simply a matter of acting ability, but involvedplex negotiations and maneuvering, as a sessfulmercial film could turn an unknown Hollywood actor into a global superstar. Although many films sold well in Hollywood each year, most of the leading roles were already taken by established stars, leaving few opportunities for neers. Therefore, despite already having the audition opportunity for "Ghost" and being confident in his acting skills, he still took advantage of the opportunity of the party for "The Godfather III" to persuade his uncle to help him invite Eric and continue to push the influence of the Copp family in Hollywood, hoping to increase his chances of getting the role. To his surprise, things turned out to be so simple, making him want to pinch himself hard, thinking that it must be a dream. Cage hadn''t had a chance to pinch himself yet, and Al next to him had already punched him in the chest with a fist: "Lucky guy, do you still need to hesitate?" The impact on his chest finally woke Nics Cage up. He grabbed Eric''s hand and shook it hard, saying, "Of course, Eric, thank you." Of course, Eric wouldn''t just leave it at that. After "Ghost," another Hollywood rising star from the Copp family would appear. How could he easily let go of such a favor? Therefore, after letting go of Cage''s hand, Eric turned to Francis Copp with a smile and said, "Mr. Copp, Nick is a descendant of the Copp family. I believe that his acting skills will not let me down, right?" Eric''s seemingly ordinary statement was quickly recognized by some of the more socially adept people around him as a hint that the Copp family owed him a favor. It remains to be seen whether Francis Ford Copp will acknowledge this favor, but as the sess that Cage achieved through "Ghost Rider" continues to grow, the weight of this favor is sure to increase. Cage noticed the reactions on some people''s faces around him and thought about the meaning behind Eric''s words. He looked at his uncle with some apprehension, even though this uncle had been good to him. When Cage was just starting out, Francis Ford Copp had arranged several small roles for him in his movies. However, he wasn''t actually Francis Ford Copp''s son. To everyone''s surprise, Francis Ford Copp hesitated for two seconds and then shook Eric''s hand with a carefree smile. "Of course, Eric. Nick will not disappoint you, and if he can achieve some sess in his acting career, it will be a glory for the Copp family." Truly one of the four major Hollywood directors, Copp''s character and breadth of mind are not something that ordinary people canpare to. Those around him felt emotional upon hearing Copp''s words and then, led by someone unknown, apuse broke out. Eric released Copp''s hand with a slightly embarrassed expression. Well, it seems he had be a person who seeks to repay kindness, but he had no regrets. It would be foolish not to take advantage of the situation at this moment. After all, he wasn''t doing charity work. However... He nced at the woman next to him who was pping with a smile. "What are you apuding for, silly woman? Are youughing at me?" Fameek Johnson keenly perceived the "killing intent" in Eric''s eyes. Her delicate hand stiffened in front of her for a moment, and then she understood what was happening. She quickly intimately held Eric''s arm and rubbed her soft chest against it a few times without leaving any marks, like a naughty cat asking for attention from its owner. "Alright, Eric. Let''s go inside and let me introduce you to some people," Francis Copp made a gesture of invitation with a smile after a moment. The group walked and chatted, heading towards the mansion. "To be honest, Eric, you should participate in more parties. This will help you better understand Hollywood. Oh, by the way, your ''Free City'' in Malibu is really spectacr. Now many people consider it andmark in Malibu. When will you invite us to visit? I really want to see what a $20 million mansion looks like," Francis Copp walked beside Eric and spoke like a familiar elder. Eric had been smiling and agreeing all along, looking around the estate. When they were about ten meters away from the vi, Eric suddenly stopped and looked curiously in a direction, but the graceful figure quickly disappeared into the crowd. Noticing Eric''s unusual behavior, several people looked curiously in the direction of Eric''s gaze, but they didn''t see anything unusual. Hello everyone, I hope you are enjoying the story so far. As a trantor, I put a lot of time and effort into creating the chapters for your enjoyment. If you find my content valuable and wish to support the continuation of it, I kindly invite you to consider supporting me on Patreon. Your support will not only help me to continue creating more content but also give you ess to new chapters ahead of schedule as a token of appreciation. If you are interested, please visit my Patreon page for more information. https://.patreon/inhollywood Thank you in advance for your support. Chapter 314

Chapter 314: Self-Abandonment #

Francis Copp took back his gaze and introduced actively: Eric, there is a garden there. If you are interested, you can go and have a lookter. There are ornamental nts transnted from the jungles of South America inside. No, its not that. I think I saw an acquaintance, but it may be a mistake, Eric recalled the figure that shed by just now, as if she was still holding onto a middle-aged man with a bald head. Then, it was probably a mistake, she is such an arrogant little girl Shaking his head, Eric didnt say anything, made a calm expression to everyone, and continued walking towards the vi. Tony Brandt, who had been courting Jennifer Connelly, heard the faint apuseing from the gate of the manor. After inquiring around, he quickly returned to Jennifers side and said, It turns out Eric Williams is here, that young and overly ambitious director. I never expected him toe. The middle-aged man seemed to be sighing about something and didnt realize that the girl next to him was in a panic when she heard the name Eric Williams. The goblet in her hand almost fell to the ground, and her thoughts became chaotic Miss Connelly, do you know Eric Williams? He is an extraordinary young man. In less than two years, he has achieved great fame in Hollywood. Being kissed by a lucky woman can no longer exin exin his good luck Hes like the illegitimate child of the goddess of luck, Tony Brandt said, and seemed to find his words amusing as heughed to himself. Jennifer Connelly couldntugh, holding the goblet in her hand, she lowered her eyelids slightly, and a string of numbers shed clearly in her mind. It was Erics phone number that he left her initially. However, she only dialed it once, nine months ago when Running Out of Time was released. She regretted it. But that time, no one answered the phone, and she didnt leave a message either. Afterward, as Erics fame grew bigger and bigger in Hollywood, her pride and inferiorityplex made her never have the courage to call that number again. She felt that as long as she did this, she could hold onto something. At the beginning of the year, the scandal with Eric and many women started, and she was initially involved in it. Butter, the medias attention focused on several Hollywood actresses who had risen to fame thanks to Eric, and she was just like those actresses who had only had brief encounters with Eric, being mentioned as a name in a long string of names, appearing insignificant. Perhaps thats why the middle-aged man next to her asked if she knew Eric Williams. Its ridiculous. Who in Hollywood doesnt know that guy? Soon, Jennifer Connolly saw Eric walking alongside Francis Copp, looking almost the same as he did a year ago. However, he seemed to have a new woman by his side. Although the woman wasnt as pretty as herself, she was tall, about four inches taller than her. However, Jennifer Connolly forced herself to feel a faint sense of fragile superiority in her heart. At least she had held out while they had fallen, yes, thats it. While her head was in a panic, Tony Brandt was wondering if he should go up and introduce himself. But looking at the situation on the other side, with Francis Copp next to Eric, no one around them approached. Francis Copp was the one who introduced Eric to people. Obviously, he had not yet reached the point where Francis Copp would introduce him on his own initiative. Perhaps if he stood closer, Copp might mention him casually. Seeing Eric asionally take out his business card and hand it to someone, Tony Brandt couldnt help but think that if he could get Eric Williams contact information, it mighte in handy someday. After this idea popped up, Tony Brandt was eager to try, but he found it difficult to muster up the courage for a moment. Jennifer Connolly noticed the enthusiasm in the middle-aged mans eyes and realized something. She quickly said, Mr. Brandt, I remember there are benches in the garden. Lets go sit there. Ah, okay. Originally feeling a bit unsure, Tony Brandt suddenly felt like he had been given a boost after being encouraged by Connolly. The woman was afraid that Tony Brandt would back out, so she took the initiative to take his arm and pulled him towards the garden, looking for a bench. They found one near the table where the drinks were ced. Tony Brandt courteously brought two sses of red wine, handed one to Connolly, and quickly found a topic to chat about. However, the woman seemed distracted, constantly sipping on her wine. In just a few minutes, her ss was empty. They had been there for a long time, but the woman had been holding back and had only had two sses of wine in an hour. Therefore, Tony Brandt, who noticed this situation, casually grabbed another ss of red wine from the nearby drink table and handed it to the woman without leaving a trace. Jennifer Connolly was immersed in some emotions at this moment and didnt think too much about it. Instead, she thanked him and took the ss again. A few minutester, another ss of red wine unknowingly reached its end. Tony Brandt finally showed an excited expression on his face after seeing the girl ept the wine he handed her again. His heart beat faster, and he secretly nced at the deep cleavage in the girls dress, already nning how to y with the soft and huge breasts in her dress tonight. After a few sses of wine, Jennifer Connolly seemed to realize something, but she was already slightly drunk and the defenses of a drunk person are always very fragile. Therefore, gradually, the girl even began to give up on herself. Although her drinking speed slowed down a lot, she did not refuse every time Tony Brandt handed her a new ss of red wine. Eric, this is my daughter, Sophia. Sophia, this is Eric Williams, the youngest and most outstanding director in Hollywood, Francis Ford Copp introduced a young girl to Eric after a tour around the vi. Hello, Miss Copp, Eric greeted the girl warmly, who looked at him curiously. Hello, Eric, please call me Sophia, Sophia Copp seemed even more enthusiastic than Eric: I really like your movies. Its hard to imagine that you are so young. Erics expression changed slightly, remembering the girls terrible performance in The Godfather III, he said pointedly, Perhaps you can make good movies too. Why dont you give it a try? I believe your father will definitely support you. Sophias expression changed slightly. She looked at her father before saying, I cant. Im not a genius like you, and Im still so young. Besides, Dad has already decided to let me y the role of the Godfathers daughter in The Godfather III. I think Ill follow my cousin and try to develop my career as an actress. Of course, when youre young, you should try everything to find the best path for yourself, Eric continued. Wow, you dont sound your age at all. You sound like an old man, Sophia couldnt help but say. Sophia, dont be rude. I think Eric is right, Francis Ford Copp scolded his daughter fondly. Sophia stuck out her tongue and said defiantly, Im not wrong. Otherwise, how could an old man like you approve of what he said? Hehe. Francis Ford Copp looked at Eric with some helplessness. Sophia suddenly smiled mischievously and turned to the tall woman standing beside Eric, And you are My name is Fameek Jansen, Fameek Jansen introduced herself. So, Miss Johnson, could you let me have Eric for a while and dance with me? The talldy shrugged and looked at Eric. Of course. Hey, I dont think Ive agreed yet, Eric let the girl pull him onto the dance floor and said with a smile. Would you refuse? Sophia Copp raised her head and asked. Her figure was petite, even with high heels on, she was still ten centimeters shorter than Eric. Well, of course not, Eric shrugged and lightly exposed the girls waist. After dancing with the music for a while, the girl suddenly said, Hey, you seem distracted. Is it that obvious? If it wasnt, how could I tell? The girl pouted, feeling frustrated. To be honest, Sophia Copps lips were a bit thick, and when she spoke, one side of her upper lip liked to curl up, which looked even more awkward. Although in the eyes of Westerners, thicker lips were sexier, Eric still thought thinner lips were more beautiful. Okay, Im sorry, Eric thought to himself and said. Sophia Copp tilted her head and thought for a moment, and asked, By the way, your words just now seemed to imply something. Can you tell me what it means? Do you want to hear the truth? Eric stared at the girl and asked. Mm-hmm. Eric thought about it, it wouldnt hurt if he could make the girl give up the idea of ruining The Godfather ssic series. In his memory, Sophia Copps performance in The Godfather Part III was really unbearable, even with Al Pacino, an Oscar-level veteran actor, as an assistant, it still gave people a strong sense of acting. The two Golden Raspberry Awards were well-deserved. Because they didnt have much rapport, Eric didnt say it in front of Francis Copp earlier, as superficial conversations are taboo in interpersonalmunication. But now, facing the girl alone, as long as he was tactful, it wouldnt have much impact if he said it out, and he could even treat it as a joke afterwards. Chapter 315

Chapter 315: Meet Again #

After pondering for a moment, Eric spoke, Since your father asked you to y the role of Mary Corleone, I assume youve already auditioned for it, right? Of course, Sofia Copp nodded. Then how did your father evaluate your audition? Eric asked, persuasively. Upon hearing the question, the young girl clearly became nervous. Dad said I I did okay. Sofias hesitation allowed Eric to continue the conversation without pressure, Growing up on the set of the Copp family, youve seen countless actors perform. You must be aware of your own acting ability, right? I think if I rehearse more during filming, I can definitely meet the requirements. Besides, Dad also said that even if I dont do well, its okay. After all, its my first time, Sofia said, remembering her fathers encouragement. She lifted her head confidently to look directly at Eric. Eric sighed with emotion and said, From here, you can see how much your father loves you. The Godfather series means something to him, and you know it better than I do. Its the glory of Francis Copp as a director. I believe that for any other actor in The Godfather III, your father would never say its okay even if the performance is bad. Only for you is he so lenient. So, you should think more about your father. The Godfather III is the final chapter of The Godfather series, and Im sure no one in the Copp family would want it to have ws because of an actors performance, right? Sophia Copp lowered her head in silence upon hearing Erics words. Eric gently patted the girls back and continued, As a daughter of the Copp family in Hollywood, you have much more opportunities than others. If you are really interested in acting, I think its best to start from small roles and gradually hone your acting skills, just like your cousin. After a while, Sophia Copp looked up, and Eric could tell from her expression that she had made a decision. He smiled slightly at the girl. However, Sophia Copp didnt seem too grateful. She hugged Erics waist and scratched him behind his back in dissatisfaction, saying, Eric, everyone says youre a yboy. As a yboy, shouldnt you be more charming and attentive to women? Your reaction is just not right. Eric was caught off guard by the sudden change of topic. He didnt know how to respond. Seeing Erics silence, Sofias face darkened, and she said with some self-doubt,Okay, okay, I know Im not that pretty, but you dont have to look like that, do you? Eric quickly shook his head and said, No, Sophia, youre very pretty. If you dont believe me, you can ask your father. How could my dad say that Im not pretty, the girl rolled her eyes at him. However, she didnt pursue the matter any further. As the music ended, the crowd on the dance floor began to leave, and Eric took Sophia Copps hand and walked outside. Eric, Ive decided to follow your advice and start from small roles, the girl took a ss of red wine from the long table and gestured to Eric, I hope we can cooperate in the future. Sure, Eric said with an unchanged smile as he clinked sses with the young girl, but in his mind, he added, unless you decide not to be an actress. Well, have fun. Im going to talk to my dad about this now, the girl said, and then turned and left. After the girl left, Eric looked around but couldnt find Famke Janssen. He thought she must have gone outside the vi. In addition, he was also worried about another matter, so Eric decisively walked outside to check. He quickly made his way through the guests who came up to greet him and soon arrived at the garden. No, no, Mr. Brant, I I The girl shook her head twice, feeling dizzy and swaying to one side. Tony Brandt quickly supported her and let Jennifer Connelly lean on him. He greedily groped at the girls soft waist, but if there werent other guests nearby, he would have grabbed her without hesitation. Although some people saw Tony Brandt getting the girl drunk, such things happened frequently at Hollywood parties, and Jennifer Connelly didnt resist much from beginning to end. Guests who saw this naturally regarded it as consensual behavior. Miss Connelly, Miss Connelly? Tony Brandt gently called Jennifer Connellys name twice. The girl looked at him with blurred eyes and seemed to realize her current situation. She instinctively pushed the middle-aged man away, but had no strength. This made Tony Brandtpletely relieved. He raised his voice loud enough for the surrounding guests to hear: Miss Connelly, let me take you back. Of course, the girl couldnt answer, and some male guests who heard Tony Brandts words just blinked ambiguously at theirpanions, while some female guests frowned slightly but didnt intervene. Tony Brandt had just carried Jennifer Connelly on his shoulders and was about to take a shortcut out when a cold voice sounded, Sir, where are you taking her? Tony Brandts body stiffened. He cursed to himself for being meddled with, but had to temporarily ce the girl on a nearby chair, turn around, and see Eric Williams standing between him and the girl, one hand in his pocket and the other holding a ss of red wine, scanning between him and the girl without expression. Its Mr. Williams. Nice to meet you. Im Tony Brandt, also a director, Tony Brandt recognized Eric Williams and quickly calmed down, reaching out to shake hands with him. Eric Williams just looked at the hand reaching towards him, then nced at Jennifer Connelly without expression and asked, Where are you taking her? Tony Brandt awkwardly withdrew his hand and looked at the girl behind him. If he let go now, maybe nothing would happen. Unfortunately, during the process of getting Jennifer Connelly drunk, Tony Brandt also inevitably drank some alcohol. At this point, he was already seven parts drunk. Thinking of the girls stunning beauty, his lustpletely upied his brain. He said, Mr. Williams, are you talking about Jenny? Shes my girlfriend, she identally got drunk and Im nning to take her home. Eric felt ufortable in his heart and looked at the drunken girl. He couldnt help but say, Shes drunk, so of course you can say whatever you want. But I absolutely dont believe shes your girlfriend. Tony Brandt was stunned for a moment, then felt silly and shrugged, Mr. Williams, Jenny came with me Shut up, dont call her Jenny! Eric suddenly raised his voice as if he had been stimted. Tony Brandt trembled with fear, and his drunkenness had cleared up quite a bit. But at this moment, because of Erics just now words, the guests around them also curiously gathered around. Some more discerning ones recognized Erics identity and saw that he and Tony Brandt seemed to be about to start a conflict. After thinking about it, they decided not to stay and watch the excitement. They turned around and left the garden in a hurry. Seeing the crowd gathering, Tony Brandt found it difficult to back down. He quickly raised his voice, Mr. Williams, you are so rude. Miss Connolly came with me, she is not my girlfriend. Are you still her boyfriend? So many people here can testify that Miss Connolly and I are together. What else do you want? Click! With a soft sound, the goblet broke into two pieces as it hit the ground. The crisp sound of the ss and stone road collision startled the people around. Eric stared at the wound on his hand cut by the ss, and murmured softly, You cant take her away. At least wait until she wakes up. If she admits to being your girlfriend, then I apologize. Tony Brandt, thinking that Eric was guilty, raised his voice even louder, Mr. Williams, you have no right to do this. Jen Miss Connelly is drunk and ufortable and needs to rest. Tony red at Eric, turned around, and was about to help the girl who was slumped in the chair again, when the crowd parted, and a group of 78 people walked in with a look of anxiety. Eric, what happened to your hand? Famke Janssen, who came with Francis Copp, saw Erics bleeding right hand at a nce, and approached him with concern. She grabbed Erics hand and lifted it up to inspect it, and then quickly pressed on the still-bleeding wound. Meanwhile, Sofia Copp, who had alsoe over, untied the silk scarf that matched her dress from around her neck and, together with Famke Janssen, helped Eric bandage his wound. Seeing that Eric was not seriously injured, Francis Copp asked, Whats going on, Corey? Corey, one of the guests, happened to see Tony Brandt pouring alcohol into the girls mouth and, seeing Francis Copps daughter and another tall girl carefully helping Eric with his wound, quickly understood the situation. He exaggeratedly recounted how Tony Brandt had drugged and manipted the girl. As soon as Francis Copp appeared, Tony Brandt had a sense of foreboding. His previous aggressive stance vanished, and he sobered uppletely. Before he coulde up with a way to remedy the situation, Jennifer Connelly, who had been slumped in the chair, weakly spoke up, Water, I want water. Although her voice was low, it attracted the attention of many people. When Sofia Copp recognized Jennifer Connellys beautiful face, the gossip-loving girl, who was When Sophia Copp saw Jennifer Connellys beautiful face, she, like a typical teenage girl, was interested in gossip. After recognizing Jennifer Connelly, she remembered the scattered news in the newspaper a while ago and said to Eric with a hint of jealousy, Wow, Eric, your other girlfriend. The girls careless words caused Famke Janssen to hesitate in his actions, and Tony Brandt, who heard the words, almost copsed to the ground. Although Francis Copp knew that Eric was very fickle, he was not as concerned about tabloid news as his daughter. When he learned about what had happened from Corbett, he didnt know how to handle it for a moment. After all, although Tony Brandt had used some underhanded means, if Jennifer Connelly didnt agree, she wouldnt have been easily drugged. Therefore, Copp originally thought that Eric had fallen for Tony Brandts girlfriend and impulsively yed the hero. At this moment, upon hearing his daughters words, Francis Copp immediately believed it to be true and sternly interrogated Tony Brandt, Tony, how could you do such a thing? Mr. Copp, this is a misunderstanding. Miss Connelly just identally got drunk, and I was just about to take her home, replied Tony Brandt. Hearing Tony Brandt still trying to argue in this situation, Francis Copps tone became even more severe, With so many people here, do you still want to lie? No, I didnt. I Tony Brandt quickly waved his hand, then looked at Eric, Mr. Williams, this is really a misunderstanding. If I had known earlier Eric sighed. Ignoring Tony Brandt, he stepped forward and lifted the heavily drunk girl up, then said to Francis Copp, Sorry, Mr. Copp, Ive caused you trouble. Its nothing, replied Copp, then turned to his daughter, Sophia, take Eric and find a room for this youngdy to rest. There should be sober soup in the kitchen. Eric, follow me, the girl immediately led Eric out of the crowd. After a few steps, Eric suddenly remembered something and turned back to the tall girl, Fanny,e too. Fanny Jensen, who thought she was about to be awkwardly left behind, breathed a sigh of relief and hurriedly crossed the crowd to catch up. The guests who saw this couldnt help but show envy on their faces. Hes really a yboy, holding one girl in his arms and not letting go of another. After Erics figure disappeared, Francis Copp turned to Tony Brandt and said, Tony, go, and donte back. You made a mistake. No, Mr. Copp, it really was a misunderstanding. I didnt Seeing that Copp was also about to leave, Tony Brandt suddenly dared not argue any longer and desperately held Copps arm, pleading, Im sorry, Mr. Copp, I was wrong, I was really wrong. I will go apologize to Mr. Williams and Miss Connelly. Mr. Copp, give me another chance. Copp shook his arm in disgust, but couldnt shake off Tony Brandt. He said, Tony, lets go and find another leadingdy to finish your movie. If you keep bothering me, Ill call Cliff. When Copp said he was going to call his movie investor, Tony Brandt immediately let go of his hand and Copp left without looking back. The guests who were originally just watching the excitement took pity on the disoriented middle-aged man. When this matter spread out today that he not only offended Hollywoods rising star, Eric Williams, but was also kicked out by Francis Copp himself. Tony Brandt would have no chance of making it in Hollywood in the future. After all, anyone who wants to work with him again would inevitably think of what Copp or Eric Williams would think. Hollywood has plenty of people, and not many would be willing to take this risk. Eric, put her on the bed. Ive already sent the maid to fetch the hangover soup, Sofia Copp led Eric all the way to the second floor of the vi, opened a room, and let Eric in. Thank you, Sofia, Eric put Connie on the big bed, looked around, and only then realized, Is this your room? Sofia hurriedly stuffed several pieces of close-fitting clothes into the closet, blushing as she exined, Yes. Feeling the girls embarrassment, Eric didnt look around anymore and sat down by the bed, looking at the pretty face on the bed. They hadnt seen each other for a year, and the girls face was a little thinner, but it was more beautiful and charming. A middle-aged maid dragged a tray to the door. After ncing into the room, Famke Janssen, who was standing at the door, took the tray and said, Let me do it. The maid nodded and handed the tray to the tall girl before leaving. Eric, Famke Janssen handed him the hangover soup. Eric took the bowl and looked up at the girl, saying, Sorry, Famke. Famke Janssen forced a smile and said, Its okay. In her semi-conscious state, Jennifer Connelly felt herself being ced on a soft bed. She vaguely recalled some of the events before getting drunk and felt that something was not right. She tried to struggle to get up, but couldnt muster any strength. Soon, she felt someone helping her up and heard a familiar voice. She tried to open her eyes and looked at the girl, who soon gave a slightly self-deprecating smile." Chapter 316

Chapter 316: Wild Hope #

It must have been a mistake. How could it be him? The spoon approached her lips, and she weakly opened her mouth. The warm liquid flowed down her throat and into her stomach, instantly making her feel much better. But after just a few sips, her stomach churned, and she retched twice before feeling her body start to float again. A momentter, she was already leaning over the toilet, and the gentle tapping on her back made her unable to hold it in any longer. She vomited out all the alcohol she had been drinking all night. Coming out of the bathroom, Eric patiently fed the girl the hangover soup, and finally wiped the corners of her mouth before standing up. Famke and Sophia looked at Eric withplex gazes. Eric, youre so thoughtful. I wish my future boyfriend could treat me like this, Sophia said without concealing her thoughts. Although Famke Jensen didnt say anything, his gaze at Eric was less meaningful and more tender. Eric smiled and wiped his hands with a towel before saying to Sophia Copp, Sophia, can she rest here for the night? She just vomited all the alcohol in her stomach, and she wont dirty your bed again. Sophia Copp asked incredulously, Arent you taking her back? The girl suddenly remembered there was another woman in the room and covered her mouth subconsciously. Eric exined, Actually, we havent seen each other for a year, and we dont have the kind of rtionship you think we do. Wow, Sophia Copp eximed, not knowing what to say. Famke Janssen breathed a sigh of relief. So, let her sleep here, and Ill manage in the guest room for the night, Sofia Copp said quickly. Eric thanked her and, in the strange gazes of the two women, took Jennifer Connellys handbag from the bedside table and flipped through a small notebook inside. After searching through it, Eric quickly picked up the phone on the bedside table and dialed Jennifer Connellys agents number. Hello, Jim Lester This is Eric Williams. Are you in Los Angeles now? Alright, lets meet at the headquarters of Firefly Film Company tomorrow at 10 a.m. to discuss Jennifer Connellys situation Alright, bye. Hanging up the phone, Eric casually flipped through the notebook in his hand and quickly found a page that was obviously different from the others. It seemed to have been rubbed many times, and the corners were all gone, but his Beverly Hills mansions phone number was clearly written on it. With a slight smile, Eric closed the notebook and put it back in the white handbag of the woman. Fami, we should go, Eric said, standing up and looking at Jennifer Connelly sleeping. Sofia Copp instructed a maid to stay in the room to take care of Jennifer Connelly and followed Eric and Fami out of the room. Dont you want to stay a little longer? Its still early, she asked. No, its already past 11 p.m. and we need to drive back to Malibu, Eric said, looking at his watch. The girl didnt try to keep them and left with Eric and Fami after saying goodbye to Francis Ford Copp and others. An hourter, after parking the car in the garage of the Cliff Peak Manor, Eric led the girl into the vi. Pulling his tie, Eric finally spoke to the girl, who was curiously looking around, Sorry, Fami, tonight must have been a bit of a letdown. No, not at all. I think it was pretty good, she replied. The girl smiled at Eric and said, If it were before, as a rtively unknown model, I would never have been able to attend such a party. Seeing Eric walk towards the floor-to-ceiling windows facing the sea, the girl followed him. After a few steps, she couldnt help but say, This ce is really big. It doesnt feel like a ce where people live Oh, no, I mean, it doesnt feel like a ce where people live, but more like a library or a museum. Eric didnt pay attention to the girls mistake in her words. He brought a pot of coffee to the round table by the window and casually turned off all the lights in the hall. The surroundings suddenly darkened, and the girl was startled and eximed, Hey But soon, her eyes adjusted, and she noticed a faint light shining through the ss window. She walked to the bed and looked outside. Below was a dark sea, and several starlights dotted the night sky around a full moon, bringing a sense of peaceful beauty. How is it? Eric sat down on the space chair at the round table, pouring coffee for both of them and asking softly. The girl carefully leaned on the bed and enjoyed the night view outside for a while before sighing softly, Its very beautiful. I take back what I just said. This is where people live. The apartment I rented in Burbank couldnt see any of this. I couldnt sleep all night because of the noise from passing cars. Eric leaned back and looked at the girl who sat on the hanging space chair across from him, holding the coffee cup he had pushed over, gently swaying back and forth. Her dress was still the same rose-red one, and the hem swayed with her movements. Her fair feet, which had taken off her high heels, were barely visible under the skirt. Her slender body leaned on the white egg-shaped space chair, looking very beautiful, making Eric feel an urge to take photos of her. If you like it, you can live here, Eric said after appreciating her for a while. When she heard this, Farid Johnson, the girl, stopped swaying the space chair and looked a little moved. However, she quickly shook her head and said, If I live here, I dont even know where to put myself. I remember you said in the office this afternoon that Im too softhearted, Eric said. Huh? Eric didnt answer the girls question and continued, When I saw Jennifer Connolly against night, I regretted letting her gost year. Huh? Do you know who Howard Hughes is? Eric asked. Famek Jensen tilted her head and thought for a moment before shaking her head, I dont know. Eric was taken aback, realizing that the girl was not American but born in the Nethends and came to the United States as an adult, so it was not surprising that she didnt know who Howard Hughes was. Since the girl didnt know, Eric exined, Howard Hughes is one of Hollywoods greatest filmmakers and also one of the greatest yboys. His hunting grounds included almost all the famous A-list actresses of Hollywood in the 1930s and 40s. Katharine Hepburn, Bette Davis, Susan Hayward, Jean Tierney, Rita Hayworth, Ava Gardner maybe you havent heard of many of them. But if you do a search, youll find that any one of them is called the most dazzling or greatest actress. A magazine once revealed that Howard Hughes had 164 girlfriends at one point and his secret locations were scattered all over Los Angeles Famek Jensen listened as Eric told the glorious resume of Howard Hughes like a storyteller, and his tone seemed to be increasingly admiring, even fanatic. The girl couldnt help but open her mouth slightly. Taking advantage of Erics pause, she inserted a sentence, Youre not going to be like him, are you? Erics speech halted for a moment, then quickly and firmly replied, Why not? In terms of achievement, at my current age, I have already surpassed Howard Hughes by far. Moreover, he inherited his fathers wealth, but I started from scratch; in terms of wealth, I will definitely be richer in the future; in terms of status, I own Firefly, and it wont be long before this moviepany joins the ranks of movie giants. So, why not? But, but Theres no but. Eric suddenly waved his hand, Ive decided that any woman I like in the future, I will definitely hold her firmly in my hands, no matter what method I use. Famek Jensen instinctively shrank back in her space chair, Am I one of them? Erics tone carried a hint of evil, What do you think? I I havent decided yet. The girls head was already muddled by Erics extremely destructive words just now. Come here, Erics voice carried a hint of temptation. Upon hearing this, the girl subconsciously put down the coffee cup in her hand and stood up to walk in front of Eric. As she stood in front of the man, she suddenly realized what she had done. She turned her head to look behind her, puzzled at how she had be like this As soon as the voice fell, the sound of the cloth being torn and stinging came out. I said, you cant return it, Eric leaned close to the girls ear and blew hot air again, feeling the coolness behind him, Famke Janssen gasped for breath twice before pressing hard on the man hammered: Asshole, forty thousand dors. The girl felt distressed and wanted toin a few more words, but her red lips were quickly blocked. After a while of humming, the two bodies quickly rolled down from the space chair. The ground was just covered with a carpet, so although the dress on the girls body had been torn to pieces, she didnt feel the chill. . After a while, the girl felt her body being embraced by the mans strong arms, she took a few steps to the French window, and then was pressed somewhat roughly on the cold ss, the mans lips ran along her bare back Slowly asking the neck, moving up all the way, the girl turned her head subconsciously, and kissed the woman again. Pulled the girls waist and hips backwards, and made a good posture. After the soldiers approached the city, Eric let go of the girls red lips, leaned close to the girls ear and asked softly, Have you thought about it yet? Uh? Mmm,e on,e on, the aroused girl murmured, reaching back with her hand to grab something. Before she could even make a move, her arms were simultaneously lifted and firmly pressed against the ss window. Have you made up your mind? Eric asked softly again. You, youre such a tyrant, the girlined weakly, wriggling her waist. Eric showed no sign of backing down, holding the girls wrists with one hand and teasing her with the other, leaning in close to her ear once again. Have you made up your mind? he asked. Uh The girl sighed and finally surrendered after struggling for a while, pressing her fair face against the ss window. I have made up my mind. Ill be your woman, your woman. A contented groan soon sounded in the empty hall. The body was soft andfortable, but also very tired. The eyes didnt want to open. But it seemed like there was still something to do. What was it? The thought turned around in a daze, until it dawned on her. She still had work to do. Thats right, she was shooting a TV drama. Beingte would get her scolded. Then she suddenly sat up, the thin nket slipping off her body, revealing a pair of softness standing tall on her chest. She rubbed her head, rubbed her eyes, and then Famke Janssen saw the situation around her clearly. This was a veryrge bedroom. There were windows on all sides, which were now all open. The morning light shone in, illuminating the bedroom brightly, but there was no floating dust in the air that drifted around with the sunlight. She quickly remembered everything fromst night and felt like it was a dream, but how could it be a dream? Oh no, she seemed to have promised something. The woman grumbled and got out of bed barefoot, but couldnt find her clothes around. She had to search through a small wardrobe next to it and found a piece that fit her height, which was simr to Erics. The shirt could barely cover her buttocks, and her two long legs were exposed without any cover, and the scenery between the long legs could be vaguely seen while walking. Curiously, she walked around the bedroom and saw the city of Malibu to the north. The densely packed small vis looked somewhat ridiculous. Well, she didnt know why she felt that way. She went to the other side and the sun had risen high, with the sea and sky intertwined, so blue and beautiful. She hesitated in the bedroom for a few minutes, opened the wardrobe and searched, then mmed the wardrobe door hard, Why are there only shirts? No pants. She looked down at her outfit and nced at the rm clock on the bedside table, it was already eight thirty. It would take at least an hour to drive from here to the filming location on the other side of the Santa Monica Mountains. She would definitely bete. However, no one would dare to scold her today, right? She thought smugly. It seemed that although her performance was terrible, she had never been scolded. The reason why she was always worried about being scolded seemed to be because Brad Pitt, who was much better than her, was often scolded. Thinking of that figure, she quickly understood why. For some reason, she felt happy in her heart. Then she followed the stairs downstairs, cautiously ncing at the hall and thought that if outsiders were to see me like this, it would be terrible. Fami, youre awake, wow, Eric had just finished his routine exercise and showered when he came out wearing a towel and saw the girl peeking out from the stairs, can not help but marvel, because from his angle, he had a clear view of the scenery between her legs. Famke Janssen saw Eric squinting and helplessly pulled his shirt hem,ining again, Why are there only shirts in your bedroom closet? Not even a pair of pants. Eric teased, Just to see this kind of scene. Ugh, jerk, the girl cursed. Okay, Famke, I have some Drews clothes here, but you definitely cant wear them. Youll have to wear yesterdays costume for now. Ill go get it for you. It seems to be still in the car. Hurry, hurry, and also, my underwear. Got it, Eric turned and walked away. The girl hesitated for a moment on the stairs before cautiously walking down barefoot and pacing around the living room. Eric quickly returned and handed the bag of clothes and shoes to the girl, pointing to the bathroom, You can take a shower while youre at it. Thank you, Famke Janssen took it and just turned around, feeling her butt being patted. Ah, darn it, the girl covered her buttocks and red at Eric in protest. Go ahead, Eric didnt feel ashamed at all and grinned, as if he wanted to do it again. Seeing this, the girl hurriedly fled. After more than ten minutes, the two sat together in the dining room, watching Eric eating breakfast and reading the newspaper across from them. Famke Janssenined, Were already sote this morning, we definitely wont be able to shoot anything. Dont worry, itll be quick, Eric flipped a page of the newspaper without looking up. It takes at least an hour to drive from here to the set, its probably already past ten oclock by the time we get there. Then theres makeup, set design, lines The girl took a sip of milk and kept talking. It wont take that long, at most half an hourte. Famke Janssen looked at Eric contemptuously, Hmph, its easy for you to say. Can I fly over there? Ive ordered a helicopter for you. Itll take you there in half an hour. The girl opened her mouth and then shook her head suddenly, No, no, this is too showy. If we do that, everyone willtheyll Eric joked, Thats what I want, to assert my authority. Lets see who still dares to pay attention to you in the future. Youreunreasonable, the girl was stunned for a moment before quickly retorting. Okay, darling, whatever you say, Eric continued, By the way, a real estate agent wille to see you this afternoon. You said the apartment in Burbank was too noisy, right? Lets finish work early and have him take you to pick a vi in Beverly Hills. Ill inform the crew. II cant afford to rent there now, the woman shook her head. Pick whichever one you want, the one you pick will be yours, Ill swipe my card. I dont want that. Well, you can buy your own furniture, I wont bother with that. I dont want it, the woman repeated. Oh, by the way, do you want a car? How about a Lamborghini? Hmmno, the lines on a Lamborghini are too hard, I think a Ferrari would be more suitable for a woman, Eric said, suddenly remembering the scene of the woman driving a convertible Ferrari with Bond in GoldenEye, it was simply too cool: Yeah, a Ferrari it is, thats settled. Chapter 317

Chapter 317: Small vase #

After breakfast, Eric took Janssen to outside the estate where a red and white Bell helicopter was already parked on the helipad. The pilot saw Eric and quickly jumped down from the helicopter, walking towards them. He was a tall white man, almost two meters in height, with a light stubble on his face and a sharp gaze. He had a military demeanor in his speech and actions, and Eric guessed he must be a retired soldier. Hello, Mr. Williams, Im Mark Billman, the tall man introduced himself to Eric and thedy. Hello, Mr. Billman, Eric shook his hand. I presume you already know your task? Of course, Mark Billman nodded and then turned to thedy. Miss Janssen, please follow me. Eric, I still feel thedy looked at the helicopter and then turned to Eric, still hesitant. Eric embraced her and kissed her on the cheek. Its okay, Fami, youll get used to it. Miss Janssen, are you worried about airsickness? Dont worry, itll only take about ten minutes from here to Karabasas. Its fast, Mark Billman assured her. Seeing Mark Billman speak, Famke Janssen didnt say anything anymore, or it would embarrass Eric. Soon, thedy boarded the helicopter. Eric stepped back and waved at the slowly risingdy, watching the helicopter gradually be a small white dot and thinking that perhaps he should hire a dedicated helicopter team. This way, he could save a lot of time between the city and the estate. Moreover,pared to private nes, helicopters were much cheaper. The price of a helicopter was only equivalent to a high-end sports car. Even if he hired a team responsible for helicopter driving and maintenance, it wouldnt cost much in a year. Besides, this way, he could also protect himself from the paparazzi. Its not realistic for them to chase after a helicopter. Returning to the vi, Eric walked towards the space chair where they had entwined the night before. Seeing the scattered fragments of the gorgeous red silk around, it was obvious that it was the remains of the expensive evening gown fromst night. He casually picked up the scattered fabric and stuffed it into the garbage bin. Then, Eric sat down on the space chair and looked out at the sea sponge, thinking about what had happened yesterday. Since he had made some decisions, Eric had no intention of changing them. With his previous women, including Drew, although he would often be dominant and say things like youre my woman, if they were determined to leave him, Eric had no ns to stop them. Having lived two lives, he was already very open-minded about many things, but now he had decided not to let such things happen again. Eric was determined to gather all the women he fancied around him. This was not a delusion as he could give them everything they wanted, whether it was material things or fame and fortune. The women who could enter Hollywood didnt they pursue name and profit? Therefore, he would give them everything they wanted, and in return, they must give him what he wanted. This was a fair exchange. Of course, all of this was based on strength. When Eric had enough power in Hollywood, those women who took what they wanted but didnt want to pay for it would have to think carefully about the consequences. Famke Janssen was the first in his n. After spending most of the day together, Eric had roughly figured out the personality of this talldy. She was proud, independent, and had some feminist tendencies. However, at the same time, Famke Janssen also longed for the luxury and extravagance of Hollywood. This was why she did not refuse the Beverly Hills property that Eric had gifted her during breakfast. If it were not for Eric, it might have taken thedy a long time to acquire all of these things. In her past life, Famke Janssen had always been a second-line actress in Hollywood. Although she appeared in the X-Men series as Jean Grey,pared to Halle Berry, who yed Storm, thedy could only be considered a small vase. In Erics memory, thedy eventually went through a bottleneck in her Hollywood career and switched to starring in American TV dramas. Now, although Famke Janssen had been arranged by Eric to y the leading role in The X-Files, this TV series would definitely have a deep impact on her acting image. However, as long as Eric was willing, it would be effortless for her to transition to the big screen, and even develop in both film and television simultaneously. Of course, there are prerequisites to getting all of this. After thinking for a moment, Eric got up with a smile. Now, its time to deal with the other womans matter. Jennifer Connelly woke up early, still feeling groggy as she looked around the bedroom, clutching her nket. As a girl, she quickly realized that this was clearly a girls room, and there were no signs of vition on her body, which made her breathe a sigh of relief. There were only a few vague fragments in her mind, and she found it difficult to recall what had happenedst night. She only remembered feeling a bit upset, so she drank a lot of alcohol and got very drunk. Then, there was nothing, and she woke up here. The faint morning light gradually gave way to sunshine, and the bedroom became brighter and brighter, to the point where the curtains were unable to block it out. Just as she was feeling bewildered, the bedroom door was pushed open, and she quickly pulled the nket around herself, looking nervously at the doorway. A girl wearing a dark blue long-sleeved t-shirt and jeans walked in, saw her wide-eyed and smiled, revealing two front teeth: Miss Connelly, are you awake? Jennifer Connelly vaguely remembered this girl as being Sofia Copp, Francis Copps daughter. She had just met her at the partyst night. Hello, Miss Copp, may I ask, where is this? This is my house. You got drunkst night, and Eric let you sleep here. Eric, Eric Williams. She quickly remembered the young and spirited figure she had seen from afarst night and heard Sofia Copps words. For some reason, Jennifer Connelly suddenly felt a little aggrieved and tears welled up in her eyes. Whats wrong? Are you still feeling bad? You drank quite heavilyst night. If it wasnt for Eric, you might have Seeing the girls eyes fill with tears in an instant, Sofia Copp asked with concern. Soon, Jennifer felt that it would be better not to mention what had happenedst night. Im fine, Jennifer Connelly shook her head and hesitated before asking, What about him? Him? Oh, you mean Eric. He went back, Sofia Copp said. The girl shrank in the nket, and a feeling of disappointment surged in her heart. After saying a few words, Sofia Copp sat down on the small stool by the dressing table and asked somewhat gossipy, Hey, Jenny, whats the deal between you and Eric? He got so angry for youst night and almost fought with the person who brought you here. Everyone could see that he really likes you. But he also said he hasnt seen you in a year? When Jennifer Connelly heard this, she was stunned but only shook her head and didnt answer. She really didnt know how to answer. Seeing that the girl didnt want to talk, Sofia didnt force her and continued, By the way, when he leftst night, he found your address book and called someone named Tim Lester. He asked him toe and see him at 10 oclock in the morning. Tim Lester is your agent, right? The girl was stunned again and murmured softly. At the same time, a faint hope rose in her heart. But this hope was not for her acting career, but because she heard that guy was still paying attention to her. Sophia Copp was chattering away when a maid knocked on the bedroom door and said, Miss, its time for breakfast. Oh, well be right there, the young girl replied, then turned to Jennifer Connelly and said, Lets get up and go to the restaurant together. Ten minutester, Sophia led a freshly washed Jennifer Connelly down to the restaurant on the ground floor. Several people were already seated there, including Francis and Eleanor Copp, Sophias brother Roman Copp, and Nics Cage, who had not left since the previous night. Seeing his daughter bring Jennifer Connelly into the restaurant, Francis Copp greeted her warmly, Good morning, Miss Connelly. Did you sleep wellst night? Very well, thank you for your concern, Mr. Copp, Connelly replied shyly, nodding to the other people in the restaurant. Last night, Francis Copp had looked at her with the same appraising gaze one would give a beautiful vase. But now, his tone was that of a kind elder, which made Connelly feel a little ttered and unsure of how to react. Before she knew it, Sophia had led her to the table, and the maid had expertly divided their breakfast into two portions. So, Sophia, are you really nning to listen to that kid and not y the role of Mary Corleone? Francis Copp quickly shifted the conversation to his younger daughter as soon as the two women were seated. Upon hearing this, Connelly pricked up her ears. She sensed that Francis Copp was referring to Eric Williams, and Sophia quickly confirmed her suspicion. I think Eric has a point. I have no acting experience at all, and I dont want to ruin Dads hard work because of me, Sophia said. Chapter 318

Chapter 318: Insider information at the dinner table #

Francis Copp hurriedly said, No, no, no, Sofia, believe in yourself. You have great potential. Dont listen to that kids words. Hes only 19 and has achieved so much. Of course, my daughter can too. Dad, I think Williams right, Sofia Copps brother, Roman Copp suddenly spoke up. Roman! Francis Copp frowned disapprovingly at his son. Roman shrugged and quickly lowered his head. Cage, on the other hand, had no intention of speaking. Although he agreed with Erics opinion because he had seen his cousins performance before, he didnt want to say anything. Seeing the atmosphere beginning to change, Sofia quickly intervened, Dad, lets not talk about this anymore. I know you love me, and I love you too. So, I hope The Godfather III will be even better. I have made up my mind to try like Nick, starting with small roles. Didnt Tim Burton rmend a girl named Winona Ryder to you before? I heard her performance is excellent. Maybe you can let her try. Francis Copp red at his son and quickly turned to his younger daughter with a doting expression, Alright, Sofia, Ill let Winona Ryder try. Roman was helpless with his fathers favoritism. He thought for a moment and then smirked at his sister, Sofia, since Eric Williams made the suggestion, you should make him pay for a role. Hmph, Im not as shameless as you, the girl snorted and buried her head in her breakfast. Francis Copp sighed, Indeed, Eric Williams star-making ability in movies is too strong. From the little boy in Home Alone to that Australian girl named Nicole Kidman, who has be a first-line actress. I heard Tom Cruise not only refused the invitation to Ghost, but also criticized the movie. Hes a foolish guy. Hey, Dad, Tom Cruise is one of my idols. How can you say that about him? Sofia protested, lifting her small face. Sister, Dad is right. Tom Cruises behavior this time is indeed foolish. Although he has been popr for ten years, his personal box office performance is very unstable. Moreover, Tom Cruise has a fatal w. He doesnt have any hot-selling series of movies to rely on. In this case, once the movies he stars in encounter several consecutive box office failures, he will quickly step down from the position of a first-line star, Roman exined. The girl protested, But there are many famous actors in Hollywood who dont have a series of movies to rely on, right? Roman Copp continued, Many people dont need to, like Al Pacino and Robert De Niro, these actors known for their acting skills, they can gain enough poprity based on their talent alone. But Tom Cruise is different. Do you remember the very popr movies Grease and An Officer and a Gentleman from a long time ago? The girl nodded, Yes, I know. The male lead in Grease, John Travolta, and the male lead in An Officer and a Gentleman, Richard Gere, were both considered idol-type stars at that time, but in recent years, who can still see them in Hollywood? The reason is that after these two representative works, they had bad luck and did not encounter any more big-selling movies. Tom Cruises route is simr to theirs, but his luck is good, he can encounter a big-selling movie every few years, which has kept him in the forefront of Hollywood. But in Hollywood, luck is the most unreliable thing. Francis Copp also nodded approvingly at his son, and Sofia Copp looked thoughtful, Are you saying that if he has another hot franchise, even if his poprity declines, he can gather his poprity again by rebooting the sequel? Of course. Look at Harrison Ford, his poprity took a big hit a few years ago. Butst year, he easily returned to the A-list with the Indiana Jones movie, said Roman Copp. Suddenly lowering his voice and using a slightly gossipy tone, he added, And, I heard at a party before that Tom Cruises very capable agent, Pa Wagner, had already selected a series of film projects for him, but the adaptation rights of the rted TV series were taken by Eric Williams. Sophia Copp immediately leaned over to her brother with a gossipy look and asked, What TV series? Can I find the videotape and watch it? Roman Copp stirred his food on the te in front of him with his fork before saying, It seems to be called Mission: Impossible, but that TV series is already very old, and you definitely wont find the videotape. Cough, cough, lets stop talking and eat, Francis Copp looked at the two children with their heads together, whispering like two plotting little mice, and said discontentedly. Then he turned to Cage on the other side and said, Nick, make an effort in Ghost this time, try to build a good rtionship with Eric Williams. It will definitely help your future development. I know, uncle, Nichs Cage nodded. Jennifer Connelly listened to this family chatting about various Hollywood insider rules that most people wouldnt know. Although the Copp family always talked to her from time to time, making her feel not left out, the girl still felt that she shouldnt be here at all. After breakfast, Jennifer Connelly hurriedly said goodbye to the Copp family. She still had another thing on her mind - the matter of Eric asking her agent to meet him at Firefly at 10 oclock today. Just walked out of Copps mansion, Jennifer Connelly saw a silver car parked far away on the west side of the gate, and her agent Tim Lester was anxiously looking towards the gate. As soon as he saw her, he excitedly waved at her and Connelly quickened her pace to approach him. After receiving Erics callst night, Tim Lester had not slept well and was in a slight state of excitement all night. However, he could not contact Connelly until the next morning when he mustered the courage to call Tony Brent. Although the other partys tone was bad, he still told him where Connelly was. Therefore, Tim Lester came to Copps mansion early in the morning, but after arriving, he became uncertain. How could Jennifer Connelly be staying here? This was Francis Copps house, one of the four major directors in Hollywood. Therefore, he didnt even have the courage to approach and could only wait foolishly near the gate, hoping that Jennifer Connelly woulde out early. He wanted to take her to the Firefly filmpany, although Eric did not say they would go together, Tim Lester naturally thought that Eric meant it. And with Jennifer Connelly, he would have more confidence. Morning, Tim, Jennifer Connelly walked to her agents side and greeted him nervously. The agent didnt have time to chat with her and quickly said in a hurried tone, Jenny, get in the car, well talk on the way. Um, do I do I have to go too? the actress asked hesitantly. Tim Lester nodded, Of course, Eric Williams definitely wants to see you. The girl was pulled onto the car by her agent while feeling dizzy, and soon arrived at the headquarters of the Firefly Movie Company with Tim Lester. Tim led the girl to the front desk and said a few words to the receptionist. The receptionist looked at the records and politely said, Sir, you are Tim Lester, right? Mr. Williams has greeted you and you can go up and find him directly, but he didnt mention this youngdy. Jennifer Connollys gaze suddenly became a bit dim, but Tim Lester said, Mr. Williams must have forgotten. Can you inform him that Jennifer Connolly is also here? I believe he will let us go up together. The receptionist looked at Jennifer Connolly and reluctantly nodded, picked up the phone and made a call before saying, You can go up now. Mr. Williams office is on the 7th floor, room 706. After thanking the receptionist, Tim Lester led the girl to the elevator. Jenny, please dont be willful this time, okay? Tim Lester hesitated for a moment in the elevator, but finally said. Jennifer Connolly fell silent and nodded quietly. Tim Lester breathed a sigh of relief, but couldnt help butfort her, Eric Williams is single now. There are countless women in Hollywood who have their eyes on him. Moreover, he clearly likes you. If you can be his girlfriend, it will be a great help to your future development. Hollywood is very realistic. I think you must have realized this during this year. Um In the office, Eric Williams was multitasking, listening to ns exnation of his work arrangements for the past few days while quickly flipping through the materials on the Hollywood special effectspany submitted by the consultingpany. Eric did not look at the specific details, but was looking for any outstanding special effects crew that he remembered from his past life. He still believed in his memory. If someone did an excellent job in his past life, with his help in this time and space, they would definitely be able to do even better. Sure enough, Eric found a familiar name in the information, the Stan Winston Studio. Chapter 319

Chapter 319: Interested #

Quickly nced at the detailed information below, Stan Winston Studio was established in 1972 and has taken on special effects production for many films, including the famous Terminator and Alien, and even won an Oscar for Best Visual Effects in 1986. Stan Winston, the owner of the studio, is also a well-known visual effects master in Hollywood. In addition, Eric also recalled some information from his past life. In his previous life, he and Industrial Light & Magic and Peter Jacksons Wt Workshop werepeting in the digital field together with Stan Winston and the famous James Cameron. This studio was even more powerful in some aspects of movie CG technology than Industrial Light & Magic. However, the digital field does not have the strong technological umtion of Industrial Light & Magic, nor the various policy support enjoyed by Weta Digital Studio because of its location in New Zend. Moreover, with Camerons departure, the founders departure, and Stan Winstons passing away, the studio eventually fell into bankruptcy without any leadership. n, help me contact Mr. Stan Winston, Eric handed the information about Stan Winston Studio to n and said, as soon as possible. You know, the time for Ghost Love is very tight. New York has already finished shooting, and I onlyck the female lead. The most important thing now is to solve the special effects issue. n nodded after looking at the information, but said, Eric, I think if we hand over the special effects to Industrial Light & Magic, the movie can definitely bepleted on time. But if we do it ourselves, the effects and time will be hard to determine. Eric fell silent for a moment before saying, I have a sense of measure. Please contact Mr. Stan Winston as soon as possible. I understand, n nodded and was about to leave when the office door was knocked. After receiving permission, the female secretary poked her head in and said, Mr. Williams. Theyre here. Let them in, Eric said. n had just heard the content of Erics phone call with the front desk, and tactfully turned and left. Tim Lester and Jennifer Connelly soon walked in one after the other. Hello, Mr. Williams, Tim Lester extended his hand and shook hands with Eric who emerged from behind his desk. Hello, Tim, Eric smiled and let go of his hand. He then looked at Jennifer Connelly, who lowered her head slightly in difort, but quickly raised it again, trying to show a gracious smile, but her expression seemed uneasy no matter how you looked at it. Jenny, long time no see, Eric whispered. Yesyes, the girl nodded, feeling a little uneasy. She wanted to say something more, but Eric had already pointed to the lounge area: Lets talk there. The three of them sat down on the sofa, and the secretary brought them coffee. Eric sat opposite, openly scrutinizing the girl in front of him. Jennifer Connelly met Erics gaze, but quickly looked away in panic, as the aggressiveness in the mans eyes was almost identical to that of a year ago. What have you been up to this year, Jenny? Eric took the initiative to ask. I the girl hesitated, not knowing what to say. Should she talk about her audition failures and being neglected by her agent? Tim Rester was right here. Even if the agent wasnt here, she couldnt say that. Seeing the awkward look on the girls face, Tim Rester quickly said, Mr. Williams, Jenny spent most of her time at Stanford University this year, as you know. Shes still young and its never a bad thing to learn more. Eric nodded nomittally, looking at the girl and asking, Is that so? Jennifer Connelly bit her lip and nodded, Uh-huh. Eric continued, By the way,st night I was with thatsorry, I forgot the other persons name, it seems to be Brent Tony Brandt, Tim Rester reminded him courteously. Eric nodded, Yes, it was Tony Brandt. I had a conflict with him and messed up your leadingdys situation. The actress didnt react, but Tim Lester was surprised and let out a soft ah.. He didnt know about this, but he quickly understood when he remembered the tone of Tony Brandt on the phone earlier. A hint of resentment crossed Tim Lesters face, but he immediately regained hisposure. The leadingdy was just a low-budget film actress. If she lost the role, she lost it. As long as she could grab onto the thigh of this big shot in front of her, why worry about not having a role? Its okay, Mr. Williams. Actually, that movie wasnt suitable for Jenny in the first ce. Losing it doesnt matter, Eric looked at the actress, Jennifer Connelly, who forced a smile but didnt say anything. You should know that Im nning to make a movie recently. We just confirmed the male leadst night, and the preparations in New York are already done. We just need to find the female lead, and we can start shooting. Even though Jennifer Connelly tried to act reserved, her eyes couldnt help but light up after hearing Erics words. Tim Lesters eyes were even more filled with excitement. But Eric continued, Its just a pity that the female lead for that movie isnt suitable for Jenny. After speaking, Eric leisurely picked up his coffee and looked at the changing expressions of the two people in front of him. He yed a small joke, and their reactions were quite interesting. Even though Tim Rist realized he was being yed, he didnt dare show any displeasure. However, his disappointment was evident on his face. Jennifer Connelly tightly gripped her skirt hem. She was still wearing the dress she wore to the partyst night. Upon hearing Erics words, the actress felt a sense of loss, making her breath quicken and the ample softness under her dress sway with her heaving chest. She looked extremely alluring. After thinking for a moment, Tim Rist suggested reluctantly, Mr. Williams, perhaps we can let Jenny try out for the role and see how it goes. Her performance in Swan Songst year was excellent. Eric shook his head, If it was just about acting, that wouldnt be a problem. The key is her image. The movie Im making requires a homely image, but Jennys temperament is too elegant and unsuitable. Thats a real pity, Tim Rist shook his head and sighed. Eric took a sip of coffee and said calmly, But its not a big deal. Hollywood produces hundreds of movies every year, and even the seven major moviepanies produce no fewer than 100 films annually. Its easy to find a movie suitable for Jenny. Jennifer Connelly still had some doubts about Erics recent besiegement, which had be well-known. Although no evidence had been disclosed, it was widely believed that the Seven Big Studios were manipting behind the scenes. Therefore, Eric should have been in conflict with the Seven Big Studios. What was the use of discussing this now? But Tim Lester had a deeper understanding than Jennifer Connelly. Since Eric had sessfully weathered the storm, it meant that he was barely epted by the Seven Big Film Companies. Under such circumstances, it would be easy for Eric, with his current status in Hollywood, to demand a female lead role from the Seven Big Studios. Any one of the Seven Big Studios would be willing to give Eric face. Mr. Williams, are you telling the truth? Eric nodded, Of course, but it will take some time. I need to have someone look for it first, and Jenny will have to cooperate. Dont worry, Jenny will definitely cooperate fully with you, the agent blurted out without waiting for Eric to finish. The atmosphere suddenly became awkward. Not to mention that the actresss face turned red, even Eric himself felt embarrassed. Why did he speak so directly? Cough, Tim, I mean, Jenny needs to free up some time to cooperate with some auditions, Although he felt it was useless to salvage the situation, Eric still added what he didnt say just now. I understand, I understand, Tim Reste said pleasingly. Just as the situation became awkward, there was a knock on the door. Allen poked his head in and gave an apologetic look. Mr. Williams, there is something urgent. Please wait a moment, Eric quickly said and then left the office. Heres the thing, Mr. Williams. I just called Mr. Stan Winston and exined our intentions. He readily agreed, and the meeting is set for 11:30 this morning. Oh, and Mr. Winston also wants to bring a friend. So, I thought Id let you know as soon as possible. A friend? Eric raised his eyebrows and quickly thought of a certain voice - Stan Winston, his best friend without a doubt. Cameron must have been involved in this. No problem. Is the phone still online? Should I speak to them myself? Its already hung up, Allen shrugged. But if you agree, its already 10:30 PM. The meeting ce is at the r restaurant in Beverly Hills. I think you should cough cough, pay attention to the time. Eric checked his watch and nced at his office before nodding. Dont worry, I got it. Then Ill go and handle it, the assistant quickly said. Sorry, both of you, something came up, Eric returned to his office and said to Tim Lester and Jennifer Connelly. Im afraid we cant chat for too long. Its okay, Mr. Williams. Perhaps we can arrange to have dinner together. How about tonight? Sorry, I already have ns tonight, Eric thought of a tall womans figure and said. Since he had made up his mind to keep Famke Janssen in his hands, he naturally had to go out with her more and increase their rtionship. Material things were necessary, but emotions were also essential. After thinking for a moment, Eric turned to Jennifer Connelly and said, By the way, Jenny, Im going on a dateter. Would you like to be mypanion? Upon hearing Erics words, the woman hesitated. Tim Lester almost wanted to ept on behalf of the woman, but at this moment, he felt it was better to let her make her own decision. It was just an ordinary lunch, Eric added. The other person is a well-known Hollywood special effects artist, and possibly a director as well. After we finish lunch, Ill take you back home. Well, alright then, Jennifer Connelly nodded quickly when she heard Eric say this. Eric smiled and looked at the dress Jennifer was wearing, Actually, your outfit is perfect, hmm, very beautiful. Thank you, the girl said softly. Now that thats settled, I think I should leave first, Tim Lester said, feeling relieved after the girl agreed. He quickly stood up and said goodbye. Eric walked the other person out of the door and then returned to the office, leaving only the two of them. The girl suddenly became a little uneasy. Just wait a moment, Ill change my clothes, Eric said lightly to the girl and walked towards the small room next to the office. Stan, do you think that little guy has something important to tell you? In the Beverly Hills ire restaurant, two big men sat in a corner. A man with a crew cut asked a middle-aged man with a beard. I heard he needs special effects for his next movie. With that young mans ambition, James, what do you think? Stan Winston smiled. You mean he wants to buy your studio? James Cameron was stunned for a moment, then said. Its obvious, Stan Winston said with an unchanged smile. I see youre very interested, James Cameron thought for a moment and smiled. Thats a billionaire with a lot of money. He bought an animation studiost year and invested several tens of millions of dors into it, but it didnt produce a single penny. However, he still invests without any hesitation. This generous little guy is naturally very attractive to me. You know, special effects are very expensive, and this is also the reason I brought you here. Youve always wanted to make Terminator 2, and this is a good opportunity. James Cameron immediately showed an excited expression, but soon became discouraged: That little guy has never made a high-cost movie before. I remember his most heavily invested movie, The Hidden Battle, only cost 30 million. Although I kept cutting the budget of Terminator 2 and only reported 70 million, none of the seven major studios were willing to take it. I think the other party definitely wouldnt take this risk either. If such arge production fails, Firefly will definitely be badly hurt. Well, you cant find investors now anyway, Stan Winston patted his friend on the shoulder. So, why not give it a try with him? Chapter 320

Chapter 320: Hanging By a Thread #

Although model effects are still the mainstream technology used in special effects films, I am sure that within 10 to 20 years, CG effects will definitely rece model effects and be the mainstream of special effects films. About 10 years ago, Industrial Light & Magic created fully CG scenes in films, andst year Jamess film The Abyss even had fully CG characters. These are the most direct manifestations of this development trend, Eric said confidently as he chatted with Stan Winston and James Cameron at the ir Restaurant. Although both of the men opposite him were special effects artists, Eric, as a time traveler, had a clearer understanding of the development trends in film special effects. So after finding the right topic, he easily took the initiative in the conversation. Eric, I dont agree with you. Although CG effects can achieve more diversified scenes, it is still too expensive. Model effects are much cheaper inparison. You must know Jamess film The Terminator, which only cost $6.5 million to make. If CG effects were used, maybe that $6.5 million would not even be enough to cover the cost of special effects, Stan Winston retorted. Of course, Im just saying that CG effects are the main development trend of film special effects. However, model effects will always y their own role. Speaking of which Eric suddenly turned to James Cameron as if nothing had happened, James, have you ever thought about making a sequel to The Terminator? I remember you said in an interview that there were many regrets in the first film that were not realized. Upon hearing this question, James Cameron and Stan Winston looked at each other involuntarily. They had been talking for over half an hour, and lunch was almost over. Originally, James Cameron didnt know how to bring up this topic. Unexpectedly, Eric took the initiative to ask. Eric, actually, I have already written the script for the second film. However, I am currently looking for investors, James Cameron pretended to be reserved. Although he was known as a tyrant on the set, James Cameron did not have a hot temper in normal times. When it came to attracting investment for his films, he had a lot of tricks up his sleeve. Otherwise, he would not have gone over budget so many times and still managed to secure funding. Eric, of course, understood James Camerons thoughts. As a time traveler, he also had a clear understanding of Camerons current situation. Although Cameron had not yet evolved into the future God of Film, as a time traveler, Eric was definitely paying close attention to this name. He also maintained the habit of reading newspapers and magazines every day, and was well-informed about many Hollywood news. Therefore, when he saw news about James Cameron in the newspapers, Eric would instinctively read it and remember it. James Camerons The Abyss, which was producedst year, cost up to $70 million, which is twice the investment of Warner Bros. global hit Batman fromst year. Although it received a series of good reviews and Oscar nominations, it had a very dismal box office performance, earning only over $50 million in North America and only $30 million overseas. With poor box office performance, the corresponding peripheral products are definitely not outstanding, so this film brought Fox a loss of over $30 million. This is the only movie in Erics memory that James Cameron made that caused investors to lose money. After being badly burned, Fox could not invest in Camerons new movie again, especially not in what seemed like arger investment in Terminator 2. Although the first film did well at the box office, it was not enough for Fox to take the risk of investing again, and the other six major filmpanies that had little cooperation with Cameron were even less likely to easily invest. In Erics memory, Terminator 2 was shot with a budget of $100 million by a independent filmpany called Carolco, and eventually grossed over $500 million worldwide. Although the investment was a bit high for this film that was destined to sell well, Eric was definitely not going to let it go, and he didnt even n to let Cameron go. After calcting, Eric continued to ask, James, if possible, can you briefly describe the plot of Terminator 2? James Cameron saw Erics interest in this movie, and a glimmer of hope ignited in his heart: Of course, but please keep it confidential and dont reveal it. Thats for sure, Eric nodded and then turned to Jennifer Connelly, who was dutifully acting as a vase next to him, Jenny The girl smiled knowingly, showing her two small tiger teeth: Dont worry, I wont tell anyone. Well, the story is like this James Cameron briefly described the outline of the story he created, and when Jennifer Connelly heard about the liquid metal robot concept that Cameron hade up with, she widened her eyes in an incredible look of surprise. Eric already had aplete memory of the movie, plus James Cameron wasnt particrly talented in storytelling with words, so he didnt show any unusual expression. He just listened attentively to Camerons narration and asionally noticed some differences between the story outline that Cameron was telling and the finished film, such as the fact that Sarah Connor, yed by Linda Hamilton, was not sent to a mental hospital in Camerons story outline. Of course, these were just some insignificant details. Throughout the entire narrative, Cameron and Stan Winston had been quietly observing Erics expression. They noticed that Erics expression didnt change much, and Cameron suddenly felt that something was not right. If a story couldnt pique the interest of investors, the chances of getting funding were slim to none. James, ording to your n, the cost of this film must be high. Have you done a preliminary budget? Eric asked after Cameron finished speaking. I have. Although the concept of liquid metal robots may be more expensive, I only need $60 million to make this film. We dont necessarily need to useputer-generated imagery for all of the liquid metal robot scenes. We can use rtively cheaper models for some scenes. I discussed this with Stan, Cameron said, inadvertently selling his idea to Eric. He threw his pretended reserve out of the window. After all, among the people he knew, Eric was the most likely toe up with the money. The several films released by Firefly before and afterst years Christmas season had already begun to bring in capital, and with the addition of peripheral products like video tapes, they could bring in at least $400 million for Firefly. Stan Winston quickly chimed in, Yes, Eric. We can use mercury or models to rece some scenes. $60 million is enough investment. $60 million? Thats almost ten times the investment for thest film! Firefly has never operated with such arge investment, Eric thought to himself, his expression turning serious. Eric, believe me, this film will not disappoint you, Cameron continued to speak, but he was interrupted by Eric. Since James Cameron hadnt found an investor yet, it was necessary to pique Erics interest. If it was too easy to get funding, Cameron would be even more unrestrained. Eric had even briefly considered having Jeffrey be the producer for Terminator 2, but he quickly gave up on the idea. Jeffrey was thrifty, while Cameron was profligate. It would be strange if they didnt fight when they got together. Sorry, James, I need to consider this carefully. $60 million is not a small amount. Lets talk about the matter at hand. Stan, I think you have already guessed something. I n to establish a film special effectspany and invite you and your team to join. In the future, this filmpany will be responsible for most of Fireflys film special effects work. Stan Winston wasnt angry that Cameron had been rejected. Erics cautious response to Terminator 2 was almost a foregone conclusion. It would have been strange if he had agreed immediately. Eric, why me? I mean, there are many excellent special effects teams in Hollywood, Stan asked. Eric remembered a sentence that Stan Winston had said in his previous life, and he smiled and replied, Because they are only doing special effects, but you are using special effects to perform. Stan Winston was moved by this sentence. It happened to touch the most sensitive nerve in his heart. At one time, Stan Winstons dream was to be a movie actor. However, the reality was far from his ideal. After graduating from university, he worked as a makeup apprentice at Disney for three years, and then he started his own studio. Later, he realized that he had notpletely abandoned his dream. Actors use themselves to perform, while he uses special effects to perform. Therefore, over the years, Stan Winston has maintained his initial passion for movie special effects, and he is often described as crazy. This consistent enthusiasm for movie special effects is the main factor behind Stan Winstons sess. To be honest, without Stan Winston, James Cameron would not have been able to shoot the ssic Terminator with only $6.5 million. You see, due to a severeck of funds, the Terminator robot in the first movie was just a simple metal model with no mechanical power. Therefore, the special effects shots of the robots movement in the movie were almost filmed frame by frame using a technique simr to stop-motion animation. A movie has 24 frames per second and 1440 frames per minute. The workload of a few minutes of footage is so daunting that no one can persevere without enough faith and passion. Chapter 321

Chapter 321: Finalized #

Eric, what you just said is almost exactly what I was thinking, but I know youve only been shooting narrative films so far. Although there are some special effects in yourtest film Ghost, what about after that? I dont want to join and end up with nothing to do. Eric immediately shook his head and said, Of course not. I can tell you very clearly, Stan, that my goal is to surpass Industrial Light & Magic. You should know about my film Jurassic Park. This project definitely wont take too long. Theres also Resident Evil. Recently, I gave a book manuscript to my literary agent. Its a science fiction novel called The Matrix. These three novels will be made into at least three-part series of special effects films in the future. Therefore, the special effectspany wontck projects for at least ten years. Industrial Light & Magic only developed to its current scale with the Star Wars series, but the special effects films of Firefly will definitely be more numerous than Lucasfilms. As long as this special effectspany can handle it, I dont mind handing over all the projects to my own special effectspany. Stan Winston hadnt seen Resident Evil, and didnt hear anything about the content from the name The Matrix. However, he knew about Jurassic Park. This novel had been of interest to many filmpanies, but Eric had never given up the film rights. His motives were not hard to imagine. As he imagined the scene of giant dinosaurs resurrected on the big screen in ancient times, Stan Winston was already a little excited, but he didnt lose his coolness. Instead, he asked, So, Eric, what are the conditions for me to join? Although my current studio is small, I am the boss and I dontck projects. Eric said, Ill give you 10% of the shares. The special effectspany will bepletely managed by you, and thepany wont go public within ten years. I will always provide enough funds for thepany, but I guarantee that no matter how much money is invested before thepany goes public, I will absolutely not dilute your personal shares. Eric, I have no objection to the 10% of the shares, but although I know you have enough funds, a specific investment amount is still needed. Its not just vague promises. You know, in Hollywood, many investment promises are not fulfilled. Eric thought for a moment and said, The first batch of 20 million U.S. dors investment, I hope this money will be used in equipment purchase andputer CG technology research and development, as well as the pre-production special effects preparation of Jurassic Park. Therefore, you can also see this as an early investment in Jurassic Park. By the way, Pixar can provide some technical support for the special effectspany, and at the same time, the special effectspany must establish its own CG technology research and development team. Stan Winston nodded in satisfaction and said, It seems that you really have high hopes forputer CG special effects? Yes, Eric smiled and said, Thats why I named this special effectspany Digital Domain. Digital Domain, murmured Stan Winston, while James Cameron, who had been listening quietly, couldnt help but say, Eric, in that case, thispany is perfect for the production of Terminator 2. Most of the shots of the liquid metal robot were made using CG. So, I hope you can consider it. As long as you promise to invest in part of Terminator 2, even if its only 10 million dors, I can raise the rest of the funds. Eric smiled and said, James, I know what youre thinking. Because my previous films were rtively sessful, many people in Hollywood trust my judgment. But I cant take risks with my reputation. If this film fails, no one will me you, but I will be the scapegoat who misled them to invest money. Camerons thoughts were exposed, and he couldnt help but blush. At this point, Stan Winston couldnt help but ask, Eric, do you really not have much confidence in Jamess sequel? Hearing this question, Eric hesitated for a moment. It was impossible not to have confidence. He had only wanted to tease Cameron, but now he was in a dilemma. After thinking about it, Eric said, I dontck confidence, but the risk of this film is too great. With an investment of 60 million dors, plus the budget for post-production and promotion, excluding overseas markets, the North American box office is estimated to have to reach 150 million dors to break even. The global box office of the first Terminator was less than 80 million dors, and Camerons previous film The Abyss also had a global box office of 80 million dors. So, you should understand my concerns. Stan Winston nodded in understanding, while James Cameron was a bit disappointed. Eric pondered for a moment, as if he had made a big decision, and said, Well, since thats the case, Ill take a gamble. I can offer 50 million dors. James, I hope you can approach the cautious attitude you had when filming the first Terminator and try to make this film within this budget. James Cameron hesitated slightly, but quickly nodded without any moral principles. Once the film project was confirmed, it was 50 million dors, and if it couldnt bepleted, he didnt believe that Eric would let the project fail and waste the 50 million dors. Okay, Eric, I will do my best. The two unscrupulous guys with their own thoughts smiled at each other, like old friends who had known each other for many years. By the way, James, since Im putting up this money, the copyright for Terminator must belong to me. Theres no room for negotiation on this matter. James Cameron was stunned for a moment, then nodded. Wellof course, thats not a problem. However, Eric, the film rights are still in the hands of Hemdale, thepany that produced the first movie. Theyve gone bankrupt, but we can buy the rights back for a sum of money. Also, in my n, I wont be making any sequels after this one. How much money will that cost? Eric asked calmly, feeling a bit surprised and excited at the prospect of acquiring another blockbuster franchise. As far as he could remember, the rights to Terminator were acquired by the previous productionpany for $30 million just to obtain the rights. If Eric were to get his hands on it, he wouldnt let go. Two million. Ive already talked to the original producers about it, Cameron replied. Eric pulled out his checkbook and quickly wrote a check for $2 million, handing it to James Cameron. James, what I want is the full rights, with no disputes in the future. Thats a given, James Cameron said, taking the check. The three of them talked about a lot of things, and by the time they parted ways, it was already 3 PM. The audition for the male lead in Ghost had been cancelled due to the lead actor being confirmed. Therefore, Eric didnt need to go back to the firefly studio. Looking at the girl next to him, Eric said, Jenny, let me take you back. Jennifer Connelly had been quietly listening to the conversation of the three men throughout lunch. She had only received $50,000 for herst film, Etoile and Tony Brandt had offered her a fee of only $100,000 for the film that Eric had disruptedst night. Thus, during lunch, therge amounts of money mentioned by the three men had left her feeling a little unreal. She was now feeling a bit mncholy, thinking that even if she worked hard, she would still earn less than the man next to her who could easily write a check for such arge sum of money. Not hearing a response from Jennifer, Eric opened the car door and looked at her face. From her faintly disappointed expression, Eric quickly understood what she was thinking. It seemed that losing that rolest year had affected her emotionally, and yesterdays and todays events had only added to her despondency. Since that was the case, Eric quickly decided to add more fuel to the fire. The more intense the stimtion, the easier it would be to catch this girl who still had some fantasies in her mind. Dreams turned into reality. That scene was really unbearable to face. Thats what Eric was thinking. When Jennifer Connelly got into the passenger seat, he didnt ask for the girls address. Instead, he drove straight to Malibu. It took more than ten minutes of driving before Jennifer Connelly realized what was going on and said somewhat nervously, Youyou said you would take me back. Although she said so, her tone was not at all determined. Eric nodded, Yes, but its only a little after three now. You probably dont have anything to do by going back so early. How abouting to my ce? The girl squeezed her skirt and lowered her head without saying anything. Eric smiled victoriously at the corner of his mouth and drove the girl all the way to Cliff Peak Manor. Instead of driving the car directly into the garage as before, he parked it at the entrance and handed the keys to the security guard. He then took the girls small hand and walked to the vi on foot. With over $20 million invested, Cliff Peak Manor was much more luxurious than the Copp vi they visitedst night. As they walked, Eric quickly introduced the vi to her and soon they arrived at the vi. How do you feel about it here? Eric didnt take the girl around the vi, but went straight to the outdoor swimming pool on the southwest side of the vi. There was wind today and the sound of waves hitting the rocks underfoot could be heard. Its very nice here, Connelly sat down on a sun lounger next to Eric and gathered her skirt that was being blown by the wind. She said softly. Due to the sea breeze, the girls thin dress was tightly pressed against her body, revealing her exquisite curves. Eric admired her for a while, then suddenly pointed to a small house behind him, Thats the changing room. There are spare swimsuits inside. Do you want to swim? Buttheres no water in there? Jennifer Connelly pointed to the dried-up swimming pool and found a veryme excuse. It will be filled in five minutes. You can go change your clothes, Eric said smoothly. Caught by her own words, Jennifer Connelly lightly bit her lower lip and stood up to walk towards the changing room. A few minutester, the girl came out with arge towel wrapped around her, and saw that the swimming pool was indeed filled with water. The temperature is just right, Eric stood by the edge of the pool and reached into the water to test the temperature. You What about you? The woman looked at Eric, who was still in his formal attire. Ill watch you, Eric smiled and returned to the lounge chair beside him. He took out a pack of cigarettes from somewhere, lit one, and then looked excitedly, his eyes like a shameless uncle waiting for a performance. Jennifer Connelly stood there hesitating for a while before shyly taking off her towel and quickly leaping into the water. A beautiful mermaid in a pink bikini swam quickly to the distance, and the pool wasnt too big. So she quickly reached the end and leaned against the pools southwest corner, looking at Eric for a moment. She felt a bit shy and hesitated before swimming towards Eric. Somehow, after swimming a few meters, Connelly felt a slight pain in her right leg and then lost feeling. Her whole body floundered a few times and quickly sank. Struggling, she saw a figure at the poolside who quickly leaped into the water and soon arrived by her side. Then her whole body was lifted up, out of the water, and the water in the pool only reached Erics abdomen and wasnt too deep. Dont move. You may have a cramp, Ericforted the woman in his arms, walking up the pools stairs to the shore. Eric was about to put the woman down, but suddenly his foot slipped, and he fell down. The woman also fell down and happened to lie on Erics chest, and the two of them fell on top of each other. Darn Frank Gehry, spending millions and not even making the pool slip-resistant. Ill make him redo it for me, Eric cursed. Originally frightened, Jennifer Connellyughed lightly when she heard the man speak like this, and then she was pped on the buttocks: Dont lie down, get up quickly. Does it feelfortable? The woman lightly groaned and realized that she was lying on Erics body, she moved her hands and quickly copsed down again, I cant move my legs. Eric exhaled heavily, Then dont move. Uh-huh, the woman nodded lightly. Then she lifted her head and met Erics gaze. After hesitating for a moment, she moved up slightly, her lips moving, and she took the initiative to kiss Erics mouth. Eric hesitated for a moment and then quickly embraced the womans waist, passionately kissing her back. A few minutester, Jennifer Connelly finally managed to catch her breath and disentangle herself from Erics embrace. She buried her head in the mans neck and whispered softly, You must be satisfied now. Eric, who had been gently caressing the womans smooth back, stopped and then pulled her close with force. He felt her two full breasts softy pressed against his chest as he spoke with an unquestionable tone, Remember, from now on, you are mine. The womans body trembled slightly before she hesitantly asked, Are we dating then? No, Eric replied firmly. Youre so domineering, the woman weakly muttered. This time I wont let you get away, Eric turned the womans face towards him and gave her a gentle kiss, be a good woman and belong to me from now on. The woman struggled slightly and asked, What if, what if I dont want to? Then be my pet, Eric replied. Youyoure a devil, unwilling to give anyone any hope, the woman murmured with a somewhat confused look in her eyes. She then opened her mouth slightly and kissed Eric again. After helping the woman massage her cramping calf and a brief period of intimacy, Eric sent her back with someone. He wasnt in a hurry as the meat was already in the pot. He also wanted to let the woman digest all the information she had received in the past two days. If Jennifer Connelly had the courage to pack up and leave Hollywood to avoid being a puppet, Eric would acknowledge her. Of course, he was a hundred percent certain that the woman would not give up the morous life of the entertainment industry. In the following days, Eric once again threw himself into busy work. Due to his dispute with Robert Shay, Eric set up another filmpany. Since the first one was named Firefly, Eric decided to name thispany ck Ants as well. Actually, he had wanted to name it ck Widow, but Jeffrey strongly opposed it. The name was too unconventional. Although thispany would not grow to be a giant in the industry, it would definitely not be insignificant either. After some discussion, Eric named thepany ck Ants Film Company. Soon after, the project for Basic Instinct was transferred to thispany. Due to the nature of the film, in order to avoid it being rated NC-17 in the future, Eric chose to work with Universal. Compared to other film giants, Universal did not have any major film projects this year, so they could allocate most of their resources to this film. The price they offered was also rtively fair. Both parties had joint ownership and shared the investment, but the film project was still entirely under Erics control. He had absolute control over this film project. Actually, the initiative for this project was originally with the Seven Greats. Everyone could see that Erics decision to coborate with them was to avoid something. However, since thest incident, it has been difficult for the Seven Greats to unite and have amon goal. Basically, nobody trusts anybody, so when it came to making the offer, everyone made their own bid. The reason why Universal was able to offer the best price was because Japans Matsushita(Panasonic) Corporation, like Sony,unched a bid to acquire Universals parentpany MCA. Of course, Universal wanted to stimte its stock price by having a hit movie like Columbia did in the past. A few dayster, James Cameron quickly secured the rights to Terminator and handed them over to Eric. The originally agreed-upon $50 million investment was definitely not enough. Although Cameron had made up his mind to trap Eric and force him to make additional investments when the post-production funds were depleted, he still felt a little guilty. So he made a minor change to the copyright contract. The change was actually quite simple. The contract that James Cameron signed with the productionpany stated that the movie rights to Terminator would automatically return to him after 2018. However, Cameron, who felt a little guilty, readily removed this use. After all, he had made up his mind that Terminator 2 would be his personal conclusion to this series, so the copyright was not of much use to him. At least thats what he thought. Cameron could not have imagined that the copyright to this series would be worth more in the future. Eric, of course, was delighted to hear this. But he did not put the copyright into Firefly, instead he ced it into the newly established ck Ant Film Company. Because when he discussed the Terminator 2 project with Robert Shaye, Shaye expressed conservative opposition again. His concerns were simr to those of the Seven Greats. Therefore, Eric did not have any psychological burden in doing so. Terminator 2 became ck Ants second production after Basic Instinct. As for whether there will be any problems with future releases, Eric has not yet considered it. After all, Camerons filming speed is not fast, so it would be good enough if the movie could be released in the next summer season. At the same time, while dealing with Basic Instinct and Terminator, the digital field was also quickly established. After Eric readily allocated $20 million in start-up capital, Stan Winston quickly began to recruit people and set up headquarters in Venice, not the Italian Venice, but a district near Santa Monica in Los Angeles. Eric remembers that over ten yearster, that ce was called Silicon Beach because of the gathering of high-techpanies, which echoed the Silicon Valley in San Francisco. Amidst the busy affairs, Eric personally visited and persuaded Julia to agree to Roberts Sleeping with the Enemy, which was led by Shaye, after the actress had starred in two consecutive hot-selling films and demanded a fee of $8 million. Eric shrugged at the lions share demanded by the actress, but then again, Julia was definitely worth the price. Later, the female lead for Ghost was also quickly finalized. Among arge number of auditioning actresses, Eric ultimately chose Bridget Fonda, the niece introduced by Jane Fonda. He chose her not only because her image fit the role very well but also because it was a great gimmick to have two of Hollywoods biggest families coborating in his movie. In the past half-century, from Henry Fonda in the silent film era to Peter Fonda, then Jane Fonda, and finally to the fourth generation of Bridget Fonda, this family had stood tall in Hollywood. Although the Copp family rose to powerter, their influence and connections were no less inferior to the Fonda familys. Establishing good rtions with both families would definitely be useful in the future, such as for the Oscars. Although Eric was still very young, he knew that the Oscars were unavoidable; even someone with the wild personality of Little Leo in his past life was tortured by the Oscars to the point of near-death. After reaching an agreement with Stan Winston, Eric consulted him on special effects issues in Ghost. Although Stan Winston had previously focused on model special effects, he quickly provided solutions for the digital special effects involved in the film, such as the ghost passing through walls and the Grim Reaper. Even if Eric requested more refined effects than in his past life, there was no difficulty, except for money matters. Finally, the schedule for the four films, Basic Instinct, Sleeping with the Enemy, Ghost, and The Silence of the Lambs, produced by TG Films, which included Elizabeth and several others, was arranged. ording to the n, The Silence of the Lambs has been filming for a while now, and its scheduled to be released by Firefly in early June. Next up is Sleeping with the Enemy, a simple drama film that was prepared rtivelyte but doesnt require any major scenes or special effects, so two months should be enough for production. Its scheduled to be released at the end of June. Mid-June is the hottest period for summer releases, and Robert Shayes arrangement couldnt have been made without some personal interests. However, Eric did not object. Next is Ghost in early July, with a production pace almost identical tost years Running Out of Time. Its also being released jointly by Disney and Firefly. Basic Instinct is scheduled for mid-July, not only because the production cycle of this film is rtively long, but also because of the subject matter. Its ced at the end of the summer season, with a focus on long-term screenings. In mid-April, all preparations for Ghost werepleted, and Eric nned to shoot the few scenes that required special effects first and then hand them over to the digital team for processing. ording to n, he was scheduled to go to New York for filming soon. However, on April 13th, he still couldnt leave because of Basic Instinct. The films lead actress and director both needed his approval. Eric had considered that American actresses are rtively conservative, and famous actresses would not easily appear in such arge-scale work with such explicit content. The female lead in Basic Instinct, Catherine, was not a vase and had demanding acting requirements. Although Basic Instinct is considered a big production, many already famous actresses had turned down the role, and the production team ultimately used the rtively unknown Sharon Stone. Therefore, Eric set his sights on European actresses. Compared to Hollywood, European actresses are much more daring. This is just a difference in values between the two sides. After all, in most European films, even if itspletely unnecessary, they still have to take off their clothes and expose themselves, as if the director feels that its not a movie if theres no nudity. In this environment, actresses have no choice but to adapt, so the content in Basic Instinct wasnt considered very explicit for many European actresses. Chapter 322

Chapter 322: Its Not Good #

Eric, take a look. The situation isnt what you imagined, Carole Bouquet, Nastassja Kinski, Isabelle Huppert, Isabelle Adjani, these top European actresses either declined the invitation or are interested in the story but hope that you can minimize the explicit sex scenes, Jeffrey handed a stack of emails to Eric in the office and said. Eric took them and silently looked through the responses. After a while, he shook his head and smiled bitterly, It seems that I was thinking too simplistically. Of course, its difficult to get a top-tier actress with good acting skills to star in Basic Instinct, even these European actresses. Although they can handle the scale of this movie, if they are interested in developing their careers in Hollywood, they wont easily take on such a film, or it will greatly affect their image in Hollywood. If they have no intention of developing their careers in Hollywood, its even more unlikely, as your film taste doesnt match that of most European actresses who are used to making arthouse films, Jeffrey exined. Oh, right, Eric suddenly lowered his head and looked at the emails in his hand. Carole Bouquets agent replied that shes interested in this movie. Contact her and see if we can have her fly to Los Angeles for an interview. Jeffrey looked at Carole Bouquets profile and smiled, Eric, this French actresss image really matches Catherine Tramells character, but she just won the Best Actress award at the French Caesar Awards in March this year. I think itll be even more difficult to persuade her. Then bundle it up. I have a nned movie whose female lead can give her a try. Its also a big-budget production, with an investment of no less than 60 million dors, Eric said. Howe I didnt know about this? Jeffrey suddenly became interested. Can you tell me more? Eric smiled and shook his head, This is confidential, and it may not necessarily be my next movie. Ive already asked Stan and the team to prepare the pre-production work for Ghost, while also preparing for the early technical development of Jurassic Park. So, after Ghost, my specific work arrangements have not yet been determined. Maybe Ill start preparing for Jurassic Park, or maybe Ill make some other simple special effects movies to umte experience. Okay, I wont ask, Jeffrey said. However, Disney is very dissatisfied with the progress of Ghost, and they hope you can start filming as soon as possible. They are not unaware of my speed of shooting schedules, even though this film will require special effects. However, the special effects needed are not tooplicated. I will first shoot the parts that require special effects and hand them over to Stan for post-production. It wont take more than a month, and we should be able to finish everything by mid-June as nned, leaving nearly a month for promotion, which should be enough. I told them the same thing, Jeffrey smiled and said, but Eric, I think we should still prepare some backup ns. Many local actresses from the 23rd line have submitted their profiles. You may want to pick some of them. I think there are many good ones among them. Then hand me their profiles when we leave. Ill pick some and arrange a simple audition, Eric said. As they were talking, Jeffreys assistant knocked on the door and said, Mr. Hansen, Mr. Williams, Mr. Roger Spottiswoode, and Mr. Don Johnson are here. Lets go, Jeffrey said to Eric. Finally, the director and male lead are now confirmed. Eric and Jeffrey arrived at a small reception room, where the three men quickly stood up. Eric saw Mnie Griffith appear in the room and was a bit surprised, but he soon realized that Mnie Griffith was Don Johnsons wife. To be honest, Don Johnson had always been just a TV actor, and his fame was not as great as his wife Mnie Griffiths. Mnie Griffith probably came to give her husband some encouragement. The two had only been married for a little over a year, and their marriage was still in its honeymoon period. Eric only chose Don Johnson as the male lead in Basic Instinct because of a certain movie in his memory. As for the original Michael Dous, Eric felt that he was too old, and although his acting skills were good, Eric always felt that hecked the strong presence to fully embody Nicks explosive temperament. As he shook hands with the couple, Eric suddenly thought of another person. Judging by the timeline, Erics rebirth should not have affected the appearance of Don Johnson and Mnie Griffiths daughter, Dakota Johnson. In a parallel timeline, Dakota Johnson starred in a famous movie called Fifty Shades of Grey. Speaking of it, Mnie Griffiths family could barely be considered a Hollywood film family, but their influence paled inparison to the Copp or Fonda families. Mr. Williams, is there a problem? Don Johnson asked curiously, as Eric looked at the couple with interest. Oh, sorry, just remembered something, Eric smiled and turned to the other person, Roger Spottiswoode, a middle-aged man in his 40s with a thin face and sses. His most famous movie in the past was probably Tomorrow Never Dies in the 007 series. However, now, although Roger Spottiswoode is already 45 years old, he has always been an unknown director, and there are no outstanding films. After Jeffrey rmended him, Eric specifically watched his movies and found that he was good at films like Basic Instinct. More importantly, Roger Spottiswoode was not only cheap, but also did not require the final editing rights, so Eric quickly decided. After the small talk, the three of them sat down. Mr. Spottiswoode, you have already studied the script for several days, so tell us your thoughts on this movie, Eric said. Of course, Mr. Williams, Roger Spottiswoode nodded and said, I think Basic Instinct on the surface is about the process of investigating a deviant murder case, but actually it depicts a primitive desire, a wild passion. From the script, it can be seen that Nick, as a detective, and the murderer Catherine Tramell are actually the same kind of people. They both have the most primitive destructive tendency hidden in their hearts. Therefore, it was in the process of being undercover that Nick identally killed an innocent tourist in a fit of excitement. Moreover, after the rock singer was killed, Nick initially confirmed that Catherine Tramell was the real killer. After that trial, Nicks inner desire was provoked by Catherine Tramells teasing, leading to the subsequent violence towards Beth Although Roger Spottiswoode has been a director for ten years, he has put a lot of effort into understanding this script. Everyone in the conference room was nodding their heads as they listened. Eric also realized that Roger Spottiswoode probably wanted to seize this opportunity tightly, just like Jonathan Demme did with Erics Silence of the Lambs, which made him a first-line Hollywood director now. Although the script of Basic Instinct is rtively unconventionalpared to Erics other movie scripts, it is still a script written by Eric himself. Even if it causes controversy in the future, the firepower will definitely be on Eric. As long as this movie is sessful, this director can go further. A group of people had been discussing various aspects of the filming of Basic Instinct for the whole afternoon. After work, Eric returned to Cliff Peak Manor with a thick stack of actress profiles for consideration. As he entered the vi, a petite figure greeted him. Hi, Vicky, when did you get back? Eric hugged the girl and asked. I took the ne at 10:30 in the morning. It was a terrible experience, and I dont want to sit on a long flight like that again. Virginiained, holding Erics arm. She had gone to Europe to attend a film award ceremony, and they had originally wanted to invite Eric, but he couldnt make the time. Besides, if he attended every award ceremony in person, he would surely be exhausted. Jonathan Demme was busy shooting The Silence of the Lambs, so they had to let Virginia go. I hate long flights too. My experience going to Venice was terrible. Eric smiled and said, Since youre back, why dont you stay here? Im going to New York in a few days, and you can help me look after the house. Im not going to help you look after the house, Virginia pouted. By the way, a guy named Michael us brought you a copy of your new book in the afternoon. I read it, and the story was really great, but it was a bit short. As Virginia spoke, she left for a moment and returned with a hardcover book, which had a cover design that Eric had specially instructed, with green digits and the words The Matrix in the middle. Eric nodded as he looked at the cover. Not bad. I didnt expect it to be published so quickly. He sat down on the sofa in the hall and began to read. Virginia gently put away Erics coat and briefcase before sitting down next to him. Eric naturally put his arm around her waist. Virginia giggled a few times, theny on the sofa, her head resting on Erics thigh. She felt his big hands gently kneading her neck, causing her face to blush and her chest to rise and fall a little faster. Have you decided on your next movie? Eric asked casually. Not yet. I received many scripts, all of which were horror movies. The Others has just passed, and if I continue to act in horror movies, it will be difficult for me to transition in the future, so I want to try other genres. As she spoke, Virginia put aside the book in front of her and looked at Eric with sparkling eyes. Okay, Ill keep an eye out for you, Eric said casually. Um, how about you help me write a script? Eric smiled and gently pinched the girls face. Youre so greedy. Will you act in Basic Instinct? Virginia happened to have seen the script for Basic Instinct and red at Eric in annoyance, challenging him, If you want me to act, Ill act. Eric pretended to be angry and flipped Virginia over, spanking her bottom a few times. Virginia moaned and then softened on Erics legs. Okay, get up now, Eric said helplessly. Ouch, youre so mean. Youre not considerate at all, Virginiained, turning her blushing face away and muttering a few words, but quickly got up. I dont have any scripts that are suitable for you at the moment, so youd better let Kapoor help you choose. Otherwise, bring some over for me to have a look, Eric exined. Seeing the girl nod, he continued, Oh, by the way, bring me the bag from earlier. I have something else to deal with. But its already after work, the girl said. She still got up to get the bag. Eric took out a stack of files for actresses and flipped through them one by one, asionally picking out one he thought was good and putting it aside. What are these for? Virginia picked up a file and asked curiously. These are the candidates for the actress in Basic Instinct, Eric said. Most of the top actresses in Europe have refused, and the top actresses in Hollywood wont take it. So, I can only choose from the lower ranks. Actually, many actresses in the lower ranks have good acting skills, Virginia said. Of course, but I dont have time to search for pearls in the sand. If I can use more secure top actresses, I will. This way, there will also be a certain box office guarantee, Eric said. Virginia sighed lightly and soon felt lucky, Eric, youre busy. Ill make dinner. What do you want to eat? Just make whatever you want, Eric said without looking up. The girl knew that Eric was telling the truth. Eric wasnt picky about food, so she got up and went to the kitchen. Eric had only picked half of the files when the phone behind him rang. Eric got up and picked up the cordless phone, and Jeffreys voice came through, Jeffrey, is there something wrong? On the phone, Jeffrey spoke for a while, and Eric thought for a moment before saying, Okay, lets talk on the phone. You can give Carole Bouquet my phone number here. No problem, Ill hang up then. Eric pressed the hang-up button and ced the cordless phone on the coffee table in front of him, continuing to browse through a list of female actresses in front of him. More than ten minutester, the phone rang again. Eric picked it up casually, and a female voice with somewhat imperfect English pronunciation came from the other end: Hello, Mr. Williams, Im Carole Bouquet. Half an hourter, Virginia came out of the kitchen and called Eric to dinner. She saw Eric still holding the phone and pacing back and forth in the empty space by the French window, gesturing and speaking animatedly. She didnt dare to disturb him. After a while, Virginia saw Eric hang up the phone and casually toss the cordless phone onto the sofa. He looked exhausted as he copsed onto the sofa. The woman walked over to Eric and asked tenderly, Whats wrong? Its nothing. I invited a French actress named Carole Bouquet to star in Basic Instinct, but she still refused, Eric replied. Virginia wanted to tease him a little, but she didnt expect there were still actresses that Eric couldnt invite. However, seeing Erics anxious expression on the sofa, she quickly suppressed her emotions andforted him, Its okay, take your time to choose. There are still people who are willing to act. Hmm Carole Bouquet, the spokeswoman for Chanel No.5 a few years ago? Yes, and she also yed a Bond girl, Eric nodded. I remember a little bit about her. Its said that shes a very independent woman. After ying the Bond girl, she didnt want to continue being just a decoration and returned to France to act in art films, Virginia said. Lets not talk about her. If she refuses, then let it be, Eric said dejectedly. In any case, most Hollywood movies are like this, full of twists and turns during casting. Even Steven Spielberg or James Cameron couldnt avoid it. He remembered in his previous life, Cameron spent several months convincing Fox to let Leonardo DiCaprio y Jacks role in Titanic. Well then, lets eat first, Virginia said. Eric nodded and stood up, heading towards the dining room. It was already past ten oclock at night. Virginia was wearing pajamas, holding a pillow and leaning against the big bed, watching Eric still pacing back and forth while making phone calls with a list in his hand. I dont care about that. Weve given them enough time already. If they cante tomorrow, then its just a pity Tomorrow, I will finalize the female lead for Basic Instinct. Yes, on the spot. They called from New York an hour ago. Royce and the two leads have been waiting there for a week. I cant waste any more time. Thats it, Im hanging up. Eric let out a sigh of relief. He hung up the phone and put it on the bedside table before copsing onto the bed, feeling a bit exhausted. He reached out and hugged Virginias soft body, greedily smelling her fragrance. His mental stress immediately dissipated a bit. Virginia gently massaged Erics temples with her small hands and softly said, Eric, do you really have to be so anxious? Youre already so outstanding, why do you have to tire yourself out like this? These were all just ns for the first half of the year, but unfortunately, because of what happened at the beginning of the year, I wasted more than three months of time. Thats why things have turned out like this, Eric exined, sounding somewhat listless. I always feel like time is too tight and theres too much I want to do. I really wish I could help you, but unfortunately I dont know how to do anything, Virginia said softly. Ericughed and hugged her waist tighter. You can actually help me. Just be my big pillow. I like to sleep with a woman in my arms. Is that all you want to do? Virginia said in a flirtatious tone, reaching out to turn off the bedroom light. The room suddenly became dim because the soundproofing was done very well. Although there was wind outside, there would be no sound of wavesing in, and the surroundings were quiet. Yes, just sleep with you in my arms, Eric said, hugging Virginia and resting his head on her full chest. Without realizing it, his eyelids began to droop and he soon fell asleep. Virginia stared nkly for a moment beforepassionately pulling up the nket to cover the two of them. Inside the fireflys audition room, a woman wearing a simple coat sat on a chair with her legs crossed and a rxed expression on her face. She took out a cigarette from her pocket and smoked it, always wearing a faint smile on her face. You cant smoke here, Miss Tramell, the assistant behind the camera spoke up. The charming woman nced at the assistant and said, Are you going to sue me for smoking? After finishing her sentence, she lit up the cigarette and took a puff, exhaling a wisp of smoke. After a brief silence, the assistant asked, Can you tell me about your rtionship with Mr. Buzz? We had a sexual rtionship for about a year or so. I like to make love with him, and hes not afraid to try new things. I like that kind of man who can give me a lot of pleasure, the woman spoke openly while smoking her cigarette, not concealing her desires. Have you yed s&m with him? the assistant asked again. You guessed it right, the woman continued to smile. Would you tie him up? No, I wouldnt. Have you ever tied him up? No, I havent, the woman denied once again, Johnny likes to use his own hands, and I like his hands. Just as the assistant was about to ask another question, Eric interrupted, Thats enough, lets stop here. The woman sitting on the chair immediately showed a disappointed expression, feeling a little resentful in her heart. The preparation time given by the firefly was too short. She received the audition invitation in the morning and rushed over, with less than an hour to prepare. However, despite herints, the woman dared not reveal them in front of Eric, or else there would be no hope at all. Mr. Williams, I think I can try again, she said. No need, Eric said, Although your appearance is very suitable for the role of Catherine Tramell, your performance doesnt show much of Catherines characteristics. You were too restrained just now, as if walking on thin ice. I understand that this may be because you didnt have enough preparation time. However, the most fatal point is that I couldnt see the potential in you, a potential that can release Catherines feminine aura. So, I can only say sorry. After patiently exining, although the woman was still a little unwilling, she didnt ask for anything else and left the room with a sense of loss. After the woman left, Jeffrey couldnt help but speak up, Eric, I feel that your mood is not right. Youre too impatient. Why dont we take a half-hour break and give those actresses another half-hour of preparation time? After all, there are only 11 people left, and we have enough time toplete all the auditions. Eric sighed and looked at his watch. There was still enough time. He had just eliminated eight auditionees on the spot, and if he continued like this, he woulde up empty-handed today, and the lead actress in Instinct would remain unfilled. Tell them to take a half-hour break, Eric stood up and said to Jeffrey, Im going out for some fresh air. Yeah, go ahead, Jeffrey nodded. As Eric walked out the door, the auditioning women who had been waiting on the hallway benches stood up involuntarily. Take a half-hour break, and you can prepare more in the meeting room over there, Eric said to the women before heading to the other end of the hallway. The remaining women exchanged nces, and several of them were eager to follow him, but in the end, they did not move. When Eric arrived at the end of the hallway, he was about to go into the restroom to wash his face and clear his head, but a woman suddenly walked out from inside and collided with him. She lost her footing and fell to the ground, causing Eric to take a step back. The woman was initially angry, but upon seeing that it was Eric, she hastily stood up and said, Im sorry, Mr. Williams. It was an ident. Its all right, it was my fault, Eric shook his head and looked at the woman with unusual eyes, Your name is Joanna Pacu?a? The womans eyes lit up, and she quickly nodded, Yes, Mr. Williams. I didnt expect you to know me. By the way, about the audition Take a half-hour break, and you can prepare more, Eric interrupted her, his heart beating slightly faster, Miss Pacu?a, can you repeat the first sentence you just said? What? Although confused, Joanna Pacu?a still repeated, Im sorry Yes, thats the one. Say it again a few more times, Eric leaned against the wall at the corner, took out a cigarette, and lit it himself. Joanna Pacu?a was hesitant when she heard Erics request to apologize repeatedly, but she still repeated the sentence: Im sorry, Im sorry, Im sorry She tightly squeezed the red leather purse in her hand and kept repeating it. She felt that the young director in front of her was too unpredictable. She had just identally bumped into him, but he was putting her through all of this. For a moment, Joanna Pacu?a thought that she was certainly not meant for this role today and wanted to gather her courage and leave. However, she still held onto a glimmer of hope. Okay, stop now, Eric finally interrupted her repetition, Your ent is off, it doesnt sound good. I looked at your profilest night. You are from Pnd and used to be an actress at the Polish National Theatre? Yes, the woman nodded. Why did youe to the United States? Being in a national theater is better than being a third-rate actress in Hollywood, right? Joanna Pacu?a paused before saying, Because of political reasons Eric nodded, not interested in politics. He took a closer look at Joanna Pacu?a, who was the same age as the original female lead in Basic Instinct, Sharon Stone. Butpared to Sharon Stone, the woman in front of him looked much younger. It was hard to believe that she was already in her early thirties. I cant believe youre already 33 years old, Eric said with emotion. Joanna Pacu?as expression dimmed. Women generally do not like to focus on their age. Moreover, when she thought about her situation over the years, she couldnt help feeling a sense of sadness. In 1980, due to the political turmoil in Pnd, she was once under house arrest. It was not easy for her to immigrate to the United States. The man who helped her immigrate did not care for her after that and married another woman. For years, she had been drifting in Hollywood alone, feeling like a lonely ghost. Although she yed the female lead in a low-budget horror filmst year, the movie only grossed $1,000,000 and did not bring any improvement to her career. The more Joanna Pacu?a thought about it, the more sad she became. She nced at the man in front of her. It was clearly his fault earlier, yet she had to apologize repeatedly. He was despicable. She suddenly felt that the whole world was bullying her, and tears welled up in her eyes unconsciously. Um, whats wrong with you? Eric saw Joanna Pacu?a crying and felt a little at a loss. He searched for a tissue from his pocket and handed it over. Dont cry. Joanna Pacu?a wiped her eyes with the tissue, but the more she wiped, the sadder she became. She couldnt help choking up and said, You despicable Americans. That jerk sent me to the United States and then abandoned me. Youyoure also a jerk. I just identally bumped into you, but you treated me like that. You despicable peopleall of you are bullying me. Eric raised his hand in panic and shouted, Okay, stop. Joanna Pacu?as voice trailed off. She wiped away her tears and suddenly realized what kind of situation she was in. She regretted it immediately. Her chance waspletely ruined. When Joanna Pacu?a stopped crying, Eric asked, By the way, I didnt pay close attentionst night. Why do you want to be in this movie? What? I mean, Basic Instinct, Eric continued. So what? Joanna Pacu?a asked softly, puzzled. Eric thought for a moment and said, I dont want you to act in this movie. You should go for more mainstream movies, since you can enter the Polish National Theatre, your acting skills must be excellent. Do you think I dont want to act in mainstream movies? Joanna Pacu?a said, But where can I get such an opportunity? I have auditioned many times, and I have never seeded. They always find various reasons to reject me, and I cantpete with local actors. Eric thought for a moment and said, Okay, lets not participate in todays audition. Chapter 323

Chapter 323: Being Single Is Great #

I, Joanna Pacu?a realized something, but felt incredulous. After all, she had only just met Eric. Eric continued, Even if you auditioned, your image ispletely unsuitable for the role of Catherine Tramell. I need an actress with amanding presence, while you are more suitable to y a gentle and virtuous wife. To be honest, I was surprised to see that you looked different in personpared to the photo I sawst night. Otherwise, you would have been eliminatedst night. Joanna felt embarrassed. She had taken the photo at her agents suggestion, specifically for this role. Due to the angle, her personal photo in the materials looked square under the contrast of her long hair, which made her whole temperament appear more fierce. Although Eric did not mention it, Joanna still felt a bit ashamed. But Eric had no intention of pursuing the matter. Many actors resort to more drastic measures to get a role. Compared to that, what Joanna did with the photo was insignificant. Lets do this, leave me a contact, and I will notify you if there is a suitable role in the future, Eric quickly said again. Joanna lifted her head to look at Eric, then lowered her eyes and fidgeted with her slender hand on the leather bag. She had heard this kind of promise from many people before, and most of them were just empty words without any follow-up. Eric noticed the girls small movements and quickly realized that what he had said was inappropriate. This promise was no different from those empty words. Eric did not deny that he was interested in Joanna Pacu?a from the first moment he saw her, with her alluring and gentle temperament. Although it was unreasonable, Eric was particrly fond of Joannas ent when she said Im sorry. The short and t pronunciation was like a finger inadvertently plucking the heartstrings. Therefore, his words just now were certainly not empty promises. But obviously, Joanna did not think so. She was obviously a woman with very little sense of security, which was easy to understand. Being alone in a foreignnd and with a career full of setbacks, she had also suffered from emotional wounds. It was no wonder that she had no sense of security. Miss Pacu?a, how about this? Ill invite you to dinner tonight, and we can talk more. If you dont find it intrusive? The girls expression became even more hesitant for a moment, and Eric quickly added, You choose the location, and Ill follow. Um well, maybe my cooking is not bad, Mr. Williams. How about Eric raised an eyebrow, realizing what the girl wanted to say. Of course, no problem. But, is it convenient to go to your ce? I mean, would your husband or boyfriend misunderstand? The girl shook her head sadly. Im single now. Being single is great! Eric immediately echoed in his mind. The two were chatting when footsteps came from the corridor. Soon, Erics assistant, Allen, came around the corner and saw Eric standing with Joanna Pacu?a, and was a little surprised, unsure whether to continue walking over. Allen, whats up? Eric saw his assistant and asked casually. Allen pointed to the restroom door behind Eric, then immediately shook his head and said, Nothing. Ill go over there. After speaking, the assistant quickly turned around and left without looking back. The reaction of Allen made both of them unable to helpughing lightly. Thats my assistant. He must have misunderstood something, Eric exined, then said, How about you go to my office and wait first? I might need a few more hours. Joanna Pacu?a obediently nodded, and Eric took her in the elevator all the way to the top floor, bringing her into his office and opening the door to the lounge, saying, Theres a TV here. You can Joanna Pacu?a saw the big bed in the lounge and hesitated, shaking her head and pointing to the rest area with a set of sofas near the desk, Ill wait there. Okay, Eric didnt force it and said, There are magazines in the bookshelf. Feel free to browse. Ill be going down first. Two hourster, inside the audition room, the remaining female actresses have all finished their auditions. Eric, Jeffrey, and the director of Basic Instinct, Roger Spottiswoode, huddled together to discuss the final result. Kelly Lynchs audition was the best, and her appearance is good too. However, she doesnt have much acting experience, and its difficult to determine if she can bring this kind of performance to the filming. On the other hand, although Diane Ryans performance was a bit weaker, I think she has more sticity, and her acting skills are definitely not a problem. Otherwise, Francis Ford Copp would not have chosen her to y a role in The Cotton Clubst year. Also, she yed a simr role in Dangerous Liaisonsst year. I think choosing her is safer, Roger Spottiswoode said, looking at Eric. On the other side, Jeffrey did not express any opinions. However, from his asional nods, it was not difficult to see that Jeffrey agreed with Rogers view. Eric sighed and said, Diane Ryans appearance is still a bit soft. Eric, you dont have to worry about that at all. Just spend a little more effort on makeup, and even if you want to make her look like a man, its not a problem, Roger said again. Eric looked around and asked n, Can you find a few stylists in half an hour? We need the best ones. n nodded immediately and said, Of course, no problem. Ill go and contact them now. After the assistant finished speaking, he quickly left the audition room. Eric thought for a moment and said to another staff member, Contact Mr. Don Johnson and have hime here within an hour. I need him to rehearse the lines with the female lead and see the effect. The person who heard Erics instructions also nodded and left the room. Eric closed the materials in front of him and said, Okay, notify those female actors that Diane Ryan can stay, and the others can leave. The staff in the audition room quickly got to work, disassembling the photographic equipment, organizing documents and data, and cleaning up the seats. Eric spoke and led the Basic Instinct team out of the audition room. Chapter 324

Chapter 324: ssic Scene #

Half an hourter, in another dressing room, Diane Lane sat nervously in her chair, allowing the makeup artist to quickly modify her eyebrows, eyes, and hairstyle. Several staff members were spinning around her, and Eric asionally directed the makeup artist on what to do. This situation made Diane realize that she was really going to get the lead role in Basic Instinct. Although the films scale was a bitrge and would definitely have a great impact on her future screen image, this was Eric Williams film. Although he did not direct the film himself and only held the title of producer, his name was listed as the screenwriter, so no one would regard this film as someone elses work. Thinking about the female leads who became famous through Erics films, Diane couldnt help but feel excited. Mr. Williams, is this okay? The stylist quickly brushed Dianes face with powder and asked while standing up. Eric walked up to her and carefully examined her, shaking his head, No, make her eyebrows thicker and make her lips less sexy. I dont want sexiness. Should we make her look more masculine? The stylist asked tentatively. Of course not. The female lead is a woman, but not that kind of sexy woman. The stylist frowned and pondered for a moment. As a top stylist in the industry, he had seen all kinds of strange requests from directors, so he didnt feel impatient with Erics words. After a while, the stylist quickly started modifying Dianes face again. Her eyebrows became thicker, and her originally sexy upper lip was made less prominent. After finishing, the stylist looked at Eric again for confirmation. Eric nodded slightly and then looked behind him, Has the clothes I designed been cut out? Itll be ready in a minute, a staff member responded. Faster, Eric shouted. Then he looked at Diane and said, Mr. Don Johnson willeter, and I need you to perform a few more scenes. You go prepare first. Diane carefully stood up, seeming afraid of ruining her justpleted hairstyle, and nodded, taking the few pages of dialogue handed to her by the staff member and sitting quietly on the sofa in the corner, reading through them. The surrounding people who had been noisy involuntarily lowered their voices. Mr. Williams, the dress is ready. The assistant brought a white dress and showed it to Eric. Is this okay? Its fine, Eric took the dress and walked to the sofa, handing it to the girl in front of him, Diane Lane. Go change, wear only this dress and try to experience Catherine Tramells mentality. Although your chances are high, if the effect is not good, I dont mind recing you. No problem, the girl nodded. Although Erics invitation for her to do a nude audition was a bit embarrassing, she didnt refuse. She took the dress and walked towards the fitting room. You said you like it when a man uses his hands, right? In the shot, Don Johnson asked aggressively. Diane Lanes face was calm with a faintly confident smile as she calmly retorted, No, I said I like it when Johnny uses his hands. I wont set rules, Nick. I like to go with the flow. You killed Mr. Boz, didnt you? An assistant recited the lines. Diane leaned forward, with a hint of sarcasm in her voice. Im not stupid enough to kill someone using the same method as my character in the book and then announce myself as the killer. Im not that dumb. We know youre not that dumb, maybe thats your way of getting away with it? Using a book as an excuse, Don Johnson said again. Diane Lane immediately smiled at Don Johnson, Of course, thats a good idea. After she finished, she quickly became serious again, as if the previous words were just a joke. She looked at the people in front of her and said, Ive already said it, I didnt kill anyone. Did you do drugs with Mr. Boz? Of course. What kind? Cocaine. Nick, have you ever tried cocaine? Diane Lane looked at Don Johnson again, teasingly. After she finished, the scene was quiet for a moment. The most talked-about scene in Basic Instinct appeared in the audition room. Diane Lane was obviously in the zone, unconsciously doing a leg-crossing movement as she had just read the script. Jeffrey, who was sitting opposite her, picked up the water cup in front of him and sprayed the water out when he saw the scenery in front of him. This interruption caused Diane Lane to also break out of the scene, covering her skirt with her hand, but there was not much shyness in her expression. Instead, she boldly looked at Eric sitting opposite her. Eric cleared his throat twice, and Diane Lane couldpletely let go. This made him very satisfied. Therefore, Eric soon said, Very good, congrattions, Ms. Diane Lane, you have passed the audition. Thank you for your recognition, Mr. Williams. I will definitely work hard, said the young woman as she stood up, somewhat reservedly. Eric nodded, then turned to Roger Spottiswoode and said, Now that the lead actress has been confirmed, I will head to New York tomorrow. I will leave this movie entirely in your and Jeffreys hands. The normal shooting schedule for this movie is three months, but I hope you canpress the production period to two months because the movie will be released three monthster and we need to reserve one month for promotion. Ill do my best, Roger Spottiswoode nodded. I dont want to hear the word try. I need a 100% guarantee that this movie will be finished on time. The budget for this movie can be appropriately increased. What I need is timelypletion and guaranteed quality, Eric said. Roger Spottiswoode felt pressure, but he thought about how if he didnt finish Basic Instinct, Eric would make him finish Ghost first, which was said to require special effects, while Basic Instinct did not. He had been in Hollywood for so many years, he couldnt be worse than a young man. I promise I will finish on time, Roger Spottiswoode didnt hesitate for long and quickly said. Eric nodded, reached out his hand and shook hands with Roger Spottiswoode, saying, This is also an unavoidable matter, Roger. You know, I wasted a few months at the beginning of the year and had toe back to show some people that they couldnt stop me in the slightest. So, if you can finish this movie, we will definitely be able to continue working together in the future. Chapter 325

Chapter 325: I Dont Like This Movie #

After deciding on the female lead, Eric had a small meeting with the creators of Basic Instinct to finalize some details. It was already past 7 PM when Eric was about to leave and he suddenly remembered there was a woman in his office. Eric pushed open the office door and walked in. The young woman who was originally sitting on the sofa, absentmindedly flipping through a magazine, was startled but breathed a sigh of relief when she saw it was Eric. All the lights in the office were on, including the wallmps, ceiling lights, and even the deskmp on Erics desk. Why are there so many lights on? Eric asked casually as he walked towards his desk. Its its nothing, Joanna Pacu?a hurriedly walked over and turned off the deskmp. Then she walked over to turn off the wallmps, making the office much darker. Watching Joanna Pacu?a turn off the lights, Eric quickly realized that the reason she had turned on so many lights was a sign of insecurity or fear of loneliness. While he felt a little pity for her, he also softened his tone: Sorry, Miss Pacu?a, for keeping you waiting sote. But there are indeed many things to do. Its okay. I didnt have anything else to do anyway, Joanna Pacu?a shook her head. How about I donte to your ce tonight? Its already toote, Eric said, feeling a little guilty for taking advantage of her vulnerable state. No its not toote. Its only past seven, Joanna Pacu?a said eagerly, although she couldnt help but realize something was off. However, her instincts told her not to give up this opportunity. She was tired of living in this state of uncertainty, and this young man in front of her seemed to be able to help her end it all. She didnt ask for much; she just wanted stability. No longer like before, when she sometimes didnt receive any roles for up to three years and had to rely on odd jobs to make a living. Alright then, lets go, Eric didnt postpone it any further. When they arrived at the parking lot, Eric didnt drive his own car but instead sat in the passenger seat of Joanna Pacu?as car. Looking at Eric fastening his seat belt, Joanna Pacu?a took a deep breath and started the car. I didnt expect you to live in North Hollywood. My family used to live nearby. It should be to the north, Eric said after entering Joanna Pacu?as small apartment. As it turned out, the apartment they used to live in in North Hollywood had already been sold, but their Beverly Hills mansion had not. It was used as another residence. Although it generated a property tax every year, North American property tax can offset part of personal ie tax, so it was not too much. Joanna Pacu?a said, Actually, I just moved here not long ago. I used to live in the city center, but I made some money from a movie I acted inst year, so I moved here. Eric shrugged and didnt say anything else. It was obvious that the woman had not had a good life before. The city center of Los Angeles was not as prosperous as the city centers in the country where Eric was from. Instead, it was a very chaoticmunity. Beverly Hills was the safest area in Los Angeles, while the worst area was probably the downtown bustling area. Mr. Williams, why dont you rest for a while? Ill make dinner soon, Joanna Pacu?a pointed to the small sofa in the living room and said. Uh, just call me Eric, he said casually, taking off his coat and hanging it on the coat rack at the entrance. Okay, Eric. My friends call me Joanna, Joanna Pacu?a said and walked towards the kitchen. Eric looked around the small apartment. It was a one-bedroom, one-living roomyout. The decoration and furniture were quite simple. There was a sofa in the center of the living room, a small TV cab in front of the sofa, and a small dining table against the wall behind it. There were several photos hanging on the wall, and Eric approached to take a closer look. Some of them were stage y photos, probably of Shakespearean ys. Joanna Pacu?a in the photos looked very young. Considering that she had worked at the Polish National Theatre before, these photos should be from that time, more than ten years ago. However,pared to the photos, Joanna Pacu?a now didnt seem to have changed much. For a Westerner who was prone to aging, she was indeed blessed with good looks. After a brief tour, Eric walked to the TV and saw a VCR under the TV cab, with several video tapes next to it. He casually flipped through them and saw a movie called The Kiss. The introduction said it was a horror movie, and the half of the womans face on the poster was processed into a skeleton, with thick red lips painted on it. It was hard to tell that the woman in the kitchen was the same person. Eric put the tape into the VCR, turned on the TV, and sat back on the sofa. The scene began with a divorced family separating. The mother took her daughter on a departing train, but the evil spirit in her body broke out on the train, and after spreading to her daughter, the daughter died, and disappeared without a trace. More than ten yearster, the younger sister who grew up with her father had already started her own family, and her daughter had also grown up. However, due to taking off the protective cross and giving it to her daughter, the younger sister died in a sudden car ident. The older sister who had never shown up before appeared at her sisters grave and met her sisters husband and daughter After watching for only half an hour, Eric almost foresaw the oue. There was a slight noise behind him, and Joanna Pacu?a appeared in the living room, quietly standing behind Eric and staring at the TV screen. I dont like this movie, Eric said, walking over to turn off the VCR and switching to a different TV channel. The woman didnt answer, but the sadness in her eyes was hard to hide. If she had a choice, she definitely wouldnt have picked this kind of movie. Eric, lets eat, the woman finally spoke after a moment of silence. Sure, Ill help you, Eric stood up and followed Joanna Pacu?a into the kitchen, helping her bring the simple dinner to the table. I dont have many ingredients here, so I could only make these, Joanna Pacu?a exined. Eric served himself a small bowl of corn chowder and tasted it, nodding in admiration. Its very good, I really like it. Joanna Pacu?a looked at the simple dishes on the table and regretted not taking Eric out to eat. It wouldnt have cost much money, and although the man was constantlyplimenting her cooking, she still felt very insecure and had a forced smile on her face. Chapter 326

Chapter 326: This Is All I Have #

Although Eric tried his best to liven up the atmosphere, the mood was tinged with a hint of awkwardness throughout because the girl was not really there mentally. After dinner, Eric watched as the girl cleaned up and then got up to leave, saying, Its gettingte, I think I should go back now. You didnte by car, how are you going to get back? the girl asked casually. Eric coughed awkwardly and was about to say something when Joanna Pacu?a suddenly interjected, Can you stay and watch TV for a while? Erics expression changed slightly and he nodded obediently, sitting back down on the sofa. The girl tidied up the dishes and then disappeared into the bathroom. The sound of rushing water could be clearly heard due to the poor sound instion in the small apartment, and Eric suddenly felt a strange sensation in his heart. After a while, the girl emerged from the bathroom wearing a pink bathrobe with wet hair draped over her shoulders. She switched off the lights in the living room with a flick of her hand, leaving only the flickering glow of the TV. Eric remained silent as he watched her switch off the TV after a while. Then, a naked and supple body snuggled up to him, tentatively rubbing against him as she whispered softly, Ive heard about your situation. Hmm? Eric felt the atmosphere was bing somewhat ambiguous and subconsciously asked in confusion. About your situation, Joanna Pacu?a repeated, her hands still busy unbuttoning his shirt. Her tongue teasingly traced over his cheek before moving downwards, and she spoke haltingly, II only have this to offer, and mymy demands are not high. Eric took a deep breath and took the initiative to wrap his arms around the girls slender waist, pressing her down on the sofa as he kissed her deeply. The sunlight struggled to squeeze in through the narrow gap between the curtains from a nearby building, only just managing to cast a faint beam on the cramped bedroom. Although the not-too-big bed made Eric feel a bit ufortable, the faint fragrance of the woman that surrounded him effectively merged with his emotions. A cluster of light brown hair rested on her chest, and the womans figure was actually very tall. She was only a little less than ten centimeters shorter than Eric, but at the moment she was curled up in his chest like a little girl. Eric could clearly feel the faint warmth of her breath on his skin. Carefully stroking the smooth back of the woman in his arms, Eric wondered whether he should get up now. His watch was ced on the bedside table, and he was afraid that he might disturb the woman if he moved too much. He didnt know what time it was, but he was sure it was already quitete since he had stayed up until after one oclockst night. He didnt bring his mobile phone, although he had several ACs provided by Motor for the filming of Running Out of Time. They were only slightlyrger than his palm, but they were still very clunkypared to the mobile phones in his previous life, and he didnt like using them. He guessed that many people were frantically searching for him now. Joanna Pacu?a in his arms moved and opened her eyes, feeling that she was curled up in a mans embrace. After a brief confusion, she soon remembered what had happenedst night. Im sorry, Eric. What time is it now? she asked timidly, raising her head. Eric felt relieved when he saw her awake and reached for the watch on the bedside table. Its 9:40, he replied. Its already sote, Joanna sighed lightly, but she didnt hurry to get up. She straightened up and leaned on Erics arm, looking at him with her beautiful peach blossom eyes. Dont you want to get up? Eric asked curiously. Joanna shook her head. Its just that I dont know what to do after getting up. Thats not good. People will age easily without goals, Eric said softly. Heh, I am indeed much older than you, Joanna said dejectedly. Ericforted her by stroking her back. You look about the same age as me, at most 25 years old. But Im not really 25 years old, Joanna replied. Eric kissed her on the lips. Alright, lets not talk about these sad things. Since you dont want to get up, lets do something meaningful. Umwhat? The woman had not yet reacted when she felt Eric pressing her down and she let out a short moan. She quickly wrapped her arms around his waist, slightly opening her mouth, bearing the mans thrusts. Yes, n, of course, Im fine. Ill go to the airport on time this afternoon. You go to Malibu and have someone help me packYes, there are people there, youll know when you go Also, buy another ne ticket. After hanging up the phone, Eric looked at the already dressed woman and said, Come with me to New York. Ive already asked someone to help buy the ne ticket. Joanna Pacu?a hesitated, Youre going to shoot a movie, what am I going to do? Ive already thought of a position for you. You can be my personal assistant. My personal assistant? The woman repeated, thinking for a moment before nodding, Okay, you can arrange it. I dont have anything to do in Los Angeles anyway. But what about my agent? What do you think of your agent? Eric asked. Hes okay, the woman replied. Dont use such uncertainnguage. I mean, if you think hes good, then keep him. If you dont think hes good, then fire him. Joanna Pacu?a didnt think too much and quickly said, Thenlets fire him. Okay, thats settled, Eric said with a smile. Now call him and tell him hes fired, and then youll be free. Were going to New York. But personal assistant? Eric approached and revealed the womans waistline, Whats wrong, dont you want to? No, Im just a little scared, the woman said with a flicker in her eyes. Scared of what? Eric asked. Joanna Pacu?a hesitated for a moment before closing her eyes slightly, Im afraid you just want to y with me and then not care about me anymore when you get bored. Eric pretended to be angry, Do you think Im that kind of person? Because I dont know, thats why Im afraid. I just want to be a little more stable. Youre the big boss of Firefly, help me arrange a movie, let me have a stable career in Hollywood. This request is not too high. I promise I wont bother you again in the future. If you want you can stille find me. After hearing Joanna Pacu?as hesitant words, Eric tightly embraced her and said, Dont worry, you wont have to worry about that anymore in the future. Although you dont believe it, I promise you will definitely be the top Hollywood superstar. In the next movie, Ill have you as my leadingdy. Chapter 327

Chapter 327: Grim Reaper #

Inte April, Fireflys three movie projects wereunched almost simultaneously, and their release schedules were all set for this years summer season. This move goes against the normal release cycle of many movies, after all, in this day and age, many Hollywood movies take several months to over a year to be released after production ispleted. Therefore, many media outlets questioned Erics arrangement. However, Eric did not respond to thesements because Firefly operates very differently from the seven major moviepanies. After all, Firefly is still much smallerpared to the massive seven, and for major moviepanies that have to arrange the release ns for dozens of movies a year, there will of course be some movies that are repeatedly dyed due to various conflicts. But Firefly is different. After merging with New Line, Robert Shaye suspended New Lines low-cost film production ns. Therefore, Firefly only has three movie release ns to arrange in the first half of the year, including The Silence of the Lambs, Sleeping with the Enemy, and Ghost. Basic Instinct is distributed by Universal, so Firefly doesnt have to worry about it, and Ghost is still co-produced and distributed with Disney. In this case, Fireflys release pressure is even smaller, and its easier to operate. Almost at the same time as making the movie, simple promotional work can begin. By the time the movie is released, the promotion has actually been going on for three months. Compared to many movies from major moviepanies that only have one month of promotion time, Fireflys promotion is already very sufficient. At the same time the movie was being filmed, Erics book The Matrix with only a little over 50,000 words was quietly put on sale, and Michael us hardly spent any effort on promoting it. This book easily climbed to the top of the bestseller list. This was followed by a lot of skepticism. After all, the book was written too hastily. Eric only spent a little over a weeks free time on it, and many details were not fully considered, making it more like telling many seemingly false segments. Therefore, many newspapers criticized Erics book for having a clever idea, but beingpletely shoddy in detail, simply fooling readers, and even some newspapers criticized Eric for being just trying to make money. Even readers who dont like the bookugh at such opinions. With Erics current wealth, how could he be interested in insignificant royalty ie? Of course, many people in Hollywood are aware of Erics true purpose in writing this book. Compared to his previous works such as Jurassic Park and Resident Evil, this nove is clearly geared towards a movie adaptation. After careful examination of the nove, many people also realized the huge potential for The Matrix in the film industry. Despite knowing the slim chances, people continue to reach out to acquire the film rights. Even Cameron, who was preparing for Terminator 2 at the time, expressed a strong interest in The Matrix and called Eric to discuss some of his thoughts on the film. However, Cameron wisely did not bring up the topic of acquiring the film rights, and Eric did not consider handing over The Matrix to Cameron to direct, despite the tempting and interesting idea. The Matrix and Camerons film style have significant differences. While Camerons films contain some thought-provoking elements, such as the Terminator series expressing a strong concern for humans endless expansion of nuclear armaments, and Avatar, which tells the story of the Navi people protecting Pandora against humans endless exploitation of natural resources, ultimately facing strong counterattacks from nature, his films have always pursued the most gorgeous visual effects and most explosive action scenes, which are not the main focus of The Matrix. The Matrix phenomenon continues to persist, and Eric has not been influenced by any external opinions. The filming of Ghost is proceeding smoothly in various districts of New York. Stan, the Grim Reaper I need is the real one, the one wearing a ck cloak and carrying a scythe, not a few blurry shadows. But ording to what you said, the final effect is likely to be just a few blurry shadows. Night has just fallen in the closed-off street in New York, where the crew is busy preparing for the filming. Eric and Stan Winston, who is responsible for the special effects, are discussing something. By the way, speaking of shadows, its a big problem. Sam has be a ghost, so ording tomon sense, he shouldnt have any shadows or footsteps when walking. The footsteps are easy to solve, but what about the shadows? After thinking for a moment, Stan Winston said, This is easy. Well use a shadowless light and then adjust the lighting in post-production. However, filming like this will be very troublesome. Im not afraid of trouble, as long as I can handle the details well, Eric decisively said. At this moment, the set designer in charge walked over and told Eric that everything had been arranged. Several temporary actors wearing blue bodysuits arrived in front of Eric and Stan Winston. These people were supposed to be the frightening Grim Reapers in the movie, but they didnt look scary at all, and instead seemed a bitical. Stan Winston and Eric personally inspected the costumes of the temporary actors and said, Eric, I dont think the Grim Reapers need to be too realistic. If theyre too realistic, itll be a horror movie. So a few dark shadows are just right. No, Stan, I mean a realistic effect, not a horror effect. If the Grim Reapers are too realistic, wouldnt that be terrifying? Stan Winston asked, somewhat confrontational. Eric shrugged helplessly. You just need to do it ording to the effect I want. Ill take care of the rest. Okay, as you wish. Actually, this has to do with post-production rendering. The digital rendering farm isnt set up yet. Then use Pixars. They have a ready-made rendering farm, although its used for rendering 3D animations. But I remember the principles are simr. Talk to John Lasseter over there. If that doesnt work, then well rent from Industrial Light & Magic. After Eric and Stan Winston finished inspecting the few background Grim Reaper actors, they made an OK gesture to the assistant director and the shooting resumed Chapter 328

Chapter 328

This is the second antagonist, Willie Lopez, who kills Sam. He identally dies on the street after being scared by Sams ghost and fleeing the Odeon Mead apartment. Eric didnt bother finding the original actor for this minor role and instead cast a Latin actor in his thirties named Phillip Reed, chosen by the casting director. The scene where Willie is hit by a truck is also quite dangerous, so even though Phillip Reed is just a minor character, extra precautions were taken to ensure his safety. If he were to get injured, the production team would have had to find a recement at thest minute. Stan, are you ready? Eric approached and asked. Of course, I guarantee there wont be any problems. Lets get ready to shoot, Stan Winston made a prepared gesture. Eric went back behind the monitor and surveyed the surroundings again, making sure everything was safe before calling for action. A red car and a truck approached each other, and in the shot, Willie yed by Phillip Reed looked terrified but forgot to dodge. In another monitor shot, the two vehicles collided with a bang. Good, one take. Special effects team, get ready. Hey, you two, go help Mr. Reed rest on the side, Eric sighed in relief, pleased that nothing went wrong. Meanwhile, Phillip Reed, who was standing next to the two colliding cars, was already scared and had to be helped down by two staff members. Although the special effects team had repeatedly assured everyone that there would be no problems and that Reeds position was not dangerous at all, it was natural to feel frightened while watching the two cars collide. However, this frontal shot couldnt be filmed with a stunt double. After a simple preparation, a special effects performer, who was dressed exactly like Phillip Reed, walked out and stood in the gap between the two cars, suspended by wires, ready to film the shot of Willie being hit by the truck. This shot was also quite difficult. To avoid revealing the trick, the performer had tond face down after flying through the air, hence the protective gear on his face. Although experienced special effects personnel from Stan Winstons studio were in charge of the stunt, it still took 78 attempts to get the shot right. The performer endured 78 consecutive falls, as uratelynding face-first isnt an easy feat. Afterpleting these two shots, the rest of the shooting went smoothly, including the scene where Willies soul is dragged away by the Grim Reaper, which actually just involved a few extras dressed in blue bodysuits dragging screaming Willie to the corner, and in post-production these people would be processed withputer effects to create the desired Grim Reaper image. Although these shots may sound simple, the shooting took until after midnight. After the crew finished for the day, Eric returned to the hotel where the crew was staying, and it was already past 12:30 a.m. Eric, I had the kitchen prepare some supper, Joanna Pacu?a, who had just finished taking a shower and was bored watching TV in the living room, stood up and said. Eric kissed the actress on the cheek and said, I told you, if we finish toote, you should rest first. The actress took the towel from Erics hand and carefully wiped his wet hair, saying, Its okay. Didnt you ask me to be your personal assistant? Of course, I want to do this job well. Eric smirked and hugged the actresss waist. So obedient, are you willing to do anything I ask you to do? Joanna Pacu?a struggled a bit but didnt break free from the mans embrace. She quickly softened, but didnt answer Erics question. She just put the towel aside andined, Its been a busy day. Lets finish supper quickly, and anyway, we have plenty of time in the future. Then you can stay here tonight. I want to hold you and sleep, Eric sniffed the actresss long hair and whispered. Okay, okay. Hey, stop touching me. The supper will get cold soon. Lets eat, Joanna Pacu?a said. After being intimate for a while, Eric walked to the dining table, ate supper, and chatted with the actress from time to time, who was sitting on the sofa looking at him. After two weeks of filming the scenes rted to the special effects of Ghost, and after careful review and confirmation, Eric handed the sample to Stan Winston and others to do post-production in Los Angeles. Because the special effects used in Ghost were rtively simple, and there werent too many special effects shots, many shots could even bepleted with the most basic film ovepping techniques. Therefore, even if Eric had high requirements for some of the effects and the post-processing cost, it would not exceed one month, and at most it would bepleted by the end of May. At that time, with Erics filming speed, the entire film would also be close topletion. After thepletion of the special effects part, the time entered May, and gradually people began to visit the set. To Erics surprise, the first visitors were the Trump father and daughter, Donald Trump and Ivanka Trump. It was noon, and because they were shooting several outdoor scenes of Sam taking Audrey to the bank to withdraw money, the crew closed a not-too-busy street in Manhattan. Eric, Im really sorry that I couldnt help you with that matter earlier, Donald Trumps first words to Eric were an apology. Eric smiled. Donald Trump couldnt have helped with that matter: Its okay, Donald. By the way, hows things on your end? Upon hearing this question, Donald Trump smiled: Its okay. We managed to get through it thanks to your reminder. After spending some energy, the bank had to agree to continue loaning me the money. Now, the resort has been fully built, and part of it has already started to be used. At least I wont go bankrupt again. After Donald Trump finished speaking, he magically pulled a card out of his pocket and handed it to Eric: This is the membership card for my resort. Of course, this is the highest level. If you have time, you can go to Antic City and take a look. Eric smiled and took the membership card. He remembered that Antic City should be in New Jersey, and he had never been there before. Recently, he happened to see news about Michael Jackson attending the opening of the Trump resort on entertainment news. If I have time, I will go take a look, Eric said, looking at the little girl who was circling around curiously with a stuffed toy in her arms. Inny, why dont you say hello to me when you see me? You seem unhappy. Did someone bully you? Chapter 329

Chapter 329: Little Girl Hugging a Stuffed Toy #

Ivanka Trump wrinkled her nose and snorted softly, then nced displeasedly at her father. Donald Trump awkwardly whispered to Eric, Ivanka is mad at me. I promised to bring her to see you filming a movie, and only then did she talk to me for a few words. Eric raised an eyebrow slightly, Is there something wrong? I I divorced Innys mother a while ago, Donald Trump didnt hide it either, So, you understand. Eric remembered seeing Donald Trumps wife at the premiere of Home Alone 2st year. At that time, the two seemed to be fine. However, this was other peoples business, and he didnt want to ask too much. The divorce rate among Americans exceeded 50%, and Eric was almost used to it. Among the people he knew now, most of them had divorced or had parents who had divorced. After wandering around for a fewps, Ivanka suddenly approached Eric, Eric, Dad and Mom are divorced, and youre not a good person either. Eric was slightly stunned. This the logic is a bit too strong. Your dad dumped your mom, and it has nothing to do with me. Eric helplessly shrugged, Inny, Im innocent. This doesnt seem to have anything to do with me, right? Did you forget what you promised me back then? Ivanka asked angrily. Eric thought for a moment, then shook his head, How about you give me a hint? Hmph, you bad guy, Ivanka knocked on Erics body with the bunny plush toy in her hand, You promised me to let me act in your movie, but now youre filming, and you didnt even inform me. Oh, this, Eric suddenly realized. He just casually said it back then, thinking that Ivanka, at her age, might forget it soon. Unexpectedly, the little girl remembered it even better than him, But there is no role for a little girl in this movie, right? Hmph. Bad guy, youre making excuses and not keeping your promise. I wont talk to you anymore in the future, Ivanka said angrily, turning her face away. Not talking to himself, this threat is a bit serious! Eric thought for a moment before saying, Inny, how about this? You can y a little girl passing by the lead actorter, and it would be better if you can hold your bunny. Ivanka wanted to continue to be angry for a while, but she couldnt resist Erics temptation. She soon turned her face back, Really? Of course, Eric nodded solemnly. As just a minor character, it didnt matter much. Of course he couldnt say what he was really thinking: You said you took an acting ss, let me see what youve been practicing. Youll be surprised for sure, a guy who knows nothing but the director. The little girl sarcasticallyined. Eric was speechless, he hadnt forgotten that line. The lunch break quickly passed, the scenes with Nics Cage and Whoopi Goldberg were self-evident. Originally, there were only adults on the street, and no little girls appeared. Now, with the addition of the little girl, Eric had to rearrange the scene. Eni, wait until thedy walks over here before she can pull you and start walking around. Keep going along this road until the other side. Remember, act as if nothing happened. Dont look at the camera lens, and dont curiously stare at thedy in the pink jacket. Ah, I know, I know, you talk so much, Ivanka waved her hand. Eric shrugged and walked back to the directors chair. Originally, he proposed that Donald Trump hold hands with the little girl to y the role of a passerby, which could ease their rtionship. Donald Trump was naturally very happy, but unfortunately the little girl refused, so Eric had to pick ady from the extras to pull the little girl and pretend to be a mother and daughter. Take your ces, get ready to shoot, Eric shouted to everyone with a microphone in his hand, and all the actors took their positions. Action! As the sound fell, the monitor showed the following scene: Oda Mae, who had just donated a check for four million dors to the welfare home, walked forward with a look of disappointment. Oda Mae, Im proud of you, Sams ghost followed behind Oda Mae. I dont care if youre proud of me or not. Why does a nun need so much money! Whoopi Goldberg yed Oda Mae, who was filled with indignation andined to the air, Dont bother me anymore, and dont talk to me anymore. Sam looked at Oda Mae walking away and added, Youre amazing. Upon hearing this sentence, Oda Mae suddenly turned around, unable to see Sam, and looked around before spitting fiercely into the air and walking away in aical manner. Eric almost wanted to apud her. Meanwhile, on the other side of the street in the surveince monitor, a little girl holding a Bugs Bunny plushie was innocently walking with a woman, seemingly oblivious to the situation. The little girl even nced at Oda Mae, who appeared to be talking to the air, and then said something to her mother while looking up. However, the extra actress ying the role of the mother didnt react to the sudden conversation and paused briefly in her steps. Cut, Eric shook his head regretfully. If the extra actress could have cooperated, the shot would have been perfect. After all, Oda Mae was talking to thin air and even spitting, and it would be abnormal if the surrounding pedestrians didnt react. On the other hand, the little girls curiosity about what Oda Mae was doing seemed very natural. Wait a moment, Eric said to everyone and walked to Ivanka and the extra actress. Whats your name, maam? Director Williams, you can call me Elena, the extra actress said nervously. She realized that the problem was with herself, although she couldnt help feeling resentful towards the little girl for suddenly speaking out of turn. However, she didnt dare to say it out loud because the little girl had a special rtionship with the director. Well, Elena, what did Inni say to you just now? Eric asked. She asked me, Auntie, why is thatdy acting like that? Elena answered truthfully. Eric nodded. Thats right. If you had made the appropriate reaction just now, the shot would have been perfect. For example, Whoopi Goldberg talking to thin air would attract more attention from passing pedestrians. Therefore, Innis reaction was correct. Oh, dont worry, Im not criticizing you. I just hope you can cooperate with the shot in the next take and make an appropriate reaction. What should I do in response? Elena asked. Eric nced at Whoopi Goldberg who hade over and smiled, If you see a woman going crazy on the street with a child, your first reaction would be to walk away quickly. Hey Eric, do I look like Im going crazy? You look exactly like it, Ericughed and said to Whoopi Goldberg. Okay, thats enough, Eric finished and pinched the little girls cheek. Enni, you did a good job just now, lets continue. Hey, dont pinch my face, I hate it! Ivanka, who had been a little proud, suddenly waved her small hand angrily and opened Erics ws reaching for her face. Eric shrugged and then instructed everyone to start again. The same scene yed out again, and the performances of Nics Cage and Whoopi Goldberg were wless. As Oda Mae walked to the center of the road and spat, a mother and daughter happened to pass by. The little girl, holding a rabbit puppet, looked at Oda Mae curiously and said something to the middle-aged woman, who nervously grabbed the girls hand and hurriedly walked away without exining anything to Whoopi Goldberg. Good, very perfect! Eric apuded and said, and many people around them pped their hands, even though they didnt know exactly what had happened. During the break before the next scene, the little girl proudly came to Erics side and reached out her little hand. What? Eric looked at the small hand reaching out to him in confusion and asked. Chapter 330

Chapter 330: Not Going to Reason Anymore #

My payment, Eric, is 20 dors, Ivanka said confidently, and Lolitas enthusiastic expression made everyoneugh. Eric alsoughed and reached into his pocket for his wallet, curiously asking, Eni, what do you need the money for? I dont like my dad anymore, Ive decided not to spend his money anymore and I want to be independent, Ivanka said firmly. Donald Trump, who had been standing next to them the whole time, awkwardly covered his forehead but still had a smile on his face. Eric looked at Donald Trump and covered the wallet he had just taken out, asking again, But your dad pays for your tuition and living expenses, right? I checked, its my dads obligation as a father, but other than that, I dont want to spend his money anymore. Look, I bought this bunny doll with the money I earned from cleaning my room, Ivanka said with a serious expression. Her cute and serious expression made her big shiny eyes fixedly stare at Erics wallet, as if she was afraid he would back out of the deal. Eric looked in his wallet and pulled out a $100 bill, handing it over. Take it, the extra is your reward for your excellent performance just now. Dont treat me like a child, Dad did that to me too. I dont want it. 20 dors is 20 dors, Ivanka insisted. The crowd watching the scene finally burst intoughter. Okay, okay, Eric chuckled and shook his head, flipping open his wallet to look for change, but found that he only had a stack of hundred-dor bills. Eni, I dont have any change, what should I do? Although the people around them probably had a $20 bill, Eric still showed his wallet to Ivanka, wanting to tease the little girl again. Ivanka leaned over and looked at Erics wallet seriously. Suddenly, she froze. As Donald Trumps daughter, she had always lived a worry-free life. Whenever she wanted something, someone would buy it for her, so she rarely dealt with money matters. However, after her parents sudden divorce, Ivanka began to think about earning money on her own. Now facing such a plicated issue that she had never experienced before, she didnt know how to handle it. Therefore, the little girl instinctively looked towards her father. Inny, if you want me to help, youll have to pay a consultation fee of $20, Donald Trump said in an official tone with a serious face. Ivanka red at her father angrily and then looked at Eric. Twenty dors, Ivanka repeated and then stared at Eric without blinking. It was obvious that the young girl was not willing topromise. Eric saw the assistant director gesturing to him that the next scene was ready, so he didnt have time to joke with Ivanka any further. He handed her a $100 bill and said, Here, take this. The remaining $80 can be considered as an advance payment for your appearance fee. You can guest star in my movie four times in the future. Ivanka was about to return the money to Eric, but when she heard what he said, she tilted her head and thought for a moment. She realized that this was actually a good idea, and most importantly, Eric didnt charge her a consultation fee like her despicable father did. She nodded in agreement and said, No problem, but I can only guest star four times. Of course, Eric nodded and looked at Ivankas cute appearance. He inexplicably thought of an old man who always appeared mysteriously in superhero movies. It would be interesting if there was a little girl who always appeared with a stuffed toy in his movie, wouldnt it? After the filming resumed, Donald Trump took his daughter and left tactfully. The outdoor scenes were almost done, and Eric started shooting the most important indoor scenes. The filming location for Sam and Mollys home was an apartment building in the SoHo district of Manhattan, New York. SoHo was originally an old industrial district in New York. Due to the decline of New Yorks manufacturing industry, many factories and apartments were left vacant for a period of time. Because of the cheap rent, many artists and creators of various types who came to New York to pursue their dreams gathered here, renting cheap factories as their studios. With decades of development, the SoHo district gradually became synonymous with contemporary art, and the concept of SoHo spread throughout the world with the development of the times. In Ghost, Molly is an artist. Therefore, it is very fitting for the two to live here as it corresponds with their roles in the story. Because of watching the news about a ne crash on TV, Sams somewhat pessimistic words caused Molly to have insomnia. Therefore, the girl got up alone and started working on ceramics, and Sam, who woke up in a daze, discovered that his lover had left and came to Mollys studio. Soon, it also created the most ssic scene in Ghost movie. I want this scene to have a more theatrical effect when filming. The most important thing is the lighting. This scene is probably divided into two parts. The first part is the pottery scene. Here, as you can see, although there is a light, I dont need it to be used in the shot. What I need is a top light effect. As for the second part, I need high-contrast lighting, Eric said as he walked around the room with the lighting crew, and the lighting crew nodded repeatedly to show that they understood. After exining everything, Eric walked over to Nics Cage and Bridget Fonda, who were preparing for the scene. Cage was chatting casually with Fonda, and it was apparent that the rtionship between the two was somewhat intimate. In fact, this was precisely the effect Eric needed. As a touching love movie, if the male and female protagonists dont have chemistry, unless both actors acting skills reach a certain level, it will be a disaster for the film. Therefore, although Bridget Fonda was very beautiful, Eric did not make a move as he used to. He needed the female lead to maintain the chemistry with the male lead. When it came to movies and women, Eric has always been able to distinguish the main and the secondary. In Erics mind, the film has always been the most important thing. This is the foundation of his standing in Hollywood. As long as he can achieve enough sess in the film industry, pursuing women will be an easy task. Seeing Ericing over, the two who were chatting couldnt help but want to stand up. Its okay, sit down, Eric waved his hand, pulled a chair and sat opposite the two, and casually asked, What were you just talking about? The two nced at each other, and Bridget spoke up, Cage asked if I wanted to go see a famous British theater group performing Hamlet on Broadway tomorrow night. Chapter 331

Chapter 331: Indulgence #

Hamlet is pretty good, as long as it doesnt affect filming, you guys can arrange your own time, Eric nodded without expressing any opinion, then asked, Hows the preparation for the next scene? Hearing Erics words, Bridget Fonda was visibly disappointed. Although Cage was doing great now, he still couldntpare to Eric by far. When Bridget Fonda got this role, she thought that with Erics rumored personality, something would definitely happen during the filming process. After all, she was quite confident in her appearance. Unfortunately, things didnt go as she had hoped. The filming had been going on for half a month now, but Eric had never made any move on her. It was natural for a woman to be resentful when she was neglected. Seeing Bridget Fonda didnt speak, Cage quickly said, Were ready. Bridget and I have rehearsed a few times in our free time, so there shouldnt be any problems. Rehearsed? Eric asked subconsciously. After all, there would be more than two minutes of intimate scenes after the bed scene. Cage also realized that his answer was ambiguous and exined awkwardly, Just a simple rehearsal, nothing else. Eric wasnt interested in this kind of detail and nodded, Okay, you guys prepare. Ill go check out the set. As soon as Eric left, Bridget Fonda punched Cage in the arm fiercely, Who said we rehearsed? We just talked casually. Cage was a little frustrated, So, should I tell the director the truth that we havent done much preparation? Thats not what I meant. You know whatsing next, Bridget Fonda retorted. Okay, it was a mistake, Cage shrugged, But Bridget, you dont have a chance. Everyone can tell that Eric has a close rtionship with his assistant Joanna Pacu?a. I even saw hering out of Erics room early one morning when I was out for a run. Bridget Fonda didnt expect her little thoughts to be seen through by Cage and reflexively retorted, What does that have to do with me? Okay, forget I said anything, Cage said, picking up the script and starting to read it. Bridget Fonda also lifted the script in her hand and held it in front of her face, but inevitably she was somewhat absent-minded. The camera stayed still for a moment in the quiet corridor, then moved slowly. Finally, it focused again on Molly, who was concentrating on shaping a vase. The vertical orange light shone on the girls simple sleeveless shirt, giving her a subtle and indescribable beauty. During these idle days, Bridget Fonda had been learning pottery techniques from a master potter hired by the crew. The shelves near the girl were filled with pieces she had personallypleted in the past few days. In the camera shot, Bridget Fonda also did a decent job, gradually shaping a vase in the girls hand. The silence continued for a moment until Sam, shirtless, walked out from behind Molly with his hands sped in front of him, looking a little sleepy. What are you doing? I cant sleep, Molly turned her head and nced at him, saying. Sam pulled up a chair and sat behind his lover, apologizing lightly: I must have fallen asleep. What time is it? Two in the morning. Molly leaned over and lightly pecked Sams lips, saying. Watching Mollys movements carefully for a while, Sam lightly poked her waist when she bent down. The vase in Mollys hand was instantly deformed. Molly twisted her waist without any concern, and her boyfriend had to let her go. He reached out and lightly touched the ceramic embryo, instantly destroying the piece. Oh. I hope that wasnt your masterpiece, Sam said insincerely with a smile. Molly helplessly pouted: Its not anymore. Taking the y off the potters wheel, Molly nned to start over. Sam tentatively asked, Can I help? Of course. Put your hand here and let the y flow through your fingers, Molly guided Sams movements. However, Sam was not very honest and kept teasing the girl. Gradually, Molly also began to be moved by the situation, and the two of them naturally kissed each other. Cut, Eric shouted in time, and the two actors stopped and walked to his side at his direction. Eric gave some instructions, and the crew quickly put an identical embryo on the potters wheel. Although this is already the sixth time filming, Eric still calmly reys the previous scene, telling the lead actors about the strengths and weaknesses of their performance without any impatience, because Eric knows that if he shows any sign of impatience, the two actors will inevitably be affected by his emotions and be restless. Therefore, his tone of voice always carries a faint encouragement. Nick, your performance was almost perfect just now, but there is one thing you need to pay attention to. Look at this shot, your smile is a bit too deliberate. Rx a bit more, and it will be even better. And Bridget, you just need to remember one emotion, that is indulgence. Even though your lover is causing trouble, you should never show any displeasure, but instead indulge him like a mother indulging her mischievous child. Like a mother? Bridget Fonda asked in confusion. Eric nodded and said, Yes, think back to when you were young and your mother was cooking dinner in the kitchen, and you ran in to help but ended up getting in the way. Although your mother would pretend to be angry and re at you, there would definitely be a doting smile on her face. I need you to express this kind of indulgent emotion. Upon hearing Erics words, Bridget Fondas gaze became somewhat nk, and Eric couldnt help but want to facepalm. It seems shees from an unhappy family background. In short, its indulgence. Take a five-minute break, let the makeup artist touch up your makeup, and think about what I just said. Dont rush it. Today, as long as we can finish this scene, itll be good enough, Eric said again. Bridget Fonda and Cage nodded and walked towards the rest area, while Eric walked towards the automatic record yer, inserted the Unchained Melody record and pressed the y button. The familiar melody immediately filled the set. Bridget Fonda and Cage, who were being touched up by the makeup artist, looked over and understood that Eric had yed it specifically for them, and listened quietly. Chapter 332

Chapter 332: Unbelievable #

In the shot, the girl hung on Sam like a ko and kissed him passionately. They slowly fell onto the sofa next to them. After more than four hours, Eric, who was staring at the screen behind the monitor, finally shouted, Good, this shot is done! Everyone present, including the two lead actors who had just gotten up from the sofa, breathed a sigh of relief. Although the scene in the script was only a few lines and less than a page long, it took four hours to shoot. Anyone would feel impatient, but Eric, who was supposed to be the most likely to erupt, did not show any signs of impatience. Of course, the others present did not dare to show any signs of impatience either. They repeated the scene over and over again. Eric looked at his watch and said, Thats enough for today. Its already veryte, and we dont need to clean up here for now. Lets go back and rest as soon as possible. Before anyone could cheer for the directors thoughtfulness, Eric added, No one is allowed to bete tomorrow. There was a chorus of groans, but no one dared toin. After all, they had all been paid enough overtime, and Eric still had more work to do than they did. After everyone left, Eric and the assistant director checked the footage they had shot and put it in a safe box. It took more than half an hour. The filming in Manhattan had been going on for almost a month. Because Eric had a ready-made movie as a reference, he was always faster than other Hollywood directors. After just one month, the filming of Ghost was already 20%plete, and maybe it would only take another ten days of filming before it could be wrapped up. There were also asional updates from Los Angeles that the production of the movies special effects was going smoothly. Eric even watched some of the effects through a video call. However, filming Basic Instinct in San Francisco was not going as smoothly. It was not because of the lead actors, whose performances were excellent, but because of other issues. As everyone knew, San Francisco was a city with a high concentration of the LGBTmunity. A controversial scene about homosexuality in Basic Instinct was reported by the paparazzi with exaggerated headlines, causing protests from the LGBTmunity in San Francisco. Some radical activists even tried to obstruct the filming of the movie. Jeffrey had to contact the San Francisco police department for help. For the past few days, the filming of Basic Instinct had been under the protection of more than 50 police officers. As a result, the production team had to pay a substantial sponsorship fee to the relevant San Francisco police department. And the fireflys first movie, Silence of the Lambs, set to be released during the summer, has already wrapped up production for over a week. Its said that the crew had to split into three to finish the film as soon as possible. By the end of May, all post-production work will bepleted, but due to the rush, the original cost of less than 20 million has increased to 25 million. Eric has not yet seen a sample of the film, but he believes that with Jonathan Demme directing the original version and no changes to the two main actors, the film should not differ too much from the previous version. ording to the n, the film will have its first reviews and previews for critics in early June, with an official release date set for June 8th. However, Robert Shaye only arranged for 1,500 premiere cinemas for the film. Although Eric knows that this is because Robert Shay is allocating resources for his own personally directed film, Sleeping with the Enemy, Eric doesnt say much. Its already good enough to be able to premiere during the summer season. After all, Silence of the Lambs is an R-rated bloody horror film, and ording to Hollywood tradition, this type of film is either released during the Easter season or at the end of the summer season. Being able to squeeze into the popr summer season is already very lucky. As for the 1,500 cinemas for a horror film, its not considered a small number. In addition to the movie business, Eric gradually realizes that he has more and more things to take care of. Not only does he have to worry about Fireflys operations, but also Pixar, the Digital Domain, and even Cisco asionally require his personal attention. Although his focus has always been on Firefly, Eric has not reduced his attention to thesepanies. With ample financial support, Toy Story has alreadypleted over half of its production. It may not make it in time for the Christmas season, but it will definitely be able to make it to the summer season next year. This new version of Toy Story is much more refined than the previous one, with added details and a total length that is now a more standard 90 minutes, rather than the previous 81 minutes. Eric believes that the appearance of Toy Story will definitely surprise the Hollywood film industry. As for the Digital Domain, Eric has entrusted it to Stan Winston with confidence. He has only arranged for a financial director to supervise the finances of the Digital Domain, and does not interfere much in other aspects. After its release in February, Ciscos stock price has been soaring. Although it slowed down for a bit more than a month, after the release of Ciscos first-quarter profit report, the stock price rose again. The $70 million investment from Eric has now grown to a value of over $200 million, and there is no sign of stopping. Many investment institutions have begun to regret transferring their original share subscription shares to Firefly Investment Company. While paying attention to these matters, Eric gradually noticed that people around him had be somewhat strange in recent days. They asionally looked at him with strange eyes, as if nning something. This feeling was subtle, and he couldnt tell if it was just his imagination. For example, today, members of the crew found excuses to take leave one by one, hoping that Eric could end todays shooting an hour early, saying that they had something to do. If it were one or two people, it would be okay, but since everyone was acting this way, Eric would have a problem with his intelligence if he couldnt sense that something was wrong. Due to the unanimous and firm demands of the crowd, Eric had topromise. Anyway, he had been tired for so many days, and the film was almost finished. He just nned to go along with public opinion. However, when they finished work, Eric caught up with the photographer, Nick, who wanted to leave: Nick, tell me, what happened? Nick looked at Eric strangely, as if reminding him, and felt a bit unbelievable. Facing Erics questioning, Nick looked around and saw many people looking in their direction. He quickly shook his head and said, Eric, I cant say. Ill be killed. If you dont say it, Ill kill you right now, Eric threatened. The photographer Mr. Nick raised his neck, looking like he was resigned to his fate. After all, he knew Eric couldnt really do anything to him. Eric punched Nick in the chest and said, Okay, get out of here. I hope you dont cause any trouble for me. I definitely wont, definitely, Nick said with a smile, nodding his head. After walking a few steps away and confirming that Eric couldnt hear him, Nick couldnt help but sigh: Unbelievable, really unbelievable. He can forget about something like this. No wonder hes a workaholic. Chapter 333

Chapter 333: You Must Be Crazy #

With a puzzled expression on his face, Eric finished cleaning up the set and returned to his hotel. He found that the entire floor dedicated to the film crew was nowpletely deserted, and the lively scene that usually urred after the crew finished work had disappeared. Just as he pushed open the door to his room, a pink figure floated over to him and clung onto him like a ko. It was Drew, dressed in a pink knee-length skirt with her hair styled in loose waves and a side-swept bang entuating her doll-like face. Hey, Drew, what brings you to New York? Eric asked, pulling her off him to take a closer look. I came to visit you, Drew replied with a grin, pulling Eric over to sit down as she straddled hisp. Eric quickly realized that todays events were somehow rted to the young girl sitting on hisp, who was now yfully rolling her eyes. Alright, spill the beans. What are you guys nning? Eric demanded, giving Drew a p on the butt. Hehe, Im not telling, Drew pouted and replied, trying to act cute. Eric didnt buy her act and tickled her sides until she finally relented. Okay, okay, youll find out soon enough, Drew said, standing up and taking a deep breath before producing a blindfold from the coffee table. Put this on, and Ill take you somewhere. Eric took the blindfold and yed with it for a bit before looking up at Drew and asking, What if I dont want to? Then Illcry, Drew threatened, her eyes narrowing. Let me see you cry then, Eric responded with a smirk, amused by her childish behavior. Drew scrunched up her face and tried to force out some tears, but they never came. Instead, she let out a loud cry and jumped into Erics arms, scratching and wing at him like a wildcat. Fine, fine, Ill put it on, Eric said, exasperated. Despite his annoyance, he couldnt help but feel curious about what kind of surprise Drew had in store for him. Putting on the eye mask, Drew immediately pulled Eric and walked out. Eric only felt like he entered an elevator, and then was pulled into a car. Soon he felt the sound of the car starting. Hey, lets make it clear first. Dont y too extreme, or Ill be angry. Am I that kind of person? the girl retorted discontentedly. Arent you? Hmph. The speed of the car was not fast, and Eric was not in a hurry. With the eye mask on, he leaned back on the seat and could close his eyes and rest for a while. He didnt know how long had passed. Eric felt that the car was still driving and showed no signs of stopping, and he was already a little drowsy. How much longer? Eric couldnt help but ask. Dont worry, the girl looked at the pager she had been holding in her hand. In fact, the car had been driving around Manhattan Street to dy time, but Eric didnt know. Eric didnt say anything and leaned back on the seat again. The pager in her hand finally beeped, and Drew made a gesture to the driver. The speed of the car increased a bit, and it only took more than ten minutes to arrive at the destination. Pulling Eric out of the underground parking lot, they took the elevator directly. A few minutester, the girl pushed open a door and whispered surprise in Erics ear, then quickly took off Erics eye mask. The sound of banging cannons and flying confetti came in their faces. It was obvious that the people in the hall had rehearsed well and spoke in unison. Happy Birthday! Wow, Eric eximed, feeling a bit at a loss. When he heard these words, he finally remembered that today was May 16th, the birthday of the original owner of this body. Eric didnt pay much attention to birthdays in his past life, let alone now. Coupled with being busy these days, Eric couldnt remember this event at all. Familiar faces crowded up to him. Apart from the crew members of these days, the actors and directors he had worked with in the past year had alsoe. The executives of Firefly and Pixar also appeared here. Eric even saw Stan Winston, who should be in Los Angeles, and James Cameron, who should be preparing for Terminator 2. Obviously, Drew must have put in a lot of effort to prepare this birthday party for him. Just keeping this a secret from him was not easy. After frolicking together for a while, the people slowly dispersed. Hey, Jonah, hows the post-production of The Silence of the Lambs going Its pretty good, my movie? Of course, its about to wrap up too. Wow, I didnt expect you to be here too, Tom. What movies have you been working ontely? Of course, of course, what I said before still stands. Hello, Julia Hey, Liz, its my birthday today. You cant treat me like an old mother hen. Robert, hows the filming of Sleeping with the Enemy going? Well, after I finish Ghost, Ill go take a look You should trust Julia, she has enough box office appeal now. After greeting the guests, Eric finally had a brief break and sat down on a sofa in a corner. The young girl who had been clinging to him attentively brought him a ss of juice. At that moment, James Cameron, who had greeted him earlier with his wife Kathryn Bigelow, walked over again. Hi, James, and Mrs. Bigelow, Eric stood up straight and James Cameron and Kathryn Bigelow sat down next to him. Looking at this couple, Eric couldnt help but remember some memories from his past life. Cameron was not to be mentioned, but Kathryn Bigelow was also a legendary woman director in Hollywood. The films she directed had nothing to do with other women in Hollywood, and it could even be said that Kathryn Bigelows films had very little to do with women at all. Listen to the titles of her films, Point Break, The Hurt Locker, K-19: The Widowmaker, Strange Days And, most importantly, in the parallel time and space, Kathryn Bigelow was the first female Best Director winner in Oscar history. And at that years Oscars, Kathryn Bigelows biggest opponent was James Cameron, who was sitting beside her now. It was so exciting that it could be made into a movie, like Ex-Wifes Revenge or something. In his memory, James Cameron had sparks with Linda Hamilton, the female lead in Terminator 2, and he quickly divorced Kathryn Bigelow after Terminator 2 was released. Eric, actually, I wanted to discuss something with you, James Cameron said to Eric after greeting him. Hmm? Eric looked puzzled, thinking that the best investment wouldnt be happening so soon, the movie hasnt even started filming yet? Seeing Erics expression, James Cameron looked at his wife and Kathryn Bigelow took the initiative to speak, Its like this, Mr. Williams Call me Eric, Eric interrupted the other party. Kathryn Bigelow did not show any displeasure. She nodded and said, Recently, I got a good script. Its a story about surfers, but due to conflicts in casting, the original copyright owner, Columbia Pictures, abandoned the project. So now, Im looking for investors. When Eric heard the word surfers, he vaguely remembered a certain movie in his mind, but he hadnt seen it before. He had onlye across some introductions in his previous life and remembered the male lead in the movie. Can you introduce the plot? Eric asked. Its roughly like this. A newly appointed young FBI agent, Johnny, is investigating a bank robbery case. After a lot of tracking, he finds that many clues point to a group of surfers. So Johnny goes to the beach in Southern California and exins the situation to the young surfing coach, Tyler It took Kathryn Bigelow five minutes to briefly narrate the entire story and also gave her own opinions on filming. So, you want to tell the story in a darker way? Eric asked. Kathryn Bigelow nodded, I think it can better question human nature and be more realistic. Oh, you just said that you had conflicts with Columbia Pictures in casting. Who did you choose as the male lead? Although Eric already had an answer in his heart, he still asked cautiously. Keanu Reeves, Kathryn Bigelow said, This big boy yed Ted in Bill & Teds Excellent Adventurest year. Columbia Pictures said that Keanu Reevess image is very different from an FBI agent, but I think Keanu Reeves can definitely be an outstanding action actor. He has this kind of potential. As expected, Eric thought in his heart. After briefly remembering the introduction about this movie in his memory, Eric was sure. Although he didnt know how this movie would turn out, one thing was certain, Eric remembered very clearly that it would be best if this movie could be sessful at the box office. As long as this point can be confirmed, Eric has already made a decision. Ms. Bigelow, I need a detailed script and project budget information, Eric said. Cameron and Kathryn Bigelow both looked surprised. If Eric said so, it definitely meant that they had agreed to it. The couple didnt have high hopes, after all, neither of them thought this was amercial film. Otherwise, Columbia wouldnt have given up on this project. Well Eric, I didnt bring this information with me today, but I can give it to you within three days, Kathryn Bigelow said. Eric nodded and asked, By the way, who will be the producer for this movie? Cameron already agreed to it, but now it seems that we need to find a new producer because we couldnt confirm when we would get the investment. I thought it wouldnt be toote for Jim to finish Terminator 2, Kathryn said. Then let me personally be the producer, Eric said after thinking about it. You? Kathryn Bigelow immediately looked doubtful. Hey, Kate, dont you believe in Erics abilities? Cameron pretended to be unhappy and red at his wife. Kathryn Bigelow finally realized that although Eric was only 20 years old today, his achievements made over 90% of Hollywood directors feel inferior. Moreover, Eric now manages a moviepany that is second only to the Big Seven in Hollywood. Being a producer for a movie should be easy for him. Okay, Kathryn Bigelow nodded, I was just thinking, Eric, dont you need to shoot your own movie? Of course I do, but it doesnt seem to conflict. Just right, I havent done specific production work before, and I believe this is also a chance for me to learn, Eric said. When he saw Kathryn Bigelows doubtful expression again, he quickly waved his hand and said, Dont worry, Ms. Bigelow, you should believe in my abilities. I think as long as people know enough about me, no one in Hollywood will doubt my ability, right? It seems so, Kathryn Bigelow finally nodded. Seeing that things were resolved so easily, Camerons expression changed, and he wanted to push for more, such as adding more budget to Terminator 2. But Eric clearly saw Camerons thoughts, and he knew that letting Cameron have his way so easily was not a good idea. Eric stood up directly and said, Okay, thats it for today, James. Well talk about the detailster. Today is my birthday, lets have some fun. After speaking, Eric let the little girl hold his arm and walked away towards somewhere else. Hey James, that little one definitely figured out what you wanted to say, Kathryn Bigelow quipped with a hint of teasing after Eric left. Cameron shrugged indifferently, Anywayhe wont be able to escape it sooner orter. Although Kathryn Bigelow wanted to persuade her husband to be more restrained, she gave up the idea when she thought of Camerons fastidious personality when making movies. She knew her husband would not listen to her. James, to be honest, how much money do you n to spend on Terminator 2? Cameron calcted a bit and then looked around before surreptitiously extending one finger to his wife. Kathryn Bigelow gasped, One hundred million dors? Cameron nodded. You must be crazy. That little one will be so angry with you, Kathryn Bigelow said helplessly. After all, so far, there hasnt been any movie investment in Hollywood that has reached one hundred million dors, and an investment of more than fifty million dors is enough to stir up the movie industry. He has the money. Isnt money meant to be used to make movies? Cameron argued righteously. Chapter 334

Chapter 334: So Many Ties #

As the waiter pushed a multiyered cake into the party hall, the birthday song rang out, and the party entered its climax. Several women who were recognized as being close to Eric were pushed out of the crowd by the cheering guests and blushed, crowding around Eric to help blow out the candles on the cake. The lively party continued until the early hours of the morning, and the satisfied guests gradually dispersed. As the host, Eric politely saw them off, during which he inevitably encountered several resentful gazes. But in this situation, of course, he couldnt bring any woman back to his ce. Not only was it to take care of the feelings of the other women, but also because there were many paparazzi gathered outside the Hilton Hotel where the birthday party was held. Erics every move tonight would surely be the focus of the paparazzis attention. For example, now, when he was driving back to the hotel in the car he came in, several clearly paparazzi vehicles followed behind, and even a few paparazzi on motorcycles were tightly following Erics car. Although he tried to restrain himself, Eric was inevitably a little drunk from entertaining so many people. At this moment, he leaned against the back of the car seat, feeling a little dizzy, and the girl next to him, Drew, was like a kitten snuggled up against him. Because there were too many people at the party, she cleverly didnt drink any alcohol. Back at the hotel where the crew was staying, Eric went directly from the underground parking garage elevator to the floor where the crew was located. The little girl also followed Eric without hesitation, as if everything was natural. Although many crew members who returned at the same time noticed this detail, they all pretended not to see it, after all, the girls current appearance, with her protruding front and curvy back, was very easy to overlook her age. Looking at the little follower, Eric just shrugged helplessly. Drew, have you booked a room in the hotel? Drew raised her hand and pointed to the door of Erics room. My luggage is all in there. Well, okay. Eric knew that saying more was useless, so he took out his room card from his pocket and pushed open the door. He saw a living room full of beautifully packaged gift boxes. Wow, when were these delivered? Eric asked in surprise. I ordered them to be delivered during the party. In fact, gifts have been arriving one after another these days. Ellen, n, and I have worked hard to keep it a secret, Drew said with a smile, looking like she wanted to take credit. Well, thank you for this surprise you prepared for me. I really like it, Eric said, holding the girls little chin and kissing her on the cheek, feeling a pair of little hands showing signs of hugging him. Eric quickly let go, feeling a little embarrassed. Ill help, Drew said, clearly interested. He took a few steps over and casually picked up a gift box, looked at it, and then turned up his nose. Hmm, you deal with this one yourself. Eric took the box from him and looked at the name on it. It was from Nicole, no wonder she had that expression on her face. When Eric unwrapped the box, he found a hand-sized box inside, which contained a blue and white striped Versace silk tie. The little girl who had been watching Erics every move suddenly widened her eyes when she saw the gift. She thenined, She really doesnt hide it at all. Why not just give him a red tie? Eric smiled and ignored the girls teasing. Generally, only women with close rtionships with men would give them ties, hoping to tie them down. If a woman gave a man a red tie, it meant she wanted to marry him. Thats why the girl had said what she had just said. Okay, lets unwrap the others, the girl said. She sat cross-legged next to the pile of gifts, picked up a rtivelyrge box that couldnt possibly contain a tie, and began to unwrap it. Eric put Nicoles tie aside and sat down next to Drew near the pile of gifts. He casually picked up a box and began to unwrap it. After a while, Eric opened the gift box from Virginia, and another tie appeared in front of them. Hmph, really tasteless. Who would choose this pattern? The girl didnt react as strongly as she had before, but she still grumbled discontentedly. Eric was interested and picked up Virginias light blue polka dot tie, gestured it in front of his chest, and then put it back in the box. After some thought, Eric began to search through the pile of gifts. More than ten minutester, several more ties appeared in front of them. Dont move, let me count, Drew said, stopping Eric from putting away the gifts. One, two, three, four, five, six oh my god, I cant take it, the girl acted like a small woman who had caught her unfaithful husband and pounced on the sofa next to her, using a cushion to cover her head and shouting. Eric ignored the girl and instead held an anonymous gift box, feeling somewhat stunned. There were six ties in the box, with five of them having names: Virginia, Nicole, Jennifer Connelly, Famke Janssen, and Joanna Pacu?a. The ties from Julia and Elizabeth, who he had rtionships with, were not among them. So who was the other person? Eric smelled the box under his nose and recognized the faint scent of fresh perfume. A lovely and stubborn face appeared in his mind. Speaking of which, the second season of Friends was about to start filming, and he hadnt seen the girl in a long time. The feeling of acquaintanceship from a long time ago was always unforgettable. Although the two had already broken up, when he asionally saw news about Aniston on TV or in the newspapers, the girl was asked about their rtionship, but there was no excitement like when the incident first broke out. Seeing that Eric didnte tofort her, the girl quickly poked her head out from under the pillow. She saw Eric looking thoughtful and stuck out her tongue before obediently climbing down from the sofa and approaching him. Eric, Eric, Eric Drew reached out and waved her hand in front of Erics eyes, calling his name several times in a row. Eric opened the girls small hand and asked, What about your gift? Huh? The little girl hesitated for a moment, then got up and ran to the corner of the living room, opened her suitcase, and took out a small box. She returned to Eric in 32 steps and said, Here. Eric looked at the palm-sized box in his hand and suddenly had a certain premonition. He quickly opened the box and pulled out a big red tie, shaking it in front of the girl. Isnt this too obvious? What did someone just say? Chapter 335

Chapter 335: Early Morning #

Due tost nights party, Eric took a temporary break from the filming crew and moved the weekly day off to today. Everyone in the crew partied all night, and after being busy for so many days, not many people woke up even though its alreadyte. Joanna Pacu?a hesitated whether or not to knock on Erics door while holding breakfast in one hand and a stack of newspapers in the other. Looking at her watch, its already 8:30 am. Although she hasnt spent much time with Eric, Joanna Pacu?a is very familiar with his daily routine. Typically, Eric should have already woken up by this time. However,st night, that little girl Drew followed Eric back to his room, and who knows how long they went crazy for. Thinking of certain scenes, Joanna Pacu?as face turned slightly red, even though the gift she gave Eric yesterday was also a tie. But Joanna Pacu?a doesnt have the same ambitions as other women. Over the years, she has realized many harsh realities, or perhaps she has given up on many things. Now, she just hopes to live a rtively stable life without any uncertainty. The acting industry seems to always imply money and fame in the eyes of outsiders, but the reality is far from what people imagine. Take Hollywood, for example. There are over 100,000 registered members in the actors union, and there are countless actors who hang around the periphery without even qualifying to join the union. However, among this huge group, only those 12th-tier stars can live a morous life by shooting a film every year. Those below the third tier are much more destitute. Not to mention those who are not even in the mainstream. For those in the third tier, they usually only y supporting roles in movies, and even the pay for many supporting roles is less than one-tenth of the leading role. The leading role can earn millions of dors in pay, while the supporting role only receives a few thousand dors, and this is for more formal big-budget productions. Even the leading roles in independent films usually only receive a few tens of thousands of dors in pay. Joanna Pacu?a was originally in this actor category, and even spent the whole year in a career state. Good morning, Miss Pacu?a, a door suddenly opened in the corridor, and a lighting technician from the crew walked out of the room. Seeing Joanna Pacu?a standing in front of Erics room, he didnt think much of it and casually greeted her. Ah, Mr. Lawrence, good morning, Joanna Pacu?a hurriedly greeted him, afraid of being seen in an embarrassing situation. She took out the room card for Erics room from her pocket and walked in directly. Closing the door, Joanna Pacu?a breathed a sigh of relief. The room was quiet, and there were various packaging boxes scattered in the living room. Taking a look at the closed bedroom door, Joanna Pacu?a thought that Eric hadnt gotten up yet. She quietly put down what she was holding on the coffee table and bent down to tidy up a mess on the floor. Just as she had folded several pieces of wrapping paper together, the girl heard the sound of the balcony door opening. She looked up and saw Eric, with his upper body bare and wearing a pair of sport shorts, wiping the sweat off his forehead with a towel. Good morning, Joanna, Eric greeted the girl. Good morning, Eric, Joanna Pacu?a replied quickly, standing up. Joanna knew that there was a treadmill on the balcony, which was specially arranged for Eric by the hotel on the day he checked in. Judging from the situation, Eric had obviously just finished exercising. However ncing at the bedroom door, the girl was a little surprised. Based on her understanding of Eric, this man had slept with Drewst night and couldnt have done nothing. She didnt expect Eric to get up early and exercise. Seeing Joanna Pacu?a looking at the bedroom door, Eric quickly guessed what was on the girls mind and asked with a smile, What are you thinking? Nothing, nothing, Joanna Pacu?a shook her head and said, By the way, breakfast is ready, and todays newspaper is here. Instead of walking towards the coffee table where the breakfast was, Eric walked straight towards Joanna and hugged the girl in professional attire. With a teasing tone, he said, I feel like eating something else now. The strong masculine scent after exercise made Joannas head dizzy. As Eric moved, the girls breathing became rapid. Its morning now, and youyou were with Drewst night, Joanna supported herself on Erics chest with both hands and whispered. Eric didnt exin what happenedst night, but he directly picked up the girl and walked towards the bathroom. Although the bathroom door was closed, Joannas uneasy voice could still be heard soon after, Dont do this, what about my clothes? How am I supposed to leaveter? Okay, then lean on the sink like this. Hmm, just like that. The girls breath seemed even more chaotic. Can I put on my clothes first? Wearing clothes is more vorful. A sigh-like moan rang out, but it was quickly interrupted. You can call out. The girl is sleeping soundly and wont hear you. Eric, I, I feel like this is not good, Joanna said intermittently. Eric did not answer but was immersed in some kind of pleasure. In the bedroom, Drew turned over in his sleep, the nket was kicked off his body, and a pair of delicate breasts were exposed. Feeling the chill on her chest, the girl reluctantly waved her hand a few times as if trying to grab something but got nothing. She had tozily open her eyes and looked beside her, but Eric was no longer there. Muttering a few words, the girl grabbed Erics pillow and held it in her arms. She sniffed it like a little dog, humming a few times, nning to go back to sleep. However, she always seemed to hear a womans voice, faintly. The alert little girl quickly widened her eyes and listened carefully. Although the voice was very weak, she could be sure that this was not an illusion. Jumping out of bed, she casually found one of Erics t-shirts to wear and walked out of the bedroom barefoot like a cat. As soon as she came to the living room, the sound became clearer. After sneaking to the bathroom door and listening for a while, Drew recognized the womans identity. What a shameless person, the girl muttered angrily. She reached out to grab the doorknob, hesitated for a moment, and then withdrew her hand. She pulled down the neckline of the oversized t-shirt and looked at her chest, sighing with a very world-weary tone. Then, she walked to the sofa and sat cross-legged, opened the lunch box on the coffee table, and decided to eat all the breakfast to show her dissatisfaction. The Novel will be updated first on this website. Come back and continue reading tomorrow, everyone!